summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 14:33:26 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-27 14:33:26 -0800
commit70f06951039b507aebd95eef09bbd3c2c7000d38 (patch)
treebd0230208a820e2d56ac46691ced267931b590a7
parent9c5469b903e7f6913b4289bd1310435f56e8ce89 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/60652-0.txt24160
-rw-r--r--old/60652-0.zipbin500451 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60652-h.zipbin727768 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/60652-h/60652-h.htm23462
-rw-r--r--old/60652-h/images/cover.jpgbin208048 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 47622 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..73e981b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #60652 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/60652)
diff --git a/old/60652-0.txt b/old/60652-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 53687a4..0000000
--- a/old/60652-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,24160 +0,0 @@
-Project Gutenberg's The Battles of the World, by J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Battles of the World
- or, cyclopedia of battles, sieges, and important military events
-
-Author: J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-Release Date: November 8, 2019 [EBook #60652]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BATTLES OF THE WORLD ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, John Campbell and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by the Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions
-(www.canadiana.org)(and Hathi, for some replacement pages.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE
-
- Italic text is denoted by _underscores_.
-
- Footnote anchors are denoted by [number], and the footnotes have been
- placed at the end of the alphabetical ‘CYCLOPÆDIA’ section, and the
- ‘APPENDIX’ section.
-
- Minor changes to the text are noted at the end of the book.
-
-
-
-
- THE
-
- BATTLES OF THE WORLD;
-
- OR, CYCLOPÆDIA OF
-
- BATTLES, SIEGES, AND IMPORTANT MILITARY EVENTS,
-
- The Origin and Institution of Military Titles, &c. &c.,
-
- ALPHABETICALLY ARRANGED,
-
- WITH AN APPENDIX,
-
- CONTAINING
-
- A CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE,
-
- FROM THE CREATION TO THE PRESENT DAY.
-
-
- DEDICATED BY PERMISSION TO GENERAL SIR JOHN MICHEL.
-
-
- BY
-
- REV. J. DOUGLAS BORTHWICK,
-
- AUTHOR OF “CYCLOPÆDIA OF HISTORY AND GEOGRAPHY,” “THE BRITISH AMERICAN
- READER,” AND “THE HARP OF CANAAN.”
-
- Montreal:
- PUBLISHED BY JOHN MUIR; AND PRINTED BY JOHN LOVELL,
- ST. NICHOLAS STREET.
- 1866.
-
-
-
-
- Entered, according to Act of Provincial Parliament, in the year
- one thousand eight hundred and sixty-six, by JOHN MUIR, in the
- Office of the Registrar of the Province of Canada.
-
-
-
-
-To
-
-General Sir John Michel, K. C. B.,
-
-Commanding the Forces
-
-in
-
-British North America,
-
-
-As a small mark of respect to the highest Military Authority in
-these Provinces, and a token of esteem for one of the Generals of
-that glorious army which has fought and conquered in every age of
-its country’s history, and in almost every clime,--
-
- Whose flag has braved a thousand years
- The battle and the breeze;
-
-And whose actions constitute NOT a small portion of the “Battles of
-the World,”
-
- This work is dedicated
-
- BY
-
- THE AUTHOR.
-
-MONTREAL, August 1866.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-Within the last decade of the history of Great Britain, some very
-important books have been added to her literature, and especially
-to that particular division which treats of her wars and splendid
-victories, during the same period. “The Fifteen Decisive Battles
-of the World,” by Sir E. S. Creasy, Chief Justice of Ceylon;
-“The Twelve Great Battles of England,” inscribed to the British
-Volunteers of 1860; “England’s Battles by Sea and Land,” “Russell’s
-Crimea and India,” “Emerson’s Sebastopol,” &c., are valuable in
-themselves, as describing those victories which have raised “Dear
-Old England” to the _very first_ rank among the nations. But the
-object of the present publication embraces a larger and more
-extended field of research. It embraces the whole of the principal
-battles, by land and sea, that have EVER taken place, from the
-earliest recorded action of which we have in history any distinct
-and reliable information, to the very last event of military
-importance which has transpired previous to going to press.
-
-I need scarcely say here that that event is the unprecedented
-and unheard of invasion of our country, by a band of lawless
-brigands and filibusters, from the neighbouring Republic, ycleped
-Fenians, who have shed blood, and wantonly invaded the territory
-of a friendly power. It gives me much pleasure to insert in the
-“Cyclopædia of Battles” some account of how they were met by our
-brave Volunteers, at Ridgeway and Pigeon Hill; for it proves that
-the Volunteers of Canada will compare favorably with those of
-the Mother Country: and let it be borne in mind that one-half of
-the men who greatly contributed to the Victory of Waterloo were
-recruits--raw troops--drafts from the militia--soldiers who had
-never been engaged before; and the same indomitable pluck--the same
-unconquered spirit--the same manly virtue of England’s offshoot
-sons, was seen in the attack at Ridgeway.
-
-In the first general engagement in the Great Rebellion of the
-United States--which was fought at Bull Run--American Volunteers
-_were also for the first time under fire_, but what was the result?
-A total pell-mell rout--a scattered army hurrying on--cavalry,
-artillery, and infantry--in one mighty, confused mass--treading
-down and overthrowing each other, in their eagerness to escape from
-the manly chivalry of the South. OUR brave Volunteers charged with
-the “Spirit of their fathers,” and gained the day.
-
-It has been said that Canada was neither a military nor a literary
-colony. The events of the last few weeks fully proves to the
-contrary, regarding her military ardor. Her sons nobly responded to
-the government call; and had necessity required, as fair and fully
-equipped an army would have trod the battle-field as ever stood
-arrayed before an enemy;--and these sons of hers were scions of
-all stocks--from the son of the learnèd divine or lawyer, to the
-peasant’s only boy. As regards her literary fame she has produced
-works which will compare favorably with sister colonies, and may
-rank side by side with the Mother Country. To refute the assertion,
-too, may be here remarked, what an agent for some of the largest
-publishers both of England and the United States said not long
-ago; “In the last three months he had sold twenty complete copies
-of one of the largest and best Encyclopædias, and nearly double
-that number in parts,” added to the hundreds of other publications
-which are being scattered broadcast over the country, prove that
-the Canadians are cultivating their minds as well as their “broad
-acres.” For my own individual part, I can bear ample testimony
-to the generous patronage given to my publications. The first,
-published some years ago was rapidly sold. The second issued, was
-accepted by the _unanimous_ voice and vote of the Council of Public
-Instruction as the standard School Reader for Lower Canada, and
-received the approval of the Government. The whole edition of the
-third, issued last Christmas, was sold in two weeks. The present
-work bids fair to receive as large if not a larger circulation.
-
-To the people of Canada who have advanced and are advancing
-literature, by subscribing to and supporting literary institutions
-and productions, I tender my sincere thanks for all the patronage
-hitherto bestowed upon my humble endeavours to elevate the
-literature of this, my adopted country, and to perpetuate, in book
-form, among the “Battles of the World,” CANADA’S ENGAGEMENTS with
-foreign foes--HER BATTLES BY LAND AND SEA.
-
- J. DOUGLAS BORTHWICK.
-
- MONTREAL, 24th July 1866.
-
- POSTSCRIPT.--Since the above Preface has been in type events
- which were looked for, have transpired in Europe and by the
- accounts received some battles have already been fought on
- Continental soil. As far as practicable, insertion will be given
- to those of which we have received reliable information as
- regarding statistics, &c.
-
- J. D. B.
-
-
-
-
-CYCLOPÆDIA
-
-OF THE
-
-BATTLES OF THE WORLD.
-
-
-
-
-A.
-
-
-ABDICATION OF KINGS.--Numerous in ancient history. The following
-are those of the most remarkable character and greatest political
-importance:
-
- Henry IV. of Germany A.D. 1080
- Baliol of Scotland “ 1306
- Charles V. of Germany “ 1556
- James II. of England “ 1688
- Philip V. of Spain “ 1724
- Napoleon April 5, 1814
- Charles X. of France Aug. 2, 1830
- Louis Philippe “ Feb. 24, 1848
- Ferdinand of Austria. Dec. 2, 1848
-
-
-ABOUKIR.--Commonly called the Battle of the Nile. Fought between
-the French and English fleets August 1st, 1798. (See NILE.)
-
-
-ABRAHAM, HEIGHTS OF.--Commonly called the Taking of Quebec, or the
-Battle of the Plains of Abraham. Fought September 13th, 1759. (See
-QUEBEC.)
-
-
-ACAPULCO SHIP.--This was the celebrated prize. A Spanish galleon,
-from Acapulco, laden with gold and precious wares, and estimated by
-some annalists at £1,000,000 sterling and upwards, taken by Lord
-Anson, who had previously acquired in his memorable voyage booty
-amounting to £600,000. Admiral Anson arrived at Spithead, in the
-_Centurion_, with his immense gains, after having circumnavigated
-the globe, June 15th, 1744.
-
-
-ACRE, ST. JEAN D’--anciently _Ptolemais_. This city was taken
-by Richard I and other Crusaders in 1192, after a siege of two
-years, with the loss of 6 archbishops, 12 bishops, 40 earls, 500
-barons, and 300,000 soldiers. It was retaken by the Saracens,
-when 60,000 Christians perished, A.D. 1291. Acre was attacked by
-Bonaparte, in July, A.D. 1798, and was relieved by Sir Sidney
-Smith, who gallantly resisted twelve attempts during the memorable
-siege of the French, between March 1st, and May 27th, 1799, when,
-baffled by the British squadron on the water, and the Turks on
-shore, Bonaparte relinquished his object and retreated. St. Jean
-d’Acre is a pachalic, subject to the Porte, seized upon by Ibrahim
-Pacha, who had revolted, July 2nd, 1832. It became a point in the
-Syrian war in 1840. It was stormed by the British fleet under Sir
-Robert Stopford, and taken after a bombardment of a few hours--the
-Egyptians losing upwards of 2,000 in killed and wounded, and 3,000
-prisoners; while the British had but 12 killed, and 42 wounded,
-November 3, 1840.
-
-
-ACTIUM.--This battle was fought September 2nd, B.C. 31, between the
-fleets of Octavianus Cæsar on the one side, and of Marc Antony and
-Cleopatra on the other. The victory of Octavianus which followed,
-procured him the name of Augustus, the Venerable, bestowed on him
-by the Senate, and the commencement of the Roman Empire is commonly
-dated from this year.
-
-
-ADRIANOPLE.--This battle, by which Constantine the Great procured
-the Roman Empire, was fought July 3rd, A.D. 323. Adrianople was
-afterwards taken by the Ottomans from the Greeks, in 1360, and
-continued to be the seat of the Turkish Empire till the capture of
-Constantinople in 1453. Mahomet II, one of the most distinguished
-of the Sultans, and the one who took Constantinople, was born here
-in 1430. Adrianople was taken by the Russians, who entered it,
-August 20th, 1829, but was restored to the Sultan at the close of
-the war, September 14th, the same year.
-
-
-ADJUTANT.--This name is given to the officer, generally a
-lieutenant, whose business it is to assist the superior officers,
-by receiving and communicating orders.
-
-
-ADMIRAL.--This, the highest title in the navy, does not appear to
-have been adopted till about 1300. This title was first given in
-England to William de Leybourne, by Edward I, in 1297. The first
-Lord High Admiral of England was created by Richard II in 1388. It
-is an office which has seldom been trusted to single hands. Prince
-George of Denmark, consort to Queen Anne, was Lord High Admiral in
-her reign. Since that time (1708) the duties were uninterruptedly
-executed by Lords Commissioners until 1827, when the Duke of
-Clarence, afterwards William IV, was appointed. He resigned August
-12th, 1828, and the office has ever since been vested in the Lords
-of the Admiralty.
-
-
-AEGOS POTAMOS.--This place is famous for the victory of Lysander
-over the Athenian fleet, on the 13th December, B.C. 405, in the
-last year of the Peloponnesian war. All the triremes of the
-Athenians, 180 in number, were either lost or captured, without the
-loss of a single ship on the side of Lysander.
-
-
-AFGHAN WAR.--A fierce rebellion broke out on November 2nd, 1842,
-at Cabul; Burnes and Macnaughten, the British ministers, with
-other civil and military officers, were successively murdered, and
-the whole country rose in arms under the treacherous Akbar Khan,
-the son of the deposed king, Dost Mohammed, who determined on the
-massacre of the whole British force. Pusillanimity and indecision
-in the councils of the general-in-chief, led to an immediate
-evacuation of the country. 4,500 fighting men, together with about
-12,000 camp followers, besides women and children, set forward,
-through ice and snow, on their lamentable retreat; and no sooner
-had they cleared out of their cantonments, than the blood-thirsty
-Afghans began to plunder the baggage, and fire upon the soldiery;
-they continued without ceasing their revengeful assaults upon the
-bewildered and desponding multitude, till there was nothing left to
-plunder, and none left to kill. Out of a host of about 26,000 human
-beings, only a few hundreds were rescued from death by captivity.
-The ladies and the wounded had been given up to the enemy early
-in the march, and Dr. Brydon was the only officer who made good
-his retreat. In the following year, however, on the appointment of
-Lord Ellenborough to the governor-generalship of India in the place
-of Lord Auckland, the British national character was repaired,
-the honour of their arms retrieved, and the unfortunate prisoners
-rescued. General Pollock was despatched into Afghanistan with an
-invading army; he advanced on Cabul with all possible rapidity;
-while, on the other side, General Nott, who had held out at
-Candahar during the recent difficulties, brought his forces also to
-bear on the capital. Victory everywhere attended the British arms;
-and the British officers and ladies, who had been taken prisoners,
-were also rescued, at Bameean, on the road to Turkistan. These
-disgraces having been so gloriously redeemed, it was determined
-to evacuate a country which ought never to have been entered; the
-fortifications and other works of Cabul having been destroyed,
-the British troops set forward, on their return home, and, after
-a march of about ten weeks, arrived safely on the banks of the
-Sutlej, December 17th, 1842.
-
-
-AGINCOURT.--Fought on the 25th of October, 1415, between the
-English and French. When all his preparations were completed, King
-Henry V embarked at Southampton with a gallant army of 30,000 men,
-and landing at the mouth of the river Seine, invested the town
-of Harfleur. After a brave resistance of five months’ duration,
-the town surrendered; the inhabitants were expelled like those of
-Calais, and an English garrison occupied it. To his mortification,
-Henry, at the end of the siege, found his army no longer in a
-condition for active operations; for it had suffered so severely
-from dysentery, that when the sick and wounded had been sent home,
-it did not count more than one half of its original number. In
-spite however, of the remonstrances of his council, Henry resolved
-to march with his diminished force to Calais. He reached unopposed
-the ford by which Edward III had crossed the Somme, but found it
-secured by lines of palisades, behind which troops were posted.
-All the other fords were secured in like manner, and the bridges
-were broken. At length finding a ford unguarded, the English passed
-over. The constable of France, who commanded the French army, fell
-back towards Calais, and having received orders from his court to
-fight without delay, he sent heralds to King Henry to ask which way
-he intended to march. Henry replied, by that which led straight to
-Calais, and dismissed the heralds with a present of 100 crowns.
-
-As the English were advancing, the Duke of York, having ascended
-an eminence, descried the masses of the enemy. The troops were
-instantly formed in line of battle, but the French would not
-advance to attack them, the experience of Cressy and Poitiers
-having inspired them with a dread of the cloth-yard arrows of the
-English. But as their army presented an array of 50,000 horsemen,
-they had no doubt whatever of the victory; and though the night
-was dark and rainy, they assembled round their banners revelling
-and discussing the events of the coming day; and such was their
-confidence that they even fixed the ransoms of King Henry and his
-barons. English, on the contrary, made their wills, and passed the
-night in devotion. Sickness, famine, and the smallness of their
-numbers, depressed their spirits; but their courage rose when they
-thought on Cressy and other victories, and on the gallant spirit
-of their king. Henry himself visited all their quarters, and he
-ordered bands of music to play all through the night to cheer their
-drooping spirits.
-
-Before sunrise, on the 25th of October, 1415, being St. Crispin’s
-day, the English army, having heard mass, stood in order of battle.
-The king, wearing a helmet of polished steel, wreathed with a
-crown of sparkling stones, rode on a grey pony from rank to rank,
-inspecting and encouraging them. Hearing an officer say to another
-that he wished a miracle would transfer thither some of the good
-knights who were sitting idle at home, he declared aloud that “he
-would not have a single man more, as if God gave them the victory,
-it would be plainly due to His goodness; if he did not, the fewer
-that fell, the less the loss to their country.” Three French
-knights now came, summoning them to surrender. The king ordered
-them off and cried out, “Banners, advance.” The archers fell on
-their knees on the ground, then rose and ran on with a shout. They
-halted, and poured their hail of arrows on the first division of
-the French; and when they had thrown it into some confusion, they
-slung their bows behind their backs, and grasping their swords
-and battle-axes, killed the constable and his principal officers,
-and routed the whole division. They then advanced to attack the
-second division, led by the Duke of Alençon. Here the resistance
-was obstinate. Alençon forced his way to the royal standard,
-killed the Duke of York, and cleft the crown in the helmet of the
-king; but he was slain, and the division turned and fled. Henry
-was advancing to attack the third division, when word came that a
-large force was falling on the rear. The king gave hasty orders to
-put the prisoners to death, and numbers had perished before it was
-discovered that it was a false alarm, caused by an attempt of some
-peasantry to plunder the baggage. The slaughter was then stopped,
-but this cruel act tarnished the victory which was already won, for
-the third division offered but a slight resistance.
-
-When Montjoy, the French king-at-arms, appeared, “To whom,”
-said Henry, “doth the victory belong?” “To you, sir.” “And what
-castle is that I see at a distance?” “It is called the castle
-of Agincourt.” “Then,” said the king, “be this battle known to
-posterity by the name of the battle of Agincourt.” The prime
-nobility of France were taken or slain, and 8000 knights and
-gentlemen lay dead on the field. The loss of the English was only
-the Duke of York, the Earl of Suffolk, and about 600 men.
-
-
-AGRA.--This celebrated city is called the Key of Hindostan. It
-was surrendered, in the war of the Mahrattas, to the British
-forces, October 17th, 1803. The great Mogul frequently, before its
-surrender, resided here. It now exhibits the most magnificent ruins.
-
-
-AIDE-DE-CAMP.--(_From the French_.) An officer whose duty is to
-receive and communicate the orders of a general or superior officer.
-
-
-AIX-LA-CHAPELLE, PEACE OF.--The first treaty signed here was
-between France and Spain, May 2nd, 1668. The second, or the
-_celebrated_ treaty, was between Great Britain, France, Holland,
-Hungary, Spain and Geneva, October 7th, 1748. A congress of the
-sovereigns of Austria, Prussia and Russia, assisted by ministers
-from England and France, met here, October 9th, 1818, and signed a
-convention. The sum settled by this convention as due by France to
-the Allies, was 265,000,000 francs.
-
-
-ALBUERA OR ALBUHERA.--This battle was fought May 16th, 1811,
-between the English and French. The English and Anglo-Spanish
-army was commanded by Marshal, now Lord Beresford, and the French
-by Marshal Soult. After an obstinate and sanguinary engagement,
-the allies obtained the victory, one of the most brilliant
-achievements of the Peninsular War. The French loss exceeded 7000
-men, previously to their retreat; but the allies lost an equal
-number. On the side of the allies the chief brunt of the battle
-fell on the British. “Colonel Inglis, 22 officers, and more than
-400 men, out of 570, who had mounted a hill, fell in the 57th
-regiment alone; the other regiments were scarcely better off, not
-one-third being left standing; 1800 unwounded men, the remnant of
-6000 unconquerable British soldiers, stood triumphant on this fatal
-hill.”
-
-
-ALDERNEY, RACE OF.--Through this strait the French made their
-escape after their defeat at the battle of La Hogue, by Admiral
-Rooke, in 1692. It is celebrated for two memorable and melancholy
-events: 1st. Here the only son of Henry I of England was
-shipwrecked and drowned, with 140 youths of the highest families in
-England and France in 1119. 2nd. The British man-of-war Victory, of
-110 guns and 1100 men, was also wrecked here October 8th, 1744,
-when the Admiral, Sir John Balchan, and his crew, perished on the
-rocks.
-
-
-ALEMANNI OR ALL MEN (_i.e._ Men of all Nations).--A body of Suevi,
-who were defeated by Caracalla, A.D. 214. On one occasion 300,000
-of this warlike people are said to have been vanquished in a
-battle, near Milan, by Gallienus, at the head of 10,000 Romans.
-
-
-ALESSANDRIA.--This battle was fought, May 17th, 1799, between the
-Austro-Russian army, under Suwarrow, and the French under Moreau,
-when the latter were defeated with the loss of 4000 men. The French
-had possessed themselves of Alessandria the year before, but they
-were now driven out. It was again delivered up to them after the
-battle of Marengo in 1800. The village and battlefield of Marengo
-lie east of this town.
-
-
-ALEXANDRIA.--The battle of Alexandria was fought, March 21st, 1801,
-between the English and the French, the latter being commanded by
-Menou, and the former by Sir Ralph Abercrombie. It resulted in the
-defeat of the French, but the British general was mortally wounded,
-and after the retreat of Menou, he was carried to the admiral’s
-ship, and died on the 28th. The command devolved on Major-General
-Hutchinson, who baffled all the schemes of Menou, and obliged him
-to surrender, September 2nd, following, the victor guaranteeing the
-conveyance of the French, exceeding 10,000, to a French port in the
-Mediterranean.
-
-
-ALFORD.--This battle was fought, July 2nd, 1645, between a large
-body of Covenanters, under General Bailie, and the troops under
-the Marquis of Montrose. There was discovered some years since, in
-one of the mosses near this place, a man in armour, on horseback,
-supposed to have been drowned in attempting to escape from this
-battle.
-
-
-ALGESIRAS, OR OLD GIBRALTAR.--By this city the Moors entered
-Spain A.D. 713, and it was not recovered from them till 1344. An
-engagement was fought here between a British squadron, under Sir
-James Saumurez, and several French and Spanish ships of war, which
-closed in the destruction of two Spanish ships, each of 112 guns,
-and the capture of the _St. Antonio_, of 74 guns, July 12th, 1801.
-
-
-ALGIERS.--The British fleet, under Lord Exmouth, anchoring off
-Algiers, bombarded the town, which returned the fire; but all the
-fortifications and houses towards the sea were soon reduced to
-ashes, and the fleet in the harbour entirely destroyed, August
-27th, 1816. The Dey was compelled to conclude a treaty by which he
-set the Christian captives free, and engaged to cease, in future,
-from reducing Christians to slaves--a stipulation which, however,
-he did not afterwards strictly observe; so that the French took
-possession of the country and made it a colony with a governor,
-bearing the title of Regent of Algeria. This country is famous for
-the celebrated French soldiers, the Zouaves, of the late wars.
-
-
-ALIWAL, _India_.--This battle was fought, January 28th, 1846,
-between the British under Sir H. Smith, with 1200 men and 32
-guns, and the Sikh army, under Sirdar Runjoor Singh Majeethea,
-26,000 strong, supported by 68 pieces of cannon. The contest was
-obstinate, but ended in the defeat of the Sikhs, who lost nearly
-6000 killed, or drowned, in attempting to recross the Sutlej.
-This battle was named after the village of Aliwal, in the Indian
-language, _Ulleewal_, near which it was fought.
-
-
-ALLIA.--This memorable battle, in the history of Rome, was fought
-on the 18th July, B.C. 390, between the Romans and the celebrated
-Brennus, king of the Gauls; 40,000 of the Romans fell, and Brennus
-took and burnt the city of Rome. This day was always marked unlucky
-in the Roman calendar, and called Alliensis.
-
-
-ALLIANCE, TREATIES OF.--Between the greatest European powers, which
-are most commonly referred to:
-
- Alliance of Leipsic April 9, 1631.
- “ “ Vienna May 27, 1657.
- “ The Triple Jan. 28, 1668.
- “ The Grand May 12, 1689.
- “ The Hague Jan. 4, 1717.
- “ The Quadruple Aug. 2, 1718.
- “ The Germanic July 23, 1785.
- “ The Paris May 16, 1795.
- Austrian Alliance March 14, 1812.
- Alliance of Toplitz Sept. 9, 1813.
- The Holy Alliance Sept. 26, 1815.
-
-
-ALMA, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought, September 20th, 1854. “Lord Raglan
-waited patiently for the development of the French attack. At
-length an aide-de-camp came to him and reported that the French
-had crossed the Alma, but that they had not established themselves
-sufficiently to justify our advancing. The infantry were,
-therefore, ordered to lie down, and the army for a short time was
-quite passive, only that our artillery poured forth an unceasing
-fire of shell, rockets, and round shot, which ploughed through the
-Russians, and caused them great loss. They did not waver, however,
-and replied to our artillery manfully, their shot falling among our
-men as they lay, and carrying off legs and arms at every round.
-Lord Raglan at last became weary of this inactivity--his spirit was
-up--he looked around and saw by his side men on whom he knew he
-might stake the honour and fate of Great Britain, and anticipating
-a little, in military point of view, the crisis of action, he gave
-orders for our whole line to advance. Up rose those serried masses,
-and passing through a fearful shower of round shot, case shot,
-and shell, they dashed into the Alma, and floundered through its
-waters, which were literally torn into foam by the deadly hail.
-At the other side of the river were a number of vineyards, and to
-our surprise they were occupied by Russian riflemen. Three of the
-staff were here shot down, but led by Lord Raglan in person, they
-advanced, cheering on the men.
-
-And now came the turning-point of the battle, ... Lord Raglan
-dashed over the bridge, followed by his staff. From the road over
-it, under the Russian guns, he saw the state of action. The British
-line, which he had ordered to advance, was struggling through the
-river and up to the heights in masses, firm indeed, but mowed
-down by the murderous fire of the batteries, and by grape, round
-shot, shell, canister, case shot, and musketry, from some of the
-guns of the central battery, and from an immense and compact mass
-of Russian infantry. Then commenced one of the most bloody and
-determined struggles in the annals of war. The Second Division,
-led by Sir De Lacy Evans in the most dashing manner, crossed the
-stream on the right. The 7th Fusiliers, led by Colonel Yea, were
-swept down by fifties. The 55th, 30th, and 95th, led by Brigadier
-Pennefather, who was in the thickest of the fight, cheering on
-his men, again and again were checked indeed, but never drew back
-in their onward progress, which was marked by a fierce roll of
-Minié musketry; and Brigadier Adams, with the 41st, 47th, and
-49th, bravely charged up the hill, and aided them in the battle.
-Sir George Brown, conspicuous on a grey horse, rode in front of
-his Light Division, urging them with voice and gesture. Gallant
-fellows! they were worthy of such a gallant chief. The 7th,
-diminished by one-half, fell back to re-form their columns lost for
-the time: the 23rd, with eight officers dead and four wounded,
-were still rushing to the front, aided by the 15th, 33d, 77th,
-and 88th. Down went Sir George in a cloud of dust in front of the
-battery. He was soon up, and shouted, “23d, I’m all right! Be sure
-I’ll remember this day,” and led them on again; but in the shock
-produced by the fall of their chief, the gallant regiment suffered
-terribly, while paralysed for a moment.
-
-Meantime the Guards on the right of the Light Division, and the
-brigade of Highlanders, were storming the heights on the left.
-Their line was almost as regular as though they were in Hyde Park.
-Suddenly a tornado of round and grape, rushed through from the
-terrible battery, and a roar of musketry from behind thinned their
-front ranks by dozens. It was evident that we were just able to
-contend against the Russians, favoured as they were by a great
-position. At this very time an immense mass of Russian infantry
-were seen moving down towards the battery. They halted. It was the
-crisis of the day. Sharp, angular, and solid, they looked as if
-they were cut out of the solid rock. It was beyond all doubt that
-if our infantry, harassed and thinned as they were, got into the
-battery, they would have to encounter again a formidable fire,
-which they were but ill calculated to bear. Lord Raglan saw the
-difficulties of the situation. He asked if it would be possible to
-get a couple of guns to bear on these masses. The reply was “Yes;”
-and an artillery officer, whose name I do not know, brought up two
-guns to fire on the Russian squares. The first shot missed, but the
-next, and the next, and the next, cut through the ranks so cleanly,
-and so keenly, that a clear lane could be seen for a moment through
-the square. After a few rounds, the columns of the square became
-broken, wavered to and fro, broke, and fled over the brow of the
-hill, leaving behind them six or seven distinct lines of dead,
-lying as close as possible to each other, marking the passage of
-the fatal messengers. This act relieved our infantry of a deadly
-incubus, and they continued their magnificent and fearful progress
-up the hill. The Duke encouraged his men by voice and example,
-and proved himself worthy of his proud command and of the royal
-race from which he comes. “Highlanders,” said Sir Colin Campbell,
-ere they came to the charge, “I am going to ask a favour of you:
-it is, that you will act so as to justify me in asking permission
-of the Queen for you to wear a bonnet! Don’t pull a trigger till
-you are within a yard of the Russians!” They charged, and well
-they obeyed their chieftain’s wish; Sir Colin had his horse shot
-under him, but his men took the battery at a bound. The Russians
-rushed out, and left multitudes of dead behind them. The Guards
-had stormed the right of the battery ere the Highlanders got into
-the left, and it is said the Scots Fusilier Guards were the first
-to enter. The Second and Light Division crowned the heights. The
-French turned the guns on the hill against the flying masses, which
-the cavalry in vain tried to cover. A few faint struggles from the
-scattered infantry, a few rounds of cannon and musketry, and the
-enemy fled to the south-east, leaving three generals, three guns,
-700 prisoners, and 4000 wounded behind them. The battle of the Alma
-was won. It was won with a loss of nearly 3000 killed and wounded
-on our side. The Russians’ retreat was covered by their cavalry,
-but if we had had an adequate force, we could have captured many
-guns and multitudes of prisoners.”
-
-The following graphic account is taken from _Emerson’s Sebastopol_:
-
-“On the 19th September the march commenced. Proceeding southward,
-the French army, under the command of Marshal St. Arnaud, with
-Caurobert and Bosquet as generals of divisions, keeping the coast
-line; the English on their left. The fleets accompanied the march,
-close to the shore, ready to render assistance should circumstances
-render it necessary.
-
-The English army comprised about 25,000 men, and was composed of
-the following regiments, led as under:--
-
-
-COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF, LORD RAGLAN.
-
-_Light Division._--Lieut.-General Sir G. Brown. Generals of
-Brigade, Colonels Airey and Buller. 7th, 19th, 23rd (Welsh
-Fusiliers), 33rd, 77th, and 88th Infantry.
-
-_First Division._--Lieut.-General H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge.
-Generals of Brigade, Major-General Bentinck and Major-General Sir
-Colin Campbell. Battalions, Grenadier Guards, Coldstream Guards,
-Scots Fusiliers; 42nd, 79th, and 93rd Highlanders.
-
-_Second Division._--Lieut.-General Sir De Lacy Evans. Generals of
-Brigade, Major-Generals Pennefather and Adams. 30th, 41st, 47th,
-49th, 55th, and 95th Infantry.
-
-_Third Division._--Major-General Sir Richard England. Generals of
-Brigade, Colonels Sir J. Campbell and Eyre. 1st, 4th, 28th, 38th,
-44th, 50th, and 63rd Infantry.
-
-_Fourth Division._--Lieut.-General Sir George Cathcart. Generals of
-Brigade, Generals Goldie and Torrens. 20th, 21st, 57th, and 63rd
-Infantry; 1st Battalion Rifle Brigade.
-
-_Cavalry Division._--Lieut.-General the Earl of Lucan. Generals of
-Brigade, the Earl of Cardigan and Major-General Scarlett. 8th and
-11th Dragoons; 17th Lancers.
-
-[The Scots Greys, the Enniskillens, the 1st Royals, and the 4th
-and 5th Dragoon Guards, forming the Heavy Brigade, under General
-Scarlett, did not land with the remainder of the army, but joined
-it after the battle of Alma.]
-
-_Artillery._--General Strangways.
-
-_Engineers._--General Tylden.
-
-On the evening of the 19th, the first actual encounter with the
-enemy occurred. A strong body of Cossacks hovered about our line
-of march, and two or three guns opened fire upon our little force
-of cavalry from the heights on the river Bouljanak, the first
-stream we had to cross. The Earl of Cardigan gallantly charged the
-hostile troop, who evaded actual contact, and retreated until they
-had led our men within the range of the guns. Four of our dragoons
-were killed and six wounded in this skirmish. Two or three of our
-guns were speedily brought to bear upon the enemy, and Cossacks,
-gunners, and all were soon dispersed.
-
-Another dreary bivouac on the wet ground prepared the armies for
-the great contest which awaited them. At day break on the morning
-of the 20th of September--a day destined to receive an undying
-fame in our military annals,--the troops resumed their march. As
-they approached the river Alma, and mounted the heights to the
-north of that once obscure but now renowned stream, they saw the
-preparations which the Russians had made to repel the invaders
-of their territory. The Alma is a small river, rising in the
-mountains in the east of the peninsula, and falling into the sea
-about twelve miles to the north of Sebastopol. The southern bank
-is formed of almost precipitous hills intersected by deep ravines.
-At the mouth of the river the cliffs are several hundred feet
-high, and almost perpendicular towards the sea. A large conical
-hill was the centre of the enemy’s position, and here enormous
-batteries and entrenchments had been formed, while the crown of
-the hills was occupied by dense masses of infantry. On the side
-facing the Allies, a huge redoubt was constructed with two faces,
-mounting thirteen large guns, and commanding the approaches to
-the summit and the passage of the river. Each side of the ravines
-enfilading the hill had powerful batteries, mounting altogether
-twenty-five guns, and on the cliffs towards the sea an unfinished
-redoubt was placed, and a large force of infantry and artillery
-held the position. It was presumed by the Russian commanders that
-the precipitous character of the hill was a sufficient defence to
-their left flank. In this expectation they were doomed to bitter
-disappointment, as the sequel will show. The immediate banks of
-the river were covered with vineyards and plantations, affording
-excellent shelter for the Russian riflemen, who were stationed
-there in strong force. The bridge carrying the main road across the
-river was destroyed, and the village of Burliuk, at its northern
-extremity, was in flames, to prevent its being made a point of
-attack by the Allies.
-
-The effect on our men was almost miraculous. The sight of the
-foe strongly entrenched, and determined to wait their attack,
-stimulated them in an extraordinary degree. Fatigued as they were
-by the labours they had undergone,--despondent from their five
-nights’ melancholy bivouac on the wet earth, it seemed as if a new
-life were suddenly infused into them. Diarrhœa and dysentery had
-not quite departed from their ranks, and many had returned to the
-vessels, unable to accompany the march. But when they stood on the
-hill-tops on that memorable morn, and saw the tents of the Russian
-army, not a man but felt the strength of a giant, and burned with
-a fierce desire to cross bayonets with the enemy. Many a brave
-fellow, who had staggered thus far leaning on a comrade’s arm,
-and ready to drop behind and perish by the wayside, begged for a
-draught of brandy, and then, forgetting his weakness, and deriving
-new strength from the occasion, shouldered his musket, took his
-wonted position among his comrades, and marched bravely to the
-encounter.
-
-Although the spot where they had bivouacked was only three miles
-distant from the river, it was mid-day by the time the allied
-armies had reached its banks, and were drawn up in battle array. It
-had been arranged by the generals that the French should commence
-the attack, and they occupied the extreme right of the extended
-line. The division commanded by General Bosquet, including those
-renowned warriors, the African Zouaves, rested upon the sea, and
-the left of their army consisted of Prince Napoleon’s division.
-Joining this wing of our allies, the veteran Sir De Lacy Evans was
-posted with the Second Division, supported by the Third Division
-under Sir Richard England. Sir George Brown’s Light Division came
-next; and the Duke of Cambridge led his magnificent body of Guards
-and Highlanders to the extreme left, as a support to Sir George
-Brown. Sir George Cathcart had the important but less showy duty
-of acting as a reserve, and, in conjunction with the cavalry under
-the Earl of Cardigan, guarding the attacking forces from any sudden
-_coup_ by the Cossacks, who were hovering in suspicious proximity
-to our rear.
-
-Such was the army, composed of the choicest troops, and led by the
-most experienced commanders of France and England, which stood
-prepared to attempt the dislodgment of the Russians from their
-strongly-fortified position. Prince Menschikoff, the Russian
-commander,--the same who, in his character of diplomatist, had
-been the agent through whom the first insult had been offered to
-Turkey,--now, by a singular destiny, was the first general upon
-whom it devolved to measure swords with the military champions whom
-that insult had called into the field. His army numbered about
-54,000 men, so that numerically the opposing forces were very
-nearly matched; but the Russians had the advantage of their almost
-impregnable position, to approach which a river must be forded,
-broken ground crossed, and steep hills ascended. In addition, they
-were abundantly provided with guns, which were so positioned as to
-sweep the ground over which the attacking force must pass, while
-the Allies had but a small force of artillery. So confident was
-Menschikoff in his advantages, that he did not scruple to boast
-his ability to hold his position for at least three weeks against
-any force that could be brought against him. A number of ladies
-and civilians from Sebastopol had also assembled on the heights to
-witness the defeat and utter rout of the invaders.
-
-The plan of the allied commanders was that the French should
-make a vigorous attack upon the Russian left, and when they had
-succeeded in driving them in upon the main body, the English,
-taking advantage of the confusion, were to cross the river, and
-endeavour to force the centre of the position. The enemy, we have
-already said, had considered that their left was sufficiently
-protected by the precipitous nature of the cliffs, which rendered
-them almost inaccessible; but it appears they had not calculated on
-the activity of the troops to whom they were opposed. The steamers
-of the allied fleets, shortly before ten o’clock, commenced a
-vigorous shelling of these heights, and soon drove back the small
-force of the enemy which occupied them. The mouth of the river was
-very narrow, and Captain Peel had moored a boat across the stream,
-which materially facilitated the passage of the French soldiers.
-The Zouaves, thoroughly seasoned and trained to the emergencies
-of guerilla warfare in Algeria, stealthily crossed the river, and
-commenced the ascent of the almost perpendicular cliffs, clinging
-like goats to the rocks, and finding a precarious foothold where
-probably no other soldiers in the world could have maintained their
-position. While they were thus approaching the plateau, the main
-body of the French army dashed through the river, exposed to a
-galling fire from the Russian riflemen,--who were hidden in the
-vineyards and plantations,--and desperately fighting, struggled up
-the hills. Meanwhile, the gallant Zouaves had reached the top of
-the cliffs, and, rapidly forming into line, charged the Russians,
-paralyzed by their sudden appearance, and drove them back. But
-in achieving this desperate feat, they had separated themselves
-from the main body, and cut off the possibility of retreat. The
-unfinished redoubt, which we have already mentioned, now opened
-a deadly fire on their ranks; and had it not been for the timely
-arrival of General Bosquet and the remainder of the division, who
-had succeeded in reaching the plateau, scarcely a Zouave would
-have remained to tell the tale of that gallant achievement. Prince
-Napoleon, too, had by this time crossed the stream, and arrived at
-the scene of action, and the indefatigable French artillerists had
-succeeded, with immense difficulty, in dragging a few guns up the
-steep hill-side.
-
-Animated by these reinforcements, the brave Zouaves gallantly
-charged the Russian lines, now concentrated nearer the main body,
-and advanced towards the redoubt whose guns had inflicted such loss
-in their ranks. Two of their number, Lieutenant Poitevin and a
-sergeant, rushed in advance of their comrades, and leaping upon the
-works, planted the French flag on the redoubt. But they paid dearly
-for their temerity. The shouts of the French soldiers, hailing
-this gallant deed, had scarcely reached their ears, when they fell
-mortally wounded beneath the flag they had raised.
-
-Taken by surprise by this desperate assault upon his left wing,
-Prince Menschikoff hastily detached considerable reinforcements
-from his main body to the succour of the embarrassed regiments
-yielding to the prowess of their French antagonists. Then the
-battle waged fiercely: the French, with all the chivalry of their
-race, gallantly charged the Russian masses, and at the bayonet’s
-point forced them to retreat. The enemy’s artillery, however,
-poured a tremendous fire into the ranks of our allies, and for
-a time the issue of the contest seemed doubtful. Some French
-regiments of the line were driven back, so deadly was the fire to
-which they were exposed; and nothing but the unflinching gallantry
-of the troops who were enabled to hold their ground, prevented them
-from being ignominiously precipitated from the cliffs they had so
-adventurously scaled.
-
-Marshal St. Arnaud, alarmed for the safety of his soldiers,
-hundreds of whom were lying dead around him, so fatal were the
-volleys from the Russian guns and so sure the aim of the riflemen,
-hastily despatched an aide-de-camp to the English commander,
-calling upon him to bring his troops into action without a moment’s
-delay. “We are massacred,” was the message--certainly not the words
-which Napoleon, or Murat, or Ney, would have used when attacking
-an enemy considerably less in force than themselves; for, be it
-remembered, Menschikoff still held the centre of the position with
-the main body of the army, which had not yet been brought into
-action. At half-past one o’clock the order to advance was given to
-the English army. The soldiers, who had been lying down, so as not
-to expose themselves unnecessarily to the fire of the enemy, sprang
-to their feet, and rapidly formed into line. Sir G. Brown’s Light
-Division, and the Second Division, under Sir De Lacy Evans, were
-the first to dash into the stream, and through a perfect shower
-of balls from the riflemen concealed in the gardens, and heavier
-missiles from the batteries above, reached the opposite bank.
-
-Since the commencement of the French attack, our artillery had
-been throwing shot into the Russian redoubts, and under cover of
-this cannonade, and the accurate fire of the Rifle Brigade, which
-protected our advance, the two leading divisions succeeded in
-crossing the stream, though not without great loss. The Russians
-had previously marked out the range of their guns, so that they
-were enabled to pour their volleys into our brigades, as they
-advanced to the stream, with fatal precision. The burning village
-of Burliuk, in front of the position occupied by Sir De Lacy Evans,
-necessitated the separation of his division. General Pennefather
-led the First Brigade and a portion of the Second across the river
-to the right of the village; the remainder, under General Adams,
-crossing to the left. The Light Division struggled manfully up
-the bank, which was rugged and precipitous. The ford was deep and
-dangerous, and as the men, drenched with water, scrambled up the
-banks, scores of their number fell back into the stream pierced
-by the fatal rifle bullet. But the blood of the gallant fellows
-was flowing hotly in their veins; those who, in other times, had
-borne the shock of battles, felt renewed the old spirit which had
-made them conquerors at Vimiera and at Waterloo; those who for the
-first time trod the fatal field felt an indescribable and fierce
-courage, which the sight of danger and of death infuses into most
-men. Six months of inaction and passive suffering were about to
-be consummated by a glorious victory, which should crown them as
-conquering heroes or immortalize their death. They had stood long
-“like greyhounds on the slips, straining upon the start;” now
-“the game was afoot,” and the old fire of English chivalry was
-rekindled, and burnt with as glowing a flame as of yore.
-
-Quickly forming into line, and opening a sharp fire of musketry,
-the gallant Light Division rapidly advanced towards the conical
-hill opposite to which they had crossed, and immediately beneath
-the guns of the great redoubt. As they passed through the
-vineyards, the soldiers plucked and eagerly ate large bunches of
-the luscious Crimean grapes, which allayed their burning thirst,
-and somewhat cooled the mad fever of their excitement. Sir George
-Brown gallantly led the charge, and, mounted on a white horse,
-was a conspicuous mark for the enemy. The 7th Royal Fusiliers and
-the 23rd Welsh Fusiliers were among the first in the mad career.
-“Hurrah for the Royal Welsh! Well done! I will remember you!”
-shouted Sir George Brown; and animated by his voice and example,
-the gallant regiment dashed up the hill. Then there opened a sheet
-of fire, and when the smoke lifted, the 7th was broken, and a
-long line of dead marked the path of the fatal missiles. For a
-moment the brave soldiers struggled onwards, and then, blinded and
-confused, fell back to re-form. The Welsh Fusiliers, regardless
-of the fierce volleys, still pressed onwards. Once they paused,
-as Sir George Brown fell at their head, and rolled heavily on the
-blood-stained ground. In an instant he was up again unhurt, and
-cheering the men to the charge. His horse had fallen, pierced
-by eleven shots, but he was unhurt! They had reached the first
-stockade, had even planted their flag upon the works, when a shout
-was heard--“Cease firing; the French are in front!” Their gallant
-chief, Colonel Chester, rushing to the front, exclaimed, “No! no!
-on, lads!” As he spoke he fell mortally wounded. Then the regiment,
-confused by the contrary orders, and disheartened, _did_ fall
-back; and the Russians, returning to the guns from which the brave
-fellows had driven them, opened a fire which left a long line of
-dead through their columns. Nine officers and about one hundred men
-were stretched upon the field. The other regiments of the Light
-Brigade, the 19th, 33rd, 77th, and 88th, emulated the courage
-of the gallant Welshmen, who, after a moment’s breathing-time,
-re-formed, and joined once more in the heroic assault.
-
-Onward swept that magnificent charge, officers and men vying with
-each other who should be foremost to avenge their comrades’ death.
-But before they reached the guns, Prince Menschikoff had formed a
-compact mass of Russian infantry on the summit of the hill, which
-now advanced with level bayonets against our exhausted battalions.
-Breathless from their rapid charge up the hill, diminished in
-numbers, and fatigued from their almost superhuman exertions,
-they were unable to resist the shock, and, desperately contesting
-every inch of ground, slowly yielded to the enormous weight of
-the Russian columns. The gallant 33rd, the Duke of Wellington’s
-regiment, displayed a prowess excelled by none. Their colours were
-borne proudly to the last, and ever in the spot of the greatest
-danger. The Queen’s colours, when the fight was over, showed
-fourteen bullet-holes, and the regimental colours eleven. Nineteen
-sergeants fell around their standards, defending to the last the
-honour of their regiment, and preserving the fame so identified
-with the career of the departed warrior whose name it bore.
-
-While the heroes of the Light Division were thus nobly performing
-their part, Sir De Lacy Evans and General England were gallantly
-bringing their divisions into action. They had forced a passage,
-with great difficulty, and exposed to a most destructive fire,
-somewhat to the left of their compatriots of Sir George Brown’s
-division, and, breaking through the obstacles which awaited them
-on the bank, rapidly advanced up the hill. The 55th and 95th
-encountered a tremendous fire, which they returned with vigour from
-their muskets, while our artillery did good service by an energetic
-discharge of shot and shell into the enemy’s lines. Major Rose,
-Captains Butler and Scham, fell to rise no more, and many other
-officers were severely wounded; 123 killed and wounded were the
-contribution of this regiment to the day’s slaughter.
-
-As the 95th charged up the hill, one of the most affecting episodes
-of that fierce encounter--so full of incidents, of unsurpassed
-courage, and pathetic scenes--occurred. Early in the charge,
-Captain Eddington, a young officer, fell wounded, a ball passing
-through his chest. The regiment, unable to stand against the
-scathing fire to which they were exposed, fell back to re-form,
-and left the wounded officer on the ground. In full view of the
-regiment, a Russian rifleman advanced, and kneeling by his side,
-appeared to be about to offer his canteen to his lips. A thrill
-passed through the ranks, at the spectacle of a soldier exposing
-his own life thus for the purpose of alleviating the sufferings of
-a dying enemy. No gun would have been pointed against that man, no
-bayonet levelled at his life. It seemed one of those incidents that
-show the better feelings of humanity are not quite extinguished by
-the breath of war. But what was their horror when the rifleman,
-laying aside his canteen, levelled his piece and deliberately blew
-out the brains of the dying man! Among those who witnessed this
-cowardly assassination was a younger brother of the captain who
-had recently exchanged into the regiment, that he might share death
-and danger with his brother, whom he tenderly loved. Maddened by
-the spectacle of his brother’s murder, the young lieutenant sprang
-forward, shouting with frantic energy to the men to follow and
-avenge the deed. One loud yell of execration burst from the lips
-of the soldiers, and bounding onwards, they rushed after their
-leader. Waving his sword above his head, the gallant young man was
-a conspicuous mark, and in another moment fell headlong, pierced by
-a dozen bullets. Thus the two brothers, so fondly attached in life,
-mingled their blood on that fatal hillside--among thousands of the
-slain perhaps the most generally and deeply mourned.
-
-At length Sir De Lacy Evans, who had received a severe contusion
-on his shoulder, rallied his men, and led them victors to the
-summit of the hill, silencing one of the batteries which had done
-such execution upon the gallant fellows of the Light Division.
-Sir Richard England’s division had fought--to use the language
-of one who shared in that charge--“like devils,” and surmounting
-every impediment, though not without dreadful loss, joined their
-gallant comrades. Everywhere the Russians were driven back by the
-irresistible bayonets of the British, and the conquerors literally
-marched through paths of blood to victory.
-
-As yet we have not detailed the part borne by the magnificent
-First Division,--the very flower of the British army. The Duke
-of Cambridge had led his Guards and Highlanders across the Alma,
-to the left of the Light Division, and rapidly advanced to its
-assistance. As they ascended the hill, they encountered Sir George
-Brown’s regiments slowly yielding to the immense impetus of the
-Russian charge. Opening their ranks, they allowed their comrades to
-pass and re-form in their rear, and then the enemy for the first
-time was confronted with the most redoubtable infantry soldiers in
-the world. Then began the most desperate hand-to-hand conflict yet
-witnessed. The Scots Fusiliers had hurried to the rescue without
-waiting to form properly, and for a brief space were confused.
-But the individual courage of the members of that distinguished
-corps never for an instant was found deficient. Surrounded by
-the enemy, they fought with undaunted valour. Viscount Chewton,
-a distinguished young captain, who had gained renown in both
-services, having been originally a midshipman, and having borne
-an honourable part in the Indian campaign, dashed forward, and,
-waving his bearskin, shouted to them to advance. Thirteen other
-officers, with reckless bravery, followed his example, and in a few
-minutes eleven of their number were wounded. The gallant Chewton
-had his leg broken by a ball, and fell within fifty yards of the
-redoubt. Before he could be rescued, several Russians attacked
-the fallen man, and beat him savagely with the butt-ends of their
-muskets, others stabbing him at the same time with their bayonets.
-A strong man, he struggled desperately; and when at length rescued
-and borne from the field, his body was found to be almost covered
-with wounds. He lingered for a few days, and then expired. Two
-young officers, Lieutenants Lindsay and Thistlethwayte, who bore
-the colours, were surrounded by the enemy, and, except the four
-colour-sergeants, isolated from their comrades. The sergeants were
-one by one struck down; and then these gallant young men, back
-to back, kept the foe at bay, and, almost miraculously escaping
-unhurt, cut their way through and carried their colours safely to
-the top of the hill.
-
-Meanwhile the Light Division had re-formed their lines, and now
-returned to the charge, in the footsteps of the dauntless Guards.
-In vain broad sheets of fire poured through the ranks--no man
-flinched. The flag which the Fusiliers had planted on the redoubt
-was still there, and pointed out the path they were to tread. Their
-royal leader proved himself worthy of his charge, and encouraged
-by his example the valour of his men. The Russians quailed before
-the tremendous onset; and when the Highlanders, who had reserved
-their fire, came dashing up to the front, and, after discharging
-a tremendous volley, charged at the bayonet’s point, the rout
-was complete. Thu enemy fled terror-stricken, and the Guards
-and Highlanders together leaped into the redoubt, the gunners
-precipitately hastening after their flying comrades.
-
-At the summit of the hill a brief stand was made, and it seemed
-as if the contest were about to be renewed; but the Highlanders,
-levelling their bayonets, advanced at a rapid pace, and the enemy,
-dashing down their accoutrements and arms, fled, like frightened
-sheep, down the declivity.
-
-Meantime the French had driven back the Russian left wing upon the
-main body, and now brought to bear, with deadly effect, their guns
-upon the retreating foe; and the second and third divisions of our
-army arrived upon the scene. The victory was complete: a great
-army, in a position of immense strength, had been ignominiously
-defeated, in less than three hours, by the sheer valour of English
-and French soldiers. True, we had paid dearly for our victory; but
-the annals of the British army do not record a nobler achievement.
-
-We were unable to pursue the fugitives--our cavalry was too weak
-in numbers to be detached from the main body of the army: had we
-been stronger in that branch of the service, the victory of the
-Alma might have been equivalent to the conquest of the Crimea. We
-afterwards ascertained that Sebastopol was emptied of its garrison
-to strengthen the army, and had we been in a position to follow
-the retreating forces, we might have inflicted a blow on Russian
-strength from which it would not in all probability have soon
-recovered; as it was, the Allies remained masters of the field, and
-the defeated Menschikoff fled towards Baktchi-Serai, leaving behind
-him, according to his own admission, 1,762 dead, and 2,720 wounded.
-Russian assertions are not the most trustworthy, especially
-when the circumstances are unfavourable to themselves, and the
-probability is that the loss was really much greater. The English
-had 353 killed, and 1,612 wounded, many of whom afterwards died of
-their injuries. Our allies lost 256 killed, and 1,087 wounded.
-
-On the bloody field reposed the victors when that day’s dreadful
-work was done: amid the dead and dying--the lifebreath painfully
-passing from the lips of wounded friend and foe--some of our bravo
-fellows, pillowed on their knapsacks, slept a fitful sleep; some
-crept among the heaps of dying, searching for friend or brother,
-and some supported the drooping head and administered a draught of
-water to the fevered lips of wounded comrade or dying enemy. The
-fight was over, the lust of blood satisfied, and all the better
-qualities of manhood, mercy and forgiveness, appeared beneath that
-setting sun. Sometimes, as they stooped to assist a dying enemy,
-the Muscovite, trained to treachery, with a final effort, would
-discharge a pistol at their heads; and then the old war spirit was
-once more aroused, and with clubbed musket, or deadly bayonet, the
-malevolent Russian was sent to his account. The sailors, who had
-watched the progress of the battle from the ships, when they saw
-that victory was ours, swarmed ashore, and hurried to the scene of
-strife. There they bore the wounded to the surgeon’s quarters, and
-to the ships, with the tenderness of women. Little drummer-boys
-might be seen among the prostrate heroes, comforting and rendering
-assistance with a care and zeal beyond their years. A fatigue party
-was ordered on service to bury the dead; and the surgeons, with
-bare arms and splashed with blood, strove by their skill and energy
-to alleviate the sufferings and save the lives of the poor fellows
-brought to them.
-
-A frightful spectacle was that hill-side of the Alma, on the
-evening of the renowned 20th of September, 1854. England’s best and
-bravest lay dead, their pale faces lit by the setting sun: some
-retained the expression of that intense energy which bore them
-fearlessly to the mouths of the Russian guns; some, with faces
-calm and beautiful as an infant’s, seemed peacefully sleeping, and
-smiling as they slept: others, with limbs contracted, and features
-frightfully distorted, bore witness to the fierce agonies of the
-death-struggle. Russian and English and French lay commingled, as
-they fell in the deadly struggle; and among the heaps of corpses,
-many in whom the spark of life yet lingered, lay miserably
-groaning, or faintly crawled with shattered limbs, in search of
-help. Some of the bodies were headless, the brains scattered around
-the bloody trunk: and others were so frightfully mutilated that it
-was difficult to recognize any trace of humanity. While some of
-our men helped to bear the wounded from the field, and bury the
-corpses of the slain, others hovered about, and plundered the dead
-of clothes, arms and such matters as could be carried away; the
-sailors especially were active in securing trophies of war. Russian
-orders and crosses, Russian arms, and even the black bread from
-the soldiers’ knapsacks, were eagerly sought; the boots were real
-prizes, and the seamen, who would heartily lend a hand to succour
-a wounded comrade, or even a foe, had no delicacy in appropriating
-the clothing of the dead. An expeditious mode of measurement,
-by which they secured the articles which would best fit, caused
-some amusement, even at such a time. Jack, seating himself at the
-feet of a dead Russian, placed the sole of his foot against that
-of the corpse; if they agreed in size, the boots were at once
-appropriated; if otherwise, the critical mariner proceeded to
-another selection.
-
-For two days the armies remained upon the field; had they marched
-at once, it is more than probable, nay, almost certain, they might
-have entered Sebastopol with but little resistance. Marshal St.
-Arnaud wished to make an immediate advance; but Lord Raglan refused
-to leave his wounded untended on the field. Though possibly we
-ultimately lost by this delay, we can scarcely blame a general who
-showed such a fine humanity even among the horrors of warfare. Our
-English courage is of the old chivalric sort--we fight as men,
-for great principles, not for the lust of conquest: our soldiers
-are every one a treasure of immense value, rightly used, not to
-be cast away to perish when their first use is passed. Human life
-is to Englishmen intensely sacred: we cheerfully lay it down when
-demanded, and in proportion do we honour and cherish those who have
-perilled it in our cause. A single life wilfully sacrificed for a
-mere strategical advantage would have been a stain on our English
-honour, which we should not speedily have forgiven.
-
-At early morning, on the 23rd of September, the Allies turned their
-backs on the memorable heights. Two men, strong and unwounded,
-remained upon the field, and watched their departure; and in all
-that proud array, flushed with victory, there were none who bore
-more heroic hearts. Upwards of 200 wounded Russians still lay upon
-the field; and Dr. Thompson, surgeon of the 44th regiment, and his
-servant, volunteered to remain, and administer to their wants.
-Every moment increased their loneliness and their danger; for
-predatory bands of Cossack horsemen still hovered around the scene,
-against whose revengeful lances the plea of mercy and Christian
-charity would have been but an ineffectual shield; and yet these
-two brave men quailed not in their mission, and many a dying foe
-had his last pangs soothed, and parting agonies alleviated, by the
-ministrations of these good Samaritans of peace.”
-
-
-ALMANZA.--This battle was fought, April 4th, 1707, between the
-confederate forces under the Earl of Galway, and the French and
-Spaniards, commanded by James Fitzjames, Duke of Berwick, the
-illegitimate son of James II of England, when most of the English
-were killed or made prisoners of war, having been abandoned by the
-Portuguese at the first charge.
-
-
-ALMEIDA.--This was an important position, as a frontier town of
-Portugal, in the Peninsular war. Massena laid siege to it August
-15th, 1810, and the governor capitulated August 27th following. The
-French crossed into Spain, leaving a garrison at Almeida, blockaded
-by the British, April 6th, 1811. It was evacuated by the French,
-May 11th, of the same year. In the end Wellington compelled Massena
-to retire from Portugal, but the route of the French was tracked by
-horrid desolation.
-
-
-ALNEY.--This was rather a single combat than a battle, between
-Edmund Ironside and Canute the Great, in sight of their armies. The
-latter was wounded, when he proposed a division of the kingdom, the
-south part falling to Edmund, A.D. 1016; but this prince having
-been murdered at Oxford, shortly after the treaty, according to
-some by the treachery of Aldric Streon, Canute was left in the
-peaceable possession of the whole kingdom, A.D. 1017.
-
-
-AMBOYNA.--This place is celebrated for the memorable massacre of
-the English factors by the Dutch, February 17th, 1623; they were
-cruelly tortured and put to death on an accusation of a conspiracy
-to expel the Dutch from the island, where the two nations resided
-and jointly shared in the pepper trade of Java. Amboyna was seized
-by the English, February 16th, 1796, but was restored by the treaty
-of Amiens in 1802. It was again seized by the British, February
-17th, 1810, and was restored at the peace of 1814.
-
-
-AMHERSTBURG.--Fought between the Canadians and Americans. In
-July, 1812, the American General Hull, with a force of 2500 men,
-crossed over from Detroit, and entered the Western district, where
-he issued a proclamation inviting the inhabitants to join his
-standard. At this time the British force on the frontier was merely
-nominal, and could offer little resistance. As soon as General
-Brock heard of this invasion, he prorogued the Parliament, then
-sitting at Toronto, and proceeded westward. He arrived on the 12th
-of August at Amherstburg, where he mustered about 330 regulars, and
-400 militia and six hundred Indians. Hull, whose force, weakened
-by sickness and sending away two detachments, is said at this time
-not to have exceeded 800 effective men, retreated across the river,
-withdrawing the cannon prepared for the siege of Amherstburg, and
-shut himself up in Detroit. General Brock, instantly crossing over,
-advanced upon the fort and prepared for an immediate assault. A
-white flag, however, appeared from the walls, and a capitulation
-was signed, by which the whole American force, including the
-detachments, were made prisoners and sent to Montreal. Loud and
-just complaints were made by the Americans against the conduct of
-Hull, who was afterwards tried and condemned to be shot, but was
-spared on account of his age and former services.
-
-
-AMIENS, PEACE OF.--Between Great Britain, Holland, France and
-Spain, signed March 27th, 1801.
-
-
-AMSTERDAM.--Capital of Holland, surrendered to the King of Prussia,
-when he invaded Holland in favor of the Stadtholder in 1737. The
-French were admitted, without resistance, January 18th, 1795. The
-ancient government restored in November, 1813.
-
-
-ANDRÉ, MAJOR.--An adjutant general of the British army, taken
-prisoner by the Americans whilst returning in disguise from a
-secret expedition to the American General Arnold; hanged October
-2nd, 1780.
-
-
-ANGRIA.--A pirate’s fort on the coast of Malabar, invested by
-Admiral Watson, and destroyed 1756.
-
-
-ANHOLT, ISLAND OF.--Owing to the injury done by the Danish cruisers
-to British commerce, this island was taken possession of by
-England. The Danes made an attempt to regain it with a force of
-4000, but were gallantly repulsed. The British force opposed to
-them did not amount to more than 150 men, yet triumphed in a close
-and desperate engagement, March 14th, 1811.
-
-
-ANJOU, OR BLAUGÉ.--This battle was fought between the English and
-French armies April 3rd, 1421. The French were commanded by the
-Dauphin of France, who defeated the English, on whose side the Duke
-of Clarence and 1500 men perished on the field; the Duke was slain
-by Sir Allan Swinton, a Scotch knight, who commanded a company
-at arms; and the earls of Somerset, Dorset, and Huntingdon were
-taken prisoners. This was the first battle that turned the tide of
-success against the English in their first wars with France.
-
-
-ANTOIGN.--This battle was fought between the central army of the
-French and the Allies, August 13th, 1792, in which 4500 Austrians
-and Prussians were killed, 3,500 taken prisoners, and 600 emigrants
-shut up in Longwy; 900 French were killed in the action; 30 pieces
-of battering cannon and howitzers, with all the baggage of the
-combined army, were captured.
-
-
-AQUILEIA.--In the first battle fought there, Constantine II
-was slain by Constans towards the close of March, A.D. 340. In
-the second, Maximus was defeated and slain by Theodosius, July
-28th. A.D. 388. In the third, Theodosius defeated Eugenius and
-Arbogastes, the Gaul, and remained sole emperor of the Roman world,
-September 6th, A.D. 394. Eugenius was put to death, and Arbogastes
-died by his own hand, mortified by his overthrow.
-
-
-ARBELA.--The third and decisive battle fought between Alexander
-the Great and Darius Codomanus, king of Persia, which decided the
-fate of Persia, B.C. 331. The army of Darius consisted of 1,000,000
-of foot and 100,000 horse; the Macedonian army amounted to only
-40,000 foot and 7,000 horse. The gold and silver found in the
-cities of Susa, Babylon, and Persepolis, which fell into the hands
-of Alexander, after this victory, amounted to £30,000,000, and the
-jewels and other precious spoil, belonging to Darius, sufficed to
-load 20,000 mules and 5,000 camels. At the battle of Arbela, the
-Persians lost 300,000, or as some, with greater probability, say
-40,000, whilst the Macedonians had only 500 slain. Darius betook
-himself to flight, and was slain by Bessus, Governor of Bactria,
-who was punished for his perfidy in the following manner:--He was
-taken and bound naked, hand and foot, and four trees having been by
-main force bent down to the ground, and one of the criminal’s limbs
-tied to each of them, the trees, as they were suffered to return to
-their natural position, flew back with prodigious violence, each
-carrying with it one of the limbs.
-
-
-ARCOLA.--This battle was fought between the French, under General
-Bonaparte, and the Austrians, under Field-Marshal Alvinzy,
-November 19th, 1796. The result of this bloody conflict, which was
-fought for eight successive days, was the loss on the part of the
-Austrians of 12,000 men in killed, wounded, and prisoners, with 4
-flags and 18 guns.
-
-
-ARGENTARIA.--This battle was one of the most renowned of its times.
-It was fought A.D. 378, in Alsace, between the Allemanni and the
-Romans, the former being defeated by the latter, with the loss of
-more than 35,000 men, out of their whole army of 40,000.
-
-
-ARKLOW.--This battle was fought June 10th, 1798, between the
-insurgent Irish, amounting to 31,000, and a small regular force of
-British, which signally defeated them.
-
-
-ARMADA.--Philip, king of Spain, after some years of preparation
-in all the ports of his extensive dominions, had assembled in the
-river Tagus a fleet of 130 large vessels, carrying nearly 30,000
-men, and the Prince of Parma had collected, in the ports of the
-Netherlands, ships and boats for the embarkation of an equal number
-of his veteran troops. To resist these formidable preparations,
-Elizabeth had only a navy of 34 ships, but the nobility and the
-seaports fitted out such a number of vessels at their own expense,
-that there soon was at sea a fleet of 180 vessels of all kinds,
-large and small. The chief command was committed to Howard of
-Effingham, Lord High-Admiral of England, and Drake, Hawkins, and
-Frobisher held commands under him. The fleet was stationed at
-Plymouth. A land army of 30,000 men was posted at Tilbury, in
-Essex, under the command of Lord Leicester, for the protection of
-the city of London, while another of equal strength was destined
-for the guard of the Queen’s person.
-
-On the 29th of May, 1588, the Invincible Armada (i.e. _Fleet_), as
-it was proudly styled, sailed from the Tagus, but owing to a storm
-which it encountered, it did not appear off the coast of England
-till the 19th of July. On that day it was descried near the Lizard
-point, in Cornwall, by a Scottish pirate, who made all the sail he
-could to convey the intelligence to Plymouth, and the Admiral got
-his fleet out to sea with as little delay as possible.
-
-As the Spanish Admiral had orders not to engage in hostilities
-till he should have seen the Prince of Parma’s army landed in
-England, he took no notice of the English fleet, but steadily
-directed his course up the Channel. The Armada sailed in the form
-of a crescent, of which the horns were seven miles asunder. Its
-motion was slow, though every sail was spread; “The winds,” says
-the historian, “being as it were tired with carrying the ships,
-and the ocean groaning beneath their weight.” The English ships,
-which were smaller and more active than those of the Armada,
-followed to harass it and cut off stragglers, and during the six
-days which it took to reach Calais, it suffered considerably
-from their persevering attacks. At Calais the Admiral learned
-that the Prince could not embark his troops for want of stores
-and sailors, and while he waited, the Armada narrowly escaped
-destruction from fire-ships sent into it by the English. A violent
-tempest succeeded, which drove it among the shoals on the coast of
-Zealand; and a council of war determined that, as it was now in too
-shattered a condition to attempt anything against the enemy, it
-were best to return to Spain without delay; but as the passage down
-the Channel was so full of hazard, it was resolved to sail round
-Scotland and Ireland. The Armada, therefore, set sail; the English
-pursued it as far as Flamborough-head, where want of ammunition
-forced them to give over the chase. Storms, however, assailed the
-Armada, and several of the vessels were cast away on the coast of
-Ireland, where the crews were butchered by the barbarous natives.
-The total loss was 30 large ships and 10,000 men. Philip received
-the intelligence with great tranquillity, and ordered public thanks
-to God and the saints for the calamity not having been greater.
-
-In this great danger of herself and kingdom, Elizabeth had shown
-the spirit of a heroine. She visited the camp at Tilbury, rode
-along the lines mounted on a white palfrey, and cheered the
-soldiers by her animated language. When the danger was over she
-went in state to St. Paul’s, and publicly returned thanks to
-Heaven. She granted pensions to the disabled seamen, created the
-Admiral, Earl of Nottingham, and bestowed honours and rewards on
-his officers. The sudden death of Leicester, shortly after he had
-disbanded his army, intercepted the favours she might have designed
-for him.
-
-
-ARMED NEUTRALITY.--A confederacy of the Northern powers against
-England, commenced by the Empress of Russia, in 1780. It resulted
-in the destruction of the Danish fleet before Copenhagen, April,
-1801. This gave England the acknowledged claim to the empire of the
-sea. The neutrality was soon after dissolved.
-
-
-ARMAGH.--This battle was fought A.D. 1318, against Edward Bruce,
-who was defeated, taken, and beheaded at Dundalk, and with him 6200
-Scots lost their lives.
-
-
-ARMISTICES, CELEBRATED.--The most celebrated armistices recorded
-in Modern History are the following:--That of Leobon, in 1797,
-was signed a few days after the victory of Tagliamento, gained
-by Napoleon I over Prince Charles. It was Bonaparte himself who
-proposed it. This armistice was followed by the preliminaries of
-Leobon and the treaty of Campo-Formio. The armistice of Stayer,
-concluded on the 25th December, 1800, took place after the battle
-of Hohenlinden. It was signed by Moreau, on the 16th January, 1801.
-Brune signed the armistice of Treviso, which delivered into the
-hands of the French the fortified places of Ferrara, Peschiera and
-Porto-Legnano. He was reproached with not having demanded Mantua.
-In 1805, Murat concluded an armistice at Hollebrun, which saved the
-Russian army, and was the cause of a severe letter written to him
-by the Emperor. On the very evening of the battle of Austerlitz,
-the Emperor of Austria demanded and obtained an armistice, which
-was preliminary to the peace of Presburg. Another armistice, also
-celebrated, was signed after the battle of Friedland, and led to
-the peace of Tilsit. At Wagram took place the armistice of Zoaim,
-which was the prelude to the peace of Vienna, 1809. Lastly, on
-the 4th of June, 1813, after Bautzen, was signed the armistice of
-Pleiswitz, which the Emperor Napoleon I himself considered a fault.
-
-
-ARTILLERY.--The first piece was invented by Schwartz, a German
-Cordelier monk, soon after the invention of gunpowder, in 1330.
-First used by the English by Edward III at the battle of Crecy, in
-1346, when that king had 4 pieces of cannon, which greatly aided in
-his gaining the battle. Brass cannon, first used 1635--improvements
-made by Browne in 1728, and have continued ever since.
-
-
-ASCALON.--This battle was fought A.D. 1192. Richard I of England,
-commanding the Christian army, met and defeated the Sultan
-Saladin’s army of 300,000 Saracens and other infidels. No less than
-40,000 of the enemy were left dead on the field of battle, and the
-victorious Richard marched to Jerusalem.
-
-
-ASPERNE.--This battle was fought between the Austrian army under
-the archduke Charles, and the French, on the 21st of May, 1809,
-and two following days. In this most sanguinary fight the loss
-of the former army exceeded 20,000 men, and the loss of the
-French was more than 30,000; it ended in the defeat of Bonaparte,
-who commanded in person, and was the severest check he had yet
-received. The bridge of the Danube was destroyed and his retreat
-endangered; but the success of the Austrians had no beneficial
-effect on the subsequent prosecution of the war.
-
-
-ASSAYE.--Fought September 23rd, 1803, between the Duke of
-Wellington (then General Arthur Wellesley) and Scindiah and the
-Rajah of Berar. This was Wellington’s _first_ great battle in
-which he opposed a force fully ten times greater than his own. In
-Stocqueler’s Life of the “Iron Duke” we have the following account
-of this battle: “Scindiah’s army having changed its position,
-occupied the whole space between the Kaitna and Assaye, with a
-great number of guns in front, and commenced a murderous cannonade.
-The small number of British guns was quite incapable of coping
-with this vast battery. General Wellesley, therefore, directed his
-infantry to advance with the bayonet.
-
-With the determined courage which had given them victory at
-Seringapatam, in the actions with Dhoondia Waugh, and on the walls
-of Ahmednuggur, the line dashed forward, carried the guns on the
-right, and approached Assaye. At this moment a cloud of Mahratta
-horse had stolen round the village, and fell upon them--sabre to
-bayonet--with characteristic fury. The 74th regiment wavered--the
-charge was too much for them.
-
-Colonel Maxwell of the 19th Light Dragoons saw that the critical
-moment had arrived, _Forward!_ was the word. Falling upon the
-Mahratta cavalry, the Dragoons gave the British infantry time to
-rally, cut up the Mahratta horse, pushed through the Scindiah’s
-left, and threw the whole of that part of the army into confusion.
-In the meantime the enemy’s centre, which had remained untouched,
-closed in upon the ground before occupied by their left wing, and
-uniting with such of their infantry and artillery as had been
-passed over unhurt by the British cavalry, formed itself into a
-kind of crescent, with its right horn resting on the river Jouah,
-and its left on the village of Assaye; thus presenting themselves
-in a fresh position on the flank of our infantry, on which, having
-collected a considerable number of guns, they recommenced a heavy
-fire. The battle was now to be fought over again, with this
-difference, that the contending forces had changed sides, and had
-the enemy’s horse behaved with the least spirit, while our cavalry
-was absent in pursuit of their broken battalions, there is no
-guessing what the consequences might have been; but, happily for
-General Wellesley, they kept aloof. To oppose the enemy in their
-new position, the Sepoy battalion on the right was immediately
-advanced against them, but without effect, being obliged to retire.
-Another was brought forward and equally repulsed. The cavalry,
-having by this time returned from the pursuit, and formed on the
-left, and the enemy’s horse having disappeared before them, the
-General ordered the 78th regiment and the 7th cavalry up, to head
-a fresh attack against the enemy’s infantry and guns, which still
-defended their position with obstinacy. No sooner, however, had he
-formed the 78th regiment in line, in directing which his horse’s
-leg was carried off by a cannon shot, than the enemy without
-waiting an attack, commenced their retreat across the Jouah, which
-they passed in tolerable order before our troops could come up with
-them. Previously to this last attack Colonel Maxwell had requested
-and obtained permission to charge a considerable body of infantry
-and guns, which having formed part of the reserve, were seen
-retiring in good order, along the right bank of the Jouah.
-
-The 19th Dragoons were not long in coming up with the enemy, who
-having formed with their left to the Jouah, steadily waited their
-approach. The charge was sounded. The Dragoons advanced with
-rapidity, amidst a shower of musketry and grape, and had already
-got almost within reach of the bayonets of the enemy, who still
-gallantly stood their ground.
-
-“At this moment,” writes an officer engaged in the charge, “instead
-of dashing among their ranks, I suddenly found my horse swept round
-as it were by an eddy torrent. Away we galloped right shoulders
-forward, along the whole of the enemy’s line, receiving their fire
-as we passed, till having turned our backs on them, we took to our
-heels manfully; every one called out _Halt! Halt!_ while nobody
-would set the example! till at last a trumpet having sounded, we
-pulled up, but in complete disorder, dragoons and native cavalry,
-pell-mell. On this occasion Colonel Maxwell fell, pierced by a
-grape-shot. He was gallantly leading the charge when he received
-his death blow. Having involuntarily checked his horse and thrown
-his arm back, when he received his wound, the soldiers immediately
-behind him, not knowing the cause, mistook the gesture for a signal
-to retire, and did so accordingly. At least this was the reason
-afterwards assigned for the failure, and if true, shows how the
-fate of armies, and even of nations, may depend on the direction
-of a single shot.” Recovering from their disorder, the Dragoons
-renewed the charge with terrible effect, and the enemy gave way in
-every direction.
-
-Thus closed this memorable battle, one of the most bloody on record
-to the victors. Out of about 4500 men in action, upwards of 2000
-were either killed or wounded, the former amounting to more than
-one-third of the whole number.”
-
-
-ASSYRIANS AND JEWS.--the Battles, &c., between--B.C. 710.
-These battles resulted in the total destruction of the army of
-Sennacharib, so graphically described by the Sacred penman--and
-afterwards in the destruction of Jerusalem, the overthrow of
-Solomon’s Temple, and the exile of the Jews to Babylon, for 70
-years.
-
-
-ATHLONE.--The English army under General Ginckel stormed Athlone,
-then a town of prodigious strength--crossing the Shannon in the
-face of the Irish army, yet not losing more than 50 men. This bold
-and successful enterprise procured for Ginckel the title of Earl of
-Athlone, 1691. _See Aughrim._
-
-
-ATTILA.--Surnamed _The Scourge of God_, ravaged all Europe, A.D.
-447. He invaded the Roman empire with an army of 500,000 Huns, and
-laid waste all the provinces at Chalons-sur-Marne. Aetius, the
-Roman prefect, met him, and defeated him with the loss of 200,000
-men. Afterwards he was as signally defeated by Thorismond, King of
-the Goths, and died in the midst of his career.
-
-
-AUERSTADT, BATTLE OF.--In this most sanguinary conflict, between
-the French and Prussian armies, October 14th, 1806, the Prussians
-were routed on every side, having lost 200 pieces of cannon, 30
-standards, and 28,000 prisoners, and leaving 30,000 slain on the
-battle field. Both the King of Prussia and Napoleon commanded at
-this engagement. The French Emperor immediately afterwards entered
-Berlin, from which city he issued his memorable Berlin Decrees.
-
-
-AUGHRIM, BATTLE OF.--Near Athlone, in Ireland. This battle was
-fought, July 12th, 1691, between the Irish, headed by the French
-General St. Ruth, and the English under General Ginckel, when the
-former lost 7000 men; the latter only 600 killed and 960 wounded.
-St. Ruth was slain. This engagement proved decisively fatal to the
-interests of James II in Ireland, Ginckel was immediately created
-Earl of Athlone; the ball by which St. Ruth was killed is still
-preserved suspended in the choir of St. Patrick’s Cathedral, Dublin.
-
-
-AUGSBURG, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Imperialists and the
-French army, the latter commanded by Moreau; who obtained so
-complete a victory, that Augsburg and Munich were opened to him.
-It was fought August 26th, 1796; Moreau, September 2nd following,
-again defeated the Austrians on the Jun, and again, September 7th,
-at Mainburg.
-
-
-AUSTERLITZ, BATTLE OF.--Fought December 2nd, 1805, between the
-French and Austrian armies; gained by the former. Three Emperors
-commanded at this battle, Alexander of Russia, Francis of Austria,
-and Napoleon of France. The killed and wounded exceeded 40,000 on
-the side of the Allies, who lost besides, 40 standards, 150 pieces
-of cannon, and many thousands of prisoners. This decisive victory
-of the French led to the treaty of Presburg, which was signed
-December 26th same year.
-
-
-
-
-B.
-
-
-BABYLON.--This city was first taken by Ninus, B.C. 2059, then by
-Esar-haddon, B.C. 680. Both Darius and Cyrus took the city, the
-first through the fidelity of his officer Zopyrus, who having cut
-off his nose and ears fled to the Babylonians, and was admitted
-within the walls, and found means shortly afterwards to betray the
-city--the other by turning the course of the river Euphrates, and
-marching his soldiers up the dry bed into the city.
-
-
-BADAJOS, SIEGE OF.--This important frontier fortress had
-surrendered to the French, March 11th, 1811, and was invested
-by the British under Lord Wellington, on March 16th, 1812; and
-stormed and taken on April following. The siege is one of the most
-important in the annals of warfare; for the victory was not only a
-glorious military achievement in itself, but it obliged the French,
-who had entered Portugal for the purpose of plunder, to commence a
-precipitate retreat from that kingdom. For particulars, see Life of
-Wellington, and Napier’s Peninsular War.
-
-
-BADEN, TREATY OF.--Between France and the Emperor, September
-7th, 1814. It was erected into a grand duchy of the Rhenish
-Confederation in 1806. Its territorial acquisitions, by its
-alliance with France, was guaranteed by the Vienna Congress of 1815.
-
-
-BALAKLAVA, BATTLE OF.--Fought October 25th, 1854. If the exhibition
-of the most brilliant valour, of the excess of courage, and of
-a daring which would have reflected lustre on the best days of
-chivalry can afford full consolation for the disaster of to-day, we
-can have no reason to regret the melancholy loss which we sustained
-in a contest with a savage and barbarous enemy.
-
-I shall proceed to describe, to the best of my power, what occurred
-under my own eyes, and to state the facts which I have heard from
-men whose veracity is unimpeachable, reserving to myself the
-exercise of the right of private judgment in making public and in
-suppressing the details of what occurred on this memorable day.
-Before I proceed to my narrative, I must premise that a certain
-feeling existed in some quarters that our cavalry had not been
-properly handled since they landed in the Crimea, and that they had
-lost golden opportunities from the indecision and excessive caution
-of their leaders. It was said that our cavalry ought to have been
-manœuvred at Bouljanak in one way or in another, according to the
-fancy of the critic. It was affirmed, too, that the Light Cavalry
-were utterly useless in the performance of one of their most
-important duties--the collection of supplies for the army--that
-they were “above their business, and too fine gentlemen for their
-work;” that our horse should have pushed on after the flying
-enemy after the battle of the Alma, to their utter confusion,
-and with the certainty of taking many guns and prisoners; and,
-above all, that at Mackenzie’s farm first, and at the gorge near
-Inkermann, subsequently, they had been improperly restrained
-from charging, and had failed in gaining great successes, which
-would have entitled them to a full share of the laurels of the
-campaign, solely owing to the timidity of the officer in command.
-The existence of this feeling was known to many of our cavalry,
-and they were indignant and exasperated that the faintest shade of
-suspicion should rest on any of their corps. With the justice of
-these aspersions they seemed to think they had nothing to do, and
-perhaps the prominent thought in their minds was that they would
-give such an example of courage to the world, if the chance offered
-itself, as would shame their detractors for ever.
-
-In my last I mentioned that several battalions of Russian infantry
-had crossed the Tchernaya, and that they threatened the rear of
-our position and our communication with Balaklava. Their bands
-could be heard playing at night by the travellers along the
-Balaklava road to the camp, but they “showed” but little during
-the day, and kept up among the gorges and mountain passes through
-which the roads to Inkermann, Simpheropol, and the south-east, of
-the Crimea wind towards the interior. The position we occupied,
-in reference to Balaklava was supposed by most people to be very
-strong--even impregnable. Our lines were formed by natural mountain
-slopes in the rear, along which the French had made very formidable
-entrenchments. Below those entrenchments, and very nearly in a
-right line across the valley beneath, are four conical hillocks,
-one rising above the other as they recede from our lines; the
-furthest, which joins the chain of mountains opposite to our ridges
-being named Canrobert’s Hill, from the meeting there of that
-General with Lord Raglan after the march to Balaklava. On the top
-of each of these hills the Turks had thrown up earthen redoubts,
-defended by 250 men each, and armed with two or three guns--some
-heavy ship guns--lent by us to them, with one artilleryman in
-each redoubt to look after them. These hills cross the valley of
-Balaklava at the distance of about two and a half miles from the
-town. Supposing the spectator, then, to take his stand on one
-of the heights forming the rear of our camp before Sebastopol,
-he would see the town of Balaklava, with its scanty shipping,
-its narrow strip of water, and its old forts on his right hand;
-immediately below he would behold the valley and plain of coarse
-meadow land, occupied by our cavalry tents, and stretching from the
-base of the ridge on which he stood to the foot of the formidable
-heights at the other side; he would see the French trenches lined
-with Zouaves a few feet beneath, and distant from him, on the slope
-of the hill; a Turkish redoubt lower down, then another in the
-valley, then, in a line with it, some angular earthworks, then, in
-succession, the other two redoubts up to Canrobert’s Hill. At the
-distance of two or two and a half miles across the valley there is
-an abrupt rocky mountain range of most irregular and picturesque
-formation, covered with scanty brushwood here and there, or rising
-into barren pinnacles and _plateaux_ of rock. In outline and
-appearance this portion of the landscape is wonderfully like the
-Trosachs. A patch of blue sea is caught in between the overhanging
-cliff’s of Balaklava as they close in the entrance to the harbour
-on the right. The camp of the Marines, pitched on the hill sides
-more than 1000 feet above the level of the sea, is opposite to you
-as your back is turned to Sebastopol and your right side towards
-Balaklava. On the road leading up the valley, close to the entrance
-of the town, and beneath these hills, is the encampment of the 93rd
-Highlanders.
-
-The cavalry lines are nearer to you below, and are some way in
-advance of the Highlanders, but nearer to the town than the Turkish
-redoubts. The valley is crossed here and there by small waves of
-land. On your left the hills and rocky mountain ranges gradually
-close in towards the course of the Tchernaya, till at three or
-four miles’ distance from Balaklava, the valley is swallowed up in
-a mountain gorge and deep ravines, above which rise tiers after
-tiers of desolate whitish rock, garnished now and then by bits of
-scanty herbage, and spreading away towards the east and south,
-where they attain the Alpine dimensions of the Tschatir Dugh. It
-is very easy for an enemy at the Belbek, or in command of the road
-of Mackenzies’s farm, Inkermann, Simpheropol, or Bakshiserai,
-to debouch through these gorges at any time upon this plain
-from the neck of the valley, or to march from Sebastopol by the
-Tchernaya, and to advance along it towards Balaklava, till checked
-by the Turkish redoubts on the southern side, or by the fire from
-the French works on the northern side--_i.e._, the side which,
-in relation to the valley to Balaklava, forms the rear of our
-position. It was evident enough that Menschikoff and Gortschakoff
-had been feeling their way along this route for several days past,
-and very probably at night the Cossacks had crept up close to our
-picquets, which are not always as watchful as might be desired, and
-had observed the weakness of a position far too extended for our
-army to defend, and occupied by their despised enemy, the Turks.
-
-At half-past seven o’clock this morning, an orderly came galloping
-in to the head-quarters camp from Balaklava, with the news,
-that at dawn a strong corps of Russian horse, supported by guns
-and battalions of infantry had marched into the valley, and had
-already nearly dispossessed the Turks of the redoubt No 1, (that
-on Canrobert’ Hill, which is farthest from our lines), and that
-they were opening fire on the redoubts Nos. 2, 3, and 4, which
-would speedily be in their hands unless the Turks offered a stouter
-resistance than they had done already.
-
-Orders were despatched to Sir George Cathcart, and to H.R.H.
-the Duke of Cambridge, to put their respective divisions, the
-Fourth and the First, in motion for the scene of action; and
-intelligence of the advance of the Russians was also furnished to
-General Canrobert. Immediately on receipt of the news, the General
-commanded General Bosquet to get the Third Division under arms, and
-sent a strong body of artillery and some 200 Chasseurs d’Afrique
-to assist us in holding the valley. Sir Colin Campbell, who was in
-command of Balaklava, had drawn up the 93rd Highlanders a little in
-front of the road to the town, at the first news of the advance of
-the enemy. The Marines on the heights got under arms; the seamen’s
-batteries and Marines’ batteries, on the heights close to the town,
-were manned, and the French artillerymen and the Zouaves prepared
-for action along their lines. Lord Lucan’s little camp was the
-scene of great excitement. The men had not had time to water their
-horses; they had not broken their fast from the evening of the day
-before, and had barely saddled at the first blast of the trumpet,
-when they were drawn up on the slope behind the redoubts in front
-of their camp to operate on the enemy’s squadrons. It was soon
-evident that no reliance was to be placed on the Turkish infantry
-or artillerymen. All the stories we had heard about their bravery
-behind stone walls and earthworks proved how differently the
-same or similar people fight under different circumstances. When
-the Russians advanced, the Turks fired a few rounds at them, got
-frightened at the distance of their supports in the rear, looked
-round, received a few shots and shell, and then “bolted,” and fled
-with an agility quite at variance with common-place notions of
-Oriental deportment on the battle-field. But Turks on the Danube
-are very different beings from Turks in the Crimea, as it appears
-that the Russians of Sebastopol are not at all like the Russians of
-Silistria.
-
-Soon after eight o’clock, Lord Raglan and his staff turned out
-and cantered towards the rear of our position. The booming of the
-artillery, the spattering roll of musketry, were heard rising from
-the valley, drowning the roar of the siege guns in front before
-Sebastopol. As I rode in the direction of the firing, over the
-thistles and large stones which cover the undulating plain that
-stretches away towards Balaklava, on a level with the summit of the
-ridges above it, I observed a French light infantry regiment (the
-27th, I think) advancing with admirable care and celerity from our
-right towards the ridge near the telegraph-house, which was already
-lined by companies of French infantry, while mounted officers
-scampered along its broken outline in every direction.
-
-General Bosquet, a stout soldierlike-looking man, who reminds one
-of the old _genre_ of French Generals as depicted at Versailles,
-followed, with his staff and a small escort of Hussars, at a
-gallop. Faint white clouds rose here and there above the hill from
-the cannonade below. Never did the painter’s eye rest on a more
-beautiful scene than I beheld from the ridge. The fleecy vapours
-still hung around the mountain tops, and mingled with the ascending
-volumes of smoke; the patch of sea sparkled freshly in the rays of
-the morning sun, but its light was eclipsed by the flashes which
-gleamed from the massess of armed men below.
-
-Looking to the left towards the gorge, we beheld six compact masses
-of Russian infantry, which had just debouched from the mountain
-passes near Tchernaya, and were slowly advancing with solemn
-stateliness up the valley. Immediately in their front was a regular
-line of artillery, of at least twenty pieces strong. Two batteries
-of light guns were already a mile in advance of them, and were
-playing with energy on the redoubts, from which feeble puffs of
-smoke came at long intervals. Behind these guns, in front of the
-infantry, were enormous bodies of cavalry. They were in six compact
-squares, three on each flank, moving down _en échelon_ towards us,
-and the valley was lit up with the blaze of their sabres, and lance
-points, and gay accoutrements. In their front, and extending along
-the intervals between each battery of guns, were clouds of mounted
-skirmishers, wheeling and whirling in the front of their march like
-autumn leaves tossed by the wind. The Zouaves close to us were
-lying like tigers at the spring, with ready rifles in hand, hidden
-chin deep by the earthworks which run along the line of these
-ridges on our rear, but the quick-eyed Russians were manœuvring
-on the other side of the valley, and did not expose their columns
-to attack. Below the Zouaves we could see the Turkish gunners in
-the redoubts, all in confusion as the shells burst over them.
-Just as I came up, the Russians had carried No. 1 redoubt, the
-farthest and most elevated of all, and their horsemen were chasing
-the Turks across the interval which lay between it and redoubt
-No. 2. At that moment the cavalry, under Lord Lucan, were formed
-in glittering masses--the Light Brigade, under Lord Cardigan, in
-advance; the Heavy Brigade, under Brigadier-General Scarlet, in
-reserve. They were drawn up just in front of their encampment,
-and were concealed from the view of the enemy by a slight “wave”
-in the plain. Considerably to the rear of their right, the 93rd
-Highlanders were drawn up in line, in front of the approach to
-Balaklava. Above and behind them, on the heights, the Marines were
-visible through the glass, drawn up under arms, and the gunners
-could be seen ready in the earthworks, in which were placed the
-heavy ships’ guns. The 93rd had originally been advanced somewhat
-more into the plain, but the instant the Russians got possession
-of the first redoubt they opened fire on them from our own guns
-which inflicted some injury, and Sir Colin Campbell “retired” his
-men to a better position. Meantime the enemy advanced his cavalry
-rapidly. To our inexpressible disgust we saw the Turks in redoubt
-No. 2 fly at their approach. They ran in scattered groups across
-towards redoubt No. 3, and towards Balaklava, but the horse-hoof
-of the Cossack was too quick for them, and sword and lance were
-busily plied among the retreating herd. The yells of the pursuers
-and pursued were plainly audible. As the Lancers and Light Cavalry
-of the Russians advanced they gathered up their skirmishers with
-great speed and in excellent order--the shifting trails of men,
-which played all over the valley like moonlight on the water,
-contracted, gathered up, and the little _peloton_ in a few moments
-became a solid column. Then up came their guns, in rushed their
-gunners to the abandoned redoubt, and the guns of No. 2 redoubt
-soon played with deadly effect upon the dispirited defenders of
-No. 3 redoubt. Two or three shots in return from the earthworks,
-and all is silent. The Turks swarm over the earthworks, and run
-in confusion towards the town, firing their muskets at the enemy
-as they run. Again the solid column of cavalry opens like a fan,
-and resolves itself into a “Long spray” of skirmishers. It laps
-the flying Turks, steel flashes in the air, and down go the poor
-Moslem quivering on the plain, split through fez and musket-guard
-to the chin and breast-belt. There is no support for them. It
-is evident the Russians have been too quick for us. The Turks
-have been too quick also, for they have not held their redoubts
-long enough to enable us to bring them help. In vain the Turkish
-gunners in the earthen batteries which are placed along the French
-entrenchments strive to protect their flying countrymen; their
-shot fly wide and short of the swarming masses. The Turks betake
-themselves towards the Highlanders, where they check their flight
-and form into companies on the flanks of the Highlanders. As the
-Russian cavalry on the left of their line crown the hill across
-the valley, they perceive the Highlanders drawn up at the distance
-of some half mile, calmly awaiting their approach. They halt, and
-squadron after squadron flies up from the rear, till they have a
-body of some 1500 men along the ridge--Lancers, and Dragoons, and
-Hussars. Then they move _en échelon_ in two bodies, with another
-in reserve. The cavalry who have been pursuing the Turks on the
-right are coming up to the ridge beneath us, which conceals our
-cavalry from view. The heavy brigade in advance is drawn up in two
-lines. The first line consists of the Scots Greys, and of their old
-companions in glory, the Enniskillens; the second of the 4th Royal
-Irish, of the 5th Dragoon Guards, and of the 1st Royal Dragoons.
-The Light Cavalry Brigade is on their left, in two lines also. The
-silence is oppressive; between the cannon bursts one can hear the
-champing of bits and the clink of sabres in the valley below. The
-Russians on their left drew breath for a moment, and then in one
-grand line charged in towards Balaklava. The ground flies beneath
-their horses’ feet; gathering speed at every stride, they dash
-on towards that _thin red streak topped with a line of steel_.
-The Turks fire a volley at eight hundred yards and run. As the
-Russians come within six hundred yards, down goes that line of
-steel in front, and out rings a rolling volley of Minié musketry.
-The distance is too great; the Russians are not checked, but still
-sweep onwards through the smoke, with the whole force of horse
-and man, here and there knocked over by the shot of our batteries
-above. With breathless suspense every one awaits the bursting of
-the wave upon the line of Gaelic rock; but ere they come within
-two hundred and fifty yards, another deadly volley flashes from
-the levelled rifle, and carries terror into the Russians. They
-wheel about, open files right and left, and fly back faster than
-they came. “Bravo Highlanders! well done!” shout the excited
-spectators; but events thicken. The Highlanders and their splendid
-front are soon forgotten, men scarcely have a moment to think of
-this fact, that the 93rd never altered their formation to receive
-that tide of horsemen. “No,” said Sir Colin Campbell, “I did not
-think it worth while to form them even four deep!” The ordinary
-British line, two deep, was quite sufficient to repel the attack
-of these Muscovite cavaliers. Our eyes were, however, turned in a
-moment on our own cavalry. We saw Brigadier-General Scarlett ride
-along in front of his massive squadrons. The Russians--evidently
-_corps d’elite_--their light blue jackets embroidered with silver
-lace, were advancing on their left, at an easy gallop, towards
-the brow of the hill. A forest of lances glistened in their rear,
-and several squadrons of grey-coated dragoons moved up quickly to
-support them as they reached the summit. The instant they came
-in sight the trumpets of our cavalry gave out the warning blast
-which told us all that in another moment we should see the shock
-of battle beneath our very eyes. Lord Raglan, all his staff and
-escort, and groups of officers, the Zouaves, French generals
-and officers, and bodies of French infantry on the height, were
-spectators of the scene as though they were looking on the stage
-from the boxes of a theatre. Nearly every one dismounted and sat
-down, and not a word was said. The Russians advanced down the hill
-at a slow canter, which they changed to a trot, and at last nearly
-halted. Their first line was at least double the length of ours--it
-was three times as deep. Behind them was a similar line, equally
-strong and compact. They evidently despised their insignificant
-looking enemy, but their time was come. The trumpets rang out again
-through the valley, and the Greys and Enniskilleners went right at
-the centre of the Russian cavalry. The space between them was only
-a few hundred yards; it was scarce enough to let the horses “gather
-away,” nor had the men quite space sufficient for the full play of
-their sword arms. The Russian line brings forward each wing as our
-cavalry advance, and threatens to annihilate them as they pass on.
-Turning a little to their left, so as to meet the Russian right,
-the Greys rush on with a cheer that thrills to every heart--the
-wild shout of the Enniskilleners rises through the air at the
-same instant. As lightning flashes through a cloud, the Greys and
-Enniskilleners pierced through the dark masses of Russians. The
-shock was but for a moment. There was a clash of steel and a light
-play of swordblades in the air, and then the Greys and the redcoats
-disappear in the midst of the shaken and quivering columns. In
-another moment we see them emerging and dashing on with diminished
-numbers, and in broken order, against the second line, which is
-advancing against them as fast as it can to retrieve the fortune
-of the charge. It was a terrible moment. “God help them! they are
-lost” was the exclamation of more than one man, and the thought
-of many. With unabated fire the noble hearts dashed at their
-enemy. It was a fight of heroes. The first line of Russians, which
-had been smashed utterly by our charge, and had fled off at one
-flank and towards the centre, were coming back to swallow up our
-handful of men. By sheer steel and sheer courage Enniskillener and
-Scot were winning their desperate way right through the enemy’s
-squadrons, and already grey horses and red coats had appeared
-right at the rear of the second mass, when, with irresistible
-force, like one bolt from a bow, the 1st Royals, the 4th Dragoon
-Guards, and the 5th Dragoon Guards rushed at the remnants of the
-first line of the enemy, went through it as though it were made
-of pasteboard, and dashing on the second body of Russians as they
-were still disordered by the terrible assault of the Greys and
-their companions, put them to utter rout. The Russian Horse in
-less than five minutes after it met our dragoons was flying with
-all its speed before a force certainly not half its strength. A
-cheer burst from every lip--in the enthusiasm, officers and men
-took off their caps and shouted with delight, and thus keeping up
-the scenic character of their position, they clapped their hands
-again and again. Lord Raglan at once despatched Lieutenant Curzon,
-Aide-de-Camp, to convey his congratulations to Brigadier-General
-Scarlett, and to say “Well done.” The gallant old officer’s face
-beamed with pleasure when he received the message. “I beg to thank
-his Lordship very sincerely,” was his reply. The cavalry did
-not long pursue their enemy. Their loss was very slight, about
-thirty-five killed and wounded in both affairs. There were not more
-than four or five men killed outright, and our most material loss
-was from the cannon playing on our heavy dragoons afterwards, when
-covering the retreat of our light cavalry.
-
-In the Royal Horse Artillery we had a severe, but I am glad to say
-a temporary loss. Captain Maude, who directed the service of his
-guns with his usual devotedness and dauntless courage, was struck
-in the arm by a shell which burst at his saddle bow and killed his
-horse. To the joy of all the army, it is ascertained that he is
-doing well on board ship. After the charge, Captain the Hon. Arthur
-Hardinge came galloping up to Lord Raglan with the news of what the
-cavalry had done.
-
-At ten o’clock the Guards and Highlanders of the First Division
-were seen moving towards the plains from their camp. The Duke of
-Cambridge came up to Lord Raglan for orders, and his Lordship,
-ready to give the honour of the day to Sir Colin Campbell, who
-commands at Balaklava, told his Royal Highness to place himself
-under the direction of the Brigadier. At forty minutes after ten,
-the Fourth Division also took up their position in advance of
-Balaklava. The cavalry were then on the left front of our position,
-facing the enemy; the Light Cavalry Brigade was on the left flank
-forward; the Heavy Cavalry Brigade _en échelon_ in reserve, with
-guns on the right; the 4th Dragoons and 5th Dragoons and Greys on
-the left of the brigade, the Enniskillens and 3rd Dragoons on the
-right. The Fourth Division took up ground in the centre; the Guards
-and Highlanders filed off towards the extreme right, and faced the
-redoubts, from which the Russians opened on them with such guns as
-had not been spiked.
-
-At fifty minutes after ten, General Canrobert, attended by his
-staff and Brigadier-General Rose, rode up to Lord Raglan, and the
-staffs of the two Generals and their escorts mingled together in
-praise of the magnificent charge of our cavalry, while the chiefs
-apart conversed over the operations of the day, which promised to
-be one of battle. The Russian cavalry, followed by our shot, had
-retired in confusion, leaving the ground covered with horses and
-men. In carrying an order early in the day Mr. Blunt, Lord Lucan’s
-interpreter, and son of our Consul in Thessaly, had a narrow
-escape. His horse was killed, he seized a Russian charger as it
-galloped past riderless, but the horse carried him almost into
-the Russian cavalry, and he only saved himself by leaping into a
-redoubt among a number of frightened Turks who were praying to
-Allah on their bellies. At fifty-five minutes after ten, a body of
-Cavalry, the Chasseurs d’Afrique, passed down to the plain, and
-were loudly cheered by our men. They took up ground in advance of
-the ridges on our left.
-
-And now occurred the melancholy catastrophe which fills us all
-with sorrow. It appears that the Quartermaster-General, Brigadier
-Airey, thinking that the Light Cavalry had not gone far enough in
-front when the enemy’s horse had fled, gave an order in writing to
-Captain Nolan, 15th Hussars, to take to Lord Lucan, directing his
-Lordship “to advance” his cavalry nearer to the enemy. A braver
-soldier than Captain Nolan the army did not possess. He was known
-to all his arm of the service for his entire devotion to his
-profession, and his name must be familiar to all who take interest
-in our cavalry for his excellent work, published a year ago, on
-our drill and system of remount and breaking horses. I had the
-pleasure of his acquaintance, and I know he entertained the most
-exalted opinions respecting the capabilities of the English horse
-soldier. Properly led, the British Hussar and Dragoon could in his
-mind break square, take batteries, ride over columns of infantry,
-and pierce any other cavalry in the world as if they were made of
-straw. He thought that they had not had the opportunity of doing
-all that was in their power, and that they had missed even such
-chances as they had offered to them,--that, in fact, they were
-in some measure disgraced. A matchless horseman and a first-rate
-swordsman, he held in contempt, I am afraid, even grape and
-canister. He rode off with his orders to Lord Lucan. He is now dead
-and gone. God forbid I should cast a shade on the brightness of his
-honour, but I am bound to state what I am told occurred when he
-reached his Lordship. I should premise that as the Russian cavalry
-retired, their infantry fell back towards the head of the valley,
-leaving men in three of the redoubts they had taken, and abandoning
-the fourth. They had also placed some guns on the heights over
-their position on the left of the gorge. Their cavalry joined the
-reserve, and drew up in six solid divisions, in an oblique line
-across the entrance to the gorge. Six battalions of infantry were
-placed behind them, and about thirty guns were drawn up along their
-line, while masses of infantry were also collected on the hills
-behind the redoubts on our right. Our cavalry had moved up to the
-ridge across the valley, on our left, as the ground was broken in
-front, and had halted in the order I have already mentioned. When
-Lord Lucan received the order from Captain Nolan and had read
-it, he asked, we are told, “Where are we to advance to?” Captain
-Nolan pointed with his finger to the line of the Russians, and
-said, “There are the enemy, and there are the guns, sir, before
-them; it is your duty to take them,” or words to that effect,
-according to the statements made since his death. Lord Lucan, with
-reluctance, gave the order to Lord Cardigan to advance upon the
-guns, conceiving that his orders compelled him to do so. The noble
-Earl, though he did not shrink, also saw the fearful odds against
-him. Don Quixote in his tilt against the windmill was not near
-so rash and reckless as the gallant fellows who prepared without
-a thought to rush on almost certain death. It is a maxim of war,
-that “cavalry never act without a support,” that “infantry should
-be close at hand when cavalry carry guns, as the effect is only
-instantaneous, and that it is necessary to have on the flank of a
-line of cavalry some squadrons in column, the attack on the flank
-being most dangerous. The only support our light cavalry had was
-the reserve of heavy cavalry at a great distance behind them, the
-infantry and guns being far in the rear. There were no squadrons
-in column at all, and there was a plain to charge over, before the
-enemy’s guns were reached, of a mile and a half in length.
-
-At ten minutes past eleven, our Light Cavalry brigade advanced.
-The whole brigade scarcely made one effective regiment, according
-to the numbers of continental armies; and yet it was more than we
-could spare. As they rushed towards the front, the Russians opened
-on them from the guns in the redoubt on the right, with volleys
-of musketry and rifles. They swept proudly past, glittering in
-the morning sun in all the pride and splendour of war. We could
-scarcely believe the evidence of our senses! Surely that handful
-of men are not going to charge an army in position? Alas! it was
-but too true--their desperate valour knew no bounds, and far indeed
-was it removed from its so-called better part--discretion. They
-advanced in two lines, quickening their pace as they closed towards
-the enemy. A more fearful spectacle was never witnessed than by
-those who, without the power to aid, beheld their heroic countrymen
-rushing to the arms of death. At the distance of 1200 yards the
-whole line of the enemy belched forth, from thirty iron mouths, a
-flood of smoke and flame, through which hissed the deadly balls.
-Their flight was marked by instant gaps in our ranks, by dead
-men and horses, by steeds flying wounded or riderless across the
-plain. The first line is broken, it is joined by the second, they
-never halt or check their speed an instant; with diminished ranks,
-thinned by those thirty guns, which the Russians had laid with the
-most deadly accuracy, with a halo of flashing steel above their
-heads, and with a cheer which was many a noble fellow’s death-cry,
-they flew into the smoke of the batteries, but ere they were lost
-from view the plain was strewed with their bodies and with the
-carcasses of horses. They were exposed to an oblique fire from the
-batteries on the hills on both sides, as well as to a direct fire
-of musketry. Through the clouds of smoke we could see their sabres
-flashing as they rode up to the guns and dashed between them,
-cutting down the gunners as they stood. We saw them riding through
-the guns, as I have said; to our delight we saw them returning,
-after breaking through a column of Russian infantry, and scattering
-them like chaff, when the flank fire of the battery on the hill
-swept them down, scattered and broken as they were. Wounded men and
-dismounted troopers flying towards us told the sad tale--demi-gods
-could not have done what we had failed to do. At the very moment
-when they were about to retreat an enormous mass of Lancers was
-hurled on their flank. Colonel Shewell, of the 8th Hussars, saw
-the danger, and rode his few men straight at them, cutting his
-way through with fearful loss. The other regiments turned and
-engaged in a desperate encounter. With courage too great almost for
-credence, they were breaking their way through the columns which
-enveloped them, when there took place an act of atrocity without
-parallel in the modern warfare of civilized nations. The Russian
-gunners, when the storm of cavalry passed, returned to their guns.
-They saw their own cavalry mingled with the troopers who had just
-ridden over them, and, to the eternal disgrace of the Russian name,
-the miscreants poured a murderous volley of grape and canister on
-the mass of struggling men and horses, mingling friend and foe in
-one common ruin. It was as much as our Heavy Cavalry brigade could
-do to cover the retreat of the miserable remnants of that band of
-heroes as they returned to the place they had so lately quitted in
-all the pride of life. At thirty-five minutes past eleven not a
-British soldier, except the dead and dying, was left in front of
-these bloody Muscovite guns.
-
-Captain Nolan was killed by the first shot fired, as he rode in
-advance of the Hussars, cheering them on. Lord Lucan was slightly
-wounded. Lord Cardigan received a lance thrust through his clothes.
-Major Halkett, of the 4th Light Dragoons, was killed. Lord
-Fitzgibbon of the 8th Hussars, was desperately wounded, and has
-since, I fear, died.
-
-In our cavalry fight we had 13 officers killed or missing, 156
-men killed or missing: total 169; 21 officers wounded, 197 men
-wounded; total 218. Total killed, wounded, and missing, 387.
-Horses killed or missing, 394; horses wounded 126; total 520.
-
-
-BALKAN, PASSAGE OF THE.--This adventurous experiment was deemed
-impracticable by a hostile army, until effected by the Russian
-army under Diebitsch, whose march through the Balkan mountains
-is a memorable achievement of the late great Russian and Turkish
-war. The passage was completed July 26th, 1829. An armistice was
-the consequence; and a treaty of peace was signed at Adrianople in
-September following.
-
-
-BALLINAHINCH, BATTLE OF.--This sanguinary engagement was fought,
-June 13th, 1798, between the Earl of Moira, afterwards Marquis of
-Hastings, and a large body of insurgent Irish. In this battle a
-large part of the town was destroyed and the royal army suffered
-very severely.
-
-
-BALTIC EXPEDITIONS.--There were three--1st, under Lord Nelson and
-Admiral Patton, April 2nd, 1801, when Copenhagen was bombarded and
-28 Danish ships taken or destroyed. 2nd, under Admiral Gambier
-and Lord Cathcart, July 27th, 1807, where 18 sail of the line, 15
-frigates, and 31 brigs and gunboats surrendered to the British.
-3rd, during the Crimean war, under Admiral Sir Charles Napier,
-accompanied by a French fleet, the bombardment of Bummersund
-and burning Abo were some of the more important actions of the
-expedition.
-
-
-BALTIMORE, BATTLE OF.--Fought September 12th, 1814, between the
-British army, under General Ross, and the Americans; the British
-in making an attack upon the town were unsuccessful, and after a
-desperate engagement were repulsed with great loss. The gallant
-General who led the enterprise was killed.
-
-
-BANGALORE, SIEGE OF.--This siege was commenced by the British,
-under Lord Cornwallis, March 6th, and the town was taken March
-21st, 1791. Bangalore was restored to Tippoo, in 1792, when he
-destroyed the strong fort, deemed the “Bulwark of Mysore.”
-
-
-BANNOCKBURN, BATTLE OF.--This battle is called the “Marathon of
-Scotland.” It was fought June 25th, 1314, between King Robert
-Bruce of Scotland and Edward II, of England. The army of Bruce
-consisted of 30,000 Scots, that of Edward consisted of 100,000
-English, of whom 52,000 were archers. The English crossed a rivulet
-to the attack, and Bruce having dug deep pits, which he afterwards
-covered, the English cavalry fell into them and were thrown into
-confusion. The rout was complete--the king narrowly escaped being
-taken, and 50,000 English were killed or taken prisoners.
-
-
-BANTRY BAY.--A French fleet, with succors to the adherents of
-James II, was in this bay attacked by Admiral Herbert, May, 1689.
-Here a French squadron anchored for a few days, in December, 1796.
-The mutiny of Bantry Bay is famous in naval history--17 of the
-mutineers were condemned to death, and 11 executed afterwards at
-Portsmouth, January, 1802.
-
-
-BAREILLY.--India.--This place is famous in the great Indian
-Mutiny.--The following is a description of the attack on the
-British troops, by a body of Ghazees, or Fanatics, May 5th, 1859,
-from Dr. Russell’s correspondence.
-
-“As soon as the Sikhs got into the houses, they were exposed to a
-heavy fire from a large body of matchlockmen concealed around them.
-They either retired of their own accord, or were ordered to do
-so; at all events, they fell back with rapidity and disorder upon
-the advancing Highlanders. And now occurred a most extraordinary
-scene. Among the matchlockmen, who, to the number of seven or eight
-hundred, were lying behind the walls of the houses, was a body of
-Ghazees, or Mussulman fanatics, who, like the Roman Decii, devote
-their lives with solemn oaths to their country or their faith.
-Uttering loud cries, ‘Bismillah, Allah, deen, deen!’ one hundred
-and thirty of these fanatics, sword in hand, with small circular
-bucklers on the left arm, and green cummerbungs, rushed out
-after the Sikhs, and dashed at the left of the right wing of the
-Highlanders. With bodies bent and heads low, waving their tulwars
-with a circular motion in the air, they came on with astonishing
-rapidity. At first they were mistaken for Sikhs, whose passage
-had already somewhat disordered our ranks. Fortunately Sir Colin
-Campbell was close up with the 42nd; his keen, quick eye detected
-the case at once. “Steady, men, steady; close up the ranks. Bayonet
-them as they come on.” It was just in time; for these madmen,
-furious with bang, were already among us, and a body of them
-sweeping around the left of the right wing, got into the rear of
-the regiment. The struggle was short, but sanguinary. Three of them
-dashed so suddenly at Colonel Cameron, that they pulled him off
-his horse ere he could defend himself. His sword fell out of its
-sheath, and he would have been hacked to pieces in another moment,
-but for the gallant promptitude of Colour Sergeant Gardiner, who,
-stepping out of the ranks, drove his bayonet through two of them
-in the twinkling of an eye. The third was shot by one of the 42nd.
-Brigadier Walpole had a similar escape; he was seized by two or
-three of the Ghazees, who sought to pull him off his horse, while
-others cut at him with their tulwars. He received two cuts on the
-hand, but he was delivered from the enemy by the quick bayonets
-of the 42nd. In a few minutes the dead bodies of one hundred and
-thirty-three of these Ghazees, and some eighteen or twenty wounded
-men of ours, were all the tokens left of the struggle.”
-
-
-BARNET, BATTLE OF.--This battle was fought between the houses of
-York and Lancaster, when Edward IV gained a decisive and memorable
-victory over the Earl of Warwick, on Easter day, April 14th, 1471.
-The Earl of Warwick, who has been styled in history “The King
-Maker,” his brother, the Marquess of Montacute, and 10,000 of his
-army were slain. At the moment Warwick fell, he was leading a
-chosen body of troops into the thickest of the slaughter, and his
-body was found covered with wounds after the battle.
-
-
-BARRACKS.--This word is not found in our early dictionaries. In the
-_Dictionaire de l’Académie_, it is thus defined, “_Baraque--Hutte
-que font les soldats en campagne pour se mettre à couvert._”
-
-
-BARROSA OR BAROSSA, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the British army,
-commanded by Major General Graham, afterwards Lord Lynedoch,
-and the French, under Marshal Victor. After a long conflict,
-the British achieved one of the most glorious triumphs of the
-Peninsular war. Although they fought to great disadvantage, they
-compelled the enemy to retreat, leaving nearly 3000 dead, 6 pieces
-of cannon and an eagle, the first that the British had taken. The
-loss of the British was 1169 men in killed and wounded.
-
-
-BASQUE ROADS.--This was the place of a heroic achievement by the
-British. Four French ships of the line were, while riding at
-anchor, attacked by Lord Gambier and Lord Cochrane, and all, with
-a number of merchant ships, destroyed, April 12th, 1809.
-
-
-BATAVIA.--Capital of Java.--Fortified by the Dutch in 1618--12,000
-Chinese massacred here in one day, 1740.--Taken by the English
-January, 1782.--Again by the British under General Sir S. Auchmuty,
-August 8th, 1811.
-
-
-BATTERIES.--Introduced, after the use of cannon, by the English
-along the coasts. Perhaps the most celebrated batteries on record
-are those of the French at the siege of Gibraltar, September, 1782.
-
-
-BATTERING-RAM.--This was the instrument by which the ancient Romans
-levelled the walls of cities. It consisted of a long beam with a
-head of iron, like that of a ram, hence the name, and sometimes it
-was so ponderous that 150 or 200 men at once worked it.
-
-
-BATTLE-AXE.--A weapon of the Celtae.--The battle-axe guards, or
-beaufetiers, who are vulgarly called beef-eaters, and whose arms
-are a sword and lance, were first raised by Henry VII, in 1482.
-
-
-BATTLEFIELD, BATTLE OF.--Near Shrewsbury, England.--This engagement
-was fought between Henry IV and Percy, surnamed Hotspur. The
-victory was gained by Henry, whose usurpation of the throne had
-laid the foundation of the factions of the houses of York and
-Lancaster, and the civil wars that ensued. It was fought July 21st,
-1403.
-
-
-BAUTZEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the allied army, under the Sovereigns
-of Russia and Prussia, and the French, commanded by Napoleon;
-the allies were defeated, and this battle, followed by that of
-Wurtzchen, compelled them to pass the Oder, and led to armistice,
-which, however, did not produce peace. Fought May 20th, 1813.
-
-
-BAYLEN, BATTLE OF.--The French, consisting of 14,000 men, commanded
-by Generals Dupont and Wedel, were defeated by the Spaniards under
-Pena, Compigny and other Generals, whose forces amounted to 25,000.
-The French had nearly 3000 killed and wounded, and the division of
-Dupont, which consisted of about 8000 men, was made prisoners of
-war. Fought July 19th, 1808.
-
-
-BAYONNE.--In the neighbourhood of this town there was much
-desperate fighting between the French and English armies, December
-10th, 11th, and 13th, 1813. Bayonne was invested by the British,
-January 14th, 1814, during which the French made a sally and
-attacked the English with success, but were at length driven back.
-The loss of the British was considerable, and Lieut.-General Sir
-John Hope was wounded and taken prisoner. It was here that the
-bayonet was first made, in or about A.D. 1670. According to the
-Abbé Langlet, it was first used by the French in battle, 1693,
-“with great success against an enemy unprepared for the encounter
-with so formidable a novelty.” Adopted by the British, September
-26th, 1693.
-
-
-BEACHY HEAD, ENGAGEMENT OF.--Memorable for the defeat of the
-British and Dutch combined fleet, by the French. The British,
-whose ships were commanded by the Earl of Torrington, suffered
-very severely in the unequal contest, June 30th, 1690. The Dutch
-lost two Admirals and 500 men, the English two ships and 400 men.
-Several of the Dutch ships were sunk to prevent them from falling
-into the hands of the enemy. The Admirals on both sides were
-blamed; on the English side for not fighting, on the French, for
-not pursuing the victory.
-
-
-BEAGUE, BATTLE OF.--_In Anjou, France._--Fought April 3rd, 1421,
-between the English and French.--The former commanded by the Duke
-of Clarence, the latter by the Dauphin of France, who was aided by
-a body of 7000 Scots, under the Earl of Buchan. The English were
-defeated with the loss of 1500 men killed, and the Duke himself was
-killed by a Scotch Knight.
-
-
-BELGRADE, BATTLE OF.--Fought in 1456, between the German and
-Turkish armies, in which the latter was defeated with the loss of
-40,000 men. Belgrade was taken by Solyman, 1522, and retaken by the
-Imperialists in 1688, from whom it again reverted to the Turks in
-1690. Again taken by Prince Eugene, in 1717, and kept till 1739,
-when it was ceded to the Turks, after its fine fortifications had
-been demolished. It was again taken in 1789, and restored at the
-peace of Reichenbach, 1790. The Servian insurgents had possession
-of it in 1806. The most memorable siege which it sustained was
-undertaken in May, 1717, by Prince Eugene. On August 5th of that
-year, the Turkish army, 200,000 strong, approached to relieve
-it, and a sanguinary battle was fought, in which the Turks lost
-20,000; after the battle Belgrade surrendered. This city is called
-“_The Key of Eastern Christendom_,” and “_The Bulwark of Christian
-Europe_.”
-
-
-BELLAIR, BATTLE OF.--In America.--This town was attacked by the
-British forces, under command of Sir Peter Parker; but after an
-obstinate engagement, in which the result was a long time doubtful,
-they were repulsed with considerable loss, and their gallant
-commander was killed. August 30th, 1814.
-
-
-BENDER.--Is memorable as the asylum of Charles XII of Sweden, after
-his defeat at Pultowa, by the Czar Peter the Great, July 8th, 1709.
-The celebrated peace of Bender was concluded 1711. It was taken by
-storm by the Russians in 1770, and again in 1789.--Restored by the
-peace of Jassey, but retained at the peace of 1812.
-
-
-BERESINA, BATTLE OF.--Fought November 28th, 1812, and resulted in
-the total defeat of the French main army, by the Russians, on the
-banks of the Beresina, followed by their disastrous passage of it
-when escaping out of Russia. The French lost upwards of 20,000 men
-in this battle, and in their retreat, which was attended by the
-greatest difficulty, calamity and suffering, the career of their
-glory was closed in that campaign.
-
-
-BERGEN, BATTLES OF.--Between the French and allies; the latter
-defeated April 14th, 1759. The allies again defeated by the French,
-with great loss, September, 1799. In another battle, fought October
-2nd, same year, the allies lost 4000 men, and on the 6th, they were
-again defeated before Alkmaer, losing 5000 men. On the 20th, the
-Duke of York entered into a convention, by which he exchanged his
-army for 6,000 French and Dutch prisoners in England.
-
-
-BERGEN-OP-ZOOM.--This place, the works of which were deemed
-impregnable, was taken by the French, September 10th, 1747, and
-again in 1794. Here a gallant attempt was made by the British under
-General Sir T. Graham (afterwards Lord Lynedoch) to carry the
-fortress by storm, but it was defeated. After forcing an entrance,
-their retreat was cut off, and a dreadful slaughter ensued; nearly
-all were cut to pieces or made prisoners. March 8th, 1814.
-
-
-BERLIN DEGREE.--A memorable interdict against the commerce of
-England. It declared the British Isles in a state of blockade, and
-all Englishmen found in countries occupied by French troops were to
-be taken prisoners of war. It was issued by Napoleon from the court
-of the Prussian King, shortly after the battle of Jena, November
-21st, 1806.
-
-
-BERWICK.--Many bloody contests, were fought here between the
-English and Scots. It surrendered to Cromwell in 1648, and
-afterwards to General Monk.
-
-
-BEYROOT.--This place is celebrated for the total defeat of the
-Egyptian army, by the allied English, Austrian and Turkish forces.
-The Egyptians lost 7000 in killed, wounded and prisoners, and 20
-cannons. Fought October 10th, 1840.
-
-
-BHURTPORE.--_India._--Besieged by the British, January 3rd, 1805,
-and attacked five times up to March 21st, without success. The
-fortress was taken by General Lake, after a desperate engagement
-with Holkar, April 2nd, 1805. The defeat of Holkar led to a treaty
-by which the Rajah of Bhurtpore agreed to pay twenty lacs of
-rupees, and ceded the territories that had been granted to him by
-a former treaty, delivering up his son as a hostage, April 10th,
-1805. This city was taken by storm, by Lord Combermere, January
-18th, 1826.
-
-
-BIDASSOA, PASSAGE OF THE.--The allied army, under Lord Wellington,
-effected the passage of this river, October 7th, 1813; and the
-illustrious British chieftain, having thus completed his glorious
-career in Spain and Portugal, pursued the enemy into France.
-
-
-BILBOA, BATTLE OF.--This place, which had been invested by the
-Carlists under Villareal, and was in considerable danger, was
-delivered by the defeat of the besiegers by Espartero, assisted by
-British naval co-operation. Espartero entered Bilboa in triumph
-next day, Christmas day, December 25th, 1836.
-
-
-BLACK HOLE OF CALCUTTA.--Surajah Doulah declared war against the
-English, from motives of personal resentment; and, levying a
-numerous army, laid siege to Calcutta--one of the principal British
-forts in India--but which was not in a state of strength to defend
-itself against the attack even of barbarians. The fort was taken,
-having been deserted by the commander; and the garrison, to the
-number of 146 persons, were made prisoners.
-
-They expected the usual treatment of prisoners of war, and were
-therefore the less vigorous in their defence; but they soon found
-what mercy was to be expected from a savage conqueror. They were
-all crowded together into a narrow prison, called the Black Hole,
-of about 18 feet square, and received air only by two small windows
-to the west, which by no means afforded a sufficient circulation.
-It is terrible to reflect on the situation of these unfortunate
-men, shut up in this narrow place, in the burning climate of
-the East, and suffocating each other. Their first efforts, upon
-perceiving the effects of their horrid confinement, were to break
-open the door of the prison; but, as it opened inwards, they
-soon found that impossible. They next endeavoured to excite the
-compassion or the avarice of the guard by offering him a large sum
-of money for his assistance in removing them into separate prisons;
-but with this he was not able to comply, as the viceroy was asleep,
-and no person dared to disturb him. They were now, therefore, left
-to die without hopes of relief; and the whole prison was filled
-with groans, shrieks, contest, and despair. This turbulence,
-however, soon after sunk into a calm still more hideous! Their
-efforts of strength and courage were over, and an expiring languor
-succeeded. In the morning, June 20th, 1750, when the keepers came
-to visit the prison, all was horror, silence, and desolation. Of
-146 who had entered alive, 23 only survived, and of these the
-greatest part died of putrid fevers upon being set free.
-
-
-BLENHEIM, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the English and confederates,
-commanded by the Duke of Marlborough, and the French and Bavarians,
-under Marshal Tallard and the Elector of Bavaria, whom the Duke
-totally defeated, with the loss of 27,000 men, in killed, and
-13,000 prisoners--Tallard being among the number of the latter; the
-Electorate of Bavaria became a prize of the conquerors. The nation
-testified its gratitude to the Duke of Marlborough by the gifts
-of the honour of Woodstock and hundred of Wotton, and erected for
-him one of the finest seats in the kingdom, known as the domain
-and house of Blenheim. This great battle was fought on the 2nd of
-August, 1704.
-
-
-BOIS-LE-DUC, BATTLE OF.--Between the British and the French
-Republican army, in which the former were defeated, September
-14th, 1794. Captured by the French, October 6th, following, and
-surrendered to the Prussian army under Bulow, 1814.
-
-
-BOLOGNA.--Taken by the French in 1796; by the Austrians in 1799;
-again by the French, after Marengo, in 1800; and restored to the
-Pope, in 1815.
-
-
-BOMBS.--Invented at Venlo in 1495; came into general use in 1634.
-The Shrapnel shell is a bomb filled with balls and a lighted fuse
-to make it explode before it reaches the enemy. A thirteen inch
-bomb-shell weighs 198 lbs.
-
-
-BOMBARDMENT OF SEBASTOPOL.--_First Attempt._--“At half-past
-six o’clock, on the morning of 17th October, a gun from the
-English batteries boomed ominously upon the ears of the Russians
-in Sebastopol. It was the signal for the commencement of the
-bombardment. It had been announced, on the previous evening, that
-the morrow was to initiate the combat; and already groups of
-expectant gazers thronged every spot which promised to afford a
-view of the warlike spectacle. For a moment after the signal-gun
-had despatched its messenger of death, a breathless expectation
-held the spectators in suspense; and then, from the whole line
-of attack, from the Quarantine on the far left to the Inkerman
-battery on the extreme right, a sheet of fire belched forth, and a
-volley of shot and shell was hurled upon the town. By this time the
-Russian gunners were at their post, and bravely responded to the
-challenge. As far as the eye could reach, a dense volume of smoke
-hung suspended in the air; and when it lifted, another and yet
-another streak of flame poured from the black earthworks, and lit
-up the white churches and houses of the town. The earth literally
-shook with the concussion of the mighty conflict. Distinct amid
-the roar, a sharp whizzing sound, swelling as it approached into
-a crashing rush, like a railway train at inexpressible speed, was
-heard, and a heavy blow upon the solid earthworks told where had
-fallen the ball of the renowned Lancaster gun. In a couple of
-hours it was evident that the Round Tower, the most formidable of
-the Russian works, was seriously damaged. But little impression,
-however, appeared to have been made on the mass of the enemy’s
-works. Their fire was splendid, and it was abundantly apparent
-that the victory was not to be easily achieved. About ten o’clock,
-a shell fell into one of the French magazines, which exploded,
-killing and injuring more than fifty men. This was a serious
-blow; and from that time the guns of our allies were evidently
-feebly served, and inadequate to bear their part effectually.
-For two hours more the terrific cannonade continued, spreading
-destruction in the ranks alike of the Russians and the Allies; and
-then, at mid-day, the fleets approached the scene of action, and
-prepared to take their share in the dangers and glories of the
-day. The French was the first to take up their position. It had
-been arranged between the Admirals, with the hearty concurrence
-of the land forces, that the French should engage the forts on
-the south of the harbour, while the English should attack Fort
-Constantine, and the batteries on the north. A semicircular line,
-enclosing the mouth of the harbour, would represent the position
-occupied by the allied fleets. The _Vautour_, a French frigate, had
-the honour of opening the fire, and very shortly afterwards the
-_Charlemagne_, _Montebello_, _Jean Bart_, and others, joined in the
-fray. The sight from the land side now was of the most stupendous
-character, and the roar deafening and incessant. Enormous volleys
-from hundreds of guns of the largest size rolled with never-ceasing
-impetuosity; and the air was loaded with a dense smoke that hid
-from the anxious gazers the effects of the fire. Occasionally a
-breeze lifted the murky canopy, and then the eye could catch the
-prospect beyond the frowning earthworks of shattered buildings,
-and not unfrequently a bright flame where the explosion of a shell
-had fired a roof, soon to be extinguished by the active enemy.
-Then, in the far distance, rose the grim outlines of the massive
-forts, pointing seawards their deadly array of guns; and further
-yet, a line of noble vessels rapidly forming into order of attack,
-finished the picture. But such glimpses were but momentary. Again
-the crimson volleys thundered forth, a light smoke poured from
-the sides of the French steamers, and the reply of the forts sent
-forth a vaporous veil, which, mingling with the smoke from the
-earthworks, once more enveloped in obscurity alike the attack and
-the defence.
-
-It was arranged that the English sailing-vessels should be taken
-into position by the smaller steamers lashed to their sides.
-In this manner they drew up before the forts: the _Queen_,
-_Britannia_, _Trafalgar_, _Vengeance_, _Rodney_, and _Bellerophon_,
-with the _Vesuvius_, _Furious_, _Retribution_, _Highflyer_,
-_Spitfire_, _Spiteful_, and _Cyclops_ alongside, arrived at their
-appointed positions about an hour after the French had commenced
-firing. The ships in advance were the magnificent steamer the
-_Agamemnon_, bearing the flag of Sir Edmund Lyons, the brave second
-in command; the _Sanspareil_, _Sampson_, _Tribune_, _Terrible_,
-_Sphynx_, and _Lynx_, and the _Arrow_ gun-boat, accompanied by the
-sailing vessels, _Albion_, _London_, and _Arethusa_, towed by the
-_Firebrand_, _Niger_, and _Triton_.
-
-Preceding this imposing force, a little steam-tug, the _Circassia_,
-commanded by Mr. Ball, led the way, carefully sounding as it went,
-and marking out the position for the larger ships. Sir Edmund
-Lyons had already settled the share he was determined to take
-in the day’s adventure, and had selected the enormous fort of
-Constantine as the object of his special attention. The _Terrible_
-and _Sampson_, dashing through the storm of fire from the casemates
-of Constantine, anchored opposite two very mischievous little
-batteries, one of which the sailors named the Wasp, from its
-power of annoyance in comparison with its size, and the other the
-Telegraph, from its proximity to the signal station. In a few
-moments a vigorous shelling was opened upon these two batteries,
-which briskly replied. The _Agamemnon_ now opened fire, and never
-was a cannonade more briskly sustained, or exhibited greater
-precision of fire. Sir Edmund had anchored his vessel at the
-very edge of the shoal, which extended about 900 yards from the
-fort. At this distance the Russian fire was most severe. For four
-hours the gallant crew bore the galling shower of missiles which
-cut through the rigging, pierced the hull, and sent many a brave
-fellow to his last account. The _Albion_ and _London_ boldly came
-within range, but so deadly was the fire, that they soon withdrew,
-terribly crippled. The _Sanspareil_ admirably seconded the efforts
-of the _Agamemnon_, and maintained a telling fire upon the fort.
-At length that too withdrew, and the dauntless Sir Edmund was left
-to bear the brunt of the concentrated fire of the Russian guns.
-His ship was riddled with shot, the sails and rigging hanging
-in shreds, yet, with a bull-dog pertinacity, he clung to his
-opponent. Despatching his lieutenant in an open boat, he summoned
-the _Bellerophon_ to his aid. His message was characteristically
-pithy: “Tell them to come in; these forts will sink me, and I’m
-d----d if I leave this.” The _Bellerophon_ quickly responded; and
-throwing a volley into the big fort, passed on to where the Wasp
-and Telegraph forts were showering their missiles on the gallant
-_Agamemnon_. The Wasp was soon silenced by the vigorous shelling
-of the _Bellerophon_; and Sir Edmund, freed from the annoyance
-it had caused, with unabated courage hurled his fire at his huge
-antagonist. The _Bellerophon_, however, suffered fearfully. A shell
-from the Russian batteries exploded in the fore part of the ship,
-and set fire to the lower deck. For a few moments it seemed as
-if unavoidable destruction was the fate of the gallant crew. The
-firing was suspended, and all hands rushed forward to endeavour to
-extinguish the flames. In this endeavour they were successful; but
-then a new mischance awaited them. The anchor had dragged on the
-bottom, and they were fast drifting towards the shoals beneath the
-forts, where they would have lain a helpless target for the Russian
-guns. In this emergency, the _Spitfire_, seeing the critical
-position of the larger vessel, dashed in, took her in tow, and
-safely brought her, though much damaged, out of the action.
-
-The “saucy _Arethusa_,” and her little companion in arms, the
-_Triton_ steamer, which, lashed to the larger vessel, had boldly
-entered into the thick of the fight, bore a full share of the
-damage done that day. As they arrived within the range of the fire,
-the small steamer, which was then exposed, received a volley.
-Then, hauling round, the broadside of the frigate was presented
-to the forts, and the _Triton_ was, to some degree, sheltered
-by the larger hull of her consort. The sailors from the steamer
-hastened on board the _Arethusa_, to assist in manning her guns,
-and a glorious broadside was hurled at the Russian fort. Every
-shot vibrated through the _Triton_, so great was the recoil of the
-frigate’s guns. Broadside after broadside was gallantly delivered,
-and as promptly replied to by the cannon of the fort. Down went the
-rigging of the _Arethusa_, ropes hanging in tangled masses from
-her yards, and not unfrequent shots striking her hull. Some passed
-beyond the frigate, and soon the _Triton’s_ gear aloft, and fallen
-gaffs, stays, and shrouds attested the severity of the enemy’s
-fire. Two shots struck the paddle-wheel, and the commander and
-carpenter’s mate were wounded by a shell while examining the extent
-of damage done. At length the _Arethusa_, nearly sinking, her decks
-covered with fallen rigging, her cockpit crowded with bleeding men,
-was compelled to relinquish the contest. The _Triton_ gallantly
-towed her out of range, but in the act, a raking fire of shells
-was poured upon the deck, killing and wounding all within range of
-their explosion. With twenty-two holes in her funnel, she contrived
-to tow the frigate to Constantinople, to be docked for repairs, so
-extensive were her injuries.
-
-The _Labrador_ steamer had a narrow escape from entire destruction.
-Towards four o’clock a shell burst in the captain’s cabin,
-adjoining the powder magazine, and set fire to some ropes. A cry of
-“fire” was raised, the pumps set to work, and enormous quantities
-of water poured into the magazine. The fire was fortunately
-extinguished in time to save the vessel. She was, of course,
-compelled to withdraw from the attack, her powder being rendered
-useless.
-
-Admiral Dundas’s flag-ship, the _Britannia_, which fired from
-a longer range than the ones we have mentioned, received less
-damage, though she did not escape quite scatheless. The enemy’s
-shot ploughed up the water around, and occasionally a shell or
-round-shot fell upon the deck or crashed through the rigging.
-Fortunately, however, only two men were wounded on board this ship.
-
-The French vessels gallantly performed their part in the
-bombardment. Our allies had adopted the same plan as the
-English, and lashed small steamers to the large sailing-vessels
-to bring them into action. Two splendid steamers, the _Pluton_
-and the _Charlemagne_, proudly led the way in, followed by the
-_Montebello_, the _Jean Bart_, and the rest of the squadron. The
-enemy at Fort Alexander maintained an unflinching resistance, and
-inflicted severe punishment on the attacking vessels.
-
-Those who witnessed this tremendous bombardment, whether from land
-or sea, will probably never forget the spectacle. No imaginative
-description could approach the mingled sublimity and horror of
-the scene. A fleet of noble vessels, powerfully armed, poured
-forth sheets of flame from every port-hole on the attacking side;
-and the ponderous forts, from hundreds of embrasures, vomited
-a death-dealing reply. The thunder of artillery was deafening,
-and the sky darkened with the smoke. Thousands of grim and
-fierce-looking men, their faces blackened with gunpowder and sweat,
-moved about the decks, and pointed the guns, amid the crash of
-falling spars and the groans of their wounded messmates. Beyond
-the town, a sullen roar was heard, which might have been the echo
-of the sea-battle, but which the sailors well knew was the voice
-of the guns on land, many manned by seamen from the fleets, and
-responded to by a thousand of the enemy’s pieces. The awful boom of
-the guns grew in intensity as some fresh ship arrived on the scene,
-and contributed her broadside to the attack.
-
-On the land side the combat was an equal one. Volley replied to
-volley, and no symptoms appeared to induce the belief that either
-party was the stronger. Suddenly, about four o’clock, a mighty
-explosion occurred in the Russian lines, which, for a moment,
-seemed to quell and subdue the roar of the thundering cannon. The
-earth shook, and volumes of fire sprang upwards and cast a lurid
-glare on every object. The very artillery was paused, awe-struck
-by the catastrophe; and the spectators watched the result in
-breathless excitement. It seemed as if a subterranean fire had
-forced its way through the surface of the earth to annihilate the
-presumption of competing man. Then the flame sank, the frightful
-shock was passed, and a pillar of dust and rubbish took the
-place of the mingled fire and smoke. The magazine in the centre
-of the Redan had exploded, and for a brief space not a gun from
-that great work replied to our volleys. Then the fire re-opened,
-and the Russian gunners, nothing daunted, again hurled their
-shower of missiles against our works. Shortly afterwards, a small
-powder-waggon, belonging to the English, was struck by a shell and
-exploded, fortunately injuring none.
-
-At length twilight warned the combatants to cease. At about six
-o’clock the fleets drew off, and shortly afterwards the batteries
-suspended their fire. The naval attack, so far as damage to the
-enemy was concerned, was a failure. Many Russian artillerymen
-were, doubtless, victims to the accuracy of our aim, and the
-undaunted pertinacity of our seamen. Nothing, indeed, could exceed
-the brilliancy of the fire; and our gallant sailors of all ranks
-nobly maintained their reputation. But when the morrow came, the
-forts were found to be almost uninjured. Not a gun the less frowned
-from their embrasures, not a stone seemed to be displaced. The
-blackened mouths of the casemates, and a multitude of scars, as it
-were, where the fierce storm of iron had splintered the surface
-of the granite, were all the evidence afforded of that desperate
-assault. The question between wood and granite had been fairly
-tried, and granite was the victor. The forts were essentially
-unhurt; but scarcely a ship had escaped without serious damage
-to masts, sails, and rigging. The _Albion_ and _Arethusa_ were
-compelled to proceed to Constantinople to be docked; the _Rodney_
-got fast upon the reef, and her masts were soon shattered by the
-Russian shell and shot--the little steamer _Spiteful_ gallantly
-towing her off, with considerable damage to herself and loss of
-men; and the _Bellerophon_ had about fifteen shots in her hull,
-and her wheel knocked away. Throughout the English fleet, 44 men
-were killed, and 266 wounded. The French loss was even greater. The
-Turkish vessels, which occupied the centre of the line, were too
-far removed from the intensity of the action to sustain any serious
-injury to the ships or loss to the crew.”
-
-
-BOMBARDMENT OF SEBASTOPOL.--_Final Attempt_.--“Generals Pelissier
-and Simpson had arranged to commence the assault at noon on
-Saturday. Thu French were to commence by an attack on the Malakoff
-tower. If they established themselves in that work, the English
-were to throw themselves upon the Great Redan, while simultaneous
-assaults were to be made on the right on the Little Redan, towards
-Careening Bay, and on the extreme left on the Central Bastion
-and Flagstaff Battery. General Bosquet was entrusted with the
-direction of the Malakoff attack, which was to be approached on
-the left flank by General MacMahon, with a powerful corps of
-Zouaves, Chasseurs, and regiments of the line; the right attack on
-the Little Redan was to be led by General Dulac, who had a strong
-body of Chasseurs, and four line regiments, with another powerful
-force in reserve. General De la Motterouge, with five regiments,
-was to assault the middle of the curtain connecting these two
-works. General De la Salles conducted the assault on the extreme
-left. Five regiments, composing Levaillant’s division, were in
-front of the Central Bastion and its lunettes; while to its right,
-General D’Autemarre, with Niel’s and Breton’s brigades, were to
-penetrate in the track of Levaillant’s division, and seize the Mast
-Bastion. The Sardinians, anxious to share in the honors of the
-day, contributed a brigade under the orders of General Cialdini,
-which was to attack in conjunction with D’Autemare’s division.
-Finally, ten regiments, under the command of Generals Bouat and
-Pate, with some troops from Kamiesch, were held in reserve, ready
-for immediate action. On each attack a competent number of sappers
-were provided with materials to form bridges, and handy tools; and
-the gunners had abundant implements for the spiking of guns; field
-artillery was also posted in commanding positions to render any
-assistance the fortunes of the day might render necessary.
-
-The English storming party was comprised of detachments from the
-Light and Second Divisions. General Codrington, of the Light
-Division, assisted by General Markham, commanding the Second, had
-the direction of the assault. The first stormers, 1000 men, were
-selected in equal numbers from each division, Colonels Unett and
-Windham leading. The Highland brigade and Guards were ordered up
-to the post as a reserve. General Herbillon, commanding the French
-_corps d’armée_ on the Tchernaya, had made every preparation
-to meet any attack which might be made by the Russian army of
-observation; but the enemy had experienced the prowess of the
-Allies in the open field too bitterly again to attempt defeat.
-
-Early in the morning, squadrons of cavalry took position on
-the roads leading from Balaklava and Kadikoi to the camp, to
-prevent, stragglers and spectators from crowding to the front, and
-impeding the movements of the troops engaged in the assault. Every
-precaution, too, was observed to prevent the enemy from having
-any intimation of the movements of the soldiers. Parapets were
-heightened, and the regiments, French and English, moved up before
-daylight, with such promptness and secrecy that many even in the
-camp were unaware of the nature of the contemplated operations.
-
-The plan of attack had originally included the co-operation of the
-fleet, but a brisk gale from the north-west forbade them to leave
-their anchorage; and except some French and English gunboats, which
-did good service in throwing shells and rockets into the forts, the
-sailors were unwillingly mere spectators of the fray.
-
-Precisely at twelve o’clock General MacMahon’s division left the
-French trenches, which were within a few yards of the Malakoff
-tower, and advanced rapidly up the rugged and steep ascent. It
-proved that very great damage had been inflicted on the tower, and
-nearly all the guns dismounted. In a few minutes, with the loss of
-only one man, the French had leaped into the work, and the tricolor
-waved triumphantly on the summit of this great fort--the key to
-the town. The Russians contested their ground with great bravery,
-renewing again and again their attacks, but every time repulsed
-with enormous loss. General Bosquet was early wounded, and retired
-from the field.
-
-The signal was now given by General Pelissier for the commencement
-of the English assault on the Redan; and the first stormers, led
-by Major Welsford of the 97th, and Captain Grove of the 90th,
-dashed from the trenches, followed by the remainder of the troops.
-The great work was distant about 250 yards, and the ground was
-so broken that it was impossible to preserve order. The enemy,
-who had been taken by surprise by the suddenness of the French
-attack upon the Malakoff, were now thoroughly aroused and manned
-every gun. Showers of grape and shell poured among our men as they
-struggled across the open space; General Shirley, the brigadier
-of the Light Division, was compelled to retire, and hundreds were
-shot down. When the foremost men reached the Redan, the ladders
-were too short to reach the breach; but spite of every obstacle
-our brave fellows climbed the broken walls, and poured into
-the salient angle of the work. Major Welsford was shot down as
-he entered the Redan. Colonel Windham, with his brigade of the
-Second Division, followed quickly after, and in a few moments the
-triangular apex of the work was thronged with men. Then a now
-obstacle presented itself. An inner work commanded the position,
-and a terrible array of embrasures frowned upon the assailers.
-For the first time English troops quailed before an enemy’s fire,
-and notwithstanding the daring courage of Colonel Windham and the
-other officers, retreated to such cover as they could obtain,
-maintaining an ineffective fire from their muskets. In vain Colonel
-Windham hurried from side to side, crossing with amazing courage
-the line of fire, and endeavored to form his men for another
-assault. The few who answered his appeal were swept away by the
-terrible fire of the enemy. For nearly two hours was the little
-band exposed to such a fearful risk; and from some unaccountable
-remissness no reinforcements were sent. Three messengers were
-sent by Colonel Windham, but all were wounded in the attempt to
-reach General Codrington. At length the dauntless Colonel resolved
-to go himself; and passing across the open space, succeeded in
-obtaining the desired help. It was too late; the men inside the
-work, unable longer to hold their position, were in full retreat;
-and the Russians, pouring out of their cover, charged them with the
-bayonet, till the ditch was filled with the bodies of the English
-soldiers.
-
-While the English attack was thus disastrous, the French assaults
-on the Little Redan and the Central Bastions were equally
-unsuccessful. The division of Dulac and De la Motterouge three
-times carried the works to which they were exposed, only to be
-repulsed by the heavy fire of the inner defences, and of the
-steamers, which ran up, and poured their broadsides into the
-ranks. General De la Salles, on the extreme left, attacked with
-great energy the Central Bastion; but the intense fire to which
-his division was exposed, daunted his men, many of whom were fresh
-troops, unused to the stern realities of battle; and after a
-sanguinary struggle, he was forced to abandon the attempt. General
-Pelissier having obtained possession of the Malakoff, suspended
-farther attacks; and, at length, night closed in, leaving the
-armies in anxious expectation of the events of the morrow.
-
-It was the intention of General Simpson to renew the assault on the
-Redan with the Highlanders and Guards on the next morning. When
-daylight broke, a few soldiers crept forward to seek for wounded
-comrades, and found the work was deserted! In a brief space,
-flames arose from every quarter of the town; and long lines of
-troops could be seen passing to the north forts. Then tremendous
-explosions rent the air--the great forts on the south side were
-exploded; and, covered by a conflagration which effectually
-prevented pursuit, Prince Gortschakoff evacuated the town. A few
-hours later, and the ships in the harbor--the steamers excepted
-(and a few days afterwards they, too, shared the same fate)--burst
-into flames, or were scuttled, and sank slowly beneath the waters
-of the once crowded inlet of the sea, where had ridden the fleet
-with which Russia hoped to rule the Euxine, and from which had
-darted forth the murderers of Sinopé.
-
-In this final assault the English lost no fewer than 29 officers
-and 356 men killed, and 124 officers and 1762 men wounded; 1
-officer and 175 men were missing; total of casualties, 2447. The
-French suffered a loss of 5 generals killed, 4 wounded, and 6
-hurt; 24 superior officers killed, 20 wounded, and 2 missing;
-116 subaltern officers killed, 224 wounded, and 8 missing; 1489
-sub-officers and soldiers killed, 4259 wounded, and 1400 missing;
-total, 7551. The Russians admit a loss on the last day of the
-assault of 2684 killed, 7263 wounded, and 1754 missing. Between the
-battle of the Tehernaya and the opening of the final bombardment,
-they lost 18,000 men.
-
-Thus did Sebastopol fall! The strongest fortress in the world,
-garrisoned by the most colossal military power, after a siege
-unexampled in modern history had succumbed to the efforts of the
-armies of the Western Powers. Three great battles had been fought
-beneath its walls, and four bombardments of hitherto unknown
-fierceness had been directed against its bastions. The siege
-occupied very nearly twelve months; and more than 100,000 men must
-have perished by wounds and disease in and before its walls.
-
-The besieging army had, in its different attacks, about 800
-guns mounted, which fired more than 1,600,000 rounds, and the
-approaches, dug during 336 days, of open trenches through a rocky
-ground, to an extent of fifty-four English miles, were made under
-the constant fire of the place, and with incessant combats by
-day and night. During the siege we employed no less than 80,000
-gabions, 60,000 fascines, and nearly 1,000,000 earth bags.
-
-To the French unquestionably is due the honor of its capture;
-but who can forget the courage which the English exhibited, the
-fortitude they displayed, or the sufferings they endured? The first
-victories of that eventful year are claimed by British valour, and
-if, at the last, they failed, let us remember there are some tasks
-no ability can execute, some difficulties no skill can surmount,
-and some opposition no valour can subdue.”
-
-
-BORODINO, OR MOSKWA, BATTLE OF.--This battle is one of the most
-sanguinary in the annals of the world. It was fought September
-7th, 1812, between the French and Russians, commanded on the one
-side by Napoleon and on the other by Kutusoff, 240,000 men being
-engaged in the battle. Each party claimed the victory, because the
-loss of the others was so immense, but it was rather in favour of
-Napoleon, for the Russians subsequently retreated, leaving Moscow
-to its fate. Among the principal persons of the Russians who fell
-on this sanguinary field, may be mentioned Prince Bagration and
-General Touczkoff. Many Russian generals were wounded. Their loss
-amounted to the awful sum total of 15,000 men killed and more than
-30,000 wounded. The French were supposed to have at least 10,000
-men killed and 20,000 wounded; of these last few recovered. There
-were 8 French generals slain, the most distinguished of whom were
-Montbrun and Caulaimcourt, whose brother was the grand equerry to
-Napoleon Bonaparte.
-
-
-BOROUGH BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Earls of Hertford
-and Lancaster and Edward II. The king, at the head of 30,000 men,
-pressed Lancaster so closely that he was taken, and executed, 1322.
-
-
-BOSCOBEL.--Here Charles II concealed himself in an oak tree after
-the fatal battle of Worcester, September 3rd, 1651. The whole army
-of the Prince was either killed or taken prisoners by Cromwell, and
-Charles ultimately escaped with great difficulty.
-
-
-BOSTON.--Here the first resistance was made to the British
-authority by the American Colonies, in 1773. Besieged by the
-British next year, and two houses destroyed. In June 1775, the
-scene of a battle between the royal and the independent troops.
-Finally evacuated by the King’s troops, April, 1776.--_See_
-BUNKER’S HILL.
-
-
-BOSWORTH, BATTLE OF.--This battle was the thirteenth and last,
-between the houses of York and Lancaster.--Fought August 22nd,
-1485. The crown of Richard III was found in a hawthorn bush, on
-the plain where the battle was fought, and so eager was Henry of
-Richmond to be crowned, that he had the ceremony performed on the
-very spot, with that very crown. “Richard advanced to meet his
-rival as far us the town of Bosworth. Henry, who had been joined
-by some of the Stanleys, and whose army now counted six thousand
-men, had reached the neighbouring town of Atherton. Next morning,
-the 22nd of August, 1485, both armies were set in battle-array
-on the moor called Redmore. Richard was dismayed when he saw the
-Stanleys opposed to him; but he soon displayed his wonted courage.
-Observing part of his troops inactive and others wavering, he
-resolved to make one desperate effort and conquer or fall, and
-crying out “Treason, treason!” and giving his horse the spurs, he
-rushed to where he saw Richmond. He killed his standard-bearer
-and made a furious stroke at Henry himself, which was warded off
-by Sir William Stanley, and Richard was thrown from his horse and
-slain. Lord Stanley taking up the crown which he wore, placed it on
-the head of Richmond, and shouts of “Long live King Henry!” were
-instantly raised all over the field. The loss on Richard’s side in
-this decisive battle was three hundred, that on Henry’s only one
-hundred men. The body of Richard was stripped, and being thrown
-across a horse, was conveyed to Leicester and there interred, and
-many years after his coffin could be seen used as a horse-trough.”
-“_Sic transit gloria mundi._”
-
-
-BOULOGNE.--_France._--Taken by the British in 1542, restored
-1550--attacked by Lord Nelson, who disabled ten vessels and sunk
-five, August 3rd, 1801. In another attempt he was repulsed with
-great loss, August 18th, following. The flotilla of Boulogne
-consisted of 160,000 men and 10,000 horses, with 1300 vessels and
-17,000 sailors. Napoleon attempted by it to invade England, but
-could not succeed, and at last gave up the idea.
-
-
-BOXTEL, BATTLE OF.--Fought September 17th, 1794, between the
-British and allied army, commanded by the Duke of York, and the
-army of the French Republic. The latter attacked the allies and
-obtained the victory after an obstinate engagement, taking 2000
-prisoners and 8 pieces of cannon, and the Duke retreated across the
-Meuse.
-
-
-BOYNE, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought July 1st, 1689, between the Prince of
-Orange, afterwards William III of England, and James II of England.
-James was defeated. “Early next morning, the 1st of July, 1689, the
-English prepared to pass the river in three divisions. The right
-forced the passage at the ford of Slane; the centre led by the old
-warrior Duke Schomberg, passed opposite the Irish camp; it was
-vigorously opposed, but it finally forced the Irish to fall back
-to the village of Donóre, where James stood viewing the battle.
-William, meantime, had passed at the head of the third division,
-composed of cavalry, and driven off the enemy’s horse. The French
-General Lausun immediately urged James to set out with all speed
-for Dublin, lest he should be surrounded. He forthwith quitted the
-field; the Irish army poured through the pass of Duleék and formed
-at the other side, and then retreated in good order. Its loss had
-been 1500 men, that of the victors was about 500, among whom were
-Duke Schomberg, and Walker, the brave Governor of Derry.”
-
-
-BRECHIN.--_Scotland._--Edward III besieged it in 1333. A battle was
-fought here between the forces of the Earls of Huntly and Crawford.
-The latter defeated in 1452.
-
-
-BREDA.--Taken by Prince Maurice in 1590. By the Spaniards in 1625.
-By the Dutch in 1637. By the French 1793, and again by the Dutch in
-the same year.
-
-
-BREST.--Besieged by Julius Cæsar B.C. 54. Possessed by the English,
-A.D. 1378. Given up 1391. Lord Berkely and a British force
-repulsed here, with terrible loss, in 1694. Here was the French
-fleet rendezvous, which was afterwards defeated by Lord Howe, 1st
-June, 1794.
-
-
-BRETIGNY, PEACE OF.--Between France and England, ending in the
-release of King John, who was then a prisoner in London, May 8th,
-1360.
-
-
-BRIAR’S CREEK, BATTLE OF.--One of the battles between the revolted
-Americans and the British, in 1779. The former, under General Ashe,
-2000 strong, were totally defeated by the English, under General
-Prevost, March 16th, 1779. Again, 3rd May following, another defeat
-happened to the Americans.
-
-
-BRANDYWINE, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the British royalist forces
-and the revolted Americans, in which the latter (after a fight,
-sometimes of doubtful result, and which continued the entire day)
-were defeated with great loss, and Philadelphia fell into the
-possession of the victors, September 11th, 1777.
-
-
-BRESLAU, BATTLE OF.--Between the Austrians and Prussians, the
-latter under Prince Bevern, who was defeated, but the engagement
-was most bloody on both sides; fought November 22nd, 1757. Breslau
-was taken, but was regained the same year. This city was besieged
-by the French and surrendered to them January 5th, 1807, and again
-in 1813.
-
-
-BRIENNE, BATTLE OF.--Fought February 1st and 2nd, 1814, between the
-allied armies of Russia and Prussia and the French. The allies were
-defeated with great loss; this was one of the last battles in which
-the French achieved victory previous to the fall of Napoleon.
-
-
-BRIDGE OF BOATS OF XERXES.--This bridge was connected from shore to
-shore in the following manner: They connected vessels of different
-kinds, some long vessels of fifty oars, others three banked
-galleys, to the number of 360 on the side of the Euxine sea, and
-thirteen on that of the Hellespont. When these vessels were firmly
-fixed together they were secured by anchors of great length on the
-upper side, because of the winds which set in from the Euxine;
-on the lower toward the Ægean sea, on account of the south and
-south-east winds. They left openings in three places, sufficient
-to afford a passage for light vessels which might have occasion
-to sail into the Euxine or from it--having performed this they
-extended cables from the shore stretching them on large capstans
-of wood. Then they sawed out rafters of wood making their length
-equal to that space required for the bridge--these they laid in
-order across the extended cables and then bound all fast together.
-Then they placed unwrought wood regularly upon the rafters; over
-all they threw earth, and fenced both sides in, that the horses and
-other animals might not be frightened by looking down into the sea.
-
-
-BRIGADE.--A party or division of troops or soldiers, whether
-cavalry or infantry--regular, volunteer or militia, commanded by
-a brigadier. A brigade of artillery consists of six pieces, with
-usually about 140 men; a brigade of sappers consists of eight men.
-
-
-BRIGADIER.--A general officer who commands a brigade, whether of
-horse or foot, and ranks next to a major-general--commonly called
-a brigadier-general.
-
-
-BRUSSELS.--Bombarded by Marshal Villeroy, in 1695--taken by the
-French 1746. Again by Dumouriez, in 1792; near it is the celebrated
-field of Waterloo.
-
-
-BUCHAREST, TREATY OF.--A treaty of peace between Russia and Turkey,
-signed May 28th, 1812.
-
-
-BUDA.--Once called the _Key of Christendom_. It was taken by
-Soleyman II at the memorable battle of Mohatz, when the Hungarian
-King Louis was killed, and 200,000 of his subjects carried away as
-slaves, 1526. Buda was sacked a second time, and Hungary annexed
-to the Ottoman Umpire, 1540. Retaken by the Imperialists, and the
-Mohammedans delivered up to the fury of the soldiers, 1626.
-
-
-BUENOS AYRES, BRITISH DESCENTS UPON.--A British fleet and army,
-under Sir Home Popham and General Beresford, took the city, with
-slight resistance, in 1806, but it was retaken August 12th, after
-six weeks’ possession. Monte-Video was taken by storm by Sir Samuel
-Auchmuty, February 3rd, 1807, but evacuated July 7th following.
-The British suffered a dreadful repulse here in an expedition of
-8000 men, under general Whitelock (who was disgraced) July 6th,
-1807. On entering the town they were attacked by a superior force
-with musketry and grape from every quarter, and perished in great
-numbers, but at last they were allowed to re-embark in their
-vessels.
-
-
-BULL RUN.--This battle was fought between the Northern States of
-America and the Confederate States of the South, July 21st, 1861.
-The Union army was signally defeated, and fell back on Washington
-in confusion. Their loss amounted to 481 killed, 1011 wounded, and
-700 prisoners. The rebel or Southern loss was 269 killed and 1483
-wounded.
-
-
-BUNKER’S HILL, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the English and her
-revolted colonists, June 16th, 1775. On the evening of that day,
-1000 men, under the command of Colonel Prescott, of Massachusetts,
-Colonel Stark, from New-Hampshire, and Captain Knowlton, from
-Connecticut, were despatched on this service. They were conducted,
-by mistake, to Breed’s Hill, which was nearer to the water and to
-Boston, than Bunker’s. At twelve o’clock they began to throw up
-entrenchments, and by dawn of day had completed a redoubt eight
-rods square. As soon as they were discovered, they were fired upon
-from a ship of war and several floating batteries lying near, and
-from a fortification in Boston opposite the redoubt. The Americans,
-nevertheless, encouraged by General Putnam, who often visited them
-on the hill, continued to labor until they had finished a slight
-breastwork extending from the redoubt eastward to the water. And in
-the morning they received a reinforcement of 500 men.
-
-The temerity of the provincials astonished and incensed General
-Gage, and he determined to drive them immediately from their
-position. About noon, a body of 3000 regulars, commanded by General
-Howe, left Boston in boats, and landed in Charlestown, at the
-extreme point of the peninsula. Generals Clinton and Burgoyne took
-their station on an eminence in Boston, commanding a distinct view
-of the hill. The spires of the churches, the roofs of the houses,
-and all the heights in the neighborhood, were covered with people,
-waiting, in dreadful anxiety, to witness the approaching battle.
-
-The regulars forming at the place of landing, marched slowly up
-the hill, halting frequently to allow time to the artillery to
-demolish the works. While advancing, the village of Charlestown,
-containing about 400 houses, was set on fire by order of General
-Gage. The flames ascended to a lofty height, presenting a sublime
-and magnificent spectacle. The Americans reserved their fire until
-the British were within 10 rods of the redoubt; then taking a
-steady aim, they began a furious discharge. Entire ranks of the
-assailants fell. The enemy halted and returned the fire; but that
-from the redoubt continuing incessant and doing great execution,
-they retreated in haste and disorder down the hill, some even
-taking refuge in their boats.
-
-The officers were seen running hither and thither, collecting,
-arranging and addressing their men, who were at length induced
-again to ascend the hill. The Americans now reserved their fire
-until the enemy had approached even nearer than before, when a
-tremendous volley was at once poured upon them. Terrified by the
-carnage around them, they again retreated with precipitation, and
-such was the panic, that General Howe was left almost alone on the
-hillside, his troops having deserted him, and nearly every officer
-around him being killed.
-
-At this moment, General Clinton, who had observed from Boston the
-progress of the battle, feeling that British honor was at stake,
-hastened with a reinforcement to the assistance of his countrymen.
-By his exertions, the troops were a third time rallied, and were
-compelled by the officers, who marched behind them with drawn
-swords, to advance again towards the Americans. The fire from the
-ships and batteries was redoubled, and a few pieces of cannon had
-been so placed as to rake the interior of the breastwork from end
-to end.
-
-The provincials, having expended their ammunition, awaited in
-silence the approach of the regulars. The latter entered the
-redoubt. The former, having no bayonets, defended themselves, for a
-short time, with the butt-end of their muskets. From this unequal
-contest they were soon compelled to retire. As they retreated
-over Charleston Neck, the fire from the floating batteries was
-incessant; but a few only were killed. The enemy had sustained too
-much injury to think of pursuit.
-
-In this desperate and bloody conflict, the royal forces consisted,
-as has been stated, of 3000 men, and the provincials of 1500. Of
-the former, 1054 were killed and wounded; of the latter 453. This
-disparity of loss, the steadiness and bravery displayed by their
-recent undisciplined levies, occasioned among the Americans the
-highest exultation, and, in their view, more than counterbalanced
-the loss of position.
-
-
-BURGOS, SIEGE OF.--Lord Wellington entered Burgos after the battle
-of Salamanca (fought July 22nd, 1812), on September 19th. The
-castle was besieged by the British and Allies, and several attempts
-were made to carry it by assault, but the siege was abandoned,
-October 21st, the same year; the castle and fortifications were
-blown up by the French, June 12th, 1813.
-
-
-BURMESE WAR.--The first dispute with the Burmese took place in
-1795, but it was amicably settled by General Erskine. Hostilities
-were commenced in 1824, when the British took Rangoon. After some
-time peace was declared, February 24th, 1826, when the British
-received Arracan as a compensation. A naval force arrived before
-Rangoon, October 29th, 1851, and after the non compliance of
-certain British demands by the viceroy, war was declared. On
-the 5th April, 1852, Martaban was stormed by the British Indian
-army, and on the 14th of the same month Rangoon itself fell
-into their hands. Then followed the storming of Bassein, May
-19th, 1852, and the capture of Pegu, June 4th, 1852. On the 28th
-December following, Pegu was annexed to the Indian Government by a
-proclamation of the Governor-General.
-
-
-BURLINGTON HEIGHTS, BATTLE OF.--Between the British and the United
-States’ forces--an obstinate and memorable engagement, contested
-with great valour on both sides. The Americans were routed, and the
-British carried the heights, June 6th, 1813.
-
-
-BUSACO OR BUZACO, BATTLE OF.--This sanguinary engagement was
-fought, September 27th, 1810, between the British, under Lord
-Wellington, and the French army, commanded by Massena. The latter
-was repulsed with great slaughter, losing one general, and 1000
-men killed, two generals and about 3000 men wounded, and several
-hundred prisoners; the loss of the British and their allies did
-not exceed 1300 in the whole. The British subsequently retreated
-to the lines of Torres Vedras, which were too strong for Massena
-to attempt to force, and the two armies remained in sight of each
-other to the end of the year.
-
-
-
-
-C.
-
-
-CABUL.--The following is succinct account of this expedition.
-
-“Every preparation was now completed for our march, and on the 12th
-of October, 1842, our force, divided into three brigades, left
-Cabul, the first under General Pollock, the second under General
-McCaskill, and the rear under General Nott. We had not proceeded
-more than four miles, when we heard the explosion of the mines,
-which left the renowned Cabul a vast region of ruins; and the
-Affghans to judge the spirit of the British as an avenging one.
-Cabul lies under the Hindoo Koosh, and is bordered on the one side
-by the Himalaya, and the rivers Attock and Rozee: the people are
-robust and healthy; their manners amount to insolence and cruelty;
-they are continually at war with each other; and are divided into
-tribes. Trade seemed to have abounded greatly, and the country is
-generally in a flourishing state: the cities of Cabul, Ghuznee, and
-Candahar, are the principal ones of Affghanistan; the Persians form
-a considerable portion of the inhabitants of Cabul, and the traffic
-with that country is somewhat extensive.
-
-The divisions made a general move at daybreak, on the 12th
-October, to Thag Bakh, about six miles distant from Cabul; and on
-the entrance to the Koord Cabul Pass, Her Majesty’s 9th and 13th
-Regiments, together with six Native Corps of the 1st Division,
-manned the hills commanding the pass, to enable those in the
-valley below to move on unmolested. On the morning of the 13th the
-troops entered the Pass which led to Tezeen, about nine miles. The
-mountains were high and craggy, and very dark, rendering the road
-extremely gloomy and sad; a torrent ran in a serpentine direction
-from side to side, which reminded me of the Bolun; it had to be
-crossed twenty-eight times during about six miles. We had scarcely
-got well into the jaws of this awful scene of romantic vastness,
-whose hollow crags seemed to echo defiance to our intruding tread,
-when a number of the enemy made their appearance in the rear, but
-were kept in check. The very great height of the mountains, of a
-dark, reddish colour, struck one with awe, and silence seemed to
-reign over all; the mind was totally occupied in contemplating this
-fearful sight of hidden deeds; horror struck the feeling heart,
-when the eye fell on the skeletons of our departed comrades, who
-lay in most agonizing positions, indicative of their last struggle
-for life. Here a spot would be strewed with a few crouched up in a
-corner, where they had evidently fled to cover themselves by some
-detached rock, from the overpowering cruelty of their foe, and
-had been rivetted by death. There couples were lying who had died
-in each other’s arms, locked as it were in the last embrace of
-despair: numbers lay in every direction, devoid of every particle
-of clothes; some with the greater part of the flesh putrefied on
-their bleaching bones--others were clean from having been devoured
-by the vast number of carrion birds and beasts inhabiting these
-terrible regions. I at first attempted to count the number of
-frames as I went along, but found them so numerous that I could not
-find time, and my inclination sickened from the awfulness of the
-scene. The pass was no more than thirty feet wide at this part, and
-so numerous were the mouldering frames of these whose lives had
-been sacrificed during the last winter, that they literally covered
-the road--and, in consequence, the artillery and other wheeled
-carriages had to pass over them--and it was indeed horrible to
-hear the wheels cracking the bones of our unburied comrades. It was
-quite easy to discover the Europeans by the hair on the skulls,
-which still remained fresh. After a tedious, and indeed a painful
-march, we reached Tezeen, which opens from the narrow Pass into a
-much wider part, sufficient to enable us to pitch our camp. Here
-was a sad scene of recent strife--scarce a tent could be pitched
-but a skeleton or two had to be removed, just kicked aside as
-though it were a stump of a tree, in order to leave clear the
-place for the interior of the tent, and there remained unnoticed.
-It has often been a subject of deep reflection to me, to think
-how utterly reckless man can be made by habit: so used were we
-to these sights, that it became a mere commonplace matter to see
-such relics of devastation and massacre. I remember walking with a
-friend down the centre of the camp, and we had often to stride over
-skeletons, without the least observation, further than I could not
-help heaving a sigh, and reflecting in silence on their unfortunate
-end.
-
-The next day took us thirteen miles on a road of extreme
-barrenness; the high, wild, rugged mountains, hemmed in the narrow
-defile; the skeletons of the massacred force still strewed the
-road in every direction; no signs of vegetation, or aught to
-relieve the eye from wildness--the numerous hollow crags, as we
-passed, seemed to ring with echoing despair, and afforded most
-formidable positions for the treacherous Affghan to use his jezail
-or matchlock, without fear of opposition. The enemy, finding we had
-now entered the Pass, hovered about, and succeeded in murdering an
-officer, and a few men of Pollock’s force. The divisions marched
-one day a-head of each other, and thus kept up a continued line of
-communication. I, with General Nott’s, arrived at this ground on
-the 14th; the road was equally extremely harassing the next day,
-as indeed, ever since our entrance to the Pass. The ascents and
-descents are so numerous, coupled with having to cross the water so
-often, and there being no hold for the feet, on the loose flinty
-stones, made it very trying for both man and beast. Upwards of
-twenty times had the gushing torrent, dashing from side to side of
-the valley, to be waded through, and numbers of bleaching frames of
-the victims of Akbar’s treachery, lay exposed in the midst of the
-rolling stream. In one part of this day’s march we came to a place
-fifty yards in length, crowded with dead bodies of men, horses,
-and camels, which were those of a troop of irregular cavalry, who
-had all been cut up on this spot. About a mile from Sah Baba, our
-next ground, stands a round tower, the ruins of an old fort; it
-was now used as a bone house, and was crammed to the ceiling, with
-skulls, legs, arms, and shattered frames, and numbers were heaped
-outside the door, and round it,--placed there by the enemy, to
-form a glaring spectacle of their bitter revenge. A large body of
-Affghans were now seen covering the hills in our rear, and opened a
-fire into the dreary abyss, on our rear guards and baggage as they
-passed. The column had moved on some few miles, but were halted,
-and those of our troops in possession of the heights commenced
-an attack, and succeeded in repelling them, and forcing them to
-retreat, and we reached camp with little loss. This place is said
-to be the burial place of Lamech, the father of Noah, and if we may
-judge from its wild, dreary, stony, barren appearance, which looked
-as if it had been washed up into a heap after the deluge, and so
-void of all chances of fertility, that one could scarcely doubt the
-tradition.
-
-Our next day led on to Kutta Sang, and of all the roads I had
-ever seen or traversed, as yet, this was the worst. The route led
-from hill to hill, the ascents being difficult and stony, and the
-descents in addition being very dangerous, as a fearful precipice
-presented itself should you happen to fall. These unwelcome views
-were many in number, and coupled with the tedious progress of the
-cattle and baggage, and the difficulty experienced in dragging the
-guns and loads up these many steep hills, and nothing but a dreary
-road to travel onward, made the march bad indeed. After the main
-body reached camp, the rear guard was attacked; a reinforcement
-was despatched, and a smart skirmish ensued; the Affghans seemed
-to delight in annoying us, and from their hidden positions most
-peremptorily carried their plan into effect; we lost few men
-compared with them, and the whole reached camp about midnight.
-Still the poor soldier found misery destined for him in every
-direction. On arriving at a new ground, two regiments had to mount
-duty on the summits of the hills bordering the route, which had to
-be ascended after the day’s harassing march, thus forming a second,
-much more so. The scanty, coarse meal, being nothing more than a
-quantity of meat and broth made from an allowance of a scarcely
-lifeless carcass, of the hard-driven, skeletonized bullock, and
-this of times not prepared before the dead hour of night; and then
-carried up to the men cold and tasteless. The bread or cake made of
-coarse, hand-ground flour, full of grit and small straw, half-baked
-and calculated to produce disease by its use; and ere this was well
-eaten, the rouse would sound, and the weary instrument of Britain’s
-safety would be wending his way through the dreary and unknown
-regions, ’mid almost perpendicular rocks, and perilous tracks. Such
-was the road of the next day’s march, to Jugdulluk Pass: this is
-by no means the most difficult one to explore--the sides not being
-near so high as those already traversed; it had some appearance
-of fertility, being studded with many small bushes. There were
-innumerable small caves, or recesses in the rocks, and it was from
-those dark-dens, forming cover for the enemy, that they succeeded
-so well in cutting off our unfortunate brethren, whose skeletons
-here were very numerously strewed about the path, and thus rendered
-the Pass more horrible than it would have been; for the light shone
-brighter here than we had it for some time. Nay, so stupendous were
-the mountains, hemming the ravines we had passed, that it would be
-often far advanced in the day before the sun would be seen by those
-beneath.
-
-The unfortunate 44th made a somewhat successful stand in the
-Jugdulluk Pass, and succeeded, ere they were overpowered, in
-slaying many of their foes. The pass was narrow, and the Affghans,
-who had preceded us some hours, with a view to intercept and baffle
-us, had formed breastworks across the road; and, would it be
-believed, that these breastworks were formed of skeletons of our
-own men and horses? Not less than 100 frames could have been here
-piled up, which had to be removed before we could pass on. About
-600 of the enemy made their appearance here, and in the first onset
-did considerable damage,--but a detachment from the main body soon
-dislodged them, and put them to the rout; it was common to see,
-lying on the road, bodies of murdered Sepoys and couriers; and in
-fact to attempt to enumerate the acts of treachery practised on
-us, would be next to impossible. We at length reached Soorkab. At
-this ground was a cluster of fine tall trees, which relieved the
-eye, and led us to hope we were approaching a land of the living;
-the camp was bordered by the celebrated Red River, a most beautiful
-crystal stream, rolling most musically over a stony bottom, and
-under the ridge of an immense mountain; the continued buzz kept up
-by the murmuring torrent echoing from the fearful crags, lulled
-the weary travellers in camp to sleep. Across this river is a most
-splendid bridge of one gigantic arch, which led by a declivitous
-route from this Pass to another; on the right of this bridge, which
-was erected by Alexander, issued a cataract roaring and dashing
-from the hills, which fed the stream, and formed a most beautiful
-picture. It was on this bridge that a number of the 44th--from
-the extreme inclemency of the weather, and the bitterness of the
-frost--were so benumbed with cold that they were unable to use
-their arms when attacked on their retreat. Oh! when reflection is
-but called up, and the miserable condition of these poor, oppressed
-creatures, considered, it cannot but call forth a sigh of deep
-regret,--bereft of every chance of escape, or wherewithal to
-exist,--as they were. When we consider that some of our nearest and
-dearest relatives or friends were amongst the number--surely, if
-there is one spark of sympathy left, it will be kindled for those
-whose last struggle was for their country’s cause.
-
-Our next route led across the bridge through the defile already
-described, and on the road were lying the bodies of two murdered
-Sepoys. The ascents and descents were as usual; and from the summit
-of these intersecting hills, the eye would carry itself upon range
-after range of never ending cliffs and walls of mountains; the
-dark aspect of the distant horizon carried with it a volume of
-thoughts, wondering when the back would be once more turned on
-such dreariness. The moving mass below would be seen winding its
-serpentine length along the Pass, which from its narrowness, being
-obstructed by huge masses of detached rock having fallen from the
-heights, and impassable by other than taking a circuitous route,
-were truly harassing to the men and cattle. I may as well here
-mention the great trials and difficulties experienced in dragging
-along the heavy portions of the baggage, more particularly the
-celebrated Somnauth gates, which it will doubtless be remembered,
-were taken by direction of the Governor General, from the tomb of
-Sultan Mahomed at Ghuznee. These gates, it will doubtless also
-be remembered, were the idolatrous trophy of the Hindoos in the
-Guzerat Peninsula. The General directed a guard of not less than
-the wing of a regiment to mount over these gates, which were placed
-upon two platform carts, and drawn by six bullocks each. The other
-castes of the native Sepoys would not go near them, and the Hindoos
-were comparatively few, and insufficient to perform the duty, and
-as these gates were to be taken to the provinces for the purpose of
-being restored to that race, so great was the care taken of them
-that they were placed next to the main body of the army on the
-march, and nothing was permitted to go before them. The consequence
-was, that oftentimes, owing to the bullocks growing stubborn, the
-whole in the rear have been delayed; and the gates have had to be
-dragged by fatigue parties of the Europeans--night has set in--the
-enemy have taken advantage of our position, and have succeeded in
-cutting off numbers who otherwise would have been safe in camp. The
-badness of the roads and darkness of the night, together with the
-incessant fatigue and consequent loss occasioned by the protection
-of these idolatrous baubles, have caused much well-grounded
-controversy, and involved much discredit on the authorities.
-Many are the lives which have been lost by this--and for what? to
-restore to a tribe of idolaters, an idol, that they might worship
-with the greater vehemence, as it had been recaptured for them;
-and all this, too, by the representative of a Christian people. I
-need say nothing farther, except that, owing to the great question
-raised relative to their restoration, in our Parliament in 1843 and
-1844, and since the recall of Lord Ellenborough, they remain like
-so much lumber stored in one of the stations in Bengal.
-
-But to proceed to the march. A short distance from our camp, which
-was Gundamuck, stands a small hill, where the remnant of the
-44th Regiment, about 300, made their last stand, and fought most
-desperately whilst their ammunition lasted, and were at length
-annihilated: their skeletons strewed the hill sides and summit;
-about 250 soldiers, and upwards of 30 officers, I believe, fell on
-this hill, and a deplorable sight it presented. We soon reached the
-camp, where Generals Pollock and McCaskill had halted; this place
-had been formed into a _dépôt_ for grain and forage (only chopped
-straw), on Pollock’s advance on Cabul; the Passes from Peshawur,
-as he passed through, had been kept by our troops; thus in a great
-measure securing our route. We now refreshed ourselves with a day’s
-rest, and our cattle with a feast of forage, such as it was; and
-also in comparative confidence, as we were now but a couple of
-day’s stage from Jellalabad. The mails from Europe for the army
-were despatched from Calcutta and met us at this place, so that all
-in all it was quite a day of pleasure, receiving news from that
-dear place Home, “which never was so sweetly felt as in such times
-as these,”--conjunction of the Divisions, and recognition of old
-comrades who had escaped the perils of the few past days, and such
-like,--made the whole feel refreshed, and filled us with the utmost
-cheerfulness.”
-
-
-CAIRO, OR GRAND CAIRO.--Burnt to prevent its occupation by the
-Crusaders, in 1220. Taken by the Turks from the Egyptian sultans,
-and their empire subdued, 1517. Taken by the French under
-Bonaparte, July 23rd, 1798. Taken by the British and Turks, when
-6000 French capitulated, June 27th, 1801.
-
-
-CALAIS.--Taken by Edward III, after a year’s siege, August 4th,
-1347, and held by England 210 years. It was retaken by Mary,
-January 7th, 1558, and the loss of Calais so deeply touched the
-Queen’s heart, historians say it occasioned her death. Calais was
-bombarded by the English, 1694.
-
-
-CALVI, SIEGE OF.--Besieged by the British, June 12th, 1744, and
-after a close investment of 59 days, surrendered on August 10th
-following. The garrison then marched out with the honors of war,
-and were conveyed to Toulon. It surrendered to the French in 1796.
-
-
-CAMBRAY.--Taken by the Spaniards in 1595. It was invested by the
-Austrians, August 8th, 1793, and the Republican General Declay
-replied to the Imperial summons to surrender, that “he knew not how
-to do _that_, but his soldiers knew how to fight.” The French here
-were defeated by the Duke of York, April 23rd, 1794. It was then
-seized by the British, by Sir Charles Colville, June 24th, 1815.
-This was one of the fortresses occupied by the allied armies for
-five years after the fall of Napoleon.
-
-
-CAMDEN, BATTLES OF.--The first battle fought here was between
-General Gates and Lord Cornwallis. The Americans were defeated
-August 16th, 1780. The second battle was fought between the
-revolted Americans and the British, the former commanded by General
-Greene, and the latter by Lord Rawdon. The Americans were again
-defeated, April 25th, 1781. Camden was evacuated and burnt by the
-British, May 13th, 1781.
-
-
-CAMPERDOWN, BATTLE OF.--This was a memorable engagement, off
-Camperdown, between the British fleet, under Admiral Duncan, and
-the Dutch fleet, commanded by Admiral De Winter. The Dutch lost 15
-ships, which were either taken or sunk. It was fought October 11th,
-1797. This victory obtained the brave and good Admiral a peerage.
-
-
-CAMPO FORMIO, TREATY OF.--Concluded between France and Austria.
-This memorable and humiliating treaty took place on the 17th
-October, 1797. By this treaty Austria had to yield the low
-countries and the Ionian Islands to France; and Milan &c., to the
-Cisalpine Republic.
-
-
-CANNAE, BATTLE OF.--This battle, one of the most celebrated in
-ancient history, was fought between the Romans and Hannibal. The
-forces of the Africans amounted to 50,000, while those of the
-Romans were equal to 88,000, of whom 40,000 were slain. The victor
-sent 3 bushels of gold rings as a present to the Carthagenian
-ladies, which he had taken off the fingers of the Roman knights
-slain in this memorable engagement. So contested was the fight
-that neither side perceived an earthquake, which happened during
-the battle. The place is now called “The Field of Blood.” Fought
-21st May, B.C. 216.
-
-
-CANNON.--They are said to have been used as early as 1338. First
-used by the English at the siege of Calais, 1347. Used by the
-English first in battle, that of Crecy, in 1346.
-
-
-CAPE BRETON.--Discovered by the English 1584. Taken by the French
-in 1632. Restored and again taken in 1745, and retaken in 1748.
-Finally possessed by the English, when 5000 men were made prisoners
-of war, and 11 ships destroyed, 1758. Ceded to England at the peace
-of 1783.
-
-
-CAPE ST. VINCENT.--_1st Battle._--Admiral Rooke, with 20 ships
-of war, and the Turkish fleet under his convoy, was attacked by
-Admiral Tourville with a force vastly superior to his own, off
-Cape St. Vincent, when 12 English and Dutch men of war and 80
-merchantmen were captured or destroyed by the French. It was fought
-June 15th, 1693.
-
-_2nd Battle._--This second battle was one of the most glorious
-of the British navy. Sir John Jarvis, being in command of the
-Mediterranean fleet of 15 sail, gave battle to the Spanish fleet
-of 27 ships of the line, and signally defeated the enemy, nearly
-double in strength, taking 4 ships and destroying several others.
-Fought February 14th, 1797. For this victory Sir John Jarvis was
-raised to the peerage under the title of Earl St. Vincent.
-
-
-CAPTAIN.--This title, derived from the French _capitaine_,
-literally signifies a head or chief officer,--the officer who
-commands a company. In Turkey, the Captain-Bashaw is the High
-Admiral.
-
-
-CARLISLE.--The castle founded by William II, in 1092, was made
-the prison of the unfortunate Queen of Scots, 1568. Taken by the
-Parliamentary forces in 1645, and by the Pretender in 1745.
-
-
-CARRICKFERGUS.--This town surrendered to the Duke of Schomberg,
-August 28th, 1689. William III landed here June 14th, 1690, to
-reduce the adherents of James II. This place is memorable for
-the expedition of the French Admiral Thurot, when its castle
-surrendered to his force of 1000 men, in 1760.
-
-
-CARTHAGE.--Founded by Dido. Taken by the Roman General Scipio, and
-burnt to the ground B.C. 146. The flames of the burning city raged
-for 17 days, and thousands of the inhabitants perished in them
-rather than survive the calamities of their country. Afterwards it
-was rebuilt, but razed by the Saracens, and now no trace of the
-city appears.
-
-
-CARTHAGENA.--_In Columbia_.--Was taken by Sir Francis Drake in
-1584. It was pillaged by the French of £1,200,000 in 1697. It was
-bombarded by Admiral Vernon in 1740-1.
-
-“When the forces were landed at Carthagena, the commanders erected
-a battery, with which they made a breach in the principal fort,
-while Vernon, who commanded the fleet, sent a number of ships into
-the harbor to divide the fire of the enemy, and to co-operate with
-the army on shore. The breach being deemed practicable, a body of
-troops were commanded to storm; but the Spaniards deserted the
-forts, which, if possessed of courage, they might have defended
-with success. The troops, upon gaining this advantage, were
-advanced a good deal nearer the city; but there they met a much
-greater opposition than they had expected. It was found, or at
-least asserted, that the fleet could not lie near enough to batter
-the town, and that nothing remained but to attempt one of the forts
-by scaling. The leaders of the fleet and the army began mutually
-to accuse each other, each asserting the probability of what the
-other denied. At length, Wentworth, stimulated by the admiral’s
-reproach, resolved to try the dangerous experiment, and ordered
-that fort St. Lazare should be attempted by scalade. Nothing could
-be more unfortunate than this undertaking; the forces marching up
-to the attack, the guides were slain, and they mistook their way.
-Instead of attempting the weakest part of the fort, they advanced
-to where it was the strongest, and where they were exposed to the
-fire of the town. Colonel Grant, who commanded the grenadiers,
-was killed in the beginning. Soon after it was found that their
-scaling ladders were too short; the officers were perplexed for
-want of orders, and the troops stood exposed to the whole fire
-of the enemy, without knowing how to proceed. After bearing a
-dreadful fire for some hours with great intrepidity, they at length
-retreated, leaving 600 men dead on the spot. The terrors of the
-climate soon began to be more dreadful than those of war; the
-rainy season came on with such violence, that it was impossible
-for the troops to continue encamped; and the mortality of the
-season now began to attack them in all its frightful varieties. To
-these calamities, sufficient to quell any enterprise, was added
-the dissension between the land and sea commanders, who blamed
-each other for every failure, and became frantic with mutual
-recrimination. They only, therefore, at last, could be brought
-to agree in one mortifying measure, which was to re-embark the
-troops, and withdraw them as quickly as possible from the scene of
-slaughter and contagion.”
-
-
-CASTIGLIONE, BATTLE OF.--One of the most brilliant victories of
-the French arms under Napoleon against the Austrians, commanded by
-General Wurmsex. The battle lasted 5 days, from the 2nd to the 6th
-July, 1796. The Austrians lost 70 field pieces, all their caissons,
-and between 12,000 to 15,000 prisoners, and 6000 killed and wounded.
-
-
-CASTILLON, BATTLE OF.--_In France._--Fought between the armies of
-England (Henry VI) and those of France (Charles VII). The English
-were signally defeated, July 7th, 1453,--Calais alone remaining in
-their hands.
-
-
-CASTLEBAR, BATTLE OF.--Fought between a body of French troops
-and an insurgent Irish force, at Killala, on the one hand, and
-the King’s royal forces on the other; the latter, after a short
-contest, being obliged to retire, August 28th, 1798.
-
-
-CATAMARANS.--Fire machines for destroying ships, invented and tried
-on the Boulogne flotilla of Napoleon. Sir Sidney Smith attempted to
-burn the flotilla, but failed, August 31st, 1805.
-
-
-CATAPULTÆ.--Engines used by the ancient Romans for throwing stones.
-Invented by Dionysius, the King of Syracuse, B.C. 399.
-
-
-CATEAU, PEACE OF.--Concluded between Henry II of France and Philip
-II of Spain, in 1599. A battle was fought here between the allies,
-under the Prince of Cobourg, and the French. The latter were
-defeated with a loss of 5000 in killed and 5 pieces of cannon,
-March 28th, 1794.
-
-
-CAWNPORE.--_In India._--Famous in the Great Indian mutiny, which is
-thus described:
-
-“At Cawnpore, a terrible disaster befell the British arms. Sir Hugh
-Wheeler, a veteran officer of approved bravery, had entrenched
-himself in the barracks with a force of less than 300 fighting
-men, and upwards of 500 women and children, the wives and families
-of officers and civilians, and of the Queen’s 32d regiment, then
-besieged at Lucknow. The insurgents were commanded by Nena Sahib,
-or, rather, Dhandoo Pant, Rajah of Bhitoor, the adopted son of
-the late Peishwah Bajee Raho. This man, under the mask of kindly
-feeling toward the English, nurtured a deadly hatred against
-the government, which had refused to acknowledge his claims as
-the Peishwah’s successor. He had long been addicted to the most
-revolting sensuality, and had lost all control over his passions.
-Wearied and enraged by the desperate resistance of this handful of
-brave men, he offered them a safe passage to Allahabad, if they
-would give up their guns and treasure. The place, indeed, was no
-longer tenable; and the survivors, diminished in number, were
-exhausted by constant vigils and want of food. In an evil moment,
-then, they accepted the terms of their perfidious enemy, marched
-down to the river, and embarked on board the boats which had been
-prepared for them. Suddenly a masked battery opened fire upon them,
-and crowds of horse and foot soldiers lined either bank. Many were
-shot dead, still more were drowned, and about 150 taken prisoners;
-four only escaped by swimming. The men were instantly put to death
-in cold blood; the women and children were spared for a few days
-longer.
-
-“General Havelock, taking the command at Allahabad of the 78th
-Highlanders, the Queen’s 64th, the 1st Madras Fusiliers, and the
-Ferozepore regiment of Sikhs, had set out in the hope of arriving
-at Cawnpore in time to release Sir Hugh Wheeler and his devoted
-comrades. After marching 126 miles, fighting four actions, and
-capturing a number of guns of heavy calibre, in eight days, and in
-the worst season of an Indian climate, he was yet too late to avert
-the terrible catastrophe. The day before he entered Cawnpore, Nena
-Sahib foully murdered the women and children, who alone survived of
-the Cawnpore garrison, and caused them to be flung, the dead and
-the dying, into a well of the courtyard of the assembly rooms.”
-
-Another account says:--
-
-“General Havelock arrived before Cawnpore on the 18th July, and so
-eager was he to rescue the garrison (for he was not yet aware of
-what had happened), that he attacked the Sepoy position without
-delay. Ordering a charge, his gallant band rushed to the onset.
-Not a word was uttered until when within 100 yards of the rebels,
-_three deafening cheers_,--cheers such as Englishmen only can give,
-rang out. Then came the crash; a murderous volley of musketry and
-the crash of bayonets soon drove the mutineers back, and Cawnpore
-was taken; 1000 British troops and 300 Sikhs had put to flight
-5000 of the flower of the native soldiery, with a native chief in
-command.
-
-“When Havelock’s soldiers entered the assembly rooms, the blood
-came up over their shoes. There they found clotted locks of hair,
-leaves of religious books, and fragments of clothing in sickening
-array, while into the well outside the bodies had been rudely
-thrown. The horrors of that scene will never be fully known. A
-terrible retribution fell on the mutineers. General Neil compelled
-the Brahmins to wipe out, on their bended knees, the sanguinary
-traces of the outrages before he ordered them to execution, and
-when the 78th Highlanders found the mutilated remains of one of
-General Wheeler’s daughters, they divided the locks of hair among
-them, pledging each other in solemn covenant, that for every hair
-thus appropriated, a mutineer’s life and that alone could be the
-atonement. The eldest daughter of Sir Hugh Wheeler is said to have
-behaved in a most heroic manner; one of the natives testified that
-she shot five _Sepoys_ with a revolver, and then threw herself into
-the well.”
-
-
-CAVALRY.--Of the ancients the Romans had the best cavalry. To each
-legion there was attached 300 cavalry in ten turmae. The Persians
-were famous for their horse troops--they had 10,000 horse at the
-battle of Marathon, B.C. 490, and 10,000 Persian cavalry at the
-battle of Issus, B.C. 333. Horse soldiers were early introduced
-into the British army. During the wars of Napoleon the strength
-amounted to 31,000 men. The British cavalry is divided into the
-household troops, dragoons, hussars and lancers. Since 1840 the
-number has continued, with little variation, to the present day, at
-about 10,000.
-
-
-CEDAR RAPIDS, CANADA.--Occupied by the Americans as a small fort in
-1776. Taken by a detachment of the British army, and 500 Indians,
-under the celebrated Indian chief Brant, _without firing a gun_.
-The Americans sent to its support were captured after a severe
-engagement.
-
-
-CENTURION.--From the Latin _Centum_ a hundred. An officer who
-commanded 100 men in the Roman army. There were 6000 men in a
-legion, and hence sixty centurions. He was distinguished from the
-others by a branch of vine which he carried in his hand.
-
-
-CEYLON.--Discovered by the Portuguese, A.D. 1505. Columbo, its
-capital, taken by the Dutch, in 1603, recovered in 1621; again
-taken 1656. Seized by the British 1795. Ceded to Great Britain by
-the Peace of Amiens in 1802. The British troops were treacherously
-massacred or imprisoned by the Adigar of Candy, June 26th, 1803.
-The complete sovereignty of the whole island taken by England in
-1815.
-
-
-CHÆRONEA, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Athenians and Bœotians,
-B.C. 447. Another battle, and the great one of history, was fought
-here between the confederate army of Greece of 30,000, and that of
-the Macedonians, under Philip, amounting to 32,000, August 2nd,
-338 B.C. Yet another battle was fought here between Archelaus,
-Lieutenant of Mithridates and Sylla, B.C. 86, when Archelaus was
-defeated and 110,000 Cappadocians slain.
-
-
-CHAMBLY.--An important military post on the River Richelieu,
-Canada. It was often attacked by the Iroquois Indians. In 1775 it
-was captured by the Americans, but retaken in 1776. It is now a
-small military station.
-
-
-CHARLEROI, BATTLES OF.--Great battles in several wars have been
-fought near this town; the chief in 1690 and 1794. (_See Fleurus._)
-Besieged by Prince of Orange in 1672, and again invested by the
-same Prince, with 60,000 men, in 1677, but he was obliged to
-retire. Near to the place is Ligny--(which see)--memorable at the
-battle of Waterloo.
-
-
-CHARLESTOWN.--_Massachusetts._--Burnt by the British forces under
-General Gage, January 17th, 1775. English fleet here repulsed with
-great loss, June 28th, 1776. Taken by the British, May 7th, 1779.
-
-
-CHARLESTON.--_South Carolina_.--Besieged by the British troops
-in March 1780, and surrendered in May 13th following, with 6000
-prisoners. Evacuated by the British, April 14th, 1783. Famous
-during the wars of Secession. The South Carolina Convention
-assembled here, March 26th, 1861. A battle was fought here, and
-the rebels or Confederates defeated, August 19th, 1861, and after
-experiencing all the vicissitudes of war, it was evacuated February
-17th, 1865, and next day surrendered to General Gilmore.
-
-
-CHATEAUGUAY.--_Canada._--To effect a junction with the army of
-General Wilkinson, on October 26th, 1813, General Hampton, with
-3500 men pushed forward from Lake Champlain towards Montreal.
-At the junction of the Ontario and Chateauguay Rivers, he there
-met 400 Canadians under Colonel de Salaberry, who most bravely
-disputed his advance. By skilful management and great bravery on
-the part of the Canadian officers, Viger and Doucet, the Americans
-were compelled to retreat towards Plattsburg. Their loss was
-considerable, while that of the Canadians was only two men killed
-and sixteen wounded. Gen. Hampton returned to Plattsburg, his army
-having dwindled away by sickness and desertion.
-
-
-CHATILLON, CONGRESS OF.--Held by the four powers allied against
-France, February 5th, 1814, but the negociation for peace was
-broken off, March 19th following.
-
-
-CHAUMONT, TREATY OF.--Between Great Britain, Austria, Russia and
-Prussia, March 1st, 1814. It was followed by the treaty of Paris,
-by which Napoleon abdicated, April 11th following.
-
-
-CHERBOURG.--Famous for an engagement between the English and French
-fleets. French defeated; 21 of their ships burnt or destroyed
-by Admirals Rooke and Russel, May 19th, 1692. The fort, etc.,
-destroyed by the British, who landed August, 1758. The works begun
-by Louis XVI, and completed by Napoleon, are proof against any
-armament in the world.
-
-
-CHESAPEAKE, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought at the mouth of the river of
-this name, between the British Admiral Greaves and the French
-Admiral De Grasse, in the interest of the revolted States of
-America, 1781. The Chesapeake and Delaware, blockaded by the
-British in 1812. The American frigate of this name surrendered to
-the Shannon, British frigate, after a very severe action, June 2nd,
-1813.
-
-
-CHILLIANWALLAH, BATTLE OF.--_In India._--This memorable and
-sanguinary battle, between the Sikh forces and the British, was
-fought January 13th, 1849. Lord Gough commanded. The Sikhs were
-completely routed, but the British also suffered severely: 26
-officers were killed and 66 wounded, and 731 rank and file were
-killed and 1446 wounded. The loss of the Sikhs was 3000 killed and
-4000 wounded. This battle was followed by the attack on the Sikh
-camp and the army under Sheere Shing, in its position at Goojerat
-(which see) February 21st, 1849.
-
-
-CHIPPEWA.--On the 5th July, 1814, General Ball with 2400 men gave
-battle here to 4000 Americans. The British fought bravely, but were
-obliged to retire to Lundy’s Lane, or Bridgewater, near the Falls
-of Niagara.
-
-
-CHRYSLER’S FARM.--_Williamsburg, Canada._--On the 11th November,
-1813, the Americans, under General Wilkinson, in their passage down
-the St. Lawrence to attack Montreal, being harassed by the Canadian
-forces, resolved to land and disperse them. They were 2000 strong
-and the Canadians 1000. After two hours of very hard fighting, in
-an open field, the Americans were compelled to retire, with the
-loss of one general, and 350 killed and wounded. Canadian loss 200.
-Medals were granted to the victors of this battle by the British
-Government.
-
-
-CHINA.--“The opening of the China trade to all British subjects,
-by the abolition of the East India Company’s monopoly in 1833,
-gave rise to a series of disputes with the native rulers, which
-at length led to open hostilities. These disputes, relating at
-first mainly to the legal rights and immunities to be enjoyed by
-the commercial superintendents appointed by the British cabinet,
-came eventually to be merged in the greater question touching the
-traffic in opium, which had all along been in some measure declared
-contraband by the Imperial Government. It was not, however,
-peremptorily prohibited till 1836; and even afterwards, through
-the connivance of the inferior authorities, an active smuggling
-trade continued to be carried on till 1839, when the Imperial
-Commissioner Lin, determined on its forcible suppression, seized
-the persons of the British merchants at Canton, and of Captain
-Elliot, the superintendent. That functionary was then compelled, by
-threats of personal violence to himself and his fellow-prisoners,
-to issue an order for the surrender of all the opium on board the
-vessels in the vicinity of Canton, which, to the value of above
-£2,000,000 sterling, was accordingly given up to the Chinese, who
-destroyed it,--the superintendent at the same time pledging the
-faith of the English government for compensation to the merchants.
-After various fruitless attempts to obtain satisfaction for this
-outrage, or even an accommodation by which the regular trade might
-be resumed, the cabinet of London resolved on hostilities. These,
-which were vigorously prosecuted, gave the Chinese a salutary
-lesson as to their inferiority to Europeans in military science
-and discipline; and they ended in a peace, signed August 29th,
-1842, by which the Emperor agreed to pay $21,000,000 by way of
-compensation, to open five of his principal ports to our commerce,
-and to surrender the island of Hong-Kong to the British crown for
-ever.”
-
-The following is a brief narrative from an English journal of the
-war of 1860 in China:--“On the 25th of June, 1860, the arrival of
-Sir Hope Grant at Tahlien Bay completed the muster of the British
-force in Northern China. General de Montauban reached Cheefoo
-at the same time, but his tale of men was not full; and as the
-Ambassadors were not due for a fortnight, it was determined that
-our troops should be landed. This was done, and horses and men
-benefited exceedingly by their sojourn on the breezy slopes which
-look upon the northern and southern sides of the grand harbor of
-Tahlien-wan, chosen for our rendezvous; notwithstanding that the
-hottest month of the summer was passed by the men in bell-tents,
-and by horses in the open.
-
-On the 1st August, a landing was effected at Pehtang without
-opposition, much to our surprise and delight, for the only spot at
-which disembarkation was practicable is distant only 2000 yards
-from the snug-looking forts which appeared to protect the town; and
-even at this place there was a mile of water at high tide, or of
-more difficult mud at low water, to be traversed, before the troops
-could reach anything which might, by courtesy or comparison, be
-termed dry ground.
-
-The 2nd brigade of 1st Division of British troops, and a French
-brigade, formed the first landing party. A vigorous resistance
-had been expected at this place; and had a fair proportion of the
-means lavished on the defence of the Peiho been expended on the
-Pehtang river, we should have had great trouble, for by nature that
-position is certainly the stronger. The forts on either side, and
-the town which adjoins that on the right bank, are built on two
-molecules of solid ground, which have turned up, one does not know
-how, at a distance of five miles inland from the bar, which closes
-the entrance of the river, to even the smallest gunboats, save at
-high water. The town is surrounded by a sea of mud, impassable
-to horse or man, inundated at high tide; it is connected with
-the comparatively higher country bordering the Peiho by a narrow
-causeway, which a determined and skilful enemy could hold against
-any force whatever, until driven successively from positions which
-might be established on the causeway at every hundred yards.
-We found, on the night of the 1st August, that the forts were
-deserted, and that the guns with which they bristled were but
-wooden “Quakers.” Next day we occupied town and forts.
-
-Large bodies of cavalry having shown themselves in our front, a
-reconnaissance was made on the 3rd August, covered, in the absence
-of cavalry, not yet landed, by infantry and by two French 8-pounder
-guns, the only artillery disembarked. We discovered that our polite
-enemy had left the causeway unoccupied, and that his force held no
-position nearer than 8 miles from the town we were in. The Chinese
-pickets opened fire upon our troops, but were speedily driven
-back. The reconnaissance effected, our force returned to Pehtang
-unmolested.
-
-Meanwhile the Admirals had set to work, landing troops, horses,
-guns, materiel, and stores. The navy worked famously; and as
-everything had to be brought into the river either in, or in tow
-of, the gunboats, whose movements depended upon the tides, the
-work, under the active superintendence of Captain Borlase, C.B.,
-continued without regard to any arbitrary distinction between
-day and night. During four or five of the ten days spent in this
-tedious operation, the rain fell in torrents; and as the interior
-of Pehtang is below high water-mark, the streets were knee-deep
-in mud, composed, in addition to the usual impurities pertaining
-to that substance, of flour, wardrobes, Tartar-hats, field rakes,
-coal, shutters, oil-cake, chaff, china-cups, matting, beer-bottles,
-tin cans, and kittens, being chiefly the contents of the dwellings
-of the townspeople, which were successively turned out of windows
-to make room for our troops. The cavalry and artillery horses
-were picketed in the streets, where alone space was available;
-and how they and we and everybody escaped death from typhus fever
-or plague, Heaven only knows. The sanitary officer was outraged
-by the result. During this time, water for the use of the troops
-was obtained in boats filled by the navy in the river above the
-influence of the tide, and towed to Pehtang, where the contents
-were landed in barrels for distribution.
-
-On the 12th August, after a delay of a day on account of the
-French, who at first were unwilling to advance till the season
-changed, we moved out to attack the enemy’s position; General
-Michel with the 1st Division and the French, along the causeway
-against the enemy’s front, General Napier, with the 2nd Division
-and cavalry, by a track which diverged from the causeway to the
-right at a short distance from Pehtang, with the view of turning
-the enemy’s left.
-
-It will not be easy for those who were not present to realise
-the difficulties of this march, or to do justice to the troops
-who performed it. The gun-waggons sank literally axle-deep, and
-their hinder parts had to be left behind; the heavy cavalry were
-greatly distressed in struggling through the mud, and it occupied
-the troops six hours to traverse four miles, during which time the
-enemy remained in his position.
-
-Napier’s division having reached moderately firm ground,
-advanced upon the open Tartar flank and rear; whilst the Allied
-left cannonaded his front, which was covered by a formidable
-intrenchment. The Tartar cavalry came out in great numbers to
-meet Napier, who opened on them with Armstrong guns. At first
-the Tartars seemed puzzled, but not disturbed; presently, seeing
-they were losing men, they rapidly extended, and in a few minutes
-the 2nd Division stood enveloped in a grand circle of horsemen,
-advancing from all points towards the centre. Napier’s infantry
-were speedily deployed, his cavalry let loose, and artillery kept
-going; and though the heavy ground was rendered more difficult for
-our cavalry by ditches broad and deep, whose passages were known to
-the enemy alone, yet, within a quarter of an hour of their advance,
-the Tartar force was everywhere in retreat. Not, however, till a
-body of their horsemen, which had charged Sterling’s battery, had
-been gallantly met and beaten by a party of Fane’s Horse, inferior
-in number, under Lieutenant Macgregor, who was severely wounded.
-
-The Allied left then advanced along the causeway, and occupied the
-lines of the intrenchments about Senho, which the enemy deserted on
-the success of our right.
-
-Amongst some papers found after the action, was a copy of a report
-from the Tartar General San-ko-lin-tzin to the Emperor, setting
-forth that the physical difficulties in the way of our landing at
-Pehtang, and of advancing thence across a country which never is
-dry, rendered it unnecessary to dispute our disembarkation on that
-river; and even if a landing should be effected, and our troops
-could be got under weigh, the general considered that nothing would
-be easier than to destroy us with his hordes of cavalry, so soon as
-we got entangled in the marshes.
-
-At Senho the Allied forces rested their right on the Peiho river.
-The Taku Forts are about six miles lower down. Mid-way between
-Senho and the northernmost or nearest fort on the left bank, stands
-the town of Tungkoo, surrounded by a very long intrenchment,
-consisting of a formidable rampart and a parapet, covered in all
-its length by a double wet ditch.
-
-General de Montauban proposed to attack this town the afternoon we
-reached Senho, but Sir Hope Grant would not consent to do so until
-he had acquired some knowledge of the position.
-
-The French Commander-in-Chief thereon determined to take the place
-at once without the aid of our troops. The French troops were led
-along the causeway communicating between Senho and Tungkoo, which
-appeared to be the only means of approach; but so considerable
-a fire was developed from the ramparts as to deter our Allies
-from attempting a _coup-de-main_, and they returned to camp after
-cannonading the place for half an hour.
-
-Means having been afterwards found of approaching Tungkoo with
-a large front on firm ground, the 1st British Division and the
-French captured the place on the 14th August. It was exclusively an
-affair of artillery; the enemy’s guns in position on the ramparts
-were silenced by our Armstrong and 9-pounder guns, and the rifled
-24-pounder of the French, gradually advanced, covered by infantry,
-to successive positions, as the enemy’s fire became weaker. The
-Allies had forty-two guns in the field. We found about fifty guns
-of all sorts in the ramparts, which the enemy, abandoned as our
-infantry advanced under cover of the guns. The British headed by
-the 60th Rifles, turned the right of the ditch, and entered the
-works a quarter of an hour before the French, who made their entry
-at the gate.
-
-After taking Tungkoo, the 1st Division (British) returned to its
-camp in front of Senho, and the 2nd Division, which had been in
-reserve, occupied the town.
-
-The view from General Napier’s house-top was not encouraging. As
-far as the eye could reach, we were surrounded by salt marshes,
-intersected by very numerous and wide canals, which carry sea-water
-into the salt-pans.
-
-It was in contemplation to attack the north and south forts
-simultaneously, with a force operating on each side of the Peiho,
-and a bridge of boats was in course of construction across the
-river at Senho. But as all the materials of the bridge, save boats,
-had to be conveyed overland from Pehtang, its progress could not be
-rapid. Meanwhile, by dint of most laborious reconnaissance, General
-Napier had discovered that open ground near the north fort could
-be reached by artillery, on the completion of a line of causeway
-which he had commenced over the inundated ground within the town of
-Tungkoo, and by establishing crossing-places at certain points on
-five or six canals. He urged an immediate attack on the north forts
-only; and, having obtained permission to throw out a picket towards
-them, on the 19th, made so good a use of it, that in one night the
-passages of the canals were completed, and the Commander-in-chief
-was conducted next morning within five hundred yards of the nearest
-fort. Seeing all obstacles to the approach of the forts overcome,
-Sir Hope Grant frankly consented to General Napier’s scheme, and
-intrusted its execution to his division. The French commander was
-very averse to the plan proposed. He formally protested against it,
-but General Grant maintained his determination; and, devoting the
-night of the 20th to the construction of batteries, the attack was
-made upon the upper north fort at daylight of the 21st August. The
-fire of thirty-one pieces of British and six of French ordnance
-gradually subdued the enemy’s artillery; their magazine was
-exploded by one of our shells; shortly before, that of the further
-north fort, which supported it, was blown up by a shell from one
-of the gunboats, which were rendering such assistance as they
-could give at a range of two thousand yards, the distance imposed
-by the stakes and booms which were laid across the river. On the
-advance of the infantry, the French crossed the ditches, upon
-scaling-ladders laid flat. Our engineers, who trusted to pontoons,
-were less successful, and the French had reared their ladders
-against the ramparts for a quarter of an hour, before our infantry,
-some by swimming and scrambling, others by following the French,
-had struggled across the ditches and reached the berme. But so
-active was the defence that no French soldier got into the place by
-the ladders, though several bravo men mounted them; an entrance was
-eventually made by both forces at the same time through embrasures,
-which were reached by steps hewn out of the earthen rampart with
-axes, bayonets, and swords.
-
-When the attack was delivered General de Montauban was absent from
-the field, the French army being represented by General Collineau
-and his brigade.
-
-It had been intended to breach the rampart near the gate, and so
-secure an entrance to the fort actually taken by assault; but our
-gallant Commander-in-Chief became impatient of the process, and
-the more speedy means of escalade was resorted to. It is highly
-probable that the rapidity of our success, and the tremendous
-loss inflicted on the garrison of the first fort, who had no time
-for escape in any large numbers, conduced to the surrender of the
-second fort and to the prompt abandonment of the position. Our loss
-amounted to two hundred and three British killed and wounded; the
-French loss was somewhat less. That of the Tartars was estimated
-at two thousand men, large numbers of whom became inmates of our
-hospitals.
-
-The attack was gallant, so was the defence, and the success was
-perfect. The enemy immediately surrendered the further northern
-fort into our hands, with two thousand prisoners; and before the
-evening the entire position on the Peiho, covering an area of six
-square miles, and containing upwards of six hundred guns, was
-abandoned by its defenders.
-
-The attack on the forts had only been deferred until provisions and
-munitions of war could be drawn from Pehtang, which we had quitted
-on the 12th August, in as light marching order as possible. Since
-our arrival at Senho, our tents, packs, kits, ammunition, and
-baggage, had gradually been brought through the mud to the front
-as speedily as the limited means of transport would permit, but
-in the process many of the beasts of burden perished. The state
-of the country would alone account for this; but further, as none
-of the commissariat waggons were at this time disembarked, it was
-necessary that everything should be carried upon the backs of
-transport animals, many of which having just landed from Manilla,
-Japan, and Bombay in sorry condition, were quite unfit for this
-service. At this juncture the Chinese Coolie Corps, composed of men
-recruited at Canton, became the only reliable means of transport.
-They were very hard worked, but they performed their duty very
-cheerfully and well.
-
-From the first landing at Pehtang until after the capture of the
-forts, the army was entirely dependent on sea-borne provisions,
-brought from the fleet in gunboats and carried across from Pehtang;
-fresh meat rations were therefore rare. No sooner were the forts
-surrendered than the Chinese peasantry hastened to establish
-markets; and fruit, poultry, eggs and sheep were offered for sale
-in profusion, at such moderate prices, that on the march from
-Tungkoo to Tientsin, spatchcock fowls, savoury omeletes, and
-stewed peaches became the staple food of the British soldier. On
-the 22nd of August, the day after the forts were captured, Admiral
-Hope, with a squadron of gunboats, had pushed up the Peiho river
-to Tientsin. He met with no opposition, and the townspeople threw
-themselves at his feet. The Ambassador, Commander-in-Chief, and a
-portion of our troops, speedily followed in gunboats; the remainder
-of the force by land, so soon as transport could be organized. The
-last of our regiments reached Tientsin, distant thirty-five miles
-from Taku, on the 5th of September.
-
-A convention for the cessation of hostilities was to be signed
-on the 7th, and ground was actually taken for a review of all
-the troops, which was to be held for the edification of the
-Commissioners, after they should have signed the treaty.
-
-Suddenly the sky darkened: it was ascertained that “Kweiliang”
-and his brother Commissioners were not armed with the powers
-they asserted, and ultimately, instead of parading on the 8th
-in holiday pageant, a portion of our forces began that day the
-march towards Pekin. The Ambassadors left next day, in company
-with the Commanders-in-Chief; the forces were advanced as far as
-carriage could be procured; but the means of the commissariat
-were insufficient to move the whole army to such a distance, and
-to carry the necessary supplies. The draught cattle furnished by
-the mandarins at Tientsin were spirited away at the first halting
-place, and the 2nd division of the British army, which was to have
-brought up the rear, had to devote its carriage to the assistance
-of the 1st division, and remain behind.
-
-In this emergency the commissariat would have had the greatest
-difficulty in feeding the troops in the front, but for the measures
-taken by Sir Robert Napier, who remained in command at Tientsin. By
-inducing persistent efforts to push boats up the river Peiho, which
-runs parallel to the road nearly up to Pekin, but which had been
-pronounced unnavigable by even the smallest craft, and by laying
-embargo on the traffic of Tientsin, General Napier procured, and
-with the aid of the navy organised, large means of water transport,
-which afforded invaluable assistance.
-
-As the Ambassadors advanced they were met by letters announcing
-the appointment of “Tsai Prince of Ee” as Chief Commissioner to
-conclude negotiations in lieu of Kweiliang, who was pronounced
-to have proved himself incompetent; and on the 14th September,
-Messrs. Parkes and Wade held a conference with the Commissioners at
-Tung-chow, whereat, all preliminaries being settled, a letter was
-written to Lord Elgin acceding in terms to all his demands.
-
-It was arranged that Lord Elgin was to meet the Commissioners in
-the walled city of Tung-chow, eight miles short of Pekin, where he
-would sign the convention, under escort of 1000 men; and that he
-should immediately afterwards proceed to Pekin, there to exchange
-ratifications of the Treaty of Tientsin (1858), under similar
-protection. Our armies meanwhile were to encamp four miles below
-Tung-chow.
-
-Nothing remained but to settle details, and take up suitable
-quarters for Lord Elgin at Tung-chow. For this purpose Mr.
-Parkes, accompanied by Messrs. Loch (private secretary), De
-Norman (attached to Shanghai mission), and Bowlby (_Times’_
-correspondent), with an escort of Fane’s Horse, under Lieut.
-Anderson, went out on the 17th. Lieut.-Colonel Beauchamp Walker
-accompanied the party, for the purpose of inspecting the ground
-designated by the Chinese for our encampment, and Mr. Thompson
-(Commissariat) was sent to guage the capabilities of supply of the
-city of Tung-chow.
-
-On arrival they were well received; but in discussing affairs they
-were surprised to find objections raised on several points to which
-the Chinese Commissioners had before consented. However, after a
-discussion of five or six hours, the Chinese negociators gave way;
-and having arranged details, our party slept that night in the
-city, the guests of the Commissioners.
-
-Next morning Colonel Walker, accompanied by Messrs. Parkes
-and Loch, and attended by a Chinese officer deputed by the
-Commissioners, proceeded to examine the ground on which the British
-army was to be encamped, leaving the larger part of the escort
-at Tung-chow, where Messrs. Bowlby and De Norman also remained,
-pending the return of Parkes and Loch, who had yet to find a
-suitable residence for Lord Elgin within the walls of Tung-chow. On
-the way out, the party found the Tartar army in hurried movement
-in the direction of our forces, and on reaching the ground
-proposed for encampment, discovered it to be entirely commanded
-by the position which the Tartar forces, supported by a numerous
-artillery, were then taking up.
-
-Seeing this, Parkes turned round and rode back to Tung-chow to
-demand a cessation of these hostile movements. Loch went on into
-the British camp with a couple of men to report progress, whilst
-Col. Walker, Thompson, and half-a-dozen dragoons, remained in the
-Tartar position, at Parkes’s request, until he should return.
-Having reported progress to the Commander-in-Chief, whom he met
-advancing, about a mile from the Tartar position, Loch returned
-towards the Tartars, accompanied by Captain Brabazon, R. A., with
-orders to Parkes to come back at once.
-
-Mr. Parkes, on reaching Tung-chow, was rudely received by the
-Prince of Ee, and was told that until the questions to which
-objections had been made the day previous had been satisfactorily
-determined, peace could not exist. Thereupon Parkes, with Bowlby,
-De Norman, and all our people, left Tung-chow for the British camp.
-Mid-way they met Loch and Brabazon, who turned homewards with them,
-and all went on together, preceded by a flag of truce.
-
-Before they came in sight of Colonel Walker and his few men, Tartar
-cavalry, blowing their matches, and making other hostile gestures,
-came galloping along the high bank on either side of our people,
-who were in a hollow way. Presently the party was summoned to
-halt; being surrounded, and ignorant of the ground, it was deemed
-advisable to comply, both to insist on the sanctity of the flag
-of truce, and to gain an opportunity of discovering the best way
-out of their uncomfortable position. The Tartar officer in command
-civilly told them, that as firing had commenced, he was unable to
-let them pass, without orders from his General, to whose presence
-he would conduct Mr. Parkes. Parkes, Loch, and one Sikh rode away
-with the officer. Suddenly turning the angle of a field of maize,
-they found themselves in the midst of a mob of infantry, whose
-uplifted weapons their guide with difficulty put aside. Further
-on stood San-ko-lin-tzin, the Tartar General, of whom Parkes
-demanded a free passage. He was answered with derision; and, after
-a brief parley, in which San-ko-lin-tzin upbraided Parkes as the
-cause of all the disasters which had befallen the empire, at a sign
-from the General our men were tossed off from their horses, their
-faces rubbed in the dust, and their hands tied behind them, and
-so, painfully bound, were placed upon carts, and taken to Pekin.
-Orders, were, at the same time, sent to capture the escort, which
-had been already surrounded by ever increasing numbers. Some of the
-troopers suggested the propriety of cutting their way through, but
-Anderson replied it would compromise the others, and refused to do
-what his gallant heart desired.
-
-Soon, however, the whole party was disarmed, and taken to Pekin on
-their horses without dishonor. Next day they were removed to the
-Summer Palace of Yuen-Ming-Yuen, where they were severally bound.
-Their hands and feet tied together behind their backs, they were
-thrown on their chests, and kept in the open air exposed to the
-cold at night, and the still considerable heat by day, without
-food or water, for three days and nights. From the first their
-bonds were wetted to tighten them, and if they attempted to turn
-or move to rest themselves, they were cruelly kicked and beaten.
-On the third day poor Anderson’s fingers and nails burst from the
-pressure of the cords, which were not even then relaxed. The wrist
-bones became visible, and mortification ensued; the victim became
-delirious, and thus mercifully made unconscious of the horror of
-his position, this gallant soldier died. During his sufferings his
-men made efforts to approach him and to gnaw his cords, but they
-were savagely kicked away by his inhuman jailers. The condition of
-the survivors was only ameliorated, after the lapse of three days,
-by the bonds on their hands and feet being exchanged for heavy
-chains and irons. But, from this time, they were regularly, though
-most scantily and miserably, fed.
-
-Poor Bowlby died the fifth day, in the same way as Anderson, then
-De Norman and several of the men. All appear to have kept noble
-hearts, and to have cheered and encouraged each other, but no less
-than thirteen sank under the horrors of this captivity. Brabazon
-and a French Abbé, who were taken with the escort, were, still
-unbound, seen to leave the party, on the way to Pekin, saying they
-were going to the Chinese Commander-in-Chief to procure the release
-of their companions. Their mournful fate was, we rejoice to know,
-less horrible. They were beheaded, by order of a Chinese General,
-on the 21st September, in revenge for a wound he had received
-during the action of the day; but their bodies being then thrown
-into the canal, were unhappily never recovered.
-
-Parkes, Loch, and their Sikh orderly, had been taken off straight
-to Pekin, and never saw anything of the rest of their party. Parkes
-was known by sight and reputation, and his position and that of
-Loch was, in a manner, recognised. Their cords were unbound after
-eight hours, when they were heavily ironed, separated from each
-other, and each put into ward with sixty prisoners--murderers and
-felons of the first class--with whom they ate and slept and lived.
-By day they were allowed to move about in their wards; at night
-their chains were fastened to staples in the prison roof. They
-represent their fellow prisoners to have behaved uniformly with
-kindness towards them, sharing with them any little comforts they
-possessed, and carrying their chains when they moved. But they were
-treated with extreme rigour, and their allowance of food was scanty.
-
-After the 29th September a change of treatment was adopted.
-Parkes and Loch were taken from prison, and confined together in
-a temple, where they were treated with every consideration. Their
-dinner was furnished by the Véry of Pekin, and mandarins visited
-them, bringing little presents of fruit. During this time the
-diplomatists were trying to turn Parkes to political account.
-They wrote to Lord Elgin to say that the prisoners then in Pekin
-were very well, and that the basis of a treaty was being arranged
-with Mr. Parkes, which would no doubt be satisfactory to all
-parties. And thus matters went on until the joyful day came of the
-prisoners’ release.
-
-The firing spoken of as the immediate cause of the detention of our
-people, began thus: Colonel Walker and his party had been left in
-the lines of the Tartars, who were at first rudely good-humoured,
-as he moved about and observed how completely the guns, now in
-position behind a ridge of sandhills, covered the ground allotted
-by the Commissioners for the encampment of our forces. Suddenly
-Walker’s attention was attracted by a cry uttered close to him.
-He saw a French officer who had come out of Tung-chow during the
-morning, and had attached himself to the English, in the act of
-being cut down and pulled off his horse by a party of soldiers.
-Walker rode up to him, and catching hold of his hand, essayed to
-drag him away. A mob closed round Walker; some attempted to lift
-him off his horse; whilst others, taking advantage of his right
-hand being engaged, canted his sword out of its scabbard and made
-off. A mortal blow was dealt to the poor Frenchman; swords were
-drawn on all sides; and Walker calling on his men to put spurs
-and ride, galloped for his life towards our troops, now drawn up
-within sight, about half a mile away. The party was pursued by
-cavalry, and fired on by Tartar infantry and guns in succession;
-but they reached our lines alive, with one horse severely, and two
-men slightly, wounded.
-
-An immediate advance was made by the Allied forces; the enemy were
-speedily driven from their guns, and their cavalry was swept away
-by successive charges of our horse. All their guns, seventy-five in
-number, their camps, and quantities of arms, were captured by our
-troops, who occupied for the night the walled town of Chan-kya-wan,
-which gave its name to the battle. That place is twelve miles from
-Pekin, in a direct line, and four from Tung-chow, which is the port
-of Pekin on the Peiho; and lies to the right of the direct road
-from Tientsin.
-
-But the victory did not lead, as we had fondly hoped, to the
-immediate recovery of the prisoners, victims of treachery so dark
-as to have been unsuspected even by the experienced and wary
-Parkes. The night before the foul plot was carried out, the Prince
-of Ee had entertained our people at dinner, and, smiling, had
-bidden them adieu. An officer, deputed by the Prince, attended the
-party in the morning, and it was perhaps not unnatural for Parkes
-to believe that he could induce the Prince to countermand the
-movement of troops which he then saw, and which he supposed to be
-unknown to the High Commissioner. The Prince’s reception of Parkes,
-of course, dispelled this expectation, and no time was lost in
-returning to camp. Even then there was no appearance of immediate
-danger to the party, unless from possible excitement of the rude
-soldiery through whom they had to pass; for both Chinese and
-Tartars had up to this time invariably shown the fullest confidence
-in the protection of flags of truce, under which officers had
-frequently passed between the Allied and Chinese camps during the
-war then waging.
-
-The soldiers, however, possessed that reverence for the emblem of
-peace which animates most other savages; and it was at the hands of
-San-ko-lin-tzin, the commander-in-Chief of the Chinese army, and
-the apostle of competitive examination, that the Chinese Government
-was degraded to the last degree by the deliberate violation of a
-flag of truce, and by the capture of the heralds whom it should
-have shielded.
-
-Having ascertained that a considerable force of Tartars was
-encamped between Tung-chow and Pekin, Sir Hope Grant advanced on
-the 21st September to attack their position. Again the Tartars were
-completely beaten, their camps and guns all captured, and great
-loss inflicted on the enemy by our cavalry. The King’s Dragoon
-Guards made a capital charge; and a squadron of Fane’s horse, under
-Lieutenant Cattley, attached for the day to the French, after
-driving the enemy into a village, galloped quickly round it, and
-falling on the enemy’s flank, as he emerged on the other side,
-inflicted signal punishment. The number of Tartar troops on or
-about the field this day is estimated at 80,000 men, of whom 30,000
-were actually engaged. The allied forces numbered 6200--viz.,
-English, 3200 of all arms, and fifteen guns; and French, 3000, with
-twelve guns.
-
-The action of Pā-li-chow left us in possession of the important
-strategic point called the Pā-li bridge, whereby the paved causeway
-from Tung-chow to Pekin crosses the canal constructed between those
-places. It further gave us the line of the canal on which the enemy
-had rested, and left the approach to Pekin open to our troops.
-
-Our success was immediately followed by a letter from the Prince
-Koung, brother of the Emperor, and heir to the throne, announcing
-to the Ambassadors that he had been appointed, with full powers, to
-conclude a peace, in the room of Prince Tsai.
-
-After the fight of the 18th, Sir Hope Grant had sent an express to
-summon General Napier, with as much of the 2nd division as could
-be spared from Tientsin. The General had already succeeded in
-procuring from the Chinese authorities carriage for his troops,
-which the Commissariat was unable to furnish. The order found them
-ready to move, and General Napier reached headquarters on the
-24th, having marched seventy miles in sixty hours, with a supply
-of ammunition, which was much required, escorted by a company of
-Brownlow’s light-footed Punjabees.
-
-The army halted in the position it had won until siege guns had
-arrived by water from Tientsin; fourteen days’ supply had been
-brought up the river, and all available troops had been collected.
-The force in front was strengthened by all the infantry of the
-garrison of Tientsin, which was replaced by the 19th Punjab
-Infantry from Tahlien Bay, and by marines, whom the Admiral landed
-from the fleet.
-
-Advancing from Pā-li on the 6th October, the British took up
-position on the northern road leading from the gates of Pekin to
-Tartary, without falling in with any of the enemy, except a picket,
-which retired with precipitation. The French who were to have
-operated on the left between our flank and Pekin, marched, through
-some misunderstanding, across our rear, and took possession of the
-imperial palace of Yuen-Ming-Yuen, “the Fountain of Summer,” six
-miles to the North of Pekin, and four miles away to our right. We
-heard nothing of them all night; but Sir Hope Grant found them the
-next morning, when arrangements were made for the division between
-the two forces of the treasures which the palace contained. But in
-the absence of any British troops the arrangements broke through,
-and our prize agents, finding the principal valuables appropriated
-by the French, abandoned their functions. Thereupon on the 8th
-indiscriminate plunder was allowed; but as of the British a few
-officers only had access to the palace, and none of the men, our
-officers were ultimately desired to give up all they had brought
-away, and the property they had collected was ultimately sold by
-auction for the benefit of the troops actually present in the field
-before Pekin.
-
-A most spirited sale ensued of china, enamels, jade, furs, silk,
-&c., which realised £5000; and this sum, added to the amount of
-gold and silver bullion which had been brought in, enabled the
-prize agents at once to make a distribution amongst the troops,
-ranging from £3 for a private soldier, to £60 for a first-class
-field officer. All our generals surrendered their shares to the
-troops. The arrangement made was perhaps the fairest that could be
-arrived at under the actual circumstances of the time; but of a
-booty worth at least a million of money, belonging to the imperial
-crown--therefore prize of the fairest character--the British troops
-have profited only to the amount of £25,000. The balance has gone
-to the French, who take the broadest view of the question of
-halves, or to the Chinese peasantry, who plundered as they pleased,
-after the departure of the French, on the third day of occupation.
-
-On the 8th October, the first-fruits of our advance on Pekin were
-realised, in the surrender to us, by the Chinese, of Messrs. Parkes
-and Loch, and the Sikh orderly who had been taken with them. A
-French savant and three men were given up at the same time. Our
-poor fellows looked wonderfully well; but M. d’Escayrae’s hands
-were still contorted by the pressure to which they had been
-subjected during the twenty hours in which he was bound. The
-delivery of prisoners was the direct result of an intimation sent
-to the Chinese, on the 7th October, that unless all the prisoners
-still in their hands were delivered up immediately, a gate of the
-city placed in our possession without opposition, and competent
-persons deputed to conclude a peace, Pekin would be taken by
-assault; but if all the prisoners were given up, our troops would
-not be allowed to enter the city, and the lives and property of the
-inhabitants should be respected.
-
-Saturday, the 13th October, at noon, was the period fixed on for
-compliance with our demands. Before the time elapsed, eleven of our
-Sikh horsemen who had been prisoners, were delivered up alive,
-and the remains of all who had perished (save poor Brabazon and
-the Abbé), were received in coffins. On the 17th they were buried
-in the Russian cemetery, with all the honour and solemnity that
-could be paid. The Ambassadors of England, France, and Russia, the
-Commanders-in-Chief, and the allied officers not on duty, attended.
-The Roman Catholic and Greek prelates showed, by their presence,
-generous sympathy in the untimely fate of our countrymen.
-
-But as the complete fulfilment of the demands was still uncertain,
-batteries were erected against the city wall at a distance of 150
-yards, by the British and French respectively, and arrangements
-were made for opening fire at noon of the 13th, if the gate was not
-by that time given up. Every one agreed in hoping that thousands of
-inoffensive people might be spared the misery of an assault; but
-the 2nd Division must have felt something like a pang when, at the
-appointed hour, they saw their General ride with an escort through
-the gate, and found, by the display of the ensign from its top,
-that the Tartars had surrendered to us the command of the Imperial
-city.
-
-Yes, we were there, masters of the capital of China--at the
-very end of the map of the world--at the point which appears
-to schoolboy minds the limit of creation. We held the massive
-four-storied keep which frowns like a line-of-battle ship above
-the Gate of Peace; our troops and field artillery were actually on
-the walls which commanded the whole of the interior of the city,
-and they could move to any point along the fifty feet road which
-the summit of the wall presents. The walls and gates adjoining,
-together with some few larger double-storied buildings, were the
-only objects visible from our position varying the universal
-dun-colour of the city houses and enclosing walls. The broad
-street which leads from our gate into the city was packed with a
-dense crowd, anxious to make out the foreigners, and indulging
-in sonorous “Ei Yaws” at every novelty which met their wondering
-eyes. Electrified indeed were the Celestials when the bands of a
-French regiment, and of our 67th and 99th, struck up within the
-gateway, and guards presented their clanging arms as the Generals
-rode by; but the climax was reached when Desborough’s guns were
-spurted up the steep stone ramps which lead from the base to the
-summit of the wall, fifty feet in height, drawn by six horses of
-fabulous stature, and driven by the terrible barbarians who eat
-their enemies.
-
-The surrender was carried out in good faith; but the appearance on
-the walls of guns of heavy calibre, evidently recently moved into
-positions whence our batteries were observed, spoke either of
-divided counsels or of tardy resignation on the part of our enemies.
-
-Still our success was insufficient. No retribution had been exacted
-for the violation of the flag of truce, and for the murder of our
-countrymen, and no one seemed to feel certain whether a treaty
-was to be obtained or not. It was useless to demand the surrender
-of the persons who had instigated the barbarous treatment of the
-prisoners, for they were known to be very near the person of the
-Emperor, and there was therefore no chance of our getting the real
-offenders. An atonement in money, for the iniquities perpetrated,
-though repugnant to our feelings, appeared to be the only kind of
-demand with which the Chinese Government, humiliated and beaten
-as it was, could be expected to comply. The readiest means of
-obtaining a treaty was obviously to remain at Pekin until we got
-it; but the French Commander refused positively to detain his
-troops at the capital after the 1st November, and the English
-General was greatly indisposed to incur the risk of keeping his
-force there through the winter, in the absence of complete and
-timely arrangements for provisionment, which it was considered the
-advanced period of the season rendered impracticable.
-
-Accordingly, on the 18th October, an ultimatum was addressed by
-the plenipotentiaries to Prince Koung, requiring him to reply by
-the morning of the 20th, whether, after paying, as a necessary
-preliminary to further negotiations, a sum of money in atonement
-for the murders committed, he would on an early day sign the
-convention already agreed upon? His Excellency was told that the
-Summer Palace, which had been partially plundered before the fate
-of the prisoners was known, would now be entirely destroyed, that
-its ruins might present a lasting mark of the abhorrence of the
-British Government at the violation of the law of nations which had
-been committed. He was also told, that in case of refusal to comply
-with the demands now made, the Imperial Palace of Pekin would be
-captured, plundered and burned.
-
-In support of the ultimatum, the 1st Division of the British force,
-with cavalry, proceeded on the 18th and 19th to complete the
-plunder and destruction of the Summer Palace, whose smoke, driven
-by the northerly wind, hung over Pekin, whilst its ashes were
-wafted into the very streets of the capital. The French declined
-to take any part in this act of punishment--first, because they
-thought the palace had already been destroyed on their quitting it;
-and further, they feared that this demonstration would frighten the
-Chinese out of all hope of making any treaty at all.
-
-The result showed that not one-fourth of the Imperial pavilions
-which constitute the Summer Palace had been even visited in the
-first instance, much less burned; and great booty was acquired by
-the troops employed as well as by the members of the embassy, navy,
-and staff, who were able to accompany the force. And so salutary
-was the effect produced on the advisers of the Imperial crown, that
-a letter acceding to all demands was received at daylight on the
-20th, to the renewed disappointment of the 2nd Division, who again
-were under arms for the assault.
-
-On the 22nd, the atonement-money, amounting to £100,000, was paid;
-and on the 24th, her Majesty’s Plenipotentiary, accompanied by
-the Commander-in-Chief, and escorted by a division of the army,
-entered in state and triumph the gates of the dim, mysterious city.
-The Ambassador was received by a deputation of Mandarins, who
-accompanied Lord Elgin to the hall, three miles distant, at the far
-side of the Tartar city, where the Prince Koung, surrounded by the
-principal officers of state, awaited his arrival.
-
-At five o’clock that afternoon, ratifications of the treaty of
-1858 were duly exchanged by the representatives of the sovereigns,
-and a convention signed, which, commencing with a recital of the
-Emperor’s regret at the occurrences at the Peiho Forts in 1858,
-declares Tientsin a free port, and thereby opens the Peiho to
-within seventy miles of Pekin for the traffic of the world. The
-provisions of the convention permit free emigration of Chinese,
-with their wives and families, to all parts of the world, and
-transfer a territory at Cowloon, opposite Hong Kong, where our
-troops were encamped in 1860, to the British Crown. An indemnity
-of three millions sterling to the British is guaranteed; and
-stipulation is made for the establishment of a British force
-at Tientsin, until the terms are fulfilled. A portion of the
-indemnity is to be paid 31st, December, 1860, whereon Chusan is to
-be evacuated by the English and French troops. But no provision
-is made for the evacuation of Canton, to which the French are at
-present understood to be disinclined to agree. The remainder of the
-indemnity is to be paid by periodical instalments of one-fifth of
-the gross revenue of the customs of China.
-
-After signing the convention, Lord Elgin expressed a hope that the
-treaty would inaugurate friendly relations between the powers.
-Prince Koung replied that he himself had been about to utter the
-same words; and acknowledging that foreign affairs had hitherto
-been greatly mismanaged, observed, that as their administration was
-now exclusively placed in his hands, he had no doubt their future
-management would be more satisfactory.
-
-The Franco-Chinese treaty was ratified by Baron Gros and the Prince
-Koung on the following day.”
-
-
-CINTRA, CONVENTION OF.--This disgraceful convention was concluded
-between the British army, under Sir Hew Dalrymple and the French
-under Marshal Junot. The latter were allowed to evacuate Portugal
-and to be carried home to France in British ships, taking with them
-their ill-got gain; signed the day of the battle of Vimeira, August
-22nd, 1808.
-
-
-CITATE.--Fought 5th January, 1854, between Omar Pacha and the
-Turks, on the one side, and the Russians on the other.
-
-“The army to which was allotted the first active operation was
-that commanded by General Fishback, with Generals Engelhardt and
-Bellegarde under his orders. This force was to occupy the extreme
-west of the Russian line of attack, and to drive the Turks from
-their position at Kalafat. By the time, however, that Fishback had
-reached Citate, a village within a few miles of his destination,
-he discovered that his force of about 15,000 men was inadequate to
-dislodge an equal number, strongly intrenched, and in unimpeded
-communication with Widdin, on the opposite side of the river,
-whence considerable supplies of men and ammunition could doubtless
-be obtained. He resolved, therefore, to postpone the assault until
-the 13th of January (the Russian New Year’s day), by which time he
-would be in possession of the requisite reinforcements, which he
-anticipated would raise his force to 45,000 men. Achmet and Ismail
-Pachas, who commanded the garrison at Kalafat, were well aware of
-the plans of the Russian commander, and determined to forestall
-his action. At daybreak, on the 6th of January, they sallied from
-the town with fifteen field-pieces, 10,000 regular infantry, 4000
-cavalry, and 1000 of the irregular troops, known as Bashi-Bazouks.
-Three thousand men from the garrison at Widdin crossed the river
-to defend Kalafat from surprise; and at Moglovitz, between that
-town and Citate, a similar number were detached as a reserve. About
-nine o’clock the Turks reached Citate, and opened a side fire upon
-the village, while the infantry vigorously charged in front. After
-three hours of sanguinary street-fighting, the nature of the ground
-forbidding organized military combinations, the Russians retreated
-to the works they had thrown up beyond the village. The Turkish
-field-pieces were now brought to bear upon the intrenchments, and
-several vigorous assaults were made and as bravely repulsed. In
-the midst of the conflict, a large body of Russian reinforcements
-arrived, and the Turks, who occupied the gardens and orchards
-round the village, were exposed to an energetic assault in their
-rear. Nothing daunted, and favoured by their position, the
-Ottomans fought nobly, and succeeded in routing the newly-arrived
-reinforcement of the enemy, just as Ismail Pacha appeared upon
-the scene with the reserve from Moglovitz. Concentrating their
-forces, they now rushed at the intrenchments, and, beating down
-all opposition, drove the enemy from the position they had held.
-Nearly 2400 Russians dead in the streets and earth-works, a like
-number wounded, four guns, and the depôts of ammunition and arms
-which they captured, attested that day the prowess of the Turkish
-arms. Their own loss was about 200 killed and 700 wounded. For two
-days they held the place against the attempts of the Russians to
-recapture it; and then, emerging into the open field, drove the
-Russians before them back to Krajova. Then, retiring in triumph,
-they re-entered Kalafat, which, now mounting 250 heavy guns, and
-garrisoned (including Widdin) by 25,000 men, might safely promise
-a desperate resistance to any further Russian attempt.”
-
-
-CIUDAD RODRIGO.--This strong fortress of Spain was invested
-by the French, June 11th, 1810, and surrendered July 10th,
-following.--Remained in the hands of the French till stormed
-gallantly by the British, under Wellington, January 19th,
-1812.--Loss of the British and Portuguese 1000 killed and wounded,
-equal number of French, and 1700 prisoners.
-
-
-CLONTARF, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Irish and Danes on Good
-Friday, 1039. The Danes were signally defeated, 11,000 of them
-perished in battle, but the Irish had to deplore the loss of Bryan
-Boiroimhe, the King, and many of the nobility.
-
-
-CLOSTERSEVEN, CONVENTION OF.--Between the Duke of Cumberland, third
-son of George II, and the Duke of Richelieu, commanding the French;
-38,000 Hanovarians laid down their arms and were dispersed,--signed
-September 10th, 1757.
-
-
-COALITIONS AGAINST FRANCE.
-
- 1st. Prussia issued her manifesto June 26th, 1792.
-
- 2nd. Great Britain, Germany, Russia, Naples, Portugal and Turkey
- signed them, June 22nd, 1799.
-
- 3rd. Great Britain, Russia, Austria and Naples, August 5th, 1805.
-
- 4th. Great Britain, Russia, Prussia and Saxony, October 6th, 1806.
-
- 5th. England and Austria, April 6th, 1809.
-
- 6th. Russia and Prussia, ratified at Kalisch, March 17th, 1813.
-
-
-COLONEL.--This word is derived from the French, and means the chief
-commander of a regiment of troops.
-
-
-COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF OF THE BRITISH ARMY SINCE 1674:
-
- Duke of Monmouth 1674
- Duke of Marlborough 1690
- Duke of Schomberg 1691
- Duke of Ormond 1711
- Earl of Stair 1744
- Field Marshal Wade 1745
- Lord Ligonier 1757
- Marquess of Granby 1766
- Lord Amherst 1778
- General Seymour Conway 1782
- Lord Amherst again 1793
- Frederick, Duke of York 1795
- Sir David Dundas March 25, 1809
- Frederick, Duke of York May 29, 1811
- Duke of Wellington Jan’y 22, 1827
- Lord Hill, Gen’l Commander-in-Chief Feb’y 25, 1828
- Duke of Wellington again Dec. 28, 1842
- Viscount Hardinge Sept. 25, 1852
- Duke of Cambridge July 15, 1856
-
-
-CONFEDERATION OF THE RHINE.--The League of the Germanic States
-formed under the auspices of Napoleon Bonaparte. By this celebrated
-League the German States had to raise 258,000 troops to serve in
-case of war. It terminated with the downfall of Napoleon.
-
-
-CONFLANS, TREATY OF.--A compact between Louis XI of France and the
-Dukes of Bourbon, Brittany and Burgundy. This treaty put an end to
-the “War of the Public Good,” in 1468.
-
-
-CONSTANTINE THE GREAT.--It was whilst preparing to cross the Alps,
-to chastise the barbarians, that Constantine is said to have
-witnessed the supernatural appearance which induced him to embrace
-Christianity, and establish it henceforth as the religion of the
-empire. While meditating in his tent on the dangers that surrounded
-him, and praying for divine guidance and protection amidst them,
-there is said to have appeared over against him in the heavens a
-pillar of light in the form of a cross, bearing this inscription,
-“By this overcome.” Those who were attached to paganism looked
-upon this as a most inauspicious omen, but it made a different
-impression on the Emperor. He caused a royal standard to be made,
-like the appearance he had seen in the heavens. This was always
-carried before him in his war as an ensign of victory and celestial
-protection. Soon after this event he embraced the religion of
-Christ, and a little while after encountered Maxentius, his
-opponent, whom he utterly defeated in a terrible battle--Maxentius
-himself having been drowned while attempting to cross the river
-Tiber.
-
-
-CONSTANTINOPLE.--Taken by the western crusaders in 1204. Retaken in
-1261. Conquered by Mahomet II., who slew 6000 of the people, A.D.
-1453. Ever since possessed by the Turks.
-
-
-COPENHAGEN.--Capital of Denmark. It was bombarded by the English,
-under Nelson and Admiral Parker. Of twenty-three ships belonging
-to the Danes, eighteen were taken or destroyed, April 2nd, 1801.
-Again, after another bombardment of three days, the city and fleet
-surrendered to Admiral Gambier and Lord Cathcart, September 7th,
-1807. Immense naval stores and eighteen sail of the line, fifteen
-frigates, six brigs, and twenty-five gunboats were captured.
-
-
-CORNET.--An instrument of music of the nature of a trumpet. In
-modern usage, a cornet is a commissioned officer of cavalry next
-below a lieutenant who bears the ensign or colors of a troop.
-
-
-CORONEA, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Athenians and Allies and
-the Spartans. The King of the Spartans, engaging the Allies,
-completely defeated them, B.C. 394.
-
-
-CORPORAL.--The lowest officer of a company next below a
-sergeant. The corporal of a ship of war is an officer under the
-master-at-arms, employed to teach the sailors the use of small
-arms. Napoleon was familiarly known among his troops by the name of
-the Little Corporal, and as he used to say there was just one step
-between the sublime and the ridiculous, so opposite extremes are
-taken in his titles. Emperor! Corporal!
-
-
-CORUNNA, BATTLE OF.--Sir John Moore commanded the British army of
-about 15,000 men, and had just accomplished a safe retreat, when
-they were attacked by the French with a force of 20,000. They were
-completely repulsed, but the loss of the British was immense. Sir
-John Moore was struck by a cannon ball which carried off his left
-shoulder and part of his collar bone, leaving the arm dangling by
-the flesh. He died immediately. In the evening of the day of battle
-the remains of the splendid British army embarked at Corunna,
-January 16th, 1809. Previous to the battle, the army under their
-illustrious leader, had accomplished an arduous yet honorable
-retreat, for many leagues through an enemy’s country.
-
-
-CRACOW.--It was taken by Charles XII, in 1702. Taken and retaken
-several times by the Russians, and Kosciusko expelled the Russians,
-March 24th, 1794, but it surrendered to the Prussians the same
-year. Occupied by 10,000 Russians, September, 1831; seized by
-Austria, and incorporated into that empire, November 16th, 1846.
-
-
-CRESSY.--Fought between the English and French, August 26th, 1346.
-In the month of July in the year 1346, King Edward, at the head
-of an army of 30,000 men, landed at La Hogue, in Normandy. He was
-accompanied by his son, the Prince of Wales, though only fifteen
-years of age, and by his principal nobility. Having taken several
-towns, he moved along the left bank of the Seine, which river he
-wished to cross, in order to join an army of Flemings in Picardy.
-But he found the bridges all broken, and King Philip, at the head
-of a numerous army, followed his motions on the opposite bank of
-the river. At length Edward contrived to repair one of the broken
-bridges, and to pass over unknown to Philip; and he then marched
-rapidly till he reached the river Somme; but he there again found
-all the bridges secured, and learned that Philip was at Amiens with
-100,000 men. Being informed that there was a ford near the town
-of Abbeville, which might be passed when the tide was low, Edward
-set out for it at midnight; but when the English reached it, the
-waters were not sufficiently low; and while they were waiting, a
-large body of French cavalry came down to oppose their passage. The
-English horsemen, however, gallantly plunged into the stream, drove
-off the enemy, and gained the opposite bank. The whole army was
-over when King Philip arrived, and the rising of the tide obliged
-him to go round by the bridge of Abbeville.
-
-Though the French army was nearly four times as numerous as his
-own, King Edward resolved to give it battle. He drew up his troops
-in three divisions on an eminence behind the village of Creci or
-Cressy. The prince of Wales, aided by the Earls of Oxford and
-Warwick, led the first, the King himself commanded the last. At
-dawn (the day was the 26th of August), Edward having heard mass
-and received the sacrament, rode along the lines, cheering his
-men, and at ten o’clock they sat down and took their breakfast
-in their ranks. The French, meantime, advanced from Abbeville in
-confusion and disorder. A storm of thunder and rain came on and
-lasted through a great part of the day; but at five o’clock in the
-afternoon, the sky becoming clear, Philip ordered a body of Génoese
-cross-bowmen, in his service, to begin the battle. The Génoese
-gave a shout, and discharged their bolts; the English archers, who
-were posted in front, showered in return their arrows of a yard
-in length; and the Génoese, unable to re-charge their ponderous
-crossbows, fell into disorder. The count of Alençon then charged
-the first division of the English with a numerous body of cavalry.
-The second line advanced to its aid, and a knight was sent off to
-King Edward, who was viewing the battle from the top of a windmill,
-to pray him to send more help. “Is my son slain or wounded?” said
-the King. “No, sire.” “Then,” replied he, “tell Warwick, he shall
-have no aid. Let the boy win his spurs.” When this message was
-brought to the English, it redoubled their courage; and the French
-were at length totally routed, with immense loss. “Fair son,” cried
-Edward to the Prince, as he clasped him to his bosom after the
-battle, “Fair son, continue your career. You have acted nobly, and
-shown yourself worthy of me and the crown.”
-
-The person of the highest rank who fell in this great battle was
-John, king of Bohemia. This prince, who was blind from age, ordered
-four of his knights to lead him into the thick of the battle. They
-interlaced his and their own bridles, and rushed forward, and
-all were slain. The crest of the King of Bohemia, three ostrich
-feathers, and his motto, _Ich dien_, i.e. _I serve_, were adopted
-by the Prince of Wales, and still are those of the heir-apparent of
-the crown of England.
-
-
-CRIMEA, LANDING IN THE.--_Crimean War._--The following graphic
-description is from Emerson’s Sebastopol:--“At length the great
-fleet, nearly 400 vessels in all, on the 7th of September, 1854,
-a memorable day thenceforth, set sail for its destination. What
-that destination was none knew. Orders were issued to rendezvous
-off the Isle of Serpents, near the Sulina mouth of the Danube. The
-scene, when the immense flotilla was fairly under weigh, was of
-the most exciting and animating character. Every ship bore on its
-side the number of the regiment and nature of troops it conveyed,
-and carried a distinguishing flag. As night closed in, lanterns
-signalling the division to which it belonged were displayed, and
-an illumination, such as the waters of the Euxine never reflected,
-was witnessed by the sharers in the daring adventure. No incident
-of these modern practical times, perhaps, has partaken so largely
-of the character of romance as the departure of this renowned
-expedition. The great armada, which taxed the energies of the most
-powerful maritime nation of the sixteenth century, was a puny
-flotilla compared to the one we are now writing of. The largest
-vessel of that celebrated fleet was a cockleshell to many of our
-noble steamers, detached from their customary vocation of carrying
-on the commercial intercourse of nations, and devoted to the
-service of war. Resources of science, unknown before the present
-generation, and adapted by skill to our naval requirements, were
-there in abundance, rendering a single steamer more than a match
-for a dozen vessels of an earlier age, and almost independent of
-the adverse winds and strong currents which had dispersed many a
-gallant fleet and defeated many a deep-laid scheme of conquest.
-Iron, naturally one of the densest of bodies, became, in the hands
-of the scientific shipwright, buoyant as cork; and vessels, each
-large enough to carry a regiment of cavalry besides its proper
-crew, and to which a Spanish brig-of-war of the days of Philip
-might have served for a jolly-boat, breasted the broad waves of the
-Euxine, freighted with as brave and chivalrous warriors as menaced
-Troy, or did battle with the infidel possessors of Jerusalem.
-
-Brave and chivalrous indeed, for they sailed they knew not whither,
-to encounter an unknown enemy. It might be that they were to force
-a landing at once under the very guns of Sebastopol, and by sheer
-audacity achieve the capture of the renowned fortress. It might be
-that, debarking at a distance from that spot, they would be exposed
-to toilsome marches, in an enemy’s country, harassed by clouds
-of Cossacks, and opposed by great armies, in strong positions,
-infinitely outnumbering their own force, when even continuous
-victory would necessarily be almost entire annihilation. But, like
-the errant-knights of old, they anticipated no difficulties, and
-bore a stout heart for any fate. English and French, officer and
-man, seemed to have but one desire, that of meeting all foes at all
-hazards, and winning gallantly or dying gloriously.
-
-The general instructions furnished to Marshal St. Arnaud (who, by
-reason of the French army being so numerically superior to the
-English, and his military rank as marshal being higher than that of
-Lord Raglan, assumed the rank of generalissimo of the expedition),
-and which were understood to have been drawn up by the Emperor
-Louis Napoleon himself, though leaving to the discretion of the
-Generals the point of debarkation on the shores of the Crimea, yet
-strongly recommended--so strongly, in fact, as almost to amount to
-a command--the choice of Kaffa as the most convenient spot. It was,
-we cannot help believing, exceedingly fortunate that the allied
-Generals resolved upon examining for themselves the locality,
-and ultimately rejected the plans of the Emperor. Kaffa, it is
-true, affords the largest bay and the most secure anchorage in
-the Crimea, and, had they been the only requisites, there could
-have been little doubt that the imperial scheme would have been
-adopted. But the fleet was only valuable in the expedition as an
-auxiliary to the army--as a basis of operations, a depôt of stores,
-a means of conveying reinforcements, an assistant in the actual
-bombardment, or a medium of retreat in event of a disaster. For all
-practical purposes Sebastopol was the Crimea; and Sebastopol is
-on the western coast, while Kaffa is on the eastern, at least 100
-miles distant. Had the object been to provide for the security and
-comfort of the fleet, it might as well have been in snug quarters
-at Spithead or Cherbourg, as at Kaffa, and there it would have
-been about as useful. The plan of Napoleon was to seize the town
-of Kaffa, thence to march across the peninsula, taking possession
-of Karu-Bazar, Simferopol, and Baktchi-Serai, thus advancing to
-Sebastopol, and securing the harbour of Balaklava, as a naval basis
-near the scene of intended operations. But the Emperor, by some
-strange oversight, seems to have forgotten his own previous caution
-not to separate from the fleets, when he sketched out the march of
-an army, only 50,000 strong, encumbered with necessary ammunition
-and baggage, along a road forty miles from the sea in some parts,
-through a mountainous district, in an enemy’s country, for a 100
-miles, exposed to continued encounters with immense armies, and
-necessitated to seize and retain possession of, at least, three
-large towns, strongly garrisoned. It is true, a force stationed at
-Kaffa might intercept reinforcements arriving from Asia, or along
-the narrow strip of land bridging the Putrid Sea; but what was to
-hinder the arrival of the legions which should be poured into the
-Crimea, through Perekop, the most direct and available route from
-the very heart of the military strength of Russia, on the first
-intelligence of the invasion? Supposing, too, that a sufficient
-force to hold Kaffa had been left in occupation there (and if it
-had not been, what would have prevented the arrival of troops from
-Asia and the north, which would have followed the invaders, and
-enclosed them between two fires?)--that the three great towns had
-been captured and consequently garrisoned--or where the utility of
-taking them?--deduct the necessary casualties of the march, and
-the inevitable results of the unavoidable battles, even supposing
-them to have been victories, and how many men could possibly have
-arrived before Sebastopol out of 50,000? The expedition to the
-Crimea at all was romantic, and is said to have been strongly
-opposed by some of our most able Generals; but this contemplated
-march through a mountainous region, interposing innumerable
-obstacles to transit, in the face of a powerful enemy, far from
-assistance, cut off from supplies of food or ammunition, with
-three fortified towns to capture, at least several pitched battles
-to fight, and, as a finish to the prospect, the most strongly
-fortified town in the world to reduce, was the very absurdity of
-Quixoteism.
-
-Fortunately, we say, the generals were wiser than their teacher.
-When the ships collected at their appointed rendezvous, orders
-were received to proceed to a spot about forty miles west of
-Cape Tarkan, in the north of the Crimea; then, embarking in the
-_Caradoc_, a small English steamer, Marshal St. Arnaud and Lord
-Raglan, accompanied by their seconds in command, Generals Canrobert
-and Brown, and Sir Edmund Lyons, proceeded to survey the coast and
-select the spot most favourable to their purpose. They skirted the
-western shore, ran close into Eupatoria, examined the coast thence
-to Sebastopol (where a few weeks previous, General Canrobert and
-Sir George Brown had closely scanned the fortifications on a flying
-visit, penetrating, under cover of night even into the harbour,
-and not retiring until the grey light of morning had revealed to
-them a considerable amount of information), passing almost within
-range of the guns, and coasting round to the little harbour of
-Balaklava; which having scrutinized, they returned in safety to
-the fleets. Had any of the large Russian steamers crossed the path
-of the little _Caradoc_, and attacked it, a very different fate
-might have awaited the Allies from that which they anticipated. But
-the Russian Admirals little dreamed of the prize they might have
-secured, and our modern Agamemnons were borne back unscathed from
-their perilous cruise.
-
-On the morning of Monday, the 11th of September, the chiefs
-returned from their trip and rejoined the fleet; and the anxious
-expectation as to the point of debarkation, which had agitated
-the minds of all on board, during the two days’ tedious riding
-at anchor, was in some degree alleviated by the order to make
-sail, and rendezvous thirty miles west of Sebastopol. Even then,
-uncertainty seemed to cloud the counsels of the Commanders. The
-fleet was dispersed, the heavy sailing vessels having failed to
-keep in company with their more alert fellows of the steam fleet.
-At length, the English and French fleets, in one compact flotilla,
-approached the shore, and the town of Eupatoria, and the hills of
-the south-east, were presented to the eager gaze of the soldiers.
-A small steamer was despatched to summon the town to surrender at
-discretion, and a refusal being received, a small body of English
-and French marines was landed, their appearance soon stifling
-any qualms of conscience the local authorities might have felt
-at yielding up their trust to the enemy. The fleet then shaping
-a course in a south-easterly direction, the plans of the allied
-Generals became apparent. About eight miles from Eupatoria the
-ships cast anchor at a mile from the shore, in the Bay of Kalamita,
-near a place known as Old Fort. A narrow strip of level land
-was the spot selected for debarkation, and the enemy exhibited
-no signs of opposition, or even preparation. It had been not
-unnaturally anticipated that a formidable resistance would have
-been made to the expected landing of the Allies, which could only
-then have been accomplished with much loss. On the contrary, the
-only signs of Russian life apparent, was the presence of a mounted
-Russian officer, who, attended by three or four Cossacks, securely
-stationed on a neighbouring eminence, was calmly sketching the
-scene.
-
-It had been arranged that the ships of the Admirals should occupy
-the centre of the bay, thus dividing the two armies. Had this
-determination been carried out, the landing might have been
-effected with the least imaginable difficulty; but the French
-Admiral, with an exclusive attention to his own branch of the
-allied force, which subsequent events of the campaign paralleled,
-thought proper to anchor his vessel at the extreme right of the
-bay, thus throwing the vessels into considerable confusion. One
-transport was grounded, and several fouled in their endeavours
-to get into their proper positions. In an incredibly short space
-of time, however, order was restored; and, under the energetic
-superintendence of Sir Edmund Lyons, the steamers and transports
-commenced to discharge their living freights. The sea was literally
-covered with boats, laden with soldiers in their varied uniforms,
-and bearing rations for three days, every article that could
-possibly be dispensed with being left in the ships. Those who
-landed first marked out with flags the spots to be occupied by each
-division and regiment; and the sailors, standing knee-deep in the
-water, lent hearty assistance to those who were less amphibious
-than themselves. Nothing could exceed the delight of the sturdy
-seamen, as they lifted their red-coated compatriots from the boats,
-and placed them dry-footed on the shore; or lent a hand, with more
-zeal than knowledge, to disembark the horses. Frequently, a noble
-charger, startled by the novelty of his situation, would roll into
-the water, half a dozen ancient mariners clinging to his mane or
-tail, and sharing his immersion,--emerging at length, dripping with
-brine, but in a high state of jollity at having rescued their
-steed, and overwhelming him with caresses of a nautical fashion, as
-they soothed his fears or indulged him with a short trot on _terra
-firma_. The two or three Cossacks who had watched our landing now
-deemed it prudent to withdraw, though not until a few shots had
-warned them of the prowess of the English riflemen, and one of
-their number had received a compliment from Major Lysons, of the
-23rd, which would probably render his sitting in the saddle, or
-elsewhere, exceedingly inconvenient for some time to come. It so
-chanced, however, that even these few Cossacks were very nearly
-inflicting a heavy blow on the English army, by the capture of one
-of its most distinguished officers. Sir George Brown, general of
-the Light Division, had no sooner landed, than with characteristic
-daring he mounted his horse, and advanced alone to gain a view
-of the surrounding country. He had ridden some distance, and had
-closely approached the retreating party, quite unconscious of their
-neighbourhood, when he was suddenly astonished by the unwelcome
-apparition of three ferocious horsemen, lance in hand, in full
-career towards him, and at but a few yards’ distance. Sir George,
-who was almost unarmed, was too old a soldier to mistake rashness
-for courage, and wisely considering the odds too great, discreetly
-put spurs to his horse and galloped off, followed by his Cossack
-pursuers. A few of our men had fortunately, however, followed in
-the steps of their leader, and when they saw his danger, hastened
-to the rescue. Half a dozen levelled rifles proved too strong an
-argument for the valour of the Russian horsemen, and they, in their
-turn, made a precipitate retreat. Sir George Brown rejoined the
-main body, and proved, when the time came, that he could attack as
-bravely as he could retire discreetly.
-
-By the time when the approaching darkness rendered it necessary to
-suspend operations for the day, 20,000 English, with thirty-six
-guns, and numerous horses, had been landed, and the French in
-about equal force. Our men had left their tents in the ships, and
-officers and common soldiers were alike unprovided with means of
-shelter. Their rations consisted of provisions for three days;
-and in this respect, those high in command shared with their less
-distinguished followers. As night closed in, torrents of rain began
-to descend, and in a brief space of time, the narrow strip of land
-on which they stood, bounded on the one side by the sea, and on
-the other by a salt lake, was a dismal swamp. Wrapping themselves
-in their blankets, which were thoroughly soaked in a few minutes,
-the men lay down in the mud, and endeavoured to sleep. A moderate,
-and not very luxurious supper of cold pork, washed down with a
-single sip of rum, was their first meal in the Crimea; and then,
-officers and men strove to drown in slumber the wretched aspect
-of affairs which thus initiated their invasion. Sir De Lacy Evans
-was fortunate enough to possess a tent, which some considerate
-member of the veteran’s staff had contrived to bring on shore. An
-old cart, the property probably of some Tartar peasant, frightened
-from his accustomed labour, made, when overturned, a canopy such
-as royalty seldom couches beneath; but under its welcome shelter
-the Duke of Cambridge pressed, no doubt for the first time, the
-bare earth. The French were better provided. They had contrived
-to land a considerable number of tents; and, moreover, many of
-their regiments were supplied with the little _tentes-abris_, a
-portion of which was borne by each soldier; and several of these
-parts could be united into a small tent, sufficiently commodious to
-afford some protection from the severity of the weather.
-
-How little can the home-keeping public realise the feelings which
-must have been predominant in the bosoms of the men during that
-melancholy bivouac! Soldiers are, perhaps, less sensitive to
-hardships and exposure than civilians; and probably comparatively
-callous to the finer sentiments. But it is scarcely possible to
-conceive that, out of 60,000 men, lying on the bare earth in an
-enemy’s country, there would be many who would not be keenly
-alive to the emotions their situations would naturally suggest.
-Physically depressed by a day of extreme toil, poorly fed, and
-drenched by the descending torrent, the past would be inevitably
-present to their imaginations, and with the past the probable
-future. Many men will march dauntlessly to the cannon’s mouth, and
-show no signs of fear, but with cheerful voice, and light step,
-dash through the enemy’s fire, and over the bodies of the dead. But
-in the stillness of the night, when no excitement warms his blood,
-the bravest will be despondent, and the strong man be moved with
-emotions as keen as those which agitate the breasts of the tender
-woman or the sympathetic child. Oceans rolled between them and all
-they had learned to love and value. No hand so rough but had been
-pressed by some other hand on the day of departure; no nature so
-fierce and ungentle but had softened into a better manhood as the
-cliffs of England receded from the view. And now they lay through
-the long hours of that miserable night, striving vainly enough to
-drown their remembrances in sleep, and gain renewed strength and
-courage for the morrow--the morrow that might bring death, and
-certainly imminent dangers. Before them lay an unknown land--a
-future of deadly uncertainty. Battles were to be fought, shot and
-steel to be encountered; and who could tell who were destined to
-lie in the obscurity of death on that foreign soil, and who to bear
-the tidings back to thousands of melancholy homes?
-
-Thus was passed the night of the 14th of September, the anniversary
-of the death of the great Duke of Wellington, who, two years
-before, ended his career amid the universally expressed sorrow
-of a great people. He was, we had fondly hoped, the last great
-representative of the military glory of this country. A new era had
-been, we believed, initiated, in which the arts of peace supersede
-the operations of war. And now, but two years after the conqueror
-of Waterloo had looked for the last time upon the world, an English
-army had landed upon the shores of a hostile territory, and was
-commencing a warfare of which no man could see the termination,
-and which bade fair to involve every nation of Europe. The chosen
-champion of England’s military glory was quiet in his tomb; but his
-companions, pupils, and successors were prepared to emulate his
-deeds, and strike as vigorously for the honor of their country, and
-the maintenance of the freedom of Europe.”
-
-
-CROPREADY, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the forces of Charles I of
-England and the Parliament, June 6th, 1644. It was a drawn battle;
-for both sides, in their respective accounts, claim the victory.
-
-
-CRUSADES.--The holy wars, waged by the Christians, to wrest the
-Sepulchre of Christ and Jerusalem, from the hands of the Saracens,
-continued for many years, and no important results were derived
-from them as regards territorial acquisition, but they had an
-immense effect in civilizing the west countries of Europe. There
-were three principal ones.
-
-
-CUDDALORE.--_India._--Possessed by the English in 1681. Reduced
-by the French, 1758. Recaptured two years afterwards by Sir Eyre
-Coote. Taken again in 1781. Besieged by the British under General
-Stuart in 1783.
-
-
-CUIRASS.--A covering for protecting the body of cavalry from the
-weapons of opponents. The French had a body of soldiers covered
-with them.
-
-
-CULLODEN, BATTLE OF.--Fought April 16th, 1746, between the
-Pretender and the Duke of Cumberland. The Scots lost 2500 men,
-while the English lost only 200. A writer thus describes the
-battle:--
-
-“Thus far the affairs of the rebel army seemed not unprosperous;
-but here was an end of all their triumphs. The Duke of Cumberland,
-at that time the favourite of the English army, had been recalled
-from Flanders, and put himself at the head of the troops at
-Edinburgh, which consisted of about 14,000 men. With these he
-advanced to Aberdeen, where he was joined by several of the Scotch
-nobility, attached to the house of Hanover; and having revived the
-drooping spirits of his army, he resolved to find out the enemy,
-who retreated at his approach. After having refreshed his troops at
-Aberdeen for some time, he renewed his march, and in twelve days he
-came up to the banks of the deep and rapid river Spey. This was the
-place where the rebels might have disputed his passage, but they
-lost every advantage in disputing with each other. They seemed now
-totally void of all counsel and subordination, without conduct, and
-without unanimity. After a variety of contests among each other,
-they resolved to wait their pursuers upon the plains of Culloden, a
-place about nine miles distant from Inverness, embosomed in hills,
-except on that side which was open to the sea. There they drew up
-in order of battle, to the number of 8000 men, in three divisions,
-supplied with some pieces of artillery, ill manned and served.
-
-“The battle began about one o’clock in the afternoon; the cannon
-of the King’s army did dreadful execution among the rebels, while
-theirs was totally unserviceable. One of the great errors in
-all the Pretender’s war-like measures, was his subjecting wild
-and undisciplined troops to the forms of artful war, and thus
-repressing their native ardour, from which alone he could hope
-for success. After they had kept in their ranks and withstood the
-English fire for some time, they at length became impatient for
-closer engagement; and about 500 of them made an irruption upon the
-left wing of the enemy with their accustomed ferocity. The first
-line being disordered by this onset, two battalions advanced to
-support it, and galled the enemy with a terrible close discharge.
-At the same time the dragoons, under Hawley, and the Argyleshire
-militia, pulling down a park wall feebly defended, fell among
-them, sword in hand, with great slaughter. In less than thirty
-minutes they were totally routed, and the field covered with their
-wounded and slain, to the number of 3000 men. The French troops
-on the left did not fire a shot, but stood inactive during the
-engagement, and afterwards surrendered themselves prisoners of
-war. An entire body of the clans marched off the field in order,
-while the rest were routed with great slaughter, and their leaders
-obliged with reluctance to retire. Civil war is in itself terrible,
-but much more so when heightened by unnecessary cruelty. How guilty
-soever an enemy may be, it is the duty of a brave soldier to
-remember that he is only to fight an opposer, and not a suppliant.
-The victory was in every respect decisive, and humanity to the
-conquered would have rendered it glorious. But little mercy was
-shown here; the conquerors were seen to refuse quarter to the
-wounded, the unarmed, the defenceless; some were slain who were
-only excited by curiosity to become spectators of the combat,
-and soldiers were seen to anticipate the base employment of the
-executioner. The Duke, immediately after the action, ordered
-thirty-six deserters to be executed. The conquerors spread terror
-wherever they came; and, after a short space, the whole country
-round was one dreadful scene of plunder, slaughter, and desolation;
-justice was forgotten, and vengeance assumed the name.”
-
-
-CUNNERSDORF, BATTLE OF.--The King of Prussia with 50,000 men
-attacked the Austrian and Russian army with 90,000 men (in their
-camp). At first he gained considerable advantages, but pursuing too
-far, the enemy rallied and gained a complete victory. The Russians
-lost 200 pieces of cannon and 20,000 men in killed and wounded.
-Fought August 12th, 1759.
-
-
-CUSTOZZA, BATTLE OF.--Fought Sunday, 24th June, 1866 between the
-Austrians and Italians. “The Italian army, divided into three
-corps and a reserve, making up a force of from 80,000 to 90,000
-combatants, after crossing the Mincio at Gotto, and on the other
-points, on Saturday afternoon, June 23rd, 1866, and sending
-reconnoitering parties towards Peschiera and Verona, encamped for
-the night at some place beyond Roverbella, equidistant from the
-two fortresses. On the ensuing morning an attempt was made upon
-those high positions of Sona, Somma Campaigna, and Santa Ciustina,
-which commands the fifteen miles railway line joining the two
-strongholds, positions which played a conspicuous part in the
-campaign of 1848. The object of the Italians was evidently to take
-possession of the railway, so as to isolate Peschiera and secure
-a basis of operations against Verona. The Austrians, however, who
-were massed in great force at Verona, sallied forth from that place
-at daybreak, and, anticipating the Italian movements, took up their
-position upon those hills, which are now everywhere bristling with
-bastions and redoubts, and may be looked upon as mere outworks of
-the two citadels, extending from the gates of one to those of the
-other. After a severe and bloody, or, as the Italians describe
-it, “desperate struggle,” which lasted nearly the whole day--that
-longest of summer days--the Imperial army was victorious along
-the whole line. They stormed the summit of Montevente, where the
-Italians held out the longest, and at the close of the engagement,
-at five o’clock in the afternoon, they also carried the position
-of Custozza, a spot fatal to Italian arms in their encounter
-with Radetski, in July, 1848. The victors captured several guns,
-and about 2000 prisoners, and behaved, as the Archduke Albert’s
-bulletin assures us, and as we may readily believe, with even more
-than their ordinary bravery and endurance. On the same evening the
-Italian army was obliged to re-cross the Mincio.
-
-The Italian accounts of the engagement present no points of
-material difference. According to them, the first army corps was
-sent forward to occupy some positions between Peschiera and Verona,
-but being surrounded by superior numbers, it “failed to effect its
-purpose,” and the description given of its losses in the contest
-leaves us little doubt that it was all but annihilated. The second
-and third corps, unable--it is not said for what reason--to advance
-to its rescue, were still in the evening “almost intact.” It was
-also stated from Brescia that the army had maintained its position;
-but there is little doubt that it had to withdraw across the Mincio
-later in the night. The Italians had several of their Generals
-wounded, among others the King’s second son, Prince Amadeus, who
-has arrived at Brescia.
-
-There is every probability, also, that the Italians were, on this
-occasion, outnumbered by their enemies: for the Austrians have
-from 200,000 to 250,000 men in Venetia, and as they had in their
-hands the most formidable of all engines of modern warfare--the
-railway, they had probably massed three-fourths, at least, of their
-troops in Verona, ready for the long-expected Italian inroad. The
-Archduke’s bulletins, in fact, never speak of garrisons, but tell
-us that the “imperial army” was in the field.
-
-The Italians, we are assured, behaved with great heroism, and,
-no doubt although they lost the day, they came off without loss
-of honour. An advance across the Mincio, right into the heart of
-the Quadrilateral, is an enterprise which no other European army
-would, under such circumstances, have ventured upon, but a frenzy
-to do something seems to have possessed the whole Italian nation,
-and the men in command could think of nothing better than dashing
-their heads against those formidable stone walls. There may be
-bravery in so desperate an attempt to take the bull by the horns,
-but we believe it would be impossible for the king or La Marmora
-to say what results they expected from their ill-conceived and
-worse-executed attempt. It was a battle in which they staked the
-very existence of their army, while their enemies, in the worst
-event, ran no other risk than that of a safe and leisurely retreat
-behind the shelter of their bastions. The least that may be said
-of it is, that like the Balaklava charge, “_C’était beau mais ce
-n’était pas la guerre_.” Ever since 1848 and 1849 the Austrians
-have strained every nerve to strengthen these four citadels, and
-have extended their outworks, so that the line between Peschiera
-and Verona, especially, is a vast intrenched camp.”
-
-
-CYZICUM, BATTLE OF.--Fought during the Peloponnesian war. Plutarch
-states that Mindarus was slain in this battle. The Athenians gained
-a complete victory over the Lacedæmonian fleet. Fought B.C. 410.
-
-
-
-
-D.
-
-
-DAMASCUS.--Taken by the Saracens, 633. Again by the Turks in 1006,
-and was destroyed by Tamerlane in 1400.
-
-
-DANTZIC.--It surrendered to the French, after a siege of four
-months, May 5th, 1807; and, by the treaty of Tilsit, was restored
-to its former independence under the protection of Russia and
-Saxony. It was besieged by the Allies in 1812, and surrendered to
-them January 6th, 1814. By the treaty of Paris it reverted to its
-former status.
-
-
-DARDANELLES, PASSAGE OF THE.--This was achieved by the British
-fleet under Sir John Duckworth, February 19th, 1807; but the
-admiral was obliged to repass them--which he did with great loss
-and immense damage to the fleet, March 2nd following. The castles
-of Sestos and Abydos hurled down rocks, each of many tons weight,
-upon the decks of the British ships.
-
-
-DARTMOUTH.--Burnt by the French, in the reign of Richard I and
-Henry IV. Prince Maurice took it in 1643, but it was retaken by
-General Fairfax, by storm, A.D. 1646.
-
-
-DELHI.--Once the great capital of the Mogul empire. In 1738, when
-Nadir Shah invaded Hindostan, he entered Delhi, and 100,000 of the
-inhabitants were put to the sword. In 1803, the Mahrattas aided by
-the French, got possession of the place; but they were afterwards
-defeated by General Lake. This city has been the scene of much
-commotion in the course of its history.
-
-The following is a short account of the storming of Delhi, in the
-last great mutiny:
-
-“Until the latter end of August, the British troops before Delhi
-are rather to be considered as an army of observation, than as a
-besieging force. Their inferiority in numbers and artillery was
-barely counter-balanced by their superior discipline, courage
-and physical strength. These advantages enabled them, indeed, to
-maintain their ground, but not to assume the offensive.
-
-Toward the close of August, however, a re-inforcement of European
-and Sikh troops, under Brigadier Nicholson, arrived from the
-Punjab, and, on the 25th of that month, the rebels were defeated at
-Nujuffghur, with great slaughter, and the loss of thirteen guns. A
-few days later a heavy siege-train was received from Ferozepore,
-and breaching batteries were constructed on the north side of
-the city. The siege may be said to have commenced on the 7th
-September, and by the evening of the 13th, the engineers reported
-two practicable breaches--one near the Cashmere, the other near the
-Water bastion. Arrangements were, therefore, at once made for an
-assault, to take place at daybreak on the following morning.
-
-The first column, commanded by Brigadier Nicholson, advanced under
-a tremendous fire, and, applying their scaling-ladders, carried the
-Cashmere bastion, and established themselves in the main-guard.
-Almost simultaneously, the second column, under Brigadier Jones,
-stormed the Water bastion, and effected a junction with their
-comrades inside the walls.
-
-A third column, under Colonel Campbell, awaited the blowing open of
-the Cashmere gate to join the assault. They had not long to wait.
-Lieutenants Salkeld and Home, of the engineers, accompanied by
-three sergeants carrying the powder-bags, walked up to the gateway
-in broad daylight, and, while exposed to a heavy fire of musketry,
-coolly fastened the bags to the iron spikes of the gate. In the
-performance of this heroic exploit, Lieutenant Salkeld was severely
-wounded, and two of the sergeants killed upon the spot; but the
-train was lighted, and the gate blown open with a tremendous crash.
-
-As the smoke cleared away, the storming party sprang through the
-ruins with a British cheer; and the three columns uniting, made
-themselves master of the whole line of works, from the Water
-bastion to the Cabul gate; and before nightfall were in possession
-of Skinner’s house, the Church, the College, and the adjacent
-grounds. This brilliant success, however, was not achieved without
-great loss of life.
-
-Of the European soldiery, eight officers and 162 rank and file were
-killed, with 52 officers and 510 rank and file wounded; of the
-Sepoys, 413 were placed _hors de combat_, of whom 103 were slain
-outright. The total number of casualties thus amounted to 1145,
-or one-third of the entire assaulting force. Among the mortally
-wounded was Brigadier Nicholson, whose death was justly deplored as
-a national calamity.
-
-Simultaneously with these main attacks, a diversion was made by
-a fourth column, consisting of Sikhs, Ghoorkas, and Cashmerians,
-on the suburbs of Kishengunge and Pahareepore. But, in spite of
-their most strenuous efforts, these troops failed to overcome the
-desperate resistance offered by the enemy, and, in the end, were
-compelled to retreat, though not ingloriously.
-
-The day following the assault was consumed in shelling the palace,
-and in battering the magazine. A breach was effected, and, at
-daylight on the 16th, a storming party dashed forward with such
-impetuosity that the rebel artillerymen dropped their lighted
-port-fires and fled, leaving undischarged six guns of large calibre
-commanding the breach and loaded with grape. On the 17th, the
-British troops became masters of the Bank, formerly the palace of
-the Begum Sumroo, and shortly afterwards, of the Jumma Musjid, or
-principal mosque. Heavy guns were now brought to play upon the
-palace and the bridge of boats, and, by the evening of the 20th,
-the rebels entirely evacuated the city and its suburbs. Then was
-seen the extent of the damage sustained by the former capital
-of the Mogul dynasty. Whole streets had been laid in ruins;
-dead bodies tainted the air in all directions; the inhabitants,
-reduced to beggary, were crouching, terror-stricken, in obscure
-lurking-places. But the British soldier is merciful in victory, as
-he is irresistible in battle. To armed rebels, no mercy was shown;
-but women and children, and the defenceless citizens, were spared
-and protected.
-
-The venerable descendant of Timour--venerable only by reason of his
-gray hairs and extreme old age--had fled, with his principal Begum,
-two sons, and a grandson, to the tomb of his ancestor, Hoomavoon,
-son of the mighty Baber. He was discovered and seized by captain
-Hodson, of the 2nd European Fusiliers. His own life, and that of
-his queen, were respected--but the princes were led out and shot,
-and their dead bodies publicly exposed at the kotwalee, or mayor’s
-court.
-
-General Wilson, whose health failed him in the hour of victory,
-now resigned the command to Brigadier Penny, C.B., a veteran
-of approved gallantry. Colonel Burn, whose father so gallantly
-defended Delhi against Jeswunt Rao Holkar, in 1803, was
-appointed military commandant within the city, and measures were
-successfully taken to re-establish order, and to afford protection
-to well-disposed and peaceful citizens. Two movable columns,
-consisting each of 1600 infantry, 500 cavalry, three troops of
-horse artillery, and eighteen guns, were told off, and ordered
-to follow up the retreating enemy without delay. One of these,
-commanded by Colonel Greathed, of the 84th, came up with a rebel
-force strongly posted near Bolundshuhur, and, after a spirited
-engagement, utterly discomfited them with the loss of two guns, a
-vast quantity of ammunition, and 100 men.”
-
-
-DEMERARA AND ESSEQUIBO.--Founded by the Dutch but taken by the
-British, under Major General White, April 22nd, 1796. Restored in
-1802. Again surrendered to the British, under General Grinfield and
-Commodore Hood, September 20th, 1803. They are now British colonies.
-
-
-DENNEWITZ, BATTLE OF.--In this battle a remarkable victory was
-obtained by Marshal Bernadotte, Prince of Denmark--who afterward
-became Charles XIV of Sweden--over Marshal Ney, September 6th,
-1813. The loss of the French exceeded 16,000 men and two eagles,
-while the loss of the opposite army was inconsiderable.
-
-
-DETTINGEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the British, Hanoverian, and Hessian
-army, commanded by George II of England in person and the Earl of
-Stair, on the one side, and the French army, commanded by Marshal
-Noailles and the Duke of Grammont, on the other side. The English
-army amounted to 52,000 men, the French to 60,000 strong. The
-French having passed a defile which they should have guarded, the
-British and Allies bravely sustained the impetuous charge of the
-French cavalry, so that they were obliged to give way, and recross
-the Mayne, with the loss of 5000 men. Fought June 16th, 1743.
-
-
-DIEPPE.--_In France._--This town was bombarded by an English
-fleet, under Admiral Russell, and laid in ashes, July 1694. Again
-bombarded by the British, September 14th, 1803.
-
-
-DIZIER ST.--_In Champagne._--One of the most memorable sieges in
-modern history. This town sustained a siege for six weeks against
-the army of Charles V, Emperor of Germany, A.D. 1544. A battle was
-fought here between the armies of the Allies on the one side, and
-the French, commanded by Napoleon in person, on the other, in
-which he was defeated with great loss, January 27th, 1814.
-
-
-DONNINGTON, BATTLE OF.--_In Lincolnshire, England._--Fought
-between the Royalists, commanded by Colonel Cavendish, and the
-forces of the Parliament--the latter defeated, 1643. The battle
-of Donnington, in Gloucestershire, was fought in 1645, when the
-Royalists, under Lord Aston, were defeated by Colonel Morgan. This
-victory led to the surrender of the King’s garrison at Oxford.
-
-
-DRAGOON.--Name supposed to have been derived from dragon. The first
-regiment of dragoons in England was raised A.D. 1681.
-
-
-DRESDEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the allied army, under the Prince of
-Schwarzenberg, and the French army, commanded by Napoleon, August
-26th and 27th, 1813. The Allies were 200,000 strong. They attacked
-the position of Napoleon, and the event had nearly proved fatal to
-them, but for an error of General Vandamme. They were defeated with
-dreadful loss, and were obliged to retreat into Bohemia. Vandamme
-pursuing them too far, his division was cut to pieces, and he
-and all his staff made prisoners. In this battle, General Moreau
-received his mortal wound, while in conversation with the Emperor
-of Russia.
-
-
-DROGHEDA.--_In Ireland._--Cromwell took this city by storm, and put
-the governor and all the garrison to the sword, August 14th, 1649.
-More than 3000 men, mostly English, perished, one individual--a
-lieutenant--alone escaping. Cromwell also murdered every man,
-woman, and child of the citizens that were Irish!
-
-
-DRUM.--A martial instrument--the invention of which is ascribed to
-Bacchus. Being an oriental invention, it was introduced into Europe
-by the Moors, A.D. 713.
-
-
-DUMBLANE OR DUNBLANE, BATTLE OF.--Called also the Battle of
-Sheriffmuir.--Fought between the Royalist army, and the Scotch
-rebels, November 12th, 1715. The Duke of Argyle, who commanded the
-Royalists, had in his army 4000 veteran troops; the Earl of Mar,
-who commanded the rebels, 8000, but all newly raised. The loss was
-equal on both sides, and each claimed the victory. The Highland
-foot behaved most gallantly.
-
-
-DUNBAR, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Scottish and English army,
-in which John Baliol was defeated by the Earl of Warrenne, and
-Scotland subdued by Edward I, April 27th, 1296. Another battle was
-fought here between the Scots and the English, under Cromwell, who
-obtained a great victory, September 3rd, 1650.
-
-
-DUNDALK.--Edward Bruce, being defeated in his unfortunate invasion
-of Ireland, was beheaded here, in 1318, and with him 6200 Scots
-invaders, lost their lives. The walls and fortifications were
-destroyed in 1641.
-
-
-DUNGAN HILL, BATTLE OF.--_In Ireland._--Fought between the English
-and Irish armies. The former commanded by Colonel Jones, who
-signally defeated the insurgent Irish, of whom 6000 were slain,
-while the loss of the English was inconsiderable. Fought July 10th,
-1647.
-
-
-DUNKIRK.--Taken by the English and French from the Spaniards, June
-24th, 1658. Sold by Charles II, for £500,000, to Louis XIV, in
-1662. The English attempted to besiege this place, but the Duke of
-York, who commanded, was defeated by Hoche, and forced to retire
-with loss, September 7th, 1793.
-
-
-DUNSINANE, BATTLE OF.--Celebrated by Shakespeare. Fought between
-Macbeth, the thane of Glamis, and Seward, earl of Northumberland.
-Macbeth was signally defeated, fled, and was pursued, when he was
-slain, 1057.
-
-
-DURHAM, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the English and Scottish armies,
-October 17th, 1316. See _Nevill’s Cross_.
-
-
-
-
-E.
-
-
-EBRO.--Scene of a signal defeat of the Spaniards, by the French,
-November 23rd, 1808. Scene also of several movements of the allied
-forces during the Peninsular War.
-
-
-ECKMUHL, BATTLE OF.--Fought, April 22nd, 1809, between the main
-armies of France and Austria. The French army was commanded by
-Napoleon, and the Austrian by the Archduke Charles. Napoleon, by
-one of his masterly movements, broke through the Imperial army, and
-completely routed them.
-
-
-EDGEHILL, BATTLE OF.--Fought, October 23rd, 1642, between the
-Royalists and the Parliament army, the first engagement of
-importance in the civil war. Charles I was present in this battle.
-Prince Rupert commanded the Royalists and the Earl of Essex the
-Parliamentarians. The Earl of Lindsay, one of Charles’ Generals,
-who commanded the foot forces, was mortally wounded and taken
-prisoner. The King’s army lost 5000 men, dead on the field of
-battle, with vast numbers of wounded and prisoners; but the great
-loss on the other side prevented them from making all they could of
-the victory.
-
-
-ENSIGN.--A flag or banner. The lowest commissioned officer in an
-infantry regiment--he who carries the flag or colors--hence the
-name; derived from the French.
-
-
-ENGHIEN, BATTLE OF.--Fought, August 3rd, 1692, between the British,
-under William III, and the French, under Marshal Luxembourg,
-who were victorious. William had put himself at the head of the
-confederate army in the Netherlands, and leagued himself with the
-Protestant powers upon the continent against the ambition of Louis
-XIV, and in the end he triumphed.
-
-
-ENLISTMENT OF SOLDIERS AND SEAMAN.--None enlisted are to be sworn
-in before a magistrate in less than twenty-four hours, and then
-they are at liberty to withdraw, upon returning enlistment or
-bounty money and 21s. costs. All enlistment is now voluntary.
-
-
-ENNISKILLEN.--_Ireland._--It made an obstinate defence against the
-army of Elizabeth; then against James II, 1689--1500 Enniskillens
-met General McCarty with a force of 6000 men--defeated him, with a
-loss of 3000 men, and took all the rest--losing only twenty men,
-July 1689. The Enniskillen dragoons were raised here.
-
-
-ESSLING, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 22nd, 1809, between the armies
-of France and Austria, commanded by Napoleon and the Archduke
-Charles,--a dreadful conflict, which began on May 21st, and
-continued on the 22nd. Napoleon was defeated with the loss of
-30,000 men--but the Austrians lost 20,000. This was the most severe
-check that Napoleon had ever yet experienced, which rendered his
-army’s retreat very difficult.
-
-
-EUPATORIA.--_Crimea._--Famous in the Crimean war. The following is
-an account of its capture by the Allies:
-
-“About 25,000 Turks, under Omer Pacha, the veterans for the most
-part of the army of the Danube, had occupied the town, and strongly
-entrenched themselves, assisted by a small force of English and
-French, and supported by the presence of a naval squadron, under
-the command of Captain Hastings, of the _Curaçoa_. For some days
-previous to the 16th of February, large bodies of Russians had
-been observed in the vicinity; and on the morning of that day,
-a strong force of artillery, supported by bodies of cavalry and
-infantry, estimated at about 40,000 men, opened a smart fire upon
-the town, at a distance of 1200 yards, subsequently advancing
-nearer. The small squadron, under Captain Hastings, was enabled
-to do good service; the _Valorous_ pitching shells and shot among
-the enemy on the left; and the _Viper_, an active little gun-boat,
-smartly seconding her efforts on the left. The enemy’s infantry
-approached to the right of the town, through the cemetery. As they
-advanced from the burying-ground, they were met by a vigorous fire
-of musketry from the entrenchments. The _Furious_ had detached a
-rocket-party, which coming round among the windmills to the right
-of the town, met the advancing Russians with a succession of
-volleys. The enemy advanced to within twenty yards of the ditch,
-and then fell into confusion. Selim Bey, the leader of the Egyptian
-contingent, seizing the opportunity, threw forward his brigade in
-a rapid charge with the bayonet upon the disordered columns, but
-fell mortally wounded at the head of his men. Unable to stand the
-terrific fire to which they were exposed, and yielding before the
-vigorous charge of the Egyptians, the Russians gave way, and the
-repulse was complete. The artillery limbered up their guns, and
-with the cavalry, drew leisurely from the spot. The enemy’s loss
-must have been immense, considering the short time the skirmish
-lasted, as the ground was strewed with the bodies of the slain, who
-were quickly despoiled by the ever ready Bashi-Bazouks, and left
-stark naked in their blood. The loss to the defenders of the town
-was 101 killed, and 286 wounded. The Turkish artillery suffered
-greatly from the enemy’s fire, nineteen men being killed in one
-battery. Thus did Omer Pacha initiate his campaign in the Crimea.”
-
-
-EURYMEDON, BATTLE OF.--One of the most celebrated battles in
-Grecian history, when Cimon destroyed the fleet of the Persians at
-Cyprus, and the land forces also at the River Eurymedon, B.C. 470.
-
-
-EVESHAM, BATTLE OF.--Fought, August 4th, 1265, between Prince
-Edward, afterwards Edward I, and Simon de Montfort, Earl of
-Leicester--in which the Barons were defeated, and Montfort slain.
-This victory broke up the confederation of the Barons against the
-King.
-
-
-EXETER.--When held by the Danes King Alfred invested and took it
-A.D. 894. Sweyn besieged it 1003. Again besieged by William the
-Conqueror, 1067. Surrendered to King Stephen, 1136. Besieged by Sir
-William Courtenay, 1469. Lastly assaulted by Perkin Warbeck 1497.
-
-
-EXPEDITIONS OF THE BRITISH. PRINCIPAL ONES.
-
- France near Port l’Orient October 1, 1746
- Cherbourg August 7, 1758
- St. Malo September, 1758
- Ostend May, 1798
- Zuyder Zee September, 1799
- Egypt March, 1801
- Copenhagen September, 1807
- Walcheren July, 1809
- Bergen-op-Zoom March, 1814
-
-
-EYLAU, BATTLE OF.--Fought, February 8th, 1807, between the French
-and Russians.--It was one of the most terrible and bloody in
-Napoleon’s wars. Napoleon lost 15,000 men, and the Russians 20,000,
-in slain alone. Both armies were dreadfully crippled by this
-battle, and both had to retire.
-
-
-
-
-F.
-
-
-FALCZI, PEACE OF.--This celebrated peace was concluded between
-Russia and Turkey, July 2nd, 1711,--the Russians giving up Azof
-and all their possessions on the Black Sea to the Turks. In the
-following year the war was renewed, and at last terminated in the
-peace of Constantinople, April 16th, 1712.
-
-
-FALKIRK, BATTLE OF.--First battle fought between Edward I of
-England, and the Scots under William Wallace, July 22nd, 1298; and
-the second between the King’s forces and Prince Charles Stuart, the
-Pretender, January 18th, 1746. Both are described in the following
-extracts:
-
-“Edward had been in Scotland for about a month. He had advanced as
-far as Kirkliston, ten miles west of Edinburgh. Symptoms of mutiny
-began to appear among his hungry soldiers. He was compelled to
-give orders for a retreat to Edinburgh, meaning to wait there till
-his fleet, laden with provisions, should arrive at Leith, and then
-to advance again.
-
-Things stood thus, when two scoundrels, the Earl of Dunbar and
-the Earl of Angus, came at daybreak into the camp of the English,
-and gave information that Wallace lay in the forest of Falkirk,
-intending to attack the English in their quarters that very night.
-Edward was filled with joy at the tidings. “Thanks be to God,” he
-cried, “who hath hitherto delivered me from every danger! They
-shall not need to follow me, for I shall instantly go and meet
-them.”
-
-In an hour’s time he had his army in motion for the west. That
-night they encamped on a moor near Linlithgow. Each man slept in
-his armour, each war-horse was kept ready bridled beside its rider.
-The king himself slept on the bare ground, like the meanest soldier
-in his army. In the middle of the night the sleeping king received
-a kick from his own charger, by which two of his ribs were broken.
-As soon as morning dawned the march was resumed. The king, wounded
-as he was, was among the first to mount.
-
-Passing through the town of Linlithgow, they continued their march,
-and gained a rising ground at some distance beyond. There they
-halted, and the fighting Bishop of Durham said mass. While the
-ceremony was performing the sun rose, and his rays, glancing upon
-the array of spears, showed them the Scottish army taking their
-ground on the slope of a small hill not far from Falkirk. Wallace
-arranged his battle thus: His main force lay in his infantry, who
-fought with long spears, and carried short daggers and axes for
-close battle slung at the girdle. They were divided into four
-circular masses, or _schiltrons_, as they were called in the
-military language of the time. In these circles the spearmen stood
-compactly together, with their long spears stretched out, and
-forming a ring of steel. The spaces between circle and circle were
-occupied by the archers, tall yeomen from the forests of Selkirk
-and Ettrick. The cavalry, amounting to 1000 heavy armed horse,
-were placed in the rear. Among them were most of the nobles who
-had joined Wallace; but the jealousy which these proud barons felt
-towards him, and their selfish fear of losing their estates, made
-them less than half-hearted in the cause.
-
-The English came on in three divisions, each division as strong as
-the whole Scottish army. At the first clash of spears the entire
-body of the Scottish cavalry, led by the traitor lords, turned
-bridle, and rode off the field without a blow given or taken. While
-the battle raged against the circles of spearmen, the English
-horse charged the Scottish archers. The brave foresters stood
-firm to meet the rush of 7000 of the finest cavalry ever present
-on a stricken field. But what could they, lightly armed as they
-were, do against mailed horse and steel-clad knights? They defended
-themselves so bravely with their short daggers that the very enemy
-admired them. But they died there to a man. After the battle the
-conquerors remarked their tall and handsome forms as they lay dead
-on the ground they had kept so well.
-
-The four circles of the Scottish spearmen remained yet entire,
-standing up like a wall, with their spears, point over point, so
-thick and close together that no living man could pierce through.
-But the cloth-yard arrows from the great bows of England fell
-thick and deadly among them. The columns of archers advanced near
-and discharged their shafts in perfect security, the Scots having
-neither cavalry to scatter them by a charge, nor archers to reply
-to them. Drawing their arrows to the head, they shot with all their
-force into the circles, and quickly breached the living walls.
-Through the gaps made by the archers the English cavalry charged,
-and having once broken in made a dreadful slaughter. The battle was
-lost. One duty alone remained to the Scottish leader, and that was
-to save the remainder of his army from destruction by a retreat.
-Well and soldierly he did it. Retiring slowly, and himself with his
-best knights defending the rear, he was able to draw off the broken
-remains of his circles, and to gain the shelter of Torwood forest.”
-
-_Second Battle._--“Being joined by Lord Drummond, Prince Charles
-invested the castle of Stirling, commanded by General Blakeney;
-but the rebel forces, being unused to sieges, consumed much time
-to no purpose. It was during this attempt that General Hawley, who
-commanded a considerable body of forces near Edinburgh, undertook
-to raise the siege, and advanced towards the rebel army as far
-as Falkirk. After two days spent in mutually examining each
-other’s strength, the rebels being ardent to engage, were led on,
-in full spirits, to attack the King’s army. The Pretender, who
-was in the front line, gave the signal to engage, and the first
-fire put Hawley’s forces into confusion. The horse retreated
-with precipitation, and fell upon their own infantry; while the
-rebels, following up the blow, the greatest part of the royal army
-fled with the utmost precipitation. They retired in confusion to
-Edinburgh, leaving the conquerors in possession of their tents,
-their artillery, and the field of battle.”
-
-
-FEROZESHAH, BATTLE OF.--_India._--Between the Sikhs and British.
-The British attacked the entrenchments of the Sikhs, and carried
-by storm the first line of works, December 21st, 1845. Night coming
-on the operations were suspended till day-break next day, and
-their second line was carried and their guns captured; the Sikhs
-advanced to recapture the guns but were repulsed with great loss,
-and retreated towards the Sutlej, December 22nd, and re-crossed the
-river unmolested, December 27th.
-
-
-FERROL, BRITISH EXPEDITION TO.--Upwards of 10,000 British landed,
-August, 1800, near Ferrol, commanded by Sir James Pulteney.
-Despairing of success, though they had gained the heights, they
-re-embarked and returned to England, by order of the General, and
-in opposition to the wishes and advice of his officers.
-
-
-FIELD OF THE CLOTH OF GOLD.--Henry VIII embarked at Windsor to
-meet Francis I of France, at Ardres, May 31st, 1520. So much
-magnificence was displayed on the occasion, that the field received
-that name, by which it is now always known in history.
-
-
-FIRE SHIPS.--Used first in the 16th century. The first use of them,
-in the English navy, was by Lord Effingham, in the engagement of
-the Armada, July, 1588.
-
-
-FLAG.--Acquired its present form in the 6th century, in Spain;
-introduced, it is said, by the Saracens.
-
-FLAT BUSH, BATTLE OF.--_Long Island, America._--Fought August 27th,
-1776, between the British forces and American colonists, when the
-latter, after a desperate engagement, were compelled to retire,
-with the loss of 2000 men killed, and 1000 prisoners.
-
-
-FLEURIS, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June, 17th, 1794, between the Allies,
-under the Prince of Cobourg, and the French revolutionary army,
-commanded by Marshal Jourdan. The Allies had 100,000 men, and
-having met the enemy on the plains of Fleuris, were signally
-defeated. Between 8000 and 10,000 were killed, wounded and taken
-prisoners, and Jourdan was able to form a junction with the
-French armies of the Moselle--the Ardennes and the north. In this
-memorable battle, the French made use of a balloon to reconnoitre
-the enemy’s army--an experiment which it is said very materially
-tended to their gaining the victory.
-
-
-FLODDEN.--Fought on the 9th September, 1513, between the English
-and Scots. Underneath is a graphic account of the most disastrous
-battle that ever befell the Scottish arms.
-
-“On the 22nd of August, 1513, James IV of Scotland, at the head of
-a gallant army, crossed the Tweed, for the purpose of revenging
-some injuries which he conceived himself to have received at the
-hands of the King of England, who was then pursuing hostilities
-in France. Immediately on his crossing that river, he laid siege
-to the castles of Etel and Ford, and spent much precious time in
-endeavouring to reduce those fortresses.
-
-Whilst such was the course pursued by the King, the Earl of Surrey
-concentrating the strength of the northern counties, soon raised
-an army of 26,000 men; and marching through Durham, received there
-the sacred banner of St. Cuthbert. He was soon after joined by
-Lord Dacre, Sir William Bulmer, Sir Marmaduke Constable, and other
-northern Barons; and on proceeding to Alnwick, was met by his son,
-Lord Thomas Howard, Lord Admiral of England, with a reinforcement
-of 5000 men. On advancing with this united force, Surrey dispatched
-Rouge Croix Herald to carry his challenge to the King of Scots,
-which was couched in the usual stately terms of feudal defiance.
-It reproached him with having broken his faith and league, which
-had been solemnly pledged to the King of England, in thus invading
-his dominions--and offered him battle on the succeeding Friday, if
-he would be content to remain so long in England and accept it.
-Lord Thomas Howard added a message, informing the King, that, as
-High Admiral, and one who had borne a personal share in the action
-against Andrew Barton, he was now ready to justify the death of
-that pirate, for which purpose he would lead the vanguard, where
-his enemies, from whom he expected as little mercy as he meant to
-grant them, would be sure to find him. To this challenge, James
-instantly replied, that “he desired nothing more earnestly than the
-encounter, and he would abide the battle on the day appointed.”
-As to the rude accusation of broken honour which had been brought
-against him, he desired his herald to carry a broad denial of the
-statement. “Our bond and promise,” he observed, “was to remain true
-to our royal brother, so long as he maintained his faith with us.
-This he was the first to break; we have desired redress, and have
-been denied it; we have warned him of our intended hostility--a
-courtesy which he has refused to us; and this is our just quarrel,
-which, with the grace of God, we shall defend.” These mutual
-messages passed on the 4th of September; and on the day appointed,
-Surrey advanced against the enemy. By this time, the distress
-for provisions, the incessant rains, and the obstinacy of the
-King in waiting upon his pleasures, and his observation of the
-punctilios of chivalry, the hours which might have been spent in
-active warfare, had created dissatisfaction in the soldiers, many
-of whom deserted, with the booty they had already collected; so
-that in a short time the army was much diminished in numbers. To
-accept the challenge of his adversary, and permit him to appoint
-a day for the encounter, was contrary to the advice of his best
-councillors; and he might have recollected, that in circumstances
-almost similar, two great masters in war, Douglas and Randolph, had
-treated a parallel proposal of Edward III with a sarcastic refusal.
-He had the sagacity, however, to change his first encampment for
-a stronger position on the hill of Flodden, one of the last and
-lowest eminences which detach themselves from the range of the
-Cheviots; a ground skillfully chosen, inaccessible on both flanks,
-and defended in front by the river Till, a deep sluggish stream,
-which ran between the armies.
-
-On advancing and reconnoitering the spot, Surrey, who despaired
-of being able to attack the Scots without exposing himself to the
-probability of defeat, again sent a herald to request the King to
-descend from the eminence into the plain. He complained, somewhat
-unreasonably, that James had “putte himself into a ground more
-like a fortress or a camp, than any indifferent field for battle
-to be taxed;” but James would not even admit the messenger into
-his presence. So far all had succeeded and nothing was required on
-the part of the King but patience. He had chosen an impregnable
-position, had fulfilled his agreement by abiding the attack
-of the enemy; and such was the distress of Surrey’s army in a
-wasted country, that to keep it longer together was impossible.
-He attempted, therefore, a decisive measure, which would have
-appeared desperate, unless he had reckoned upon the carelessness
-and inexperience of his opponent. Passing the Till on the 8th of
-September, he proceeded on its east side to Barmoor wood, two
-miles distant from the Scottish position, where he encamped for
-the night. His march was concealed from the enemy by an eminence
-on the east of Ford; but the manœuvre being executed without
-observation or interruption, evinces a shameful negligence in the
-Scottish commanders. Early on the morning of the 9th, he marched
-from Barmoor wood in a north-westerly direction; and then turning
-suddenly to the eastward, crossed the Till with his vanguard and
-artillery at Twisel bridge, not far from the confluence of the
-Till and the Tweed--whilst the rear division, under Surrey in
-person, passed the river at a ford. Whilst these movements were
-taking place the Scottish King remained unaccountably passive. His
-veteran officers remonstrated. They showed him, that if he advanced
-against Surrey, when the enemy were defiling over the bridge with
-their vanguard separated from the rear, there was every chance of
-destroying them in detail, and gaining an easy victory. The Earl of
-Angus, whose age and experience gave great weight to his advice,
-implored him either to assault the English, or to change his
-position by a retreat, ere it was too late; but his prudent counsel
-was only received by a cruel taunt. “Angus,” said the King, “if you
-are afraid, you may go home;” a reproach which the spirit of the
-old Baron could not brook. “My age,” said he, “renders my body of
-no service, and my counsel is despised; but I leave my two sons and
-the vassals of Douglas in the field; may the result be glorious,
-and Angus’s foreboding unfounded!”
-
-The army of Surrey was still marching across the bridge, when
-Borthwick, the master of the artillery, fell on his knees before
-the King, and solicited permission to bring his guns to bear upon
-the columns, which might then be done with the most destructive
-effect; but James commanded him to desist on peril of his head,
-declaring that he would meet his antagonist on equal terms in a
-plain field, and scorned to avail himself of such an advantage.
-The counsel of Huntly was equally ineffectual; the remonstrance of
-Lord Lindsay of the Byres was received by James with such vehement
-indignation, that he threatened on his return to hang him up at
-his own gate. Time ran on amidst these useless altercations, and
-the opportunity was soon irrecoverable. The last divisions of
-Surrey’s force had disentangled themselves from the narrow bridge;
-the rear had passed the ford; and the Earl, marshalling his army
-with the leisure his enemy allowed him, placed his entire line
-between James and his own country. He was thus enabled, by an easy
-and gradual ascent, which led to Flodden, to march upon the rear
-of the enemy; and without losing his advantage for a moment, he
-advanced against them in full array, his army being divided into
-two battles, and each battle having two wings. On becoming aware
-of this, the King set fire to the temporary huts and booths of his
-encampment, and descended the hill, with the object of occupying
-the eminence on which the village of Brankston is built. His army
-was divided into five battles, some of which had assumed the form
-of squares, some of wedges; and all were drawn up in line, about
-a bow-shot distant from each other. Their march was conducted in
-complete silence; and the clouds of smoke which arose from the
-burning camp, being driven in the face of the enemy, mutually
-concealed the armies; so that when the breeze freshened, and the
-misty curtain was withdrawn, the two hosts discovered that they
-were within a quarter of a mile of each other. The arrangement of
-both armies was simple. The van of the English, which consisted of
-10,000 men, divided into a centre and two wings, was led by Lord
-Thomas Howard; the right wing being intrusted to his brother, Sir
-Edmund, and the left to Sir Marmaduke Constable. In the main centre
-of his host Surrey himself commanded; the charge of the rear was
-given to Sir Edward Stanley; and a strong body of horse, under Lord
-Dacre, formed a reserve. Upon the part of the Scots, the Earls of
-Home and Huntly led the advance; the King, the centre; and the
-Earls of Lennox and Argyle, the rear; near which was the reserve,
-consisting of the flower of the Lothians, commanded by the Earl
-of Bothwell. The battle commenced at four in the afternoon, by a
-furious charge of Huntly and Home upon the portion of the English
-advance under Sir Edmund Howard; which, after some resistance,
-was thrown into confusion, and totally routed. Howard’s banner
-was beaten down; and he himself escaped with difficulty. Lord
-Thomas Howard, dreading the consequences of a defeat, dispatched a
-messenger to his father, Lord Surrey, entreating him to extend his
-line with all speed, and strengthen the van by drawing up a part of
-the centre on its left. The manœuvre was judicious, but it would
-have required too long a time to execute; and at this critical
-moment, Lord Dacre galloped forward with his cavalry to the support
-of his advance. Nothing could have been more timely than this
-assistance; he not only checked the career of the Scottish Earls,
-but drove back the division of Huntly with great slaughter; whilst
-Home’s men, imagining they had already gained the victory, began
-to disperse and pillage. Dacre and the Admiral then turned their
-attack against another portion of the Scottish advance, led by
-the Earls of Crawford and Montrose, who met them with levelled
-spears, and resolutely withstood the charge. Whilst such was the
-state of things on the right, a desperate contest was carried on
-between James and the Earl of Surrey in the centre. In his ardour,
-the King forgot that the duties of a commander were distinct from
-the indiscriminate valour of a knight: he placed himself in the
-front of his lances and billmen, surrounded by his nobles, who,
-whilst they pitied the gallant weakness of such conduct, disdained
-to leave their sovereign unsupported. The first consequence of
-this was so furious a charge upon the English centre, that its
-ranks were broken, and for a while the standard of the Earl of
-Surrey was in danger; but by this time Lord Dacre and the Admiral
-had been successful in defeating the division led by Crawford
-and Montrose, and wheeling towards the left, they turned their
-whole strength against the flank of the Scottish centre, which
-wavered under the shock, till the Earl of Bothwell came up with
-the reserve, and restored the day in this quarter. On the right,
-the divisions led by the Earls of Lennox and Argyle were composed
-chiefly of the Highlanders and Isle-men, the Campbells, Macleans,
-Macleods, and other hardy clans, who were dreadfully galled by
-the discharge of the English archers. Unable to reach the enemy
-with their broadswords and axes, which formed their only weapons,
-and not very amenable to discipline, their squadrons began to
-rush fiercely forward, eager for closer fight, and thoughtless of
-the fatal consequences of breaking their array. It was to little
-purpose that La Motte and the French officers with him attempted
-by entreaties and blows to restrain them; they neither understood
-their language nor cared for their violence, but threw themselves
-sword in hand upon the English. The squares of English pikemen
-stood to their ground; and though for a moment the shock of the
-mountaineers was terrible, its force once sustained, became spent
-with its own violence, and nothing remained but a disorganisation
-so complete that to recover their ranks was impossible. The
-consequence was, a total rout of the right wing of the Scots,
-accompanied by a dreadful slaughter, in which the Earls of Lennox
-and Argyle were slain. Yet, notwithstanding this defeat on the
-right, the centre, under the King, still maintained an obstinate
-and dubious conflict with the Earl of Surrey. No quarter was given
-on either side; and the combatants were disputing every inch of
-ground, when Stanley, without losing his time in pursuit of the
-Highlanders, drew back his division and impetuously charged the
-rear of the Scottish centre. It was now late in the evening, and
-this movement was decisive. Pressed on the flank by Dacre and the
-Admiral--opposed in front by Surrey, and now attacked in the rear
-by Stanley, the King’s battle fought with fearful odds against
-it; but James continued by his voice and his gestures to animate
-his soldiers, till he fell pierced with an arrow, and mortally
-wounded in the head by a bill, within a few paces of the English
-Earl, his antagonist. The death of their sovereign seemed only to
-animate the fury of the Scottish Nobles, who threw themselves into
-a circle round the body, and defended it till darkness separated
-the combatants. At this time Surrey was uncertain of the result of
-the battle; the remains of the enemy’s centre still held the field;
-Home with his borderers hovered on the left; and the commander
-allowed neither pursuit nor plunder, but kept a strict watch
-during the night. When the morning broke, the Scottish artillery
-were seen standing deserted on the side of the hill, their
-defenders had disappeared; and the Earl ordered thanks to be given
-for a victory which was no longer doubtful.
-
-The loss of the Scots, in this fatal battle, amounted to about
-10,000 men. Of these a great proportion were of high rank; the
-remainder being composed of the gentry, the farmers and landed
-yeomanry, who disdained to fly when their sovereign and his nobles
-lay stretched in heaps around them. Among the slain were thirteen
-Earls--the King’s natural son, the Archbishop of St. Andrews--the
-Bishops of Caithness and the Isles--the Abbots of Inchaffray
-and Kilwinning--and the Dean of Glasgow; besides fifteen Lords
-and chiefs of clans. The body of James was found on the morrow
-amongst the thickest of the slain, and recognised by Lord Dacre,
-although much disfigured by wounds. It was carried to Berwick, and
-ultimately interred at Richmond.”
-
-
-FONTAINBLEAU, PEACE OF.--Concluded between France and Denmark, in
-1670. Treaty of ditto between the Emperor of Germany and Holland,
-signed November 8th, 1785. Second Treaty of ditto, between Napoleon
-and the Royal Family of Spain, October 27th, 1807. Concordat of
-ditto, between Napoleon and Pope Pius VII, January 25th, 1813.
-Entered by the Austrians, February 17th, 1814. Napoleon here
-resigned his imperial dignity, and bade farewell to his army, April
-5th, 1814.
-
-
-FONTENOY.--Fought, April 30th, 1745,--according to others, May
-11th, 1745--between the French, commanded by Count Saxe, and the
-English, Hanoverians, Dutch, and Austrians, commanded by the
-Duke of Cumberland. “The French entered upon the war with great
-alacrity. They besieged Fribourg, and in the beginning of the
-succeeding campaign invested the strong city of Tourney. Although
-the Allies were inferior in number, and although commanded by the
-Duke of Cumberland, yet, they resolved, if possible, to save the
-city by hazarding a battle. They accordingly marched against the
-enemy, and took post in sight of the French, who were encamped on
-an eminence, the village of St. Antoine on the right, a wood on
-the left, and the town of Fontenoy before them. This advantageous
-situation did not repress the ardour of the English, who began
-the attack at two o’clock in the morning, and pressing forward,
-bore down all opposition. They were for nearly an hour victorious,
-and confident of success, while Saxe, a soldier of fortune, who
-commanded the French army, was at that time sick of the same
-disorder of which he afterwards died. However, he was carried
-about to all the posts in a litter, and assured his attendants
-that, notwithstanding all unfavourable appearances, the day was
-his own. A column of the English, without any command, but by mere
-mechanical courage, had advanced upon the enemy’s lines, which,
-opening, formed an avenue on each side to receive them. It was
-then that the French artillery on the three sides began to play on
-this forlorn body, which, though they continued for a long time
-unshaken, were obliged at last to retreat. This was one of the most
-bloody battles that had been fought in this age; the Allies left
-on the field 12,000 men, and the French bought their victory with
-nearly an equal number of slain.”
-
-
-FORT DU QUESNE.--_United States._--Famous in the French war of
-Canada with the English. The following extract well describes the
-expedition:
-
-“Braddock, who had been recommended to this service by the Duke
-of Cumberland, set forward upon this expedition in June, and left
-the cultivated parts of the country on the 10th, at the head
-of 2200 men, directing his march to that part of the country
-whence Major Washington had retreated the year before. Being at
-length within ten miles of the French fortress he was appointed
-to besiege, and marching forward through the forest with full
-confidence of success, on a sudden his whole army was astonished
-by a general discharge of arms, both in front and flank, from an
-enemy that still remained unseen. It was now too late to think of
-retreating; the troops had passed into the defile which the enemy
-had artfully permitted them to do before they offered to fire. The
-vanguard of the English therefore, fell back in consternation upon
-the main body, and the panic soon became general. The officers
-alone disdained to fly, while Braddock himself still continued to
-command his brave associates, discovering at once the greatest
-intrepidity and imprudence. An enthusiast to the discipline of
-war, he disdained to fly from the field, or to permit his men to
-quit their ranks, when their only method of treating the Indian
-army was by precipitate attack, or an immediate desertion of the
-field of battle. At length Braddock, having received a musket
-shot through the lungs, dropped, and a total confusion ensued.
-All the artillery, ammunition, and baggage of the army was left
-to the enemy, and the loss sustained by the English amounted to
-700 men. The remnant of the army, in this emergency, was saved by
-the courage and ability of Washington, who first here appears
-conspicuously on the theatre of this world’s great events.”
-
-
-FORT ERIE.--_Canada._--This fortress was taken by the American
-General Brown, July 3rd, 1814. Defended by only 170 men, no wonder
-it yielded to the Americans with 4000 strong. On the 15th August,
-General Drummond tried to retake it, but failed. September 17th the
-besieged made a sortie but were driven back, each side losing 600
-men. Evacuated by the Americans, who blew up to the fort November
-5th, 1814.
-
-
-FORT NIAGARA.--_Canada._--Captured by Sir William Johnston. In the
-war of 1813 it was surprised and captured by the Canadians.
-
-
-FREDERECKSHALL.--Rendered memorable by the death of Charles XII of
-Sweden, who was killed by a cannon ball before its walls, and while
-in the trenches leaning against the parapet examining the works. He
-was found in that position with his hand on his sword and a prayer
-book in his pocket.--December 11th, 1718. It is now generally
-believed that some traitor shot the King with a pistol.
-
-
-FRENCHTOWN.--_Canada._--This town was taken from the British by
-the American General Winchester, January 22nd, 1813. Retaken by
-the British forces under General Proctor immediately afterwards,
-when the American commander and the whole of his troops were made
-prisoners of war.
-
-
-FRIEDLAND, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 14th, 1807, between the allied
-Russian and Prussian armies on the one side and the French,
-commanded by Napoleon in person, who signally defeated them, with
-the lose of eighty pieces of ordnance and 50,000 men. This victory
-led to the peace of Tilsit.
-
-
-FUENTES DE ONORE, BATTLE OF.--Napier thus describes this great
-battle: “On May 2nd, 1811, Messina crossed the Agueda with 40,000
-infantry, 5000 cavalry, and about thirty pieces of artillery, to
-relieve Almeida. He expected every day to be superseded in his
-command, and he wished to make a last effort for his own military
-character. Wellington could muster no more than 32,000 men, of
-which force only 1200 were cavalry. He, however, determined to
-fight rather than give up the blockade of Almeida; after much
-fighting night came on and put an end to the battle. Next day
-Messina was joined by Bessières, with a body of the Imperial Guard,
-and on the 5th the enemy made the grand attack. The battle raged
-throughout a vast plain, and in all the Peninsular War there was
-never so dangerous an hour for England. The fight lasted till
-evening, when the lower part of the town was abandoned by both
-sides--the British keeping the chapel and crags, and the French
-retiring a cannon shot from the stream.” Fought, May 5th, 1811.
-
-
-
-
-G.
-
-
-GALWAY.--_Ireland._--In 1690, Galway declared for King James, but
-it was invested and taken by General Ginckel, immediately after the
-memorable battle of Aughrim, July 12th, 1691.
-
-
-GENERAL.--This rank has been given to commanders from very remote
-antiquity. In the French army, Montmorency was the first officer
-who was so called, in 1203. Cardinal Richelieu was the first who
-took the title _Generalissimo_, having coined the word when he
-assumed supreme command of the French armies in Italy, in 1629.
-
-
-GENOA.--Bombarded by the French, in 1684, and by the British, in
-1688 and 1745. Taken by the Imperialists, December 8th, 1746.
-Sustained a siege from the British fleet and Austrian army, when
-it capitulated, May, 1800. Surrendered to the French, after the
-battle of Marengo. Next surrendered to the combined English and
-Sicilian armies, April 8th, 1814, but was transferred to the
-Kingdom of Sardinia, in 1826. The city seized by insurgents, who,
-after a murderous struggle, drove out the garrison, and proclaimed
-a Republic, April, 1850, but in the end the insurgents surrendered
-to General Marmora.
-
-
-GERMANIC CONFEDERATION.--When Napoleon determined that the
-German or Holy Roman Empire should no longer exist, but that a
-Confederation of States should be in its stead, the proposal was
-adopted by the Allied Sovereigns, in 1815, which has continued ever
-since.
-
-
-GETTYSBURG.--_United States._--This battle was fought between
-the Confederates of the Southern States, and the Northern army.
-General Lee was defeated by the United States’ troops. This battle
-immediately followed the surrender of Vicksburg to General Grant.
-Fought on the 4th July, 1863.
-
-
-GHENT.--Taken by the Duke of Marlborough, in 1706. Several times
-taken and retaken during the Napoleon wars. The peace of Ghent,
-between Great Britain and America, signed here, December 24th, 1814.
-
-
-GHIZNEE, BATTLE OF.--The British, under Sir John Keane, attacked
-this place, and having blown up the gates, forced their way into
-the city, and succeeded in fixing the British colors on the towers,
-July 23rd, 1839. Ghiznee capitulated to the Affghans, March 1st,
-1842. The following account gives the items of General Nott’s
-entering it, September 7th, 1842:
-
-“GHIZNEE is situated on the base of a hill, which supports its rear
-or main post, and commands a most extensive plain, and it is in the
-midst of a rich, fertile country; it has ever held the most noble
-rank as a capital, and is capable of being rendered one of the most
-important fortifications in the Eastern nations; its adjacent hills
-are great, and border on Dora and Bameean; it covers the routes of
-the latter, as well as Loghar and Cabool; near the low hills which
-command the city, are several cemeteries, and ancient buildings; at
-a short distance is Rozah, in which stands the great sepulchre, and
-shrine of Mahmood, the once famed Emperor of Ghiznee; and of whom
-“Dow” speaks so much in his History of Hindostan.
-
-The fortress in itself is of great importance; the town is walled
-round, and contains several thousand houses; the former principally
-of stone, and the latter of mud. It is surrounded by a deep trench;
-the main entrance, being the one blown up by Sir John Keane, is
-in ruins, and another was made to the right. In the centre of the
-town stands the citadel, which had three tiers; the lower one had
-been much improved since we possessed it, and a parade ground,
-or large square, had been formed, as a park for the ordnance. A
-river ran close by, which afforded good water, and rendered it
-almost complete. All remained quiet, till within a short distance
-from them, fortunately for us, as it enabled us to get up our
-baggage, and cattle; close to the rear of the column the road was
-very difficult, being over extensive fields of long grass, and
-the ditches very numerous and wide, in crossing which the cattle
-were continually falling, which greatly delayed us. General Nott
-directed the Light Battalion to proceed with the Quarter Master
-General, to take up an encampment opposite to Ghiznee, at a place
-some two and a half miles from the fortress, known as Sir John
-Keane’s garden. I accompanied this body, and as we proceeded, we
-discovered the enemy in the citadel, and a great number outside,
-preparing to advance. The Quarter Master General ordered a portion
-of his force to man a small hill, which commanded their approach,
-and left it in charge of Captain Adamson, of the 40th. The General
-dispatched, in another direction, the 16th Native Infantry, under
-Colonel McLaren, who were met by the enemy, and a smart action
-took place; fortunately, however, after having rallied for some
-time, the corps managed to get under cover, in a walled garden,
-about a mile from the fort, and kept them off in fine style; the
-Colonel, finding the enemy so numerous, feared a serious result, as
-the chances were, the General could not send him a re-inforcement
-before the whole of his ammunition would be expended, and a
-soldier without ammunition is not in the most enviable situation.
-The Quarter Master General’s party was attacked, but effected a
-complete mastery over them, and drove them back. The General,
-perceiving the situation of McLaren, dispatched the 3rd Regiment
-Light Cavalry, and two of Anderson’s guns, who got up just in
-time to save them, as they were getting short of shot; at length
-came up the General with the main body; the cavalry made a grand
-charge after those outside the town, and we lost a great number
-of our men, but not before leaving a greater number of the enemy
-lying on the field; during all this time those in possession of
-the citadel were not idle, but made some excellent play with their
-guns from the square I named, as being situated on the lower part
-of the citadel; but fortunately for us their knowledge of the art
-of gunnery was so shallow that they did little or no damage with
-their guns. One of the hills mentioned as adjacent to the fortress,
-was called Balloon Hill, from its peculiar form, and difficulty
-of ascent; this hill was literally crowded with rebels, and their
-colours were planted in every direction; they now began to emerge
-from the gates in great numbers, and finding, after the charge of
-the cavalry, that they had no chance of overpowering the front,
-Shooms-ood-Dien dispatched a large force round, to attack the rear
-of our columns. The General had, however, taken the necessary
-precaution, and reinforced the rear guard to 3000 men, with six
-guns, including the heavy battery. Perceiving the object the enemy
-had in view, he let fly a volley of grape to meet them, which had
-the desired effect, and left numbers of them dead on the ground,
-and the rest immediately made off; the next thing to be done was to
-got possession of Balloon Hill. This hill was so situated that it
-commanded all around it, and more particularly the square in the
-citadel, as it immediately covered it. The General directed the
-40th and 16th to proceed at once and take the hill. The order was
-in itself easily given; my readers may imagine the position.
-
-The guns from the citadel were in full play, the hill was in
-possession of, and covered by several hundreds of the enemy, both
-horse and foot; the ascent was considerable, and we were nearly
-two miles from it. However, it is not for Britons to look at
-difficulties in such a moment, for had we done so we should never
-have accomplished it; we set forward, and those in the fortress
-seeing our advance, opened a heavy fire upon us, which, Providence
-be thanked, showed us that they could not hit their mark, and we
-reached the foot of the hill with little loss. Those in possession
-leapt for joy, at the apparent opportunity of cutting us off. We
-commenced the ascent, throwing out skirmishers in every direction;
-our fire was kept up steadily as on a parade, and every ball seemed
-to find its desired billet; numbers fell, of course, but not near
-so many as we had been anticipating. We were obliged to halt half
-way to gain breath, and necessitated to keep up a heavy fire; we
-again advanced, and the enemy began to show symptoms of retiring,
-which greatly encouraged us, and we made a desperate effort, and
-sent a volley into them, charged, and at length they retired; we
-followed, and at last gained the summit. They rushed down the other
-side, and made off in the direction of Candahar, where they were
-met by a brigade sent round by the General for that purpose.
-
-Having gained possession of the hill, those in the citadel began to
-pour the fire of artillery into us, but as usual without success,
-and in order to get out of sight we were ordered to lie down,
-that they might imagine we had evacuated our position; as we lay
-there, the balls were fast whistling over us, and the force under
-the command of the General was making a clean sweep of all those
-outside the walls, which, after he had effected, next repaired to
-the citadel. It was, however, found impracticable to storm the
-fortress that day; first, because the Sappers and Miners would
-not have time to complete their operations; and secondly, in
-consequence of the fatigued state of the troops. The 16th was to
-be left in charge of the hill, and the 40th were ordered to return
-to the encampment; this order was, if anything, even worse than
-the first, because all being comparatively quiet, we should, on
-retiring, be the only targets for them to fire at, and our utter
-destruction seemed inevitable; we, however, had to obey, and as was
-expected, no sooner did we come under cover of their guns than they
-opened a severe fire from all their pieces, but their firing was
-always either too far, or too short; and thus we reached camp in
-almost safety.
-
-The followers had been all employed in pitching the tents, and the
-cooks (natives) had prepared our scanty meal; the 16th were left in
-possession of the hill; and the General ordered two guns, either
-under Captain Blood or Anderson, to proceed to the top of the hill,
-and dislodge them in the citadel, which, after some difficulty,
-was effected, and most ably did they accomplish their duty;
-they soon put a stop to them, and by their superior arrangement
-and management of artillery, disabled nearly all their guns. We
-had scarcely got well seated in our tents when we were suddenly
-surprised by the whizzing of a ball over the camp, which lodged
-in the officer’s mess tent of the 41st; after that came another
-and another, and they kept up a fine string of them, aiming most
-admirably. We soon discovered that they had a sixty-eight pounder,
-which before had remained quiet.
-
-Those shots coming so fast, and lodging just in our midst, doing
-considerable damage, although we were nearly two miles from it,
-compelled the General to shift camp a mile further off, and we were
-at last out of the reach of the bull-dog; they most certainly in
-this distance did put us to the rout. This piece was called “Chuppa
-Jung,” of Persian manufacture, and as is usual in all the forts of
-importance in Asia, was placed in the citadel; and a most powerful
-piece it was.
-
-The General now began to arrange his plans for storming and taking
-the fortress; the engineers were all busily employed in preparing
-for the operation; and as the day began to draw to a close, orders
-were issued for the troops to be in readiness to move just before
-daylight on the morrow. The night at length came on, and lights
-were ordered to be extinguished at eight P.M.; and at that hour all
-was darkness, and enveloped upwards of 20,000 souls.
-
-All was at length prepared for the attack, and about half an hour
-before the day broke, the word was passed from tent to tent, to
-form up. Each rose in sadness, and many shook the hand of his
-comrade as for the last time; the cattle were dispatched with the
-powder, to ensure the explosion, and platforms had been carefully
-planted for the heavy battery to commence a breach. The troops
-were slowly and silently advanced, and arranged ready to storm
-immediately after the gates were blown up; and daybreak was to be
-the signal. At length the day dawned, and lo! what was our surprise
-when we saw floating on the highest tower the English colors. The
-sight relieved each heart as though we had a fortune. The enemy had
-during the night evacuated the citadel, having received certain
-orders to that effect from Caboul. Colonel McLaren, who had kept
-the hill, finding they had left it, took immediate possession,
-and placed “The Flag that braved a thousand years” on the highest
-point. Thus did Providence prevent the inevitable loss of some
-hundreds of our force, and never was a force more agreeably
-surprised than those at Ghiznee, on the 6th of September, 1842.”
-
-
-GIBRALTAR.--A British fortress on the Straits of the same name.
-From the circumstance of its immense strength and impregnability,
-other great fortresses have also received its name, as Quebec,
-which is called the Gibraltar of America. The height of the wall
-is 1437 feet. Taken by the Saracens, in 712. In 1462, the King of
-Castile took the fortress and town from the Moors; and the English,
-under Sir George Brooke, the Prince of Hesse-Denmark, Sir John
-Leake, and Admiral Byng, bravely won it, July 24th, 1704. It was
-surrendered, after a dreadful cannonade, to the British by the
-Governor, the Marquis de Salines, and has ever since continued one
-of the most brilliant gems in the coronet of England’s Queen. Long
-may she reign to wear it. The following are the different attacks
-which have been made upon it since the British took it. On the 11th
-October, 1704, the same year it was captured by the British, it
-sustained a siege from the Spaniards and French, who lost 10,000
-whilst the British loss was only 400. Again the Spaniards attacked
-it in 1720, but were repulsed with great loss. In 1728, they again
-attacked it but were driven back with the loss of 5000 out of
-20,000, while the English lost 300. After this came the memorable
-siege of the Spaniards and French, whose prodigious armaments
-astonished the whole of Europe. They were the most stupendous up
-to that time ever brought before any city or fortress. The siege
-continued from July, 1770, to February, 1783. The allied army
-amounted to 40,000 men. The Duke of Crillon had 12,000 of the best
-troops of France, 1000 pieces of artillery were brought to bear
-against the fortress, besides which there were forty-seven sail of
-the line all three-deckers, ten great floating batteries esteemed
-invincible, carrying 212 guns, an immense number of frigates,
-xebeques, bomb-ketches, cutters, and gun and mortar boats; while
-small craft literally covered the bay. For weeks and weeks together
-6000 shells were daily thrown into the town, and, on one single
-occasion, 8000 barrels of gunpowder were expended by the enemy,
-yet in one single night were all these immense batteries destroyed
-by red-hot cannon balls, and their whole line of works annihilated
-by a sortie of the garrison, commanded by General Elliot, November
-27th, 1781. The loss of the enemy in this memorable night alone,
-amounted to upwards of £2,000,000 sterling. The grand defeat by
-the garrison of only 7000 British, occurred September 13th, 1782.
-Since then the British have remained in peaceful possession.
-
-
-GISORS, BATTLE OF.--_In France._--Fought between the armies of
-France and England, in which the former were signally defeated by
-Richard I, who commanding in person, and whose parole for the day
-was “Dieu et Mon Droit,” and from this it was made the motto of the
-Royal Arms of England, A.D. 1193.
-
-
-GLENCOE, MASSACRE OF.--The McDonalds of Glencoe, were cruelly
-massacred, May 9th, 1691, merely for not surrendering in time after
-King William’s proclamation perpetrated by the Earl of Argyle’s
-regiment. 38 men besides women and children perished.
-
-
-GOOJERAT, BATTLE OF.--_India._--Fought February 21st, 1849. Lord
-Gough with 21,000 men and 100 guns attacked the enemy, numbering
-60,000 men, with 59 guns. The Sikh Chief was strongly posted
-between two river courses which protected his flanks, and yet
-allowed him good manœuvring space to retire either on the east
-or west side of the town of Goojerat, which afforded shelter and
-protection to his rear. The battle began at 7 A.M. After a severe
-engagement of nine hours, at 4 P.M. the enemy had been driven from
-every post and was in general retreat, which the field artillery
-and cavalry converted into a rout and flight. They were pursued
-for 15 miles, and next day another fresh force took up the direct
-pursuit. Some of the guns and the whole of the ammunition and
-camp equipage fell into the hands of the British. The Chief,
-Shere-Singh, escaped with only 8000 men out of 60,000. The loss on
-the side of the British was 100 killed and 900 wounded.
-
-
-GOREE.--Taken by the English Admiral Holmes, in 1693--ceded to
-France 1678. Again taken by the British, 1758--1779--1800--and 1804.
-
-
-GOREY, BATTLE OF.--Fought June 4th, 1798, between the King’s troops
-and the Irish rebels, in which, after a desperate battle, the
-King’s forces were routed with great slaughter. They lost several
-pieces of artillery, and retreated to Gorey and afterwards to
-Arklow.
-
-
-GORGET.--An ancient breastplate. It was of great size, and gave
-rise to the modern diminutive breastplate which was in existence at
-the Restoration. It is now disused.
-
-
-GRAMPIAN HILLS, BATTLE OF THE.--This was a celebrated engagement
-between the Scots and Picts--the former under Galgacus, and the
-latter under Agricola. Fought A.D. 79.
-
-
-GRAND ALLIANCE.--Signed at Vienna between England and the States
-General--to which Spain and the Duke of Savoy afterwards acceded,
-May 12th, 1689.
-
-
-GRANICUS, BATTLE OF.--Alexander the Great fought and won this
-battle against the Persians--B.C. 334. The Macedonian troops
-crossed the Granicus in the face of the Persian army, and totally
-defeated them. Alexander’s army was only 30,000 foot and 5000 horse
-and the Persian 600,000 foot, and 60,000 horse.
-
-
-GRENADES.--A kind of bombshell invented in 1594. It is a small
-hollow globe or ball of iron, two inches diameter, and filled
-with fine powder and set on fire by a fusee at a touch-hole. The
-grenadiers were those soldiers who were armed with a pouch of hand
-grenades--established in France in 1667--and England in 1685.
-The latter word is applied now, according to Gay, to the tall
-soldiers--of which there is generally a company in every regiment.
-
-
-GROCHOW, BATTLE OF.--_Near Praga, Warsaw._--Fought February 20th,
-1831, between the Poles and Russians. After a bloody battle, which
-continued all day and almost all the next, the Poles remained
-masters of the field. The Russians retreated, having lost 70,000
-men, and the Poles, 2000.
-
-
-GUADALOUPE.--Taken by the English, in 1759, and restored 1763.
-Again taken in 1779, 1794, and 1810. At last, restored to France at
-the peace of 1814.
-
-
-GUARDS.--The custom of having guards was introduced by Saul, King
-of Israel, B.C. 1093. Bodyguards instituted by Henry VII, 1485.
-Horse guards by Edward VI, 1550. The three regiments of the British
-service, the 1st, 2nd and 3rd Foot Guards, were raised in 1660,
-and the command of them given to Colonel Russell, General Monk,
-and Lord Linlithgow. The Second, or the Coldstream, was the first
-raised. The Horse Grenadier Guards, first troop raised 1693, and
-second in 1702.
-
-
-GUNPOWDER.--Invented by a Monk of Cologne, 1320. It has entirely
-revolutionized the art of war; consists of three ingredients, viz.,
-charcoal, sulphur and saltpetre.
-
-
-
-
-H.
-
-
-HALIDON HILL, BATTLE OF.--Fought July 19th, 1333.--“The Scots were
-rash enough to attack the English as they held the top of a bold
-hill, at the foot of which lay a marsh. The English archers, posted
-on the face of the hill, shot down the Scots, almost at their
-leisure, while they struggled heavily through the spongy ground.
-Under the deadly arrow flight, the Scots dragged themselves through
-the bog, and attempted, all breathless and exhausted, to charge
-up the hill against the fresh troops of England. They were forced
-down with great slaughter. Many more were slain as they struggled
-back through the fatal bog. The bloody lesson, however, seems not
-to have been lost. Once and again King Edward made the savage
-apparition of war to pass through Scotland. But the Scots baffled
-him by following the wise policy of Bruce. He traversed a country
-completely deserted and laid waste. The inhabitants, with their
-cattle and all their property, had retired to the inaccessible
-fastnesses of the mountains. Every advanced column and detached
-party of the English was assailed, stragglers cut off, and alarms
-kept up. Famine and disease did the work. Captain Hunger was
-more than a match for Captain Sword. Edward made nothing by his
-invasions, though he marched through the country as far north as
-Inverness. He was compelled each time to fall back again on his
-own territory, with great loss of men from hardships and misery,
-and the harassing attacks of the Scots, who sallied out from every
-glen, forest, and mountain defile.”
-
-
-HALYS, BATTLE OF.--This great battle was fought between the Lydians
-and Medes, on the banks of the river Halys. It was interrupted by
-an almost total eclipse of the sun. Fought, May 28th, B.C. 585.
-
-
-HANAN, BATTLE OF.--Fought, October 29th, 1813, between a division
-of the combined armies of Austria and Bavaria, 30,000 strong, under
-General Wrede and the French, 70,000 strong. The latter were on
-their retreat from Leipsic when encountered by the Allies, and
-suffered severely, although at the end of the battle the Austrians
-had to retire.
-
-
-HARLAW, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 24th, 1411, between the Earl of
-Mar, who commanded the Royal army, and Donald, the Lord of the
-Isles. Neither army gained the victory, it being a drawn battle.
-So many nobility and gentry were slain in this engagement that a
-Scottish historian declares, “more illustrious men fell in this
-one conflict alone than had fallen in foreign wars during many
-previous years.”
-
-
-HASTINGS, BATTLE OF.--Fought, October 14th, 1066. In the beginning
-of summer, William embarked his powerful army of 60,000 men on
-board a fleet of 300 sail; and, after some small opposition from
-the weather, landed at Pevensey, on the coast of Sussex, tranquilly.
-
-“Harold, who seemed resolved to defend his right to the crown, and
-retain that sovereignty which he had received from the people,
-who only had a right to bestow it, was now returning, flushed
-with conquest, from defeating the Norwegians, who had invaded the
-kingdom, with all the forces he had employed in that expedition,
-and all he could invite or collect in the country through which he
-passed. His army was composed of active and valiant troops, in high
-spirits, strongly attached to their king, and eager to engage.
-
-On the other hand, the army of William consisted of the flower
-of the continent, and had long been inured to danger. The men of
-Britanny, Boulogne, Flanders, Poictou, Maine, Orleans, France, and
-Normandy, were all voluntarily united under his command. England
-never before nor ever since, saw two such armies drawn up to
-dispute its crown.
-
-The day before the battle, William sent an offer to Harold to
-decide the quarrel between them by single combat, and thus to spare
-the blood of thousands: but Harold refused, and said he would leave
-it to the God of armies to determine. Both armies, therefore, that
-night pitched in sight of each other, expecting the dawning of the
-day with impatience. The English passed the night in songs and
-feasting; the Normans in devotion and prayer.
-
-The next morning, at seven as soon as day appeared, both armies
-were drawn up in array against each other. Harold appeared in
-the centre of his forces, leading on his army on foot, that his
-men might be more encouraged, by seeing their king exposed to an
-equality of danger. William, fought on horseback, leading on his
-army, that moved at once, singing the songs of Roland, one of
-the famous chiefs of their country. The Normans began to fight
-with their cross-bows, which, at first, galled and surprised the
-English; and, as their ranks were closed, their arrows did great
-execution. But soon they came to closer fight, and the English with
-their bills hewed down their adversaries with great slaughter.
-Confusion was spreading among the ranks, when William, who found
-himself on the brink of destruction, hastened with a select band
-to the relief of his forces. His presence restored the suspense
-of battle; he was seen in every place, endeavouring to pierce
-the ranks of the enemy, and had three horses slain under him. At
-length, perceiving that the English continued impenetrable, he
-pretended to give ground, which, as he expected, drew the enemy
-from their ranks, and he was instantly ready to take advantage
-of their disorder. Upon a signal given the Normans immediately
-returned to the charge with greater fury than before, broke the
-English troops, and pursued them to a rising ground. It was in this
-extremity that Harold was seen flying from rank to rank, rallying
-and inspiring his troops with vigour; and though he had toiled all
-day, till near night-fall, in front of his Kentish men, yet he
-still seemed unabated in force or courage, keeping his men to the
-post of honour.
-
-Once more, therefore, the victory seemed to turn against the
-Normans, and they fell in great numbers, so that the fierceness and
-obstinacy of this memorable battle was often renewed by the courage
-of the leaders, whenever that of the soldiers began to slacken.
-Fortune at length determined a victory that valour was unable to
-decide.
-
-Harold, making a furious onset at the head of his troops against
-the Norman heavy armed infantry, was shot into the brains by an
-arrow; and his two valiant brothers, fighting by his side, shared
-the same fate. He fell with his sword in his hand, amidst heaps of
-slain.”
-
-
-HAVRE-DE-GRACE.--Defended for the Huguenots by the English in 1562.
-Bombarded several times by the British Navy. Successfully attacked
-for three days from July 6th to 9th, 1759. Again bombarded in 1794
-and 1795--and again by Sir Richard Strachan in 1798. Declared in a
-state of blockade 1803; and the attempts of the British to burn the
-shipping here signally failed, August 7th, 1804.
-
-
-HERARA, BATTLE OF.--_In Arragon._--In this battle, Don Carlos of
-Spain, in his struggle for his hereditary right to the throne of
-that kingdom, encountered, at the head of 12,000 men, and defeated
-General Buerens, who had not half the number of the Queen’s troops.
-The loss of Buerens was about 1000 killed and wounded. Fought,
-August 24th, 1837.
-
-
-HERRINGS, BATTLE OF THE.--Vertot says that this battle, fought in
-1429, received its name from the following ludicrous occasion. The
-Duc de Bourbon, in attempting to intercept a convoy on the road to
-the English Camp, before Orleans, was severely beaten. It was a
-convoy of salt-fish--and this action has ever since been called by
-the above name.
-
-
-HOCHKIRCHEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the Prussian army, commanded by
-Frederick II, and the Austrians, commanded by Count Daun. The King
-was surprised in his camp and defeated by the Imperial General.
-In this battle, an illustrious Scotsman, Field-Marshal Keith, in
-the service of Prussia, was killed; and such was the respect and
-admiration which his name inspired, that Counts Daun and Lacy, the
-Austrian Generals, shed tears on beholding the corpse, and ordered
-its interment with military honours. Fought, October 14th, 1758.
-
-
-HOCHENLINDEN, BATTLE OF.--Fought November 3rd, 1800, between the
-Austrian and French armies--the latter commanded by General Moreau.
-The Austrians were defeated with dreadful slaughter, losing 10,000
-men in killed and wounded, and 10,000 more in prisoners. The forces
-of each army were nominally equal at the commencement of the battle.
-
-
-HOMELDEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the Scots, headed by the Earl of
-Douglas, and the Percys, in which the Scots were defeated. Douglas
-and many of the nobility were taken prisoners in this battle.
-Fought in 1403.
-
-
-HORATII AND CURIATII, COMBAT BETWEEN THE.--Fought B.C. 669. The
-forces of the two states met about five miles from Rome. While the
-armies were awaiting the signal for the battle, the Alban General,
-stepping into the space between them, proposed to decide the
-dispute by single combat. To this proposition Tullus agreed. There
-were in each army three twin brothers, all remarkable for their
-courage, strength, and activity, and to them it was resolved to
-commit the management of the combat. The Roman brothers were called
-Horatii and the Albans Curiatii. The champions met. Victory, which
-for a time, appeared doubtful, at last seemed to decide against
-the Romans. Two of their champions lay dead on the field, and the
-third seemed, by flight, to beg for mercy. Defeat was however only
-apparent. It soon became evident that this flight of the surviving
-Roman was pretence in order that, by separating his antagonists, he
-might have an opportunity of engaging them singly. Turning suddenly
-upon the foremost of the Curiatii, he laid him dead at his feet.
-The second instantly shared his fate. Fatigued and disabled by his
-wounds, the third slowly advanced to offer an easy victory. He was
-slain almost unresisting, while the conqueror exclaimed “Two have
-I already sacrificed to the Manes of my brothers; a third will I
-offer up to my country.”
-
-
-HUSSAR.--This kind of soldier originated in Poland and Hungary, and
-as they, being light cavalry, were more suited for hasty attacks
-than a set battle, they are supposed to have taken their name from
-the _huzzas_ or shouts which they made at their first onset. Pardon
-says that they were oddly clothed, having the skins of tigers, &c.,
-hanging on their backs, against bad weather, and wore fur caps,
-with a cock’s feather. Introduced into the British service in the
-last century.
-
-
-
-
-I.
-
-
-INKERMANN, BATTLE OF.--One of the most brilliant achievements in
-the history of the British Army. Fought on the 5th of November,
-1854.
-
-“Two days after the repulse of the enemy’s sortie, by Sir De
-Lacy Evans’ division, General Dannenberg, with a large Russian
-reinforcement, arrived at Baktchi-Serai from Odessa, which place he
-left on the 19th of October. In order that his men might reach the
-scene of action with the greatest practicable rapidity, and in good
-condition, every available cart and rustic conveyance was pressed
-into the service. They were thus comparatively fresh and vigorous
-after so rapid a march. On the 3rd of November, one division, under
-General Soimonoff, entered Sebastopol. The remainder, under General
-Pauloff, encamped at Tchorgoun, a short distance to the east.
-
-Strengthened by this considerable reinforcement, the Russian
-Generals decided upon an attack upon the position of the Allies
-in such strength that it should be scarcely possible to make
-an effectual resistance. The Grand Dukes Michael and Nicholas,
-sons of the Emperor, had arrived at Sebastopol, with the purpose
-of encouraging the garrison by their presence, and witnessing
-the total defeat of the haughty invaders. On Sunday, the 4th
-of November, solemn religious services were held in the town.
-Patriarchs and Bishops of the Greek Church addressed the soldiery,
-urged upon them the importance of the trust which their good father
-the Czar had thought proper to impose upon them,--assured them
-that death in his service was only the road to a martyr’s crown,
-and that the English were monsters of cruelty, who committed the
-most atrocious barbarities upon all prisoners of war. Finally,
-they said the British camp abounded in treasure, one-third of
-which should be the property of the soldiery. Incited by these
-promises,--stimulated by extra rations of ardent spirits,--and
-fanatically believing that the destruction of the English heretics
-would be a work of acceptable piety, the Russian soldiers mingled
-shouts of devotion to the Czar and death to the Allies, and
-prepared themselves for the encounter of the morrow.
-
-The plan of attack, as decided upon by the enemy’s commanders, was
-shortly this:--The extreme right of the British position, near the
-bridge which crossed the Tchernaya at Inkermann, was notoriously
-our weak point. Sir De Lacy Evans, whose division occupied this
-position, had repeatedly called Lord Raglan’s attention to this
-vulnerable point; but so laborious were the duties devolving
-upon our men, and so extended the line of defence, that it was
-impossible to spare either men or guns for the establishment of
-works. The French, whose large numbers and secure position on the
-western plateau left them a far smaller share of the duty, had
-been early applied to for assistance, but had hitherto refused.
-Sir John Burgoyne had called the special attention of General Biot
-to the danger of leaving exposed such an avenue to the camp of the
-Allies; but the French commander seems to have been at this time
-but little disposed to relieve the English of any of the toil or
-danger they had so willingly undertaken, but which proved too much
-for their effectual performance. At length the English, by almost
-superhuman exertions, had erected a small work on the brow of the
-hill, intended to carry two guns, but they had not yet been mounted.
-
-Towards this point, then,--of the unprotected nature of which
-the Russians were perfectly well aware, thanks to the newspaper
-correspondents, who, in their anxiety to satisfy the curiosity
-of the readers at home, contrived (unwittingly, we believe) to
-afford the enemy a very great deal of valuable information,--the
-attention of the Russians was naturally directed. It afforded a
-convenient access to the very centre of the English lines, and
-would, in all probability, offer but a feeble resistance. It was
-arranged that Gortschakoff should, at an early hour on the morning
-of the 5th, make a threatening demonstration in front of Balaklava,
-apparently renewing the attempt of the 25th of October. This
-would have the effect of drawing a considerable portion of the
-armies to the defence of that important position, thus leaving the
-front comparatively unprotected. On the extreme left of the line,
-General Timofeyer would also make a feigned attack, occupying the
-attention of the French. The actual assault was to be made by the
-recently-arrived army of General Dannenberg. The two divisions
-already named, according to the Russian computation (most probably
-understated), were of the following strength: General Soimonoff’s
-corps consisted of three regiments of the 10th division, three of
-the 16th, and one of the 17th, amounting altogether to 16,200
-bayonets, with twenty-two heavy and sixteen light guns; that of
-General Pauloff, numbering 13,200 bayonets, was composed of three
-regiments of the 10th division, two Chasseur regiments of the 18th,
-with twelve guns. The two corps thus numbered 29,400 bayonets, and
-fifty guns. Soimonoff was ordered to march from the Malakoff Tower
-in a westerly direction, until he reached the Kilen ravine, under
-cover of which he was to penetrate into the English centre on the
-western side of the ravine. Five o’clock in the morning was fixed
-as the time for the assault. Pauloff’s division was to cross the
-Tchernaya, force the English lines at the unprotected point, and
-cutting their way through the second division join Soimonoff in the
-main attack, when General Dannenberg, with the remainder of the
-army, would appear upon the scene, and, it was fondly imagined,
-give the _coup de grace_ to the invaders. Such was the plan of the
-Russian Generals, carefully matured, and kept profoundly secret
-from the Allies. We shall see the result.
-
-All night the bells of Sebastopol rang loudly. The heavy November
-mist obscured the sound; and most probably, the English soldiers,
-far from considering the clashing from the belfries as the signal
-for the gathering of troops, imagined that one of the multitudinous
-festivals of the Greek Church was being celebrated with unwonted
-ostentation. Towards morning the mist thickened, and it was
-impossible to discern any object at above a few yards’ distance.
-Taking advantage of the fog, the Russians conveyed their guns
-to the lofty eminences beyond the Tchernaya, facing the British
-position, and by almost incredible efforts, in a very brief
-time, had established a formidable battery in a most commanding
-situation. About four o’clock in the morning, intelligence arrived
-at head-quarters that Balaklava was again threatened. General
-Bosquet was immediately on the alert, with his French chasseurs,
-and the indomitable Sir Colin Campbell was fully prepared to meet
-any force which might be despatched against him. It was no part,
-however, of the enemy’s tactics seriously to attack this position.
-His purpose was fully served by the attention of the French being
-attracted to this point, and the English being diverted from the
-real point of assault. About five o’clock enormous bodies of
-Russian infantry, under cover of the heavy fog, silently passed
-the bridge across the Tchernaya, and stealthily crept up the hill
-towards the weak point of the English position at the newly-erected
-two-gun battery. The pickets of the 55th, on duty at this spot,
-suddenly found themselves in presence of an over-whelming force of
-the enemy. Desperately fighting, the courageous little band slowly
-yielded ground, contesting every step, and retreating up the hill
-towards the redoubt. Their smart firing, in reply to the tremendous
-volleys of the enemy’s musketry, which were now poured into the
-handful of men, aroused the camp, and indicated the real nature of
-the enemy’s plans. General Pennefather, who commanded the Second
-Division, in the absence of Sir De Lacy Evans (who was compelled
-by the debilitated state of his health to leave his active duties,
-and retire on board one of the ships in the harbor), immediately
-hastened to the scene; and the men of his division, hastily shaking
-off their sleep, quickly responded to the alarm. In a few minutes
-all was bustle and activity. Officers and men, alike hurried
-forward, some half-dressed, all unbreakfasted, many suffering
-from sickness, and none free from the effects of privation and
-over-toil. From the Second Division the intelligence of the attack
-was quickly carried to the camps of the First, Fourth and Light
-Divisions, and the Duke of Cambridge, Sir George Cathcart, and Sir
-George Brown, instantly put themselves at the heads of their men,
-and lost no time in marching to the scene of action.
-
-When the pickets were driven in, they retreated to the little
-two-gun battery, and fired through the embrasures at the masses
-of the enemy, now advancing in dense columns to the attack. The
-Russian batteries on the opposite hills opened a tremendous fire
-upon them, and the guns of the town and the ships in the harbor
-threw enormous volleys of shell and shot right into the camp of
-the Second Division, tearing up the ground, and destroying the
-tents. For a few moments the gallant fellows of the 51st held their
-ground, but no courage could long contend against such fearful
-odds. In spite of their fire, much too feeble to stay the advance
-of such massive columns, the Russians advanced at a rapid pace up
-the hill, the few shots of the undaunted defenders of the redoubt
-telling fatally in their ranks. Almost before the English could
-reload, the Russians were swarming around the battery, and leaping
-over the embrasure. Many were hurled back again by the bayonets of
-the undaunted picket, who at length, borne down by the weight of
-the attack, were driven from the work, and retreated down the hill.
-The 41st and 49th now came into the action, and forming into line,
-charged the advancing Russians, and drove them back to the redoubt.
-Again was this little work the scene of a tremendous contest.
-The two regiments discharging a brisk volley from their Minié
-rifles, levelled their bayonets, and driving the enemy pell-mell
-before them, hurled them out of the battery, and once more the
-English were masters of the position. The retreating Russians
-were speedily met and reinforced by other columns of infantry, and
-then doubled in numbers, again advanced to the attack. The fire,
-too, from their batteries, poured unceasing destruction into the
-thin ranks of the English regiments. Already the dead and dying
-were lying thick around, and many of the bravest and best among
-them had fallen beneath the intense fire of the enemy. The Russian
-masses literally surged up the hill, and hurled themselves once
-more at the devoted little band. A fearful struggle followed. Hand
-to hand was the combat waged, the bayonet doing deadly havoc upon
-friend and foe. In vain the brave defenders of their post struggled
-against the unequal odds; in vain the officers heroically exposed
-themselves and encouraged their men to the desperate encounter;
-and in vain the men themselves emulated their leaders’ undaunted
-courage--the enemy, so immensely superior in numbers, drove them,
-after a sanguinary defence, from the work, and pursued them,
-desperately fighting in their retreat, towards the camp of their
-division.
-
-The alarm had now spread throughout the entire camp, and even
-reached Balaklava, rousing the sleepers on board the ships in
-the harbour. The heavy booming of the cannon told how fierce was
-the contest. Sir De Lacy Evans forgot his sickness, and leaving
-the bed to which for many days he had been confined, insisted on
-being rowed ashore; and mounting a horse, which he was almost too
-weak to guide, started for the field of battle. Lord Raglan, with
-his staff, had by this time reached the spot, and at once saw the
-critical position of the Allies; and saw, too, the blunder which
-the enemy had committed. General Soimonoff, who should, upon
-issuing from the ravine near Careening Bay, have turned to the
-right and attacked the centre of the English line, weakened by the
-tremendous assault on the extreme left of the position, mistook
-the direction and marched to the left, thus reaching the ground
-occupied by the Second Division, and embarrassing General Pauloff’s
-operations by permitting the concentration of the English forces
-to repel his assault, instead of diverting their attention by an
-attack at a comparatively remote point. For a General of Raglan’s
-experience to take advantage of this blunder was an easy task.
-He immediately made such arrangements of the small means at his
-command as would enable him to present two fronts of resistance
-on the threatened points, while preserving the solidity of his
-position.
-
-The 20th and 47th regiments now arrived to the assistance of the
-gallant 49th and 41st, driven with such dreadful slaughter from the
-two-gun battery. The brave Colonel Carpenter, of the 41st, had
-fallen pierced with many bullets; and the blood-thirsty Russians,
-with that tiger-like ferocity which has made the day of Inkermann
-so fearfully memorable, mutilated the senseless form of the
-grey-headed old warrior, clubbing their muskets, and beating him on
-the face till it was almost impossible to distinguish his features.
-Covered with blood, frightfully mangled, and recognised only by his
-uniform, the colonel was at length, when the enemy retreated, found
-by his men, and borne, still breathing, from the field, to linger
-for a few days in acute agonies, and then to breathe his last.
-Amidst a hurricane of bullets from the Russian troops, and exposed
-to a deadly storm of missiles from the enemies’ batteries, the 20th
-and 47th fearlessly charged the opposing masses, and endeavoured
-to take the redoubt. They were successful in the attempt. The
-Russian lines trembled before their impetuous onset. The levelled
-bayonets, borne onwards by the resistless vigour of Englishmen, now
-maddened by the excitement of battle, cheered by their officers,
-and with the memory of Alma, swept down the hordes of irresolute
-Muscovites, and with a ringing cheer, the victorious Britons were
-once again in the earthwork. There, indeed, was a sight to rouse
-their hearts--if, indeed, further stimulant were needed--to deeds
-of vengeance. Not one of those who in the previous attacks had
-fallen wounded was now alive. The remorseless Russians--assassins
-rather than soldiers--had bayonetted every one who showed signs of
-life. The little battery was choked with heaps of dead. Englishmen
-and Russians lay as they fell stiff in their blood, and disfigured
-by the agonies of death. Not one was left to tell his victorious
-comrades, who leaped shouting into the redoubt, how bravely their
-companions in arms had disputed its possession, how dearly the
-enemy had purchased a temporary success, or how basely that success
-had been consummated by the most brutal murder of wounded and
-unarmed men. But the Russians were not disposed to submit to the
-loss of this important position which they had made so many efforts
-to retain. Fresh legions were launched against the two regiments
-who had been thus far successful; and in irresistible strength,
-still another attempt was made to regain the post. Against such
-numbers it was impossible to contend successfully. The brave
-holders of the redoubt fought desperately, with that unyielding
-pertinacity for which the British infantry, beyond any soldiery in
-the world, is distinguished. But the shot from the batteries on the
-hills beyond the river swept through their lines; on every hand
-brave fellows fell pierced with bullets, or mangled by exploding
-shells. The enemy was tenfold their number, and swept on like a
-torrent against their feeble defence. After a brief but most heroic
-struggle, the noble remnant of the gallant 20th and 47th yielded to
-a force they could no longer withstand, and retreated to the main
-body, leaving the Russians for the third time the masters of the
-two-gun battery.
-
-The masters, it is true; but not the undisputed masters. A yet
-bloodier contest was to be waged for its possession--a contest
-which should make that small unfinished work, on which as yet no
-gun had been mounted, renowned throughout Europe. By the time
-that the 20th and 41st had been driven back, as we have just
-recorded, the Duke of Cambridge had reached the scene of action
-with the brigade of Guards--those renowned soldiers whose bayonets
-had carried the heights of Alma, and whose prowess was a theme
-of terror in the Russian camps. No soldier who had shared in or
-witnessed that tremendous fight could forget the terrible onslaught
-of those bear-skinned warriors, when the choicest troops of the
-Czar were trampled under foot, or scattered like chaff before their
-irresistible charge. The Coldstreams, no longer the magnificent
-battalion which a few months before left the shores of England,
-but reduced by the casualties of war and sickness to a few hundred
-badly fed and miserably-clothed men, though retaining all the
-ancient courage, heightened, indeed, by the hardships they had
-endured and the memory of their former achievements,--advanced
-in close ranks, at a rapid pace and with fixed bayonets, against
-the living wall of the Russians, who held the crown of the hill.
-Though the enemy were as ten to one, they yielded and broke before
-that matchless onset. Scattering the foe before them, the valiant
-Guardsmen swept like a hurricane into the battery, and the defeated
-Russians were precipitated, a flying and disordered mass, down
-the hill. The Coldstreams had well avenged their comrades’ fall,
-but they had not yet gained an undisputed success. On came fresh
-battalions of the Russians. The flying regiments were mingled with,
-or sought refuge behind the advancing legions. Again the dense mass
-struggled up the hill, and again did it devolve upon English valour
-to defend the post which had been so dearly won. Not less than 6000
-Russians advanced in a compact mass towards the two-gun battery.
-The defenders did not muster more than as many hundreds. Nothing
-daunted, they fired through the embrasures and from the brow of the
-hill smart volleys; and when their ammunition failed, as at length
-it did, many hurled stones at the enemy. But moment by moment the
-advancing host drew nearer and nearer. The summit of the hill is
-reached, they surround the fort, leap over the earthworks, and
-in an instant there is a hand to hand struggle, such as, perhaps,
-was never excelled in modern warfare. They are repulsed--literally
-dashed down the hill. Twice the assault renewed; the second time
-they are again defeated; the third time they are once more in the
-battery. Bayonet crosses bayonet in rapid thrusts, fearful shrieks
-of agony are mingled with the shouts and curses of infuriated men,
-the floor is cumbered with the fallen and slippery with blood; the
-gallant Coldstreams are alone and unaided, and every moment fresh
-foemen rush into the deadly _mêlée_. Hundreds fall before the
-fatal bayonets of the dauntless Guards--their places are supplied
-by hundreds more, fresh and unwounded. In front, on either side,
-they swarm around, ferocious and malignant. Back to back, the
-English heroes meet their tremendous charge. In all the horrors of
-that scene, amid all the carnage which surrounds them, their high
-courage never fails, their firm bearing is never relaxed. Though
-many fall mortally wounded, their comrades bestride their bodies,
-and there is still the bristling _chevaux-de-frise_ of bayonets,
-against which the foe hurl themselves in vain, and only to fall in
-hundreds, thrust to the heart by the fatal steel, wielded by the
-hands of the most determined soldiers in the world. At length the
-limit is reached beyond which resistance is impossible, and slowly
-yielding to the immense superiority of numbers, the Guards give
-ground, and prepare to leave the battery once more in the hands of
-the enemy. They retreat from the spot, and then see that their path
-is barred by another and fresh force of the enemy. Death appears
-inevitable; other soldiers might lay down their arms, and few
-would doubt their courage, so great is the disparity of strength.
-But the Guards are not dismayed even then. Struggling into line,
-with rapidity gained only by their perfect discipline, they level
-their bayonets, charge the fresh foe, and in an instant are among
-them. Down go the Russian infantry, stabbed and trampled on. A
-brief struggle, and the invincible Coldstreams have cut through the
-masses of the foe, and sweeping all opposition from their path,
-have rejoined the main body of their comrades.
-
-While this deadly contest was waging, the battle on the left of
-the position was rivalling it in intensity. Soimonoff’s army had
-attacked, and the greater portion of the Second Division were
-bravely opposing their advance. The English artillery were ordered
-up to the support, and taking position on the hill, did good
-service, and sent many a Russian to his great account. But at
-length their ammunition was exhausted, and the enemy advancing in
-great force, after a stirring combat, in which Major Townsend,
-a gallant and experienced officer, was killed, and prodigies of
-valour were performed, succeeded in capturing four of our guns.
-
-The battle had now assumed tremendous proportions. The whole of
-the Second and Fourth Divisions were engaged, as well as portions
-of the First and Light Divisions, about 8000 men in all. Including
-the fresh regiments which Dannenberg now brought into action,
-not less than 60,000 Russians were in the field. Against this
-overwhelming force the English bravely held their ground. The
-brigade of Guards, gallantly led by their royal commander, had
-again united, and waged a desperate warfare against unequal odds.
-In front, the Light Division and a portion of the Second preserved
-a firm bearing, and opposed themselves fearlessly to the shock of
-the advancing battalions. On the left, Soimonoff’s _corps d’armée_
-was met by the remainder of the Second Division, who bore the
-assault of the enemy, inspirited by their success in driving back
-the artillery and capturing the guns. Their exultation was fated
-to be of brief duration, for the gallant Second, having repulsed
-their first attack, now assumed the offensive, and charging the
-Russian columns, after a sanguinary struggle, drove them back, and
-recaptured the guns.
-
-The ground to which the struggle was now confined was hilly and
-covered with thick brushwood, sloping towards the harbour, the
-ships in which, moored so as to command the English lines, poured
-a destructive fire into our ranks. The brigade of Guards, forced
-by the enormous odds to quit the Two-gun Battery, after such a
-terrific contest, were now engaged in hand-to-hand conflict with
-nearly ten times their number of the enemy. It was impossible,
-from the fierceness of the contest and the nature of the ground,
-to preserve military order. The battle was a series of detached
-groups, sometimes a few dauntless Guardsmen, bareheaded and back
-to back, disputing every inch of ground, and with their bayonets
-inflicting terrible execution on the enemy; sometimes a young
-officer, rallying a few of his men around him, dashing with a
-ringing cheer at a phalanx of the foe, and as their dense mass was
-broken by the impetuosity of the attack, falling pierced by a dozen
-bullets, with his last breath cheering on his men to the charge.
-So fell Lieut.-Colonels Mackinnon and Cowell; so fell Sir Robert
-Newman; and so fell many another brave soldier and good man. The
-Duke of Cambridge, affected almost to tears by the sight of so many
-lying in their blood, was everywhere in the thick of the fight,
-urging on his men, and setting them an example of the most daring
-courage. Almost alone, he dashed into the _mêlée_, amid a shower
-of bullets from the Russian rifles. Once he had nearly fallen a
-victim to his own enthusiasm and contempt of danger. Conspicuous
-by his uniform and fine person, he presented a prominent mark for
-the aim of the ambushed enemy. Reckless of the danger, he disdained
-even ordinary precautions. In this emergency, Dr. Wilson, anxious
-to lend his professional services to the wounded, saw the peril of
-the Duke, and collecting a handful of men, dispersed the enemy’s
-riflemen, and rescued the too daring leader. Nothing could exceed
-the deadly nature of the combat. The Guards fought as only men can
-fight, when utterly desperate. There seemed but small probability
-that one of that noble brigade would leave the ground unhurt. The
-Russians, strong in their numbers, inspirited by intoxication and
-fanaticism, poured their legions in vain against the resistance
-of such unquenchable heroism. Heaps of dead covered the ground,
-and the assassin Muscovites, unable to subdue the living, wreaked
-a miserable vengeance on the fallen, bayonetting and madly
-disfiguring with their clubbed muskets every prostrate antagonist.
-When the battle was over, many a brave fellow, who had fallen
-wounded, was found an unrecognisable mass of mangled flesh and
-blood. Rendered nearly mad by the sight of such devilish atrocity,
-the survivors redoubled their almost surpernatural efforts,
-and though pressed on every side, maintained the struggle with
-unfailing valour, still the same invincible Guardsmen, so terrible
-at Alma, so heroic at the fight for the Two-gun Battery.
-
-The Light Division meanwhile maintained its reputation in the
-vigorous struggle in which they were now engaged. Sir George Brown,
-their General, was severely wounded, and borne from the field,
-his white hair streaming in the wind, and his face deadly pale,
-from the acuteness of his suffering. A five-gun battery, under the
-direction of Sir Thomas Troubridge, Major of the 7th Fusiliers, did
-good service against the advancing columns of the enemy; but the
-brave fellows who manned it suffered terribly from the fire from
-the batteries of the town. Sir Thomas himself had his right leg
-and left foot carried away by a thirty-nine pounder from the Round
-Tower, or Malakoff. Notwithstanding the severity of the injury, and
-the excruciating agony he must have endured, he refused to permit
-his men to carry him to the rear; but ordered them to lift him
-to a gun-carriage, whence, streaming with blood, he continued to
-give the word of command, nor quitted his post till the enemy were
-routed.
-
-Seeing the desperate nature of the contest, Sir George Cathcart
-conceived the idea that by descending the side of the hill, he
-might take the enemy in flank, and so relieve the Guards from
-the unequal struggle in which they were engaged. He despatched
-General Torrens, with portions of the 46th and 68th regiments on
-this duty. They advanced rapidly, but from either hand rained the
-bullets of the Russian riflemen, concealed in the brushwood. The
-horse of General Torrens fell pierced by five bullets, and on every
-side, the number who were struck down attested the severity of the
-fire to which they were exposed. Torrens himself received a ball
-through his lungs, and was carried senseless from the field. Sir
-George Cathcart, seeing the fierce opposition which his brigade
-sustained, immediately dashed forward with the remainder of his
-men, and fearlessly charged the enemy. Too late he saw the error
-into which he had been led. He was perfectly surrounded by the
-enemy, who held the high ground commanding the valley into which
-he had led his brigade, in the hopes of making a vigorous flank
-attack. For some time, his little band returned sharp volleys to
-the enemy’s rifles. Then a cry was raised that their cartridges
-were exhausted. There was no retreat, and the fierce fire poured
-like hail into their ranks. “You have got your bayonets!” shouted
-their dauntless leader, and dashed forwards followed by his men. As
-he raised himself in his stirrups, a bullet pierced his brain, and
-the heroic Cathcart, the subduer of the Cape savages, fell headlong
-from his horse, quite dead. By his side fell Colonel Seymour,
-Adjutant-General of the Fourth Division, sharing his leader’s fate.
-He was wounded before Sir George, but concealed his hurt. When the
-General fell, Colonel Seymour dismounted to render him assistance.
-The brigade had swept on, unable to pause in their career, and then
-the enemy rushing on the wounded Seymour cruelly murdered him,
-as he stooped over the body of his friend, and consummated their
-infamy by basely stabbing with their bayonets the insensible body
-of the noble Cathcart.
-
-It was now eleven o’clock, and it seemed impossible that the
-English could much longer withstand the terrible assault. They were
-driven back exhausted by the long struggle; hundreds of their best
-and bravest had fallen heroically; and the enemy was still pouring
-fresh legions into the fray. The fog and drizzling rain obscured
-the scene of action, so that it was impossible for the Generals
-to concert a scheme of operations, or even to know accurately
-the state of affairs: it was rather a series of battles than one
-action. Lord Raglan and his staff were eagerly watching the fray,
-but unable to control the movements of the troops. Nothing could
-save the entire army but the self-devotion and valour of the men:
-tactics were unavailable, and generalship useless. Now, however,
-came the crisis of the struggle. General Bosquet had by this time
-discovered that the threatened attack on Balaklava was but a feint;
-and warned by the thunder of cannon and the roll of musketry of
-the real point of attack, hastened to, the rescue. Two troops of
-horse-artillery were speedily despatched, and took up a position
-whence they could effectively play upon the Russian guns. Hastening
-to the spot, with his dashing regiments of Zouaves and Chasseurs
-Indigènes, he precipitated himself upon the left flank of the
-Russian hordes. General Canrobert, too, at the same time, ordered
-up several French regiments of the line to the assistance of the
-English Second Division, on the left.
-
-Wearied, wounded, and almost disheartened, the English heroes
-were gradually giving ground to the foe, when their ears caught,
-above the din of battle, the rapid tread and loud shouts of
-advancing troops, and perceived through the mist the forms of
-massive columns, moving at a rapid pace, whether friends or foes
-they scarcely knew. In a few moments, a joyous “Hurrah!” rang from
-the broken lines, and a mighty cheer was echoed through the fog:
-then they knew the French were there to help them. A new life
-seemed to animate them; no longer they retreated, but summoning
-up the last flashes of their failing fire, charged the foe anew.
-The Russians, staggered by the fresh assault, surprised by the
-sudden appearance of the warriors of Africa, hesitated and gave
-way. Then, uniting their ranks, the English and the French, with
-mingled shouts, loud “Hurrahs!” and “Vive l’Empereur!” dashed into
-the paralyzed columns, and drove the bayonets home through many a
-Russian breast. The Zouaves leaped through the tangled brushwood,
-and, with wondrous activity, scattered the confused and retreating
-battalions. Then came the tremendous fire from the ships in the
-harbour, and the guns from the heights, which almost swept them
-from the field, and forced them for a brief space to pause in their
-career. It was but for an instant. Renewing their charge, English
-and French once more dashed at the flying foe, and at the bayonet’s
-point, with fearful slaughter, drove them, a disorderly mob, down
-the hill-side.
-
-The moment had now come when Lord Raglan could effectively exhibit
-his generalship: for hours he had sat in his saddle, in a most
-exposed situation, unable to control the fluctuating fortunes of
-the day. Under his direction, General Strangways had opened a
-heavy fire of artillery upon the Russian guns upon the opposite
-hills, with the hope of silencing their fatal volleys. This was
-all he had been enabled to perform for the succour of the troops
-engaged. Many fell around him, but the brave old General refused
-to move from his exposed situation, anxious for the time to arrive
-when he might be enabled so to manœuvre his forces as to drive
-back the enemy. General Strangways was within a short distance of
-the Commander-in-Chief, when a shot, which had actually passed
-between the legs of Lord Raglan’s horse, shattered his leg,
-and he fell to the ground. He was borne carefully to the rear,
-where, in a few moments, the gallant old man, who had survived
-the dangers of Leipzig, and a fearful wound at Waterloo, breathed
-his last; meeting his fate with a calm heroism that affected to
-tears many a brave man fresh from the honours of that sanguinary
-field. The Russians had left on the field two 18-pounder guns,
-and Lord Raglan now ordered them to be brought up to the front.
-Colonel Dickson had already anticipated the order, and the guns
-had been dragged by main strength to the fitting position on a
-ridge front of the Second Division. Assisted by Captain D’Aguilar,
-a well-aimed fire was poured into the Russian batteries; the guns
-were overthrown, the gunners killed, and the fire for an instant
-quelled; but the fertility of the enemy’s resources did not fail
-them even now: fresh gunners supplied the places of those struck
-down by the English fire, and the deadly duel was resumed. Then
-came the retreating infantry--a headlong mass, and the fiery
-Zouaves and reanimated British in hot pursuit. Three times were the
-artillerymen swept away from their guns; as many times their places
-were supplied. Then, under cover of fierce volleys from the town
-and ships, they succeeded in carrying off their guns. The French
-batteries now advanced to the crown of the ridge, and opened fire
-on the retreating masses, flying pell-mell towards the heights.
-Hundreds fell beneath the deadly volleys--the thunders of the
-death-dealing artillery drowned alike the shrieks and groans of the
-wounded and the triumphant shouts of the victors, and the battle of
-Inkermann was won!
-
-About 8000 English and 6000 French had thus utterly defeated more
-than 50,000 of the enemy, with the disadvantage of being taken by
-surprise. The English were enfeebled by sickness, imperfectly fed,
-and inadequately provided with necessary equipments and ammunition.
-The Russians were mostly fresh troops, prepared for the attack,
-and supported by the tremendous batteries of the town and ships.
-It is to the French unquestionably that we were indebted for the
-victory: no human courage could much longer have withstood such
-disproportionate odds. The gallant Bosquet, by his promptitude and
-the dashing valour of his African soldiers, saved not only the
-fortunes of the day, but the very existence of the English army.
-Our loss was 462 killed, including 43 officers, 1952 wounded, and
-198 missing; giving a total of 2612 casualties. Three generals
-were killed--Cathcart, Goldie, and Strangways; and three--Brown,
-Torrens, and Bentinck--were wounded. If we reckon that only about
-8000 were engaged, these numbers show that nearly every third man
-was killed, wounded, or fell into the hands of the enemy. The
-Russians admit a loss of 2969 killed, of whom 42 were officers; and
-5791 wounded, including 206 officers; giving a total loss of 8760.
-There can be no rational doubt that their real loss was nearly
-double, and the number of Russians killed or wounded was at the
-least equal to the entire English and French forces engaged in the
-battle. Our brigade of Guards alone lost twelve officers killed on
-the field, besides many wounded. Truly the daring courage of the
-English gentleman has not deteriorated in these latter days! The
-chivalric valour which placed the officers in the very front of
-danger was nobly seconded by the unquenchable spirit of the men
-whom they led; they were mostly fasting, when they hurried to the
-scene of conflict, and for ten long hours were engaged in one of
-the deadliest struggles the military historian has ever recorded.
-Some were sick, all were gaunt and emaciated. It was Agincourt
-once more. The starved legions met and overthrew five times their
-number. Such was the bloody battle of Inkermann!”
-
-
-IPSUS, BATTLE OF.--Fought B.C. 301. Between Seleucus and Antigonus,
-King of Asia. On the side of Antigonus was his son, whilst Ptolemy,
-Lysimachus and Cassander were ranged on the side of Seleucus. The
-army of Seleucus consisted of 70,000 foot, and 10,000 cavalry,
-with 75 elephants. The other army amounted to 64,000 infantry, and
-10,500 horse, with 600 elephants and 120 chariots. Antigonus and
-his son were signally defeated.
-
-
-IRUN, BATTLE OF.--Between the British auxiliary legion, under
-General Evans, and the Carlist forces. It was fought, May 17th,
-1837. On the 16th, the legion marched from St. Sebastian to attack
-Irun, which, after a desperate resistance, they carried by assault.
-Great exertions were made by the British officers to save the lives
-of the prisoners from the fury of the soldiers of the legion, their
-minds having been exasperated by the frequent massacre of such of
-their comrades as had from time to time fallen into the hands of
-the enemy. The town was pillaged.
-
-
-ISLE-AUX-NOIX.--_In the Richelieu River, Lower Canada._--Commands
-the entrance to Lake Champlain. Fortified by the French, in 1759.
-Captured by the English, in 1760. Taken by the Americans, in 1775
-(from which place they issued their proclamation to the Canadians).
-It rendered important service in the war of 1812-1814.
-
-
-ISLE OF FRANCE.--Taken, with six French frigates, and many
-Indiamen, by the British from the French, December 2nd, 1810. The
-British retain possession of it, and it is now a freed colony.
-
-
-ISMAEL, SIEGE OF.--_In Bessarabia._--After a long siege by the
-Russians, who lost 20,000 men before the place, the town was
-taken by storm, December 22nd, 1790, when the Russian General,
-Suwarrow, the bloodiest and most merciless warrior of modern times,
-put the brave Turkish garrison, consisting of 30,000 men, to the
-sword--every man was butchered. Not satisfied with this vengeance,
-the General ordered the town to be pillaged by his ferocious
-soldiery, and 6000 women were murdered in cold blood.
-
-
-ISSUS, BATTLE OF.--Alexander the Great completely defeated Darius
-in this battle, fought B.C. 333. The Persian army, according to
-Justin, amounted to 400,000 foot and 100,000 horse, of which 61,000
-foot and 10,000 cavalry were left dead on the field, and 40,000
-were taken prisoners. The Macedonians lost only 300 foot and 150
-horse, according to Diodorus Siculus.
-
-
-
-
-J.
-
-
-JAFFA.--Celebrated in Scripture as Joppa. Taken by Napoleon, in
-February, 1799. The French driven out by the British, in June,
-the same year. Here, according to the account of Sir Robert
-Wilson, Napoleon massacred 3800 Arab prisoners of war; but this is
-reasonably doubted.
-
-
-JANVILLIERS, BATTLE OF.--Between the French and Prussians, which,
-after a severe engagement, Blucher, who commanded the latter army,
-was driven back to Chalons with considerable loss. Fought, February
-14th, 1814.
-
-
-JARNAC, BATTLE OF.--The Duke of Anjou, afterwards Henry III of
-France, defeated the Huguenots, under Louis, Prince of Condé,
-who was killed in cold blood by Montesquieu. The victor was but
-seventeen years of age, and on account of his successes and his
-triumph at Moncontour, the Poles chose him for their king; he had
-his arm in a sling, and a moment before the battle, his leg was
-broken by a kick from a horse. Fought, March 13th, 1569.
-
-
-JAVA.--This island capitulated to the British, August 8th, 1811.
-The sultan dethroned by the English and the hereditary Prince
-raised to the throne, June, 1813. Restored to Holland, in 1814.
-
-
-JEMMAPPES, BATTLE OF.--This was one of the most obstinate and
-hard-fought battles in modern times; 40,000 French troops forced
-28,000 Austrians, who were entrenched in woods and mountains,
-defended by forty redoubts and an immense number of cannon. The
-revolutionary general Dumouriez, was the victor in this battle,
-which lasted four days. According to the most authentic accounts,
-the loss on the Austrian side was 10,000 men killed, and that of
-the French 12,000. Fought, November 5th, 1792.
-
-
-JENNA, BATTLE OF.--One of the most bloody battles fought in the
-Napoleon wars, between the French and Prussian armies; the former
-commanded by Napoleon--the latter by the Prussian King. The latter
-was signally defeated with the loss of 30,000 slain, and 30,000
-taken prisoners, and 200 field pieces taken. After this Napoleon
-advanced to Berlin, October 14th, 1806.
-
-
-JERUSALEM.--Taken by the Israelites B.C. 1048, and by
-Nebuchadnezzar B.C. 587. Razed to the ground by Titus A.D. 70,
-after one of the most awful as well as remarkable sieges recorded
-in history and predicted by our Blessed Lord. More than 1,100,000
-Jews perished on this occasion. Rebuilt by Adrian A.D. 130.
-Taken by the Persians in 614; by the Saracens in 636; and by the
-Crusaders in 1099, when 70,000 infidels were put to the sword. A
-new kingdom was then founded, and lasted eighty-eight years. Again
-taken from the Christians by Saladin, in 1187, and by the Turks in
-1217. Lastly taken by Bonaparte, in February, 1799.
-
-
-JUGURTHA, THE WAR WITH.--A memorable war, of which the Roman
-historian, Sallust, has written an account, commenced B.C. 111, and
-continued five years. Metellus was first sent against him, then
-Sylla and Marius--the latter of whom took him prisoner, and at last
-he died in prison, at Rome.
-
-
-
-
-K.
-
-
-KAFFIR WAR.--There was an invasion of the Kaffirs, or Caffres, in
-the vicinity of Grahamstown, Cape of Good Hope, in October, 1831.
-The invaders fell upon the settlers, murdered them, burnt their
-houses, destroyed their crops, and carried off their cattle; this
-irruption was eventually suppressed by the colonial authorities.
-Other, but slighter annoyances to the colonists took place
-occasionally, up to December, 1850, when Sir Harry Smith, the then
-Governor, proclaimed martial law, and ordered the colonists to
-rise _en masse_ for the defence of the frontier; the Kaffirs had
-previously defeated the British troops, and had committed many
-murderous forays on the villages. Then followed several disastrous
-operations in the Water Kloof, and Colonel Fordyce and several
-officers and men of the 74th Regiment were killed, November 6th,
-1847. Captain Oldham, and others, had just before this fallen into
-an ambuscade and been killed. The wreck of the _Birkenhead_ with
-re-enforcements from England, took place February 26th, 1852.
-General Cathcart, at last, on the 20th December, 1852, attacked
-them with 2000 British troops at Berea, where they numbered 6000
-cavalry. In this action Captain Tanner and 38 men were killed,
-and two other officers and 15 men wounded. The Kaffirs suffered
-severely, and at last were obliged to sue for peace.
-
-
-KALITSCH, BATTLE OF.--Fought, February 13th, 1813, between the
-Saxons, under the French General Regnier, and the Russians under
-Winzingerode. An obstinate engagement in which the French were
-defeated, with the loss of 2000 killed and some thousands taken
-prisoners.
-
-
-KALUNGA, FORT.--_In the East Indies._--Unsuccessfully attacked by
-the East India Company’s forces, and General Gillespie killed,
-October 31st, 1814. Again unsuccessfully attacked, November 25th,
-following, and evacuated by the Nepaulese on the 30th November,
-1814.
-
-
-KARS, THE BATTLE OF THE HEIGHTS OF.--“On the 29th September,
-1855, about 3.30 A.M., the Russians were seen advancing up the
-Shorak valley in dense masses, but in what order could not then,
-on account of the darkness, be ascertained. Our troops were in
-a moment under arms, and at their posts. General Kmety, with
-one battalion of infantry and seven companies of chasseurs,
-was stationed in Sheshanegee Tabia; Major Teesdale, with one
-battalion of infantry, in Yuksek Tabia; and Hussein Pacha, with
-the Arabistan Corps, in Tahmasb Tabia, where he was soon joined by
-Kerim Pacha, the second in command of the army. Bashi-bazouks were
-also dispersed throughout the different works, and the Laz held a
-small work called Yarem Ai Tabia, in front of Yuksek Tabia. General
-Kmety was the first to open fire with round-shot on the advancing
-battalions of the enemy; he was immediately answered by two guns
-placed in position on a height forming the north-west boundary of
-the Shorak valley. In a few minutes the whole visible force of the
-Russians charged up the hill with loud cries; they were received
-with a terrific fire of grape and musketry, which mowed down whole
-ranks at every volley. General Kmety’s position was attacked by
-eight battalions of the enemy; they advanced very gallantly to
-within five paces of the work, when so heavy a fire was opened on
-the head of the column that the whole corps wavered, halted, then
-turned, and fled down the hill in the greatest confusion, leaving
-850 dead. They did not renew the attack there.
-
-Tahmasb Tabia bore the brunt of the battle; about 16 battalions,
-with many guns, were brought up against it, but its garrison
-was undaunted, and for a long time the Russians could not even
-get possession of the breast-work forming the left wing of that
-battery; but, at length, an overwhelming force obliged the Turks to
-retire within the redoubt. A scene of carnage now ensued perfectly
-terrible to behold. As the Russians came over the brow of the hill
-within the breastwork, to take the battery in rear, Tchim and Tek
-Tabias and Fort Lake opened on them with 24-pound shot, which tore
-through their ranks, but they did not seem to heed this. They
-charged Tahmasb Tabia, which was one sheet of fire, over and over
-again, and so resolute were their assaults that many of the Russian
-officers were killed in the battery, but they could not succeed in
-carrying it.
-
-General Kmety, after having repulsed the Russians, went forward
-with four companies of chasseurs to Yuksek Tabia, which was
-sorely pressed. Major Teesdale pointed out a battalion of Russian
-chasseurs which lay hidden behind Yarem Ai Tabia (this work having
-been abandoned by the Laz at the commencement of the battle), and
-begged that they might be dislodged. The General at once determined
-to carry the battery; so, forming up his men, he charged and drove
-the Russians down the hill; leaving a company to defend the work,
-he returned to Yuksek Tabia, from whence perceiving a battalion
-of the enemy trying to turn the right wing of Tahmasb Tabia, he
-reinforced his corps with three companies from Major Teesdale,
-and charged the Russians; here, too, he was successful. In the
-meantime reinforcements were sent up from below; these formed
-behind the tents of the reserve, and watched their opportunity in
-attacking the Russian columns, when driven back from an assault
-on the batteries. For seven hours this went on; reserve after
-reserve of the enemy was brought forward, but only to meet death.
-Nothing could shake the firmness of our troops, till at length the
-Russians, wearied and dispirited, at eleven A.M., turned and fled
-down the hills in a confused mass, not one single company keeping
-its ranks. The army was followed in its flight by the townspeople
-and Bashi-bazouks, who brought down hundreds as they fled. While
-the infantry were engaged in this conflict, the Cossacks tried to
-penetrate into the tents of the reserve, but they were soon driven
-back by the townspeople and infantry reserves with heavy loss.
-
-One battalion of Russian infantry attempted to march round the
-position, and take a small battery situated in a commanding
-position on the road leading to a village called Tchakmak. It
-commenced its march in splendid order, but ere it went 600 yards
-it was broken and in great disorder, and so terrified, that
-fifty or sixty of our chasseurs drove the broken mass down the
-Tchakmak valley like a flock of sheep. The cause of the terror
-was the terrible fire opened upon it by Yuksek Tabia, the guns of
-Sheshanegee Tabia and Fort Lake.
-
-A column of eight battalions, with 16 guns and three regiments of
-cavalry, attacked the English lines at half-past five A.M. This
-line of fortification was at the time very weakly garrisoned; the
-breastwork was carried in a few minutes, the batteries Teesdale,
-Thompson, and Zohrah, successively fell into the enemy’s hands,
-and the men who formed their garrisons retired into Williams Pacha
-Tabia. The Russians then brought up their artillery into position
-in front of Zohrab Tabia, and began firing upon Fort Lake and
-shelling the town, but Fort Lake (under the able superintendence of
-the gallant officer whose name it bears), Arab Tabia, and Karadagh,
-opened so heavy a fire on them with 24 pounders, that they were
-compelled to withdraw their artillery altogether. The Russian
-infantry then charged Williams Pacha Tabia, but were repulsed by
-a flanking fire from Fort Lake and a severe fire of musketry from
-the defenders of the battery attacked. They retired into Zohrab
-Tabia, re-formed, and again assaulted; a body of their chasseurs
-was at the same time sent forward to within 500 yards of Fort Lake,
-to take a small open work called Churchill Tabia, which was doing
-the enemy without the lines much harm. This was occupied by two
-companies of our chasseurs: they turned to receive the attack of
-the enemy; and, after retiring a short distance halted, and kept
-the Russians at bay. While this was going on, Captain Thompson, who
-had charge of the batteries of Karadagh and Arab Tabia, sent over
-the 5th regiment of infantry from Arab Tabia to retake the English
-Tabias of Teesdale and Thompson, and from below two battalions of
-the 2nd regiment came up to recapture Zohrab Tabia. The forces
-commenced the attack together from each end of the line, and drove
-the Russians out of the forts and breastworks at the point of the
-bayonet. Once out of the lines, they did not attempt to retake
-them. Unfortunately the enemy had time, while in possession of the
-batteries, to take away five guns, and to spike three, but they
-abandoned three of the captured guns at a short distance from the
-redoubts, so that we only lost two. As the enemy retreated our long
-guns again played on their columns, and they retired as speedily as
-possible.
-
-Some cavalry attempted to engage the battery above the village of
-Tchakmak, but again the terrible guns of Fort Lake drove them off.
-By 10.30 A.M. the English Tabias were silent.
-
-Such was the dreadful battle of “The Heights of Kars.” This is but
-a very lame account of the glorious fight. I have not the time to
-enter into greater details, but it will give an idea of what our
-men did and had to endure. The forces of the enemy exceeded 30,000,
-while ours, engaged, were below 8000. Not one of our men had
-tasted anything since the previous afternoon; hungry and thirsty,
-they remained undaunted, and repulsed column after column of the
-Russians; at last their heroism was rewarded with perhaps the most
-brilliant victory that has been gained during this war.
-
-The field of battle was a sight too horrible ever to be forgotten
-by me; the dead lay in vast heaps in every direction around the
-forts--the ditches were full of mutilated bodies--the tents were
-torn to rags--arms, clothes, broken ammunition-boxes lay strewed
-about. Upwards of 6000 Russians fell, and more than 4000 muskets
-have been collected, and 150 prisoners taken. The total loss to
-the enemy in killed and wounded must have been very near, if not
-more than, 15,000. Several Generals were killed or wounded; amongst
-the former, reports say, General Breumer, the second in command;
-and General Baklanoff, who commanded the attack on Canly Tabia on
-the 7th of last August. Thousands of carts have been sent to Gumri
-(Alexandropoli) with wounded.
-
-Our list of casualties is but small, about 1000 in killed and
-wounded. Dr. Sandwith, the Inspector of Hospitals, had made his
-arrangements, and, thanks to his abilities, the hospitals are in
-good order.
-
-For this great victory, Turkey has to thank General Williams;
-during the past four months his exertions to get things into order
-have been astonishing; night and day he has laboured. He has had
-many and great obstacles to overcome, but nothing could break his
-energy. On the memorable 29th he directed the movements of the
-troops; the reinforcements always reached their appointed position
-in time. The great results of the day prove how well his operations
-were conceived.
-
-The loss inflicted on the enemy fully shows how well the positions
-of the redoubts were chosen by Colonel Lake. All the batteries
-flanked each other, and the Russians were unable to bring up guns
-to command any of our positions. The troops kiss the batteries, and
-say that the Miralai Bey (Colonel) was “Chok akill” (very wise)
-when he made them work.
-
-Captain Thompson aided greatly in recapturing the English lines. He
-directed, by order, the guns of Arab Tabia and Karadagh, and sent
-the troops over to attack the Russians.
-
-Major Teesdale was in the hottest fire, and acted with great
-coolness and bravery. He is the admiration of the Turks. He showed
-them how English officers behave in battle.
-
-All the Turkish officers did their duty nobly. Kerim Pacha was
-slightly wounded, and had two horses killed under him; Hussein
-Pacha was hit; two Colonels, and many other officers, were killed.”
-
-Another account thus graphically describes the fall of Kars:--
-
-“Omer Pacha, gradually overcoming the difficulties of that
-deficiency in transports found himself at the head of about 15,000
-troops in Abasia, a good many of these being his own trustworthy
-veterans. He had gradually edged them down towards redoubt Kaleh,
-which he fixed on as his basis of operations. On the 30th Shemserai
-was secured, and, having driven in the Russian outposts from
-Sogdidi and endeavoured to open relations with Schamyl, while
-conciliating the Princess Dalian and the Christian population
-in his own neighbourhood, he moved inland in a south-eastern
-direction. But, owing to the difficulties of the country, which
-is an entanglement of woods interspersed with very rich but
-neglected farm lands, and owing still more to the precariousness
-and uncertainty of any supplies from the inhabitants, his progress
-was extremely slow. He did all that lay in his power, purchasing
-provisions in every direction, and organizing, as his principal
-resource, a regular commissariat at Redoubt Kaleh. The river
-Phasis, which flows from the Caucasus to the Euxine, is navigable
-for nearly a hundred miles from the sea; and he had hoped to have
-availed himself of this channel for important manœuvres. His plan
-was this:--The first strong Russian post was at Kutais, where the
-great high road--by Gori, into Georgia, and down to Tiflis--would
-take his advancing columns over the celebrated Soorem Pass. Once
-master of Kutais, and with his communications well secured upon
-the Black Sea along his rear line, he hoped either to be able to
-defeat all the local Russian garrisons and posts between Soorem
-and the capital of the fertile province lying beyond and below
-it, or else to recall by the terror of his progress the army of
-General Mouravieff, then menacing Armenia, and beleaguering Kars.
-In either case a great blow would be struck, and the hard-pressed
-troops of General Williams relieved. Then, should it even prove too
-late to advance permanently that year beyond Mingrelia, he could
-at least strengthen himself in Kutais, make it his new centre for
-future operations, and call up, meantime, additional forces for
-the campaign of spring. General Mouravieff would then be pressed
-from the side of Armenia, where he was now acting offensively, and
-from the side of Imeretia, on which he would be thrown also upon
-the defensive. But it was already too late; and the Russian chief
-knew it. Well informed of the true state of the Kars garrison, he
-never disquieted himself, or in the slightest altered his plans, in
-consequence of Omer Pacha’s diversion. Should the Muchir even beat
-the militia which now guarded the northern gorges of Georgia, he
-felt sure that it would all come to the same result. The season,
-the floods, scarcity, would compel the victor to retreat; much more
-would such become his necessity if, in the interim, he, General
-Mouravieff, should succeed in reducing Kars, and, while thus
-liberating his own army for an encounter with the Ottoman, should
-rob the latter of the chief motive which prompted this venturous
-advance by depriving it of its character _as a diversion_. Indeed,
-in such a contingency, the further Omer might have penetrated, the
-worse, perhaps, would be his situation; since General Mouravieff,
-by not returning directly towards Tiflis (which would be rather
-better able than Kars had been to stand a siege in its turn and to
-hold any assailant in play), but by moving diagonally, north-east
-by north, along the excellent Russian line from Alexandropol to
-Akhazik, would himself take Omer Pacha in flank and rear, shatter
-his line of communication, overwhelm his detached supports, and cut
-him off from the sea.
-
-For these reasons, General Mouravieff tranquilly and steadily
-persisted in the blockade of Kars; and never for a moment showed
-any inclination to turn aside to face the Turkish invader. A
-month and seven days had now elapsed since the assault on Kars
-was repulsed so gloriously, when Omer Pacha at length brought
-his labouring columns through the miry woodlands as far as the
-Ingour. There he saw, for the first time, a regular stand prepared
-by the enemy, about 12,000 strong, intrenched on the opposite
-bank, and commanding the passage by batteries. They were chiefly
-the Russian militia of Georgia and were under the command of
-General Bragation-Makrausky. The Turks had some 20,000 men. The
-stream was barely fordable in half-a-dozen places, by which the
-enemy’s intrenchments could be turned. The Turks passed it, up
-to their armpits in water, holding their muskets aloft; our
-countrymen--Colonel Ballard, Captain Dymsck, and others--showing
-a splendid example worthy of English officers. The engagement
-lasted five hours, when the Russians fled, leaving behind them 60
-prisoners, five gun-carriages and ammunition carts, and 400 killed.
-They appear to have carried off their wounded. Omer Pacha had 220
-wounded and 68 killed. Pressing on the track of the fugitives
-he came up with them before the end of November, within sight
-of Kutais, and obtained another advantage. But the floods had
-come; the Phasis had assumed the dimensions of a torrent; great
-forest trees were swept down the stream as if they were reeds--now
-engulfed out of sight in the eddies, now reappearing on the surface
-for a moment as they were borne away; the roads were impassable
-to artillery, and almost to infantry; the whole country was
-transformed into an alternation of morass and lagoon; a day’s march
-was the work of a week; the troops were broken up and islanded,
-as it were, into helpless detachments; the commissariat could not
-act; the supplies arrived with greater irregularity, incertitude,
-and insufficiency from day to day; the whole army was suffering
-incredible hardships and privations; it was threatened with
-annihilation unless a retrograde movement were promptly made; and,
-finally, came the news Kars had succumbed at last. The conquerors,
-therefore, retired, unpursued, and gradually straggled back to
-Redoubt Kaleh, where Omer Pacha soon succeeded in restoring their
-tone and refreshing their energies.
-
-So ended the war of 1855 with Russia; for this was really its
-last incident, General Mouravieff having already dismantled the
-fortifications of Kars, and withdrawn the bulk of his forces to
-Gumri. It was on the 28th of November that General Williams at
-last surrendered to him the stubborn Armenian fortress. The heroic
-garrison had long been macerated by the failure of rations and by
-disease. Even their ammunition was expended. In another assault on
-the day of their surrender they would have had no means of firing
-half-a-dozen rounds from their guns, and they were completely past
-the power of personal resistance as a body, being unable to wield
-their weapons, and hardly able to stand erect. They had borne
-literally the fiercest extremities of famine. They were now a corps
-of spectres, with scarcely the strength to speak. Yet these men
-had furnished indiscriminately the sentinels who had mounted guard
-over the little pile of half-rotten farina which was to be doled
-out in a biscuit a day for each; and the trusty sentries never
-touched the food which was the sole remaining common stock. Under
-such circumstances it was that General Williams rode out with a
-flag of truce, and told Prince Mouravieff that he would surrender
-Kars provided all the courtesies and honours of war were conceded
-to the garrison. General Kmety and some few attendants had tried a
-different expedient--they stole out and cut their way through the
-leaguer on the only serviceable horses left.
-
-Mouravieff listened with attention to General Williams, who
-threatened, if his various stipulations were not granted, to burst
-every gun and destroy every military trophy still extant in Kars.
-The Russian chief replied with chivalrous warmth and visible
-emotion as he looked at the emaciated hero, that all was granted,
-and that he was proud as an enemy to testify that General Williams
-and those under him had immortalised themselves. Nothing, in short,
-could surpass the nobility of sentiment displayed (both then and in
-the subsequent treatment of the prisoners) by Prince Mouravieff and
-the Russian army.”
-
-
-KERTCH.--An expedition undertaken against this place during the
-late Russian war was completely successful. “Notwithstanding the
-recall of the expedition to Kertch in the early part of the month,
-the Allied Generals were resolved to carry out the project of a
-descent upon that part of the coast; and, on the 22nd of May,
-another expedition departed: the English force under Sir George
-Brown, and the French under General D’Autemarre. The two Admirals,
-Sir Edmund Lyons and Bruat, accompanied the land forces. The troops
-engaged numbered 15,000, with five batteries of artillery. It
-was apprehended that a serious resistance would probably be made
-at Kertch, and that the fleets would have difficulty in forcing
-the straits into the Sea of Azov, if they were exposed to the
-fire of the powerful batteries of Kertch and Yenikale. In order,
-then, that the town might be attacked from the land side, Sir
-George Brown landed his force at Kamiesch Bournu, a few miles to
-the south of Kertch, and advanced overland. The enemy, however,
-had no intention of risking a contest, and evacuated the town,
-destroying the magazines, and blowing up the fortifications. When
-the troops entered Kertch, they found it deserted by nearly all the
-inhabitants; and the ships in the straits hurredly endeavouring to
-escape into the Sea of Azov. In this attempt they were frustrated
-by the activity of the allied fleets; and the Admirals, finding
-the depth of water more than they had anticipated, started in full
-pursuit, capturing and burning every vessel they could approach.
-Yenikale was, like Kertch, deserted by its garrison; and in a few
-hours the Allies were in undisturbed and bloodless possession of
-the two towns commanding the outlet of the Sea of Azov, and the
-fleets were in full chase of the Russian navy in those waters.”
-
-
-KIEL, TREATY OF.--Between Great Britain, Sweden and Denmark, signed
-January 14th, 1814.
-
-
-KILCULLEN, BATTLE OF.--Fought May 23rd, 1798, between a vast
-body of insurgent Irish and the British forces, commanded by
-General Dundas. The latter were defeated. General Dundas, however,
-subsequently beat the rebels near Kilcullen bridge, when 3000 were
-slain, and hundreds wounded and taken prisoners.
-
-
-KILDARE.--The great rebellion commenced here in May 23rd, 1798. On
-that night Lieutenant Gifford, of Dublin, and a number of gentlemen
-were murdered. Quelled in the following year.
-
-
-KILLALA.--A French force landed here, August 22nd, 1798. They were
-joined by the Irish insurgents, and the actions of Castlebar,
-Colooney and Ballyhannack followed. At the battle of Killala the
-insurgents were defeated with great slaughter, by the Royalist
-forces, September 23rd, 1798.
-
-
-KILLIECRANKIE, BATTLE OF.--Fought July 17th, 1689, between the
-forces of William III and the adherents of James II. “General
-Mackay, the officer sent against Claverhouse, had about 3000 foot
-and some companies of horse under his command. But they were mostly
-all raw recruits, and entire strangers to the Highland way of
-fighting. At the head of the wild and gloomy pass of Killiecrankie,
-Mackay found himself in front of the rebels. He drew up his men,
-three deep, along the side of the narrow valley into which the
-pass opens. The Highlanders occupied the hill on the north side
-of the valley. At this time, the bayonet screwed into the muzzle
-of the musket, so that troops could not fire with bayonets fixed.
-The Highlanders, in dense masses broke down from the hill. Firing
-their guns once, they dropped them, and then with target on the
-left arm, and flashing broadsword they rushed, wildly yelling, on
-the enemy. Mackay’s troops fired a volley, which did little harm to
-the loose array of their leaping, bounding foes, and before they
-could screw in their bayonets, the Highlanders were among them. An
-empty musket without a bayonet could do little against the sweeping
-broadsword. A panic seized Mackay’s raw levies, and they broke and
-fled, pursued and cut down by the savage Highlanders.
-
-Claverhouse never knew that he had won a victory. He fell at the
-beginning of the action, pierced by a musket ball which entered
-beneath his arm. When one in a pack of hungry wolves is killed, the
-rest turn upon him and eat him up. Claverhouse’s own men, true to
-their savage instinct of plunder, stripped his body, and left it
-naked upon the field, where it was with difficulty distinguished
-from the other bodies of the fallen!”
-
-
-KOLIN, OR KOLLIN, BATTLE OF.--In this engagement the famous
-Austrian General Daun, gained a celebrated victory over Frederick
-the Great of Prussia, June 18th, 1757. Next year he obliged the
-Prussians to raise the siege of Olmutz and to retreat to Moravia.
-
-
-KONIAH, BATTLE OF.--Fought on the Plains of Koniah, formerly
-Jornium, between the army of the Sultan of Turkey and the Pacha of
-Egypt, in which, after a most bloody action which continued all the
-day, the Turkish army was defeated, and the Grand Vizier himself
-wounded and taken prisoner, December 31st, 1833.
-
-
-KOWNO, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the French and Russian armies, in
-which the French were defeated with great slaughter, and the loss
-of upwards of 6000 prisoners, 21 pieces of cannon; many thousands
-on both sides were slain. Fought, December 14th, 1812.
-
-
-KRASNOI, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the French under Davoust, and
-the Russian army commanded by Kutusoff. In this bloody battle
-Davoust was entirely overthrown, and his army dispersed, thousands
-upon thousands being left dead on the field, November 16th, 1812.
-
-
-KUNNERSDORF, BATTLE OF.--One of the most bloody battles on record,
-and fought between the Prussian and Russian armies. The King of
-Prussia, after a great slaughter of the enemy for upwards of six
-hours, had gained many advantages and had nearly accomplished
-victory; but too eager in pursuing the retreating enemy, the latter
-rallied, and in the end the Prussians were defeated with the loss
-of 20,000 men and 200 pieces of cannon, August 12th, 1759.
-
-
-
-
-L.
-
-
-LACOLLE MILL, BATTLE OF.--Operations were commenced early in the
-spring of 1814. An American army, commanded by General Wilkinson,
-and amounting to upwards of 3000 men, entered Lower Canada on the
-western shore of Lake Champlain. They attacked and completely
-invested Lacolle Mill, which was defended by Major Handcock, of the
-13th regiment, and about 180 men. They were vigorously repulsed
-from this little fortress and driven back to the United States.
-
-
-LA HOGUE, BATTLE OF.--Between the English and Dutch combined fleets
-under Admirals Russel and Rooke, and the French under Tourville.
-The Allies gained a complete victory, burning thirteen ships of the
-French, and destroying eight more, and forcing the rest to fly, and
-so preventing the threatened invasion of England, May 19th, 1692.
-
-
-LA ROTHIÈRE, BATTLE OF.--Between the French, commanded by Napoleon,
-and the Prussian and Russian armies, which were defeated after a
-desperate engagement with the loss of some thousands slain, and
-3000 prisoners and 30 pieces of cannon, February 1st, 1814. This
-was about one of the last victories of Napoleon.
-
-
-LA VENDÉE, WAR OF.--Many battles in this war were fought between
-the French Royalists of La Vendée and the Republican armies in
-1793-4. The war terminated January 10th, 1800.
-
-
-LAKES CHAMPLAIN, ERIE, AND ONTARIO.--These lakes were the scene of
-many engagements between the English and American colonists in the
-War of Independence, and also in the war of 1812-15, the chief of
-which was the capture of the British fleet by the Americans after
-a severe action, September 11th, 1813.
-
-
-LANDEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the Allies and French, in which William
-III of England commanded. Owing chiefly to the cowardice of the
-Dutch horse, this sanguinary engagement ended in the defeat of
-the Allies, July 19, 1693. The Duke of Berwick, illegitimate son
-of James II, who was fighting on the side of France, was taken
-prisoner in this battle by Brigadier Churchill, afterwards the
-great Duke of Marlborough.
-
-
-LANGSIDE, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 13th, 1568, between the forces of
-Queen Mary of Scotland and the Regent. “Many powerful Barons called
-their vassals to their banners, and hastened to support the Queen.
-In a few days her camp at Hamilton contained 6000 men. The Regent
-had with difficulty mustered 4000, but he determined to bring the
-Queen’s army to battle at once. She broke up her camp at Hamilton,
-and marched towards Dumbarton. The village of Langside lay on her
-line of march, and her troops must pass through a narrow lane
-leading up the face of the hill on which the village stood. Moray
-posted his hag-butters, or matchlock-men, among the cottages, and
-lined with them the garden-hedges on both sides of the lane. The
-Queen took her station on an eminence half a mile distant, from
-which she had the battle full in sight. She saw her troops press
-up the hill, and endeavour to force the passage of the lane. She
-saw them reel under the close and deadly fire of the hagbut-men who
-lined the hedges. She saw them come on again stoutly, and meet the
-shock of Moray’s spearmen. She saw the mass of combatants swaying
-to and fro in doubtful conflict. And then she saw her troops swept
-down the hill, broken and scattered, the Regent’s men fiercely
-pursuing and spearing the wretched fugitives.”
-
-
-LAON, BATTLE OF.--_In France._--Between the Allies, chiefly the
-Prussian army, and the French. This battle or rather succession of
-actions, was fought under the walls of the town, and ended, after a
-sanguinary and obstinate contest in the defeat of the latter with
-great loss, March 9th, 1814.
-
-
-LARGS, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the ancient inhabitants of
-Scotland and the Northmen. A bloody battle, fought 30th September,
-1263. The following description is from the pen of an eminent
-Scottish modern writer:
-
-“It was about the middle of August when the fleet of Haco, which
-counted 160 ships, rounded the Mull of Cantyre and entered the
-Frith of Clyde. Time is everything in war. Haco should have
-landed immediately. Every day was bringing the storms of Autumn
-nearer, and every day was giving time to the King of Scotland to
-increase his forces. Haco was a veteran who had been King of Norway
-forty-six winters. Alexander was a young man who had lived fewer
-than half the years that Haco had reigned. But the youth fairly
-outwitted the veteran. He sent an embassy of barefooted friars on
-board of Haco’s ship to propose terms of peace. The barefooted
-envoys came and went between the two kings, and the time was spun
-out in negociations till the weather began to break; the fleet was
-running short of provisions, and the Scots in formidable numbers
-were assembling on the shore.
-
-“It was now the last day of September. At night there came on a
-storm so sudden and so wild that the Norwegians believed it to have
-been raised by the spells of the Scotch witches. The ships were
-torn from their anchors and ran ashore, or dashed against each
-other in the pitchy darkness. Haco ordered the attendance of his
-priests, took to his boat, and landed on the island of Cumbrae,
-where, amid the howling of the storm, he had mass performed. In
-stranger circumstances, surely, mass was never said or sung.
-Unluckily for Haco, the strong-winged tempest heeded it not. It
-continued with unabated fury all night and all the next day. The
-fleet drove up the channel, scattering the sea with wreck, and
-the shore with stranded vessels. The heights above the coast
-were covered by a multitude of armed peasants, who watched their
-opportunity and rushed down to attack the stranded ships.
-
-“When the second morning broke, and the violence of the tempest had
-somewhat abated, Haco, by means of his boats, landed with a large
-force to protect his stranded vessels from the armed peasantry, and
-if possible to tow them off. While the Norwegians were engaged in
-the operation of floating off their ships, the sun rose, and his
-level rays caught the surrounding hills. Through the grey sheet of
-morning mist which covered the landscape, flashes as of fire were
-seen. It was the sun’s rays glancing upon the polished armour of
-the Scottish army. They advanced rapidly, and the Norwegians could
-soon discern their pennons and banners waving above their wood of
-spears, and the knights and leaders, blazing in complete steel,
-marshalling the line. They were commanded by King Alexander in
-person.
-
-“They attacked with fury, and drove back the advanced body of the
-Norwegians. It seemed as if the whole force of the enemy was about
-to be swept into the sea before the fierce onset of the Scots. But
-the Norsemen, who fought entirely on foot, threw themselves into
-a circle with their long spears pointing out to the foe, like a
-huge hedgehog with prickles of steel. All day long the battle raged
-around this ring of spears. The storm had renewed its violence,
-so that it was impossible to send help on shore. Again and again
-the Scottish horse repeated their furious charge. The circle of
-steel was slowly forced back along the shore, but it could not
-be broken. A Scottish knight, Sir Piers de Curry, rode round and
-round it brandishing his spear and challenging any Norse captain
-to single combat. He wore a helmet inlaid with gold and set with
-precious stones; his mail was gold-embossed; his sword-belt studded
-with jewels. A leader of the Northmen accepted his challenge,
-and stepped out from the circle of spears. The Scottish knight
-spurred his horse and rushed down upon him with levelled lance. The
-Norseman with his great sword parried the spear-thrust, and as the
-knight passed him in his career, smote him with his whole strength
-upon the thigh. The sword cut sheer into the saddle through steel
-and bone, so that the limb was separated from the body, and the
-proud knight fell dead beneath his horse.
-
-“A re-inforcement from the ships at length succeeded in landing
-through the surf; and with the aid of these fresh troops the
-Norwegians bore back the Scots from the shore. Night fell upon the
-weary combatants, and under cover of the darkness the Norwegians
-got on board their ships.”
-
-
-LAYBACH, CONGRESS OF.--Attended by the Sovereigns of Russia,
-Prussia, and Austria, and resulting in two circulars, stating that
-Naples should be occupied with the Austrian troops, May 6th, 1821.
-
-
-LEGHORN.--Entered by the French revolutionary army, July 27th,
-1796, but the immense amount of British property in the city had
-been previously removed. Evacuated by the French in 1799, and
-retaken the next year. The Austrian took the city May 12th, 1849.
-
-
-LEGION.--A Roman body of soldiers, about 6000 men. The 10th legion
-was a favourite one with Cæsar. Ancient Britain was generally
-protected by three legions.
-
-
-LEIPSIC, BATTLE OF.--This battle fought, October 16th, 17th,
-and 18th, 1813, between the allied army of Russia, Prussia, and
-Austria on the one side, and Napoleon on the other, was one of
-the greatest, bloodiest, and most decisive of modern times. The
-French numbered 160,000 men, and the Allies 260,000 strong. This
-great battle was lost by the French, chiefly owing to the seventeen
-German battalions, then Saxon allies, turning upon them in the heat
-of the action; 80,000 perished on the field, of whom more than
-40,000 were French, who also lost sixty-five pieces of cannon and
-many standards. This victory of the allied army was followed by
-that of the capture of Leipsic, and the rear guard of the French
-army next day. The King of Saxony and his family were also made
-prisoners.
-
-
-LEPANTO, BATTLE OF.--The great naval battle between the combined
-fleets of Spain, Venice, and Pius V, and the whole maritime force
-of the Turks. Don John of Austria commanded the allied fleet, which
-consisted of 206 galleys and 30,000 men. The Turks had 200 galleys.
-After a dreadful engagement they lost 150 galleys, and 30,000 men
-in killed and prisoners. Fought, October 7th, 1571.
-
-
-LEUCTRA, BATTLE OF.--One of the most famous in ancient history,
-fought July 8th, 371 B.C. In this battle 4000 Spartans, with their
-King, were slain, and not more than 300 Thebans. After this battle
-the Spartans lost their position in Greece, which they had held for
-500 years.
-
-
-LEWES, BATTLE OF.--Between Henry III of England and Montfort,
-Earl of Leicester. Fought, May 14th, 1264. The Royal army was
-overthrown, and the King, his brother and son Prince Edward, were
-taken prisoners.
-
-
-LEXINGTON, BATTLE OF.--The first battle fought between Great
-Britain and her revolted colonies of America; gained by the
-British, who destroyed the stores of the colonists, but they lost
-in battle 273 men killed and wounded. Fought, April 19th, 1775.
-
-
-LEYDEN, SIEGE OF.--A memorable siege sustained against the armies
-of Spain; 6000 of the inhabitants died during the siege, of famine
-and pestilence, A.D. 1574. A University was afterwards founded in
-commemoration of this event.
-
-
-LIEUTENANT.--An officer who supplies the place of a superior in
-his absence. In military affairs the second commissioned officer
-in a company of infantry, cavalry or artillery. In ships of war, a
-lieutenant is next in rank to the captain.
-
-
-LIGNY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 16th, 1815, just before the
-celebrated battle of Waterloo, between the Prussians under Blucher,
-and the French commanded by Napoleon. The French gained the victory.
-
-
-LINCELLES, BATTLE OF.--Between the allied English and Dutch armies
-and the French, in which the French were defeated August 18th,
-1793. In this battle, General Lake commanded the 3rd battalion
-of Foot Guards, who so much distinguished themselves. Colonel
-Bosville, of the Coldstreams, was killed; the French lost 11 cannon.
-
-
-LINCOLN, BATTLE OF.--A battle was fought at Lincoln between the
-armies of the Princess Maud and King Stephen of England. Stephen
-was defeated and captured, February 2nd, 1141. Another battle was
-fought here between the Dauphin of France and Henry III of England.
-This was a bloody engagement, in which the French and their
-English adherents were completely defeated, and Louis withdrew his
-pretensions to the English crown, May 19th, 1217.
-
-
-LINLITHGOW-BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.--Between the forces of the Earl of
-Angus, and the forces of Lenox, who fought to get possession of
-the person of James V, then a minor. Lenox was slain by Sir James
-Hamilton, 1525.
-
-
-LIPPSTADT, BATTLE OF.--One of the most bloody battles ever fought
-in the world. Called also _Lutzen_, which see.
-
-
-LISLE, SIEGE OF.--Besieged by the Duke of Marlborough and the
-Allies, and taken after three months, in 1708. Restored at the
-treaty of Utrecht, 1713--this siege is accounted one of the most
-famous in modern times. It also sustained a severe bombardment by
-the Austrians in the revolutionary war, but they were obliged to
-raise the siege, October 7th, 1792.
-
-
-LISSA, BATTLE OF.--This battle, fought December 5th, 1757, closed
-the campaign, in which the King of Prussia vanquished Prince
-Charles of Lorraine; 6000 Austrians were slain. Laid in ashes by
-the Russians in 1707.
-
-
-LODI, BATTLE OF THE BRIDGE OF.--One of the earliest of Napoleon’s
-victories. Fought in Italy, May 10th, 1796. Napoleon commanded
-the French army, which was opposed to the Austrians, under
-General Beaulieu, and obtained a splendid victory after a bloody
-engagement, in which several thousands of the Imperialists were
-slain, and many thousands made prisoners. Napoleon nearly lost his
-life at this battle, and was wounded in the hip with a bayonet. One
-of his great Marshals in this battle, a sergeant, saved him, and
-was commissioned on the spot.
-
-
-LONDONDERRY, SIEGE OF.--Memorable for a siege during the reign of
-James II, of England. James’ army, under the French General Rosene,
-retired with the loss of 8000 men, after having practised almost
-unparalleled cruelties upon the inhabitants of the surrounding
-villages, April 20th, 1689.
-
-
-LONGBEARDS OR LONGOBARDS.--Hence Lombardy. The Longobards or
-Longbeards, who had overrun and taken possession of the great plain
-of the basin of the Po, retained to some extent their separate
-independence even under the empire of Germany. They had their own
-laws and customs, and were in the habit of crowning the emperor,
-or whoever else was acknowledged, as king of Lombardy. Hence, too,
-Napoleon wore the iron crown of their kings. This famed symbol of
-kingship was deposited in the Cathedral of Monza; it is a broad
-circle of gold, set with large rubies, emeralds, and sapphires,
-and was secured in an ornamented cross placed over an altar,
-closely shut up within folding doors of gilt brass. The crown is
-kept in an octagonal aperture in the centre of the cross. It is
-composed of six equal pieces of beaten gold, joined together by
-close hinges, and the jewels and embossed gold ornaments are set
-in a ground of blue and gold enamel, interesting as exhibiting
-an exact resemblance to the workmanship of the enamelled part of
-a gold ornament now in the Ashmolean Museum, which once belonged
-to King Alfred. But for those who have an appetite for relics,
-the most important part of this crown is a narrow iron rim, which
-is attached to the inside of it all round. The rim is about
-three-eighths of an inch broad, and a tenth of an inch thick, made
-out of one of the nails used in the Crucifixion. The crown is
-said to have been presented to Constantine by his mother; and the
-sacred iron rim, from which it has its name, was to protect him
-in battle. And, although this iron has now been exposed more than
-fifteen hundred years, there is not a speck of rust upon it.
-
-
-LONG ISLAND, BATTLE OF.--Between the British troops under Sir
-William Howe and the revolted Americans, who suffered a severe
-defeat, after a well fought action, losing 2000 men in killed and
-wounded and 1000 prisoners. The Americans were pursued to New
-York, but were saved by a thick fog, which enabled them to escape.
-Fought, August 27th, 1776.
-
-
-L’ORIENT, BATTLE OF.--Lord Bridport achieved a memorable victory
-over the French fleet, June 23rd, 1795. The British squadron
-actually engaged consisted of 10 ships of the line--the enemy’s, of
-12 ships of the line, 11 frigates, and some smaller vessels. After
-an action of three hours the French got into port, leaving three
-sail of the line in the possession of the British. The loss of the
-French was severe.
-
-
-LOSSES IN GREAT BATTLES.--The _Military Gazette_ of Vienna makes
-the following comparisons of the forces engaged in the battle
-of Solferino and in former great battles:--“At that battle there
-were more than 300,000 soldiers in the field, and the losses must
-have amounted to at least from 30,000 to 37,000. At the battle
-of Leipsic, which lasted for three days, the 330,000 allies had
-against them 260,000 French; the latter lost 30,000 prisoners
-and 45,000 killed and wounded, and the former 48,000 killed and
-wounded. After Leipsic, the most sanguinary battle was that of
-Moscow, on the 7th of September, 1812. The Russians had 130,000 men
-and 600 pieces of cannon, the French 134,000 men and 587 cannon;
-the former lost 58,000 and the latter 50,000; the losses were,
-therefore, 40 per cent. At Bautzen, on the 21st of May, 1813, there
-were 110,000 Russians and Prussians opposed to 150,000 French; the
-latter lost 20,000 men and the allies 15,000, and not a single
-cannon. At Wagram, on the 5th and 6th of July, 1809, we had 137,000
-men, and Napoleon 170,000; we lost 20,000 men and the enemy 22,000.
-At Esling we were 70,000 against 85,000; we had 20,000 killed and
-wounded, the enemy 13,000 killed; but he left in our hands 33,000
-prisoners, and was obliged to send 30,000 to Vienna to have their
-wounds attended to, so that out of the 160,000 men engaged about
-one-half were put _hors de combat_. At Austerlitz there were 70,000
-French, as many Russians, and 13,000 Austrians; the losses were
-21,000 Russians, with 160 pieces of cannon, 5,800 Austrians, and
-10,000 French. At Jena there were 142,000 French against 150,000
-Prussians. At Waterloo there were 170,000 men, of whom 70,000 were
-French, who lost 25,000 men and 250 cannon, whilst the Allies lost
-31,000 men.”
-
-The following statistics of Mr. Haussener will complete the account
-of the losses in Great Battles:
-
-“The wars which have been waged from 1815 to 1864, have caused
-the death of 2,762,000 men, of whom 2,148,000 were Europeans, and
-614,000 from other quarters of the globe, which gives an average
-of 43,800 per annum. The figures do not include the deaths caused
-by epidemics resulting from war. The most sanguinary hostilities
-of that period are these:--The Eastern war of 1856, in which
-508,600 men fell in the following proportions: 256,000 Russians,
-98,900 Turks, 107,000 French, 45,000 English, and 2600 Italians.
-The Caucusus (1829-60) 330,000 men lost their lives. The revolt in
-India (1857-59) cost 196,000 lives. The Russo-Turkish war (1820-29)
-193,000. The Polish insurrection (1831) 190,000. The whole of
-the French campaigns in Africa (1830-59) 147,000. The Hungarian
-insurrection 142,000. The Italian war 129,870, of whom 96,874
-died on the field or from their wounds; and 33,000 from various
-diseases. The total number of lives lost in Europe during the
-wars from 1793 to 1815 amounted to 5,530,000, which gives for the
-twenty-three years an average of 240,434 deaths per year.”
-
-
-LUCKNOW, SIEGE OF.--Memorable in the Great Indian Mutiny. The
-following account of the gallant defence of a few Europeans at
-the Gateway, Lucknow, where General Neill fell, September 26th
-and 27th, 1857, is abridged from the Account of Dr. A. C. Home,
-contained in “The Mutinies of Oude:”--
-
-“There were present, including Dr. Home, nine sound men, two
-wounded officers, Captain Beecher and Lieutenant Swanson, and
-three wounded men: total, fourteen. Private McManus kept outside
-the doorway, sheltering himself behind a pillar, and killed so
-many of the assailants that at length he had only to raise his
-piece to cause all the enemy to leave their loopholes. The bodies
-of the dead Sepoys round the door were, in fact, a defence. Ryan
-and McManus actually rushed out and brought in a wounded officer
-who lay in a dhoolie in the adjoining street, returning in safety,
-although the ground was torn by musket balls about them. The
-conduct of Hallowell also was splendid. He always managed to
-kill an enemy at a most critical moment, and at length shot the
-leader. Finally the Sepoys pushed a screen on wheels before them,
-to protect themselves from the Minié rifle, and set the building
-on fire, when the gallant little band retreated in good order
-to a shed at a short distance, and defended themselves afresh.
-Their cowardly assailants took this opportunity to massacre all
-the wounded in dhoolies near to the house first defended. This
-small company of heroes kept the foe at bay during the night. At
-daybreak, however, they heard firing, when Ryan suddenly jumped
-up and shouted, ‘Oh, boys! Them’s our own chaps!’ In about three
-minutes Captain Moorsom appeared at the entrance-hole of the shed,
-and they were brought off in safety.”
-
-The following is an account of Havelock’s relief of Lucknow:
-
-“It was thus the 19th of September before General Havelock was in
-a position to cross the Ganges for a third time, and to advance
-with an efficient force to relieve the long-beleaguered garrison
-at Lucknow. On that day the army of relief crossed the river by a
-bridge of boats, and encamped on the other side. General Havelock’s
-force consisted of about 2000 European infantry, the Sikh regiment
-of Ferozepore, three batteries of field artillery, and a handful
-of volunteer cavalry. The rebels mustered above 40,000 strong, but
-their numerical superiority only served to enhance the prowess of
-their conquerors. The first engagement took place on the 21st of
-September, at the village of Mungarwar, and resulted in the total
-defeat of the mutineers. Five field-pieces and guns in position
-were taken, two of the former being captured by the volunteer
-cavalry, led on to the charge by General Outram in person.
-From this point the army pushed on by forced marches, without
-encountering any organized opposition, until it arrived before the
-city of Lucknow. Skirting the suburbs of that once stately capital,
-General Havelock forced his way through every obstacle, and, by the
-evening of the 25th, had relieved the heroic garrison. The relief
-was opportune. Two mines had already been driven under the chief
-works, and, in a few hours more, would have been loaded and sprung.
-The besieged would thus have been placed at the mercy of those
-who knew no mercy. The city, however, had still to be subdued.
-From several advantageous positions the enemy continued to fire
-upon the fort, and were only finally dislodged after a series of
-determined assaults. In these operations the loss of the British
-was very severe. General Neill, the brave and energetic saviour of
-Benares, and the inexorable avenger of the massacre at Cawnpore,
-was among the slain. With him fell major Cooper, in command of the
-artillery, and many other gallant spirits. Even now much remained
-to be done. Taking courage from their overwhelming numbers, the
-enemy soon closed again around the army of deliverance, and cut
-off their communications with Cawnpore. Encumbered with not less
-than 1000 women and children, and sick and wounded men, it would
-have been hazardous if not impossible to have attempted a march
-across a difficult country. Under these circumstances Sir James
-Outram, who had assumed the chief command, determined on remaining
-at Lucknow, and awaiting the arrival of re-inforcements. Sir Colin
-Campbell, the Commander-in-Chief, left Cawnpore with a strong
-force, on the 9th of November, to relieve Lucknow. He succeeded,
-by a well-conceived stratagem on the 12th, in bringing away the
-garrison with the women and children, and marched for Cawnpore. On
-the third day after leaving Lucknow, General Havelock died from the
-effects of dysentery, brought on by excessive fatigue and anxiety.
-In December, Cawnpore was attacked by 25,000 rebels with fifty
-guns, and Sir Colin Campbell was summoned from the neighbourhood
-of Lucknow for its defence. He arrived in season to save the
-place, after a severe action with the enemy. Sir Colin remained at
-Cawnpore, collecting a large force for the final siege of Lucknow.
-During the time which was thus occupied, several actions of minor
-importance took place; but it was not till the 17th of March that
-Lucknow was recovered, after a short but active siege. After
-its fall, the kingdom of Oude, of which it was the capital, was
-speedily restored to obedience and comparative tranquillity.”
-
-
-LUNEVILLE, PEACE OF.--Between the French Republic and the Emperor
-of Germany, concluded February 9th, 1801.
-
-
-LUTZEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the French, commanded by Napoleon, and
-the combined armies of Russia and Prussia, commanded by General
-Wittgenstein, May 2nd, 1813. This bloody battle opened the campaign
-of that year, and though each side claimed the victory, it was
-manifestly on the side of France. Marshal Duroc was mortally
-wounded in this battle.
-
-
-LUTZENGEN OR LUTZEN, BATTLE OF.--Gustavus Adolphus, King of
-Sweden, fought this battle against the Emperor. In this sanguinary
-engagement Gustavus was basely killed in the victory, November 6th,
-1632. This Gustavus was the most illustrious hero of his times,
-and the chief support of the German Protestants, and an ally to
-Charles I of England.
-
-
-LUXEMBURG.--Considered the strongest fortress in the world, taken
-by the French in 1543; then by the Spaniards in 1544; again by
-the French in 1684--restored to Spain in 1697. Again taken by the
-French, in 1701, and given to the Dutch, and ceded to the Emperor
-at the peace of 1713. During last century it also sustained a long
-and memorable siege, June 17th, 1795. The garrison surrendered to
-the French, and were liberated on parole.
-
-
-
-
-M.
-
-
-MAESTRICHT.--Taken by the Prince of Parma in 1579; reduced by the
-Prince of Orange, in 1632. Louis XIV took it in 1675. William,
-Prince of Orange, invested it in 1676; restored to the Dutch
-in 1678; besieged by the French, in 1748. In 1793, attacked by
-the French, who took it the following year; but in 1814, it was
-delivered up to the allied forces.
-
-
-MAGENTA, BATTLE OF.--Fought June 4th, 1859, between the French and
-Austrians. The French gained a splendid victory, the Allies losing
-12,000, the Austrians 15,000. The latter rapidly retreated and
-evacuated Milan. The battle of Magenta was begun by the Austrians,
-who, although in full retreat towards Pavia, were ordered to
-change their front, and attack the advanced guard of the Allies,
-who had crossed the Ticino at Buffalora. Suddenly 25,000 Austrians
-attacked a battalion of Zouaves, together with two battalions of
-grenadiers; a close and deadly fire was now exchanged. Then the
-Austrians charged with the bayonet. At 12 o’clock the French were
-retiring, having lost General Leclere, a colonel, a lieutenant
-colonel, and 12 officers, when reinforcements appearing on their
-left, they rallied and forced the Austrians to withdraw. The bold
-assault of General McMahon decided the victory; and for his brave
-conduct and efficient generalship, Napoleon conferred on him the
-rank of Marshal, with the title of Duke of Magenta. General Guyalai
-brought into the action 120,000 men; he left 20,000 of them wounded
-or dead on the battle-field: 7000 were taken prisoners; 5 flags,
-4000 knapsacks, 12,000 muskets and 4 guns, fell into the hands of
-the French. During the battle of Magenta the bridge and the village
-of Magenta were taken and retaken seven times. It was only at
-half-past eight at night that the Austrians withdrew. Their retreat
-was slow and orderly.
-
-
-MAIDA, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the French, commanded by General
-Regnier, and the British, under Major General Sir John Stuart. The
-French were nearly double the number of the British, yet the latter
-gained a most glorious victory on the “Plains of Maida,” a village
-of Calabria. The loss of the French was very great, July 4th, 1806.
-The British commander, from this victory, has historically received
-the name of the “Hero of the Plains of Maida.”
-
-
-MAJOR.--This officer holds the rank between a Lieutenant Colonel
-and a Captain. A Major General is one who commands a division, next
-above rank to a Brigadier General.
-
-
-MALAKOFF AND REDAN, ATTACK ON THE.--In the celebrated Crimean war.
-The following is a good description of the attack:
-
-“General Pelissier divided his attacking force into three columns,
-numbering altogether about 25,000 men. The first, under General
-Mayran, was to assault the extreme left of the Russian line;
-the second, in the centre, led by General Brunet, was to turn
-the Malakoff on its proper left; while the third, under General
-d’Autemarre, was to operate upon its right. The Imperial Guard
-was held in reserve, and two batteries of artillery occupied the
-Mamelon. The signal for advance was to be three rockets fired from
-the Lancaster battery, which General Pelissier had chosen as his
-position of observation. By an unfortunate mistake, General Mayran
-mistook the flaming fuse of a bomb-shell for the rocket, and eager
-for the fray, led his division rapidly forward. It was now apparent
-that the enemy had full notice of our intended attack. Not only the
-batteries were fully armed, but the steamers were anchored so as to
-be able to pour their broadsides upon the French columns. Generals
-Saurin and De Failly, obedient to the commands of their General,
-dashed forward, followed at an impetuous pace by their troops.
-Then the Russians opened fire from their batteries and steamers,
-and a hurricane of shot and shell arrested the career of the brave
-French; and their leader, General Mayran, paid the penalty of his
-mistake, falling mortally wounded at their head. General Pelissier
-had now arrived upon the scene of action, and perceiving the error,
-at once ordered up reinforcements to the threatened division,
-which, strengthened by the addition of the voltigeurs of the
-Guard, some regiments of the line, and a battalion of grenadiers,
-was enabled to maintain its position under the orders of General
-De Failly, who succeeded to the command, though prevented by the
-deadly fire of the enemy from advancing further. The centre column,
-under General Brunet, had little better success than the other
-division. In fact, the unlucky mistake of Mayran, in precipitating
-the attack, had disordered the entire plan of advance, and aroused
-the Russians, and enabled them to concentrate their strength for
-defence. General Brunet himself was struck in the chest by a
-musket-ball; and his division was forced to retire to the trenches
-with great loss. General D’Autemarre, who commanded the left
-attack, no sooner saw the preconcerted signal, than he gave the
-word to advance, and the 5th Foot Chasseurs and the first battalion
-of the 19th regiment of the line, deploying to the left, along
-the crest of the ravine which there enters the town, carried the
-entrenchment which connects it with the Malakoff, and succeeded in
-entering the fortification. The sappers who accompanied the advance
-immediately planted ladders, the remainder of the regiments hurried
-forward, and the eagles of the French army waved aloft, encouraging
-the repulsed troops of the other divisions to renewed exertions.
-
-While the French were thus straining every nerve against tremendous
-odds, and with fearful loss, to perform their parts in the
-achievements of the day, the English were none the less eager
-to win their laurels before the Great Redan. Sir George Brown,
-just returned from the Kertch expedition, was intrusted with the
-direction of the assaulting party, composed of detachments of the
-Light, Second, and Fourth Divisions. The plan of attack was, that
-the force should be divided into three columns; the Light Division
-to storm the right of the Redan at the re-entering angle; the
-Fourth Division was to attack the left flank of the fortification
-at a similar position; while the Second was to storm the apex
-of the Redan, as soon as the other divisions had established
-themselves in the work. Colonel Yea, of the 7th Fusiliers, led the
-storming party of the Light Division, composed of the 7th, 23rd,
-33rd, and 34th. Colonel Shirley held the 19th, 77th, and 85th in
-reserve. The troops advanced in good order from the trenches,
-preceded by a covering party of Rifles, and dashed forward to the
-attack. They had, however, several hundred yards of broken ground
-to cross; and the enemy, well prepared for their reception, poured
-from every embrasure such a storm of shot and shell as effectually
-broke their ranks. Colonel Yea and the regimental officers
-gallantly endeavoured to animate their men to the assault, and led
-them fearlessly forward against the belching fire of the batteries.
-As the brave old colonel was cheering on his men, a shower of grape
-swept along, and he rolled in the agonies of death, struck at once
-in the head and stomach. His brave companions fell around him dead
-or wounded; and the regiments, unable to face such a sheet of
-fire, fell back disordered to the trenches, leaving nearly a third
-of their number on the field.
-
-On the left attack, Sir John Campbell, with the Fourth Division,
-exhibited extraordinary courage, and led his men forward to the
-attack with tremendous energy. Here again was the tragedy of the
-Light Division repeated. The men were mowed down as they left the
-trenches, and Sir John, like Colonel Yea, fell cheering on his
-men. The loss was terrific. The Second Division, to whom had been
-reserved the duty of attacking the apex of the Redan, seeing the
-failure of the flank assaults, desisted from the attempt, and
-withdrew to the trenches, though having suffered considerably from
-the enemy’s fire.
-
-The only success of the day was that achieved by the Third Division
-under General Eyre, who had been ordered by Lord Raglan to attack
-the Cemetery Batteries, at the head of the ravine leading to the
-Dockyard Creek. The brigade consisted of the 9th, 18th, 28th, and
-44th regiments. Four volunteers from each regiment, under Major
-Fielden, of the 44th regiment, were selected to feel the way,
-and cover the advance. The 18th Royal Irish formed the storming
-party. They possessed themselves of the Cemetery with but little
-difficulty; and then four companies of the 18th dashed forward, so
-eager were they for the fray, and actually entered the town, and
-established themselves in the Russian houses. They were followed by
-the 9th, under Colonel Borton. The enemy’s batteries now opened a
-fierce fire on the daring handful of men; and although they could
-not drive them from their position, effectually prevented their
-retreat, from four o’clock in the morning until eight at night.
-During that time they suffered terribly from thirst, and some of
-the brave fellows actually crawled from the houses, reached the
-English lines, and returned with cans of water to their comrades.
-In this way a letter was convoyed asking for reinforcements; but
-General Eyre had already retired from the spot, and the two gallant
-regiments were left unsupported, to bear the brunt of the enemy’s
-fire until nightfall, when the remnant of them withdrew from their
-dangerous post, and rejoined the main body.
-
-The failure of the English attack enabled the Russians to draw
-from the Redan reinforcements to repel the French under General
-D’Autemarre, who were so nearly redeeming the fortunes of the
-day at the Malakoff. Unable to contend against the forces now
-brought against them, the French were compelled to retire from
-the commanding position they had obtained. General Pelissier sent
-reinforcements; but it was impossible a single division, exposed
-to an appalling flank fire and an immensely superior force in
-front, could long sustain such an unequal contest. They fought
-bravely; but on that fatal day bravery availed but little, and
-they, too, added to the numbers of the defeated.
-
-Such was the great disaster of the 18th of June, the anniversary of
-that day when the two nations, now brothers in defeat, were opposed
-to each other on the plains of Waterloo. Want of concert between
-the generals--and to Pelissier the blame is mainly due--resulted in
-a most disheartening repulse, and the loss of thousands of brave
-men; the English casualties amounting to no less than 251 killed
-(including 21 officers); 70 officers and 1130 men wounded; and 22
-missing. The French loss must have been greater.”
-
-
-MALPLAQUET, BATTLE OF.--The Allies under the Duke of Marlborough
-and Prince Eugene, gained this battle, September 11th, 1709, over
-the French, commanded by Marshal Villars. The armies of each
-consisted of nearly 120,000 choice men. It was attended with
-immense slaughter on both sides, the Allies losing 18,000 men,
-which terrible loss was but ill-repaid by the capture of Mons,
-which followed the victory.
-
-
-MAMELON AND QUARRIES.--The capture of the Mamelon and the action
-of the Quarries, took place in the great siege of Sebastopol. The
-former was gallantly stormed and taken by our allies the French and
-the action of the Quarries redoubted to the indomitable pluck of
-British soldiers. The following is a good account of the action and
-capture of the fort:
-
-“A third general bombardment opened on the 6th of June. At
-half-past two o’clock in the afternoon, the fire of 157 English and
-300 French guns and mortars simultaneously opened upon the town.
-The Russian reply was feeble, and inflicted but little damage upon
-our batteries. A fierce cannonade was maintained by the Allies
-during that and the following day, and towards evening, on the 7th,
-a grand combined attack was made by the English on the Quarries,
-and by the French on the Mamelon. The former of these works, as
-the name implies, were pits from which stone had formerly been
-excavated for the buildings in the town, and occupied a position
-between the head of our advanced sap and the Great Redan, the most
-formidable work of Russian defence, and which in the general plan
-of attack had been apportioned to the English. The Mamelon, as
-it was specifically called--the general term _mamelon_, a rounded
-hill, describing its appearance--was the foremost of two similar
-eminences, at a short distance from each other. The one nearest
-the town was surmounted by the Malakoff tower and works, and was
-the most elevated and commanding position of the enemy’s line of
-defence, the Mamelon, or Mamelon Vert, as the French designated it,
-had long since lost all claim to the latter name, being excavated
-into trenches and rifle-pits, from which a most annoying fire was
-maintained upon the French lines. Our Allies had already made a
-very gallant though unsuccessful attempt at its capture; and it was
-under the cover of its guns that the Russian sortie of the 22nd of
-March was made.
-
-It was then absolutely necessary that an endeavour should be made
-by the besieging army to carry these formidable works, which
-presented such obstacles to their advance; and accordingly the
-evening of the 7th of June was fixed for the assault. At about
-six o’clock, the French battalions, chosen for the assault,
-consisting of the Algerine Zouaves, detachments of the 61st, 7th,
-and 50th regiments of the line, and of the Chasseurs-à-Pied, and
-Imperial Guard, about 1200 men in all, moved up to the front,
-closely followed by the reserve or working party, to follow the
-attacking column, and secure possession of the works. This second
-column, commanded by General Brunet, comprised a battalion of the
-Chasseurs-à-Pied, and the 11th, 24th, 69th, and 16th regiments of
-the line. General Bosquet was entrusted with the entire direction
-of the assault.
-
-Our attacking force was composed of detachments from the Light and
-Second Divisions. About 400 men from the 18th, 7th, 47th, 49th,
-were told off to lead the assault, under the immediate command of
-Colonel Shirley, of the 90th regiment. The working parties were
-selected from remaining regiments of the Light Division; the main
-body remaining under arms in reserve.
-
-Immediately the signal rockets took their flight towards the town,
-the attacking columns darted forward. The active French troops
-swarmed up the sides of the Mamelon, and in a few moments were in
-hand-to-hand contest with the Russian defenders. With an unusual
-supineness the batteries of the town offered no impediment to the
-advance. It might be that the fierce bombardment to which for
-twenty-four hours they had been exposed, had temporarily silenced
-them. Whatever might be the cause, but little opposition was
-sustained by, and scarcely any loss inflicted on the attacking
-columns, who reached the parapet on the crown of the hill at a
-rapid pace. Here the enemy made a stand, and for a brief space
-struggled bravely to maintain their position. It was, however, but
-an ineffectual effort. The French fought with the utmost daring;
-and the enemy giving way before the impetuous onslaught, retreated
-down the hill, the French in eager pursuit. In the valley, however,
-the Russians received large reinforcements from the Malakoff Tower
-on the opposite eminence, and a fierce fire was opened on the
-French from the batteries of the Malakoff. Then the tide of battle
-turned; and the hitherto assailants, out-numbered, were driven up
-the hill, contesting every foot of ground. Some of the Zouaves,
-with characteristic daring, evading the attacking force, pressed
-onwards, and, as on the previous occasion, positively entered the
-Malakoff, and spiked some of the guns. Our allies, unable to bear
-the vigorous charge and overwhelming numbers of the enemy, who
-now pressed upon them, were forced to relinquish the hold they
-had obtained upon the Mamelon, and retreated over the brow of the
-hill, reluctantly relinquishing the advantage they had gained.
-The French, after a brilliant attack, were driven back by the
-reinforced defenders of the hill, and the Russians were once more
-masters of the Mamelon.
-
-General Bosquet, however, was not the man to accept a repulse as a
-final defeat. Reforming the column in the trenches at the foot of
-the hill, and sending fresh troops to their assistance, he prepared
-for a second assault. This time the French, eager to retrieve their
-disaster, rushed forward with emulous bravery, and again the hill
-side was covered with the advancing columns, pressing onwards to
-the attack. Trench after trench was carried and in a few moments
-the assailers again occupied the topmost parapet. The Russians
-fought desperately; but no courage could withstand the fierce
-valour of the French. The enemy were hurled down the hills, and our
-allies, mad with excitement, rushed after them, in a rapid bayonet
-charge, covering the ground with the killed and wounded, and
-driving the flying enemy to the refuge of the Malakoff. Meanwhile
-the working party in their rear had speedily thrown up parapets and
-breastworks on the Russian side; and although the guns from the
-town and the shipping in the harbour played vigorously upon the
-hill, they were enabled to hold their important acquisition.
-
-Farther to the right, the French had also attacked and carried,
-after considerable resistance, a line of works leading to and
-defending Careening Bay, and connected with the works of the
-Mamelon, known as the White Works. A number of guns were taken,
-and the French were thus in possession of an access to the great
-harbour, and enabled to throw up works commanding the shipping.
-
-We have thus far related the varying fortunes of the French
-attack. Let us now turn to the English assault on the Quarries.
-Simultaneously with the advance of our allies, Colonel Campbell
-threw his small force into the Russian works, experiencing but
-trifling opposition; and congratulating himself upon having so
-easily achieved his object. Advancing beyond the Quarries towards
-the Redan, there is no doubt the adventurous English might even
-have entered that great work itself, so great was the confusion
-among the Russians, caused by the attack on the Mamelon, had
-they been in sufficient force to warrant such a feat. The enemy,
-however, soon mustered their strength, and Colonel Campbell was
-forced, after a stubborn resistance, to yield his position. Three
-times did the small British force retreat from the Quarries, and as
-many times they retook them with the bayonets. At length they were
-enabled to throw up an earthwork, which ensured their possession of
-this important position. In one of the Russian attacks, an instance
-of individual prowess occurred, which obtained for the performer
-of it the rare honour of being named, though a non-commissioned
-officer, in Lord Raglan’s despatch. The assailing party had wavered
-a little before the sharp fire from the British muskets, when
-Lance-Corporal Quin, of the 47th, darted out of the work towards a
-Russian officer and four men, who had advanced somewhat in front
-of the main body of the enemy. With the butt-end of his musket he
-brained one of the soldiers, bayoneted a second and the other two
-precipitately fled from the doughty corporal. Then collaring the
-officer, and administering a gentle stimulant with the point of his
-bayonet to quicken his advance, he dragged him a prisoner into the
-work, in less time than we have occupied to tell the tale.
-
-The enemy’s loss must been very great, judging by that which the
-victors sustained in the two attacks. The French lost about 60
-officers, and 2000 men killed and wounded; and the British, 35
-officers, and 365 rank and file.”
-
-
-MARSHAL, FIELD.--This rank is of modern date in the British army.
-It is the highest military rank in the army.
-
-
-MARSTON MOOR, BATTLE OF.--This battle was the beginning of the
-misfortunes of Charles I of England--fought July 3rd, 1644.
-
-“The Scots and Parliamentarian army had joined, and were besieging
-York, when Prince Rupert, joined by the Marquis of Newcastle,
-determined to raise the siege. Both armies drew up on Marston
-Moor, to the number of 50,000, and the victory seemed long
-undecided between them. Rupert, who commanded the right wing of
-the Royalists, was opposed by Oliver Cromwell, who now first came
-into notice, at the head of a body of troops which he had taken
-care to levy and discipline. Cromwell was victorious; he pushed his
-opponents off the field, followed the vanquished, returned to a
-second engagement, and a second victory; the Prince’s whole train
-of artillery was taken, and the Royalists never after recovered the
-blow.”
-
-
-MERIDA.--_In Spain._--Taken by the French in January, 1811. Near
-here the British army, under Lord Hill, defeated the French, under
-General Girard, after a severe engagement October 28th, 1811. The
-British took Merida from the French, July 1812, after a severe
-encounter,--General Hill himself leading the combined armies of
-Britain and Spain.
-
-
-MILAN.--French expelled from it by Charles V, of Germany, 1525.
-Seized again by the French, June 30, 1796. Retaken by the Austrians
-in 1799; regained by the French, May 31, 1800. Napoleon crowned
-with the Iron crown, at Milan, May 26, 1805. (See _Longbeards_ or
-_Longobards_). This city, celebrated for the Milan decrees against
-all continental intercourse with England, issued by Napoleon,
-December 17th, 1807. Here an insurrection occurred against the
-Austrians, March 18th, 1848, which resulted in a battle, and flight
-of the viceroy and troops.
-
-
-MILITIA.--Supposed to have been introduced into England by King
-Alfred. The English volunteers and militia, a splendid body of men,
-who have more than once materially assisted Government in times of
-necessity. The Canadian Volunteers are a body of men almost equal
-to the soldiers of the line; and during the late Fenian excitement,
-have shown to the whole world that a brave man delights to defend
-his hearth and home, and that “_dulce est mori pro patriâ_.”
-
-
-MINDEN, BATTLE OF.--Fought, August 1st, 1759, between the English,
-Hessians and Hanoverians, on the one side, and the French on the
-other. The Allies were commanded by Prince Ferdinand, and under him
-Lord George Sackville. The Allies gained a complete victory, and
-pursued the French to the very ramparts of Minden. Lord Sackville,
-who commanded the Allied cavalry, for some disobedience of orders,
-on his return to England was tried by court martial and dismissed
-the service, but was afterwards restored.
-
-
-MOCKERN, BATTLES OF.--Between the French, under Eugène Beauharnois,
-and the allied Russian and Prussian army, which was signally
-defeated with great loss, April, 1813. There was another bloodier
-battle fought here, October 14th, 1813, between the same contending
-armies; five times Mockern was taken and retaken during this
-conflict.
-
-
-MOHATZ, BATTLES OF.--_In Hungary._--Here, in 1526, Louis, King of
-Hungary, was defeated by the Turks, under Solyman II, with the
-loss of 22,000 men. Another battle was fought here between the
-Christians, commanded by Prince Charles of Lorraine, and the Turks,
-who were defeated with the loss of 10,000 men, A.D. 1687.
-
-
-MOHILON, BATTLE OF.--Between the Russians, under the celebrated
-Prince Bagration, and the French, under Marshal Davoust. This was
-one of the most bloody engagements in the campaign of 1812. The
-Russians were totally defeated, with immense loss in killed and
-wounded; fought, July 23rd, 1812.
-
-
-MOLWITZ, BATTLE OF.--Between the Prussians and Austrians. The
-Prussians were commanded by Frederick III, who obtained a great and
-important victory. An immense number of killed and wounded on the
-side of the Austrians was the result of this sanguinary battle.
-Austria being at the time in alliance with Great Britain, the
-consequence of the victory seriously affected the interest of that
-country. Fought, April 10th (March 30th), 1741.
-
-
-MONTEBELLO, BATTLE OF.--Fought May 20th, 1859, between the
-Austrians and French. “On the 20th May, a severe action was fought
-at Montebello, which lasted six hours. The Austrians appear, in the
-first instance, to have taken Montebello from the French, and to
-have been afterwards expelled by the French. A desperate hand to
-hand conflict took place in the village, which had to be carried,
-house after house. The Austrians, after the battle, evacuated
-Casteggio, and retired along the Creatisma road.”
-
-
-MONTE VIDEO.--Taken by storm, by the British force, under Sir
-Samuel Auchmuty, February 3rd, 1807, with a terrible loss of
-nearly two-thirds of his army. It was evacuated, July 7th, same
-year, in consequence of the severe repulse of the British at Buenos
-Ayres.
-
-
-MONTEREAU, BATTLE OF.--Fought, February 18th, 1814, between the
-Allied army and the French, the latter commanded by Napoleon
-himself. In this desperate engagement, the Allies were defeated
-with great loss in killed and wounded. This battle was one of the
-last ever gained by Napoleon. Four months after he was ruined at
-Waterloo.
-
-
-MOODKEE, BATTLE OF.--_In India._--Between the British and Sikhs.
-The advanced guard of the British was attacked by the Sikh forces,
-but the latter were repulsed and driven back three miles, losing
-great numbers of men and 15 pieces of cannon, December 18th, 1845.
-Sir Robert Sale was mortally wounded in this battle, being in his
-sixty-fifth year. Lady Sale signalized herself during the two
-memorable retreats from Afghanistan.
-
-
-MORGARTEN, BATTLE OF.--Between the Swiss and Austrians. The Swiss
-numbered 1300, the Austrians 20,000. Fought, November 15th, 1315.
-“The 15th November, 1315, dawned; the sun darted his first rays
-on the shields and armour of the advancing host; and this being
-the first army ever known to have attempted the frontiers of the
-Cantons, the Swiss viewed its long line with various emotions.
-Montfort de Tettnang led the cavalry into the narrow pass of
-Morgarten, and soon filled the whole space between the Mountain
-(Mount Sattel) and the lake. Fifty men, on the eminence above
-Morgarten, raised a sudden shout, and rolled down heaps of rocks
-and stones among the crowded ranks. The confederates on the
-mountain, perceiving the impression made by this attack, rushed
-down in close array, and fell upon the flank of the disordered
-column. With massy clubs they dashed in pieces the armour of the
-enemy, and dealt their blows and thrusts with long pikes. The
-narrowness of the defile admitted of no evolutions, and a slight
-frost having injured the road, the horses were impeded in all their
-motions; many leaped into the lake; all were startled; and at last
-the whole column of soldiers gave way, and suddenly fell back on
-the infantry; and these last, as the nature of the country did not
-allow them to open their files, were run over by the fugitives, and
-many of them trampled to death. A general rout ensued, and Duke
-Leopold was, with much difficulty, rescued by a peasant, who led
-him to Winterthur, where the historian of the times saw him arrive
-in the evening, pale, sullen and dismayed.”
-
-
-MORTAR.--A short gun of an extraordinary large bore and close
-chamber, used for throwing bomb shells. The mortar was first made
-in England in 1543.
-
-
-MOSCOW, BURNING OF.--Entered by the French, September 4th, 1812.
-“At length Moscow, with its domes, and towers, and palaces,
-appeared in sight; and Napoleon, who had joined the advance guard,
-gazed long and thoughtfully on that goal of his wishes. Murat went
-forward, and entered the gates with his cavalry; but as he passed
-through the streets, he was struck by the solitude which surrounded
-him.
-
-Nothing was heard but the heavy tramp of his squadrons as he passed
-along, for a deserted and abandoned city was the meagre prize, for
-which such unparalleled efforts had been made. As night drew its
-curtains over the splendid capital, Napoleon entered the gates,
-and immediately appointed Mortier governor. In his directions,
-he commanded him to abstain from all pillage. For this, said he,
-you shall be answerable with your life. Defend Moscow against
-all, whether friend or foe. The bright moon rose over the mighty
-city, tipping with silver the domes of more than 200 churches, and
-pouring a flood of light over 1000 palaces, and the dwellings of
-300,000 inhabitants. The weary army sunk to rest; but there was no
-sleep for Mortier’s eyes.
-
-Not the gorgeous and variegated palaces and their rich ornaments,
-nor the parks and gardens, and oriental magnificence that
-everywhere surrounded him, kept him wakeful, but the ominous
-foreboding that some dire calamity was hanging over the silent
-capital. When he entered it, scarcely a living soul met his
-gaze, as he looked down the long streets; and when he broke open
-the buildings, he found parlors, and bedrooms, and chambers all
-furnished and in order, but no occupants. The sudden abandonment of
-their homes, betokened some secret purpose yet to be fulfilled. The
-midnight moon was sailing over the city, when the cry of “Fire!”
-reached the ears of Mortier; and the first light over Napoleon’s
-falling empire was kindled, and the most wondrous scene of modern
-time commenced,--the burning of Moscow. Mortier, as governor of the
-city, immediately issued his orders, and was putting forth every
-exertion, when, at day-light, Napoleon hastened to him. Affecting
-to disbelieve the reports that the inhabitants were firing their
-own city, he put more rigid commands on Mortier to keep the
-soldiers from their work of destruction.
-
-The marshal simply pointed to some iron covered houses that
-had not yet been opened, from every crevice of which smoke was
-issuing like steam from the sides of a pent up volcano. Sad and
-thoughtful, Napoleon turned toward the Kremlin, the ancient palace
-of the Czars, whose huge structure rose high above the surrounding
-edifices.
-
-In the morning, Mortier, by great exertions, was enabled to subdue
-the fire. But the next night, at midnight, the sentinels on watch,
-on the lofty Kremlin, saw below them the flames bursting through
-the houses and palaces, and the cry of “Fire!” “Fire!” passed
-through the city. The dread scene had now fairly opened. Fiery
-balloons were seen dropping from the air, and lighting upon the
-houses; dull explosions were heard on every side from the shut up
-dwellings, and the next moment a bright light burst forth, and
-the flames were raging through the apartments. All was uproar and
-confusion. The serene air and moonlight of the night before, had
-given way to the driving clouds, and a wild tempest that swept with
-the roar of the sea over the city. Flames arose on every side,
-blazing and crackling in the storm, while clouds of smoke and
-sparks, in an incessant shower, went driving toward the Kremlin.
-The clouds themselves seemed turned into fire, rolling in wrath
-over devoted Moscow. Mortier, crushed with the responsibility thus
-thrown over his shoulders, moved with his young guard amid this
-desolation, blowing up the houses, and facing the tempest and the
-flames, struggling nobly to arrest the conflagration. He hastened
-from place to place amid the blazing ruins, his face blackened
-with the smoke, and his hair and eyebrows seared with the fierce
-heat. At length, the day dawned, a day of tempest and of flame;
-and Mortier, who had strained every nerve for 36 hours, entered a
-palace, and dropped down with fatigue.
-
-The manly form and stalwart arm, that had so long carried death
-into the ranks of the enemy, at length gave way, and the gloomy
-marshal lay and panted in utter exhaustion. The day was one of
-tempest; and when night again enveloped the city it was one broad
-flame, wavering to and fro in the blast.
-
-The wind had increased to a perfect hurricane, and shifted from
-quarter to quarter, as if on purpose to swell the sea of fire, and
-extinguish the last hope. The fire was approaching the Kremlin, and
-already the roar of the flames and the crash of the falling houses,
-and the crackling of burning timbers, were borne to the ears of the
-startled Emperor.
-
-He arose and walked to and fro, stopping and convulsively gazing
-on the terrific scene. Murat, Eugène, and Berthier rushed into his
-presence, and on their knees besought him to flee; but he still
-clung to that haughty palace, as if it were his empire. But at
-length the shout, “The Kremlin on fire!” was heard above the roar
-of the conflagration, and Napoleon reluctantly consented to leave.
-He descended into the street with his staff, and looked about for
-a way of egress, but the flames blocked every passage. At length
-they discovered a postern gate, leading to the Moskwa, and entered
-it, but they had only entered still further into the danger. As
-Napoleon cast his eyes around the open space, girdled and arched
-with fire, smoke, and cinders, he saw one single street yet open,
-but all on fire.
-
-Into this he rushed, and amid the crash of falling houses, and
-raging of the flames, over burning ruins, through clouds of rolling
-smoke, and between walls of fire, he pressed on; and at length,
-half suffocated, emerged in safety from the blazing city, and took
-up his quarters in the imperial palace of Petrousky, nearly three
-miles distant.
-
-Mortier, relieved from his anxiety for the Emperor, redoubled his
-efforts to arrest the conflagration. His men cheerfully rushed into
-every danger. Breathing nothing but smoke and ashes,--canopied by
-flame, and smoke, and cinders,--surrounded by walls of fire that
-rocked to and fro, and fell with a crash amid the blazing ruins,
-carrying down with them red hot roofs of iron,--he struggled
-against an enemy, that no boldness could awe, or courage overcome.
-
-Those brave troops had heard the tramp of thousands of cavalry,
-sweeping battle without fear, but now they stood in still terror,
-before the march of the conflagration, under whose burning
-footsteps was heard the incessant crash of falling houses, and
-palaces, and churches. The continuous roar of the raging hurricane,
-mingled with that of the flames, was more terrible than the thunder
-of artillery; and before this new foe, in the midst of this
-battle of the elements, the awe-struck army stood powerless and
-affrighted. When night descended again on the city, it presented
-a spectacle, the like of which was never seen before, and which
-baffles all description: the streets of fire, the heavens a canopy
-of fire, and the entire body of the city a mass of fire, fed by a
-hurricane that whirled the blazing fragments in a constant stream
-through the air. Incessant explosions, from the blowing up of
-stores of oil, and tar, and spirits, shook the very foundations of
-the city, and sent volumes of smoke rolling furiously toward the
-sky. Huge sheets of canvas, on fire, came floating, like messengers
-of death, through the flames; the towers and domes of the churches
-and palaces, glowed with red-hot heat over the wild sea below, then
-tottering a moment on their bases, were hurled by the tempest into
-the common ruin.
-
-Thousands of wretches, before unseen, were driven by the heat from
-the cellars and hovels, and streamed in an incessant throng through
-the streets. Children were seen carrying their parents,--the
-strong the weak,--while thousands more were staggering under loads
-of plunder, they had snatched from the flames. This, too, would
-frequently take fire in the falling shower, and the miserable
-creatures would be compelled to drop it and flee for their lives.
-Oh, it was a scene of woe and fear indescribable! A mighty and
-close packed city of houses, and churches, and palaces, wrapt from
-limit to limit in flames, which are fed by a whirling hurricane,
-is a sight this world will seldom see. But this was all within the
-city. To Napoleon, without, the spectacle was still more sublime
-and terrific. When the flames had overcome all obstacles, and had
-wrapped everything in their red mantle, that great city looked like
-a sea of fire, swept by a tempest that drove it into vast billows.
-
-Huge domes and towers, throwing off sparks like blazing firebrands,
-now towered above these waves, and now disappeared in their
-maddening flow, as they rushed and broke high over tops, and
-scattered their spray of fire against the clouds. The heavens
-themselves seemed to have caught the conflagration, and the angry
-masses that swept it, rolled over a bosom of fire. Columns of flame
-would rise and sink along the surface of the sea, and huge volumes
-of black smoke suddenly shoot into the air, as if volcanoes were
-working below.
-
-The black form of the Kremlin alone towered above the chaos, now
-wrapped in flame and smoke, and again emerged into view, standing
-amid the scene of desolation and terror, like virtue in the midst
-of a burning world, enveloped but unscathed by the devouring
-elements. Napoleon stood and gazed upon this scene in silent awe.
-Though nearly three miles distant, the windows and walls of his
-apartment were so hot, that he could scarcely bear his hand against
-them. Said he, years afterwards, “It was the spectacle of a sea
-and billows of fire, a sky and clouds of flame; mountains of red
-rolling flame, like immense waves of the sea, alternately bursting
-forth, and elevating themselves to skies of fire, and then sinking
-into the ocean of flame below. Oh! it was the most grand, the most
-sublime, the most terrific sight the world ever beheld.”
-
-
-MOSKWA, BATTLE OF.--Also called the battle of _Borodino_, which see.
-
-
-MUSKET.--First used at the siege of Anasitti, 1414. Introduced
-generally into the British army, and bows and arrows laid aside,
-1521.
-
-
-MUNCHENGRATZ AND GITSCHIN, BATTLES OF.--Fought, 28th June,
-1866, between the Austrians and the Prussians. The _Times’_
-correspondent, with the Prussian army, gives the following account
-of these battles:
-
-“The Prussian leader calculated that if he made a demonstration of
-a careless march towards Munchengratz by the highroad and railway,
-the Austrians, who might be on the Mushey Berg, would lie there
-quiet till the heads of his columns had passed their position
-in order that their artillery might take the marching troops in
-reverse, and that he might himself in the meantime turn their
-position. By the same bait he also hoped to hold his adversaries
-on the Kaczowberg until their retreat was cut off. To effect this
-double object, the seventh division was to move from Turnau by a
-road on the south side of the Iser, whereby the village of Wschew
-crosses the road from Podoll to Sobotka, at Zdiar. It was then
-to take the Austrians on the Mushey Berg in rear--for this hill
-slopes gently on its reverse side towards a rivulet which forms the
-little lake of Zdiar. The division was afterwards to push on over
-the hill and strike the road from Munchengratz to Furstenbruck,
-between the village of Bossin and the former place. On the right
-bank of the river General Herwarth was to advance from Huhnerwasser
-on Munchengratz, cross the Iser, and occupy the town, throwing out
-at the same time a division to his left, which by Mohelnitz should
-take in reverse the defenders of the Kaczowberg. The divisions of
-Horne and Manstein were to push down the main road from Podoll,
-while strong reserves closed down to Podoll. A division of infantry
-was to cross at Huberlow and attack the Kaczowberg in front, while
-a division of cavalry kept the communications open between the
-divisions on the right bank of the river. A strong division of
-cavalry was also sent from Turnau to scour the country to Jicin in
-the direction of Josephstadt.
-
-About eight o’clock this morning, Prince Charles, with General Von
-Voigts-Retz, his chief of the staff, and General Stuhltnahl, his
-Quarter-master-General, came down to the bridge of Podoll, and
-almost immediately the Jagers, who formed the advanced guard of
-Horne’s division, crossed the bridge, but not before an opening
-cannonade in the direction of Munchengratz told that Bittenfeld
-was already engaged. On a hill upon the northern bank there was a
-convenient spot from which to see the whole theatre of the combat,
-and here the Prussian staff went to watch the course of the action.
-
-Attention was called towards Munchengratz, where the progress of
-Bittenfeld’s attack could be traced by the puffs of white smoke
-which rose from the discharges of the artillery. The Prussian
-cannonade was seen to be slowly advancing, and that of the Austrian
-to be retiring, while a heavy cloud of black smoke rising close
-beside the town showed that the Austrians had retired from the
-right bank of the river and had burned the bridge. For a short
-time the fight was stationary, but in about a quarter of an hour
-a bright flash of flame and a much heavier smoke rising from the
-Austrian line told that an ammunition waggon had exploded. Their
-battery then ceased firing and rapidly retired, while a quick
-advance of the Prussian cannonade showed that Bittenfeld’s pioneers
-had quickly thrown their bridge, and that his corps was across the
-Iser. But the Austrians did not go far, for in a short time they
-were again in action in the direction of the Jung Bunzlau Road, and
-one battery was drawing off towards Furstenbruck. It then seemed
-that Bittenfeld had halted; the cannonade ceased in this direction.
-The heads of the Prussian columns were some way past the hill, and
-were pushing steadily towards Munchengratz, when the well-known
-puff of smoke rising from the dark firs on the Mushey Berg plateau
-showed that the Austrians had opened fire upon them. The battery
-on the hill did not appear to be more than four guns, and at first
-they fired slowly, nor did they do much execution. Their shells,
-projected from so great a height, went straight into the ground,
-and did not ricochet among the troops; but they were well aimed,
-and in most cases burst at the proper moment, and every now and
-then a man went down. A squadron of Uhlans was directed to pass
-close along the foot of the Mushey Berg, so that the guns on the
-plateau could not be depressed sufficiently to hurt them, and were
-to gain a steep path which leads to the summit between the highest
-point and Bossin, while an infantry brigade was to support the
-movement; but before this plan could be carried into execution the
-Seventh Division was heard engaged on the reverse side, and the
-Austrian battery quickly limbered up and retired. The guns were
-not intercepted by the Seventh Division; but here General Franscky
-made 600 prisoners from the infantry which was on the hill to
-support the battery. While the Seventh Division was still engaged
-behind the Mushey Berg, four Austrian guns appeared on the summit
-of the hill, between Bossin and Wessely, and opened fire against
-the Prussian columns, who were now again advancing over the plain.
-But Franscky was pushing towards them, and his artillery threatened
-to enfilade them, so that they soon had to retire. The Seventh
-Division then struck the road between Munchengratz and Bossin, and
-attacked the latter village. Bittenfeld had already pushed towards
-it from Munchengratz, and supported this attack. The first round
-of Franscky’s artillery set fire to a house, which began to burn
-fiercely, and the flames were soon communicated to the next, for
-most of the cottages in this country are built of wood, which,
-dried in the hot summer sun, readily takes fire. After a sharp
-skirmish, the Austrians were driven from the village and retired in
-the direction of Furstenbruck, and they left here 200 prisoners;
-and General Herwarth von Bittenfeld had already captured 200.
-
-With the occupation of the village of Bossin ended the combat of
-Munchengratz, in which, by a series of strategic movements, with
-little fighting, and slight loss--for the Prussian killed, wounded,
-and missing do not number 100--Prince Frederick Charles has gained
-about twelve miles of country, and has taken 1000 prisoners, has
-turned the strong position of the Kaczowberg, and has effected his
-secure junction with the corps of General Bittenfeld.
-
-The corps of General von Schmitt marched yesterday from the
-neighbourhood of Podoll to Sobotka, and there, striking the road
-from Munchengratz to Gitschin, General von Schmitt changed the
-direction of his march to the left, and advanced towards Gitschin.
-He moved with his two divisions at some distance apart--that of
-General von Werder, or the Third Division, as it is named in the
-muster-roll of the army, led the way. Von Werder’s advanced guard
-consisted of the 2nd battalion of Jagers, and the 3rd battalion of
-the 42nd Regiment. In rear of these followed the three battalions
-of the regiment of the late King of Prussia, the two remaining
-battalions of the 42nd, and one battalion of the 14th Regiment,
-with one six-pounder and two four-pounder field-batteries.
-
-A strong Austrian force held the wood behind the first ravine,
-with its sharpshooters hidden behind the trunks of the fir-trees,
-with the view of compensating for the inferiority of their rifle
-to the Prussian needle-gun. Behind each marksman two soldiers
-were placed, whose only duty was to load their rifles and hand
-them to the picked men to whom the firing was intrusted. The
-Austrian artillery was placed behind the wood, so that it could
-bring a cross fire on the opening in the front through which the
-_chaussée_ passes, and strike heavily on the Sobotka bank of the
-ravine and the open country beyond. As the Prussian advanced guard
-approached the ravine, the Austrian batteries opened fire upon
-them, and the marksmen from behind the trees also soon commenced
-a biting fire. The Jagers and the men of the 42nd quickly spread
-out as skirmishers, and, regardless of the withering fire to which
-they themselves were exposed, showered bullets from their quickly
-loaded arms against the defenders of the wood, while some of
-their artillery quickly brought into action tried to silence the
-Austrian guns. But the fight was unequal, the sharpshooters behind
-the trees could rarely be seen, and the fire of the Prussians did
-not tell much upon their concealed enemies, nor were their guns in
-sufficient force to engage successfully the more numerous Austrian
-pieces. The Jagers from among the trees were aiming well; the men
-of the 42nd were falling fast, and it seemed that the defenders
-would be able to hold the wood. But the rest of the Prussian
-division was coming up; more artillery was already in action; and
-the Austrian gunners began to fire with less effect. The regiment
-of the King of Prussia soon arrived. The Prussian soldiers, unable
-to make much impression with their fire on the riflemen in the
-trees, were already anxious to come to close quarters, and then
-General von Werder sent his men forward to take the woods with the
-bayonet. They were carried, but not without loss, for the Austrians
-retired from tree to tree, and only when pressed beyond the last
-skirt of the wood retired under cover of their guns and reserves
-to take up a position on the further brow of the next ravine. The
-musketry fire recommenced. The opponents stood on either bank
-of the hollow, and poured volley after volley into each other’s
-ranks, while the artillery, from positions on the flanks of both
-lines, sent their shells truly among their adversaries’ infantry.
-But here the needle-gun had more success, for the Austrians stood
-up clear against the sky, and soon the white uniforms began to go
-down quickly. No troops so ill-armed could have stood before the
-murderous fire which the Prussians directed against the opposite
-line. The Austrians did all that men could do; but, after losing
-fearfully, were obliged to fall back and take up their third
-position in the village of Lochow.
-
-It was now about seven o’clock in the evening; the combat
-had already lasted almost two hours, but here it was renewed
-more fiercely than ever. The Prussians, encouraged by their
-success--brave soldiers and bravely led--eagerly came to the
-attack. With hearts as big and with officers as devoted, the
-Austrians stood with a desperate calmness to receive them.
-On both sides the fighting was hard; but at any distance the
-Austrian rifle had no chance against the needle-gun; and at close
-quarters the boyish soldiers of the Kaiser could not cope with the
-broad-shouldered men of Pomerania, who form the _corps d’armée_,
-one division of which was here engaged. Yet for three-quarters of
-an hour the little village of Lochow was held, and the continuous
-rattle of the rifles and the heavy cannonade of the guns remaining
-almost stationary told the determination of the assault and the
-stoutness of the defence. But the Austrians were slowly forced from
-house to house and from orchard to orchard, and had to retreat to
-their last vantage ground on the top of the Gitschin bank of the
-fourth ravine.
-
-And here both sides re-engaged in the fight with the utmost fury.
-The defenders felt that this was their last standing-point, and on
-its maintenance depended the possession of Gitschin; the assailants
-knew that success here would almost certainly bring them to the
-object of all their exertions. The Prussian line soon formed on the
-top of the opposite bank to that held by the Austrians, and then
-began to fire rapidly against the brow where the Austrians stood.
-The latter returned the fire, but from necessity more slowly; still
-their guns smote the Prussian troops heavily, and the shells,
-bursting in front of the assailants’ line, caused many casualties.
-But the Pomeranians were highly excited, and it is said that a
-heavy mass of the Prussians dashed down the road and rushed up the
-opposite slope with their rifles at the charge. There a fierce
-struggle ensued. The strong men of Pomerania pressed hard against
-their lighter opponents, and pushed them beyond the brow of the
-slope on to the level plain; yet the lithe and active Austrians
-fought hard, and strove to drive their bayonets into the faces of
-their taller antagonists; but strength and weight told, for their
-more powerful adversaries urged them back foot by foot till a gap
-was clearly opened in the defenders’ line. The musketry bullets
-had also told sharply on the Austrians, and they were obliged to
-retire. They drew off across the plain towards Gitschin, but not
-in rout. Slowly and sullenly they drew back, suffering awful loss
-in the open plain where the needle-gun had a fair range; but they
-fought for every yard of ground, ever turning to send among the
-advancing Prussians shots which were often truly aimed, but which
-formed no sufficient return for the showers of bullets which were
-rained upon themselves. For long the plain was the scene of the
-advancing combat, and it was not till near midnight that General
-von Werder occupied Gitschin. In the town the Austrians did not
-stand; they held some houses at the entrance for a short time,
-but these were carried, and then they retired rapidly towards the
-south. In their haste they left their hospitals; and here, as
-well as in Lochow, Von Werder’s division took a large number of
-prisoners.”
-
-
-MUTINY:--A memorable mutiny in the British fleet,
- for an advance of wages April 15th, 1797;
- Of the Nore June, 1797;
- Of Admiral Mitchell’s fleet at Bantry Bay December, 1801;
- Great Indian mutiny, begun March 27th, 1857.
-
-
-MYCALE, BATTLE OF.--Fought, September 22nd, 479 B.C., between the
-Greeks and Persians. The Persians consisted of about 100,000 men.
-They were completely defeated, many thousands of them killed, their
-camp burned, and the Greeks triumphantly embarked their troops, and
-sailed to Samos with an immense booty.
-
-
-
-
-N.
-
-
-NAAS, BATTLE OF.--A desperate engagement between a body of the
-King’s forces, consisting of the ancient Britons and the Armagh
-militia. The insurgent Irish, who had just begun the Great
-Rebellion of 1798, were 3000 strong, and were defeated with the
-loss of 300 killed and some hundreds wounded. Fought, May 24th,
-1798.
-
-
-NARVA, BATTLE OF.--This was the celebrated battle in which Peter
-the Great of Russia was totally defeated by the renowned Charles
-XII of Sweden. Fought, November 30th, 1700. The Russians amounted
-to 70,000 men, while the Swedes had only 20,000. The enemy lost
-30,000 in killed, whilst as many surrendered to the conqueror.
-
-
-NASEBY, BATTLE OF.--Between Charles I of England and the
-Parliamentary army, under Fairfax and Cromwell. The main body of
-the Royal army was commanded by Lord Astley. Prince Rupert led the
-right wing, Sir Marmaduke Langdale the left, and the King himself
-headed the body of reserve. The forces of the Parliament gained the
-victory, the Royalists being obliged to abandon the field, losing
-all their cannon and baggage and 5000 men made prisoners. Fought,
-June 14th, 1645.
-
-
-NAVY OF ENGLAND.--What the British Navy has done, and the number of
-vessels captured by it, is shown in the following table:--
-
- --------------------------------------------------------
- In the French War, ending 1802.
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+-------
- FORCE. | French.| Dutch. |Spanish.| Other | Total.
- | | | |Nations.|
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+-------
- Of the Line | 45 | 25 | 11 | 2 | 83
- Fifties | 2 | 1 | 0 | 0 | 3
- Frigates | 133 | 31 | 20 | 7 | 191
- Sloops, &c. | 161 | 32 | 55 | 16 | 264
- +--------+--------+--------+--------+-------
- Total | 341 | 89 | 86 | 25 | 541
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+-------
-
- ------------------------------------------------------------------
- In the French War, ending 1814.
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+---------+-------
- FORCE. | French.|Spanish.| Danish.|Russian.|American.| Total.
- | | | | | |
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+---------+-------
- Of the Line | 70 | 27 | 23 | 4 | 0 | 124
- Fifties | 7 | 0 | 1 | 0 | 1 | 9
- Frigates | 77 | 36 | 24 | 6 | 5 | 148
- Sloops, &c. | 188 | 64 | 16 | 7 | 13 | 288
- +--------+--------+--------+--------+---------+-------
- Total | 342 | 127 | 64 | 17 | 19 | 569
- ------------+--------+--------+--------+--------+---------+-------
-
-
-NAVARINO, BATTLE OF.--Fought on the 20th October, 1827. “The
-atrocities which marked the warfare between the Greeks and Turks
-were so shocking to humanity, that the Sovereigns of Europe felt
-themselves bound to interfere, and a treaty for the pacification
-of Greece was signed in London, on the 6th of July, 1827, by the
-representatives of England, France, and Russia. In consequence
-of this, the allied fleets in the Mediterranean prepared to
-force the combatants to consent to an armistice, and blockaded
-the Turkish fleet in the harbour of Navarino. Ibrahim Pacha, the
-Turkish commander in the Morea, paying but little attention to the
-remonstrances of the allied Admirals, the united fleets sailed into
-harbour, on the 20th of October, under the command of Sir Edward
-Codrington, to intimidate him into submission. A shot fired by
-a Turkish vessel was the signal for a general engagement, which
-lasted four hours. It terminated in the almost utter annihilation
-of the Turkish fleet, with comparatively little loss to the allied
-squadrons. The independence of Greece was virtually achieved by
-this brilliant victory, and was further secured by the arrival
-of a small military force from France; the Turkish government,
-however, refused submission, and war was commenced against Russia.
-The events of this war, though not properly belonging to English
-history, demand a brief notice; in the first campaign the Turks
-made an obstinate resistance, and gained some advantages over their
-opponents; but in the following year (1829), the Russian arms were
-everywhere successful; the passages of the Balkan were forced;
-Adrianople, the second city in the empire, was captured, and the
-Sultan forced to consent to terms of peace, dictated almost at the
-gates of Constantinople. The demands of Russia were, however, less
-exhorbitant than might have been expected under the circumstances,
-but there is reason to believe that this moderation was inspired by
-a dread of provoking the jealousy and resentment of England.”
-
-
-NEVILL’S CROSS, BATTLE OF.--Fought October 17th, 1346, between the
-Scots and English. More than 15,000 of the Scots were slain.
-
-“Philippa, Edward’s Queen, took upon her the conduct of the field,
-and prepared to repulse the enemy in person: accordingly, having
-made Lord Percy general under her, she met the Scots at a place
-called Nevill’s Cross, near Durham, and offered them battle. The
-Scots King was no less impatient to engage; he imagined that he
-might obtain an easy victory against undisciplined troops, and
-headed by a woman. But he was miserably deceived. His army was
-quickly routed and driven from the field. 15,000 of his men were
-cut to pieces; and he himself, with many of his nobles and knights,
-were taken prisoners, and carried in triumph to London, A.D. 1346.”
-
-Another historian says:--
-
-“Some years after his return home, King David burst into England
-at the head of an army. Edward was absent in France, and David
-thought to avail himself of the opportunity. It turned out a dear
-business to him. Marching southward as far as Durham, he laid waste
-the country with fire and sword. At a place called Nevill’s Cross,
-an English army came up. A Scottish knight, seeing their archers
-gathering in a vast cloud, and knowing well the bitter shower which
-that cloud would discharge, said to the King, “Give me but 100
-horse, and I will disperse them all.” The conceited and headstrong
-King gave no heed. The archers commenced their deadly practice
-without interruption. Three hours of the arrow sleet, three hours
-of furious charging by the English horse, and the Scots were a rout
-of fugitives. Their King was taken prisoner and convoyed to London.
-Mounted on a tall black horse that he might be seen by all the
-people, the son of Robert the Bruce was conducted to the Tower.”
-
-
-NEWARK, BATTLE OF.--This battle was fought March 21st, 1644,
-between the army of the Parliament and the Royal forces, under
-Prince Rupert. He was defeated, and here afterwards Charles I put
-himself into the hands of the Scotch army.
-
-
-NEWBURY, BATTLES OF.--The first battle, fought September 20th,
-1643, was between the Parliamentary army and that of Charles I.
-It lasted till midnight, and among the slain was Lucius Carey,
-Viscount Falkland. A second battle was fought here next year,
-October 10th, and the result, as the first, was equally dubious,
-both sides claiming victory.
-
-
-NEW ORLEANS, BATTLE OF.--(See _Orleans_.)
-
-
-NIAGARA FORT.--_Upper Canada._--“The Fort of Niagara was a place
-of great importance, and served to command all the communication
-between the northern and western French settlements. The siege
-was begun with vigour, and promised an easy conquest; but General
-Prideaux was killed in the trenches by the bursting of a mortar,
-so that the whole command of the expedition devolved upon General
-Johnson, who omitted nothing to push forward the vigorous
-operations of his predecessor, to which also he added his own
-popularity with the soldiers under him. A body of French troops,
-who were sensible of the importance of this fort, attempted to
-relieve it; but Johnson attacked them with intrepidity and success;
-for in less than an hour their whole army was put to the rout.
-The garrison soon after perceiving the fate of their countrymen,
-surrendered prisoners of war.”
-
-
-NICOPOLIS, BATTLE OF.--Between the Christian powers, under
-Sigismund, King of Hungary, and the Turks. This battle, fought
-A.D. 1396, is celebrated as the first fought between the Cross and
-Crescent. The Christians triumphed; the Turks lost 20,000 in slain,
-and 20,000 in wounded and prisoners.
-
-
-NILE, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought, August 1st, 1798, between the fleets
-of England and France. The French fleet arrived at Alexandria
-August 1st, 1798, and Admiral Brueys, not being able to enter port,
-which time and neglect had ruined, moored the ships in Aboukir
-Bay, in a strong and compact line of battle; the headmost vessel,
-according to his own account, being as close as possible to a shoal
-on the north-west, and the rest of the fleet forming a kind of
-curve along the line of deep water, so as not to be turned by any
-means in the south-west.
-
-The advantage of numbers, both in ships, guns, and men, was in
-favour of the French. They had 13 ships of the line and 4 frigates,
-carrying 1196 guns, and 11,230 men. The English had the same number
-of ships of the line, and one 50 gun ship, carrying 1012 guns, and
-8068 men. The English ships were all seventy-fours; the French had
-three 80 gun ships, and one three-decker of 120.
-
-During the whole pursuit it had been Nelson’s practice, whenever
-circumstances would permit, to have his captains on board the
-_Vanguard_, and explain to them his own ideas of the different and
-best modes of attack, and such plans as he proposed to execute
-on falling in with the enemy, whatever their situation might be.
-There is no possible position, it is said, which he did not take
-into consideration. His officers were thus fully acquainted with
-his principles of tactics; and such was his confidence in their
-abilities, that the only thing determined upon, in case they
-should find the French at anchor, was for the ships to form as
-most convenient for their mutual support, and to anchor by the
-stern. “First gain your victory,” he said, “and then make the
-best use of it you can.” The moment he perceived the position of
-the French, that intuitive genius with which Nelson was endowed
-displayed itself; and it instantly struck him that where there
-was room for an enemy’s ship to swing there was room for one of
-ours to anchor. The plan which he intended to pursue, therefore,
-was to keep entirely on the outer side of the French line, and
-station his ships, as far as he was able, one on the outer bow
-and another on the outer quarter of each of the enemy’s. Captain
-Berry, when he comprehended the scope of the design, exclaimed with
-transport, “If we succeed, what will the world say?” “There is no
-_if_ in the case,” replied the Admiral; “that we _shall_ succeed
-is certain--who may live to tell the story is a very different
-question.”
-
-As the squadron advanced, they were assailed by a shower of shot
-and shell from the batteries on the island, and the enemy opened
-a steady fire from the starboard side of their whole line, within
-half gunshot distance, full into the bows of our van ships. It was
-received in silence; the men on board every ship were employed
-aloft in furling sails, and below in tending the braces, and making
-ready for anchoring;--a miserable sight for the French, who, with
-all their skill and all their courage, and all their advantages of
-number and situation, were upon that element on which, when the
-hour of trial comes, a Frenchman has no hope. Admiral Brueys was
-a brave and able man; yet the indelible character of his country
-broke out in one of his letters, wherein he delivered it as his
-private opinion that the English had missed him, because, not being
-superior in force, they did not think it prudent to try their
-strength with him. The moment was now come in which he was to be
-undeceived.
-
-A French brig was instructed to decoy the English. By manœuvring
-so as to tempt them towards a shoal lying off the island of
-Beguieres; but Nelson either knew the danger, or suspected some
-deceit, and the lure was unsuccessful. Captain Foley led the way in
-the _Goliath_, out-sailing the _Zealous_, which for some minutes
-disputed this post of honour with him. He had long conceived that,
-if the enemy were moored in line of battle in with the land, the
-best plan of attack would be to lead between them and the shore,
-because the French guns on that side were not likely to be manned,
-nor even ready for action. Intending, therefore, to fix himself
-on the inner bow of the _Guerrier_, he kept as near the edge of
-the bank as the depth of water would admit; but his anchor hung,
-and, having opened his fire, he drifted to the second ship, the
-_Conquérant_, before it was cleared, then anchored by the stern,
-inside of her, and in ten minutes shot away her masts. Hood, in the
-_Zealous_, perceiving this, took the station which the _Goliath_
-intended to have occupied, and totally disabled the _Guerrier_
-in twelve minutes. The third ship which doubled the enemy’s van
-was the _Orion_, Sir J. Saumarez; she passed to windward of the
-_Zealous_, and opened her larboard guns as long as they bore on
-the _Guerrier_; then passing inside the _Goliath_, sunk a frigate
-which annoyed her, hauled toward the French line, and, anchoring
-inside between the fifth and sixth ships from the _Guerrier_, took
-her station on the larboard bow of the _Franklin_ and the quarter
-of the _Peuple Souverain_, receiving and returning the fire of
-both. The sun was now nearly down. The _Audacious_, Captain Gould,
-pouring a heavy fire into the _Guerrier_ and the _Conquérant_,
-fixed herself on the larboard bow of the latter, and when that ship
-struck, passed on to the _Peuple Souverain_. The _Theseus_, Captain
-Miller, followed, brought down the _Guerrier’s_ remaining main and
-mizen masts, then anchored inside the _Spartiate_, the third in the
-French line.
-
-While these advanced ships doubled the French line, the _Vanguard_
-was the first that anchored on the outer side of the enemy, within
-half pistol shot of their third ship, the _Spartiate_. Nelson had
-six colours flying in different parts of the rigging, lest they
-should be shot away--that they should be struck, no British Admiral
-considers as a possibility. He veered half a cable, and instantly
-opened a tremendous fire, under cover of which the other four
-ships of his division, the _Minotaur_, _Bellerophon_, _Defence_
-and _Majestic_, sailed on ahead of the Admiral. In a few minutes
-every man stationed at the first six guns in the fore part of the
-_Vanguard’s_ deck was killed or wounded--these guns were three
-times cleared. Captain Louis, in the _Minotaur_, anchored next
-ahead, and took off the fire of the _Aquilon_, the fourth in the
-enemy’s line. The _Bellerophon_, Captain Darby, passed ahead, and
-dropped her stern anchor on the starboard bow of the _Orient_,
-seventh in the line, Bruey’s own ship of one hundred and twenty
-guns, whose difference in force was in proportion of more than
-seven to three, and whose weight of ball, from the lower deck
-alone, exceeded that from the whole broadside of the _Bellerophon_.
-Captain Peyton, in the _Defence_, took his station ahead of the
-_Minotaur_ and engaged the _Franklin_, the sixth in the line, by
-which judicious movement the British line remained unbroken. The
-_Majestic_, Captain Wescott, got entangled with the main rigging
-of one of the French ships astern of the _Orient_, and suffered
-dreadfully from that three-decker’s fire; but she swung clear, and
-closely engaging the _Heureux_, the ninth ship in the starboard
-bow, received also the fire of the _Tonnant_, which was the eighth
-in the line. The other four ships of the British squadron, having
-been detached previous to the discovery of the French, were at
-a considerable distance when the action began. It commenced at
-half-after six, about seven the night closed, and there was no
-other light than that from the fire of the contending fleets.
-
-Trowbridge, in the _Culloden_, then foremost of the remaining
-ships, was two leagues astern. He came on sounding, as the others
-had done. As he advanced, the increasing darkness increased the
-difficulty of navigation, and suddenly, after having found eleven
-fathoms’ water, before the lead could be hove again, he was fast
-a-ground; nor could all his own exertions, joined to those of the
-_Leander_ and _Mutiné_ brig, which came to his assistance, get
-him off in time to bear a part in the action. His ship, however,
-served as a beacon to the _Alexander_ and _Swiftsure_, which would
-else, from the course they were holding, have gone considerably
-further on the reef, and must inevitably have been lost. These
-ships entered the bay and took their stations, in the darkness,
-in a manner still spoken of with admiration by all who remember
-it. Captain Hallowell, in the _Swiftsure_, as he was bearing down,
-fell in with what seemed to be a strange sail. Nelson had directed
-his ships to hoist four lights horizontally at the mizen peak as
-soon as it became dark, and this vessel had no such distinction.
-Hallowell, however, with great judgment, ordered his men not to
-fire. “If she was an enemy,” he said, “she was in too disabled
-a state to escape; but, from her sails being loose, and the way
-in which her head was, it was probable she might be an English
-ship.” It was the _Bellerophon_, overpowered by the huge _Orient_.
-Her lights had gone overboard, nearly two hundred of her crew
-were killed or wounded, all her masts and cables had been shot
-away, and she was drifting out of the line towards the lee-side
-of the bay. Her station at this important time was occupied by
-the _Swiftsure_, which opened a steady fire on the quarter of the
-_Franklin_ and the bows of the French Admiral. At the same instant
-Captain Ball, with the _Alexander_, passed under his stern, and
-anchored within sight on his larboard quarter, raking him, and
-keeping a severe fire of musketry upon his decks. The last ship
-which arrived to complete the destruction of the enemy was the
-_Leander_. Captain Thompson, finding that nothing could be done
-that night to get off the _Culloden_, advanced with the intention
-of anchoring athwart-hawse of the _Orient_. The _Franklin_ was so
-near her ahead, that there was not room for him to pass clear of
-the two; he therefore took his station athwart-hawse of the latter,
-in such a position as to rake both.
-
-The two first ships of the French line had been dismasted within a
-quarter of an hour after the commencement of the action; and the
-others in that time suffered so severely, that victory was already
-certain. The third, fourth and fifth were taken possession of at
-half-past eight. Meantime Nelson received a severe wound on the
-head from a piece of langridge shot. Captain Berry caught him in
-his arms as he was falling. The great effusion of blood occasioned
-an apprehension that the wound was mortal. Nelson himself thought
-so; a large flap of the skin of the forehead cut from the bone, had
-fallen over the eye; and, the other being blind, he was in total
-darkness. When he was carried down, the surgeon, in the midst of
-a scene scarcely to be conceived by those who have never seen a
-cockpit in time of action, and the heroism which is displayed amid
-its horrors--with a natural but pardonable eagerness, quitted the
-poor fellow then under his hands, that he might instantly attend
-the admiral. “No!” said Nelson, “I will take my turn with my brave
-fellows.” Nor would he suffer his own wound to be examined, till
-every man who had been previously wounded was properly attended to.
-Fully believing that the wound was mortal, and that he was about to
-die, as he had ever desired, in battle and in victory, he called
-the chaplain, and desired him to deliver what he supposed to be his
-dying remembrance to Lady Nelson; he then sent for Captain Louis
-on board, from the _Minotaur_, that he might thank him personally
-for the great assistance he had rendered to the _Vanguard_; and,
-ever mindful of those who deserved to be his friends, appointed
-Captain Hardy from the brig to the command of his own ship, Captain
-Berry having to go home with the news of the victory. When the
-surgeon came in due time to examine the wound (for it was in vain
-to entreat him to let it be examined sooner), the most anxious
-silence prevailed; and the joy of the wounded men, and of the
-whole crew, when they heard that the hurt was superficial, gave
-Nelson deeper pleasure than the unexpected assurance that his
-life was in no danger. The surgeon requested, and, as far as he
-could, ordered him to remain quiet; but Nelson could not rest. He
-called for his secretary, Mr. Campbell, to write the despatches.
-Campbell had himself been wounded, and was so affected at the
-blind and suffering state of the Admiral that he was unable to
-write. The chaplain was sent for; but before he came, Nelson,
-with his characteristic eagerness, took the pen, and contrived to
-trace a few words, marking his devout sense of the success which
-had already been obtained. He was now left alone; when suddenly a
-cry was heard on the deck that the _Orient_ was on fire. In the
-confusion he found his way up, unassisted and unnoticed; and, to
-the astonishment of every one, appeared on the quarter-deck, where
-he immediately gave order that boats should be sent to the relief
-of the enemy.
-
-It was soon after nine that the fire on the _Orient_ broke out.
-Brueys was dead; he had received three wounds, yet would not
-leave his spot; a fourth cut him almost in two. He desired not
-to be carried below, but to be left to die upon deck. The flames
-soon mastered his ship. Her sides had just been painted, and
-the oil-jars and paint-buckets were lying on the poop. By the
-prodigious light of this conflagration, the situation of the
-fleets could now be perceived, the colours of both being clearly
-distinguishable. About ten o’clock the ship blew up, with a shock
-which was felt to the very bottom of every vessel. Many of her
-officers and men jumped overboard, some clinging to the spars and
-pieces of wreck with which the sea was strewn; others swimming
-to escape from the destruction which they momently dreaded. Some
-were picked up by our boats; and some, even in the heat and fury
-of the action, were dragged into the lower ports of the nearest
-British ships by the British Sailors. The greater part of her
-crew, however, stood the danger to the last, and continued to
-fire from the lower deck. This tremendous explosion was followed
-by a silence not less awful; the firing immediately ceased on
-both sides; and the first sound which broke the silence was the
-dash of her shattered masts and yards falling into the water
-from the vast height to which they had been exploded. It is upon
-record, that a battle between two armies was once broken off by an
-earthquake:--such an event would be felt like a miracle: but no
-incident in war produced by human means, has ever equalled the
-sublimity of this coinstantaneous pause, and all its circumstances.
-
-About seventy of the _Orient’s_ crew were saved by the English
-boats. Among the many hundreds who perished were the Commodore,
-Casa Bianca, and his son, a brave boy only ten years old. They were
-seen floating on a shattered mast when the ship blew up. She had
-money on board (the plunder of Malta) to the amount of six hundred
-thousand pounds sterling. The masses of burning wreck which were
-scattered by the explosion, excited for some moments apprehensions
-in the English which they had never felt from any other danger. Two
-large pieces fell into the main and foretops of the _Swiftsure_,
-without injuring any person. A port-fire also fell into the
-main-royal of the _Alexander_; the fire which it occasioned was
-speedily extinguished. Captain Ball had provided, as far human
-foresight could provide, against any such danger. All the shrouds
-and sails of his ship, not absolutely necessary for its immediate
-management, were thoroughly wetted, and so rolled up, that they
-were as hard and as little inflammable as so many solid cylinders.
-
-The firing recommenced with the ships to leeward of the centre, and
-continued till about three. At daybreak the _Guillaume Tell_ and
-the _Généreuse_, the two rear ships of the enemy, were the only
-French ships of the line which had their colours flying: they cut
-their cables in the forenoon, not having been engaged, and stood
-out to sea, and two frigates with them. The _Zealous_ pursued; but,
-as there was no other ship in a condition to support Captain Hood,
-he was recalled. It was generally believed by the officers that,
-if Nelson had not been wounded, not one of these ships could have
-escaped; the four certainly could not, if the _Culloden_ had got
-into action; and, if the frigates belonging to the squadron had
-been present, not one of the enemy’s fleet would have left Aboukir
-Bay. These four vessels, however, were all that escaped; and the
-victory was the most complete and glorious in the annals of naval
-history. “Victory,” said Nelson, “is not a name strong enough for
-such a scene;” he called it a conquest. Of thirteen sail of the
-line, nine were taken and two burnt; of the four frigates, one
-was sunk; another the _Artemise_ was burnt in a villainous manner
-by her captain, M. Estandlet, who having fired a broadside at the
-_Theseus_, struck his colours, then set fire to the ship, and
-escaped with most of his crew to shore. The British loss in killed
-and wounded amounted to 895. Westcott was the only captain who
-fell: 3105 of the French, including the wounded, were sent on shore
-by cartel, and 5225 perished.
-
-Thus ended this eventful battle, which exalted the name of Nelson
-to a level at least with that of the celebrated conqueror, whose
-surprising success at the head of the French armies had then begun
-to draw the attention of the civilized world. The first words of
-his despatches on this memorable occasion prove his gratitude
-to that Providence which had protected him:--“_Almighty God has
-blessed his Majesty’s arms._”
-
-
-NISBET, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 7th, 1602, between the English and
-Scotch armies,--10,000 of the latter were left dead on the field
-and in the pursuit.
-
-
-NORTHALLERTON, BATTLE OF.--_Or the Standard._--A furious engagement
-fought in Yorkshire, England, August 22nd, 1137, between the
-Scottish and English armies. This battle received the latter name
-from a high crucifix which was erected by the English on a waggon
-and was carried along by the troops. (See _Standard, Battle of_)
-
-
-NORTHAMPTON, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Duke of York and Henry
-VI of England. Henry was defeated, and made prisoner, after a
-bloody fight, which took place July 19th, 1460.
-
-
-NOIR, BATTLES OF.--First, fought, August 15th, 1799, between the
-French army commanded by Joubert, and the Russians, under Suwarrow.
-The French were defeated with immense slaughter,--10,000 being left
-dead on the battlefield, among whom was their General, Joubert, and
-several distinguished officers. A second battle was fought, January
-8th, 1800, between the Austrian and French armies, when the latter
-a second time were signally defeated.
-
-
-NUMANTIA, SIEGE OF.--Celebrated in the life of Scipio Africanus.
-He besieged the city with 60,000 men, the Numantines had only
-4000 able to bear arms, but for 14 years it bravely withstood all
-attempts, till at last it fell, and every soul preferred to perish
-rather than fall into the hands of the Romans.
-
-
-
-
-O.
-
-
-ORLEANS.--_France._--Besieged by John Talbot, the Earl of
-Salisbury, October 12th, 1428; relieved, and the siege raised by
-the Maid of Orleans--Joan of Arc--from which circumstance she
-received her name.
-
-
-ORLEANS NEW.--The British made an attack on New Orleans, December,
-1814; they were repulsed by the Americans, under General Jackson,
-with great loss January, 7th, 1815. The American troops were
-entrenched behind a large number of cotton bales, and the British
-were obliged to advance in an open and exposed plain for more than
-a mile, during which they were literally mowed down by the shot
-from the cotton batteries. Some of the bravest Peninsular heroes
-fell here and met a soldier’s grave.
-
-
-ORTHES, BATTLE OF.--Fought, February 27th, 1814, between the
-British and Spanish armies, on the one side, and the French on
-the other. The Allies were commanded by Wellington--the French by
-Soult. In this memorable engagement the Allies gained a complete
-victory.
-
-
-OSTROLENKA, BATTLE OF.--Between the Poles and Russians. It was one
-of the most sanguinary and desperate battles fought between the
-two countries, and took place May 26th, 1831. On both sides the
-slaughter was immense, but the Poles remained masters of the field.
-
-
-OTTERBURN, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 31st, 1388. The following is a
-graphic account of this engagement:--
-
-“One of the Scotch inroads into England, in the time of Robert II,
-led to the famous battle of Otterburn, or “Chevy Chase.” This was
-considered, by the judges of fighting in those days, to have been
-the best fought, and, for the numbers engaged, the most severe of
-all the battles of that age. There was not a man, knight or squire,
-that did not acquit himself gallantly, fighting hand to hand with
-his enemy. It was about the time of Lammas, when the moor men were
-busy with their hay harvest, that the Earl of Douglas rode into
-England to drive a prey. The warders on the walls of Newcastle and
-Durham saw, rising in all directions, thick columns of smoke. This
-was the first intimation of the presence of the Scots. In their
-return homeward they halted three days before Newcastle, where they
-kept up an almost continual skirmish. The Earl of Douglas had a
-long combat with Sir Henry Percy, and took his pennon. “Hotspur, I
-will carry this pennon into Scotland,” said the Douglas, “and fix
-it on the tower of my castle of Dalkeith, that it may be seen from
-far.” “That shall you never, Earl of Douglas,” said Hotspur; “be
-assured you shall never have this pennon to boast of.” “I will fix
-your pennon before my tent,” said Douglas, “and shall see if you
-will venture to take it away.”
-
-The Scots resumed their march homeward. They encamped at Otterburn,
-“upon the bent so brown,” and Douglas declared his resolution to
-wait there for two or three days, and see if the Percy would come
-to recover his pennon. On the evening of the second day the Scots
-were supping, some, indeed, had gone to sleep, when a loud shout
-of “Percy! Percy!” was heard, and the English were upon them. It
-was a sweet moonlight evening in August, clear and bright, and the
-breeze blew soft and fresh. The Scots, though somewhat taken by
-surprise, rose to the fight cool and “siccar,” as at Bannockburn
-itself. The lances crossed, and many on both sides went down at the
-first shock. Douglas, shouting his war cry, ordered his banner to
-advance. Percy, eager to encounter the Douglas, advanced his banner
-also. The two banners met, and many valiant deeds of arms were done
-around them. But the English were three to one, and the Scots were
-beginning to be forced back.
-
-Seeing this, the Earl of Douglas seized a battle-axe with both
-hands and dashed into the midst of the enemy, his men following
-close. He struck right and left, and cut a lane deep into the
-battalion of the English. At last three spears were thrust against
-him all at once. One struck him on the shoulder, one on the breast,
-and the stroke glanced off his armour down into his groin; the
-third struck him in the thigh. With these three strokes he was
-borne to the earth, and as soon as he fell a battle-axe hewed deep
-into his head. The English marched over him without knowing who he
-was.
-
-Sir John Sinclair, cousin to the Earl, knelt beside him, supported
-his bloody head, and asked, “Cousin, how fares it with you?”
-“Indifferently,” said he. “Thanks be to God, there are but few
-of my ancestors who have died in their beds. I bid you revenge
-my death, for my heart grows every moment more faint. Lift up my
-banner, which is on the ground, from the death of the valiant
-squire who bore it. Shout ‘Douglas!’ and tell neither friend nor
-foe but what I am with you.” Having spoken thus he expired. His
-orders were obeyed. They cast a mantle over his body, took his
-banner from the dead hand of the squire, raised it, and shouted,
-“Douglas!” The Scots came thronging up to the cry. They levelled
-their lances, and pushed with such courage that the English were
-soon driven beyond the spot where the Douglas lay. Again the shout
-of “Douglas!” rose more vehement and loud. The Scots in a dense
-mass renewed the onset, bore the enemy before them, and broke them
-so completely that they never rallied again. Percy himself was made
-prisoner. He and his pennon, too, had to go to Scotland.
-
-Thus the dead Douglas won the field. The Scots laid the body of
-their leader in a coffin, which they placed on a car, and began
-their march home. They came without interruption to Melrose, and
-there, in the fair abbey, the Douglas was laid. The banner, about
-which his dying charge had been given at Otterburn, was hung above
-the place of the warrior’s rest.”
-
-
-OUDENARDE, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 11th, 1708, between the Allies,
-commanded by Marlborough, and Prince Eugene and the French. The
-French were defeated, and completely routed, with great loss. The
-result of this victory was, that the French King entered into a
-negotiation for peace.
-
-
-OULART, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 27th, 1798, between a body of 3000
-Irish insurgents and the King’s troop, a small number. In this
-engagement the North Cork Militia were cut to pieces--the Lieut.
-Colonel, one Sergeant and three Privates alone remaining.
-
-
-OURIQUE, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 25th, 1139. Alfonso, Count of
-Portugal, encountered five Saracen Kings and an immense army of
-Moors on the plains of Ourique. After a glorious victory, he was
-hailed King by his soldiers on the spot. He afterwards entered
-Lisbon in triumph, and overthrew the Moorish dominion in Portugal.
-This was, perhaps, the greatest battle recorded in the History of
-Portugal.
-
-
-
-
-P.
-
-
-PALESTRO, BATTLE OF.--Fought, 29th May, 1859, between the Austrians
-and the French.
-
-“On the 29th May, was fought the battle of Palestro. The Austrian
-avant-garde, 1500 strong, occupied the villages of Palestro and
-Vinzaglio. They were carried by the Allies at the point of the
-bayonet, and two cannons, the first captured since the opening of
-the war, were taken. The next morning the Austrians advanced to
-retake Palestro. Having cannonaded the village, a body of Austrians
-advanced to cut off the communication between the Piedmontese
-troops and the river. Perceiving this, the Zouaves, who had arrived
-during the night, threw themselves, in spite of a murderous fire,
-on the Austrians, take eight guns and put the Austrians to flight.
-During this engagement the King of Sardinia headed an attack on
-a battery. The Emperor of the French, a few days afterwards,
-complimenting him on his bravery, told him that if he wished to be
-King of Italy, he must take rather more care of his august person.
-This engagement inspired the Austrians with a great dread of the
-Zouaves, whom they call the _quei terribili zuai_.”
-
-
-PAMPELUNA, BATTLE OF.--Taken by the French on their invasion of
-Spain; invested by the British; hence very bloody engagements, July
-27th and 29th, 1813. It surrendered to the British same year.
-
-
-PARMA, BATTLES OF.--The confederates, England, France and Spain,
-fought against the Emperor of Austria, June 29th, 1734. Both sides
-claimed the victory. A second battle, called the great battle of
-Parma, in which the French, under Marshal McDonald, were defeated
-by the celebrated Suwarrow, with the loss of 20,000 men and four
-Generals, July 12th, 1799.
-
-
-PATAY, BATTLE OF.--This battle was fought, June 10th, 1429. Joan
-of Arc was present in this battle. The French signally defeated
-the English; the consequence of which was that Charles VII of
-France entered Rheims in triumph, and was crowned July 17th, same
-year--Joan of Arc assisting in the ceremony in full armour and
-holding the sword of state.
-
-
-PAVIA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, February 24th, 1525, between the French
-and Imperialists, when the former were defeated and their King,
-Francis I, after fighting with heroic bravery and killing seven
-men with his own hand, was obliged to surrender himself a prisoner
-of war. He wrote to his mother a letter acquainting her with the
-melancholy news in these expressive words--“_Tout est perdu,
-Madame, hors l’honneur._”
-
-
-PEAFFENDORF, BATTLE OF.--Fought, August 15th, 1760, between the
-Imperialists and Prussians; the Austrians were totally defeated by
-the King of Prussia, who, by this victory, prevented the Austrian
-army from forming a junction with the Russians.
-
-
-PHALANX.--This word originally signified a battalion or squadron.
-The Greek Phalanx consisted of 8000 men, in a square battalion,
-with shields joined and spears crossing each other. The celebrated
-Phalanx of Epaminondas, or the Theban Phalanx, was wedge shaped,
-and by it he achieved his two great victories. The modern square
-is based on the Grecian Phalanx, which was itself, as well as the
-Roman Orb, taken from the Theban. The renowned Macedonian Phalanx
-of Alexander the Great’s father, Philip, was instituted B.C. 360.
-This consisted of 16,000 picked men divided into four equal parts
-of 4000 each. They performed their evolutions upon the enomoty
-or single file, whether it were required to extend or deepen the
-line, and there was an interval between every two sections for the
-convenience of manœuvring.
-
-
-PHARSALIA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 12th, 48 B.C., between Julius
-Cæsar and Pompey.
-
-“The battle commenced about daybreak, and before noon the army of
-Pompey was utterly defeated. Pompey himself, early in the battle,
-seemed entirely to have lost his presence of mind, and fled in
-despair to his tent, there to await the result. Cæsar, determined
-to make the most of his advantage, notwithstanding the weariness
-of his troops, did not permit the pursuit to slacken till the army
-of Pompey was entirely scattered. A considerable body of them had
-taken refuge in an adjacent mountain. By cutting off all hope
-of succor, Cæsar induced them to surrender. He received their
-submission with the greatest gentleness, and forbade his soldiers
-from offering violence to their vanquished countrymen. This was
-the most complete victory Cæsar ever obtained. His loss did not
-exceed 200, while that of Pompey was 10,000, and 24,000 surrendered
-themselves prisoners of war. On passing over the battle field, so
-thickly strewn with Romans, Cæsar is said to have been affected
-even to tears, while he exclaimed to one near him, “They would have
-it so.”
-
-
-PHILIPPI, BATTLE OF.--Fought, October, 42 B.C., between Octavius
-Cæsar and Marc Antony, on the one side, and Brutus and Cassius on
-the other.
-
-“In the meantime, Brutus and Cassius, the principal conspirators
-against Cæsar, having retired into Greece, persuaded the Roman
-students at Athens to declare for the cause of freedom. In Syria
-and Macedonia they succeeded in raising large armies, and soon
-found themselves in a condition to support a contest on which the
-empire of the world depended. While at Sardis, Brutus and Cassius
-are said to have had a serious misunderstanding, the effect of
-a jealousy which had been industriously raised between them.
-But no bad consequences arose from it, for immediately joining
-their armies, they hastened to oppose Antony and Octavius, who
-were rapidly advancing to meet them. Once more the empire of the
-world was about to be decided by a single battle. It was a time
-of fearful suspense. Should the arms of Brutus be successful, the
-Roman people might again form a free republic. On the other hand,
-should Octavius triumph, they had to fear a worse tyranny than ever
-had been exercised by Julius Cæsar. Brutus and Cassius took their
-station each on a little hill near the city of Philippi. Behind
-them was the sea, by which they might obtain supplies, and between
-them and the plain on which the Triumviri had encamped their army,
-was an impassable morass. In this favorable position, it was their
-policy to delay a battle as long as possible. On the contrary, the
-Triumviri, not being able to obtain supplies by sea, and conscious
-that their army could not long be sustained by the resources of the
-surrounding country, were eager immediately to engage. A road was
-constructed by them through the morass which separated the armies.
-The tall reeds of the morass having concealed the soldiers while
-making the road, Brutus and Cassius were in some measure taken by
-surprise when the enemy advanced over it, and the impatience of
-their own soldiers prevented a longer delay.
-
-A battle therefore ensued. Antony led his forces against that part
-of the army commanded by Cassius, and in a short time put his
-cavalry to flight. Cassius did all that the courage of a single man
-could do to rally his troops, but in vain. Supposing the battle to
-be entirely lost, and determined not to fall into the hands of the
-enemy, he returned into his tent and killed himself. Brutus still
-kept possession of the camp, and did all in his power to encourage
-his men. Still he determined for the present to avoid seeking
-another battle. His design was to starve the enemy, whom he know to
-be in great want of provisions. After a respite of twenty days, he
-was, however, forced to give in to the impatience of his men, and
-try the fate of a battle. In the engagement that followed, wherever
-Brutus commanded in person, he had the advantage. But the troops
-of Cassius being seized with a panic, communicated their terror to
-the rest, and soon the whole army gave way. In the midst of his
-bravest officers Brutus fought with undaunted courage. The son of
-Cato, and the brother of Cassius, fell fighting at his side. At
-last, however, yielding to the necessity of the case, Brutus fled.
-Octavius and Antony, secure of the victory, thought only of getting
-Brutus into their power. He was on the point of being overtaken,
-when Lucilius, his friend, determined to save his life by the
-sacrifice of his own. Giving himself up to a band of Thracians,
-he told them he was Brutus, and requested to be conducted into the
-presence of their General. Antony seeing the Thracians approach,
-and being informed of the prisoner’s capture, prepared himself
-for an interview with his enemy. But Lucilius, advancing with a
-cheerful air, said, “It is not Brutus that is taken. Fortune has
-not yet had the power to commit so great an outrage upon virtue.
-As for my life, it is well lost in preserving his honor. Take
-it, for I have deceived you.” Antony, struck with such fidelity,
-pardoned him, and gave him his friendship. Meanwhile Brutus, with a
-few friends had escaped over a rivulet, and night coming on, they
-concealed themselves under a rock. An officer whom Brutus had sent
-out to ascertain the extent of their defeat, did not return, and
-he rightly judged that he had fallen into the hands of the enemy.
-Before the first battle, Brutus had told Cassius that if he was
-defeated, he would not fall alive into the power of Octavius, and
-he now prepared to end his misfortunes with his life. After calling
-to mind with great tenderness many of his friends, who had fallen
-in the battle, he bade farewell to all present, one by one, saying
-aloud, that he was happy in never having been betrayed by any one
-whom he had trusted as a friend. Soon after, falling upon his
-sword, he expired in the forty-third year of his age.”
-
-
-PIGEON HILL.--Famous as the scene of a skirmish between the British
-Regulars and Volunteers and the Fenian bandits, who attempted to
-invade Canada during the past summer. The following gives honor to
-whom honor is due, and is written by a gentleman who can be relied
-on:
-
-“If any evidence were required, more than we possess, of the
-essentially weak and contemptible character of the Fenian
-organization, the circumstances attending the operations of
-Her Majesty’s forces and our own volunteers on Saturday, June
-9th, in the neighborhood of Pigeon Hill, would furnish it. As
-one who accompanied that expedition, and had an opportunity of
-observing all that passed, I shall be happy to furnish you with
-a few details. I arrived at St. Armand’s Station between 11 and
-12 o’clock, just at the moment that two waggons from Pigeon Hill
-arrived, bringing five Fenian prisoners, who had been taken that
-morning by different parties, whose names I need not mention, as I
-cannot give all with accuracy. I must confess that my astonishment
-was great when I saw them. Three were little scamps--such as one
-sees about the streets of all great cities, as news-boys, &c.
-One was a tolerably stout, resolute looking-fellow, the other a
-mild-looking young man, much better dressed, who, I am sorry
-to say, stated himself to have been born in Yorkshire, though
-hailing from Montpelier, Vt. Shortly after they were lodged in
-the guard-house, another prisoner, an able-bodied hard-looking
-customer, about 28 or 30 years of age, was brought in. He had a
-tremendous black eye, which he told me he received in a brawl
-with his own companions the night previous. Leaving these in the
-custody of the St. Armand volunteers, the column of attack started
-for Pigeon Hill about 2 P.M. The Granby and Waterloo volunteers,
-commanded by Captain Millar, formed the advance guard, being
-followed by two 12-pounder Armstrong guns of Captain Balfour’s
-battery, with their complements of artillerymen, commanded by
-Captain Phipps, R.A. These were followed by two companies of the
-Rifle Brigade, under Major Nixon, who, I understand, commanded
-the whole column, and two companies of the 25th regiment--another
-company of that regiment forming the rear guard. Between the main
-body and the rear guard, the supply waggon and a farmer’s waggon,
-carrying the Surgeon’s apparatus and medical comforts, were placed.
-
-The officers and men were in the highest spirits, only fearing lest
-the redoubtable Fenians should seek shelter too promptly in Uncle
-Sam’s dominions, the line being only half a mile from their camp.
-The day was very fine, a bright sun, tempered by a cool breeze,
-having dried up the roads, and made marching pleasant. And I may
-here remark a circumstance creditable to the pluck and training of
-our volunteers, that, although several soldiers of the line and
-rifles were knocked up, and obliged to fall out, the volunteers,
-though forming the advance guard and obliged to keep in advance of
-the powerful artillery horses, had not a man who manifested the
-least fatigue. At Holt’s Corner a short halt took place, and a
-prisoner was brought up from the south road, leading to Highgate,
-by a farmer I understood, of the name of Reynolds, who with his son
-and hired man, had just captured him while reconnoitering. He was
-mounted upon a handsome horse, and had rather a gentlemanly and
-refined appearance. He was speedily dismounted, being succeeded
-in his saddle by Captain Hallowes of the 25th Regiment, and
-conducted to the rear in charge of a guard from that regiment.
-Another prisoner was met squatted in a single waggon between the
-feet of two farmers of Stanbridge who had captured him--a very
-low and unintellectual type of humanity. Just before the column
-reached Pigeon Hill there was a cry, “Incline to the right,” and
-that splendid body of horsemen, the Guides, under Captain D. L.
-Macdougall, dashed past in single file, and took their place in
-front. They had no opportunity that day, more is the pity, to
-“flesh their maiden swords” upon any considerable body of the
-Fenians. But they rode round by the Cook’s Corner road, and thus,
-at a later period of the day, cut off the retreat of some who
-would have escaped, and took two of the scoundrels prisoners. If
-the Fenians had a good sight of them, they must have felt inclined
-to keep out of their way. In turning to the right at the tavern
-at Pigeon Hill, the whole column descended the hill on the road
-leading directly to the line--the artillery taking the lead. The
-guns were placed in position on a high point overlooking the whole
-valley, and about half-a-mile within the line. One company of the
-25th remained with the guns, and the remainder of the infantry,
-in two lines, with the rifles thrown out in front as skirmishers,
-descended into the valley in the direction of the woods, which
-were about three-fourths of a mile distant. The last red coat
-disappeared among the trees, and we remained in anxious expectation
-awaiting the result. Meantime the farmer’s family before whose
-door the guns were placed, and who had suffered sore annoyance
-for several days from the constant demand of the ragamuffins for
-food, gladly brought to their deliverers such simple refreshment
-as could be hastily prepared. Presently a single rifle shot was
-heard, echoing loudly through the woods--two more followed, then a
-dropping fire of twenty-five or thirty shots and all was silent.
-
-At the first report the whole party sprang to their feet, the
-gunners placed themselves by their pieces, and the officers of
-artillery prepared to point them upon any body of the enemy that
-might break cover. And much were all disappointed when the firing
-ceased.
-
-Presently the red coats emerged from the woods, marched across a
-small clearing and disappeared in the woods beyond. After waiting
-some time longer and the sun beginning to approach the horizon, the
-horses were put to the guns and waggons and preparations were made
-for returning to St. Armand. One company of the 25th regained their
-comrades on the hill. The rest of the force made their way by the
-Cook’s Corner road back to Pigeon Hill, with the exception of one
-company of the Rifles, which was detached towards Frelighsburg. The
-rest of the force reached St. Armand’s Station between 9 and 10
-o’clock at night.
-
-The result of this expedition was unsatisfactory, though all
-concerned did their duty with the utmost alacrity and zeal. But
-when there was really no enemy to fight, no great victory could be
-achieved.
-
-It was generally supposed that 2 Fenians only were killed and 16
-captured, but I have been since informed that 4 bodies were found
-in the woods on Sunday.
-
-Thus ended most ingloriously to those concerned in it this base
-attempt to desecrate, by unlawful invasion, the soil of Canada,
-_and to detach from their allegiance to their rightful Sovereign a
-contented, happy and loyal people_. I may add, in conclusion, that
-the inhabitants were most active in searching for and arresting
-straggling Fenians and bringing them into head-quarters.”
-
-
-PINKEY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, September 10th, 1547, between the
-English, under the Earl of Hertford Protector, and the Scots, when
-the latter were totally defeated. Few victories have been achieved
-with less loss to the victors; the English loss was no more than
-200, whilst the Scots lost the enormous number of 20,000.
-
-
-PISTOL.--The smallest sort of fire arms. First used by the English
-cavalry, A.D. 1544.
-
-
-PLAINS OF ABRAHAM.--_See Quebec._
-
-
-PLASSY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 23rd, 1757, between the British,
-under Lord Clive, and the native Hindoos, under Surajah Dowlah. The
-Hindoo army consisted of 70,000 men, whilst the British did not
-exceed 3000, yet the Surajah was signally defeated. This battle
-laid the foundation of the British power in India.
-
-
-PLATÆA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, September 22nd, B.C. 479, between
-Mardonius, General of the Persians, and the Lacedæmonians and
-Athenians under Pausanias. The Persian army consisted of 300,000
-men, 3000 of which only remained alive after the battle. The
-Grecians lost only 91 Spartans, 52 Athenians, and 16 Tegeans.
-Pausanias received one-tenth of all the immense plunder for his
-uncommon valour, and the rest were rewarded each according to his
-respective merit.
-
-
-PLATTSBURG, EXPEDITION TO.--The British squadron against
-Plattsburg, on Lake Champlain, was designed under General Sir
-George Prevost, but it was abandoned, after a severe defeat of the
-naval squadron of England on the Lake, September 11th, 1814.
-
-
-PODULTZ, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 28th, 1866, between the Austrians
-and the Prussians. The Prussians everywhere were victorious. The
-needle gun of their army was decidedly superior to any other weapon
-used. The following is the _Times_ account:
-
-“On the northern side of Gitschin and on the Turnau road the
-Austrians had taken up a position to cover the town against the
-Prussians, advancing from the direction of Turnau. As the Prussians
-advanced they saw the village of Podultz close to the road, and on
-their right, standing at the top of the gentle ascent by which the
-road rises to the top of the lower spur, on the other side of the
-road and about 300 yards from it, nearer to the advancing division
-by 200 yards than Podultz, the village of Diletz, lying in the
-plain, while high on their right they could see the chimneys of
-Brada above the thick fir wood which, lying on the hill side, in
-front of that village, runs down nearly to Podultz, and traced by
-the different colours of the foliage the ground occupied by its
-orchards. The three villages and the fir wood were held by Austrian
-and Saxon troops, supported by seven battalions of artillery,
-which were placed both on the spur and on the Brada Hill, while
-behind the spur were hidden three of Austria’s finest cavalry
-regiments--the Hussars of Radetzky, of Lichtenstein, and of the
-Austrian Regiment the King of Prussia. As soon as the Prussians
-came within range the Austrian batteries opened upon them; the
-Prussian guns replied, and, under cover of their artillery, the
-columns advanced to the attack of the position. The 8th and 48th
-Regiments advanced against the village of Diletz, which was
-garrisoned by the 1st, 2d, 3d, and 4th Saxon battalions, and where,
-as the prisoners report, the King of Saxony himself took part
-in the fight. The 12th and 18th Regiments advanced against the
-village of Podultz. Both attacking columns were exposed to a very
-hot fire, but after a severe struggle both villages were carried,
-though that of Podultz, set on fire by a shell, was burning when
-the Prussians occupied it. General Edelsheim, who commanded the
-Austrian cavalry, with a desperate valour, attacked the burning
-village, but the horses would not face the flames, and the Prussian
-infantry, from behind the blazing houses, fired on the disordered
-squadrons and killed many troopers. After taking Podultz, the 12th
-and 18th Regiments pushed past Brada, leaving it to their right,
-and made for the Lochow Road, in order to cut off the retreat of
-the Austrians, who were retiring from Lochow on Gitschin. The
-Austrian cavalry charged the advancing Prussians, but the latter
-received them without forming square, and the horsemen recoiled,
-broken by their steady fire. The Austrian troops in Brada, and the
-Saxons and Austrians in Diletz were quite separated by the capture
-of the village of Podultz, and the former were almost entirely
-taken; the latter were cut off from retreat in large numbers, for
-Von Werder was pressing towards Gitschin, the roads were crowded,
-and the little river formed on the right of the broken allies
-a wide extent of marshy ground, which it was almost impossible
-to cross. The loss of the Saxons between Diletz and Gitschin was
-tremendous; they fell thickly, and the ground was covered with
-corpses. The Prussians suffered much, but they fought most bravely,
-and, with only four regiments, and half as many guns as their
-opponents, carried a very strong position held by a much superior
-force; for the Prussians had in the field but 16,000 men, and the
-allied strength is estimated at 30,000. Under a crushing fire they
-advanced to the attack of Podultz and Diletz, and the vacancies
-in the muster-roll show how fearfully they suffered; but every
-man who fell on the Prussian side was trebly avenged, and a long
-broad track of fallen enemies marks the line of march of the four
-regiments who so well fought and won Diletz.
-
-The field of Diletz is almost more thickly strewn with killed and
-wounded. Here the Prussians lie more thickly than at Lochow, for
-the more numerous artillery of the defenders ploughed with terrible
-effect through the dense columns of the assailants as they advanced
-to the attack. But between Diletz and Gitschin the ground is
-covered with broken arms, knapsacks, shakos, and fallen men, who
-are mostly either Saxons or Austrians, for here the needle-gun was
-more used than artillery.
-
-The Prussians took 7000 prisoners in the two combats, and many
-officers: and the Austrian loss in killed and wounded is estimated
-at 3000, so that yesterday evening has withdrawn 10,000 soldiers
-from under the Austrian colours.”
-
-
-POICTIERS, 1356.--“Ten years after the victory of Crecy, a similar
-event took place in one of the south-west districts of France, at
-Poictiers, the capital of Poiteau. Edward “the Black Prince,” now
-in the prime of his early manhood, regarding his country as at war
-with France, sallied forth from the Gascon province in the summer
-of 1356, on a ravaging expedition, to do his enemy all the damage
-in his power. He left Bourdeaux with about 12,000 men; ascended
-the Garonne as far as Agen, and then, turning to the left, entered
-central France, and overran the fertile provinces of Limousin,
-Querci, Auvergne, and Berri. It was harvest-time, and everywhere
-the harvest was seized, the towns plundered, and all captives able
-to pay a ransom were carried to Bourdeaux. One account states that
-the English army sent off no fewer than 5000 cartloads of plunder
-to Bourdeaux. This employment doubtless had its attractions for
-the army; but its commander seems to have forgotten that he was
-invading and exasperating a powerful kingdom, whose people and
-sovereign might be expected to take vengeance for such an inroad as
-this.
-
-Philip of Valois was now dead, and John, his son, a high-spirited
-but indiscreet prince, had succeeded him. Hearing of young Edward’s
-performances in Limousin and Berri, “he instantly declared with
-an oath,” says Froissart, “that he would forthwith set out after
-him, and would fight him whenever he could find him. He therefore
-issued forth a general summons to all his nobles and vassals of
-every kind, that they should set forth to meet him on the borders
-of Touraine and Blois, for he was determined to fight the English.”
-
-He soon marched from Paris, having with him a considerable body of
-troops, and went to Chartres to be nearer the enemy, and to gain
-quicker intelligence of his proceedings. Here he rested some days,
-and “great crowds of knights and men at arms daily joined him, from
-Auvergne, Berri, Burgundy, Lorraine, Hainault, Picardy, and other
-provinces.” But as yet neither of these two Princes seems to have
-been well informed of the other’s movements.
-
-“The Prince,” says Froissart, “having with him 2000 men-at-arms
-and 6000 archers, rode on at his ease, having all things at his
-command. They found Auvergne, which they were now overrunning,
-very rich and teeming with abundance; and when they entered any
-town, they rested there for some days to refresh themselves,
-consuming what they pleased, and destroying the rest, whether of
-corn, wine, or other provisions.” “They kept advancing, and found
-plenty everywhere, for the provinces of Berri, Poiteau, Touraine
-and Maine,” says Froissart, “were very rich, and full of provisions
-for an army.”
-
-At Bourges they were stopped by the strength of the place; having
-no means of besieging a fortified town, they passed on, and came
-to another town, the name of which Froissart does not give, but
-which, he says, had great plenty of wines and provisions. This they
-carried by storm, and here they remained three days.
-
-And now tidings were brought to the Prince that the King of France
-was at Chartres with a large army, and that all the passes and
-towns on the north of the Loire were manned and well defended. He
-therefore held a council of war, in which it was resolved to return
-at once to Bourdeaux, doing the enemy what damage was possible on
-the road. But the castle of Romorontin delayed their retreat, the
-Prince making it a point of honour not to be foiled by so small
-a place, and wasting therefore three days before it. This delay
-enabled the French army to reach him. The King of France, having
-now a large force, had set forward from Chartres, had crossed the
-Loire at Blois, and was rapidly marching on the city of Poictiers.
-Both of the chiefs seem to have been in the dark as to the exact
-position of the other--John, imagining the English to be far before
-him, and Edward similarly deeming the French to be in his rear. At
-last, at Chauvigny, on the Vienne, the two armies came in sight
-of each other, or rather, learned each other’s proximity by an
-encounter of outposts. A party of French knights falling in with
-two of Edward’s captains and a party of sixty men, pursued them
-until they came to the main body of the English, and here, not
-retreating, the greater part of the assailants were either slain or
-captured. From the prisoners, the Prince learned that the King of
-France was close by with his army, and that he could not retreat
-without fighting him. He called in immediately all foragers; and
-ordered every man to keep under his standard. Four experienced
-Captains, with 200 horse, were sent out to reconnoitre the French
-positions. They were not long before they fell in with it, and
-captured some stragglers. They soon perceived the whole plain to
-be covered with troops. Their approach alarmed the French, who,
-instead of entering Poictiers, turned towards the English army,
-and as it was late encamped for the night in the open fields. The
-English detachment returned to the Prince, and told him that the
-French “were in immense numbers.” The Prince replied, “God help us!
-we must begin to consider how we can best receive them.”
-
-The next day was Sunday. The French king ordered a solemn mass in
-his pavilion, and he and his four sons communicated. There then
-assembled around him the great Lords, the Duke of Orleans, the Duke
-of Bourbon, the Earl of Ponthieu, the Constable of France, the
-Marshal of France, and a great body of Lords and famous knights.
-They were long debating; at last it was resolved “that each Lord
-should display his banner, advance into the plain, and push forward
-in the name of God and St. Denis.” It is already tolerably clear,
-that this great army had _no General_.
-
-“Then might be seen all the nobility of France, richly dressed out
-in shining armour, with banners and pennons gallantly displayed;
-for all the flower of the French nobility was there.” By the
-advice of the Constable and marshals, the army was divided into
-three battalions, each consisting of 16,000 men-at-arms. Nearly
-50,000 spears then, a large proportion doubtless mounted, were
-arrayed against 2000 English lances, and 4,000 archers, with a
-few irregulars. Michelet says: “There were the King’s four sons,
-26 Dukes or Counts, and 140 knights-bannerets--a magnificent
-spectacle; but the army was none the better for all that.”
-
-The King sent forward three knights to reconnoitre the English
-army. They returned, and Sir Eustace Ribeaumont said, “Sir, we
-have examined the English closely; they amount, according to
-our estimate, to about 2000 men-at-arms, 4000 archers, and 1500
-footmen. They are posted very strongly; and have fortified their
-position as well as they can. They are on a hill, which is only
-approachable by one road or lane; so narrow that only four men can
-ride abreast.”
-
-The French were now on the point of moving forward to the attack,
-when the Cardinal de Perigord came up at a full gallop, and making
-a low reverence, entreated the King to listen to him a moment. “You
-have here,” he said, “all the flower of your kingdom against a
-mere handful of English; you may have them on other terms than by
-a battle. Let me go to the Prince, and remonstrate with him on the
-dangerous situation he is in.” The King said, “It is very agreeable
-to us; but make haste back again.”
-
-The Cardinal set off at full speed; and was admitted to the Prince,
-whom he found on foot in the midst of his army. He said, “Fair son,
-if you have well considered the great army of the King of France,
-you will allow me to make up matters between you, if I possibly
-can.” The Prince said, “Sir, save my own honour, and that of my
-army, and I will agree to any reasonable terms.” The Cardinal
-then returned to the French camp, and saw the King; and all that
-day he rode from one army to the other, trying to bring about an
-agreement. Many proposals were made, the Prince offered to give up
-all the towns and castles which he had taken; to release all his
-prisoners without ransom; and to engage not to take up arms against
-the King of France for the next seven years. But John refused the
-offer; demanding that Edward, with an hundred of his knights,
-should surrender themselves prisoners. “The Prince and his army,”
-says Froissart, “disdained to accept any such conditions.” Another
-account says, that Edward exclaimed, “England shall never have to
-pay a ransom for me!”
-
-Thus Sunday was spent; and the battle was necessarily deferred till
-the morrow. The English, however, had well employed their time in
-still further strengthening their positions. But they were short of
-provisions; and could the French have stooped to defer the attack,
-and to be content with cutting off all supplies, Edward and his
-whole force must have submitted themselves before the termination
-of another week. But such a course would have been humbling to
-the pride of France. A certain triumph seemed in the power of the
-French commanders, and they could brook no delay.
-
-Edward, therefore, made up his mind for a struggle for life or
-liberty on the Monday morning. He remained on the defensive; except
-that he detached a body of 300 men-at-arms, and as many archers,
-with orders to make a circuit, and get into the flank and rear of
-the Duke of Normandy’s battalion; the position of which he could
-survey from his hill.
-
-“And now,” says Froissart, “the whole army of the Prince, including
-every one, did not amount to more than 8000; while the French
-had upwards of 60,000 combatants, among whom were more than 3000
-knights. The Prince, seeing all hope of an accommodation at an end,
-addressed his captains and men, saying:--
-
-“Now, my gallant follows! what though we be but a small body when
-compared with our enemies; let us not be cast down on that account;
-for victory is not always with the greater numbers, but God gives
-it to whom he pleases. If the day shall be ours, great will be the
-honour of it: if not, I have a father, and you all have friends,
-who will be sure to avenge our deaths. Stand fast, therefore, and
-fight like men; and if it please God, you shall see me play the
-part of a true knight.”
-
-And now came on the French, and soon it was seen that here, as
-in many other battles of the time, the English bow was a most
-formidable weapon. The battalion of the French marshals entered the
-lane by which the English position must be approached; and now the
-archers began to ply their weapons “in such sort that the horses,
-smarting under the pain of their wounds, would not advance, but
-turned about, threw their masters, and created a general confusion.
-And if a few of the French struggled through and came in sight of
-the Prince’s battalion, a small party or two of English knights,
-who waited for them, instantly attacked them and slew them, or made
-them prisoners.
-
-Thus, in a short time, this battalion of the marshals was defeated.
-The front line was driven back in confusion on the division
-immediately behind it. This, unable to advance, began to give
-ground, impelled by the crowd of fugitives pressing back upon
-it. But in retreating, this battalion fell back upon the Duke of
-Normandy’s and soon confusion and terror spread through the whole
-army. The detachment which the Prince had placed over-night on
-the flank and rear of the Duke of Normandy’s battalion, now came
-forth from their ambuscade, and fell vehemently upon the already
-disordered ranks of the French; “and, in truth,” says Froissart,
-“the English archers shot so thickly and so well, that the French
-did not know which way to turn themselves to avoid the arrows.” And
-now, this battalion, which was broad enough in the front, grew thin
-and scanty in the rear, for the news of the repulse of the marshals
-had spread, and the men began to escape in crowds. Meanwhile the
-English on the hill, perceiving that the first battalion was
-beaten, and that the Duke of Normandy’s was in great disorder, gave
-the word, and the knights and men-at-arms were in a moment in their
-saddles.
-
-“The day is ours,” said Sir John Chandos, and, giving a shout,
-the 2000 horse pushed down the hill, charging with vehemence the
-disordered battalion.
-
-“Let us make for the King himself,” said Sir John to the Prince,
-“for I know that he will not fly, and we shall have him--if it
-please God.”
-
-And now the battle grew hot; the French were so numerous, and in
-such disorder, that it was an arduous task that still remained.
-Edward charged the division of the Duke of Athens, broke it, and
-drove it before him;--then the battalion of Germans, under the
-Count of Salzburg, which was soon overthrown and put to flight.
-Meanwhile “the English archers, advancing with the cavalry, shot so
-well that none dared to stay within their reach.”
-
-And now three of the King’s sons, the Duke of Normandy, the Earl
-of Poictiers, and the Earl of Touraine, with 800 lances which had
-never put spear in rest, took flight and rode off the field.
-
-The King himself stood firm. “If one-fourth of his soldiers,” says
-Froissart, “had behaved as well as he did, the day would have been
-his own.” Again he says, “King John himself did wonders, he fought
-with a battle-axe, with which he defended himself bravely.” The
-English knew the value of such a prize, and they directed their
-chief efforts to his capture. The Earl of Tancarville was made
-prisoner close to him, as were the Earl of Ponthieu, and the Earl
-of Eu. A little further on, the Lord Charles d’Artois and many
-other knights were captured by the flank attack. “The English and
-Gascons poured so fast upon the King’s division that they broke all
-its ranks,” and now the last show of order was lost, and the whole
-field was one confused mass. Every one was pressing forwards, eager
-to seize the King; at last a young French knight, who had been
-banished and had entered the English service, entreated the king to
-surrender or he would lose his life. “To whom am I to surrender?”
-said John, “where is my cousin the Prince of Wales? Who are you?”
-“I am Denis de Morbeque, knight of Artois,” said the Frenchman,
-“surrender yourself to me and I will lead you to the Prince.”
-“Well,” said the King, giving him his glove, “I surrender myself to
-you.”
-
-Sir John Chandos, who had remained by the Prince’s side all the
-day, had now advised him to raise his banner on an elevated point,
-and to pitch his tent, for there was no longer any French army in
-sight. Accordingly, the banner was raised, a small pavilion was
-pitched, wine was brought, the Prince took off his helmet, and the
-trumpets began to sound. But now the Prince addressed the Earl of
-Warwick and Lord Cobham, saying. “I pray you to mount your horses,
-and ride over the field, that I may know, if possible, what has
-become of the King.” These two lords immediately rode forth, and
-they soon perceived a great crowd of knights and men-at-arms, all
-striving with a great noise. More than ten knights were loudly
-claiming the honour of having taken the King. “The two lords then
-pushed through the crowd by main force, and ordered all to stand
-aside. They commanded, in the Prince’s name, all to keep their
-distance, on pain of death. They then, dismounting, approached the
-King with profound reverence, and conducted him peaceably to the
-Prince of Wales.” Edward received the King with a low obeisance,
-and comforted him as well as he was able, ordering wines and
-refreshments to be brought, which he presented to the King with
-his own hand. “In the evening a supper was spread in the Prince’s
-pavilion; and the King, his son Philip, with Bourbon, Artois, the
-Earl of Tancarville, Estampes, Granville, and others, were seated
-at an elevated table, while the Prince served the King with his own
-hands. The French princes, struck with Edward’s courtesy, declared
-that he would be one of the most gallant knights in Christendom, if
-it please God to grant him life.”
-
-Meanwhile, the English horse continued its pursuit of the
-fugitives, up to the very gates of Poictiers. “There was such
-an horrible spectacle of men slaughtered and trampled down, as
-it is wonderful to think of. The frightened French, in crowds,
-surrendered the moment they caught sight of an Englishman.”
-
-The report now given in to the Prince, showed that the King and
-one of his sons, and 17 Earls, besides a great number of Barons
-and knights, were prisoners; and that from five to six thousand
-lay dead on the field.[1] But the victors were troubled what to
-do with the crowds of captives of all ranks, who were _twice as
-numerous as themselves_. They concluded, at last, to ransom them on
-the spot, and even to take the pledges of those who had no money.
-As for the booty, it was immense; “there being quantities of gold
-and silver plate, rich jewels, and trunks full of gold and silver
-ornaments. As to fine armour, that was in such abundance as to be
-little regarded.”
-
-The prince and his little army, now undisturbed, continued their
-march, and in a few days passed the Garonne, and arrived safely
-at Bourdeaux. “Great was the dismay at Paris, when the fugitives
-brought word that there was no longer a King nor Barons in France,
-but all were killed or taken.”
-
-England, very naturally, rejoiced through all her coasts. The
-Prince, after a short stay, embarked for England with his
-illustrious prisoner, to whom, for greater ease and comfort,
-he assigned a separate vessel. He entered London with knightly
-courtesy, riding a small black horse, while the King of France,
-royally mounted on a white charger, rode by his side. The palace of
-the Savoy was made the residence of the captive monarch, and there
-king Edward and his Queen frequently visited him. John, however,
-was long detained in England, the enormous sum of 3,000,000 of
-gold crowns being demanded from France for his ransom. He finally
-consented to those hard terms; but on returning to his own kingdom,
-he found so much difficulty in persuading his people to raise this
-great ransom, that he finally resolved to return to his prison
-in Westminster. As true as he was brave, he nobly answered his
-council, who tried to persuade him to be guilty of a breach of
-his engagement, that “if honour were banished from every other
-abode, it ought at least to find a home in the breast of Kings.” He
-returned to his home in the Savoy; where, a few months after, he
-died. Edward III ordered his obsequies to be performed with royal
-magnificence, and sent his corpse, with a splendid retinue to
-France, where it found a place in the burial-place of the Kings, in
-the abbey-church of St. Denis.”
-
-
-POLOTSK, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 30th, 1812, between the French
-Marshal, Oudinot, and the Russians under Wittgenstein. The Russians
-were defeated with great loss.
-
-
-PONDICHERRY.--_India._--Settled by the French in 1674; taken by
-the Dutch in 1693; besieged by the British in 1748, and taken by
-our forces in January, 1761, but restored in 1763. Again taken in
-October, 1778, and restored in 1783. Again captured by the British,
-August 23rd, 1793, and finally in 1803.
-
-
-PORTOBELLO.--_South America._--Taken from the Spaniards by Admiral
-Vernon, November 22nd, 1739. Again taken by the British, who
-destroyed the fortifications, in 1742.
-
-
-PRAGA, BATTLES OF.--Fought, October 10th, 1794, between the Poles
-and Russians; 30,000 Poles were butchered in this battle by the
-merciless Suwarrow. A second battle, fought March 31st, 1831,
-between the same countries, resulted with defeat of the Russians
-who lost 4000 killed and wounded, and 6000 prisoners and 12 pieces
-of cannon.
-
-
-PRESCOTT, BATTLE OF.--_Upper Canada._--Fought, November 27th, 1838,
-between the Canadian Rebels and the British, under Major Young,
-and on the following day by Lieut.-Colonel Dundas, who, after a
-desperate resistance, succeeded in dispersing the insurgents,
-several of whom were killed and many taken prisoners; the troops
-also suffered considerably. After the attack the remainder of the
-rebels surrendered. In these engagements the rebels were aided by
-the Americans, who invaded the Canadian territory in great numbers.
-
-
-PRESTON, BATTLE OF.--Fought, November 12th, 1715, between the
-Scotch insurgents, under Forster, and the British, under General
-Willis. The first attack was successful, on the side of the
-Jacobites, but the Royal forces being augmented by the arrival of
-General Carpenter, Preston was invested on every side, and the
-Scots at length laid down their arms, and their nobles and leaders
-were secured. Some were shot as deserters, and others sent off to
-London, pinioned and bound together, to frighten their party.
-
-
-PRESTON-PANS, BATTLE OF.--Fought, September 21st, 1745, between
-Prince Charles the Pretender and the Royal forces.
-
-“In the meantime Sir John Cope, who had pursued the rebels
-through the Highlands, but had declined meeting them in their
-descent, being now reinforced by two regiments of dragoons,
-resolved to march towards Edinburgh and give the enemy battle.
-The young Adventurer, whose forces were rather superior, though
-undisciplined, attacked him near Preston-Pans, about twelve miles
-from the capital, and in a few minutes put him and his troops to
-flight. This victory, by which the King lost 500 men, gave the
-rebels great influence; and had the Pretender taken advantage of
-the general consternation, and marched directly for England, the
-consequence might have been fatal to freedom. But he was amused
-by the promise of succours which never came; and thus induced to
-remain at Edinburgh, to enjoy the triumphs of an important victory,
-and to be treated as a monarch.”
-
-
-PULTOWA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 8th, 1709, between Charles XII
-of Sweden and Peter the Great of Russia. In this celebrated battle
-the Czar entirely defeated the Hero of Sweden, and forced him to
-flee to Turkey. This battle was lost on account of Charles having
-been wounded just before, being obliged to issue his orders from
-a litter, his soldiers thus having no opportunity of seeing their
-loved commander.
-
-
-PULTUSK, BATTLES OF.--One between the Saxons and Swedes, in which
-the former were defeated, 1703; and the other between the French,
-under Napoleon, and the Russian and Prussian armies. Both sides
-claimed the victory, but it inclined in favour of the French.
-
-
-PYRAMIDS, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought between the French and Turks,
-1798. “The sight of the Pyramids, and the anxious nature of the
-moment, inspired the French General with even more than usual
-ardour; the sun glittered on those immense masses, which seemed to
-arise in height every step the soldiers advanced, and the army,
-sharing his enthusiasm, gazed, as they marched, on the everlasting
-monuments. “Remember,” said he, “that from the summit of those
-Pyramids forty centuries contemplate your actions.”
-
-With his usual sagacity, the General had taken extraordinary
-precautions to ensure success against the formidable cavalry of
-the Desert. The divisions were all drawn up as before, in hollow
-squares six deep, the artillery at the angles, the general and
-baggage in the centre. When they were in mass, the two sides
-advanced in column, those in front and rear moved forward in their
-ranks, but the moment they were charged, the whole were to halt,
-and face outward on every side. When they were themselves to
-charge, the three front ranks were to break off and form the column
-of attack, those in the rear remaining behind, still in square, but
-three deep only, to constitute the reserve. Napoleon had no fears
-for the result, if the infantry were steady; his only apprehension
-was, that his soldiers, accustomed to charge, would yield to their
-impetuosity too soon, and would not be brought to the immovable
-firmness which this species of warfare required.
-
-Mourad Bey, no sooner perceived the lateral movement of the
-French army, than, with a promptitude of decision worthy of a
-skilful general, he resolved to attack the columns while in the
-act of completing it. An extraordinary movement was immediately
-observed in the Mameluke line, and speedily 7000 horsemen detached
-themselves from the remainder of the army, and bore down upon
-the French columns. It was a terrible sight, capable of daunting
-the bravest troops, when this immense body of cavalry approached
-at full gallop the squares of infantry. The horsemen, admirably
-mounted and magnificently dressed, rent the air with their cries.
-The glitter of spears and cimeters dazzled the sight, while the
-earth groaned under the repeated and increasing thunder of their
-feet. The soldiers, impressed, but not panic-struck, by the sight,
-stood firm, and anxiously waited, with their pieces ready, the
-order to fire. Desaix’s division being entangled in a wood of
-palm-trees, was not completely formed when the swiftest of the
-Mamelukes came upon them; they were, in consequence, partially
-broken, and thirty or forty of the bravest of the assailants
-penetrated, and died in the midst of the square, at the feet
-of the officers: but before the mass arrived the movement was
-completed, and a rapid fire of musketry and grape drove them
-from the front round the sides of the column. With matchless
-intrepidity, they pierced through the interval between Desaix’s
-and Regnier’s divisions, and riding round both squares, strove to
-find an entrance; but an incessant fire from every front mowed
-them down as fast as they poured in at the opening. Furious at
-the unexpected resistance, they dashed their horses against the
-rampart of bayonets, and threw their pistols at the heads of the
-grenadiers, while many who had lost their steeds crept along the
-ground and cut at the legs of the front rank with their cimetars.
-In vain thousands succeeded, and galloped round the flaming walls
-of steel; multitudes perished under the rolling fire which, without
-intermission, issued from the ranks, and at length the survivors,
-in despair, fled towards the camp from whence they had issued.
-Here, however, they were charged in flank by Napoleon at the head
-of Dugua’s division, while those of Vial and Bon, on the extreme
-left, stormed the intrenchments. The most horrible confusion now
-reigned in the camp; the horsemen, driven in disorder, trampled
-under foot the infantry, who, panic-struck at the rout of the
-Mamelukes, on whom all their hopes were placed, abandoned their
-ranks, and rushed in crowds towards the boats to escape to the
-other side of the Nile. Numbers saved themselves by swimming, but a
-great proportion perished in the attempt. The Mamelukes, rendered
-desperate, seeing no possibility of escape in that direction, fell
-upon the columns who were approaching from the right, with their
-wings extended in order of attack; but they, forming square again
-with inconceivable rapidity, repulsed them with great slaughter,
-and drove them finally off in the direction of the Pyramids. The
-intrenched camp with all its artillery, stores, and baggage fell
-into the hands of the victors. Several thousands of the Mamelukes
-were drowned or killed; and of the formidable array which had
-appeared in such splendour in the morning, not more than 2500
-escaped with Mourad Bey into Upper Egypt. The victors hardly lost
-200 men in the action; and several days were occupied after it was
-over in stripping the slain of their magnificent appointments, or
-fishing up the rich spoils which encumbered the banks of the Nile.”
-
-
-PYRENEES, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought, July 28th, 1813, between the
-British army, commanded by Wellington, and the French, commanded
-by Marshal Soult. The French were defeated, with great slaughter.
-After the battle of Vittoria, fought, June 21st, Napoleon sent
-Soult to supersede Jourdan, with instructions to drive the British
-across the Ebro; a duty which he could not accomplish; for he was
-obliged to retreat into France, which was entered by the British,
-and he lost 20,000 men, in a series of engagements in the Pyrenees,
-which separate France from Spain, from July 25th to August 2nd,
-same year.
-
-
-
-
-Q.
-
-
-QUARTRE BRAS, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 16th, 1815, between the
-French and English. The French were commanded by Marshal Ney, and
-the British by the Duke of Brunswick, the Prince of Orange, and Sir
-Thomas Picton. It was fought two days before Waterloo. The British
-fought, to maintain their position, with wonderful intrepidity,
-notwithstanding their inferiority in number, and the fatigue of
-marching all the preceding night. The gallant 42nd Regiment of
-Scotch Highlanders, or the Black Watch, suffered very severely in
-pursuit of a French division repulsed early in the morning, by
-cuirassiers being posted in ambush behind growing corn as high
-as the shoulders of the tallest men. In this battle, the Duke of
-Brunswick fell, whose death is alluded to in the well-known lines
-of Byron on the field of Waterloo.
-
-
-QUEBEC.--Has been five times assaulted. Founded by the French
-in 1605. Reduced by the English, with all Canada, in 1626, and
-restored in 1632. Besieged again by the English, but without
-success, in 1711, but was taken, under Wolfe, September 13th, 1759.
-The following is a good account of the capture of the city, under
-the immortal Wolfe. Quebec was again besieged by the American
-General Montgomery, who was slain before it, December 31st, 1775,
-and the siege was raised early next year. Appended is also an
-account of the siege and death of the American General.
-
-“Wolfe’s army, amounting to about 8000, was conveyed to the
-vicinity of Quebec by a fleet of vessels of war and transports,
-and landed, in two divisions, on the island of Orleans, on the
-27th of June. The Marquis de Montcalm made vigorous preparations
-for defending Quebec. His armed force consisted of about 13,000
-men, of whom six battalions were regulars, and the remainder well
-disciplined Canadian militia, with some cavalry and Indians. He
-ranged these forces from the River St. Charles, to the Falls of
-Montmorency, with the view of opposing the landing of the British.
-
-“Wolfe first attempted the entrenchment of Montmorency, landing
-his troops under cover of the fire from the ships of war, but
-he was gallantly repulsed by the French. In consequence of this
-repulse, he sent dispatches to England, stating that he had doubts
-of being able to reduce Quebec during that campaign. His prospects,
-indeed, were not encouraging: the great stronghold kept up an
-incessant fire from its almost inaccessible position, bristling
-with guns, defended by a superior force, and inhabited by a hostile
-population. Above the city, steep banks rendered landing almost
-impossible; below, the country for eight miles was embarrassed by
-two rivers, many redoubts, and watchful Indians. A part of the
-fleet lay above the town, the remainder in the north channel,
-between the island of Orleans and Montmorency.
-
-“Soon after this repulse, however, Wolfe roused his brave and
-vigorous spirit, called a council of war, and proposed, it is
-generally said, at the instigation of his second in command,
-General Townsend, to gain the heights of Abraham behind and above
-the city, commanding the weakest part of the fortress. The council
-acceded to this daring proposal, and their heroic commander
-commenced his preparations; in the meanwhile, making such active
-demonstrations against Montcalm’s position, that the French still
-believed it to be his main object.
-
-“On the 11th of September, the greater part of the troops landed,
-and marched up the south shore opposite Quebec,--forded the river
-Etchemin--and embarked on board the men of war and transports which
-lay above the town. On the 12th, the ships of war sailed nine
-miles up the river, to Cap Rouge. This feint deceived Montcalm,
-and he detached De Bougainville, who, with his army of reserve,
-proceeded still farther up the river to prevent the English from
-landing. During the night, the English troops dropped silently down
-the river, with the current, in boats, and at four o’clock in the
-morning began to land.
-
-“It is surprising how the troops contrived to land, as the French
-had posted sentries along the shore, to challenge boats and give
-the alarm. The first boat was questioned, when Captain Donald
-M‘Donald, one of Frazer’s Highlanders, who was perfectly well
-acquainted with the French language and customs, answered to “_Qui
-vive?_” which is their challenge, the word “_La France_”--when the
-sentinel demanded “_A quel régiment?_” the captain replied, “_De
-la Reine_,” which he knew by accident to be one of those commanded
-by De Bougainville. The soldier took it for granted that it was an
-expected convoy, and saying “_Passe_,” the boats proceeded without
-further question. One of the sentries more wary than the rest,
-running down to the water’s edge called out, “_Pourquoi est-ce
-que vous ne parlez pas plus haut?_” to which the captain answered
-in a soft tone of voice, “_Tais-toi, nous serons entendus_.” Thus
-cautioned, the sentry retired, and the boats proceeded without
-further altercation, and landed at the spot now celebrated as
-“Wolfe’s Cove.”
-
-“General Wolfe was one of the first on shore, and on seeing the
-difficulty of ascending the precipice, observed familiarly to
-Captain M‘Donald, “I don’t believe there is any possibility of
-getting up, but you must do your endeavour.” Indeed the precipice
-here was so steep, that there seemed no possibility of scaling it,
-but the Highlanders, grasping the bushes which grew on its face
-ascended the woody precipice with courage and dexterity. They
-dislodged a small body of troops that defended a narrow path-way up
-the bank; and a few more mounting, the General drew up the rest in
-order as they arrived. With great exertion they reached the summit,
-and in a short time, Wolfe had his whole army drawn up in regular
-order on the plains above.
-
-“Montcalm, struck with this unexpected movement, concluded, that
-unless Wolfe could be driven from this position, Quebec was lost.
-Hoping probably that only a detachment had as yet reached it,
-he lost his usual prudence and forbearance, and finding that
-his opponent had gained so much by hazarding all, he, with an
-infatuation for which it is difficult to account, resolved to meet
-the British army.
-
-“He crossed the St. Charles on the 13th, sallying forth from a
-strong fortress without field artillery--without even waiting the
-return of Bougainville, who, with 2000 men, formed a corps of
-observation,--before he could concentrate his forces, advanced
-with haste and precipitation, and commenced a most gallant attack,
-when within about 250 yards of the English line. The English
-moved forward regularly, firing steadily, until within thirty or
-forty yards of the French, when they gave a general volley which
-did great execution. The English had only a light cannon, which
-the sailors had dragged up the heights with ropes. The sabre,
-therefore, and the bayonet decided the day. The agile Scotch
-Highlanders, with their stout claymores, served the purposes of
-cavalry, and the steady fire of the English Fusiliers compensated,
-in some degree, for the want of artillery.
-
-“The heroism of Montcalm was as conspicuous as that of his
-illustrious opponent,--both headed their men,--both rushed with
-eagerness where the battle raged most fiercely. Often by their
-personal prowess and example did they change the fortune of the
-moment. Both were repeatedly wounded, but still fought on with
-enthusiasm. And, at last, both those gallant commanders fell
-mortally wounded, whilst advancing to the last deadly charge at the
-head of their respective columns.
-
-“Wolfe was first wounded in the wrist. He immediately wrapped a
-handkerchief round his arm, and, putting himself at the head of
-his grenadiers, led them on to the charge. He was then struck with
-a second ball, but still pressed on, when, just as the enemy were
-about to give way, he received a third ball in the breast and
-groin, and sank. When they raised him from the ground, he tried
-with his faint hand to clear the death-mist from his eyes. He could
-not see how the battle went, and was sinking to the earth, when
-the cry “_They run!_” “_They run_;” arrested his fleeting spirit.
-“_Who run?_” asked the dying hero. “_The French_,” replied his
-supporter, “_they give way everywhere_.” “_What!_” said he, “_do
-they run already? now God be praised; I die happy!_” and so saying,
-the youthful victor breathed his last. Such was the death of Wolfe,
-at the early age of thirty-five, when but few men begin even to
-appear on the theatre of great events.”
-
-
- DEATH OF GENERAL MONTGOMERY, ETC.
-
-“The first Congress of what is now called “The United States,”
-met in Philadelphia, on the 5th of September, 1774. It is
-remarkable that one of their first objects, after obtaining their
-own independence, was to attempt to seize on the country they
-had assisted England to conquer. It is a singular fact that the
-money, which it was endeavoured to levy upon the New Englanders
-and their fellow-colonists, and which, in a great measure, caused
-the rupture, was for the express purpose of defraying the great
-expenses incurred by England in the capture of Canada.
-
-Having resolved to invade Canada, the Americans entered it in the
-fall of 1775, in two directions--by Lake Champlain and by the
-sources of the Kennebec River. The first division, under General
-Montgomery, was very successful. After obtaining possession of
-Ticonderoga, Crown Point, and St. Johns, he advanced towards
-Montreal. His force was very considerable, while there were but few
-British soldiers in Canada. General Carleton, who succeeded General
-Murray in the military command, had been repulsed at Longueuil;
-so that Montgomery had only to take possession of the city, which
-he did on the 19th of November. The naval force in the river, and
-all the military stores and provisions, were surrendered into his
-hands, and General Prescott, with the volunteers and soldiers,
-became prisoners of war. Finding plenty of woollen cloth in the
-city, General Montgomery took the opportunity of new-clothing his
-troops, who had suffered much from the severity of the weather. The
-second division of the American army, under General Arnold, reached
-the St. Lawrence on the 9th of November. They had traversed,
-with dreadful fatigue, the forests and swamps in the District of
-Maine, and arrived at Point Levi, opposite Quebec, worn out and
-dispirited. Quebec was at this time defenceless; and had General
-Arnold been able to cross the river, that capital, and with it
-the territory of Canada, must have passed into the hands of the
-Americans. Fortunately all the shipping had been removed to the
-other side, and it was not until the 14th that he was able to cross
-over. He landed 500 men at Wolfe’s Cove, and waited near that place
-in the hope of being joined by Montgomery from Montreal. General
-Carleton, the British Governor, was at this time occupied, with
-his troops near Montreal, in endeavouring to repulse Montgomery.
-The latter wished to effect a junction with General Arnold, that
-they might unitedly attack the fortress. Perceiving that the safety
-of the country depended upon the possession of Quebec, Carleton
-effected a masterly movement to reach that place. In this, he was
-assisted by Captain Bouchette, R.N., who conveyed him through the
-American forces by night, in a canoe with muffled paddles. He
-arrived at the citadel of Quebec on the 19th, whilst the Americans
-thought him busily engaged with Montgomery, near Montreal.
-
-General Carleton’s arrival at Quebec was hailed with great joy
-by the Canadians, who vied with the oldest British soldiers in
-preparations for defence. The force under his command amounted to
-only 1800 men. Not more than 350 were regulars--of whom 230 were
-Frazer’s Highlanders, who had settled in the country, and were
-re-embodied under Colonel McLean. The remainder were 450 seamen,
-and a gallant band composed of Canadian militia and artificers.
-The American Generals had now effected a junction of their forces,
-and summoned the fortress to surrender. This was at once rejected.
-After pushing the siege during the month of December, without
-any prospect of success, Montgomery determined upon making a
-night-attack. This intention soon became known to General Carleton,
-who made every preparation to defeat the enemy. The Governor, with
-the officers and gentlemen off duty, took up their quarters for
-several days at the Recollet Convent, where they slept in their
-clothes. During this month’s siege, the American riflemen kept up
-an unintermitting fire upon the sentinels, and threw from forty
-to fifty shells every night into the city. The inhabitants became
-so accustomed to the occurrences of a siege that they ceased to
-regard them with alarm, all joining cheerfully in bearing arms and
-performing the duty of soldiers. Two strong parties were formed on
-the 31st of December--one under Montgomery, the other under Arnold,
-whose local knowledge of Quebec was accurate. They were to advance
-from opposite sides and meet at the foot of Mountain street; then
-force Prescott gate and reach the Upper Town.
-
-The besiegers approached the city with the most careful silence,
-aided by the raging of a furious storm. Advancing by the road
-which winds round the face of the rock, the army was crowded
-into the narrow pass which led to the gate. Notwithstanding every
-precaution the confused noise of the approaching troops rose
-above the conflict of the elements, and struck the watchful ear
-of the outer sentinel, who, receiving no answer to his challenge,
-roused the British guard. The party who defended the battery,
-consisted of Canadian militia, with nine British seamen to work
-the guns. They kept a close watch, and, as soon as the day broke,
-discovered the troops marching in the snow. Orders were given to
-make no movement; and the Americans, having halted at the distance
-of fifty yards, sent forward an officer to reconnoitre. On his
-return the troops marched forward with a quickness and precision
-deserving the highest praise. The English then opened a tremendous
-fire from the artillery which commanded the path; the groans which
-succeeded plainly revealed the enemy; and it was not until every
-sound in answer to their fire had died away, that they ceased
-their cannonade. The enemy having retired, thirteen bodies were
-found in the snow. Montgomery’s orderly sergeant, desperately
-wounded, but yet alive, was found and brought into the guard-room.
-On being asked if the General himself had been killed, he evaded
-the question by replying that he had not seen him for some time.
-This faithful sergeant died in about an hour afterwards. It was
-not ascertained that the American General had been killed, until
-General Carleton, anxious to learn the truth, sent to inquire if
-any of the prisoners would identify the body. An officer consenting
-accompanied the aide-de-camp to the “_Près de Ville_” guard, and
-pointed out the body, pronouncing over it a glowing eulogium on
-Montgomery’s bravery. His two aides-de-camp were also recognised
-among the slain. This brave man had fought by the side of Wolfe on
-the Plains of Abraham; but, marrying an American lady, the daughter
-of Judge Livingston, he imbibed the politics of his father-in-law’s
-family, and joined the cause of the colonists against the Mother
-Country. The excellence of his qualities and disposition procured
-him an uncommon share of private affection and esteem. After his
-death the Continental Congress ordered a magnificent cenotaph to
-be erected to his memory in St. Paul’s Church, N.Y. Thither his
-remains were removed in 1818, by the desire of his widow, and with
-the permission of the then British Governor, Sir John Sherbrooke.
-In the meantime, Arnold, who had been repulsed at the opposite side
-of the town, took the command, and attempted still to maintain his
-ground; but the dispirited state of his men rendered him unable to
-keep up more than an imperfect blockade at a distance of three
-miles, which he at last abandoned. In the whole attack upon Quebec
-the Americans lost about 100 killed and wounded, and six officers
-of Arnold’s division, inclusive of the loss at _Près de Ville_. The
-British had one officer and seventeen men killed and wounded. The
-number of those who surrendered was 426.”
-
-
-QUEENSTON.--_Upper Canada._--This town, on the River Niagara, was
-taken by the United States troops in the American war of 1812,
-October 13th, but was retaken by the British, who defeated the
-Americans with loss. The following is a succinct account of the
-battle and death of general Brock, the Hero of Upper Canada:
-
-
- WAR OF 1812 AND DEATH OF GEN. BROCK.
-
-“The American Government assembled at the Niagara frontier a force
-of 6300 men; of this force, 3170 (900 of whom were regular troops)
-were at Lewiston, under the command of General Van Rensselaer. In
-the American reports this army is set down at 8000 strong, with
-15 pieces of field ordnance. To oppose this force Major General
-Brock had part of the 41st and 49th regiments, a few companies of
-militia, and about 200 Indians, in all 1500 men; but so dispersed
-in different posts at and between Fort Erie and Fort George, that
-only a small number was available at any one point. Before daylight
-on the morning of the 13th of October, a large division of General
-Van Rensselaer’s army, numbering between 1300 and 1400, under
-Brigadier General Wadsworth, effected a landing at the lower end of
-the village of Queenston (opposite Lewiston), and made an attack
-upon the position, which was defended with the most determined
-bravery by the two flank companies of the 49th regiment, commanded
-by Captains Dennis and Williams, aided by such of the militia
-forces and Indians as could be collected in the vicinity. Captain
-Dennis marched his company to the landing place opposite Lewiston,
-and was soon followed by the light company of the 49th, and the few
-militia who could be hastily assembled. Here the attempt of the
-enemy to effect a passage, was for some time successfully resisted,
-and several boats were either disabled or sunk by the fire from the
-one-gun battery on the heights, and that from the masked battery,
-about a mile below. Several boats also were, by the fire from this
-battery, so annoyed, that falling before the landing place, they
-were compelled to drop down with the current and recross to the
-American side. A considerable force, however, effected a landing
-some distance above, and succeeded in gaining the summit of the
-mountain. No resistance could now be offered to the crossing from
-Lewiston, except by the battery at Vromont’s Point, half a mile
-below, and from this a steady and harassing fire was kept up, which
-did considerable execution.
-
-At this juncture Sir Isaac Brock arrived. He had for days suspected
-this invasion, and on the preceding evening he called his staff
-together and gave to each the necessary instructions. Agreeable
-to his usual custom he rose before daylight, and hearing the
-cannonade, awoke Major Glegg, and called for his horse Alfred,
-which Sir James Craig had presented to him. He then galloped
-eagerly from Fort George to the scene of action, and with two
-Aides-de-Camp passed up the hill at full gallop in front of the
-light company, under a heavy fire of artillery and musketry
-from the American shore. On reaching the 18-pounder battery at
-the top of the hill, they dismounted and took a view of passing
-events, which at that moment appeared highly favourable. But in
-a few minutes a firing was heard, which proceeded from a strong
-detachment of American regulars under Captain Wool, who, as just
-stated, had succeeded in gaining the brow of the heights in rear
-of the battery, by a fisherman’s path up the rocks, which being
-reported as impossible, was not guarded. Sir Isaac Brock and his
-Aides-de-Camp had not even time to remount, but were obliged to
-retire precipitately with the twelve men stationed in the battery,
-which was quickly occupied by the enemy. Captain Wool having sent
-forward about 150 regulars, Captain Williams’ detachment of about
-100 men advanced to meet them, personally directed by the General,
-who, observing the enemy waver, ordered a charge, which was
-promptly executed; but as the Americans gave way, the result was
-not equal to his expectations. Captain Wool sent a reinforcement
-to his regulars, notwithstanding which, the whole was driven to
-the edge of the bank. Here some of the American officers were on
-the point of hoisting a white flag with an intention to surrender,
-when Captain Wool tore it off and reanimated his dispirited troops.
-They now opened a heavy fire of musketry, and, conspicuous from his
-cross, his height, and the enthusiasm with which he animated his
-little band, the British Commander was soon singled out, and he
-fell about an hour after his arrival.
-
-The fatal bullet entered his right breast, and passed through
-his left side. He had but that instant said, “_Push on the York
-Volunteers!_” and he lived only long enough to request that his
-fall might not be noticed, or prevent the advance of his brave
-troops, adding a wish which could not be distinctly understood,
-that some token of remembrance should be transmitted to his
-sister. He died unmarried, and on the same day, a week previously,
-he had completed his 43rd year. The lifeless corpse was immediately
-conveyed into a house close by, where it remained until the
-afternoon, unperceived by the enemy. His Provincial Aide-de-Camp,
-Lieutenant Colonel McDonell, of the militia, and the Attorney
-General of Upper Canada, a fine promising young man, was mortally
-wounded soon after his chief, and died the next day, at the early
-age of twenty-five years. Although one bullet had passed through
-his body, and he was wounded in four places, yet he survived twenty
-hours, and during a period of excruciating agony his thoughts and
-words were constantly occupied with lamentations for his deceased
-commander and friend. He fell, while gallantly charging up the
-hill, with 190 men, chiefly York Volunteers, by which charge the
-enemy was compelled to spike the 18-pounder in the battery there.
-
-
- THE BATTLE OF QUEENSTON HEIGHTS.
-
-At this time, about two in the afternoon, the whole British and
-Indian force thus assembled was about 1000 men, of whom 600 were
-regulars. In numbers the Americans were about equal--courage they
-had, but they wanted the confidence and discipline of British
-Soldiers. After carefully reconnoitering, General Sheaffe, who had
-arrived from Fort George, and who had now assumed the command,
-commenced the attack by an advance of his left flank, composed of
-the light company of the 41st, under Lieutenant McIntyre, supported
-by a body of militia and Indians. After a volley, the bayonet was
-resorted to, and the American right driven in. The main body now
-advanced under cover of the fire from the two 3-pounders, and after
-a short conflict forced the Americans over the first ridge of
-the heights to the road loading from Queenston to the Falls. The
-fight was maintained on both sides with courage truly heroic. The
-British regulars and militia charged in rapid succession, until
-they succeeded in turning the left flank of the enemy’s column,
-which rested on the summit of the hill. The Americans who attempted
-to escape into the woods were quickly driven back by the Indians;
-and many cut off in their return to the main body, and terrified by
-the sight of these exasperated warriors, flung themselves wildly
-over the cliffs, and endeavoured to cling to the bushes which grew
-upon them; but some, losing their hold, were dashed frightfully on
-the rocks beneath; while others, who reached the river, perished in
-their attempts to swim across it. The event of the day no longer
-appeared doubtful.
-
-Major-General Van Rensselaer, commanding the American army,
-perceiving his reinforcements embarking very slowly, recrossed
-the river to accelerate their movements; but, to his utter
-astonishment, he found that at the very moment when their services
-were most required, the ardour of the unengaged troops had entirely
-subsided. He rode in all directions through the camp, urging his
-men by every consideration, to pass over. Lieutenant-Colonel
-Bloome, who had been wounded in the action and recrossed the river,
-together with Judge Peck, who happened to be in Lewiston at the
-time, mounted their horses and rode through the camp, exhorting the
-companies to proceed, but all in vain. Crowds of the United States
-militia remained on the American bank of the river, to which they
-had not been marched in any order, but ran as a mob; not one of
-them would cross. They had seen the wounded recrossing, they had
-seen the Indians; and they had seen the “Green Tigers,” as they
-called the 49th, from their green facings, and were panic struck.
-There were those to be found in the American ranks who, at this
-critical juncture, could talk of the Constitution, and the right of
-the militia to refuse crossing the imaginary line which separates
-the two countries. General Van Rensselaer having found that it was
-impossible to urge a single man to cross the river to reinforce
-the army on the Heights, and that army having nearly expended its
-ammunition, boats were immediately sent to cover their retreat;
-but a desultory fire which was maintained upon the ferry from a
-battery on the bank at the lower end of Queenston, completely
-dispersed the boats, and many of the boatmen relanded and fled in
-dismay. Brigadier-General Wadsworth was, therefore, compelled,
-after a vigorous conflict had been maintained for some time upon
-both sides, to surrender himself, all his officers, and 900 men,
-between three and four o’clock in the afternoon. The loss of the
-British army was 16 killed and 69 wounded; while that on the side
-of the Americans was not less than 900 men, made prisoners, and one
-gun and two colours taken, and 90 killed and about 100 wounded.
-But amongst the killed of the British army, the government and
-the country had to deplore the loss of one of their bravest and
-most zealous Generals, in Sir Isaac Brock, and one whose memory
-will long live in the warmest affections of every Canadian and
-British subject. The country had also to deplore the loss of the
-eminent services and talents of Lieutenant-Colonel McDonell, whose
-gallantry and merit rendered him worthy of his chief.
-
-The gratitude of the people of Canada to the memory of Brock
-was manifested in an enduring form. They desired to perpetuate
-the memory of the hero who had been the instrument of their
-deliverance, and they were not slow in executing their design; and
-whilst his noble deeds were still fresh in the memory of all, the
-Provincial Legislature erected a lofty column on the Queenston
-Heights, near the spot where he fell. The height of the monument,
-from the base to the summit, was 135 feet; and from the level
-of the Niagara River, which runs nearly under it, 485 feet. The
-monument was a Tuscan column, on rustic pedestal with a pedestal
-for a statue; the diameter of the base of the column was 17½ feet
-and the abacus of the capital was surmounted by an iron railing.
-The centre shaft, containing the spiral staircase, was 10 feet in
-diameter.
-
-On Good Friday, the 17th of April, 1840, a vagabond of the name of
-Lett, introduced a quantity of gunpowder into the monument with the
-fiendish purpose of destroying it, and the explosion, effected by
-a train, caused so much damage us to render the column altogether
-irreparable. Lett had been compelled to fly into the United States
-for his share in the rebellion of 1837, and well knowing the
-feeling of attachment to the name and memory of General Brock,
-which pervaded all classes of Canadians, he sought to gratify his
-malicious and vindictive spirit, and at the same time to wound and
-insult the people of Canada by this atrocious deed.
-
-He afterward met with some meed of his deserts in the State Prison
-at Auburn, New York.
-
-After the first monument had remained in the dilapidated condition,
-to which it was reduced, for some years, a new and beautiful column
-was a short time ago raised on its site. It is thus described:
-“Upon the solid rock is built a foundation 40 feet square and 10
-feet thick of massive stone; upon this, the structure stands in
-a grooved plinth or sub-basement 38 feet square and 27 feet in
-height, and has an eastern entrance by a massive oak door and
-bronze pateras, forming two galleries to the interior 114 feet in
-extent, round the inner pedestal on the North and South sides of
-which, in vaults under the ground floor, are deposited the remains
-of General Brock, and those of his Aide-de-Camp, Colonel McDonell,
-in massive stone sarcophagi. On the exterior angles of the
-sub-basement are placed lions rampant 7 feet in height, supporting
-shields with the armorial bearings of the hero: The column is of
-the Roman composite order, 95 feet in height, a fluted shaft,
-10 feet diameter at the base; the loftiest column known of this
-style; the lower part enriched with laurel leaves, and the flutes
-terminating on the base with palms.”
-
-The height from the ground to the top of the statue is 190 feet,
-exceeding that of any monumental column, ancient or modern, known,
-with the exception of that on Fish-street Hill, London, England, by
-Sir Christopher Wren, architect, in commemoration of the great fire
-of 1666, 202 feet high, which exceeds it in height by 12 feet.”
-
-
-QUESNOY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, September 11th, 1773, between the
-French and British, in which the British were defeated, with some
-loss. Taken by the Austrians in 1793, but recovered by the French
-the following year. It surrendered to Prince Frederick of the
-Netherlands, after the battle of Waterloo.
-
-
-QUIBERON BAY.--A British force landed here in 1736, and was
-repulsed. In this Bay Admiral Hawke gained a complete victory over
-the French, under Conflans. This most perilous and important action
-defeated the French invasion, November 10th 1758. Taken by some
-French regiments in pay of the British, July 3rd, 1795; but on July
-21st, retaken by the French Republicans. About 900 of the troops
-and near 1500 Royalist inhabitants effected their escape on board
-the ships.
-
-
-
-
-R.
-
-
-RAMILIES, BATTLE OF.--Between the English and Allies, commanded
-by Marlborough, on the one side, and the French, commanded by the
-Elector of Bavaria and the Marshal de Villeroy. The French, having
-no confidence in their Commander, were soon seized with a panic,
-and a general rout ensued. About 4000 of the Allied army were
-slain. Fought on Whitsunday, May 26th, 1706.
-
-“The year following the victory of Blenheim was, for the most part,
-wasted in the struggles of Marlborough with his enemies at home,
-and with the dilatory and uncertain course of the allies of England
-abroad. He succeeded in forcing the French lines in Flanders;
-but the fruits of this great achievement were snatched from him
-by the constant backwardness of the Dutch Generals, who opposed
-every measure which was urged by him. So grieved was he by their
-continual opposition, that on one occasion, when the opportunity of
-a brilliant success was thus lost, he exclaimed, “I feel at this
-moment ten years older than I was four years ago.” In fact, towards
-the end of what he had hoped to make a glorious campaign, but
-which through this opposition had been lost in disputes, he fell
-seriously ill, and was obliged to retire for a time from active
-employment.
-
-Meanwhile, the Imperial government had begun to show signs
-of jealousy and uneasiness that this great General should be
-employed in Flanders, and in the defence of Holland, instead of
-recovering the Austrian possessions on the Rhine, and liberating
-Lorraine. Pressing applications were made that the Duke, instead of
-prosecuting the war in Belgium, would return to the Moselle, and
-co-operate with the Imperial forces in that quarter. Taking his
-departure from the army at the end of October, 1705, Marlborough
-set out for Vienna, which he reached on the 12th of November.
-Here the Emperor Joseph created him a Prince of the Empire, and
-conferred on him the lordship of Mindelheim. But which gave him far
-more satisfaction, he succeeded in reconciling all differences, and
-in cementing the alliance, which seemed in danger of dissolution,
-between Austria, Prussia, and the Netherlands, against the
-ambitious designs of France. He then returned to the Hague, which
-he reached on the 11th of December, proceeding thence to London,
-which he reached early in the new year.
-
-On the 25th of April, 1706, he again arrived at the Hague for the
-active duties of the approaching campaign. This year’s warfare
-began at an earlier period than the previous ones, for the French
-General, with commendable zeal and activity, took the field in the
-spring, forced the German lines on the Motter, reduced Dreisenheim
-and Hagenau, and threatened the Palatinate. The Duke, therefore,
-left the Hague on the 9th May, the Dutch being now anxious to
-retain him with them, and offering him uncontrolled power over
-their forces. Accompanied by Overkirk, he passed through Rimemont,
-and reached Maestricht on the 12th. Here he reviewed the Dutch
-troops, and began to take measures for an attack on Namur. But
-Villeroy received orders from Paris rather to risk a battle than to
-give up this important place. Hence, in the third week in May, the
-two armies began to approach each other.
-
-Villeroy and the Elector of Bavaria passed the Dyle, and approached
-Tirlemont. Their combined forces amounted to about 62,000 men. The
-Duke, with his English, joined the Dutch at Bilsen on the 20th of
-May, and on the 22nd he had intelligence of the arrival of the
-Danish contingent, which raised the strength of his army to about
-60,000 men. His first desire, now, was to learn the position of
-the enemy, and how best to come in contact with them. The field of
-battle ultimately proved to be in an elevated part of the plain of
-Brabant, lying between Maestricht, Louvain, and Namur. The village
-of Ramilies itself is but a few miles to the east of Wavre, the
-position of Marshal Blucher on the morning of the day of Waterloo.
-
-On the 23rd of May, then, in 1706, the English, Dutch, and Danish
-army, commencing their march early in the morning, came in sight,
-about eight o’clock, of the Franco-Bavarian outposts. A fog for
-some time made everything obscure, but about ten o’clock the two
-armies stood in presence of each other. The French commander
-had formed his order of battle with the skill which experience
-generally gives; but he was opposed by a greater commander, whose
-eye speedily detected the weaknesses of his position.
-
-The French and Bavarians were drawn up on ground which, by its
-nature, gave their order of battle a concave form. Thus the
-attacking enemy would have the advantage of being able to bring his
-men more rapidly from one side to the other, as required. The left
-wing of the French, also, though strongly posted, was in a position
-from which it could not easily move. Marlborough, therefore, was
-not long in forming his plan, which was, to turn the enemy’s right
-wing; to seize an elevated position in the rear of that wing, and
-from that position to outflank the whole army.
-
-He therefore began a feigned attack, by his own right wing,
-upon the left of the French. Villeroy immediately met this, as
-Marlborough intended, by sending for fresh troops from his centre,
-and by weakening his right. Pausing in his apparent attack,
-Marlborough promptly moved to the left all the infantry that were
-out of sight of the French, and fell upon the enemy’s right wing,
-which was posted in Tavieres.
-
-The attack succeeded, and Tavieres was carried. Villeroy, finding
-out his mistake, hurried his squadron of dragoons to the succour of
-his right wing; but these squadrons were met by the Danish cavalry
-emerging from Tavieres, and they were all cut to pieces, or driven
-into the Mehaigne.
-
-And now Ramilies itself, in the centre, became the object of
-attack. The Duke ordered up from his own right wing every available
-squadron, and exposed himself much in leading the attack. He was,
-at one moment, thrown from his horse, and in danger of being
-made prisoner. While he was remounting, a cannon-ball killed his
-equerry, Captain Bingfield, who was assisting him.
-
-But now the allied cavalry had reached the height of Ottomond, in
-the rear of the French position, and the success of the attack
-was secured. The French were in utter confusion in all parts of
-the field, and Ramilies itself was carried. There remained only
-the left wing of Villeroy’s army; and this, attacked now by the
-reserves on Marlborough’s right, and by the victorious troops
-which had cleared Ramilies, gave way as evening drew on, rushed
-in crowds down the descent behind their position, and fled for
-Judoigne. The cannon and baggage fell into the hands of the
-victors, who pursued the flying French and Bavarians until two
-o’clock in the morning. The allied army did not halt in its pursuit
-till past midnight, when it had advanced to Meldert, five leagues
-from the field of battle, and two from Louvian.
-
-This battle cost the Franco-Bavarian army 13,000 men, in killed,
-wounded, and prisoners: among whom were the Princes of Soubise
-and Rohan, and a son of Marshal Tallard. The spoils of the day
-consisted of 80 colours and standards taken from the French; nearly
-all their artillery, and all the baggage which was in the field.
-The loss of the Allies was 1066 killed, and 2567 wounded. The vast
-difference between this, and the loss sustained at Blenheim, shows
-that the victory of Ramilies was gained by the Duke’s masterly
-manœuvres; and was not owing merely to the courage of the soldiers.
-
-The results of the battle of Ramilies were very great. Louvain
-instantly surrendered; Brussels received the Duke with open arms
-on the 28th. Mechlin, Alost, and Lierre, quickly followed. All
-Brabant was gained by this one victory. Nor was this all. Flanders
-caught the infection. Ghent opened its gates on the 1st of June;
-and Antwerp surrendered a few days afterwards. Ostend fell on the
-6th of July; and in its harbour were taken two men-of-war, and 45
-smaller vessels.”
-
-
-RATHMINES, BATTLE OF.--_In Ireland._--Colonel Jones, Governor of
-Dublin Castle, made a sally, August 2nd, 1649, and routed the
-Marquis of Ormond, killed 4000 men and took 2517 prisoners, with
-their cannon, baggage and ammunition. This battle, and other
-successes, completely discomfited the rebels in this part of
-Ireland.
-
-
-RAVENNA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, April 11th, 1512, between the French,
-under the great Gaston de Foix, Duke of Nemours, and nephew of
-Louis XII, and the Spanish and Papal armies. De Foix, gained this
-memorable battle, but perished in the moment of victory, and the
-French fortunes in Italy were thus closed. The confederate army
-was cut to pieces. The Duke had performed prodigies of valor, but
-being too eager in his pursuit of the Spaniards, who were retiring
-in good order, he was slain.
-
-
-REVOLUTION.--The Great Revolution which overturned the old Monarchy
-of France occurred at the close of the last century. The 2nd, the
-one here described sent Charles X into exile and was somewhat like
-that of 1848 which also exiled Louis Philippe.
-
-
- SECOND FRENCH REVOLUTION.
-
-“The political history of 1830 commenced on March 2nd, by a speech
-from the throne, announcing war against Algiers for the insults
-offered to the French flag, and a wish for a reconciliation with
-the Bragazana family.
-
-This caused great dissatisfaction; the funds fell, the Chamber of
-Deputies were against the measure, and on the 19th were convoked
-till August 3rd, and several fires took place, evidently the work
-of incendiaries.
-
-On the 25th July, Polignac addressed a report to the king on
-“legitimate power,” and which formed the ground-work of three
-memorable ordinances, which were signed on that day by Charles, and
-countersigned by the ministers.
-
-The first ordinance abolished the freedom of the press; the second
-dissolved the Chamber of Deputies; and the third abrogated the most
-important rights of the elective franchise.
-
-On the publication of the _Moniteur_ on the following morning, all
-Paris was astounded by the mystifying report of the ministers of
-Charles X and the king’s arbitrary decrees. The _Rentes_ fell, and
-the bank stopped payment.
-
-All work was now abandoned, every manufactory closed, and
-detachments of artisans with large sticks traversed the streets.
-Troops of gendarmes patrolled the streets at full gallop to
-disperse the accumulating crowds. The people were silent; and at an
-early hour the shops were closed. Early on the 27th, troops of the
-royal guard and soldiers of the line came pouring in. The people
-looked sullen and determined. The chief points of rendezvous were
-the Palais Royal, the Palais de Justice, and the Bourse. Here were
-simultaneous cries of “_Viva la Charte!_”--“Down with the absolute
-king!” but no conversation--no exchange of words with each other.
-The King was at the Tuilleries. In the Place Carousel there was a
-station of several thousands of the military, including the lancers
-of the royal guard, with a great number of cannon. At the Place
-Vendome a strong guard of infantry was stationed around the column,
-to guard the ensigns of royalty upon it from being defaced. Crowds
-of people assembled, and several skirmishes took place.
-
-On Wednesday morning, July 28th, the shops of Paris were closely
-shut, and the windows fastened and barred, as if the inhabitants
-of the city were in mourning for the dead, or in apprehension of
-approaching calamity. The tocsin sounded, and the people flocked
-in from the fauxbourgs and different quarters of the city. That
-determined enemy to oppression, the press, had been at work during
-the night. Handbills were profusely distributed, containing
-vehement philippics against the king and his ministers, and
-summoning every man to arm for his country, and to aid in ejecting
-the Bourbons. Placards were constantly posted up and eagerly read.
-During the preceding night an organisation of the people had been
-arranged. All the arms that could be found at the theatres, and
-remaining in the shops of armourers that had not been visited the
-evening before, were seized and distributed. Every other kind of
-property, however, was respected.
-
-Strong detachments guarded the different hotels of the ministers.
-Loud cries and shouts were constantly heard, of “Down with the
-Jesuits!”--“Down with the Bourbons!” “Death to the Ministers!” Each
-man strove to provide himself with a musket, a pistol, a sword,
-a pole with a knife, or some cutting instrument to form a weapon
-of offence. Troops continually arrived from St. Denis, St. Cloud,
-and other military stations. Rude barricades were hastily thrown
-up in different places, to prevent the attacks of cavalry. Several
-telegraphs, including that on the Church des Petits Peres, were
-dismounted. Groups of the people, armed with sticks, bayonets,
-pikes, and muskets, removed or effaced all the insignia and emblems
-of royalty. A red flag was hoisted on the gate of St. Denis, amidst
-the shouts of the people. Tri-coloured flags were promenaded in
-the streets, and tri-coloured cockades and breast-knots were worn,
-not only by the French, but by the English and foreigners of all
-nations. The royal arms, and other ensigns of the government of
-Charles X that were moveable, were burned in the Place Publique.
-All Paris was in insurrection. Every movement of the people
-portended a terrible conflict. The government reposed in security
-upon a blind and implacable dignity.
-
-M. Lafitte had an interview with Polignac, who said “that the
-ministers could enter into no compromise or concession.” “We have,
-then, civil war,” said Lafitte. The prince bowed, and Lafitte
-retired.
-
-As soon, however, as Polignac’s answer was made known, that
-“ministers would enter into no compromise or concession,” war, and
-war to the knife, commenced; and never were witnessed more heroic
-acts of personal bravery, and more generous disregard of selfish
-feelings, than were displayed by the citizens of Paris on this
-memorable day and night. The drums of the national guards soon
-beat “to arms!” The populace answered the call amid the incessant
-ringing of the tocsin, and the struggle began in earnest. About two
-o’clock a cannon on the bridge near the Marche aux Fleurs raked
-with grape-shot the quay, while the troops were resolutely attacked
-by the people, and numbers of the guards led off, killed or wounded.
-
-There was a tremendous conflict in La Halle, the great market-place
-of the Rue St. Denis. The royal guard were early in possession
-of it. All the outlets were speedily closed by barricades, from
-behind which, from the corners of the various streets, and from the
-windows of the houses, the people fired on the guards, and there
-was a terrible slaughter on both sides. The hottest engagement
-seems to have been in the Rue St. Honoré, opposite the Palais
-Royal, where the military were assembled in great force, and the
-people resisted their assailants with desperate determination.
-
-At the Place de Grêve they fiercely contended with the household
-troops, the Swiss guards, and compelled them to fly with great
-loss. In the Rue Montmartre an attack was made by the duke of
-Ragusa in person. During part of the day the Place des Victoires
-was occupied by some troops, among whom was a part of the fifth
-regiment of the line, who had gone over to the national guards
-established at the Petits Peres. About two o’clock the duke de
-Ragusa arrived at the place at the head of fresh troops. He drew
-them up opposite the Rues du Mail, des Fosses, Montmartre, Croix
-des Petits Champs, and Neuve des Petits Champs. He immediately
-commanded a charge, and on both sides hundreds of men were killed.
-The marshal directed his troops down the Rue du Mail, and they
-scoured the Rue Montmartre without much difficulty till they
-reached the Rue Joquelet, where the people were prepared. Each
-house was armed and guarded. The black flag was displayed on the
-Porte St. Denis and other edifices.
-
-As soon as the firing ceased, the people made preparations for
-the next day by strengthening the barricades and increasing
-their number. They were assisted by women and even children. The
-remainder of the afternoon and evening, and the whole of the
-night, was spent in raising these important obstacles to the
-evolutions of cavalry. Excellent materials were at hand in the
-paving-stones; they were dug up and piled across the streets in
-walls breast high, and four or five feet thick. These walls were
-about fifty paces distant from each other. Hundreds of the finest
-trees were cut down for blockades. Nothing could be more effective
-for the defence of a large open town like Paris, traversed in
-every direction by long narrow streets, overlooked by houses of
-six, seven, and eight stories, than such barriers, scientifically
-constructed. All the means that industry and ingenuity could
-devise, in so short a time, were carried into execution, for the
-energetic stand and assault determined to be made against the
-military in the morning.
-
-At day-break on Thursday the tocsin sounded “To arms;” and the
-people began to assemble rapidly and in great crowds. The military,
-whose guard-houses had been destroyed, were chiefly quartered at
-the Louvre and the Tuilleries, the Swiss and the royal guards
-being posted in the houses of the Rue St. Honoré and the adjacent
-streets. At the same time, the students of the Polytechnic
-School joined the citizens nearly to a man; they then separated,
-proceeding singly to different parts to take the command of the
-people, and nobly repaid the confidence reposed in them. The garden
-of the Tuilleries was closed. In the Place du Carousel were three
-squadrons of lancers of the garde royale, a battalion of the third
-regiment of the guards, and a battery of six pieces, also belonging
-to the guards.
-
-About one o’clock in the afternoon, a party of the royal guards and
-of Swiss, to the number of nearly 800 men, appeared on the Place de
-Grêve. A brisk fire commenced, but the national guards not being
-in sufficient strength, were obliged to give ground and to suffer
-the royal guards to take possession of their post. The royal guards
-had scarcely made themselves masters of the Hotel de Ville, when
-they were assailed on all sides with a shower of bullets from the
-windows of the houses on the Place de Grêve and in the streets
-abutting on the quay. The royal guards resisted vigorously, but
-were ultimately compelled to retreat along the quay; their firing
-by files and by platoons succeeding each other with astonishing
-rapidity. They were soon joined by fresh troops of the royal
-guard and of Swiss, including 100 cuirassiers of the guard and
-four pieces of artillery, each of them escorted by a dozen of
-artillerymen on horseback. With this terrible reinforcement they
-again advanced on the Hotel de Ville, and a frightful firing began
-on all sides. The artillery debouching from the quay, and their
-pieces charged with cannister shot, swept the Place de Grêve in
-a terrific manner. They succeeded in driving the citizens into
-the Rues de Matriot and du Mouton, and entered for the second
-time that day into their position at the Hotel de Ville. But
-their possession of it did not continue long; for they were soon
-again attacked with a perseverance and courage which was almost
-irresistible. Their artillery ranged before the Prefecture of the
-Seine and the Hotel de Ville threatened death to thousands.
-
-Hundreds of the constitutionalists were killed by the fire of
-the Swiss guard from the windows of this edifice. It was erected
-in 1600, and though it does not appear to possess any of the
-characteristics of strength in a military sense of the word, yet
-its gates, being of immense thickness, furnished a good defence
-from the musketry of the attacking parties. The Hotel de Ville was
-afterwards employed as the head-quarters of La Fayette and the
-provisional government.
-
-The Rue St. Honoré, for two days, was a perpetual scene of
-slaughter. The Louvre, except the picture-gallery, was on all sides
-attacked and defended at the same moment, and for hours. In the
-court of the Louvre a field-piece was planted, which commanded
-the Pont des Arts, being exactly opposite the Institute. Here the
-fighting was so dreadful and so maintained, that the front of the
-building of the Institute was completely covered with muskets and
-grape shot. One cannon ball smashed a portion of the wall, and from
-its elevation did dreadful execution in sweeping the bridge. The
-attack on the Tuilleries was over in two or three hours. A young
-man marched with a tri-coloured flag at the head of the attacking
-bourgeois. A thousand balls, fired from the front of the chateau,
-whistled by him without touching him. He continued to march
-with perfect _sangfroid_, but with, at the same time, an air of
-importance, up to the triumphal arch, and remained until the end of
-the battle.
-
-While the people and the military were combating at the Place de
-Grêve, the Louvre, and the Tuilleries, troops were arriving by the
-Champs Elysees. A great party of the people, and many national
-guards, with two pieces of cannon, were hastening along near the
-Place Louis XVI towards the Barrier St. Etoile, when a largo
-troop of dragoons arrived, made a desperate charge, and cut down
-the people without mercy who made a very bold stand. Many of the
-soldiers solemnly vowed that they would not continue to obey orders
-to massacre their brothers and sons. Their numbers were thinned,
-they were fatigued, disheartened, discomfited, beaten, and fled. At
-Chaillot, a district of Paris, verging on the route to St. Cloud,
-the inhabitants, though few in number, sustained the fire of five
-regiments of the guards, who attempted to effect their retreat by
-the barrier of Passy. At length, all the royal troops left the
-capital by the way of the Champs Elysees, and in their retreat were
-fired upon by the people.
-
-At night, part of the town was illuminated, particularly
-the streets of St. Denis, St. Martin, St. Jacques, and the
-neighbourhood of the Hotel de Ville. Perfect tranquillity prevailed
-throughout the city. Strong patroles silently paraded the streets,
-passed gently from barricade to barricade, and disarmed individuals
-whom fatigue and the heat of the weather, more than wine, had
-rendered incapable of employing their weapons usefully.
-
-A deputation from Charles X at St. Cloud, arrived at the Hotel
-de Ville early in the morning. It consisted of the marquis de
-Rastoret, chancellor of France; M. Semonville; and count d’Argout,
-peer of France. They announced that Charles had named the duke de
-Mortemart president of the council, and that he was willing to
-accept a ministry chosen by him.
-
-At eleven o’clock, the deputies and peers then in Paris assembled
-in their respective halls, and established regular communications
-with each other. The duke de Mortemart was introduced to the
-chamber of deputies, and delivered four ordinances, signed,
-the previous day, by Charles X. One of them recalled the fatal
-ordinances of the 25th; another convoked the chambers on the 3rd;
-the third appointed the duke de Mortemart president of the council,
-and the fourth appointed count Gerard minister of war, and M.
-Casimir-Perier minister of finance. The reading of these ordinances
-was listened to with the greatest attention. At the termination
-profound silence continued;--no observation was made;--the deputies
-passed to other business.--The duke de Mortemart returned to
-acquaint his master that he was no longer acknowledged as king of
-France. The manner in which the duke and his communications were
-received by the deputies, was an announcement that Charles X had
-ceased to reign.
-
-On the 31st, the deputies published a proclamation, declaring that
-they had invited the duke of Orleans to become Lieutenant-General
-of the kingdom. At noon of the same day, Louis Philippe d’Orleans
-issued a proclamation, declaring that he had hastened to Paris,
-wearing the “glorious colours” of France, to accept the invitation
-of the assembled deputies to become Lieutenant-General of the
-kingdom. A proclamation of the same date appointed provisional
-commissaries for the different departments of government. The king,
-with his family, escaped to St. Cloud.
-
-On the 3rd of August the chambers met, when the abdication of
-Charles was announced; and on the 9th, Louis Philippe, having taken
-the prescribed oath, was created king, under the title of “King of
-the French.”
-
-Thus terminated this desperate struggle for popular rights, and
-which has no parallel in the annals of history. The Parisians left
-their homes to fight, without organization and almost without
-arms, against some of the best troops in the world;--and for what?
-Were they a rabble driven by hunger, or a rebellious nobility
-endeavouring to wrest new privileges from the monarch? No: they
-were men who, animated with an ardent desire to be free, would not
-suffer themselves to be stripped of their civil rights, but firmly
-and manfully defended them with their lives. It was in this respect
-a great moral revolution, and forms a brilliant epoch in the annals
-of the world.”
-
-
-RETREAT OF THE GREEKS.--Whoever has read the beautiful descriptions
-of Xenophon, has read of the memorable retreat of the 10,000
-Greeks. It happened B.C. 401, after the battle of Cunaxa; Xenophon
-was chosen commander. He rose superior to danger, and though under
-continual alarms from the sudden attacks of the Persians, he was
-enabled to cross rapid rivers, penetrate through vast deserts, gain
-the tops of mountains, till he could rest secure for a while, and
-refresh his tired companions. At last they returned home, after a
-retreat of 1155 parasangs or leagues, which was performed in 215
-days,--and after an absence of 15 months.
-
-
-RIDGEWAY, BATTLE OF, OR LIME RIDGE.--Fought, Saturday, June 2nd,
-1866, between the Canadian Volunteers of Toronto and Hamilton, and
-the Fenians, a lawless band of predatory scoundrels, who wantonly
-invaded Canada, and were driven back by Canada’s brave sons. The
-following succinct account is from the pen of the Rev. D. Inglis,
-D.D., of Hamilton, who was present in the engagement.
-
-“Rev. Mr. Burwash and myself were appointed by a number of the
-ministers of this city to join the 13th Battalion of Hamilton
-volunteers, and to render them such assistance as might be in our
-power. The shadows of night had just given way to the bright light
-of that June morning when we reached Port Colborne and joined
-the battalion in the cars, a few minutes before the train left
-for Ridgeway. Much has been written on the proper rations and
-equipments for the men, and I only refer to this with the view
-of noticing the want of shoulder-straps with which to fasten the
-overcoats on the back of the soldiers, and the fact that they were
-obliged to roll them up and sling them over their right shoulders,
-under their left arm-pits, an expedient which afterwards greatly
-impeded them in aiming and firing, and caused them to abandon their
-overcoats when going into battle.
-
-The train proceeded slowly to Ridgeway, where the men left the
-cars and were drawn up on the Stevensville road. The Queen’s Own
-were in the front, then came the 13th Battalion, and a company of
-riflemen from Caledonia forming the rear-guard. The men were in
-good spirits, and I could not look without admiration upon the
-coolness and intrepidity with which these volunteer soldiers,
-many of them mere lads, prepared for the advance. The ammunition
-was distributed to the men, the order given to load with ball
-cartridge, and then followed an interval of suspense and waiting.
-The sensation of relief was great when after some minutes of
-anxiety and impatience the order to advance was given. The position
-assigned to the waggon containing the ammunition, &c., in which Mr.
-Burwash and myself were riding, was immediately behind the main
-body, and in front of the rear guard. When about a mile and a half
-from Ridgeway several companies of the Queen’s Own were ordered
-into the fields and woods to clear them of Fenians--and in a short
-time the first shot was fired--and then in a rapid succession we
-saw small clouds of blue smoke issuing from the woods, telling us
-of a rapid discharge of musketry before the reports reached our
-ears. The sergeants in charge concluded to halt with their waggon,
-and Mr. Burwash and myself hurried on in the rear of our main body.
-The Fenian skirmishers fell back upon the main body of their force,
-who were drawn up in an entrenched position along the Fort Erie
-road. They had converted a stone wall and the ordinary snake-fences
-into barricades, and held a strong position; but on the advance of
-our forces, fearing lest our skirmishers should out-flank them,
-they retired in good order, and amid rapid firing, to a slightly
-elevated piece of ground covered with thick woods, some distance
-in their rear. It was in this advance that Ensign McEachren was
-mortally wounded. It has been stated that Colonel Booker rushed to
-the rear calling for a surgeon. I am in a position positively to
-deny this; the cry for a surgeon was heard by me, but it did not
-come from the Colonel. Mr. McEachren was borne to the rear by some
-men of his company, accompanied by the Captain, a noble fellow,
-whose name I do not know, to whom I at once introduced myself as
-a minister, and offered to do all I could for his friend. He
-thanked me with tears in his eyes, and hastened back to the post of
-danger. Dr. May was in attendance; but a glance at the wound shewed
-that it was mortal--and it fell to me to inform him of the fact.
-He received the intelligence as a Christian soldier--informing me
-that his faith rested in the Lord Jesus Christ. I prayed with him,
-and after a few moments’ conversation I mentioned Mr. Burwash’s
-name, and finding that he was an old parishioner of Mr. Burwash,
-I left him mainly to his care--though I several times spent a few
-moments with him afterwards. I then returned to the battle-field to
-see if I could be of use there. Our forces had advanced, throwing
-out their skirmishers right and left of the skirmishers--Queen’s
-Own--to the extreme right--13th battalion--the distance was
-probably a little more than three-quarters of a mile. Not a Fenian
-was to be seen, but as our brave soldiers advanced, nearer and
-nearer, there came again first a single shot, and then a rapid
-discharge of fire-arms along the whole line. From their elevated
-position, or from what other cause, I know not, the shots went
-over the heads of our men, and I could see them striking the field
-behind. I hastened back to the hospital with feelings of admiration
-for the brave fellows who, exposed to a terrible fire from an
-unseen foe, so nobly stood their ground, while the sharp crack of
-their rifles assured me that the gallant fellows were doing their
-duty amidst those showers of bullets, in spite of all the manifest
-disadvantages of their position; but I could not rid myself of a
-feeling of depression and anxiety when I thought of the result.
-
-In the hospital I found a few men slightly wounded. One of them
-told me there were no litters with which to bear the wounded from
-the field. I set the men who were on guard to work to make litters
-with some poles which we found near--and such sheets and blankets
-as I could lay my hands on--and returned to the field with the men
-carrying the litters. I took my old position, from which I had a
-full view of the whole field, and was startled to notice strange
-movements going on among our men. They had halted--the whole line
-trembled--I do not mean that the brave men trembled, but there was
-a movement along their line which I find no other word to describe.
-The order to receive cavalry was given, and an effort was made to
-obey it. Then another and another order. The only one which the
-men seemed eager to obey was the one to advance, and then came the
-fatal bugle’s notes that told them to retreat, and our men began to
-fall back. I hurried to the hospital and told the Doctor and Mr.
-Burwash that I feared the day was against us, but said I would
-return to the field while they made the necessary preparations to
-remove the sick and wounded from a place which should soon be the
-very centre of the battle. When I again reached my old post of
-observation a shower of bullets fell around me, and before I got
-back to the hospital, a number of men belonging to the Queen’s Own
-had got between me and the house. These were quickly followed by
-a large number of the 13th Battalion, and I was forced to leave
-without again communicating with my friends. I soon found, however,
-that the Doctor and his wounded men, as well as Mr. Burwash, had
-got safely out of that terrible fire.
-
-The descriptions given of the retreat, are, for the most part
-greatly exaggerated. Some men, it is true, ran away in terror,
-but the main body, though in confusion, were not panic-stricken.
-The feeling was one of vexation, and at the very moment when they
-expected victory, all had unaccountably gone wrong with them. Tears
-were shed, but they were tears wrung from brave men at the bitter
-thought of being called to retreat before their foes. In the rear,
-Major Skinner, with a number of men belonging to the 13th and the
-Queen’s Own, kept in good order, and so effectually covered our
-retreat, that the enemy were unaware of the disorder in which the
-main body were retiring. Beyond all doubt, we were at this point
-saved from further disaster by the coolness and steadiness of Major
-Skinner, and the officers and men who were with him.
-
-At Ridgeway the confused and scattered mass of men who got into
-order through the exertions of a Toronto officer whose name I have
-been told is Captain Arthurs, and who certainly discharged his duty
-in a way that marked him out as a man able to control and lead
-others.
-
-I have refrained from all criticism of the conduct of the officers
-on whom the responsibilities of this matter lie. I know nothing
-of military tactics, and it does not become me to say anything
-of why this little band of volunteers should have been led into
-a conflict with superior numbers of trained and veteran soldiers
-without support from artillery or the regulars--it is not my part
-to say what the commanding officer should or should not have
-done. This only I am bound to say, that the officers and men of
-the Queen’s Own and 13th Battalion, behaved throughout the battle
-with coolness and gallantry--and even the unfortunate retreat only
-brought out more clearly that, with few exceptions, they were men
-of unflinching courage. The hospital, no less than the battle-field
-proved the noble courage of our men, and it would have moved the
-stoutest heart to tears, to see those boy-heroes suffering as they
-did, without a murmur or a groan.
-
-Major Gilmore, of the Queen’s Own, and Major Skinner, of the 13th,
-distinguished themselves greatly, their words of command inspiring
-their men with courage--while they themselves were steady as rocks
-under the hottest fire. Indeed, but for Major Skinner’s coolness
-and power over the men under his command, the retreat of Ridgeway
-must have resulted in fearful consequences.”
-
-
-RIFLE PITS, CONTEST AT THE.--_Crimean war._ “The bombardment was
-re-opened on Easter Monday, the 9th April, soon after daybreak.
-Heavy rain fell all day, and the dense atmosphere prevented our
-men from observing the effect of the fire. This time the fleets
-did not share in the bombardment. At the close of the day, it was
-evident that our weight of metal, though greatly superior to that
-employed on the occasion of the first bombardment in October,
-was yet inadequate to the task of destroying the colossal works
-of the enemy. In vain our artillery pounded the earthworks and
-batteries. In vain showers of shell were poured into the town. The
-Russian engineers proved themselves consummate masters of their
-art, and every morning fresh guns poured forth a deadly reply
-from the repaired embrasures. Their resources seemed literally
-inexhaustible, and their courage was fully equal to the occasion.
-For more than a week the tremendous bombardment continued, and
-notwithstanding the intensity of the fire from the French and
-English batteries, comparatively little effect was produced. In
-the meanwhile both armies worked assiduously at the trenches. The
-French succeeded in carrying their parallels yet nearer to the
-Mamelon, a large rounded hill in front of the Malakoff Tower,
-and covered with rifle pits and earthworks; while the English
-gradually extended their lines towards the formidable Redan. Their
-great difficulty lay in forming a trench which should connect the
-zigzags leading on the right towards the Malakoff, and on the left
-towards the Redan. In order to obstruct the formation of this
-work, the enemy established a series of rifle-pits which enfiladed
-the new parallel, and whence considerable loss was inflicted upon
-our working parties. In addition to the fire from the rifle-pits,
-the enemy brought down a 12-pounder gun which swept our trenches,
-and effectually hindered the progress of the work. It became
-necessary, therefore, to attempt to drive the Russians from their
-vantage-ground; and on the night of the 19th of April, Colonel
-Egerton, at the head of 250 men of the Light Division, attempted
-the exploit, dashed from the breastwork, and, taking the enemy
-by surprise, drove him out. The successful English immediately
-established themselves in the pits, but the Russians were too
-sensible of the value of the position to permit the advantage
-to remain undisputed, and marched down a column 1000 strong, to
-attempt the recovery of the pits. Our troops met them with a
-well-directed volley, which shook their ranks and then closed
-with them in a deadly contest. The enemy was, after an obstinate
-fight, completely routed, and the British had secured an important
-advantage, though not without the loss of the gallant Colonel.
-On the following night, the second line of rifle-pits was also
-carried, after a feeble resistance; and our working parties were
-thus enabled to pursue their labours without annoyance, and in
-comparative security.”
-
-
-ROADS, LORD COCHRANE AT BASQUE.--“Our fire-ships were sent in, each
-conducted by a lieutenant and five men; the ships were sixteen in
-number, and some very heavy. When they got in, the French ships
-cut and slipt, nine sail of the line got on shore on the Isle
-of Aix, and the next morning we discovered them: the fire-ships
-having done little good, the small craft and frigates were ordered
-in to attempt to destroy them. The place where they lay was like
-Portsmouth harbour, under the fire of the two batteries, each of
-which had three tiers of guns, of twenty-nine each, all heavy
-metal: the navigation to get at them was very difficult, in some
-places there being only four fathoms water. Just as we were sitting
-down to dinner on board the Revenge, our signal was made to go in
-and assist the gun and mortar vessels; our ship was cleared for
-action in fifteen minutes, and in half an hour we were alongside
-of three sail of the line, when we opened a dreadful cannonade on
-them, which continued for an hour and a quarter, the Warsaw, a
-fine 80-gun ship, and the Aquilon, struck to us. We were now in a
-very critical state ourselves, being in only five fathoms water,
-which was ebbing very fast; the batteries on shore, having got
-our length, struck us almost every shot for the last quarter of
-an hour; luckily, a breeze springing up, we got off into deeper
-water, and out of reach of their guns, when we anchored again, and
-sent our boats to take out the prisoners, and set them on fire,
-about seven, p.m. At nine they were all in flames, and at two in
-the morning they blew up with a tremendous explosion; the French
-set fire to the Tonniere, and the Imperieuse to the Calcutta; three
-other ships of the line were on shore, very much mauled by the
-frigates and boom-ships; some of them were on their beam-ends, and
-but little chance of getting off again. The captain of the Warsaw
-was on board our ship; he said, they were bound out to relieve
-Martinique with troops and provisions. I went on board his ship
-after she struck, and the decks were strewed with dead and dying, a
-most dreadful slaughter. We also lost several killed and wounded,
-and our ship was much cut up in sails and rigging.
-
-Lord Cochrane caused about 1500 barrels of gunpowder to be started
-into puncheons, which were placed end upwards: upon the tops of
-these were placed between 3 and 400 shells, charged with fuses; and
-again, among and upon these were between 2 and 3000 hand-grenades.
-The puncheons were fastened to each other by cables wound round
-them, and jammed together with wedges; and moistened sand was
-rammed down between these casks, so as to render the whole, from
-stem to stern, as solid as possible, that the resistance might
-render the explosion the more violent.
-
-In this tremendous instrument of destruction, Lord Cochrane
-committed himself, with only one lieutenant and four seamen;
-and after the boom was broken, his lordship proceeded with this
-explosion-ship towards the enemy’s line. Let it be recollected,
-that at this moment the batteries on shore were provided with
-furnaces to fire red-hot shot, and then his lordship’s danger in
-this enterprize may be properly conceived.
-
-The wind blew a gale, and the tide ran three knots an hour. When
-the blue lights of the fire-ships were discovered, one of the
-enemy’s line made the signal for fire-ships; which being also a
-blue light, the enemy fell into great confusion, firing upon her
-with very injurious effect, and directly cut their cables.
-
-When lord Cochrane had conducted his explosion-ship as near as was
-possible, the enemy having taken the alarm, he ordered his brave
-little crew into the boat, and followed them, after putting fire
-to the fuse, which was calculated to give them fifteen minutes to
-get out of reach of the explosion. However, in consequence of the
-wind getting very high, the fuse burnt too quickly; so that, with
-the most violent exertion against wind and tide, this intrepid
-little party was six minutes nearer than they calculated to be, at
-the time when the most tremendous explosion that human art ever
-contrived took place, followed by the bursting at once in the air
-of nearly 400 shells and 3000 hand-grenades, pouring down a shower
-of castmetal in every direction. But fortunately our second Nelson
-was spared, the boat having reached, by unparalleled exertion,
-only just beyond the extent of destruction. Unhappily, this effort
-to escape cost the life of the brave lieutenant, whom his noble
-captain saw die in the boat, partly under fatigue, and partly
-drowned with waves that continually broke over them. Two of the
-four sailors were also so nearly exhausted, that their recovery was
-for some time despaired of.
-
-The repetition of his explosions was so dreaded by the enemy,
-that they apprehended an equal destruction in every fire-ship,
-and, immediately crowding all sail, ran before wind and tide so
-fast, that the fire-ships, though at first very near, could not
-overtake them, before they were high and dry on shore, except three
-seventy-fours, besides the Calcutta, which were afterwards engaged,
-taken, and burned.
-
-Lord Cochrane now turned his attention to rescue the vanquished
-from the devouring elements; and in bringing away the people of the
-Ville de Varsovie, he would not allow even a dog to be abandoned,
-but took the crying little favourite up into his arms and brought
-it away. But a still greater instance of goodness was displayed in
-his humanity to a captain of a French seventy-four, who came to
-deliver his sword to Lord Cochrane, and lamented that all he had
-in the world was about to be destroyed by the conflagration of his
-ship. His lordship instantly got into the boat with him, and pushed
-off to assist his prisoner in retrieving some valuable loss; but
-in passing by a seventy-four, which was on fire, her loaded guns
-began to go off; a shot from which killed the French captain by
-Lord Cochrane’s side, and so damaged the boat, that she filled and
-the rest of the party were nearly drowned.”
-
-
-RODNEY’S, ADMIRAL, VICTORIES.--This renowned Admiral fought,
-near Cape St. Vincent, the Spanish Admiral Don Langara, whom
-he defeated, and made prisoner, destroying eight of his ships
-and taking four, January 16th, 1780. On April 12th, 1782, he
-encountered the French fleet in the West Indies, commanded by Count
-de Grasse--took 10 ships of the line, and sent the French Admiral
-prisoner to England. The enemy lost also one ship, sunk, and three
-blown up.
-
-
-ROSAS, BAY OF.--Brilliant naval action by the boats of the Tigre,
-Cumberland, Volontaire, Apollo, Topaz, Philomel, Scout, and Tuscan,
-commanded by Lieutenant Tailour, which ended in the capture or
-destruction of 11 armed vessels in the bay. November 1st, 1809.
-
-
-ROSBACH, BATTLES OF.--In the first battle fought at Rosbach 40,000
-rebel Flemings, under the command of the Duke of Burgundy, the King
-Charles VI in France being present, fell November 17th, 1382. A
-second battle between the Prussians, commanded by their King and
-the combined army of the French and Austrians, in which the latter
-sustained a severe defeat. Many thousands were slain on both sides,
-November 5th, 1757.
-
-
-ROSES, WARS OF THE.--These wars arose out of a contest for the
-throne, between the two houses of York and Lancaster. It was
-termed the War of the Roses, from the badge of the York party
-being a white, and that of the Lancaster a red rose. It arose in
-complicated disputes about the succession among the descendants of
-Edward III. The feud thus arising was not concluded until Henry VII
-asserted the ascendency of the Lancaster party, on the field of
-Bosworth, and united the two, by marriage with a daughter of the
-York party.
-
-King Richard was killed at Bosworth and the Crown conferred upon
-the Earl of Richmond, and an end put to the wars between the two
-houses of York and Lancaster, begun upon the intrusion of king
-Henry IV, and continued till the death of King Richard III. There
-were fought 12 pitched battles, and 2 kings, 1 prince, 10 dukes, 2
-marquesses, 24 earls, 27 lords, 2 viscounts, 1 lord prior, 1 judge,
-139 knights, 441 esquires, and 84,998 private soldiers were slain;
-which, being added to the 638 of superior quality, there appears to
-have been killed in the quarrels between the two roses, 85,625.
-
-
-ROSS, BATTLE OF.--_In Ireland._--Fought, June 4th, 1698, between
-the Royal troops and the insurgent forces, when, after the most
-obstinate contest, the latter were defeated losing more than 2600
-killed on the field.
-
-
-ROXBURGH.--The following describes the razing of this fortress A.D.
-1460: “Ever since the captivity of David II, a period of more than
-a hundred years, the castle of Roxburgh had been in possession of
-the English. James laid siege to it. He had gone with several of
-his nobility to watch the effect of a battery of cannon which had
-begun to play on the fortress. One of the pieces, a large gun of
-Flemish manufacture, formed of iron bars hooped together, burst in
-firing. A heavy fragment struck the King on the groin, and killed
-him on the spot. A holly tree in the park of Fleurs Castle still
-marks the place where James of the Fiery Face, not yet 30 years
-old, came to his untimely end. On hearing the lamentable tidings,
-the queen came immediately to the camp. She appeared in the midst
-of the army, leading by the hand her little son, now the King.
-The spirited woman exhorted the soldiers to spend no time in vain
-regrets, but to show their regard for the dead, by gaining the
-victory which he had so much at heart. Catching ardour from her
-appeal, the army renewed the attack and carried the castle by storm
-that same day. The ruins of the stronghold, which cost Scotland so
-dear, are still to be seen on the tongue of land where Tweed and
-Teviot join, a little way above Kelso Bridge.
-
-
-
-
-S.
-
-
-SACRED WAR.--_Sacrum Bellum._--The first, about the celebrated
-temple of Delphi, took place B.C. 448. The second occurred also at
-the same place, when it was attacked by the Phœnicians, B.C. 356.
-
-
-SADOWA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 3rd, 1866, between the Prussians
-and Austrians. Dr. Russel thus writes:--
-
-“In spite of the sombre morning and of the grey clothing, relieved
-only by the darker but livelier green of the Jagers and their
-plumed hats, the effect of the whole host wheeling, deploying,
-advancing, taking ground to the right or left, or marching in
-lengthened column, was so bright that it was difficult to believe
-they all, horses and men, had been sleeping out under the veiled
-stars of heaven, and were still dank and heavy with the night
-dew and the rain of the morning. But there could be no mistake
-about the reality of the work in which they were engaged, for the
-Austrians on the brow of the slope to the right were pounding away
-fiercely at the invincible enemy in the valley. That there was
-an enemy was plain enough, for the earth flew up on the slope as
-the answering shells glanced upwards, and then exploded among the
-infantry in the rear. This was about 8.30 A.M. At nine o’clock a
-heavy shower obscured the field, and when it drifted northwards
-three Austrian batteries were still busy on the slope, and several
-columns of infantry, deploying on its side, moved up around it
-and disappeared into the valley, whence there soon came masses of
-curling smoke, and then the batteries limbered up and moved over
-also, showing that the enemy were falling back. The second line on
-the right made a slight movement to the right and upwards, but it
-did not seem as if the Austrians concerned themselves much for the
-ground between the rear of Imilovitz and the river. The cannonade
-which had all this time been going on towards the right now
-extended towards the middle or centre; a line of batteries moving
-on or halting to fire could be seen on the plateau to the right of
-Klum, and it was evident that the enemy was in great force in that
-direction. It looked as if the Prussians had attacked the position
-almost simultaneously from left to right, for no sooner had the
-action developed itself on the centre than it rolled back from
-Nechanitz on the left, and before 9.30 the whole range of hills and
-valleys and slopes for nine miles and more was as if the earth had
-been turned into snow wreaths agitated in a wintry gale. Before
-10 o’clock a thicker and darker cloud rose from the trees and the
-village on the right. “My God, Imilovitz is in flames,” exclaimed
-the guardian of the tower. The officers said “_Ja so!_” “_Hem!_”
-and uttered various other sounds of varied import possibly,
-smoked their cigars, and looked on. Imilovitz, indeed, blazed up
-furiously after a time, and in about a quarter of an hour more the
-Austrian batteries which had gone down the slope toiled up again,
-unlimbered, and fired from the brow. Puffs of smoke high in the air
-or rising from the ground showed where the Prussian fire was plying
-the Austrians on the right; but their guns replied vigorously, and
-all through that day, though sometimes ill-placed, the Austrian
-artillery behaved most gallantly. It was difficult to ascertain why
-the Austrian corps on the right were so unsteady, and why so many
-men were leaving the ranks of regiments still invisible; but after
-a time another sponge-like rain-cloud wiped away everything, and
-left it all like a clean slate, from behind which there issued a
-rolling fire of cannon as close as the volleys of a _feu de joie_.
-When the shower passed away, the cannonade on the right near the
-tree had sensibly diminished, and the Austrians seemed to have the
-advantage all along the front, judging by the advance of their guns
-and infantry, except near the left centre and right of their line.
-On the extreme left another black cloud now rose up, licked by
-flames at the base. “_Gott in Himmel!_” exclaimed the guardian of
-the tower, “Sadowa burns now!” And so it was. The pleasant little
-village, snug church, hospitable mill--all were burning. It was
-with surer divination of the coming woe than we had that the poor
-people had fled in tears, or remained in hopeless sorrow in their
-homes. The heat of this great battle burned up whatever it touched,
-and sent forth the lava which destroyed as it flowed on all sides.
-Between the big tree and Klum, in the centre and far away towards
-the second ridge, the fight was raging with extraordinary fury from
-10 o’clock till 10.30--and that half-hour seemed an age. But still
-the Austrians advanced. One grey mass of men followed another into
-the smoke, and was lost there. Towards Sadowa and Nechanitz on the
-left they also were gaining ground, and before 11 o’clock their
-columns had gone out of sight into the valley or undulations, and
-the Prussians could be seen by their fire to have fallen back on
-the opposing slopes of the second range of hills.
-
-An animating and magnificent feature was now added to the terrible
-spectacle by the forward movement of the heavy cavalry near the
-Prague road and towards the centre. These great squares of white,
-spreading out slowly, obliterated the cornfields. The very colour
-of the ground was changed and darkened under the trampling of
-horses. One column went towards the Nechanitz road, the other two
-moved towards Klum; but after a few formations they halted again,
-and some of these regiments dismounted and stood by their horses.
-The Saxons, readily to be distinguished by their light blue, also
-advanced parallel with the Prague road towards the top of the
-slope. This was some time after eleven o’clock, when the Prussian
-left and centre had visibly given way, though fighting with extreme
-tenacity and fervour. The light cavalry, at the same time, or part
-of them, advanced towards Klum in the centre, awaiting the moment
-to deluge the plain with an exulting flood. But the time was not
-come. The Prussians, reinforced, or calling in their second line
-and reserves, came with a desperate impetus up the slopes on the
-left and centre, and also developed a new attack on the left of
-the Prague road, which looked like a black riband now and then as
-the smoke was driven off by the wind. They were intent on turning
-our left if possible, but they met with a stubborn and successful
-resistance at that point. Soon afterwards, in the midst of a heavy
-fall of rain, the cavalry made another advance, and when it cleared
-the Austrian infantry were seen to have moved still further to the
-left and centre, while the sound of the cannonade grew so deafening
-that the Prussians must have been driven back beyond the position
-they occupied when they began the action. Between half-past eleven
-and twelve o’clock the Austrians were to all intents successful on
-the centre and on its flanks, although the fury of the cannonade
-and the incessant rattle of musketry all along the front, from the
-front of Nechanitz to the plateau beyond Klum attested the severity
-of the struggle and the obstinate resistance of the Prussians.
-Probbis, another pretty village, was now in flames; three villages
-burning at once, farmhouses adding their contingents to the fire
-and smoke, caissons blowing up, shells bursting, and the slopes
-and hill tops covered with grey and blue specs--each a man in
-agony or in death. Again the cavalry moved onwards. This time one
-division, in three bodies, crowned the ridge and formed near the
-front line under the church, on the left of Klum, in the centre
-and left of the position, and there they waited once more. But
-now on the right the action awoke again, and, to our surprise, a
-very heavy fire of musketry, comparatively close at hand, came
-from the direction of Smirlintz; the Austrians on the crest of the
-ridge moved uneasily, while many more stragglers than one cared
-to see pressed down towards the railroad. Whatever the cause of
-the agitation, the Prussians on the centre and left pressed their
-attack with renewed vigour, and the contest which ensued was of
-exceeding fierceness; but still the enemy did not prevail--the
-Austrians not only held their ground, but repulsed the enemy
-advanced against them, took their ground, and made prisoners. From
-the left of Klum to the Prague road, and beyond it, all was fire
-and smoke. The tumult of voices was dreadful, and such as is never
-to be heard save in such awful agony of battle. The Austrians again
-advanced a little nearer the big tree, and two batteries of reserve
-artillery could be seen driving fast to the left to strengthen
-the attack. But the Prussian reserves were once more called upon,
-and from 12.30 till nearly 1 o’clock there was an artillery fire
-from centre to left for six miles or more, which could not well
-have been exceeded in any action of which history makes mention.
-That ammunition was becoming needed in the advanced position was
-evident from the motion of the trains of supply and reserve, and
-we watched the cavalry with intense interest, as it seemed to
-be the time for them to make an impression. The Prussians were
-wavering. At 1 o’clock the Prussians, however, recovered some of
-the ground on the right near the big tree. The Austrian artillery
-began to fall back over the brow of the hill, and again battalions
-of infantry came in sight and moved away obliquely towards the
-centre. Still, no Prussians appeared in that direction, but they
-were certainly forcing the Austrians back on the right. It might
-have been expected that the reserves to the right would have been
-sent up to hold the top of the slope, but I could not see it was
-so. Many stragglers now appeared on the railway, the fields were
-spotted with them; and now and then a shell bursting in or over
-the infantry marching along the slope or the reserves, struck
-them, or left a little pile of dead or struggling men in the voids
-which the opening columns displayed. I confess the advance of the
-Prussians in this direction appeared to me inexplicable and very
-serious; for, although the left and centre of the Austrians might
-be victorious, this movement threatened, by forcing back their
-right, to cut them off from Konigsgratz--so, at least, was the
-situation as viewed from the tower; but it is strange how different
-a field of action appears from different points of view, as any one
-may find out by riding from place to place on a field-day. However,
-a General who saw what was visible to those in the tower would have
-felt uneasiness and have turned his attention to fill the gap in
-his line at the centre, and to drive back the Prussians who were
-doubling up his right.
-
-While the centre advanced slowly, but surely, a space seemed to
-be left between the ground they had occupied and the left of the
-Austrians, who were continually retiring there. The houses burning
-fiercely in Klum emitted volumes of smoke, which were swept away
-towards the right. Another village lying apparently to the left
-of Prague road, named Gres Biaritz, or Hiaritz, as well as I
-could catch the name, was now in flames. More tumbrils blew up in
-that direction, so that there were now six or seven villages and
-hamlets on fire from left to right. The battle was assuming a more
-awful and tremendous aspect, and the faint rays of sunshine which
-shot at intervals through the lifting clouds only gave the scene
-greater terror. Horses without riders careered among the wounded,
-who were crawling all over the plain, dismounted dragoons dragged
-themselves to the rear, and men came crawling along in such numbers
-that they appeared like a broad fringe to the edges of the battle.
-The rolling of musketry in the hollows beyond smothered the voice
-of the cannon. At last the reserves behind were pressed forward
-with energy. Their artillery unlimbering opened from sixteen guns
-into the dense blue columns which were driving the Austrians before
-them, and checked their advance, till the Prussian artillery,
-getting upon the small ridge and firing down so as to get a slight
-enfilade, began to knock over horses and men. The Austrians,
-however, here, as elsewhere, stuck to their pieces admirably, and
-it was not till the Prussian infantry, getting into a clump of
-timber, opened a sharp fire on their flank that they limbered up,
-leaving more than one black heap to mark the position they had
-occupied. Meanwhile the Austrians on the left pursued their onward
-career. The Saxon reserves pushed up the hills in the direction
-of Nechanitz; and a great body of cavalry sweeping round between
-the left and centre, dashed in wavelike columns through the smoke
-towards the Prussians, and menaced their artillery, against which
-some thirty or forty pieces in line were directing a steady and
-rapid fire. Prussian prisoners begun to arrive at intervals between
-the convoys of wounded, winding their way along the Prague road.
-Most of those men belonged to the 6th and 31st regiments, to judge
-from the numbers on their shoulder-straps; and among them was an
-officer of great stature, with red moustaches and whiskers, who
-bore his captivity with great _sang froid_, and walked along like
-a conqueror. As the Austrian left and centre gained ground, the
-right yielded, and column after column of Prussians came upon the
-ridge, firing as they advanced, while their guns on the flanks
-swept the slowly retreating, but not disorderly, Austrians with
-shrapnel and shell. At times the Austrians halting opened a brisk
-fire; once or twice several regiments formed square to receive
-cavalry, but I could not see any Prussian horse on the slope near
-them. There was a hesitation, both in the Austrians and the enemy,
-which was not intelligible, and several times the officers at the
-head of the Prussian columns riding forward, fired over their
-horses’ heads, and stood up in their stirrups as if to see into the
-hollows. A shell burst close over one of them, and when the smoke
-cleared away, man and horse were down, and never stirred again. The
-folds of the ground must have hid most of the Prussians from the
-Austrian artillery as they got near the big tree, for the gunners
-principally directed their pieces against the Prussian guns, which
-received accessions rapidly, and occupied their full attention. At
-last the Prussians were perceived, and five battalions of Austrians
-from the reserve, coming from the extreme right, tried to check
-their advance by a flanking fire. The Prussians halted, and in an
-instant a fire of surprising volume and sharpness flew along their
-front. The Austrians for a few minutes replied steadily, but they
-fell fast, and at last two battalions, with great vigour, charged
-up the hill, but were broken in the run, were shaken by a rolling
-volley and by several rounds from the artillery in flank, and
-retreated in some disorder towards the left, behind a spur of the
-ridge. The enemy pressed on anew, and soon gained the _plateau_
-close by the big tree, where they dipped into an undulation only
-to reappear at the other side, and then formed up in compact
-square-like formations, pushing out lines of skirmishers towards
-Klum, from which they were about a mile distant. The Austrians
-below them and nearer to Konigsgratz halted and faced round to meet
-a new enemy, for the Prussians now showed near the railway, and
-a sanguinary encounter took place around some houses in a wood,
-in which artillery and musketry raged for a quarter of an hour
-in a perfect tornado. A range of buildings near a large factory
-chimney on the very banks of the Elbe, as it seemed to me, was the
-scene of another very severe struggle. Another village, Trothina,
-burst into flames, and from under the very smoke appeared the
-Prussian skirmishers on the very extreme right, followed by more
-infantry. The enemy were, indeed, quite inexhaustible in number,
-though still he could not hold his own on the left. Suddenly an
-Austrian battery, galloping from the left centre, began to mow
-down the Prussians on the right. They were retiring behind the
-burning Trothina. But their artillery was at hand again. From a
-lane above the village a battery opened on the Austrians, and,
-at the same time, another battery, wheeling over the slope below
-the big tree, crossed its fire on the devoted Austrians. “_Ein
-Kreuz feuer? Ein Kreuz feuer?_” exclaimed the officers. “Good God!
-where do they come from?” Where, indeed! This combat now assumed
-larger proportions. The Prussian right showed in great force, and
-the hills were covered with their regiments advancing in the most
-perfect order. All over the field were hundreds limping away, and
-piles of dead lay in rows along the lanes and in the thick corn.
-The enemy, whose strength had been hidden from us by the hills, now
-displayed numbers, which accounted for the retreat of the Austrians
-on the right.
-
-The Austrian gunners could not hold up against the cross fire, and
-the weight of pieces opposed to them. What avail was it that they
-were winning on the centre? Through the glass they could be seen
-pressing on from point to point in a tempest of smoke and flame.
-It was now near two o’clock. On the left and centre there could be
-no hesitation in declaring that the Prussians were all but beaten.
-It seemed as if a charge _en masse_ of the horse deployed for
-miles on the _plateau_ could roll up their centre on their left,
-or crumble the left into pieces. The fire at Klum, in the centre,
-which had died out, broke forth with fresh violence, and all the
-village began to burn. The Prussians in the centre made another
-grand effort, and it would only be a repetition of adjectives,
-utterly feeble at the strongest, to endeavour to give the smallest
-conception of the roar of cannon which announced and met this fresh
-attempt to change the fortunes of the day. The strong wind could
-not clear away the smoke, which poured in banks as agitated as the
-sea itself over the battle-field, now contracted to the centre and
-right, for all towards the Prague road the fight had apparently
-ended in the discomfiture of the Prussian left. As it contracted
-it heated up, and the caissons and tumbrils blew up repeatedly.
-The movements of the Austrians from the right centre to oppose the
-last effort of the Prussians increased the open interval between
-the centre and the extreme right resting on the lower ground near
-the river, but the Austrians did not perceive it, or if they did,
-could not prevent the advance of the enemy along the _plateau_
-by the big tree towards Klum. The Austrian right and reserves
-become more unsteady, but their artillery contests every foot of
-ground. Suddenly a spattering of musketry breaks out of the trees
-and houses of Klum right down on the Austrian gunners, and on the
-columns of infantry drawn up on the slopes below. The gunners fall
-on all sides--their horses are disabled--the fire increases in
-intensity--the Prussians on the ridge press on over the _plateau_;
-this is an awful catastrophe--two columns of Austrians are led
-against the village, but they cannot stand the fire, and after
-three attempts to carry it, retreat, leaving the hill-side covered
-with the fallen. It is a terrible moment. The Prussians see their
-advantage; they here get into the very centre of the position.
-In vain the staff officers fly to the reserves and hasten to get
-back some of the artillery from the front. The dark blue regiments
-multiply on all sides and from their edges roll perpetually
-sparkling musketry. Their guns hurry up, and from the slope take
-both the Austrians on the extreme right and the reserves in flank.
-They spread away to the woods near the Prague road and fire into
-the rear of the Austrian gunners.
-
-Thus a wedge growing broader and driven in more deeply every
-instant was forced into the very body of the Austrian army,
-separating it at the heart and dividing its left and centre
-from the right. The troops in the centre and left are dismayed
-at hearing the enemy’s guns in their rear, and are soon exposed
-to the fire which most of all destroys the _morale_ of soldiers
-already shaken by surprise. The right, previously broken up and
-discomfited, hurry towards the Prague road in something like
-confusion, and spread alarm among the reserves of the centre and
-left. The regular lines of the columns below are gradually bulging
-out, and are at last swallowed up in disordered multitude. Officers
-gallop about trying to restore order. Some regiments hold together,
-though they are losing men in heaps every instant. The left wing
-is arrested in its onward progress. The Prussian Generals in front
-of them and on the centre, seeing their enemy waver, throw their
-battalions against them, and encourage their artillery to fresh
-efforts; but the formidable Austrian cavalry prevents any hasty
-or enthusiastic demonstrations on the part of the Prussian right,
-whom long continued fighting and heavy losses must have somewhat
-enervated.
-
-Even yet there was hope for the Austrians! There, on the Prussian
-front, wheeled a force of horse with which a Murat or a Kellerman
-or a Seidlitz could have won a battle and saved an empire. There,
-still unshaken, were at least 40,000 men, of whom scarcely one
-had ever fired a shot. The indomitable Austrian artillery still
-turned hundreds of muzzles on the enemy’s guns, and girt their men
-in a band of fire. To let slip that cavalry on both sides of Klum,
-to crash through infantry and guns, seemed really worth doing,
-though failure would have made the difference between a defeat and
-a rout. It would have been a supreme deed fit for such a force to
-accomplish or to perish in attempting. And there were no natural
-obstacles visible from the tower to a grand charge. The Prussian
-right, separated from its centre and left, would have been rolled
-down into the valley among the Austrians, and utterly crushed,
-and the Austrian centre and left have been liberated to continue
-their contest with the enemy. Moments were precious. The Prussian
-fire became more severe, the wavering of the Austrians greater.
-The falling of trees on the Prague road, the rush of fugitives,
-the near approach of the Prussian shells to the place, some of
-them bursting over the railway station, were awful warnings of the
-state of the battle. All the roads were blocked up with retreating
-trains and waggons. Men were throwing down their arms and wading
-through the inundations. The Austrian gunners on the causeway began
-to catch a sight of the Prussians near at hand in the woods, and
-opened on them with shrapnel and shell. It was now somewhere about
-2.30; but it was not possible to note time when such things were
-going on so near. Scarce could the glass be directed to one point
-ere an exclamation from a bystanding officer or an awful clamour
-carried it to another. Seconds were of inestimable value--not
-only that hundreds were falling, but that they were falling in
-vain--that all the issues for which an empire had summoned its
-might and the Kaiser his people to the field were being decided,
-and that the toils of generations of Emperors, warriors, and
-statesmen were about being lost for ever. The genius of the
-Prussian was in the ascendant.
-
-The spirit of Bismark or his genius ruled the battle-field. While
-the Austrian was hesitating, the Prussian was acting. The lines
-of dark blue which came in sight from the right teemed from the
-vales below as if the earth yielded them. They filled the whole
-back ground of the awful picture of which Klum was the centre.
-They pressed down on the left of the Prague road. In square, in
-column, deploying or wheeling hither and thither--everywhere
-pouring in showers of deadly precision--penetrating the whole line
-of the Austrians; still they could not force their stubborn enemy
-to fly. On all sides they met brave but unfortunate men, ready to
-die if they could do no more. At the side of the Prague road the
-fight went on with incredible vehemence. The Austrians had still
-an immense force of artillery, and although its concentrated fire
-swept the ground before it, its effect was lost in some degree by
-reason of the rising ground above, and at last by its divergence
-to so many points to answer the enemy’s cannon. Many Austrians
-must have fallen by their own artillery. Once an Austrian column,
-separating itself from the great multitude below, with levelled
-bayonets, led by its officers in front waving caps and sabres,
-went straight at the wood around Klum and drove back the Prussian
-Tirailleurs, but were staggered by fearful volleys of musketry.
-Their officers were all killed or wounded. They fell suddenly back.
-Down came the Prussians, but they were received on the bayonet
-point and with clubbed muskets, and were driven back to the shelter
-of the wood, and some were carried off prisoners in the retreating
-column. Indeed, handfuls of Prussians were coming into the town
-behind us all the day, showing how close the fight was, and a
-considerable body of the 27th Regiment, with some officers, are
-now in the Grosser Ring. Chesta and Visa were now burning, so that
-from right to left the flames of ten villages, and the flashes of
-guns and musketry, contended with the sun that pierced the clouds
-for the honour of illuminating the seas of steel and the fields
-of carnage. It was three o’clock. The efforts of the Austrians
-to occupy Klum and free their centre had failed, the right was
-driven down in a helpless mass towards Konigsgratz, quivering
-and palpitating as shot and shell tore through it. “_Alles ist
-verloren!_” Artillery still thundered with a force and violence
-which might have led a stranger to such scenes to think no enemy
-could withstand it. The Austrian cavalry still hung like white
-thunder-clouds on the flanks, and threatened the front of the
-Prussians, keeping them in square and solid columns. But already
-the trains were streaming away from Konigsgratz, placing the Elbe
-and Adler between them and the enemy. The grip of the Prussians
-could not be shaken. Word was brought to me to leave at once, for
-the city gates were about being closed, and the gunners on the
-walls were laying their pieces to cover the inundations and the
-causeways. One more glance showed a very hell of fire--cornfields,
-highways, slopes, and dells, and hillsides covered with the
-slain--the pride and might of Austria shattered and laid low. What
-happened more I can only tell from hearsay. But I am told that at
-the last the Austrian horse saved all that was not lost, and in
-brilliant charges rolled back the tide of Prussian infantry; that
-the gunners threw their pieces into the Elbe and into the inundated
-fields as they retreated; that men were drowned in hundreds as
-they crowded over pontoon bridges hastily laid and sunk or burned
-ere the columns could cross over; that luggage-trains, reserve
-ammunition, guns, and prisoners, the spoils of that enormous host,
-fell into the hands of the victors, who remained masters of that
-hard-fought field, covered for nine miles with myriads of the
-slain. Well might Benedek exclaim, “All is lost but my life! Would
-to God I had lost that too!”
-
-There is no account of our losses, estimates varying from 10,000
-to 25,000. If prisoners be included, I am inclined to think the
-latter number correct. The loss in guns is reckoned at 150 to 180.
-It would not astonish me to hear it was more.”
-
-
- INCIDENTS OF THE BATTLE.
-
-Incidents of the battle are furnished by several other
-correspondents of the London papers. The following are selections:--
-
-“In the Austrian ranks some striking instances of inhumanity have
-been exhibited. Yesterday, a prisoner was brought hither loaded
-with chains, to suffer well-deserved punishment. He was a Croat,
-and was taken in the very act of cutting off his own wounded
-captain’s fingers to get quicker at his rings.
-
-In the knapsacks of the fallen Austrians were found spare suits
-of regimentals that had never been worn; and, according to the
-prisoners, those uniforms were intended to be worn at the solemn
-entry into Berlin.
-
-One correspondent was informed by an Austrian officer, a prisoner,
-that in Konigsgratz, on the 2nd July even, there were 7000 wounded
-Austrians. But--disgraceful as the fact may seem--three days after
-the battle of Skalitz, wounded Austrians--such is the testimony
-of Prussian officers and surgeons--were found with wounds still
-bleeding on the field among the dead bodies.
-
-At 1.5 the staff galloped off to see the position on the right,
-passing through the 6th Corps, which was in reserve. As the
-green plumes were seen rapidly advancing, the bands broke into
-the National Anthem, and the men cheered their commander as he
-passed with no uncertain note. Faces broke out into broad smiles;
-Jager hats were thrown into the air; all seemed joyous in the
-anticipation of an approaching triumph. Benedek, however, waved to
-them to cease, shouting in his peculiar tone of voice, always clear
-and distinct, “Not now--wait till to-morrow, my children.”
-
-By half-past four o’clock the whole army was in full retreat; its
-rear, harassed by the enemy, was protected by the artillery and
-cavalry, who are said to have made many desperate charges, and to
-have been more than decimated. The bridges across the Adler and
-the Elbe are few and narrow, and the several columns meeting at
-such points became confused and intermixed. Guns that could not be
-carried away, were thrown off their carriages into the river; many
-were lost in this manner, but it is said that comparatively few
-are taken. A captain of artillery, who heard me asking about the
-loss in guns, said, “Out of my whole battery I have but one gun and
-seven horses left, and many others are in like condition.” Another
-said, “We have no artillery.” Every head was hung down, every
-spirit depressed. It was not merely a battle, but an empire lost,
-unless diplomatists can at last unweave the net which baffled them
-before, and which the sword has failed to cut. The soldiers knew
-nothing of all this; their only trouble was the fatigue from which
-they suffered, or the thought that the day’s battle would have to
-be fought over again before they could reach the pleasant plains
-and reap the benefits held out to their imaginations in Benedek’s
-proclamation issued but a few days ago. The night was chilly, and
-bivouac fires lined the sides of the road at intervals. Had it
-been an advance instead of a retreat, we might have enjoyed the
-picturesque scene. Round fires of firwood, flaming high above their
-heads, stood or sat the brave fellows who had laboured so hard and
-fought so gallantly on that day. Some stood warming themselves by
-the blaze which lighted up their bronzed faces to as red a glow as
-that of the pine stems that towered over them; others sat resting a
-wounded arm or leg on the bed of branches plucked for them by their
-more fortunate comrades; others, again, lay about in every attitude
-of exhaustion.”
-
-
-SAGUNTUM, SIEGE OF.--Like Numantia, one of the most important in
-history, occurred B.C. 219. The citizens, after sustaining the
-siege for eight months, with heroic bravery, to prevent themselves
-falling into the hands of Hannibal, buried themselves in the ruins
-of their city. They burnt their houses and all their effects, and
-thus reduced the city to ashes.
-
-
-ST. ALBANS, BATTLES OF.--The first fought, May 22nd, 1455, between
-the houses of York and Lancaster. The second between the Earl
-of Warwick and Queen Margaret of Anjou, who conquered. Fought,
-February 2nd, 1461. This battle was fought on Shrove-Tuesday,
-and resulted in the death of the Earl. “The Earl of Warwick, who
-now put himself at the head of the Yorkists, was one of the most
-celebrated generals of the age, formed for times of trouble,
-extremely artful and incontestably brave, equally skilful in
-council and the field; and inspired with a degree of hatred against
-the Queen that nothing could suppress. He commanded an army, in
-which he led about the captive King, to give a sanction to his
-attempts. Upon the approach of the Lancastrians, he conducted
-his forces, strengthened by a body of Londoners, who were very
-affectionate to his cause, and gave battle to the Queen at St.
-Alban’s. In this, however, he was defeated. About 2000 of the
-Yorkists perished in the battle, and the person of the King again
-fell into the hands of his own party, to be treated with apparent
-respect, but real contempt.”
-
-
-ST. CHARLES.--On the 6th of November, 1837, a riot occurred at
-Montreal, but no lives were lost. On the 10th, Sir John Colborne,
-the Commander of the Forces, removed his head quarters from Sorel
-to Montreal. On the same day, a detachment proceeded to St.
-John’s under the command of Captain Glasgow. He found a large
-body of people posted on the opposite bank of the Richelieu,
-and the cavalry proceeded to take possession of the bridge, in
-order to prevent them from crossing. On the 16th, warrants were
-issued for the apprehension of twenty-six of the chief leaders.
-As a party of volunteer cavalry, newly organised, who had charge
-of two prisoners, were returning to Montreal, a large body of
-peasantry fired upon them from behind the fences near Longueuil,
-and compelled them to abandon their prisoners. Colonel Wetherall,
-with a considerable force, proceeded immediately from Chambly in
-the direction of St. Charles, for the purpose of dispersing a
-large body of people who had assembled there, and fortified their
-position. At some places the insurgents fled on the approach of
-the army, but at St. Charles the defenders were so obstinate that
-the Colonel was obliged to storm and carry the works, burning
-every house but one. The slaughter was great on the side of the
-unfortunate and misguided people, but slight on that of the troops.
-Another party of troops, who were marching from Sorel up the course
-of the Richelieu to effect a junction with Colonel Wetherall,
-were not so successful. At St. Denis they met with such a strong
-opposition, that they were compelled to abandon their intention and
-march back to Sorel. This success on the part of the insurgents was
-only of short duration, for, on the winter roads being formed, the
-same party marched through the country without opposition. Having
-captured St. Charles, and dispersed a considerable body collected
-for the purpose of cutting off his return, Colonel Wetherall came
-back to Montreal, bringing with him the pole and cap of liberty,
-which had been reared at St. Charles, and twenty-five prisoners.
-Four or five battalions of troops were raised in Montreal, and
-upwards of 50 corps of various kinds in other parts of the country.
-One of the most tragical events which took place at this time was
-the murder of Lieutenant Weir. This young officer had been sent
-overland to Sorel with a despatch directing the officer in command
-to prepare a force to accompany Colonel Gore, who was to leave
-Montreal in the afternoon in the steamboat. The roads were so bad
-that travelling was almost impossible, and he could not reach Sorel
-by land until half an hour after Colonel Gore and his division
-had crossed the St. Lawrence and marched on their route to St.
-Denis. Taking a fresh calèche, he hastened to join his troops;
-but, mistaking the road, he passed them and arrived at St. Denis
-before them. Here he was made a prisoner, closely pinioned, sent
-forward to St. Charles, and on the road was barbarously murdered by
-his brutal guardians. The fact and the circumstances attending it
-were only ascertained on the second expedition to St. Denis. The
-body was found in the Richelieu, and was brought to Montreal for
-interment. The funeral took place with military honours, and so
-solemn and imposing a sight was never before witnessed in the city.
-
-Martial law was proclaimed in the District of Montreal on the 5th
-of December, and Sir John Colborne invested with authority to
-administer it. Immediately after this the attention of Government
-was called to the preparations making at the Lake of the Two
-Mountains, at St. Eustache, St. Benoit and St. Scholastique, where
-the most active and able leaders of the revolt had fortified
-themselves in a formidable manner.
-
-On the morning of the 13th of December, Sir John Colborne, with
-about 1300 men, advanced towards the district from Montreal along
-the left hank of the Ottawa. On the 14th the army crossed the
-river and invested the village of St. Eustache. The attack was
-completely successful, though attended with much destruction of
-life and property. The handsome church was set on fire as well
-as the _presbytère_ and about 60 of the principal houses. One of
-the leaders was killed near the church, and a large number burnt
-or suffocated from the flames; of the troops only one or two were
-killed and a few wounded.
-
-The next day, as the troops marched forward to St. Benoit, His
-Excellency was met by delegates bearing a flag of truce, and
-stating that the insurgents were prepared to lay down their arms
-unconditionally. Almost every house exhibited something white; and,
-on arriving at St. Benoit, 250 of these misguided men were found
-drawn up in a line and suing for pardon, stating that their leaders
-had deserted them. They were immediately dismissed to their homes
-and occupations. With the return of the troops from the county of
-the Two Mountains the military operations, connected with the first
-insurrection in Lower Canada, may be said to have terminated.
-
-
-ST. DIZIER, BATTLES OF.--_In France._--Between the Allied armies
-and the French--one of the engagements being commanded by Napoleon
-himself. The French sustained in these battles, as in several
-proceeding, severe defeats, and led the way by which the Allied
-armies entered Paris. Fought, January 27th and March 26th, 1814.
-
-
-ST. JEAN DE LUZ, BATTLE OF.--“Soult had a strong position on
-the Nivelle from St. Jean de Luz to Ainhoe, about twelve miles
-in length. General Hill, with the British right, advanced from
-the valley of Baztan, and attacking the French on the height of
-Ainhoe, drove them towards Cambo, on the Nive, while the centre of
-the Allies, consisting of the English and Spanish troops, under
-Beresford and Alton, carried the works behind Sarre, and drove the
-French beyond the Nivelle, which the Allies crossed at St. Pé, in
-the rear of the enemy. Upon this the French hastily abandoned their
-ground and works on the left of the Nivelle, and during the night
-withdrew to their entrenched camp in front of Bayonne. Wellington’s
-headquarters were established at St. Jean de Luz, November 10th,
-1813.”
-
-
-ST. QUENTIN, BATTLE OF.--Philip II, of Spain, assisted by the
-British, defeated the French here, August 10th, 1557.
-
-
-ST. SEBASTIAN, BATTLE OF.--The fortified works, through which ran
-the high road to Hernani, were carried by the English Auxiliary
-Legion, under General Evans, after very hard fighting. The British
-naval squadron off the place, lent, under Lord John Hay, very great
-aid to the victors. Fought, May 5th, 1836. Again, on the 1st of
-October, same year, a vigorous assault was made on the lines of
-General De Lacy Evan by the Carlists. Both sides fought with great
-bravery, but the Carlists were repulsed after suffering severely.
-The Anglo-Spanish loss was 376 men, and thirty-seven officers
-killed and wounded. The General was also wounded.
-
-
-ST. SEBASTIAN, SIEGE OF.--By the British and Allied armies, under
-Wellington. After a short siege, during which it sustained a heavy
-bombardment, and by which the whole town was nearly laid in ruins,
-it was stormed by General Graham, and taken, August 31st, 1803.
-The loss was almost all on the British side in the storming--the
-Spaniards losing few.
-
-
-ST. VINCENT, BATTLE OF CAPE.--Between the Spanish and British
-fleets off this Cape. The latter was commanded by Admiral Sir
-John Jarvis, who took four line of battle ships, and damaged
-considerably the rest of the Spanish fleet, February 14th, 1797.
-His own fleet consisted of 15 sail of the line only--whilst the
-enemy’s fleet was 27 sail, 7 of which carried from 112 to 130 guns
-each.
-
-
-ST. VINCENT, CAPE.--Admiral Rooke, with 20 men of war, and the
-Turkish fleet, under his convoy, was attacked by Admiral Tourville
-with a force vastly superior to his own, when 12 English and Dutch
-men of war, and 80 merchant men were taken or destroyed by the
-French, June 16th, 1693. Here, also, Admiral Rodney destroyed
-several Spanish ships, January 16th, 1780.
-
-
-SALAMANCA, BATTLE OF.--Fought July 22nd, 1812.--“Lord Wellington
-had fought the battle of Talavera in less than three months after
-he had marched out of Lisbon, and in only three months and six days
-after his landing in Portugal. He had seen some kind of action and
-enterprise to be absolutely necessary. It was demanded by England;
-it was expected by Spain and Portugal. Hence he first drove the
-French out of Oporto and out of the Portuguese dominions, and then,
-in conjunction with a Spanish army, marched upon Madrid, and fought
-a battle with the French.
-
-But these three months sufficed to show him, how utterly valueless
-was the aid proffered him by the Spaniards. They left him without
-provisions; they furnished him with no means of transport; and when
-they placed an army by his side, that army could do nothing but run
-away, and spread alarm and consternation on every side. Hence, so
-soon as he fully understood the real condition of affairs, he wrote
-home to the British government in these plain terms:
-
-“Spain has proved untrue to her alliance because she is untrue to
-herself;” “and until some great change shall be effected in the
-conduct of the military resources of Spain, and in the state of
-her armies, no British army can attempt safely to co-operate with
-Spanish troops in the territories of Spain.”
-
-Having arrived at this conclusion, Lord Wellington soon withdrew
-his army from Spain, retired into Portugal, and began to concert
-measures for the effectual defence of that kingdom. At home,
-party spirit, as usual, led to injustice. The opposition in the
-British parliament questioned the whole of his conduct of the past
-campaign. Sir W. Napier tells us, that “his merits, they said, were
-nought; his actions silly, presumptuous, and rash; his campaign one
-deserving not reward but punishment. Yet he had delivered Portugal,
-cleared Galicia and Estramadura, and forced 100,000 French veterans
-to abandon the offensive and concentrate about Madrid!”
-
-He now calmly submitted to the British government his views of
-the defence of Portugal. He assigned to Marshal Beresford the
-organization of the Portuguese army; he required only 13,000
-British troops to be permanently maintained; and with this force
-he expected to be able to defend Portugal, at least until Spain
-should be thoroughly subdued by the French; so as to allow of the
-concentration of their whole force on the work of subjugating
-Portugal.
-
-The wisdom and expediency of this employment of English troops
-and English revenues in foreign war, was abundantly evident. For,
-when the Continent should have been wholly conquered by Napoleon,
-he would then, as he plainly declared, attempt the invasion of
-England. Hence, to keep his armies employed in the Peninsula, was
-the way plainly pointed out by common sense, as likely to postpone
-or wholly avert a French invasion of the British islands. To defend
-Portugal, therefore, was Wellington’s first object; for Portugal
-had become a sort of outwork of England.
-
-The Spanish government, meanwhile, with equal imbecility and
-self-sufficiency, chose to rush into inevitable defeat. They
-had starved the English army; which, in a whole month, got only
-ten days’ bread; and which lost 1000 horses from mere want of
-provender; and had thus forced Lord Wellington to retire into
-Portugal. They now choose, with an army of 50,000 men, to give
-battle to the French at Ocana; where, on the 12th of November,
-they sustained such a total defeat, that ten days after the battle
-not a single battalion kept the field. No fewer than 20,000 of the
-Spaniards laid down their arms, and the rest were utterly scattered
-and dispersed.
-
-At the opening of 1810, Napoleon resolved to complete the conquest
-of the Peninsula. He augmented his armies in Spain to 360,000 men.
-One army, consisting of 65,000 men, under the command of Soult, was
-charged with the subjugation of Andalusia; and another, of 80,000
-men, under Massena, was to move to the west, and reduce Portugal.
-Now, therefore, must Wellington’s plans for the defence of Portugal
-be brought to the test.
-
-The actual force of Massena’s army in May, 1810, is shown by French
-returns given by Sir W. Napier, to have been 86,847 men.
-
-On the 1st of June the French commander invested Ciudad Rodrigo,
-which capitulated on the 11th of July. Almeida surrendered on the
-26th of August, and thus the road to Lisbon was opened to the
-French army. Wellington would gladly have fought a battle to save
-these fortresses; but if he engaged 80,000 French, with 32,000
-English and Portuguese, and did not signally defeat them; what
-would then have become of Portugal? Still, when on Portuguese
-ground, and engaged in the defence of Portugal, he thought it
-right, on September 27th, to make one stand at Busaco; where he
-inflicted on the French a loss of 4500 men, at a cost, to his own
-army, of only 1300. Massena then began even to think of retreating
-into Spain; when a peasant informed him of a mountain-pass by
-which he might carry his army into a position from which he could
-threaten Wellington’s left. This compelled the English General
-again to make a retrograde movement; and on the 15th of October the
-whole British and Portuguese army was collected within the lines of
-Torres Vedras.
-
-These now famous lines, which Wellington had long been silently
-constructing, were so little thought of either in England or in
-France, that military instructions were actually given in England
-commencing thus: “As it is probable the army will embark in
-September.” And the French commander on his part, found his way
-suddenly stopped by an insurmountable obstacle, of the existence of
-which he had never before heard.
-
-Lord Wellington had observed that on the land side (and the French
-had no force upon the water) Lisbon could be completely defended
-by a series of entrenchments properly manned. Silently, therefore,
-during many months past, he had been at work on these lines. They
-were now complete, mounting 600 guns and when manned by 50,000 men
-they might have defied Napoleon himself at the head of one of his
-largest armies.
-
-Massena, astonished, employed several days in examining these
-lines on every side, but at no point could he find an attack to
-be feasible. One or two attempts were made, in which his troops
-were roughly handled, and one of his Generals killed. At last,
-altogether perplexed, he sent off General Foy to Paris to ask of
-Napoleon what was to be done. But Napoleon himself had no remedy
-to prescribe, and hence, after remaining before the lines for one
-whole month, until utter starvation menaced his army, the French
-Marshal commenced a retreat. He first retired to Santaren, where
-he remained until the following March. He then finally retreated
-out of Portugal, having lost, in the short space of seven months,
-not fewer than 45,000 men, chiefly by exposure, disease, and
-starvation. Lord Wellington followed him, and at once invested
-Almeida. Massena ventured on an engagement at Fuentes d’Onore, but
-failed, and Almeida capitulated to the English on the 12th of May,
-1811.
-
-This campaign had greatly raised the hopes and the confidence
-of England, and had placed the character of her General on an
-unassailable elevation. Portugal had been defeated, and a French
-Marshal with a noble army had been driven back in defeat. Lord
-Wellington now, therefore, resolved to begin offensive operations
-in Spain, and he sat down before Badajoz. But Napoleon had at
-last awakened to the real character of this great struggle. He
-resolved that Badajoz should not be lost. He therefore earnestly
-and strenuously increased his forces in Spain, until, in September,
-1811, they again amounted to 368,000 men. Soult and Marmont
-received their orders, and approached Badajoz with 60,000 men. Lord
-Wellington retired, but in July he threatened Ciudad Rodrigo, when
-again the two French Marshals marched to its relief with a greatly
-superior army. And now, as the winter approached, both armies went
-into cantonments, and the campaign of 1811 ended.
-
-But with January, 1812, commenced that career of triumph which
-only ended at Waterloo. In 1810, Wellington had saved Portugal; in
-1811, he had threatened and disquieted the French armies in their
-possession of Spain; but the opening year was not to close until
-that possession was very seriously endangered.
-
-Silently, all November and December, Wellington’s preparations were
-going on. Soult imagined that he was about to renew the siege of
-Badajoz, but suddenly, in the earliest days of January, a bridge
-was thrown over the Agueda, and the English army crossed the river
-and invested Ciudad Rodrigo. The siege commenced on the 8th, and
-on the 19th the place was stormed and carried. It had cost the
-French a siege of six weeks to take it from the Spaniards two years
-before. On hearing of its capture in twelve days, Marmont wrote to
-Napoleon, saying, “On the 16th, the English batteries opened their
-fire: on the 19th the place was taken by storm, and fell into the
-power of the enemy. There is something so incomprehensible in all
-this, that until I know more I refrain from any observation.”
-
-Badajoz, a far stronger place, was next invested, on the 17th of
-March, and on the 6th of April it was taken by storm. And here,
-too, General Lery, a French engineer, expressed his astonishment,
-writing thus: “I think the capture of Badajoz a very extraordinary
-event, and I should be at a loss to account for it in any manner
-consistent with probability.” These two great strongholds, the
-border-fortresses, had now been taken, and the way was thus opened
-into the heart of Spain. All Europe saw with astonishment that a
-little English army, seldom amounting--even with the aid of the
-Portuguese,--to more than 40,000 men, could counteract the efforts
-of the best armies of France, led by Napoleon’s most trusted
-Generals.
-
-After these exploits, Wellington gave his army some rest until the
-harvest should grow up, and provisions be more easily obtained. But
-in May he sent General Hill to storm the forts at Almarez on the
-Tagus, when the French works, with all their artillery and stores,
-fell into the hands of the English, who lost only 180 men. By this
-able manœuvre the two armies of Marmont and Soult were separated.
-
-On the 13th of June, the rains having ceased, and the field
-magazines being completed, Wellington passed the Agueda, and on
-the 17th be entered Salamanca, the people shouting, singing, and
-weeping for joy. The forts, however, were still held by French
-garrisons, and were not taken until the 27th.
-
-On the 8th of July, Marmont, the French General now opposed to
-Wellington, received a reinforcement of 6000 men, and both he and
-Wellington began to prepare for a battle. On the 15th and 16th,
-Marmont, who had previously made several deceptive movements,
-concentrated his beautiful and gallant army between Toro and the
-Hornija rivers. Then began a series of manœuvres, continued for
-several successive days, until, on the 20th, the two armies were
-in sight, marching on parallel heights within musket-shot of
-each other in the most perfect array. The strength of each army
-amounted to from 45,000 to 48,000 men; but of Wellington’s force a
-considerable portion consisted of Portuguese troops.
-
-In two or three days more, Marmont would have been joined by two
-other French corps, augmenting his force by nearly 20,000 men.
-But then he apprehended the arrival of either King Joseph, or
-Jourdan, the senior Marshal then in Spain, either of whom would
-have superseded him in the command. His object, therefore, was
-either to force the English to retreat from Salamanca, or else to
-fight a battle, and if possible gain a victory, before either of
-his superiors in command could arrive.
-
-On the 22nd of July, some change of position on the part of the
-English army gave Marmont the impression that Wellington was about
-to retire towards Ciudad Rodrigo. Eager not to let the English
-thus escape him, the French General ordered Maucune’s division,
-which formed his left, to march forward so as to fall upon the
-flank of the British in their expected retreat. They did so; but in
-so advancing a chasm intervened between them and the division of
-Bonnet, which formed part of the French centre. Word was brought
-to Wellington of this movement. “Starting up, he repaired to the
-high ground, and observed their movements for some time with stern
-contentment. Their left wing was entirely separated from the
-centre. The fault was flagrant, and he fixed it with the stroke of
-a thunderbolt.” Turning to the Spanish General Alava who stood by
-his side, he exclaimed, “Mon cher Alava, Marmont est perdu!”
-
-A few orders issued suddenly from his lips like the incantations of
-a wizard, and suddenly the dark mass of troops seemed animated by
-some mighty spirit. Rushing down the slope of the mountain, they
-entered the great basin. And now, after long coiling and winding
-like angry serpents, the armies suddenly fastened together in
-deadly strife.
-
-Marmont saw the country beneath him suddenly covered with enemies
-when he was in the act of making a complicated evolution; and when
-by the rash advance of his left, his troops were separated into
-three parts, each at too great a distance to assist the other. In
-this crisis, despatching officer after officer, some to hasten up
-his troops from the forest, some to stop the march of his left
-wing, he still looked for victory, till he saw Pakenham with his
-division penetrate between his left and his centre; then hope died
-within him, and he was hurrying in person to the fatal spot, when
-an exploding shell stretched him on the field, with two deep wounds
-in his side.”
-
-This naturally augmented the confusion of the French; but they
-still fought manfully. It was just five o’clock when Pakenham fell
-on Maucune, who, little thinking of such an onset, expected to see,
-from the summit of a hill he had just gained, the Allies in full
-retreat. Still, his gunners stood to their guns, and his cavalry
-charged; but both were killed or repulsed; the infantry endeavoured
-to form a front, but in the midst of its evolution it was charged
-and broken. The British cavalry fell upon the rear, while Leith,
-with the fifth division, bore down on the right flank. For awhile,
-the French veterans maintained some kind of order, but at last the
-cavalry broke them; Thomiere, one of their Generals, was killed,
-2000 of the French threw down their arms, and the whole division
-was utterly routed.
-
-The next portion of the French line, Clausel’s division, while
-warmly engaged with the English under Cole and Leith, had to
-sustain a charge from 1200 British dragoons. The whole French
-division was broken in an instant. Five guns and 2000 prisoners
-were taken in a few minutes. The entire of the left wing of the
-French army was now only a helpless mob of fugitives. In the centre
-the struggle was a more arduous one. The French still held a strong
-position on a hill--the Arapiles. Two attacks by the Portuguese
-and English were repelled. Beresford, Cole and Leith, were all
-wounded, and the English centre for a moment was shaken and in
-danger. But Wellington, whose eye was always where the peril was
-greatest, immediately ordered up Clinton’s division from the rear,
-and restored the battle. The ridge of the Arapiles was regained,
-“And now the current once more set in for the British. Pakenham
-continued to outflank the French left; Foy retired from the ridge
-of Calveriza, and the Allied host, righting itself like a gallant
-ship after a sudden gust, again bore right onwards, holding its
-course through blood and gloom.”
-
-There remained only the division of Foy, which formed the extreme
-right of the French line, and still maintained a gallant fight.
-It seemed difficult for this General to extricate his division,
-but he did it with great dexterity. Just as the darkness fell, he
-increased his skirmishers, and brought forward some cavalry, as if
-for a charge. But when the English had prepared themselves for a
-real encounter, the skirmishers fell back, and the English pursued;
-but when they reached the top of the hill, the main body of the
-French had escaped into a forest hard by, where darkness gave them
-safety.
-
-Another failure on the part of a Spaniard, here, again, favoured
-the French. The castle of Alba, on the Tormes, was garrisoned by a
-Spanish force, under Carlos d’Espana. This, if maintained, would
-have stopped the French in their flight by the main road, and have
-forced them to take the fords. But d’Espana, without informing
-Wellington, had withdrawn the garrison, and left the road open!
-“Had the castle of Alba been held,” says Napier, “the French could
-never have carried off a third of their army.” But by this piece of
-Spanish folly or cowardice, they were permitted to escape.
-
-As it was, their loss was enormous. They went into action with
-43,800 infantry and 4000 cavalry. Three weeks after, their
-General, Clausel, who succeeded Marmont in the command, wrote
-to the Minister of War at Paris, “The army consists of 20,000
-infantry, and 1800 horse.” So that, by death or wounds or capture,
-it had lost more than half of its numbers. On the part of the
-Allies, the loss was 3176 British, 2018 Portuguese, and eight
-Spanish. One General was killed, and five were among the wounded.
-Wellington himself was struck in the thigh by a spent ball, which
-passed through his holster. This was one of the last incidents of
-this great battle; in which the English leader, to use a French
-officer’s expression, “defeated 40,000 men in forty minutes.” “Late
-in the evening of that great day,” says Sir William Napier, “I saw
-him behind my regiment, then marching towards the ford. He was
-alone; the flush of victory was on his brow, his eyes were eager
-and watchful, but his voice was calm and even gentle. More than the
-rival of Marlborough,--for he had defeated greater Generals than
-Marlborough ever encountered, he seemed with prescient pride to
-accept this victory only as an earnest of future glory.”
-
-The French fled with such celerity, that their headquarters, on the
-following night, were at Flores d’Avila, no less than forty miles
-from the field of battle! The English army, on the other hand,
-entered Madrid on the 12th of August, amidst a scene of the wildest
-ecstasy. “No words can express the enthusiasm which prevailed
-when the English standards were seen in the distance, and the
-scarlet uniforms began to be discerned through the crowd. Amidst a
-countless multitude, wrought up to the highest pitch of rapturous
-feeling; amidst tears of gratitude and shouts of triumph, the
-British army entered the Spanish capital, not as conquerors, but
-as friends; not as oppressors, but deliverers.” As for Wellington,
-“with tears and every sign of deep emotion, the multitudes crowded
-round his horse, hung by his stirrups, touched his clothes, and
-throwing themselves on their knees, blessed him aloud.” The
-intrusive King, with about 12,000 men, had fled out of the city a
-few days previous.
-
-The Retiro, the largest arsenal which the French possessed in
-Spain, still had a garrison of 1700 men. But it surrendered on the
-13th, and the British found in it, 180 pieces of cannon, 20,000
-stand of arms, and immense stores of all kinds. Meanwhile, “the
-French affairs in every part of the Peninsula now exhibited that
-general crash and ruin which so usually follows a great military
-disaster, and presages the breaking up of a political power.”
-
-Nor were the mighty results of this great battle limited to
-Southern Europe. At the very moment when it took place, Napoleon,
-at the head of 450,000, was entering the heart of the Russian
-empire. The news of the defeat of his forces in Spain, reached
-him on the evening preceding the great battle of Borodino. It
-doubtless reached the Emperor Alexander also; and the news must
-have greatly aided the Russian Monarch in forming that remarkable
-resolve, “I am _immovable_; and no terms whatever shall induce me
-to terminate the war, or to fail in the sacred duty of avenging our
-country.” And, in a general order, issued shortly after, General
-Kutusoff, Alexander’s chief commander, said, “The hand of God is
-falling heavily on Napoleon: _Madrid is taken_.” Still, when, in
-October, Wellington, from the want of battering-artillery, failed
-in carrying the castle of Burgos, faction again raised its head
-in England, and even dared to question his skill and talent as
-a General! It was with reference to some of these attacks that
-Wellington took the following review of the results of the year.
-
-“I fear that the public will be disappointed at the results of
-the last campaign: and yet it is, in fact, the most important and
-successful campaign in which a British army has been engaged for
-the last century. We have taken by siege Ciudad Rodrigo, Badajoz,
-and Salamanca, and the Retiro has surrendered. Since January, this
-army has sent to England little short of 20,000 prisoners; and it
-has taken and destroyed, or we now possess, little short of 3000
-pieces of cannon.”
-
-More wonderful achievements, occupying a series of years, never
-were wrought out by a British army. Sir William Napier justly
-traces the triumph of Salamanca and other victories to the
-forethought of Wellington, in having laid such a foundation as
-he had provided in Torres Vedras. “This strong post was of his
-own planning,--he had chosen it, fortified it, defended it, and
-now, knowing its full value, he was availing himself of its
-advantages. The tree was planted to bear such fruit as was gathered
-at Salamanca, and the value of his combinations must be estimated
-from the general result. He had only 60,000 disposable troops, and
-100,000 were especially appointed to watch and control him; yet he
-passed the frontier, defeated 45,000 men in a pitched battle, and
-drove 20,000 others from Madrid in confusion, without difficulty
-and without risk. No General was ever more entitled to the honour
-of victory.”
-
-
-SALAMIS, BATTLE OF.--The Persians defeated by the Greeks in this
-great battle, October 20th, 480 B.C. Themistocles, the Greek
-commander, with only 310 sail defeated the whole fleet of Xerxes,
-consisting of 2000 sail. One of the greatest naval engagements in
-ancient times.
-
-
-SALDANHA BAY.--_Near the Cape of Good Hope._--Here a Dutch squadron
-was captured by Admiral St. George Keith Elphinstone, without
-resistance. Five men of war and nine frigates surrendered, and St.
-George was in consequence of this bloodless victory, which was
-executed with wonderful judgment, created Lord Keith, August 17th,
-1796.
-
-
-SANTA CRUZ.--Here, April 25th, 1657, the renowned Blake totally
-destroyed 16 Spanish ships, secured with great nautical skill,
-and protected by the castle and the forts on the shore. This was
-thought, at that time, one of the greatest feats ever accomplished.
-The Earl of Clarendon, speaking of this exploit, says, “It was so
-miraculous, that all who knew the place wondered that any sober
-man, with what courage soever endowed, would have undertaken it;
-and the victors could hardly persuade themselves to believe what
-they had done, whilst the surviving Spaniards thought that they
-were devils and not men who had destroyed their ships so.” Here
-also, in an unsuccessful attack made upon this place by Nelson,
-several officers and 141 men were killed, and the brave Admiral
-lost his right arm, July 24th, 1797. It is remarkable that Captain
-Freemantle, the great friend of Nelson, and a companion of his in
-most of his great and brilliant achievements was also wounded in
-the arm immediately before Nelson had received his wound in the
-same limb. The following laconic note addressed to the lady of
-Captain Freemantle, (who was on board with her husband at the time
-he wrote) has been preserved, as being the first letter written by
-the glorious hero with his left hand:
-
- MY DEAR MRS. FREEMANTLE,
-
- Tell me how Tom is? I hope he has saved his arm. Mine is off;
- but, thank God, I am as well as I hope he is.
-
- Ever Yours,
- HORATIO NELSON.
-
-
-SARATOGA, BURGOYNE’S SURRENDER AT.--General Burgoyne, commander of
-a body of the British Army, after a very severe engagement with the
-American Provincials in the American War of Independence, October
-17th, 1777, surrendered to the American General Gates. No less than
-5791 men laid down their arms. This was the greatest check the
-British suffered during the war.
-
-
-SCOPOLO.--On July the 5th, 1808, a desperate action was fought
-off the island of Scopolo, between a large Turkish frigate and
-corvette, and the Seahorse thirty-eight guns, captain Stewart,
-exhibiting the skill and gallantry of the latter against a great
-disparity of force, by which his own ship was so well preserved,
-while that of his opponent was ruined. The action began at
-half-past nine in the evening, the Turks under easy sail, a little
-off the wind, and continually endeavouring to board. At ten
-o’clock, after a quarter of an hour’s hot fire, the small ship
-was silenced; the large ship, which had during this time fallen
-a little to leeward, and thus been prevented from assisting her
-consort, recovered her position; the action was recommenced; and
-the resistance of the Turks was so obstinate, that it was not
-till a quarter past one she was rendered a motionless wreck. As
-they would neither answer nor fire, captain Stewart, knowing the
-character of the people, conceived it most prudent to wait for
-daylight to send on board her. At daylight, observing her colours
-upon the stump of the mizenmast, the Seahorse poured a broadside
-into her stern, when she struck. She was named the Badere Zaffer,
-of fifty-two guns, with a complement of 500 men, commanded by
-captain Scanderli Kichuc Ali, who had been prevented by his own
-people from blowing her up. Her loss was prodigious--165 killed and
-195 wounded. The Seahorse had only five killed and ten wounded.
-
-
-SEBASTOPOL.--The celebrated city besieged during the Crimean war.
-See _Bombardment, first and second (final) of Sebastopol_; also,
-_Mamelon_, _Malakoff_ and _Sortie_.
-
-
-SEDGMOOR, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 5th, 1685, in which the Duke
-of Monmouth was completely defeated by the army of James II of
-England. The Duke, who was the natural son of Charles II, by
-Lucy Walters, one of his mistresses, was made prisoner, and soon
-afterwards executed.
-
-
-SEIDLITZ, BATTLE OF.--Fought, April 10th, 1831, between the Poles
-and Russians. The Poles obtained the victory, after a bloody
-battle, taking 4000 prisoners, and several pieces of cannon. The
-killed and wounded, on both sides, amounted to many thousands.
-
-
-SEMINCAS, BATTLE OF.--Fought A.D. 938. One of the most bloody
-battles ever fought. Between the Moors and Ramirez II, King of
-Leon, and the Austrians. More than 80,000 of the infidels were
-slain, the dead lying in heaps for miles around.
-
-
-SEMPACH, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 9th, 1386, between the Swiss and
-Leopold, Duke of Austria. The heroic Swiss, after prodigies of
-valour, gained a great and memorable victory over the Duke, who was
-slain. By this battle they gained their independence, which they
-possess until this day; and they annually commemorate, with great
-solemnity, this victory.
-
-
-SERGEANT.--The highest non-commissioned officer of a company.
-This word enters into the title of different officers, as
-sergeant-major, color-sergeant, &c.
-
-
-SERINGAPATAM, BATTLE OF.--This first battle, called also the Battle
-of Arikera, in which the British defeated Tippoo Saib, was fought
-May 15th, 1791. The second, in which the redoubts were stormed, and
-Tippoo reduced by Lord Cornwallis, fought February 6th, 1792. After
-this capture peace was signed, and Tippoo agreed to cede one-half
-of Mysore, and to pay 33,000,000 of rupees, about £3,000,000,
-sterling to England, and to give up his two sons as hostages. In
-a new war the Madras army arrived before Seringapatam, April 5th,
-1799. It was joined by the Bombay army, April 14th, and the place
-was stormed and carried by Major General Baird, May 4th, same year.
-Tippoo was killed in this engagement.
-
-The following account gives the particulars of the 1st engagement
-previous to the capture of Seringapatam.
-
-“On the 27th of March, 1799, at three o’clock p.m., the right wing
-(of the British army destined for the capture of Seringapatam)
-moved slowly off the ground of encampment, along a heavy sandy
-road, impeded in their progress by the ponderous battering-train
-of guns, each 42 pounder being drawn majestically along by thirty,
-forty, and sometimes fifty bullocks, harnessed four abreast; and
-even these numbers were frequently found insufficient to extricate
-the wheels of the carriages from the deep sloughs into which
-they often sank, even up to the axles, when the aid of elephants
-was required; these sagacious animals would wind their trunks or
-probosci around the nave and between the spokes of the wheels, and
-thus lift gun and carriage from the impending difficulty, whilst
-the bullocks were being goaded and whipped with leather thongs.
-The ponderous machines were thus drawn forward. It was indeed an
-admirable and beautiful sight to observe the sagacity of these
-huge creatures; for when one only was brought up to assist, if
-the weight was too considerable for its animal strength, a shrill
-trumpeting proceeding from its proboscis would instantly proclaim
-this deficiency in strength for the object required, when the
-keeper would call for another elephant, and then the united power
-of the two, simultaneously applying their whole force, would
-speedily overcome almost insurmountable difficulties; though,
-when guns and carriages were embedded up to the axles of the four
-wheels, several of these noble animals have been required to lift
-the machines bodily from the tenacious clay into which they had
-sunk.
-
-Clouds of looties, or irregular predatory horsemen, were on the
-right flank of the line, who fired incessantly on the British as
-they advanced; and when a stoppage occurred, to extricate the guns,
-large bodies of these looties would suddenly dash through the
-intervals, cutting down the artillerymen, maiming the bullocks,
-and destroying the whole paraphernalia of harness; and this in
-spite of all the exertions of skirmishers to keep them at a
-respectable distance. The fierce sun was almost intolerable, and
-many Europeans fell dead from _coups-de-soleil_. Only three miles
-and a half could be marched from three o’clock until nearly twelve,
-when the little mud-walled fort of Malleville was descried, with
-the gallant 19th dragoons, drawn up in close column under the
-walls, to shelter them from the enemy’s brisk cannonade. At a hill
-fortress (Amboor), previous to mounting the Ghauts and entering the
-Mysore country, the British army had been joined by about 10,000
-of the Nizam’s troops--a disorderly set of savage, undisciplined
-barbarians (clothed in stuffed cotton jackets, covered with
-steel-chained armour, capable of resisting a musket-ball), prancing
-and skirmishing about the country in every direction, wielding
-their long lances with uncommon dexterity, managing their horses
-with grace and ease, almost to perfection in the equestrian
-art--sometimes casting their spears, and then, at full gallop,
-bending the body so low under the horse, as to recover possession
-of the spear that lay flat on the sand. This heterogeneous force
-was certainly an additional strength to the numerical force of the
-British, but, in a military point of view, of dubious advantage
-to the invading regular army, whose movements they frequently
-disconcerted by dashing furiously through the intervals between the
-columns on the line of march, and, being often mistaken for the
-enemy’s irregular horse, were fired at accordingly, many of them
-perishing in this unprofitable manner; and had any adverse fortune
-occurred in the campaign, confusion and defeat must have ensued,
-as these disorderly masses would inevitably have incommoded,
-and rendered all military discipline abortive. Accordingly, to
-protect them from absolute annihilation, the 33rd regiment of
-infantry, under command of the hon. colonel Wellesley (the Duke
-of Wellington), was attached to this disorderly crew, and acted
-with them during the advance to Seringapatam. The movements of the
-whole army was entirely confided to the management of Colonel Barry
-Close, a Company’s officer, and adjutant-general to the forces--a
-man of extensive capacity, who had displayed eminent talents in
-both civil and military departments during his long residence in
-India. He was an ornament to his profession, and, had fortune
-favoured him, might have proved a first-rate general. For his
-amiable and conciliatory disposition, he was beloved and esteemed
-by all who enjoyed the advantage of his society.
-
-During the march, the towns and villages were involved in flames
-in every direction, and not an atom of food or forage was anywhere
-procurable (every officer of the army was provided with three
-months’ provision of biscuit, &c., borne on the backs of bullocks
-in various numbers, according to the grade of the officer), and
-every tank or pool of water was impregnated with the poison of the
-milk hedge, large quantities of the branches of which the enemy had
-industriously thrown in--so that many horses, bullocks, and even,
-in some instances, men, fell victims to the deleterious infusion.
-
-As the head of the British column passed the little fort of
-Malleville, the quarter-master-general was observed marking out
-the site for encampment on an extensive sandy plain in front
-of the fort. The booming of distant heavy ordnance was plainly
-distinguishable. The lascars had commenced pitching the tents
-and marquees for the reception of the exhausted troops, but were
-suddenly interrupted in their occupation by the successive bounding
-of cannon-balls amongst them, when they precipitately quitted the
-dangerous situation, and fled for protection to the rear of the
-approaching troops. The enemy were posted on a commanding eminence
-about two miles distant, at the extremity of the sandy plain,
-supported by a long range of numerous heavy artillery and strong
-imposing bodies of regular cavalry. The English pickets, commanded
-by Captain Macpherson, of the 12th foot, pushed on towards the
-enemy’s left flank with two 12-pounder galloppers, and the action
-became brisk in that quarter--for, having ensconced themselves
-in a wood, they were thus secure from the charges of hordes of
-cavalry surrounding, whom they saluted with reiterated discharges
-of grape-shot from the galloppers. In the interim, whilst this
-scene was agitating, the right wing of the British army formed, on
-the intended ground of encampment, in contiguous close columns, and
-in this form cautiously advanced towards the eminence in front.
-I now, for the first time, became acquainted with the whirring,
-hoarse noise of cannon-balls--the phitz, phitz, of musket-bullets
-passing close to the body--and the ping, ping, of those flying
-distantly over head: fortunately, the balls, rockets, &c., were
-ill-directed, and did little execution. As the columns approached
-nearer the enemy’s position, the heavy guns were withdrawn behind
-the eminence (Tippoo Saib fearing nothing so much as the capture of
-his artillery, which he had invariably lost in his former battles
-with lord Cornwallis, in 1782), and ultimately disappeared! In
-this short advance, Captain Whitley, of the grenadiers of the
-12th (to which company I was attached), observing, I presume, the
-unaccustomed paleness of my countenance, turned round and offered
-me a refreshing draught of brandy and water from the contents
-of his canteen, or leathern bottle attached to his side, which
-I gratefully accepted; for at eighteen we have not the nerves
-and stamina of a man of forty years old. Untried individuals may
-sarcastically sneer at this apparent indication of pusillanimity;
-but never, during all my service, did I observe soldiers enter on
-a scene of action with that calm, florid appearance, denoting a
-sense of health and security: did man ever yet exist exempt from
-the common feelings of human nature? In point of fact, there is
-an evident, palpable alteration of feature in every man, at the
-commencement of a battle; as it rages, this marked difference in
-the lineaments of the countenance disappears, and the excitement
-of exertion soon produces the usual effect of renewed animation,
-with a spirit of recklessness indifferent to the consequences of
-existing danger.
-
-The advancing columns having approached within a few yards of
-the summit of the eminence, halted, and deployed into line, and
-thus marched on, when having reached the apex of the ascent, the
-formidable army of the redoubtable Tippoo Saib appeared drawn up
-on the plain below in battle array, with woods on both flanks,
-covered with tens of thousands of horsemen: the first indication
-of a serious attack proceeded from a body of cavalry, who
-charging the light infantry skirmishing front, soon drove them
-with headlong speed into the British line, where they rejoined
-their battalions; this body of horse, of about 1500, was formed
-in a compact wedge-like shape, with the front angle headed by two
-enormous elephants (saddled with howdahs, filled with distinguished
-officers), having each a huge iron chain dangling from the
-proboscis, which they whirled about with great rapidity, a blow
-from which would have destroyed half a company of infantry; at the
-first superficial view they were mistaken for the Nizam’s troops,
-but as they rapidly approached (firing their pistols and carbines,
-which produced some trifling effect) towards an interval of a few
-yards extent between his majesty’s 12th regiment and a battalion
-of Sepoys on the right, it was soon obvious they intended passing
-through this interval to the rear of the British line; fortunately,
-at this momentous crisis, a detachment of the Company’s native
-cavalry suddenly galloped from the rear, and completely filled
-up the space, when the enemy edged off, and directed their whole
-column to the front of the 12th regiment. General Harris, the
-commander-in-chief, suddenly appeared in the rear, vociferating
-aloud, “Fire, 12th! fire!” To their eternal credit, coolness, and
-unexampled discipline, be it recorded, that although standing with
-recovered arms, not a shot was fired, nor even a movement made,
-that indicated indecision; the men knew it was not the voice of
-the colonel, who, however, thus pressed by the authority of his
-superior officer, now gave the command--“Steady, 12th! and wait
-until these fellows are within ten yards of you,--then singe the
-beggars’ whiskers.” This order was implicitly obeyed. At the word
-“Fire!” a volley was effectually poured into the wedge of cavalry,
-followed by a rapid and well-directed file-firing, which produced
-the happiest effect; for on the smoke clearing away, a complete
-rampart of men and horses lay extended on the earth, in front of
-this invincible old corps! The elephants, maddened, with pain
-from their innumerable wounds, were shuffling away with speed,
-and swinging the enormous chains to right and left amidst the
-retiring cavalry, many of whom were thus destroyed. The howdahs
-(from which the leading chiefs had directed the charge) were
-dashed to atoms, and several of these brave men’s heads hung from
-the backs of the enraged animals; horses rearing, and crushing
-the riders to death--other loose and wounded horses scouring the
-plain on all sides--the scene was awfully terrific! Just at this
-eventful period, two 9-pounder field-pieces replaced the cavalry
-in the interval alluded to, at once opening a destructive shower
-of grape-shot on the discomfited horsemen, who were attempting to
-join their main body stationed in the woods below; these latter,
-perceiving the entire defeat of the “_Forlorn Hope_,” poured forth
-their tens of thousands, scouring rapidly over the sandy plain,
-exposed to the exterminating effects of the British artillery. The
-battle now became general along the whole line--infantry, cavalry,
-and artillery, all exerting their utmost efforts of destruction.
-Unfortunately, a large body of the Mysorian cavalry outflanked and
-cut into the rear of the British line, destroyed crowds of sick men
-and lascars, who were considered safe from such indiscriminate and
-inhuman butchery. Many of these gallant fellows, although in the
-last stage of human debility, crawled out of the doolies (rough
-palanquins for sick men), and fought manfully to the last gasp.
-On the extreme right of the line, the hon. colonel Wellesley was
-stationed, with his majesty’s 33rd regiment of foot, surrounded
-by the Nizam’s cavalry. The Mysorians at once charged the Nizam’s
-horse, who as suddenly scampered off. When the 33rd regiment were
-first observed by the enemy, the usual cry of “Feringee bong
-chute!” (“Rascally English!”) was uttered, and Tippoo’s cavalry
-fled in confusion, leaving several battalions of infantry to
-receive the dreadful charge of the British regiment! One hurrah!
-and the opposing infantry came in contact; several thousands of the
-Mysorians were bayonetted, the rest retiring in dismay, followed
-by the 19th dragoons, who cut and slashed without mercy. The right
-wing of the enemy being thrown into irretrievable confusion, and
-all parts of their line wavering, the battle was soon ended, Tippoo
-Saib drawing off with all possible haste. The British line now
-began to advance from their fighting position; but so numerous were
-the dead bodies of men and horses in front of the 12th regiment,
-that some difficulty was experienced in surmounting the obstacle!
-Two or three horsemen, in the attack of the wedge of cavalry,
-cut through the 12th regiment, but were immediately shot in the
-rear. To give an idea of the temper, sharpness, and weight of the
-swords of these men, who had all drugged themselves with bang (a
-narcotic herb, resembling opium in its effects on the human frame),
-for the attack, I have only to mention, that the barrel of one of
-the European’s muskets was completely severed by one cut from a
-Moorman’s sabre, the blade of which was three and a half feet long,
-half an inch thick at the back, and four inches broad, weighing
-fourteen pounds!
-
-It is now only necessary to add, that the victory was in favour of
-the British, who with the right wing of their army (about 16,000
-men) had engaged the combined forces of the sultan, destroying
-several thousands, with the loss only of a few hundreds. No guns
-were captured on either side. About six o’clock in the afternoon,
-the only indication of the proximity of an enemy was the distant
-booming of heavy artillery. The British, on reaching their original
-ground of encampment, were congratulated by the left wing of the
-army (just encamping, after a tedious hot march) on the success of
-the engagement, expressing regret that they had not arrived in time
-to participate in the glory of the day.”
-
-
-SERINGAPATAM, OPENING THE TRENCHES BEFORE.--“On the morning
-of the 5th April, 1799, the British army encamped on their
-permanent ground for the siege of the celebrated fortress of
-Seringapatam; and, after due deliberation, it was decided to open
-the trenches, if possible, the same evening. In accordance with
-this determination, two separate bodies of troops were ordered to
-parade, at six o’clock in the afternoon--one destined to drive
-the enemy from the dry bed of a nullah, or narrow river--the
-other to take possession of a small wood situated in a line on
-the right of the river, and rather nearer the encampment, which
-had been occupied the night before by a detachment of flankers
-under General Baird, and evacuated, the enemy having silently
-retreated from it on the approach of the English. Both these
-positions were, on the 5th, strongly occupied by select bodies
-of Tippoo’s troops. To accomplish these arduous enterprises, his
-Majesty’s 12th regiment, with a proportion of sepoys or native
-troops, consisting of about 2000 effective men, under the command
-of lieutenant-colonel Shaw (of the 12th foot), marched from the
-British lines at a quarter past six o’clock, to take possession of
-the bed of the river; his majesty’s 33rd regiment of foot, with
-a detachment of sepoys, amounting, in toto, to 2000 men, under
-the command of colonel Wellesley (now the duke of Wellington),
-quitted camp about the same time, to occupy the tope, or wood, on
-the right of the bed of the river. The two posts were intended to
-be carried at or near the same time as possible, for the mutual
-protection and security of both detachments--as one position was
-almost untenable without the occupation of the other. The British
-encampment was situated three miles from Seringapatam, on a rising
-ground gradually sloping up from the fortress, with the exception
-of partial undulations, which, however, did not prevent a perfect
-view of the whole intermediate spaces. The two posts (nullah and
-top) were midway between the camp and the besieged town. Scarcely
-had these two little columns quitted the camp, than they were
-assailed by showers of rockets and blue lights from every direction
-in front, which completely illumined the atmosphere, and exposed
-the British to the fire of Tippoo’s tiger sepoys; heavy masses of
-whom poured death into Shaw’s force, with the most terrific effect.
-Still this gallant little body moved slowly on (as the night was
-exceedingly dark), although more encumbered each moment with dead,
-dying, and wounded: the rockets and musketry from upwards of 20,000
-of the enemy were incessant--no hail could be thicker; with every
-blue light came a shower of bullets, and several rockets passed
-through the head to the rear of the column, causing death, wounds,
-and dreadful lacerations:[2] the cries of the wounded were quite
-awful. Not a shot did the British fire, nor had the men even
-loaded their pieces; a caution from the brave old colonel Shaw,
-that “_all must be done with the bayonet_,” needed no repetition
-to ensure obedience; but scarcely had this caution been conveyed
-through the ranks, when a tremendous peal of musketry was heard
-on the right flank, in the direction of the wood, which caused
-Shaw’s force to halt, as the attack became so formidable from
-the front, and both flanks, that it would have been an useless
-sacrifice of the men’s lives to stand up; they were consequently
-directed to lie down for a few minutes, to avoid the effects of
-the enemy’s scorching fire, which now proceeded from a very few
-yards’ distance--the brilliant light of their fire-balls or blue
-lights exposing Shaw’s column to the full force of their musketry;
-and imagining, from the recumbent posture of the British, that the
-majority was killed, a large column of the tiger sepoys ventured
-an attack with the bayonet, and drove in the battalion of the
-Company’s sepoys, who were a few yards in advance on the right,
-and killing their major. The command, “_Up, 12th and charge!_”
-was no sooner given, than each man sprang up and advanced to the
-charge in silence and compact order. The tiger sepoys stood,
-until a very few yards intervened between the combatants, when a
-general shout of “Feringee bong chute!” (“the rascally English!”)
-was uttered, and the enemy dispersed on all sides in considerable
-confusion; but, shortly after, again threw out their blue lights,
-and recommenced their murderous file-firing, which once more
-compelled the British to resume their prostrate posture. It was
-now about twelve o’clock at night, when the solemn trampling of
-a body of troops was plainly distinguished, approaching from the
-right flank in a hasty and rather tumultuous manner. Once more
-Shaw’s column were on their feet and preparing to charge, when a
-few stragglers from the hon. colonel Wellesley’s force rushed in,
-and announced that the detachment had been repulsed from the wood,
-and that the approaching trampling was part of the force coming
-to join Shaw--that two companies of the 33rd, with their colonel
-(Wellesley), were missing! A few minutes after this report, major
-Shea (second in command to Wellesley) joined Shaw’s force with the
-remains of that detachment: he stated that colonel Wellesley, with
-two companies of the 33rd regiment, had been either taken prisoners
-or had retreated to camp! As second in command, he had considered
-it his duty to traverse the wood in search of him, which proving
-unsuccessful, and the fire from the enemy becoming so exceedingly
-heavy, had induced him to lead the remaining troops to colonel
-Shaw, for the purpose of obtaining information, and receiving
-instructions how to act. Colonel Shaw replied, ironically, “that he
-had better follow his colonel to camp”--a hint that was implicitly
-and immediately complied with. Indignation here overcame prudence,
-as Shaw soon saw the enemy pouring in from all sides, and the
-stoutest heart in his force predicted a fatal result, from the
-united and concentrated efforts of so numerous an enemy. Large
-quantities of ammunition were sent from camp during the night,
-for the supply of Shaw’s column, as, from the tremendous firing,
-it was naturally apprehended that all their cartridges had been
-expended; but these incessant peals of musketry had all proceeded
-from Tippoo’s troops (not a single shot had been returned by
-Shaw’s column). The oldest soldier in camp declared they had never
-heard so tremendous a fire: in fact, it continued for twelve hours
-without intermission, blue lights and rockets illuminating the
-air the whole time--beautiful, though terrific. It was generally
-imagined in camp that Shaw and his detachment must have been
-inevitably annihilated; but this gallant old officer only waited
-the dawn of day, to exhibit one of the most glorious and impressive
-spectacles that ever added lustre to the annals of British military
-fame! The appearance of Wellesley in camp, followed by part of two
-companies of the 33rd regiment, reporting that the remainder of his
-detachment had been cut to pieces, increased the probability of the
-inevitable destruction of the other attacking column, and all was
-anxiety and commiseration, in camp, for the fate of this devoted
-little band.
-
-At five o’clock on the morning of the 6th April, the fire of
-musketry began to relax; the whole were under arms, and generously
-anxious for the safety of the column under Shaw’s command: but
-scarcely had the day dawned, than a glorious and exhilarating scene
-was displayed: the gallant old 12th, and the sepoys in line with
-them, were seen rushing on the entrenched enemy at the point of
-the bayonet, and driving them from the bed of the river, in spite
-of a heavy cannonade from the fortress of Seringapatam, and the
-resistance of the numerous columns opposed to them. Never did men
-more heroically perform their duty: the conflict was excessively
-murderous and obstinate, as the tiger sepoys were brave, numerous
-and well-disciplined. For some time the result of the attack
-appeared most dubious, as a considerable body of French troops
-persevered in most gallant style, in leading on Tippoo’s sepoys.
-The rapid charge of the 12th regiment, supported by the sepoys
-composing the force, excited the admiration of the whole British
-army. General Harris was heard to exclaim, “Well done, old 12th!
-why, they are going to take Seringapatam!” The occupation of the
-bed of the nullah being at length achieved by Shaw’s column, it had
-scarcely secured itself under the embankment of the river, from
-the thundering cannon of the fortress, when the enemy in the wood
-(who had opposed and put Wellesley to flight) opened a destructive
-fire from several field-pieces, which completely enfiladed Shaw’s
-post. A mound of earth was quickly thrown up on the right flank of
-the 12th regiment, to protect them, as much as possible, from this
-fresh annoyance; but this precaution could not have prevented the
-British from being dislodged from the bed of the river, had not
-several brigades from camp been observed advancing to support the
-position of Shaw’s post, and to drive the enemy from the wood. The
-certainty of speedy support inspired Shaw’s column with renewed
-ardour, and a fire was for the first time returned, with a rapidity
-and effect that completely disconcerted the enemy, who retired
-in good order, ever and anon facing about and firing a volley of
-musketry.
-
-They were not relieved until the close of the evening of the 6th,
-as the enemy’s firing from the fortress of Seringapatam was so
-destructive, that Baird’s brigade was compelled to halt and return
-to camp; the other brigade, under Wellesley, advanced and took
-possession of the wood which the enemy abandoned, and thus relieved
-Shaw’s post from an annoying enfilade of cannon and musketry, from
-which they suffered for at least an hour and a half after daybreak,
-with the greatest constancy and courage. Eleven officers and 180
-rank and file were killed and wounded in this small force during
-the night and morning of the 5th and 6th April. About seven o’clock
-in the evening of the latter day, the 74th regiment relieved the
-12th, who were right happy to break their fast after twenty-four
-hours’ hard fighting and fasting.”
-
-
-SEVILLE.--Surrendered to the French, February 1st, 1810; taken
-by assault by the British and Spaniards, after the battle of
-Salamanca, August 27th, 1812, when the French left it, at the
-general evacuation of the south of Spain, in consequence of their
-signal defeat in that battle.
-
-
-SHERRIFMUIR, BATTLE OF.--Fought, November 12th, 1715, between the
-Royal army, under the Duke of Argyle, and the Scotch rebel forces,
-who favored the Pretender, and commanded by the Earl of Mar. The
-insurgents were defeated. Fought on the same day in which the rebel
-forces were defeated at Preston.
-
-
-SHREWSBURY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 21st, 1403, between the
-Royal army of Henry IV, and the army of the Nobles, led by Percy,
-surnamed Hotspur, who had conspired to dethrone Henry. Each
-army consisted of about 12,000 men, and the engagement was most
-obstinate and bloody. Henry was seen everywhere in the thickest of
-the fight, while his valiant son, who was afterwards the renowned
-conqueror of France, fought by his side, though wounded in the
-face by an arrow, still kept the field and performed astonishing
-deeds of bravery. On the other hand, Hotspur performed prodigies
-of valour; 2300 gentlemen were slain, and about 6000 private men.
-Hotspur was killed by an unknown hand, and his death decided the
-fortune of the day.
-
-
-SHROPSHIRE, BATTLE OF.--In which the Britons were completely
-defeated, and Caractacus, their leader, taken prisoner and sent to
-Rome; fought A.D. 51.
-
-
-SIEGES.--Numerous in History; the following are the most
-important:--
-
-_Acre_, 1799, by Bonaparte; siege raised after sixty days, open
-trenches.
-
-_Algiers_, 1816. _See this article._
-
-_Almeida_, August 27th, 1810.
-
-_Antwerp_, 1576, use of infernal machines; also besieged 1583,
-1585, 1706, 1792, and 1814.
-
-_Badajoz_, March 11th, 1811, but raised June 9th. Taken by escalade
-on the night of April 6th, 1812.
-
-_Bagdad_, 1248.
-
-_Bayonne_, 1451.
-
-_Berwick_, 1293. _See this article._
-
-_Bommel_, 1794; the invention of the covert-way used here.
-
-_Burgos_, September to October, 1812, raised; the French in their
-retreat blew up the works, June 13th, 1813.
-
-_Calais_, 1347; British historians affirm cannon first used here at
-this siege. _See this article._
-
-_Candia_, 1667; the largest cannon then known in Europe, used here
-by the Turks.
-
-_Carthagena_, 1706.
-
-_Chalons_, 1199.
-
-_Cherbourg_, 1650.
-
-_Ciudad Rodrigo_, 1706, July, 1810; January, 1812. _See this
-article._
-
-_Constantinople_, 1453.
-
-_Copenhagen_, 1700, 1801, and 1807. _See this article._
-
-_Cracow_, 1772.
-
-_Dunkirk_, 1646, 1793.
-
-_Frederickshall_, 1718, Charles XII killed here.
-
-_Gibraltar_, 1704, 1799, and 1782; red hot cannon balls used here
-to burn the French fleet. _See this article._
-
-_Ismael_, 1790. _See this article._
-
-_Kars_, 1855. _See this article._
-
-_Londonderry_, 1689. _See this article._
-
-_Mons_, 1572, 1691, 1709, 1746, 1792, and 1794.
-
-_Mothe_, 1634; the French taught by Mr. Muller, an English
-engineer, first practised the art of throwing shells.
-
-_Naples_, 1381, 1435, 1504, 1557, 1792, 1799, and 1806.
-
-_Orleans_, 1428, 1563.
-
-_Philipsburg_, 1644, 1675, and 1688; first experiment of firing
-artillery à-ricochet here, also besieged 1734 and 1795.
-
-_Romorentin_, 1356; according to Voltaire, artillery first used
-here in sieges.
-
-_St. Sebastian_, September, 1813.
-
-_Salamanca_, June, 1812.
-
-_Saragossa_, oftener spelled _Zaragosa_,--appended to this article
-is a graphic account of the 2nd siege. It was besieged three times,
-in 1710, 1808, and 1809, the two last were dreadful sieges.
-
-_Schweidnitz_, 1762 and 1807. Here was the first experiment to
-reduce a fortress by springing globes of compression.
-
-_Sebastopol_, 1854 and 1855. _See this article under the heads of
-Bombardment of Sebastopol, Mamelon, Quarries, Rifle Pits, Sortie,
-&c._
-
-_Seville_, 1096, 1247, 1248, one of the most memorable sieges
-mentioned in Spanish history.
-
-_Silistria_, 1854. _See this article_.
-
-_Stralsund_, 1675, 1713, and 1807; the method of throwing red hot
-cannon balls first practiced here with certainty.
-
-_Tarifa_, December 20th, 1811.
-
-_Toulon_, 1707 and 1793.
-
-_Tournay_, 1340, 1312, 1581, 1667, and 1709. During this siege the
-best defence ever drawn from countermines was here practised; also
-besieged in 1765 and 1794.
-
-_Tunis_, 1270, 1535.
-
-_Valenciennes_, May 23rd to July 14th, 1793. _See this article._
-
-_Warsaw_, September 8th, 1831.
-
-_Zutphen_, 1572 and 1586.
-
-
-SILISTRIA, SIEGE OF.--In 1854.--The following is an admirable
-account of the siege of this place:
-
-“After the battle of Citate, so bitter a blow to the pretensions
-of Russia, the enemy’s Generals found it advisable to change
-their plan of operations. Adopting Foktchani as their basis, they
-accumulated a large amount of military stores, and finding that
-the Turks were not to be tempted into crossing the Danube, calmly
-awaited reinforcements. When these had arrived, it was resolved
-to make a desperate effort to force the passage of the river.
-Imperative orders arrived from St. Petersburg to press the war
-vigorously, and at any cost. On the 13th of February they attacked
-Giurgevo, on the Wallachian bank of the Danube, with a considerable
-force, and after a vigorous resistance, the Turks were forced to
-evacuate their position, though not without being able to effect an
-orderly retreat across the river, and establish themselves firmly
-in the opposite town of Rustchuk. The Russian Generals now resolved
-on concentrating their strength, and making an irresistible advance
-into Bulgaria. With characteristic promptness, however, Omer Pacha
-initiated the attack. Throwing a small column across the Danube
-at Rahova, he assaulted and drove back the outposts at Kalarasch
-with considerable slaughter; and the Turks, after this dashing
-feat, retired in security to Rahova. Another attempt was made
-by the extreme right of the Russian line, on the 11th of March,
-to seize Kalafat; but they were energetically repulsed by the
-brave garrison of that renowned town. Four days later, Prince
-Gortschakoff made a desperate effort to wrest from its Ottoman
-defenders the island in the Danube between Tukurtai and Oltenitza,
-which had been so important a position in the battle at the latter
-place. The Russians were again driven back, but some idea of the
-sanguinary nature of the struggle may be formed from the fact that
-2000 soldiers of the Czar left their bodies on the disputed ground.
-
-“Five days before this desperate attempt to force the passage of
-the river at Oltenitza, General Luders had succeeded in crossing,
-at Galatz, into the Dobrudscha. Gortschakoff, defeated as he had
-been, resolved upon abandoning the position he had so disastrously
-occupied, and shifting his ground farther to the east, effected a
-passage at Tultscha, beyond the point where Luders had passed with
-his army. The two divisions were now united, and numbered about
-5000 men. By a curious coincidence, the 23rd of March, the day on
-which Gortschakoff crossed the river, was the same day in which
-Odessa was so successfully bombarded by the allied fleets. Thus was
-the Russian success more than counterbalanced. Four days later,
-England and France had officially entered into the struggle. The
-great object of the enemy’s movements now became apparent. Prince
-Paskiewitch, the veteran General, the most celebrated commander of
-the Russian army, was summoned from Poland to assume the supreme
-command, and Schilders, the most accomplished general of engineers,
-also hastened to the scene of operations. The capture of Silistria,
-the strongest fortress on the southern bank of the Danube, and
-the key to Bulgaria, was evidently the object of the Russians. So
-important was the possession of this place deemed by the Czar, that
-the most imperative directions were forwarded to accomplish it at
-any cost. The plan of operations was this. Gortschakoff and Luders,
-having crossed the Danube, were to advance towards Silistria,
-intercepting communications, and investing it on the land side;
-while Paskiewitch was to throw forward the main body of the army
-and vigorously assault it from the northern side. The garrison of
-Silistria, commanded by Moussa Pacha, a General of great ability
-and indomitable courage, did not number more than 8000 men.
-
-“Now commenced one of the most memorable sieges which history
-has ever recorded. Others have exceeded it in the number of men
-engaged, in the length of time occupied, but none in heroic
-episodes and unflinching constancy. On the 14th of April, batteries
-were thrown up on the north bank of the Danube, opposite the
-devoted town, and a vigorous bombardment opened, but without much
-effect. On the 28th the first assault was made, but so hot was the
-reception the attacking force met with, that three weeks elapsed
-before they had sufficiently recovered to completely invest the
-town. By that time 53,000 Russians had surrounded the fortress,
-and batteries had been established, commanding the most important
-points. On the south-west front, and consequently the land side
-of the town, two very important earthworks were thrown up, known
-as Arab Tabia and Illanii. The ground on which these works were
-situated rises in a series of platforms, which virtually command
-the town. Their defence, therefore, was of the utmost importance
-to the brave garrison. Again and again, for the space of ten
-weeks, did the enemy precipitate strong columns of men against
-these mounds of earth, and again and again were they driven back
-with enormous loss. In vain the Russian cannonade levelled the
-bastions and slaughtered the defenders; others supplied their
-places, and once more the works rose defiantly. The Russian shells
-swept the ground, and the Turks burrowed in the trenches, till
-the advancing columns of assailants rushed to the breach. Then
-the undaunted defenders sprang upon them, and hurled them back,
-covered with defeat. Every attack was made with increased numbers,
-and made only to be the more ignominiously defeated. Mines were
-stealthily advanced towards the works; but the Turks countermined,
-and the Russian sappers were blown into the air. All this while an
-incessant bombardment from the river batteries poured death into
-the town. But the undaunted besieged never for a moment relaxed
-their resistance. Three master-spirits guided their operations,
-and infused heroic courage into their ranks. Captain James Butler,
-a young Englishman, who had volunteered for service in the army
-of the East, had joined the garrison, in company with Lieutenant
-Nasmyth, another young officer, animated by similar motives. These
-two gallant men were the very soul of the defence, and aided
-by the brave Maussa Pacha, the Ottoman Commander, successfully
-defied the power of the assailants. Butler, as the senior of the
-two Englishmen, assumed a position readily acceded to him by his
-Turkish allies, and to him they were indebted for the admirable
-construction and disposition of the defensive works. Lieutenant
-Nasmyth proved himself a most able seconder of his friend’s
-exertions, and in the capacity of “special correspondent” of the
-_Times_ newspaper, made all Europe acquainted with the details of
-this extraordinary siege.
-
-“Straining every nerve, and exhausting every resource, to become
-masters of the place, the Russian Generals summoned to their aid
-the larger portion of the right wing of their army, thus materially
-weakening their power of opposing the Turkish forces to the
-westward of Silistria, who, in consequence, obtained some easy
-successes. On the 12th of May, a tremendous assault was made by the
-besiegers on the town, and repulsed after a sanguinary struggle, in
-which more than 2000 Russians was lost. Ten days afterwards another
-assault was attempted, and again was the enemy defeated. With true
-Russian wiliness, overtures were secretly made to Moussa Pacha to
-betray his trust, and for an adequate price to deliver the fortress
-to the Czar. The brave man scornfully rejected the proposition, and
-bade the enemy to take it if they could. Meanwhile, Omer Pacha was
-anxiously endeavouring to succour the devoted garrison. Obstacles
-interposed by the stupidity, if not traitorous connivance, of
-officials in the ministry, had hitherto effectually tied his hands;
-but at length, on the 5th of July, a detachment of Turkish troops
-effected an entrance into the town after a smart skirmish; and on
-the 8th, about a thousand more literally cut their way through the
-Russians, and were added to the garrison. Aided by those welcome
-reinforcements, the Turks now assumed the offensive, and on the
-night of the 13th made a sortie, and succeeded in destroying the
-Russian works, springing their mines, and inflicting a terrible
-loss upon their ranks.
-
-“It was now evident to the Russian Commanders that, if the town
-were to be taken at all, it must be by a _coup de main_, and a
-grand assault was ordered for the 28th of June. But they had
-miscalculated the valour of their soldiers. Daunted by the warm
-reception they had hitherto experienced, they absolutely refused to
-march again to the breach; and nothing but the threat of stopping
-their rations unless Silistria were taken the next day, could
-induce these valiant warriors to perform their duty. On the next
-day, the Russian Generals led their half-starved and unwilling
-forces against the redoubts of Silistria. The Commanders, Prince
-Paskiewitch, Count Orloff, Generals Schilders, Gortschakoff, and
-Luders, placed themselves in the very front of the attacking force,
-anxious to stimulate the soldiers by their own exposure. The
-assault was attempted, and most triumphantly repulsed. The Russians
-were thrown into the utmost disorganization, and fled precipitately
-from the well-directed volleys of the garrison. Their leaders, too,
-paid dearly for their temerity. Paskiewitch himself was severely
-wounded; Schilders had both his legs shattered, Luders his jaw shot
-away, Count Orloff was killed, and Gortschakoff received a serious
-wound. Nor did the brave defenders escape without irreparable
-loss. Their gallant chief, Moussa Pacha, was struck on the head
-by a round shot, and expired instantly; and the noble Butler fell
-a sacrifice to his undaunted courage. The Turkish reinforcements
-outside the garrison fell upon the rear of the retreating Russians,
-and completed the rout their compatriots had so gloriously
-initiated. Beaten on every hand, the enemy dashed pell-mell across
-the river, in confused retreat towards Foktchani. The siege was
-raised. More than 30,000 Russian soldiers had perished in the
-attempt to take Silistria, and the broken remnant was now in full
-flight, owing its safety solely to the limited number of the
-victorious Turks, which forbade pursuit.
-
-“With the exception of the small force which still lingered in the
-plague-stricken plains of the Dobrudscha, not a Russian remained
-to the south of the Danube. The mighty legions, precipitated so
-recklessly across the Danube, were dead upon the Turkish bank, or
-flying ignominiously from the scene. The despised Turks were the
-triumphant conquerors, and the great Czar had received another and
-a greater blow from the “sick man.”
-
-
-SLAUGHTER OR MASSACRE.--Under this head both Ancient and Modern
-History abound with events which can be so called. The following
-are among the most remarkable, as recorded by various authors:
-
-The Carthagenians in Sicily who were totally slaughtered, 397 B.C.
-
-2000 Tyrians crucified and 8000 put to the sword by Alexander the
-Great. 331 B.C.
-
-The Romans throughout Asia, women and children not exempted,
-cruelly butchered in one day, by order of Mithridates, King of
-Pontus, 88 B.C.
-
-The massacre of Roman Senators, &c., 86 B.C.
-
-That of Octavianus Cæsar to the Manes of Julius Cæsar, 41 B.C.
-
-Jerusalem, 1,100,000 Jews cruelly put to the sword, A.D. 70.
-
-Cassius slaughtered 400,000 of the inhabitants of Selucia, A.D. 167.
-
-Eighty Christian Fathers by order of the Emperor Gratian were put
-into a ship which was set on fire and then driven out to sea, A.D.
-370.
-
-Belisarius massacred 30,000 citizens of Constantinople, A.D. 552.
-
-That of the Albigenses and Waldenses, A.D. 1209.
-
-The Sicilian Vespers--all the French in Sicily butchered without
-distinction of age or sex, the first bell for vespers being the
-signal, A.D. 1282.
-
-That of St. Bartholomew’s day throughout France, August 24th, 1572.
-
-Ismael, 30,000 of the inhabitants old and young slain, December,
-1790. _See Ismael._
-
-Of all the whites in the Island of St. Domingo, March 29th, 1804.
-
-Massacre of the Mamelukes in Egypt, March 1st, 1811. _See account
-appended to this list._
-
-Sinopé during the Crimean war, 1854.
-
-
-MASSACRES IN ENGLISH HISTORY.
-
-Of 300 nobles on Salisbury Plain, A.D. 474.
-
-The Danes in England, November 13th, 1002.
-
-The Jews in England, A.D. 1189.
-
-The unoffending McDonalds of Glencoe, 1692. _See account appended
-to this list._
-
-Massacres of Cawnpore, Delhi, and other places during the Great
-Indian Mutiny, 1857. _See Cawnpore and Delhi._
-
-
-SLAUGHTER or MASSACRE OF GLENCOE.--This barbarous and diabolical
-massacre, which, at the time of its commission, excited universal
-and heartfelt indignation, took place in February, 1692. About
-the middle of 1691, “as the Highlanders were not yet totally
-subdued, the Earl of Breadalbane undertook to bring them over by
-distributing sums of money among their chiefs; and £15,000 were
-accordingly remitted from England for that purpose. The clans
-being informed of this, suspected that the Earl’s design was to
-appropriate to himself the best part of the money; and when he
-began to treat with them, they made such extravagant demands, that
-he found his scheme impracticable. He had therefore to refund
-the sum he had received; and resolved to wreak his vengeance on
-those who had frustrated his intention. He who chiefly thwarted
-him was McDonald of Glencoe, whose opposition rose from a private
-circumstance, which ought to have had no effect on a treaty that
-regarded the public weal. McDonald had plundered the lands of
-Breadalbane during the course of hostilities; and the Earl insisted
-upon being indemnified for his losses, from the other’s share of
-the money which he was employed to distribute. The Highlander,
-however, not only refused to acquiesce in these terms, but, by
-his influence among the clans, defeated the whole scheme, and,
-in revenge, Breadalbane devoted him to destruction. King William
-had, by proclamation, offered an indemnity to all those who had
-been in arms against him, provided they would submit and take the
-oaths by a certain day; and this was prolonged to the close of
-1691, with a denunciation of military execution against those who
-should hold out after the end of December. McDonald, intimidated
-by this declaration, repaired, on the very last day of the month,
-to Fort William, and desired that the oaths might be tendered to
-him by Colonel Hill, governor of that fortress. As this officer
-was not vested with the power of a civil magistrate, he refused to
-administer them; and McDonald set out immediately for Inverary, the
-county-town of Argyle. Though the ground was covered with snow,
-and the weather intensely cold, he travelled with such diligence,
-that the term prescribed by the proclamation was but one day
-elapsed when he reached the place, and addressed himself to Sir
-John Campbell, sheriff of the county, who, in consideration of his
-disappointment at Fort William, was prevailed upon to administer
-the oaths to him and his adherents. Then they returned to their
-own habitations in the valley of Glencoe, in full confidence of
-being protected by the government, to which they had so solemnly
-submitted.
-
-Breadalbane had represented McDonald at court as an incorrigible
-rebel, as a ruffian inured to bloodshed and rapine, who would never
-be obedient to the laws of his country, nor live peaceably under
-any sovereign. He observed, that he had paid no regard to the
-proclamation, and proposed that the government should sacrifice
-him to the quiet of the kingdom, in extirpating him, with his
-family and dependants, by military execution. His advice was
-supported by the suggestions of the other Scottish ministers; and
-the King, whose chief virtue was not humanity, signed a warrant
-for the destruction of those unhappy people, though it does not
-appear that he knew of McDonald’s submission. An order for this
-barbarous execution, signed and counter-signed by his majesty’s
-own hand, being transmitted to the master of Stair, secretary for
-Scotland, this minister sent particular directions to Livingstone,
-who commanded the troops in that kingdom, to put the inhabitants
-of Glencoe to the sword, charging him to take no prisoners, that
-the scene might be more terrible. In the month of February, captain
-Campbell of Glenlyon, by virtue of an order from major Duncanson,
-marched into the valley of Glencoe with a company of soldiers
-belonging to Argyle’s regiment, on pretence of levying the arrears
-of the land-tax and hearth-money. When McDonald demanded whether
-they came as friends or enemies, he answered as friends, and
-promised, upon his honour, that neither he nor his people should
-sustain the least injury. In consequence of this declaration, he
-and his men were received with the most cordial hospitality, and
-lived fifteen days with the men of the valley in all the appearance
-of the most unreserved friendship. At length the fatal period
-approached. McDonald and Campbell having passed the day together,
-parted about seven in the evening, with mutual professions of the
-warmest affection. As soon as Campbell had retired, he received the
-following letter from major Duncanson, quartered at Ballachalis, a
-place some distance from Glencoe. It is dated the 12th of February,
-1692, and runs thus:--
-
- “SIR,--You are hereby ordered to fall upon the rebels, the
- McDonalds of Glencoe, and put all to the sword under seventy
- years of age. You are to have especial care that the old fox and
- his sons do upon no account escape. This you are to put into
- execution at five o’clock in the morning (Saturday, the 13th)
- precisely; and by that time I will strive to be with you, with a
- stronger party. If I do not come to you at five, you are not to
- tarry for me, but to fall on. Secure all the avenues, that not a
- man may escape. _This is by the King’s especial command_, for the
- good of the country, that these miscreants may be cut off, root
- and branch.”
-
-This was instantly communicated to the officers and men under his
-command, and immediate preparations made for carrying the inhuman
-massacre into effect.
-
-The younger McDonald, perceiving the guards doubled, began to
-suspect some treachery, and communicated his suspicion to his
-brother; but neither he nor the father would harbour the least
-doubt of Campbell’s sincerity; nevertheless, the two young men
-went forth privately, to make farther observations. They overheard
-the common soldiers say they liked not the work; that though they
-would willingly have fought the McDonalds of the glen fairly in
-the field, they held it base to murder them in cold blood; but
-that their officers were answerable for the treachery. When the
-youths hasted back to apprise their father of the impending danger,
-they saw the house already surrounded; they heard the discharge of
-muskets, the shrieks of women and children; and, being destitute
-of arms, secured their own lives by immediate flight. The savage
-ministers of vengeance had entered the old man’s chamber, and shot
-him through the head. He fell down dead in the arms of his wife,
-who died next day, distracted by the horror of her husband’s fate.
-The laird of Auchintrincken, McDonald’s guest, who had, three
-months before this period, submitted to the government, and at this
-very time had a protection in his pocket, was put to death without
-question. A boy of eight years, who fell at Campbell’s feet,
-imploring mercy, and offering to serve him for life, was stabbed
-to the heart by one Drummond, a subaltern officer. Eight and thirty
-persons suffered in this manner, the greater part of whom where
-surprised in their beds, and hurried into eternity before they
-had time to implore the divine mercy. The design to butcher all
-the males under seventy years of ago that lived in the valley,
-the number of whom amounted to 200, was defeated by Duncanson not
-arriving in time to secure the passes, so that one young man and
-woman had nearly succeeded in escaping, and were climbing the last
-rugged height of their native place, when they were discovered,
-and shots immediately sent after them. Struck by one of them the
-unfortunate young man made a convulsive spring, and fell headlong
-into the valley below. His companion, alarmed by the report, lost
-her hold, and tumbled after him. They were both killed by the fall.
-
-Campbell, having perpetrated this brutal massacre, ordered all the
-houses to be burned, made a prey of all the cattle and effects
-that were found in the valley, and left the helpless women and
-children, whose husbands and fathers he had murdered, naked and
-forlorn, without covering, food, or shelter, in the midst of the
-snow that covered the whole face of the country, at the distance of
-six long miles from any inhabited place. Distracted with grief and
-horror, surrounded with the shades of night, shivering with cold,
-and appalled with the apprehension of immediate death from the
-swords of those who had sacrificed their friends and kinsmen, they
-could not endure such a complication of calamities, but generally
-perished in the waste, before they could receive the least
-comfort or assistance. This barbarous massacre, performed under
-the sanction of King William’s authority, answered the immediate
-purpose of the court, by striking terror into the hearts of the
-jacobite Highlanders; but at the same time excited the horror of
-all those who had not renounced every sentiment of humanity, and
-produced such an aversion to the government, as all the arts of a
-ministry could never totally surmount. A detail of the particulars
-was published at Paris, with many exaggerations, and the jacobites
-did not fail to expatiate upon every circumstance, in domestic
-libels and private conversation. The King, alarmed at the outcry
-which was raised on this occasion, ordered an inquiry to be set
-on foot, and dismissed the master of Stair from his employment of
-secretary; he likewise pretended that he had subscribed the order
-amidst a heap of other papers, without knowing the purport, of it;
-but as he did not severely punish those who made his authority
-subservient to their own cruel revenge, the imputation stuck fast
-to his character; and the Highlanders, though terrified into
-silence and submission, were inspired with the most implacable
-resentment against his person and administration.”
-
-
-SLAUGHTER or MASSACRE OF THE MAMELUKES, March 1st, 1811.--“It has
-been related, that one of the chief means employed by Mahomet Ali
-in civilizing Egypt, or in improving the state of the country,
-was the destruction of the Mamelukes--a class of hired foreign
-soldiers, who, as usual in such cases, were opposed to all changes
-in the government. It was only by resorting to a barbarous
-stratagem in one of his campaigns, that the sanguinary blow was
-struck. The following is an account of this sanguinary affair:
-
-“The chiefs of the Mamelukes, with their adherents, being
-assembled, by invitation from the Pacha of Egypt, within the
-citadel of Cairo, after a time, according to eastern custom, coffee
-was brought, and, last of all, the pipes; but at the moment when
-these were presented, as if from etiquette, or to leave his guests
-more at their case, Mahomet Ali rose and withdrew, and, sending
-privately for the captain of his guard, gave orders that the gates
-of the citadel should be closed; adding, that as soon as Siam Bey
-and his two associates should come out for the purpose of mounting,
-they should be fired upon till they dropped, and that at the same
-signal the troops posted throughout the fortress should take aim
-at, every Mameluke within their reach, while a corresponding order
-was sent down at the same time to those in the town, and to such
-even as were encamped without, round the foot of the fortress,
-to pursue the work of extermination on all stragglers that they
-should find, so that not one of the proscribed body might escape.
-Siam Bey, and his two brothers in command, finding that the Pacha
-did not return to them, and being informed by the attendants that
-he was gone into his harem (an answer that precluded all farther
-inquiry), judged it time to take their departure. But no sooner
-did they make their appearance without, and were mounting their
-horses, than they were suddenly fired upon from every quarter,
-and all became at once a scene of confusion, and dismay, and
-horror, similar volleys being directed at all the rest, who were
-collected round, and preparing to return with them, so that the
-victims dropped by hundreds. Siam himself had time to gain his
-saddle, and even to penetrate to one of the gates of the citadel;
-but all to no purpose, for he found it closed like the rest, and
-fell there pierced with innumerable bullets. Another chief, Amim
-Bey, who was the brother to Elfi, urged the noble animal which
-he rode to an act of greater desperation, for he spurred him till
-he made him clamber upon the rampart; and preferring rather to be
-dashed to pieces than to be slaughtered in cold blood, drove him to
-leap down the precipice, a height that has been estimated at from
-thirty to forty feet, or even more; yet fortune so favoured him,
-that though the horse was killed in the fall, the rider escaped.
-An Albanian camp was below, and an officer’s tent very near the
-spot on which he alighted. Instead of shunning it, he went in,
-and throwing himself on the rites of hospitality, implored that
-no advantage might be taken of him; which was not only granted,
-but the officer offered him protection, even at his own peril, and
-kept him concealed so long as the popular fury and the excesses of
-the soldiery continued. Of the rest of that devoted number, thus
-shut up and surrounded, not one went out alive; and even of those
-who had quietly remained in the town, but very few found means to
-elude the activity and greedy search that was made after them--a
-high price being set upon every Mameluke’s head that should be
-brought. All Cairo was filled with wailing and lamentations; and,
-in truth, the confusion and horrors of that day are indescribable;
-for not the Mamelukes alone, but others also, in many instances
-wholly unconnected with them, either from mistake, or from malice,
-or for plunder, were indiscriminately seized on and put to death;
-so that great as the number was that perished of that ill-fated
-body, it yet did not comprehend the total of the victims. The
-strange fact of the leap and escape of Amim Bey, and of his asylum
-in the officer’s tent, reached at last the Pacha’s ears, who sent
-instantly to demand him; and when the generous Albanian found
-that it would be impossible any longer to shelter or screen his
-fugitive, he gave him a horse, and recommended him to fly with all
-speed into Asia, where, in the palace of Suleyman Pacha at Acre, he
-found safety.”
-
-
-SLAVE TRADE.--The following is a good description of this horrible
-trade now nearly at an end:--
-
-“On our return from Brazil, we fell in with a slave-ship. She
-had taken in, on the coast of Africa, 336 males and 226 females,
-making in all 562, and had been out seventeen days, during which
-she had thrown overboard 55. The slaves were all enclosed under
-grated hatchways, between decks. The space was so low, that they
-sat between each other’s legs, and stowed so close together, that
-there was no possibility of their lying down, or at all changing
-their position, by night or day. As they belonged to, and were
-shipped on account of different individuals, they were all branded,
-like sheep, with the owners’ marks, of different forms. These were
-impressed under their breasts, or on their arms, and, as the mate
-informed me, with perfect indifference, “queimados pelo ferro
-quento--burnt with the red-hot iron.” Over the hatchway stood a
-ferocious-looking fellow, with a scourge of many twisted thongs in
-his hand, who was the slave-driver of the ship; and whenever he
-heard the slightest noise below, he shook it over them, and seemed
-eager to exercise it. As soon as the poor creatures saw us looking
-down at them, their dark and melancholy visages brightened up. They
-perceived something of sympathy and kindness in our looks, which
-they had not been accustomed to, and feeling, instinctively, that
-we were friends, they immediately began to shout and clap their
-hands. One or two had picked up a few Portuguese words, and cried
-out, “Viva! viva!” The women were particularly excited. They all
-held up their arms; and when we bent down and shook hands with
-them, they could not contain their delight; they endeavoured to
-scramble upon their knees, stretching up to kiss our hands; and
-we understood that they knew we had come to liberate them. Some,
-however, hung down their heads in apparently hopeless dejection;
-some were greatly emaciated, and some, particularly children,
-seemed dying. But the circumstance which struck us most forcibly,
-was, how it was possible for such a number of human beings to
-exist, packed up and wedged together as tight as they could cram,
-in low cells, three feet high, the greater part of which, except
-that immediately under the grated hatchways, was shut out from
-light or air, and this when the thermometer, exposed to the open
-sky, was standing in the shade, on our deck, at 89 deg. The space
-between decks was divided into compartments, three feet three
-inches high; the size of one was sixteen feet by eighteen, and
-of the other, forty by twenty-one; into the first were crammed
-the women and girls; into the second, the men and boys: 226
-fellow-creatures were thus thrust into one space 288 feet square,
-and 336 into another space 800 feet square, giving to the whole an
-average of twenty-three inches, and to each of the women not more
-than thirteen inches, though many of them were pregnant. We also
-found manacles and fetters of different kinds; but it appeared that
-they had all been taken off before we boarded. The heat of these
-horrid places was so great, and the odour so offensive, that it was
-quite impossible to enter them, even had there been room. They were
-measured, as above, when the slaves had left them. The officers
-insisted that the poor suffering creatures should be admitted
-on deck, to get air and water. This was opposed by the mate of
-the slaver, who, from a feeling that they deserved it, declared
-they would murder them all. The officers, however, persisted, and
-the poor beings were all turned up together. It is impossible to
-conceive the effect of this eruption--507 fellow-creatures, of all
-ages and sexes, some children, some adults, some old men and women,
-all in a state of total nudity, scrambling out together to taste
-the luxury of a little fresh air and water. They came swarming
-up, like bees from the aperture of a hive, till the whole deck
-was crowded to suffocation, from stem to stern, so that it was
-impossible to imagine where they could all have come from, or how
-they could all have been stowed away. On looking into places where
-they had been crammed, there were found some children next the
-sides of the ship, in the places most remote from light and air;
-they were lying nearly in a torpid state, after the rest had turned
-out. The little creatures seemed indifferent as to life or death;
-and when they were carried on deck, many of them could not stand.
-After enjoying for a short time the unusual luxury of air, some
-water was brought; it was then that the extent of their sufferings
-was exposed in a fearful manner. They all rushed like maniacs
-towards it. No entreaties, or threats, or blows, could restrain
-them; they shrieked and struggled, and fought with one another, for
-a drop of this precious liquid, as if they grew rabid at the sight
-of it. There is nothing which slaves, in the middle passage, suffer
-from so much as the want of water. It is sometimes usual to take
-out casks filled with sea-water as ballast, and when the slaves are
-received on board, to start the casks and refill them with fresh.
-On one occasion, a ship from Bahia neglected to change the contents
-of the casks, and on the mid-passage found, to their horror, that
-they were filled with nothing but salt water. All the slaves on
-board perished! We could judge of the extent of their sufferings
-from the afflicting sight we now saw.”
-
-
-SLUYS, NAVAL BATTLE OF.--In this battle Edward III gained a signal
-victory over the French. The English had the wind of the enemy, and
-the sun at their backs, and began the action, which was fierce and
-bloody--the English archers galling the French on their approach;
-230 French ships were taken; 30,000 Frenchmen were killed, and two
-Admirals; English loss inconsiderable.--Fought, June 24th, 1340.
-
-
-SMOLENSKO, BATTLE OF.--One of the most memorable battles fought
-during the Russian campaign of 1812, between the French and
-Russian armies. Fought, August 17th, 1812. The French were three
-times repulsed, but at last gained the victory, and on entering
-Smolensko, found it in ruins, on account of their bombardment.
-
-
-SOBRAON, BATTLE OF.--_In India._--Fought, February 10th, 1846,
-between the British army, 35,000 strong, under Sir Hugh Gough, and
-the Sikh force on the Sutlej. The enemy were dislodged after a
-dreadful contest, and all their batteries taken; and in attempting
-the passage of the river by a floating bridge in their rear, the
-weight of the masses that crowded upon it caused it to break down,
-and more than 10,000 Sikhs were killed, wounded or drowned. They
-also lost sixty-seven cannon and some standards. The British lost
-2383 men.
-
-
-SOLEBAY, NAVAL BATTLE OF.--Between the fleets of England and France
-on the one side and the Dutch on the other; the Allies commanded
-by the Duke of York. The Dutch were compelled to flee, having lost
-three ships, but the English lost four. In this obstinate and
-bloody engagement the _Earl of Sandwich_ man-of-war blew up, and
-1000 men were either killed or wounded. Fought, May 28th, 1672.
-
-
-SOLFERINO, BATTLE OF.--This great battle, one of the most bloody
-ever fought, took place during the war of Italy and France against
-Austria. Fought, June 24th, 1859. The loss on both sides was
-tremendous. The Austrians mustered 250,000 men; the Allies 150,000.
-The number slain and wounded ranged from 30,000 to 37,000. The
-result of this battle was the Austrians repassed the Mincio, whilst
-the Allied headquarters were placed at Cavriana.
-
-
-SORTIE FROM SEBASTOPOL.--The great sortie, during which the
-good Captain Hedley Vicars was killed, is well described in the
-following account:
-
-“On the night of the 22nd of March, the enemy, about 7000 strong
-made a sortie from the works of the Mamelon, which the French, as
-already related, had so gallantly endeavoured to wrest from them.
-The distance between the advanced parallels of the opposing forces
-was not more than sixty yards; and the Russians were fully alive
-to the necessity of preventing, if possible, any further advance
-on the part of the Allies. The French and English Generals were
-equally aware of the importance of the position, and not less than
-6000 or 7000 French soldiers were nightly marched down to the
-trenches; our working and covering parties numbering about 1500.
-Advancing stealthily in two columns, the enemy attacked the head
-of the French sap, and were gallantly met by a division of the 3rd
-Zouaves, under Chef de Bataillon Balon. Three times was the attack
-made, and three times repulsed, not without great loss both to
-assailants and defenders. Finding themselves unable to force the
-French lines in this direction, the enemy changed his front, and
-threw himself against the left of the French position; but here,
-too, our brave Allies were equally on the alert, and a sharp volley
-assured the adventurous Russians that but little success was to be
-hoped for in that quarter. Rapidly extending their attack, they
-succeeded in occupying the nearest English parallel, and thence
-poured a murderous fire into the French lines. General D’Autemarre,
-the officer in command, seeing the fierce nature of the attack,
-now ordered up the 4th battalion of the Chasseurs-à-Pied, who, in
-a vigorous bayonet charge, drove the enemy from his position.
-
-While this was going on in the French trenches, to the right of
-our lines, our troops were also engaged in repelling an equally
-determined attack. A portion of the Russian columns advanced under
-cover of the darkness, and succeeded in approaching the English
-lines. The first intimation our men had of the threatened attack
-was from the advanced sentinels, who quietly fell back with the
-intelligence that a large body of the enemy was approaching our
-position. The English troops engaged that night in the trenches
-consisted of detachments of the 7th, 34th, 77th, 88th, 90th, and
-97th regiments, under the command of Colonel Kelly, of the 34th.
-The advanced posts on the right nearest the French lines were
-composed of men from the 77th and 97th, led by Captain Vicars,
-who, hearing the approach of the enemy, ordered his men to keep
-silence. On came the Russians, and when within a few yards of the
-English trenches, they rushed forward and leaped into the works.
-They were immediately met by the brave defenders of the lines,
-who, hitherto motionless, now made an irresistible charge upon the
-advancing foe, and after a few moments of desperate hand-to-hand
-conflict, literally pitched them from the parapet. Captain Vicars,
-who led his men with distinguished courage, met his death in this
-vigorous repulse. Major Gordon, of the Engineers, who commanded the
-detachment on the right, was severely wounded. While the attention
-of the defenders of the trenches was thus drawn to the conflict in
-this direction, the enemy made another attempt to penetrate our
-lines farther to the left, where two mortars had been established
-for the defence of the trenches. Here they succeeded in gaining a
-footing, notwithstanding a most brilliant resistance from a few men
-of the 90th, who actually drove them from the battery, though they
-were unable effectually to oppose their advance. The 7th and 34th,
-under the command of Lieut.-Colonel Tylden, were now brought up to
-the scene of action, and gallantly met the fierce assault. After
-a severe contest, the Russians gave way, and were precipitated
-from the works. A general attack was now made upon the retreating
-masses, who fled utterly beaten. The French followed them so
-far as to be enabled to destroy some of the rifle-pits they had
-established on the slope of the Mamelon, which had been the means
-of such constant annoyance to our Allies. In this pursuit Colonel
-Kelly was killed. The Russian loss must have been very great. On
-our side, the casualties were not more than 38 killed and wounded;
-the French lost over 300.
-
-On the next day an armistice, for the purpose of burying the dead,
-was requested by General Osten-Sacken, the Russian Commander.
-This was granted, and for two hours, on the 24th, the guns ceased
-firing, and the officers and men of the opposed armies enjoyed
-a brief respite from their deadly contest. There was a natural
-desire on each side to approach as nearly as possible the lines
-of the other; and the soldiers mingled freely in the open space
-between the Allies on the one side and entrenched sides of the
-Mamelon in front. Burial parties were formed and the dead and
-wounded of either army borne away by their comrades. Meanwhile the
-officers chatted and exchanged cigars, and the men passed equivocal
-compliments--such as their very limited acquaintance with each
-other’s language would permit; the Russians making kind inquiries
-as to when the Allies would favour them with a visit at Sebastopol;
-and our fellows requesting them not to trouble themselves with
-special preparations, as they intended to make themselves quite at
-home when they did come. The dead and wounded, in every variety
-of attitude, were a frightful spectacle, even to those inured to
-scenes of strife and bloodshed. At length the armistice expired,
-the white flags disappeared from the parapet of the Mamelon, the
-stragglers hastily ran to the protection of their works, and in an
-instant the boom of hostile cannon again thundered on the ear, and
-clouds of white smoke again obscured the scene of the brief truce.”
-
-
-SOVEREIGNTY OF THE SEAS, THE.--“The grand truth embodied in the
-majestic lines--
-
- “Let us be back’d with God, and with the seas,
- Which he hath given for fence impregnable,
- And with their helps alone defend ourselves;
- In them, and in ourselves, our safety lies.”
-
-seems to have been a heartfelt conviction in the breasts of all
-true Englishmen, long centuries before the poet was born.
-
-King John, whom history has generally branded as a very unworthy
-monarch, had some redeeming kingly qualities--not the least of
-which was his determined assertion of England’s sovereignty of
-the seas. He ordered his sea-captains to compel all foreigners
-to salute his flag by “striking” their own national flags, and,
-probably, by also lowering their topsails (as was the practice
-at a subsequent period), in acknowledgment of England’s maritime
-supremacy. If any foreign ship, even though belonging to a friendly
-power, refused compliance, it was to be seized, and adjudged a
-lawful prize. This and other facts lead to the conclusion that John
-only enforced an ancient claim to dominion of the seas, which had
-been asserted and enforced occasionally time out of mind.
-
-Edward III, during his wonderfully long reign of fifty-one years,
-was a most jealous asserter of his sovereignty of the seas, over
-which he claimed a judicial power. Dr. Campbell says that Edward,
-“in his commissions to admirals and inferior offices, frequently
-styles himself sovereign of the English seas, asserting that he
-derived this title from his progenitors, and deducing from them by
-the grounds of his instructions, and of the authority committed
-to them by these delegations. His parliaments, likewise, in the
-preambles of their bills, take notice of this point, and that it
-was a thing notorious to foreign nations that the King of England,
-in right of his crown, was sovereign of the seas. In old “Hakluyt’s
-Voyages” is printed a very curious poem, called “De politia
-conservativa maris,” supposed to have been written in the time of
-Edward IV. It contains a number of separate chapters, each of which
-is full of most valuable and instructive information concerning the
-commerce of England with various countries. The unknown author,
-who must have been a man of very extensive information in his
-day, urges most strongly his countrymen to maintain inviolate
-the sovereignty of the seas, as the only means to preserve their
-prosperity and safety.
-
-In the reign of Charles I, both the French and Dutch began to
-express great jealousy of the British claim to dominion of the
-seas, and Hugo Grotius endeavoured very learnedly to prove that
-Albion had no better natural right than Holland, or any other
-maritime nation, to such a title. Our own equally learned and
-eloquent Selden retorted by his celebrated treatise “Mare Clausum.”
-We need not quote any of his arguments, which are generally
-profound, and, if not always impregnable to impartial criticism,
-are at any rate patriotic and singularly striking and ingenious.
-Suffice it that the general conclusion to which he arrives is
-conveyed in one very impressive sentence: “That they (the English)
-have an hereditary, uninterrupted right to the sovereignty of their
-seas, conveyed to them from their earliest ancestors, in trust for
-their latest posterity.” Mainly with a view to enforce his claim
-to the sovereignty of the narrow seas, did Charles I endeavour to
-provide a naval force sufficient to overawe both French and Dutch,
-and therefore issued his writs for levying “ship-money”--a most
-fatal undertaking as concerned himself; for, as every reader knows,
-this arbitrary measure (however honourable its original motives
-might have been) was the beginning of that deplorable alienation
-between the King and his subjects which resulted in the great civil
-war, and eventually cost the hapless monarch both his crown and his
-life.
-
-In 1635 the King, by his secretary of state, addressed a long and
-deeply interesting letter of instructions to his ambassador at the
-Hague, in order to enable the latter to explain and justify to
-their “High Mightinesses” his naval preparations, and their meaning
-and objects. We will extract a few passages illustrative of our
-theme: “We hold it,” saith King Charles, “a principle not to be
-denied, that the King of Great Britain is a monarch at land and
-sea, to the full extent of his dominions; and that it concerneth
-him as much to maintain his sovereignty in all the British seas, as
-within his three kingdoms; because, without that, these cannot be
-kept safe, nor he preserve his honour, and due respect with other
-nations. But, commanding the seas, he may cause his neighbours, and
-all countries, to stand upon their guard whensoever he thinks fit.
-And this cannot be doubted, that whosoever will encroach on him
-by sea, will do it by land also, when they see their time.... The
-degrees by which his Majesty’s dominion at sea hath of later years
-been first impeached, and then questioned, are as considerable as
-notorious.... But withal, considering that peace must be maintained
-by the arm of power, which only keeps down war by keeping up
-dominion; his Majesty, thus provoked, finds it necessary, for
-his own defence and safety, _to re-assume and keep his ancient
-and undoubted right in the dominion of the seas_, and suffer no
-other prince or state to encroach upon him, thereby assuming to
-themselves or their admirals any sovereign command, but to force
-them to perform due homage to his admirals and ships, and to pay
-acknowledgments as in former times they did.”
-
-The Protector of the Commonwealth proved himself quite as jealous
-of maintaining the power and privileges of the navy, as any of
-his kingly predecessors, and he did what not one of them had ever
-effected, namely, made a treaty with the United Provinces (the Low
-Countries), by which it was solemnly stipulated “that the ships and
-vessels of the United Provinces, as well those fitted for war as
-others, meeting any ships of war of the said Commonwealth in the
-British seas, shall strike their flag and lower their topsail, in
-such manner as had been any time before practised under any former
-government.” This was in 1654. After the restoration, Charles II
-renewed the treaty in 1662, and in 1667, in almost precisely the
-same terms as the above; and at the conclusion of the Dutch war, in
-1673, in the fourth article of the treaty of peace it was expressly
-stipulated that if any “ships or vessels of war, or others, or
-whether single or in fleets, shall meet in any of the seas from
-Cape Finisterre to the middle point of the land of Vanstaten in
-Norway, with any ships or vessels belonging to his Majesty of Great
-Britain, whether those ships be single or in greater numbers,
-if they carry his Majesty of Great Britain’s flag or jack, the
-aforesaid Dutch vessels or ships shall strike their flag and lower
-their topsail, in the same manner, and with as much respect, as
-has at any time and in any place been formerly practised,” &c. The
-reader will bear in mind that the Dutch were at that time the most
-powerful naval power next to Great Britain. The treaty appears
-to have confirmed the dominion of the latter beyond what might
-properly be called the “narrow,” or “British seas,” including, as
-it did, all from the south-west of Portugal to a cape in Norway.
-
-During the reigns of the four Stuart kings, as well as under the
-protectorate of Cromwell, the “Mariners of England,”
-
- “Whose flag has braved, a thousand years,
- The battle and the breeze,”
-
-did indeed jealously “guard our native seas,” and assert and
-maintain their country’s sovereignty thereof. In 1652, two fierce
-actions were fought on this very score “On the 14th of May,
-Commodore Young fell in with a Dutch convoy, escorted by three
-ships of war, from whom he civilly demanded _the usual honours
-to be paid to the English flag_. The Dutch commander positively
-refused to comply, giving as a reason that he had express orders
-from the States-General not to pay those honours which the English
-exacted from their ships in the Channel. Commodore Young, on this
-refusal, fired into the Dutch, which brought on a smart action;
-but at length the Dutch ships struck, and, _after paying the
-compliment_, were allowed to proceed on their voyage.” Only four
-days later, Blake himself and Van Tromp had a far more serious
-encounter on the very same score. Van Tromp and his fleet stood
-towards Dover, off which Blake was lying with fifteen men-of-war,
-and paid no respect whatever to the English flag. Blake instantly
-fired, from his own ship, three unshotted guns at the Dutchman
-as a reminder of his want of respect. Van Tromp retorted with a
-broadside. “A most furious engagement instantly began. At first
-the whole of the Dutch fleet directed their fire at the English
-admiral, but he was soon bravely supported by the rest of the
-ships, and Commodore Bourne joining at the same time with eight
-sail more, obliged the Dutch to bear away, though still superior in
-number, and seek shelter at the back of the Goodwin Sands, after
-having been most severely mauled. The action lasted from four till
-nine at night. One of the Dutch ships was taken, and another sunk.”
-
-In a volume of the “Naval Chronicle,” for 1807, the sovereignty
-of the sea is described as being “an actual and peculiar use
-and enjoyment of the sea itself, and the performance of all the
-functions of a sovereign upon it; such as prescribing rules of
-navigation to those who frequent it, punishing delinquents,
-protecting others, and receiving from all that homage and advantage
-which are due to every lawful sovereign.” The writer proceeds to
-state that the dominion of the sea entitles the “lawful possessors”
-to six several prerogatives. The first two refer to the right of
-fishing, &c., and the residue we will give at length.
-
-“3. To impose tribute and customs on all merchant ships and
-fishermen, fishing and trading within the limits of the sea that is
-subjected to any particular dominions.
-
-“4. The regular execution of justice for protecting the innocent,
-and punishing the guilty for all crimes committed within the extent
-of such sea-dominions.
-
-“5. To grant free passage through any such sea to any number of
-ships of war belonging to any other prince or republic, or to deny
-the same, according to the circumstances and occasion of such
-passage, in the same manner as any prince or state may grant or
-deny free passage to foreign troops through their territories by
-land, even though the prince or state to whom such ships or land
-forces belong _be not only at peace, but in alliance_ with the
-prince or republic of whom passage is desired.
-
-“6. To demand of all foreign ships whatsoever within those seas
-to strike the flag and lower the topsail to any ships of war, or
-others bearing the colours of the sovereign of such seas.”
-
-The latest example of an English commander insisting on a salute to
-his flag, which we have been able to find, occurred in the month of
-June, 1769, when “a French frigate having anchored in the Downs,
-without paying the usual compliment to the British flag, Captain
-John Holwell, who was the senior officer lying there, in the
-‘Apollo’ frigate, sent an officer on board to demand the customary
-salute; the French captain refused to comply, upon which Captain
-Holwell immediately ordered the ‘Hawk,’ sloop of war, to fire two
-shot over her, which being done, the French commander thought
-proper instantly to salute.”
-
-Many of the greatest of our poets have eloquently alluded to the
-sea-sovereignty of their native island, ramparted with tidal
-waters. Who does not remember the truly magnificent lines:--
-
- “This precious stone set in the silver sea,
- Which serves it as the office of a wall,
- Or as a moat defensive to a house
- Against the envy of less happy lands!
-
- * * * * *
-
- England, bound in with the triumphant sea,
- Whose rocky shore beats back the envious siege
- Of watery Neptune.”
-
-The popular strain of Thomson’s “Rule Britannia” gives an emphatic
-assertion of Britain’s naval greatness. No poet, however, has so
-celebrated the floating bulwarks of Britain, and the “Hearts of
-Oak” who man them, as Campbell. His marvellously spirit-stirring
-lyric, “Ye Mariners of England,”[3] has no rival in its intense
-patriotism.
-
-In conclusion, suffice it that for a considerable time the claim of
-England’s sovereignty of the seas, so far as it includes special
-homage to our flag, or anything resembling a judicial supremacy
-over the ships of other nations, within the limits of the narrow
-(or any other) seas, has been a dead letter. But we can well afford
-to dispense with what was at best a somewhat questionable sort of
-shadowy honour, for we know that we yet retain the substantial
-maritime supremacy which alone enables us to rank as the foremost
-nation of the world--
-
- “Mistress, at least while Providence shall please,
- And trident-bearing Queen of the wide seas!”
-
-to quote the noble lines of the patriotic and Christian poet,
-Cowper. Well will it be for us to constantly bear in mind the vital
-truth that the same great poet proclaimed:--
-
- “They trust in navies, and their navies fail:
- God’s curse can cast away ten thousand sail!”
-
-
-SPURS, BATTLE OF THE.--Henry VIII of England landed in France,
-July, 1513, and soon gathered an army of 30,000 men. He was shortly
-after joined by the Emperor Maximilian, with a well-appointed
-army of horse and foot. They laid siege to Terouenne, which they
-invested with an army of 50,000 men; and the Duc de Longueville
-advancing to its relief was signally defeated. The French were
-everywhere routed in the battle. This battle of Guinnegate was
-called the Battle of the Spurs, because the French made more use of
-their spurs than their swords. Fought 18th, August, 1513.
-
-
-STANDARD, BATTLE OF THE.--Fought A.D. 1135. The following graphic
-account gives the reason why the engagement was so called:
-
-“King David at once marched into England to strike for the rights
-of his niece. Twice he ravaged Northumberland with merciless
-barbarity. In a third invasion he penetrated into Yorkshire.
-Stephen was in the south, hard pressed by the partisans of Matilda,
-and was obliged to leave the northern part of his kingdom to look
-to its own defence. There was a man in those parts who knew what to
-do. This was the aged Thurstan, Archbishop of York. He assembled
-the Barons at York, held a solemn fast, gave them absolution and
-his blessing, and delivered into their hands his crozier and the
-holy banner of St. Peter of York. He ordered processions of the
-priests with crosses, banners, and relics in every parish. He
-enjoined all men capable of bearing arms to rise “for the defence
-of the Church against the barbarians.” To all who should die in
-battle he promised salvation. He sent forth the priests to lead
-their parishioners to battle. Sickness alone prevented him, aged as
-he was, from putting on his own coat of mail.
-
-The English standard was erected on Cutton Moor, near
-Northallerton. The mast of a ship was set up on a high four-wheeled
-car. At the top of the mast was a large cross; in the centre of
-the cross a silver box containing the consecrated wafer. Below the
-cross floated the banners of three Saints, St. Peter of York, St.
-John of Beverley, and St. Wilfred of Ripon. The idea of this car
-seems to have been taken from the great standard car which was used
-by the people of Lombardy.
-
-The Scottish army was 26,000 strong. Men from the Lowlands of
-Scotland were there armed with cuirasses and long spears; archers
-from the southland “dales,” or valleys of the rivers that run into
-Tweed and Solway; troopers from the Border mountains, who rode
-small, but strong and active horses; the fierce men of Galloway,
-who carried long pikes and wore no defensive armour; clansmen from
-the Highlands with the small round target and claymore; men of the
-isles, who wielded a long-handled battle-axe. A strong body of
-knights and men-at-arms, sheathed in complete mail, rode around the
-King.
-
-The English placed their standard in their centre. Their steel-clad
-knights dismounted, sent their horses to the rear, and formed in a
-compact mass round the standard car. The Scots came on, shouting
-their war cry, “Alban! Alban!” Their fierce charge drove in the
-English infantry, but they could not break through the dense array
-of mailed warriors who surrounded the standard, and received them
-on the points of their levelled lances. The long pikes of the
-Galloway men were shivered against the strong plate-armour of the
-knights. In vain the Highlanders tried to hew their way with the
-claymore into the mass of iron-cased chivalry. The archers of
-Yorkshire, Nottingham, and Lincolnshire, with their great bows, and
-arrows of three feet in length, ranged themselves on both flanks of
-the Scots, and kept up from either side a constant flight of their
-deadly shafts. On many another bloody day the Scots were destined
-to know right cruelly the fatal force of the cloth-yard arrow!
-
-For full two hours the attack was maintained. At length the Scots
-began to recoil. An English soldier, cutting off the head of one
-of the slain, raised it aloft, and cried, “The head of the King
-of Scots.” The report that their King was killed flew through the
-Scottish army and filled them with dismay. They broke and fled.
-The King, tearing off his helmet to show his face, kept together
-a small body of troops around himself, and was able in some degree
-to check the pursuit. On that bloody moor he left 12,000 dead.”
-
-
-STIRLING, BATTLE OF.--Fought, A.D. 1297.
-
-“Wallace was engaged in the siege of Dundee when tidings were
-brought him that an army, fifty thousand strong, was on the march
-from England to put the Scots down. They were holding their
-course towards Stirling. Wallace immediately left Dundee and
-advanced to meet them. If he could reach the river Forth before
-the English, he meant to make them pay for their passage. He
-marched swiftly, talking over and arranging his plans with the
-good Sir John the Graham as they rode. When they reached the hill
-above Cambuskenneth, two miles east from Stirling, no English
-were in sight. It was not long, however, till their banners were
-seen approaching. The chief of their host was the Earl of Surrey.
-But he was old and in broken health, and the man who really took
-the command was Sir Hugh Cressingham, Edward’s Lord Treasurer of
-Scotland. Cressingham was a priest, haughty and insolent, who loved
-the corslet better than the cassock.
-
-The English, three times more in number than the Scots, advanced
-and took up their position on the banks of the Forth. Wallace
-occupied the high ground to the north. The river, spanned by a long
-and narrow wooden bridge, flowed between the armies. The towers
-of Cambuskenneth Abbey threw their shadows slant and long as the
-September sun sank behind Ben Lomond. The glow of the watchfires
-lighted up the deep and sluggish waters of the Forth, as the two
-armies lay under the silent night, waiting for day, and what
-fortune God might send.
-
-Morning came, but Surrey was in no haste to begin. The bridge was
-so narrow that only two men-at-arms could pass it abreast. The
-attempt to cross a deep river in the face of an enemy, by one
-narrow passage, was so dangerous that the English general hesitated
-to risk it. But the rash and scornful churchman, Cressingham, would
-try it. He insisted on instantly attacking the Scots with the
-division under his command. Surrey gave way to the taunts of the
-headstrong priest, and ordered the attack.
-
-A brave knight, Sir Marmaduke de Twenge, led the advance at the
-head of a squadron of cavalry, heavily sheathed in steel, both
-horse and man. Cressingham with his division followed. The Scots,
-posted on high ground, kept their ranks and allowed the English
-to defile over the bridge. Wait! they know what they are about.
-Twenge has got his division of heavy cavalry over to the opposite
-shore. Cressingham’s division are eagerly crowding along the
-bridge. Twenge forms his cavalry and leads them up the hill against
-the main body of the Scots. Nearly half the English army has
-crossed without interruption. But see that strong force of Scottish
-spearmen who, fetching a circuit, and keeping near the river, make
-swiftly for the head of the bridge. They dash across the line of
-English as it issues from the bridge, and cut it in two. Forming
-in a solid mass bristling with spears, they occupy the bridgehead,
-and bar the bridge against all passage. Surrey looks on over the
-water. In three minutes the old General shall see a sight to make
-his white hair stand up!
-
-The moment Wallace has waited for has come. Up then, and at them!
-The Scots charge furiously down the hill on Twenge and his cavalry,
-and hurl them back in disorder on the squadrons of Cressingham,
-great part of which have not had time to form since they passed
-the bridge. The English are mingled, horse and foot, in desperate
-confusion. Hundreds of them go down before the fierce charge of
-the Scots. The long spears plough the thick, disordered mass. Vast
-numbers are driven back into the river. The deep, still-flowing
-river swallows horse and man with splash and gurgle. Multitudes
-madly plunge in, vainly hoping to struggle to the other side,
-and the water is lashed into a foam by the drowning struggles of
-thousands of men and horses. This is the sight which old Surrey
-sees, sitting his warhorse on the safe side of the Forth.
-
-He did what he could to send help to his reeling squadrons. The
-royal standard of England, with its three gold leopards set on red,
-was advanced to the cry of “For God and St. George!” A strong body
-of knights attended it. Then came Surrey’s own banner, of chequered
-blue and gold, followed by a numerous force of his vassals. It was
-in vain. They forced their way over the bridge, but finding no room
-to form, they only served to increase the confusion and swell the
-slaughter made by the Scottish spearmen. Of all who crossed that
-fatal bridge there returned but three. Sir Marmaduke Twenge with
-his nephew and armour-bearer, spurring their steads, rushed into
-the midst of the Scots at the bridgehead, cut their way through,
-and escaped unharmed. The haughty churchman, Cressingham, lay dead
-on the field. A Scottish spear had pierced his mail like silk, and
-run him through the body, till the point stood out on the other
-side. It was said that Wallace’s own hand drove that spear home.
-
-Surrey saw that the safe side of the Forth was safe no longer, for
-the Scots were preparing to cross. He turned his horse, and fled
-without drawing bridle to Berwick. His troops broke and scattered
-in all directions. The face of the country was covered with a
-confused mass of terrified fugitives, who threw away their arms
-and standards as they fled. Keen and fierce the Scots pressed the
-chase, and their thirsty swords drank much blood. The powerful host
-which a few hours before had marshalled so proudly beside Stirling
-Bridge was beaten small and scattered like chaff.”
-
-
-STONY CREEK.--_Canada._--Fought, June 5th, 1813. Between the
-Canadians and Americans, the latter commanded by Generals Chandler
-and Winder. The Americans had advanced as far as Stony Creek with
-the intention of dislodging him, when Lieutenant Colonel Harvey,
-now Sir John Harvey, conceived and executed a plan of surprising
-them in the night. Before day he entered their camp, consisting
-of 3000 men, with only 704 soldiers, killed and wounded a great
-number, and captured two Generals and 120 prisoners. This affair
-so disconcerted the Americans that they returned hastily to Fort
-George, leaving the communication with part of Niagara frontier
-open to the British, and perhaps eventually saving the whole of the
-Province.
-
-
-STRATTON HILL, BATTLE OF.--Between the Royal army and the forces
-of the Parliament, headed by the Poet Waller. The Parliamentarians
-lost the battle, with numbers of killed and wounded, and Waller
-was obliged to flee to Bristol. Fought, May 16th, 1643. Waller was
-nephew to the great Hampden.
-
-
-
-
-T.
-
-
-TALAVERA.--Fought, July, 27th and 28th, 1809, between the
-English and French and Spanish armies.--“After the campaigns of
-Marlborough, the English army acquired little distinction in the
-field for more than a century. The battles of Dettingen (1743),
-Fontenoy (1745), and Minden (1759), were affairs in which England
-was involved by her Hanoverian alliances, and in which small
-bodies of English troops were engaged, with little glory, and
-with but trifling results. It was not until the next century had
-opened, and the talent and ambition of one of the world’s greatest
-conquerors had almost reached the climax of universal dominion,
-that England, for her own preservation, and for the rescue of the
-Spanish peninsula from his grasp, was compelled to send an army
-into Spain; which, under the guidance of one of the most consummate
-Generals that the world has ever seen, chased the armies of France
-over province after province, from Lisbon to Biscay, and ultimately
-drove them over the Pyrenees.
-
-The peninsular campaigns of the Duke of Wellington commenced
-with the brilliant affair of Vimiera; but we cannot dignify that
-engagement with the name of a great battle, in which the forces
-on either side, did not exceed thirteen or fourteen thousand men;
-and the fruits of which were snatched from the victor’s hands by
-the sudden arrival of a superior in command. It was on Sir Arthur
-Wellesley’s second appearance in Portugal, in the year following
-the battle of Vimiera, that the contest really began; and the three
-great battles which distinguished its successive stages, were those
-of Talavera, Salamanca, and Vittoria. The first exhibited the
-power of Napoleon in Spain fairly grappled with; the second showed
-that power defeated; the third closed the struggle by its absolute
-downfall and expulsion.
-
-After his supercession in 1808, on the very day of Vimiera, Sir
-Arthur Wellesley had returned to England; but, happily, the
-indignation felt by the English people at the convention of Cintra,
-by which the results of that victory had been thrown away, warned
-the British government that it was needful in times of great
-emergency to depart from the rule of _seniority_, and to select
-a Commander mainly on the ground of known and proved talent and
-ability. Hence the victor of Vimiera was again called into the
-field, and, on the 22nd of April, 1809, Sir Arthur Wellesley a
-second time landed in Portugal.
-
-“The unexpected arrival of a victorious Commander,” says Sir W.
-Napier, “created the greatest enthusiasm:--the Regency nominated
-him Captain-General; the people hailed his presence, and an
-undefined but powerful sentiment that something great would be
-achieved, pervaded the public mind.” Still, somewhat surprising,
-and rather overweening, was this confidence; for Sir Arthur
-Wellesley commanded only 26,000 English and German troops;--the
-Spanish and Portuguese armies were of little worth, and the French
-Emperor had at that moment in the Peninsula, a force of _two
-hundred and seventy thousand men_.
-
-Sir Arthur lost no time in bringing his troops into action. On
-the 12th of May he crossed the Douro, in the face of the French
-army, and carried Oporto. Soult had entered it two months before
-with 25,500 men; he quitted it with 19,500, having lost by the
-sword and by sickness, by assassination and capture, 6,000 good
-soldiers. He had marched into Portugal with 58 pieces of artillery,
-he quitted it without a gun! Yet Soult was perhaps the greatest of
-all Napoleon’s Generals. Sir Arthur’s next object was, and indeed
-it seemed a necessity of his position, to seek the French armies,
-and to fight them with the least possible delay. The demand of the
-English, and of the Portuguese also, was to be led against the foe.
-To raise the spirit of the people of Spain and Portugal, and also
-of the governments of both countries, it was necessary to show that
-there was an army and a General in the field, and that neither the
-army nor the General were afraid of meeting the French.
-
-At this period the Spanish Generals and the Spanish Ministers had
-not fully proved their entire inefficiency. They still boasted of
-their power to “drive the French out of Madrid, and out of Spain;”
-and if the English General had refused to co-operate with them, he
-would have been charged with cowardice or with treachery. On the
-27th of June, 1809, therefore, Sir Arthur, at the head of 22,000
-British troops, and with 30 guns, entered Spain, and began his
-march on Madrid. The Spanish General Cuesta, with an army of 39,000
-men, was to co-operate with him.
-
-This co-operation, however, proved to be nothing but hindrance
-and a source of vexation. The two armies marched forward, Sir
-Arthur grieved, day by day, by some failure of supplies, means of
-transport, or other necessary aid. On one occasion a delay of two
-whole days was created by the Spanish General’s obstinacy. On the
-24th of July Sir Arthur wrote to Lord Castlereagh, “I am not able
-to follow the enemy as I could wish; having found it impossible to
-procure _even one mule, or a cart in Spain_; ... My troops have
-been in actual want of provisions for the last two days.” Meanwhile
-the Spanish Government took care of its own troops, and left the
-English to shift for themselves. “The French,” writes Sir Arthur,
-“can take what they like and will take it--while we cannot even buy
-common necessaries.”
-
-Joseph, the nominal King of Spain, was apprized of the approach
-of the English and Spanish forces, and marched out of Madrid with
-25,000 French veterans, commanded by Marshals Jourdan and Victor,
-to meet them. The two armies came into the neighbourhood of each
-other about the 22nd of July, 1809. Sir Arthur and Cuesta had
-agreed, on that day, that Victor’s corps, which had been found
-detached from the rest of the French army, should be attacked on
-the following day. But when the English troops were getting under
-arms the next morning, the old Spaniard was not up, and finally,
-he objected to any attack that day. The fact was, that the French
-General had contrived to corrupt some of Cuesta’s staff, and thus
-difficulties were constantly thrown in the way.
-
-Victor, whose discomfiture would have been easy on the 23rd, had
-now escaped, and had joined Sebastiani and King Joseph. The whole
-French army now amounted to 56,122 men, and, confident in their
-strength, the Commanders resolved at once to march upon Talavera,
-and to attack the Anglo-Spanish army.
-
-Two or three minor engagements preceded the general battle. On
-the 27th, in the afternoon, Victor’s advanced guards came upon
-the British outposts, and immediately attacked them. The English
-troops, some of whom then saw fire for the first time, were thrown
-into some confusion, and Sir Arthur himself narrowly escaped being
-made prisoner. A body of 10,000 Spanish which was posted near, took
-such an alarm, that they broke and fled, giving out that “all was
-lost.” Sir Arthur, with some difficulty, restored order, brought up
-fresh troops, and the French were finally driven off. Yet such was
-the effect of this panic among the Spanish troops, that they went
-into action the next day with 6000 men less than their previous
-number.
-
-That same night Victor, encouraged by the effect of the surprise
-thus narrated, made an attack after sunset on a hill which was
-the key of the English position. For a moment the French attack
-succeeded, but General Hill brought up the 48th regiment, and at
-last expelled the French from the ground which they had gained. The
-British lost 800 men, and the French 1000, in this affair, which
-was not ended until long after dark.
-
-As soon, however, as the day dawned, the French renewed the attack.
-
-Once more they ascended the hill, and struggled hand to hand with
-the English infantry. General Hill was wounded, and many officers
-fell around him. But the French never gained the upper hand. After
-a severe contest, they fell back; and the English pressed down
-the hill, after them, until the whole of the attacking column got
-into confusion, and finally rushed down the declivity in headlong
-rout. This single attack, which lasted only forty minutes, cost the
-French nearly 1500 men.
-
-A consultation was now held in the French camp, as to the
-expediency of immediately risking a general battle. Jourdan
-strongly urged the taking up a position behind the Alberche, and
-there awaiting the approach of Soult, who, with another army, was
-expected to menace the English on their flank and rear in a few
-days. Victor was more confident, promising to carry the hill on the
-English left, if Sebastiani would attack the centre and right at
-the same moment. He added, “If such a combination can fail, it is
-time that we gave up war.”
-
-King Joseph hesitated; when, at that moment, a despatch arrived
-from Soult, stating that he could not reach the neighbourhood in
-less than a week. This decided the matter, and orders were given to
-attack.
-
-Meanwhile, many discouragements prevailed in the English camp.
-Provisions were scarce, and the men suffered from hunger. Among the
-Spaniards all was confusion and distrust. Such alarm was created
-by Cuesta’s conduct, that in the very midst of the battle, his own
-countryman, the Duke d’Albuquerque, sent one of his staff to warn
-Sir Arthur Wellesley that “Cuesta was betraying him.” Sir Arthur
-received the message while seated on the hill, intently watching
-the movements of the French. He listened to it without even turning
-his head; and coolly replied to the officer who brought him the
-message, “Very well, you may return to your brigade;” and then
-quietly resumed his survey.
-
-But now the battle began. The allied army was posted near Talavera,
-having that city and the Tagus on its right, a hill already
-referred to on its left, a sort of ravine and water-course in
-front; and looking towards the Alberche,--a river which flows into
-the Tagus,--in front of which lay the whole French army. “The
-British and Germans,” says Sir W. Napier, “were somewhat above
-19,000 sabres and bayonets, with 30 guns. The Spaniards were 33
-or 34,000 men, with 70 guns. The French advanced with 80 guns,
-and nearly 50,000 men. But what a difference in the quality of
-the troops! The French were all hardy veterans; while the genuine
-soldiers of the allied army did not exceed 19,000.”
-
-Before one o’clock the French soldiers were seen to gather round
-their eagles, and the rolling of drums was heard along the whole
-line. Half an hour later, King Joseph’s guards, the reserve, and
-the fourth corps were descried in march; and soon the table-land
-and the height on the French right were covered with dark and
-lowering masses. Victor gave the signal for battle, and 80 pieces
-of artillery sent a tempest of bullets before the light troops,
-who came on with all the swiftness and violence of a hailstorm,
-followed by the broad black columns in all the majesty of war.
-
-“Sir Arthur Wellesley from the hill viewed the whole field of
-battle. He saw the fourth corps rushing forwards with the usual
-impetuosity of French soldiers and falling upon Campbell’s
-division, which held the right centre, with infinite fury; yet
-that General, assisted by Mackenzie’s brigade and two Spanish
-battalions, withstood their utmost efforts. The British regiment
-met the advancing columns with loud shouts, broke their front,
-lapped their flanks with fire, and at last pushed them back with
-a terrible carnage. Ten guns were taken; but as Campbell feared
-to break his line by a pursuit, the French rallied, and made head
-for another attack. Then the British artillery played vehemently
-upon them; a Spanish regiment of cavalry charged their flank; they
-retired in disorder, and the victory was secured in that quarter.”
-
-This was on the right of the English line. On the left, two
-different columns of French were seen advancing towards the hill,
-the key of the position. Sir Arthur sent forward an English
-regiment of cavalry, and the 1st German hussars, to charge the
-heads of these columns. A hollow cleft, not before perceived,
-stopped the Germans; some of the English leaped it, in twos and
-threes, and in desultory manner fell upon the French infantry. Some
-Polish lancers charged them while thus disordered, and the regiment
-was broken, and lost 207 officers and men.
-
-Meanwhile, one of the French attacking columns was actually
-contending for possession of the hill; and at the same time a
-powerful mass of infantry, crossing the ravine, pressed hard upon
-the English centre. The French attack was at first driven back;
-then the English Guards, in the excitement of success, rushed after
-them with reckless ardour. The French reserves charged them; the
-Guards, disordered, were broken; the German Legion, adjoining, got
-into confusion, and for the moment the English centre seemed to be
-shaken and in disorder.
-
-But when the Guards had made their rash charge, Sir Arthur,
-foreseeing the issue of it, had ordered up the 48th regiment; and
-had also sent for Cotton’s light-horse. The French came on, pushing
-before them the disordered foot-guards. Sir Arthur charged them
-with the 48th, brought them to a stand; the Guards and the German
-Legion speedily recovered their ranks; and at last this terrible
-attack was defeated, and the French were pushed back over the
-ravine, carrying with them their general, Lapisse, mortally wounded.
-
-Meanwhile their attack on the hill had failed; while on the Spanish
-part of the army, safely posted behind redoubts in Talavera, they
-had made no assault. And so closed the battle of Talavera. Both
-sides remained in the position of the morning when night closed
-upon them. But at day-break the French began their retreat; and
-before six o’clock their whole army was safely encamped behind the
-Alberche. That day, too, Sir Robert Crawford joined the British
-army, bringing with him the 43rd, the 52nd, and the 95th regiments;
-which troops immediately relieved the rest of the army of the
-outpost-duty.
-
-The loss of the English in this terrible contest was 6268;
-including in the reckoning all the attacks, both on the 27th and
-the 28th. The loss of the French was 8794, according to their own
-returns. They lost also 17 guns, some tumbrils, and several hundred
-prisoners.
-
-Sir Arthur Wellesley, as we have said, was obliged to fight this
-battle. Had he refused to advance, the Spanish government and
-people would have deemed his presence useless, and would have
-upbraided him with want of courage. And having advanced, the French
-Marshals very naturally looked upon him as their prey; and attacked
-him, deeming his defeat certain.
-
-The reputation gained by the victory was obviously that arising
-from a fearless meeting of the attack of a fine French army of
-50,000 men, led by two celebrated Generals, with an Anglo-German
-force of 19,000, encumbered with the merely nominal aid of
-Spaniards. A French critic, General Jomini, thus speaks of the
-moral result: “This battle at once restored the reputation of the
-British army, which, during a century past, had declined. It was
-now ascertained, that the English infantry could dispute the palm
-with the best in Europe.”
-
-Sir Arthur, too, had now seen, and his troops had seen and proved,
-the value of the Spanish army; and all illusion on that subject had
-ceased. Their artillery was well trained, and sometimes rendered
-good service; but their cavalry was wretched; and their infantry
-was totally unable to perform evolutions under fire without falling
-into confusion. The result therefore naturally was, that the
-English General, retiring into Portugal, commenced plans to be
-carried out by English and Portuguese forces, in which the Spanish
-armies bore little or no part.
-
-The merits of the English Commander were promptly recognized by his
-own government. He was immediately created Baron Douro and Viscount
-Wellington of Talavera, and of Wellington in the county of Somerset.
-
-There is a remarkable similarity, in all its chief features,
-between this, the first of Wellington’s great battles, and
-Waterloo, his last. Doubling the numbers on both sides, the
-proportions were nearly the same. The French at Talavera had more
-than 50,000 excellent troops,--at Waterloo they had almost twice
-as many. The great English General had about 19,000 good troops
-at Talavera, with the nominal aid of 30,000 worthless ones. At
-Waterloo, he had about 33 or 34,000 good troops, with the addition
-of about as many unreliable ones. In both cases alike, the French,
-confident of success, made the attack; and in both cases they were
-foiled and driven back by a British force of less than half their
-number. The one material difference between the two conflicts lay
-in this,--that in the second great battle, just as Napoleon’s last
-attack had been repelled, a force of 50,000 Prussians broke in upon
-the retreating French, and utterly dispersed and annihilated their
-already-beaten army.”
-
-
-TARA, BATTLE OF.--This was one of the earliest battles in Ireland
-in ’98. Fought between the Royal forces, only 400 strong, and
-the insurgent Irish, amounting to 4000, yet they were completely
-beaten, and 500 slain, May 26th, 1798.
-
-
-TARBES, BATTLE OF.--Fought, March 20th, 1814, between the English
-and French. Marshal Soult was forced from his position, with great
-loss, by the Duke of Wellington. This engagement shortly preceded
-that of Toulouse.
-
-
-TARENTUM WAR.--One of the most celebrated wars in Roman History.
-Undertaken by the inhabitants of Tarentum, with the aid of the
-renowned Pyrrhus, King of Epirus, which resulted, after many
-battles, in their subjugation by the arms of the Romans.
-
-
-TCHERNAYA, BATTLE OF.--One of the brilliant engagements during
-the Crimean war. Fought, August 10th, 1854. The enemy, in dense
-columns of infantry and cavalry, supported by 160 guns, advanced
-from the heights towards the river, here crossed by two bridges,
-the larger one being known as the Traktir Bridge. They carried
-pontoons, and appliances for crossing the stream; and there were
-also several places in which the Tchernaya was fordable. Favoured
-by the dim light of early morning, they succeeded in throwing
-several battalions unobserved across the river, and attacking the
-division led by General Camon, on the extreme left of the French
-line. Though taken by surprise, the French made a brave resistance,
-and the 3rd Zouaves and 50th of the line assisted by the 82nd,
-which attacked them in the flank, succeeded in repelling them with
-considerable loss.
-
-In their second attempt the Russians were somewhat more successful.
-They advanced across the Traktir Bridge. The _tête du pont_ was
-guarded by the 20th regiment of the line, who were too weak to
-offer any effective resistance. They bravely disputed the ground,
-and lost twelve officers before they would give way. The dense
-masses of the Russians now thronged across the bridge. In their
-train followed three guns, which were promptly got into position to
-sweep the road along which the French would advance. The infantry
-swarmed across the bridge, or waded breast high through the stream.
-Quickly forming into heavy columns, they advanced in gallant style
-up the hill in front of the French centre. General Herbillon was
-fully prepared for the attack, and the enemy was promptly met, and,
-after a very animated contest, driven back across the bridge by the
-2nd Zouaves, the 97th of the line, and one battalion of the foot
-Chasseurs. The slaughter was terrific; the French and Sardinian
-guns playing on the retreating mass, and the French pursuing them
-in a vigorous bayonet charge.
-
-The right of the French position occupied some low hillocks,
-defended in front by the river, and by the aqueduct used to supply
-the Turkish army with water. The Sardinian army was encamped on
-their right and had manned a very effective battery. General
-Faucheux was the French commander at this portion of the line, and
-a considerable body of artillery was under his command. While the
-Russians were attacking the French centre, as already related,
-another column of enormous strength advanced across the river and
-aqueduct, and attacked the French right. The artillery and the
-rifles of the Sardinians made dreadful havoc in their ranks; but
-the Russian officers cheered on their men to the advance, and, in
-defiance of dreadful loss, charged gallantly the French position.
-The Zouaves, who held the brow of the hill, retired slowly to the
-main body, which was partially hidden by the nature of the ground,
-and the enemy came on with loud cheers, imagining an easy conquest.
-Then the French suddenly formed up into line, and charging forward
-with an impetuosity that defies description, literally crushed
-the enemy in their tremendous rush, and hurled them down the
-hill. Many rolled into the aqueduct and were suffocated; others
-had their limbs broken by the fall; and the main hotly turned and
-fled precipitately towards the bridge. As the broken and flying
-mass poured onwards, the batteries opened upon them, and a scene
-of fearful massacre ensued. The bridge was choked with the troops
-endeavouring to pass across, and the river was crowded with the
-fugitives. Among them poured the iron hail of the Sardinian
-batteries; and when they struggled into the open ground, hundreds
-more fell mortally wounded. Never was there a more complete or
-ignominious defeat.
-
-The remnants of the infantry withdrew behind the cavalry, and
-retreated to the hill; the Russian artillery covering them by
-a heavy fire against the French batteries. Prince Gortschakoff
-manœuvred his cavalry for some time in sight of the Allies, hoping
-apparently to draw our dragoons in pursuit among the hills, where
-a second Balaklava massacre would probably have awaited them.
-General Scarlett, commanding the English cavalry division, eagerly
-proffered the services of his splendid warriors, but General
-Pelissier wisely declined to hazard such valuable troops in such a
-perilous adventure.
-
-Towards evening the Russians drew off, leaving about 3000 dead upon
-the field, and their wounded could not have amounted to less than
-5000. The French carried off in their ambulances, 1626 soldiers
-and thirty-three officers, besides 400 prisoners. Among the dead
-was General Read, a very distinguished Russian officer, upon whose
-person was found a plan of the attack. The French lost 9 officers
-killed and 61 wounded, 172 men killed and 1163 wounded, besides 146
-missing. The gallant Sardinians, besides the death of General the
-Count of Montevecchio, sustained a loss of 250 men. The Turkish
-battalions arrived too late to take any part in the affair.
-
-
-TEWKESBURY, BATTLE OF.--Fought, May 4th, 1471. The very day of the
-battle of Barnet, Queen Margaret landed at Plymouth. At the news
-of the defeat of Warwick she sank to the ground in despair; but
-the arguments of her friends soon awakened her natural courage,
-and she advanced to Bath. It was there resolved to try to effect
-a junction with the Earl of Pembroke, who had a large force in
-Wales; but the people of Gloucester had secured the only bridge
-over the Severn, and at Tewkesbury it was found that Edward was at
-hand with a more numerous army. The Lancastrian leaders then drew
-up their forces without the town; the Yorkists, led by the King’s
-brother, the Duke of Gloucester, fell on them furiously, and after
-a short but gallant resistance, the Lancastrians were totally
-routed. The Queen and Prince were made prisoners; the latter being
-led into the royal tent, Edward demanded of him what had brought
-him to England. “To recover my father’s kingdom and heritage, from
-his father and grandfather to him, and from him to me lineally
-descended,” replied the undaunted youth. Edward struck him in the
-face with his gauntlet, and Gloucester, Clarence, and some others
-despatched him with their swords. Edward then set out for London,
-and on the evening of his arrival king Henry died in the Tower, of
-grief as was given out, but there can be little doubt that he was
-murdered by order of Edward. The guilt of the deed, though without
-any proof, was afterwards laid on the Duke of Gloucester.
-
-
-TEXEL, BATTLES OF THE.--The vicinity of the Texel has been the
-scene of some remarkable engagements, among others a battle of
-three days was fought here, between the English, under Blake and
-Monk, and the Dutch, under Van Tromp and DeRuyter, when the Dutch
-were signally defeated and Van Tromp killed, 1653. Again Ruyter
-was defeated here, August 11th, 1673. The Dutch fleet gloriously
-vanquished by Lord Duncan, October 11th, 1797. Twelve ships of war
-and thirteen Indiamen of the Dutch surrendered to Admiral Mitchell,
-who took them without firing a shot, August 28th, 1799.
-
-
-THERMOPYLÆ, BATTLE OF.--Leonidas, at the head of 300 Spartans at
-this defile withstood the whole army of the Persians, until of
-the 300 heroes who surrounded him, all were slain but one man;
-20,000 Persians perished by the hands of the Spartans, August 7th,
-480 B.C. This battle was one of the most celebrated events in the
-annals of Greece, and effectually, at last, gave a check to the
-invading Persian army. The following is from Rollin’s Ancient
-History.
-
-[4]“Thermopylæ is a strait or narrow pass of mount Œta, between
-Thessaly and Phocis, but 25 feet broad, which therefore might be
-defended by a small number of forces, and which was the only way
-through which the Persian land army could enter Achaia, and advance
-to besiege Athens. This was the place where the Grecian army
-thought fit to wait for the enemy: the person who commanded it was
-Leonidas, one of the two kings of Sparta.
-
-[5]Xerxes in the meantime was upon his march: he had given orders
-for his fleet to follow him along the coast, and to regulate their
-motions according to those of the land army. Wherever he came, he
-found provisions and refreshments prepared beforehand, pursuant to
-the orders he had sent; and every city he arrived at gave him a
-magnificent entertainment, which cost immense sums of money. The
-vast expense of those treats gave occasion to a witty saying of a
-certain citizen of Abdera in Thrace, who, when the king was gone,
-said, they ought to thank the gods, that he ate but one meal a-day.
-
-[6]In the same country of Thrace, there was a prince who showed an
-extraordinary greatness of soul on this occasion: it was the king
-of the Bisaltes. Whilst all the other princes ran into servitude,
-and basely submitted to Xerxes, he bravely refused to receive
-his yoke, or to obey him. Not being in a condition to resist him
-with open force, he retired to the top of the mountain Rhodope,
-into an inaccessible place, and forbade all his sons, who were
-six in number, to carry arms against Greece. But they, either out
-of fear of Xerxes, or out of a curiosity to see so important a
-war, followed the Persians, in contradiction to their father’s
-injunction. On their return home, their father, to punish so direct
-a disobedience, condemned all his sons to have their eyes put out.
-Xerxes continued his march through Thrace, Macedonia, and Thessaly,
-every thing giving way before him till he came to the Strait of
-Thermopylæ.
-
-[7]One cannot see, without the utmost astonishment, with what an
-handful of troops the Grecians opposed the innumerable army of
-Xerxes. We find a particular account of their number in Pausanias.
-All their forces joined together, amounted only to 11,200 men, of
-which number 4000 only were employed at Thermopylæ to defend the
-pass. But these soldiers, adds the historian, were all determined
-to a man either to conquer or die. And what is it that an army of
-such resolution is not able to effect?
-
-[8]When Xerxes advanced near the Straits of Thermopylæ, he was
-strangely surprised to find that they were prepared to dispute
-his passage. He had always flattered himself, that on the first
-hearing of his arrival, the Grecians would betake themselves to
-flight: nor could he ever be persuaded to believe, what Demaratus
-had told him from the beginning of his project, that at the first
-pass he came to, he would find his whole army stopped by an handful
-of men. He sent out a spy before him to take a view of the enemy.
-The spy brought him word, that he found the Lacedæmonians out of
-their intrenchments, and that they were diverting themselves with
-military exercises, and combing their hair: this was the Spartan
-manner of preparing themselves for battle.
-
-Xerxes, still entertaining some hopes of their flight, waited
-four days on purpose to give them time to retreat;[9] and in this
-interval of time he used his utmost endeavours to gain Leonidas, by
-making him magnificent promises, and assuring him, that he would
-make him master of all Greece if he would come over to his party.
-Leonidas rejected his proposal with scorn and indignation. Xerxes,
-having afterwards written to him to deliver up his arms, Leonidas,
-in a style and spirit truly laconical, answered him in these
-words,[10] “Come and take them.” Nothing remained but to prepare
-themselves to engage the Lacedæmonians. Xerxes first commanded his
-Median forces to march against them, with orders to take them all
-alive, and bring them to him. These Medes were not able to stand
-the charge of the Grecians; and being shamefully put to flight,
-they showed, says Herodotus,[11] that Xerxes had a great many men,
-and but few soldiers. The next that were sent to face the Spartans,
-were those Persians called the Immortal Band, which consisted of
-10,000 men, and were the best troops in the whole army. But these
-had no better success than the former.
-
-Xerxes, out of all hopes of being able to force his way through
-troops so determined to conquer or die, was extremely perplexed,
-and could not tell what resolution to take, when an inhabitant of
-the country came to him, and discovered a secret[12] path to the
-top of an eminence, which overlooked and commanded the Spartan
-forces. He quickly dispatched a detachment thither; which, marching
-all night, arrived there at the break of day, and possessed
-themselves of that advantageous post.
-
-The Greeks were soon apprized of this misfortune; and Leonidas,
-seeing that it was now impossible to repulse the enemy, obliged
-the rest of the allies to retire, but staid himself with his
-300 Lacedæmonians, all resolved to die with their leader; who
-being told by the oracle, that either Lacedæmon or her king must
-necessarily perish, determined, without the least difficulty or
-hesitation, to sacrifice himself for his country. The Spartans
-lost all hopes either of conquering or escaping, and looked upon
-Thermopylæ as their burying-place. The king, exhorting his men to
-take some nourishment, and telling them at the same time, that they
-should sup together with Pluto, they set up a shout of joy as if
-they had been invited to a banquet, and full of ardour advanced
-with their king to battle. The shock was exceedingly violent and
-bloody. Leonidas himself was one of the first that fell. The
-endeavours of the Lacedæmonians to defend his dead body were
-incredible. At length, not vanquished, but oppressed by numbers,
-they all fell except one man, who escaped to Sparta, where he was
-treated as a coward and traitor to his country, and nobody would
-keep company or converse with him. But soon afterwards he made a
-glorious amend for his fault at the battle of Platæa, where he
-distinguished himself in an extraordinary manner. Xerxes, enraged
-to the last degree against Leonidas for daring to make head against
-him, caused his dead body to be hung up on a gallows, and made his
-intended dishonour of his enemy his own immortal shame.”
-
-
-THRASYMENE, BATTLE OF.--Fought, B.C. 217.--On a circular range of
-hills, near the lake, Hannibal disposed his army, and Flaminius,
-the Roman General, took his station in the valley beneath. A mist
-rising from the lake completely concealed the Carthaginians from
-the Romans, while it left the view of the former unimpeded. The
-fortune of the day was such as might have been expected--15,000
-soldiers fell with Flaminius in the valley, and 6000 more were
-obliged to surrender themselves prisoners of war. The following is
-from Rollin’s Ancient History:
-
-[13]“Hannibal being thus got, almost unexpectedly, out of this
-dangerous place, refreshed his troops, and then marched and pitched
-his camp between Arretium and Fesulæ, in the richest and most
-fruitful part of Tuscany. His first endeavours were to discover
-the genius and character of Flaminius, in order that he might take
-advantage of his foible, which, according to Polybius, ought to
-be the chief study of a general. He was told that Flaminius was
-greatly conceited of his own merit, bold, enterprising, rash, and
-fond of glory. To plunge him the deeper into these excesses, to
-which he was naturally prone,[14] he inflamed his impetuous spirit,
-by laying waste and burning the whole country, in his sight.
-
-Flaminius was not of a temper to continue inactive in his camp,
-though Hannibal should have lain still. But when he saw the
-territories of his allies laid waste before his eyes, he thought
-it would reflect dishonour upon him, should he suffer Hannibal to
-ransack Italy without control, and even advance to the very walls
-of Rome, without meeting any resistance.
-
-He rejected with scorn the prudent counsels of those who advised
-him to wait the arrival of his colleague, and to be satisfied for
-the present with putting a stop to the devastation of the enemy.
-
-In the meantime, Hannibal was still advancing towards Rome, having
-Cortona on the left hand, and the lake Thrasymene on the right.
-When he saw that the consul followed close after him, with the
-design to give him battle, by stopping him in his march; having
-observed that the ground was convenient for that purpose, he also
-began to prepare himself for the battle. The lake Thrasymene
-and the mountains of Cortona form a very narrow defile, which
-leads into a large valley, lined on both sides, with hills of a
-considerable height, and closed at the outlet by a steep hill of
-difficult access. On this hill, Hannibal, after having crossed the
-valley, came and encamped with the main body of his army; posting
-his light-armed infantry in ambuscade upon the hills on the right,
-and part of his cavalry behind those on the left, as far almost as
-the entrance of the defile, through which Flaminius was obliged to
-pass. Accordingly, this general, who followed him very eagerly,
-with the resolution to fight him, being come to the defile near
-the lake, was forced to halt, because night was coming on; but he
-entered it the next morning at day-break.
-
-Hannibal having permitted him to advance, with all his forces,
-above half way through the valley, and seeing the Roman vanguard
-pretty near him, he sounded the charge, and commanded the troops
-to come out of their ambuscade, in order that he might attack the
-enemy, at the same time, from all quarters. The reader may guess at
-the consternation with which the Romans were seized.
-
-They were not yet drawn up in order of battle, neither had they
-got their arms in readiness, when they found themselves attacked
-in front, in rear, and in flank. In a moment all the ranks were
-put into disorder. Flaminius, alone undaunted in so universal a
-surprise, animates his soldiers both with his hand and voice;
-and exhorts them to cut themselves a passage with their swords
-through the midst of the enemy. But the tumult which reigned
-everywhere, the dreadful shouts of the enemy, and a fog that was
-risen, prevented his being seen or heard. However, when the Romans
-saw themselves surrounded on all sides, either by the enemy or
-the lake, and the impossibility of saving their lives by flight,
-it roused their courage, and both parties began the fight with
-astonishing animosity. Their fury was so great, that not a soldier
-in either army perceived an earthquake, which happened in that
-country, and buried whole cities in ruins. In this confusion,
-Flaminius being slain by one of the Insubrian Gauls, the Romans
-began to give ground, and at last quite ran away. Great numbers,
-to save themselves, leaped into the lake, whilst others, climbing
-over the mountains, fell into the enemy’s hands whom they strove
-to avoid. Six thousand only cut their way through the conquerors,
-and retreated to a place of safety; but the next day they were
-taken prisoners. In this battle 15,000 Romans were killed, and
-about 10,000 escaped to Rome, by different roads. Hannibal sent
-back the Latins, who were allies of the Romans, into their own
-country, without demanding the least ransom. He commanded search to
-be made for the body of Flaminius, in order to give it burial, but
-it could not be found. He afterwards put his troops into quarters
-of refreshment, and solemnized the funerals of 30 of his chief
-officers, who were killed in the battle. He lost in all but 1500
-men, most of whom were Gauls.
-
-Immediately after, Hannibal dispatched a courier to Carthage, with
-the news of his good success in Italy. This caused the greatest joy
-for the present, raised the most promising hopes with regard to
-the future, and revived the courage of all the citizens. They now
-prepared with incredible ardour to send into Italy and Spain all
-necessary succours.
-
-Rome, on the contrary, was filled with universal grief and alarm,
-as soon as the prætor had pronounced from the rostra the following
-words, “we have lost a great battle.” The senate, studious of
-nothing but the public welfare, thought that in so great a calamity
-and so imminent a danger recourse must be had to extraordinary
-remedies. They therefore appointed Quintus Fabius, dictator, a
-person as conspicuous for his wisdom as his birth. It was the
-custom at Rome that the moment a dictator was nominated, all
-authority ceased, that of the tribunes of the people excepted. M.
-Minucius was appointed his general of horse.”
-
-
-TILSIT, PEACE OF.--Between France and Russia, when Napoleon
-restored to the Russian Monarch one-half his dominions, and Russia
-recognized the confederation of the Rhine and the elevation of his
-three brothers, Joseph, Louis, and Jerome to the thrones of Naples,
-Holland, and Westphalia. Signed, July 7th, 1807.
-
-
-TINCHEBRAY, BATTLE, OF.--Fought, 1106, between Henry I of England,
-and Robert, Duke of Normandy. The two brothers met at this
-place, and Robert was defeated, and all Normandy was taken by
-Henry,--Robert himself being thrown into a dungeon, and kept for
-more than twenty-five years a prisoner.
-
-
-TOPLITZ, BATTLES OF.--The first was fought between the Austrians
-and Prussians, the latter defeated, in 1762. Another battle August
-30th, 1813. Treaty of ditto, September 9th, 1813. Second treaty of
-ditto, October 3rd, 1813.
-
-
-TORGAN, BATTLE OF.--Between Frederick II of Prussia and the
-Austrians, in which the former obtained a complete victory. The
-Austrian General, Count Daun, was wounded, November 11th, 1760.
-
-
-TOULON, NAVAL BATTLES OF.--A memorable battle off this port between
-the English, French and Spanish fleets, February 10th, 1744. The
-English lost the victory through a misunderstanding of their
-Admirals. Another battle fought here, when Lord Hood took six ships
-of the French fleet, and sunk one of very large force, and several
-others, June 4th, 1794. While the two fleets were engaged, a large
-fleet of Indiamen got safely into Brest harbour. As on this fleet
-depended the means of the French carrying on the war, they claim
-the victory, notwithstanding their loss in ships and men.
-
-
-TOULOUSE, BATTLE OF.--This was the final battle of the Peninsular
-war--one of the most bloody that was fought between the French and
-English. The French were commanded by Soult, and the English by
-Wellington. Wellington forced the French to retreat after twelve
-hours of hard fighting, the battle raging from seven in the morning
-till seven at night. The English lost between 4000 and 5000 men,
-that of the French exceeded 10,000. Fought, April 10th, 1814.
-
-
-TOURNAMENTS, OR TILTS.--Every one has read of these ancient modes
-of duelling. If not, let them read Sir Walter Scott’s “Ivanhoe,”
-&c. The Arabs are very expert in their management of horses at
-these tilts. The following will describe the whole:--
-
-“The tournament field is oblong, and bordered by rows of
-spectators, sitting cross-legged round the open space. The best
-riders of the tribe, mounted on the most active horses, are then
-introduced into the arena, the men being clothed with as much
-splendour as their means will permit them, while the chargers are
-covered with large silk housings of different colours, reaching to
-the ground, and resembling those of ancient knights, as represented
-in Froissart. Some of the Arabs then commence making their horses
-dance to the sound of drums and trumpets, whilst men on foot
-occasionally rush forward and discharge their muskets close to the
-horses’ ears. Others dash forward at full speed along the line
-of seated spectators, as close to their feet as they possibly
-can, without actually trampling upon them: and every now and then
-suddenly throwing their horses on their haunches, spin them round
-on their hind legs, and resume in the opposite direction their
-wild career. It is a nervous sight to behold; for you momentarily
-expect to see some person or child crushed beneath the horses’
-hoofs; but no accident ever happens, and men, women, and children,
-maintain their seats with the greatest calmness and feeling of
-security, saluting any well-executed point of horsemanship with
-loud and exulting shouts of approbation, whilst the women accompany
-them with the usual but indescribable cries of the quick-repeated
-lu-lu-lu-lu; in return for which they are covered with clouds of
-sand and dust, which the impetuous coursers throw up behind them.
-Three or four others dashing their sharp stirrups into the flanks
-of their impatient steeds, rush madly along the length of the
-arena, shouting forth their _tekbir_, or war-cries, and whirling
-round their heads the long and silver-adorned Arab guns, which they
-discharge at the spectators when they have reached the farthest
-extremity of the lists. Others engage with swords soldiers on foot,
-galloping round their adversaries in incredibly small circles,
-twisting their horses suddenly round, and then circling to the
-other hand; and I know not which most to admire, the activity and
-suppleness of the rider or of his horse. Others, whilst at full
-speed, will lean over, and without in the least reducing their
-pace, pick up from the ground a piastre or any other equally
-small object, thrown down for the purpose. These sports form, on
-the whole, one of the gayest and most animating scenes I ever
-beheld, increased as it is by the waving of many silken sanjaks
-of the brightest colours, by the music, the report of fire-arms,
-the war-cries of the performers, and the shouts of the numerous
-spectators.”
-
-
-TOURNAY.--Taken by the Allies in 1709; taken again by the French,
-November 11th, 1792. A battle was fought here by the Anglo-Austrian
-army, against the French, in which they were defeated, May 8th,
-1793. Another battle was fought between the English and French,
-when the French were repulsed, losing 200 men and three field
-pieces. Fought, May 6th, 1794.
-
-
-TOURS, BATTLE OF.--One of the glorious victories of Charles Martel,
-and that which most established his fame; gained over the Saracens,
-near Tours, and from which he acquired the name of Martel or the
-Hammer. Some historians declare that but for this victory, all
-Europe, us well as Asia and Africa, would otherwise have become
-Mahommedan. Fought, October 10th, 732.
-
-
-TOWTON, BATTLE OF.--This great battle is supposed to be the most
-fierce and bloody that ever happened in any domestic war. Fought,
-March 29th, 1461, between the houses of York and Lancaster, to
-the latter of which it proved fatal; more than 37,000 men of the
-Lancastrians fell. Edward IV of York issued orders to give no
-quarter, and a merciless massacre ensued.
-
-
-TRAFALGAR, BATTLE OF.--The most glorious and splendid naval
-engagement ever achieved by the British navy. The French had
-18 and the Spaniards 15 ships of the line; the British had 27
-ships. Several of the enemies’ Admirals were taken prisoners. The
-following is Southey’s fine description of the death of England’s
-greatest naval hero. He says:--
-
-“Nelson having despatched his business at Portsmouth, endeavoured
-to elude the populace by taking a by-way to the beach, but a crowd
-collected in his train, pressing forward to obtain a sight of his
-face: many were in tears, and many knelt down before him, and
-blessed him as he passed. England has had many heroes, but never
-one who so entirely possessed the love of his fellow-countrymen
-as Nelson. All men knew that his heart was as humane as it was
-fearless; that there was not in his nature the slightest alloy
-of selfishness or cupidity; but that, with perfect and entire
-devotion, he served his country with all his heart, and with all
-his soul, and with all his strength; and therefore they loved
-him as truly and as fervently as he loved England. They pressed
-upon the parapet to gaze after him when his barge pushed off, and
-he returned their cheers by waving his hat. The sentinels who
-endeavoured to prevent them from trespassing upon this ground, were
-wedged among the crowd; and an officer who, not very prudently upon
-such an occasion, ordered them to drive the people down with their
-bayonets, was compelled speedily to retreat; for the people would
-not be debarred from gazing till the last moment upon the hero--the
-darling hero of England!
-
- * * * * *
-
-It had been part of Nelson’s prayer, that the British fleet might
-be distinguished by humanity in the victory which he expected.
-Setting an example himself, he twice give orders to cease firing
-on the Redoubtable, supposing that she had struck, because her
-guns was silent; for, as she carried no flag, there was no means
-of instantly ascertaining the fact. From this ship, which he had
-thus twice spared, he received his death. A ball fired from her
-mizen-top, which, in the then situation of the two vessels, was
-not more than 15 yards from that part of the deck where he was
-standing, struck the epaulette on his left shoulder, about a
-quarter after one, just in the heat of action. He fell upon his
-face, on the spot which was covered with his poor secretary’s
-blood. Hardy, who was a few steps from him, turning round,
-saw three men raising him up. “They have done for me at last,
-Hardy,” said he. “I hope not,” cried Hardy. “Yes” he replied,
-“my back-bone is shot through.” Yet even now, not for a moment
-losing his presence of mind, he observed, as they were carrying
-him down the ladder, that the tiller ropes, which had been shot
-away, were not yet replaced, and ordered that new ones should be
-rove immediately: then, that he might not be seen by the crew, he
-took out his handkerchief, and covered his face and his stars. Had
-he but concealed these badges of honour from the enemy, England,
-perhaps, would not have had cause to receive with sorrow the news
-of the battle of Trafalgar. The cockpit was crowded with wounded
-and dying men, over whose bodies he was with some difficulty
-conveyed, and laid upon a pallet in the midshipmen’s berth. It was
-soon perceived, upon examination, that the wound was mortal. This,
-however, was concealed from all except Captain Hardy, the Chaplain,
-and the medical attendants. He himself being certain, from the
-sensation in his back, and the gush of blood he felt momently
-within his breast, that no human care could avail him, insisted
-that the surgeon should leave him, and attend to those to whom he
-might be useful; “for,” said he, “you can do nothing for me.” All
-that could be done was to fan him with paper, and frequently to
-give him lemonade to alleviate his intense thirst. He was in great
-pain, and expressed much anxiety for the event of the action, which
-now began to declare itself. As often as a ship struck, the crew of
-the Victory hurrahed, and at every hurrah, visible expression of
-joy gleamed in the eyes, and marked the countenance of the dying
-hero. But he became impatient to see Hardy; and as that officer,
-though often sent for, could not leave the deck, Nelson feared
-that some fatal cause prevented him, and repeatedly cried, “Will
-no one bring Hardy to me? he must be killed! he is surely dead!”
-An hour and ten minutes elapsed from the time when Nelson received
-his wound, before Hardy could come to him. They shook hands in
-silence, Hardy in vain struggling to suppress the feelings of that
-most painful and yet sublime moment. “Well, Hardy,” said Nelson,
-“how goes the day with us?” “Very well,” replied Hardy; “ten ships
-have struck, but five of the van have tacked, and show an intention
-to bear down upon the Victory. I have called two or three of our
-fresh ships round, and have no doubt of giving them a drubbing.”
-“I hope,” said Nelson, “none of our ships have struck.” Hardy
-answered, “there was no fear of that.” Then, and not till then,
-Nelson spoke of himself. “I am a dead man, Hardy,” said he; “I
-am going fast; it will be all over with me soon. Come nearer to
-me. Let my dear Lady Hamilton have my hair, and all other things
-belonging to me.” Hardy observed, that he hoped Mr. Beatty could
-yet hold out some prospect of life. “Oh! no,” he replied; “it is
-impossible. My back is shot through. Beatty will tell you so.”
-Hardy then once more shook hands with him, and with a heart almost
-bursting, hastened upon deck.
-
-By this time all feeling below the breast was gone, and Nelson,
-having made the surgeon ascertain this, said to him: “You know I
-am gone. I know it. I feel something rising in my breast,” putting
-his hand on his left side, “which tells me so.” And upon Beatty’s
-inquiring whether his pain was very great, he replied, “so great
-that he wished he was dead. Yet,” said he, in a lower voice, “one
-would like to live a little longer too!” And after a few minutes,
-in the same undertone, he added: “What would become of poor Lady
-Hamilton if she knew my situation!” Next to his country she
-occupied his thoughts. Captain Hardy, some fifty minutes after he
-had left the cockpit, returned, and again taking the hand of his
-dying friend and commander, congratulated him on having gained a
-complete victory. How many of the enemy were taken he did not know,
-as it was impossible to perceive them distinctly, but 14 or 15
-at least. “That’s well,” cried Nelson, but “I bargained for 20.”
-And then, in a stronger voice, he said: “Anchor, Hardy, anchor.”
-Hardy, upon this, hinted that Admiral Collingwood would take upon
-himself the direction of affairs. “Not while I live, Hardy,” said
-the dying Nelson, ineffectually endeavouring to raise himself
-from the bed: “do you anchor.” His previous orders for preparing
-to anchor had shown how clearly he foresaw the necessity of this.
-Presently calling Hardy back, he said to him in a low voice, “Don’t
-throw me overboard;” and he desired that he might be buried by his
-parents, unless it should please the King to order otherwise. Then
-reverting to private feelings: “Take care of my dear Lady Hamilton,
-Hardy; take care of poor Lady Hamilton. Kiss me, Hardy,” said he.
-Hardy knelt down and kissed his cheek; and Nelson said, “Now I
-am satisfied. Thank God I have done my duty!” Hardy stood over
-him in silence for a moment or two, then knelt again and kissed
-his forehead “Who is that?” said Nelson; and being informed, he
-replied, “God bless you, Hardy.” And Hardy then left him for ever.
-Nelson now desired to be turned upon his right side, and said, “I
-wish I had not left the deck; for I shall soon be gone.” Death was,
-indeed, rapidly approaching. He said to the Chaplain, “Doctor,
-I have _not_ been a _great_ sinner;” and after a short pause,
-“Remember that I leave Lady Hamilton and my daughter Horatia as a
-legacy to my country.” His articulation now became difficult; but
-he was distinctly heard to say, “Thank God, I have done my duty!”
-These words he repeatedly pronounced, and they were the last words
-which he uttered. He expired at thirty minutes after four, three
-hours and a quarter after he had received his wound.”
-
-
-TRAKTIR BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.--Fought during the Crimean campaign,
-between the French and Sardinian forces, and the Russians--
-
-“The garrison of Sebastopol having failed, on the 2nd of August,
-in a desperate attempt to forces the Allied lines by the Woronzoff
-Road, remained inactive only in appearance. They were ready for
-a new Balaclava and a new Inkerman all in one, so far as the
-strategic movement is concerned. In August the Tchernaya is
-fordable at many points, well known, of course, to the enemy.
-On the 16th of that month they debouched from the Tchouliou
-Heights, and descended to the Tchernaya, in the neighbourhood of
-Traktir-bridge. Behind this bridge rise, at a little distance,
-the Fediukine hills, on which rested the rear of the French army,
-which now faced about. To their right were the Sardinians,--to
-theirs the Turks. Beyond the river, and under Tchouliou hills is
-a valley, along which swarmed the Russian masses, driving the
-outposts of the Sardinian Bersaglieri, or sharp-shooters. About
-1500 Zouaves and Chasseurs guarded the bridge: they were attacked
-by 10,000 Russians, under General Read. For an hour the 1500 held
-the 10,000 beneath the storm of artillery which pound upon their
-dense columns from one English battery and from the Sardinian and
-French artillery. At last, the Russians swarmed over the fords,
-forced the bridge, and slowly pushed the brave Zouaves up the hill;
-but executed this movement painfully, out of breath, in disorder,
-and rent by ordnance. At the hill’s brow the main body of the
-French received in their openings comrades worthy of Leonidas, who,
-turning, and now backed by strong columns, charged bayonets down
-the declivity. Twice the enemy rallied, but in vain. The Sardinians
-and French made a final rush, and drove them with carnage upon
-their supports, who were thus disarrayed. The artillery reopened,
-and the battle was won. General Scarlett’s dragoons came up at this
-moment, but General Pelissier deemed pursuit unwise. The enemy
-retired on Mackenzie’s Farm. He left on the field a quantity of
-fascines, planks, beams, ladders, and sappers’ tools, destined
-to destroy the works of the besiegers. He left also 2500 dead;
-and 1620 of his wounded were that night in the ambulances of the
-French, who took, in addition, 500 prisoners. They themselves lost
-180 killed, and 810 wounded--chiefly on and near the bridge. This
-great battle occurred the day succeeding the First Napoleon’s natal
-anniversary, and the fête-day of the French Empire. It was on that
-very morning that the Queen of England set out to pay the first
-Royal visit ever made by English Monarch to a Sovereign of that
-warlike dynasty. It seemed as if events both in the East and in the
-West were conspiring to raise to the highest point the glory of the
-Napoleon destinies at one and the same hour.”
-
-
-TREBIA, BATTLE OF.--Fought between Hannibal and the Romans.
-Hannibal taking advantage of the well known impetuosity of the
-Romans, sent over at first a detachment of 1000 horse. These
-pretending defeat, hastily recrossed the river, followed by the
-main body of the Romans. By this means the defeat of the Romans was
-insured. Benumbed with wading up to their armpits in water, they
-became an easy prey to their enemies; 26,000 were either slain, or
-drowned in attempting to cross the river.
-
-
-TRINCOMALEE.--Taken from the Dutch by the English in 1782. Retaken
-by the French same year; restored to the Dutch in 1783. Surrendered
-to the British, under Colonel Stewart, August 26th, 1795, and was
-confirmed by the peace of Amiens in 1802. Of a series of actions
-fought off Trincomalee, between Sir Edward Hughes and the French
-Admiral Suffrein, one was fought February 18th, 1782, the enemy
-having 11 ships and the British 9. On April 12th following, they
-had 18 to 11 ships, and on July 6th, same year, they had 15 to 12
-ships. Yet, in every one of these battles, the French suffered
-severe defeats.
-
-
-TRIPLE ALLIANCE.--This celebrated party alliance between the States
-General and England against France, was for the protection of the
-Netherlands (Holland and Belgium). Sweden afterwards joined the
-alliance, January 28th, 1668.
-
-
-TRIUMPH.--On the day appointed, the General, crowned with laurels,
-pronounced an oration to the soldiers and surrounding multitude,
-relating his military achievements; then the march began with a
-long procession, in which were carried inscriptions, containing
-the names of the nations, provinces, or cities, he had conquered;
-the priests assisted, leading the beasts used for sacrifice.
-The conqueror, in an ivory car, richly ornamented, closed the
-procession. He was surrounded by his friends and relations, bearing
-branches of laurel; the procession stopped at the Capitol, where
-they sacrificed to Jupiter, and deposited part of the spoils.
-The lustre of the Roman conquests was often tarnished by their
-inhumanity to the conquered; their prisoners, if of high rank,
-were only reserved to suffer superior mortifications; the captive
-Monarchs and Generals were bound in chains, their heads closely
-shaven (a mark of peculiar degradation), and they were thus
-presented a sad spectacle to the gazing multitude.
-
-
-TROYES.--Celebrated for the treaty, May 24th, 1420. The French
-were driven from Troyes by the Allied armies, February 7th, 1814.
-Retaken by Napoleon, February 28th, and finally occupied by the
-Allies, March 4th, same year.
-
-
-TYRE.--A celebrated city in Asia Minor. Besieged by Nebuchadnezzar,
-B.C. 572, and the city demolished a year after its rebuilding.
-Taken by Alexander the Great, who spent seven months in the siege,
-August 20th, 332 B.C. Thousands of the inhabitants were crucified
-by Alexander, along the shore, for the bravery with which they had
-defended their city.
-
-
-
-
-U.
-
-
-ULM, BATTLE OF.--A fierce and bloody engagement between the French
-and Austrians, the latter commanded by General Mack, and the French
-by Marshal Ney. The French gained a complete victory, the Austrians
-losing 36,000 men as prisoners, the flower of their army, and an
-immense number of killed and wounded. Fought, October 17th, and
-19th, 1805.
-
-
-UNIFORMS.--First used in France by Louis XIV in 1668, adopted in
-England not long after.
-
-
-USHANT, NAVAL BATTLE OF.--Between the British and French fleets,
-when after an indecisive action of three hours, under cover of the
-night, the latter withdrew in a deceptive manner to the harbour of
-Brest. Keppel commanded the English fleet and the Count d’Ovillier
-the French. A dispute occurring between the English Admiral and the
-second in command caused the victory to be not so complete as it
-would otherwise have been. Fought, July 27th, 1778.
-
-
-UTRECHT, TREATY OF.--The Union of the seven Provinces began here
-A.D. 1579. Celebrated treaty, April 11th, 1713. Surrendered to the
-Prussians, May 9th, 1787. Possessed by the French, January 17th,
-1795.
-
-
-
-
-V.
-
-
-VALENCIA, BATTLE OF.--Taken by the Earl of Peterborough in 1705,
-and soon again lost. Resisted the attempts of many, but was taken
-from the Spaniards by the French, under Suchet, January 9th, 1812;
-all the garrison, 16,000 men, and immense stores, surrendered.
-
-
-VALENCIENNES, SIEGE OF.--Besieged from May 23rd to July 14th, when
-the French garrison surrendered to the Duke of York, 1793. Retaken
-by the French, on capitulation; the garrison and 1100 emigrants
-made prisoners, with immense stores, viz. 200 cannon, 1,000,000
-pounds of gunpowder, 8,000,000 florins in specie, 6,000,000 of
-livres, 1000 head of cattle, &c., on August 30th, 1794.
-
-
-VALUE OF PRINCES.--£400,000 was the price paid to the Scots for
-delivering up to the English Charles I.
-
-Margaret of Anjou was ransomed for £12,500.
-
-£1,000 offered by Parliament for the head of Charles II.
-
-£30,000 for that of the Pretender.
-
-Richard I was ransomed for the large sum of £100,000 or 150,000
-marks; he had before been sold by the Duke Leopold of Austria, to
-the Emperor Henry IV, for £60,000.
-
-King John, of France, was to be redeemed by his subjects for the
-enormous sum of 3,000,000 crowns, but they could not raise the
-amount.
-
-
-VARNA, BATTLE OF.--The Emperor Nicholas of Russia arrived before
-Varna, the head-quarters of his army, then besieging the place,
-August 5th, 1828. The Turks made a vigorous attack on the
-besiegers August 7th; another on the 21st, but they were repulsed;
-surrendered to the Russians, October 1st, 1828. Famous as the
-point of _rendezvous_ of the Allied army, preparatory to the
-Crimean war. The cholera made dreadful devastation in both the
-English and French armies; then a great fire nearly destroyed the
-town, but purified the air; and the news of the Crimean invasion
-expedition dispelled the gloom and melancholy which pervaded, to a
-very great degree, our troops.
-
-
-VIENNA.--Besieged by the Turks, under Solyman the Magnificent, with
-an army of 300,000 men, but forced to raise the siege having lost
-70,000 soldiers. Again besieged in 1683, and the siege raised by
-the celebrated John Sobieski, King of Poland, who totally routed
-the Turkish army of 100,000 men. Taken by the French, November
-14th, 1805, and afterwards retaken and taken for some time.
-
-
-VILLA FRANCA, BATTLE OF.--Engagement here between the British
-cavalry, under Cotton, and the French cavalry, under Soult. The
-French were defeated, April 10th, 1812. When Napoleon heard of the
-result he reproached Soult the first time in his life.
-
-
-VIMEIRA, BATTLE OF.--Between the British, under Wellington, and
-the whole of the French and Spanish forces, in Portugal, under
-Marshal Guinot, whom the British signally defeated, August 21st,
-1808. The enemy’s force were 14,000 men, of whom 1600 were cavalry.
-They attacked the English at Vimeira early in the morning. The
-principal assault was on the English centre and left, with the
-view, according to a favourite French expression of “driving the
-English into the sea,” which was close in their rear. The attack
-was made with great bravery but as bravely repulsed. It was
-repeated by Kellerman, at the head of the French reserve, which
-was also signally repulsed, and the French being charged with the
-British bayonet, withdrew on all sides in confusion, leaving many
-prisoners, a General Officer, and 14 cannon, with ammunition, in
-the hands of the British. French loss, killed and wounded, 1800.
-English 720; only one-half of the British force was actually
-engaged.
-
-
-VINEGAR HILL, BATTLE OF.--Between the British troops and the Irish
-insurgents, in 1798. The rebels suffered a severe defeat, and much
-blood shed on both sides. June 12th, 1798.
-
-
-VITTORIA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, June 21st, 1813, between the French
-and English. The following is a graphic account of this great
-victory:
-
-“The splendid achievements of the campaign of 1812 produced their
-natural results. Even the torpid obstinacy of Castilian pride was
-at last overcome, and by a decree of the Cortes of September 22nd,
-1812, the great English General was invested with the supreme
-command of the Spanish armies. He repaired to Cadiz on the 24th of
-December, and on the 30th he was received by the Cortes in full
-assembly. The news of Napoleon’s overthrow in Russia had just
-arrived, and all hearts seemed to expand with hope of the speedy
-expulsion of his troops from Spain.
-
-England herself also now began to put forth efforts commensurate
-with the crisis. At the opening of the year 1813 her land forces
-consisted of 228,000 men, besides 28,000 in India, 95,000 militia
-at home, and 32,000 foreign troops in the British service. And,
-besides these, she had 200,000 native troops in India, a local
-militia of 300,000, and a yeomanry cavalry of 68,000, forming a
-grand total of 949,000 men in arms; and her expenditure in the year
-amounted to £118,000,000 sterling.
-
-Thus supported, her great Commander, of whom it may be questioned
-if his equal _in all respects_ ever stood upon a field of battle,
-looked forward with reasonable expectation to a coming harvest;
-to a campaign in which, after four years’ toils and sufferings,
-the grand object of the final expulsion of the French from Spain
-might be anticipated. And assuredly the means he took to gain this
-end in the simplest and completest manner, were marked by the most
-consummate skill and wisdom.
-
-To be nearer to his supplies, and to relieve the wasted provinces
-of Spain, Wellington had withdrawn his army into cantonments on
-the Coa and the Agueda, that is, in Leon and in Beira, or Northern
-Portugal. All the Lusitanian kingdom had long been free from the
-French, and the campaign of 1812 had compelled them to abandon all
-Andalusia Murcia, Granada, Asturias and Estramadura. The French
-army now occupied only central and eastern Spain, the bulk of the
-troops being quartered in New and Old Castile.
-
-Wellington’s chief attention was naturally devoted, during the
-winter, to the task of reorganizing his forces for the final
-struggle of the opening year. His own English army was the only
-force he had which was at all in a condition to march against
-the enemy. Of the Spanish troops he found it necessary to give
-the Spanish Minister of War, in March 1813, the following
-description:--“There is not a single battalion or squadron in the
-Spanish armies in a condition to take the field; there is not in
-the whole kingdom of Spain a depôt of provisions for the support of
-a single battalion for one day; there is not a shilling of money in
-any military chest. To move them forward at any point now, against
-even inconsiderable bodies of the enemy, would be to insure their
-certain destruction.”
-
-But by unceasing exertions these evils were, in a measure,
-overcome: and Wellington found himself, in the month of May, 1813,
-for the first time in a state approaching to an equality with the
-French. Their force, which in former years had often amounted to
-nearly 400,000 men, was now reduced to 239,000 of which about
-197,000 were present with the eagles. Meanwhile Wellington’s
-nominal force now amounted to 200,000, and although only about
-one-half of this number were fit to take the field, the remainder
-was still of use in maintaining the communications, guarding
-convoys, and cutting off the foraging parties of the enemy. His
-principal army of English and Portuguese mustered about 75,000 men,
-of whom about 44,000 were English. The efficiency of the Portuguese
-troops was advanced in a surprising manner; reinforcements,
-especially of cavalry, had arrived from England; and the
-Anglo-Portuguese troops, conscious of an improved organization,
-were more confident than ever; while the French, hearing of the
-calamities of their brethren in Russia, were proportionably
-depressed. Even the Spaniards had, in some numbers, been brought
-into better condition:--Wellington had kept them fed and clothed
-during the winter, and had now several efficient corps of native
-troops, ready to act in conjunction with his own army. Hence, on
-the 22nd of May the great English General began his march, and
-when he crossed the stream which divides Portugal from Spain, he
-rose in his stirrups, and waving his hand, exclaimed, “Good bye to
-Portugal!”
-
-The military skill and talent of a commander is never more
-conspicuously seen than in those manœuvres by which an enemy is
-defeated _without a battle_. Such manœuvres often resemble the
-skill and power with which an able and fearless horseman, even
-while on the ground, will control a powerful courser, forcing
-him backwards by a small leverage upon his mouth. In the present
-instance the French still had a considerable army and able
-Generals, and they occupied the centre of Spain, defending the
-capital, and ready to fight, if needful, a succession of battles
-before they would relinquish their prey. But their more able
-antagonist forced them to retreat, step by step, without fighting,
-until their last and only stand was made at Vittoria, almost in
-sight of France; and then delivering his attack, he utterly routed
-them, and chased them over the Pyrenees. On the 22nd of May, as we
-have said, the English army marched out of Portugal; on the 21st of
-June it fought and gained the battle of Vittoria; and before the
-1st of July the shattered remains of the French army, with their
-King Joseph at their head, had fled over the Pyrenees. Little more
-than a single month had sufficed to destroy, uproot, and utterly
-abolish the French dominion in Spain, and that at a time, too, when
-there were still 197,000 French soldiers in the field, under many
-able Commanders.
-
-A brave general of the ordinary kind would have marched in quest
-of the French, lying in front of Madrid; would have defeated them,
-and taken the capital. All the smaller bodies of French in Spain
-would then have been called round the King; and in July a second
-battle would have been fought in Arragon, or in front of Burgos.
-One more victory,--a third, supposing the English to have been
-always victorious, might have sent the French out of Spain; but any
-mistake or mishap might have prevented this. But Wellington, by
-masterly tactics, always threatening to turn the enemy’s right wing
-and to get upon his communications, backed his foe as a man backs
-a horse, till he could bring the opposing army into a position fit
-for his purpose; and then, delivering at once a knock-down blow, he
-drove the whole mass, king and army, in four-and-twenty hours, out
-of Spain.
-
-King Joseph had reckoned, in the spring, upon a direct attack by
-the great road of Madrid; but when it would come, or where it would
-fall, he could not divine, for Wellington kept him constantly in
-doubt, by a variety of feigned movements.
-
-At last, towards the end of May, he found that Wellington, sending
-40,000 men under Graham through the difficult passes of the
-Tras-os-Montes, and moving himself a week after on the Esla, had
-carried his whole army, by the 4th of June, over the Douro, and was
-now in full march for Valladolid. If he should gain that place,
-Joseph well knew that his communications would be cut off, and his
-whole army taken, to use Napoleon’s phrase, “_flagrante delicto_.”
-Hastily, therefore, Madrid was abandoned, the whole army put in
-retreat; and now Joseph would make his stand at Burgos.
-
-Thus 100 miles of Spanish ground had been cleared of the French
-without firing a shot. And now, Joseph would fight for his
-kingdom in this, his second position. But his Generals examined
-the country, and disliked the prospect. Meanwhile Wellington
-pushed on, conducting his operations continually on the same
-principle,--pushing forwards his left wing, and out-flanking and
-turning the French right. Again perplexed, Joseph now abandoned his
-second purpose, as he had abandoned his first. Burgos must be given
-up, and the retreat must be continued on Vittoria. Into Vittoria
-there was poured, therefore, the artillery depôts of Madrid, of
-Valladolid, and of Burgos, and the baggage and stores of several
-armies; with the King’s valuables, the archives, and papers of the
-State and of the army, and a large amount of treasure.
-
-Vittoria is only 26 miles from Irun, on the French frontier. Here,
-therefore, had been driven together, like a flock of sheep, the
-intruders and plunderers of Spain, and one vigorous assault only
-was needed to rid the land of them altogether. It was not long
-delayed.
-
-It was about the 15th of June when King Joseph found his army
-assembled round Vittoria, reckoning, Napier tells us, from 60,000
-to 70,000 men. Wellington had left his sixth division at Medina de
-Pomar, and therefore had 60,000 English and Portuguese, besides
-some Spanish troops. In the number and calibre of their guns the
-French had the advantage.
-
-From the mountain-region through which the British army was
-marching, the way to Vittoria lay over many a rugged steep, and
-through many dangerous defiles; but no difficulty was allowed to
-stop their march. “Six days they toiled unceasingly; but on the
-seventh, swelled by a Spanish reinforcement, they burst like raging
-streams from every defile, and went foaming into the basin of
-Vittoria.”
-
-The French army was drawn up round this basin, which is a small
-plain about 10 miles in length, by 8 in breadth, through which runs
-the river Zadora. As this battle-field was approached by various
-mountain-passes, Wellington resolved to enter it from three sides
-at once, forming three distinct combats. General Graham, with a
-corps of about 20,000 men, was to attack from the British left, and
-to pass the Zadora at Ariaga, near the city of Vittoria. Hill was
-to attack from the right with an equal force. Wellington stationed
-himself in the centre, with a rather larger force, which was to
-descend from the mountain ridges, to cross the Zadora by various
-roads, and to march straight upon Vittoria. In fact, the whole
-battle was merely an attack on a strong army hemmed in, by an army
-equally strong, and marching to the attack on three sides at the
-same moment.
-
-At daybreak the English began to move; but the distance to Vittoria
-was several miles, and every step was to be contended for. Hill
-reached the village of Puebla about ten in the morning; pushed on,
-fighting hard, till he gained the village of Subijana de Alava,
-and so placed himself in communication with the English centre.
-Graham had to make a march of several miles to reach Ariaga, near
-Vittoria; but about one o’clock his attack began to tell. This was
-a serious one for the French; for, if successful, it would cut
-them off from the great road to Bayonne. King Joseph, finding both
-his flanks thus threatened, sent an order to the centre to retire.
-But the troops were fiercely engaged, and retreat was difficult.
-Meanwhile, however, three attacks of the English, right, left, and
-centre, were all succeeding; and step by step, the French were
-being pushed back upon Vittoria.
-
-“At six o’clock,” says Napier, “the French reached the last
-defensible height in front of Vittoria. Behind them was the plain
-in which the city stood, and beyond the city were thousands of
-carriages and animals, and of men, women, and children, crowded
-together in all the madness of terror; and as the English shot
-went booming overhead, the vast crowd started and swerved with a
-convulsive movement, while a dull and horrid cry of distress arose;
-but there was no hope, no stay for army or multitude, it was the
-wreck of a nation!” Still the courage of the French soldiers was
-unquelled. Their artillery for a time kept the Allies in check, but
-suddenly the fourth English division, rushing forward, carried a
-hill on the left, and the heights were at once abandoned. Joseph
-finding the main road so completely blocked up by carriages that
-the artillery could not pass, indicated the road of Salvatierra
-as the line of retreat, and the army went off in a confused and
-yet compact body on that side, leaving Vittoria on its left. The
-British infantry followed hard, and the light cavalry galloped
-through the town to intercept the new line of retreat. All became
-disorder and confusion, the guns were left, while the artillerymen
-fled with the horses. Vehemently and closely did the British
-pursue, and nothing could stop their victorious career until night
-and the disappearance of the flying masses had ended the struggle.
-The French lost all their artillery, all their baggage, all their
-equipages, all their stores, treasures, and papers, “so that no
-man,” says a French writer, “could prove even how much pay was due
-to him. Generals and subordinate officers were alike reduced to the
-clothes on their backs, and many of them were barefooted.”
-
-“Never was victory more complete. The trophies were innumerable.
-Marshal Jourdan’s baton of command was brought to Lord Wellington,
-who sent it to the Prince Regent, from whom he quickly received
-one of an English marshal in return. The loss of the French was
-never ascertained; that of the Allies was 3,567 English, 1,059
-Portuguese, and 550 Spanish. The spoil taken was enormous. “The
-soldiers of the army,” wrote Lord Wellington, “have got among them
-about 1,000,000 sterling in money, with the exception of about
-100,000 dollars found in the military chest. Rich vestures of all
-sorts, gold and silver plate, pictures, jewels, parrots, monkeys,
-and children, lay scattered about the field amidst weeping mothers
-and wailing children. Joseph himself narrowly escaped; a squadron
-of dragoons pursued his carriage and fired into it.”
-
-All the remaining bodies of the French in Spain fell in the fall
-of Vittoria. They escaped out of the kingdom by various roads
-as quickly as possible. “Joseph’s reign was over, the crown had
-fallen from his head, and after years of toil and combats, which
-had rather been admired than understood, the great English leader,
-emerging from the chaos of the Peninsular struggle, stood on the
-summit of the Pyrenees a recognized conqueror. From those lofty
-pinnacles the clangour of his trumpets pealed clear and loud, and
-the splendour of his genius appeared as a flaming beacon to warring
-nations.”[15]
-
-Thus, in some five or six weeks, had a great kingdom been cleared
-of its invaders and oppressors--not by the power of superior
-numbers, but by the natural ascendency of a consummate military
-genius. “Here,” remarks Napier, “was a noble army driven like sheep
-before prowling wolves, although in every action the officers
-had been prompt and skilful, and the soldiers brave, firm, and
-obedient. The French troops were excellent and numerous, and the
-country strong and favourable for defence; but the soul of a great
-Commander was wanting; and hence, the Esla, the Tormes, the Douro,
-the Pisuerga, seemed to be all dried up, the mountains to be
-levelled; and 60,000 veteran soldiers, willing to fight at every
-step, were hurried with all the tumult and confusion of defeat
-across the Ebro.”
-
-The deliverance of the Peninsula, by a force so far inferior to
-that of the French, must always remain one of Wellington’s greatest
-glories. The same French writer, whom we have already quoted, Jules
-Maurel, remarks this surprising fact. He says: “The truth is,
-that from 1808 to 1813, Wellington never had 30,000 English under
-his orders, even at a period when the Imperial armies deluged the
-Peninsula with no fewer than 370,000 men.”
-
-Nor were the results of this great day confined to the Spanish
-peninsula. Like its predecessor, the victory of Salamanca, the
-battle of Vittoria shook the whole continent of Europe. Napoleon
-himself, holding his ground at Dresden, had, up to this moment,
-succeeded in withholding Austria from any actual participation in
-the confederacy against him. He had even succeeded, on the 30th
-of June, in obtaining a convention for the restoration of peace
-between himself, Russia and Prussia. But the very next day the news
-of the expulsion of the French from Spain reached Dresden, filling
-Napoleon and his ministers with consternation, and giving new
-life and vigour to the Russian and Prussian councils. The Allies
-regretted that any cessation of arms had been agreed to, and they
-began to long for its termination. The very moment it expired by
-lapse of time, Austria joined the Allies; war was actively resumed,
-and the autumn had not ended before Napoleon had been driven across
-the Rhine, and Germany freed from the presence of the French armies.
-
-The French writer from whom we have just quoted, Jules Maurel, thus
-notices this remarkable passage in modern history:
-
-“Scarcely had the armistice been signed when intelligence arrived
-that the French had lost everything in Spain. In 40 days Wellington
-had turned, one after another, all the positions occupied by the
-French armies of the centre, of the south and of the north, and had
-crossed the Tormes, the Douro, the Esla, the Carrion, and the Ebro.
-He had reached Vittoria; he had gained a decisive battle; he had
-expelled King Joseph from the Peninsula, and had planted his army
-on the Pyrenees. In the beginning of May he was in Portugal; on
-the 23rd of June he was on the frontiers of France. The defeat of
-Vittoria entirely neutralized the victories of Lutzen and Bautzen,
-and at once restored the coalition.”
-
-
-VOUGLE, BATTLE OF.--Fought between Alaric II and Clovis of France.
-Alaric was entirely overthrown, and the whole country subdued.
-Clovis afterwards made Paris the capital, and became the founder of
-the French Monarchy.
-
-
-
-
-W.
-
-
-WAGRAM, BATTLE OF.--Fought, July 5th, 1809, between the Austrians
-and French, in which the former were completely overthrown; 20,000
-were taken by the French. The slaughter on both sides was dreadful.
-The defeated army retreated into Moravia.
-
-
-WAKEFIELD, BATTLE OF.--Fought, December 31st, 1460, between Queen
-Margaret, the wife of Henry VI, and the Duke of York, in which the
-latter was slain, and 3000 Yorkists fell in the field. This was one
-of the bloodiest battles between the houses of York and Lancaster.
-
-
-WALCHEREN EXPEDITION.--This important expedition consisted of
-thirty-five ships of the line, and 200 smaller vessels, and 40,000
-troops, under the command of the Earl of Chatham. The fleet was
-commanded by Sir Richard Strachan. A large number of the forces
-died, and the whole expedition came to nothing, December 28th, 1809.
-
-
-WARSAW, BATTLES OF.--The Poles suffered a great defeat here from
-the Russians, October 10th and 12th, 1794. Suwarrow, the Russian
-General, after the siege of Warsaw, cruelly butchered 30,000 Poles,
-November 8th, 1794. The battle preceding the surrender of Warsaw
-was fearfully bloody; of 26,000 men, more than 10,000 were killed;
-nearly 10,000 were made prisoners, and only 2000 escaped the
-merciless fury of the Russian butcher. Another battle fought here,
-and the Poles again defeated, September 7th and 8th, 1831.
-
-
-WASHINGTON.--Taken, August 24th, 1814, in the war between Great
-Britain and the United States, by General Ross, when all the superb
-national structures were consumed, in a general conflagration--the
-troops not sparing the national library.
-
-
-WATERLOO, BATTLE OF.--The greatest of all British engagements,
-fought June 18th, 1815, between the Duke of Wellington and
-Napoleon. The carnage on both sides was immense. The account of
-this great battle is taken from the “Twelve Great Battles of
-England.” The following is a fine account of the visit of Scott
-to the field of Waterloo after the battle, and also Alison on the
-defeat of the Old Guard:
-
-
- WATERLOO AT NOON ON THE DAY AFTER THE BATTLE.
-
-“On a surface of two square miles, it was ascertained that 50,000
-men and horses were lying! The luxurious crop of ripe grain which
-had covered the field of battle was reduced to litter, and beaten
-into the earth; and the surface, trodden down by the cavalry, and
-furrowed deeply by the cannon wheels, was strewn with many a relic
-of the fight. Helmets and cuirasses, shattered fire-arms and broken
-swords; all the variety of military ornaments; Lancer caps and
-Highland bonnets; uniforms of every colour, plume, and pennon;
-musical instruments, the apparatus of artillery, drums, bugles;
-but, good God! why dwell on the harrowing picture of a foughten
-field? Each and every ruinous display bore mute testimony to the
-misery of such a battle. * * * Could the melancholy appearance
-of this scene of death be heightened, it would be by witnessing
-the researches of the living midst its desolation for the objects
-of their love. Mothers, and wives, and children, for days were
-occupied in that mournful duty; and the confusion of the corpses,
-friend and foe intermingled as they were, often rendered the
-attempt at recognising individuals difficult, and in some cases
-impossible. * * * In many places the dead lay four deep upon each
-other, marking the spot some British square had occupied, when
-exposed for hours to the murderous fire of a French battery.
-Outside, lancer and cuirassier were scattered thickly on the earth.
-Madly attempting to force the serried bayonets of the British,
-they had fallen, in the bootless essay, by the musketry of the
-inner files. Farther on, you traced the spot where the cavalry
-of France and England had encountered. Chasseur and hussar were
-intermingled; and the heavy Norman horse of the Imperial Guard were
-interspersed with the grey chargers which had carried Albion’s
-chivalry. Here the Highlander and tirailleur lay, side by side,
-together; and the heavy dragoon, with Green Erin’s badge upon his
-helmet, was grappling in death with the Polish lancer. * * * On
-the summit of the ridge, where the ground was covered with death,
-and trodden fetlock-deep in mud and gore, by the frequent rush
-of rival cavalry, the thick-strewn corpses of the Imperial Guard
-pointed out the spot where Napoleon had been defeated. Here, in
-column, that favoured corps, on whom his last chance rested, had
-been annihilated; and the advance and repulse of the Guard was
-traceable by a mass of fallen Frenchmen. In the hollow below, the
-last struggle of France had been vainly made; for the Old Guard,
-when the middle battalion had been forced back, attempted to meet
-the British, and afford time for their disorganised companions to
-rally. Here the British left, which had converged upon the French
-centre, had come up; and here the bayonet closed the contest.”
-
-
- DEFEAT OF THE OLD GUARD AT WATERLOO.
-
-“The Imperial Guard was divided into two columns, which, advancing
-from different parts of the field, were to converge to the decisive
-point on the British right centre, about midway between La Haye
-Sainte and the nearest enclosures of Hougoumont. Reille commanded
-the first column, which was supported by all the infantry and
-cavalry which remained of his corps on either flank, and advanced
-up the hill in a slanting direction, beside the orchard of
-Hougoumont. The second was headed by Ney in person, and moving down
-the _chaussée_ of Charleroi to the bottom of the slope, it then
-inclined to the left, and leaving La Haye Sainte to the right,
-mounted the slope, also in a slanting direction, converging towards
-the same point whither the other column was directing its steps.
-Napoleon went with this column as far as the place where it left
-the hollow of the high road, and spoke a few words--the last he
-ever addressed to his soldiers--to each battalion in passing. The
-men moved on with shouts of _Vive l’Empereur!_ so loud as to be
-heard along the whole British line, above the roar of artillery,
-and it was universally thought the Emperor himself was heading the
-attack. But, meanwhile, Wellington had not been idle. Sir Frederick
-Adam’s brigade, consisting of the 52nd, 71st, and 95th, and General
-Maitland’s brigade of Guards, which had been drawn from Hougoumont,
-with Chasse’s Dutch troops, yet fresh, were ordered to bring up
-their right shoulders, and wheel inward, with their guns in front,
-towards the edge of the ridge; and the whole batteries in that
-quarter inclined to the left, so as to expose the advancing columns
-coming up to a concentric fire on either flank: the central point,
-where the attack seemed likely to fall, was strengthened by nine
-heavy guns; the troops at that point were drawn up four deep, in
-the form of an interior angle: the Guards forming one side, the
-73rd and 30th the other;--while the light cavalry of Vivian and
-Vandeleur was brought up behind the line, at the back of La Haye
-Sainte, and stationed close in the rear, so as to be ready to make
-the most of any advantage which might occur.
-
-It was a quarter past seven when the first column of the Old
-Guard, under Reille, advanced to the attack; but the effect of the
-artillery on its flank was such, that the cavalry were quickly
-dispersed: and the French battalions uncovered, showed their long
-flank to Adam’s guns, which opened on them a fire so terrible, that
-the head of the column, constantly pushed on by the mass in the
-rear, never advanced, but melted away as it came into the scene of
-carnage. Shortly after, Ney’s column approached with an intrepid
-step; the veterans of Wagram and Austerlitz were there; no force
-on earth seemed capable of resisting them; they had decided every
-former battle. Drouot was beside the Marshal, who repeatedly said
-to him they were about to gain a glorious victory. General Friant
-was killed by Ney’s side: the Marshal’s own horse was shot under
-him; but bravely advancing on foot, with his drawn sabre in his
-hand, he sought death from the enemy’s volleys. The impulse of
-this massy column was at first irresistible; the guns were forced
-back, and the Imperial Guard came up to within forty paces of the
-English Foot Guards, and the 73rd and 30th regiments. These men
-were lying down, four deep, in a small ditch behind the rough road,
-which there goes along the summit of the ridge. “Up Guards, and at
-them!” cried the Duke, who had repaired to the spot; and the whole,
-on both sides of the angle into which the French were advancing,
-springing up, moved forward a few paces, and poured in a volley
-so close and well directed, that nearly the whole first two ranks
-of the French fell at once. Gradually advancing, they now pushed
-the immense column, yet bravely combatting, down the slope; and
-Wellington, at that decisive instant, ordered Vivian’s brigade to
-charge the retiring body on one flank, while Adam’s foot advanced
-against it on the other. The effect of this triple attack, at once
-in front and on both flanks, was decisive: the 52nd and 71st,
-swiftly converging inward, threw in so terrible a volley on their
-left flank, that the Imperial Guard swerved in disorder to the
-right; and at that very instant the 10th, 18th, and 21st dragoons,
-under Vivian, bore down with irresistible fury, and piercing right
-through the body, threw it into irrevocable confusion. The cry,
-“Tout est perdu--la Garde recule!” arose in the French ranks, and
-the enormous mass, driven headlong down the hill, overwhelmed
-everything which came in its way, and spread disorder through the
-whole French centre.”
-
-
- DESCRIPTION OF WATERLOO FROM THE TWELVE BATTLES.
-
-“We have seen the three several stages by which the Duke of
-Wellington had conducted the British army to that elevated position
-in which the peace of 1814 left it. We have seen how it had, first,
-on the broad fields of Castile, boldly encountered a French army
-of twice its strength, and had sent it back in defeat. Next, at
-Salamanca, meeting an army of equal force, it had scattered it by
-an assault of a single hour, annihilating at a blow one-half of
-its strength. And lastly, falling upon the intrusive King himself
-in his final position of retreat and defence at Vittoria, it had
-driven his entire array, like a flock of frightened sheep, over the
-Pyrenees. After those triumphs, by which a whole realm of great
-extent had been delivered from its invaders, there seemed scarcely
-any way by which the fame and honour of the British army and its
-illustrious Commander could be enhanced, except by an event not to
-be anticipated--an encounter with the great conqueror of modern
-times, now an exile at Elba; and a triumph over him.
-
-This event, however unlikely it might seem, was reserved for
-England’s soldiers and her General; and it occurred in less than
-a year after the apparent restoration of peace. Napoleon suddenly
-left his island-home, reappeared in France, gathered his soldiers
-round him, and re-entered Paris as once more its Emperor. Naturally
-enough, the Sovereigns who had compelled his retirement, scarcely
-nine months before, resolved to maintain their position; and
-they covenanted with each other to place armies amounting to
-600,000 men on the soil of France in the course of July, 1815.
-The British portion of this force was collecting together in the
-months of May and June, under the Duke’s command; when Napoleon
-determined not to wait for the attack, but to carry the war into
-the allied territories; and, accordingly, in the second week in
-June he entered Belgium. Before he had proceeded twenty miles he
-encountered both the English and the Prussian armies, and on the
-fourth day, at a distance of about thirty miles from the French
-frontier, was fought the great and decisive battle of Waterloo.
-
-This momentous contest will require of us a more lengthened
-description than we have given of any of the great battles; both
-because it was an event of the highest possible importance to the
-fate of England, of Europe, and of the world; and also because it
-was, so to speak, a succession of battles fought on one field, and
-on the same day. In a former case we have seen “an army of forty
-thousand men defeated in forty minutes;” but here the deadly strife
-occupied nearly ten hours. The French opened the attack at eleven
-in the morning, and at nine o’clock at night the last of their
-battalions had not yet quitted the field. In the course of these
-ten hours four or five desperate and prolonged contests had taken
-place; each of which might have been justly called a battle. It
-will be impossible, therefore, to give any fair or complete idea of
-this long continued struggle, without occupying much greater space
-than is required for an ordinary battle.
-
-It is also a history which is thickly strewn with controversies.
-The defeated General himself was the first to open this wordy
-strife. The loss of the fight of Waterloo was a fact to which he
-never could be reconciled. That battle hurled him, finally, from
-the throne on which he had for the second time seated himself,
-and sent him to wear out the few remaining years of his life on
-the rock of St. Helena. In that retirement he occupied himself,
-for the most part, in a series of efforts to resuscitate his
-extinguished “glory.”[16] In these attempts he was hampered by
-no moral scruples; for, as Emerson has remarked, “this, the
-highest-placed individual in the world, had not the merit of common
-truth and honesty; he would steal, slander, assassinate, as his
-interest indicated.” Any reasonable man, therefore, will read his
-“Historical Memoir,” book ix, written at St. Helena, and published
-in London in 1820, with that caution which is so plainly called for
-when a document is confessedly an _exparte_ statement, and written
-by one who is known to be of unscrupulous character.
-
-Yet that document has been received in many quarters with a
-credulity which is somewhat surprising. It is true that this
-credulity may be accounted for in the case of the French
-historians--who, obliged to confess that their defeat at Waterloo
-was “horrible”--a “massacre”--a “deluge of blood”--are glad to have
-supplied to them, under Napoleon’s own hand, the apology that he
-was overmatched and greatly outnumbered; and that yet, after all,
-he would have proved victorious if one of his Generals had not
-disobeyed his commands.
-
-The latter of these two pleas has been generally rejected by
-English writers--utterly denied as its truth has been by the
-party so accused. But, strangely enough, although there was every
-probability that Napoleon’s account of his own strength, and of
-that of his opponent, would be wholly untrustworthy--several of our
-best English writers have given entire credence of his statement
-of the real amount of his army; even while those statements are
-clearly refuted by abundant testimonies of many Frenchmen. And this
-point is not an immaterial one. For if we could admit the truth of
-Napoleon’s final conclusion, that “On that day 69,000 French beat
-120,000 men, and the victory was only torn from them between eight
-and nine o’clock at night by the increase of the allies to 150,000
-men”[17]--what merit could we assign to the British soldiers, or to
-their great commander, for such a victory? But, in sober verity, of
-all the falsehoods deliberately put forth by Napoleon in the course
-of his life, this, probably, is nearly the greatest.
-
-Let us, however, now endeavour to arrange our narrative in its
-proper order. The army which was assembling in Belgium under
-the Duke’s command, had reached, in the beginning of June, the
-respectable amount of almost 100,000 men. It contained, however,
-far more Belgians, Hanoverians, Brunswickers, and Dutchmen, than
-British troops, and far more new levies, landwehr, and militia,
-than of experienced soldiers. The English regiments which had
-followed the Duke through all the fields of Spain had been sent to
-America, and were now on the Atlantic, on their return home. He had
-some of the Guards, and a few other regiments of some standing; but
-the largest portion of the British troops which had yet reached
-Belgium were second battalions--new recruits drafted from the
-militia--and the same observation would apply to the Hanoverians
-and other auxiliaries.
-
-It was a knowledge of this intrinsic weakness of the Duke’s army,
-and of the fact that 10,000 or 15,000 of his old Peninsular
-troops would soon join him, that decided Napoleon, as is frankly
-confessed,[18] to make a sudden attack on the British and Prussian
-forces before they were fully prepared to meet him. Silently,
-therefore, but with his usual skill and rapidity, Napoleon brought
-together a powerful army, and on the morning of the 15th of June he
-moved forward and entered Belgium.
-
-And here we are met by the most current of all the fictions
-which are connected with this history. A variety of writers have
-repeated, one after another--Napoleon himself setting them the
-example--the story that the Duke never heard of the approach of the
-French until eleven o’clock in the evening of that day, while at a
-ball at Brussels. The facts, however, which are beyond dispute, are
-these--that the French did not enter Charleroi, the first Belgian
-town, until eleven or twelve o’clock on June the 15th--that tidings
-of their movement reached the Duke at Brussels by three o’clock,
-and that between four and five o’clock that same afternoon orders
-went out to every corps of the British army to move to the front,
-many of them beginning their march that same evening. There was no
-surprise, then, nor was there the loss of a single day. The French
-had not marched thirty miles--had not entered any place of the
-least importance, when, on the third day, they found the British
-army drawn up across their path, and had to fight the battle of
-Waterloo.
-
-They had, indeed, found their progress arrested still earlier.
-Entering Belgium on the 15th, they were stopped the very next day
-at Ligny by the Prussians, at Quatre Bras by a part of the English
-army. Marshal Blucher being defeated, and retiring a few miles,
-the Duke fell back also, and thus was enabled to draw up his army
-at Waterloo--a position which he had before observed to be an
-advantageous one, and which was in all respects well suited to the
-defence of Brussels.
-
-It was on the afternoon of the 17th June that the Duke’s army found
-itself assembled on this spot. The French army, led by Napoleon
-himself, soon approached, but the day was too far advanced to
-afford time for a general engagement. The two armies, therefore,
-took position, the English on a rising ground called Mont St. Jean,
-about half a mile in advance of the village of Waterloo, and nine
-miles on the French side of Brussels; the French on a series of
-heights facing Mont St. Jean, having the village of Planchenoit on
-the right, and looking down upon a small valley which separated the
-two hosts.
-
-And now we are naturally brought to a consideration of the
-question, what was the respective strength of these two armies?
-This is a point upon which Napoleon has bestowed great pains in
-his “Historical Memoir, Book ix,” and on which he has succeeded in
-deluding many English writers.
-
-As to the strength of the British army, there can be no kind of
-doubt upon that point, for the actual numbers present in each
-battalion and squadron was carefully recorded; and these records
-were needed to establish the respective rights of all present to
-honours and rewards. We have spoken of a gross amount of nearly
-100,000 men. But of these, several thousands were required to
-garrison Antwerp, Ostend, Nieuport, Ypres, Tournai, and Mons,--the
-loss at Quatre Bras had been 3000 or 4000, and a post of
-observation at Hal, consisted of nearly 6000. When these deductions
-were made, not quite 70,000 men remained, to meet Napoleon’s attack
-at Waterloo.
-
-The British infantry in the field were 15,181, and the German
-Legion infantry were 3301. The British and German cavalry were
-7840, and their artillery was 3493. Thus the whole reliable force
-of the Duke--the force to which he must look to stand the French
-attack--was not quite 30,000 men. All this was well known to
-Napoleon, who, in his “Book ix,” says, “Victory appeared to be
-_certain_,” for the French army consisted of “good troops, while,
-in the enemy’s army, the English only, amounting to 40,000 _at
-most_, could be reckoned upon as such.”[19]
-
-The “Allied troops,” who made up the Duke’s array, consisted of
-10,755 Hanoverians, many of whom were mere landwehr or militia, and
-nearly 25,000 Belgians, Dutch, and men of Brunswick and Nassau.
-Some of these fought gallantly, but others retreated whenever
-the French approached,--some actually flying from the field.
-Hence Napoleon justly says, “one Englishman might be counted
-for one Frenchman:--two Dutchmen, Prussians, or soldiers of the
-Confederation, for one Frenchman.”
-
-Adopting, therefore, Napoleon’s own method of calculation, we may
-say, that the Duke had an army nominally amounting to about 68,000
-men, really equal to something less than 50,000.
-
-And now we turn to the other side of the account. Here we must,
-to be safe, accept only French testimony. If we draw together all
-the credible statements of this class that we can find, we shall
-probably be able to arrive at a just conclusion.
-
-There was published at Paris, in 1815, a volume by an officer
-attached to the staff, which may be considered to be “the French
-account,” at the time and in detail, of this battle. In this
-volume, the whole army which entered Belgium is stated to have been
-“150,000 effective men of whom about 30,000 were cavalry.” It seems
-improbable that a staff-officer should have greatly erred, or that
-a Frenchman should have exaggerated the strength of the beaten
-army. Reckoning, therefore, the gross number to have been 150,000;
-and deducting 15,000 for losses at Ligny, and at Quatre Bras, we
-may estimate the force detached under Grouchy on the 17th, at about
-38 or 40,000 men, and the strength of the French army at Waterloo
-at something more than 90,000.
-
-And this estimate precisely agrees with Napoleon’s own statement,
-written at Paris three days after the battle. In this bulletin he
-says, “We estimated the force of the English army at 80,000 men. We
-_supposed_ that a Prussian corps which _might be_ in line toward
-the right might be 15,000 men. The enemy’s force, then, was upwards
-of 90,000 men; ours less numerous.”
-
-He is here speaking of the morning. But there was not a Prussian
-soldier in the field until five o’clock in the afternoon; and this
-Napoleon well knew. Why, then, does he here introduce a “supposed”
-Prussian corps? Clearly, in order to bring up the allied force
-to 95,000 men, so that he might be able to add, “Ours, _less
-numerous_.” He had every possible motive, as a beaten General,
-striving to make the best of his case,--for saying, _if he had
-dared_,--“The enemy was more than 90,000 strong, but we had not
-quite 70,000.” But he could not venture, in the face of abundant
-evidence then existing, to say that his army was less than 80,000,
-the force he assigns to the English. He therefore, by an “ingenious
-device,” augments the allied force to 95,000; and then he can
-venture to assert that his own army was inferior in numbers. There
-is clearly implied in this statement an admission that his own
-force was not greatly below 95,000.
-
-Yet when Ney and others were dead, and the records, in all
-probability, scattered or destroyed, the same man who wrote this
-bulletin, concocted at St. Helena, four or five years after, a
-widely-different account. In his “Book ix,” p. 128, he puts forth
-an elaborate table, purporting to show, that the whole force of the
-French army at Waterloo was only 68,650 men! And such has been the
-imposing effect of this table, that many English writers, while
-they could detect the falsehood of other statements in that same
-volume, still accepted, as an undeniable fact, the conclusion, that
-Napoleon’s army at Waterloo consisted of only 68,650 men! Yet only
-common prudence, and the use of a little careful scrutiny, was
-needed, to prove that these same elaborate tables in “Book ix” were
-nothing more than what is usually called, in railway language, “a
-cooked account.”
-
-The proof of this shall be given from French writers alone. And,
-first, let “Book ix” refute itself, by its own self contradictions.
-At page 71, it gives the second corps, 19,800 infantry; while at
-p. 95-97, it states the same infantry, at the same moment, at
-21,000. At page 128 it gives the first corps 16,500 infantry, and
-at table F it calls the same infantry, 17,600. At page 128 the
-cavalry of the Guard and the third and fourth corps of cavalry are
-stated at 10,000; while at pp. 158 and 173 they are twice called
-12,000. At p. 35 we are told that “the regiments generally had but
-two battalions; each battalion consisting of 600 men, _present and
-under arms_.” Yet in the principal table, F, the regiments are
-always estimated at either 1000 or 1100 men, the battalions at 500
-or 550. Thus it is abundantly clear, even from the pages of “Book
-ix” itself, that its writer is one who “plays at fast and loose
-with figures.”
-
-But other refutations, from purely French sources, are abundant.
-We have seen that Napoleon states, in “Book ix,” p. 35, that his
-battalions had 600 men; but that he quietly puts them down in table
-F, as being only 500 or 550.
-
-Now in his portfolio, captured at Charleroi, and published at
-Brussels, there was one report, made by an officer named De
-Launoy, and dated “Montalimert, June 4th,” which said, “The first
-battalion, 720 strong, marched on the 1st of June.” And, in the
-_Moniteur_ of May 28th, published at Paris under Napoleon’s own
-authority, there was given a letter dated “Lille, May 26th,” which
-says, “Our garrison is entirely composed of battalions of select
-troops, which successively arrive: the 20th arrived yesterday;
-almost all consist of 720 men; we are expecting two battalions of
-veterans.” Now these troops formed part of the first corps, as
-stated in “Book ix,” p. 31; and in table F they are all set down as
-having in each battalion, 550 men!
-
-It was of this first corps that Marshal Ney spoke in his letter
-of June 26th, 1815, in which he complained of having it taken
-away from him on the 16th. He describes it as having consisted
-of “between 25,000 and 30,000 men.” He must have had the actual
-returns in his pocket when he wrote this. Now if the battalions
-generally consisted of 720 men, as the _Moniteur_ of May 28th
-had told us, then its thirty-two battalions would have contained
-23,040; which added to 1400 cavalry, and 1564 artillery men, would
-be accurately described as “between 25,000 and 30,000 men.” But
-Napoleon, in his statement of the force at Waterloo, sets down
-the infantry of this corps as only 16,500; thus contradicting at
-once the statement of the _Moniteur_, the report found in his own
-portfolio, and the declaration of the Marshal who commanded that
-corps!
-
-In the same spirit, in the table of the troops at Waterloo, (Book
-ix, p. 128,) we find the infantry of the Guard set down as being
-11,500. Yet Gourgaud, Napoleon’s Aide-de-Camp, and Fleury de
-Chaboulon, his secretary, both concur in stating this infantry to
-have been 14,000.[20]
-
-Of the heavy cavalry we have already seen, that while Napoleon,
-in his table, at p. 128, sets it down at 4000, 3000, and 3000, or
-10,000 in all, he afterwards twice describes it, at p. 158 and at
-p. 173, as “these 12,000 select horse.”
-
-Once more, in “Book ix,” p. 129, he states the force detached under
-Grouchy to have been 34,300. His own companion at St. Helena,
-General Montholon, in his history, (vol. i, p. 14,) calls this
-force 42,000.
-
-All this evidence, then, drawn from several quarters, but wholly
-French, points to one conclusion,--namely, that Napoleon, in
-forming his tables for “Book ix,” deliberately reduced his real
-strength at Waterloo by about one-fourth or one-fifth; and that his
-first statement, in his bulletin issued at the time, was the true
-one; namely, that his army was only somewhat “less numerous than
-95,000.”
-
-And to this conclusion a remarkable support is found, in
-the behaviour of the two Generals on the day preceding the
-action. Wellington had beaten nearly every one of Napoleon’s
-Marshals;[21]--and could not but feel a degree of exultation at the
-thought of meeting the master of them all. Napoleon, on his part,
-had to encounter a General who had never been conquered. Supposing,
-then, the armies to have been nearly equal in strength, what might
-have been anticipated, but a degree of eager anticipation on
-Wellington’s side, and of seriousness on Napoleon’s? Instead of
-which, what do we hear? The Duke writes to Marshal Blucher, that he
-will accept battle, _if_ the Marshal will assist him with one corps
-of his army. Meanwhile, Napoleon’s only anxiety is lest the English
-should escape him. “He was surprised,” writes his secretary,
-Fleury, “when daylight discovered to him that the English army had
-not quitted its positions, but appeared disposed to accept battle.”
-“He returned to his head-quarters (Book ix, p. 125) full of
-satisfaction at the great fault committed by the enemy’s General.”
-“He held this,” says Brialmont, “to be rashness, and a fault,
-exclaiming, ‘At last, then, I have them,--these English!’” Do not
-these views and anticipations, on the part of both of the Generals,
-make it quite evident that each of them was fully aware of the
-great superiority of the French army; and of the temerity of which
-the Duke would be guilty if, without any assurance of support, he
-ventured on an engagement in the face of such odds?
-
-It is worth remark, too, that while several of the best English
-writers have accepted with the most good-natured simplicity,
-Napoleon’s own account of the force with which he fought this
-battle--French historians, even when admirers of Napoleon, show
-much less faith in his assertions. Thus, Lamartine, having
-Napoleon’s ixth Book before him, in which the number, “sixty-eight
-thousand, six hundred and fifty men,” is strenuously insisted
-on--quietly disregards the fiction, and repeatedly speaks of the
-French force as being “eighty thousand men.”[22]
-
-But Napoleon’s “_certainty_ of success,” of which he speaks at p.
-127 of his Book ix, rested more upon the superior _quality_ of
-his troops than on their superior _numbers_. He was thoroughly
-well aware, both of the slight value of the Belgian and Hanoverian
-auxiliaries, and of the excellence of his own troops. And the Duke,
-also, knew full well both of these facts. On the 8th of May he had
-written to Lord Stewart, “I have got an infamous army; very weak
-and ill-equipped; and a very inexperienced staff.” And seven days
-after the battle, he repeated to Lord Bathurst, that he had got
-“not only the worst troops, but the worst-equipped army, with the
-worst staff, that ever was brought together.”[23]
-
-On the other hand, Napoleon’s army was, for its amount, the finest
-that he had ever led into the field. Thus his secretary, Fleury,
-says, “The whole army was superb, and full of ardour.” Lamartine
-speaks of it as “his grand army of chosen men; every battalion of
-which had a soul equal to the utmost extremity.” Napoleon himself,
-in “Book ix,” says: “The spectacle was really magnificent: the
-earth seemed proud of being trod by such intrepid combatants.” And
-at St. Helena he told O’Meara: “My troops were so good, that I
-esteemed them sufficient to beat a hundred and twenty thousand.”[24]
-
-Thus, as Brialmont remarks, whatever might be the numerical
-proportion of the two armies, “when we come to look at the
-respective qualities of the troops, the inferiority of the
-Anglo-Belgian army _was enormous_. Not only was it composed of
-heterogeneous elements, but it consisted almost entirely of young
-soldiers, a large proportion of whom had never been under fire. The
-Hanoverian contingent was made up of militia; and many regiments
-were fit only for garrison duty.”[25]
-
-The evening which preceded the memorable 18th of June was dark
-and cloudy; the rain fell in torrents, and the men were often
-ankle-deep in water. But, however deplorable might be their
-outward condition, the interest of this eventful moment rendered
-the combatants on either side, almost insensible to physical
-sufferings. Every man in both armies knew that a great and
-decisive battle was to be fought on the following day. With the
-opening morning, then, would begin what might prove the final
-contest,--ending a strife of nations which had lasted more than
-twenty years. The two greatest Generals of the age were for the
-first time to be brought into collision: the conqueror of Europe
-was to measure swords with the deliverer of Spain. No two such
-leaders, it has been well observed, had confronted each other,
-since Hannibal and Scipio met at Zama.
-
-Doubtless, and very naturally, the greatest degree of confidence
-was felt in the camp of the invaders. The French soldiers relied
-with reason on the extraordinary talents of their great leader,
-victorious in fifty contests, foiled in scarcely any. The men
-who stood by his side, too, were the veterans who had marched
-triumphantly over many victorious fields, and who now felt defeat,
-under such a Captain, to be scarcely possible. They were confident,
-too, in their numbers. All of them had heard that the Emperor had
-carried over the frontier a picked army of 150,000 men. They saw
-on the heights around them the first and second corps, amounting
-together to nearly 50,000 men, with the sixth, less numerous,
-in reserve. The Imperial Guard was there, from 18,000 to 20,000
-strong,--the finest troops that France had ever possessed, and the
-cuirassiers, nearly 6,000 in number. What could a mixed force of a
-few English, joined with Belgians, Hanoverians, and Dutchmen, do
-against such a power?
-
-Very naturally, therefore, we learn from Gourgaud, that “the French
-troops were full of enthusiasm. Such were the acclamations of joy,
-that they prevented the orders from being heard.”[26] From Napoleon
-to his Generals, from the Generals to the troops, the feeling
-had spread and become universal. “Ah! we have them, then,--these
-English!”
-
-The British troops had not the same ground of confidence. They knew
-well that their own numbers did not amount to one-third of the
-strength of Napoleon’s army, and that the Hanoverian and Belgian
-landwehr, by whom their line was to be filled up, were of very
-uncertain value. Many of the battalions, both English and foreign,
-had never been in action before. Still, they had a great and
-well-founded trust in their Commander; and with a spirit like his
-own, they meant to _do their duty_, and while they lived, to stand
-their ground.
-
-The field of Waterloo, or the heights of Mont St. Jean, as the
-English and the French respectively call this spot, is a piece of
-slightly-elevated ground lying, as we have already said, about 1000
-yards in advance of the village of Waterloo. Brussels, in which
-Napoleon intended to sleep that night, was about nine miles in the
-rear of the English army. The main road from Charleroi to Brussels
-passed through the French position, descended into the valley, and
-then ascended Mont St. Jean, cutting the English position at right
-angles near a farm-house called La Haye Sainte. The English line
-lay about 200 yards behind this farm-house. Here was the centre
-and left centre. In advance of the right wing of the English army,
-and between it and the left wing of the French, stood a larger
-house, surrounded by walled gardens and orchards, and called
-Hougoumont. As this place would have afforded great advantages to
-the French in preparing attacking columns, the Duke placed in it
-some companies of the Foot-Guards, with some Nassau and Hanoverian
-troops, and enjoined its resolute defence. Well were his orders
-obeyed, for the utmost efforts of a whole army corps of the French
-were ineffectual to carry this position. The French lost 6 or 8000
-men in the attempt, but up to the very close of the day the English
-Foot-Guards maintained their possession.
-
-The position of Waterloo was deliberately chosen by the Duke,
-and the choice is commended by all unprejudiced critics. Yet
-Napoleon, ungenerous throughout, strives to depreciate his
-antagonist’s judgment in this particular. He says, in “Book
-ix:”--“The English General had in his rear the defiles of the
-forest of Soignes, so that if beaten, retreat was impossible”
-(p. 125). Upon which M. Lamartine observes: “In fighting on the
-borders of a forest fortified in all its approaches, as well as
-by its own impenetrability, the Duke had every pledge of victory,
-if victory was possible; and of a secure retreat if defeat were
-unavoidable. Waterloo was an admirable field of battle, and it is
-to be regretted that Napoleon has not acknowledged this, but has
-obstinately striven to prove that his conqueror was unworthy of
-him. These are the littlenesses of glory. The choice of Waterloo
-on Wellington’s part was a further mark of that genius, at once
-resolute, powerful, and prudent, which has characterized all the
-campaigns of this General.”
-
-It should be added, that the Duke, during five years of constant
-warfare with the French armies, had never once been beaten by them
-in a pitched battle. Nor had he any thought of retreating upon the
-present occasion, or any desire to make a special provision for
-such an emergency. In after years he dropped the remark: “I knew
-that they could never so beat us, but that we could have made good
-the forest against them.”
-
-And now the several divisions of the two armies were placed in the
-positions which to the two commanders seemed suitable. On the left
-of Napoleon’s line he placed his second corps, which he himself
-states to have consisted of 17,000 men, and which undoubtedly
-was nearer 20,000. This corps, to which his brother Jerome was
-attached, was ordered to seize upon Hougoumont, and then to attack
-the right of the British army. Napoleon’s right wing was formed
-of his first corps, under Ney’s command. This corps had not yet
-been in action, and was complete. Napoleon sets down its strength
-us 17,900 men; but Ney, who commanded it, describes it as “from
-twenty-five to thirty thousand.” In the second line stood the
-sixth corps, consisting of 7 or 8000 men; the heavy cavalry, of
-about 7000; and in a third line stood the Imperial Guard, which, of
-cavalry and infantry, had at least 18,000. The artillery numbered
-more than 6000 men, with 240 cannon. The entire force was probably
-described with truth in Napoleon’s bulletin of the battle, in which
-he calls it “less than 95,000.”
-
-Against these the Duke had to place in position, on the opposite
-heights, his 15,181 British infantry, his 3,300 infantry of
-the German Legion, and about 28,000 Belgians, Hanoverians, and
-Brunswickers. Many of these showed themselves, in the battle,
-unable to stand a French attack. In the second line he had 7,840
-English and German cavalry, and about 4,500 Belgians, Hanoverians,
-and Brunswickers. His artillery (English, Belgian, &c.,) were
-5,600 and his guns, 156. At Hal and Enghien, on the road from Mons
-to Brussels, the Duke placed a detachment of 5,819 men to guard
-against any possible device in that quarter. These could take no
-part in the battle, being fixed by their orders at a distance of
-several miles from it.
-
-The Duke had slept for a few hours at his headquarters in the
-village of Waterloo, and then rising before dawn on the morning
-of the 18th he wrote several letters, in which he expressed his
-confidence that all would go well, but still gave specific orders
-for all that was to be done in Brussels, Antwerp, &c., in the
-event of the success of the French attack. He then saw to the
-distribution of the reserves of artillery, which had been packed in
-the village, so that supplies should be readily forwarded to every
-point where they might be needed. He also personally inspected the
-arrangements made for the reception of the wounded. Then mounting
-his horse Copenhagen, he rode to Hougoumont, and thence down a lane
-leading through the wood beyond it. Halting on the eastern slant of
-the thicket, he narrowly surveyed all of the enemy’s arrangements
-that could be seen. Then giving some final orders at Hougoumont,
-he galloped back to the high ground in the right centre of his
-position, where he began to chat with the members of his staff
-with as much liveliness as if they were about to take part in an
-ordinary review.
-
-There was now a pause of considerable duration. This was one of
-the chief mistakes committed by Napoleon. He had before him, as he
-well know, an army exceedingly inferior to his own; so inferior,
-in short, that it was a matter of joyful surprise to him that the
-Duke had not decamped in the night. But on his right he knew that
-there was Grouchy with less than 40,000 men, opposed to Blucher,
-who had 80,000 or 90,000. It was obvious to every one that the
-Prussian general might, and probably would, engage Grouchy with
-one or two corps, and carry the rest of his army to the succour of
-the English. It was, then, a great error not to use the present
-opportunity with decision and rapidity. He accounts for the
-delay by the state of the ground; but when Grouchy justified his
-inertness at Wavre by the same plea, Napoleon exclaims, in “Book
-ix,” p. 153, “The dreadful state of the weather, ridiculous motive!”
-
-The village clock was striking eleven when the first gun was fired
-from the French centre, and this great battle began, which only
-ended with the darkness of night. There has never been a battle
-which was so distinctly divided, like a drama, into four or five
-acts. These were: 1. The attack on Hougoumont and the English
-right; 2. The attack on La Haye Sainte and the English centre and
-left; 3. The irruption of the French heavy cavalry upon the centre
-of the English position; 4. The Prussian diversion; 5. The charge
-of the Imperial Guard, and final defeat of the French army. These
-several acts or stages in this great contest usually followed each
-other at intervals of about two hours, _i.e._ at 11, at 1, at 3, at
-5, and at 7 o’clock. There cannot, therefore, be a better way of
-obtaining a clear idea of the progress of this tremendous struggle,
-than by passing in review these five acts or stages, just us they
-occurred, and distinctly from each other.
-
-
- ELEVEN O’CLOCK.
-
-Precisely at this hour the French artillery opened fire upon the
-orchards of Hougoumont, and Jerome, with his division, moved
-forward to the attack. As we have seen, Napoleon himself assigns
-to his second corps, to whom this duty was assigned, a strength of
-17,900 men; and, reasoning upon his uniform practice of diminishing
-his real numbers, we may safely estimate its real force at 20,000.
-This corps was to storm and take Hougoumont, and then, from this
-position, to annoy and perhaps to attack with success, the Duke’s
-right. But it never succeeded even in its first object. The whole
-power of these 18,000 or 20,000 men failed to carry a post which
-was never garrisoned by so many us 2,800. Thus, Gourgaud tells us
-that at noon “Prince Jerome with his division took possession of
-the wood: he was driven out, but a new attack once more rendered
-him master of it. The enemy, however, kept possession of the largo
-house in the centre.” Again, at half-past four, he says, “General
-Reille supported the attack of Jerome’s division by Foy’s division.
-(Each being 5,000 or 6,000 strong.) Howitzers had set fire to the
-house and nearly destroyed it; three-fourths of the wood was in our
-possession; the fields were strewed with the English guards, the
-flower of the enemy’s army.” But beyond this partial success the
-French never attained. They never carried the chateau itself, but
-in the attempt they lost from 6,000 to 8,000 men, while the killed
-and wounded of the defenders amounted to a few hundreds only. This
-portion of the battle lasted from noon until night, and all that
-the French could boast of, was, that with five or seven times the
-number of the British, they obtained possession of “three-fourths
-of the wood.”[27] Napoleon says, in “Book ix,” “The wood remained
-in the possession of the French; but the chateau, in which some
-hundreds of intrepid English troops defended themselves, opposed an
-invincible resistance.”[28]
-
-
- ONE O’CLOCK.
-
-But now, having commenced the battle by this vehement assault on
-Hougoumont by his left wing, Napoleon prepared what he admits to be
-his main attack, on the Duke’s centre and left, by Count d’Erlon’s
-whole corps, led by Marshal Ney. This was the corps which had not
-been engaged at either Ligny or Quatre Bras. Napoleon states its
-strength at 17,900; but Ney more frankly describes it us between
-“twenty-five and thirty thousand.” This force was directed against
-the centre of the English position. Throughout the day Napoleon
-seemed to rely on _mere strength_. He knew that he was superior
-on every point, in each branch of the service, and in every
-particular, and he had never experienced the obstinate endurance of
-the English infantry. Thus, as the Duke afterwards said, “He did
-not manœuvre at all. He just moved forward, in the old style, in
-columns, and was driven off in the old style.”
-
-Great were the expectations based on this attack. Napoleon himself
-said to Ney: “This is a day and an action worthy of you: I give
-you the command of the centre; and it is you who are to gain the
-battle.”[29] But while all the French accounts admit the vast
-importance which was attached to this, the main attack, they
-entirely forget to say _what was the result of it_. Thus Gourgaud
-writes: “The Emperor directed Marshal Ney to commence the attack,
-and to take possession of La Haye Sainte;” “Our infantry advanced;”
-“The enemy’s line, however, made no manœuvre; it maintained its
-immobility. His cavalry made several successful charges on the
-flank of one of the columns of the first corps, and about 15 of our
-pieces of artillery, which were advancing, were driven back into
-a hollow road. One of Milhaud’s brigades of Cuirassiers advanced
-against this cavalry, and the field of battle was soon covered
-with their slain. When the Emperor perceived that some disorder
-prevailed on our right, he proceeded at full gallop.”[30]
-
-Napoleon says, in “Book ix,” “Many charges of infantry and cavalry
-followed it; the detail of them belong more to the history of each
-regiment, than to the general history of the battle; it is enough
-to say, that after three hours’ fighting, the farm of La Haye
-Sainte was occupied by the French infantry; while the end which the
-Emperor had in view was obtained.”[31]
-
-Thus, from the French accounts, we gain no intelligible information
-as to the actual result of this attack of 25,000 men on the English
-centre; except, indeed, that Gourgaud’s single phrase, “the enemy’s
-line maintained its immobility,” tacitly implies that the attack
-failed. We turn, then, to the English narrators, and learn from
-them what actually occurred.
-
-“Seventy-four guns” (“Book ix,” says eighty) were ordered forward
-to a little elevation, so as to bring their fire to bear upon the
-English line at a range of about 700 yards. Soon after, as two
-o’clock approached, the columns of attack, under Ney’s command,
-were seen descending from their elevated ground, crossing the
-valley, and ascending the northern slope. The British artillery
-gave them a warm reception; but still the columns pressed on, until
-they approached the Duke’s line, near the centre and left centre.
-Here were placed the brigade of Sir Thomas Picton, about 3000
-strong; and a Belgic-Dutch brigade under Bylandt. As the French
-columns drew near, with shouts of “Vive l’Empereur!” the courage
-of the Belgians gave way, and the whole brigade, amidst the groans
-and hooting of the British soldiers, begun a hasty movement to the
-rear, from which they could not be induced to advance during the
-whole remainder of the day.
-
-Left thus to himself, to sustain the whole attack of twice or three
-times his numbers, the gallant Picton never hesitated. Forming
-his little band two deep, he waited till the French column came
-within charging distance. It then halted, and endeavoured to deploy
-into line. Saluting it, at this moment, with a volley from his
-whole brigade, Picton gave the word “Charge!” and his men sprang
-forward with the bayonet. In an instant the whole French column
-was in confusion; and before they had time to recover themselves,
-Ponsonby’s brigade of heavy cavalry, the Royals, the Scots Greys,
-and the Enniskilleners, broke in upon them, and in a few moments
-the whole side of the hill was covered with fugitives. The heroic
-leader of “the fighting division,” however, the gallant Picton,
-fell, shot through the brain in the moment of triumph. Another
-fierce encounter was at hand. Milhaud’s Cuirassiers were close
-behind the French columns, and they essayed to retrieve the
-fight. But the Household Brigade met them, and after a desperate
-encounter--of the best horsemen in England and the best in
-France--the whole mass of the French, horse and foot, were driven
-back in confusion, leaving behind them the eagles of the 45th and
-105th regiments, and nearly 3000 prisoners. The grand attack of
-Ney on the British centre had failed; and the first corps of the
-French army was so seriously cut up and disorganized, as to be in
-no condition to renew the attack. We now understand Gourgaud’s
-confessions, “The enemy’s cavalry made several successful charges
-on the flank of one of the columns of the first corps;” and, “when
-the Emperor perceived that some disorder prevailed on our right, he
-proceeded thither at full gallop.”
-
-It was now considerably past two o’clock. The principal attack had
-been repelled: the English position had not been forced, or even
-endangered. “The enemy’s line,” says Gourgaud, “maintained its
-immobility.” But Napoleon’s second corps had been beaten and much
-damaged at Hougoumont; and now his first was crippled and nearly
-disabled in front of La Haye Sainte. In this strait, either Ney
-or Napoleon, or both of them, still confident in their superior
-strength, had recourse to a desperate measure, which had, indeed,
-a probability of success; but which, if it failed, would involve a
-serious danger.
-
-They had, still untouched, or nearly so, a reserve of what Napoleon
-himself styles, “twelve thousand select horse,” the two corps
-of Cuirassiers, the light cavalry of the Guard, and the horse
-grenadiers and dragoons of the Guard. There need be no dispute as
-to the strength of this force, since Napoleon himself twice states
-it to have been 12,000.
-
-
- THREE O’CLOCK.
-
-At this period of the battle, then, desperate at the two failures
-on the left and on the right, either Ney or his master launched
-this enormous mass of “select cavalry” against the centre of the
-British line. The error, if it is one, is sought by Napoleon to be
-charged on somebody else. In his bulletin, written at the time, he
-says:--
-
-“Our two divisions of cuirassiers being engaged, all our cavalry
-ran at the same moment to support their comrades.”
-
-Gourgaud endeavours to cast the blame upon Ney, saying:--
-
-“Marshal Ney, borne away by excess of ardour, lost sight of the
-orders he had received; he debouched on the level height, which was
-immediately crowned by two divisions of Milhaud’s cuirassiers, and
-the light cavalry of the Guard. The emperor observed to Marshal
-Soult, “This is a premature movement, which may be attended with
-fatal consequences.”
-
-These accounts would represent Napoleon himself famous for his
-rapidity and decision, to have had no command over his own troops.
-They are, therefore, not credible.
-
-But remembering that Napoleon was himself at this moment in a
-forward position, and that the heavy cavalry placed in the rear
-as a reserve force must have defiled past him, we must at least
-believe him to have permitted this movement. Gourgaud says that
-Ney ordered forward Milhaud’s Cuirassiers, and that “the emperor
-ordered Kellerman’s corps to support him.” Colonel Heymes,
-aide-de-camp to Ney, says, “That movement took place under the eyes
-of the emperor, who might have stopped it, but did not.” Still
-as he afterwards, in private conversation, charged the fault on
-Ney,[32] we must suppose that the marshal, in his desperation,
-called for the reserve of cavalry, and that Napoleon permitted
-him to employ them. However this might be, it is certain that
-about three or four o’clock--the attack of the first corps on the
-centre and left of the English having failed, the whole mass of
-the “cavalry of reserve,” was brought forward and thrown upon the
-centre of the Duke’s position. Such an assault has rarely been
-made upon any other army in modern times. Deducting the troops in
-Hougoumont, and the losses from four hours’ fighting, there could
-not have been at this moment so many as 12,000 British infantry
-in the whole line. Yet it is from Napoleon’s own narrative that
-we learn, that upon this weak array there was launched a mass of
-12,000 heavy horse, 6,000 of whom wore armour, and who seemed,
-in their united strength, able positively to ride down the
-insignificant force of resolute soldiers who still kept the heights
-of Mont St. Jean.
-
-The British accounts generally divide this tremendous onset of
-the cavalry into two attacks, the first, between three and four
-o’clock, when forty squadrons, twenty-one of them being composed of
-cuirassiers, ascended the heights behind La Haye Sainte; the second
-perhaps an hour later, when the first assailants, having found it
-difficult to maintain their ground were rallied behind thirty-seven
-fresh squadrons sent by Napoleon to their succour. And this agrees
-with Gourgaud’s account who tells us, first, that “Ney debouched
-upon the level height, with Milhaud’s Cuirassiers and the light
-cavalry of the Guard,” and then adds, a little after, that “the
-Emperor directed Kellerman’s Cuirassiers to support the cavalry on
-the height lest it should be repulsed.” It is clear, therefore,
-that the first onset of 5,000 or 6,000 men had failed, or was in
-danger of failing, when Napoleon sent forward a second until, as
-he himself says, the whole “twelve thousand select horse” were
-involved in the struggle.
-
-How it was that this tremendous attack failed, it is not easy at
-this distance of time to understand. The whole of the infantry in
-the British line were quickly formed into squares; the front ranks
-kneeling and presenting fixed bayonets, and the second and third
-lines keeping up a constant fire of musketry. The artillery, also,
-saluted the intruders with grape-shot; but many of the British guns
-were soon taken possession of by the cuirassiers. The Duke, always
-prepared for every emergency, had instructed the artillerymen that
-they should, on the approach of danger, take off a wheel and retire
-with it into the nearest square of infantry. Thus the cuirassiers,
-when they had seized a gun, found themselves hampered with it, and
-while they were trying to carry it off, the musketry of the British
-squares thinned their numbers.
-
-Wellington, in describing the battle in a letter to Marshal
-Beresford, said, “I had the infantry for some time in squares, and
-the French cavalry walking about us as if it had been our own.”
-
-There probably never was such a trial of “pluck” as this part of
-the contest presented. It was a hand-to-hand struggle, _lasting
-two or three hours_. Had a regiment of cuirassiers ever found
-courage enough to throw themselves on the British bayonets, there
-can be little doubt that some of the weaker squares might have
-been broken. But this never once occurred. Gourgaud, indeed, says,
-“Our cavalry penetrated many of the enemy’s squares, and took
-three standards,” but he must here be speaking of the Belgian or
-Hanoverian troops, many of whom were unsteady, and some of whom
-were scattered and cut up. There was, in fact, no absolute reliance
-to be placed on any but the British troops, and some of the best
-of the German. A whole Dutch-Belgian brigade, on the approach of
-the cuirassiers, moved off without firing a shot. After several
-charges of the British horse upon portions of the French cavalry,
-Lord Uxbridge put himself at the head of Tripp’s brigade of
-Dutch-Belgian carabineers, and ordered them to charge; and so they
-did, but not until they had first turned their backs to the enemy!
-Somewhat later, he ordered forward the Hanoverian regiment called
-the Cumberland hussars; but the colonel “did not see what good was
-to be done” by moving him from his snug position, which was out of
-reach of the firing. He added, that he could not answer for his
-men, for that they rode their own horses, and could not afford to
-lose them! Receiving from Lord Uxbridge the vehement reproof which
-might have been expected, he and his men moved off to Brussels,
-where they spread the report that the allied army was destroyed,
-and that Napoleon was advancing at the head of his Guards!
-
-Yet this tremendous attack failed, as the two preceding attacks
-had done. And its failure was one chief cause of Napoleon’s ruin.
-He had risked his cavalry reserve, and had lost it. For it is a
-remarkable and wonderful fact, that, continuing this struggle
-for two or three hours, this splendid body of “twelve thousand
-select cavalry” was wholly destroyed. Individuals, and parties of
-fugitives, doubtless escaped, and their number in the aggregate
-might be considerable; but this arm of the service was utterly
-disabled. In his Bulletin, Napoleon said, “For three hours numerous
-charges were made, several squares penetrated, and six standards
-taken;--an advantage bearing no proportion to the loss which our
-cavalry experienced by the grape-shot and musket-firing.” Fleury
-de Chaboulon, his secretary, says, “Our cavalry, exposed to the
-incessant firing of the enemy’s batteries and infantry, sustained
-and executed numerous brilliant charges, took six flags, and
-dismounted several batteries; but in this conflict we lost the
-flower of our intrepid cuirassiers, and of the cavalry of the
-Guard.” He adds, that on reaching Paris, and describing the
-battle, the emperor said, “Ney behaved like a madman!--he got my
-cavalry _massacred_ for me.” And it is the chief complaint of all
-the French accounts, that when at the close of the day the English
-horse swept over the field, the Emperor had not a single regiment
-of cavalry to oppose to them![33] The “twelve thousand select
-cavalry” had broken into the English position; but, except as
-scattered fugitives, they never returned!
-
-
- FIVE O’CLOCK.
-
-But the battle had now lasted six hours, and Napoleon had allowed
-his opportunity to pass away. Five o’clock brought the Prussians;
-and after they had entered the field a decisive victory for
-Napoleon became impossible.
-
-Bent on his object of proving that he had been not so much beaten
-as overpowered by numbers, Napoleon in his “Book ix,” brings the
-Prussians into the field at _noon-day_! In doing this he does not
-scruple to employ the most direct and obvious falsehood. To give a
-single instance,--Gourgaud, his _aide-de-camp_, in his account of
-the battle, thus writes:
-
-“It was _half-past four o’clock_, and the most vigorous fire was
-still kept up on every side. _At this moment_ General Domont
-informed his Majesty that he observed Bulow’s corps in movement,
-and that a division of 8,000 or 10,000 Prussians was debouching
-from the woods of Frischenois.”
-
-Yet in “Book ix” Napoleon does not hesitate to say: At _two
-o’clock_ in the afternoon General Domont had given notice that
-Bulow formed in three columns; that the enemy appeared to him to be
-very numerous,--he estimated the corps at 40,000 men.”
-
-But he does not even postpone their arrival until two o’clock:--two
-pages earlier he insists upon it that he saw them, in the distance,
-at _noon_.[34] Now as it is absolutely certain that, with the
-greatest exertion, the earliest of the Prussian brigades were
-unable to reach the field until half-past four, we may be sure
-that at twelve o’clock they must have been eight or ten miles off!
-Hence this passage in “Book ix” must either be a downright fiction;
-or else Napoleon must have discovered on a distant hill a party of
-the Prussian staff who had ridden forward to observe the position
-of affairs, and who must have been magnified by his alarms into an
-army-corps!
-
-The real time of the arrival of the Prussians is one of the most
-clearly-defined facts of the whole history. All the witnesses agree
-upon it. We have just cited Gourgaud’s words, that “at half-past
-four General Domont observed a division of 8,000 to 10,000
-Prussians debouching from the woods of Frischenois.”
-
-In strict agreement with which the Prussian official account says.
-
-“It was half-past four o’clock.... The difficulties of the road
-had retarded the march of the Prussian columns; so that only two
-brigades had arrived at the covered position which was assigned
-them. The generals resolved to begin the attack with the troops
-which they had at hand.”[35]
-
-And General Drouet, who was at Napoleon’s side during the action,
-said, in his speech in the Chamber of Peers on the 24th of June,
-1815,--“The Prussians began to attack us at about half-past five in
-the afternoon.”
-
-It is quite clear, then, and beyond all dispute, that the Prussians
-first began to enter the field of battle, and to be visible to
-the French at half-past four in the afternoon; that the Prussian
-commanders immediately proceeded to make arrangements for an
-attack;--and that their first collision with the French troops took
-place about half-past five in the afternoon.
-
-But Napoleon had been forewarned of their approach; for his flying
-parties had brought in, he tells us, two or three hours before, a
-Prussian hussar who was bearing a letter to the Duke of Wellington,
-announcing that General Bulow and his corps were on their march.
-Hence Napoleon had already set apart his sixth corps, under Count
-Lobau, to receive the Prussians whenever they should make their
-appearance.
-
-He introduces at this period many complaints of Marshal Grouchy,
-who, he pretends, ought to have followed Bulow’s corps, and have
-taken part in the battle of Waterloo. This is the very height of
-injustice and absurdity; since he had employed Grouchy distinctly
-to follow and occupy the attention of the main body of the
-Prussian army; and in obedience to this command the marshal was at
-that moment engaged with the Prussian third corps at Wavre. But,
-on looking at Napoleon’s first bulletin of the battle, we see that
-this aspersion of Grouchy is an afterthought,--a mere device to
-lessen his own defeat. Writing at the time, and giving to France a
-full account of the battle, in that bulletin _not one word_ of any
-default of Grouchy’s appears.
-
-This, of itself, is enough to show the hollowness of the excuse for
-the loss of the battle. Grouchy himself, when the “ixth Book” made
-its appearance, instantly wrote and published an indignant denial
-of its statements; and Brialmont remarks, that “Napoleon has so
-expressed himself to make it clear that he was anxious to diminish
-the amount of his own responsibility by sacrificing the reputation
-of his subordinates. Thus he pretends that he received on the night
-of the 17th a letter from Grouchy, which letter _never could have
-existed_.”
-
-But Gourgaud himself, Napoleon’s own aide-de-camp, is the best
-witness in exculpation of Grouchy. He tells us, that in the
-afternoon, hearing the cannonade of Waterloo, General Excelmans
-urged upon Grouchy to leave following the Prussians and to march
-towards the cannonade. But Grouchy, “though he burnt with desire to
-take part in the great battle, _showed Excelmans his instructions_,
-which were to march upon Wavre, and said, that he could not take
-such a responsibility on himself.”[36] It is clear therefore, that
-up to the afternoon of the 18th Grouchy had no other orders than
-those which bade him follow the Prussians who were in position at
-Wavre.
-
-Grouchy then, was not at Waterloo, simply because Napoleon had sent
-him to Wavre, a town some twelve miles distant; and because he was
-there engaged in a struggle with the third Prussian corps. But the
-fourth Prussian corps was at Waterloo at five o’clock, because
-Blucher had promised to send it there, and because Wellington
-expected it; and gave battle with inferior forces, relying on
-this assistance. Napoleon ought to have foreseen the probability
-of all this,--and, foreseeing it, he ought to have delivered his
-blows more rapidly so as to break the English line, if that were
-possible, before the Prussians could enter the field. But now
-that he had allowed his opportunity to pass, and now that Bulow
-was actually beginning to take part in the battle,--what was the
-respective strength ranged on either side? This question must
-be answered; for Napoleon says, “The enemy’s army had just been
-augmented by 30,000 men, already ranged on the held of battle; thus
-placing 120,000 men against 69,000, or two to one.” (p. 148.) And
-then he immediately afterwards, adds “It was _noon_.”
-
-This statement, however, like most of Napoleon’s other statements,
-is untrue. The Duke’s army had never amounted to 70,000 men, of
-whom some 10 or 15,000 were merely nominal combatants, whom it was
-impossible to persuade to fight. And Napoleon wilfully overlooks
-the plain averment of the Prussian official account, that when
-their commanders began the attack,--not at _noon_, but some time
-after half-past four, _only two brigades_, had arrived on the
-field. Captain Siborne, who took the greatest pains to ascertain
-every fact of the case, states that at half-past four o’clock the
-Prussian force which had come up, amounted to 16,000 men; which,
-added to the Duke’s army of 68,000, made a joint force of about
-84,000; but, if the non-fighting part of the Duke’s army were
-deducted,--of scarcely 70,000. Thus, even with the addition of the
-newly-arrived Prussians, the allied force was still numerically
-weaker than Napoleon’s army.
-
-This diversion, however, which was caused so opportunely by Bulow’s
-arrival, naturally brought great relief to the British line. It
-drew off Count Lobau’s corps, the sixth, of 7000 men, which might
-otherwise have been sent forward to attack the British centre. The
-remark, however, which is sometimes made, that “the English were
-saved by arrival of the Prussians,” is singularly absurd. Bulow’s
-arrival was not an unexpected thing; or a lucky chance;--it was
-a part of the Duke’s plan. He had demanded this aid of Blucher,
-and had obtained the promise of it, and without this aid, his
-acceptance of battle would have been an act of great temerity. The
-arrival of the Prussians, so far from being unexpected, had been
-calculated on three hours earlier; Blucher having promised that
-they should be in the field by two o’clock.
-
-And sorely had they been needed. The “thin red line” of the British
-infantry had scarcely ever found it so difficult to maintain its
-ground. At this moment, as we have already remarked, there could
-not have been so many as 12,000 of this branch of the Duke’s army
-left in position. And yet upon them rested the whole burden of the
-battle. Some of the German troops behaved gallantly; but of the
-mixed mass of 25,000 Belgians, Hanoverians, Dutchmen, &c., a large
-proportion were unable to stand the French attacks. So soon as
-one of Napoleon’s columns approached them, they became unsteady,
-and often went to the rear. Meanwhile there still stood in front
-of the Duke’s right wing, the second corps; and in front of his
-left wing, the first corps; and all that were left of Napoleon’s
-“12,000 select cavalry” were riding about the British position, as
-if they were masters of it. This hour, then, or two hours, from
-five o’clock till seven, must have been a most anxious one for the
-British General and his troops. The commander of one brigade sent
-to the Duke to beg for some relief or reinforcement; and the answer
-he received was, “Tell him, that what he wishes is impossible. He,
-and I, and every man here, must fight till we die on the spot where
-we stand.” Some one asked for a general instruction, as to what
-plan should be followed if the Duke himself should fall. “My only
-plan,” said the Duke, “is to stand my ground here to the last man.”
-Long after the battle, he remarked, of this period of the day, “I
-looked oftener at my watch than at anything else. I knew that if
-my troops could keep their position till night, I must be joined
-by Blucher before morning; and we should not have left Bonaparte
-an army next day. But I was glad, as one hour of day-light slipped
-away after another, and our position was still maintained.” It is
-scarcely possible for words to imply more distinctly, that the
-Duke felt that he was standing his ground with an inferior force;
-relying on Blucher’s aid, to enable him to strike a blow in return.
-
-Meanwhile, as he was constantly calm, so he was ever hopeful and
-high-minded. An Italian officer in the French service, being taken
-prisoner afterwards described the dismay he felt, on observing
-the quietness of the Duke’s demeanour, and the calmness of his
-countenance; which forced him to think that he must have some
-concealed reserve, of which the French generals knew nothing. His
-brief remarks, too, were always cheerful and reassuring. A young
-Piedmontese officer made himself useful, in carrying orders. “Were
-you ever in a battle before?” asked the Duke. “No, my lord.” “Then
-you are a lucky fellow, for you will never see such another!” was
-the rejoinder. At another time, encouraging the 95th regiment,
-expecting a charge of cavalry, he said, “Stand fast! 95th, we
-musn’t be beat; what would they say in England!” Shortly after,
-when the French cavalry came on with threatening aspect, he said,
-“Never mind, we’ll win this battle yet!” To a regiment exposed to a
-brisk cannonade, he remarked, “Hard pounding this! let’s see who’ll
-pound longest!” Often he was evidently the object of the enemy’s
-aim, and a tree under which he sometimes took his stand, was
-repeatedly struck. “That’s good practice,” said the Duke; “I think
-they fire better than in Spain.” But, as we have said, he was ever
-high-minded; and when an officer of artillery came to the Duke to
-tell him, that he had a clear view of Napoleon, and had several
-guns pointed in that direction, the Duke exclaimed, “No! I’ll not
-allow it. It is not the business of commanders to be firing upon
-one another!”
-
-At half-past five, according to Count Drouet, the Prussians first
-came into collision with the sixth corps, which, with Domont’s
-cavalry, had been placed on Napoleon’s right wing, specially to
-give these new comers a warm reception. The contest soon became an
-earnest one on this side; Planchenoit, in the rear of Napoleon’s
-right centre, was taken, and retaken, and he felt obliged to send
-some battalions of the Young Guard to strengthen Count Lobau. In
-this new struggle an hour or more passed, and seven o’clock, the
-last hour of the day drew on.
-
-Here Gourgaud stops to claim a triumph. He says, “65 to 68,000
-French troops _had beaten_ 115,000 English, Prussians, &c.” But
-then he adds, “The Emperor was of opinion that this was the moment
-for making a decisive attack, and _determining the fate of the
-day_.” So that, although the English and Prussians are assumed to
-be beaten, the “fate of the day” remains “to be determined.”
-
-In fact, not one single step in retreat had the English army yet
-taken. About six o’clock, indeed, the farm-house of La Haye Sainte
-was abandoned by its English defenders, simply because their
-ammunition was expended, and without ammunition they could not
-defend the place. This was the one solitary advantage gained by the
-French in the whole day; and even this was not wrested by them from
-the English; the post was evacuated by the latter for the reason we
-have stated. And La Haye Sainte, it should be remembered, was about
-200 yards _in advance_ of the British line. It was an outpost,
-and not a part of the main line. Its capture at an earlier period
-might have seriously endangered the Duke’s centre; but at this late
-hour Napoleon had but one card left to play, and in playing it the
-possession of La Haye Sainte did not greatly aid him.
-
-Up to seven o’clock, then, this one poor outpost was the only foot
-of ground gained by the French, in compensation for what Ney calls
-“the most frightful carnage that I have ever witnessed.” He is not
-here speaking of the defeat of the Imperial Guard, but of what
-preceded it. He had led, at one o’clock, the attack by D’Erlon’s
-corps on the centre and left of the English position, and at
-three o’clock he had sent the heavy cavalry in among the British
-battalions. It is of these two attacks that Ney is speaking,
-and of the manner in which they were repulsed; and this veteran
-soldier, after witnessing Borodino, Leipsic, and twenty other
-fields of slaughter, describes the defeat of the first corps, and
-the destruction of the cavalry, as a “carnage” the like of which he
-had never before beheld.
-
-“The Emperor,” says Gourgaud, “was now of opinion that the moment
-was come for making a decisive attack, and determining the fate of
-the day.” Yes, the moment was come; for, if the matter had been
-left as it stood, Napoleon’s overthrow on the following morning
-would have been made certain. “I knew,” said the Duke, long after,
-“that if my troops could keep their position till night, I must
-be joined by Blucher before morning, and we should not have left
-Bonaparte an army next day.” To keep the English and Prussian
-armies apart had been Napoleon’s chief endeavour, but the sagacity
-and military talent of the two Generals had defeated this purpose.
-The French army had only crossed the frontier on the 15th, and
-here, on the 18th, were the two allied armies already uniting on
-the same battle-field. When, therefore, Gourgaud tells us, in lofty
-and decorous language, that “the Emperor was of opinion that this
-was the moment for making a decisive attack, and determining the
-fate of the day,” the real meaning of these dignified phrases is,
-that Napoleon saw that one chance only remained to him, and that
-he must break the British line by the whole force of the Imperial
-Guard, or retire from the field a discomfited commander; to sustain
-in his turn an attack from the united armies the very next day.
-His strongest army-corps, the first and second, had both been cut
-up and crippled; his splendid cavalry were at that moment being
-“massacred” by the English grapeshot and musket-firing; and the
-only weapon of power that remained to him was this noble body of
-men, who had triumphed in fifty battles--his invincible phalanx,
-the Imperial Guard. At seven o’clock, therefore, or about that
-hour, he turned to this, his last resource, and ordered to the
-front this chosen and favourite arm, the right employment of which
-had given him so many victories.
-
-
- SEVEN O’CLOCK.
-
-It is not easy, amidst the various and contradictory accounts of
-the different French historians, to ascertain with exactness the
-real force employed in this attack. The Young Guard, under General
-Duhesme, had been partly employed in the defence of Planchenoit.
-The Old Guard, and the Middle Guard, had not up to this period of
-the battle drawn a trigger. Their strength is stated by Gourgaud to
-have been on this day 4400 and 4200, or, united, 8600 men.[37] This
-force far exceeded any strength which the Duke could bring to bear
-upon any given point. In fact the two brigades of General Maitland
-and General Adam had to sustain this attack. The first, consisting
-of two battalions of Foot-guards, had marched forth two days before
-1997 strong. On the evening of Waterloo it numbered only 1027; and
-doubtless, when this attack of the Imperial Guard came, it had not
-more than 1100 or 1150 bayonets. The other, General Adam’s brigade,
-consisting of the 52nd, 71st, and 95th regiments, had been 2621
-strong, but it was now reduced to about 2000. Such was the force on
-either side which was now to engage in the last terrible encounter
-of this great contest.
-
-But, while he was preparing for what he hoped would be the
-decisive blow, Napoleon sent orders to both his wings to prepare
-for a renewed attack, simultaneously, on Hougoumont and on the
-British left and centre. The chateau defended itself bravely and
-successfully, as it had done throughout the day. But the possession
-of La Haye Sainte gave the first corps of the French army great
-advantages, and the pressure on the British line at this point
-became fearfully severe. A German battalion was cut up by a charge
-of French cuirassiers: a body of Brunswick infantry, which the Duke
-had moved up to strengthen the line, gave way, and retired about
-100 paces, and it required all the Duke’s personal exertions to
-bring them to reform and stand their ground. The Prince of Orange
-had been wounded, and the Nassau troops under his command were with
-great difficulty induced to keep their ground. The British line had
-never been in so much danger of being broken as at this moment. But
-scarcely an hour of the day now remained, and the contest which was
-just taking place on the right centre was to be decisive of the
-fate of the day.
-
-The grand attack of the Imperial Guard, to which Napoleon looked
-to decide the fate of his empire, was now beginning. Captain
-Siborne states the two columns of attack to have consisted of ten
-battalions, besides two battalions left as a reserve. If these
-battalions consisted of 600 men each, they would amount to 6000;
-but if of 720 men each, they would amount, on the whole, to 7200
-men, and these were unquestionably the first soldiers in France.
-
-These columns were formed in front of La Belle Alliance, and began
-their advance with that kind of mismanagement which had marked many
-of the movements of the French leaders throughout the day; they
-did not advance simultaneously, but the first column preceded the
-second, although the two took different courses. Neither did they
-assail that part of the Duke’s line which was the weakest, but
-threw themselves upon two brigades of the British infantry.
-
-Of the two columns,--one of which skirted the enclosures of
-Hougoumont, and aimed at the right of the British line, while the
-other made its onset nearer to the centre,--the latter gained
-the precedence. As it descended into the valley, and allowed the
-French artillery on the heights behind an opportunity for action,
-the whole of these guns opened fire with a rapidity and weight
-which had not been experienced before throughout the day. Wherever
-a regiment was visible in the British line, there the round-shot
-and howitzer shells rained death upon it. But by degrees the
-attacking columns passed through the hollow ground, and began
-to ascend the opposite heights. Now they became visible to the
-British artillery, and the cannon-shot plunged into their masses
-with tremendous effect. The horse of Marshal Ney was killed;
-General Friant was wounded, and General Michel was killed. On the
-fall of the latter, a battalion of grenadiers came to a halt; but
-another General succeeded in inspiring it with new courage. The
-column moved forward, sorely shaken by its losses; but at last it
-crowned the height, and to its astonishment saw nothing before it
-but a small battery of field-pieces, and a few mounted officers in
-the rear. But one of these was the Duke, and the next moment the
-word of command was heard, “Up, Guards, and at them!” The British
-Guards, who had been ordered to lie down, sprang to their feet, in
-a compact line of four deep, and in a few seconds, a volley was
-heard, and then another, and a third; and in the first minute 300
-of the attacking column fell. The French officers rushed to the
-front, and called upon the men to deploy into line. Lord Saltoun
-exclaimed to the English Guards, “Now’s your time, my boys!”--and
-the Duke exclaimed, “Charge!” The brigade sprang forward, with a
-cheer, to the charge. All was disorder in the French ranks. Many
-flung down their arms and knapsacks and dispersed; the mass, in
-dire confusion, rushed down the slope, with the English Guards in
-full pursuit.
-
-But the English were instantly called back, for now appeared in
-sight the second column, which, shrinking from the fire of the
-batteries which had so crushed the first, diverged to the right,
-and by this mistaken move, presented its flank to General Adam’s
-brigade. The brigade of Guards was formed in its front, while the
-52nd and 71st regiments were on its flank. The three regiments
-poured such a fire into the mass, that it melted like snow in
-the sunshine. Soon was repeated the order, “Charge!” and the two
-brigades assailing the devoted column at once in its front and on
-its flank, swept it from the field. In a few moments the hollow
-ground was crowded with fugitives; Napoleon’s last stake was lost;
-the battle of Waterloo was, practically, ended.
-
-Of this terrible conflict, Lamartine rapidly sketches the progress,
-in a few glowing lines,--a summary of various French narratives:
-
-“These 6000 grenadiers advanced with shouldered arms, amidst cries
-of ‘Vive l’Empereur!’ Wellington awaited them with forty pieces of
-cannon, with the matches lighted. As they ascended and approached,
-the battery fired a volley point-blank into the advancing mass,
-which, as the smoke arose, was seen to waver for a moment; then
-to close up and advance as compact as ever. On a second discharge
-the same oscillation took place, the same closing up. On the third
-discharge the English saw the column reduced to a block of men,
-decimated by grape-shot:--two of the battalions had been struck
-down, the other two hesitated, and recoiled to seek another means
-of access to these impregnable heights. Napoleon turned pale, and
-at length doubted of victory.”
-
-This may be said to be the language of a florid writer, depicting
-the event long after its occurrence. But Count Drouet, who
-witnessed the whole scene, thus described it in the Chamber of
-Peers, just six days after the battle:--
-
-“The (first) four battalions of the Guard, when they arrived on
-the plateau, were received by the most terrible fire of musquetry
-and grape. The _great number of wounded men_ who separate from the
-column, cause it to be believed that the Guard is routed. A panic
-terror communicates itself to the neighbouring (or second) column,
-which precipitately takes flight.”
-
-Count Drouet, witnessing the repulse of both the columns, from
-the height behind, might suppose that the dispersal of the second
-arose from panic; but in so thinking, he did injustice to his
-countrymen. The second column came into action as gallantly us the
-first; but, although it was the stronger of the two, it had to
-contend with two English brigades instead of one; and its chance
-of success was therefore proportionally smaller. Clearly, it was
-bad generalship to send the two columns, one after the other, to
-be beaten separately. Had they reached the British position at
-the same moment, they would have brought against the two British
-brigades a force outnumbering them by two to one. Gourgaud thus
-describes the fate of this second column: “The eight battalions
-of the Guard which were in the centre, after having withstood for
-a long time all the attacks of the enemy, and contended for every
-foot of ground, were at last completely disorganized by the mass of
-the fugitives, and overwhelmed by the numbers of the enemy.”
-
-With the failure of this, his last attack, Napoleon’s hopes, and
-his empire, ended. His fall, when it came at last, proved a crash
-which left nothing for destruction to do. At the moment when the
-Imperial Guards were sent back in confusion, the Prussians under
-Marshal Blucher had come into action. His cavalry had supported the
-English left, and two brigades of English cavalry, which guarded
-the extreme left of the Duke’s position, had been released from
-this duty, and had moved to the support of the British centre.
-And now, the Prussian infantry of the first corps, commanded by
-General Zieten, rushed upon the villages of La Haye and Smohain,
-and instantly carried them at the bayonet’s point. A third column
-renewed the attack on Planchenoit, which was almost in the centre
-of the French position. The moment was come for a general advance,
-and the Duke, with that wonderful perception which distinguished
-his whole career, instantly seized it. He himself describes this
-critical moment, in the account written the very next day. He
-says:--
-
-“Having observed that the troops (Imperial Guard) retired from this
-attack in great confusion, and that the march of the Prussians
-on Planchenoit had begun to take effect, I determined to attack
-the enemy, and immediately advanced the whole line of infantry,
-supported by the cavalry and artillery.”
-
-An eye-witness thus described the scene at the time, “The Duke, who
-had been attentively observing what was passing in the French and
-Prussian armies, suddenly shut up his telescope, and exclaimed to
-the officers near him, ‘Now, every man must advance!’”
-
-Long had this order been eagerly expected. The British troops
-had stood for more than eight hours under a terrible fire. They
-had seen more than one-fourth of their numbers struck down by
-cannon-shot, and they longed for one final struggle, which should
-end the whole contest. The order flew to the right and to the left,
-and loud were the shouts with which it was received. Everywhere the
-lines of infantry were formed, the cavalry mounted and rode on, and
-a scene of triumph and exultation commenced, of which none who
-witnessed it could ever lose the memory.
-
-We have observed, a few sentences back, that only half an hour
-before, two brigades of light cavalry, Vivian’s and Vandeleur’s,
-had been moved from the extreme left of the English line, and
-brought nearer to the centre. These six regiments, numbering
-about 2000 sabres, were now of the greatest possible service, in
-driving before them the broken and scattered French. They charged
-and dispersed various bodies of cavalry which attempted to form
-and make a stand, and continued pressing upon the fugitives of
-the infantry till the whole mass of Napoleon’s army melted into
-a chaotic crowd. And now were seen, on all sides, “unfurled
-colours raised aloft, bands striking up, the soldiers cheering
-tumultuously, as, with one simultaneous movement, they quitted the
-height on which they had so long stood, and descended joyfully into
-the plain, over which the French, on all sides, were now retreating
-in disorder.”
-
-Their great commander himself was naturally among the foremost in
-this magnificent advance. Napier says, “The Duke, who was stationed
-on the left of the guns and the right of the Guards, gave the order
-to advance, and like lightning rode to the rear, and brought up the
-light cavalry, cheering them on, with his hat off--his cheers most
-cordially echoed by my brave fellows and myself.” He rode in front
-of Adam’s brigade, cheering it forward, speaking joyously to the
-men, and receiving their hearty shouts of congratulation. At last
-one of his staff ventured to hint to him that they were getting
-into the enemy’s lines, and that his life ought not to be thrown
-away. “Never mind,” was the reply, “the battle’s won, and my life
-is of no consequence now.”
-
-Down the slope of their own heights, across the valley, up the
-face of the enemy’s hill, marched the British line triumphantly.
-Here and there a remnant of a French battalion or squadron offered
-a brief resistance; but the cry of “_Sauve qui peut!_” had been
-heard, and the French knew that the battle was lost, and that the
-Prussians were already in their rear. Hence Fleury de Chaboulon,
-Napoleon’s own secretary, thus describes the close:--
-
-“Wellington did not allow our grenadiers time to recollect
-themselves. He caused them to be attacked in flank by his cavalry,
-and compelled them to retire in the greatest disorder. At the
-same moment the Prussians carried the village of La Haye; and our
-cavalry, our infantry, already staggered by the defeat of the
-Guard, were afraid of being cut off, and precipitately retreated.
-The other troops of the right, seeing some of our squadrons
-pell-mell, and some of the Guards running away, thought all
-was lost, and quitted their position. This contagious movement
-was communicated in an instant to the left, and the whole army
-abandoned its strongest posts as eagerly as they had previously
-assailed them. Soon the whole army was nothing but a confused
-crowd, which the English and Prussians routed without effort, and
-massacred without pity.”[38]
-
-“Napoleon,” says Lamartine, “saw that army which a few hours
-before was his only hope, now returning in broken fragments,
-and exclaimed, ‘All is lost!’ For a moment he contemplated the
-disastrous scene, turned pale, stammered, and shed some tears, the
-first he had ever shed upon a field of battle.”
-
-On marched the English, seized at every step the artillery which
-had so long poured its iron hail upon them, and driving before them
-the crowds of dismayed and disordered French. Up the heights on
-which Napoleon and his army had stood, they now exultingly pressed,
-and here the two Generals met, with mutual congratulations.
-Marshal Blucher had well performed his part, though the state of
-the roads had hindered his arrival until the very close of the
-battle. In less than an hour he had driven in the whole right wing
-of the French army, and now reached the very centre of Napoleon’s
-position, at the same moment when the Duke had penetrated to the
-same point with his attack in front. After a few moments of hearty
-rejoicing, the English commander gladly resigned to the Prussian,
-the remaining duty of a vigorous pursuit. The British troops, after
-a long day’s work, were physically unable to chase their enemies
-far. The Prussian General, therefore, to quote their own accounts,
-assembled his officers, and gave orders to send the last horse and
-the last man in pursuit of the enemy.”
-
-Well and earnestly was this duty performed. All night long were the
-wretched French pursued. Nine times did they attempt to halt for
-rest, and nine times was the Prussian drum heard, and the flight
-was again to be resumed. A French officer[39] thus describes the
-scene:--
-
-“Near one of the hedges of Hougoumont, without even a drummer to
-beat the rappel, we succeeded in rallying 300 men; these were
-nearly all that remained of our splendid division. Thither came
-also a band of Generals. Here was Reille,[40] D’Erlon, Bachelor,
-Foy, and others. All were gloomy and sorrowful. They said,
-one to another, ‘Here is all that is left of my corps,--of my
-division,--of my brigade!--I myself!’
-
-“The enemy’s horse approached, and we were obliged to retreat. The
-movements of the English cavalry had demoralized our soldiers,
-who, seeing all regular retreat cut off, strove each man to save
-himself. Infantry, cavalry, artillery, all jammed together, were
-pressing along pell-mell. Figure to yourself 40,000 men all
-struggling along a single causeway. We could not take that way, so
-we struck across the fields. We were humiliated, we were hopeless;
-we walked like a troop of mourners.
-
-“We passed through Thuin, and finding a little copse, we gladly
-sought its shelter. While our horses grazed, we lay down and slept.
-We rested in the little copse till noon, and sat watching the
-wrecks of our army defile along the road. It was a soul-harrowing
-sight!
-
-“We drew near to Beaumont, when suddenly a regiment of horse
-was seen debouching from a wood on our left. The column that we
-followed cried out, ‘The Prussians! the Prussians!’ and hurried off
-in utter disorder.
-
-“I was trying to return to General Foy, when another horde of
-fugitives burst into Beaumont, swept me into the current of their
-flight, and hurried me out of the town with them. I reached
-Landrecy, though I know not how or when.”
-
-Such is the description given by one of the fugitives, and it
-exactly corresponds with the official report of the Prussian
-General, Gneisenau, who says, “The French army, pursued without
-intermission, was absolutely disorganized. The highway presented
-the appearance of an immense shipwreck; it was covered with an
-innumerable quantity of cannon, caissons, baggage, arms, and goods
-of every kind. As soon as the enemy heard the sound of our drums,
-they fled, while the moonlight favoured the pursuit, for the whole
-march was a continued chase, whether in the corn-fields or in the
-houses.”
-
-“At three o’clock Napoleon had despatched a courier to Paris with
-the news that victory was certain: a few hours afterwards he had no
-longer an army.”
-
-The French accounts, Gourgaud’s, Napoleon’s, &c., written long
-after, endeavour to diminish the defeat by representing that within
-a week as many us 60 or 65,000 men were re-assembled at Laon. Some
-one attempted to make a representation of this sort in the French
-Chamber of Peers, on the 24th of June; when Marshal Ney rose in his
-place, and declared all such accounts to be deceptive. “It is a
-mere illusion to suppose that 60,000 men can be collected. Marshal
-Grouchy,” said he, “cannot have more than 20,000, or 25,000 at the
-most.”
-
-Fortunately, however, the question is set at rest by Fleury de
-Chaboulon, Napoleon’s secretary, who describes very vividly what
-followed immediately after the battle. He tells us, how, in his
-flight, on meeting Maret, “the Emperor could not repress his
-emotion; a large tear, escaping from his eyes, betrayed the efforts
-of his soul.” Again he says, “The Emperor stopped beyond Rocroi to
-take some refreshment. We were all in a pitiable state: our eyes
-swelled with tears, our countenances haggard, our clothes covered
-with dust or blood.” And, on arriving at Paris, when one of his
-ministers spoke of the army, Napoleon exclaimed, “_I have no longer
-an army!_ I have nothing but fugitives!”[41]
-
-It was this absolute destruction of the French army which made
-Waterloo one of the greatest and most important of all victories.
-Thus, Jules Maurel, a French historian, says:--
-
-“From a comparison of all the documents, it appears, that Bonaparte
-was already beaten when the mass of the Prussian army appeared on
-the field; but the arrival of Bulow had powerfully assisted the
-British, and the arrival of Blucher changed the defeat into _an
-unparalleled disaster_.”
-
-Lamartine, another Frenchman, adds:--
-
-“This defeat left nothing undecided,--nothing for the future to do.
-Victory had given judgment: the war began and ended in a single
-battle.”
-
-But let us return for a moment to the great victor of the day.
-At a road-side house, near Rossomme, he left Blucher, who gladly
-undertook the pursuit, and after twelve hours of constant exertion,
-he turned his charger’s head once more towards Mont St. Jean and
-Waterloo. Darkness now shrouded a thousand scenes of horror, over
-which it had been useless to pause. At his quarters the Duke found
-assembled the survivors of his staff, the representatives of the
-allied powers, and a few other friends. All sorely needed rest
-and food, and the meal was ready. On leaving his quarters in the
-morning, he had desired his domestics to have dinner ready to place
-on the table “whenever it might be wanted” and his cook excited
-amusement by the confidence with which he asserted, that “his
-master had ordered dinner, and would certainly return to eat it.”
-But the thoughts which would throng into the conqueror’s mind, at
-that moment, must have been such as few men have ever experienced.
-
-The foremost considerations with the Duke of Wellington always
-were, _his country, and his duty_. But besides these there was a
-personal question, little spoken of by him, but which could not be
-excluded from his thoughts.
-
-“I go to measure myself with Wellington,” exclaimed Napoleon,
-when he flung himself into his carriage, only a few days before,
-to join his army on the Belgian frontier. The Duke spoke not of
-such matters, but he could not possibly forget that the muse of
-history was waiting all that day, to know _which_ of the two great
-names was to take the highest place among the many able commanders
-of the nineteenth century. The one had defeated, in turn, nearly
-every general in Europe, except Wellington. The other had triumphed
-over almost all the Marshals of France, but had not yet confronted
-Napoleon.
-
-Captain Moyle Sherer thus writes:--
-
-“Upon the night of that memorable battle, the words and emotions of
-the conqueror will long be remembered by those who sat with him at
-supper, after the anxious and awful day had closed. The fountain
-of a great heart lies deep, and the self-government of a calm mind
-permits no tears. But, this night, Wellington repeatedly leaned
-back in his chair, and rubbing his hands convulsively, exclaimed,
-“Thank God! I have met him: Thank God! I have met him.”[42] And,
-ever as he spoke, the smile that lighted up his eye was dimmed by
-those few tears that gush warm from a grateful heart.
-
-“His many and deep anxieties; his noble desire to defeat his
-country’s implacable enemy; his rational doubts of success against
-so great a general;--these and many other fears and hopes,
-undisclosed to any one, all were now resolved and dissipated by
-a result more sudden, full, and glorious than any expectation he
-could have formed, or any hope he could have admitted. England was
-placed on the very pinnacle of glory; her foe was prostrate, his
-legions fugitives, and her general might joyfully look around and
-say, ‘This work was mine!’”
-
-But after necessary food, and the writing of despatches and
-letters, came such rest as the excited mind and body could take.
-The Duke threw himself, unwashed but exhausted, on his bed long
-after midnight. He had desired Dr. Hume to bring him the report of
-the surgeons at seven in the morning. The doctor was punctual,
-but the claims of nature were not satisfied, the Duke’s sleep was
-still sound. Knowing that, with him, duty was paramount to all
-other considerations, the doctor at once awakened him. The list was
-produced, and the doctor began to read; but as name after name came
-forth--this one as dying, that as dead--the voice failed, and Hume,
-looking up, perceived the tears rapidly chasing each other down the
-victor’s blackened cheeks;--he laid down the list and instantly
-left the apartment.
-
-The British loss was indeed great. Of the Duke’s staff twelve were
-killed and forty-six wounded. The number of British officers killed
-and wounded in these three days exceeded 700, and of privates it
-was more than 10,000, so that about every third man in the British
-ranks had been struck down in this terrible battle. The loss of
-Dutch, Hanoverians, &c., had been 7,000; and that of the Prussians
-exceeded 6,000. As to the French, their loss in killed and wounded
-never could be ascertained; but it is certain that of 150,000 men
-who crossed the frontiers, not 50,000 were ever re-assembled under
-their colours.
-
-The utter loss of his army sent Napoleon back to Paris. But the
-news of his total defeat arrived along with him. His fame, his
-“glory,” and his power perished together. The Chambers rose in
-rebellion against him; and his abdication was demanded. The English
-and Prussian armies, meanwhile, rapidly advanced; and on their
-arrival before Paris the city capitulated; the King returned to his
-palace; and Napoleon gave himself up to the Captain of an English
-ship of war. On the 15th of June one of the finest armies that he
-had ever led into the field entered Belgium to take advantage of
-the Duke of Wellington’s unprepared state;--on the 3rd of July,
-just fifteen days after, _Paris itself capitulated_! Such were the
-vast results of Waterloo.
-
-Napoleon, indeed, had been in some peril, for the Prussian general
-showed a particular anxiety to get hold of him, in order that
-he might hang him! The Duke had no fondness for him,--always
-designating him in his despatches, merely as “Bonaparte;” but the
-old Prussian field-marshal, remembering the cruel treatment of his
-country by the French in 1807, felt, and constantly expressed,
-sentiments of positive hatred. The Duke, however, with that
-loftiness of aim and of feeling which had forbidden his officers
-to fire upon Napoleon during the action, firmly resisted Blucher’s
-desires on this point. General Muffling, the Prussian commissioner,
-tells us, that the Duke said to him, “I wish my friend and
-colleague to see this matter in the light I do: such an act would
-give our names to history stained with a crime; and posterity would
-say of us, “They were not worthy to be his conquerors; the more so,
-as such a deed would be useless, and can have no object.”
-
-In the same tone the Duke wrote to Sir Charles Stuart, telling him,
-“I said, that as a private friend, I advised him to have nothing
-to do with so foul a transaction; that he and I had acted too
-distinguished parts in these transactions to become executioners;
-and that I was determined that if the Sovereign put him to death,
-they should appoint an executioner, _which should not be me_.”
-
-In a similar spirit, the Duke succeeded in preventing the Prussians
-from executing other plans of vengeance, such us the blowing
-up the bridge of Jena, pulling down the column of Austerlitz,
-and the like. In fact, had the old marshal been alone in these
-transactions, he would gladly have indulged his troops with the
-plunder of Paris.
-
-Indeed, such an utter overthrow as France had received, and
-that in the course of a few days, was hardly to be paralleled
-in history. Sufficient stress has seldom been laid upon that
-wonderful working of the Divine Providence by which this great
-contest, expected by all men to be so long, so desperate, and so
-sanguinary, was suddenly brought to a close on the fourth day after
-its commencement. All the great powers of Europe had agreed upon a
-united effort. They had pledged their faith to one another to place
-600,000 men on the soil of France in July, 1815.
-
-All at once, in the middle of June, while the bulk of these armies
-were moving up from Poland, Bohemia, Hungary, and other distant
-lands, they hear that the war is begun. And in four days after,
-they hear that it is _finished_! Such is not the ordinary course of
-human history.
-
-All, however, is easily accounted for. Napoleon saw in England the
-most resolute, consistent, and indomitable of his foes, and in
-England’s Great General, the only Captain whom he could hold in
-no light esteem. He said, and not unwisely, “If the Anglo-Belgian
-army had been destroyed at Waterloo, what service could the Allies
-derive from the number of armies which were preparing to cross the
-Rhine, the Alps, and the Pyrenees?”[43]
-
-And acting upon this sound view of the case, and knowing that one
-or two more weeks would elapse before Wellington could have his
-veteran battalions around him, he resolved to throw himself like
-an avalanche upon the Duke’s army in its unreadiness; in the hope
-that a campaign beginning with a defeat of this his chief opponent
-would alarm England, terrify the other powers, and so make peace,
-with his continued retention of the throne of France, attainable.
-
-This plan was a sagacious as well as a bold one. It grappled at
-once with the grand difficulty of the case. But the difficulty,
-when grappled with, overmastered him. Still, the peculiar
-characteristics of this momentous struggle deserves to be carefully
-remarked. A judicious writer has well observed, that:--
-
-“Waterloo seemed to bear the features of a grand, immediate
-interposition of Providence. Had human judgments been consulted,
-they would have drawn a different plan. The Prussians would have
-joined the English and have swept the enemy before them; or, the
-British would have been in force enough to have beaten the French
-long before the set of sun, &c., &c. But if the French had suffered
-a common defeat, with consummate generals at their head they would
-have rallied; or, retiring in force, would have called in all
-available aids, and have renewed the struggle. So the conflict
-held on till the last moment, when they could neither escape nor
-conquer. If they had retreated an hour before nightfall they might
-have been saved; if they could have fought an hour after it,
-darkness would have covered them. But the crash came on the very
-edge of darkness. The Prussians came up unfatigued by battle and
-fresh for pursuit. The night was to be a night of slaughter. ‘Thou,
-moon, in the valley of Ajalon.’”
-
-Such was one of the grand events of modern history,--the victory
-which gave all Europe peace for forty years. Ascribing, as we most
-unreservedly do, the whole ordering of this momentous struggle
-to an overruling Providence, it still seems a duty to add a few
-words on the respective merits, or demerits, connected with this
-tremendous contest, of the two great commanders, who for the first
-and last time met at Waterloo. Let us first glance at the great
-deeds achieved, and the great mistakes committed, by Napoleon in
-the course of these three eventful days.
-
-He carried his magnificent army over the frontier, and threw it
-upon the allied armies in a manner exhibiting the most consummate
-skill. Twenty years spent in the practice of war had given him an
-expertness in the handling of large bodies of troops which few
-generals have ever possessed. He showed also on the 16th that he
-was a better general than Blucher, and that his army was a better
-army than that of the Prussians. But here our commendation must
-close; for a variety of faults and errors have been pointed out
-by military critics, of which we shall only mention a few of the
-chief. Napoleon was guilty of two great miscalculations, and of
-three important practical mistakes. These were:--
-
-1. He rashly and erroneously assumed that his appearance in Belgium
-at the head of a fine army would force his opponents, Wellington
-and Blucher, out of mere awe and terror, to fall back, to evacuate
-the country, and so to give him a triumph at the opening of the
-campaign. In his ixth Book he seriously argues that they _ought_
-to have done so: but this was a strange miscalculation. When had
-either Wellington or Blucher showed any alacrity in running away?
-And what right had he to assume that a force amounting, when
-united, to nearly 200,000 men, would act as if terror-stricken,
-on the mere appearance of a French army of only 150,000? Yet he
-constantly tells us that they ought to have retreated, and that his
-calculations always rested on the presumption that they certainly
-would retreat.
-
-2. In like manner was he disappointed when he sent Grouchy with
-35,000 or 40,000 men, to occupy and keep employed the whole
-Prussian army. Again did he absurdly overlook the real character
-of Blucher, who was not one to be easily duped. Napoleon might
-speculate, if he pleased, on the chance of keeping Blucher at Wavre
-while he was overpowering and crushing Wellington at Waterloo;
-but Blucher was equally at liberty to despise all such devices,
-and to leave Napoleon’s lieutenant in order to seek for Napoleon
-himself. This was what actually took place, and hence we see that
-again Napoleon is exposed to the imputation of having fatally
-miscalculated.
-
-3. But as in his plans there were these two errors, so in actual
-execution we meet with three egregious faults. Having found
-Wellington with his weak army apart from Blucher, why did he allow
-several hours to elapse before he seized the opportunity for which
-he had been hoping? He speaks of the softened state of the ground
-after several hours’ rain. But, as we have seen, when Grouchy
-advances the same excuse for inaction at Wavre, he styles it
-“ridiculous!” and who can say that the movements which he actually
-made at eleven o’clock, _could not_ have been made at ten, or even
-at nine o’clock? Meanwhile, although Napoleon was _waiting_, the
-Prussians were _marching_. They found the task _difficult_, while
-he deemed it _impossible_. In earlier days he would have replied
-that “there was no such word in his vocabulary.”
-
-4. Again, to what strange hallucination was it owing, that, all
-through the day, attacks which might have been made simultaneously
-were only discharged in succession? Thus, at three or four
-o’clock, he sorely tried the nerve and pluck of the English
-infantry by pouring in upon them “twelve thousand select horse.”
-It took them three hours to kill or drive away these formidable
-intruders. And _then_, when the French cavalry had been destroyed,
-Napoleon next attacked the English line with six or eight
-thousand of his Imperial Guard. But what prevented his moving
-this formidable column up the heights of Mont St. Jean, while the
-cuirassiers were already in possession of the plateau? They had
-seized or silenced the English artillery; they had compelled the
-infantry to throw themselves into squares. If a mass of the finest
-infantry in France had then been thrown upon the British centre,
-how fearful would have been the trial? But Napoleon still delayed.
-He sent on his cavalry, unsupported by any infantry; and then,
-when the cavalry had been “massacred,” he sent on a column of
-infantry, unsupported by any cavalry. Will the greatest admirer of
-his genius hesitate to admit that his practical generalship, his
-excellence as a leader in battle, was not conspicuous at Waterloo?
-Yet, wherefore was he less vigorous, less audacious at Waterloo,
-than at Austerlitz or Jena? He was still in the very prime of life.
-Must we suppose that the toils and troubles and disappointments
-of 1812-1814 had prematurely worn out his mind; and that he was
-already, at only forty-six years of age, mentally decrepit?
-
-5. The most singular exhibition of defect in generalship, however,
-and of blindness to that defect, is seen in this,--that he could
-not lose a battle without utterly losing his army also!
-
-The general who can bear a defeat well, and can carry off his army
-with only a moderate loss, is entitled to take a high rank amongst
-commanders. He who cannot do this is only a fair-weather general.
-
-The Prussian commander was attacked on the 16th before his army was
-all assembled. He placed his men badly,--so badly that Wellington
-predicted their certain defeat. Yet, when that defeat fell upon
-him, he rallied his army at a distance of a quarter of a league,
-and was ready and eager to fight another battle on the second day
-after. It was this unconquerability which made Blucher one of the
-most formidable antagonists of his time.
-
-But let us turn to Napoleon. He invites us to do this, by the
-pertinacity with which he assails Wellington on this very point.
-Again and again he brings the charge vehemently against him, that
-at Waterloo he had made no provision for a retreat. Thus, in Book
-ix, p. 124, he says:--
-
-“He had in his rear the defiles of the forest of Soignes, so that,
-if beaten, retreat was impossible.”
-
-And again, at p. 158--
-
-“The enemy must have seen with affright how many difficulties the
-field of battle he had chosen was about to throw in the way of his
-retreat.”
-
-And again, at p. 207--
-
-“The position of Mont St. Jean was ill-chosen. The first requisite
-of a field of battle, is, to have no defiles in its rear. The
-injudicious choice of his field of battle, rendered all retreat
-impossible.”
-
-Thus Napoleon challenges our criticism on this very point. All
-military authorities are agreed that he was wrong in his censure on
-Wellington. It is conceded even by Frenchmen like Lamartine, that
-the forest of Soignes, instead of being a source of peril, was an
-element of safety. But he who assails his rival on this especial
-point, of a provision for retreat, must expect to be asked,
-himself, “How his own retreat was conducted?”
-
-There is no parallel to its disastrous character. An army of nearly
-90,000 fine soldiers, not 40,000 of which could have been killed or
-wounded, was nothing the next day but a vast horde of fugitives. We
-notice, with contemptuous pity, how the Spanish generals, in 1809,
-managed to incur such a disgraceful defeat at Ocana, that out of
-50,000 men, not 1,000 kept the field a week after. But here was
-one of the finest armies that ever France sent forth, commanded
-too, by the conqueror, of Europe; and even the very day after the
-battle, not a single thousand men were to be found in the field!
-All were utterly scattered and broken up. And yet their general has
-the assurance, in criticising the general who has beaten him, to
-censure him, especially, because “he had taken no precautions to
-secure his retreat!”
-
-But now of his great rival and conqueror:--The Duke of Wellington
-had not the same opportunity for displaying his skill and talent
-in 1815, which he had enjoyed in 1813. His proposed campaign was
-to open on the 1st of July, and it had been the favourite object
-of Napoleon to take the initiative, to open the campaign before
-the British troops from America had arrived, and thus to lead the
-campaign himself without waiting for the Duke to open it. Hence,
-during these three days, Napoleon was always advancing, attacking,
-while Wellington, with his weak army was making the best defence
-he could. And, accordingly, at Waterloo, the Duke knowing the
-disparity of his force, could only hope to “keep his ground” till
-the Prussians should arrive. He was in the position of a small
-man attacked by a giant. He could only parry his blows and allow
-the assailant to exhaust his strength, in the hope that, at last,
-by a well-aimed thrust he might lay his enemy prostrate. For nine
-long hours, therefore, the Duke’s whole business was to meet and
-repel the powerful attacks of Napoleon; and he had to do this with,
-according to Napoleon’s own admission, “less than 40,000 good
-troops.” In fact, his infantry, British and of the German Legion,
-were only 18,485, his British and German Legion cavalry 7,834,
-while Napoleon had very nearly 70,000 excellent infantry, and more
-than 18,000 splendid cavalry. Yet for these nine hours did the Duke
-meet and repel all his assaults. This sort of soldiership is less
-showy than daring manœuvres, but it is equally valuable; and in the
-present instance, when the materials the Duke had to work with are
-considered, the merit of it is not at all inferior. One of the best
-generals commanding under the Duke, when acknowledging the thanks
-of the House of Commons, said, “An army hastily drawn together,
-composed of the troops of various nations, and amongst which were
-counted several brigades of inexperienced militia, was the force
-which the Duke had to oppose to one of the most formidable and
-best-appointed armies that France ever produced. No other man
-living could have rendered the service which he performed, with an
-army so composed.”
-
-The chief point, however, in the character of a great general is
-the possession of that “eagle eye” which enables him, amid all the
-din and turmoil of a horrible contest, to perceive exactly the
-right moment for vigorous action, and the right place at which
-to aim an attack. It was this, especially, which gave the Duke
-his first signal victory over the French at Salamanca; and it was
-this which turned the repulse of the French at Waterloo into a
-disastrous defeat.
-
-Narrative-writers, collecting, long after, the best available
-testimony from all quarters, and carefully comparing and sifting
-the whole, are able to arrive at probable conclusions as to the
-order and date of the leading events. But this sort of calm
-investigation is wholly different from the horrible din, the
-ceaseless clamour, and the almost impervious smoke which obscures
-everything on the battle-field. We, for instance, comparing the
-accounts of the French, the Prussians, and the Austrians, are
-able to arrive at the conclusion, with absolute certainty that
-General Bulow’s corps first showed itself on the right of the
-French line about half-past four, and began to take part in the
-engagement about half-past five. But it is quite certain that the
-Duke, fully occupied just then with the French cavalry, who were
-riding round his squares, knew nothing of the actual arrival of the
-long-expected succour until long after. It was nearly two hours
-after this, when, by carefully examining every part of the left
-of his line, the Duke was able to perceive the rising of smoke
-over Planchenoit. This was not until seven o’clock; but it assured
-him of this, that some part of the promised Prussian support had
-arrived, and that more must be coming up. And this was sufficient
-to give him new hopes of ultimate success, though he could be
-certain, as yet, of very little more than that some aid was at hand.
-
-It was shortly after this, and about the time of the movement of
-the Imperial Guard, when news reached him from Marshal Blucher
-himself that he was then actually joining the extreme left of
-the British line. It was this support which enabled the British
-light cavalry to move from the left of the line, and to take a
-position nearer the centre. And hence, when the English and the
-French Guards had tried each other’s mettle, and the latter had
-retired in disorder, the Duke saw at one comprehensive glance the
-arrival of that moment for which he had been longing,--the defeat
-and confusion of Napoleon’s last reserve; the presence of the
-long-promised Prussian succours, at that last moment of daylight,
-which just allowed time for one daring movement and no more. And
-the decision and boldness with which the Duke seized this golden
-opportunity are among the finest traits in the whole history of
-great military deeds. A brief hesitation, if only of a quarter of
-an hour, would have allowed the French, although beaten, to retire
-at leisure. A renewal of the contest might have followed after the
-lapse of a couple of days, but how different would have been the
-whole history of such a campaign from that of Waterloo! It was
-this clear perception of the right moment for an attack, and the
-fearlessness with which fewer than 30,000 men were led forward to
-assault at least twice their numbers, commanded by Napoleon, Soult,
-and Ney,--it was this wonderful union of prudence, decision, and
-the highest kind of valour, which made the Duke of Wellington the
-first of all the generals of his day.
-
-And, united with those lofty endowments, there was the patient,
-enduring, untiring discharge of every duty of a commander. In this,
-as in every other of his battles, the Duke was constantly wherever
-his presence was needed. There could not be a pressure felt at
-any portion of the line,--there could not be an anxious moment
-when even the bravest might look around him and begin to think
-of the possibility of an overthrow, but presently the well-known
-chestnut-horse would be seen, and the whisper would run through the
-ranks, “Here’s the Duke! stand fast!” This might seem to some to be
-merely a matter of course; but it is the being always in the right
-place at the right time; it is the union of the commonest duties
-with the highest which fills up the outline of a great character,
-and leaves to posterity not only a brilliant name, but a really
-bright example.”[44]
-
-
-WAWZ, BATTLE OF.--Fought, March 31st, 1831, between the Poles and
-the Russians. After two days of hard labour in fighting, the Poles
-carried the Russian works, who were obliged to retreat, with the
-loss of 12,000 men and 2000 prisoners. This triumph of the Poles
-was shortly after followed by defeat and massacre.
-
-
-WHITE PLAINS, BATTLE OF.--Between the revolted American Provinces
-and the British, under Sir William Howe. Fought, November 30th,
-1776. This was the most serious of the early battles of that
-unfortunate war, and terminated in the defeat of the Americans, who
-suffered considerable loss in killed, wounded, and prisoners.
-
-
-WIGAN, BATTLE OF.--In the civil war of England, fought between
-the King’s troops and the Parliamentary forces. The former were
-defeated, 1643. Another battle, between the same parties, was
-fought here, 1651.
-
-
-WITEPSK, BATTLE OF.--Between the French and Russians. The
-former commanded by Marshal Victor, and the latter by General
-Wittgenstein. The French were defeated, after a desperate
-engagement, having lost 3000 men. Fought, November 14th, 1812.
-
-
-WORCESTER, BATTLE OF.--In the civil war fought between the Royalist
-army and the forces of the Parliament, the latter commanded by
-Cromwell, a large body of Scots having marched into England to
-reinstate Charles II, Cromwell signally defeated them, and it
-afforded to him what he called his _crowning mercy_; more than 2000
-of the Royalists were slain, and of 8000 prisoners, nearly all were
-sold as slaves to the American Colonies. Fought, September 3rd,
-1651. The following is an account of the flight of the young King,
-after the disastrous day of battle:--
-
-“Charles, in his progress towards Bristol, was pursued by a party
-of the enemy to the new ferry over the Severn. He rode through
-Shire Newton, and crossed the Severn at Chiswell Pit, on the
-Gloucestershire side. The boat had scarcely returned, before a body
-of the republicans, amounting to 60 men, followed him to the Black
-Rock, and threatening them with instant death if they refused,
-compelled the ferrymen to take them across. The boatmen were
-royalists, and left them on a reef called English Stones, which
-is separated from the Gloucestershire side by a lake, fordable at
-low water; but the tide, which had just turned, flowed in with
-great rapidity, and they were all drowned in attempting to cross.
-Cromwell, when informed of this disaster, abolished the ferry, and
-it was not renewed until the year 1748. The renewal occasioned a
-law-suit between the family of St. Pierre and the guardians of
-the Duke of Beaufort. In the course of the suit, documents were
-produced which tended to confirm this anecdote.”
-
-
-WRECKS.--The most remarkable shipwrecks of British men of war or
-transports, or of ships, connected with military events, are the
-following which have happened within the last 85 years:
-
-A tremendous storm occurred in October, 1780, in the West Indies,
-and the following vessels of war were all lost.
-
-_Thunderer_, of 74 guns; _Stirling Castle_, of 64 guns; _Phœnix_,
-of 44 guns; _La Blanche_, of 42 guns; _Laurel_, of 28 guns;
-_Andromeda_, of 28 guns; _Deal Castle_, of 24 guns; _Scarborough_,
-of 20 guns; _Barbadoes_, of 14 guns; _Cameleon_, of 14 guns;
-_Endeavour_, of 14 guns; and the _Victor_, of 10 guns.
-
-_The Royal George_--June 28th, 1782,--1000 persons and brave
-Admiral Kenpenfeldt perished by the sinking, or rather oversetting
-of this 100 gun man-of-war. The guns on one side all rolled over
-to the other, and with the extra weight immediately overset the
-ship riding at anchor at Spithead.
-
-_Ramilies_, of 74 guns, off Newfoundland, September 21st, 1782. 100
-souls perished.
-
-_Pandora Frigate_, on a reef of rocks, August 28th, 1791. 100 souls
-perished.
-
-_Droits de l’Homme_--A British ship of the line, and the _Amazon_,
-a frigate, lost off Hodierne Bay. Many hundreds perished, January
-14th, 1797.
-
-_Nassau_, of 64 guns, October 25th, 1799. 100 of the crew and
-marines perished.
-
-_Queen_, transport on Trefusis Point, January 14th, 1800. 369 souls
-lost.
-
-_Queen Charlotte_, of 110 guns, lost March 17th, 1800. This was
-the flag ship of Lord Keith, commanding in the Mediterranean
-Sea, burnt by accidental fire off the harbor of Leghorn. More
-than 700 perished. The ship took fire just before day break. It
-was occasioned by a match kept burning for the purpose of firing
-salutes, having communicated itself to some hay, &c., and so
-rapidly did the fire rage, that nothing could save the noble
-vessel. She burned rapidly to the water’s edge, and then blew up.
-
-_Invincible_, of 74 guns, March 20th, 1801. 400 souls perished.
-
-_Apollo_, frigate, lost April 2nd, 1804, in a heavy gale off Capo
-Mondego. 61 of her crew and her commander, perished, and with her
-40 sail of the outward-bound West India fleet, lost.
-
-_Venerable_, of 74 guns, Nov. 24th, 1804. Crew saved.
-
-_Tartarus_, of 74 guns, December 20th, 1804. Crew saved.
-
-_Æneas_, transport, off Newfoundland, lost October 23rd, 1805. 340
-perished.
-
-_Aurora_, transport, lost on the Godwin Sands, December 21st, 1805.
-300 perished.
-
-_Athenienne_, of 64 guns lost off Sardinia, October 20th, 1806. 347
-perished.
-
-_Ajax_--Lost by fire off the Island of Tenedos, February 14th,
-1807. 300 perished.
-
-_Boreas_, man-of-war, lost upon the Hannois Rock in the Channel,
-November 28th, 1807.
-
-_Anson_, frigate, lost near Land’s End, December 29th, 1807. 125
-persons drowned.
-
-_Magicienne_, frigate, August 16th, 1810. She ran aground at the
-Mauritius, and was abandoned and burnt by her crew.
-
-_Satellite_, sloop-of-war of 16 guns, December 14th, 1810. Upset
-and all on board perished.
-
-_Minotam_, of 74 guns, wrecked on the Haak Bank, December 27th,
-1810. Of 600 persons on board, about 480 were drowned.
-
-_Amethyst_, frigate of 36 guns, lost in the Sound, February 15th,
-1811.
-
-_Barham_, of 74 guns. Foundered July 29th, 1811, on the coast of
-Corsica.
-
-_Saldanha_, frigate, lost on the Irish coast, December, 1811. 300
-souls perished.
-
-_St. George_, of 98 guns, and the _Defence_, of 74 guns, stranded
-on the coast of Jutland, and all souls perished, except 16 seamen,
-December 24th, 1811.
-
-_Seahorse_, transport, near Tramore Bay, January 30th, 1816. 365
-souls, chiefly soldiers of the 59th Regiment, and most of the crew,
-lost.
-
-_Lord Melville_, and _Boadicea_, two transports lost near Kinsale,
-Ireland, when several hundred of the 82nd Regiment, and almost all
-the crew perished, January 31st, 1816.
-
-_Harpooner_, transport, off Newfoundland, November 10th, 1816. 100
-persons drowned.
-
-_Kent_, shattered by a dreadful storm, February 28th 1825.
-Afterwards she caught fire; but the passengers and crew were
-providentially saved by the _Cambria_. There were on board 301
-officers and men of the 31st regiment, 66 women, 45 children, and
-139 seamen.
-
-“The _Kent_, _Indiaman_, was making her way in the Bay of Biscay
-on the morning of the 1st of March, 1825, across the heavy swell
-common in that stormy entrance to the Atlantic, when her progress
-was arrested by a fatal accident. An officer, who was sent into
-the hold to see whether the rolling of the vessel had disturbed
-the stowage, perceiving that a cask of spirits had burst from its
-lashings, gave the lamp he had in his hand to a seaman to hold,
-while he should replace the cask. Unfortunately, in the continued
-rolling of the vessel, the man let the lamp fall near the spirits,
-to which it set fire in a moment. The flames spread; attempts were
-made to smother them by wet blankets and hammocks, but all was in
-vain, and they soon assumed an aspect so tremendous, as to show
-that it would be impossible to subdue them.
-
-At this moment of despair, the man at the mast-head exclaimed that
-a sail was in sight; guns were fired, and a signal of distress
-hoisted. The gale, however, was so heavy, that it was for some time
-doubtful whether the strange vessel perceived the signals, or was
-likely to turn aside from her course; but this painful suspense was
-soon removed by her approach. The boats of the _Kent_ were now got
-out and placed, not alongside, on account of the flames and the
-danger of staving the boats, but a-head and a-stern. In the latter
-many got out from the cabin-windows, but the chief part were let
-down from the bowsprit into the boat a-head, and the men sliding
-down by a rope, while the soldiers’ wives were lowered into the
-boat slung three together.
-
-The fire had burst out about ten o’clock, and about twelve the
-signal of distress had been perceived by the strange sail, which
-proved to be the _Cambria_, outward-bound to Mexico, with mining
-workmen and machinery, shipped by the Anglo-Mexican company. It
-was two o’clock when the _Cambria_ received the first boat-load of
-passengers, consisting of ladies and children, half clothed, and
-pale with fright and fatigue. The whole afternoon was passed in
-exertions on board the one vessel in sending off the sufferers,
-and in the other in receiving them. The _Cambria_ had amongst her
-passengers several stout workmen, who took their station at the
-ship’s side, and were indefatigable in hoisting the poor sufferers
-on board; so that, out of 642 persons in the _Kent_, no less than
-547 were safe in the _Cambria_ before midnight. The remainder (95
-in number) were lost, chiefly in getting out and in of the boats,
-the swell of the sea being very great all the time. The captain
-of the _Kent_ was the last man to leave her. She blew up at a few
-minutes before two o’clock on Wednesday morning.
-
-It may naturally be asked how the vessel could keep so long
-together amid so destructive a conflagration? She could not have
-kept together two hours, had not the officers, to avoid one danger,
-encountered another by opening the ports and letting in the water,
-when she shipped such heavy seas as to become water-logged, which
-of course prevented her burning downwards.
-
-The _Cambria_, a vessel of little more than 200 tons, was
-previously sufficiently filled, having goods in her hold, and about
-50 persons in passengers and ship’s company. How great then must
-have been the pressure and confusion caused by the influx which
-carried the total on board to more than 600! The progress of the
-fire in the _Kent_ had been so rapid, as to prevent the sufferers
-from saving any clothes, except what was on their persons, and both
-officers and soldiers were thus ill prepared to encounter the wet
-and cold of the deck. The cabin and the ’tween decks (the space for
-the steerage passengers) were thus crowded beyond measure, and most
-fortunate it was that the wind continued favourable for the return
-of the _Cambria_ to an English port. She reached Falmouth in 48
-hours after quitting the wreck, and landed her unfortunate inmates
-on the 4th of March.”
-
-_Lord William Bentinck_, lost off Bombay; 58 recruits, 20 officers,
-and seven passengers perished. This lamentable occurrence happened
-June 17th, 1840.
-
-_Abercrombie Robinson_, and _Waterloo_, transports, in Table Bay,
-Cape of Good Hope; of 330 persons on board the last named vessel,
-189, principally convicts, were drowned, August 28th, 1842.
-
-_H.M.S. Fantome_, of 16 guns, lost off Montevideo, June 25th, 1843.
-
-The troop ship _Albert_ from Halifax with the 64th Regiment on
-board which was miraculously saved July 13th, 1843.
-
-_H.M. Frigate Wilberforce_, lost on the coast of Africa, February
-2nd, 1844.
-
-_Birkenhead_, troopship, from Queenstown to the Cape of Good Hope,
-with detachments of several regiments on board. She struck on a
-pointed rock off Simon’s Bay, and 454 of the crew and soldiers were
-drowned; 184 only were saved by the ship’s boat.
-
-The _Trent_, and a great number of other ships of all capacity,
-wrecked off the Crimea during the war. A tremendous tornado swept
-the Black Sea and literally dashed many of the brave ships of
-England and France to pieces.
-
-
-WURTZCHEN, BATTLE OF.--One of the most bloody and fiercely
-contested battles of the campaign of 1813. Fought between the
-allied Russian and Prussian armies, and the French, commanded by
-Napoleon himself. The carnage was dreadful on each side, but the
-Allies retreated from the field. Fought, May 21st, 1813.
-
-
-
-
-X AND Y.
-
-
-XIMERA, BATTLE OF.--Between the Spanish army, under the command of
-General Ballasteros, and the French corps, commanded by General
-Regnier. The Spaniards were defeated with great loss; the French
-also lost very much. Fought, September 10th, 1811.
-
-
-XERXES’ BRIDGE. See Bridge of Xerxes.
-
-
-YEAVERNY, BATTLE OF.--Between the Scots and the Earl of
-Westmoreland. Fought, 1415. In this memorable engagement, 430
-English discomfited 4000 Scots, and took 160 prisoners; also called
-the battle of Geteringe.
-
-
-YPRES, BATTLE OF.--Between Henry IV of France, and the Generals of
-the Roman Catholic League, over whom he obtained a complete victory.
-
-
-
-
-Z.
-
-
-ZAMA, BATTLE OF.--Between the two greatest Generals of the age,
-Hannibal and Scipio Africanus. The Romans lost 2000 in killed and
-wounded, whilst the Carthaginians lost, in killed and prisoners,
-more than 40,000. Fought B.C. 202.
-
-“These two generals, who were not only the most illustrious of
-their own age, but worthy of being ranked with the most renowned
-princes and warriors that had ever lived, meeting at the place
-appointed, continued for some time in a deep silence, as though
-they were astonished, and struck with a mutual admiration at the
-sight of each other. At last Hannibal spoke; and, after having
-praised Scipio in the most artful and delicate manner, he gave
-a very lively description of the ravages of the war, and the
-calamities in which it had involved both the victors and the
-vanquished. He conjured him not to suffer himself to be dazzled by
-the splendor of his victories. He represented to him, that how
-successful soever he might have hitherto been, he ought, however,
-to tremble at the inconstancy of fortune: that without going far
-back for examples, he himself who was then speaking to him, was a
-glaring proof of this: that Scipio was at that time what himself,
-Hannibal, had been at Thrasymene and Cannæ: that he ought to make
-a better use of opportunity than himself had done, and consent to
-peace, now it was in his power to propose the conditions of it. He
-concluded with declaring, that the Carthaginians would willingly
-resign Sicily, Sardinia, Spain, and all the islands between Africa
-and Italy to the Romans. That they must be forced, since such was
-the will of the gods, to confine themselves to Africa; whilst they
-should see the Romans extending their conquests to the most remote
-regions, and obliging all nations to pay obedience to their laws.
-
-Scipio answered in few words, but not with less dignity. He
-reproached the Carthaginians for their perfidy, in plundering the
-Roman galleys before the truce was expired. He imputed to them
-only, and to their injustice, all the calamities with which the two
-wars had been attended. After thanking Hannibal for the admonition
-he gave him, with regard to the uncertainty of human events, he
-concluded with desiring him to prepare for battle, unless he chose
-rather to accept of the conditions that had been already proposed;
-to which he observed some others would be added, in order to punish
-the Carthaginians for their having violated the truce.
-
-Hannibal could not prevail with himself to accept these conditions
-and the generals left one another, with the resolution to decide
-the fate of Carthage by a general battle. Each commander exhorted
-his troops to fight valiantly. Hannibal enumerated the victories
-he had gained over the Romans, the generals he had slain, the
-armies he had cut to pieces. Scipio represented to his soldiers,
-the conquests of both the Spains, his successes in Africa, and the
-tacit confession their enemies themselves made of their weakness,
-by thus coming to sue for peace. All this he spoke with the tone
-and air of a conqueror. Never were motives more prevalent to prompt
-troops to behave gallantly. This day was to complete the glory of
-the one or the other of the generals; and to decide whether Rome or
-Carthage was to prescribe laws to all other nations.
-
-I shall not undertake to describe the order of the battle, nor
-the valour of the forces on both sides. The reader will naturally
-suppose, that two such experienced generals did not forget
-any circumstance which could contribute to the victory. The
-Carthaginians, after a very obstinate fight, were obliged to fly,
-leaving 20,000 men on the field of battle, and the like number of
-prisoners were taken by the Romans. Hannibal escaped in the tumult,
-and, entering Carthage, owned that he was irrecoverably overthrown,
-and that the citizens had no other choice left, but to accept
-of peace on any conditions. Scipio bestowed great eulogiums on
-Hannibal, chiefly with regard to his capacity in taking advantages,
-his manner of drawing up his army, and giving out his orders in the
-engagement; and he affirmed that Hannibal had this day surpassed
-himself, although the success had not answered his valour and
-conduct.
-
-With regard to himself, he well knew how to make a proper advantage
-of the victory, and the consternation with which he had filled the
-enemy. He commanded one of his lieutenants to march his land army
-to Carthage, whilst himself prepared to sail the fleet thither.
-
-He was not far from the city, when he met a vessel covered with
-streamers and olive branches, bringing ten of the most considerable
-persons of the state, as ambassadors to implore his clemency.
-However, he dismissed them without making any answer, and bid
-them come to him at Tunis, where he should halt. The deputies of
-Carthage, being 30 in number, came to him at the place appointed,
-and sued for peace in the most submissive terms. He then called
-a council there, the majority of which were for razing Carthage,
-and treating the inhabitants with the utmost severity. But the
-consideration of the time which must necessarily be employed before
-so strongly fortified a city could be taken, and Scipio’s fear lest
-a successor might be appointed him whilst he should be employed in
-the siege, made him incline to clemency.”
-
-
-ZARAGOZA, SECOND SIEGE OF.--“The sufferings of the gallant
-Zaragozans, during the former siege, had not subdued the spirit
-of heroic devotion by which they had been animated. Another
-trial awaited them, not less memorable and glorious, though less
-fortunate in its result.
-
-After the defeat of Tudela, Palafox retired to Zaragoza, to make
-preparations for a second siege. He was not present in the action.
-The intelligence of its issue came upon him like a thunderbolt; and
-the refusal of Castanos to throw his troops into Zaragoza, instead
-of retreating on Madrid, put an end to those feelings of confidence
-and frankness which had hitherto existed between the generals.
-
-The multiplied disasters of the Spanish armies, however, so far
-from shaking the resolution of Palafox or the Zaragozans, appear
-only to have stimulated them to redoubled exertions in the service
-of their country. Proclamations were issued, commanding all women,
-old men, and children, to quit the city. Every inhabitant was
-imperatively called upon to make sacrifice, if necessary, of his
-life and property, in the common cause; and the whole population
-were required, by their personal exertions, to contribute to the
-completion of the fortifications of the city.
-
-The approach of the enemy cut short the preparations for defence.
-Neither women nor children left the place. Even these refused to
-seek safety at a distance from their fathers and husbands, and
-preferred participating in the danger and the glory which awaited
-them in Zaragoza, to wandering unprotected through a troubled and
-a suffering country.
-
-During the former siege, the defenders had been embarrassed by the
-presence of French residents in the city. These had been strictly
-guarded, with the double object of preventing any intercourse
-between them and the besiegers, and of protecting them against
-the fatal effects of popular suspicion, to which, without such
-precaution, it is more than probable they would have fallen
-victims. In order to prevent the repetition of such danger and
-inconvenience, Palafox determined that these unfortunate persons
-should be removed from the city to other places of confinement.
-This was done, notwithstanding the hostility of the populace,
-though not until Palafox had issued a proclamation appealing to
-Spanish honour and humanity, and imploring the gallant Zaragozans
-not to stain the sacred cause of liberty and justice by the foul
-murder of these defenceless victims.
-
-The aid of superstition was not wanting to strengthen the
-confidence of the Zaragozans. They relied on the miraculous
-protection of Our Lady of the Pillar, who had made their favoured
-city the seat of her peculiar worship. The successful termination
-of the former siege had given strength to their belief in the
-beneficent regards of the patron saint. Omens, too, had been
-observed in the sky. Approaching victory had been prefigured
-by unwonted conformations of the clouds; and celestial voices
-were heard in the elements, offering divine promise of glory and
-protection.
-
-Fortunately, the Zaragozans were not induced, by their belief in
-these flattering portents, to disregard any of the human means of
-safety in their power. A continued line of exterior defensive works
-had been planned and executed, as far as time and circumstances
-permitted. Yet this, imperfect as it was, added little to the real
-strength of the city; and, in forming a just estimate of the zeal
-and courage of the defenders, Zaragoza should almost be considered
-as an unfortified town. The walls, originally built rather for
-the purpose of civic impost than defence, were surmounted by 150
-pieces of cannon. Large stores of provisions had been formed. Arms
-and ammunition were in abundance; and the town contained upwards of
-20,000 regular troops, besides 15,000 armed peasants.
-
-All the houses within 700 toises of the place were demolished, and
-the materials employed to strengthen the fortifications. The trees
-around the city were cut down. The greatest activity reigned on all
-hands; the women were employed in making clothes for the soldiers;
-the monks made cartridges: and all those not employed in labouring
-at the works, practised the use of arms.
-
-Measures were likewise taken for the defence of the city, in
-case the enemy, which was scarcely to be doubted, should effect
-an entrance. Traverses were cut across the streets. The doors
-and windows on the ground-floor were strongly barricaded.
-Communications were made between the houses; and parapets were
-constructed on the roofs. Every householder had in his dwelling an
-ample store of provisions, to enable him to continue his resistance
-when the enemy should gain possession of the streets. Thus
-prepared, the Zaragozans awaited the approach of the besiegers.
-
-In the meanwhile, the corps of Marshal Moncey, which had been
-ordered to blockade the city, remained at Alagon, collecting
-materials, and awaiting the arrival of his heavy artillery from
-Pamplona. On the 19th of December it was joined by the corps of
-Mortier, and on the 20th the united army appeared before Zaragoza.
-It consisted of about 35,000 infantry, and was accompanied by a
-battering train of sixty pieces. A corps of cavalry was stationed
-at Fuentes, to keep the surrounding country in a state of
-subjection.
-
-The city was approached on both sides of the Ebro. Gazan’s
-division, having passed the river at Tauste, marched, by the road
-of Castejon, to Cuera and Villa Nuevo. That of Suchet took post on
-the right of the Ebro, near a convent, about a league distant from
-Zaragoza, after driving in the Spanish outposts.
-
-During the night, the enemy erected a battery, which commanded
-the Torrero, and, in the morning, opened fire on the fort.
-Unfortunately, a quantity of ammunition was blown up, by the
-bursting of a shell, which occasioned considerable disorder in the
-garrison. The French took advantage of this. A column crossed the
-canal by an aqueduct, of which on the evening before, they had
-become masters, and entering the fort by the gorge, succeeded in
-maintaining the place against the efforts of the garrison. At the
-same time, a brigade of Morlot’s division advanced up the ravine
-of the Huerba, and, passing the canal under the aqueduct on which
-it crosses that river, gained possession of a work commanding the
-sluices of the canal. Two guns were taken in this work. Three
-guns and 100 prisoners in the fort. General St. Mark succeeded in
-withdrawing the rest of the garrison.
-
-On the 22nd, General Gazan advanced against the suburb, on the left
-of the river. He was encountered by about 4000 of the garrison,
-posted in the woods and gardens, from which, after a warm contest,
-he succeeded in dislodging them. Gazan then attempted to carry the
-suburb by a _coup-de-main_. In this he failed. Repulsed in all
-his efforts, after a long and fruitless contention, he at length
-withdrew, pursued by the garrison, and with the loss of near 1000
-men. The chief loss of the besieged consisted of a corps of Swiss,
-almost all of whom were killed or taken prisoners in a large
-building considerably in advance of the suburb.
-
-For several days all was quiet. The enemy were now aware that it
-was necessary to make a regular investment of the place; and the
-works in all quarters, were pushed on with vigour. The besieged on
-their part endeavoured, by incessant labour, to complete the works
-of defence; batteries were constructed, to enfilade the principal
-approaches--the magazines were rendered bomb-proof--every outlet
-was palisaded and traversed; and, thus prepared, they waited with
-calm fortitude for the approaching struggle.
-
-On the 30th, Marshal Moncey addressed a letter to Palafox,
-summoning him to surrender the city, now entirely invested, and
-to spare the effusion of blood which must necessarily follow any
-further attempt at hopeless resistance. Moncey likewise informed
-him that Madrid had fallen; and that Napoleon, at the head of a
-great army, was then in the act of chasing the English to their
-ships.
-
-To this Palafox replied, that if Madrid had fallen, Madrid had
-been _sold_. The works of Zaragoza were yet entire; but, were they
-levelled with the ground, the people and the garrison would rather
-be buried in the ruins of their city, than disgraced by surrender.
-
-In the meanwhile, General Gazan succeeded in effecting the blockade
-of the suburb.
-
-On the 29th, the trenches were regularly opened against the Chateau
-of the Inquisition on the left, the bridge of the Huerba in the
-centre, and the convent of St. Joseph on the right. The last of
-these was the principal object of the enemy, because the works in
-rear were destitute of a rampart, and it was intended to connect
-the attack with a simultaneous attempt to gain possession of the
-suburb.
-
-The garrison, however, were not idle. The communication between the
-convent and the city could not be interrupted; and the garrison of
-the former, being daily relieved, made frequent sallies, by which
-the progress of the besiegers was materially retarded. On the 31st,
-a general sortie, supported by the whole guns of the place, was
-made against the enemy’s line. Though gallantly supported, it was
-unattended by any successful result. The repeated attacks of the
-garrison were repulsed; and, baffled in their efforts, they again
-entered the city. The loss on both sides was nearly equal.
-
-On the 2nd of January, Moncey was superseded by Marshal Junot in
-the command of the besieging army. The latter was the bearer of an
-order to Mortier, to move on Calatayud with Suchet’s division, in
-order to keep open the communication with Madrid. This arrangement
-occasioned a material diminution of the besieging force, but no
-cessation of hostile operations. The works against the convent of
-St. Joseph still went on, and between the 3rd and 6th of January
-the second parallel was completed. Till the 10th no action took
-place; but on that day a tremendous fire from thirty guns was
-opened on the convent. It was soon rendered untenable. But, amid
-the ruins, the gunners covered by bags of wool, still continued
-to exercise their vocation, and fired on the enemy, till the
-walls were levelled with the ground. Even then the post was not
-relinquished without a gallant effort. At midnight a sortie was
-made against one of the batteries, in ignorance that two guns
-had been planted for its protection. The intention of the brave
-assailants was thus defeated; and, having suffered heavy loss from
-a murderous fire, both in front and flank, they again retreated to
-the city.
-
-Even in the dilapidated condition of the convent, it was not till
-the evening of the next day that the enemy attempted to carry it
-by assault. At the same time a party, having turned the convent,
-succeeded, by means of a wooden bridge which the besieged had
-omitted to destroy, in effecting an entrance; and thus did the
-French at length become masters of a heap of ruins, and of about
-100 gallant men by whom they were defended.
-
-No sooner were the enemy in possession of St. Joseph, than they
-employed themselves in repairing the works, and completing the
-communication between the second and third parallels, the latter of
-which they established on the right and left of the convent. The
-garrison on that side were now compelled to remain within their
-walls; for the besiegers were secured against their efforts by the
-double obstacle of a river and an escarpment eight feet high.
-
-On the 15th a second parallel was opened against the town; and
-batteries were commenced in it, to enfilade the defences of the
-Augustine and Capuchin convents, and that of Sta. Engracia. Yet
-neither the loss of their outworks, nor a tremendous bombardment,
-which the French kept up for several days, had the effect of
-diminishing the ardour of the inhabitants. The Zaragozans were not
-only actuated by that active and living energy which stimulates to
-deeds of high enterprize, but they possessed, likewise, that calm
-and passive fortitude, that buoyant upbearing of the spirit, which
-suffering cannot depress, nor misfortune overthrow.
-
-But their cup was not yet full. The inhabitants of the part of the
-city most injured by the bombardment, were driven into the other
-quarters, where many of them took up their abode in cellars, which
-afforded comparative security from the shells. The consequence
-was, that these dark and miserable receptacles became the focus of
-infectious fever. The disease spread rapidly among a crowded and
-redundant population. Thus did death, on all hands, present itself
-to the unshrinking Zaragozans; and the greater part preferred
-exposing themselves on the ramparts, to breathing the infected air
-which pervaded the dark and noisome retreats in which they had
-sought refuge from the shells.
-
-From the 17th to the 21st, the besiegers were occupied in the
-construction of new batteries to overcome the defences of the
-garrison; and the third parallel was extended to command two sides
-of the convent of Sta. Engracia. In these circumstances, a sortie
-was made, in the hope of spiking the enemy’s artillery. The fire
-of a battery of four mortars was found peculiarly annoying: and
-eighty men, commanded by Don Mariano Galindo, volunteered to attack
-it. They boldly precipitated themselves on the guard of the third
-parallel, put them to the sword, and succeeded in entering the
-battery. At the same moment the enemy’s reserve came up. There was
-no retreat; all perished except the officers and a few wounded
-soldiers, who were made prisoners.
-
-The movements of the numerous bodies of armed peasantry, in
-the surrounding country, occasioned great inconvenience to the
-besiegers. Bands were formed on all hands; which, though unable
-to resist the attack of disciplined troops, yet were sufficiently
-formidable to require perpetual vigilance, and numerous enough to
-narrow the supplies of the besieging army, in a very considerable
-degree.
-
-About this time, Napoleon, dissatisfied with the slow progress of
-the siege, sent Marshal Lannes to assume the command. This officer
-directed Mortier, with his division, to leave Calatayud, and to act
-on the left of the Ebro. Mortier attacked the force of Francisco
-Palafox, and succeeded in dispersing it with very considerable
-loss. Lannes, in order to depress the hopes of the garrison of
-external assistance, addressed a letter to Palafox, communicating
-this circumstance, and all the other disasters which had befallen
-the Spanish armies. But the mortifying intelligence thus conveyed,
-did not shake the firmness of the undaunted leader. He rejected
-all compromise, and continued, with undiminished vigour, to oppose
-every possible obstacle to the progress of the enemy.
-
-All the outworks of the place had now fallen, except the castle of
-the Inquisition, which had been subjected to no serious attack.
-The newly-raised works of the _Enceinte_ had been battered by
-fifty-five guns, and, on the 27th January, three breaches were
-declared practicable. One was near an oil-mill, which stood
-without the walls of the place, though but little removed from
-them. The second was to the left of this, between the convent of
-St. Joseph and the town. The third was in the convent of Sta.
-Engracia. All these were attacked. At mid-day, a column issued from
-the oil-mill, which had been occupied over-night, and, rapidly
-clearing the short distance which divided it from the walls,
-entered the breach, unbroken by the heavy fire to which they were
-exposed, and the explosion of two _fougasses_. Having reached the
-summit, the assailants found an interior retrenchment armed with
-two guns, which the garrison had unexpectedly erected to obstruct
-their progress. They attempted, without success, to surmount this
-obstacle, under a shower of grape, musketry and grenades. Forced to
-retire, the besiegers took advantage of the cover afforded by the
-exploded _fougasses_ to effect a lodgment on the breach.
-
-The breach in face of St. Joseph presented fewer obstacles to be
-overcome. The column of attack having reached the summit, succeeded
-in occupying the opposite house, which the artillery, in firing on
-the wall, had laid open. The houses adjoining were then gained;
-and on the right of the breach they found a gate which afforded
-another entrance into the town. Here, however, their progress was
-arrested by a battery of the enemy, commanding a court which it was
-necessary to pass. On the left, a double _caponnier_, which the
-garrison had used to communicate with St. Joseph’s, was repaired
-and lengthened to the breach.
-
-The attack on Sta. Engracia was yet more successful. After a
-severe struggle, the assailants gained the breach of the convent,
-but in attempting to advance further, they met a spirited repulse.
-Another effort was made, which terminated in their gaining
-possession of the building. The curtain leading from Sta. Engracia
-to the bridge of the Huerba was then enfiladed, and, taking the
-_tête-de-pont_ in reverse, the enemy at once became masters of
-that important post. Here they were joined by fresh troops, and,
-pushing on within the curtain of the convent of Mount Carmel, made
-an effort to gain possession of it, which met with a repulse.
-
-From thence they advanced rapidly to the Capuchin convent, putting
-forty artillerymen, who constituted the whole of its garrison, to
-the sword, The assailants then established themselves along the
-rampart, in order to guard the posts they had been successful in
-acquiring.
-
-A dreadful fire was soon opened on the besiegers from the houses
-commanding the rampart. From this they in vain sought shelter among
-the ruins of the half-demolished walls. Retreat became necessary,
-and the column was directed to retire on the Puerta del Carmen. The
-garrison, by a bold attack, regained possession of the Capuchin
-convent; but two battalions coming up to reinforce the assailants,
-it was again taken, and maintained, though at a dear price, by the
-enemy.
-
-During the night, a strong but unsuccessful effort was made by the
-besieged to regain possession of the convents of Sta. Engracia and
-the Capuchins. The result of these operations were the loss to the
-besieged of fifteen guns and 200 prisoners, and that the enemy
-gained footing in the city at two different points. The loss in
-killed and wounded, by the French accounts, was nearly equal on
-both sides. It amounted to about 600.
-
-The misfortunes of the Zaragozans were hourly accumulating. The
-fever demon stalked through the city like a destroying angel,
-conquering and to conquer. The number of dead per day amounted to
-350, without including those who fell the more immediate victims of
-war. The hospitals were too small to contain the host of patients,
-and the medicines were exhausted. The burying grounds were choked
-with corpses; and large pits were dug in the streets, into which
-the dead were tossed indiscriminately. Heaps of bloated and
-putrescent bodies were piled before the churches, which were often
-struck by the shells; and the maimed and ghastly carcasses lay
-dispersed along the streets, a frightful spectacle of horror. Even
-under such evils the courage of the Zaragozans did not quail.
-
-The city was now open to the invaders, and the war, as formerly,
-was carried on in the streets and houses. Not one inch of ground
-was yielded by the besieged without a struggle; and when finally
-driven from a building, they frequently, by a desperate offensive
-effort, recovered it; and an equal resistance had again to be
-encountered by the assailants. Traverses were cut around the
-portions of the city occupied by the enemy; and at the sound of the
-tocsin, the garrison were ever ready to rush to any quarter where
-hostilities had commenced.
-
-Palafox, however, did not limit his efforts to obstructing the
-progress of the enemy; he made vigorous efforts to recover the
-ground already lost, and drive the assailants from their stations.
-Two attempts were made to regain the convent of the Capuchins. Both
-failed. A third more powerful effort was made on the 31st. A breach
-was effected during the day, and at night the assault took place.
-The besieged advanced with signal resolution towards the breach,
-but owing to a ditch sunk by the enemy, it was found impossible to
-mount it. They then threw themselves on the floor of the church,
-and endeavoured to force it. In spite of the fire from the windows,
-and the grenades showered from the steeple, they maintained their
-ground, and forced the door; but an epaulement within obstructed
-their progress; and fresh troops being brought up by the enemy, the
-project was at length renounced.
-
-Priests and women bore part in these operations. The former carried
-munitions, and gave ghostly succour to the dying, animating the
-soldiers at once by their words and their example. The latter
-bore refreshments to their sons, or husbands, or fathers; and
-sometimes, when one of those dear relatives fell by their side,
-they seized his arms, determined to revenge his death or perish in
-the same glorious cause. In truth, the contest lay between skill
-and enthusiasm--mingled, indeed, with superstition, yet active,
-firm, vigorous, and unshrinking; skill exerted in a struggle as
-unjust and degrading, as any by which the pages of history are
-contaminated and defaced.
-
-Notwithstanding the utmost efforts of the garrison, the French
-gained ground. The 1st of February was marked by the capture of
-the convents of St. Augustin and St. Monica. Having been repelled
-in assaulting the breaches, the assailants sprung a mine, and by
-that means effected an entrance, and took in reverse the works
-erected for their defence. A deadly struggle took place in the
-church. Every chapel, every column, every altar, became a point
-of defence--the pavement was strewed with blood, and the aisles
-and nave of the church were covered with the dead. During this
-terrific conflict, the roof, shattered by bombs, fell in. Those
-who escaped, renewed the contest on the bodies of the dead and
-dying. The French were at last successful, and advancing on the Rua
-Quemada, gained possession of several houses. From these, however,
-they were eventually compelled to retreat, with a loss of above 100
-men.
-
-At the same time, an attack was made on the houses near Sta.
-Engracia. Two mines, one on the left, the other on the right,
-of the convent, were sprung by the besiegers; after which two
-columns of Polish infantry succeeded in gaining possession of
-the ruins caused by the explosion. The loss of the besiegers was
-very considerable, and General Lacoste, commandant of engineers,
-was killed. He was an officer of great professional eminence, and
-untarnished character.
-
-During four days, the besiegers were employed in constructing
-three galleries to cross the Rua Quemada. Two of these failed. By
-means of the third they succeeded in establishing themselves in
-the ruins of a house which formed an angle of the Cozo, and of the
-Rua del Medio. A building, called the Escuelas Pias, commanded
-several traverses, made for the defence of the Cozo. Aware of the
-importance of this post, the assailants made several unsuccessful
-efforts to gain possession of it. They then attempted the adjoining
-houses; but in this also they failed. The system of blowing up the
-houses, now adopted, was favourable to the besieged; for the enemy,
-who established themselves on the ruins, were thus exposed to the
-fire of the surrounding buildings. In the meanwhile the continual
-succession of formidable and unforeseen obstacles, which presented
-themselves to the French soldiers, had damped their ardour; while
-the spirits of the besieged, who had to contend against famine,
-fever, and the French army, were yet unbroken.
-
-The inner town is encircled by the Cozo, which reaches at both
-extremities to the river; and the French, in order to connect
-their operations with those of Gazan, on the left of the Ebro,
-determined, at all risks, to gain possession of it. The convent of
-St. Francisco, therefore, became their immediate object. A mine was
-exploded, which brought down part of the building; and a severe
-contest ensued, which lasted for two days. The Spaniards were at
-length driven out by the bayonet--the superiority of physical, as
-well as of numerical strength, being on the side of the assailants.
-
-From the tower of this building, the French now commanded the
-street, for a musket-shot on either side. There, however, their
-progress was for a time arrested. The buildings in the Cozo were
-large and massive; and from their construction with roofs of
-arched masonry, nearly incombustible. Experience had perfected
-the Zaragozans in their defensive warfare; and the contest was
-continued with, if possible, augmented pertinacity. Three days
-were the French sappers successfully opposed in their endeavours
-to cross the Cozo. The university was partially breached by the
-explosion of two small mines. The besiegers then endeavoured to
-carry the building by assault; but they were met by a fire so
-destructive as to compel them to retreat.
-
-Hitherto the suburb on the left of the Ebro had been exempted from
-attack, since Gazan’s failure on the first night of the investment.
-That officer, availing himself of some ambiguity in his orders,
-had declined to re-engage in active operations; nor was it till
-Lannes arrived, with authority to enforce his orders, that Gazan
-was induced to resume the offensive.
-
-On the 7th, the convent of Jesus, on the left of the road to
-Lerida, was attacked. Trenches were opened against it; and twenty
-battering pieces having effected a breach, it was carried with
-little loss, the building not being considered by the besieged as
-of material importance. The enemy then succeeded in establishing a
-lodgment to the right and left.
-
-On the 18th, the suburb, after two unsuccessful efforts, was
-carried by assault. A tremendous fire from fifty guns soon laid
-open the way to the assailing columns. By mid-day a breach was
-effected in the convent of St. Lazarus, commanding the bridge; and
-the defenders, after a strenuous resistance, were driven from the
-building. All communication between the suburb and the city was now
-cut off; and the French advancing to the river, intercepted the
-retreat of about 1500 men, who, enfeebled by disease and suffering,
-were made prisoners. The capture of St. Lazarus necessarily
-involved that of the suburb, which was without ammunition or
-provisions, yet many of its defenders continued to wage a fierce
-but hopeless war in the streets. The loss of the besieged amounted
-to about 2000. The brave Baron de Versage, who commanded on the
-Ebro, was killed.
-
-The besiegers, imagining that the courage of the garrison had been
-abated by this irreparable misfortune, continued their operations
-with vigour. By means of mining, two enormous breaches were made in
-the university--both of which were attacked and carried; and the
-traverses of the Cozo were at length abandoned by the Spaniards. In
-the mean time, Palafox had been smitten with the dreadful disease,
-whose ravages had been more widely spread than even those of famine
-and the sword. This admirable and heroic leader, who, for above a
-month, had been unable to quit the vault where he lay stretched on
-a bed of suffering, at length saw the necessity of resigning the
-command.
-
-On the 19th he transferred his authority to a junta, of which
-Don Pedro Ric was appointed president. A council was immediately
-assembled, to deliberate on the condition of the city, and the
-measures most proper to be adopted. At this meeting it was stated,
-by the general of cavalry, that only 62 horses remained, the rest
-having died of hunger. Of the infantry it appeared there were
-little more than 2800 men fit for service. Ammunition was nearly
-exhausted; and should a shell penetrate the Inquisition, their
-only manufactory of powder would be destroyed. The fortifications
-were stated, by the chief engineer, to have been almost utterly
-demolished. There were neither men nor materials necessary for
-repairing them; and bags of earth could no longer be formed from
-want of cloth.
-
-With regard to the measures to be adopted, the junta were divided
-in opinion. Twenty-six voted for capitulation; eight against it.
-The latter were averse to surrender, while even a possibility of
-succour remained. With proud gallantry of spirit, the opinion of
-the minority was adopted by the junta. A flag of truce was sent to
-the enemy, proposing a suspension of hostilities, with the view
-of ascertaining the situation of the Spanish armies; it being
-understood, that should no immediate succour be at hand, the junta
-would then treat for a surrender. This proposal was peremptorily
-declined by Marshal Lannes; and the bombardment recommenced.
-
-On the 20th, the garrison made a last and unsuccessful effort to
-recover two guns which the enemy had captured on the preceding day.
-Affairs were now desperate. The fifty guns which had been employed
-in the attack of the suburb, now opened fire on the city; and the
-streets of the quay were laid in ruins.
-
-Thus situated the junta ordered measures to be taken to ascertain
-the sentiments of the people with regard to the situation of their
-city. Two-thirds of it were in ruins. Fire, famine, and slaughter,
-had done their work; and from 300 to 400 persons were daily dying
-of the pestilence. Under such circumstances, the junta declared
-that they had fulfilled their oath of fidelity--and that _Zaragoza
-was destroyed_. A flag of truce was dispatched to the French
-head-quarters, followed by a deputation of the junta, to arrange
-the terms of capitulation. Marshal Lannes was at first disposed to
-insist on unconditional surrender. The proposal was indignantly
-rejected by the deputies; and Ric declared, that rather than submit
-to it the Zaragozans would die beneath the ruins of their city.
-“I, and my companions,” said this noble patriot, “will return
-there, and defend what remains to us as best we may. We have yet
-arms and ammunition, and if these fail we have daggers. Should the
-Zaragozans be driven to despair, it yet remains to be proved who
-are to be victorious.”
-
-In this temper of the garrison, Lannes did not think it prudent to
-refuse granting terms. It was accordingly conceded that the troops
-should march out with the honours of war: that the heroic Palafox
-should be suffered to retire to any place where he might think
-proper to fix his residence, and that all persons, not included in
-the garrison, should be suffered to quit the city, to avoid the
-contagion.
-
-On the 21st of February, 1809, the city was delivered up to
-the French; and thus terminated one of the most strenuous and
-extraordinary struggles of which history bears record. The
-resistance continued for 52 days with open trenches; 29 of these
-were consumed by the enemy in effecting an entrance--23 in the war
-subsequently carried on in the streets and houses. By their own
-account, the French threw above 17,000 bombs into the city, and
-expended above 160,000 pounds weight of powder. More than 30,000
-men and 500 officers perished in the defence, exclusive of a vast
-number of women and children. The amount of loss sustained by the
-besiegers was studiously concealed--that it was very great, cannot
-be doubted; and the contemplated operations on Lerida and Valencia,
-for which the army was destined, were in consequence given up.
-
-When the garrison quitted the city, only 2400 men were capable of
-bearing arms; the rest were in the hospitals.
-
-Among the prisoners, was Augustina Zaragoza, who had distinguished
-herself in the former siege. At the commencement, she had resumed
-her station at the Portillo gate. When Palafox visited the battery,
-she pointed to the gun she had formerly served with so much effect,
-and exclaimed, “See, general, I am again with my old friend.”
-Once, when her wounded husband lay bleeding at her feet, she
-discharged the cannon at the enemy, in order to avenge his fall.
-She frequently led the assaulting parties, and with sword in hand
-mingled in the daily conflicts which took place in the streets.
-Though exposed, during the whole siege to the most imminent danger,
-Augustina escaped without a wound. On the surrender of the city,
-she was too well known to escape notice, and was made prisoner.
-But she had already caught the contagion; and being taken to the
-hospital, she subsequently succeeded in effecting her escape.
-
-The terms of capitulation were shamefully violated by Lannes.
-Palafox was sent a prisoner into France; and the city became
-a scene of pillage and atrocity. Nothing was to be heard but
-the drunken shouts and cries of the French soldiery. Even the
-convents were not spared; their gates were beaten in, the costly
-plate seized, and the decorations torn down; while the monk, with
-uplifted hand and scowling brow, listened to the drunken revelry
-and obscene jests of the heavy mailed cuirassier.”
-
-
-ZEALAND, NEW.--Discovered by Tasman in 1642. Captain Cook planted
-several spots here in 1773. Great Britain’s right to this
-island recognized at the general peace of 1814. Since then it
-has continued slowly developing its inland resources. A rather
-disastrous war was waged against the British forces by the New
-Zealanders not long ago; but after some months of continual
-annoyance the Aborigines were subdued and the island quieted, with
-every prospect of commercial development.
-
-
-ZELA, BATTLE OF.--In which Julius Cæsar defeated Pharnaces, King of
-Pontus, and sent the Senate the well-known laconic letter of three
-words: “_Veni, Vidi, Vici._” Fought B.C. 47.
-
-
-ZELICHON, BATTLE OF.--Fought, April 6th, 1831, between the Poles
-and Russians. The Russians were terribly defeated, with the loss
-of 12,000 men, killed, wounded and prisoners, and Deibitsch, the
-Russian General, narrowly escaped being taken prisoner in the rout.
-
-
-ZEUTA, BATTLE OF.--Fought, between the Germans and Turks, the
-former commanded by Prince Eugene; and it is memorable for the
-tremendous slaughter of the enemy, A.D. 1697.
-
-
-ZORNDORFF, BATTLE OF.--Fought between the Prussian and Russian
-armies: the Prussian commanded by their King. They gained a great
-victory over the forces of the Czarina of Russia--21,529 men being
-lost to the Russians, while the Prussians lost 11,000. Fought,
-August 25th and 26th, 1758.
-
-
-ZOUAVE OR ZOU-ZOU.--“The _gamins_ of Paris, we believe, first
-applied to the world-renowned Zouaves the pet name of _Zou-Zous_;
-and France has confirmed the pleasant diminutive. We know well
-enough that Zou-Zou has certain faults; but we also know that
-he possesses some estimable qualities. On the whole, we gaze
-at his scarred bronzed face and long shaggy beard with respect,
-and do not shrink from cordially clasping his horny brown hand,
-powder-begrimed though it be. We read all about his valorous
-doings, and his somewhat ludicrous and not unpardonable misdoings,
-during the late Italian campaign, as chronicled daily by his own
-countrymen, and we shall now compile some interesting examples of
-his exploits and racy peculiarities, which have fallen under our
-notice.
-
-When the Zou-Zous embarked at Marseilles, they leapt on board the
-vessels as though charging a column of Croats, crying to their
-comrades, “Come, gentlemen, take your tickets for Austria!” Arrived
-at Genoa, they received their fair share of flowers and kisses from
-the enraptured signoras, and embracements and orations from their
-lords and fathers.
-
-M. Achard visited the camp of the famous 3rd Zouaves, and gives us
-a graphic sketch of the fire-eaters reposing. We must premise that
-they had only arrived four or five days from Algeria. “It was,”
-says he, “like a little corner of a great war picture. The canvas
-town possessed regularity, animated order, picturesque and lively
-movement, and one felt the presence of discipline, and a pleasing
-sense of gaiety and fearlessness. Behold the little, narrow, short
-tents reserved for the sub-officers; their neighbours large, and
-similar to a squab coffee-pot, for the captains and commandants;
-others ample and conical, each for five soldiers, ranged in ranks;
-groups of Zouaves round a candle, in a low tone chatting about
-their African campaigns; some silently smoking a pipe apart; two or
-three lying on the ground in corners, reading letters and dreaming,
-their comrades singing the chorus of songs; the evening dies away
-and sleep succeeds. Here and there, under the canvas, a little
-lamp gives light to an officer, who writes in haste a last letter.
-Little noise, great order; each battalion has its place. As the
-darkness increases, we see red sparks in the air along the tents.
-The cigar enlivens the promenade, then the sparks disappear one by
-one; the bivouac fires are extinguished; the mules of the regiment
-bite at each other, and endeavour to break their straps; close
-by, the Arab horses of the officers, digging the earth with their
-hoofs, snuffing the air, devoid of the warm odour of the desert,
-and shaking their manes. * * * The next day, at seven o’clock in
-the morning, the regiment, containing three battalions on a war
-strength--2700 men, exclusive of officers--was reviewed by Prince
-Napoleon. They looked models of hardy active soldiers. Their faces,
-which appeared cut out of Florentine bronze, had the manly ardour
-and the confidence resulting from habitual acquaintance with
-danger. They were in marching order. At eight o’clock they started,
-clarions at their head and tarbouch in front for their first _étape
-de guerre_, twenty-seven kilometres, and in the evening they
-encamped in the mountain, at Toreglia, very near the Austrians!”
-
-We may remark that one great reason for the very singular celerity
-with which the Zouaves encamp, provide their food, etc., is the
-fact, that each company, or portion of a company, or “tribe,” as
-it is called by the men themselves, is subdivided for what we may
-term domestic duties, each individual being charged with a distinct
-and special function; and constant practice naturally renders them
-amazingly expert at doing whatever they are called upon to daily
-and nightly perform.
-
-The Zou-Zous, and their African friends the Turcos, are said to
-have an invincible preference for fighting at close quarters with
-the bayonet. A certain quantity of cartouches were served out at
-the moment of departure, but these cartridges were not forthcoming
-at Genoa. The officers were angry, and required the production
-of the missing ammunition. “Be not troubled,” said the Zou-Zous;
-“leave us alone, and we will return you ten for one at the first
-battle.” A stubborn old sergeant added, “We wish to see if the
-Austrians are like the Kabyles.” In fact, their point of honour
-is to charge with the bayonet, and to charge at a swift run.
-Their activity is incredible; and they have been aptly called
-“foot cavalry,” which is hardly a paradoxical jest like our own
-time-honoured sneer of “horse marines.”
-
-The Zou-Zous have a marvellous capacity for physical endurance.
-Some black coffee, and a biscuit or piece of hard ammunition bread
-steeped in it, generally formed their breakfast, and then they were
-able and willing to march with their very heavy knapsacks a whole
-day in the broiling sun before dining. A Zouave’s knapsack is full
-of a wonderful variety of articles, and, when in marching order, he
-actually carries the enormous weight of sixty pounds! But Zou-Zou
-is not an anchorite; he does not voluntarily endure hunger when
-he can lawfully, or (as some whisper) even unlawfully, obtain an
-appetizing addition to his rations. At Palestro, the Zouaves drolly
-distinguished themselves, by marching with a pleasing variety of
-edible prizes secured about their persons. They bore quarters of
-lamb, immense pieces of raw meat, salad, cabbage, and all kinds
-of vegetables; upon the shoulder of one was perched an old cock,
-tied by the foot by way of precaution! All the world knows how
-omnivorous Zouaves are; and, by way of illustration, we will only
-mention the astounding fact, that at Solferino they daintily
-feasted on fillets cut from the backs of the horses killed in that
-tremendous battle!
-
-The Austrians sent some daring spies into the Zouave camp, fully
-and carefully dressed as Zou-Zous, speaking French, and affecting
-in all respects the habits and language of the men among whom they
-treacherously stole. But, as an old soldier observed, “the asses
-who wear lions’ skins are recognized, not by the dress, but by the
-language.” So it was with these Austrian spies. The touch-stone
-which infallibly detected them was the Arab, or rather the Sabir
-tongue. The Sabir is a dialect used by the Zouaves and the Turcos,
-and is a singular mixture of French, Italian, Maltese, Spanish and
-Arabian. Let us see what the Sabir can do with the wicked hawk who
-has stolen into the Zouave dovecot, disguised in innocent plumage
-like their own.
-
-“A spy, dressed as a Zouave, holding his cap behind him, accosts
-other Zouaves, (true ones these). They talk of war, ambuscades,
-battles; they drink and sing. An old Zouave addresses the spy:
-‘Didou, camarade, gib el touchran; j’ai laisse mon sipsi dans la
-gitoun.’ This, in Sabir, signifies, ‘Comrade, hand me some tobacco;
-I have forgotten my pipe in the tent.’ The spy, surprised, does not
-reply. ‘Enta machache narl el Arabi?’ (Dost thou not understand
-Arabian?) continues the Zouave. The same silence. Suspicions
-are aroused: the pretended Zouave is closely questioned. He is
-confused; he confounds Blidah with Orléansville: finally he is
-seized, and duly shot.”
-
-No body of men attracted more notice, on first landing in Italy,
-than the 3rd Zouaves. Nearly all the officers had risen from the
-ranks, or, at any rate, all had been sub-officers, and had won
-their epaulettes and crosses in Africa. The men could reckon a
-number of years’ service, both in Africa and the Crimea. Their flag
-was in tatters, and tied together with shoemaker’s thread.
-
-At Palestro, these 3rd Zouaves performed a brilliant feat of arms.
-A wounded Zou-Zou subsequently described it most graphically. “We
-were,” said he, “very tranquilly opposite a rivulet; we beheld
-five or six horsemen upon an eminence; it was said that they must
-be enemy’s hussars, watching us, and the word passed to prepare
-to have a chat with them. But all in a moment, and without a note
-of warning, a parcel of bullets, accompanied by a hail of cannon
-balls, saluted us. The rogues had mounted cannon on the hills,
-and their tirailleurs skulked in the corn, where one could not
-see them. Whilst we looked out, the _mitraille_[45] mingled in
-the conversation. The colonel saw whence it came by the smoke.
-The officers turned towards us. ‘Eh Zouaves!’ cried they, ‘to the
-cannon!’ We leapt in the stream. There was water up to our elbows,
-and so our cartridge boxes took a bath; we were no longer able to
-fire a single charge. From the stream to the batteries we had to
-run about 300 metres. Ah, we already surpass the _pas gymnastique_!
-
-The _mitraille_ mowed the grass around our feet. In the twinkling
-of an eye we carried the guns!”
-
-Among the wounded Austrians taken prisoners, was a young man of
-twenty-two, who had previously studied at Paris five or six years.
-He fought at Palestro, and when he saw the Zouaves running and
-leaping with bayonets in advance, he cried, “Comrades! they are
-Zouaves! We are lost!”
-
-An Austrian officer related that General Jellachich, struck with
-astonishment at sight of the Zouaves in action, exclaimed, “They
-are not men, they are tigers!” And then he muttered, “They told me
-so, but I did not believe it.” A good many others of his countrymen
-had reason to think and speak very much the same. Yet, even among
-the Zouaves there are some who pre-eminently distinguish themselves
-by their surpassing activity, daring, and successful valour.
-
-Zou-Zou has a humour of his own even in the heat of
-battle--grimmest of all grim humours! Endless anecdotes are told of
-their strange speeches and stranger deeds in the midst of the storm
-of battle. Many of these would be painful to our readers, but the
-following give relief to the stern cruelties of war. Would that the
-kindly or generous feelings which they record could be displayed on
-more peaceful scenes!
-
-During a bayonet fight, a Zouave fought against an Austrian, and
-broke his thigh with a violent butt-end blow; the Austrian, in
-falling, broke the arm of the Zouave. There they lay side by side,
-their mutual fury extinguished. The Zouave, who had a smattering
-of Italian, said to the Austrian, “Thou art brave, and I will
-not leave thee to die like a dog. I have yet an arm and a pair
-of good legs, and I will carry thee to the ambulance.” He was as
-good as his word. When he arrived with his burthen, he said to the
-surgeon-major. “You see, major, that we are on a level; cure us
-quickly, that we may do our duty afresh.” We will add, that the
-compassion and kindness manifested after a battle by the erewhile
-fierce Zouaves towards their wounded enemies, is a fine trait in
-their character. Like our own matchless seamen, the Zouaves, are
-lions whilst the battle rages, and lambs after it is ended.
-
-Here is a touching incident. The day after the battle of Palestro,
-the Zouaves buried their dead comrades in a great pit dug on a
-little eminence. When the earth was levelled, they bid adieu, with
-emotion, to their slain brothers-in-arms. “Comrades!” cried a
-sergeant, “may God receive you! ’Tis your turn to-day--to morrow it
-may be ours!” With these simple words the Zou-Zous left their dead
-brethren to repose on the field of their victory.
-
-And the wounded Zou-Zous, how bear they the agony of musket ball,
-or bayonet thrust, or sabre gash, when the excitement of the actual
-combat is over? When Commandant de Bellefonds, of the Zouaves of
-the Guard, was wounded at Magenta, his men wished to carry him
-to the ambulance. “Remain in your place,” said he. “Leave me, my
-friends; I forbid you to remove me: continue to fight.” After the
-Austrians were repulsed, the Zou-Zous sought their brave officer
-and bore him away. He eventually recovered.
-
-The Zouaves being by far the most popular and brilliant corps in
-the army, it is considered, both by officers and privates, an
-absolute privilege to wear their uniform, and both sub and superior
-officers have been known to refuse to exchange into line regiments
-even with prospect of higher rank.
-
-Some of the Zouaves were themselves taken prisoners and sent to
-Vienna, where they attracted extraordinary notice. On their arrival
-they were surrounded by Hungarian and Polish soldiers, who examined
-their uniform and criticized their personal appearance with lively
-curiosity, making each poor Zou-Zou exhibit himself and explain
-the use of every portion of his equipments--which, it is said, he
-did with great good humour. By way of contrast to the above, we
-present the following. A number of Austrian prisoners arrived at
-Toulouse. A sub-officer of the 3rd Zouaves, whose family lived
-there, and who was himself _en route_ to Paris, happened to be at
-the railway station when the prisoners arrived, and he recognized
-three Austrians whom he had made prisoners at the battle of
-Magenta, where he was wounded by one of them. He now shook hands
-with his ex-captives, and having obtained permission to defer his
-own departure, he took all three home with him, and treated them
-with the utmost hospitality.”
-
-
-ZURICH, BATTLES OF.--The French were defeated here, losing 4000
-men, June 4th, 1799. The Imperialists were also defeated here by
-the French, under Messina, and lost the great number of 20,000 men
-in action. September 24th, 1799.
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] In the Register of the Convent of the Friars Minors in
-Poictiers, there appear the names of the knights and great men
-buried there after this battle. Among these we find, the Constable
-of France, the Bishop of Chalons, the Viscount of Chauvigny, the
-Lords of Mailly, of Rademonde, of Rochecheruire, of Chaumont, of
-Hes, of Corbon, and a great number of knights. In the church of
-the Frères Prescheurs there were buried the Duke of Bourbon, the
-Marshal de Clermont, the Viscount de Rochechouart, the Lord de la
-Fayette, the Viscount d’Aumale, the Lord St. Gildart, and more than
-fifty knights.
-
-[2] The rocket consisted of an iron tube, about two foot long, and
-three inches in diameter, attached to a bamboo cane of fifteen or
-twenty feet in length. The tube is filled with combustible matter;
-and this dreadful missile entering the head of a column, passes
-through a man’s body, and instantly resumes its original force;
-thus destroying or wounding twenty men, independent of innumerable
-lacerations caused by the serpentine motion of the long bamboo,
-which in its irresistible progress, splinters to atoms, when the
-iron tube assumes a rapid rotary motion, and buries itself in the
-earth.
-
-[3] It is a curious and interesting literary fact, that Campbell
-wrote this in a foreign land, viz., at Ratisbon, on hearing of war
-being declared against Denmark. Some portion of it is said to have
-been previously roughly sketched out, owing to his admiration of
-the music of “Ye Gentlemen of England.” His splendid lyric, “The
-battle of the Baltic,” soon followed.
-
-[4] Herod. 1. vii. c. 175, 177.
-
-[5] Herod. 1. vii. c. 103, 132.
-
-[6] Ibid. 1. viii. c. 116.
-
-[7] Paus. 1. x. p. 645.
-
-[8] Herod. 1. vii c. 207-231. Diod. 1. xi. p. 5-10.
-
-[9] Plut. in Lacon. Apoph. p. 225.
-
-[10] Ἀντεγραψε, μολων λαβε.
-
-[11] Οτι πολλοι μεν ανθρωποι ειεν, ολιγοι δε ανδρες. Quod multi
-homines essent, pauci autem viri.
-
-[12] When the Gauls 200 years after this, came to invade Greece,
-they possessed themselves of the Straits of Thermopylæ by means of
-the same by-path, which the Grecians had still neglected to secure.
-Pausan. 1. i. p. 7. et 8.
-
-[13] Polyb. 1. iii. p. 231-238.
-
-[14] Apparebat ferociter omnia ac præpropere acturum. Quoque
-pronior esset in sua vitia, agitare eum atque irritare Pœnus parat.
-Liv. 1. xxii. n. 3.
-
-[15] Napier, vol. v. p. 132.
-
-[16] A French writer tells us, that when he had dictated, at Paris,
-the bulletin of this battle, he finished, by exclaiming with a
-groan, “It was lost, and _my glory_ with it!”
-
-[17] Hist. Memoirs, book ix, p. 209.
-
-[18] “Information which might be depended upon had made known the
-position of the Allies in all particulars.--_Fleury_, vol. ii, p.
-161.
-
-“To anticipate the Allies, and to commence hostilities _before
-they were ready_, it was necessary to take the field on the 15th
-June.”--_Hist. Memoir_, Book ix, p. 59.
-
-“The period of the arrival of the English army from America
-was known. The Allied armies could not be in readiness to act
-simultaneously until July.”--_Gourgaud’s Campaign_, p. 29.
-
-[19] Hist. Memoir, Book ix, p. 127.
-
-[20] Gourgaud, p. 38; Fleury, vol. ii, p. 167.
-
-[21] Junot, at Rolica and Vimiera; Victor at Talavera; Massena at
-Busaco; Ney, after Torres Vedras; Marmont at Salamanca; Jourdan at
-Vittoria; and Soult in the Pyrenees, Toulouse, &c. &c.
-
-[22] History of the Restoration, vol. ii, p. 377, 388.
-
-[23] Despatches, vol. viii, p. 168.
-
-[24] O’Meara, vol. i, p. 464.
-
-[25] Brialmont’s Wellington, vol. ii, p. 440.
-
-[26] Gourgaud’s Waterloo, p. 96.
-
-[27] The first French attack was repulsed about two o’clock: but
-Bonaparte renewed it five or six times, until about seven o’clock
-in the evening.--_Austrian Account._
-
-[28] Hist. Memoir, book ix, p. 143.
-
-[29] Lamartine, b. xxv, § 34.
-
-[30] Gourgaud’s Campaign of Waterloo, p. 97.
-
-[31] Page 151. This attack on the centre was made at one o’clock,
-and La Haye Sainte was not evacuated by the English till six in the
-evening. Of what occurred in the five hours which intervened the
-French accounts are ominously silent.
-
-[32] Fleury, vol. ii, p. 217.
-
-[33] At St. Helena, he told O’Meara, “When the English advanced, I
-had not a single corps of cavalry in reserve to resist them. Hence
-the English attack succeeded, and all was lost,”--_O’Meara_, vol.
-i, p. 465.
-
-[34] “It was _noon_, the troops of General Bulow were stationary
-beyond the extreme right: they appeared to form and wait for their
-artillery.”--_Hist. Mem._ b. ix, p. 150.
-
-[35] The Austrian account says “About five o’clock, the first
-cannon-shot of the Prussian army was fired from the heights of
-Aguiers.”
-
-[36] Gourgaud’s Campaign of 1815, p. 113.
-
-[37] They are described, both in Count Drouet’s speech and in “Book
-ix,” as “sixteen battalions.” If the battalions consisted of 600
-men, this would give a total of 9600.
-
-[38] Vol. ii, p. 192.
-
-[39] Colonel Lemonnier de Lafosse: Memoirs, p. 385.
-
-[40] Reille had commanded the second corps, D’Erlon the first--each
-of which had consisted of about 20,000 men! Can there be a more
-striking proof of the utter dissolution of the French army, than
-this fact, narrated by a French officer?
-
-[41] Fleury de Chaboulon, vol. ii, pp. 203, 206, 218.
-
-[42] The modesty,--the singular abstinence from a boast or a
-vaunt,--which is perceptible in this exclamation, is wonderfully
-characteristic of the man. The same quietness of manner
-distinguished him through life; and it contrasts strongly with the
-constant strut and proud assumption of Napoleon.
-
-[43] Hist. Memoir, book ix, p. 203.
-
-[44] I cannot conclude this article on Waterloo without inserting
-the following: Many years ago a prize poem on the Duke of
-Wellington was announced at one of the English Universities, I
-forget which. The gainer took for his subject the life of Napoleon,
-and finished an elaborate description of that great commander, in
-the following couplet, which gained him the prize:
-
- “So great a man, the world scarce ever knew,
- Bent to THY GENIUS, CHIEF OF WATERLOO.”
- J. D. B.
-
-[45] “Mitraille,” grape shot, with scraps of metal, and all sorts
-of small missiles.
-
-
-
-
-CHRONOLOGY.
-
-
-Chronology is the science of computing and adjusting the periods of
-time. It ascertains when events occurred, and assigns to each its
-correct date. Thus we learn from it that the world was created 4004
-years before Christ, and that the flood took place 1656 years after
-the creation; and so of all other known and ascertained events,
-each one is placed in connection with its proper period or year.
-Of the transactions between the Creation and the Flood, we know
-nothing except from Scripture, and of many of those which occurred
-after the flood, and before the time of Christ, we know nothing
-with certainty, except from the same source; but about 800 or 900
-years before our Saviour’s time, a succession of profane historians
-arose, from whom, especially those of Greece and Rome, numerous
-facts in Chronology have been obtained. Various Eras, Epochs, or
-methods of Chronology, have been adopted by different nations. The
-Greeks reckoned time by Olympiads of four years each, commencing
-from the year 776 before Christ. In marking a date by this method,
-the year and Olympiad were both given; for example, the year 1845
-is the first of 656th Olympiad. The Romans reckoned time from the
-founding of Rome, 753 years before Christ. Dates reckoned from this
-Era are designated by the initials A. U. C. (ab urbe condita; that
-is, from the building of the city). The year 1845 is the 2598th
-year of the Roman Era. The Christian Era, now in use amongst all
-Christian nations, was first introduced in the sixth century, but
-was not very generally adopted for some centuries after. This
-begins 4004 years after the creation of the world, and four years
-after the birth of our Saviour. Dates reckoned backwards are
-usually marked B.C., or before Christ, but those reckoned forward
-are distinguished by the prefix A.D., signifying Anno Domini,
-or in the year of our Lord. The Mahomedans reckon time from the
-Hegira, or flight of Mahomet from Mecca to Medina, in the year 622
-after Christ; but they use the lunar year of 354 days; so that
-thirty-two of our years make thirty-three of theirs. The year 1845
-is the 1260th year of the Hegira. Many other epochs or eras have
-been used in different countries, and at different periods. The
-Jews, Egyptians, Tyrians, Babylonians, Persians, and other ancient
-nations, have each had their eras. The Hindoos and Chinese of the
-present day have modes of reckoning time which differ from each
-other, as well as from our method. In the United States, public
-documents, proclamations, &c. have often, besides the date in
-common use, the year of the national independence attached to them.
-This is computed from July 4th, 1776, and hence may be reckoned a
-national era or chronological period.
-
-
-ANCIENT CHRONOLOGY
-
- B.C.
- From the Creation 4004 to the Deluge
- 1656 yrs elapsed.--Antediluvian P.*
- From the Deluge 2348 to the Call of Abraham
- 427 yrs elapsed.--Dispersion P.
- From the Call of Abraham 1921 to the Exode from Egypt
- 430 yrs elapsed.--Patriarchal P.
- From the Exode 1491 to the Kingdom of Saul
- 396 yrs elapsed.--Theocratic P.
- From Saul 1092 to the Captivity of Israel
- 507 yrs elapsed.--Monarchical P.
- From the Captivity 588 to Alexander the Great
- 258 yrs elapsed.--Persian P.
- From Alexander the Great 330 to Subjugation of Greece
- 184 yrs elapsed.--Grecian P.
- From Subjugation of Greece 146 to the birth of Christ
- 146 yrs elapsed.--Roman P.
- * P = Period.
-
-
-MODERN CHRONOLOGY.
-
- A.D.
- From the Birth of Christ
- to the Reign of Constantine the Great 306 years elapsed
- to the Extinction of the Western Empire 476 “ “
- to the flight of Mahomet 622 “ “
- to the Crowning of Charlemagne at Rome 800 “ “
- to the Battle of Hastings 1066 “ “
- to the Founding of the Turkish Empire 1299 “ “
- to the Taking of Constantinople 1453 “ “
- to the Edict of Nantes 1598 “ “
- to the Death of Charles XII of Sweden 1718 “ “
- to the Battle of Waterloo 1815 “ “
- to the Present time 1866 “ “
-
-
-
-
-CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.
-
-
- B.C.
-
- 4004 CREATION OF THE WORLD.
-
- 2944 Birth of Noah.
-
- 2348 The _Flood_ or _Deluge_ covers the whole earth--lasts about
- a year.
-
- 2347 Noah quits the Ark; offers sacrifices of thanksgiving; God
- appoints the rainbow as a pledge that he will never again destroy
- the earth by the waters of a flood. (Gen. ix. 11.)
-
- 2300 The Tower of Babel built; confusion of languages; dispersion
- of mankind.
-
- 2233 Babylon founded by Nimrod; Nineveh founded by Asshur;
- commencement of the Assyrian monarchy.
-
- 2188 The Egyptian monarchy founded by Mizraim; continues 1663
- years.
-
- 2059 Age of Ninus and Semiramis, Assyrian monarchs.
-
- 2000 Sicyon founded--the earliest town in Greece; Sidon founded.
-
- 1996 Birth of Abram, in Ur of the Chaldees; 1998 Noah dies.
-
- 1921 CALL OF ABRAM; he leaves Ur; comes to Haran, where his
- father, Terah, dies, aged 205 years; emigrates to Canaan, with
- Sarai his wife, and Lot his nephew, and dwells at Shechem.
-
- 1920 Abram removes to Egypt; returns the same year.
-
- 1912 Abram defeats Chedorlaomer and the confederate kings;
- rescues Lot.
-
- 1910 Birth of Ishmael, the son of Abram and Hagar. (Gen. xvi. 16.)
-
- 1897 Destruction of Sodom, Gomorrah, &c.; Lot retires to Zoar;
- Abram’s name changed to Abraham; Sarai’s changed to Sarah.
-
- 1896 Isaac born at Beersheba; 1871 Offered up as a sacrifice by
- his father.
-
- 1836 Birth of Esau and Jacob; 1821 Abraham dies.
-
- 1800 Argos founded by the Pelasgians, under Inachus.
-
- 1759 Jacob retires to his uncle, Laban, in Padan Aram; 1745
- Joseph born.
-
- 1739 Jacob returns to Canaan; resides at Shechem.
-
- 1728 Joseph sold by his brethren; 1716 Isaac dies.
-
- 1706 Jacob removes to Egypt; 1689 his death.
-
- 1705 Joseph raised to distinction in Egypt; 1635 Joseph dies.
-
- 1600 Hyksos or shepherd kings conquer Egypt; they oppress the
- Israelites.
-
- 1577 Age of Job; 1575, Birth of Aaron; 1571, Birth of Moses.
-
- 1550 Athens founded by Cecrops; 1531 Moses leaves Egypt.
-
- 1500 Tyre founded; Gades founded; 1493 Thebes founded by Cadmus.
-
- 1491 Moses returns to Egypt; _Exodus_ or _departure_ of the
- Israelites from Egypt cross the Red Sea; law given on Mount Sinai.
-
- 1452 Death of Aaron, aged 123 years; buried on Mount Hor.
-
- 1451 Sihon defeated at Jahaz; Death of Moses, aged 120 years; Og
- defeated at Edrei; the Israelites cross Jordan; capture Jericho;
- sun and moon stand still at the command of Joshua; 1445, 1444 the
- _Land of Canaan_ divided among the Twelve Tribes.
-
- 1443 Death of Joshua, aged 110 years; 1423 Tribe of Benjamin
- destroyed.
-
- 1406 Age of Minos, the Cretan lawgiver; 1405 Othniel first judge
- of Israel.
-
- 1400 Troy founded; Pelasgians expelled from Greece by the
- Hellenes.
-
- 1365 Age of Sesostris, king of Egypt; a great conqueror; built
- magnificent cities in his dominions.
-
- 1329 Amphictyonic council established.
-
- 1300 Voyage of the Argonauts from Aphetæ, in Thessaly, to
- Colchis, under the command of Jason; Hercules, Theseus, and his
- other companions were called Argonauts.
-
- 1290 Age of Mœris, king of Egypt; he causes lake Mœris to be dug,
- to receive the surplus waters of the Nile.
-
- 1285 Barak and Deborah defeat Jabin.
-
- 1245 Age of Gideon; defeats the Midianites and Moabites.
-
- 1187 Jephtha, the tenth judge of Israel, sacrifices his daughter.
-
- 1184 Troy captured, after a siege of ten years; Age of Agamemnon,
- Achilles, Diomedes, Nestor, Ulysses, Helen, Priam, Hector, Æneas,
- Andromache, &c.; Æneas sails for Italy.
-
- 1156 Age of Eli; 1155 Birth of Samuel; 1150 Utica, in Africa,
- founded.
-
- 1124 Æolian colonies established in Asia Minor.
-
- 1107 Age of Samson; judged Israel twenty years; betrayed to the
- Philistines by Delilah; buries himself under the ruins of the
- temple of Dagon, with a great number of his enemies.
-
- 1100 Salamis founded by Teucer.
-
- 1095 Saul first king of Israel; 1085 Birth of David; 1062 slays
- Goliath.
-
- 1055 Death of Saul; succession of David; 1048 crowned king of all
- Israel; 1047 takes Jerusalem from the Jebusites.
-
- 1044 Settlement of the Ionian colonies in Asia Minor; Age of
- Homer; the cities of Smyrna, Chios, Colophon, Salamis, Rhodes,
- Argos and Athens afterwards contend for the honour of his birth.
-
- 1037 The Moabites and Ammonites conquered by David.
-
- 1035 Rabbath Ammon taken by Joab; Uriah killed at the siege.
-
- 1033 Birth of Solomon; Age of Hiram king of Tyre.
-
- 1014 Death of David; succeeded by Solomon; Most flourishing
- period of the kingdom of Israel.
-
- 1003 Temple at Jerusalem built and dedicated by Solomon.
-
- 994 Dorians establish colonies in Asia Minor.
-
- 975 _Death of Solomon_; Rehoboam succeeds him; his tyranny causes
- a division of the realm into the kingdom of Judah and Israel;
- Jeroboam king of Israel; Rehoboam king of Judah.
-
- 971 Shishak, king of Egypt, plunders the temple at Jerusalem.
-
- 907 Age of the poet Hesiod; 900 Pygmalion, brother of Dido.
-
- 897 Ahab, king of Israel, slain; Ahaziah, king of Judah; Elisha
- taken up to heaven; 884 Jehu king of Israel.
-
- 880 Lycurgus, the Spartan lawgiver.
-
- 878 Carthage founded by Dido, a Tyrian Princess.
-
- 827 Ethiopians conquer Egypt; 825 Jonah visits Nineveh; the
- people repent.
-
- 820 Death of Sardanapalus; First Assyrian empire destroyed;
- Median empire founded; Kingdom of Macedonia founded.
-
- 810 Uzziah, king of Judah, takes the cities of the Philistines.
-
- 800 Persepolis built; 776 Era of the Olympiads begins.
-
- 772 Pul invades Israel.
-
- 753 Rome founded, April 20; 743 First Messenian war lasts 19
- years.
-
- 740 Damascus taken by Tiglath-pileser.
-
- 732 Syracuse founded; 730 Tarentum founded.
-
- 729 Samaria taken by Shalmanezer; End of the Kingdom of Israel;
- Captivity of the Ten Tribes.
-
- 713 Sennacherib threatens Hezekiah; his army miraculously
- destroyed.
-
- 685 Second Messenian war; lasts fourteen years; Ira besieged
- eleven years; its capture ends the war.
-
- 657 Holofernes slain by Judith, near Bethulia.
-
- 650 Naval battle between the Corcyreans and Corinthians--the
- first sea-fight on record.
-
- 641 Josiah king of Judah reforms abuses; restores the worship of
- God.
-
- 630 Cyrene founded; 627 Nabopolazzar king of Babylon.
-
- 616 Age of Pharaoh Necho; Tyrians in his service sail round
- Africa.
-
- 607 Nineveh taken by the Medes and Babylonians.
-
- 604 Age of Pittacus (general of Mitylene); Sappho (Greek poetess).
-
- 594 Age of Ezekiel.
-
- 591 Pythian Games begin; Age of Thales (philosopher); Æsop
- (fabulist).
-
- 588 Nebuchadnezzar takes Jerusalem; End of the kingdom of Judah;
- Beginning of the Babylonish captivity; 572 Nebuchadnezzar takes
- Tyre after a siege of thirteen years.
-
- 570 Voyage of Hanno along the west coast of Africa; about the
- same time Himilco sails to Britain.
-
- 560 Union of the Medes and Persians; Cyaxares king of the Medes.
-
- 559 Persian empire founded by Cyrus; Age of Anaximander, inventor
- of globes and charts.
-
- 548 Cyrus defeats Crœsus at Thymbra; Takes Sardis; Conquers Lydia.
-
- 539 Massilia founded; Age of Pythagoras (philosopher); Anacreon
- (poet).
-
- 538 Cyrus takes Babylon; Age of Daniel; 525 Cambyses conquers
- Egypt.
-
- 521 Age of Darius Hystaspes; 518 End of the Babylonish captivity.
-
- 516 Age of Artaxerxes Longimanus or Ahasuerus; Queen Esther.
-
- 515 The Temple of Jerusalem rebuilt; 510 Sybaris, in Italy,
- destroyed.
-
- 509 Consular government established in Rome.
-
- 504 Athenians burn Sardis; Age of Heraclitus (naturalist);
- Democedes (physician); 500 Milesians emigrate from Spain to
- Ireland.
-
- 500 First Persian war against Greece; 490 Battle of Marathon; the
- Greeks commanded by Miltiades, defeat the Persians, under Dates
- and Artaphanes; 480 Xerxes crosses the Hellespont at Abydos;
- invades Greece; Battle of Thermopylæ; Naval battles of Artemisium
- and Salamis; Age of Themistocles (Athenian statesman); Anaxagoras
- (philosopher); Pindar (poet); Æschylus (tragic writer); Corinna
- (poetess).
-
- 479 Battles of Platæa and Mycale on the same day.
-
- 470 The Athenians, under Cimon defeat the Persians, on the
- Eurymedon river, twice in one day, first on water and then on
- land.
-
- 465 Third Messenian war; lasts ten years.
-
- 457 Battle of Tanagra; Age of Pericles (Athenian statesman).
-
- 445 Age of Herodotus (historian); Phidias (sculptor).
-
- 431 First Peloponnesian war commences; continues twenty-seven
- years; Age of Hippocrates (physician); Democrates (philosopher,
- &c.)
-
- 424 Bœotians defeat the Athenians at Delium.
-
- 406 Naval battle of Ægos Potamos; Athenian fleet defeated by the
- Spartans; Age of Protagoras (philosopher); Parrhasius (painter).
-
- 401 Battle of Cunaxa; Death of Cyrus the younger; Retreat of the
- ten thousand under Xenophon.
-
- 400 Death of Socrates; 396 Age of Zeuxis (painter); Aristippus
- (philosopher).
-
- 395 Veii besieged by the Romans for ten years.
-
- 394 Spartans defeat the Thebans at Coronæa; Falerii taken by
- Camillus; Age of the Cyrenaic philosophers.
-
- 389 Battle of the Allia; Gauls defeat the Romans; burn Rome;
- inhabitants fly to Cære or Agylla; Gauls defeated near Cabii by
- Camillus.
-
- 379 Age of Plato (philosopher); Conon (Athenian commander);
- Epaminondas and Pelopidas (Theban generals); Diogenes (Stoic).
-
- 371 Epaminondas defeats the Spartans at Leuctra; 370 builds
- Messene in eighty-five days; Founds Megalopolis; Age of Eudoxius
- (astronomer).
-
- 362 Battle at Mantinea; death of Epaminondas.
-
- 360 Methone captured; Philip of Macedon loses his right eye.
-
- 357 Phocian war begins; lasts ten years; 355 Alexander born.
-
- 351 Capture of Sidon by Artaxerxes Ochus.
-
- 343 Age of Aristotle (philosopher), Demosthenes (orator), Phocion
- (Athenian general).
-
- 338 Battle of Chæronea; Philip defeats the Athenians and their
- allies.
-
- 336 Philip assassinated; Archidamus, King of Sparta, killed in
- battle at Manduriæ.
-
- 335 Alexander the Great destroys Thebes; 334 conquers Greece;
- begins his Persian expedition; battle of the Granicus; 333 battle
- of Issus; siege of Tyre; 332 conquers Egypt; founds the city of
- Alexandria; visits the temple of Jupiter Ammon; 331 crosses the
- Euphrates at Thapsacus; battle of Arbela; fall of the Persian
- Empire; death of Darius Codomanus; 326 Defeat of Porus by
- Alexander; the latter afterwards descends the Indus to the sea;
- his Admiral, Nearchus, navigates a fleet from the Indus to the
- Tigris; Age of Apelles (painter); Antipater (Macedonian General,
- &c.)
-
- 323 Death of Alexander, May 21; his empire divided between
- Ptolemy, Cassander, Lysimachus and Seleucus.
-
- 320 Samnites defeat the Romans near Caudium; their army pass
- under the Caudine Forks; Age of Praxiteles (sculptor); Demetrius
- (orator); Phalerius Theopompus (historian); Apollodorus (poet.)
-
- 312 Seleucus takes Babylon; dynasty of the Selucidæ begins.
-
- 310 Pytheas, the navigator, sails from Gades to Thule.
-
- 301 Battle of Ipsus, between Antigonus and Ptolemy, Seleucus,
- Lysimachus and Cassander; Age of Zeno (philosopher).
-
- 292 The Sabines conquered by Curius Dentatus; Age of Euclid
- (mathematician).
-
- 284 The Pharos, or light-house of Alexandria, built.
-
- 281 The Achæan League formed, by the chief cities of the
- Peloponnesus, for mutual defence.
-
- 280 The Romans defeated at Pandosia by Pyrrhus King of Epirus;
- Age of Antiochus 1st, surnamed Soter, King of Syria.
-
- 274 Romans defeat Pyrrhus; 272, conquer Samnium, after a seventy
- years’ war.
-
- 262 First Punic war begins; continues twenty-six years; 260
- Duillius obtains the first naval victory gained over the
- Carthaginians by the Romans; 256 Regulus defeated by Xantippus;
- Age of Diodatus.
-
- 251 Age of Eratosthenes (mathematician); Callimachus (poet).
-
- 249 Asdrubal defeated at Panormus, in Sicily, by Metellus.
-
- 246 Arsaces founds the Parthian empire; Age of Hamilcar, a noted
- Carthaginian General, and father of Hannibal.
-
- 242 The Romans defeat the Carthaginians at sea, near the Ægades
- islands; ends the first Punic war.
-
- 231 The Romans take Corsica and Sardinia.
-
- 224 The Spartan king Cleomenes III defeated by Antigonus Doson;
- Colossus, at Rhodes, overthrown by an earthquake; Age of
- Apollonius (poet), Philopæmen (Achæan General.)
-
- 219 Hannibal takes Saguntum; originates the second Punic war,
- which lasts seventeen years; 218 Crosses the Alps; defeats the
- Romans, first on the river Ticinus, then on the Trebia; 217
- Battle of Thrasimene--his third victory; 216 Battle of Cannæ--his
- fourth victory; 50,000 Romans slain; Capua declares in his favour.
-
- 212 Marcellus takes Syracuse, after a three years’ siege; death
- of Archimedes, the noted geometrician.
-
- 206 Asdrubal, the brother of Hannibal, defeated and slain by
- the Romans; Age of Syphax (Latin poet); Ennius (Latin poet);
- Masinissa, King of Numidia.
-
- 202 Sicily becomes a Roman province.
-
- 201 Battle of Zama; Hannibal defeated by Scipio Africanus; End of
- the second Punic war.
-
- 200 Romans conquer Illyricum; 197, defeat the Macedonians at
- Cynoscephalæ; 196 Hannibal banished from Carthage.
-
- 190 Antiochus defeated by the Consul Acilius at Thermopylæ; Age
- of Cato the elder.
-
- 187 Scipio Asiaticus defeats Antiochus I at Magnesia and Sipylum.
-
- 186 Scipio Africanus banished to Liturnum.
-
- 183 Death of Hannibal in Bithynia, by poison, aged sixty-five.
-
- 168 Insurrection of the Maccabees against Antiochus, King of
- Syria.
-
- 168 Paulus Æmilius defeats Perseus at Pydna; Macedonia becomes
- a Roman province; Age of Hipparchus (philosopher); Polybius
- (historian), &c.
-
- 167 Epirus conquered by the Romans; 165 Age of Judas Maccabæus.
-
- 149 Third Punic war begins; 146 Scipio destroys Carthage, Mummius
- destroys Corinth; Agatharchides (Greek geographer).
-
- 137 Demetrius Nicator defeated at Damascus by Alexander Zebina.
-
- 133 Numantia destroyed by the inhabitants; Spain becomes a Roman
- province; The kingdom of Pergamus bequeathed to the Romans by
- Attalus, its last king.
-
- 131 Tiberius Gracchus treacherously slain at Potentia.
-
- 109 Jugurthine war begins; lasts five years; 106 Jugurtha
- betrayed by Bocchus to the Romans; Armenia Major becomes a Roman
- province.
-
- 105 Aristobulus crowned king of the Jews; 106 Pompey born at Rome.
-
- 102 Marius defeats the Cimbri and Teutones at Aquæ Sextæ; 101
- defeats the Cimbri on the Raudian Plains.
-
- 100 Birth of Julius Cæsar, July 12; this month was named after
- him.
-
- 92 Bocchus sends Sylla a present of 100 lions from Africa.
-
- 89 The Mithridatic war begins; lasts twenty-six years; 86 Sylla
- defeats the consuls Carbo and Cinna; Metellus (consul); Sertorius
- (Roman General); 78 death of Sylla; 76 Calaguris besieged by
- Pompey; the inhabitants, reduced to extremity, feed on their
- wives and children.
-
- 75 Bithynia bequeathed to the Romans by Nicomedes.
-
- 73 Sertorius assassinated by Perpenna and others at Osca.
-
- 73 Servile war begins; Roman slaves revolt against their masters,
- under Spartacus; defeated, two years afterwards, by Pompey and
- Crassus.
-
- 72 Lucullus defeats Mithridates the Great at Cabira; 69 defeats
- Tigranes; captures Tigranocerta; 68 defeats Mithridates at Zela;
- 66 again at Nicopolis.
-
- 67 Pompey takes Coracesium; 65 dethrones Antiochus Asiaticus.
-
- 64 Pontus annexed to Rome; Death of Mithridates the Great.
-
- 63 Palestine conquered by Pompey; Cataline defeated and killed at
- Pistoria.
-
- 60 First triumvirate of Cæsar, Pompey and Crassus; Age of
- Catullus (poet); Cicero (orator); Sallust (historian); Roscius
- (actor), &c.
-
- 57 Gaul becomes a Roman province; 55 Cæsar invades Britain.
-
- 53 Crassus plunders the Temple of Venus at Hierapolis; his defeat
- and death, by the Parthians, near Carrhæ.
-
- 51 Siege and capture of Pindenissus by Cicero.
-
- 50 Civil war between Cæsar and Pompey; 49 Cæsar crosses the
- Rubicon; takes Ariminum; 48 defeats Pompey at Pharsalia, July
- 30th, death of Pompey.
-
- 47 Cæsar defeats Pharnaces at Zela; writes from thence his famous
- letter of three words, “Veni, vidi, vici;” I came, I saw, I
- conquered; 46 Victorious at Thapsus; Death of Cato; 45 Battle of
- Munda; the last in which Cæsar commanded.
-
- 44 Cæsar killed in the Senate-house, March 15th, by Brutus,
- Cassius, &c.
-
- 43 Antony defeats the Consul Pansa, and is defeated the same day
- by Hirtius; Cicero murdered by order of Antony; Age of Varro
- (historian and philosopher); Diodorus Siculus and Pompeius
- (historians).
-
- 42 Antony and Octavius defeat Brutus and Cassius at Philippi.
-
- 37 Herod, an Idumean, placed on the Jewish throne.
-
- 31 Naval battle at Actium; Octavius defeats Antony; _Ends the
- Commonwealth of Rome_.
-
- 30 Death of Antony and Cleopatra; Egypt becomes a Roman province.
-
- 28 _Roman Empire begins_.
-
- 27 Title of Augustus given to Octavius; Augustin age; Virgil,
- Livy, Ovid, Propertius (poets); Horace (historian); Dionysius
- Halicarnassus (antiquarian).
-
- 20 Roman standards taken from Crassus restored to Augustus, by
- Phraates, king of Parthia; death of Virgil.
-
- 19 Noricum and Pannonia conquered by the Romans; Candace, queen
- of Meroe, in Ethiopia, blind of an eye, invades Egypt, but is
- repelled.
-
- 15 Rhætia and Vindelicia conquered by Drusus.
-
- 6 Archelaus, surnamed Herod, banished to Vienna, in Gaul.
-
- 4 JESUS CHRIST, our SAVIOUR, born four years before the vulgar
- era, December 25th.
-
- 2 Massacre of the Innocents at Bethlehem, by order of Herod; his
- death; Archelaus succeeds him.
-
-
-_A.D. First year of the Christian Era, 4004 years after the
-Creation._
-
- 2 Silk first introduced into Rome.
-
- 6 Procurators or governors appointed over Judea.
-
- 8 Christ, at twelve years of age, is three days in the temple.
-
- 9 Arminius or Herman, a German chief, destroys the army of Varus;
- this defeat causes a great sensation at Rome; Ovid banished to
- Tomi.
-
- 14 Augustus dies at Nola, after a reign of forty-five years;
- succeeded by Tiberius; Age of Germanicus (Roman general).
-
- 20 Jews expelled from Italy by Tiberius; 28 Age of Strabo
- (geographer).
-
- 29 John the Baptist commences preaching: 30 Baptizes our Saviour.
-
- 31 Our Saviour delivers the Sermon on the Mount.
-
- 32 Feeds the 5000: his transfiguration; John the Baptist beheaded.
-
- 33 Our Saviour’s death; First Christian Church at Jerusalem.
-
- 37 Conversion of St. Paul; Death of Tiberius; succeeded by
- Caligula; 40 Caligula assassinated.
-
- 41 Seneca banished to Corsica; is recalled eight years
- afterwards; Age of Pomponius Mela (geographer).
-
- 43 Expedition of Claudius into Britain; 51 Caractacus, British
- king, taken as a prisoner to Rome.
-
- 52 Paul visits Athens; 54 preaches the Gospel at Ephesus; Age of
- Persius (satirist); Age of Lucan the poet.
-
- 60 St. Paul arrested; 62 voyage to Rome; 63 arrives in that city.
-
- 61 Boadicea defeated by Suetonius Paulinus at Camulodunum.
-
- 68 Nero dies: Josephus (historian); Pliny (naturalist); Petronius
- (poet).
-
- 69 Galba slain; Suicide of Otho; Vitellius slain.
-
- 70 Jerusalem taken and destroyed by Titus, September 8th;
- Agricola’s fleet sails around Britain; Agricola promotes useful
- arts among the Britons.
-
- 76 Agricola defeats Galgacus at the foot of the Grampian Hills.
-
- 79 Herculaneum, Pompeii, and other cities, overwhelmed by an
- eruption of Mount Vesuvius; Death of the elder Pliny.
-
- 81 Titus dies, aged 40; Age of Martial (poet); Quintilian
- (rhetorician).
-
- 96 Domitian slain; Age of Tacitus (historian); Juvenal (satirist).
-
- 103 Dacia conquered by Trajan; 106 Age of Pliny the younger;
- Plutarch.
-
- 117 Death of Trajan, at Selinus, in Cilicia; succeeded by Adrian.
-
- 120 Wall built by Adrian across Britain.
-
- 139 Death of Adrian, aged 71; Antoninus (emperor); Ptolemy
- (geographer).
-
- 140 Wall built by Antoninus across Britain.
-
- 169 Death of Polycarp the Martyr; Age of Galen (physician).
-
- 180 Marcus Aurelius (emperor) dies at Sirmium.
-
- 192 The Emperor Commodus slain; Pertinax succeeds him.
-
- 194 Severus defeats Niger at Issus; becomes emperor.
-
- 210 Wall built across Britain by Severus; 218 Heliogabalus
- emperor.
-
- 226 Artaxerxes founds second Persian empire; Dynasty of the
- Sassanides begins.
-
- 238 Maximinus killed by his own soldiers before the walls of
- Aquileia. This emperor was a monster of cruelty, and of gigantic
- size and strength, being eight feet high.
-
- 259 Sapor I captures the emperor Valerian, and flays him alive;
- Odenatus king of Palmyra; Gallienus succeeds Valerian.
-
- 267 Odenatus dies; Zenobia, his wife, assumes the title of Queen
- of the East.
-
- 270 Death of Claudius; Aurelian succeeds; regards Zenobia as
- a usurper; 272 defeats her at Antioch and Emesa; 273 captures
- Palmyra; takes Zenobia prisoner; puts Longinus, her secretary to
- death.
-
- 275 Emperor Tacitus; 282 Emperor Probus killed, near Sirmium.
-
- 286 Age of the emperors Diocletian and Maximianus.
-
- 305 Both resign their authority to enjoy private life; the first
- retires to Salona in Illyricum, and the other to Lucania.
-
- 306 Constantine the Great proclaimed emperor; 313 establishes
- Christianity as the religion of the empire; 315 defeats Licinius
- at Cibalis; 324 again at Adrianopolis; 328 removes the government
- from Rome to Byzantium.
-
- 338 Death of Constantine; succeeded by his sons Constantinus,
- Constantius and Constans.
-
- 348 Sapor defeats Constantius at Singara; 350 Constantius sole
- emperor; 351 defeats Magnentius at Mursa; 353, again at Mons
- Seleucus.
-
- 360 Julian the Apostate (emperor); 363 dies; next year Jovian
- dies.
-
- 367 Age of Ausonius (poet); 375 Emporor Gratian.
-
- 378 Valens defeated by the Goths at Adrianopolis. This was the
- most disastrous defeat experienced by the Romans since the battle
- of Cannæ.
-
- 380 Age of St. Augustine, one of the fathers of the Church.
-
- 395 Theodosius, emperor, divides the Roman empire between his
- sons Arcadius and Honorius, into Eastern and Western.
-
- 403 Stilicho defeated by the Goths at Pollentia.
-
- 407 The Alans, Vandals and Sueves invade Gaul and Spain.
-
- 408 Alaric takes Rome first time; 409, second time; 410, third
- time; the city given up to plunder for six days; Death of Alaric;
- Kingdom of Burgundy founded.
-
- 441 Age of St. Patrick; 448 Romans leave Britain; next year
- Angles and Saxons land under Hengist and Horsa.
-
- 451 Attila defeated at Durocatalaunum; 452 destroys Aquileia; 453
- Dies.
-
- 455 Rome captured by Genseric, king of the Vandals; Heptarchy
- established in Britain.
-
- 474 Romulus Augustulus, last emperor of the west.
-
- 476 _End of the Roman Empire_.
-
- 489 Odoacer, chief of the Heruli, becomes king of Italy;
- Ostrogoths invade Italy and defeat Odoacer.
-
- 496 Clovis the Great, king of France; Feudal system begins.
-
- 529 Age of Justinian; Belisarius (Roman general).
-
- 622 Mahomet, aged 53, flies from Mecca to Medina, which forms the
- first year of the Hegira or Mahometan Era.
-
- 632 Death of Mahomet; Abubeker, his successor or first Caliph.
-
- 636 Saracens conquer Egypt; destroy the Alexandrian Library.
-
- 712 The Moors invade Spain; 713 conquer the Visigoths.
-
- 742 Charlemagne, son of Pepin the Short, born; 768 crowned king
- of the Franks; 774 crowned king of Italy; 800 crowned emperor of
- the West, by Pope Leo III; 814 Charlemagne dies. Charlemagne was
- the most powerful Christian monarch of the middle ages; he was a
- renowned warrior, he also encouraged learning and religion, and
- collected around him the most noted scholars of his time.
-
- 827 The Heptarchy united under Egbert, king of England.
-
- 843 Kenneth Macalpine first king of Scotland.
-
- 849 Alfred, King of England, born; 872 ascends the throne; 901
- dies. This monarch rescued his country from the power of the
- Danes; encouraged learning and religion; enacted wise laws, and
- laid the foundation of the naval power of Britain.
-
- 853 Tithes of all England granted to the church.
-
- 856 The English crown first disposed of by will.
-
- 862 Winchester burnt by the Danes.
-
- 867 The monasteries ravaged by the Danes.
-
- 886 Ships first built to secure the coasts. Learning restored at
- Oxford, by Alfred the Great.
-
- 890 Brick and stone first used in building. Time calculated by
- wax candles marked.
-
- 897 A plague happened which caused great desolation among the
- inhabitants.
-
- 900 Athelstan created knight, and the first who enjoyed this
- title in England.
-
- 937 A severe frost, which continued 120 days. The Bible
- translated into the Saxon. Colebrand, the Danish giant, killed by
- Guy, Earl of Warwick.
-
- 944 A storm blew down 1500 houses in London.
-
- 945 The first tuneable bells in England were this year hung in
- Croyland Abbey.
-
- 946 Stealing first punished with death.
-
- 955 Edred enjoyed the honor of being the first who was styled
- King of Great Britain.
-
- 960 Laws to prevent excessive drinking. Wolves’ heads made a
- tribute. Eight princes rowed Edgar over the river Dee.
-
- 979 Juries instituted.
-
- 982 A fire destroyed the King’s palace and a great part of London.
-
- 991 The land-tax first levied.
-
- 999 Danegelt first levied, to bribe the Danes to leave the
- kingdom.
-
- 1002 November 13, a general massacre of the Danes began at Welwin
- in Hertfordshire.
-
- 1012 The priests first inhibited from marrying.
-
- 1014 Selling English children and kindred to Ireland, prohibited.
-
- 1017 Canute caused the assassins of Edmund, and the traitor Edric
- who by a plot of regicide had advanced him to the throne, to be
- hanged.
-
- 1040 Macbeth murders Duncan king of Scotland.
-
- 1058 Edward the Confessor began to cure the King’s evil. Godiva
- relieved Coventry from some heavy taxes by riding naked through
- the town.
-
- 1060 The cross of Waltham erected.
-
- 1065 The Saxon laws written in Latin.
-
- 1066 William Fitzosborne created earl of Hereford, being the
- first Earl created in this kingdom.
-
- 1068 The tax of Danegelt was re-established; and the curfew-bell
- ordered to be rung at eight every evening, when the people were
- obliged, on pain of death, to extinguish their fire and candle.
-
- 1072 Surnames first used in England.
-
- 1075 William was reconciled with his son Robert, who had rebelled
- against him. Waltheof, earl of Northumberland, was beheaded for
- rebellion, and was the first English nobleman thus executed.
-
- 1076 William refused to pay homage to the see of Rome for the
- possession of England, and forbade his bishops to attend the
- council that Gregory had summoned. He however sent to Rome the
- tribute of Peter-pence. A great earthquake in England, and a
- frost from November to the end of April.
-
- 1078 William laid the foundation of London.
-
- 1079 The Norman laws and language introduced.
-
- 1085 Thirty-six parishes, containing a circuit of sixty miles
- in Hampshire, were depopulated and destroyed without any
- compensation to the inhabitants, in order to make New-Forest for
- William’s diversion of hunting. The tyrannical laws of the Forest
- were made.
-
- 1087 A dreadful famine in England. William went to France and
- destroyed the country with fire and sword. He died at Rouen by a
- fall from his horse, and was buried at Caen, in Normandy, in the
- monastery he had himself founded, but was denied interment by the
- proprietor till the fees were paid.
-
- 1088 An earthquake in London. A great scarcity this year, and
- corn not ripe till the end of November. William II embarked
- for Normandy, and made war against his brother Robert. William
- returned to England; and Henry his brother, was forced to wander
- without a residence.
-
- 1091 A tempest which destroyed 500 houses. Great part of London
- consumed by fire.
-
- 1092 Malcolm, king of Scotland, killed at Alnwick, by the Earl of
- Northumberland.
-
- 1094 Man and beast destroyed by a great mortality.
-
- 1095 Peter the hermit preached up a crusade to the Holy Land.
-
- 1096 The Christian princes raised 700,000 men, and began the holy
- war. The first single combat for deciding disputes between the
- nobility.
-
- 1097 The Voyage for the Holy War, was first undertaken. Being
- a contrivance of Pope Urban, to compose the divisions of the
- church, the whole Christian world being then at discord among
- themselves. This war lasted almost three hundred years.
-
- 1098 Tower surrounded with a wall. Westminster Hall built. Its
- dimensions are 224 feet by 74.
-
- 1099 Jerusalem taken by storm, and forty thousand Saracens put to
- the sword.
-
- 1100 Godwin-Sands, the property of Earl Godwin, first overflowed
- by the sea, destroying four thousand acres of land. King Henry
- married the lady Maud, daughter of Margaret, late queen of Scots,
- and niece to Edgar Atheling, descended from Edmund Ironside. The
- use of fire and candle, after eight o’clock at night restored to
- the English.
-
- 1106 King Henry subdues Normandy, takes Robert prisoner, and
- orders his eyes to be put out.
-
- 1109 Three shillings levied on every hide of land, which tax
- produced £824,000.
-
- 1110 Arts and sciences taught again at Cambridge.
-
- 1112 A plague in London.
-
- 1114 The Thames dry for three days.
-
- 1116 A council called of the nobility, which is supposed by some
- to be the first parliament.
-
- 1122 The order of the Knights Templars founded.
-
- 1123 The first park (Woodstock) made in England.
-
- 1129 The revenue of the royal demesne altered from kind to specie.
-
- 1132 London mostly destroyed by fire.
-
- 1134 Duke Robert, having been imprisoned and blinded twenty-eight
- years, ended his miserable existence. Wheat sufficient to subsist
- 100 men one day, sold at one shilling--a sheep 4d.
-
- 1136 The distance from Aldgate to St. Paul’s (included),
- destroyed by fire in London.
-
- 1136 The Empress Maud besieged in Oxford, and made her escape
- from thence on foot, being disguised in white, on a snowy night,
- to Abingdon. The tax of Danegelt entirely abolished. No less than
- fifteen hundred strong castles in the kingdom.
-
- 1139 The Empress Matilda lands at Arundel, and claims the crown.
- Makes her natural brother, Robert, Earl of Gloucester, her
- general.
-
- 1141 Stephen taken prisoner at the battle of Lincoln, and
- confined in chains by Maud, in Gloucester gaol. Stephen released.
-
- 1148 A new Crusade undertaken.
-
- 1151 Gratian of Bologna, the monk, collects the canon laws after
- twenty-four year’s labour.
-
- 1153 Agreed, between Henry and Stephen, that eleven hundred of
- the castles, erected by permission of the latter, should be
- abolished. Appeals were first made to the Pope, and canon laws
- instituted. There was no regular mode of taxation. Contending
- parties supported themselves by plundering each other’s tenants.
- There were more abbeys built, than in the hundred years preceding.
-
- 1155 The castles demolished, agreeably to the treaty of 1153.
-
- 1157 The Welsh, subdued, do homage, and swear allegiance. A sect,
- called Publicans, rejecting baptism and marriage, came into
- England from Germany. The bishops pronounced them heretics; they
- were branded in the forehead and whipped.
-
- 1174 Henry scourged for the supposed murder of Becket. The
- bishops and abbots of Scotland swore fealty to England and its
- church. The earls and barons of Scotland swore allegiance to
- Henry and his son.
-
- 1176 London bridge begun by Peter Colmar, a priest. It was
- thirty-three years in building.
-
- 1177 Glass windows in private houses first used. Debasers of coin
- first severely punished. A new coinage.
-
- 1185 A total eclipse of the sun; and, at the same time, an
- earthquake, which destroyed Lincoln and other churches.
-
- 1186 Near Oxford in Suffolk, was a sort of wild-man caught in
- a fisherman’s net. Trial by jury established, or the verdict
- of twelve men, to punish offenders with the loss of a leg or
- banishment. Henry secreted his concubine (Rosamond, daughter of
- Walter, lord Clifford) in a labyrinth at his palace at Woodstock,
- who being discovered by his queen Eleanor, was poisoned by her,
- and buried at Godstow nunnery near Oxford.
-
- 1189 The castles of Berwick and Roxburgh delivered up to William,
- king of Scotland, who was, at the same time relieved from
- subjection to England. Richard began, with Philip of France, his
- expedition to the Holy Land. About this time were those famous
- robbers and outlaws, Robin Hood, and Little John. Upon Richard’s
- coronation-day, (3rd September,) was a great slaughter of the
- Jews in London, who coming to offer their presents to the new
- king, were set upon by the mob, to the loss of their lives and
- estates; and the example of London was followed by other towns,
- as Norwich, St. Edmunds-Bury, Lincoln, Stamford and Lynn.
-
- 1190 King Richard marries the Lady Berengaria, daughter to the
- king of Navarre, and goes to the Holy Land, having sold some of
- the crown lands to raise the money for that expedition. In which
- voyage he took the Island of Sicily and Cyprus.
-
- 1191 Richard obtained a great victory over Saladin, at Jerusalem,
- September 3. He soon after defeated a Turkish troop of 10,000,
- who were guarding a caravan to Jerusalem. He took, on this
- occasion, 3,000 loaded camels, 4,000 mules, and an inestimable
- booty which he gave to his troops.
-
- 1192 Multitudes destroyed by a raging fever, which lasted five
- months. Two suns appeared on Whitsunday, so resembling each
- other, that astronomers could scarcely distinguish which was the
- centre of our system, according to Copernicus.
-
- 1194 Richard having been absent four years, returned to England,
- March 20. He made war with France, and having obtained a great
- victory over the French at Gysors “Not we” says he, “but _Dieu et
- mon Droit_,” i.e. God and my Right, has obtained this victory.
- Ever since, the kings of England have made it their motto.
- The king of Scotland carried the sword of state at the second
- coronation of Richard.
-
- 1197 Robin Hood, being indisposed, and desiring to be blooded,
- was purposely and treacherously bled to death. In this reign,
- companies and societies were first established in London. Three
- lions passant first borne in the king’s shield.
-
- 1199 Surnames first used.
-
- 1200 The king of Scotland performed public homage to John, at the
- parliament held in Lincoln. Assize of bread first appointed.
-
- 1204 The Inquisition established by Pope Innocent III. The most
- ancient writ of parliament directed to the bishop of Salisbury.
- Five moons seen at one time in Yorkshire.
-
- 1205 A fish resembling a man taken on the coast of Suffolk, and
- kept alive six months.
-
- 1207 The first annual mayor and common council of London chosen.
-
- 1208 Divine service throughout the kingdom suspended by the
- Pope’s interdict.
-
- 1209 John excommunicated.
-
- 1210 Twenty Irish princes do homage to John at Dublin. The clergy
- taxed to the amount of £100,000.
-
- 1211 England absolved by the Pope from its allegiance to John.
-
- 1212 Great part of London burnt down by a fire which began in
- Southwark in Middlesex, and consumed the Church of St. Mary
- Overy, went on to the bridge; and whilst some were quenching the
- flames, the houses at the other end took fire, so that numbers
- were inclosed; many were forced to leap into the Thames, whilst
- others, crowding into boats that came to their relief, were the
- cause of nearly 3,000 people perishing, partly by water, and
- partly by fire.
-
- 1213 John resigned his dominions to the Pope, and was absolved.
- In this reign, sterling money was first coined.
-
- 1216 Wheat was sold for twelve-pence a quarter, and beans and
- oats for four-pence a quarter.
-
- 1222 The ward-ship of heirs and their lands was granted to king
- Henry.
-
- 1226 The Pope demanded a sum annually from every cathedral church
- and monastery in Christendom. This demand was refused. Thomas à
- Becket’s bones were enshrined in gold and precious stones. Two
- imposters executed, the one for pretending to be the Virgin Mary,
- the other Mary Magdalen.
-
- 1228 The Jews obliged to pay a third part of their property to
- the king.
-
- 1236 Water first conveyed to London with utility. The Pope’s
- ambassador going to Oxford, was set upon by the students, and
- his brother slain, himself hardly escaping; whereupon the Pope
- excommunicated the University, and made all the bishops who
- interceded in the University’s behalf, and the students, go
- without their gowns, and barefooted from St. Paul’s church to his
- house, being about a mile, before he would revoke the sentence.
-
- 1246 Titles first used.
-
- 1251 Wales entirely subdued and subjected to English laws.
-
- 1253 Fine linen first made in England.
-
- 1255 All possessing £15 per annum, obliged to be knighted, or pay
- a fine. Tapestry introduced by Eleanor, wife of prince Edward.
-
- 1264 There were 700 Jews slain in London, because one of them
- would have forced a Christian to have paid more than two-pence,
- for the use of twenty shillings a week.
-
- 1269 About this time, Roger Bacon, a divine of Merton College in
- Oxford, was imprisoned by the Pope, for preaching against the
- Romish church.
-
- 1273 The Scots swear fealty to Edward, June 12.
-
- 1275 Jews obliged to wear a badge; usury restrained by the same
- act of parliament, October 6.
-
- 1279 The first statute of Mortmain. 280 Jews hung for clipping
- and coining.
-
- 1282 The Rolls in Chancery-lane given to the Jews. Wales reduced,
- after having preserved her liberties 800 years.
-
- 1284 Edward II born at Caernarvon, and created first prince of
- Wales, April 25.
-
- 1285 The abbey Church of Westminster finished, being sixty years
- in building.
-
- 1286 The Jews seized, and £12,000 extorted from them by order of
- the king. He likewise laid great fines upon his judges, and other
- ministers, for their corruption; the sum imposed upon eleven of
- them was 236,000 marks.
-
- 1289 15,000 Jews banished.
-
- 1291 Charing, Waltham, St. Albans, and Dunstable crosses erected,
- where the corpse of queen Eleanor was rested on its way from
- Lincoln to Westminster for interment.
-
- 1295 The Scots confederate with the French against the English.
-
- 1296 Baliol, king of Scotland, brought prisoner to London.
-
- 1298 40,000 Scots killed by the English at the battle of Falkirk.
- Sir William Wallace defeated at Falkirk. Baliol released.
- Spectacles invented.
-
- 1301 Parliament declared Scotland subject to England.
-
- 1302 The treasury robbed of property to the amount of £100,000.
- Magnetic needle first used.
-
- 1308 Crockery ware invented.
-
- 1314 The king defeated at Bannockburn, in Scotland.
-
- 1319 Dublin University founded.
-
- 1322 Knights templar order abolished. Under the accusation of
- heresy and other vices, all the knights templar were seized by
- order of the king, in one day. The knights templar were an order
- instituted by Baldwin, king of Jerusalem, for the defence of the
- Holy City, and of the pilgrims that travelled thither, and were
- afterwards dispersed through all the kingdoms in Christendom.
- They were so enriched by the superstitious world, that they
- possessed no less than 14,000 lordships, besides other valuable
- lands.
-
- 1325 The queen and her adherents declared enemies to the kingdom.
-
- 1326 The nobility renounce all fealty to Edward. The king resigns
- his crown to his son Edward III.
-
- 1327 The first general pardon granted at a coronation, which was
- afterwards imitated by succeeding kings.
-
- 1330 Gunpowder invented. The use of guns by Berthold Swartz of
- Cologne in Germany, a monk, who being addicted to the study
- of Chemistry, and making up a preparation of Nitre, and other
- things, a spark of fire fell into it and caused a quick and
- violent explosion; whereupon he made a composition of powder,
- and inclosing it in an instrument of brass, found it answer his
- intention, and by this accident came the invention of Guns.
-
- 1331 The art of weaving cloth brought from Flanders.
-
- 1340 Copper money first used in Scotland and Ireland. Thomas
- Blanket and some other inhabitants of Bristol, set up looms for
- weaving those woollen cloths that yet bear that name.
-
- 1341 Gold first coined in England.
-
- 1346 Cannon first used by the English at Cressy.
-
- 1347 So great a plague in England, that in one year there was
- buried in London 50,000; and there succeeded a famine and
- murrain. August 3rd, king Edward took the City of Calais, which
- he filled with English inhabitants; and it remained in the
- possession of the Crown of England 210 years after.
-
- 1348 The Order of the Garter instituted by Edward the Black
- Prince, April 3. The plague destroyed one-half of the people.
-
- 1352 The largest silver coin in England was groats.
-
- 1357 Coals first imported into London.
-
- 1362 Council obliged to plead in English.
-
- 1364 Four kings entertained at one time, by Sir Henry Picard,
- lord mayor of London.
-
- 1377 The first champion at coronation. Orders to arm the clergy.
-
- 1378 The plague in the north of England. In this year Greenland
- was discovered.
-
- 1379 Every person in the kingdom taxed, April 25.
-
- 1381 Bills of Exchange first used. Wat Tyler’s rebellion begun
- May 3. 1506 rebels hung, July 2.
-
- 1385 The French land in Scotland, in order to invade England,
- whereupon king Richard went to fight them, and put Edinburgh into
- flames, but they refusing to fight, he returns.
-
- 1386 Linen-weavers company first settled.
-
- 1387 The first high-admiral of England appointed. William of
- Wickham, bishop of Winchester, and lord treasurer, and chancellor
- of England, laid the foundation of the college in Winchester, as
- a nursery for his college in Oxford.
-
- 1388 Bombs invented.
-
- 1391 A great plague and famine. Cards invented for the King of
- France. Charles VI.
-
- 1392 Thirteen counties charged with treason, and obliged to
- purchase their pardons. Provision seized, without payment, for
- the army. Duke of Lancaster landed, and declared his pretensions
- to the crown, July 4. Richard confined in the tower, August 20.
- Resigned his crown, September 29. In this reign piked shoes were
- worn tied with ribands and chains of silver to the knees. Ladies
- began to ride on side saddles, before which time they used to
- ride astride like men.
-
- 1399 Geoffrey Chaucer, the poet, died. A conspiracy formed to
- restore Richard.
-
- 1400 Richard II murdered in Pontefract Castle. Emperor of
- Constantinople visited England.
-
- 1403 The battle of Shrewsbury, July 22, gained by Henry and the
- valour of his sons.
-
- 1405 Great guns first used in England, at the siege of Berwick.
-
- 1407 A plague destroyed 30,000 persons in London.
-
- 1409 Wickliffe’s doctrine condemned.
-
- 1414 King Henry sends his brother, the Duke of Bedford, &c.,
- with 200 sail of ships, who fell upon the French fleet, sunk 500
- French vessels, and took three great Carricks of Genoa; relieved
- Harfleur, and so forced the French to raise the siege. In this
- action many thousands of the French were killed.
-
- 1415 The battle of Agincourt gained by Henry, with a loss of
- 10,000 men to the French, killed, and 14,000 prisoners, October
- 25th. Henry sent David Gam, a Welsh captain, to view the strength
- of the enemy, who reported, “There were enough to be killed,
- enough to be taken prisoners, and enough to run away.”
-
- 1418 Sir John Oldcastle burnt for heresy in St. Giles’s fields.
-
- 1419 Vines and sugar-cane first planted in Madeira.
-
- 1420 Henry assumes the title of King of France, on a new coin,
- April 18th. Kings of France and England make a magnificent entry
- into Paris.
-
- 1421 The Duke of Clarence, making an inroad into Anjou, in an
- unhappy engagement with the French, he and about 2,000 English
- were slain.
-
- 1422 The two Courts of England and France held at Paris, on
- Whitsunday: the two Kings and Queens dined together in public,
- May 21st. In this reign it was enacted that knights, citizens,
- and burgesses, should be resident in the place for which they
- were chosen. The crown and jewels were pawned to raise money for
- maintaining the war with France.
-
- 1422 The French King enlisted 15,000 Scots.
-
- 1424 The King of Scotland ransomed.
-
- 1430 Every person possessed of £40 per annum, obliged to be
- knighted.
-
- 1436 Paris taken by the English.
-
- 1437 James, King of Scotland, murdered, February 19th. So great
- a dearth, that bread was made of fern roots and ivy berries.
-
- 1447 The Bodleian library at Oxford founded.
-
- 1448 Duke of York asserts his title to the crown.
-
- 1449 A rebellion in Ireland.
-
- 1450 The King and his forces defeated at Seven-oaks, by Jack
- Cade, in May. Cade killed, and his followers dispersed, in June.
-
- 1453 The first Lord Mayor’s show. Richard Plantagenet, Duke of
- York, encounters the Queen’s army, near Wakefield in Yorkshire,
- in which he was killed, and his army routed. Edward Plantagenet,
- Earl of March, hearing of his father’s death, took upon him the
- title of Duke of York, and in a battle, at Mortimer’s-cross, near
- Ludlow, overthrew the Earls of Pembroke, Ormond, and Wiltshire,
- and beheaded Owen Tudor, the King’s father-in-law. And in another
- battle with the Queen, he killed the Earls of Northumberland, and
- Westmoreland; the Lords Dacres, Wells, Clifford, Beaumont, and
- Grey. This was the bloodiest battle that England ever knew, for
- there were killed that day 36,776 men.
-
- 1454 The king defeated by the Duke of York, at Barnet.
-
- 1459 Engravings and etchings invented.
-
- 1460 The King taken prisoner at the battle of Northampton.
-
- 1461 Edward, the Duke of York, proclaimed King. Richard
- Plantagenet, brother to Edward IV, created Duke of Gloucester.
- Henry, Margaret, their sons, and adherents, attained by
- parliament, November 6th.
-
- 1463 Woollens, laces, ribands, and other English manufactures,
- prohibited exportation.
-
- 1464 Henry, in disguise, taken prisoner, and conveyed to the
- Tower.
-
- 1469 5,000 Welsh slain at the battle of Branbury.
-
- 1470 Warwick, being offended at the marriage of Edward IV, landed
- September 13th, with 60,000 men from France. Edward IV flies to
- the Duke of Burgundy, his brother-in-law, in Holland.
-
- 1471 King Edward, endeavouring to re-obtain the crown, encounters
- King Henry in a bloody battle, upon Gladmore heath, near Barnet,
- and King Henry taken prisoner a second time. On both sides were
- slain 10,000 men. King Henry’s Queen, in a battle with King
- Edward, was taken prisoner, 3,000 on her side were slain, and
- her son Edward killed; and soon after, King Henry himself was
- murdered by the hand of the crook-back’d Duke of Gloucester.
-
- 1472 A plague in England destroyed more than preceding fifteen
- year’s war.
-
- 1475 Margaret of Anjou, ransomed for £12,500.
-
- 1481 James, King of Scotland, caused one of his brothers to be
- murdered. Thomas Parr born this year, and lived 152 years. A
- remarkable act was passed in this reign, which enacted what sort
- of dress each class of men should wear. Another enacted that no
- peaked shoes should be worn.
-
- 1483 Gloucester conveyed the King to Northampton. Lords
- Hastings, Rivers, and Grey beheaded. The Lord Mayor, &c., at the
- instigation of the Duke of Buckingham, offered the crown to the
- Duke of Gloucester, who, with affected hesitation, accepted it,
- June 17th. King Edward V, and his brother, the Duke of York,
- murdered in the Tower. Jane Shore, concubine to King Edward
- IV, and afterwards to Lord Hastings, was obliged to do penance
- publicly in St. Paul’s. She was afterwards starved to death, no
- person being allowed to relieve her, and died in a ditch; to
- which circumstance, Shoreditch is said to owe its name. Edward V
- was born in Westminster Abbey, November 4th, 1470; reigning two
- months and eighteen days, was murdered in the Tower, and buried
- there privately. His remains were afterwards found in 1674,
- and removed to Westminster. Richard, Duke of Gloucester, (the
- English Nero,) proclaimed King of England. Post-horses and stages
- established. Earl of Richmond landed at Pool in Dorsetshire.
- Being nearly surprised by Richard, he embarked again, and
- returned to Picardy.
-
- 1484 Anne, the Queen of Richard, died March 16th. Richard treats
- with Laudais, the Duke of Bretagne’s prime minister, for
- surprising and delivering up the Earl of Richmond. Richmond,
- escaping from Bretagne, went to Angers, in Anjou.
-
- 1485 Lord Stanley raises 5000 men, and his brother 2000, with
- whom they joined Richmond. The sweating sickness, raged in London.
-
- 1486 King Henry, to balance the power of the Lords, found a way
- to raise that of the Commons, which ever since has carried a much
- greater sway than formerly in the government.
-
- 1487 Lambert Simnel, who personated the Duke of York, was made a
- scullion in the King’s kitchen. The star chamber instituted.
-
- 1488 The King of Scotland, James III, killed by his subjects.
- Cape of Good Hope discovered.
-
- 1489 Maps and sea charts first brought into England by
- Bartholomew Columbus.
-
- 1491 The Greek language first introduced into England.
-
- 1492 3rd August, Columbus set sail from Palos, a port of Spain,
- and on the 12th of October, to his unspeakable gratification,
- he made his first discovery in the New World. This was one of
- the Bahama Islands, called by the natives Guanahani, named by
- Columbus St. Salvador, and afterwards, by some unpardonable
- caprice, called by the English Cat Island. He landed the same
- day, took possession of it in the name of the Spanish sovereigns,
- and assumed the titles of Admiral and Viceroy, which had been
- awarded to him before he sailed from Europe.
-
- 1493 15th March. Columbus arrived in Spain after a stormy and
- dangerous voyage, having taken not quite seven months and a-half
- to accomplish this momentous enterprize.
-
- 1494 Poyning’s law, which enacted that the statutes in England,
- respecting the English, should be observed in Ireland likewise,
- first instituted by Sir Edward Poyning.
-
- 1495 Cicely, Duchess of York, mother to King Edward IV, died,
- being very old, who had lived to see three Princes born of her
- body, crowned, and four murdered.
-
- 1497 Perkin Warbeck besieged Exeter. The passage to the Indies by
- the way of the Cape of Good Hope discovered. 3rd July, John Cabot
- discovered Newfoundland. He sailed from the Port of Bristol, in
- the spring of 1497, and, on the 3rd of July, discovered the coast
- of Labrador. The opposite Island, now called Newfoundland, they
- called St. Johns, having landed there on St. John’s day. To the
- mainland they gave the name of _Terra prima vista_--or Primavista
- (first seen). The English navigators thus reached the continent
- of North America only five years after Columbus had discovered
- the West Indies, and more than a year before he had landed on the
- continent or main land.
-
- 1499 Perkin Warbeck taken and hung at Tyburn, and the last Earl
- of the Plantagenet line was beheaded on Tower-hill, November
- 28th.
-
- 1500 A plague in London, which destroyed 30,000 of its
- inhabitants. A marriage was concluded between James IV, King of
- Scotland, and Margaret, the daughter of King Henry VII, which
- afterwards united England and Scotland under one King.
-
- 1505 Shillings first coined in England.
-
- 1513 Earl of Surrey gained the battle of Flodden-field, over the
- Scots, whose King, James IV, fell in the contest. King Henry
- invades France in person, takes Terwin and Tournay, at the siege
- of which, the Emperor Maximilian served under the King’s pay. At
- which siege likewise, was fought that battle called the battle
- of Spurs, because the English put some of the French troops to
- flight who made great use of their spurs.
-
- 1514 Enacted that surgeons should not sit on juries, nor be
- employed in parish offices.
-
- 1517 Oxford depopulated by stagnated waters. Martin Luther began
- the reformation in Germany.
-
- 1521 King Henry derived the title to him and his successors
- of Defender of the Faith, from writing a book against Luther.
- Musquets first invented. Mexico city yielded, after a prolonged
- siege, to Cortez, in August.
-
- 1522 Magellan performed his voyage under the auspices of Charles
- V, of Spain. He set sail from Seville, in Spain, in August, 1519.
- After spending several months on the coast of South America,
- searching for a passage to the Indies, he continued his voyage
- to the South, passed through the strait that bears his name,
- and after sailing three months and twenty-one days, through
- an unknown ocean, he discovered a cluster of fertile islands,
- which he named the Ladrones, or the Islands of Thieves, from
- the thievish disposition of the natives. The fair weather and
- favourable winds which he experienced induced him to bestow
- on this the name of the Pacific, which it still retains.
- Proceeding from the Ladrones, he discovered the islands which
- were afterwards called the Philippines in honour of Philip,
- King of Spain, who subjected them forty years after the voyage
- of Magellan. Here, in a contest with the natives, Magellan was
- killed, and the expedition was prosecuted under other commanders.
- After taking in a cargo of spices at the Moluccas, the only
- vessel of the squadron then fit for a long voyage, sailed for
- Europe by the way of the Cape of Good Hope, and arrived in Spain
- in September, 1522.
-
- 1530 The palace of St. James built.
-
- 1535 Brass cannon first cast in England by John Owen. Jacques
- Cartier discovered the St. Lawrence on that Saint’s day. He
- explored the north-east coast carefully, and, passing through
- the Strait of Belleisle, traversed the great Gulf of the St.
- Lawrence, and arrived in the Bay of Chaleurs in July. He was
- delighted with the peaceable and friendly conduct of the natives,
- “who,” says Hakluyt, “with one of their boats, came unto us,
- and brought us pieces of seals ready sodden, putting them upon
- pieces of wood: then, retiring themselves, they would make signs
- unto us, that they did give them to us.” From this hospitable
- place, where the natives seem to have displayed some of the
- politeness of modern society, Jacques Cartier proceeded to Gaspé
- Bay, where he erected a cross thirty feet high, with a shield
- bearing the three fleurs-de-lis of France, thus taking possession
- in the name of Francis the First. He carried off two natives from
- Gaspé, who were of great use to him on his succeeding voyage.
- It appears, however, that it was with their own consent, as
- they allowed themselves to be clothed in shirts, coloured coats
- and caps, and to have a copper chain placed about their neck,
- “whereat they were greatly contented, and gave their old clothes
- to their fellows that went back again.” Cartier coasted along
- the northern shores of the Gulf, when, meeting with boisterous
- weather, he made sail for France, and arrived at St. Malo on the
- 5th of September. This celebrated navigator deserves especial
- notice, inasmuch as he was the first who explored the shores
- of Canada to any considerable extent, and was the very first
- European who became acquainted with the existence of Hochelaga,
- and in 1535 pushed his way through all obstacles till he
- discovered and entered the village which occupied the very spot
- on which now stands the city of Montreal.
-
- 1536 376 monasteries suppressed.
-
- 1539 Leaden pipes to convey water invented.
-
- 1540 645 religious houses seized, and their property, amounting
- to £161,000, given to the King. The number of monasteries
- suppressed in England and Wales, were 313, Priories 290, Friaries
- 122, Nunneries 142, Colleges 152, and Hospitals 129; in all 1148.
-
- 1541 1st voyage to India by an English ship.
-
- 1543 Mortars and cannon first cast in iron.
-
- 1544 Pistols first used.
-
- 1545 William Foxley slept fourteen days, and lived forty-one days
- after.
-
- 1547 The vows of celibacy before taken by priests, annulled, and
- the communion ordered to be administered in both kinds. Evening
- prayers began to be read in English in the King’s chapel, April
- 16th. The Scots refusing to marry their young Queen to King
- Edward (according to their promise in his father’s life-time),
- the protector enters Scotland with an army of 12,000 foot, and
- 600 horse, and fights them in Pinkey-field, near Musselburgh, and
- kills 14,000 Scots, and takes 1500 prisoners, having lost but
- sixty of his own men.
-
- 1548 Some ceremonies were now abrogated, and an order of council
- against the carrying of candles, on Candlemas-day, ashes on
- Ash-Wednesday, and palms on Palm-Sunday.
-
- 1549 Telescopes invented.
-
- 1551 The sweating-sickness broke out this year In England with
- such contagion, that 800 died in one week of it in London. Those
- that were taken with it were inclined much to sleep, and all
- that slept died; but if they were kept awake a day, they got
- well. A college founded in Galway in Ireland. Common-prayer
- books established by act of parliament. Monks and nuns allowed
- inheritances. Sternhold and Hopkins translated and put the Psalms
- into verse.
-
- 1553 There was so great a plenty of malt and wheat, that a barrel
- of beer with the cock sold for six-pence, and four great loaves
- for one penny. The King founded St. Bartholomew’s Hospital,
- Bridewell, improved the Hospital of Christchurch and St. Thomas’
- Hospital, Southwark. Judge Hales, in his circuit into Kent,
- required the justices to see to the execution of King Edward’s
- laws: for which he was committed, and removed from prison to
- prison, and threatened so, that he attempted to cut his own
- throat, and at last drowned himself.
-
- 1553 Spitzbergen, the White Sea, and Nova Zembla, discovered by
- the English.
-
- 1554 The laws against Lollards and Heretics were revived, and
- the statutes of Mortmain repealed. There was at this time a
- discovery in London of the imposter of the Spirit of the Wall,
- who, by the help of a whistle, uttered several things relating to
- religion, and the state, through a hole in a wall. It was found
- to be Elizabeth Croses, and one Drake, her accomplice, who were
- both made to do penance for it publicly at St. Paul’s. Scory,
- bishop of Chichester, renounced his wife, and did penance for his
- marriage. It is supposed there were 12,000 of the clergy deprived
- for being married, and most of them were judged upon common fame,
- without any process, but a citation.
-
- 1555 The church lands, in the Queen’s possession, restored.
- Coaches first used in England.
-
- 1556 300 Protestants burnt for heresy.
-
- 1557 This year began with a visitation of the Universities.
- Commissioners were sent to Oxford, where they burnt all the
- English Bibles and heretical books they could find; and took up
- the body of Peter Martyr’s wife, who they said was a heretic,
- and buried it in a dunghill. And at Cambridge, they dug up the
- bodies of Bucer and Fagius, two heretics, and tied their coffins
- to stakes, and burnt them and their heretical books together.
- Cardinal Pole died November 15th.
-
- 1576-77-78 Three voyages by Frobisher in search of a North-west
- passage. Greenland explored.
-
- 1580 Drake, the first English circumnavigator.
-
- 1584 Virginia discovered by Sir Walter Raleigh.
-
- 1587 Davies’ Straits discovered by Davies, an English navigator.
- February 9th. Execution of Mary, Queen of Scots, at Fotheringay
- Castle.
-
- 1588 Destruction of the Spanish Armada.
-
- 1595 Falkland Islands, discovered by Hawkins.
-
- 1596 The first trading expedition to the East Indies.
-
- 1599 East India Company. Chauvin made two voyages to Tadousac.
-
- 1603 Death of Queen Elizabeth on 24th March, and accession of
- James VI.
-
- 1604 The present translation of the Bible made.
-
- 1605 The gun-powder plot discovered. The channel for the New
- River allowed to be cut. 97,304 person died in London, this year,
- whereof 68,596 died of the plague.
-
- 1608 Virginia planted by the English. Champlain returned to
- Canada, and Quebec founded 3rd July.
-
- 1609 East India company’s patent removed. Chelsea college
- founded. Alum brought to perfection by Sir J. Bouchier.
- Silk-worms first brought into England.
-
- 1610 Thermometers invented. King Henry IV of France murdered at
- Paris, by Ravillac, a Romish priest.
-
- 1611 Bartholomew Legat was condemned by the convocation for an
- Arian heretic. Legat was burnt at Smithfield for an Arian.
-
- 1612 Edward Wightman of Burton, burnt at Lichfield for a heretic.
-
- 1614 Sir Thomas Overbury poisoned in the Tower. The New River
- brought to London. Champlain returned to France. An inundation
- of the sea overflowed an extent of twelve miles in Norfolk and
- Lincolnshire.
-
- 1618 Sir Walter Raleigh is executed for high treason, at the
- instigation of the Spanish ambassador. The poet Shakspeare
- flourished during the beginning of this and the latter part of
- the preceding reign. Synod of Dort began: who generally agreed
- to condemn the doctrines of Arminius, concerning election,
- reprobation, and the universality of Christ’s death, and man’s
- redemption by it.
-
- 1623 The fatal Vespers at Black-Friars.
-
- 1625 A plague in London destroyed 35,417 of its people.
-
- 1626 The king raised money by sale of the crown lands, loans, and
- ship-money.
-
- 1628 Dr. Lamb murdered in the streets of London. The city fined
- for Dr. Lamb’s death, £6,000.
-
- 1629 Quebec surrendered to Sir David Kirkt.
-
- 1635 Thomas Parr, reported to be aged 152 years, died November 15.
-
- 1640 The fatal Long Parliament, began November 3. An act to
- abolish the Star-chamber.
-
- 1641 The princess Mary married to William of Nassau, prince of
- Orange, at Whitehall. The earl of Strafford attained, May 8:
- executed May 12. A bill passed for pressing soldiers.
-
- 1642 Edge-Hill fight: the number of the slain amounted to
- above 5,000, whereof two-thirds were conceived to be of those
- of the parliament party, and a third part of the king’s. June
- 17th, Montreal founded by Champlain. In the year 1640 the King
- ceded the whole Island of Montreal to the St. Sulpicians and
- in the following year M. de Maisonneuve brought out several
- families from France, and was appointed governor of the island.
- On the 17th of June, 1642, the spot destined for the city was
- consecrated by the Superior of the Jesuits, the “Queen of Angels”
- was supplicated to take it under her protection, and it was named
- after her “la Ville Marie.” On the evening of this memorable
- day, Maisonneuve visited the mountain. Two old Indians who
- accompanied him, having conducted him to the summit, told him
- that they belonged to the nation which had formerly occupied the
- whole of the country he beheld, but that they had been driven
- away, and obliged to take refuge amongst the other tribes, except
- a few who, with themselves, remained under their conquerors.
- The governor kindly urged the old men to invite their brethren
- to return to their hunting-grounds, assuring them they should
- want for nothing. They promised to do so, but it does not appear
- that they were successful. In the year 1644, the whole of this
- beautiful domain became the property of the St. Sulpicians of
- Paris, and was by them afterwards conveyed to the Seminary of the
- same order at Montreal, in whose possession it still remains.
-
- 1644 York relieved by Prince Rupert, after which happened the
- fight on Marston-Moor, in which action about 7000 were slain, and
- 3000 of the King’s party taken prisoners, with all their baggage.
-
- 1645 The fatal battle of Naseby, in which 600 private soldiers
- were killed on the King’s side, and 4500 were taken prisoners;
- 3000 horse, &c. Montrose defeated the Scotch army at Ketsith,
- near Glasgow, in Scotland. Cromwell made lieutenant-general.
-
- 1646 The whole order of archbishops and bishops abolished,
- October 9th.
-
- 1646-7 Charles delivered up by the Scotch to the English for the
- consideration of £400,000, January 30th.
-
- 1648-9 The King sentenced to be beheaded as a tyrant, traitor,
- murderer, and public enemy.
-
- 1649 Oliver Cromwell made Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, August 13th.
-
- 1650 The Marquis of Montrose defeated in Scotland, taken
- prisoner, sentenced, and barbarously murdered.
-
- 1651 Oliver Cromwell invaded Scotland, July 22nd. Charles II
- defeated at Worcester by Oliver, September 3rd.
-
- 1653 Oliver chosen protector of England, December 16th. The Rump
- parliament turned out by the army, which had sat twelve years
- six months and thirteen days. Scotland and Ireland united in
- one commonwealth with England, April 12th. Jamaica taken by the
- English.
-
- 1655 Cromwell dissolved the parliament.
-
- 1656 Oliver would not suffer the French King to call himself the
- King of France.
-
- 1656-7 A plot to destroy Oliver discovered.
-
- 1657 Doctor William Harvey, the first discoverer of the
- circulation of the blood, died January 5th.
-
- 1659 The House of Commons shut up, and entrance denied its
- members. The Rump sat again, May 7th. The Rump parliament
- turned out again by Lambert, October 18th. The Rump parliament
- re-admitted, December 26th.
-
- 1660 Oliver Cromwell’s corpse hung at Tyburn, December 2nd. The
- Long parliament dissolved, and another called, to be holden at
- Westminster, April 25th.
-
- 1661 The body of the noble Marquis of Montrose taken up, and
- interred in great state.
-
- 1662 152 slaves redeemed from Algiers.
-
- 1663 Laird Warreston executed at Edinburgh, according to a
- sentence in parliament, on a gibbet twenty-two feet high.
-
- 1665 90,000 people destroyed by the plague in London.
-
- 1666 Great fire in London, September 2nd, when 13,200
- dwelling-houses were destroyed. The Dutch and English fleets
- fight for four days, neither party having the advantage. They
- engage again, and the English obtain the victory.
-
- 1669 Death of the poet Sir John Denham.
-
- 1670 The church of Quebec constituted a bishopric.
-
- 1671 The exchequer shut for want of money. Blood attempted to
- steal the crown from the Tower.
-
- 1674 King Charles received from France a pension of £100,000 per
- annum. Milton, the poet, and the Earl of Clarendon died.
-
- 1676 Carolina planted by English merchants.
-
- 1678 Statue at Charing-Cross erected.
-
- 1679 The meal-tub plot.
-
- 1683 The charter of London taken away by Charles. The Rye-house
- plot. Lord Russel beheaded on a charge of high treason. Algernon
- Sidney beheaded, for writing a libel never published, November
- 21st.
-
- 1684 The Buccaneers of America, about 100 in number, with the
- assistance of some Indians, went into the South seas, and made
- a bold attack on the Spaniards. Bombay, in the East-Indies, was
- surrendered to Sir Thomas Grantham, for the use of the East-India
- company.
-
- 1685 Duke of Monmouth proclaimed King at Taunton Dean, defeated
- at Sedgemore, taken and beheaded.
-
- 1685 Justice Jeffries and General Kirk exercise great cruelties
- on the adherents of Monmouth.
-
- 1686 The Newtonian philosophy published. Kirk, at Taunton, while
- at dinner with his officers, ordered 30 condemned persons to be
- hanged, namely, 10 in a health to the King, 10 to the Queen, and
- 10 to Jeffries; but one action the most cruel, was, a young girl
- throwing herself at his feet to beg her father’s life, he made
- her prostitute herself to him, with a promise of granting her
- request; but having satisfied his lustful desire, was so inhuman
- as out of the window to show the poor unfortunate girl her father
- hanging on a sign-post: the spectacle so affected her, that she
- went distracted. The King encamped 15,000 men on Hounslow heath.
-
- 1688 Seven bishops committed to the Tower for not countenancing
- popery. The city of London lent the Prince of Orange £20,000,
- January 10. The parliament declared James’s abdication. James
- escorted to Rochester by a Dutch guard, and sailed to France.
- James landed in Ireland with an army, and assembled a parliament.
- Brass money coined by James in Ireland. Bill of rights passed.
- Every hearth or chimney paid two shillings per annum. King
- William and Queen Mary crowned at Westminster, April 11. The
- Hanover succession first proposed, May 31.
-
- 1690 The battle of the Boyne in Ireland, where James was finally
- defeated by William, and obliged to embark for France, July 1.
-
- 1691 William III took his seat as Stadtholder in Holland. The
- Queen issues out her royal proclamation for the more reverend
- observing the Sabbath day, and against profane cursing and
- swearing. A terrible battle between the Imperialists and Turks,
- near Salenkemen, in the principality of Sclavonia: in which the
- Imperialists had about 7,000 killed and wounded, and a great many
- good officers; but the Turks lost 18,000 men, and almost all
- their officers killed, wounded, or taken prisoners. Five captains
- of Admiral Benbow’s squadron in the West-Indies, were tried
- on board the Breda, at Port-Royal, in Jamaica, for cowardice
- and breach of orders, in an engagement with Ducasse. The Irish
- defeated at the battle of Aughrim, in Ireland.
-
- 1692 The French fleet destroyed at La Hogue and other places by
- Admiral Russell. A terrible earthquake in the island of Jamaica
- in the West-Indies, which almost entirely ruined the town of
- Port-Royal, the best of all the English plantations.
-
- 1692 37 cities, towns, and large villages, and about 130,000
- people destroyed in the kingdom of Naples, by an earthquake,
- February 11. The massacre of Glencoe, in Scotland.
-
- 1692 James’s descent on England frustrated; the destruction of
- the French fleet, May 19.
-
- 1693 The English fleet defeated by Tourville.
-
- 1694 Queen Mary died of the small-pox. The bank of England
- incorporated.
-
- 1694-5 Discipline of the Church restored. Commissioners appointed
- to direct the building and endowment of Greenwich hospital.
-
- 1695 Duties imposed on births, marriages, burials, bachelors, and
- widowers.
-
- 1695-6 Guineas went at the rate of thirty shillings. Six-pence
- per month deducted out of every seaman’s wages, for the support
- of Greenwich hospital.
-
- 1696 Czar of Muscovy, Peter the Great, came into England, and
- remained incognito. The window tax first levied.
-
- 1700 The New-Style introduced by the Dutch and Protestants in
- Germany.
-
- 1700-1 Earl John, of Marlborough, appointed General of the
- foot, June 1, and Commander-in-Chief of His Majesty’s forces in
- Holland. King James II died of a lethargy at St. Germain’s in
- France, in the sixty-eighth year of his age, September 6.
-
- 1702 King William died at Kensington in the fifty-second year of
- his age, and the fourteenth of his reign, March 8.
-
- 1702 Captain Kirby and Captain Wade were condemned to die, and
- being sent to England, were shot on board a ship at Plymouth, not
- being suffered to go on shore. Admiral Benbow, who had his leg
- shattered with a great shot in the engagement with Ducasse, died
- of his wounds soon after he had the Captains condemned.
-
- 1703 The Earl of Marlborough chosen Captain General of Queen
- Anne’s army. A dreadful tempest in England. The old and new
- East-India companies united.
-
- 1704 Gibraltar taken in three days, by Admiral Rook. The battle
- of Blenheim gained by the Duke of Marlborough and Prince Eugene.
- The French fleet defeated at Malaga, by the English.
-
- 1705 The colours and standards taken at Blenheim, hung in
- Westminster Hall. The English take Barcelona from the Spanish.
-
- 1706 The battle of Ramillies gained by Marlborough. The colours
- and standards hung at Guildhall.
-
- 1707 England and Scotland united. An interview between the Duke
- of Marlborough and Charles XII. Sir Cloudesly Shovel shipwrecked
- on the rocks of Sicily.
-
- 1708 The battle of Malplaquet gained by the Duke of Marlborough
- and Prince Eugene. The French defeated at Oudenarde by
- Marlborough and Prince Eugene. The first parliament of Great
- Britain met April 24. Dr. Sacheverel impeached by the Commons for
- high crimes and misdemeanors.
-
- 1709 Charles XII defeated by the Russians at Pultowa.
-
- 1712 Robert Walpole committed to the Tower for bribery. Richard
- Cromwell, son of Oliver Cromwell, died, aged ninety.
-
- 1714 Mr. Steele expelled the House of Commons for writing the
- Englishman and the Critic. £5,000 offered to apprehend the
- Pretender.
-
- 1714 George I arrived at Greenwich from Hanover.
-
- 1715 The Pretender proclaimed as James VIII in Scotland, by the
- Earl of Mar, who assembles forces.
-
- 1716 The tide forced back by a strong westerly wind for one day
- and night, and the Thames lay perfectly dry both above and below
- the bridge. A dreadful fire happened in Thames street, near
- Bear-key, by the imprudence of a boy who was making squibs and
- rockets, which consumed upwards of 120 houses.
-
- 1717 The Prince of Wales banished the court.
-
- 1718 James Shepherd, a lad of eighteen, executed for conspiring
- the King’s death. Charles XII of Sweden killed at the siege of
- Frederickshall.
-
- 1719 The Pretender received at Madrid as King of Great Britain.
- The Mississippi scheme at its height in France. The English and
- French invaded Spain by land, and took the towns of Fontarabia,
- St. Sebastian, and St. Antonio, and reduced the province of Gui
- Puocoa.
-
- 1720 South-sea stock rose 400 per cent, and continued to rise
- until July, when it rose to 1,000 per cent.
-
- 1721 Several persons ruined by the South-sea stock falling to
- 150 per cent. Several members of parliament expelled for being
- concerned in the South-sea bubble, and their estates confiscated
- for the use of the sufferers.
-
- 1725 The Lord Chancellor (Earl of Macclesfield) displaced,
- impeached, and fined £30,000 for corruption. Jonathan Wild, a
- notorious thief-taker, executed.
-
- 1727 The Spaniards besiege Gibraltar. Sir Isaac Newton died, aged
- 85.
-
- 1729 Deaths of Dr. S. Clarke, Sir Richard Steele, Congreve the
- poet, and the noted John Law.
-
- 1731 Deaths of Dr. Atterbury, and Defoe.
-
- 1732 Death of Gay, the poet and fabulist.
-
- 1737 A comet appeared. Death of Howe.
-
- 1739 Admiral Vernon takes Porto Bello.
-
- 1742 Sir Robert Walpole resigned, after holding his places
- twenty-one years.
-
- 1743 King George defeated the French at Dettingen.
-
- 1744 Admiral Anson returned with £1,500,000 which he had taken
- in the Acapulca ship. Deaths of Pope the poet, and Roger Gale.
- Prague taken by the King of Prussia.
-
- 1745 The Duke of Cumberland defeated at Fontenoy. Battle of
- Preston-Pans. Death of Dean Swift.
-
- 1746 The rebels defeat the royal army at Falkirk. The Pretender
- totally defeated by the Duke of Cumberland at Culloden. Several
- Lords and others executed for rebellion.
-
- 1747 The French fleet defeated by Admiral Hawke.
-
- 1748 Death of Thompson, the poet.
-
- 1752 The style altered.
-
- 1755 General Braddock defeated.
-
- 1757 Admiral Byng shot for cowardice.
-
- 1758 100 French ships destroyed at St. Maloes, by the Duke of
- Marlborough, called by his soldiers, _Corporal John_.
-
- 1759 The French defeated at Minden. Quebec taken by General
- Wolfe, and death of Wolfe on the Heights of Abraham. Boscawen
- defeats the French off Gibraltar, (Gabel-el-Tarifa) hence
- Gibraltar, which is also called the Babel of Nations, and the Key
- of the Mediterranean. Guadaloupe surrendered to the English.
-
- 1760 General Lally defeated in the East Indies. Canada
- surrendered to the English.--Capitulation signed 8th September.
-
- 1762 War declared against Spain. The Hermione, a Spanish ship
- taken, valued at near £1,200,000. Manilla taken from the
- Spaniards. Havana taken from the Spaniards. Preliminaries of
- peace between England and France signed at Fontainbleau, November
- 3. Martinico and Guadaloupe taken by the French.
-
- 1763 Peace proclaimed between England, France, and Spain.
-
- 1764 The longitude found at sea by means of Harrison’s
- time-piece. The massacre of Patna in the East Indies, where
- 4,000 of the garrison and inhabitants were put to the sword.
-
- 1765 Otaheite discovered by Captain Willis.
-
- 1766 The American Stamp Act repealed. Gibraltar nearly destroyed
- by a storm.
-
- 1769 New Zealand explored by Captain Cook. Electricity of the
- Aurora Borealis discovered. Stratford Jubilee held in honour of
- Shakspeare.
-
- 1771 Falkland islands seized by the Spaniards.
-
- 1772 Negroes adjudged free, in England. Solway moss began to flow.
-
- 1773 A large quantity of tea belonging to the East India Company,
- destroyed at Boston by the citizens.
-
- 1774 The port of Boston shut up by an act of parliament. Civil
- war commences in America. A violent storm, by which 40 ships were
- lost near Yarmouth. Humane Society for the recovery of drowned
- persons instituted.
-
- 1775 Trade with America prohibited. The battles of Lexington and
- Bunker’s hill. The Americans invade Canada and besiege Quebec.
-
- 1776 America declared itself independent.
-
- 1777 General Burgoyne and his army surrender to the Americans at
- Saratoga.
-
- 1778 War declared against France. Pondicherry taken from the
- French. Admiral Keppel fights the French fleet off Ushant. The
- Earl of Chatham died, and interred in Westminster Abbey.
-
- 1779 Ireland admitted to a free trade. The French make a
- fruitless attempt on the island of Jersey. Their shipping
- destroyed in Concale Bay. An American fleet totally destroyed off
- Penobscot. Pitch and tar made from pit-coal at Bristol.
-
- 1780 Admiral Rodney defeats the Spanish fleet near Cape St.
- Vincent, and takes their Admiral Laugara prisoner. Dreadful
- riots in London. War with Spain and Holland. Torture abolished
- in France. His Majesty’s ships Andromeda, Laurel, Deal-Castle,
- Thunderer, Stirling-Castle, Cameleon, and many others, lost in a
- dreadful hurricane in the West Indies.
-
- 1781 Lord Cornwallis and his army surrender to the Americans
- and French at York-Town. Sir Eyre Coote defeats Hyder Ally.
- Ceylon taken from the Dutch. Florida conquered by the Spaniards.
- Engagement between Admiral Parker and the Dutch fleet off Dogger
- Bank. St. Eustatius, St. Martin, and other Dutch settlements,
- captured.
-
- 1782 Batavia taken by the English. The memorable attack of
- Gibraltar by the French and Spaniards;--their gun-boats totally
- destroyed, and the garrison relieved by a squadron of 33 ships of
- the line, under Lord Howe, in the face of the combined fleets of
- France and Spain, consisting of 47. Admiral Rodney defeats the
- French fleet in the West Indies; takes Admiral Count de Grasse
- and five ships of the line. The Ville de Paris and other French
- prizes lost at sea.
-
- 1783 Great Britain declares the United States of America
- independent. A new planet discovered by Mr. Herschell, and called
- the Georgium Sidus. A new island rose out of the ocean near
- Iceland.
-
- 1784 The great seal stolen. Mail coaches first established, by
- Mr. Raikes, of Gloucester. Slave trade abolished in Pennsylvania,
- and in New England.
-
- 1785 Blanchard and Dr. Jefferies cross the English Channel, in a
- balloon, from Dover, and land near Calais. M. Pilatre de Rosiere,
- and M. Romain, ascend in a balloon, which takes fire and they are
- dashed to pieces.
-
- 1786 Margaret Nicholson attempts to assassinate the King.
- Frederick the Great, King of Prussia, died. Convicts first sent
- to Botany Bay, and Sierra Leone. The young Lord Gormadston
- clandestinely carried abroad, in order to force him to embrace
- the Romish persuasion.
-
- 1787 Three American priests ordained bishops by the Archbishop
- of Canterbury, The house of Peers commenced the trial of Warren
- Hastings, Esq., on a charge of high crimes, &c., committed by him
- in the East Indies, of which he was impeached.
-
- 1789 The abolition of the Slave trade proposed in Parliament.
- Beginning of the French Revolution.
-
- 1790 War commenced in India with Tippoo Sultan.
-
- 1791 Riots at Birmingham.
-
- 1793 The Alien-bill passed in the British House of Commons. The
- English evacuate Toulon.
-
- 1794 The Habeas Corpus Act suspended. Lord Howe defeats the
- French fleet off Ushant.
-
- 1795 Mr. Hastings’ trial ended by his acquittal. The Cape of Good
- Hope taken by the British forces. Ceylon taken by the British.
-
- 1796 The East India Company votes an indemnification and
- recompense to Mr. Hastings.
-
- 1797 A mutiny of the British fleet at Portsmouth and the Nore
- suppressed. The Dutch fleet beaten and captured by Lord Duncan.
-
- 1798 Ireland in open rebellion. Lord Nelson totally defeated the
- French fleet in the battle of the Nile. The French fleet defeated
- by Sir J. B. Warren.
-
- 1799 Seringapatam taken by General Harris and Sir David Baird,
- and Tippoo Sultan killed. The French under Bonaparte defeated by
- Sir Sidney Smith at Acre. The expedition of the British against
- Holland. The British troops evacuate Holland.
-
- 1800 Vote of the Irish House of Commons agreeing to the Union of
- Great Britain and Ireland.--Similar vote of the House of Lords.
- Malta taken by the British forces.
-
- 1801 Mr. Pitt resigns, after being minister 18 years. Battle
- of Alexandria,--the French defeated and Sir Ralph Abercrombie
- killed. Battle of Copenhagen, the Danish fleet taken and
- destroyed by Lord Nelson. Taking of Cairo and Alexandria, by the
- British troops.
-
- 1802 Definitive treaty with France signed at Amiens.
-
- 1803 Execution of Col. Despard for high treason. Dissolution of
- the peace with France, May. Insurrection in Dublin; Habeas Corpus
- suspended, and Martial Law proclaimed. Defeat of Row Scinda and
- Berar Rajar at Ajunty, by General Arthur Wellesley. The British
- troops enter Delhi and the Great Mogul puts himself under their
- protection.
-
- 1804 Mr. Pitt resumes his situation as Prime Minister.
-
- 1806 The Spaniards declare war against Great Britain. Lord Nelson
- defeats the combined fleets of France and Spain at Trafalgar;
- takes twenty sail of the line, and is killed in the engagement.
- Sir R. Strachan takes four French ships of the line, off Cape
- Ortegal.
-
- 1806 Death of William Pitt; his debts discharged at the public
- expense, and a statue decreed to his memory. Admiral Duckworth
- captures and destroys five French ships of the line. Sir John
- Stuart defeats the French under Regnier at Maida in Calabria.
- Surrender of Buenos Ayres to General Beresford and Sir Home
- Popham. French squadron of five frigates captured by Sir Samuel
- Hood. Death of Charles James Fox. Rupture of a negotiation for
- peace with France, and return of Earl Lauderdale. Recapture of
- Buenos Ayres by the Spaniards. The slave trade abolished by act
- of Parliament.
-
- 1807 Copenhagen bombarded, and the Danish fleet surrendered to
- the British, under Lord Cathcart and Admiral Gambier. South
- America evacuated by the British. The British troops evacuate
- Egypt. The island of Madeira surrendered to Great Britain in
- trust for Portugal.
-
- 1808 The French prohibit all commerce with Great Britain. Battle
- of Vimiera in Portugal; the French under Junot defeated by Sir
- Arthur Wellesley.
-
- 1809 The French defeated at the battle of Corunna; Sir John
- Moore killed. The French fleet in Basque roads destroyed by Lord
- Cochrane. Senegal surrendered to the British. The battle of
- Talavera; the French defeated by Sir Arthur Wellesley. The 50th
- anniversary of the King’s reign celebrated as a jubilee. The
- French fleet in the Mediterranean defeated by Lord Collingwood.
-
- 1810 An attempt made to assassinate the Duke of Cumberland;
- Sellis, the Duke’s valet, found with his throat cut. Murat’s army
- in Sicily defeated by General J. Campbell. Battle of Busaco; the
- French defeated by Lord Wellington. Capture of the Isle of France
- by the British. This island has ever since remained in the hands
- of the British. Its other name is Mauritius, famous for Peter
- Botte Mountain and its fine sugar.
-
- 1811 The Prince of Wales appointed Regent. Battles of Barossa,
- Albuera, &c. in which the French were beaten with great loss.
- Isle of Java capitulated to the British arms.
-
- 1812 Ciudad Rodrigo taken by storm, by Lord Wellington. Right
- Honorable Spencer Percival, prime minister of Great Britain,
- assassinated by John Bellingham. Battle of Salamanca, and defeat
- of the French.
-
- 1813 Great battle of Vittoria in Spain, in which Lord Wellington
- totally defeats the French under Joseph Bonaparte and Marshal
- Jourdan. Defeat of Marshal Soult, in Spain, with the loss of
- 15,000 men, by Lord Wellington.
-
- 1814 A fair on the Thames, it being frozen over above the London
- bridges, Feb. 2. Bourdeaux surrenders to Lord Wellington. Peace
- between England and France. The allied Sovereigns visit London.
- City of Washington taken by the British army under General Ross.
- Treaty of peace between England and America, Dec. 24. Joanna
- Southcott an impostor, died; and, with her, the hopes of the
- promised Shiloh, and all her other prophecies.
-
- 1815 Bonaparte sailed from Elba, and landed with 1,000 men at
- Cannes, in France. Bonaparte enters Paris, March 21. An attempt
- made by Margaret Moore to steal the Crown from the Tower.
- Memorable battle of Waterloo, June 17, 18; Bonaparte fled; the
- Duke of Wellington’s horse killed under him. Bonaparte sailed
- for St. Helena, August 7. Submission of the island of Ceylon to
- Britain. Bonaparte landed at St. Helena, October 16. The English
- repulsed at New Orleans, with the loss of several thousand in
- killed and wounded, including several generals. General Jackson
- commanded the Americans. General Packenham was killed. A column
- of light appeared in the north-east, so vivid as to alarm many
- persons. By the explosion of a coal-pit near Newbattle, in
- the county of Durham, 70 persons perished. Bonaparte resigns
- the government to a provisional council. In the colliery
- above-mentioned at Newbattle, a steam engine burst, and 57
- persons were killed or wounded.
-
- 1816 Princess Charlotte of Wales married, to Prince Leopold of
- Saxe Coburg, May 2. Sir Humphrey Davy invented a Safety Lamp to
- prevent the accidents which happen in coal-mines from fire damp.
-
- 1817 The Princess Charlotte died in child-birth, having been
- delivered of a still-born child. Steamboats generally adopted
- for river navigation in America and Europe. The magnetic needle,
- which had for many years taken a western declination from the
- meridian, returned towards the north.
-
- 1818 The Queen of Great Britain, Charlotte of
- Mecklenburg-Strelitz, died Nov. 21. Two expeditions to penetrate
- the North-pole sailed, one to the north-east, and the other to
- the north-west, but neither succeeded. The kaleidoscope, a new
- optical instrument, invented by Dr. Brewster of Edinburgh. Three
- systems of education in this year claimed public attention: that
- of mutual instruction propagated by Dr. Bell and Mr. Lancaster;
- the interrogative or intellectual system of questions without
- answers; and that of Mr. Pestalozzi by oral questions. Belzoni
- transported from Egypt to England the statue of Memnon. The Duke
- of Clarence married to the Princess of Saxe Meiningen; and the
- Duke of Kent to a Princess of Saxe Coburg. For two or three days
- the metropolis, as well as the country round, were enveloped in
- a thick impenetrable fog, which obstructed all travelling, and
- caused a number of fatal accidents. The Duke of Richmond died in
- Canada, from the bite of a rabid fox.
-
- 1819 Messrs. Perkins and Co., of Philadelphia, introduced into
- London a mode of engraving on soft steel, which, when hardened,
- will multiply fine impressions indefinitely. Many distressed
- persons embarked, under the sanction of government, to establish
- a new colony at the Cape of Good Hope. Southwark bridge opened,
- making the sixth metropolitan bridge over the Thames. Forty
- persons killed by the explosion of a mine near Newcastle. A
- shoal of young whales appeared in Dungannan Bay, forty taken by
- the fishermen. A whirlwind at Aldborough, Suffolk, carried up
- a quantity of barley from a field to a great height. Another
- expedition was fitted out to try a north-west passage to the
- Pacific Ocean. Field Marshal Prince Blucher died.
-
- 1820 Lieutenant Parry returned from his voyage to attempt the
- discovery of a north-west passage: he reached the 10th degree of
- west longitude, where he passed one winter in latitude 74, and
- returned for further supplies. Lamented death of H.R.H. the Duke
- of Kent. Death, in Windsor-castle, of George III, in the 82d year
- of his age, and 60th of his reign. George IV held his first court
- in Carlton-house. Takes oath to maintain the Church of England.
- Oaths of allegiance administered. Cato-street conspirators
- arrested. Thistlewood and his associates executed before Newgate.
- Regent’s canal from Paddington to Limehouse opened. Extraordinary
- solar-eclipse; central and annular in the interior of Europe. An
- _Estadfod_, or assembly of Welch bards, in Wrexham, North Wales.
- Lieutenant Parry returns from his voyage of discovery in the seas
- on the north of North America.
-
- 1821 A Pedo-motive machine invented by Dr. Cartwright for
- travelling the public roads without the aid of horses. A
- mammoth’s bones found by Captain Vetch, on the west bank of the
- Medway, near Rochester. Mr. Kent of Glasgow, invented a machine
- for walking on the surface of the water, at the rate of three
- miles an hour. A penknife, containing 2,016 blades, was presented
- to the Queen, by a Sheffield manufacturer; another was afterwards
- made containing 1,821 blades. Duel between Mr. Scott, of the
- London Magazine, and Mr. Christie, of an Edinburgh Magazine,
- in which the former was mortally wounded. News received of a
- dreadful massacre in Manilla, arising from religious fanaticism.
- A gambling-house, in London, entered by the police, and about
- 70 individuals held to bail. The Discovery-ships sailed from
- Deptford, for the American Arctic Seas. Sale of a collection of
- Pictures, by Sir Joshua Reynolds, which produced £15,000. A bog
- burst forth from Kilmalady, in Ireland, and in an hour covered
- 100 acres from 20 to 60 feet deep; it proceeded to a great
- extent, 200 yards wide, and 80 feet deep, at the rate of two
- yards per hour. Roads and bridges were covered, communications
- cut off, and great damage done. Queen Caroline died at
- Hammersmith, after an illness of eight days. Loss of the Juliana,
- East-Indiaman, in the Margate-roads, in which 38, out of the 40
- individuals on board, perished.
-
- 1822 The King surrendered £30,000 per annum of the civil list.
- A coroner’s jury decided that publicans are legally bound to
- receive into their houses all persons in extremity. Fifteen
- thousand Greeks massacred in the island of Scio, by the Turks. A
- south-west gale so retarded the flow of the tide in the Thames,
- that it was fordable at London bridge. Subscriptions opened
- for the starving Irish peasantry, which amounted to £300,000.
- Dreadful cases of misery and oppression published. Upwards of 800
- Greek virgins exposed in the slave markets, and 20,000 Christians
- slaughtered in various villages. The Marquis of Londonderry,
- cut his throat at his house, North Cray. Mr. Canning appointed
- Secretary of State, in lieu of the Marquis of Londonderry. Grand
- eruption of Mount Vesuvius, the most tremendous since 1794.
- Fonthill abbey purchased by Mr. Farquhar, for £330,000. Sir
- William Herschell, the celebrated Astronomer, died. Canova, the
- celebrated Sculptor, died. Madame Lætitia Bonaparte, mother of
- the late Emperor of France, died.
-
- 1823 George IV presented to the nation the library of his late
- father, at Buckingham House, consisting of 120,000 vols. An
- insurrection of the Negroes at Martinique detected: several
- planters had died by poison. Two hundred Negroes ordered for
- execution. Captain Parry arrived from his exploratory voyage
- to the Polar regions; he had failed in the chief object of the
- expedition. Three grand Musical Festivals held within a month,
- at York, Birmingham, and Gloucester, produced the enormous sum
- of £30,500. By the melancholy accident from fire damp, at the
- William Pitt colliery near Whitehaven, 14 men, 16 boys, and two
- girls, lost their lives; 17 horses were also killed. Dr. Jenner,
- discoverer of Vaccination, died. Mrs. Radcliffe, authoress of the
- Mysteries of Udolpho, &c., died. At Rochetts, Earl St. Vincent
- died. At Kincardine, Admiral Lord Keith, died. At Rome, Pope Pius
- the Seventh, died.
-
- 1824 A subterraneous forest of oak was discovered, on the
- shores of the Solway Frith, beyond Brough, imbedded in a stiff
- blue clay; the trees were of large dimensions, and the wood so
- perfect as to be scarce perceptible from new timber, although
- it must have lain there many thousands of years. Mr. Mantell
- discovered, in the iron sand-stone of Sussex, the teeth of a
- herbivorous reptile of gigantic magnitude, being of the lizard
- tribe; from a thigh bone found, it must have equalled the
- elephant in height, and been more than 60 feet long. The pictures
- of J. J. Angerstein, 38 in number, purchased by Government for
- £57,000 to begin a national gallery; Sir G. Beaumont liberally
- presented his collection to the public for that purpose. The
- Hecla, discovery ship, with Captain Parry left her moorings on a
- voyage of discovery to the Arctic region. Mr. Harris, accompanied
- by Miss Stocks, ascended in a balloon, when the former was
- killed by being thrown from the car. The remains of Lord Byron
- were conveyed from London, amidst a concourse of people, for
- Newstead Abbey. A copy of Columbus’ letter to the King of Spain,
- on the discovery of America, sold for 34 guineas. Particulars
- were received respecting the death of the celebrated traveller
- Belzoni, at Gato on his journey to Timbuctoo. Mr. Sadler, jun.,
- the aëronaut, was killed on descending in his balloon, near
- Blackburn in Lancashire. The enormous timber ship, called the
- Columbus, arrived at Blackwall, from the river St. Lawrence,
- being 300 feet long, 50 broad, and 30 deep. Patrick Grant died,
- aged 111; to this venerable Highlander, His Majesty had granted
- a pension of a guinea a week.
-
- 1825 In January, wool was exported from England to the United
- States of America, being the first instance for two centuries.
- Organic remains of antediluvian animals found in a cave near
- Chudleigh. Steam engines in England, representing the power
- of 320,000 horses, equal to 1,920,000 men, managed by 36,000
- only, now add to the power of our population 1,884,000 men! A
- phenomenon observed on the coast of Kent, being a cloud, resting
- part on the sea, extending as far as the eye could reach,
- reflecting two distinct images of every vessel passing, one
- inverted, the other in its proper position, apparently sailing
- in the air. An earthquake happened in Algiers, when the town of
- Blida, was totally destroyed, and, of a population of 15,000
- persons, scarcely 300 were left alive. £2,000 granted to Mr.
- M‘Adam for improvement of the roads. The Tower of Fonthill-Abbey
- fell, and destroyed great part of that elegant building.
-
- 1826 London was visited by such a dense fog, in the forenoon,
- that candles were burned in all the shops. The abduction of Miss
- Turner by E. G. Wakefield. The death of the celebrated composer,
- Baron Von Weber, occurred, being in his 40th year. Mr. Canning
- dined with the King of France, and Sir Walter Scott with the King
- of England.
-
- 1827 Canal Excavation by the plough in lieu of manual labour.
- It is remarkable, that England, which usually sets the example
- to all Europe in the application of machinery as a substitute
- for manual labour, should have been anticipated by the small
- state of Wurtemberg; an extensive line of canal having been
- projected, and sanctioned by the Government, an eminent engineer
- constructed a set of ploughs of various forms to suit the nature
- of the soil to be intersected, which, by the aid of from eight
- to twelve horses, excavated the line of canal, at less than a
- fourth of the price which would have been expended in manual
- labour. His Royal Highness the Duke of York expired. Will of
- Mr. Rundel, the silversmith, proved, whose personal property
- amounted to £1,200,000. The steam vessel George the Fourth left
- Portsmouth for Africa. Mr. Canning appointed chancellor of the
- Exchequer, April 24. Mr. Canning expired, Aug. 8. Lord Goderich
- appointed Premier. Death of Dr. Good, F.R.S., author of various
- works on Science, &c. Death of Rebecca Fury, of Falmouth,
- Jamaica, aged 140. Clapperton’s second voyage to Africa. Parry’s
- attempt to reach the North Pole over the ice without success.
- Lord Liverpool died, George Canning succeeded. Intervention of
- England, France, and Russia in the affairs of Greece: battle of
- Navarino. Premiership and death of Canning.
-
- 1828 Duke of Wellington premier. Russian invasion of Turkey. Capo
- d’Istria President of Greece: a French army in the Morea. Don
- Miguel usurps the throne of Portugal.
-
- 1829 The Russian Field-Marshal Diebitsch crosses the Balkan.
- Treaty of Adrianople. Independence of Greece recognized by
- Turkey. Catholic emancipation in England.
-
- 1830 Accession of William IV. Algiers taken by the French. July
- 25th, revolution at Paris: abdication of Charles X: Duke of
- Orleans called to the throne, by the title of Louis Philippe,
- King of the French, Belgian and Polish revolutions.
-
- 1831 The cholera appears in Europe. Polish insurrection
- suppressed, and the kingdom of Poland incorporated with the
- Russian empire. London conferences: Leopold of Saxe-Coburg chosen
- King of Belgium.
-
- 1832 Civil war in Portugal betwixt Pedro and Miguel. The French
- occupy Ancona, and lay siege to Antwerp. Parliamentary reform in
- England.
-
- 1833 Meeting of the first reformed Parliament. Abolition
- of slavery in the British colonies, with a compensation of
- £20,000,000 to the slave-owners.
-
- 1834 Don Miguel expelled from Portugal. Civil war in Spain.
- Formation of the German Zollverein. Accession of Queen Victoria.
- Buckingham Palace completed. Insurrection in Upper Canada. A
- meeting of the Provincial Convention called at Toronto. Colonel
- Moodie killed. McKenzie, Van Egmont and others invest Toronto.
- Rebels dispersed and leaders flee to the United States.
-
- 1838 Second Insurrection in 1838. In Lower Canada, Mr. and Mrs.
- Ellice of Beauharnois, taken prisoners by the rebels at that
- place and given over for keeping to the Curé. The Caughnawaga
- Indians take 64 prisoners and, tying them with their sashes
- and garters, send them to Montreal. Affairs at Napierville and
- Laprairie. Colonel Prince did, what should have instantly been
- done to the Fenian prisoners in the late raid, viz., condemned
- some of the insurgents by drum head Court Martial, and executed
- them forthwith. Quiet restored.
-
- 1839 Treaty of peace betwixt Holland and Belgium. End of the
- civil war in Spain.
-
- 1840 Intervention of England and Austria in the Egyptian
- question. Thiers minister of France: apprehensions of a general
- war: removed by the overthrow of Thiers: Guizot minister. Union
- of the two Canadas.
-
- 1841 Resignation of Melbourne ministry. Peel becomes premier.
- Death of Lord Sydenham in Canada. Fortification of Paris.
- Bonaparte interred in Paris, 15th December.
-
- 1842 Affghan and Chinese wars: cession of Hong Kong to England:
- opening of Chinese ports. Rising against the English at Cabul:
- murder of Burnes and McNaughton: massacre at the Cabul Pass.
- General Pollock forces the Khugher Pass, 5th April. Ashburton
- Treaty with the United States, August 9th. Great fire at Hamburg.
-
- 1843 Activity of the Anti-Corn Law League. John Bright returned
- for Durham. Queen Victoria and Prince Albert visit the King of
- the French and the King of the Belgians. Repeal meetings in
- Ireland stopped by royal proclamation, and Mr. O’Connell and
- other repealers arrested and tried for conspiracy and sedition.
-
- 1844 French hostilities with Morocco: Mogadore bombarded: King
- of the French visits Queen Victoria at Windsor. Railway mania in
- England. Campbell the Poet died, 15th June.
-
- 1845 Continued activity of the Anti-Corn Law League. Great bazaar
- at London, where the receipts amount to £25,000. Railway mania in
- England attains its height: scrip issued to the nominal amount
- of several hundred millions sterling. Annexation of Texas to the
- United States. Steam established between Liverpool and New York.
- Sir John Franklin set sail 22nd May.
-
- 1846 The Spanish double marriages. Mexico annexed, 25th August.
- Coolness betwixt the courts of St. James and the Tuilleries.
- Abolition of the Corn Laws, followed by resignation of the Peel
- ministry. Austria, in violation of the treaties of Vienna, seizes
- on Cracow, and incorporates it with her own dominions. Louis
- Napoleon escapes from the Castle of Ham, in Normandy. Gregory XVI
- dies, and is succeeded by Cardinal Mastai Ferretti, who takes the
- title of Pius IX. Revolution of Geneva, October 7th.
-
- 1847 Pope Pius introduces some reforms into the Papal States:
- excitement in the rest of Italy. Civil war in Switzerland:
- Sonderbund suppressed. Abd-el-Kader taken prisoner. The Duchy of
- Lucca reverts to Tuscany. Failure of the potato crop in Ireland.
-
- 1848 Upper California and New Mexico ceded to the United States.
- February revolution in Paris: flight of Louis Philippe, 24th
- February: France a Republic: Cavaignac: Revolution at Vienna
- 6th October, and Berlin 12th November: Schleswig-Holstein
- insurrection. Arctic ships deserted, 22nd April. Peace Congress
- at Brussels, 20th September. Defeat of Sikhs at Mooltan, 7th
- November. Napoleon III first elected President, 20th December.
- Smith O’Brien defeated in his attempt to raise a resurrection in
- Ireland.
-
- 1849 Death of Queen Adelaide. Punjaub war. Revolutions in
- Rome and Tuscany: Mazzini: French invasion and occupation of
- Rome. Revolutionary movements in Germany and Hungary. Kossuth.
- Revolution in Baden suppressed by Prussia; in Hungary by Russia;
- and Hungarians defeated by Hayman.
-
- 1850 Battle of Idstedt and suppression of the Schleswig-Holstein
- insurrection. Peace between Denmark and Prussia. Louis Philippe
- died 26th August. Sir Robert Peel died.
-
- 1851 Great industrial exhibition in London in Crystal Palace.
- French coup d’état: National assembly broken up, and Napoleon
- declared President of the Republic for ten years. Discovery of
- gold fields in Australia.
-
- 1852 The Earl of Derby forms a protectionist ministry, dissolves
- parliament, but is soon forced to resign: Lord Aberdeen becomes
- Premier. On the 14th September, the illustrious Duke of
- Wellington, the Iron Duke, died at Walmar Castle near Dover, aged
- 83. Louis Napoleon proclaimed Emperor of the French, as Napoleon
- III. Amazon steamer burnt at sea, and 100 persons perished, 4th
- January. The steamer Birkenhead with troops on board for the Cape
- of Good Hope wrecked 26th February, and of 638 persons only 184
- were saved; 454 of the crew and soldiers of the 12th Lancers,
- 2nd, 6th, 12th, 43rd, 45th, 60th Rifles, 73rd, 74th and 91st
- Regiments perished by drowning or swallowed by sharks which were
- seen swimming around.
-
- 1853 Marriage of Napoleon III to Eugenie de Montejo in January.
- Fire which broke out in Windsor Castle, extinguished March 19th.
- The Queen of Portugal died November 15th. The Porte formerly
- declared war against Russia, October 5th. Russia invades the
- Danubian principalities, crossing the Pruth in July, destroys the
- Turkish fleet at Sinopé, hence called the “Massacre of Sinopé.”
- Battle of Silistria. Death of Captain Butler.
-
- 1854 Great Britain and France declare war against Russia in
- March. The Allies land at Varna. Dreadful attack of Cholera
- in both armies--then the invasion of the Crimea. Battles of
- the Alma, Balaklava, and Inkermann with all the minor sorties
- and engagements, and the scenes of camp life, so graphically
- described by military and civil correspondents. Bomarsund taken
- by the Baltic Expedition, August 16th.
-
- 1855 Sardinia joins the Allies. South side of Sebastopol taken.
- Battle of Tchernaya. Taking of Kertch and Kinburn. Battle of the
- Heights of Kars. Fall of Sebastopol and Kars. Russia proposes
- peace. Napoleon visited England, April 17th. Crimean medals
- distributed, May 18th. Sebastopol evacuated by the Russians,
- September 9th. Dreadful storm in the Black Sea, during which the
- Prince, Resolute, &c., foundered. Insurrection at Madrid. Flight
- of the Queen Mother Christina and dismissal of her favourites.
-
- 1856 Peace of Paris signed, March 31st. Victoria cross
- instituted, January 29th. Lord Dalhousie ceased to be Governor
- General of India, and was succeeded by Viscount Canning. War in
- Persia, and capture by the British of Bushire; Persian King,
- obliged thereafter to sue for peace. Great Britain involved in a
- war with China. Commissioner Yeh made prisoner. Lord Elgin made
- Ambassador to negotiate a settlement of difficulties. Seizure of
- Lorch, October 8th. English Cathedral, Montreal, burnt.
-
- 1857 Shakspeare’s house bought. Kensington Museum opened.
- Victoria cross distributed, and Victoria Asylum commenced. Indian
- Mutiny begun, February 28th. Massacre of Cawnpore, July 16th.
- Relief of Lucknow, November 17th.
-
- 1858 Close of the Mutiny and re-organization of the country.
- Attempt on the life of Napoleon III by Orsini and others. Orsini
- beheaded, March 13th. Princess Royal married to the Prince of
- Prussia.
-
- 1859 Revolution in Tuscany. Victoria Bridge opened, 19th
- December. Earthquake at Quito, 29th March. A Southern Convention
- at Vicksburg, Miss., at which eight States are represented,
- passes resolutions in favor of opening the slave trade. John
- Brown and fifteen white men and five negroes seize the arsenal
- at Harper’s Ferry and kill four of the inhabitants. The militia
- and Federal troops arrive at Harper’s Ferry and besiege Brown
- and his men in the armory buildings. The armory captured by
- Colonel Lee (now General). One marine and twelve of Brown’s men
- killed, Brown and four men taken prisoners, and two escape, but
- are re-captured. The people of Charlestown, Va., excited by the
- rumors of an attempt to rescue John Brown; and Governor Wise
- calms their fears by guarding the place with a Richmond regiment.
- In the House of Representatives of South Carolina a resolution
- is offered that “South Carolina is ready to enter, together with
- other slave-holding States, or such as desire present action,
- into the formation of a Southern Confederacy.” John Brown and
- two negroes hung. The medical students from Southern States in
- Philadelphia colleges resolve to secede and join colleges in
- their own States.
-
- The following is a chronological table of the war in Italy. It is
- taken from the Journal of Education and compiled by the esteemed
- Superintendent of Education for Lower Canada, and will be found
- valuable for History students.
-
- “First body of French troops leaves Toulon; Austrian ultimatum
- dispatched from Vienna to Turin. It is received at Turin. The
- limit fixed by the ultimatum (of three days) expires; Count
- Cavour declines the Austrian conditions; statement of the war
- question addressed to the Corps Legislatif by Count Walewski;
- French troops first cross Mont Cenis. Revolution in Tuscany; the
- Grand Duke retires: address of Victor Emmanuel to his army. The
- Austrian declaration of war posted in Vienna; the Austrians,
- under Count Gyulai, pass the Ticino; Marshal Canrobert and
- General Niel reach Turin and assume command of their respective
- corps d’armée; General McMahon arrives at Genoa; death of General
- Bouat; appeal of Victor Emmanuel to the Italian people. The
- Austrians occupy Novara; the French ambassador quits Vienna;
- revolt of Massa and Carrara. King Victor Emmanuel leaves Turin
- to take command of his army; the Austrians occupy Mortara; their
- steamers seize the Sardinian ports on Lake Maggiore; three
- Austrian vessels repulsed on the lake; the Duchess of Parma
- withdraws from the Duchy. Manifesto of Napoleon III, addressed
- to the Corps Legislatif; the Austrians pass the Po at Cambio;
- they are repulsed in an attempted crossing at Frassinetto; they
- burn the bridge over the Scrivia at Piacenza; the Austrian
- vanguard reaches Tronzano. The conflict at Frassinetto continues;
- the Austrians, passing the Po at Vacarizza, advance to Sale;
- a cannonade at Valenza. The Duchess of Parma returns to her
- capital. General Cialdini, issuing from Casale, seizes a convoy
- of the enemy. The Austrians repass the Po at Gerola. Imperial
- decree establishing the Regency in France. The Emperor Napoleon
- III, and the Prince Napoleon Jerome leave Paris for the seat of
- war; the Austrians complete a retrograde movement to the left
- of the Sesia. The Emperor embarks at Marseilles; the Austrians
- pause at Vercelli, and return reconnoitering parties to the
- right bank of the river; they occupy Rivergaro. The Emperor
- lands at Genoa; issues an order of the day to the army. The
- English declaration of neutrality published. The Austrians occupy
- Bobbio, and push their advanced post to Casteggio. The French
- Emperor arrives at Alessandria. The French squadron of Admiral
- Jurieu-Gravier anchors before Venice; the Emperor visits the
- outposts at Valenza. The Austrians threaten the bridge at Stella;
- the Emperor visits the head-quarters of the King at Occimiano;
- the Austrians vainly attempt to take the bridge at Valenza. The
- head-quarters of Count Gyulai transferred in retreat to Gariasco.
- Speech of M. Kossuth on the war, delivered at London Tavern;
- battle of Montebello; the Allies, numbering 6,300, under General
- Forey, defeat 25,000 Austrians under General Count Stadion;
- the Emperor visits Casale. The Piedmontese, under General
- Cialdini, force the passage of the Sesia at Vercelli, routing the
- Austrians; Garibaldi with his corps, leaves Biella, and marches
- for Northwestern Lombardy; the blockade of Venice established.
- Death of the King of Naples. Garibaldi, passing the Ticino at
- Sesto Calende, defeats the enemy and captures Varese. Garibaldi,
- attacked by the Austrians, beats them; Colonel Christoforis,
- with a portion of Garibaldi’s force, beats the Austrians near
- Sesto Calende; the Emperor at Voghera. The Emperor arrives
- at Vercelli; Garibaldi again beats the Austrians at Malmate.
- Garibaldi marches upon Como; rapid movement of the French army
- from the south to the north of the Po; Montebello and Custeggio,
- evacuated by them, occupied by the Austrians. Garibaldi, beating
- the Austrians at San Fermo, occupies Como, Camerlata, and
- Lecco; Austrian vessels bombard Canobbio, on Lake Maggiore;
- the Valtelline rises in insurrection. Battle of Palestro; the
- Allies, commanded by Victor Emmanuel, attack the Austrians; the
- Emperor of Austria, attended by Field-Marshal Baron Hess, arrive
- at Verona. The Allies defeat the Austrians at Palestro; General
- Niel occupies Novara; proclamation of the Emperor Francis Joseph
- to the Tyrolese. Garibaldi retiring before a powerful body of
- the enemy, attacks Laveno unsuccessfully; the Austrians attack
- the allied outposts at Robbio, but speedily retreat; the advance
- of the Allies, under McMahon, enters Lombardy by the bridge
- of Turbigo. The Austrians hastily evacuate Sardinia; severe
- action at Buffalora; Garibaldi again marches upon Varese, beats
- the Austrians, and re-occupies it. The conflict at Buffalora
- concludes in a splendid victory of the Allies at Magenta. Milan
- rises upon the Austrians; the garrison retires; Victor Emmanuel
- proclaimed King; Lombardy annexed to Sardinia; Grand _Te Deum_
- at Paris for the victory at Magenta. The Emperor and King enter
- Milan; the Austrian’s custom-houses on Lake Maggiore seized by
- Garibaldi’s corps. Garibaldi pursues the Austrians, who retreat
- towards Monza; proclamation of Napoleon III to the Italians.
- Marshal Baraguay d’Hilliers attacks the Austrians at Malegnano,
- and after a severe contest carries that post; on the same day
- the Austrian Count d’Urban is beaten by Marshal Canrobert at
- Canonica; the Austrians evacuate Laverno on Lago Maggiore.
- Garibaldi enters Bergamo; the Austrians evacuate Pavia and
- Piacenza; the Duchess of Parma arrives at Verona. The Austrians
- evacuate Lodi; they also evacuate Bologna and Ancona; resignation
- of the Derby Ministry in England; Lord Palmerston invited to form
- a cabinet; head-quarters of the French advanced to Gorgouzola.
- The vanguard of the French army passes the Adda at Cassano;
- the Sardinian army passes the Adda at Vaprio; the Austrians
- complete the evacuation of the Papal territory, and also withdraw
- from Modena; death of Prince Metternich. The Austrians abandon
- Pizzigbettone; Garibaldi at Brescia; Cremona and Brescia declare
- for the King of Sardinia; the Allied army passes the Sesia;
- General d’Urban retires from Coccaglia. The Duke of Modena
- arrives at Mantua; d’Urban occupies Cavriana, but evacuates
- it the same night; revolt at Venice. Garibaldi repulsed by an
- overwhelming force of the Austrians at Castenedolo; he retreats
- towards Lonato. General Count Schlick takes command of the second
- Austrian army, replacing Gyulai; the head quarters of Napoleon
- III removed to Covo; the Austrian Emperor at Travigliato. The
- Austrians occupy Montechiaro and Castiglione; Kossuth leaves
- London for Italy. The Emperor and King enter Brescia; the
- Austrians occupy the pass of the Stelvio; the Emperor Francis
- Joseph reviews a portion of his army at Lonato; he assumes
- supreme command of the army. The third division of the Adriatic
- fleet sails from Toulon. The Austrians abandon Montechiaro,
- Castiglione, and Lonato. The Emperor and King leave Brescia for
- the camp; the Austrians re-occupy Montechiaro and Castiglione;
- Francis Joseph Axes his head-quarters at Villafranca. The French
- pass the Chinese at Montechiaro, and push a reconnaissance as
- far as Goito; the head-quarters of Francis Joseph at Vallegio;
- Kossuth arrives at Genoa. The French Emperor and the King urge
- a reconnaissance as far as Desenzano; the Austrians in full
- force repass the Mincio, and occupy Pozzolengo, Solferino and
- Cavriana. Great battle of Solferino: 250,000 Austrians defeated
- by the Allies, numbering 150,000; the Austrians repass the
- Mincio; the allied head-quarters at Cavriana. Prussia proposes
- in the Diet the mobilization of the Federal army; retreat of
- the French troops at Brescia. Kossuth arrives at Parma, and
- after conferring with Prince Napoleon, proceeds to the Imperial
- head-quarters. A portion of Garibaldi’s troops, under Major
- Medidi, occupy the pass of Tonal, between Val Canonica and the
- Tyrol. The Allies, crossing the Mincio, enter the Venitian
- States. The vanguard of the Allies advances to Villafranca. The
- Imperial head-quarters removed to Volta; the corps of Prince
- Napoleon joins the main body of the allied army at Vallegio;
- the Sardinians commence the siege of Peschiera; the new British
- ministry declares in Parliament its determination to maintain
- an inviolable neutrality. The Emperor removes his head-quarters
- from Volta, and, crossing the Mincio, fixes them at Vallegio. Ten
- thousand French troops landed at Lussin-Piccolo, in the Adriatic;
- Grand _Te Deum_ for the victory of Solferino at Notre-Dame. The
- Austrians retire from Bormio, after a sharp action, in which
- they are defeated by Garibaldi. Armistice concluded between
- the two emperors at VillaFranca; Zara bombarded by the French
- frigate _Impetueuse_. Interview between Napoleon III and Francis
- Joseph; the war terminated by the peace of VillaFranca.” Militia
- Volunteer Association of England established 17th November.
-
- 1860 The principal events of this year are: General rising of the
- Sicilians, March 16th. Annexation of Savoy and Nice to France,
- March 24th. War in China and capture of Pekin. Insurrection
- at Palermo, April 4th. Great Eastern sailed for America, June
- 16th. Prince of Wales at Quebec, August 18th. King of Naples,
- Francis II, retired to Gaeta, September 6th. Garibaldi entered
- Naples, September 8th. Ancona taken, September 30th. Battle
- of Volturno, October 2nd. Victor Emmanuel at Naples, November
- 7th. Abraham Lincoln elected President of the United States. A
- Secession Convention assembles in Columbia, S.C., but adjourns
- to Charleston, in consequence of the small pox. The Convention
- at Charleston passes the ordinance carrying South Carolina out
- of the Union. Attempted removal of ordnance from the Arsenal
- at Pittsburg, Pa., prevented by the citizens. Fort Moultrie
- evacuated by Major Robert Anderson, who retires with his troops
- to Fort Sumter. Seizure by the citizens of the Arsenal at
- Charleston, S.C.
-
- 1861 Duchess of Kent died, March 16th. Attack on Japanese
- Nussier, September 23rd. The fearful colliery explosion at
- Hartley took place on the 16th January of this year. King of
- Russia died, January 2nd. Taltian gallery destroyed, February
- 5th. The principal events of the Great Rebellion this year
- are given under in the order of occurrence:--The Postmaster
- at Charleston refuses to make returns to the United States
- Government. The _Star of the West_ chartered and sent to Fort
- Sumter to reinforce Major Anderson. Mississippi secedes. The
- first gun of the rebellion fired; the forts on Morris Island
- fire on the _Star of the West_, and she puts to sea. Major
- Anderson leaves Fort Sumter in the _Baltic_, after having
- formally surrendered the fort and saluting his flag with the
- honors of war; several men killed by the explosion of a gun while
- saluting; no lives lost in the bombardment. The Army and Navy
- Appropriation Bills pass Congress. Battle at Rich Mountain, Va.,
- in which General McClellan defeats Pegram. The rebels evacuate
- Laurel Hill, Va. General McClellan occupies Beverly, Va.; Garnett
- defeated and killed at Carrick’s Ford, Va.; Pegram surrenders.
- Battle of Bull Run, Va.; the Union army defeated, and falls
- back on Washington in confusion; Union loss, 481 killed, 1011
- wounded, and 700 prisoners; Rebel lose, 269 killed, and 1483
- wounded. General Dix takes command in Baltimore. General Scott’s
- resignation accepted by the President, who appoints General
- McClellan to the chief command of the armies. General Dix issues
- an order regulating the Maryland elections. Floyd defeated by
- Rosecrans at Gauley Bridge. Battle at Belmont, Mo.; the rebels
- under Sidney A. Johnston defeated by Grant. Naval engagement
- in Port Royal Harbour; the rebel forts Beauregard and Walker
- captured. General Buell assigned to the Department of Kentucky.
- James M. Mason and John Slidell, rebel Ministers to England and
- France, seized on board the _Trent_, by Commodore Wilkes, of
- the _San Jacinto_. Rebels defeated at Piketon, Ky., by General
- Nelson. A general bombardment of Pensacola and the navy-yard by
- Colonel Brown at Fort Pickens; the town and navy-yard destroyed.
- The gunboat _Cœur de Lion_ runs the blockade of the Potomac, and
- arrives at Fortress Munro. The _Constitution_ leaves Hampton
- Roads with General Phelps, first part of the Butler expedition to
- New Orleans. General Scott returns to New York from Europe. Mr.
- Seward agrees to surrender Mason and Slidell.
-
- 1862 French army in Mexico, January 7th. Mausoleum at Frogmore
- commenced, March 15th. French Victories in Cochin-China, March
- 29th. Garibaldi at Catania, August 20th. Battle of Aspromonte,
- August 29th. Mason and Slidell surrendered. Engagements at Port
- Royal Ferry, S.C., and Pensacola, Fla. General Mitchell occupies
- Huntsville, Ala. Fort Puluski surrenders. The siege of Fort
- Macon, N.C., commenced. Pocahantos, Ark., occupied by General
- Curtis. New Orleans surrenders to Commodore Farragut. Battle
- at Warwick Creek, Va. General Banks evacuates Strasburg, Va.,
- in consequence of the advance of Jackson. Commodore Farragut
- shells Grand Gulf, Miss. Battle at Lewisburg, Va. The President
- calls for 300,000 men. Battle of Malvern Hills; end of the seven
- days’ fight. Battle of Catlett’s Station, Va., and retreat of
- Pope. General McDowell evacuates Fredericksburg, Va. General W.
- T. Sherman commences a movement upon Vicksburg in the rear of
- Haine’s Bluff. Stuart makes an unsuccessful foray on Burnside’s
- army at Falmouth, Va.
-
- 1863 Captain Speke discovered the source of the Nile, February
- 23rd. Prince of Wales married, March 10th. The President issues
- his Emancipation Proclamation. The rebels estimate their losses
- thus far at 20,898 killed, 59,615 wounded, and 21,169 prisoners.
- Total, 209,116. Battles of Hunt’s Cross Roads, Tenn., and
- Galveston, Texas. Naval engagement in Charleston Harbour; the
- rebel rams attack the fleet. National fast observed by order
- of President Lincoln. Porter’s squadron passes the batteries
- at Grand Gulf, Miss., and General Grant fights the battle of
- Branlinsburg, and lands his troops. Battle of Chancellorsville,
- Va., commenced. Stonewall Jackson mortally wounded. The tracks
- diverging from Gordonsville destroyed by General Buford. General
- Stoneman destroys the railroad at Columbia, Va. Second day of
- the battle of Chancellorsville, Va. Battle of Nansemond, Va.;
- Longstreet reinforces Lee. Fredericksburg, Va., captured by
- General Sedgwick. Battle at Gettysburg, Pa., commenced. General
- Rosecrans occupies Tullahoma, Tenn., and Winchester the next
- day. Negotiations for the surrender of Vicksburg, Miss.,
- opened. Vicksburg surrenders to General Grant. Lee defeated
- at Gettysburg, Pa. Battle at Helena, Ark. Chattanooga, Tenn.,
- evacuated by the rebels. Naval engagement in Charleston Harbour;
- a naval attack on Fort Sumter repulsed. Union forces defeated at
- Sabine Pass, Texas. Chattanooga occupied by General Crittenden.
- Cumberland Gap surrendered to General Burnside--Union forces
- defeated at Tipton, Tenn. Culpepper, Va., occupied by General
- Meade’s advance. Engagements near Culpepper, Va., and at Bird’s
- Gap, Ga. General Hooker’s “battle in the clouds” at Lookout
- Mountain. Engagement at Wauhatchie, Ala. General Blair occupies
- Tuscumbia, Ala. 181 Federal prisoners arrive at Fortress Monroe
- from Libby Prison, in a starving condition. The exchange of
- prisoners stopped. General Butler takes command of the Department
- of Virginia at Fortress Monroe. A furious bombardment of Fort
- Sumter. General Foster announces Longstreet in full retreat from
- Tennessee, whereupon the President orders a Thanksgiving. General
- Grant’s captures during the war announced as 472 cannon and
- 90,000 prisoners.
-
- 1864 Tercentenary of Shakspeare, April 10th. Great storm at
- Calcutta, October 5th. General Sherman returns to Vicksburg from
- a successful raiding expedition into Albania and Mississippi,
- having destroyed over $2,000,000 worth of property, and captured
- 8000 negroes and 4000 prisoners. The rebels under General Forrest
- enter Paducah, Ky.; the rebels were repulsed and driven from
- the city. Severe gale; several vessels driven ashore along the
- coast. An expedition of Union troops under Colonel Clayton
- to Mount Elba and Longview, Ark., captured 320 prisoners, 300
- horses, about 40 wagons laden with camp and garrison equipments,
- beside 300 contrabands, and killing and wounding about 200
- rebels. United States steamer _Maple Leaf_ blown up in St.
- John’s River, Florida, by a rebel torpedo; four of the crew
- killed. Fight between rebels and Union gunboats at New Falls
- City, near Shreveport, La.; defeat of the rebels; from 500
- to 600 of them killed or wounded. Fight with rebels at Grand
- Ecore, La.; capture of 2000 rebels and twenty cannon by Union
- troops. The rebels attempt to blow up the United States frigate
- _Minnesota_, lying in Hampton Roads, with a torpedo, but fail.
- Capture of Fort Pillow by the rebels under General Forrest; all
- found in the garrison, except about 200, massacred after they had
- surrendered--men, women, and children. Steamer _Golden Gate_,
- laden with United States Government stores, captured by rebels
- near Memphis. Maximilian invested with his new honours as Emperor
- of Mexico at his Castle of Meramar. Battle at Mine Run between
- the rebels, under General Lee, and the army of the Potomac, under
- General Grant; the rebels defeated and driven back; Brigadier
- General Jas. S. Wadsworth and Brigadier Alex. Hays among the
- killed. Dalton, Ga., occupied by Union troops under General
- Thomas. Severe battle between the Union army under General Grant
- and the rebels under General Lee, near Spottsylvania Court-house;
- Major General John Sedgwick killed. The gunboats of General Banks
- and Admiral Porter’s expedition up Red River succeed in getting
- down over the Falls near Alexandria, through the engineering
- skill of Lieutenant Colonel Bailey. Fight between Union troops
- under General Butler and the rebels under the General Hill near
- Petersburg, Va.; the latter defeated. Another terrible battle
- near Spottsylvania Court-house, between the Union and rebel
- armies. General Sheridan completes a successful raid in the rear
- of Lee’s rebel army in Virginia, recapturing 500 Union soldiers,
- and destroying eight miles of railroad, two locomotives and
- three trains. Fight between General Butler’s troops and those of
- General Beauregard, without definite results. The rebel army in
- Georgia driven by General Sherman to Buzzard’s Roost Mountain.
- Major General Hancock captures 7000 rebels and thirty guns in
- a battle near Spottsylvania, Va. Union troops evacuate Little
- Washington, N.C., when rebels enter and burn all the houses in
- the place except about twenty; women robbed and turned adrift
- without food or shelter. The outer line of works of Fort Darling
- carried by Union troops under Generals Gillmore and Smith.
- General Sheridan captures the outer line of fortifications in
- front of Richmond. Dalton, Ga., evacuated by the rebels under
- General Joe Johnston and occupied by Union troops under General
- Sherman. Bombardment of Charleston and Fort Sumter, S.C., renewed
- with vigour. Resaca, Ga., captured by General Sherman’s army,
- with 1200 prisoners, ten guns and six trains going South for
- supplies; Union loss in killed and wounded 2700. General Sigel
- defeated at Rood’s Hill, in the Shenandoah Valley. Successful
- advance of General Grant’s army to Cold Harbour, Va. General
- Fitz Hugh Lee and 500 rebel cavalry captured by General Butler’s
- troops near White House, Va. General Hunter defeats the rebels
- at Staunton, Va.; captures 1500 prisoners, 3000 stand of arms
- and 3 cannon, beside a large amount of stores, &c.; the rebel
- General W. E. Jones, killed. The rebels attack the Union troops
- under General Burnside, and are repulsed. General Kautz, with
- his Union cavalry troops, charges the rebel works in front of
- Petersburg, Va., and enters the place, but not being supported
- by General Gillmore, is compelled to retire. Fight between Union
- cavalry under General Sheridan and the rebels under General J.
- E. B. Stewart; defeat of the rebel troops and death of General
- Stewart; General Hunter burns the Virginia Military institute,
- Governor Letcher’s house, and captures 6 cannon and 600 horses,
- and a large amount of stores. Maximilian makes a triumphant entry
- into the City of Mexico; John Morgan, rebel General, captures
- Cynthiana, Ky., and two Ohio regiments; General Burbridge, with
- Union troops, subsequently arrives, defeats the rebels, captures
- 400 prisoners and 1000 horses. Expedition of 8000 Union troops
- under General Sturgis defeated by 10,000 rebels under Generals
- Forrest, Lee and Roddy; wagon and ammunition trains lost.
- Desperate fight between rebel and Union troops on the line of
- the Petersburg and Weldon Railroad; the Union troops driven from
- their position, but afterward regain it; a Union brigade gobbled
- up. Artillery fight in front of Petersburg, Va.; the town set
- on fire by shells from Union guns. Frederick, Md., evacuated by
- Union troops under General Wallace, and occupied by rebels, who
- levy $200,000 on the citizens. Severe fight between the armies
- of General Sherman and General Hood in front of Atlanta; severe
- assaults of Hood successfully repulsed. Peace Conference at
- Niagara Falls; Horace Greeley acts as President Lincoln’s agent,
- and offers the rebel Commissioners a safe conduct to Washington
- and back. A mine exploded under the rebel fortifications at
- Petersburg, Va., which are blown up with the troops in them; a
- terrific battle ensues; the Union storming column is repulsed
- with fearful slaughter; Union loss, 6000. Severe fight between
- the rebels and Union troops under General Warren; the rebels
- repulsed; Union loss 2800. Martinsburg, Va., reoccupied by rebel
- troops. Another battle on the line of the Weldon and Petersburg
- Road, between Union troops under General Warren and the rebels;
- the latter repulsed, with fearful slaughter; Union loss about
- 3000. Forrest, with three brigades of cavalry, attacks Memphis,
- and endeavours to capture Generals Washburne and Hurlbut; they
- fail in their object, and are driven out by Union troops. Fight
- between rebel and Union troops near Charlestown, Va., without
- decisive results. The rebels make another desperate effort to
- drive General Warren from the Petersburg and Weldon Railroad,
- but are again repulsed, with heavy loss. General Kilpatrick
- returns from a successful raiding expedition; tears up 14 miles
- of railroad, captures 4 cannon and 200 prisoners. Atlanta,
- Ga., captured by Union troops, under Major General Sherman; 27
- guns and 1000 rebel prisoners taken. Fight in the Shenandoah
- valley, near Berryville, Va.; defeat of the rebels; 20 wagons,
- 2 battle flags and many prisoners captured. Fight with rebels
- at Greenville, Tenn.; John Morgan, the notorious guerilla,
- killed, and his force dispersed. Desperate fight with rebels
- at Opequan Creek, Shenandoah valley; the Union troops, under
- General Sheridan, capture 3000 prisoners, 15 battle flags and
- 5 guns. Some rebels capture the steamers _Parsons_ and _Island
- Queen_, on Lake Erie, and convert them into pirates. The British
- Government order that no vessel belonging to the Confederates
- or United States shall enter British ports for the purpose of
- being dismantled or sold. General Sheridan gains a great victory
- at Fisher’s Hill, Shenandoah Valley; captures 20 guns, beside
- caissons, horses and 1100 prisoners; Union General Russell
- killed. Great battle in the Shenandoah Valley, between Union
- forces, under General Sheridan, and the rebels, under General
- Early; defeat of the latter, and capture of 43 guns, beside
- caissons, horses and prisoners. General Blunt defeated by the
- rebels under General Price, at Lexington, Mo. The rebel ram
- _Albemarle_ blown up in Roanoke River by a United States torpedo
- boat, under the command of Lieutenant Cushing. Fight between
- General Pleasanton’s Union army and General Price’s rebel army
- at Newton, Mo.; defeat of the latter; 2000 rebels and 7100 stand
- of arms captured. Fight between the Union forces under General
- Sherman and the rebels under General Hood; defeat of the latter.
- Armed bands of rebels appear on the Lakes and occasion great
- excitement and alarm along the Northern frontier. Rebel troops
- under General Price attack Fayetteville, Ark., and are repulsed
- with a loss of about 1000 in killed and wounded. The rebels
- under General Breckinridge attack the Union troops under General
- Gillem at Bull Gap, and capture 400 Union troops. Severe fight
- between rebel and Union troops at Strawberry Plains, Tenn.,
- without decisive results. Forty-five Union scouts captured by the
- rebel General Mosby, near Charlestown, Va. The Senate authorizes
- the construction of six revenue cutters for the lakes. A bill
- authorizing the President to terminate the Reciprocity Treaty,
- passes the House. The Canadian Courts decide that they have no
- jurisdiction in the case of the St. Albans and Lake Erie pirates,
- and release them. General Sherman investing Savannah; Admiral
- Porter’s expedition leaves Fortress Monroe for Wilmington.
- Re-arrest of one of the St. Albans’ raiders in Canada; re-action
- of sentiment.
-
- 1865 American Rebellion still continuing--Principal events
- in order of succession:--Columbia, S.C., captured by General
- Sherman; Fort Anderson, Cape Fear River, shelled by our forces;
- General Schofield advancing from Smithfield, N.C. Rebel dollar
- estimated by the rebels as worth two cents in specie. Charleston
- evacuated. Sheridan pursuing Early and his body guard, all that
- is left of his army. General Sherman leaves Fayetteville, N.C.,
- destroys the arsenal, and moves on Goldsboro. General Sheridan’s
- entire command arrives at White House, Va. Johnston defeated at
- Bentonville, N.C. Goldsboro evacuated, and the rebel forces fall
- back on Smithfield. General Steele leaves Pensacola, Fla., to
- attack Mobile. Captain Kennedy, the spy and incendiary, hung at
- Fort Lafayette. The rebels attack and carry Fort Steadman, but
- the fort is retaken by a vigorous charge of the Ninth Corps;
- the President witnesses the action. General Granger commences a
- co-operating movement against Mobile. General Sherman arrives
- at General Grant’s head-quarters. General Stoneham captures
- Boone, N.C. General Wilson moves on Greenville, Ala. A general
- advance made on Spanish Fort, Mobile Bay. The _Stonewall_ arrives
- at Lisbon, Portugal, having escaped from Ferrol, Spain, and
- is ordered to leave the harbour. Battle of Five Forks, Va.;
- the rebel right doubled up on the centre, and a portion of the
- wing cut off. General Grant orders an attack on the whole line,
- and, after desperate fighting, both wings are rested on the
- Appomattox; the South Side Road is cut, and during the day and
- night Richmond and Petersburg are evacuated, and Lee’s army
- is in full retreat for Danville; the rebel General A. P. Hill
- killed. Selma, Ala., captured by General Wilson’s cavalry,
- together with the greater portion of Forrest’s and Roddy’s
- commands. General Sheridan attacks Lee, West of Burkesville and
- routs him, capturing Ewell and a number of other generals. The
- news of the capture of Richmond announced to Sherman’s army.
- General Grant urges Lee to surrender to save the further effusion
- of blood; Lee asks for terms. General Lee surrenders the Army
- of Northern Virginia to General Grant. The President and Mrs.
- Lincoln return to Washington. Mobile captured; 300 guns and 3000
- prisoners. General rejoicing all over the country. All the St.
- Albans raiders, except Young, released. The President issues
- a proclamation closing certain Southern ports. The President
- makes a speech in which he defines the States of the rebellion
- and hints at plans for restoration. He issues a proclamation
- respecting treatment of our national vessels in foreign ports,
- and threatens retaliation for discourtesy. A _Te Deum_ chanted in
- Trinity Church. Lynchburg, Va., surrenders to a Union scouting
- party, Practical end of the War:--General Grant arrives in
- Washington and advises that the draft be stopped, that recruiting
- cease, and that the military establishment be reduced. Lee
- reported to have advised Johnston to surrender to Sherman. The
- _Europa_ arrives with the news that the American Minister at
- Lisbon has demanded satisfaction for the outrage on the American
- flag. The President assassinated in Ford’s Theatre, Washington,
- by J. Wilkes Booth, who escapes; another assassin proceeds to
- Mr. Seward’s residence and seriously stabs him in the throat,
- also assaulting Mr. Frederick W. Seward. The President dies about
- half past seven o’clock; Andrew Johnson becomes President of the
- United States.
-
- 1866 Death of Lord Palmerston. The Fenian raid into Canada
- with the affairs of Ridgeway and Pigeon Hill. The war in
- Europe, of which the following is a complete table of principal
- events:--Federal execution decreed by the Germanic Diet. Entry
- of the Prussians into Leipsic, Gleasen and Cassel. Occupation of
- Loban. Entry of the Prussian General Vogel into the Hanoverian
- capital. Occupation of Marenthal, Ostritz and Lauban, in
- Bohemia, by two Prussian regiments, and occupation of Bernstadt
- by Prussian cavalry. Occupation of Dresden by the Prussians.
- Evacuation of Fort Wilhelm by the Hanoverian troops. Prince
- William of Hanau made prisoner. Cavalry encounter between the
- Austrians and Prussians upon the Rumburg road. Nixdorf occupied
- by 7000 Prussians. Occupation of Rumburg by the Prussians.
- Armistice between the Prussian and Hanoverian troops. Action near
- Jungbunzlau between the Austrians and the Prussians. The Prussian
- troops occupied Reichenberg, Trautenau and Aicha (Bohemia).
- Engagement near Turnau. The army of the Crown Prince of Prussia
- fought the battle of Nachod. Engagement at Oswiecim. Fight
- between the Prussians and Hanoverians near Langeusalza. General
- Steinmetz throws back the Austrian corps d’armée (Ramming)
- upon Josephstadt. Engagement of the same corps with the 6th
- and 8th Austrian corps under the Archduke Leopold. Action near
- Trautenau. The troops of Prince Frederick Charles engaged near
- Munchengratz. The Hanoverian army surrendered at discretion.
- Capture of Gitschin by the Prussian army. Actions at Kort, near
- Turnau, and at Chwalkowitz, between Kalitz and Konigshof. An
- Austrian army corps under General Clam-Gallus compelled to retire
- upon Koniggratz. Action at Gitschin. Arrival of King William
- at Gitschin. Junction of the Crown Prince’s army with that of
- Prince Frederick Charles. The battle of Sadowa. The laying of the
- Atlantic Cable and the raising of the old one nearly two years
- in water and successfully spliced and working, uniting the two
- continents--the Old and New World--let it be hoped, in the bonds
- of _eternal_ fraternity.
-
-
-GLORY TO GOD ON HIGH, AND IN EARTH PEACE.--GOOD WILL TOWARDS MEN.
-
-
-FINIS.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX.
-
-
-I.
-
-EFFECTIVE STRENGTH OF THE FRENCH ARMY AT WATERLOO.
-
- Infantry of the Line:--
- First Corps 32 battalions
- Second Corps (3 divisions) 28 battalions[46]
- Sixth Corps (2 divisions) 12 battalions
- --
- 72 battalions.
-
- Which, at 720 each, (according to the statements in the
- _Moniteur_ and in the portfolio of Napoleon,) would
- amount to 51,840
-
- Infantry of the Guard, stated by Gourgaud, p. 37, and
- Fleury, p. 167, at 14,000
-
- Cavalry of the Guard, according to Fleury, pp. 165 and 167 4,500
-
- Cavalry of 1st, 2nd, and 6th Corps, according to Fleury,
- p. 167 and Book ix 4,200
-
- Reserve of Cavalry, 4 Corps, according to Book ix, p. 128 7,400
-
- Artillery ditto ditto 6,500
- ------
- 88,440
- Losses sustained on the 16th, by these Corps, according
- to Book ix 4,250
- ------
- 84,190
-
-
-II.
-
-EFFECTIVE STRENGTH OF THE ANGLO-ALLIED ARMY AT WATERLOO.
-
- British Infantry 15,181
- “ Cavalry 5,843
- “ Artillery 2,967
- King’s German Legion--Infantry 3,301
- “ “ Cavalry 1,997
- “ “ Artillery 526
- ------
- Total British and German Legion 29,815
-
- Hanoverian, Brunswick, and Nassau Infantry 17,724
- “ “ “ Cavalry 1,363
- “ “ “ Artillery 975
- Dutch-Belgian Infantry 13,402
- “ “ Cavalry 3,205
- “ “ Artillery 1,177
- ------
- Total 67,661
-
- Deduct: Retreated--
- Bylandt’s Belgian Brigade 3,233
- Tripp’s Dutch-Belgian Carabiniers 1,237
- Hanoverian Cumberland Hussars 496
- D’Aubreme’s Dutch-Belgian Brigade 3,181 8,148[47]
- ------
- Actual Combatants 59,513
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[46] Book ix. tells us, in Table F, that four of the regiments in
-this Corps had three battalions.
-
-[47] There was probably the same backwardness in a few other cases;
-but _these_ are distinctly recorded.
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE
-
- Obvious typographical errors and punctuation errors have been
- corrected after careful comparison with other occurrences within
- the text and consultation of external sources.
-
- The punctuation after the Battle Name heading (.--) has been made
- consistent, eg ABOUKIR.-- (some headings had ,-- or only -- ).
-
- The original Table on page 215 was very wide, and has been split
- into two parts; the first column has been duplicated in the second
- part.
-
- The ANCIENT CHRONOLOGY Table on page 450 has an abbreviation P. This
- has been marked with an asterisk and a note (not a footnote) placed
- under the Table ‘* P = Period.’, in the same manner as the original
- text.
-
- Both Tables on page 450 have been adjusted, with no loss of text,
- to keep each line width a reasonable size.
-
- Two items in the CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE which starts on page 451 were
- out of sequence and have been moved to the correct place; 1097 has
- been moved above 1098, and 1207 has been moved above 1208.
-
- Except for those changes noted below, all misspellings in the text,
- and inconsistent or archaic usage, have been retained: for example,
- hill-side, hill side, hillside; head-quarters, head quarters,
- headquarters; daybreak, day-break; punctilios; Affghan; cimetars;
- inclosed; rhetorician; debouching.
-
- Pg 25: ‘men vieing with’ replaced by ‘men vying with’.
- Pg 39: ‘28,000 prisioners’ replaced by ‘28,000 prisoners’.
- Pg 40: ‘The seige is one’ replaced by ‘The siege is one’.
- Pg 47: ‘saw Brigader-General’ replaced by ‘saw Brigadier-General’.
- Pg 49: ‘advance of Balakalava’ replaced by ‘advance of Balaklava’.
- Pg 49: ‘en enchelon’ replaced by ‘en échelon’.
- Pg 52: ‘a lance thurst’ replaced by ‘a lance thrust’.
- Pg 55: ‘gallont promptitude’ replaced by ‘gallant promptitude’.
- Pg 59: ‘and 20 canons’ replaced by ‘and 20 cannons’.
- Pg 60: ‘the kingdon, known’ replaced by ‘the kingdom, known’.
- Pg 64: ‘crashed though’ replaced by ‘crashed through’.
- Pg 68: ‘into thesalient’ replaced by ‘into the salient’.
- Pg 70: ‘Prince Bragration’ replaced by ‘Prince Bagration’.
- Pg 72: ‘Edward III beseiged’ replaced by ‘Edward III besieged’.
- Pg 78: ‘putrified on their’ replaced by ‘putrefied on their’.
- Pg 80: ‘them, and orcing’ replaced by ‘them, and forcing’.
- Pg 81: ‘extreme inclemeny’ replaced by ‘extreme inclemency of’.
- Pg 84: ‘was then siezed’ replaced by ‘was then seized’.
- Pg 86: ‘a dreaful fire’ replaced by ‘a dreadful fire’.
- Pg 90: ‘Gage, Jannuary’ replaced by ‘Gage, January’.
- Pg 100: ‘flag of true, and’ replaced by ‘flag of truce, and’.
- Pg 100: ‘of maze, they’ replaced by ‘of maize, they’.
- Pg 101: ‘tossed of from’ replaced by ‘tossed off from’.
- Pg 104: ‘a capita charge’ replaced by ‘a capital charge’.
- Pg 114: ‘he clapsed him’ replaced by ‘he clasped him’.
- Pg 119: ‘and gallopped off’ replaced by ‘and galloped off’.
- Pg 123: ‘CUSTOZZO, BATTLE OF’ replaced by ‘CUSTOZZA, BATTLE OF’.
- Pg 123: ‘afternoon, June 28th’ replaced by ‘afternoon, June 23rd’.
- Pg 124: ‘but tells us’ replaced by ‘but tell us’.
- Pg 131: ‘EDGEHLL, BATTLE OF’ replaced by ‘EDGEHILL, BATTLE OF’.
- Pg 133: ‘and Montford slain’ replaced by ‘and Montfort slain’.
- Pg 136: ‘Desparing of success’ replaced by ‘Despairing of success’.
- Pg 137: ‘pursuing hostilites’ replaced by ‘pursuing hostilities’.
- Pg 138: ‘in wasting upon’ replaced by ‘in waiting upon’.
- Pg 142: ‘Anstrians, February’ replaced by ‘Austrians, February’.
- Pg 144: ‘Napeleon in person’ replaced by ‘Napoleon in person’.
- Pg 148: ‘to show symptons’ replaced by ‘to show symptoms’.
- Pg 149: ‘to the route’ replaced by ‘to the rout’.
- Pg 151: ‘peaceful posssession’ replaced by ‘peaceful possession’.
- Pg 151: ‘the mottoe of the’ replaced by ‘the motto of the’.
- Pg 160: ‘their minie rifles’ replaced by ‘their Minié rifles’.
- Pg 174: ‘In a vew minutes’ replaced by ‘In a few minutes’.
- Pg 182: ‘seige of Olmutz’ replaced by ‘siege of Olmutz’.
- Pg 184: ‘Brigadier Churchhill’ replaced by ‘Brigadier Churchill’.
- Pg 193: ‘May 2th, 1813’ replaced by ‘May 2nd, 1813’.
- Pg 194: ‘Lewis XIV took’ replaced by ‘Louis XIV took’.
- Pg 202: ‘Canadian Volunters’ replaced by ‘Canadian Volunteers’.
- Pg 208: ‘as if valcanoes’ replaced by ‘as if volcanoes’.
- Pg 211: ‘of General Bettenfeld.’ replaced by ‘of General Bittenfeld.’.
- Pg 219: ‘ship, the _Conqérant_’ replaced by ‘ship, the _Conquérant_’.
- Pg 225: ‘Peninsular hereos’ replaced by ‘Peninsular heroes’.
- Pg 239: ‘Cardinal set of’ replaced by ‘Cardinal set off’.
- Pg 244: ‘the Jacobins, but’ replaced by ‘the Jacobites, but’.
- Pg 254: ‘Van Ransselaer. In’ replaced by ‘Van Rensselaer. In’.
- Pg 257: ‘of every Cananadian’ replaced by ‘of every Canadian’.
- Pg 257: ‘galantry and merit’ replaced by ‘gallantry and merit’.
- Pg 259: ‘It surrended to’ replaced by ‘It surrendered to’.
- Pg 259: ‘soon siezed with’ replaced by ‘soon seized with’.
- Pg 276: ‘be would not allow’ replaced by ‘he would not allow’.
- Pg 287: ‘Alles ist veloren’ replaced by ‘Alles ist verloren’.
- Pg 301: ‘a garrison 1700’ replaced by ‘a garrison of 1700’.
- Pg 301: ‘General Kutosoff’ replaced by ‘General Kutusoff’.
- Pg 303: ‘one his mistresses’ replaced by ‘one of his mistresses’.
- Pg 311: ‘that each man’ replaced by ‘than each man’.
- Pg 313: ‘and exhilirating scene’ replaced by ‘and exhilarating scene’.
- Pg 315: ‘à-ricohet’ replaced by ‘à-ricochet’.
- Pg 320: ‘flying ignominously’ replaced by ‘flying ignominiously’.
- Pg 324: ‘ariving in time’ replaced by ‘arriving in time’.
- Pg 337: ‘18th, August, 1593’ replaced by ‘18th, August, 1513’.
- Pg 344: ‘effect of the suprise’ replaced by ‘effect of the surprise’.
- Pg 353 Footnotes [10] and [11]: small errors in the Greek phrases
- have been corrected.
- Pg 361: ‘I feel someting’ replaced by ‘I feel something’.
- Pg 361: ‘garrison surrended’ replaced by ‘garrison surrendered’.
- Pg 368: ‘until there last’ replaced by ‘until their last’.
- Pg 372: ‘event at a period’ replaced by ‘even at a period’.
- Pg 374: ‘wife of Henry II’ replaced by ‘wife of Henry VI’.
- Pg 375: ‘In many place the’ replaced by ‘In many places the’.
- Pg 386: ‘which proceeded the’ replaced by ‘which preceded the’.
- Pg 404 Footnote [37]: ‘give total of’ replaced by ‘give a total of’.
- Pg 419: ‘own admision’ replaced by ‘own admission’.
- Pg 439: ‘without amunition’ replaced by ‘without ammunition’.
- Pg 442: ‘inland ressources’ replaced by ‘inland resources’.
- Pg 447: ‘personaal ppearance’ replaced by ‘personal appearance’.
- Pg 449: ‘by the initals’ replaced by ‘by the initials’.
- Pg 451: ‘3347 Noah quits’ replaced by ‘2347 Noah quits’.
- Pg 452: ‘a seige of ten’ replaced by ‘a siege of ten’.
- Pg 452: ‘Agamemnon, Achillies’ replaced by ‘Agamemnon, Achilles’.
- Pg 453: ‘727 Nabopolazzar’ replaced by ‘627 Nabopolazzar’.
- Pg 454: ‘Cyrenaic philosopers’ replaced by ‘Cyrenaic philosophers’.
- Pg 458: ‘Age Pomponius’ replaced by ‘Age of Pomponius’.
- Pg 462: ‘aad swear allegiance’ replaced by ‘and swear allegiance’.
- Pg 463: ‘Lady Berengera’ replaced by ‘Lady Berengaria’.
- Pg 472: ‘aad the statutes’ replaced by ‘and the statutes’.
- Pg 476: ‘Augbrim, in Ireland’ replaced by ‘Aughrim, in Ireland’.
- Pg 478: ‘Newton died, aged 35’ replaced by ‘Newton died, aged 85’.
- Pg 488: ‘Alma, Balaclava’ replaced by ‘Alma, Balaklava’.
- Pg 490: ‘evacuted by them’ replaced by ‘evacuated by them’.
- Pg 493: ‘Navy Apropriation’ replaced by ‘Navy Appropriation’.
- Pg 494: ‘Winchester the next next’ replaced by ‘Winchester the
- next day’.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Battles of the World, by J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BATTLES OF THE WORLD ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60652-0.txt or 60652-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/6/5/60652/
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, John Campbell and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by the Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions
-(www.canadiana.org)(and Hathi, for some replacement pages.)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/60652-0.zip b/old/60652-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d71cdd1..0000000
--- a/old/60652-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60652-h.zip b/old/60652-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 018a8b0..0000000
--- a/old/60652-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/60652-h/60652-h.htm b/old/60652-h/60652-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index cbb74dc..0000000
--- a/old/60652-h/60652-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,23462 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Battles of the World, by Rev. J. Douglas Borthwick.
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- word-spacing: 0.2em;
- letter-spacing: 0.1em;
- line-height: 1em;
- font-weight: normal;
-}
-
-h1 {font-size: 180%; line-height: 1.5em;}
-h2 {font-size: 100%; letter-spacing: 0.3em;}
-h3 {font-size: 100%; letter-spacing: 0.1em;}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .7em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .3em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.p3 {margin-top: 3em;}
-.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
-.p6 {margin-top: 6em;}
-
-.negin2 {padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2em; text-align: justify;}
-
-.noindent {text-indent: 0em;}
-.nowrap {white-space: nowrap;}
-
-.chapter {}
-
-.pfs120 {font-size: 120%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs100 {font-size: 100%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs90 {font-size: 90%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs80 {font-size: 80%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs70 {font-size: 70%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.pfs60 {font-size: 60%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-
-.fs50 {font-size: 50%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs60 {font-size: 60%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs70 {font-size: 70%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs80 {font-size: 80%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs90 {font-size: 90%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs120 {font-size: 120%; font-style: normal;}
-.fs150 {font-size: 150%; font-style: normal;}
-
-.bold {font-weight: bold;}
-
-div.tpage {
- text-align: center;
- page-break-before: always;
-}
-
-div.tpage p {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
- font-weight: normal;
- line-height: 1.5em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
-}
-
-div.chron {font-size: 90%;}
-
-div.chron p {line-height: 1.1em}
-
-
-/* for horizontal lines */
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 1.5em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 30%; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-hr.full {width: 98%; margin-left: 1%; margin-right: 1%;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
-
-hr.r10 {width: 10%; margin-left: 45%; margin-right: 45%;}
-hr.r20 {width: 20%; margin-left: 40%; margin-right: 40%;}
-hr.r20a {width: 20%; margin-left: 40%; margin-right: 40%;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0.1em;}
-hr.r30 {width: 30%; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%;}
-
-@media handheld {
-hr.chap {width: 0%; display: none;}
-}
-
-
-/* for tables */
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-td {padding: .18em .3em 0 .3em;}
-
-.tdl {text-align: left; padding-left: 1.5em; text-indent: -1em;}
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-.tdc {text-align: center;}
-
-.tdcx {text-align: center; padding-top: 1em; padding-bottom: 1em;}
-.tdrz {text-align: right; border-left: solid 1px;}
-
-.bt {vertical-align: middle; border-top: solid 1px;}
-
-.wd10 {width: 10%;}
-.wd20 {width: 20%;}
-
-/* for spacing */
-
-.pad1 {padding-left: 1em;}
-.pad2 {padding-left: 2em;}
-.pad3 {padding-left: 3em;}
-.pad4 {padding-left: 4em;}
-.pad5 {padding-left: 5em;}
-.pad6 {padding-left: 6em;}
-
-.padr6 {padding-right: 6em;}
-
-.pad20pc {padding-left: 20%;}
-.pad40pc {padding-left: 40%;}
-
-/* for page number dispay in margin */
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- color: #A9A9A9;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: small;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-style: normal;
- text-align: right;
- text-indent: .5em;
-}
-
-
-/* blockquote (/# #/) */
-.blockquot { margin: 1.5em 5% 1.5em 5%; }
-
-.blockquotx {margin: .4em 0 0 0; font-size: 90%;}
-.blockquotx p {margin: .5em 0 .5em 0; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -2em;}
-
-.blockquoty {margin: .4em 0 0 0; font-size: 80%;}
-.blockquoty p {margin: .5em 0 .5em 0; padding-left: 4em; text-indent: -3.5em;}
-
-/* general placement and presentation */
-.center {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em;}
-.right {text-align: right; margin-right: 1em;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.wsp {word-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.lsp0 {letter-spacing: 0em;}
-.lsp {letter-spacing: 0.1em;}
-.lsp2 {letter-spacing: 0.3em;}
-.lht {line-height: 1.6em;}
-
-.antiqua {font-family: Blackletter, Fraktur, Textur, "Olde English Mt", "Olde English", Diploma, England, Gothic, serif;}
-
-.pg-brk {page-break-before: always;}
-.no-brk {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-
-/* Footnotes */
-.footnotes {border: dashed 1px; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 3em;
- padding-bottom: 1em;}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 90%;}
-.footnote p {text-indent: 0em;}
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 84%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: 70%;
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container {text-align: center; font-size: small;}
-
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left; line-height: 1.4em;}
-
-.poetry .verseq {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 2.6em;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
-
-.poetry .verse0 {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
-.poetry .verse2 {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 4em;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
-.poetry .verse16 {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 16em;
- margin-top: 0em; margin-bottom: 0em;}
-
-@media handheld {
- .poetry {display: block; margin-left: 4.5em;}
-}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {
- background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size: 90%;
- padding: 0.5em;
- margin-top: 5em;
- margin-bottom: 5em;
-}
-
-.transnote p {text-indent: 0em;}
-
-/* custom cover.jpg */
-.customcover {visibility: hidden; display: none;}
-@media handheld {
- .customcover {visibility: visible; display: block;}
-}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-Project Gutenberg's The Battles of the World, by J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Battles of the World
- or, cyclopedia of battles, sieges, and important military events
-
-Author: J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-Release Date: November 8, 2019 [EBook #60652]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BATTLES OF THE WORLD ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, John Campbell and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by the Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions
-(www.canadiana.org)(and Hathi, for some replacement pages.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-
-<div class="transnote">
-<p><strong>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE</strong></p>
-
-<p>Footnote anchors are denoted by <span class="fnanchor">[number]</span>, and the footnotes have been
-placed at the end of the alphabetical ‘CYCLOPÆDIA’ section, and the ‘APPENDIX’ section.</p>
-
-<p class="customcover">The cover image was created by the transcriber
-and is placed in the public domain.</p>
-
-<p>Minor changes to the text are noted at the <a href="#TN">end of the book.</a></p>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<div class="tpage">
-
-<h1><span class="fs50">THE</span><br />
-
-BATTLES OF THE WORLD;</h1>
-
-<p class="fs60">OR, CYCLOPÆDIA OF</p>
-
-<p>BATTLES, SIEGES, AND IMPORTANT MILITARY EVENTS,</p>
-
-<p class="fs90 antiqua">The Origin and Institution of Military Titles, &amp;c. &amp;c.,</p>
-
-<p class="fs60">ALPHABETICALLY ARRANGED,</p>
-
-<p class="fs70 lsp2 wsp">WITH AN APPENDIX,</p>
-
-<p class="fs60">CONTAINING</p>
-
-<p class="fs150">A CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE,</p>
-
-<p class="fs60">FROM THE CREATION TO THE PRESENT DAY.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div>
-<br /><hr class="r20a" />
-<p class="pfs70">DEDICATED BY PERMISSION TO GENERAL SIR JOHN MICHEL.</p>
-<hr class="r20a" /><br />
-
-<p class="pfs60">BY</p>
-
-<p class="pfs90 wsp">REV. J. DOUGLAS BORTHWICK,</p>
-
-<p class="pfs60">AUTHOR OF “CYCLOPÆDIA OF HISTORY AND GEOGRAPHY,” “THE BRITISH AMERICAN
-READER,” AND “THE HARP OF CANAAN.”</p>
-
-<p class="p2" />
-<hr class="r20a" />
-<p class="p2" />
-
-<p class="pfs90 antiqua">Montreal:</p>
-<p class="pfs70">PUBLISHED BY JOHN MUIR; AND PRINTED BY JOHN LOVELL,</p>
-<p class="pfs60">ST. NICHOLAS STREET.</p>
-<p class="pfs90">1866.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p class="p6" />
-
-<hr class="full" />
-<p class="fs80 negin2">Entered, according to Act of Provincial Parliament, in the year one thousand
-eight hundred and sixty-six, by <span class="smcap">John Muir</span>, in the Office of the Registrar
-of the Province of Canada.</p>
-<hr class="full" />
-
-<p class="p6" />
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p class="p4" />
-
-<div class="antiqua">
-<p class="pfs90">To</p>
-
-<p class="pfs120 lsp">General Sir John Michel, K.C.B.,</p>
-
-<p class="pfs90">Commanding the Forces</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs80">in</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs100 lsp">British North America,</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="p2 fs70 lht noindent">As a small mark of respect to the highest Military Authority in these Provinces, and
-a token of esteem for one of the Generals of that glorious army which has fought and
-conquered in every age of its country’s history, and in almost every clime,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry fs80">
-<p class="verse0">Whose flag has braved a thousand years</p>
-<p class="verse2">The battle and the breeze;</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<p class="p1 fs70 lht noindent">And whose actions constitute <span class="fs70">NOT</span> a small portion of the “Battles of the World,”</p>
-
-<p class="p1 pfs100 antiqua">This work is dedicated</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs60 pad20pc">BY</p>
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70 pad40pc">THE AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="fs70"><span class="smcap">Montreal</span>, August 1866.</p>
-<p class="p4" />
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p class="p4" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vi" id="Page_vi">[Pg vi]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="no-brk fs120"><a name="PREFACE" id="PREFACE"></a>PREFACE.</h2>
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<p class="noindent">Within the last decade of the history of Great Britain, some
-very important books have been added to her literature, and especially
-to that particular division which treats of her wars and
-splendid victories, during the same period. “The Fifteen Decisive
-Battles of the World,” by Sir E. S. Creasy, Chief Justice of
-Ceylon; “The Twelve Great Battles of England,” inscribed to
-the British Volunteers of 1860; “England’s Battles by Sea and
-Land,” “Russell’s Crimea and India,” “Emerson’s Sebastopol,” &amp;c.,
-are valuable in themselves, as describing those victories which have
-raised “Dear Old England” to the <em>very first</em> rank among the
-nations. But the object of the present publication embraces a
-larger and more extended field of research. It embraces the whole
-of the principal battles, by land and sea, that have <span class="fs70">EVER</span> taken
-place, from the earliest recorded action of which we have in history
-any distinct and reliable information, to the very last event of
-military importance which has transpired previous to going to press.</p>
-
-<p>I need scarcely say here that that event is the unprecedented and
-unheard of invasion of our country, by a band of lawless brigands
-and filibusters, from the neighbouring Republic, ycleped Fenians,
-who have shed blood, and wantonly invaded the territory of a friendly
-power. It gives me much pleasure to insert in the “Cyclopædia
-of Battles” some account of how they were met by our brave
-Volunteers, at Ridgeway and Pigeon Hill; for it proves that the
-Volunteers of Canada will compare favorably with those of the
-Mother Country: and let it be borne in mind that one-half of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_vii" id="Page_vii">[vii]</a></span>
-men who greatly contributed to the Victory of Waterloo were
-recruits&mdash;raw troops&mdash;drafts from the militia&mdash;soldiers who had
-never been engaged before; and the same indomitable pluck&mdash;the
-same unconquered spirit&mdash;the same manly virtue of England’s
-offshoot sons, was seen in the attack at Ridgeway.</p>
-
-<p>In the first general engagement in the Great Rebellion of the
-United States&mdash;which was fought at Bull Run&mdash;American Volunteers
-<em>were also for the first time under fire</em>, but what was the result? A
-total pell-mell rout&mdash;a scattered army hurrying on&mdash;cavalry, artillery,
-and infantry&mdash;in one mighty, confused mass&mdash;treading down
-and overthrowing each other, in their eagerness to escape from the
-manly chivalry of the South. <span class="smcap">Our</span> brave Volunteers charged with
-the “Spirit of their fathers,” and gained the day.</p>
-
-<p>It has been said that Canada was neither a military nor a literary
-colony. The events of the last few weeks fully proves to the
-contrary, regarding her military ardor. Her sons nobly responded
-to the government call; and had necessity required, as fair and fully
-equipped an army would have trod the battle-field as ever stood
-arrayed before an enemy;&mdash;and these sons of hers were scions of
-all stocks&mdash;from the son of the learnèd divine or lawyer, to the
-peasant’s only boy. As regards her literary fame she has produced
-works which will compare favorably with sister colonies, and may
-rank side by side with the Mother Country. To refute the assertion,
-too, may be here remarked, what an agent for some of the largest
-publishers both of England and the United States said not long
-ago; “In the last three months he had sold twenty complete copies
-of one of the largest and best Encyclopædias, and nearly double
-that number in parts,” added to the hundreds of other publications
-which are being scattered broadcast over the country, prove that
-the Canadians are cultivating their minds as well as their “broad
-acres.” For my own individual part, I can bear ample testimony<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_viii" id="Page_viii">[viii]</a></span>
-to the generous patronage given to my publications. The first,
-published some years ago was rapidly sold. The second issued,
-was accepted by the <em>unanimous</em> voice and vote of the Council of
-Public Instruction as the standard School Reader for Lower
-Canada, and received the approval of the Government. The whole
-edition of the third, issued last Christmas, was sold in two weeks.
-The present work bids fair to receive as large if not a larger
-circulation.</p>
-
-<p>To the people of Canada who have advanced and are advancing
-literature, by subscribing to and supporting literary institutions
-and productions, I tender my sincere thanks for all the patronage
-hitherto bestowed upon my humble endeavours to elevate the
-literature of this, my adopted country, and to perpetuate, in book
-form, among the “Battles of the World,” <span class="smcap">Canada’s Engagements</span>
-with foreign foes&mdash;<span class="fs70">HER BATTLES BY LAND AND SEA</span>.</p>
-
-<p class="right smcap">J. Douglas Borthwick.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Montreal</span>, 24th July 1866.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 fs80"><span class="smcap">Postscript.</span>&mdash;Since the above Preface has been in type events which were
-looked for, have transpired in Europe and by the accounts received some
-battles have already been fought on Continental soil. As far as practicable,
-insertion will be given to those of which we have received reliable information
-as regarding statistics, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class="right fs80">J. D. B.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="no-brk fs120"><a name="CYCLOPAEDIA" id="CYCLOPAEDIA"></a>CYCLOPÆDIA<br />
-<br />
-<span class="fs50 lsp0">OF THE</span><br />
-<br />
-<span class="fs120 lsp0">BATTLES OF THE WORLD.</span></h2>
-
-
-<hr class="r30" />
-<h3><a name="A" id="A"></a>A.</h3>
-
-
-<p>ABDICATION OF KINGS.&mdash;Numerous in ancient history.
-The following are those of the most remarkable character and greatest
-political importance:</p>
-
-<div class="fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl">Henry IV. of Germany</td><td class="tdl fs80">A.D.</td><td class="tdl">1080</td><td class="tdl pad2">Napoleon</td><td class="tdl">April 5,</td><td class="tdl">1814</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Baliol of Scotland</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “</td><td class="tdl">1306</td><td class="tdl pad2">Charles X. of France</td><td class="tdl">Aug. 2,</td><td class="tdl">1830</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Charles V. of Germany</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “</td><td class="tdl">1556</td><td class="tdl pad2">Louis Philippe &nbsp; “</td><td class="tdl">Feb. 24,</td><td class="tdl">1848</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">James II. of England</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “</td><td class="tdl">1688</td><td class="tdl pad2">Ferdinand of Austria.</td><td class="tdl">Dec. 2,</td><td class="tdl">1848</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Philip V. of Spain</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “</td><td class="tdl">1724</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p>ABOUKIR.&mdash;Commonly called the Battle of the Nile. Fought between
-the French and English fleets August 1st, 1798. (See <a href="#NIL"><span class="smcap">Nile</span></a>.)</p>
-
-
-<p>ABRAHAM, HEIGHTS OF.&mdash;Commonly called the Taking of
-Quebec, or the Battle of the Plains of Abraham. Fought September
-13th, 1759. (See <a href="#QUE"><span class="smcap">Quebec</span></a>.)</p>
-
-
-<p>ACAPULCO SHIP.&mdash;This was the celebrated prize. A Spanish
-galleon, from Acapulco, laden with gold and precious wares, and estimated
-by some annalists at £1,000,000 sterling and upwards, taken by Lord
-Anson, who had previously acquired in his memorable voyage booty
-amounting to £600,000. Admiral Anson arrived at Spithead, in the
-<em>Centurion</em>, with his immense gains, after having circumnavigated the
-globe, June 15th, 1744.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>ACRE, ST. JEAN D’&mdash;anciently <em>Ptolemais</em>. This city was taken
-by Richard I and other Crusaders in 1192, after a siege of two years, with
-the loss of 6 archbishops, 12 bishops, 40 earls, 500 barons, and 300,000
-soldiers. It was retaken by the Saracens, when 60,000 Christians perished,
-<span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1291. Acre was attacked by Bonaparte, in July, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1798,
-and was relieved by Sir Sidney Smith, who gallantly resisted twelve attempts
-during the memorable siege of the French, between March 1st, and May
-27th, 1799, when, baffled by the British squadron on the water, and the
-Turks on shore, Bonaparte relinquished his object and retreated. St.
-Jean d’Acre is a pachalic, subject to the Porte, seized upon by Ibrahim
-Pacha, who had revolted, July 2nd, 1832. It became a point in the
-Syrian war in 1840. It was stormed by the British fleet under Sir
-Robert Stopford, and taken after a bombardment of a few hours&mdash;the
-Egyptians losing upwards of 2,000 in killed and wounded, and 3,000
-prisoners; while the British had but 12 killed, and 42 wounded,
-November 3, 1840.</p>
-
-
-<p>ACTIUM.&mdash;This battle was fought September 2nd, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 31, between
-the fleets of Octavianus Cæsar on the one side, and of Marc Antony and
-Cleopatra on the other. The victory of Octavianus which followed, procured
-him the name of Augustus, the Venerable, bestowed on him by
-the Senate, and the commencement of the Roman Empire is commonly
-dated from this year.</p>
-
-
-<p>ADRIANOPLE.&mdash;This battle, by which Constantine the Great procured
-the Roman Empire, was fought July 3rd, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 323. Adrianople
-was afterwards taken by the Ottomans from the Greeks, in 1360, and
-continued to be the seat of the Turkish Empire till the capture of Constantinople
-in 1453. Mahomet II, one of the most distinguished of the
-Sultans, and the one who took Constantinople, was born here in 1430.
-Adrianople was taken by the Russians, who entered it, August 20th, 1829,
-but was restored to the Sultan at the close of the war, September 14th,
-the same year.</p>
-
-
-<p>ADJUTANT.&mdash;This name is given to the officer, generally a lieutenant,
-whose business it is to assist the superior officers, by receiving and
-communicating orders.</p>
-
-
-<p>ADMIRAL.&mdash;This, the highest title in the navy, does not appear to
-have been adopted till about 1300. This title was first given in England<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>
-to William de Leybourne, by Edward I, in 1297. The first Lord High
-Admiral of England was created by Richard II in 1388. It is an office
-which has seldom been trusted to single hands. Prince George of Denmark,
-consort to Queen Anne, was Lord High Admiral in her reign.
-Since that time (1708) the duties were uninterruptedly executed by
-Lords Commissioners until 1827, when the Duke of Clarence, afterwards
-William IV, was appointed. He resigned August 12th, 1828, and the
-office has ever since been vested in the Lords of the Admiralty.</p>
-
-
-<p>AEGOS POTAMOS.&mdash;This place is famous for the victory of Lysander
-over the Athenian fleet, on the 13th December, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 405, in the last
-year of the Peloponnesian war. All the triremes of the Athenians, 180 in
-number, were either lost or captured, without the loss of a single ship on
-the side of Lysander.</p>
-
-
-<p>AFGHAN WAR.&mdash;A fierce rebellion broke out on November 2nd,
-1842, at Cabul; Burnes and Macnaughten, the British ministers, with
-other civil and military officers, were successively murdered, and the
-whole country rose in arms under the treacherous Akbar Khan, the son
-of the deposed king, Dost Mohammed, who determined on the massacre
-of the whole British force. Pusillanimity and indecision in the councils
-of the general-in-chief, led to an immediate evacuation of the country.
-4,500 fighting men, together with about 12,000 camp followers, besides
-women and children, set forward, through ice and snow, on their lamentable
-retreat; and no sooner had they cleared out of their cantonments,
-than the blood-thirsty Afghans began to plunder the baggage, and fire
-upon the soldiery; they continued without ceasing their revengeful
-assaults upon the bewildered and desponding multitude, till there was
-nothing left to plunder, and none left to kill. Out of a host of about
-26,000 human beings, only a few hundreds were rescued from death by
-captivity. The ladies and the wounded had been given up to the enemy
-early in the march, and Dr. Brydon was the only officer who made good
-his retreat. In the following year, however, on the appointment of Lord
-Ellenborough to the governor-generalship of India in the place of Lord
-Auckland, the British national character was repaired, the honour of
-their arms retrieved, and the unfortunate prisoners rescued. General
-Pollock was despatched into Afghanistan with an invading army; he
-advanced on Cabul with all possible rapidity; while, on the other side,
-General Nott, who had held out at Candahar during the recent difficulties,
-brought his forces also to bear on the capital. Victory everywhere<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span>
-attended the British arms; and the British officers and ladies, who had
-been taken prisoners, were also rescued, at Bameean, on the road to
-Turkistan. These disgraces having been so gloriously redeemed, it was
-determined to evacuate a country which ought never to have been entered;
-the fortifications and other works of Cabul having been destroyed,
-the British troops set forward, on their return home, and, after a march of
-about ten weeks, arrived safely on the banks of the Sutlej, December 17th,
-1842.</p>
-
-
-<p>AGINCOURT.&mdash;Fought on the 25th of October, 1415, between the
-English and French. When all his preparations were completed, King
-Henry V embarked at Southampton with a gallant army of 30,000 men,
-and landing at the mouth of the river Seine, invested the town of Harfleur.
-After a brave resistance of five months’ duration, the town surrendered;
-the inhabitants were expelled like those of Calais, and an
-English garrison occupied it. To his mortification, Henry, at the end of
-the siege, found his army no longer in a condition for active operations;
-for it had suffered so severely from dysentery, that when the sick and
-wounded had been sent home, it did not count more than one half of its
-original number. In spite however, of the remonstrances of his council,
-Henry resolved to march with his diminished force to Calais. He
-reached unopposed the ford by which Edward III had crossed the Somme,
-but found it secured by lines of palisades, behind which troops were
-posted. All the other fords were secured in like manner, and the bridges
-were broken. At length finding a ford unguarded, the English passed
-over. The constable of France, who commanded the French army, fell
-back towards Calais, and having received orders from his court to fight
-without delay, he sent heralds to King Henry to ask which way he
-intended to march. Henry replied, by that which led straight to Calais,
-and dismissed the heralds with a present of 100 crowns.</p>
-
-<p>As the English were advancing, the Duke of York, having ascended
-an eminence, descried the masses of the enemy. The troops were
-instantly formed in line of battle, but the French would not advance to
-attack them, the experience of Cressy and Poitiers having inspired them
-with a dread of the cloth-yard arrows of the English. But as their army
-presented an array of 50,000 horsemen, they had no doubt whatever of
-the victory; and though the night was dark and rainy, they assembled
-round their banners revelling and discussing the events of the coming
-day; and such was their confidence that they even fixed the ransoms of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span>
-King Henry and his barons. English, on the contrary, made their
-wills, and passed the night in devotion. Sickness, famine, and the smallness
-of their numbers, depressed their spirits; but their courage rose
-when they thought on Cressy and other victories, and on the gallant spirit
-of their king. Henry himself visited all their quarters, and he ordered
-bands of music to play all through the night to cheer their drooping
-spirits.</p>
-
-<p>Before sunrise, on the 25th of October, 1415, being St. Crispin’s day,
-the English army, having heard mass, stood in order of battle. The
-king, wearing a helmet of polished steel, wreathed with a crown of sparkling
-stones, rode on a grey pony from rank to rank, inspecting and
-encouraging them. Hearing an officer say to another that he wished a
-miracle would transfer thither some of the good knights who were sitting
-idle at home, he declared aloud that “he would not have a single man
-more, as if God gave them the victory, it would be plainly due to His
-goodness; if he did not, the fewer that fell, the less the loss to their country.”
-Three French knights now came, summoning them to surrender.
-The king ordered them off and cried out, “Banners, advance.” The
-archers fell on their knees on the ground, then rose and ran on with a
-shout. They halted, and poured their hail of arrows on the first division
-of the French; and when they had thrown it into some confusion, they
-slung their bows behind their backs, and grasping their swords and battle-axes,
-killed the constable and his principal officers, and routed the
-whole division. They then advanced to attack the second division, led
-by the Duke of Alençon. Here the resistance was obstinate. Alençon
-forced his way to the royal standard, killed the Duke of York, and cleft
-the crown in the helmet of the king; but he was slain, and the division
-turned and fled. Henry was advancing to attack the third division,
-when word came that a large force was falling on the rear. The king
-gave hasty orders to put the prisoners to death, and numbers had perished
-before it was discovered that it was a false alarm, caused by an attempt
-of some peasantry to plunder the baggage. The slaughter was then
-stopped, but this cruel act tarnished the victory which was already won,
-for the third division offered but a slight resistance.</p>
-
-<p>When Montjoy, the French king-at-arms, appeared, “To whom,” said
-Henry, “doth the victory belong?” “To you, sir.” “And what castle
-is that I see at a distance?” “It is called the castle of Agincourt.”
-“Then,” said the king, “be this battle known to posterity by the name
-of the battle of Agincourt.” The prime nobility of France were taken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-or slain, and 8000 knights and gentlemen lay dead on the field. The
-loss of the English was only the Duke of York, the Earl of Suffolk, and
-about 600 men.</p>
-
-
-<p>AGRA.&mdash;This celebrated city is called the Key of Hindostan. It
-was surrendered, in the war of the Mahrattas, to the British forces,
-October 17th, 1803. The great Mogul frequently, before its surrender,
-resided here. It now exhibits the most magnificent ruins.</p>
-
-
-<p>AIDE-DE-CAMP.&mdash;(<em>From the French</em>.) An officer whose duty is
-to receive and communicate the orders of a general or superior officer.</p>
-
-
-<p>AIX-LA-CHAPELLE, PEACE OF.&mdash;The first treaty signed
-here was between France and Spain, May 2nd, 1668. The second, or the
-<em>celebrated</em> treaty, was between Great Britain, France, Holland, Hungary,
-Spain and Geneva, October 7th, 1748. A congress of the sovereigns of
-Austria, Prussia and Russia, assisted by ministers from England and
-France, met here, October 9th, 1818, and signed a convention. The sum
-settled by this convention as due by France to the Allies, was 265,000,000
-francs.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALBUERA <span class="fs70">OR</span> ALBUHERA.&mdash;This battle was fought May 16th,
-1811, between the English and French. The English and Anglo-Spanish
-army was commanded by Marshal, now Lord Beresford, and the
-French by Marshal Soult. After an obstinate and sanguinary engagement,
-the allies obtained the victory, one of the most brilliant achievements of the
-Peninsular War. The French loss exceeded 7000 men, previously to their
-retreat; but the allies lost an equal number. On the side of the allies
-the chief brunt of the battle fell on the British. “Colonel Inglis, 22 officers,
-and more than 400 men, out of 570, who had mounted a hill, fell in the
-57th regiment alone; the other regiments were scarcely better off, not one-third
-being left standing; 1800 unwounded men, the remnant of 6000
-unconquerable British soldiers, stood triumphant on this fatal hill.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ALDERNEY, RACE OF.&mdash;Through this strait the French made
-their escape after their defeat at the battle of La Hogue, by Admiral
-Rooke, in 1692. It is celebrated for two memorable and melancholy
-events: 1st. Here the only son of Henry I of England was shipwrecked
-and drowned, with 140 youths of the highest families in England and
-France in 1119. 2nd. The British man-of-war Victory, of 110 guns<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>
-and 1100 men, was also wrecked here October 8th, 1744, when the
-Admiral, Sir John Balchan, and his crew, perished on the rocks.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALEMANNI <span class="fs70">OR</span> ALL MEN (<em>i.e.</em> Men of all Nations).&mdash;A body
-of Suevi, who were defeated by Caracalla, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 214. On one occasion
-300,000 of this warlike people are said to have been vanquished in a
-battle, near Milan, by Gallienus, at the head of 10,000 Romans.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALESSANDRIA.&mdash;This battle was fought, May 17th, 1799, between
-the Austro-Russian army, under Suwarrow, and the French under Moreau,
-when the latter were defeated with the loss of 4000 men. The French
-had possessed themselves of Alessandria the year before, but they were
-now driven out. It was again delivered up to them after the battle of
-Marengo in 1800. The village and battlefield of Marengo lie east of this
-town.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALEXANDRIA.&mdash;The battle of Alexandria was fought, March 21st,
-1801, between the English and the French, the latter being commanded
-by Menou, and the former by Sir Ralph Abercrombie. It resulted in the
-defeat of the French, but the British general was mortally wounded, and
-after the retreat of Menou, he was carried to the admiral’s ship, and died
-on the 28th. The command devolved on Major-General Hutchinson,
-who baffled all the schemes of Menou, and obliged him to surrender, September
-2nd, following, the victor guaranteeing the conveyance of the
-French, exceeding 10,000, to a French port in the Mediterranean.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALFORD.&mdash;This battle was fought, July 2nd, 1645, between a large
-body of Covenanters, under General Bailie, and the troops under the
-Marquis of Montrose. There was discovered some years since, in one of
-the mosses near this place, a man in armour, on horseback, supposed to
-have been drowned in attempting to escape from this battle.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALGESIRAS, <span class="fs70">OR</span> OLD GIBRALTAR.&mdash;By this city the Moors
-entered Spain <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 713, and it was not recovered from them till 1344.
-An engagement was fought here between a British squadron, under Sir
-James Saumurez, and several French and Spanish ships of war, which
-closed in the destruction of two Spanish ships, each of 112 guns, and
-the capture of the <i>St. Antonio</i>, of 74 guns, July 12th, 1801.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="ALG" id="ALG"></a></div>
-<p>ALGIERS.&mdash;The British fleet, under Lord Exmouth, anchoring off
-Algiers, bombarded the town, which returned the fire; but all the fortifications<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>
-and houses towards the sea were soon reduced to ashes, and the
-fleet in the harbour entirely destroyed, August 27th, 1816. The Dey was
-compelled to conclude a treaty by which he set the Christian captives free,
-and engaged to cease, in future, from reducing Christians to slaves&mdash;a
-stipulation which, however, he did not afterwards strictly observe; so that
-the French took possession of the country and made it a colony with a
-governor, bearing the title of Regent of Algeria. This country is famous
-for the celebrated French soldiers, the Zouaves, of the late wars.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALIWAL, <em>India</em>.&mdash;This battle was fought, January 28th, 1846,
-between the British under Sir H. Smith, with 1200 men and 32 guns, and
-the Sikh army, under Sirdar Runjoor Singh Majeethea, 26,000 strong,
-supported by 68 pieces of cannon. The contest was obstinate, but ended
-in the defeat of the Sikhs, who lost nearly 6000 killed, or drowned, in
-attempting to recross the Sutlej. This battle was named after the village
-of Aliwal, in the Indian language, <em>Ulleewal</em>, near which it was fought.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALLIA.&mdash;This memorable battle, in the history of Rome, was fought
-on the 18th July, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 390, between the Romans and the celebrated
-Brennus, king of the Gauls; 40,000 of the Romans fell, and Brennus took
-and burnt the city of Rome. This day was always marked unlucky in
-the Roman calendar, and called Alliensis.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALLIANCE, TREATIES OF.&mdash;Between the greatest European
-powers, which are most commonly referred to:</p>
-
-<div class="fs90">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl" colspan="2">Alliance of Leipsic</td><td class="tdr">April &nbsp; 9,</td><td class="tdl">1631.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ &nbsp; Vienna</td><td class="tdr">May 27,</td><td class="tdl">1657.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Triple</td><td class="tdr">Jan. 28,</td><td class="tdl">1668.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Grand</td><td class="tdr">May 12,</td><td class="tdl">1689.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Hague</td><td class="tdr">Jan. &nbsp; 4,</td><td class="tdl">1717.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Quadruple</td><td class="tdr">Aug. &nbsp; 2,</td><td class="tdl">1718.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Germanic</td><td class="tdr">July 23,</td><td class="tdl">1785.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“</td><td class="tdl">The Paris</td><td class="tdr">May 16,</td><td class="tdl">1795.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl" colspan="2">Austrian Alliance</td><td class="tdr">March 14,</td><td class="tdl">1812.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl" colspan="2">Alliance of Toplitz</td><td class="tdr">Sept. &nbsp; 9,</td><td class="tdl">1813.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl" colspan="2">The Holy Alliance</td><td class="tdr">Sept. 26,</td><td class="tdl">1815.</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p>ALMA, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought, September 20th, 1854.
-“Lord Raglan waited patiently for the development of the French attack.
-At length an aide-de-camp came to him and reported that the French had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
-crossed the Alma, but that they had not established themselves sufficiently
-to justify our advancing. The infantry were, therefore, ordered
-to lie down, and the army for a short time was quite passive, only that
-our artillery poured forth an unceasing fire of shell, rockets, and round
-shot, which ploughed through the Russians, and caused them great loss.
-They did not waver, however, and replied to our artillery manfully, their
-shot falling among our men as they lay, and carrying off legs and arms at
-every round. Lord Raglan at last became weary of this inactivity&mdash;his
-spirit was up&mdash;he looked around and saw by his side men on whom he
-knew he might stake the honour and fate of Great Britain, and anticipating
-a little, in military point of view, the crisis of action, he gave orders
-for our whole line to advance. Up rose those serried masses, and passing
-through a fearful shower of round shot, case shot, and shell, they dashed
-into the Alma, and floundered through its waters, which were literally
-torn into foam by the deadly hail. At the other side of the river were a
-number of vineyards, and to our surprise they were occupied by Russian
-riflemen. Three of the staff were here shot down, but led by Lord
-Raglan in person, they advanced, cheering on the men.</p>
-
-<p>And now came the turning-point of the battle, ... Lord Raglan
-dashed over the bridge, followed by his staff. From the road over it,
-under the Russian guns, he saw the state of action. The British line,
-which he had ordered to advance, was struggling through the river and
-up to the heights in masses, firm indeed, but mowed down by the murderous
-fire of the batteries, and by grape, round shot, shell, canister, case
-shot, and musketry, from some of the guns of the central battery, and
-from an immense and compact mass of Russian infantry. Then commenced
-one of the most bloody and determined struggles in the annals of
-war. The Second Division, led by Sir De Lacy Evans in the most dashing
-manner, crossed the stream on the right. The 7th Fusiliers, led by
-Colonel Yea, were swept down by fifties. The 55th, 30th, and 95th, led
-by Brigadier Pennefather, who was in the thickest of the fight, cheering
-on his men, again and again were checked indeed, but never drew back
-in their onward progress, which was marked by a fierce roll of Minié
-musketry; and Brigadier Adams, with the 41st, 47th, and 49th, bravely
-charged up the hill, and aided them in the battle. Sir George Brown,
-conspicuous on a grey horse, rode in front of his Light Division, urging
-them with voice and gesture. Gallant fellows! they were worthy of such
-a gallant chief. The 7th, diminished by one-half, fell back to re-form
-their columns lost for the time: the 23rd, with eight officers dead and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span>
-four wounded, were still rushing to the front, aided by the 15th, 33d,
-77th, and 88th. Down went Sir George in a cloud of dust in front of
-the battery. He was soon up, and shouted, “23d, I’m all right! Be
-sure I’ll remember this day,” and led them on again; but in the shock
-produced by the fall of their chief, the gallant regiment suffered terribly,
-while paralysed for a moment.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime the Guards on the right of the Light Division, and the
-brigade of Highlanders, were storming the heights on the left. Their
-line was almost as regular as though they were in Hyde Park. Suddenly
-a tornado of round and grape, rushed through from the terrible battery,
-and a roar of musketry from behind thinned their front ranks by dozens.
-It was evident that we were just able to contend against the Russians,
-favoured as they were by a great position. At this very time an immense
-mass of Russian infantry were seen moving down towards the battery.
-They halted. It was the crisis of the day. Sharp, angular, and solid,
-they looked as if they were cut out of the solid rock. It was beyond all
-doubt that if our infantry, harassed and thinned as they were, got into
-the battery, they would have to encounter again a formidable fire, which
-they were but ill calculated to bear. Lord Raglan saw the difficulties of
-the situation. He asked if it would be possible to get a couple of guns to
-bear on these masses. The reply was “Yes;” and an artillery officer,
-whose name I do not know, brought up two guns to fire on the Russian
-squares. The first shot missed, but the next, and the next, and the
-next, cut through the ranks so cleanly, and so keenly, that a clear lane
-could be seen for a moment through the square. After a few rounds,
-the columns of the square became broken, wavered to and fro, broke, and
-fled over the brow of the hill, leaving behind them six or seven distinct
-lines of dead, lying as close as possible to each other, marking the
-passage of the fatal messengers. This act relieved our infantry of a
-deadly incubus, and they continued their magnificent and fearful progress
-up the hill. The Duke encouraged his men by voice and example, and
-proved himself worthy of his proud command and of the royal race from
-which he comes. “Highlanders,” said Sir Colin Campbell, ere they
-came to the charge, “I am going to ask a favour of you: it is, that you
-will act so as to justify me in asking permission of the Queen for you to
-wear a bonnet! Don’t pull a trigger till you are within a yard of the
-Russians!” They charged, and well they obeyed their chieftain’s wish;
-Sir Colin had his horse shot under him, but his men took the battery at
-a bound. The Russians rushed out, and left multitudes of dead behind<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>
-them. The Guards had stormed the right of the battery ere the Highlanders
-got into the left, and it is said the Scots Fusilier Guards were
-the first to enter. The Second and Light Division crowned the heights.
-The French turned the guns on the hill against the flying masses, which
-the cavalry in vain tried to cover. A few faint struggles from the
-scattered infantry, a few rounds of cannon and musketry, and the enemy
-fled to the south-east, leaving three generals, three guns, 700 prisoners,
-and 4000 wounded behind them. The battle of the Alma was won. It
-was won with a loss of nearly 3000 killed and wounded on our side. The
-Russians’ retreat was covered by their cavalry, but if we had had an
-adequate force, we could have captured many guns and multitudes of
-prisoners.”</p>
-
-<p>The following graphic account is taken from <cite>Emerson’s Sebastopol</cite>:</p>
-
-<p>“On the 19th September the march commenced. Proceeding southward,
-the French army, under the command of Marshal St. Arnaud, with Caurobert
-and Bosquet as generals of divisions, keeping the coast line; the
-English on their left. The fleets accompanied the march, close to the
-shore, ready to render assistance should circumstances render it necessary.</p>
-
-<p>The English army comprised about 25,000 men, and was composed of
-the following regiments, led as under:&mdash;</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF, LORD RAGLAN.</p>
-
-<p><em>Light Division.</em>&mdash;Lieut.-General Sir G. Brown. Generals of Brigade,
-Colonels Airey and Buller. 7th, 19th, 23rd (Welsh Fusiliers), 33rd,
-77th, and 88th Infantry.</p>
-
-<p><em>First Division.</em>&mdash;Lieut.-General H.R.H. the Duke of Cambridge.
-Generals of Brigade, Major-General Bentinck and Major-General Sir
-Colin Campbell. Battalions, Grenadier Guards, Coldstream Guards,
-Scots Fusiliers; 42nd, 79th, and 93rd Highlanders.</p>
-
-<p><em>Second Division.</em>&mdash;Lieut.-General Sir De Lacy Evans. Generals of
-Brigade, Major-Generals Pennefather and Adams. 30th, 41st, 47th,
-49th, 55th, and 95th Infantry.</p>
-
-<p><em>Third Division.</em>&mdash;Major-General Sir Richard England. Generals of
-Brigade, Colonels Sir J. Campbell and Eyre. 1st, 4th, 28th, 38th, 44th,
-50th, and 63rd Infantry.</p>
-
-<p><em>Fourth Division.</em>&mdash;Lieut.-General Sir George Cathcart. Generals of
-Brigade, Generals Goldie and Torrens. 20th, 21st, 57th, and 63rd
-Infantry; 1st Battalion Rifle Brigade.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><em>Cavalry Division.</em>&mdash;Lieut.-General the Earl of Lucan. Generals of
-Brigade, the Earl of Cardigan and Major-General Scarlett. 8th and 11th
-Dragoons; 17th Lancers.</p>
-
-<p>[The Scots Greys, the Enniskillens, the 1st Royals, and the 4th and
-5th Dragoon Guards, forming the Heavy Brigade, under General Scarlett,
-did not land with the remainder of the army, but joined it after the
-battle of Alma.]</p>
-
-<p><em>Artillery.</em>&mdash;General Strangways.</p>
-
-<p><em>Engineers.</em>&mdash;General Tylden.</p>
-
-<p>On the evening of the 19th, the first actual encounter with the enemy
-occurred. A strong body of Cossacks hovered about our line of march,
-and two or three guns opened fire upon our little force of cavalry from
-the heights on the river Bouljanak, the first stream we had to cross. The
-Earl of Cardigan gallantly charged the hostile troop, who evaded actual
-contact, and retreated until they had led our men within the range of the
-guns. Four of our dragoons were killed and six wounded in this
-skirmish. Two or three of our guns were speedily brought to bear upon
-the enemy, and Cossacks, gunners, and all were soon dispersed.</p>
-
-<p>Another dreary bivouac on the wet ground prepared the armies for the
-great contest which awaited them. At day break on the morning of the
-20th of September&mdash;a day destined to receive an undying fame in our
-military annals,&mdash;the troops resumed their march. As they approached
-the river Alma, and mounted the heights to the north of that once obscure
-but now renowned stream, they saw the preparations which the Russians
-had made to repel the invaders of their territory. The Alma is a small
-river, rising in the mountains in the east of the peninsula, and falling
-into the sea about twelve miles to the north of Sebastopol. The southern
-bank is formed of almost precipitous hills intersected by deep ravines.
-At the mouth of the river the cliffs are several hundred feet high, and
-almost perpendicular towards the sea. A large conical hill was the centre
-of the enemy’s position, and here enormous batteries and entrenchments
-had been formed, while the crown of the hills was occupied by dense
-masses of infantry. On the side facing the Allies, a huge redoubt was
-constructed with two faces, mounting thirteen large guns, and commanding
-the approaches to the summit and the passage of the river. Each side
-of the ravines enfilading the hill had powerful batteries, mounting altogether
-twenty-five guns, and on the cliffs towards the sea an unfinished
-redoubt was placed, and a large force of infantry and artillery held the
-position. It was presumed by the Russian commanders that the precipitous<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-character of the hill was a sufficient defence to their left flank. In
-this expectation they were doomed to bitter disappointment, as the sequel
-will show. The immediate banks of the river were covered with vineyards
-and plantations, affording excellent shelter for the Russian riflemen,
-who were stationed there in strong force. The bridge carrying the main
-road across the river was destroyed, and the village of Burliuk, at its
-northern extremity, was in flames, to prevent its being made a point of
-attack by the Allies.</p>
-
-<p>The effect on our men was almost miraculous. The sight of the foe
-strongly entrenched, and determined to wait their attack, stimulated them
-in an extraordinary degree. Fatigued as they were by the labours they
-had undergone,&mdash;despondent from their five nights’ melancholy bivouac
-on the wet earth, it seemed as if a new life were suddenly infused into
-them. Diarrhœa and dysentery had not quite departed from their ranks,
-and many had returned to the vessels, unable to accompany the march.
-But when they stood on the hill-tops on that memorable morn, and saw
-the tents of the Russian army, not a man but felt the strength of a giant,
-and burned with a fierce desire to cross bayonets with the enemy. Many
-a brave fellow, who had staggered thus far leaning on a comrade’s arm,
-and ready to drop behind and perish by the wayside, begged for a draught
-of brandy, and then, forgetting his weakness, and deriving new strength
-from the occasion, shouldered his musket, took his wonted position among
-his comrades, and marched bravely to the encounter.</p>
-
-<p>Although the spot where they had bivouacked was only three miles
-distant from the river, it was mid-day by the time the allied armies had
-reached its banks, and were drawn up in battle array. It had been
-arranged by the generals that the French should commence the attack,
-and they occupied the extreme right of the extended line. The division
-commanded by General Bosquet, including those renowned warriors, the
-African Zouaves, rested upon the sea, and the left of their army consisted
-of Prince Napoleon’s division. Joining this wing of our allies,
-the veteran Sir De Lacy Evans was posted with the Second Division,
-supported by the Third Division under Sir Richard England. Sir George
-Brown’s Light Division came next; and the Duke of Cambridge led his
-magnificent body of Guards and Highlanders to the extreme left, as a
-support to Sir George Brown. Sir George Cathcart had the important
-but less showy duty of acting as a reserve, and, in conjunction with the
-cavalry under the Earl of Cardigan, guarding the attacking forces from
-any sudden <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup</i> by the Cossacks, who were hovering in suspicious proximity
-to our rear.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Such was the army, composed of the choicest troops, and led by the
-most experienced commanders of France and England, which stood prepared
-to attempt the dislodgment of the Russians from their strongly-fortified
-position. Prince Menschikoff, the Russian commander,&mdash;the
-same who, in his character of diplomatist, had been the agent through
-whom the first insult had been offered to Turkey,&mdash;now, by a singular
-destiny, was the first general upon whom it devolved to measure swords
-with the military champions whom that insult had called into the field.
-His army numbered about 54,000 men, so that numerically the opposing
-forces were very nearly matched; but the Russians had the advantage
-of their almost impregnable position, to approach which a river must be
-forded, broken ground crossed, and steep hills ascended. In addition,
-they were abundantly provided with guns, which were so positioned as
-to sweep the ground over which the attacking force must pass, while the
-Allies had but a small force of artillery. So confident was Menschikoff
-in his advantages, that he did not scruple to boast his ability to hold his
-position for at least three weeks against any force that could be brought
-against him. A number of ladies and civilians from Sebastopol had also
-assembled on the heights to witness the defeat and utter rout of the
-invaders.</p>
-
-<p>The plan of the allied commanders was that the French should make
-a vigorous attack upon the Russian left, and when they had succeeded
-in driving them in upon the main body, the English, taking advantage
-of the confusion, were to cross the river, and endeavour to force the
-centre of the position. The enemy, we have already said, had considered
-that their left was sufficiently protected by the precipitous nature of the
-cliffs, which rendered them almost inaccessible; but it appears they had
-not calculated on the activity of the troops to whom they were opposed.
-The steamers of the allied fleets, shortly before ten o’clock, commenced a
-vigorous shelling of these heights, and soon drove back the small force
-of the enemy which occupied them. The mouth of the river was very
-narrow, and Captain Peel had moored a boat across the stream, which
-materially facilitated the passage of the French soldiers. The Zouaves,
-thoroughly seasoned and trained to the emergencies of guerilla warfare
-in Algeria, stealthily crossed the river, and commenced the ascent of the
-almost perpendicular cliffs, clinging like goats to the rocks, and finding
-a precarious foothold where probably no other soldiers in the world
-could have maintained their position. While they were thus approaching
-the plateau, the main body of the French army dashed through the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>
-river, exposed to a galling fire from the Russian riflemen,&mdash;who were
-hidden in the vineyards and plantations,&mdash;and desperately fighting,
-struggled up the hills. Meanwhile, the gallant Zouaves had reached
-the top of the cliffs, and, rapidly forming into line, charged the Russians,
-paralyzed by their sudden appearance, and drove them back. But in
-achieving this desperate feat, they had separated themselves from the
-main body, and cut off the possibility of retreat. The unfinished
-redoubt, which we have already mentioned, now opened a deadly fire on
-their ranks; and had it not been for the timely arrival of General Bosquet
-and the remainder of the division, who had succeeded in reaching
-the plateau, scarcely a Zouave would have remained to tell the tale of
-that gallant achievement. Prince Napoleon, too, had by this time
-crossed the stream, and arrived at the scene of action, and the indefatigable
-French artillerists had succeeded, with immense difficulty, in
-dragging a few guns up the steep hill-side.</p>
-
-<p>Animated by these reinforcements, the brave Zouaves gallantly charged
-the Russian lines, now concentrated nearer the main body, and advanced
-towards the redoubt whose guns had inflicted such loss in their ranks.
-Two of their number, Lieutenant Poitevin and a sergeant, rushed in
-advance of their comrades, and leaping upon the works, planted the
-French flag on the redoubt. But they paid dearly for their temerity.
-The shouts of the French soldiers, hailing this gallant deed, had scarcely
-reached their ears, when they fell mortally wounded beneath the flag
-they had raised.</p>
-
-<p>Taken by surprise by this desperate assault upon his left wing,
-Prince Menschikoff hastily detached considerable reinforcements from his
-main body to the succour of the embarrassed regiments yielding to the
-prowess of their French antagonists. Then the battle waged fiercely:
-the French, with all the chivalry of their race, gallantly charged the
-Russian masses, and at the bayonet’s point forced them to retreat. The
-enemy’s artillery, however, poured a tremendous fire into the ranks of our
-allies, and for a time the issue of the contest seemed doubtful. Some
-French regiments of the line were driven back, so deadly was the fire to
-which they were exposed; and nothing but the unflinching gallantry of
-the troops who were enabled to hold their ground, prevented them from
-being ignominiously precipitated from the cliffs they had so adventurously
-scaled.</p>
-
-<p>Marshal St. Arnaud, alarmed for the safety of his soldiers, hundreds of
-whom were lying dead around him, so fatal were the volleys from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
-Russian guns and so sure the aim of the riflemen, hastily despatched
-an aide-de-camp to the English commander, calling upon him to bring
-his troops into action without a moment’s delay. “We are massacred,”
-was the message&mdash;certainly not the words which Napoleon, or Murat, or
-Ney, would have used when attacking an enemy considerably less in
-force than themselves; for, be it remembered, Menschikoff still held the
-centre of the position with the main body of the army, which had not
-yet been brought into action. At half-past one o’clock the order to
-advance was given to the English army. The soldiers, who had been
-lying down, so as not to expose themselves unnecessarily to the fire of
-the enemy, sprang to their feet, and rapidly formed into line. Sir G.
-Brown’s Light Division, and the Second Division, under Sir De Lacy
-Evans, were the first to dash into the stream, and through a perfect
-shower of balls from the riflemen concealed in the gardens, and heavier
-missiles from the batteries above, reached the opposite bank.</p>
-
-<p>Since the commencement of the French attack, our artillery had been
-throwing shot into the Russian redoubts, and under cover of this cannonade,
-and the accurate fire of the Rifle Brigade, which protected our
-advance, the two leading divisions succeeded in crossing the stream,
-though not without great loss. The Russians had previously marked out
-the range of their guns, so that they were enabled to pour their volleys
-into our brigades, as they advanced to the stream, with fatal precision.
-The burning village of Burliuk, in front of the position occupied by Sir
-De Lacy Evans, necessitated the separation of his division. General
-Pennefather led the First Brigade and a portion of the Second across the
-river to the right of the village; the remainder, under General Adams,
-crossing to the left. The Light Division struggled manfully up the bank,
-which was rugged and precipitous. The ford was deep and dangerous,
-and as the men, drenched with water, scrambled up the banks, scores of
-their number fell back into the stream pierced by the fatal rifle bullet.
-But the blood of the gallant fellows was flowing hotly in their veins;
-those who, in other times, had borne the shock of battles, felt renewed the
-old spirit which had made them conquerors at Vimiera and at Waterloo;
-those who for the first time trod the fatal field felt an indescribable and
-fierce courage, which the sight of danger and of death infuses into most
-men. Six months of inaction and passive suffering were about to be consummated
-by a glorious victory, which should crown them as conquering
-heroes or immortalize their death. They had stood long “like greyhounds
-on the slips, straining upon the start;” now “the game was afoot,”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-and the old fire of English chivalry was rekindled, and burnt with as
-glowing a flame as of yore.</p>
-
-<p>Quickly forming into line, and opening a sharp fire of musketry, the
-gallant Light Division rapidly advanced towards the conical hill opposite
-to which they had crossed, and immediately beneath the guns of the great
-redoubt. As they passed through the vineyards, the soldiers plucked and
-eagerly ate large bunches of the luscious Crimean grapes, which allayed
-their burning thirst, and somewhat cooled the mad fever of their excitement.
-Sir George Brown gallantly led the charge, and, mounted on a
-white horse, was a conspicuous mark for the enemy. The 7th Royal
-Fusiliers and the 23rd Welsh Fusiliers were among the first in the mad
-career. “Hurrah for the Royal Welsh! Well done! I will remember
-you!” shouted Sir George Brown; and animated by his voice and
-example, the gallant regiment dashed up the hill. Then there opened a
-sheet of fire, and when the smoke lifted, the 7th was broken, and a long
-line of dead marked the path of the fatal missiles. For a moment the
-brave soldiers struggled onwards, and then, blinded and confused, fell
-back to re-form. The Welsh Fusiliers, regardless of the fierce volleys,
-still pressed onwards. Once they paused, as Sir George Brown fell at
-their head, and rolled heavily on the blood-stained ground. In an instant
-he was up again unhurt, and cheering the men to the charge. His horse
-had fallen, pierced by eleven shots, but he was unhurt! They had reached
-the first stockade, had even planted their flag upon the works, when a
-shout was heard&mdash;“Cease firing; the French are in front!” Their
-gallant chief, Colonel Chester, rushing to the front, exclaimed, “No! no!
-on, lads!” As he spoke he fell mortally wounded. Then the regiment,
-confused by the contrary orders, and disheartened, <em>did</em> fall back; and the
-Russians, returning to the guns from which the brave fellows had driven
-them, opened a fire which left a long line of dead through their
-columns. Nine officers and about one hundred men were stretched upon
-the field. The other regiments of the Light Brigade, the 19th, 33rd, 77th,
-and 88th, emulated the courage of the gallant Welshmen, who, after a
-moment’s breathing-time, re-formed, and joined once more in the heroic
-assault.</p>
-
-<p>Onward swept that magnificent charge, officers and men vying with
-each other who should be foremost to avenge their comrades’ death. But
-before they reached the guns, Prince Menschikoff had formed a compact
-mass of Russian infantry on the summit of the hill, which now advanced
-with level bayonets against our exhausted battalions. Breathless from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span>
-their rapid charge up the hill, diminished in numbers, and fatigued from
-their almost superhuman exertions, they were unable to resist the shock,
-and, desperately contesting every inch of ground, slowly yielded to the
-enormous weight of the Russian columns. The gallant 33rd, the Duke
-of Wellington’s regiment, displayed a prowess excelled by none. Their
-colours were borne proudly to the last, and ever in the spot of the greatest
-danger. The Queen’s colours, when the fight was over, showed fourteen
-bullet-holes, and the regimental colours eleven. Nineteen sergeants fell
-around their standards, defending to the last the honour of their regiment,
-and preserving the fame so identified with the career of the departed
-warrior whose name it bore.</p>
-
-<p>While the heroes of the Light Division were thus nobly performing their
-part, Sir De Lacy Evans and General England were gallantly bringing
-their divisions into action. They had forced a passage, with great difficulty,
-and exposed to a most destructive fire, somewhat to the left of their
-compatriots of Sir George Brown’s division, and, breaking through the
-obstacles which awaited them on the bank, rapidly advanced up the
-hill. The 55th and 95th encountered a tremendous fire, which they
-returned with vigour from their muskets, while our artillery did good
-service by an energetic discharge of shot and shell into the enemy’s
-lines. Major Rose, Captains Butler and Scham, fell to rise no more, and
-many other officers were severely wounded; 123 killed and wounded were
-the contribution of this regiment to the day’s slaughter.</p>
-
-<p>As the 95th charged up the hill, one of the most affecting episodes of
-that fierce encounter&mdash;so full of incidents, of unsurpassed courage, and
-pathetic scenes&mdash;occurred. Early in the charge, Captain Eddington, a
-young officer, fell wounded, a ball passing through his chest. The regiment,
-unable to stand against the scathing fire to which they were
-exposed, fell back to re-form, and left the wounded officer on the ground.
-In full view of the regiment, a Russian rifleman advanced, and kneeling
-by his side, appeared to be about to offer his canteen to his lips. A
-thrill passed through the ranks, at the spectacle of a soldier exposing his
-own life thus for the purpose of alleviating the sufferings of a dying
-enemy. No gun would have been pointed against that man, no bayonet
-levelled at his life. It seemed one of those incidents that show the better
-feelings of humanity are not quite extinguished by the breath of war.
-But what was their horror when the rifleman, laying aside his canteen,
-levelled his piece and deliberately blew out the brains of the dying man!
-Among those who witnessed this cowardly assassination was a younger<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
-brother of the captain who had recently exchanged into the regiment,
-that he might share death and danger with his brother, whom he tenderly
-loved. Maddened by the spectacle of his brother’s murder, the
-young lieutenant sprang forward, shouting with frantic energy to the
-men to follow and avenge the deed. One loud yell of execration burst
-from the lips of the soldiers, and bounding onwards, they rushed after
-their leader. Waving his sword above his head, the gallant young man
-was a conspicuous mark, and in another moment fell headlong, pierced
-by a dozen bullets. Thus the two brothers, so fondly attached in life,
-mingled their blood on that fatal hillside&mdash;among thousands of the slain
-perhaps the most generally and deeply mourned.</p>
-
-<p>At length Sir De Lacy Evans, who had received a severe contusion on
-his shoulder, rallied his men, and led them victors to the summit of the
-hill, silencing one of the batteries which had done such execution upon
-the gallant fellows of the Light Division. Sir Richard England’s division
-had fought&mdash;to use the language of one who shared in that charge&mdash;“like
-devils,” and surmounting every impediment, though not without
-dreadful loss, joined their gallant comrades. Everywhere the Russians
-were driven back by the irresistible bayonets of the British, and the conquerors
-literally marched through paths of blood to victory.</p>
-
-<p>As yet we have not detailed the part borne by the magnificent First
-Division,&mdash;the very flower of the British army. The Duke of Cambridge
-had led his Guards and Highlanders across the Alma, to the left of the
-Light Division, and rapidly advanced to its assistance. As they ascended
-the hill, they encountered Sir George Brown’s regiments slowly yielding
-to the immense impetus of the Russian charge. Opening their ranks,
-they allowed their comrades to pass and re-form in their rear, and then the
-enemy for the first time was confronted with the most redoubtable infantry
-soldiers in the world. Then began the most desperate hand-to-hand
-conflict yet witnessed. The Scots Fusiliers had hurried to the rescue
-without waiting to form properly, and for a brief space were confused.
-But the individual courage of the members of that distinguished corps
-never for an instant was found deficient. Surrounded by the enemy,
-they fought with undaunted valour. Viscount Chewton, a distinguished
-young captain, who had gained renown in both services, having been
-originally a midshipman, and having borne an honourable part in the
-Indian campaign, dashed forward, and, waving his bearskin, shouted to
-them to advance. Thirteen other officers, with reckless bravery, followed
-his example, and in a few minutes eleven of their number were wounded.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>
-The gallant Chewton had his leg broken by a ball, and fell within fifty
-yards of the redoubt. Before he could be rescued, several Russians
-attacked the fallen man, and beat him savagely with the butt-ends of
-their muskets, others stabbing him at the same time with their bayonets.
-A strong man, he struggled desperately; and when at length rescued and
-borne from the field, his body was found to be almost covered with
-wounds. He lingered for a few days, and then expired. Two young
-officers, Lieutenants Lindsay and Thistlethwayte, who bore the colours,
-were surrounded by the enemy, and, except the four colour-sergeants,
-isolated from their comrades. The sergeants were one by one struck
-down; and then these gallant young men, back to back, kept the foe at
-bay, and, almost miraculously escaping unhurt, cut their way through
-and carried their colours safely to the top of the hill.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Light Division had re-formed their lines, and now
-returned to the charge, in the footsteps of the dauntless Guards. In
-vain broad sheets of fire poured through the ranks&mdash;no man flinched.
-The flag which the Fusiliers had planted on the redoubt was still there,
-and pointed out the path they were to tread. Their royal leader proved
-himself worthy of his charge, and encouraged by his example the valour
-of his men. The Russians quailed before the tremendous onset; and
-when the Highlanders, who had reserved their fire, came dashing up to
-the front, and, after discharging a tremendous volley, charged at the
-bayonet’s point, the rout was complete. Thu enemy fled terror-stricken,
-and the Guards and Highlanders together leaped into the redoubt, the
-gunners precipitately hastening after their flying comrades.</p>
-
-<p>At the summit of the hill a brief stand was made, and it seemed as if
-the contest were about to be renewed; but the Highlanders, levelling
-their bayonets, advanced at a rapid pace, and the enemy, dashing
-down their accoutrements and arms, fled, like frightened sheep, down the
-declivity.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime the French had driven back the Russian left wing upon the
-main body, and now brought to bear, with deadly effect, their guns upon
-the retreating foe; and the second and third divisions of our army arrived
-upon the scene. The victory was complete: a great army, in a position
-of immense strength, had been ignominiously defeated, in less than three
-hours, by the sheer valour of English and French soldiers. True, we
-had paid dearly for our victory; but the annals of the British army do
-not record a nobler achievement.</p>
-
-<p>We were unable to pursue the fugitives&mdash;our cavalry was too weak in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span>
-numbers to be detached from the main body of the army: had we been
-stronger in that branch of the service, the victory of the Alma might
-have been equivalent to the conquest of the Crimea. We afterwards
-ascertained that Sebastopol was emptied of its garrison to strengthen the
-army, and had we been in a position to follow the retreating forces, we
-might have inflicted a blow on Russian strength from which it would not
-in all probability have soon recovered; as it was, the Allies remained masters
-of the field, and the defeated Menschikoff fled towards Baktchi-Serai,
-leaving behind him, according to his own admission, 1,762 dead, and
-2,720 wounded. Russian assertions are not the most trustworthy, especially
-when the circumstances are unfavourable to themselves, and the
-probability is that the loss was really much greater. The English had
-353 killed, and 1,612 wounded, many of whom afterwards died of their
-injuries. Our allies lost 256 killed, and 1,087 wounded.</p>
-
-<p>On the bloody field reposed the victors when that day’s dreadful work
-was done: amid the dead and dying&mdash;the lifebreath painfully passing
-from the lips of wounded friend and foe&mdash;some of our bravo fellows, pillowed
-on their knapsacks, slept a fitful sleep; some crept among the heaps
-of dying, searching for friend or brother, and some supported the drooping
-head and administered a draught of water to the fevered lips of
-wounded comrade or dying enemy. The fight was over, the lust of blood
-satisfied, and all the better qualities of manhood, mercy and forgiveness,
-appeared beneath that setting sun. Sometimes, as they stooped to assist a
-dying enemy, the Muscovite, trained to treachery, with a final effort,
-would discharge a pistol at their heads; and then the old war spirit was
-once more aroused, and with clubbed musket, or deadly bayonet, the malevolent
-Russian was sent to his account. The sailors, who had watched
-the progress of the battle from the ships, when they saw that victory was
-ours, swarmed ashore, and hurried to the scene of strife. There they
-bore the wounded to the surgeon’s quarters, and to the ships, with the
-tenderness of women. Little drummer-boys might be seen among the
-prostrate heroes, comforting and rendering assistance with a care and zeal
-beyond their years. A fatigue party was ordered on service to bury the
-dead; and the surgeons, with bare arms and splashed with blood, strove
-by their skill and energy to alleviate the sufferings and save the lives of
-the poor fellows brought to them.</p>
-
-<p>A frightful spectacle was that hill-side of the Alma, on the evening of
-the renowned 20th of September, 1854. England’s best and bravest lay
-dead, their pale faces lit by the setting sun: some retained the expression<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
-of that intense energy which bore them fearlessly to the mouths of the
-Russian guns; some, with faces calm and beautiful as an infant’s, seemed
-peacefully sleeping, and smiling as they slept: others, with limbs contracted,
-and features frightfully distorted, bore witness to the fierce
-agonies of the death-struggle. Russian and English and French lay
-commingled, as they fell in the deadly struggle; and among the heaps of
-corpses, many in whom the spark of life yet lingered, lay miserably groaning,
-or faintly crawled with shattered limbs, in search of help. Some of
-the bodies were headless, the brains scattered around the bloody trunk:
-and others were so frightfully mutilated that it was difficult to recognize
-any trace of humanity. While some of our men helped to bear the
-wounded from the field, and bury the corpses of the slain, others hovered
-about, and plundered the dead of clothes, arms and such matters as could
-be carried away; the sailors especially were active in securing trophies of
-war. Russian orders and crosses, Russian arms, and even the black
-bread from the soldiers’ knapsacks, were eagerly sought; the boots were
-real prizes, and the seamen, who would heartily lend a hand to succour a
-wounded comrade, or even a foe, had no delicacy in appropriating the
-clothing of the dead. An expeditious mode of measurement, by which
-they secured the articles which would best fit, caused some amusement,
-even at such a time. Jack, seating himself at the feet of a dead Russian,
-placed the sole of his foot against that of the corpse; if they agreed in
-size, the boots were at once appropriated; if otherwise, the critical mariner
-proceeded to another selection.</p>
-
-<p>For two days the armies remained upon the field; had they marched
-at once, it is more than probable, nay, almost certain, they might have
-entered Sebastopol with but little resistance. Marshal St. Arnaud wished
-to make an immediate advance; but Lord Raglan refused to leave his
-wounded untended on the field. Though possibly we ultimately lost by
-this delay, we can scarcely blame a general who showed such a fine humanity
-even among the horrors of warfare. Our English courage is of the
-old chivalric sort&mdash;we fight as men, for great principles, not for the lust
-of conquest: our soldiers are every one a treasure of immense value,
-rightly used, not to be cast away to perish when their first use is passed.
-Human life is to Englishmen intensely sacred: we cheerfully lay it down
-when demanded, and in proportion do we honour and cherish those who
-have perilled it in our cause. A single life wilfully sacrificed for a mere
-strategical advantage would have been a stain on our English honour,
-which we should not speedily have forgiven.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At early morning, on the 23rd of September, the Allies turned their
-backs on the memorable heights. Two men, strong and unwounded,
-remained upon the field, and watched their departure; and in all that
-proud array, flushed with victory, there were none who bore more heroic
-hearts. Upwards of 200 wounded Russians still lay upon the field; and
-Dr. Thompson, surgeon of the 44th regiment, and his servant, volunteered
-to remain, and administer to their wants. Every moment increased
-their loneliness and their danger; for predatory bands of Cossack horsemen
-still hovered around the scene, against whose revengeful lances the plea
-of mercy and Christian charity would have been but an ineffectual shield;
-and yet these two brave men quailed not in their mission, and many a
-dying foe had his last pangs soothed, and parting agonies alleviated, by
-the ministrations of these good Samaritans of peace.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ALMANZA.&mdash;This battle was fought, April 4th, 1707, between the
-confederate forces under the Earl of Galway, and the French and
-Spaniards, commanded by James Fitzjames, Duke of Berwick, the
-illegitimate son of James II of England, when most of the English
-were killed or made prisoners of war, having been abandoned by the
-Portuguese at the first charge.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALMEIDA.&mdash;This was an important position, as a frontier town
-of Portugal, in the Peninsular war. Massena laid siege to it August
-15th, 1810, and the governor capitulated August 27th following. The
-French crossed into Spain, leaving a garrison at Almeida, blockaded by
-the British, April 6th, 1811. It was evacuated by the French, May
-11th, of the same year. In the end Wellington compelled Massena to
-retire from Portugal, but the route of the French was tracked by horrid
-desolation.</p>
-
-
-<p>ALNEY.&mdash;This was rather a single combat than a battle, between
-Edmund Ironside and Canute the Great, in sight of their armies. The
-latter was wounded, when he proposed a division of the kingdom, the
-south part falling to Edmund, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1016; but this prince having been
-murdered at Oxford, shortly after the treaty, according to some by the
-treachery of Aldric Streon, Canute was left in the peaceable possession
-of the whole kingdom, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1017.</p>
-
-
-<p>AMBOYNA.&mdash;This place is celebrated for the memorable massacre
-of the English factors by the Dutch, February 17th, 1623; they were
-cruelly tortured and put to death on an accusation of a conspiracy to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>
-expel the Dutch from the island, where the two nations resided and
-jointly shared in the pepper trade of Java. Amboyna was seized by the
-English, February 16th, 1796, but was restored by the treaty of Amiens
-in 1802. It was again seized by the British, February 17th, 1810, and
-was restored at the peace of 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>AMHERSTBURG.&mdash;Fought between the Canadians and Americans.
-In July, 1812, the American General Hull, with a force of 2500 men,
-crossed over from Detroit, and entered the Western district, where he
-issued a proclamation inviting the inhabitants to join his standard. At
-this time the British force on the frontier was merely nominal, and could
-offer little resistance. As soon as General Brock heard of this invasion,
-he prorogued the Parliament, then sitting at Toronto, and proceeded
-westward. He arrived on the 12th of August at Amherstburg, where
-he mustered about 330 regulars, and 400 militia and six hundred
-Indians. Hull, whose force, weakened by sickness and sending away
-two detachments, is said at this time not to have exceeded 800 effective
-men, retreated across the river, withdrawing the cannon prepared for the
-siege of Amherstburg, and shut himself up in Detroit. General Brock,
-instantly crossing over, advanced upon the fort and prepared for an
-immediate assault. A white flag, however, appeared from the walls, and
-a capitulation was signed, by which the whole American force, including
-the detachments, were made prisoners and sent to Montreal. Loud and
-just complaints were made by the Americans against the conduct of
-Hull, who was afterwards tried and condemned to be shot, but was
-spared on account of his age and former services.</p>
-
-
-<p>AMIENS, PEACE OF.&mdash;Between Great Britain, Holland, France
-and Spain, signed March 27th, 1801.</p>
-
-
-<p>AMSTERDAM.&mdash;Capital of Holland, surrendered to the King of
-Prussia, when he invaded Holland in favor of the Stadtholder in 1737.
-The French were admitted, without resistance, January 18th, 1795.
-The ancient government restored in November, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>ANDRÉ, MAJOR.&mdash;An adjutant general of the British army, taken
-prisoner by the Americans whilst returning in disguise from a secret
-expedition to the American General Arnold; hanged October 2nd, 1780.</p>
-
-
-<p>ANGRIA.&mdash;A pirate’s fort on the coast of Malabar, invested by
-Admiral Watson, and destroyed 1756.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>ANHOLT, ISLAND OF.&mdash;Owing to the injury done by the Danish
-cruisers to British commerce, this island was taken possession of by
-England. The Danes made an attempt to regain it with a force of
-4000, but were gallantly repulsed. The British force opposed to them
-did not amount to more than 150 men, yet triumphed in a close and
-desperate engagement, March 14th, 1811.</p>
-
-
-<p>ANJOU, <span class="fs70">OR</span> BLAUGÉ.&mdash;This battle was fought between the English
-and French armies April 3rd, 1421. The French were commanded by
-the Dauphin of France, who defeated the English, on whose side the
-Duke of Clarence and 1500 men perished on the field; the Duke was
-slain by Sir Allan Swinton, a Scotch knight, who commanded a company
-at arms; and the earls of Somerset, Dorset, and Huntingdon were taken
-prisoners. This was the first battle that turned the tide of success
-against the English in their first wars with France.</p>
-
-
-<p>ANTOIGN.&mdash;This battle was fought between the central army of the
-French and the Allies, August 13th, 1792, in which 4500 Austrians
-and Prussians were killed, 3,500 taken prisoners, and 600 emigrants
-shut up in Longwy; 900 French were killed in the action; 30 pieces
-of battering cannon and howitzers, with all the baggage of the combined
-army, were captured.</p>
-
-
-<p>AQUILEIA.&mdash;In the first battle fought there, Constantine II was
-slain by Constans towards the close of March, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 340. In the second,
-Maximus was defeated and slain by Theodosius, July 28th. <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 388.
-In the third, Theodosius defeated Eugenius and Arbogastes, the Gaul,
-and remained sole emperor of the Roman world, September 6th, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span>
-394. Eugenius was put to death, and Arbogastes died by his own hand,
-mortified by his overthrow.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARBELA.&mdash;The third and decisive battle fought between Alexander
-the Great and Darius Codomanus, king of Persia, which decided the
-fate of Persia, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 331. The army of Darius consisted of 1,000,000 of
-foot and 100,000 horse; the Macedonian army amounted to only 40,000
-foot and 7,000 horse. The gold and silver found in the cities of Susa,
-Babylon, and Persepolis, which fell into the hands of Alexander, after
-this victory, amounted to £30,000,000, and the jewels and other precious
-spoil, belonging to Darius, sufficed to load 20,000 mules and 5,000
-camels. At the battle of Arbela, the Persians lost 300,000, or as some,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
-with greater probability, say 40,000, whilst the Macedonians had only
-500 slain. Darius betook himself to flight, and was slain by Bessus,
-Governor of Bactria, who was punished for his perfidy in the following
-manner:&mdash;He was taken and bound naked, hand and foot, and four trees
-having been by main force bent down to the ground, and one of the
-criminal’s limbs tied to each of them, the trees, as they were suffered to
-return to their natural position, flew back with prodigious violence, each
-carrying with it one of the limbs.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARCOLA.&mdash;This battle was fought between the French, under
-General Bonaparte, and the Austrians, under Field-Marshal Alvinzy,
-November 19th, 1796. The result of this bloody conflict, which was
-fought for eight successive days, was the loss on the part of the Austrians of
-12,000 men in killed, wounded, and prisoners, with 4 flags and 18 guns.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARGENTARIA.&mdash;This battle was one of the most renowned of its
-times. It was fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 378, in Alsace, between the Allemanni and
-the Romans, the former being defeated by the latter, with the loss of
-more than 35,000 men, out of their whole army of 40,000.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARKLOW.&mdash;This battle was fought June 10th, 1798, between the
-insurgent Irish, amounting to 31,000, and a small regular force of British,
-which signally defeated them.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARMADA.&mdash;Philip, king of Spain, after some years of preparation
-in all the ports of his extensive dominions, had assembled in the river
-Tagus a fleet of 130 large vessels, carrying nearly 30,000 men, and
-the Prince of Parma had collected, in the ports of the Netherlands,
-ships and boats for the embarkation of an equal number of his veteran
-troops. To resist these formidable preparations, Elizabeth had only a
-navy of 34 ships, but the nobility and the seaports fitted out such a
-number of vessels at their own expense, that there soon was at sea a fleet
-of 180 vessels of all kinds, large and small. The chief command was committed
-to Howard of Effingham, Lord High-Admiral of England, and
-Drake, Hawkins, and Frobisher held commands under him. The fleet
-was stationed at Plymouth. A land army of 30,000 men was posted at
-Tilbury, in Essex, under the command of Lord Leicester, for the protection
-of the city of London, while another of equal strength was destined
-for the guard of the Queen’s person.</p>
-
-<p>On the 29th of May, 1588, the Invincible Armada (i.e. <em>Fleet</em>), as it
-was proudly styled, sailed from the Tagus, but owing to a storm which it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span>
-encountered, it did not appear off the coast of England till the 19th of
-July. On that day it was descried near the Lizard point, in Cornwall,
-by a Scottish pirate, who made all the sail he could to convey the intelligence
-to Plymouth, and the Admiral got his fleet out to sea with as little
-delay as possible.</p>
-
-<p>As the Spanish Admiral had orders not to engage in hostilities till he
-should have seen the Prince of Parma’s army landed in England, he took
-no notice of the English fleet, but steadily directed his course up the
-Channel. The Armada sailed in the form of a crescent, of which the
-horns were seven miles asunder. Its motion was slow, though every sail
-was spread; “The winds,” says the historian, “being as it were tired with
-carrying the ships, and the ocean groaning beneath their weight.” The
-English ships, which were smaller and more active than those of the
-Armada, followed to harass it and cut off stragglers, and during the six
-days which it took to reach Calais, it suffered considerably from their
-persevering attacks. At Calais the Admiral learned that the Prince could
-not embark his troops for want of stores and sailors, and while he waited,
-the Armada narrowly escaped destruction from fire-ships sent into it by
-the English. A violent tempest succeeded, which drove it among the
-shoals on the coast of Zealand; and a council of war determined that, as
-it was now in too shattered a condition to attempt anything against the
-enemy, it were best to return to Spain without delay; but as the passage
-down the Channel was so full of hazard, it was resolved to sail round Scotland
-and Ireland. The Armada, therefore, set sail; the English pursued
-it as far as Flamborough-head, where want of ammunition forced
-them to give over the chase. Storms, however, assailed the Armada, and
-several of the vessels were cast away on the coast of Ireland, where the
-crews were butchered by the barbarous natives. The total loss was 30
-large ships and 10,000 men. Philip received the intelligence with great
-tranquillity, and ordered public thanks to God and the saints for the
-calamity not having been greater.</p>
-
-<p>In this great danger of herself and kingdom, Elizabeth had shown the
-spirit of a heroine. She visited the camp at Tilbury, rode along the lines
-mounted on a white palfrey, and cheered the soldiers by her animated
-language. When the danger was over she went in state to St. Paul’s,
-and publicly returned thanks to Heaven. She granted pensions to the
-disabled seamen, created the Admiral, Earl of Nottingham, and bestowed
-honours and rewards on his officers. The sudden death of Leicester,
-shortly after he had disbanded his army, intercepted the favours she
-might have designed for him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>ARMED NEUTRALITY.&mdash;A confederacy of the Northern powers
-against England, commenced by the Empress of Russia, in 1780. It
-resulted in the destruction of the Danish fleet before Copenhagen, April,
-1801. This gave England the acknowledged claim to the empire of the
-sea. The neutrality was soon after dissolved.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARMAGH.&mdash;This battle was fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1318, against Edward
-Bruce, who was defeated, taken, and beheaded at Dundalk, and with
-him 6200 Scots lost their lives.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARMISTICES, CELEBRATED.&mdash;The most celebrated armistices
-recorded in Modern History are the following:&mdash;That of Leobon, in 1797,
-was signed a few days after the victory of Tagliamento, gained by Napoleon
-I over Prince Charles. It was Bonaparte himself who proposed
-it. This armistice was followed by the preliminaries of Leobon
-and the treaty of Campo-Formio. The armistice of Stayer, concluded on
-the 25th December, 1800, took place after the battle of Hohenlinden. It
-was signed by Moreau, on the 16th January, 1801. Brune signed the
-armistice of Treviso, which delivered into the hands of the French the
-fortified places of Ferrara, Peschiera and Porto-Legnano. He was
-reproached with not having demanded Mantua. In 1805, Murat concluded
-an armistice at Hollebrun, which saved the Russian army, and
-was the cause of a severe letter written to him by the Emperor. On the
-very evening of the battle of Austerlitz, the Emperor of Austria demanded
-and obtained an armistice, which was preliminary to the peace of Presburg.
-Another armistice, also celebrated, was signed after the battle of
-Friedland, and led to the peace of Tilsit. At Wagram took place the
-armistice of Zoaim, which was the prelude to the peace of Vienna, 1809.
-Lastly, on the 4th of June, 1813, after Bautzen, was signed the armistice
-of Pleiswitz, which the Emperor Napoleon I himself considered a
-fault.</p>
-
-
-<p>ARTILLERY.&mdash;The first piece was invented by Schwartz, a German
-Cordelier monk, soon after the invention of gunpowder, in 1330. First
-used by the English by Edward III at the battle of Crecy, in 1346,
-when that king had 4 pieces of cannon, which greatly aided in his gaining
-the battle. Brass cannon, first used 1635&mdash;improvements made by
-Browne in 1728, and have continued ever since.</p>
-
-
-<p>ASCALON.&mdash;This battle was fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1192. Richard I of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-England, commanding the Christian army, met and defeated the Sultan
-Saladin’s army of 300,000 Saracens and other infidels. No less than 40,000
-of the enemy were left dead on the field of battle, and the victorious
-Richard marched to Jerusalem.</p>
-
-
-<p>ASPERNE.&mdash;This battle was fought between the Austrian army
-under the archduke Charles, and the French, on the 21st of May, 1809,
-and two following days. In this most sanguinary fight the loss of the former
-army exceeded 20,000 men, and the loss of the French was more than
-30,000; it ended in the defeat of Bonaparte, who commanded in person,
-and was the severest check he had yet received. The bridge of the Danube
-was destroyed and his retreat endangered; but the success of the Austrians
-had no beneficial effect on the subsequent prosecution of the war.</p>
-
-
-<p>ASSAYE.&mdash;Fought September 23rd, 1803, between the Duke of Wellington
-(then General Arthur Wellesley) and Scindiah and the Rajah of
-Berar. This was Wellington’s <em>first</em> great battle in which he opposed a force
-fully ten times greater than his own. In Stocqueler’s Life of the “Iron
-Duke” we have the following account of this battle: “Scindiah’s army
-having changed its position, occupied the whole space between the Kaitna
-and Assaye, with a great number of guns in front, and commenced a murderous
-cannonade. The small number of British guns was quite incapable
-of coping with this vast battery. General Wellesley, therefore, directed
-his infantry to advance with the bayonet.</p>
-
-<p>With the determined courage which had given them victory at
-Seringapatam, in the actions with Dhoondia Waugh, and on the walls of
-Ahmednuggur, the line dashed forward, carried the guns on the right,
-and approached Assaye. At this moment a cloud of Mahratta horse
-had stolen round the village, and fell upon them&mdash;sabre to bayonet&mdash;with
-characteristic fury. The 74th regiment wavered&mdash;the charge
-was too much for them.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Maxwell of the 19th Light Dragoons saw that the critical
-moment had arrived, <em>Forward!</em> was the word. Falling upon the Mahratta
-cavalry, the Dragoons gave the British infantry time to rally, cut up the
-Mahratta horse, pushed through the Scindiah’s left, and threw the whole
-of that part of the army into confusion. In the meantime the enemy’s
-centre, which had remained untouched, closed in upon the ground before
-occupied by their left wing, and uniting with such of their infantry and
-artillery as had been passed over unhurt by the British cavalry, formed
-itself into a kind of crescent, with its right horn resting on the river<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span>
-Jouah, and its left on the village of Assaye; thus presenting themselves
-in a fresh position on the flank of our infantry, on which, having collected
-a considerable number of guns, they recommenced a heavy fire. The battle
-was now to be fought over again, with this difference, that the contending
-forces had changed sides, and had the enemy’s horse behaved with the
-least spirit, while our cavalry was absent in pursuit of their broken battalions,
-there is no guessing what the consequences might have been; but,
-happily for General Wellesley, they kept aloof. To oppose the enemy in
-their new position, the Sepoy battalion on the right was immediately
-advanced against them, but without effect, being obliged to retire. Another
-was brought forward and equally repulsed. The cavalry, having by this
-time returned from the pursuit, and formed on the left, and the enemy’s
-horse having disappeared before them, the General ordered the 78th regiment
-and the 7th cavalry up, to head a fresh attack against the enemy’s
-infantry and guns, which still defended their position with obstinacy. No
-sooner, however, had he formed the 78th regiment in line, in directing
-which his horse’s leg was carried off by a cannon shot, than the enemy
-without waiting an attack, commenced their retreat across the Jouah,
-which they passed in tolerable order before our troops could come up with
-them. Previously to this last attack Colonel Maxwell had requested and
-obtained permission to charge a considerable body of infantry and guns,
-which having formed part of the reserve, were seen retiring in good order,
-along the right bank of the Jouah.</p>
-
-<p>The 19th Dragoons were not long in coming up with the enemy, who
-having formed with their left to the Jouah, steadily waited their approach.
-The charge was sounded. The Dragoons advanced with rapidity, amidst
-a shower of musketry and grape, and had already got almost within
-reach of the bayonets of the enemy, who still gallantly stood their ground.</p>
-
-<p>“At this moment,” writes an officer engaged in the charge, “instead
-of dashing among their ranks, I suddenly found my horse swept round as
-it were by an eddy torrent. Away we galloped right shoulders forward,
-along the whole of the enemy’s line, receiving their fire as we passed, till
-having turned our backs on them, we took to our heels manfully; every
-one called out <em>Halt! Halt!</em> while nobody would set the example! till at
-last a trumpet having sounded, we pulled up, but in complete disorder,
-dragoons and native cavalry, pell-mell. On this occasion Colonel Maxwell
-fell, pierced by a grape-shot. He was gallantly leading the charge when
-he received his death blow. Having involuntarily checked his horse and
-thrown his arm back, when he received his wound, the soldiers immediately<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
-behind him, not knowing the cause, mistook the gesture for a signal
-to retire, and did so accordingly. At least this was the reason afterwards
-assigned for the failure, and if true, shows how the fate of armies, and
-even of nations, may depend on the direction of a single shot.” Recovering
-from their disorder, the Dragoons renewed the charge with terrible
-effect, and the enemy gave way in every direction.</p>
-
-<p>Thus closed this memorable battle, one of the most bloody on record
-to the victors. Out of about 4500 men in action, upwards of 2000 were
-either killed or wounded, the former amounting to more than one-third
-of the whole number.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ASSYRIANS <span class="fs70">AND</span> JEWS.&mdash;the Battles, &amp;c., between&mdash;<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 710.
-These battles resulted in the total destruction of the army of Sennacharib,
-so graphically described by the Sacred penman&mdash;and afterwards in the
-destruction of Jerusalem, the overthrow of Solomon’s Temple, and the
-exile of the Jews to Babylon, for 70 years.</p>
-
-
-<p>ATHLONE.&mdash;The English army under General Ginckel stormed
-Athlone, then a town of prodigious strength&mdash;crossing the Shannon in
-the face of the Irish army, yet not losing more than 50 men. This bold
-and successful enterprise procured for Ginckel the title of Earl of
-Athlone, 1691. <em>See <a href="#AUG">Aughrim</a>.</em></p>
-
-
-<p>ATTILA.&mdash;Surnamed <em>The Scourge of God</em>, ravaged all Europe, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span>
-447. He invaded the Roman empire with an army of 500,000 Huns, and
-laid waste all the provinces at Chalons-sur-Marne. Aetius, the Roman
-prefect, met him, and defeated him with the loss of 200,000 men.
-Afterwards he was as signally defeated by Thorismond, King of the
-Goths, and died in the midst of his career.</p>
-
-
-<p>AUERSTADT, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In this most sanguinary conflict,
-between the French and Prussian armies, October 14th, 1806, the
-Prussians were routed on every side, having lost 200 pieces of cannon,
-30 standards, and 28,000 prisoners, and leaving 30,000 slain on the
-battle field. Both the King of Prussia and Napoleon commanded at this
-engagement. The French Emperor immediately afterwards entered
-Berlin, from which city he issued his memorable Berlin Decrees.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="AUG" id="AUG"></a></div>
-<p>AUGHRIM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Near Athlone, in Ireland. This
-battle was fought, July 12th, 1691, between the Irish, headed by the
-French General St. Ruth, and the English under General Ginckel, when<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
-the former lost 7000 men; the latter only 600 killed and 960 wounded.
-St. Ruth was slain. This engagement proved decisively fatal to the
-interests of James II in Ireland, Ginckel was immediately created Earl
-of Athlone; the ball by which St. Ruth was killed is still preserved suspended
-in the choir of St. Patrick’s Cathedral, Dublin.</p>
-
-
-<p>AUGSBURG, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Imperialists
-and the French army, the latter commanded by Moreau; who obtained
-so complete a victory, that Augsburg and Munich were opened to him.
-It was fought August 26th, 1796; Moreau, September 2nd following,
-again defeated the Austrians on the Jun, and again, September 7th, at
-Mainburg.</p>
-
-
-<p>AUSTERLITZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought December 2nd, 1805,
-between the French and Austrian armies; gained by the former. Three
-Emperors commanded at this battle, Alexander of Russia, Francis of
-Austria, and Napoleon of France. The killed and wounded exceeded
-40,000 on the side of the Allies, who lost besides, 40 standards, 150 pieces
-of cannon, and many thousands of prisoners. This decisive victory of
-the French led to the treaty of Presburg, which was signed December
-26th same year.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="B" id="B"></a>B.</h3>
-
-
-<p>BABYLON.&mdash;This city was first taken by Ninus, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 2059, then
-by Esar-haddon, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 680. Both Darius and Cyrus took the city, the
-first through the fidelity of his officer Zopyrus, who having cut off his nose
-and ears fled to the Babylonians, and was admitted within the walls, and
-found means shortly afterwards to betray the city&mdash;the other by turning
-the course of the river Euphrates, and marching his soldiers up the dry
-bed into the city.</p>
-
-
-<p>BADAJOS, SIEGE OF.&mdash;This important frontier fortress had surrendered
-to the French, March 11th, 1811, and was invested by the
-British under Lord Wellington, on March 16th, 1812; and stormed and
-taken on April following. The siege is one of the most important in the
-annals of warfare; for the victory was not only a glorious military
-achievement in itself, but it obliged the French, who had entered Portugal
-for the purpose of plunder, to commence a precipitate retreat from
-that kingdom. For particulars, see Life of Wellington, and Napier’s Peninsular
-War.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>BADEN, TREATY OF.&mdash;Between France and the Emperor, September
-7th, 1814. It was erected into a grand duchy of the Rhenish
-Confederation in 1806. Its territorial acquisitions, by its alliance with
-France, was guaranteed by the Vienna Congress of 1815.</p>
-
-
-<p>BALAKLAVA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought October 25th, 1854. If
-the exhibition of the most brilliant valour, of the excess of courage,
-and of a daring which would have reflected lustre on the best days of
-chivalry can afford full consolation for the disaster of to-day, we can
-have no reason to regret the melancholy loss which we sustained in a
-contest with a savage and barbarous enemy.</p>
-
-<p>I shall proceed to describe, to the best of my power, what occurred
-under my own eyes, and to state the facts which I have heard from men
-whose veracity is unimpeachable, reserving to myself the exercise of the
-right of private judgment in making public and in suppressing the details
-of what occurred on this memorable day. Before I proceed to my narrative,
-I must premise that a certain feeling existed in some quarters that
-our cavalry had not been properly handled since they landed in the
-Crimea, and that they had lost golden opportunities from the indecision
-and excessive caution of their leaders. It was said that our cavalry ought
-to have been manœuvred at Bouljanak in one way or in another, according
-to the fancy of the critic. It was affirmed, too, that the Light Cavalry
-were utterly useless in the performance of one of their most important
-duties&mdash;the collection of supplies for the army&mdash;that they were “above
-their business, and too fine gentlemen for their work;” that our horse
-should have pushed on after the flying enemy after the battle of the Alma,
-to their utter confusion, and with the certainty of taking many guns and
-prisoners; and, above all, that at Mackenzie’s farm first, and at the gorge
-near Inkermann, subsequently, they had been improperly restrained from
-charging, and had failed in gaining great successes, which would have
-entitled them to a full share of the laurels of the campaign, solely owing to
-the timidity of the officer in command. The existence of this feeling was
-known to many of our cavalry, and they were indignant and exasperated
-that the faintest shade of suspicion should rest on any of their corps. With
-the justice of these aspersions they seemed to think they had nothing to
-do, and perhaps the prominent thought in their minds was that they
-would give such an example of courage to the world, if the chance offered
-itself, as would shame their detractors for ever.</p>
-
-<p>In my last I mentioned that several battalions of Russian infantry had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
-crossed the Tchernaya, and that they threatened the rear of our position
-and our communication with Balaklava. Their bands could be heard
-playing at night by the travellers along the Balaklava road to the camp,
-but they “showed” but little during the day, and kept up among the
-gorges and mountain passes through which the roads to Inkermann, Simpheropol,
-and the south-east, of the Crimea wind towards the interior.
-The position we occupied, in reference to Balaklava was supposed by most
-people to be very strong&mdash;even impregnable. Our lines were formed by
-natural mountain slopes in the rear, along which the French had made
-very formidable entrenchments. Below those entrenchments, and very
-nearly in a right line across the valley beneath, are four conical hillocks,
-one rising above the other as they recede from our lines; the furthest,
-which joins the chain of mountains opposite to our ridges being named
-Canrobert’s Hill, from the meeting there of that General with Lord
-Raglan after the march to Balaklava. On the top of each of these hills
-the Turks had thrown up earthen redoubts, defended by 250 men each,
-and armed with two or three guns&mdash;some heavy ship guns&mdash;lent by us
-to them, with one artilleryman in each redoubt to look after them. These
-hills cross the valley of Balaklava at the distance of about two and a half
-miles from the town. Supposing the spectator, then, to take his stand
-on one of the heights forming the rear of our camp before Sebastopol, he
-would see the town of Balaklava, with its scanty shipping, its narrow strip
-of water, and its old forts on his right hand; immediately below he would
-behold the valley and plain of coarse meadow land, occupied by our cavalry
-tents, and stretching from the base of the ridge on which he stood to
-the foot of the formidable heights at the other side; he would see the
-French trenches lined with Zouaves a few feet beneath, and distant from
-him, on the slope of the hill; a Turkish redoubt lower down, then another
-in the valley, then, in a line with it, some angular earthworks, then, in
-succession, the other two redoubts up to Canrobert’s Hill. At the distance
-of two or two and a half miles across the valley there is an abrupt
-rocky mountain range of most irregular and picturesque formation,
-covered with scanty brushwood here and there, or rising into barren pinnacles
-and <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">plateaux</i> of rock. In outline and appearance this portion of
-the landscape is wonderfully like the Trosachs. A patch of blue sea is
-caught in between the overhanging cliff’s of Balaklava as they close in the
-entrance to the harbour on the right. The camp of the Marines, pitched
-on the hill sides more than 1000 feet above the level of the sea, is opposite
-to you as your back is turned to Sebastopol and your right side towards<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span>
-Balaklava. On the road leading up the valley, close to the entrance of
-the town, and beneath these hills, is the encampment of the 93rd Highlanders.</p>
-
-<p>The cavalry lines are nearer to you below, and are some way in advance
-of the Highlanders, but nearer to the town than the Turkish redoubts. The
-valley is crossed here and there by small waves of land. On your left the
-hills and rocky mountain ranges gradually close in towards the course of
-the Tchernaya, till at three or four miles’ distance from Balaklava, the
-valley is swallowed up in a mountain gorge and deep ravines, above which
-rise tiers after tiers of desolate whitish rock, garnished now and then by
-bits of scanty herbage, and spreading away towards the east and south,
-where they attain the Alpine dimensions of the Tschatir Dugh. It is very
-easy for an enemy at the Belbek, or in command of the road of Mackenzies’s
-farm, Inkermann, Simpheropol, or Bakshiserai, to debouch through
-these gorges at any time upon this plain from the neck of the valley, or
-to march from Sebastopol by the Tchernaya, and to advance along it
-towards Balaklava, till checked by the Turkish redoubts on the southern
-side, or by the fire from the French works on the northern side&mdash;<em>i.e.</em>,
-the side which, in relation to the valley to Balaklava, forms the rear of
-our position. It was evident enough that Menschikoff and Gortschakoff
-had been feeling their way along this route for several days past, and very probably
-at night the Cossacks had crept up close to our picquets, which are
-not always as watchful as might be desired, and had observed the weakness
-of a position far too extended for our army to defend, and occupied
-by their despised enemy, the Turks.</p>
-
-<p>At half-past seven o’clock this morning, an orderly came galloping in
-to the head-quarters camp from Balaklava, with the news, that at dawn a
-strong corps of Russian horse, supported by guns and battalions of infantry
-had marched into the valley, and had already nearly dispossessed the
-Turks of the redoubt No 1, (that on Canrobert’ Hill, which is farthest
-from our lines), and that they were opening fire on the redoubts Nos. 2,
-3, and 4, which would speedily be in their hands unless the Turks offered
-a stouter resistance than they had done already.</p>
-
-<p>Orders were despatched to Sir George Cathcart, and to H.R.H. the
-Duke of Cambridge, to put their respective divisions, the Fourth and
-the First, in motion for the scene of action; and intelligence of the
-advance of the Russians was also furnished to General Canrobert.
-Immediately on receipt of the news, the General commanded General
-Bosquet to get the Third Division under arms, and sent a strong body<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>
-of artillery and some 200 <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chasseurs d’Afrique</span> to assist us in holding
-the valley. Sir Colin Campbell, who was in command of Balaklava, had
-drawn up the 93rd Highlanders a little in front of the road to the town,
-at the first news of the advance of the enemy. The Marines on the
-heights got under arms; the seamen’s batteries and Marines’ batteries,
-on the heights close to the town, were manned, and the French artillerymen
-and the Zouaves prepared for action along their lines. Lord Lucan’s
-little camp was the scene of great excitement. The men had not had
-time to water their horses; they had not broken their fast from the
-evening of the day before, and had barely saddled at the first blast of the
-trumpet, when they were drawn up on the slope behind the redoubts in
-front of their camp to operate on the enemy’s squadrons. It was soon
-evident that no reliance was to be placed on the Turkish infantry or
-artillerymen. All the stories we had heard about their bravery behind
-stone walls and earthworks proved how differently the same or similar
-people fight under different circumstances. When the Russians advanced,
-the Turks fired a few rounds at them, got frightened at the distance of
-their supports in the rear, looked round, received a few shots and shell,
-and then “bolted,” and fled with an agility quite at variance with common-place
-notions of Oriental deportment on the battle-field. But Turks
-on the Danube are very different beings from Turks in the Crimea, as
-it appears that the Russians of Sebastopol are not at all like the Russians
-of Silistria.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after eight o’clock, Lord Raglan and his staff turned out and
-cantered towards the rear of our position. The booming of the artillery,
-the spattering roll of musketry, were heard rising from the valley, drowning
-the roar of the siege guns in front before Sebastopol. As I rode in
-the direction of the firing, over the thistles and large stones which cover
-the undulating plain that stretches away towards Balaklava, on a level
-with the summit of the ridges above it, I observed a French light infantry
-regiment (the 27th, I think) advancing with admirable care and celerity
-from our right towards the ridge near the telegraph-house, which was
-already lined by companies of French infantry, while mounted officers
-scampered along its broken outline in every direction.</p>
-
-<p>General Bosquet, a stout soldierlike-looking man, who reminds one of
-the old <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">genre</i> of French Generals as depicted at Versailles, followed, with
-his staff and a small escort of Hussars, at a gallop. Faint white clouds
-rose here and there above the hill from the cannonade below. Never did
-the painter’s eye rest on a more beautiful scene than I beheld from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
-ridge. The fleecy vapours still hung around the mountain tops, and
-mingled with the ascending volumes of smoke; the patch of sea sparkled
-freshly in the rays of the morning sun, but its light was eclipsed by the
-flashes which gleamed from the massess of armed men below.</p>
-
-<p>Looking to the left towards the gorge, we beheld six compact masses of
-Russian infantry, which had just debouched from the mountain passes near
-Tchernaya, and were slowly advancing with solemn stateliness up the
-valley. Immediately in their front was a regular line of artillery, of at
-least twenty pieces strong. Two batteries of light guns were already a
-mile in advance of them, and were playing with energy on the redoubts,
-from which feeble puffs of smoke came at long intervals. Behind these
-guns, in front of the infantry, were enormous bodies of cavalry. They
-were in six compact squares, three on each flank, moving down <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en échelon</i>
-towards us, and the valley was lit up with the blaze of their sabres, and
-lance points, and gay accoutrements. In their front, and extending along
-the intervals between each battery of guns, were clouds of mounted skirmishers,
-wheeling and whirling in the front of their march like autumn
-leaves tossed by the wind. The Zouaves close to us were lying like tigers
-at the spring, with ready rifles in hand, hidden chin deep by the earthworks
-which run along the line of these ridges on our rear, but the quick-eyed
-Russians were manœuvring on the other side of the valley, and did
-not expose their columns to attack. Below the Zouaves we could see the
-Turkish gunners in the redoubts, all in confusion as the shells burst over
-them. Just as I came up, the Russians had carried No. 1 redoubt, the
-farthest and most elevated of all, and their horsemen were chasing the
-Turks across the interval which lay between it and redoubt No. 2. At
-that moment the cavalry, under Lord Lucan, were formed in glittering
-masses&mdash;the Light Brigade, under Lord Cardigan, in advance; the
-Heavy Brigade, under Brigadier-General Scarlet, in reserve. They
-were drawn up just in front of their encampment, and were concealed from
-the view of the enemy by a slight “wave” in the plain. Considerably
-to the rear of their right, the 93rd Highlanders were drawn up in line,
-in front of the approach to Balaklava. Above and behind them, on the
-heights, the Marines were visible through the glass, drawn up under
-arms, and the gunners could be seen ready in the earthworks, in which
-were placed the heavy ships’ guns. The 93rd had originally been
-advanced somewhat more into the plain, but the instant the Russians got
-possession of the first redoubt they opened fire on them from our own
-guns which inflicted some injury, and Sir Colin Campbell “retired” his
-men to a better position. Meantime the enemy advanced his cavalry<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-rapidly. To our inexpressible disgust we saw the Turks in redoubt No.
-2 fly at their approach. They ran in scattered groups across towards
-redoubt No. 3, and towards Balaklava, but the horse-hoof of the Cossack
-was too quick for them, and sword and lance were busily plied among the
-retreating herd. The yells of the pursuers and pursued were plainly
-audible. As the Lancers and Light Cavalry of the Russians advanced
-they gathered up their skirmishers with great speed and in excellent
-order&mdash;the shifting trails of men, which played all over the valley like
-moonlight on the water, contracted, gathered up, and the little <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">peloton</i>
-in a few moments became a solid column. Then up came their guns, in
-rushed their gunners to the abandoned redoubt, and the guns of No. 2
-redoubt soon played with deadly effect upon the dispirited defenders of
-No. 3 redoubt. Two or three shots in return from the earthworks, and
-all is silent. The Turks swarm over the earthworks, and run in confusion
-towards the town, firing their muskets at the enemy as they run. Again
-the solid column of cavalry opens like a fan, and resolves itself into a
-“Long spray” of skirmishers. It laps the flying Turks, steel flashes in
-the air, and down go the poor Moslem quivering on the plain, split
-through fez and musket-guard to the chin and breast-belt. There is no
-support for them. It is evident the Russians have been too quick for us.
-The Turks have been too quick also, for they have not held their redoubts
-long enough to enable us to bring them help. In vain the Turkish gunners
-in the earthen batteries which are placed along the French entrenchments
-strive to protect their flying countrymen; their shot fly wide and
-short of the swarming masses. The Turks betake themselves towards the
-Highlanders, where they check their flight and form into companies on the
-flanks of the Highlanders. As the Russian cavalry on the left of their line
-crown the hill across the valley, they perceive the Highlanders drawn up at
-the distance of some half mile, calmly awaiting their approach. They halt,
-and squadron after squadron flies up from the rear, till they have a body
-of some 1500 men along the ridge&mdash;Lancers, and Dragoons, and Hussars.
-Then they move <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en échelon</i> in two bodies, with another in reserve.
-The cavalry who have been pursuing the Turks on the right are coming up
-to the ridge beneath us, which conceals our cavalry from view. The heavy
-brigade in advance is drawn up in two lines. The first line consists of
-the Scots Greys, and of their old companions in glory, the Enniskillens;
-the second of the 4th Royal Irish, of the 5th Dragoon Guards, and of the
-1st Royal Dragoons. The Light Cavalry Brigade is on their left, in two
-lines also. The silence is oppressive; between the cannon bursts one can<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
-hear the champing of bits and the clink of sabres in the valley below. The
-Russians on their left drew breath for a moment, and then in one grand
-line charged in towards Balaklava. The ground flies beneath their horses’
-feet; gathering speed at every stride, they dash on towards that <em>thin red
-streak topped with a line of steel</em>. The Turks fire a volley at eight
-hundred yards and run. As the Russians come within six hundred
-yards, down goes that line of steel in front, and out rings a rolling volley
-of Minié musketry. The distance is too great; the Russians are not
-checked, but still sweep onwards through the smoke, with the whole force
-of horse and man, here and there knocked over by the shot of our batteries
-above. With breathless suspense every one awaits the bursting of the
-wave upon the line of Gaelic rock; but ere they come within two hundred
-and fifty yards, another deadly volley flashes from the levelled rifle, and
-carries terror into the Russians. They wheel about, open files right and
-left, and fly back faster than they came. “Bravo Highlanders! well
-done!” shout the excited spectators; but events thicken. The Highlanders
-and their splendid front are soon forgotten, men scarcely have a
-moment to think of this fact, that the 93rd never altered their formation
-to receive that tide of horsemen. “No,” said Sir Colin Campbell, “I
-did not think it worth while to form them even four deep!” The ordinary
-British line, two deep, was quite sufficient to repel the attack of these
-Muscovite cavaliers. Our eyes were, however, turned in a moment on
-our own cavalry. We saw Brigadier-General Scarlett ride along in front
-of his massive squadrons. The Russians&mdash;evidently <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps d’elite</i>&mdash;their
-light blue jackets embroidered with silver lace, were advancing on their
-left, at an easy gallop, towards the brow of the hill. A forest of lances
-glistened in their rear, and several squadrons of grey-coated dragoons
-moved up quickly to support them as they reached the summit. The
-instant they came in sight the trumpets of our cavalry gave out the
-warning blast which told us all that in another moment we should see
-the shock of battle beneath our very eyes. Lord Raglan, all his staff
-and escort, and groups of officers, the Zouaves, French generals and
-officers, and bodies of French infantry on the height, were spectators of
-the scene as though they were looking on the stage from the boxes of a
-theatre. Nearly every one dismounted and sat down, and not a word
-was said. The Russians advanced down the hill at a slow canter, which
-they changed to a trot, and at last nearly halted. Their first line was at
-least double the length of ours&mdash;it was three times as deep. Behind
-them was a similar line, equally strong and compact. They evidently<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>
-despised their insignificant looking enemy, but their time was come. The
-trumpets rang out again through the valley, and the Greys and Enniskilleners
-went right at the centre of the Russian cavalry. The space
-between them was only a few hundred yards; it was scarce enough to let
-the horses “gather away,” nor had the men quite space sufficient for the
-full play of their sword arms. The Russian line brings forward each
-wing as our cavalry advance, and threatens to annihilate them as they
-pass on. Turning a little to their left, so as to meet the Russian right,
-the Greys rush on with a cheer that thrills to every heart&mdash;the wild shout
-of the Enniskilleners rises through the air at the same instant. As lightning
-flashes through a cloud, the Greys and Enniskilleners pierced
-through the dark masses of Russians. The shock was but for a moment.
-There was a clash of steel and a light play of swordblades in the air, and
-then the Greys and the redcoats disappear in the midst of the shaken
-and quivering columns. In another moment we see them emerging and
-dashing on with diminished numbers, and in broken order, against the
-second line, which is advancing against them as fast as it can to retrieve
-the fortune of the charge. It was a terrible moment. “God help them!
-they are lost” was the exclamation of more than one man, and the
-thought of many. With unabated fire the noble hearts dashed at their
-enemy. It was a fight of heroes. The first line of Russians, which had
-been smashed utterly by our charge, and had fled off at one flank and
-towards the centre, were coming back to swallow up our handful of men.
-By sheer steel and sheer courage Enniskillener and Scot were winning
-their desperate way right through the enemy’s squadrons, and already
-grey horses and red coats had appeared right at the rear of the second
-mass, when, with irresistible force, like one bolt from a bow, the 1st
-Royals, the 4th Dragoon Guards, and the 5th Dragoon Guards rushed at
-the remnants of the first line of the enemy, went through it as though it
-were made of pasteboard, and dashing on the second body of Russians
-as they were still disordered by the terrible assault of the Greys and their
-companions, put them to utter rout. The Russian Horse in less than
-five minutes after it met our dragoons was flying with all its speed before
-a force certainly not half its strength. A cheer burst from every lip&mdash;in
-the enthusiasm, officers and men took off their caps and shouted with
-delight, and thus keeping up the scenic character of their position, they
-clapped their hands again and again. Lord Raglan at once despatched
-Lieutenant Curzon, Aide-de-Camp, to convey his congratulations to
-Brigadier-General Scarlett, and to say “Well done.” The gallant old<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span>
-officer’s face beamed with pleasure when he received the message. “I
-beg to thank his Lordship very sincerely,” was his reply. The cavalry
-did not long pursue their enemy. Their loss was very slight, about
-thirty-five killed and wounded in both affairs. There were not more than
-four or five men killed outright, and our most material loss was from the
-cannon playing on our heavy dragoons afterwards, when covering the
-retreat of our light cavalry.</p>
-
-<p>In the Royal Horse Artillery we had a severe, but I am glad to say a
-temporary loss. Captain Maude, who directed the service of his guns
-with his usual devotedness and dauntless courage, was struck in the arm
-by a shell which burst at his saddle bow and killed his horse. To the joy
-of all the army, it is ascertained that he is doing well on board ship.
-After the charge, Captain the Hon. Arthur Hardinge came galloping up
-to Lord Raglan with the news of what the cavalry had done.</p>
-
-<p>At ten o’clock the Guards and Highlanders of the First Division were
-seen moving towards the plains from their camp. The Duke of Cambridge
-came up to Lord Raglan for orders, and his Lordship, ready to
-give the honour of the day to Sir Colin Campbell, who commands at
-Balaklava, told his Royal Highness to place himself under the direction
-of the Brigadier. At forty minutes after ten, the Fourth Division also
-took up their position in advance of Balaklava. The cavalry were then
-on the left front of our position, facing the enemy; the Light Cavalry
-Brigade was on the left flank forward; the Heavy Cavalry Brigade <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en
-échelon</i> in reserve, with guns on the right; the 4th Dragoons and 5th
-Dragoons and Greys on the left of the brigade, the Enniskillens and 3rd
-Dragoons on the right. The Fourth Division took up ground in the
-centre; the Guards and Highlanders filed off towards the extreme right,
-and faced the redoubts, from which the Russians opened on them with
-such guns as had not been spiked.</p>
-
-<p>At fifty minutes after ten, General Canrobert, attended by his staff
-and Brigadier-General Rose, rode up to Lord Raglan, and the staffs of
-the two Generals and their escorts mingled together in praise of the magnificent
-charge of our cavalry, while the chiefs apart conversed over the
-operations of the day, which promised to be one of battle. The Russian
-cavalry, followed by our shot, had retired in confusion, leaving the
-ground covered with horses and men. In carrying an order early in the
-day Mr. Blunt, Lord Lucan’s interpreter, and son of our Consul in Thessaly,
-had a narrow escape. His horse was killed, he seized a Russian
-charger as it galloped past riderless, but the horse carried him almost into<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-the Russian cavalry, and he only saved himself by leaping into a redoubt
-among a number of frightened Turks who were praying to Allah on
-their bellies. At fifty-five minutes after ten, a body of Cavalry, the Chasseurs
-d’Afrique, passed down to the plain, and were loudly cheered by
-our men. They took up ground in advance of the ridges on our left.</p>
-
-<p>And now occurred the melancholy catastrophe which fills us all with
-sorrow. It appears that the Quartermaster-General, Brigadier Airey,
-thinking that the Light Cavalry had not gone far enough in front when
-the enemy’s horse had fled, gave an order in writing to Captain Nolan,
-15th Hussars, to take to Lord Lucan, directing his Lordship “to
-advance” his cavalry nearer to the enemy. A braver soldier than Captain
-Nolan the army did not possess. He was known to all his arm of the
-service for his entire devotion to his profession, and his name must be
-familiar to all who take interest in our cavalry for his excellent work,
-published a year ago, on our drill and system of remount and breaking
-horses. I had the pleasure of his acquaintance, and I know he entertained
-the most exalted opinions respecting the capabilities of the English
-horse soldier. Properly led, the British Hussar and Dragoon could
-in his mind break square, take batteries, ride over columns of infantry,
-and pierce any other cavalry in the world as if they were made of straw.
-He thought that they had not had the opportunity of doing all that was
-in their power, and that they had missed even such chances as they had
-offered to them,&mdash;that, in fact, they were in some measure disgraced. A
-matchless horseman and a first-rate swordsman, he held in contempt, I
-am afraid, even grape and canister. He rode off with his orders to Lord
-Lucan. He is now dead and gone. God forbid I should cast a shade
-on the brightness of his honour, but I am bound to state what I am told
-occurred when he reached his Lordship. I should premise that as the
-Russian cavalry retired, their infantry fell back towards the head of the
-valley, leaving men in three of the redoubts they had taken, and abandoning
-the fourth. They had also placed some guns on the heights over their
-position on the left of the gorge. Their cavalry joined the reserve, and
-drew up in six solid divisions, in an oblique line across the entrance to the
-gorge. Six battalions of infantry were placed behind them, and about
-thirty guns were drawn up along their line, while masses of infantry
-were also collected on the hills behind the redoubts on our right. Our
-cavalry had moved up to the ridge across the valley, on our left, as the
-ground was broken in front, and had halted in the order I have already
-mentioned. When Lord Lucan received the order from Captain Nolan<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span>
-and had read it, he asked, we are told, “Where are we to advance to?”
-Captain Nolan pointed with his finger to the line of the Russians, and
-said, “There are the enemy, and there are the guns, sir, before them; it
-is your duty to take them,” or words to that effect, according to the
-statements made since his death. Lord Lucan, with reluctance, gave
-the order to Lord Cardigan to advance upon the guns, conceiving that
-his orders compelled him to do so. The noble Earl, though he did not
-shrink, also saw the fearful odds against him. Don Quixote in his tilt
-against the windmill was not near so rash and reckless as the gallant fellows
-who prepared without a thought to rush on almost certain death.
-It is a maxim of war, that “cavalry never act without a support,” that
-“infantry should be close at hand when cavalry carry guns, as the effect
-is only instantaneous, and that it is necessary to have on the flank of a
-line of cavalry some squadrons in column, the attack on the flank being
-most dangerous. The only support our light cavalry had was the reserve
-of heavy cavalry at a great distance behind them, the infantry and guns
-being far in the rear. There were no squadrons in column at all, and
-there was a plain to charge over, before the enemy’s guns were reached,
-of a mile and a half in length.</p>
-
-<p>At ten minutes past eleven, our Light Cavalry brigade advanced.
-The whole brigade scarcely made one effective regiment, according to the
-numbers of continental armies; and yet it was more than we could spare.
-As they rushed towards the front, the Russians opened on them from the
-guns in the redoubt on the right, with volleys of musketry and rifles.
-They swept proudly past, glittering in the morning sun in all the pride
-and splendour of war. We could scarcely believe the evidence of our
-senses! Surely that handful of men are not going to charge an army in
-position? Alas! it was but too true&mdash;their desperate valour knew no
-bounds, and far indeed was it removed from its so-called better part&mdash;discretion.
-They advanced in two lines, quickening their pace as they
-closed towards the enemy. A more fearful spectacle was never witnessed
-than by those who, without the power to aid, beheld their heroic countrymen
-rushing to the arms of death. At the distance of 1200 yards the
-whole line of the enemy belched forth, from thirty iron mouths, a flood
-of smoke and flame, through which hissed the deadly balls. Their
-flight was marked by instant gaps in our ranks, by dead men and horses,
-by steeds flying wounded or riderless across the plain. The first line is
-broken, it is joined by the second, they never halt or check their speed
-an instant; with diminished ranks, thinned by those thirty guns, which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span>
-the Russians had laid with the most deadly accuracy, with a halo of
-flashing steel above their heads, and with a cheer which was many a
-noble fellow’s death-cry, they flew into the smoke of the batteries, but
-ere they were lost from view the plain was strewed with their bodies and
-with the carcasses of horses. They were exposed to an oblique fire from
-the batteries on the hills on both sides, as well as to a direct fire of musketry.
-Through the clouds of smoke we could see their sabres flashing
-as they rode up to the guns and dashed between them, cutting down the
-gunners as they stood. We saw them riding through the guns, as I
-have said; to our delight we saw them returning, after breaking through
-a column of Russian infantry, and scattering them like chaff, when the
-flank fire of the battery on the hill swept them down, scattered and broken
-as they were. Wounded men and dismounted troopers flying towards us
-told the sad tale&mdash;demi-gods could not have done what we had failed to do.
-At the very moment when they were about to retreat an enormous mass
-of Lancers was hurled on their flank. Colonel Shewell, of the 8th Hussars,
-saw the danger, and rode his few men straight at them, cutting his
-way through with fearful loss. The other regiments turned and engaged
-in a desperate encounter. With courage too great almost for credence,
-they were breaking their way through the columns which enveloped them,
-when there took place an act of atrocity without parallel in the modern
-warfare of civilized nations. The Russian gunners, when the storm of
-cavalry passed, returned to their guns. They saw their own cavalry
-mingled with the troopers who had just ridden over them, and, to the
-eternal disgrace of the Russian name, the miscreants poured a murderous
-volley of grape and canister on the mass of struggling men and horses,
-mingling friend and foe in one common ruin. It was as much as our
-Heavy Cavalry brigade could do to cover the retreat of the miserable
-remnants of that band of heroes as they returned to the place they had
-so lately quitted in all the pride of life. At thirty-five minutes past
-eleven not a British soldier, except the dead and dying, was left in front
-of these bloody Muscovite guns.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Nolan was killed by the first shot fired, as he rode in advance
-of the Hussars, cheering them on. Lord Lucan was slightly wounded.
-Lord Cardigan received a lance thrust through his clothes. Major
-Halkett, of the 4th Light Dragoons, was killed. Lord Fitzgibbon of the
-8th Hussars, was desperately wounded, and has since, I fear, died.</p>
-
-<p>In our cavalry fight we had 13 officers killed or missing, 156 men
-killed or missing: total 169; 21 officers wounded, 197 men wounded;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span>
-total 218. Total killed, wounded, and missing, 387. Horses killed or
-missing, 394; horses wounded 126; total 520.</p>
-
-
-<p>BALKAN, PASSAGE OF THE.&mdash;This adventurous experiment
-was deemed impracticable by a hostile army, until effected by the Russian
-army under Diebitsch, whose march through the Balkan mountains
-is a memorable achievement of the late great Russian and Turkish war.
-The passage was completed July 26th, 1829. An armistice was the
-consequence; and a treaty of peace was signed at Adrianople in September
-following.</p>
-
-
-<p>BALLINAHINCH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This sanguinary engagement
-was fought, June 13th, 1798, between the Earl of Moira, afterwards
-Marquis of Hastings, and a large body of insurgent Irish. In this
-battle a large part of the town was destroyed and the royal army suffered
-very severely.</p>
-
-
-<p>BALTIC EXPEDITIONS.&mdash;There were three&mdash;1st, under Lord
-Nelson and Admiral Patton, April 2nd, 1801, when Copenhagen was bombarded
-and 28 Danish ships taken or destroyed. 2nd, under Admiral
-Gambier and Lord Cathcart, July 27th, 1807, where 18 sail of the line,
-15 frigates, and 31 brigs and gunboats surrendered to the British. 3rd,
-during the Crimean war, under Admiral Sir Charles Napier, accompanied
-by a French fleet, the bombardment of Bummersund and burning Abo
-were some of the more important actions of the expedition.</p>
-
-
-<p>BALTIMORE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought September 12th, 1814,
-between the British army, under General Ross, and the Americans; the
-British in making an attack upon the town were unsuccessful, and after a
-desperate engagement were repulsed with great loss. The gallant General
-who led the enterprise was killed.</p>
-
-
-<p>BANGALORE, SIEGE OF.&mdash;This siege was commenced by the
-British, under Lord Cornwallis, March 6th, and the town was taken
-March 21st, 1791. Bangalore was restored to Tippoo, in 1792, when he
-destroyed the strong fort, deemed the “Bulwark of Mysore.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BANNOCKBURN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle is called the
-“Marathon of Scotland.” It was fought June 25th, 1314, between
-King Robert Bruce of Scotland and Edward II, of England. The army<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span>
-of Bruce consisted of 30,000 Scots, that of Edward consisted of 100,000
-English, of whom 52,000 were archers. The English crossed a rivulet
-to the attack, and Bruce having dug deep pits, which he afterwards covered,
-the English cavalry fell into them and were thrown into confusion. The
-rout was complete&mdash;the king narrowly escaped being taken, and 50,000
-English were killed or taken prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>BANTRY BAY.&mdash;A French fleet, with succors to the adherents of
-James II, was in this bay attacked by Admiral Herbert, May, 1689.
-Here a French squadron anchored for a few days, in December, 1796.
-The mutiny of Bantry Bay is famous in naval history&mdash;17 of the
-mutineers were condemned to death, and 11 executed afterwards at
-Portsmouth, January, 1802.</p>
-
-
-<p>BAREILLY.&mdash;India.&mdash;This place is famous in the great Indian
-Mutiny.&mdash;The following is a description of the attack on the British
-troops, by a body of Ghazees, or Fanatics, May 5th, 1859, from Dr.
-Russell’s correspondence.</p>
-
-<p>“As soon as the Sikhs got into the houses, they were exposed to a
-heavy fire from a large body of matchlockmen concealed around them.
-They either retired of their own accord, or were ordered to do so; at all
-events, they fell back with rapidity and disorder upon the advancing
-Highlanders. And now occurred a most extraordinary scene. Among
-the matchlockmen, who, to the number of seven or eight hundred, were
-lying behind the walls of the houses, was a body of Ghazees, or Mussulman
-fanatics, who, like the Roman Decii, devote their lives with solemn
-oaths to their country or their faith. Uttering loud cries, ‘Bismillah,
-Allah, deen, deen!’ one hundred and thirty of these fanatics, sword in
-hand, with small circular bucklers on the left arm, and green cummerbungs,
-rushed out after the Sikhs, and dashed at the left of the right
-wing of the Highlanders. With bodies bent and heads low, waving their
-tulwars with a circular motion in the air, they came on with astonishing
-rapidity. At first they were mistaken for Sikhs, whose passage had
-already somewhat disordered our ranks. Fortunately Sir Colin Campbell
-was close up with the 42nd; his keen, quick eye detected the case at
-once. “Steady, men, steady; close up the ranks. Bayonet them as they
-come on.” It was just in time; for these madmen, furious with bang,
-were already among us, and a body of them sweeping around the left of
-the right wing, got into the rear of the regiment. The struggle was
-short, but sanguinary. Three of them dashed so suddenly at Colonel<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-Cameron, that they pulled him off his horse ere he could defend himself.
-His sword fell out of its sheath, and he would have been hacked to pieces
-in another moment, but for the gallant promptitude of Colour Sergeant
-Gardiner, who, stepping out of the ranks, drove his bayonet through two
-of them in the twinkling of an eye. The third was shot by one of the
-42nd. Brigadier Walpole had a similar escape; he was seized by two
-or three of the Ghazees, who sought to pull him off his horse, while others
-cut at him with their tulwars. He received two cuts on the hand, but
-he was delivered from the enemy by the quick bayonets of the 42nd.
-In a few minutes the dead bodies of one hundred and thirty-three of
-these Ghazees, and some eighteen or twenty wounded men of ours, were
-all the tokens left of the struggle.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BARNET, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle was fought between the
-houses of York and Lancaster, when Edward IV gained a decisive and
-memorable victory over the Earl of Warwick, on Easter day, April 14th,
-1471. The Earl of Warwick, who has been styled in history “The
-King Maker,” his brother, the Marquess of Montacute, and 10,000 of his
-army were slain. At the moment Warwick fell, he was leading a chosen
-body of troops into the thickest of the slaughter, and his body was
-found covered with wounds after the battle.</p>
-
-
-<p>BARRACKS.&mdash;This word is not found in our early dictionaries.
-In the <cite lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Dictionaire de l’Académie</cite>, it is thus defined, “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Baraque&mdash;Hutte
-que font les soldats en campagne pour se mettre à couvert.</i>”</p>
-
-
-<p>BARROSA <span class="fs70">OR</span> BAROSSA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the
-British army, commanded by Major General Graham, afterwards Lord
-Lynedoch, and the French, under Marshal Victor. After a long conflict,
-the British achieved one of the most glorious triumphs of the Peninsular
-war. Although they fought to great disadvantage, they compelled the
-enemy to retreat, leaving nearly 3000 dead, 6 pieces of cannon and an
-eagle, the first that the British had taken. The loss of the British was
-1169 men in killed and wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>BASQUE ROADS.&mdash;This was the place of a heroic achievement by
-the British. Four French ships of the line were, while riding at anchor,
-attacked by Lord Gambier and Lord Cochrane, and all, with a number
-of merchant ships, destroyed, April 12th, 1809.</p>
-
-
-<p>BATAVIA.&mdash;Capital of Java.&mdash;Fortified by the Dutch in 1618&mdash;12,000<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span>
-Chinese massacred here in one day, 1740.&mdash;Taken by the English
-January, 1782.&mdash;Again by the British under General Sir S. Auchmuty,
-August 8th, 1811.</p>
-
-
-<p>BATTERIES.&mdash;Introduced, after the use of cannon, by the English
-along the coasts. Perhaps the most celebrated batteries on record are
-those of the French at the siege of Gibraltar, September, 1782.</p>
-
-
-<p>BATTERING-RAM.&mdash;This was the instrument by which the ancient
-Romans levelled the walls of cities. It consisted of a long beam with a
-head of iron, like that of a ram, hence the name, and sometimes it was so
-ponderous that 150 or 200 men at once worked it.</p>
-
-
-<p>BATTLE-AXE.&mdash;A weapon of the Celtae.&mdash;The battle-axe guards,
-or beaufetiers, who are vulgarly called beef-eaters, and whose arms are a
-sword and lance, were first raised by Henry VII, in 1482.</p>
-
-
-<p>BATTLEFIELD, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Near Shrewsbury, England.&mdash;This
-engagement was fought between Henry IV and Percy, surnamed
-Hotspur. The victory was gained by Henry, whose usurpation of the
-throne had laid the foundation of the factions of the houses of York and
-Lancaster, and the civil wars that ensued. It was fought July 21st, 1403.</p>
-
-
-<p>BAUTZEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the allied army, under the
-Sovereigns of Russia and Prussia, and the French, commanded by
-Napoleon; the allies were defeated, and this battle, followed by that of
-Wurtzchen, compelled them to pass the Oder, and led to armistice,
-which, however, did not produce peace. Fought May 20th, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>BAYLEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The French, consisting of 14,000 men,
-commanded by Generals Dupont and Wedel, were defeated by the
-Spaniards under Pena, Compigny and other Generals, whose forces
-amounted to 25,000. The French had nearly 3000 killed and wounded,
-and the division of Dupont, which consisted of about 8000 men, was
-made prisoners of war. Fought July 19th, 1808.</p>
-
-
-<p>BAYONNE.&mdash;In the neighbourhood of this town there was much
-desperate fighting between the French and English armies, December 10th,
-11th, and 13th, 1813. Bayonne was invested by the British, January
-14th, 1814, during which the French made a sally and attacked the
-English with success, but were at length driven back. The loss of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span>
-British was considerable, and Lieut.-General Sir John Hope was wounded
-and taken prisoner. It was here that the bayonet was first made, in or
-about <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1670. According to the Abbé Langlet, it was first used by
-the French in battle, 1693, “with great success against an enemy
-unprepared for the encounter with so formidable a novelty.” Adopted
-by the British, September 26th, 1693.</p>
-
-
-<p>BEACHY HEAD, ENGAGEMENT OF.&mdash;Memorable for the
-defeat of the British and Dutch combined fleet, by the French. The
-British, whose ships were commanded by the Earl of Torrington, suffered
-very severely in the unequal contest, June 30th, 1690. The Dutch
-lost two Admirals and 500 men, the English two ships and 400 men.
-Several of the Dutch ships were sunk to prevent them from falling into
-the hands of the enemy. The Admirals on both sides were blamed; on
-the English side for not fighting, on the French, for not pursuing the
-victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>BEAGUE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Anjou, France.</em>&mdash;Fought April 3rd,
-1421, between the English and French.&mdash;The former commanded by
-the Duke of Clarence, the latter by the Dauphin of France, who was
-aided by a body of 7000 Scots, under the Earl of Buchan. The English
-were defeated with the loss of 1500 men killed, and the Duke himself
-was killed by a Scotch Knight.</p>
-
-
-<p>BELGRADE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought in 1456, between the German
-and Turkish armies, in which the latter was defeated with the loss
-of 40,000 men. Belgrade was taken by Solyman, 1522, and retaken by
-the Imperialists in 1688, from whom it again reverted to the Turks in
-1690. Again taken by Prince Eugene, in 1717, and kept till 1739, when
-it was ceded to the Turks, after its fine fortifications had been demolished.
-It was again taken in 1789, and restored at the peace of Reichenbach,
-1790. The Servian insurgents had possession of it in 1806. The most
-memorable siege which it sustained was undertaken in May, 1717, by
-Prince Eugene. On August 5th of that year, the Turkish army, 200,000
-strong, approached to relieve it, and a sanguinary battle was fought, in
-which the Turks lost 20,000; after the battle Belgrade surrendered.
-This city is called “<em>The Key of Eastern Christendom</em>,” and “<em>The
-Bulwark of Christian Europe</em>.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BELLAIR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In America.&mdash;This town was attacked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
-by the British forces, under command of Sir Peter Parker; but after an
-obstinate engagement, in which the result was a long time doubtful, they
-were repulsed with considerable loss, and their gallant commander was
-killed. August 30th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>BENDER.&mdash;Is memorable as the asylum of Charles XII of Sweden,
-after his defeat at Pultowa, by the Czar Peter the Great, July 8th, 1709.
-The celebrated peace of Bender was concluded 1711. It was taken by
-storm by the Russians in 1770, and again in 1789.&mdash;Restored by the
-peace of Jassey, but retained at the peace of 1812.</p>
-
-
-<p>BERESINA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought November 28th, 1812, and
-resulted in the total defeat of the French main army, by the Russians,
-on the banks of the Beresina, followed by their disastrous passage of it
-when escaping out of Russia. The French lost upwards of 20,000 men
-in this battle, and in their retreat, which was attended by the greatest
-difficulty, calamity and suffering, the career of their glory was closed in
-that campaign.</p>
-
-
-<p>BERGEN, BATTLES OF.&mdash;Between the French and allies; the latter
-defeated April 14th, 1759. The allies again defeated by the French, with
-great loss, September, 1799. In another battle, fought October 2nd, same
-year, the allies lost 4000 men, and on the 6th, they were again defeated
-before Alkmaer, losing 5000 men. On the 20th, the Duke of York
-entered into a convention, by which he exchanged his army for 6,000
-French and Dutch prisoners in England.</p>
-
-
-<p>BERGEN-OP-ZOOM.&mdash;This place, the works of which were deemed
-impregnable, was taken by the French, September 10th, 1747, and again
-in 1794. Here a gallant attempt was made by the British under General
-Sir T. Graham (afterwards Lord Lynedoch) to carry the fortress by
-storm, but it was defeated. After forcing an entrance, their retreat was
-cut off, and a dreadful slaughter ensued; nearly all were cut to pieces
-or made prisoners. March 8th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>BERLIN DEGREE.&mdash;A memorable interdict against the commerce
-of England. It declared the British Isles in a state of blockade, and all
-Englishmen found in countries occupied by French troops were to be
-taken prisoners of war. It was issued by Napoleon from the court of the
-Prussian King, shortly after the battle of Jena, November 21st, 1806.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<div><a name="BER" id="BER"></a></div>
-<p>BERWICK.&mdash;Many bloody contests, were fought here between the
-English and Scots. It surrendered to Cromwell in 1648, and afterwards
-to General Monk.</p>
-
-
-<p>BEYROOT.&mdash;This place is celebrated for the total defeat of the
-Egyptian army, by the allied English, Austrian and Turkish forces. The
-Egyptians lost 7000 in killed, wounded and prisoners, and 20 cannons.
-Fought October 10th, 1840.</p>
-
-
-<p>BHURTPORE.&mdash;<em>India.</em>&mdash;Besieged by the British, January 3rd,
-1805, and attacked five times up to March 21st, without success. The
-fortress was taken by General Lake, after a desperate engagement with
-Holkar, April 2nd, 1805. The defeat of Holkar led to a treaty by which
-the Rajah of Bhurtpore agreed to pay twenty lacs of rupees, and ceded
-the territories that had been granted to him by a former treaty, delivering
-up his son as a hostage, April 10th, 1805. This city was taken by
-storm, by Lord Combermere, January 18th, 1826.</p>
-
-
-<p>BIDASSOA, PASSAGE OF THE.&mdash;The allied army, under Lord
-Wellington, effected the passage of this river, October 7th, 1813; and the
-illustrious British chieftain, having thus completed his glorious career in
-Spain and Portugal, pursued the enemy into France.</p>
-
-
-<p>BILBOA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This place, which had been invested by
-the Carlists under Villareal, and was in considerable danger, was delivered
-by the defeat of the besiegers by Espartero, assisted by British
-naval co-operation. Espartero entered Bilboa in triumph next day,
-Christmas day, December 25th, 1836.</p>
-
-
-<p>BLACK HOLE OF CALCUTTA.&mdash;Surajah Doulah declared war
-against the English, from motives of personal resentment; and, levying a
-numerous army, laid siege to Calcutta&mdash;one of the principal British forts
-in India&mdash;but which was not in a state of strength to defend itself against
-the attack even of barbarians. The fort was taken, having been deserted
-by the commander; and the garrison, to the number of 146 persons, were
-made prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>They expected the usual treatment of prisoners of war, and were therefore
-the less vigorous in their defence; but they soon found what mercy
-was to be expected from a savage conqueror. They were all crowded
-together into a narrow prison, called the Black Hole, of about 18 feet
-square, and received air only by two small windows to the west, which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span>
-by no means afforded a sufficient circulation. It is terrible to reflect on
-the situation of these unfortunate men, shut up in this narrow place, in
-the burning climate of the East, and suffocating each other. Their first
-efforts, upon perceiving the effects of their horrid confinement, were to
-break open the door of the prison; but, as it opened inwards, they soon
-found that impossible. They next endeavoured to excite the compassion
-or the avarice of the guard by offering him a large sum of money for his
-assistance in removing them into separate prisons; but with this he was
-not able to comply, as the viceroy was asleep, and no person dared to
-disturb him. They were now, therefore, left to die without hopes of
-relief; and the whole prison was filled with groans, shrieks, contest, and
-despair. This turbulence, however, soon after sunk into a calm still more
-hideous! Their efforts of strength and courage were over, and an expiring
-languor succeeded. In the morning, June 20th, 1750, when the keepers
-came to visit the prison, all was horror, silence, and desolation. Of 146
-who had entered alive, 23 only survived, and of these the greatest part
-died of putrid fevers upon being set free.</p>
-
-
-<p>BLENHEIM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the English and
-confederates, commanded by the Duke of Marlborough, and the French
-and Bavarians, under Marshal Tallard and the Elector of Bavaria, whom
-the Duke totally defeated, with the loss of 27,000 men, in killed, and
-13,000 prisoners&mdash;Tallard being among the number of the latter; the
-Electorate of Bavaria became a prize of the conquerors. The nation testified
-its gratitude to the Duke of Marlborough by the gifts of the honour
-of Woodstock and hundred of Wotton, and erected for him one of the
-finest seats in the kingdom, known as the domain and house of Blenheim.
-This great battle was fought on the 2nd of August, 1704.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOIS-LE-DUC, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British and the French
-Republican army, in which the former were defeated, September 14th,
-1794. Captured by the French, October 6th, following, and surrendered
-to the Prussian army under Bulow, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOLOGNA.&mdash;Taken by the French in 1796; by the Austrians in
-1799; again by the French, after Marengo, in 1800; and restored to
-the Pope, in 1815.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOMBS.&mdash;Invented at Venlo in 1495; came into general use in 1634.
-The Shrapnel shell is a bomb filled with balls and a lighted fuse to make<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span>
-it explode before it reaches the enemy. A thirteen inch bomb-shell weighs
-198 lbs.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="BOM" id="BOM"></a></div>
-<p>BOMBARDMENT OF SEBASTOPOL.&mdash;<em>First Attempt.</em>&mdash;“At
-half-past six o’clock, on the morning of 17th October, a gun from the
-English batteries boomed ominously upon the ears of the Russians in
-Sebastopol. It was the signal for the commencement of the bombardment.
-It had been announced, on the previous evening, that the morrow
-was to initiate the combat; and already groups of expectant gazers thronged
-every spot which promised to afford a view of the warlike spectacle.
-For a moment after the signal-gun had despatched its messenger of death,
-a breathless expectation held the spectators in suspense; and then, from
-the whole line of attack, from the Quarantine on the far left to the Inkerman
-battery on the extreme right, a sheet of fire belched forth, and a
-volley of shot and shell was hurled upon the town. By this time the
-Russian gunners were at their post, and bravely responded to the challenge.
-As far as the eye could reach, a dense volume of smoke hung
-suspended in the air; and when it lifted, another and yet another streak
-of flame poured from the black earthworks, and lit up the white churches
-and houses of the town. The earth literally shook with the concussion of
-the mighty conflict. Distinct amid the roar, a sharp whizzing sound,
-swelling as it approached into a crashing rush, like a railway train at
-inexpressible speed, was heard, and a heavy blow upon the solid earthworks
-told where had fallen the ball of the renowned Lancaster gun. In
-a couple of hours it was evident that the Round Tower, the most formidable
-of the Russian works, was seriously damaged. But little impression,
-however, appeared to have been made on the mass of the enemy’s works.
-Their fire was splendid, and it was abundantly apparent that the victory
-was not to be easily achieved. About ten o’clock, a shell fell into one of the
-French magazines, which exploded, killing and injuring more than fifty
-men. This was a serious blow; and from that time the guns of our allies
-were evidently feebly served, and inadequate to bear their part effectually.
-For two hours more the terrific cannonade continued, spreading destruction
-in the ranks alike of the Russians and the Allies; and then, at mid-day,
-the fleets approached the scene of action, and prepared to take their
-share in the dangers and glories of the day. The French was the first to
-take up their position. It had been arranged between the Admirals, with
-the hearty concurrence of the land forces, that the French should engage
-the forts on the south of the harbour, while the English should attack<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
-Fort Constantine, and the batteries on the north. A semicircular line,
-enclosing the mouth of the harbour, would represent the position occupied
-by the allied fleets. The <i>Vautour</i>, a French frigate, had the honour of
-opening the fire, and very shortly afterwards the <i>Charlemagne</i>, <i>Montebello</i>,
-<i>Jean Bart</i>, and others, joined in the fray. The sight from the
-land side now was of the most stupendous character, and the roar deafening
-and incessant. Enormous volleys from hundreds of guns of the largest
-size rolled with never-ceasing impetuosity; and the air was loaded with a
-dense smoke that hid from the anxious gazers the effects of the fire. Occasionally
-a breeze lifted the murky canopy, and then the eye could catch
-the prospect beyond the frowning earthworks of shattered buildings, and
-not unfrequently a bright flame where the explosion of a shell had fired a
-roof, soon to be extinguished by the active enemy. Then, in the far distance,
-rose the grim outlines of the massive forts, pointing seawards their
-deadly array of guns; and further yet, a line of noble vessels rapidly forming
-into order of attack, finished the picture. But such glimpses were but
-momentary. Again the crimson volleys thundered forth, a light smoke
-poured from the sides of the French steamers, and the reply of the forts
-sent forth a vaporous veil, which, mingling with the smoke from the
-earthworks, once more enveloped in obscurity alike the attack and the
-defence.</p>
-
-<p>It was arranged that the English sailing-vessels should be taken into
-position by the smaller steamers lashed to their sides. In this manner
-they drew up before the forts: the <i>Queen</i>, <i>Britannia</i>, <i>Trafalgar</i>, <i>Vengeance</i>,
-<i>Rodney</i>, and <i>Bellerophon</i>, with the <i>Vesuvius</i>, <i>Furious</i>, <i>Retribution</i>,
-<i>Highflyer</i>, <i>Spitfire</i>, <i>Spiteful</i>, and <i>Cyclops</i> alongside, arrived at their
-appointed positions about an hour after the French had commenced firing.
-The ships in advance were the magnificent steamer the <i>Agamemnon</i>,
-bearing the flag of Sir Edmund Lyons, the brave second in command;
-the <i>Sanspareil</i>, <i>Sampson</i>, <i>Tribune</i>, <i>Terrible</i>, <i>Sphynx</i>, and <i>Lynx</i>, and
-the <i>Arrow</i> gun-boat, accompanied by the sailing vessels, <i>Albion</i>, <i>London</i>,
-and <i>Arethusa</i>, towed by the <i>Firebrand</i>, <i>Niger</i>, and <i>Triton</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Preceding this imposing force, a little steam-tug, the <i>Circassia</i>, commanded
-by Mr. Ball, led the way, carefully sounding as it went, and
-marking out the position for the larger ships. Sir Edmund Lyons had
-already settled the share he was determined to take in the day’s adventure,
-and had selected the enormous fort of Constantine as the object of
-his special attention. The <i>Terrible</i> and <i>Sampson</i>, dashing through the
-storm of fire from the casemates of Constantine, anchored opposite two<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span>
-very mischievous little batteries, one of which the sailors named the Wasp,
-from its power of annoyance in comparison with its size, and the other
-the Telegraph, from its proximity to the signal station. In a few moments
-a vigorous shelling was opened upon these two batteries, which briskly
-replied. The <i>Agamemnon</i> now opened fire, and never was a cannonade
-more briskly sustained, or exhibited greater precision of fire. Sir Edmund
-had anchored his vessel at the very edge of the shoal, which extended
-about 900 yards from the fort. At this distance the Russian fire was
-most severe. For four hours the gallant crew bore the galling shower of
-missiles which cut through the rigging, pierced the hull, and sent many
-a brave fellow to his last account. The <i>Albion</i> and <i>London</i> boldly came
-within range, but so deadly was the fire, that they soon withdrew, terribly
-crippled. The <i>Sanspareil</i> admirably seconded the efforts of the
-<i>Agamemnon</i>, and maintained a telling fire upon the fort. At length that
-too withdrew, and the dauntless Sir Edmund was left to bear the brunt of
-the concentrated fire of the Russian guns. His ship was riddled with shot,
-the sails and rigging hanging in shreds, yet, with a bull-dog pertinacity,
-he clung to his opponent. Despatching his lieutenant in an open boat, he
-summoned the <i>Bellerophon</i> to his aid. His message was characteristically
-pithy: “Tell them to come in; these forts will sink me, and I’m d&mdash;&mdash;d
-if I leave this.” The <i>Bellerophon</i> quickly responded; and throwing a
-volley into the big fort, passed on to where the Wasp and Telegraph forts
-were showering their missiles on the gallant <i>Agamemnon</i>. The Wasp
-was soon silenced by the vigorous shelling of the <i>Bellerophon</i>; and Sir
-Edmund, freed from the annoyance it had caused, with unabated courage
-hurled his fire at his huge antagonist. The <i>Bellerophon</i>, however, suffered
-fearfully. A shell from the Russian batteries exploded in the fore part
-of the ship, and set fire to the lower deck. For a few moments it seemed
-as if unavoidable destruction was the fate of the gallant crew. The firing
-was suspended, and all hands rushed forward to endeavour to extinguish
-the flames. In this endeavour they were successful; but then a new
-mischance awaited them. The anchor had dragged on the bottom, and
-they were fast drifting towards the shoals beneath the forts, where they
-would have lain a helpless target for the Russian guns. In this emergency,
-the <i>Spitfire</i>, seeing the critical position of the larger vessel, dashed
-in, took her in tow, and safely brought her, though much damaged, out
-of the action.</p>
-
-<p>The “saucy <i>Arethusa</i>,” and her little companion in arms, the <i>Triton</i>
-steamer, which, lashed to the larger vessel, had boldly entered into the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
-thick of the fight, bore a full share of the damage done that day. As
-they arrived within the range of the fire, the small steamer, which was
-then exposed, received a volley. Then, hauling round, the broadside of
-the frigate was presented to the forts, and the <i>Triton</i> was, to some degree,
-sheltered by the larger hull of her consort. The sailors from the steamer
-hastened on board the <i>Arethusa</i>, to assist in manning her guns, and a glorious
-broadside was hurled at the Russian fort. Every shot vibrated
-through the <i>Triton</i>, so great was the recoil of the frigate’s guns. Broadside
-after broadside was gallantly delivered, and as promptly replied to
-by the cannon of the fort. Down went the rigging of the <i>Arethusa</i>, ropes
-hanging in tangled masses from her yards, and not unfrequent shots
-striking her hull. Some passed beyond the frigate, and soon the <i>Triton’s</i>
-gear aloft, and fallen gaffs, stays, and shrouds attested the severity of the
-enemy’s fire. Two shots struck the paddle-wheel, and the commander and
-carpenter’s mate were wounded by a shell while examining the extent of
-damage done. At length the <i>Arethusa</i>, nearly sinking, her decks covered
-with fallen rigging, her cockpit crowded with bleeding men, was compelled
-to relinquish the contest. The <i>Triton</i> gallantly towed her out of range,
-but in the act, a raking fire of shells was poured upon the deck, killing
-and wounding all within range of their explosion. With twenty-two holes
-in her funnel, she contrived to tow the frigate to Constantinople, to be
-docked for repairs, so extensive were her injuries.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Labrador</i> steamer had a narrow escape from entire destruction.
-Towards four o’clock a shell burst in the captain’s cabin, adjoining the
-powder magazine, and set fire to some ropes. A cry of “fire” was raised,
-the pumps set to work, and enormous quantities of water poured into the
-magazine. The fire was fortunately extinguished in time to save the
-vessel. She was, of course, compelled to withdraw from the attack, her
-powder being rendered useless.</p>
-
-<p>Admiral Dundas’s flag-ship, the <i>Britannia</i>, which fired from a longer
-range than the ones we have mentioned, received less damage, though she
-did not escape quite scatheless. The enemy’s shot ploughed up the water
-around, and occasionally a shell or round-shot fell upon the deck or
-crashed through the rigging. Fortunately, however, only two men were
-wounded on board this ship.</p>
-
-<p>The French vessels gallantly performed their part in the bombardment.
-Our allies had adopted the same plan as the English, and lashed small
-steamers to the large sailing-vessels to bring them into action. Two splendid
-steamers, the <i>Pluton</i> and the <i>Charlemagne</i>, proudly led the way in,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span>
-followed by the <i>Montebello</i>, the <i>Jean Bart</i>, and the rest of the squadron.
-The enemy at Fort Alexander maintained an unflinching resistance, and
-inflicted severe punishment on the attacking vessels.</p>
-
-<p>Those who witnessed this tremendous bombardment, whether from
-land or sea, will probably never forget the spectacle. No imaginative description
-could approach the mingled sublimity and horror of the scene.
-A fleet of noble vessels, powerfully armed, poured forth sheets of flame
-from every port-hole on the attacking side; and the ponderous forts, from
-hundreds of embrasures, vomited a death-dealing reply. The thunder of
-artillery was deafening, and the sky darkened with the smoke. Thousands
-of grim and fierce-looking men, their faces blackened with gunpowder
-and sweat, moved about the decks, and pointed the guns, amid
-the crash of falling spars and the groans of their wounded messmates.
-Beyond the town, a sullen roar was heard, which might have been the
-echo of the sea-battle, but which the sailors well knew was the voice of
-the guns on land, many manned by seamen from the fleets, and responded
-to by a thousand of the enemy’s pieces. The awful boom of the guns
-grew in intensity as some fresh ship arrived on the scene, and contributed
-her broadside to the attack.</p>
-
-<p>On the land side the combat was an equal one. Volley replied to volley,
-and no symptoms appeared to induce the belief that either party was
-the stronger. Suddenly, about four o’clock, a mighty explosion occurred
-in the Russian lines, which, for a moment, seemed to quell and subdue
-the roar of the thundering cannon. The earth shook, and volumes of fire
-sprang upwards and cast a lurid glare on every object. The very artillery
-was paused, awe-struck by the catastrophe; and the spectators watched
-the result in breathless excitement. It seemed as if a subterranean fire
-had forced its way through the surface of the earth to annihilate the
-presumption of competing man. Then the flame sank, the frightful
-shock was passed, and a pillar of dust and rubbish took the place of the
-mingled fire and smoke. The magazine in the centre of the Redan had
-exploded, and for a brief space not a gun from that great work replied
-to our volleys. Then the fire re-opened, and the Russian gunners, nothing
-daunted, again hurled their shower of missiles against our works. Shortly
-afterwards, a small powder-waggon, belonging to the English, was struck
-by a shell and exploded, fortunately injuring none.</p>
-
-<p>At length twilight warned the combatants to cease. At about six o’clock
-the fleets drew off, and shortly afterwards the batteries suspended their
-fire. The naval attack, so far as damage to the enemy was concerned, was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span>
-a failure. Many Russian artillerymen were, doubtless, victims to the
-accuracy of our aim, and the undaunted pertinacity of our seamen. Nothing,
-indeed, could exceed the brilliancy of the fire; and our gallant
-sailors of all ranks nobly maintained their reputation. But when the
-morrow came, the forts were found to be almost uninjured. Not a gun
-the less frowned from their embrasures, not a stone seemed to be displaced.
-The blackened mouths of the casemates, and a multitude of
-scars, as it were, where the fierce storm of iron had splintered the surface
-of the granite, were all the evidence afforded of that desperate assault.
-The question between wood and granite had been fairly tried, and granite
-was the victor. The forts were essentially unhurt; but scarcely a ship
-had escaped without serious damage to masts, sails, and rigging. The
-<i>Albion</i> and <i>Arethusa</i> were compelled to proceed to Constantinople to be
-docked; the <i>Rodney</i> got fast upon the reef, and her masts were soon
-shattered by the Russian shell and shot&mdash;the little steamer <i>Spiteful</i> gallantly
-towing her off, with considerable damage to herself and loss of men;
-and the <i>Bellerophon</i> had about fifteen shots in her hull, and her wheel
-knocked away. Throughout the English fleet, 44 men were killed, and
-266 wounded. The French loss was even greater. The Turkish vessels,
-which occupied the centre of the line, were too far removed from the
-intensity of the action to sustain any serious injury to the ships or loss to
-the crew.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BOMBARDMENT OF SEBASTOPOL.&mdash;<em>Final Attempt</em>.&mdash;“Generals
-Pelissier and Simpson had arranged to commence the assault at
-noon on Saturday. Thu French were to commence by an attack on the
-Malakoff tower. If they established themselves in that work, the English
-were to throw themselves upon the Great Redan, while simultaneous
-assaults were to be made on the right on the Little Redan, towards
-Careening Bay, and on the extreme left on the Central Bastion and
-Flagstaff Battery. General Bosquet was entrusted with the direction of
-the Malakoff attack, which was to be approached on the left flank by
-General MacMahon, with a powerful corps of Zouaves, Chasseurs, and
-regiments of the line; the right attack on the Little Redan was to be led
-by General Dulac, who had a strong body of Chasseurs, and four line regiments,
-with another powerful force in reserve. General De la Motterouge,
-with five regiments, was to assault the middle of the curtain connecting
-these two works. General De la Salles conducted the assault on
-the extreme left. Five regiments, composing Levaillant’s division, were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span>
-in front of the Central Bastion and its lunettes; while to its right, General
-D’Autemarre, with Niel’s and Breton’s brigades, were to penetrate in
-the track of Levaillant’s division, and seize the Mast Bastion. The Sardinians,
-anxious to share in the honors of the day, contributed a brigade
-under the orders of General Cialdini, which was to attack in conjunction
-with D’Autemare’s division. Finally, ten regiments, under the command
-of Generals Bouat and Pate, with some troops from Kamiesch, were held
-in reserve, ready for immediate action. On each attack a competent number
-of sappers were provided with materials to form bridges, and handy
-tools; and the gunners had abundant implements for the spiking of
-guns; field artillery was also posted in commanding positions to render
-any assistance the fortunes of the day might render necessary.</p>
-
-<p>The English storming party was comprised of detachments from the
-Light and Second Divisions. General Codrington, of the Light Division,
-assisted by General Markham, commanding the Second, had the direction
-of the assault. The first stormers, 1000 men, were selected in equal
-numbers from each division, Colonels Unett and Windham leading. The
-Highland brigade and Guards were ordered up to the post as a reserve.
-General Herbillon, commanding the French <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps d’armée</i> on the Tchernaya,
-had made every preparation to meet any attack which might be
-made by the Russian army of observation; but the enemy had experienced
-the prowess of the Allies in the open field too bitterly again to
-attempt defeat.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the morning, squadrons of cavalry took position on the roads
-leading from Balaklava and Kadikoi to the camp, to prevent, stragglers
-and spectators from crowding to the front, and impeding the movements
-of the troops engaged in the assault. Every precaution, too, was observed
-to prevent the enemy from having any intimation of the movements
-of the soldiers. Parapets were heightened, and the regiments,
-French and English, moved up before daylight, with such promptness
-and secrecy that many even in the camp were unaware of the nature of
-the contemplated operations.</p>
-
-<p>The plan of attack had originally included the co-operation of the
-fleet, but a brisk gale from the north-west forbade them to leave their
-anchorage; and except some French and English gunboats, which did
-good service in throwing shells and rockets into the forts, the sailors
-were unwillingly mere spectators of the fray.</p>
-
-<p>Precisely at twelve o’clock General MacMahon’s division left the
-French trenches, which were within a few yards of the Malakoff tower,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
-and advanced rapidly up the rugged and steep ascent. It proved that
-very great damage had been inflicted on the tower, and nearly all the
-guns dismounted. In a few minutes, with the loss of only one man, the
-French had leaped into the work, and the tricolor waved triumphantly on
-the summit of this great fort&mdash;the key to the town. The Russians contested
-their ground with great bravery, renewing again and again their
-attacks, but every time repulsed with enormous loss. General Bosquet
-was early wounded, and retired from the field.</p>
-
-<p>The signal was now given by General Pelissier for the commencement
-of the English assault on the Redan; and the first stormers, led by Major
-Welsford of the 97th, and Captain Grove of the 90th, dashed from the
-trenches, followed by the remainder of the troops. The great work was
-distant about 250 yards, and the ground was so broken that it was impossible
-to preserve order. The enemy, who had been taken by surprise
-by the suddenness of the French attack upon the Malakoff, were now
-thoroughly aroused and manned every gun. Showers of grape and shell
-poured among our men as they struggled across the open space; General
-Shirley, the brigadier of the Light Division, was compelled to retire, and
-hundreds were shot down. When the foremost men reached the Redan,
-the ladders were too short to reach the breach; but spite of every obstacle
-our brave fellows climbed the broken walls, and poured into the salient
-angle of the work. Major Welsford was shot down as he entered the
-Redan. Colonel Windham, with his brigade of the Second Division, followed
-quickly after, and in a few moments the triangular apex of the work
-was thronged with men. Then a now obstacle presented itself. An inner
-work commanded the position, and a terrible array of embrasures frowned
-upon the assailers. For the first time English troops quailed before an
-enemy’s fire, and notwithstanding the daring courage of Colonel Windham
-and the other officers, retreated to such cover as they could obtain, maintaining
-an ineffective fire from their muskets. In vain Colonel Windham
-hurried from side to side, crossing with amazing courage the line of
-fire, and endeavored to form his men for another assault. The few who
-answered his appeal were swept away by the terrible fire of the enemy.
-For nearly two hours was the little band exposed to such a fearful risk;
-and from some unaccountable remissness no reinforcements were sent.
-Three messengers were sent by Colonel Windham, but all were wounded
-in the attempt to reach General Codrington. At length the dauntless
-Colonel resolved to go himself; and passing across the open space, succeeded
-in obtaining the desired help. It was too late; the men inside<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span>
-the work, unable longer to hold their position, were in full retreat; and
-the Russians, pouring out of their cover, charged them with the bayonet,
-till the ditch was filled with the bodies of the English soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>While the English attack was thus disastrous, the French assaults on
-the Little Redan and the Central Bastions were equally unsuccessful.
-The division of Dulac and De la Motterouge three times carried the
-works to which they were exposed, only to be repulsed by the heavy fire
-of the inner defences, and of the steamers, which ran up, and poured
-their broadsides into the ranks. General De la Salles, on the extreme
-left, attacked with great energy the Central Bastion; but the intense fire
-to which his division was exposed, daunted his men, many of whom were
-fresh troops, unused to the stern realities of battle; and after a sanguinary
-struggle, he was forced to abandon the attempt. General Pelissier
-having obtained possession of the Malakoff, suspended farther attacks;
-and, at length, night closed in, leaving the armies in anxious expectation
-of the events of the morrow.</p>
-
-<p>It was the intention of General Simpson to renew the assault on the
-Redan with the Highlanders and Guards on the next morning. When
-daylight broke, a few soldiers crept forward to seek for wounded comrades,
-and found the work was deserted! In a brief space, flames arose
-from every quarter of the town; and long lines of troops could be seen
-passing to the north forts. Then tremendous explosions rent the air&mdash;the
-great forts on the south side were exploded; and, covered by a conflagration
-which effectually prevented pursuit, Prince Gortschakoff evacuated
-the town. A few hours later, and the ships in the harbor&mdash;the
-steamers excepted (and a few days afterwards they, too, shared the same
-fate)&mdash;burst into flames, or were scuttled, and sank slowly beneath the
-waters of the once crowded inlet of the sea, where had ridden the fleet
-with which Russia hoped to rule the Euxine, and from which had darted
-forth the murderers of Sinopé.</p>
-
-<p>In this final assault the English lost no fewer than 29 officers and 356
-men killed, and 124 officers and 1762 men wounded; 1 officer and 175
-men were missing; total of casualties, 2447. The French suffered a
-loss of 5 generals killed, 4 wounded, and 6 hurt; 24 superior officers
-killed, 20 wounded, and 2 missing; 116 subaltern officers killed, 224
-wounded, and 8 missing; 1489 sub-officers and soldiers killed, 4259
-wounded, and 1400 missing; total, 7551. The Russians admit a loss
-on the last day of the assault of 2684 killed, 7263 wounded, and 1754
-missing. Between the battle of the Tehernaya and the opening of the
-final bombardment, they lost 18,000 men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus did Sebastopol fall! The strongest fortress in the world, garrisoned
-by the most colossal military power, after a siege unexampled in
-modern history had succumbed to the efforts of the armies of the Western
-Powers. Three great battles had been fought beneath its walls, and
-four bombardments of hitherto unknown fierceness had been directed
-against its bastions. The siege occupied very nearly twelve months; and
-more than 100,000 men must have perished by wounds and disease in
-and before its walls.</p>
-
-<p>The besieging army had, in its different attacks, about 800 guns
-mounted, which fired more than 1,600,000 rounds, and the approaches,
-dug during 336 days, of open trenches through a rocky ground, to an extent
-of fifty-four English miles, were made under the constant fire of the
-place, and with incessant combats by day and night. During the siege
-we employed no less than 80,000 gabions, 60,000 fascines, and nearly
-1,000,000 earth bags.</p>
-
-<p>To the French unquestionably is due the honor of its capture; but
-who can forget the courage which the English exhibited, the fortitude
-they displayed, or the sufferings they endured? The first victories of
-that eventful year are claimed by British valour, and if, at the last, they
-failed, let us remember there are some tasks no ability can execute, some
-difficulties no skill can surmount, and some opposition no valour can
-subdue.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BORODINO, <span class="fs70">OR</span> MOSKWA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle is one of
-the most sanguinary in the annals of the world. It was fought September
-7th, 1812, between the French and Russians, commanded on the one side
-by Napoleon and on the other by Kutusoff, 240,000 men being engaged
-in the battle. Each party claimed the victory, because the loss of the
-others was so immense, but it was rather in favour of Napoleon, for the
-Russians subsequently retreated, leaving Moscow to its fate. Among the
-principal persons of the Russians who fell on this sanguinary field, may
-be mentioned Prince Bagration and General Touczkoff. Many Russian
-generals were wounded. Their loss amounted to the awful sum total of
-15,000 men killed and more than 30,000 wounded. The French were
-supposed to have at least 10,000 men killed and 20,000 wounded; of
-these last few recovered. There were 8 French generals slain, the most
-distinguished of whom were Montbrun and Caulaimcourt, whose brother
-was the grand equerry to Napoleon Bonaparte.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOROUGH BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Earls<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span>
-of Hertford and Lancaster and Edward II. The king, at the head of
-30,000 men, pressed Lancaster so closely that he was taken, and executed,
-1322.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOSCOBEL.&mdash;Here Charles II concealed himself in an oak tree after
-the fatal battle of Worcester, September 3rd, 1651. The whole army
-of the Prince was either killed or taken prisoners by Cromwell, and
-Charles ultimately escaped with great difficulty.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOSTON.&mdash;Here the first resistance was made to the British authority
-by the American Colonies, in 1773. Besieged by the British next year,
-and two houses destroyed. In June 1775, the scene of a battle between
-the royal and the independent troops. Finally evacuated by the King’s
-troops, April, 1776.&mdash;<em>See</em> <span class="smcap">Bunker’s Hill</span>.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOSWORTH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle was the thirteenth and last,
-between the houses of York and Lancaster.&mdash;Fought August 22nd, 1485.
-The crown of Richard III was found in a hawthorn bush, on the plain
-where the battle was fought, and so eager was Henry of Richmond to be
-crowned, that he had the ceremony performed on the very spot, with that
-very crown. “Richard advanced to meet his rival as far us the town of Bosworth.
-Henry, who had been joined by some of the Stanleys, and whose
-army now counted six thousand men, had reached the neighbouring town
-of Atherton. Next morning, the 22nd of August, 1485, both armies were
-set in battle-array on the moor called Redmore. Richard was dismayed
-when he saw the Stanleys opposed to him; but he soon displayed his
-wonted courage. Observing part of his troops inactive and others wavering,
-he resolved to make one desperate effort and conquer or fall, and
-crying out “Treason, treason!” and giving his horse the spurs, he rushed
-to where he saw Richmond. He killed his standard-bearer and made a
-furious stroke at Henry himself, which was warded off by Sir William
-Stanley, and Richard was thrown from his horse and slain. Lord Stanley
-taking up the crown which he wore, placed it on the head of Richmond,
-and shouts of “Long live King Henry!” were instantly raised all over
-the field. The loss on Richard’s side in this decisive battle was three
-hundred, that on Henry’s only one hundred men. The body of Richard
-was stripped, and being thrown across a horse, was conveyed to Leicester
-and there interred, and many years after his coffin could be seen used as
-a horse-trough.” “<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Sic transit gloria mundi.</i>”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>BOULOGNE.&mdash;<em>France.</em>&mdash;Taken by the British in 1542, restored 1550&mdash;attacked
-by Lord Nelson, who disabled ten vessels and sunk five,
-August 3rd, 1801. In another attempt he was repulsed with great loss,
-August 18th, following. The flotilla of Boulogne consisted of 160,000
-men and 10,000 horses, with 1300 vessels and 17,000 sailors. Napoleon
-attempted by it to invade England, but could not succeed, and at last gave
-up the idea.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOXTEL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought September 17th, 1794, between
-the British and allied army, commanded by the Duke of York, and the
-army of the French Republic. The latter attacked the allies and obtained
-the victory after an obstinate engagement, taking 2000 prisoners and 8
-pieces of cannon, and the Duke retreated across the Meuse.</p>
-
-
-<p>BOYNE, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought July 1st, 1689, between
-the Prince of Orange, afterwards William III of England, and James II
-of England. James was defeated. “Early next morning, the 1st of
-July, 1689, the English prepared to pass the river in three divisions.
-The right forced the passage at the ford of Slane; the centre led by
-the old warrior Duke Schomberg, passed opposite the Irish camp; it was
-vigorously opposed, but it finally forced the Irish to fall back to the
-village of Donóre, where James stood viewing the battle. William,
-meantime, had passed at the head of the third division, composed
-of cavalry, and driven off the enemy’s horse. The French General
-Lausun immediately urged James to set out with all speed for Dublin,
-lest he should be surrounded. He forthwith quitted the field; the Irish
-army poured through the pass of Duleék and formed at the other side, and
-then retreated in good order. Its loss had been 1500 men, that of the
-victors was about 500, among whom were Duke Schomberg, and Walker,
-the brave Governor of Derry.”</p>
-
-
-<p>BRECHIN.&mdash;<em>Scotland.</em>&mdash;Edward III besieged it in 1333. A battle
-was fought here between the forces of the Earls of Huntly and Crawford.
-The latter defeated in 1452.</p>
-
-
-<p>BREDA.&mdash;Taken by Prince Maurice in 1590. By the Spaniards in
-1625. By the Dutch in 1637. By the French 1793, and again by the
-Dutch in the same year.</p>
-
-
-<p>BREST.&mdash;Besieged by Julius Cæsar <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 54. Possessed by the
-English, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1378. Given up 1391. Lord Berkely and a British<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span>
-force repulsed here, with terrible loss, in 1694. Here was the French
-fleet rendezvous, which was afterwards defeated by Lord Howe, 1st June,
-1794.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRETIGNY, PEACE OF.&mdash;Between France and England, ending
-in the release of King John, who was then a prisoner in London, May
-8th, 1360.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRIAR’S CREEK, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the battles between
-the revolted Americans and the British, in 1779. The former, under
-General Ashe, 2000 strong, were totally defeated by the English, under
-General Prevost, March 16th, 1779. Again, 3rd May following, another
-defeat happened to the Americans.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRANDYWINE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the British
-royalist forces and the revolted Americans, in which the latter (after a
-fight, sometimes of doubtful result, and which continued the entire day)
-were defeated with great loss, and Philadelphia fell into the possession of
-the victors, September 11th, 1777.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRESLAU, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Austrians and Prussians,
-the latter under Prince Bevern, who was defeated, but the engagement
-was most bloody on both sides; fought November 22nd, 1757. Breslau
-was taken, but was regained the same year. This city was besieged by
-the French and surrendered to them January 5th, 1807, and again in
-1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRIENNE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought February 1st and 2nd, 1814,
-between the allied armies of Russia and Prussia and the French. The
-allies were defeated with great loss; this was one of the last battles in
-which the French achieved victory previous to the fall of Napoleon.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRIDGE OF BOATS OF XERXES.&mdash;This bridge was connected
-from shore to shore in the following manner: They connected
-vessels of different kinds, some long vessels of fifty oars, others three banked
-galleys, to the number of 360 on the side of the Euxine sea, and thirteen on
-that of the Hellespont. When these vessels were firmly fixed together they
-were secured by anchors of great length on the upper side, because of
-the winds which set in from the Euxine; on the lower toward the Ægean
-sea, on account of the south and south-east winds. They left openings
-in three places, sufficient to afford a passage for light vessels which might<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-have occasion to sail into the Euxine or from it&mdash;having performed this
-they extended cables from the shore stretching them on large capstans of
-wood. Then they sawed out rafters of wood making their length equal
-to that space required for the bridge&mdash;these they laid in order across the
-extended cables and then bound all fast together. Then they placed
-unwrought wood regularly upon the rafters; over all they threw earth, and
-fenced both sides in, that the horses and other animals might not be
-frightened by looking down into the sea.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRIGADE.&mdash;A party or division of troops or soldiers, whether cavalry
-or infantry&mdash;regular, volunteer or militia, commanded by a brigadier. A
-brigade of artillery consists of six pieces, with usually about 140 men;
-a brigade of sappers consists of eight men.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRIGADIER.&mdash;A general officer who commands a brigade, whether
-of horse or foot, and ranks next to a major-general&mdash;commonly called a
-brigadier-general.</p>
-
-
-<p>BRUSSELS.&mdash;Bombarded by Marshal Villeroy, in 1695&mdash;taken by the
-French 1746. Again by Dumouriez, in 1792; near it is the celebrated
-field of Waterloo.</p>
-
-
-<p>BUCHAREST, TREATY OF.&mdash;A treaty of peace between Russia
-and Turkey, signed May 28th, 1812.</p>
-
-
-<p>BUDA.&mdash;Once called the <em>Key of Christendom</em>. It was taken by
-Soleyman II at the memorable battle of Mohatz, when the Hungarian
-King Louis was killed, and 200,000 of his subjects carried away as slaves,
-1526. Buda was sacked a second time, and Hungary annexed to the
-Ottoman Umpire, 1540. Retaken by the Imperialists, and the Mohammedans
-delivered up to the fury of the soldiers, 1626.</p>
-
-
-<p>BUENOS AYRES, BRITISH DESCENTS UPON.&mdash;A British
-fleet and army, under Sir Home Popham and General Beresford, took the
-city, with slight resistance, in 1806, but it was retaken August 12th, after
-six weeks’ possession. Monte-Video was taken by storm by Sir Samuel
-Auchmuty, February 3rd, 1807, but evacuated July 7th following. The
-British suffered a dreadful repulse here in an expedition of 8000 men,
-under general Whitelock (who was disgraced) July 6th, 1807. On entering
-the town they were attacked by a superior force with musketry and
-grape from every quarter, and perished in great numbers, but at last they
-were allowed to re-embark in their vessels.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>BULL RUN.&mdash;This battle was fought between the Northern States of
-America and the Confederate States of the South, July 21st, 1861. The
-Union army was signally defeated, and fell back on Washington in confusion.
-Their loss amounted to 481 killed, 1011 wounded, and 700 prisoners.
-The rebel or Southern loss was 269 killed and 1483 wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>BUNKER’S HILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the English
-and her revolted colonists, June 16th, 1775. On the evening of that
-day, 1000 men, under the command of Colonel Prescott, of Massachusetts,
-Colonel Stark, from New-Hampshire, and Captain Knowlton,
-from Connecticut, were despatched on this service. They were conducted,
-by mistake, to Breed’s Hill, which was nearer to the water and to Boston,
-than Bunker’s. At twelve o’clock they began to throw up entrenchments,
-and by dawn of day had completed a redoubt eight rods square. As soon
-as they were discovered, they were fired upon from a ship of war and
-several floating batteries lying near, and from a fortification in Boston
-opposite the redoubt. The Americans, nevertheless, encouraged by
-General Putnam, who often visited them on the hill, continued to labor
-until they had finished a slight breastwork extending from the redoubt
-eastward to the water. And in the morning they received a reinforcement
-of 500 men.</p>
-
-<p>The temerity of the provincials astonished and incensed General Gage,
-and he determined to drive them immediately from their position. About
-noon, a body of 3000 regulars, commanded by General Howe, left Boston
-in boats, and landed in Charlestown, at the extreme point of the peninsula.
-Generals Clinton and Burgoyne took their station on an eminence
-in Boston, commanding a distinct view of the hill. The spires of the
-churches, the roofs of the houses, and all the heights in the neighborhood,
-were covered with people, waiting, in dreadful anxiety, to witness the
-approaching battle.</p>
-
-<p>The regulars forming at the place of landing, marched slowly up the
-hill, halting frequently to allow time to the artillery to demolish the
-works. While advancing, the village of Charlestown, containing about
-400 houses, was set on fire by order of General Gage. The flames ascended
-to a lofty height, presenting a sublime and magnificent spectacle. The
-Americans reserved their fire until the British were within 10 rods of
-the redoubt; then taking a steady aim, they began a furious discharge.
-Entire ranks of the assailants fell. The enemy halted and returned the
-fire; but that from the redoubt continuing incessant and doing great<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span>
-execution, they retreated in haste and disorder down the hill, some even
-taking refuge in their boats.</p>
-
-<p>The officers were seen running hither and thither, collecting, arranging
-and addressing their men, who were at length induced again to ascend the
-hill. The Americans now reserved their fire until the enemy had approached
-even nearer than before, when a tremendous volley was at once poured
-upon them. Terrified by the carnage around them, they again retreated
-with precipitation, and such was the panic, that General Howe was left
-almost alone on the hillside, his troops having deserted him, and nearly
-every officer around him being killed.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment, General Clinton, who had observed from Boston the
-progress of the battle, feeling that British honor was at stake, hastened
-with a reinforcement to the assistance of his countrymen. By his exertions,
-the troops were a third time rallied, and were compelled by the
-officers, who marched behind them with drawn swords, to advance again
-towards the Americans. The fire from the ships and batteries was
-redoubled, and a few pieces of cannon had been so placed as to rake the
-interior of the breastwork from end to end.</p>
-
-<p>The provincials, having expended their ammunition, awaited in silence
-the approach of the regulars. The latter entered the redoubt. The former,
-having no bayonets, defended themselves, for a short time, with the butt-end
-of their muskets. From this unequal contest they were soon compelled
-to retire. As they retreated over Charleston Neck, the fire from
-the floating batteries was incessant; but a few only were killed. The
-enemy had sustained too much injury to think of pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>In this desperate and bloody conflict, the royal forces consisted, as has
-been stated, of 3000 men, and the provincials of 1500. Of the former,
-1054 were killed and wounded; of the latter 453. This disparity of loss,
-the steadiness and bravery displayed by their recent undisciplined levies,
-occasioned among the Americans the highest exultation, and, in their
-view, more than counterbalanced the loss of position.</p>
-
-
-<p>BURGOS, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Lord Wellington entered Burgos after the
-battle of Salamanca (fought July 22nd, 1812), on September 19th. The
-castle was besieged by the British and Allies, and several attempts were
-made to carry it by assault, but the siege was abandoned, October 21st,
-the same year; the castle and fortifications were blown up by the French,
-June 12th, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>BURMESE WAR.&mdash;The first dispute with the Burmese took place<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span>
-in 1795, but it was amicably settled by General Erskine. Hostilities were
-commenced in 1824, when the British took Rangoon. After some time
-peace was declared, February 24th, 1826, when the British received Arracan
-as a compensation. A naval force arrived before Rangoon, October
-29th, 1851, and after the non compliance of certain British demands by
-the viceroy, war was declared. On the 5th April, 1852, Martaban was
-stormed by the British Indian army, and on the 14th of the same month
-Rangoon itself fell into their hands. Then followed the storming of Bassein,
-May 19th, 1852, and the capture of Pegu, June 4th, 1852. On the 28th
-December following, Pegu was annexed to the Indian Government by a
-proclamation of the Governor-General.</p>
-
-
-<p>BURLINGTON HEIGHTS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British
-and the United States’ forces&mdash;an obstinate and memorable engagement,
-contested with great valour on both sides. The Americans were routed,
-and the British carried the heights, June 6th, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>BUSACO <span class="fs70">OR</span> BUZACO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This sanguinary engagement
-was fought, September 27th, 1810, between the British, under Lord
-Wellington, and the French army, commanded by Massena. The latter
-was repulsed with great slaughter, losing one general, and 1000 men killed,
-two generals and about 3000 men wounded, and several hundred prisoners;
-the loss of the British and their allies did not exceed 1300 in the
-whole. The British subsequently retreated to the lines of Torres Vedras,
-which were too strong for Massena to attempt to force, and the two
-armies remained in sight of each other to the end of the year.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="C" id="C"></a>C.</h3>
-
-
-<p>CABUL.&mdash;The following is succinct account of this expedition.</p>
-
-<p>“Every preparation was now completed for our march, and on the
-12th of October, 1842, our force, divided into three brigades, left Cabul,
-the first under General Pollock, the second under General McCaskill,
-and the rear under General Nott. We had not proceeded more than
-four miles, when we heard the explosion of the mines, which left the
-renowned Cabul a vast region of ruins; and the Affghans to judge the
-spirit of the British as an avenging one. Cabul lies under the Hindoo
-Koosh, and is bordered on the one side by the Himalaya, and the rivers
-Attock and Rozee: the people are robust and healthy; their manners
-amount to insolence and cruelty; they are continually at war with each<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>
-other; and are divided into tribes. Trade seemed to have abounded
-greatly, and the country is generally in a flourishing state: the cities of
-Cabul, Ghuznee, and Candahar, are the principal ones of Affghanistan;
-the Persians form a considerable portion of the inhabitants of Cabul,
-and the traffic with that country is somewhat extensive.</p>
-
-<p>The divisions made a general move at daybreak, on the 12th October,
-to Thag Bakh, about six miles distant from Cabul; and on the entrance
-to the Koord Cabul Pass, Her Majesty’s 9th and 13th Regiments, together
-with six Native Corps of the 1st Division, manned the hills commanding
-the pass, to enable those in the valley below to move on unmolested.
-On the morning of the 13th the troops entered the Pass which
-led to Tezeen, about nine miles. The mountains were high and craggy,
-and very dark, rendering the road extremely gloomy and sad; a torrent
-ran in a serpentine direction from side to side, which reminded me of the
-Bolun; it had to be crossed twenty-eight times during about six miles.
-We had scarcely got well into the jaws of this awful scene of romantic
-vastness, whose hollow crags seemed to echo defiance to our intruding
-tread, when a number of the enemy made their appearance in the rear,
-but were kept in check. The very great height of the mountains, of a
-dark, reddish colour, struck one with awe, and silence seemed to reign
-over all; the mind was totally occupied in contemplating this fearful
-sight of hidden deeds; horror struck the feeling heart, when the eye fell
-on the skeletons of our departed comrades, who lay in most agonizing
-positions, indicative of their last struggle for life. Here a spot would be
-strewed with a few crouched up in a corner, where they had evidently
-fled to cover themselves by some detached rock, from the overpowering
-cruelty of their foe, and had been rivetted by death. There couples were
-lying who had died in each other’s arms, locked as it were in the last embrace
-of despair: numbers lay in every direction, devoid of every particle
-of clothes; some with the greater part of the flesh putrefied on their
-bleaching bones&mdash;others were clean from having been devoured by the
-vast number of carrion birds and beasts inhabiting these terrible regions.
-I at first attempted to count the number of frames as I went along,
-but found them so numerous that I could not find time, and my inclination
-sickened from the awfulness of the scene. The pass was no more
-than thirty feet wide at this part, and so numerous were the mouldering
-frames of these whose lives had been sacrificed during the last winter,
-that they literally covered the road&mdash;and, in consequence, the artillery
-and other wheeled carriages had to pass over them&mdash;and it was indeed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
-horrible to hear the wheels cracking the bones of our unburied comrades.
-It was quite easy to discover the Europeans by the hair on the skulls,
-which still remained fresh. After a tedious, and indeed a painful march,
-we reached Tezeen, which opens from the narrow Pass into a much wider
-part, sufficient to enable us to pitch our camp. Here was a sad scene of
-recent strife&mdash;scarce a tent could be pitched but a skeleton or two had
-to be removed, just kicked aside as though it were a stump of a tree, in
-order to leave clear the place for the interior of the tent, and there
-remained unnoticed. It has often been a subject of deep reflection to me,
-to think how utterly reckless man can be made by habit: so used were
-we to these sights, that it became a mere commonplace matter to see such
-relics of devastation and massacre. I remember walking with a friend
-down the centre of the camp, and we had often to stride over skeletons,
-without the least observation, further than I could not help heaving a
-sigh, and reflecting in silence on their unfortunate end.</p>
-
-<p>The next day took us thirteen miles on a road of extreme barrenness;
-the high, wild, rugged mountains, hemmed in the narrow defile; the skeletons
-of the massacred force still strewed the road in every direction; no
-signs of vegetation, or aught to relieve the eye from wildness&mdash;the numerous
-hollow crags, as we passed, seemed to ring with echoing despair, and
-afforded most formidable positions for the treacherous Affghan to use his
-jezail or matchlock, without fear of opposition. The enemy, finding we
-had now entered the Pass, hovered about, and succeeded in murdering
-an officer, and a few men of Pollock’s force. The divisions marched one
-day a-head of each other, and thus kept up a continued line of communication.
-I, with General Nott’s, arrived at this ground on the 14th;
-the road was equally extremely harassing the next day, as indeed, ever
-since our entrance to the Pass. The ascents and descents are so numerous,
-coupled with having to cross the water so often, and there being no
-hold for the feet, on the loose flinty stones, made it very trying for both
-man and beast. Upwards of twenty times had the gushing torrent,
-dashing from side to side of the valley, to be waded through, and numbers
-of bleaching frames of the victims of Akbar’s treachery, lay exposed
-in the midst of the rolling stream. In one part of this day’s march we
-came to a place fifty yards in length, crowded with dead bodies of men,
-horses, and camels, which were those of a troop of irregular cavalry, who
-had all been cut up on this spot. About a mile from Sah Baba, our next
-ground, stands a round tower, the ruins of an old fort; it was now used
-as a bone house, and was crammed to the ceiling, with skulls, legs, arms,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>
-and shattered frames, and numbers were heaped outside the door, and
-round it,&mdash;placed there by the enemy, to form a glaring spectacle of their
-bitter revenge. A large body of Affghans were now seen covering the
-hills in our rear, and opened a fire into the dreary abyss, on our rear
-guards and baggage as they passed. The column had moved on some few
-miles, but were halted, and those of our troops in possession of the
-heights commenced an attack, and succeeded in repelling them, and
-forcing them to retreat, and we reached camp with little loss. This place
-is said to be the burial place of Lamech, the father of Noah, and if we
-may judge from its wild, dreary, stony, barren appearance, which looked
-as if it had been washed up into a heap after the deluge, and so void of
-all chances of fertility, that one could scarcely doubt the tradition.</p>
-
-<p>Our next day led on to Kutta Sang, and of all the roads I had ever
-seen or traversed, as yet, this was the worst. The route led from hill
-to hill, the ascents being difficult and stony, and the descents in addition
-being very dangerous, as a fearful precipice presented itself should
-you happen to fall. These unwelcome views were many in number, and
-coupled with the tedious progress of the cattle and baggage, and the difficulty
-experienced in dragging the guns and loads up these many steep
-hills, and nothing but a dreary road to travel onward, made the march
-bad indeed. After the main body reached camp, the rear guard was
-attacked; a reinforcement was despatched, and a smart skirmish ensued;
-the Affghans seemed to delight in annoying us, and from their hidden
-positions most peremptorily carried their plan into effect; we lost
-few men compared with them, and the whole reached camp about
-midnight. Still the poor soldier found misery destined for him in
-every direction. On arriving at a new ground, two regiments had to
-mount duty on the summits of the hills bordering the route, which
-had to be ascended after the day’s harassing march, thus forming a
-second, much more so. The scanty, coarse meal, being nothing more
-than a quantity of meat and broth made from an allowance of a scarcely
-lifeless carcass, of the hard-driven, skeletonized bullock, and this of times
-not prepared before the dead hour of night; and then carried up to the
-men cold and tasteless. The bread or cake made of coarse, hand-ground
-flour, full of grit and small straw, half-baked and calculated to produce
-disease by its use; and ere this was well eaten, the rouse would sound,
-and the weary instrument of Britain’s safety would be wending his way
-through the dreary and unknown regions, ’mid almost perpendicular rocks,
-and perilous tracks. Such was the road of the next day’s march, to Jugdulluk<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-Pass: this is by no means the most difficult one to explore&mdash;the
-sides not being near so high as those already traversed; it had some
-appearance of fertility, being studded with many small bushes. There were
-innumerable small caves, or recesses in the rocks, and it was from those
-dark-dens, forming cover for the enemy, that they succeeded so well in cutting
-off our unfortunate brethren, whose skeletons here were very numerously
-strewed about the path, and thus rendered the Pass more horrible
-than it would have been; for the light shone brighter here than we had
-it for some time. Nay, so stupendous were the mountains, hemming the
-ravines we had passed, that it would be often far advanced in the day
-before the sun would be seen by those beneath.</p>
-
-<p>The unfortunate 44th made a somewhat successful stand in the
-Jugdulluk Pass, and succeeded, ere they were overpowered, in slaying
-many of their foes. The pass was narrow, and the Affghans, who
-had preceded us some hours, with a view to intercept and baffle us, had
-formed breastworks across the road; and, would it be believed, that these
-breastworks were formed of skeletons of our own men and horses?
-Not less than 100 frames could have been here piled up, which had
-to be removed before we could pass on. About 600 of the enemy made
-their appearance here, and in the first onset did considerable damage,&mdash;but
-a detachment from the main body soon dislodged them, and put
-them to the rout; it was common to see, lying on the road, bodies of murdered
-Sepoys and couriers; and in fact to attempt to enumerate the acts
-of treachery practised on us, would be next to impossible. We at length
-reached Soorkab. At this ground was a cluster of fine tall trees, which
-relieved the eye, and led us to hope we were approaching a land of the
-living; the camp was bordered by the celebrated Red River, a most beautiful
-crystal stream, rolling most musically over a stony bottom, and
-under the ridge of an immense mountain; the continued buzz kept up by
-the murmuring torrent echoing from the fearful crags, lulled the weary
-travellers in camp to sleep. Across this river is a most splendid bridge of
-one gigantic arch, which led by a declivitous route from this Pass to another;
-on the right of this bridge, which was erected by Alexander, issued
-a cataract roaring and dashing from the hills, which fed the stream, and
-formed a most beautiful picture. It was on this bridge that a number of
-the 44th&mdash;from the extreme inclemency of the weather, and the bitterness of
-the frost&mdash;were so benumbed with cold that they were unable to use their
-arms when attacked on their retreat. Oh! when reflection is but called
-up, and the miserable condition of these poor, oppressed creatures, considered,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-it cannot but call forth a sigh of deep regret,&mdash;bereft of every
-chance of escape, or wherewithal to exist,&mdash;as they were. When we
-consider that some of our nearest and dearest relatives or friends were
-amongst the number&mdash;surely, if there is one spark of sympathy left, it
-will be kindled for those whose last struggle was for their country’s
-cause.</p>
-
-<p>Our next route led across the bridge through the defile already
-described, and on the road were lying the bodies of two murdered Sepoys.
-The ascents and descents were as usual; and from the summit of these
-intersecting hills, the eye would carry itself upon range after range of never
-ending cliffs and walls of mountains; the dark aspect of the distant horizon
-carried with it a volume of thoughts, wondering when the back would
-be once more turned on such dreariness. The moving mass below would
-be seen winding its serpentine length along the Pass, which from its narrowness,
-being obstructed by huge masses of detached rock having fallen
-from the heights, and impassable by other than taking a circuitous route,
-were truly harassing to the men and cattle. I may as well here mention
-the great trials and difficulties experienced in dragging along the heavy
-portions of the baggage, more particularly the celebrated Somnauth gates,
-which it will doubtless be remembered, were taken by direction of the
-Governor General, from the tomb of Sultan Mahomed at Ghuznee. These
-gates, it will doubtless also be remembered, were the idolatrous trophy of
-the Hindoos in the Guzerat Peninsula. The General directed a guard
-of not less than the wing of a regiment to mount over these gates, which
-were placed upon two platform carts, and drawn by six bullocks each.
-The other castes of the native Sepoys would not go near them, and the
-Hindoos were comparatively few, and insufficient to perform the duty,
-and as these gates were to be taken to the provinces for the purpose of
-being restored to that race, so great was the care taken of them that they
-were placed next to the main body of the army on the march, and nothing
-was permitted to go before them. The consequence was, that oftentimes,
-owing to the bullocks growing stubborn, the whole in the rear have been
-delayed; and the gates have had to be dragged by fatigue parties of the
-Europeans&mdash;night has set in&mdash;the enemy have taken advantage of our
-position, and have succeeded in cutting off numbers who otherwise would
-have been safe in camp. The badness of the roads and darkness of the
-night, together with the incessant fatigue and consequent loss occasioned
-by the protection of these idolatrous baubles, have caused much well-grounded
-controversy, and involved much discredit on the authorities.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span>
-Many are the lives which have been lost by this&mdash;and for what? to restore
-to a tribe of idolaters, an idol, that they might worship with the greater
-vehemence, as it had been recaptured for them; and all this, too, by
-the representative of a Christian people. I need say nothing farther,
-except that, owing to the great question raised relative to their restoration,
-in our Parliament in 1843 and 1844, and since the recall of Lord
-Ellenborough, they remain like so much lumber stored in one of the
-stations in Bengal.</p>
-
-<p>But to proceed to the march. A short distance from our camp, which
-was Gundamuck, stands a small hill, where the remnant of the 44th
-Regiment, about 300, made their last stand, and fought most desperately
-whilst their ammunition lasted, and were at length annihilated: their
-skeletons strewed the hill sides and summit; about 250 soldiers, and
-upwards of 30 officers, I believe, fell on this hill, and a deplorable sight it
-presented. We soon reached the camp, where Generals Pollock and
-McCaskill had halted; this place had been formed into a <em>dépôt</em> for grain
-and forage (only chopped straw), on Pollock’s advance on Cabul; the
-Passes from Peshawur, as he passed through, had been kept by our troops;
-thus in a great measure securing our route. We now refreshed ourselves
-with a day’s rest, and our cattle with a feast of forage, such as it was;
-and also in comparative confidence, as we were now but a couple of day’s
-stage from Jellalabad. The mails from Europe for the army were
-despatched from Calcutta and met us at this place, so that all in all it was
-quite a day of pleasure, receiving news from that dear place Home,
-“which never was so sweetly felt as in such times as these,”&mdash;conjunction
-of the Divisions, and recognition of old comrades who had escaped the
-perils of the few past days, and such like,&mdash;made the whole feel refreshed,
-and filled us with the utmost cheerfulness.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CAIRO, <span class="fs70">OR</span> GRAND CAIRO.&mdash;Burnt to prevent its occupation
-by the Crusaders, in 1220. Taken by the Turks from the Egyptian
-sultans, and their empire subdued, 1517. Taken by the French under
-Bonaparte, July 23rd, 1798. Taken by the British and Turks, when
-6000 French capitulated, June 27th, 1801.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="CAL" id="CAL"></a></div>
-<p>CALAIS.&mdash;Taken by Edward III, after a year’s siege, August
-4th, 1347, and held by England 210 years. It was retaken by Mary,
-January 7th, 1558, and the loss of Calais so deeply touched the Queen’s
-heart, historians say it occasioned her death. Calais was bombarded by
-the English, 1694.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>CALVI, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Besieged by the British, June 12th, 1744,
-and after a close investment of 59 days, surrendered on August 10th
-following. The garrison then marched out with the honors of war, and
-were conveyed to Toulon. It surrendered to the French in 1796.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAMBRAY.&mdash;Taken by the Spaniards in 1595. It was invested
-by the Austrians, August 8th, 1793, and the Republican General Declay
-replied to the Imperial summons to surrender, that “he knew not how
-to do <em>that</em>, but his soldiers knew how to fight.” The French here were
-defeated by the Duke of York, April 23rd, 1794. It was then seized
-by the British, by Sir Charles Colville, June 24th, 1815. This was one
-of the fortresses occupied by the allied armies for five years after the fall
-of Napoleon.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAMDEN, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The first battle fought here was
-between General Gates and Lord Cornwallis. The Americans were
-defeated August 16th, 1780. The second battle was fought between
-the revolted Americans and the British, the former commanded by
-General Greene, and the latter by Lord Rawdon. The Americans were
-again defeated, April 25th, 1781. Camden was evacuated and burnt by
-the British, May 13th, 1781.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAMPERDOWN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This was a memorable engagement,
-off Camperdown, between the British fleet, under Admiral Duncan,
-and the Dutch fleet, commanded by Admiral De Winter. The Dutch
-lost 15 ships, which were either taken or sunk. It was fought October
-11th, 1797. This victory obtained the brave and good Admiral a
-peerage.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAMPO FORMIO, TREATY OF.&mdash;Concluded between France
-and Austria. This memorable and humiliating treaty took place on the
-17th October, 1797. By this treaty Austria had to yield the low countries
-and the Ionian Islands to France; and Milan &amp;c., to the Cisalpine
-Republic.</p>
-
-
-<p>CANNAE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle, one of the most celebrated
-in ancient history, was fought between the Romans and Hannibal. The
-forces of the Africans amounted to 50,000, while those of the Romans
-were equal to 88,000, of whom 40,000 were slain. The victor sent
-3 bushels of gold rings as a present to the Carthagenian ladies, which
-he had taken off the fingers of the Roman knights slain in this memorable<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
-engagement. So contested was the fight that neither side perceived
-an earthquake, which happened during the battle. The place is now
-called “The Field of Blood.” Fought 21st May, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 216.</p>
-
-
-<p>CANNON.&mdash;They are said to have been used as early as 1338. First
-used by the English at the siege of Calais, 1347. Used by the English
-first in battle, that of Crecy, in 1346.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAPE BRETON.&mdash;Discovered by the English 1584. Taken by
-the French in 1632. Restored and again taken in 1745, and retaken
-in 1748. Finally possessed by the English, when 5000 men were made
-prisoners of war, and 11 ships destroyed, 1758. Ceded to England at
-the peace of 1783.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAPE ST. VINCENT.&mdash;<em>1st Battle.</em>&mdash;Admiral Rooke, with 20 ships
-of war, and the Turkish fleet under his convoy, was attacked by
-Admiral Tourville with a force vastly superior to his own, off Cape St.
-Vincent, when 12 English and Dutch men of war and 80 merchantmen
-were captured or destroyed by the French. It was fought June 15th,
-1693.</p>
-
-<p><em>2nd Battle.</em>&mdash;This second battle was one of the most glorious of
-the British navy. Sir John Jarvis, being in command of the Mediterranean
-fleet of 15 sail, gave battle to the Spanish fleet of 27 ships of
-the line, and signally defeated the enemy, nearly double in strength,
-taking 4 ships and destroying several others. Fought February 14th,
-1797. For this victory Sir John Jarvis was raised to the peerage under
-the title of Earl St. Vincent.</p>
-
-
-<p>CAPTAIN.&mdash;This title, derived from the French <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">capitaine</i>, literally
-signifies a head or chief officer,&mdash;the officer who commands a company.
-In Turkey, the Captain-Bashaw is the High Admiral.</p>
-
-
-<p>CARLISLE.&mdash;The castle founded by William II, in 1092, was made
-the prison of the unfortunate Queen of Scots, 1568. Taken by the
-Parliamentary forces in 1645, and by the Pretender in 1745.</p>
-
-
-<p>CARRICKFERGUS.&mdash;This town surrendered to the Duke of
-Schomberg, August 28th, 1689. William III landed here June 14th,
-1690, to reduce the adherents of James II. This place is memorable
-for the expedition of the French Admiral Thurot, when its castle surrendered
-to his force of 1000 men, in 1760.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>CARTHAGE.&mdash;Founded by Dido. Taken by the Roman General
-Scipio, and burnt to the ground <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 146. The flames of the burning
-city raged for 17 days, and thousands of the inhabitants perished in them
-rather than survive the calamities of their country. Afterwards it was
-rebuilt, but razed by the Saracens, and now no trace of the city appears.</p>
-
-
-<p>CARTHAGENA.&mdash;<em>In Columbia</em>.&mdash;Was taken by Sir Francis Drake
-in 1584. It was pillaged by the French of £1,200,000 in 1697. It
-was bombarded by Admiral Vernon in 1740&ndash;1.</p>
-
-<p>“When the forces were landed at Carthagena, the commanders erected
-a battery, with which they made a breach in the principal fort, while
-Vernon, who commanded the fleet, sent a number of ships into the
-harbor to divide the fire of the enemy, and to co-operate with the army
-on shore. The breach being deemed practicable, a body of troops were
-commanded to storm; but the Spaniards deserted the forts, which, if
-possessed of courage, they might have defended with success. The
-troops, upon gaining this advantage, were advanced a good deal nearer
-the city; but there they met a much greater opposition than they had
-expected. It was found, or at least asserted, that the fleet could not lie
-near enough to batter the town, and that nothing remained but to
-attempt one of the forts by scaling. The leaders of the fleet and the
-army began mutually to accuse each other, each asserting the probability
-of what the other denied. At length, Wentworth, stimulated by the
-admiral’s reproach, resolved to try the dangerous experiment, and ordered
-that fort St. Lazare should be attempted by scalade. Nothing could be
-more unfortunate than this undertaking; the forces marching up to the
-attack, the guides were slain, and they mistook their way. Instead of
-attempting the weakest part of the fort, they advanced to where it was
-the strongest, and where they were exposed to the fire of the town.
-Colonel Grant, who commanded the grenadiers, was killed in the beginning.
-Soon after it was found that their scaling ladders were too short;
-the officers were perplexed for want of orders, and the troops stood
-exposed to the whole fire of the enemy, without knowing how to proceed.
-After bearing a dreadful fire for some hours with great intrepidity, they
-at length retreated, leaving 600 men dead on the spot. The terrors of
-the climate soon began to be more dreadful than those of war; the
-rainy season came on with such violence, that it was impossible for the
-troops to continue encamped; and the mortality of the season now began
-to attack them in all its frightful varieties. To these calamities, sufficient<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span>
-to quell any enterprise, was added the dissension between the land
-and sea commanders, who blamed each other for every failure, and
-became frantic with mutual recrimination. They only, therefore, at
-last, could be brought to agree in one mortifying measure, which was to
-re-embark the troops, and withdraw them as quickly as possible from the
-scene of slaughter and contagion.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CASTIGLIONE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most brilliant victories
-of the French arms under Napoleon against the Austrians, commanded
-by General Wurmsex. The battle lasted 5 days, from the 2nd to the
-6th July, 1796. The Austrians lost 70 field pieces, all their caissons,
-and between 12,000 to 15,000 prisoners, and 6000 killed and wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>CASTILLON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In France.</em>&mdash;Fought between the
-armies of England (Henry VI) and those of France (Charles VII).
-The English were signally defeated, July 7th, 1453,&mdash;Calais alone remaining
-in their hands.</p>
-
-
-<p>CASTLEBAR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between a body of French
-troops and an insurgent Irish force, at Killala, on the one hand, and the
-King’s royal forces on the other; the latter, after a short contest, being
-obliged to retire, August 28th, 1798.</p>
-
-
-<p>CATAMARANS.&mdash;Fire machines for destroying ships, invented and
-tried on the Boulogne flotilla of Napoleon. Sir Sidney Smith attempted
-to burn the flotilla, but failed, August 31st, 1805.</p>
-
-
-<p>CATAPULTÆ.&mdash;Engines used by the ancient Romans for throwing
-stones. Invented by Dionysius, the King of Syracuse, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 399.</p>
-
-
-<p>CATEAU, PEACE OF.&mdash;Concluded between Henry II of France
-and Philip II of Spain, in 1599. A battle was fought here between the
-allies, under the Prince of Cobourg, and the French. The latter were
-defeated with a loss of 5000 in killed and 5 pieces of cannon, March
-28th, 1794.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="CAW" id="CAW"></a></div>
-<p>CAWNPORE.&mdash;<em>In India.</em>&mdash;Famous in the Great Indian mutiny,
-which is thus described:</p>
-
-<p>“At Cawnpore, a terrible disaster befell the British arms. Sir Hugh
-Wheeler, a veteran officer of approved bravery, had entrenched himself
-in the barracks with a force of less than 300 fighting men, and upwards
-of 500 women and children, the wives and families of officers and civilians,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span>
-and of the Queen’s 32d regiment, then besieged at Lucknow. The
-insurgents were commanded by Nena Sahib, or, rather, Dhandoo Pant,
-Rajah of Bhitoor, the adopted son of the late Peishwah Bajee Raho.
-This man, under the mask of kindly feeling toward the English, nurtured
-a deadly hatred against the government, which had refused to acknowledge
-his claims as the Peishwah’s successor. He had long been addicted
-to the most revolting sensuality, and had lost all control over his passions.
-Wearied and enraged by the desperate resistance of this handful of brave
-men, he offered them a safe passage to Allahabad, if they would give up
-their guns and treasure. The place, indeed, was no longer tenable; and
-the survivors, diminished in number, were exhausted by constant vigils
-and want of food. In an evil moment, then, they accepted the terms of
-their perfidious enemy, marched down to the river, and embarked on
-board the boats which had been prepared for them. Suddenly a masked
-battery opened fire upon them, and crowds of horse and foot soldiers lined
-either bank. Many were shot dead, still more were drowned, and about
-150 taken prisoners; four only escaped by swimming. The men were
-instantly put to death in cold blood; the women and children were
-spared for a few days longer.</p>
-
-<p>“General Havelock, taking the command at Allahabad of the 78th
-Highlanders, the Queen’s 64th, the 1st Madras Fusiliers, and the Ferozepore
-regiment of Sikhs, had set out in the hope of arriving at Cawnpore in
-time to release Sir Hugh Wheeler and his devoted comrades. After
-marching 126 miles, fighting four actions, and capturing a number of guns
-of heavy calibre, in eight days, and in the worst season of an Indian
-climate, he was yet too late to avert the terrible catastrophe. The day
-before he entered Cawnpore, Nena Sahib foully murdered the women and
-children, who alone survived of the Cawnpore garrison, and caused them
-to be flung, the dead and the dying, into a well of the courtyard of the
-assembly rooms.”</p>
-
-<p>Another account says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“General Havelock arrived before Cawnpore on the 18th July, and so
-eager was he to rescue the garrison (for he was not yet aware of what
-had happened), that he attacked the Sepoy position without delay.
-Ordering a charge, his gallant band rushed to the onset. Not a word
-was uttered until when within 100 yards of the rebels, <em>three deafening
-cheers</em>,&mdash;cheers such as Englishmen only can give, rang out. Then came
-the crash; a murderous volley of musketry and the crash of bayonets
-soon drove the mutineers back, and Cawnpore was taken; 1000 British<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span>
-troops and 300 Sikhs had put to flight 5000 of the flower of the native
-soldiery, with a native chief in command.</p>
-
-<p>“When Havelock’s soldiers entered the assembly rooms, the blood
-came up over their shoes. There they found clotted locks of hair, leaves
-of religious books, and fragments of clothing in sickening array, while
-into the well outside the bodies had been rudely thrown. The horrors
-of that scene will never be fully known. A terrible retribution fell on
-the mutineers. General Neil compelled the Brahmins to wipe out, on their
-bended knees, the sanguinary traces of the outrages before he ordered
-them to execution, and when the 78th Highlanders found the mutilated
-remains of one of General Wheeler’s daughters, they divided the locks of
-hair among them, pledging each other in solemn covenant, that for every
-hair thus appropriated, a mutineer’s life and that alone could be the
-atonement. The eldest daughter of Sir Hugh Wheeler is said to have
-behaved in a most heroic manner; one of the natives testified that she shot
-five <em>Sepoys</em> with a revolver, and then threw herself into the well.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CAVALRY.&mdash;Of the ancients the Romans had the best cavalry. To
-each legion there was attached 300 cavalry in ten turmae. The Persians
-were famous for their horse troops&mdash;they had 10,000 horse at the battle of
-Marathon, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 490, and 10,000 Persian cavalry at the battle of Issus,
-<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 333. Horse soldiers were early introduced into the British army.
-During the wars of Napoleon the strength amounted to 31,000 men. The
-British cavalry is divided into the household troops, dragoons, hussars
-and lancers. Since 1840 the number has continued, with little variation,
-to the present day, at about 10,000.</p>
-
-
-<p>CEDAR RAPIDS, CANADA.&mdash;Occupied by the Americans as a
-small fort in 1776. Taken by a detachment of the British army, and
-500 Indians, under the celebrated Indian chief Brant, <em>without firing a
-gun</em>. The Americans sent to its support were captured after a severe
-engagement.</p>
-
-
-<p>CENTURION.&mdash;From the Latin <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Centum</i> a hundred. An officer who
-commanded 100 men in the Roman army. There were 6000 men in a
-legion, and hence sixty centurions. He was distinguished from the others
-by a branch of vine which he carried in his hand.</p>
-
-
-<p>CEYLON.&mdash;Discovered by the Portuguese, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1505. Columbo, its
-capital, taken by the Dutch, in 1603, recovered in 1621; again taken 1656.
-Seized by the British 1795. Ceded to Great Britain by the Peace of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
-Amiens in 1802. The British troops were treacherously massacred or
-imprisoned by the Adigar of Candy, June 26th, 1803. The complete
-sovereignty of the whole island taken by England in 1815.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHÆRONEA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Athenians
-and Bœotians, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 447. Another battle, and the great one of history,
-was fought here between the confederate army of Greece of 30,000, and
-that of the Macedonians, under Philip, amounting to 32,000, August 2nd,
-338 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> Yet another battle was fought here between Archelaus, Lieutenant
-of Mithridates and Sylla, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 86, when Archelaus was defeated and
-110,000 Cappadocians slain.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHAMBLY.&mdash;An important military post on the River Richelieu,
-Canada. It was often attacked by the Iroquois Indians. In 1775 it
-was captured by the Americans, but retaken in 1776. It is now a small
-military station.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHARLEROI, BATTLES OF.&mdash;Great battles in several wars have
-been fought near this town; the chief in 1690 and 1794. (<em>See <a href="#FLE">Fleurus</a>.</em>)
-Besieged by Prince of Orange in 1672, and again invested by the same
-Prince, with 60,000 men, in 1677, but he was obliged to retire. Near to
-the place is Ligny&mdash;(which see)&mdash;memorable at the battle of Waterloo.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHARLESTOWN.&mdash;<em>Massachusetts.</em>&mdash;Burnt by the British forces
-under General Gage, January 17th, 1775. English fleet here repulsed
-with great loss, June 28th, 1776. Taken by the British, May 7th, 1779.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHARLESTON.&mdash;<em>South Carolina</em>.&mdash;Besieged by the British troops
-in March 1780, and surrendered in May 13th following, with 6000
-prisoners. Evacuated by the British, April 14th, 1783. Famous during
-the wars of Secession. The South Carolina Convention assembled here,
-March 26th, 1861. A battle was fought here, and the rebels or Confederates
-defeated, August 19th, 1861, and after experiencing all the vicissitudes
-of war, it was evacuated February 17th, 1865, and next day surrendered
-to General Gilmore.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHATEAUGUAY.&mdash;<em>Canada.</em>&mdash;To effect a junction with the army
-of General Wilkinson, on October 26th, 1813, General Hampton, with
-3500 men pushed forward from Lake Champlain towards Montreal. At
-the junction of the Ontario and Chateauguay Rivers, he there met 400
-Canadians under Colonel de Salaberry, who most bravely disputed his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>
-advance. By skilful management and great bravery on the part of the
-Canadian officers, Viger and Doucet, the Americans were compelled to
-retreat towards Plattsburg. Their loss was considerable, while that of
-the Canadians was only two men killed and sixteen wounded. Gen.
-Hampton returned to Plattsburg, his army having dwindled away by
-sickness and desertion.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHATILLON, CONGRESS OF.&mdash;Held by the four powers allied
-against France, February 5th, 1814, but the negociation for peace was
-broken off, March 19th following.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHAUMONT, TREATY OF.&mdash;Between Great Britain, Austria,
-Russia and Prussia, March 1st, 1814. It was followed by the treaty of
-Paris, by which Napoleon abdicated, April 11th following.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHERBOURG.&mdash;Famous for an engagement between the English
-and French fleets. French defeated; 21 of their ships burnt or destroyed
-by Admirals Rooke and Russel, May 19th, 1692. The fort, etc., destroyed
-by the British, who landed August, 1758. The works begun by Louis
-XVI, and completed by Napoleon, are proof against any armament in
-the world.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHESAPEAKE, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought at the mouth of the
-river of this name, between the British Admiral Greaves and the French
-Admiral De Grasse, in the interest of the revolted States of America,
-1781. The Chesapeake and Delaware, blockaded by the British in 1812.
-The American frigate of this name surrendered to the Shannon, British
-frigate, after a very severe action, June 2nd, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHILLIANWALLAH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In India.</em>&mdash;This memorable
-and sanguinary battle, between the Sikh forces and the British, was
-fought January 13th, 1849. Lord Gough commanded. The Sikhs were
-completely routed, but the British also suffered severely: 26 officers were
-killed and 66 wounded, and 731 rank and file were killed and 1446
-wounded. The loss of the Sikhs was 3000 killed and 4000 wounded. This
-battle was followed by the attack on the Sikh camp and the army under
-Sheere Shing, in its position at Goojerat (which see) February 21st, 1849.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHIPPEWA.&mdash;On the 5th July, 1814, General Ball with 2400 men
-gave battle here to 4000 Americans. The British fought bravely, but
-were obliged to retire to Lundy’s Lane, or Bridgewater, near the Falls
-of Niagara.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>CHRYSLER’S FARM.&mdash;<em>Williamsburg, Canada.</em>&mdash;On the 11th November,
-1813, the Americans, under General Wilkinson, in their passage
-down the St. Lawrence to attack Montreal, being harassed by the Canadian
-forces, resolved to land and disperse them. They were 2000 strong
-and the Canadians 1000. After two hours of very hard fighting, in an
-open field, the Americans were compelled to retire, with the loss of one
-general, and 350 killed and wounded. Canadian loss 200. Medals were
-granted to the victors of this battle by the British Government.</p>
-
-
-<p>CHINA.&mdash;“The opening of the China trade to all British subjects,
-by the abolition of the East India Company’s monopoly in 1833, gave
-rise to a series of disputes with the native rulers, which at length led
-to open hostilities. These disputes, relating at first mainly to the legal
-rights and immunities to be enjoyed by the commercial superintendents
-appointed by the British cabinet, came eventually to be merged in the
-greater question touching the traffic in opium, which had all along been in
-some measure declared contraband by the Imperial Government. It was
-not, however, peremptorily prohibited till 1836; and even afterwards,
-through the connivance of the inferior authorities, an active smuggling
-trade continued to be carried on till 1839, when the Imperial Commissioner
-Lin, determined on its forcible suppression, seized the persons of
-the British merchants at Canton, and of Captain Elliot, the superintendent.
-That functionary was then compelled, by threats of personal
-violence to himself and his fellow-prisoners, to issue an order for the
-surrender of all the opium on board the vessels in the vicinity of Canton,
-which, to the value of above £2,000,000 sterling, was accordingly given
-up to the Chinese, who destroyed it,&mdash;the superintendent at the same
-time pledging the faith of the English government for compensation to
-the merchants. After various fruitless attempts to obtain satisfaction for
-this outrage, or even an accommodation by which the regular trade might
-be resumed, the cabinet of London resolved on hostilities. These, which
-were vigorously prosecuted, gave the Chinese a salutary lesson as to their
-inferiority to Europeans in military science and discipline; and they
-ended in a peace, signed August 29th, 1842, by which the Emperor agreed
-to pay $21,000,000 by way of compensation, to open five of his principal
-ports to our commerce, and to surrender the island of Hong-Kong to the
-British crown for ever.”</p>
-
-<p>The following is a brief narrative from an English journal of the war
-of 1860 in China:&mdash;“On the 25th of June, 1860, the arrival of Sir<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-Hope Grant at Tahlien Bay completed the muster of the British
-force in Northern China. General de Montauban reached Cheefoo at
-the same time, but his tale of men was not full; and as the Ambassadors
-were not due for a fortnight, it was determined that our troops should
-be landed. This was done, and horses and men benefited exceedingly by
-their sojourn on the breezy slopes which look upon the northern and
-southern sides of the grand harbor of Tahlien-wan, chosen for our
-rendezvous; notwithstanding that the hottest month of the summer was
-passed by the men in bell-tents, and by horses in the open.</p>
-
-<p>On the 1st August, a landing was effected at Pehtang without opposition,
-much to our surprise and delight, for the only spot at which disembarkation
-was practicable is distant only 2000 yards from the snug-looking
-forts which appeared to protect the town; and even at this place
-there was a mile of water at high tide, or of more difficult mud at low
-water, to be traversed, before the troops could reach anything which
-might, by courtesy or comparison, be termed dry ground.</p>
-
-<p>The 2nd brigade of 1st Division of British troops, and a French brigade,
-formed the first landing party. A vigorous resistance had been
-expected at this place; and had a fair proportion of the means lavished
-on the defence of the Peiho been expended on the Pehtang river, we should
-have had great trouble, for by nature that position is certainly the
-stronger. The forts on either side, and the town which adjoins that on
-the right bank, are built on two molecules of solid ground, which have
-turned up, one does not know how, at a distance of five miles inland
-from the bar, which closes the entrance of the river, to even the smallest
-gunboats, save at high water. The town is surrounded by a sea of mud,
-impassable to horse or man, inundated at high tide; it is connected with
-the comparatively higher country bordering the Peiho by a narrow causeway,
-which a determined and skilful enemy could hold against any force
-whatever, until driven successively from positions which might be established
-on the causeway at every hundred yards. We found, on the night
-of the 1st August, that the forts were deserted, and that the guns with
-which they bristled were but wooden “Quakers.” Next day we occupied
-town and forts.</p>
-
-<p>Large bodies of cavalry having shown themselves in our front, a reconnaissance
-was made on the 3rd August, covered, in the absence of cavalry,
-not yet landed, by infantry and by two French 8-pounder guns, the only
-artillery disembarked. We discovered that our polite enemy had left the
-causeway unoccupied, and that his force held no position nearer than 8<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
-miles from the town we were in. The Chinese pickets opened fire upon
-our troops, but were speedily driven back. The reconnaissance effected,
-our force returned to Pehtang unmolested.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Admirals had set to work, landing troops, horses, guns,
-materiel, and stores. The navy worked famously; and as everything had
-to be brought into the river either in, or in tow of, the gunboats, whose
-movements depended upon the tides, the work, under the active superintendence
-of Captain Borlase, C.B., continued without regard to any
-arbitrary distinction between day and night. During four or five of the
-ten days spent in this tedious operation, the rain fell in torrents; and as
-the interior of Pehtang is below high water-mark, the streets were knee-deep
-in mud, composed, in addition to the usual impurities pertaining to
-that substance, of flour, wardrobes, Tartar-hats, field rakes, coal, shutters,
-oil-cake, chaff, china-cups, matting, beer-bottles, tin cans, and kittens,
-being chiefly the contents of the dwellings of the townspeople, which were
-successively turned out of windows to make room for our troops. The
-cavalry and artillery horses were picketed in the streets, where alone space
-was available; and how they and we and everybody escaped death from
-typhus fever or plague, Heaven only knows. The sanitary officer was
-outraged by the result. During this time, water for the use of the troops
-was obtained in boats filled by the navy in the river above the influence
-of the tide, and towed to Pehtang, where the contents were landed in
-barrels for distribution.</p>
-
-<p>On the 12th August, after a delay of a day on account of the French,
-who at first were unwilling to advance till the season changed, we moved
-out to attack the enemy’s position; General Michel with the 1st Division
-and the French, along the causeway against the enemy’s front, General
-Napier, with the 2nd Division and cavalry, by a track which diverged
-from the causeway to the right at a short distance from Pehtang, with
-the view of turning the enemy’s left.</p>
-
-<p>It will not be easy for those who were not present to realise the
-difficulties of this march, or to do justice to the troops who performed
-it. The gun-waggons sank literally axle-deep, and their hinder parts had
-to be left behind; the heavy cavalry were greatly distressed in struggling
-through the mud, and it occupied the troops six hours to traverse four
-miles, during which time the enemy remained in his position.</p>
-
-<p>Napier’s division having reached moderately firm ground, advanced
-upon the open Tartar flank and rear; whilst the Allied left cannonaded
-his front, which was covered by a formidable intrenchment. The Tartar<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span>
-cavalry came out in great numbers to meet Napier, who opened on them
-with Armstrong guns. At first the Tartars seemed puzzled, but not disturbed;
-presently, seeing they were losing men, they rapidly extended,
-and in a few minutes the 2nd Division stood enveloped in a grand circle
-of horsemen, advancing from all points towards the centre. Napier’s infantry
-were speedily deployed, his cavalry let loose, and artillery kept
-going; and though the heavy ground was rendered more difficult for our
-cavalry by ditches broad and deep, whose passages were known to the
-enemy alone, yet, within a quarter of an hour of their advance, the Tartar
-force was everywhere in retreat. Not, however, till a body of their horsemen,
-which had charged Sterling’s battery, had been gallantly met and
-beaten by a party of Fane’s Horse, inferior in number, under Lieutenant
-Macgregor, who was severely wounded.</p>
-
-<p>The Allied left then advanced along the causeway, and occupied the
-lines of the intrenchments about Senho, which the enemy deserted on the
-success of our right.</p>
-
-<p>Amongst some papers found after the action, was a copy of a report
-from the Tartar General San-ko-lin-tzin to the Emperor, setting forth
-that the physical difficulties in the way of our landing at Pehtang, and
-of advancing thence across a country which never is dry, rendered it
-unnecessary to dispute our disembarkation on that river; and even if a
-landing should be effected, and our troops could be got under weigh, the
-general considered that nothing would be easier than to destroy us with
-his hordes of cavalry, so soon as we got entangled in the marshes.</p>
-
-<p>At Senho the Allied forces rested their right on the Peiho river. The
-Taku Forts are about six miles lower down. Mid-way between Senho and
-the northernmost or nearest fort on the left bank, stands the town of
-Tungkoo, surrounded by a very long intrenchment, consisting of a formidable
-rampart and a parapet, covered in all its length by a double wet
-ditch.</p>
-
-<p>General de Montauban proposed to attack this town the afternoon we
-reached Senho, but Sir Hope Grant would not consent to do so until he
-had acquired some knowledge of the position.</p>
-
-<p>The French Commander-in-Chief thereon determined to take the place
-at once without the aid of our troops. The French troops were led along
-the causeway communicating between Senho and Tungkoo, which
-appeared to be the only means of approach; but so considerable a fire was
-developed from the ramparts as to deter our Allies from attempting a
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup-de-main</i>, and they returned to camp after cannonading the place for
-half an hour.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Means having been afterwards found of approaching Tungkoo with a
-large front on firm ground, the 1st British Division and the French captured
-the place on the 14th August. It was exclusively an affair of artillery;
-the enemy’s guns in position on the ramparts were silenced by our
-Armstrong and 9-pounder guns, and the rifled 24-pounder of the French,
-gradually advanced, covered by infantry, to successive positions, as the
-enemy’s fire became weaker. The Allies had forty-two guns in the field.
-We found about fifty guns of all sorts in the ramparts, which the enemy,
-abandoned as our infantry advanced under cover of the guns. The British
-headed by the 60th Rifles, turned the right of the ditch, and entered the
-works a quarter of an hour before the French, who made their entry at
-the gate.</p>
-
-<p>After taking Tungkoo, the 1st Division (British) returned to its camp
-in front of Senho, and the 2nd Division, which had been in reserve,
-occupied the town.</p>
-
-<p>The view from General Napier’s house-top was not encouraging. As
-far as the eye could reach, we were surrounded by salt marshes, intersected
-by very numerous and wide canals, which carry sea-water into the salt-pans.</p>
-
-<p>It was in contemplation to attack the north and south forts simultaneously,
-with a force operating on each side of the Peiho, and a bridge
-of boats was in course of construction across the river at Senho. But as
-all the materials of the bridge, save boats, had to be conveyed overland
-from Pehtang, its progress could not be rapid. Meanwhile, by dint of
-most laborious reconnaissance, General Napier had discovered that open
-ground near the north fort could be reached by artillery, on the completion
-of a line of causeway which he had commenced over the inundated
-ground within the town of Tungkoo, and by establishing crossing-places
-at certain points on five or six canals. He urged an immediate attack
-on the north forts only; and, having obtained permission to throw out a
-picket towards them, on the 19th, made so good a use of it, that in one
-night the passages of the canals were completed, and the Commander-in-chief
-was conducted next morning within five hundred yards of the nearest
-fort. Seeing all obstacles to the approach of the forts overcome, Sir Hope
-Grant frankly consented to General Napier’s scheme, and intrusted its
-execution to his division. The French commander was very averse to the
-plan proposed. He formally protested against it, but General Grant
-maintained his determination; and, devoting the night of the 20th to
-the construction of batteries, the attack was made upon the upper north<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-fort at daylight of the 21st August. The fire of thirty-one pieces of British
-and six of French ordnance gradually subdued the enemy’s artillery;
-their magazine was exploded by one of our shells; shortly before, that of
-the further north fort, which supported it, was blown up by a shell from
-one of the gunboats, which were rendering such assistance as they could
-give at a range of two thousand yards, the distance imposed by the stakes
-and booms which were laid across the river. On the advance of the infantry,
-the French crossed the ditches, upon scaling-ladders laid flat. Our
-engineers, who trusted to pontoons, were less successful, and the French
-had reared their ladders against the ramparts for a quarter of an hour,
-before our infantry, some by swimming and scrambling, others by following
-the French, had struggled across the ditches and reached the berme.
-But so active was the defence that no French soldier got into the place by
-the ladders, though several bravo men mounted them; an entrance was
-eventually made by both forces at the same time through embrasures,
-which were reached by steps hewn out of the earthen rampart with axes,
-bayonets, and swords.</p>
-
-<p>When the attack was delivered General de Montauban was absent from
-the field, the French army being represented by General Collineau and
-his brigade.</p>
-
-<p>It had been intended to breach the rampart near the gate, and so secure
-an entrance to the fort actually taken by assault; but our gallant Commander-in-Chief
-became impatient of the process, and the more speedy
-means of escalade was resorted to. It is highly probable that the rapidity
-of our success, and the tremendous loss inflicted on the garrison of the
-first fort, who had no time for escape in any large numbers, conduced to
-the surrender of the second fort and to the prompt abandonment of the
-position. Our loss amounted to two hundred and three British killed and
-wounded; the French loss was somewhat less. That of the Tartars was
-estimated at two thousand men, large numbers of whom became inmates
-of our hospitals.</p>
-
-<p>The attack was gallant, so was the defence, and the success was perfect.
-The enemy immediately surrendered the further northern fort into our
-hands, with two thousand prisoners; and before the evening the entire
-position on the Peiho, covering an area of six square miles, and containing
-upwards of six hundred guns, was abandoned by its defenders.</p>
-
-<p>The attack on the forts had only been deferred until provisions and
-munitions of war could be drawn from Pehtang, which we had quitted on
-the 12th August, in as light marching order as possible. Since our arrival<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span>
-at Senho, our tents, packs, kits, ammunition, and baggage, had gradually
-been brought through the mud to the front as speedily as the limited
-means of transport would permit, but in the process many of the beasts of
-burden perished. The state of the country would alone account for this;
-but further, as none of the commissariat waggons were at this time disembarked,
-it was necessary that everything should be carried upon the backs
-of transport animals, many of which having just landed from Manilla,
-Japan, and Bombay in sorry condition, were quite unfit for this service.
-At this juncture the Chinese Coolie Corps, composed of men recruited at
-Canton, became the only reliable means of transport. They were very hard
-worked, but they performed their duty very cheerfully and well.</p>
-
-<p>From the first landing at Pehtang until after the capture of the forts,
-the army was entirely dependent on sea-borne provisions, brought from
-the fleet in gunboats and carried across from Pehtang; fresh meat rations
-were therefore rare. No sooner were the forts surrendered than the
-Chinese peasantry hastened to establish markets; and fruit, poultry, eggs
-and sheep were offered for sale in profusion, at such moderate prices, that
-on the march from Tungkoo to Tientsin, spatchcock fowls, savoury omeletes,
-and stewed peaches became the staple food of the British soldier.
-On the 22nd of August, the day after the forts were captured, Admiral
-Hope, with a squadron of gunboats, had pushed up the Peiho river to
-Tientsin. He met with no opposition, and the townspeople threw themselves
-at his feet. The Ambassador, Commander-in-Chief, and a portion
-of our troops, speedily followed in gunboats; the remainder of the force
-by land, so soon as transport could be organized. The last of our regiments
-reached Tientsin, distant thirty-five miles from Taku, on the 5th
-of September.</p>
-
-<p>A convention for the cessation of hostilities was to be signed on the 7th,
-and ground was actually taken for a review of all the troops, which was
-to be held for the edification of the Commissioners, after they should have
-signed the treaty.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the sky darkened: it was ascertained that “Kweiliang” and
-his brother Commissioners were not armed with the powers they asserted,
-and ultimately, instead of parading on the 8th in holiday pageant, a portion
-of our forces began that day the march towards Pekin. The Ambassadors
-left next day, in company with the Commanders-in-Chief; the
-forces were advanced as far as carriage could be procured; but the means
-of the commissariat were insufficient to move the whole army to such a
-distance, and to carry the necessary supplies. The draught cattle furnished<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span>
-by the mandarins at Tientsin were spirited away at the first halting
-place, and the 2nd division of the British army, which was to have
-brought up the rear, had to devote its carriage to the assistance of the 1st
-division, and remain behind.</p>
-
-<p>In this emergency the commissariat would have had the greatest difficulty
-in feeding the troops in the front, but for the measures taken by
-Sir Robert Napier, who remained in command at Tientsin. By inducing
-persistent efforts to push boats up the river Peiho, which runs parallel to
-the road nearly up to Pekin, but which had been pronounced unnavigable
-by even the smallest craft, and by laying embargo on the traffic of Tientsin,
-General Napier procured, and with the aid of the navy organised,
-large means of water transport, which afforded invaluable assistance.</p>
-
-<p>As the Ambassadors advanced they were met by letters announcing
-the appointment of “Tsai Prince of Ee” as Chief Commissioner to conclude
-negotiations in lieu of Kweiliang, who was pronounced to have
-proved himself incompetent; and on the 14th September, Messrs. Parkes
-and Wade held a conference with the Commissioners at Tung-chow,
-whereat, all preliminaries being settled, a letter was written to Lord
-Elgin acceding in terms to all his demands.</p>
-
-<p>It was arranged that Lord Elgin was to meet the Commissioners in
-the walled city of Tung-chow, eight miles short of Pekin, where he would
-sign the convention, under escort of 1000 men; and that he should
-immediately afterwards proceed to Pekin, there to exchange ratifications
-of the Treaty of Tientsin (1858), under similar protection. Our armies
-meanwhile were to encamp four miles below Tung-chow.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing remained but to settle details, and take up suitable quarters
-for Lord Elgin at Tung-chow. For this purpose Mr. Parkes, accompanied
-by Messrs. Loch (private secretary), De Norman (attached to
-Shanghai mission), and Bowlby (<em>Times’</em> correspondent), with an escort
-of Fane’s Horse, under Lieut. Anderson, went out on the 17th. Lieut.-Colonel
-Beauchamp Walker accompanied the party, for the purpose of
-inspecting the ground designated by the Chinese for our encampment,
-and Mr. Thompson (Commissariat) was sent to guage the capabilities of
-supply of the city of Tung-chow.</p>
-
-<p>On arrival they were well received; but in discussing affairs they were
-surprised to find objections raised on several points to which the Chinese
-Commissioners had before consented. However, after a discussion of five
-or six hours, the Chinese negociators gave way; and having arranged
-details, our party slept that night in the city, the guests of the Commissioners.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Next morning Colonel Walker, accompanied by Messrs. Parkes and
-Loch, and attended by a Chinese officer deputed by the Commissioners,
-proceeded to examine the ground on which the British army was to be
-encamped, leaving the larger part of the escort at Tung-chow, where
-Messrs. Bowlby and De Norman also remained, pending the return of
-Parkes and Loch, who had yet to find a suitable residence for Lord Elgin
-within the walls of Tung-chow. On the way out, the party found the
-Tartar army in hurried movement in the direction of our forces, and on
-reaching the ground proposed for encampment, discovered it to be entirely
-commanded by the position which the Tartar forces, supported by a
-numerous artillery, were then taking up.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing this, Parkes turned round and rode back to Tung-chow to
-demand a cessation of these hostile movements. Loch went on into the
-British camp with a couple of men to report progress, whilst Col. Walker,
-Thompson, and half-a-dozen dragoons, remained in the Tartar position, at
-Parkes’s request, until he should return. Having reported progress to
-the Commander-in-Chief, whom he met advancing, about a mile from the
-Tartar position, Loch returned towards the Tartars, accompanied by
-Captain Brabazon, R. A., with orders to Parkes to come back at once.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parkes, on reaching Tung-chow, was rudely received by the Prince
-of Ee, and was told that until the questions to which objections had been
-made the day previous had been satisfactorily determined, peace could
-not exist. Thereupon Parkes, with Bowlby, De Norman, and all our
-people, left Tung-chow for the British camp. Mid-way they met Loch
-and Brabazon, who turned homewards with them, and all went on
-together, preceded by a flag of truce.</p>
-
-<p>Before they came in sight of Colonel Walker and his few men, Tartar
-cavalry, blowing their matches, and making other hostile gestures, came
-galloping along the high bank on either side of our people, who were in
-a hollow way. Presently the party was summoned to halt; being surrounded,
-and ignorant of the ground, it was deemed advisable to comply,
-both to insist on the sanctity of the flag of truce, and to gain an opportunity
-of discovering the best way out of their uncomfortable position. The
-Tartar officer in command civilly told them, that as firing had commenced,
-he was unable to let them pass, without orders from his General,
-to whose presence he would conduct Mr. Parkes. Parkes, Loch, and one
-Sikh rode away with the officer. Suddenly turning the angle of a field
-of maize, they found themselves in the midst of a mob of infantry, whose
-uplifted weapons their guide with difficulty put aside. Further on stood<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
-San-ko-lin-tzin, the Tartar General, of whom Parkes demanded a free
-passage. He was answered with derision; and, after a brief parley, in
-which San-ko-lin-tzin upbraided Parkes as the cause of all the disasters
-which had befallen the empire, at a sign from the General our men were
-tossed off from their horses, their faces rubbed in the dust, and their hands
-tied behind them, and so, painfully bound, were placed upon carts, and
-taken to Pekin. Orders, were, at the same time, sent to capture the escort,
-which had been already surrounded by ever increasing numbers. Some
-of the troopers suggested the propriety of cutting their way through, but
-Anderson replied it would compromise the others, and refused to do what
-his gallant heart desired.</p>
-
-<p>Soon, however, the whole party was disarmed, and taken to Pekin on
-their horses without dishonor. Next day they were removed to the
-Summer Palace of Yuen-Ming-Yuen, where they were severally bound.
-Their hands and feet tied together behind their backs, they were thrown on
-their chests, and kept in the open air exposed to the cold at night, and
-the still considerable heat by day, without food or water, for three days
-and nights. From the first their bonds were wetted to tighten them, and
-if they attempted to turn or move to rest themselves, they were cruelly
-kicked and beaten. On the third day poor Anderson’s fingers and nails
-burst from the pressure of the cords, which were not even then relaxed.
-The wrist bones became visible, and mortification ensued; the victim
-became delirious, and thus mercifully made unconscious of the horror of
-his position, this gallant soldier died. During his sufferings his men made
-efforts to approach him and to gnaw his cords, but they were savagely
-kicked away by his inhuman jailers. The condition of the survivors was
-only ameliorated, after the lapse of three days, by the bonds on their
-hands and feet being exchanged for heavy chains and irons. But, from
-this time, they were regularly, though most scantily and miserably, fed.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Bowlby died the fifth day, in the same way as Anderson, then
-De Norman and several of the men. All appear to have kept noble
-hearts, and to have cheered and encouraged each other, but no less than
-thirteen sank under the horrors of this captivity. Brabazon and a
-French Abbé, who were taken with the escort, were, still unbound, seen
-to leave the party, on the way to Pekin, saying they were going to the
-Chinese Commander-in-Chief to procure the release of their companions.
-Their mournful fate was, we rejoice to know, less horrible. They were
-beheaded, by order of a Chinese General, on the 21st September, in
-revenge for a wound he had received during the action of the day; but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span>
-their bodies being then thrown into the canal, were unhappily never
-recovered.</p>
-
-<p>Parkes, Loch, and their Sikh orderly, had been taken off straight to
-Pekin, and never saw anything of the rest of their party. Parkes was
-known by sight and reputation, and his position and that of Loch was,
-in a manner, recognised. Their cords were unbound after eight hours,
-when they were heavily ironed, separated from each other, and each put
-into ward with sixty prisoners&mdash;murderers and felons of the first class&mdash;with
-whom they ate and slept and lived. By day they were allowed to
-move about in their wards; at night their chains were fastened to staples
-in the prison roof. They represent their fellow prisoners to have behaved
-uniformly with kindness towards them, sharing with them any little
-comforts they possessed, and carrying their chains when they moved.
-But they were treated with extreme rigour, and their allowance of food
-was scanty.</p>
-
-<p>After the 29th September a change of treatment was adopted. Parkes
-and Loch were taken from prison, and confined together in a temple,
-where they were treated with every consideration. Their dinner was
-furnished by the Véry of Pekin, and mandarins visited them, bringing
-little presents of fruit. During this time the diplomatists were trying to
-turn Parkes to political account. They wrote to Lord Elgin to say that
-the prisoners then in Pekin were very well, and that the basis of a treaty
-was being arranged with Mr. Parkes, which would no doubt be satisfactory
-to all parties. And thus matters went on until the joyful day came of
-the prisoners’ release.</p>
-
-<p>The firing spoken of as the immediate cause of the detention of our
-people, began thus: Colonel Walker and his party had been left in the
-lines of the Tartars, who were at first rudely good-humoured, as he moved
-about and observed how completely the guns, now in position behind a
-ridge of sandhills, covered the ground allotted by the Commissioners for
-the encampment of our forces. Suddenly Walker’s attention was attracted
-by a cry uttered close to him. He saw a French officer who had come
-out of Tung-chow during the morning, and had attached himself to the
-English, in the act of being cut down and pulled off his horse by a
-party of soldiers. Walker rode up to him, and catching hold of his hand,
-essayed to drag him away. A mob closed round Walker; some attempted
-to lift him off his horse; whilst others, taking advantage of his right
-hand being engaged, canted his sword out of its scabbard and made off.
-A mortal blow was dealt to the poor Frenchman; swords were drawn on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
-all sides; and Walker calling on his men to put spurs and ride, galloped
-for his life towards our troops, now drawn up within sight, about half a
-mile away. The party was pursued by cavalry, and fired on by Tartar
-infantry and guns in succession; but they reached our lines alive, with
-one horse severely, and two men slightly, wounded.</p>
-
-<p>An immediate advance was made by the Allied forces; the enemy were
-speedily driven from their guns, and their cavalry was swept away by
-successive charges of our horse. All their guns, seventy-five in number,
-their camps, and quantities of arms, were captured by our troops, who
-occupied for the night the walled town of Chan-kya-wan, which gave its
-name to the battle. That place is twelve miles from Pekin, in a direct
-line, and four from Tung-chow, which is the port of Pekin on the Peiho;
-and lies to the right of the direct road from Tientsin.</p>
-
-<p>But the victory did not lead, as we had fondly hoped, to the immediate
-recovery of the prisoners, victims of treachery so dark as to have been
-unsuspected even by the experienced and wary Parkes. The night before
-the foul plot was carried out, the Prince of Ee had entertained our people
-at dinner, and, smiling, had bidden them adieu. An officer, deputed by
-the Prince, attended the party in the morning, and it was perhaps not
-unnatural for Parkes to believe that he could induce the Prince to
-countermand the movement of troops which he then saw, and which he
-supposed to be unknown to the High Commissioner. The Prince’s
-reception of Parkes, of course, dispelled this expectation, and no time
-was lost in returning to camp. Even then there was no appearance of
-immediate danger to the party, unless from possible excitement of the
-rude soldiery through whom they had to pass; for both Chinese and
-Tartars had up to this time invariably shown the fullest confidence in the
-protection of flags of truce, under which officers had frequently passed
-between the Allied and Chinese camps during the war then waging.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers, however, possessed that reverence for the emblem of peace
-which animates most other savages; and it was at the hands of San-ko-lin-tzin,
-the commander-in-Chief of the Chinese army, and the apostle of
-competitive examination, that the Chinese Government was degraded to
-the last degree by the deliberate violation of a flag of truce, and by the
-capture of the heralds whom it should have shielded.</p>
-
-<p>Having ascertained that a considerable force of Tartars was encamped
-between Tung-chow and Pekin, Sir Hope Grant advanced on the 21st
-September to attack their position. Again the Tartars were completely
-beaten, their camps and guns all captured, and great loss inflicted on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span>
-enemy by our cavalry. The King’s Dragoon Guards made a capital
-charge; and a squadron of Fane’s horse, under Lieutenant Cattley,
-attached for the day to the French, after driving the enemy into a village,
-galloped quickly round it, and falling on the enemy’s flank, as he emerged
-on the other side, inflicted signal punishment. The number of Tartar
-troops on or about the field this day is estimated at 80,000 men, of whom
-30,000 were actually engaged. The allied forces numbered 6200&mdash;viz.,
-English, 3200 of all arms, and fifteen guns; and French, 3000, with
-twelve guns.</p>
-
-<p>The action of Pā-li-chow left us in possession of the important strategic
-point called the Pā-li bridge, whereby the paved causeway from Tung-chow
-to Pekin crosses the canal constructed between those places. It
-further gave us the line of the canal on which the enemy had rested, and
-left the approach to Pekin open to our troops.</p>
-
-<p>Our success was immediately followed by a letter from the Prince
-Koung, brother of the Emperor, and heir to the throne, announcing to
-the Ambassadors that he had been appointed, with full powers, to conclude
-a peace, in the room of Prince Tsai.</p>
-
-<p>After the fight of the 18th, Sir Hope Grant had sent an express to
-summon General Napier, with as much of the 2nd division as could be
-spared from Tientsin. The General had already succeeded in procuring
-from the Chinese authorities carriage for his troops, which the Commissariat
-was unable to furnish. The order found them ready to move, and
-General Napier reached headquarters on the 24th, having marched seventy
-miles in sixty hours, with a supply of ammunition, which was much
-required, escorted by a company of Brownlow’s light-footed Punjabees.</p>
-
-<p>The army halted in the position it had won until siege guns had arrived
-by water from Tientsin; fourteen days’ supply had been brought up the
-river, and all available troops had been collected. The force in front was
-strengthened by all the infantry of the garrison of Tientsin, which was
-replaced by the 19th Punjab Infantry from Tahlien Bay, and by marines,
-whom the Admiral landed from the fleet.</p>
-
-<p>Advancing from Pā-li on the 6th October, the British took up position
-on the northern road leading from the gates of Pekin to Tartary, without
-falling in with any of the enemy, except a picket, which retired with precipitation.
-The French who were to have operated on the left between
-our flank and Pekin, marched, through some misunderstanding, across
-our rear, and took possession of the imperial palace of Yuen-Ming-Yuen,
-“the Fountain of Summer,” six miles to the North of Pekin, and four<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span>
-miles away to our right. We heard nothing of them all night; but Sir
-Hope Grant found them the next morning, when arrangements were
-made for the division between the two forces of the treasures which the
-palace contained. But in the absence of any British troops the arrangements
-broke through, and our prize agents, finding the principal valuables
-appropriated by the French, abandoned their functions. Thereupon on
-the 8th indiscriminate plunder was allowed; but as of the British a few
-officers only had access to the palace, and none of the men, our officers
-were ultimately desired to give up all they had brought away, and the
-property they had collected was ultimately sold by auction for the benefit
-of the troops actually present in the field before Pekin.</p>
-
-<p>A most spirited sale ensued of china, enamels, jade, furs, silk, &amp;c.,
-which realised £5000; and this sum, added to the amount of gold and
-silver bullion which had been brought in, enabled the prize agents at
-once to make a distribution amongst the troops, ranging from £3 for a
-private soldier, to £60 for a first-class field officer. All our generals surrendered
-their shares to the troops. The arrangement made was perhaps
-the fairest that could be arrived at under the actual circumstances of the
-time; but of a booty worth at least a million of money, belonging to the
-imperial crown&mdash;therefore prize of the fairest character&mdash;the British troops
-have profited only to the amount of £25,000. The balance has gone to the
-French, who take the broadest view of the question of halves, or to the
-Chinese peasantry, who plundered as they pleased, after the departure of
-the French, on the third day of occupation.</p>
-
-<p>On the 8th October, the first-fruits of our advance on Pekin were
-realised, in the surrender to us, by the Chinese, of Messrs. Parkes and
-Loch, and the Sikh orderly who had been taken with them. A French
-savant and three men were given up at the same time. Our poor fellows
-looked wonderfully well; but M. d’Escayrae’s hands were still contorted
-by the pressure to which they had been subjected during the twenty hours
-in which he was bound. The delivery of prisoners was the direct result
-of an intimation sent to the Chinese, on the 7th October, that unless all
-the prisoners still in their hands were delivered up immediately, a gate of
-the city placed in our possession without opposition, and competent persons
-deputed to conclude a peace, Pekin would be taken by assault; but if
-all the prisoners were given up, our troops would not be allowed to enter
-the city, and the lives and property of the inhabitants should be respected.</p>
-
-<p>Saturday, the 13th October, at noon, was the period fixed on for compliance
-with our demands. Before the time elapsed, eleven of our Sikh<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
-horsemen who had been prisoners, were delivered up alive, and the
-remains of all who had perished (save poor Brabazon and the Abbé),
-were received in coffins. On the 17th they were buried in the Russian
-cemetery, with all the honour and solemnity that could be paid. The
-Ambassadors of England, France, and Russia, the Commanders-in-Chief,
-and the allied officers not on duty, attended. The Roman Catholic and
-Greek prelates showed, by their presence, generous sympathy in the
-untimely fate of our countrymen.</p>
-
-<p>But as the complete fulfilment of the demands was still uncertain, batteries
-were erected against the city wall at a distance of 150 yards, by
-the British and French respectively, and arrangements were made for
-opening fire at noon of the 13th, if the gate was not by that time given
-up. Every one agreed in hoping that thousands of inoffensive people
-might be spared the misery of an assault; but the 2nd Division must
-have felt something like a pang when, at the appointed hour, they saw
-their General ride with an escort through the gate, and found, by the
-display of the ensign from its top, that the Tartars had surrendered to us
-the command of the Imperial city.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, we were there, masters of the capital of China&mdash;at the very end
-of the map of the world&mdash;at the point which appears to schoolboy
-minds the limit of creation. We held the massive four-storied keep which
-frowns like a line-of-battle ship above the Gate of Peace; our troops and
-field artillery were actually on the walls which commanded the whole of
-the interior of the city, and they could move to any point along the fifty
-feet road which the summit of the wall presents. The walls and gates
-adjoining, together with some few larger double-storied buildings, were
-the only objects visible from our position varying the universal dun-colour
-of the city houses and enclosing walls. The broad street which leads from
-our gate into the city was packed with a dense crowd, anxious to make
-out the foreigners, and indulging in sonorous “Ei Yaws” at every novelty
-which met their wondering eyes. Electrified indeed were the Celestials
-when the bands of a French regiment, and of our 67th and 99th, struck
-up within the gateway, and guards presented their clanging arms as the
-Generals rode by; but the climax was reached when Desborough’s guns
-were spurted up the steep stone ramps which lead from the base to the
-summit of the wall, fifty feet in height, drawn by six horses of fabulous
-stature, and driven by the terrible barbarians who eat their enemies.</p>
-
-<p>The surrender was carried out in good faith; but the appearance on
-the walls of guns of heavy calibre, evidently recently moved into positions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>
-whence our batteries were observed, spoke either of divided counsels
-or of tardy resignation on the part of our enemies.</p>
-
-<p>Still our success was insufficient. No retribution had been exacted
-for the violation of the flag of truce, and for the murder of our countrymen,
-and no one seemed to feel certain whether a treaty was to be obtained
-or not. It was useless to demand the surrender of the persons who had
-instigated the barbarous treatment of the prisoners, for they were known
-to be very near the person of the Emperor, and there was therefore no
-chance of our getting the real offenders. An atonement in money, for
-the iniquities perpetrated, though repugnant to our feelings, appeared to
-be the only kind of demand with which the Chinese Government, humiliated
-and beaten as it was, could be expected to comply. The readiest
-means of obtaining a treaty was obviously to remain at Pekin until we
-got it; but the French Commander refused positively to detain his troops
-at the capital after the 1st November, and the English General was
-greatly indisposed to incur the risk of keeping his force there through the
-winter, in the absence of complete and timely arrangements for provisionment,
-which it was considered the advanced period of the season rendered
-impracticable.</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, on the 18th October, an ultimatum was addressed by the
-plenipotentiaries to Prince Koung, requiring him to reply by the morning
-of the 20th, whether, after paying, as a necessary preliminary to further
-negotiations, a sum of money in atonement for the murders committed, he
-would on an early day sign the convention already agreed upon? His
-Excellency was told that the Summer Palace, which had been partially
-plundered before the fate of the prisoners was known, would now be
-entirely destroyed, that its ruins might present a lasting mark of the
-abhorrence of the British Government at the violation of the law of
-nations which had been committed. He was also told, that in case of
-refusal to comply with the demands now made, the Imperial Palace of
-Pekin would be captured, plundered and burned.</p>
-
-<p>In support of the ultimatum, the 1st Division of the British force, with
-cavalry, proceeded on the 18th and 19th to complete the plunder and
-destruction of the Summer Palace, whose smoke, driven by the northerly
-wind, hung over Pekin, whilst its ashes were wafted into the very streets
-of the capital. The French declined to take any part in this act of
-punishment&mdash;first, because they thought the palace had already been
-destroyed on their quitting it; and further, they feared that this demonstration
-would frighten the Chinese out of all hope of making any treaty
-at all.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The result showed that not one-fourth of the Imperial pavilions which
-constitute the Summer Palace had been even visited in the first instance,
-much less burned; and great booty was acquired by the troops employed
-as well as by the members of the embassy, navy, and staff, who were
-able to accompany the force. And so salutary was the effect produced
-on the advisers of the Imperial crown, that a letter acceding to all demands
-was received at daylight on the 20th, to the renewed disappointment of
-the 2nd Division, who again were under arms for the assault.</p>
-
-<p>On the 22nd, the atonement-money, amounting to £100,000, was paid;
-and on the 24th, her Majesty’s Plenipotentiary, accompanied by the Commander-in-Chief,
-and escorted by a division of the army, entered in state
-and triumph the gates of the dim, mysterious city. The Ambassador was
-received by a deputation of Mandarins, who accompanied Lord Elgin to
-the hall, three miles distant, at the far side of the Tartar city, where the
-Prince Koung, surrounded by the principal officers of state, awaited his
-arrival.</p>
-
-<p>At five o’clock that afternoon, ratifications of the treaty of 1858 were
-duly exchanged by the representatives of the sovereigns, and a convention
-signed, which, commencing with a recital of the Emperor’s regret at
-the occurrences at the Peiho Forts in 1858, declares Tientsin a free port,
-and thereby opens the Peiho to within seventy miles of Pekin for the
-traffic of the world. The provisions of the convention permit free emigration
-of Chinese, with their wives and families, to all parts of the
-world, and transfer a territory at Cowloon, opposite Hong Kong, where
-our troops were encamped in 1860, to the British Crown. An indemnity
-of three millions sterling to the British is guaranteed; and stipulation is
-made for the establishment of a British force at Tientsin, until the terms
-are fulfilled. A portion of the indemnity is to be paid 31st, December,
-1860, whereon Chusan is to be evacuated by the English and French
-troops. But no provision is made for the evacuation of Canton, to which
-the French are at present understood to be disinclined to agree. The
-remainder of the indemnity is to be paid by periodical instalments of
-one-fifth of the gross revenue of the customs of China.</p>
-
-<p>After signing the convention, Lord Elgin expressed a hope that the
-treaty would inaugurate friendly relations between the powers. Prince
-Koung replied that he himself had been about to utter the same words;
-and acknowledging that foreign affairs had hitherto been greatly mismanaged,
-observed, that as their administration was now exclusively placed
-in his hands, he had no doubt their future management would be more
-satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The Franco-Chinese treaty was ratified by Baron Gros and the Prince
-Koung on the following day.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CINTRA, CONVENTION OF.&mdash;This disgraceful convention was
-concluded between the British army, under Sir Hew Dalrymple and the
-French under Marshal Junot. The latter were allowed to evacuate Portugal
-and to be carried home to France in British ships, taking with them
-their ill-got gain; signed the day of the battle of Vimeira, August 22nd,
-1808.</p>
-
-
-<p>CITATE.&mdash;Fought 5th January, 1854, between Omar Pacha and
-the Turks, on the one side, and the Russians on the other.</p>
-
-<p>“The army to which was allotted the first active operation was that
-commanded by General Fishback, with Generals Engelhardt and Bellegarde
-under his orders. This force was to occupy the extreme west of
-the Russian line of attack, and to drive the Turks from their position at
-Kalafat. By the time, however, that Fishback had reached Citate, a village
-within a few miles of his destination, he discovered that his force
-of about 15,000 men was inadequate to dislodge an equal number,
-strongly intrenched, and in unimpeded communication with Widdin, on
-the opposite side of the river, whence considerable supplies of men and
-ammunition could doubtless be obtained. He resolved, therefore, to
-postpone the assault until the 13th of January (the Russian New Year’s
-day), by which time he would be in possession of the requisite reinforcements,
-which he anticipated would raise his force to 45,000 men. Achmet
-and Ismail Pachas, who commanded the garrison at Kalafat, were
-well aware of the plans of the Russian commander, and determined to
-forestall his action. At daybreak, on the 6th of January, they sallied
-from the town with fifteen field-pieces, 10,000 regular infantry, 4000
-cavalry, and 1000 of the irregular troops, known as Bashi-Bazouks.
-Three thousand men from the garrison at Widdin crossed the river to
-defend Kalafat from surprise; and at Moglovitz, between that town and
-Citate, a similar number were detached as a reserve. About nine o’clock
-the Turks reached Citate, and opened a side fire upon the village, while
-the infantry vigorously charged in front. After three hours of sanguinary
-street-fighting, the nature of the ground forbidding organized military
-combinations, the Russians retreated to the works they had thrown
-up beyond the village. The Turkish field-pieces were now brought to
-bear upon the intrenchments, and several vigorous assaults were made and
-as bravely repulsed. In the midst of the conflict, a large body of Russian<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span>
-reinforcements arrived, and the Turks, who occupied the gardens and
-orchards round the village, were exposed to an energetic assault in their
-rear. Nothing daunted, and favoured by their position, the Ottomans
-fought nobly, and succeeded in routing the newly-arrived reinforcement
-of the enemy, just as Ismail Pacha appeared upon the scene with the
-reserve from Moglovitz. Concentrating their forces, they now rushed at
-the intrenchments, and, beating down all opposition, drove the enemy
-from the position they had held. Nearly 2400 Russians dead in the
-streets and earth-works, a like number wounded, four guns, and the
-depôts of ammunition and arms which they captured, attested that day
-the prowess of the Turkish arms. Their own loss was about 200 killed
-and 700 wounded. For two days they held the place against the attempts
-of the Russians to recapture it; and then, emerging into the open field,
-drove the Russians before them back to Krajova. Then, retiring in
-triumph, they re-entered Kalafat, which, now mounting 250 heavy guns,
-and garrisoned (including Widdin) by 25,000 men, might safely promise
-a desperate resistance to any further Russian attempt.”</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="CIU" id="CIU"></a></div>
-<p>CIUDAD RODRIGO.&mdash;This strong fortress of Spain was invested
-by the French, June 11th, 1810, and surrendered July 10th, following.&mdash;Remained
-in the hands of the French till stormed gallantly by the
-British, under Wellington, January 19th, 1812.&mdash;Loss of the British
-and Portuguese 1000 killed and wounded, equal number of French, and
-1700 prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>CLONTARF, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Irish and Danes
-on Good Friday, 1039. The Danes were signally defeated, 11,000 of
-them perished in battle, but the Irish had to deplore the loss of Bryan
-Boiroimhe, the King, and many of the nobility.</p>
-
-
-<p>CLOSTERSEVEN, CONVENTION OF.&mdash;Between the Duke of
-Cumberland, third son of George II, and the Duke of Richelieu, commanding
-the French; 38,000 Hanovarians laid down their arms and
-were dispersed,&mdash;signed September 10th, 1757.</p>
-
-
-<p class="noindent">COALITIONS AGAINST FRANCE.</p>
-<div class="blockquotx">
-
-<p>1st. Prussia issued her manifesto June 26th, 1792.</p>
-
-<p>2nd. Great Britain, Germany, Russia, Naples, Portugal and Turkey
-signed them, June 22nd, 1799.</p>
-
-<p>3rd. Great Britain, Russia, Austria and Naples, August 5th, 1805.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>4th. Great Britain, Russia, Prussia and Saxony, October 6th, 1806.</p>
-
-<p>5th. England and Austria, April 6th, 1809.</p>
-
-<p>6th. Russia and Prussia, ratified at Kalisch, March 17th, 1813.</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>COLONEL.&mdash;This word is derived from the French, and means the
-chief commander of a regiment of troops.</p>
-
-
-<p>COMMANDERS-IN-CHIEF OF THE BRITISH ARMY
-SINCE 1674:</p>
-
-<div class="fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl">Duke of Monmouth</td><td class="tdl">1674</td><td class="tdl pad4">Lord Amherst again</td><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">1793</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Duke of Marlborough</td><td class="tdl">1690</td><td class="tdl pad4">Frederick, Duke of York</td><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">1795</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Duke of Schomberg</td><td class="tdl">1691</td><td class="tdl pad4">Sir David Dundas</td><td class="tdl">March 25,</td><td class="tdl">1809</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Duke of Ormond</td><td class="tdl">1711</td><td class="tdl pad4">Frederick, Duke of York</td><td class="tdl">May 29,</td><td class="tdl">1811</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Earl of Stair</td><td class="tdl">1744</td><td class="tdl pad4">Duke of Wellington</td><td class="tdl">Jan’y 22,</td><td class="tdl">1827</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Field Marshal Wade</td><td class="tdl">1745</td><td class="tdl pad4">Lord Hill, Gen’l Commander-</td><td class="tdl"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Lord Ligonier</td><td class="tdl">1757</td><td class="tdl pad6">in-Chief</td><td class="tdl">Feb’y 25,</td><td class="tdl">1828</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Marquess of Granby</td><td class="tdl">1766</td><td class="tdl pad4">Duke of Wellington again</td><td class="tdl">Dec. 28,</td><td class="tdl">1842</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Lord Amherst</td><td class="tdl">1778</td><td class="tdl pad4">Viscount Hardinge</td><td class="tdl">Sept. 25,</td><td class="tdl">1852</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl nowrap">General Seymour Conway &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;</td><td class="tdl">1782</td><td class="tdl pad4">Duke of Cambridge</td><td class="tdl">July 15,</td><td class="tdl">1856</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p>CONFEDERATION OF THE RHINE.&mdash;The League of the
-Germanic States formed under the auspices of Napoleon Bonaparte. By
-this celebrated League the German States had to raise 258,000 troops to
-serve in case of war. It terminated with the downfall of Napoleon.</p>
-
-
-<p>CONFLANS, TREATY OF.&mdash;A compact between Louis XI of
-France and the Dukes of Bourbon, Brittany and Burgundy. This treaty
-put an end to the “War of the Public Good,” in 1468.</p>
-
-
-<p>CONSTANTINE THE GREAT.&mdash;It was whilst preparing to cross
-the Alps, to chastise the barbarians, that Constantine is said to have
-witnessed the supernatural appearance which induced him to embrace
-Christianity, and establish it henceforth as the religion of the empire.
-While meditating in his tent on the dangers that surrounded him, and
-praying for divine guidance and protection amidst them, there is said to
-have appeared over against him in the heavens a pillar of light in the
-form of a cross, bearing this inscription, “By this overcome.” Those
-who were attached to paganism looked upon this as a most inauspicious
-omen, but it made a different impression on the Emperor. He caused a
-royal standard to be made, like the appearance he had seen in the heavens.
-This was always carried before him in his war as an ensign of victory and
-celestial protection. Soon after this event he embraced the religion of
-Christ, and a little while after encountered Maxentius, his opponent,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
-whom he utterly defeated in a terrible battle&mdash;Maxentius himself having
-been drowned while attempting to cross the river Tiber.</p>
-
-
-<p>CONSTANTINOPLE.&mdash;Taken by the western crusaders in 1204.
-Retaken in 1261. Conquered by Mahomet II., who slew 6000 of the
-people, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1453. Ever since possessed by the Turks.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="COP" id="COP"></a></div>
-<p>COPENHAGEN.&mdash;Capital of Denmark. It was bombarded by the
-English, under Nelson and Admiral Parker. Of twenty-three ships
-belonging to the Danes, eighteen were taken or destroyed, April 2nd,
-1801. Again, after another bombardment of three days, the city and
-fleet surrendered to Admiral Gambier and Lord Cathcart, September 7th,
-1807. Immense naval stores and eighteen sail of the line, fifteen
-frigates, six brigs, and twenty-five gunboats were captured.</p>
-
-
-<p>CORNET.&mdash;An instrument of music of the nature of a trumpet. In
-modern usage, a cornet is a commissioned officer of cavalry next below a
-lieutenant who bears the ensign or colors of a troop.</p>
-
-
-<p>CORONEA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Athenians and
-Allies and the Spartans. The King of the Spartans, engaging the Allies,
-completely defeated them, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 394.</p>
-
-
-<p>CORPORAL.&mdash;The lowest officer of a company next below a sergeant.
-The corporal of a ship of war is an officer under the master-at-arms,
-employed to teach the sailors the use of small arms. Napoleon was
-familiarly known among his troops by the name of the Little Corporal,
-and as he used to say there was just one step between the sublime and
-the ridiculous, so opposite extremes are taken in his titles. Emperor!
-Corporal!</p>
-
-
-<p>CORUNNA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Sir John Moore commanded the
-British army of about 15,000 men, and had just accomplished a safe
-retreat, when they were attacked by the French with a force of 20,000.
-They were completely repulsed, but the loss of the British was immense.
-Sir John Moore was struck by a cannon ball which carried off his left
-shoulder and part of his collar bone, leaving the arm dangling by the flesh.
-He died immediately. In the evening of the day of battle the remains
-of the splendid British army embarked at Corunna, January 16th,
-1809. Previous to the battle, the army under their illustrious leader,
-had accomplished an arduous yet honorable retreat, for many leagues
-through an enemy’s country.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>CRACOW.&mdash;It was taken by Charles XII, in 1702. Taken and retaken
-several times by the Russians, and Kosciusko expelled the Russians,
-March 24th, 1794, but it surrendered to the Prussians the same year.
-Occupied by 10,000 Russians, September, 1831; seized by Austria, and
-incorporated into that empire, November 16th, 1846.</p>
-
-
-<p>CRESSY.&mdash;Fought between the English and French, August 26th,
-1346. In the month of July in the year 1346, King Edward, at the
-head of an army of 30,000 men, landed at La Hogue, in Normandy.
-He was accompanied by his son, the Prince of Wales, though only fifteen
-years of age, and by his principal nobility. Having taken several towns,
-he moved along the left bank of the Seine, which river he wished to
-cross, in order to join an army of Flemings in Picardy. But he found
-the bridges all broken, and King Philip, at the head of a numerous army,
-followed his motions on the opposite bank of the river. At length
-Edward contrived to repair one of the broken bridges, and to pass over
-unknown to Philip; and he then marched rapidly till he reached the
-river Somme; but he there again found all the bridges secured, and
-learned that Philip was at Amiens with 100,000 men. Being
-informed that there was a ford near the town of Abbeville, which
-might be passed when the tide was low, Edward set out for it at midnight;
-but when the English reached it, the waters were not sufficiently
-low; and while they were waiting, a large body of French cavalry came
-down to oppose their passage. The English horsemen, however, gallantly
-plunged into the stream, drove off the enemy, and gained the opposite
-bank. The whole army was over when King Philip arrived, and the
-rising of the tide obliged him to go round by the bridge of Abbeville.</p>
-
-<p>Though the French army was nearly four times as numerous as his
-own, King Edward resolved to give it battle. He drew up his troops in
-three divisions on an eminence behind the village of Creci or Cressy.
-The prince of Wales, aided by the Earls of Oxford and Warwick, led the
-first, the King himself commanded the last. At dawn (the day was the
-26th of August), Edward having heard mass and received the sacrament,
-rode along the lines, cheering his men, and at ten o’clock they sat down
-and took their breakfast in their ranks. The French, meantime,
-advanced from Abbeville in confusion and disorder. A storm of thunder
-and rain came on and lasted through a great part of the day; but at five
-o’clock in the afternoon, the sky becoming clear, Philip ordered a body
-of Génoese cross-bowmen, in his service, to begin the battle. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span>
-Génoese gave a shout, and discharged their bolts; the English archers,
-who were posted in front, showered in return their arrows of a yard in
-length; and the Génoese, unable to re-charge their ponderous crossbows,
-fell into disorder. The count of Alençon then charged the first division
-of the English with a numerous body of cavalry. The second line
-advanced to its aid, and a knight was sent off to King Edward, who was
-viewing the battle from the top of a windmill, to pray him to send more
-help. “Is my son slain or wounded?” said the King. “No, sire.”
-“Then,” replied he, “tell Warwick, he shall have no aid. Let the boy
-win his spurs.” When this message was brought to the English, it
-redoubled their courage; and the French were at length totally routed,
-with immense loss. “Fair son,” cried Edward to the Prince, as he
-clasped him to his bosom after the battle, “Fair son, continue your
-career. You have acted nobly, and shown yourself worthy of me and the
-crown.”</p>
-
-<p>The person of the highest rank who fell in this great battle was John,
-king of Bohemia. This prince, who was blind from age, ordered four of
-his knights to lead him into the thick of the battle. They interlaced his
-and their own bridles, and rushed forward, and all were slain. The
-crest of the King of Bohemia, three ostrich feathers, and his motto, <i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Ich
-dien</i>, i.e. <i>I serve</i>, were adopted by the Prince of Wales, and still are
-those of the heir-apparent of the crown of England.</p>
-
-
-<p>CRIMEA, LANDING IN THE.&mdash;<em>Crimean War.</em>&mdash;The following
-graphic description is from Emerson’s Sebastopol:&mdash;“At length the
-great fleet, nearly 400 vessels in all, on the 7th of September, 1854, a
-memorable day thenceforth, set sail for its destination. What that
-destination was none knew. Orders were issued to rendezvous off the
-Isle of Serpents, near the Sulina mouth of the Danube. The scene,
-when the immense flotilla was fairly under weigh, was of the most
-exciting and animating character. Every ship bore on its side the
-number of the regiment and nature of troops it conveyed, and carried a
-distinguishing flag. As night closed in, lanterns signalling the division
-to which it belonged were displayed, and an illumination, such as the
-waters of the Euxine never reflected, was witnessed by the sharers in the
-daring adventure. No incident of these modern practical times, perhaps,
-has partaken so largely of the character of romance as the departure of
-this renowned expedition. The great armada, which taxed the energies
-of the most powerful maritime nation of the sixteenth century, was a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
-puny flotilla compared to the one we are now writing of. The largest
-vessel of that celebrated fleet was a cockleshell to many of our noble
-steamers, detached from their customary vocation of carrying on the
-commercial intercourse of nations, and devoted to the service of war.
-Resources of science, unknown before the present generation, and adapted
-by skill to our naval requirements, were there in abundance, rendering a
-single steamer more than a match for a dozen vessels of an earlier age,
-and almost independent of the adverse winds and strong currents which
-had dispersed many a gallant fleet and defeated many a deep-laid scheme
-of conquest. Iron, naturally one of the densest of bodies, became, in
-the hands of the scientific shipwright, buoyant as cork; and vessels, each
-large enough to carry a regiment of cavalry besides its proper crew, and
-to which a Spanish brig-of-war of the days of Philip might have served
-for a jolly-boat, breasted the broad waves of the Euxine, freighted with
-as brave and chivalrous warriors as menaced Troy, or did battle with
-the infidel possessors of Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<p>Brave and chivalrous indeed, for they sailed they knew not whither,
-to encounter an unknown enemy. It might be that they were to force
-a landing at once under the very guns of Sebastopol, and by sheer audacity
-achieve the capture of the renowned fortress. It might be that,
-debarking at a distance from that spot, they would be exposed to toilsome
-marches, in an enemy’s country, harassed by clouds of Cossacks,
-and opposed by great armies, in strong positions, infinitely outnumbering
-their own force, when even continuous victory would necessarily be
-almost entire annihilation. But, like the errant-knights of old, they
-anticipated no difficulties, and bore a stout heart for any fate. English
-and French, officer and man, seemed to have but one desire, that of
-meeting all foes at all hazards, and winning gallantly or dying gloriously.</p>
-
-<p>The general instructions furnished to Marshal St. Arnaud (who, by
-reason of the French army being so numerically superior to the English,
-and his military rank as marshal being higher than that of Lord Raglan,
-assumed the rank of generalissimo of the expedition), and which were
-understood to have been drawn up by the Emperor Louis Napoleon
-himself, though leaving to the discretion of the Generals the point of
-debarkation on the shores of the Crimea, yet strongly recommended&mdash;so
-strongly, in fact, as almost to amount to a command&mdash;the choice of
-Kaffa as the most convenient spot. It was, we cannot help believing,
-exceedingly fortunate that the allied Generals resolved upon examining
-for themselves the locality, and ultimately rejected the plans of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
-Emperor. Kaffa, it is true, affords the largest bay and the most secure
-anchorage in the Crimea, and, had they been the only requisites, there
-could have been little doubt that the imperial scheme would have been
-adopted. But the fleet was only valuable in the expedition as an auxiliary
-to the army&mdash;as a basis of operations, a depôt of stores, a means of
-conveying reinforcements, an assistant in the actual bombardment, or a
-medium of retreat in event of a disaster. For all practical purposes
-Sebastopol was the Crimea; and Sebastopol is on the western coast,
-while Kaffa is on the eastern, at least 100 miles distant. Had the object
-been to provide for the security and comfort of the fleet, it might as well
-have been in snug quarters at Spithead or Cherbourg, as at Kaffa, and
-there it would have been about as useful. The plan of Napoleon was to
-seize the town of Kaffa, thence to march across the peninsula, taking
-possession of Karu-Bazar, Simferopol, and Baktchi-Serai, thus advancing
-to Sebastopol, and securing the harbour of Balaklava, as a naval basis
-near the scene of intended operations. But the Emperor, by some strange
-oversight, seems to have forgotten his own previous caution not to separate
-from the fleets, when he sketched out the march of an army, only
-50,000 strong, encumbered with necessary ammunition and baggage,
-along a road forty miles from the sea in some parts, through a mountainous
-district, in an enemy’s country, for a 100 miles, exposed to continued
-encounters with immense armies, and necessitated to seize and
-retain possession of, at least, three large towns, strongly garrisoned. It
-is true, a force stationed at Kaffa might intercept reinforcements arriving
-from Asia, or along the narrow strip of land bridging the Putrid Sea;
-but what was to hinder the arrival of the legions which should be poured
-into the Crimea, through Perekop, the most direct and available route
-from the very heart of the military strength of Russia, on the first intelligence
-of the invasion? Supposing, too, that a sufficient force to hold
-Kaffa had been left in occupation there (and if it had not been, what
-would have prevented the arrival of troops from Asia and the north,
-which would have followed the invaders, and enclosed them between two
-fires?)&mdash;that the three great towns had been captured and consequently
-garrisoned&mdash;or where the utility of taking them?&mdash;deduct the necessary
-casualties of the march, and the inevitable results of the unavoidable
-battles, even supposing them to have been victories, and how many men
-could possibly have arrived before Sebastopol out of 50,000? The
-expedition to the Crimea at all was romantic, and is said to have been
-strongly opposed by some of our most able Generals; but this contemplated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span>
-march through a mountainous region, interposing innumerable
-obstacles to transit, in the face of a powerful enemy, far from assistance,
-cut off from supplies of food or ammunition, with three fortified towns
-to capture, at least several pitched battles to fight, and, as a finish to the
-prospect, the most strongly fortified town in the world to reduce, was the
-very absurdity of Quixoteism.</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, we say, the generals were wiser than their teacher.
-When the ships collected at their appointed rendezvous, orders were
-received to proceed to a spot about forty miles west of Cape Tarkan, in
-the north of the Crimea; then, embarking in the <i>Caradoc</i>, a small
-English steamer, Marshal St. Arnaud and Lord Raglan, accompanied
-by their seconds in command, Generals Canrobert and Brown, and Sir
-Edmund Lyons, proceeded to survey the coast and select the spot most
-favourable to their purpose. They skirted the western shore, ran close
-into Eupatoria, examined the coast thence to Sebastopol (where a few
-weeks previous, General Canrobert and Sir George Brown had closely
-scanned the fortifications on a flying visit, penetrating, under cover of
-night even into the harbour, and not retiring until the grey light of
-morning had revealed to them a considerable amount of information),
-passing almost within range of the guns, and coasting round to the little
-harbour of Balaklava; which having scrutinized, they returned in safety
-to the fleets. Had any of the large Russian steamers crossed the path
-of the little <i>Caradoc</i>, and attacked it, a very different fate might have
-awaited the Allies from that which they anticipated. But the Russian
-Admirals little dreamed of the prize they might have secured, and our
-modern Agamemnons were borne back unscathed from their perilous
-cruise.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of Monday, the 11th of September, the chiefs returned
-from their trip and rejoined the fleet; and the anxious expectation as to
-the point of debarkation, which had agitated the minds of all on board,
-during the two days’ tedious riding at anchor, was in some degree
-alleviated by the order to make sail, and rendezvous thirty miles west of
-Sebastopol. Even then, uncertainty seemed to cloud the counsels of the
-Commanders. The fleet was dispersed, the heavy sailing vessels having
-failed to keep in company with their more alert fellows of the steam
-fleet. At length, the English and French fleets, in one compact flotilla,
-approached the shore, and the town of Eupatoria, and the hills of the
-south-east, were presented to the eager gaze of the soldiers. A small
-steamer was despatched to summon the town to surrender at discretion,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span>
-and a refusal being received, a small body of English and French marines
-was landed, their appearance soon stifling any qualms of conscience the
-local authorities might have felt at yielding up their trust to the enemy.
-The fleet then shaping a course in a south-easterly direction, the plans of
-the allied Generals became apparent. About eight miles from Eupatoria
-the ships cast anchor at a mile from the shore, in the Bay of Kalamita,
-near a place known as Old Fort. A narrow strip of level land was the
-spot selected for debarkation, and the enemy exhibited no signs of opposition,
-or even preparation. It had been not unnaturally anticipated
-that a formidable resistance would have been made to the expected
-landing of the Allies, which could only then have been accomplished with
-much loss. On the contrary, the only signs of Russian life apparent,
-was the presence of a mounted Russian officer, who, attended by three
-or four Cossacks, securely stationed on a neighbouring eminence, was
-calmly sketching the scene.</p>
-
-<p>It had been arranged that the ships of the Admirals should occupy the
-centre of the bay, thus dividing the two armies. Had this determination
-been carried out, the landing might have been effected with the least imaginable
-difficulty; but the French Admiral, with an exclusive attention
-to his own branch of the allied force, which subsequent events of the campaign
-paralleled, thought proper to anchor his vessel at the extreme right
-of the bay, thus throwing the vessels into considerable confusion. One
-transport was grounded, and several fouled in their endeavours to get into
-their proper positions. In an incredibly short space of time, however,
-order was restored; and, under the energetic superintendence of Sir
-Edmund Lyons, the steamers and transports commenced to discharge
-their living freights. The sea was literally covered with boats, laden with
-soldiers in their varied uniforms, and bearing rations for three days, every
-article that could possibly be dispensed with being left in the ships. Those
-who landed first marked out with flags the spots to be occupied by each
-division and regiment; and the sailors, standing knee-deep in the water,
-lent hearty assistance to those who were less amphibious than themselves.
-Nothing could exceed the delight of the sturdy seamen, as they lifted
-their red-coated compatriots from the boats, and placed them dry-footed
-on the shore; or lent a hand, with more zeal than knowledge, to disembark
-the horses. Frequently, a noble charger, startled by the novelty of
-his situation, would roll into the water, half a dozen ancient mariners
-clinging to his mane or tail, and sharing his immersion,&mdash;emerging at
-length, dripping with brine, but in a high state of jollity at having rescued<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span>
-their steed, and overwhelming him with caresses of a nautical fashion,
-as they soothed his fears or indulged him with a short trot on <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">terra firma</i>.
-The two or three Cossacks who had watched our landing now deemed it
-prudent to withdraw, though not until a few shots had warned them of
-the prowess of the English riflemen, and one of their number had received
-a compliment from Major Lysons, of the 23rd, which would probably
-render his sitting in the saddle, or elsewhere, exceedingly inconvenient
-for some time to come. It so chanced, however, that even these few Cossacks
-were very nearly inflicting a heavy blow on the English army, by
-the capture of one of its most distinguished officers. Sir George Brown,
-general of the Light Division, had no sooner landed, than with characteristic
-daring he mounted his horse, and advanced alone to gain a view of
-the surrounding country. He had ridden some distance, and had closely
-approached the retreating party, quite unconscious of their neighbourhood,
-when he was suddenly astonished by the unwelcome apparition of
-three ferocious horsemen, lance in hand, in full career towards him, and
-at but a few yards’ distance. Sir George, who was almost unarmed, was
-too old a soldier to mistake rashness for courage, and wisely considering
-the odds too great, discreetly put spurs to his horse and galloped off, followed
-by his Cossack pursuers. A few of our men had fortunately, however,
-followed in the steps of their leader, and when they saw his danger,
-hastened to the rescue. Half a dozen levelled rifles proved too strong an
-argument for the valour of the Russian horsemen, and they, in their turn,
-made a precipitate retreat. Sir George Brown rejoined the main body,
-and proved, when the time came, that he could attack as bravely as he
-could retire discreetly.</p>
-
-<p>By the time when the approaching darkness rendered it necessary to
-suspend operations for the day, 20,000 English, with thirty-six guns, and
-numerous horses, had been landed, and the French in about equal force.
-Our men had left their tents in the ships, and officers and common soldiers
-were alike unprovided with means of shelter. Their rations consisted
-of provisions for three days; and in this respect, those high in
-command shared with their less distinguished followers. As night closed
-in, torrents of rain began to descend, and in a brief space of time, the
-narrow strip of land on which they stood, bounded on the one side by the
-sea, and on the other by a salt lake, was a dismal swamp. Wrapping
-themselves in their blankets, which were thoroughly soaked in a few
-minutes, the men lay down in the mud, and endeavoured to sleep. A
-moderate, and not very luxurious supper of cold pork, washed down with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span>
-a single sip of rum, was their first meal in the Crimea; and then, officers
-and men strove to drown in slumber the wretched aspect of affairs which
-thus initiated their invasion. Sir De Lacy Evans was fortunate enough
-to possess a tent, which some considerate member of the veteran’s staff
-had contrived to bring on shore. An old cart, the property probably of
-some Tartar peasant, frightened from his accustomed labour, made, when
-overturned, a canopy such as royalty seldom couches beneath; but under
-its welcome shelter the Duke of Cambridge pressed, no doubt for the first
-time, the bare earth. The French were better provided. They had contrived
-to land a considerable number of tents; and, moreover, many of
-their regiments were supplied with the little <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">tentes-abris</i>, a portion of
-which was borne by each soldier; and several of these parts could be
-united into a small tent, sufficiently commodious to afford some protection
-from the severity of the weather.</p>
-
-<p>How little can the home-keeping public realise the feelings which must
-have been predominant in the bosoms of the men during that melancholy
-bivouac! Soldiers are, perhaps, less sensitive to hardships and exposure
-than civilians; and probably comparatively callous to the finer sentiments.
-But it is scarcely possible to conceive that, out of 60,000 men,
-lying on the bare earth in an enemy’s country, there would be many who
-would not be keenly alive to the emotions their situations would naturally
-suggest. Physically depressed by a day of extreme toil, poorly fed, and
-drenched by the descending torrent, the past would be inevitably present
-to their imaginations, and with the past the probable future. Many men
-will march dauntlessly to the cannon’s mouth, and show no signs of fear,
-but with cheerful voice, and light step, dash through the enemy’s fire, and
-over the bodies of the dead. But in the stillness of the night, when no
-excitement warms his blood, the bravest will be despondent, and the
-strong man be moved with emotions as keen as those which agitate the
-breasts of the tender woman or the sympathetic child. Oceans rolled
-between them and all they had learned to love and value. No hand so
-rough but had been pressed by some other hand on the day of departure;
-no nature so fierce and ungentle but had softened into a better manhood
-as the cliffs of England receded from the view. And now they lay through
-the long hours of that miserable night, striving vainly enough to drown
-their remembrances in sleep, and gain renewed strength and courage for
-the morrow&mdash;the morrow that might bring death, and certainly imminent
-dangers. Before them lay an unknown land&mdash;a future of deadly uncertainty.
-Battles were to be fought, shot and steel to be encountered; and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
-who could tell who were destined to lie in the obscurity of death on that
-foreign soil, and who to bear the tidings back to thousands of melancholy
-homes?</p>
-
-<p>Thus was passed the night of the 14th of September, the anniversary
-of the death of the great Duke of Wellington, who, two years before, ended
-his career amid the universally expressed sorrow of a great people. He
-was, we had fondly hoped, the last great representative of the military
-glory of this country. A new era had been, we believed, initiated, in
-which the arts of peace supersede the operations of war. And now, but
-two years after the conqueror of Waterloo had looked for the last time
-upon the world, an English army had landed upon the shores of a hostile
-territory, and was commencing a warfare of which no man could see the
-termination, and which bade fair to involve every nation of Europe. The
-chosen champion of England’s military glory was quiet in his tomb; but
-his companions, pupils, and successors were prepared to emulate his deeds,
-and strike as vigorously for the honor of their country, and the maintenance
-of the freedom of Europe.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CROPREADY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the forces of Charles
-I of England and the Parliament, June 6th, 1644. It was a drawn battle;
-for both sides, in their respective accounts, claim the victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>CRUSADES.&mdash;The holy wars, waged by the Christians, to wrest the
-Sepulchre of Christ and Jerusalem, from the hands of the Saracens, continued
-for many years, and no important results were derived from them as
-regards territorial acquisition, but they had an immense effect in civilizing
-the west countries of Europe. There were three principal ones.</p>
-
-
-<p>CUDDALORE.&mdash;<em>India.</em>&mdash;Possessed by the English in 1681. Reduced
-by the French, 1758. Recaptured two years afterwards by Sir Eyre Coote.
-Taken again in 1781. Besieged by the British under General Stuart in
-1783.</p>
-
-
-<p>CUIRASS.&mdash;A covering for protecting the body of cavalry from the
-weapons of opponents. The French had a body of soldiers covered with
-them.</p>
-
-
-<p>CULLODEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought April 16th, 1746, between
-the Pretender and the Duke of Cumberland. The Scots lost 2500 men,
-while the English lost only 200. A writer thus describes the battle:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Thus far the affairs of the rebel army seemed not unprosperous; but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span>
-here was an end of all their triumphs. The Duke of Cumberland, at that
-time the favourite of the English army, had been recalled from Flanders,
-and put himself at the head of the troops at Edinburgh, which consisted of
-about 14,000 men. With these he advanced to Aberdeen, where he was
-joined by several of the Scotch nobility, attached to the house of Hanover;
-and having revived the drooping spirits of his army, he resolved to find out
-the enemy, who retreated at his approach. After having refreshed his
-troops at Aberdeen for some time, he renewed his march, and in twelve
-days he came up to the banks of the deep and rapid river Spey. This was
-the place where the rebels might have disputed his passage, but they lost
-every advantage in disputing with each other. They seemed now totally
-void of all counsel and subordination, without conduct, and without unanimity.
-After a variety of contests among each other, they resolved to wait
-their pursuers upon the plains of Culloden, a place about nine miles distant
-from Inverness, embosomed in hills, except on that side which was open
-to the sea. There they drew up in order of battle, to the number of 8000
-men, in three divisions, supplied with some pieces of artillery, ill manned
-and served.</p>
-
-<p>“The battle began about one o’clock in the afternoon; the cannon of the
-King’s army did dreadful execution among the rebels, while theirs was
-totally unserviceable. One of the great errors in all the Pretender’s war-like
-measures, was his subjecting wild and undisciplined troops to the
-forms of artful war, and thus repressing their native ardour, from which
-alone he could hope for success. After they had kept in their ranks and
-withstood the English fire for some time, they at length became impatient
-for closer engagement; and about 500 of them made an irruption upon
-the left wing of the enemy with their accustomed ferocity. The first line
-being disordered by this onset, two battalions advanced to support it, and
-galled the enemy with a terrible close discharge. At the same time the
-dragoons, under Hawley, and the Argyleshire militia, pulling down a park
-wall feebly defended, fell among them, sword in hand, with great slaughter.
-In less than thirty minutes they were totally routed, and the field covered
-with their wounded and slain, to the number of 3000 men. The
-French troops on the left did not fire a shot, but stood inactive during the
-engagement, and afterwards surrendered themselves prisoners of war. An
-entire body of the clans marched off the field in order, while the rest were
-routed with great slaughter, and their leaders obliged with reluctance to
-retire. Civil war is in itself terrible, but much more so when heightened
-by unnecessary cruelty. How guilty soever an enemy may be, it is the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span>
-duty of a brave soldier to remember that he is only to fight an opposer,
-and not a suppliant. The victory was in every respect decisive, and
-humanity to the conquered would have rendered it glorious. But little
-mercy was shown here; the conquerors were seen to refuse quarter to the
-wounded, the unarmed, the defenceless; some were slain who were only
-excited by curiosity to become spectators of the combat, and soldiers were
-seen to anticipate the base employment of the executioner. The Duke,
-immediately after the action, ordered thirty-six deserters to be executed.
-The conquerors spread terror wherever they came; and, after a short
-space, the whole country round was one dreadful scene of plunder,
-slaughter, and desolation; justice was forgotten, and vengeance assumed
-the name.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CUNNERSDORF, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The King of Prussia with
-50,000 men attacked the Austrian and Russian army with 90,000 men
-(in their camp). At first he gained considerable advantages, but pursuing
-too far, the enemy rallied and gained a complete victory. The Russians
-lost 200 pieces of cannon and 20,000 men in killed and wounded. Fought
-August 12th, 1759.</p>
-
-
-<p>CUSTOZZA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought Sunday, 24th June, 1866
-between the Austrians and Italians. “The Italian army, divided into
-three corps and a reserve, making up a force of from 80,000 to 90,000
-combatants, after crossing the Mincio at Gotto, and on the other points, on
-Saturday afternoon, June 23rd, 1866, and sending reconnoitering parties
-towards Peschiera and Verona, encamped for the night at some place
-beyond Roverbella, equidistant from the two fortresses. On the ensuing
-morning an attempt was made upon those high positions of Sona, Somma
-Campaigna, and Santa Ciustina, which commands the fifteen miles railway
-line joining the two strongholds, positions which played a conspicuous
-part in the campaign of 1848. The object of the Italians was
-evidently to take possession of the railway, so as to isolate Peschiera and
-secure a basis of operations against Verona. The Austrians, however,
-who were massed in great force at Verona, sallied forth from that place at
-daybreak, and, anticipating the Italian movements, took up their position
-upon those hills, which are now everywhere bristling with bastions
-and redoubts, and may be looked upon as mere outworks of the two citadels,
-extending from the gates of one to those of the other. After a severe
-and bloody, or, as the Italians describe it, “desperate struggle,” which
-lasted nearly the whole day&mdash;that longest of summer days&mdash;the Imperial<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span>
-army was victorious along the whole line. They stormed the summit of
-Montevente, where the Italians held out the longest, and at the close of
-the engagement, at five o’clock in the afternoon, they also carried the
-position of Custozza, a spot fatal to Italian arms in their encounter with
-Radetski, in July, 1848. The victors captured several guns, and
-about 2000 prisoners, and behaved, as the Archduke Albert’s bulletin
-assures us, and as we may readily believe, with even more than their
-ordinary bravery and endurance. On the same evening the Italian army
-was obliged to re-cross the Mincio.</p>
-
-<p>The Italian accounts of the engagement present no points of material
-difference. According to them, the first army corps was sent forward to
-occupy some positions between Peschiera and Verona, but being surrounded
-by superior numbers, it “failed to effect its purpose,” and the
-description given of its losses in the contest leaves us little doubt that it
-was all but annihilated. The second and third corps, unable&mdash;it is not
-said for what reason&mdash;to advance to its rescue, were still in the evening
-“almost intact.” It was also stated from Brescia that the army had
-maintained its position; but there is little doubt that it had to withdraw
-across the Mincio later in the night. The Italians had several of their
-Generals wounded, among others the King’s second son, Prince Amadeus,
-who has arrived at Brescia.</p>
-
-<p>There is every probability, also, that the Italians were, on this occasion,
-outnumbered by their enemies: for the Austrians have from 200,000
-to 250,000 men in Venetia, and as they had in their hands the most formidable
-of all engines of modern warfare&mdash;the railway, they had probably
-massed three-fourths, at least, of their troops in Verona, ready for the
-long-expected Italian inroad. The Archduke’s bulletins, in fact, never
-speak of garrisons, but tell us that the “imperial army” was in the
-field.</p>
-
-<p>The Italians, we are assured, behaved with great heroism, and, no doubt
-although they lost the day, they came off without loss of honour. An
-advance across the Mincio, right into the heart of the Quadrilateral, is an
-enterprise which no other European army would, under such circumstances,
-have ventured upon, but a frenzy to do something seems to have
-possessed the whole Italian nation, and the men in command could think
-of nothing better than dashing their heads against those formidable stone
-walls. There may be bravery in so desperate an attempt to take the bull
-by the horns, but we believe it would be impossible for the king or La
-Marmora to say what results they expected from their ill-conceived and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
-worse-executed attempt. It was a battle in which they staked the very
-existence of their army, while their enemies, in the worst event, ran no
-other risk than that of a safe and leisurely retreat behind the shelter of
-their bastions. The least that may be said of it is, that like the Balaklava
-charge, “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">C’était beau mais ce n’était pas la guerre</i>.” Ever since
-1848 and 1849 the Austrians have strained every nerve to strengthen
-these four citadels, and have extended their outworks, so that the line
-between Peschiera and Verona, especially, is a vast intrenched camp.”</p>
-
-
-<p>CYZICUM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought during the Peloponnesian
-war. Plutarch states that Mindarus was slain in this battle. The Athenians
-gained a complete victory over the Lacedæmonian fleet. Fought
-<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 410.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="D" id="D"></a>D.</h3>
-
-
-<p>DAMASCUS.&mdash;Taken by the Saracens, 633. Again by the Turks
-in 1006, and was destroyed by Tamerlane in 1400.</p>
-
-
-<p>DANTZIC.&mdash;It surrendered to the French, after a siege of four
-months, May 5th, 1807; and, by the treaty of Tilsit, was restored to its
-former independence under the protection of Russia and Saxony. It
-was besieged by the Allies in 1812, and surrendered to them January 6th,
-1814. By the treaty of Paris it reverted to its former status.</p>
-
-
-<p>DARDANELLES, PASSAGE OF THE.&mdash;This was achieved by
-the British fleet under Sir John Duckworth, February 19th, 1807; but
-the admiral was obliged to repass them&mdash;which he did with great loss and
-immense damage to the fleet, March 2nd following. The castles of Sestos
-and Abydos hurled down rocks, each of many tons weight, upon the
-decks of the British ships.</p>
-
-
-<p>DARTMOUTH.&mdash;Burnt by the French, in the reign of Richard I
-and Henry IV. Prince Maurice took it in 1643, but it was retaken by
-General Fairfax, by storm, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1646.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="DEL" id="DEL"></a></div>
-<p>DELHI.&mdash;Once the great capital of the Mogul empire. In 1738,
-when Nadir Shah invaded Hindostan, he entered Delhi, and 100,000 of
-the inhabitants were put to the sword. In 1803, the Mahrattas aided by
-the French, got possession of the place; but they were afterwards defeated
-by General Lake. This city has been the scene of much commotion in
-the course of its history.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The following is a short account of the storming of Delhi, in the last
-great mutiny:</p>
-
-<p>“Until the latter end of August, the British troops before Delhi are
-rather to be considered as an army of observation, than as a besieging
-force. Their inferiority in numbers and artillery was barely counter-balanced
-by their superior discipline, courage and physical strength. These
-advantages enabled them, indeed, to maintain their ground, but not to
-assume the offensive.</p>
-
-<p>Toward the close of August, however, a re-inforcement of European
-and Sikh troops, under Brigadier Nicholson, arrived from the Punjab,
-and, on the 25th of that month, the rebels were defeated at Nujuffghur,
-with great slaughter, and the loss of thirteen guns. A few days later a
-heavy siege-train was received from Ferozepore, and breaching batteries
-were constructed on the north side of the city. The siege may be said to
-have commenced on the 7th September, and by the evening of the 13th,
-the engineers reported two practicable breaches&mdash;one near the Cashmere,
-the other near the Water bastion. Arrangements were, therefore, at once
-made for an assault, to take place at daybreak on the following morning.</p>
-
-<p>The first column, commanded by Brigadier Nicholson, advanced under
-a tremendous fire, and, applying their scaling-ladders, carried the
-Cashmere bastion, and established themselves in the main-guard. Almost
-simultaneously, the second column, under Brigadier Jones, stormed the
-Water bastion, and effected a junction with their comrades inside the
-walls.</p>
-
-<p>A third column, under Colonel Campbell, awaited the blowing open of
-the Cashmere gate to join the assault. They had not long to wait. Lieutenants
-Salkeld and Home, of the engineers, accompanied by three
-sergeants carrying the powder-bags, walked up to the gateway in broad
-daylight, and, while exposed to a heavy fire of musketry, coolly fastened
-the bags to the iron spikes of the gate. In the performance of this heroic
-exploit, Lieutenant Salkeld was severely wounded, and two of the sergeants
-killed upon the spot; but the train was lighted, and the gate blown open
-with a tremendous crash.</p>
-
-<p>As the smoke cleared away, the storming party sprang through the ruins
-with a British cheer; and the three columns uniting, made themselves
-master of the whole line of works, from the Water bastion to the Cabul
-gate; and before nightfall were in possession of Skinner’s house, the
-Church, the College, and the adjacent grounds. This brilliant success,
-however, was not achieved without great loss of life.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Of the European soldiery, eight officers and 162 rank and file were
-killed, with 52 officers and 510 rank and file wounded; of the Sepoys,
-413 were placed <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">hors de combat</i>, of whom 103 were slain outright. The
-total number of casualties thus amounted to 1145, or one-third of the
-entire assaulting force. Among the mortally wounded was Brigadier
-Nicholson, whose death was justly deplored as a national calamity.</p>
-
-<p>Simultaneously with these main attacks, a diversion was made by a
-fourth column, consisting of Sikhs, Ghoorkas, and Cashmerians, on the
-suburbs of Kishengunge and Pahareepore. But, in spite of their most
-strenuous efforts, these troops failed to overcome the desperate resistance
-offered by the enemy, and, in the end, were compelled to retreat, though
-not ingloriously.</p>
-
-<p>The day following the assault was consumed in shelling the palace, and
-in battering the magazine. A breach was effected, and, at daylight on the
-16th, a storming party dashed forward with such impetuosity that the
-rebel artillerymen dropped their lighted port-fires and fled, leaving undischarged
-six guns of large calibre commanding the breach and loaded
-with grape. On the 17th, the British troops became masters of the Bank,
-formerly the palace of the Begum Sumroo, and shortly afterwards, of the
-Jumma Musjid, or principal mosque. Heavy guns were now brought to
-play upon the palace and the bridge of boats, and, by the evening of the
-20th, the rebels entirely evacuated the city and its suburbs. Then was
-seen the extent of the damage sustained by the former capital of the
-Mogul dynasty. Whole streets had been laid in ruins; dead bodies
-tainted the air in all directions; the inhabitants, reduced to beggary, were
-crouching, terror-stricken, in obscure lurking-places. But the British
-soldier is merciful in victory, as he is irresistible in battle. To armed
-rebels, no mercy was shown; but women and children, and the defenceless
-citizens, were spared and protected.</p>
-
-<p>The venerable descendant of Timour&mdash;venerable only by reason of his
-gray hairs and extreme old age&mdash;had fled, with his principal Begum, two
-sons, and a grandson, to the tomb of his ancestor, Hoomavoon, son of the
-mighty Baber. He was discovered and seized by captain Hodson, of the
-2nd European Fusiliers. His own life, and that of his queen, were
-respected&mdash;but the princes were led out and shot, and their dead bodies
-publicly exposed at the kotwalee, or mayor’s court.</p>
-
-<p>General Wilson, whose health failed him in the hour of victory, now
-resigned the command to Brigadier Penny, C.B., a veteran of approved
-gallantry. Colonel Burn, whose father so gallantly defended Delhi against<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span>
-Jeswunt Rao Holkar, in 1803, was appointed military commandant within
-the city, and measures were successfully taken to re-establish order, and
-to afford protection to well-disposed and peaceful citizens. Two movable
-columns, consisting each of 1600 infantry, 500 cavalry, three troops of
-horse artillery, and eighteen guns, were told off, and ordered to follow
-up the retreating enemy without delay. One of these, commanded by
-Colonel Greathed, of the 84th, came up with a rebel force strongly posted
-near Bolundshuhur, and, after a spirited engagement, utterly discomfited
-them with the loss of two guns, a vast quantity of ammunition, and 100
-men.”</p>
-
-
-<p>DEMERARA AND ESSEQUIBO.&mdash;Founded by the Dutch but
-taken by the British, under Major General White, April 22nd, 1796.
-Restored in 1802. Again surrendered to the British, under General
-Grinfield and Commodore Hood, September 20th, 1803. They are now
-British colonies.</p>
-
-
-<p>DENNEWITZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In this battle a remarkable victory
-was obtained by Marshal Bernadotte, Prince of Denmark&mdash;who afterward
-became Charles XIV of Sweden&mdash;over Marshal Ney, September 6th,
-1813. The loss of the French exceeded 16,000 men and two eagles,
-while the loss of the opposite army was inconsiderable.</p>
-
-
-<p>DETTINGEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British, Hanoverian,
-and Hessian army, commanded by George II of England in person and
-the Earl of Stair, on the one side, and the French army, commanded by
-Marshal Noailles and the Duke of Grammont, on the other side. The
-English army amounted to 52,000 men, the French to 60,000 strong.
-The French having passed a defile which they should have guarded, the
-British and Allies bravely sustained the impetuous charge of the French
-cavalry, so that they were obliged to give way, and recross the Mayne,
-with the loss of 5000 men. Fought June 16th, 1743.</p>
-
-
-<p>DIEPPE.&mdash;<em>In France.</em>&mdash;This town was bombarded by an English
-fleet, under Admiral Russell, and laid in ashes, July 1694. Again
-bombarded by the British, September 14th, 1803.</p>
-
-
-<p>DIZIER ST.&mdash;<em>In Champagne.</em>&mdash;One of the most memorable sieges
-in modern history. This town sustained a siege for six weeks against
-the army of Charles V, Emperor of Germany, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1544. A battle was
-fought here between the armies of the Allies on the one side, and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
-French, commanded by Napoleon in person, on the other, in which he
-was defeated with great loss, January 27th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>DONNINGTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Lincolnshire, England.</em>&mdash;Fought
-between the Royalists, commanded by Colonel Cavendish, and the
-forces of the Parliament&mdash;the latter defeated, 1643. The battle of Donnington,
-in Gloucestershire, was fought in 1645, when the Royalists, under
-Lord Aston, were defeated by Colonel Morgan. This victory led to the
-surrender of the King’s garrison at Oxford.</p>
-
-
-<p>DRAGOON.&mdash;Name supposed to have been derived from dragon.
-The first regiment of dragoons in England was raised <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1681.</p>
-
-
-<p>DRESDEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the allied army, under the
-Prince of Schwarzenberg, and the French army, commanded by Napoleon,
-August 26th and 27th, 1813. The Allies were 200,000 strong. They
-attacked the position of Napoleon, and the event had nearly proved fatal
-to them, but for an error of General Vandamme. They were defeated with
-dreadful loss, and were obliged to retreat into Bohemia. Vandamme
-pursuing them too far, his division was cut to pieces, and he and all his staff
-made prisoners. In this battle, General Moreau received his mortal
-wound, while in conversation with the Emperor of Russia.</p>
-
-
-<p>DROGHEDA.&mdash;<em>In Ireland.</em>&mdash;Cromwell took this city by storm, and
-put the governor and all the garrison to the sword, August 14th, 1649.
-More than 3000 men, mostly English, perished, one individual&mdash;a
-lieutenant&mdash;alone escaping. Cromwell also murdered every man, woman,
-and child of the citizens that were Irish!</p>
-
-
-<p>DRUM.&mdash;A martial instrument&mdash;the invention of which is ascribed
-to Bacchus. Being an oriental invention, it was introduced into Europe
-by the Moors, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 713.</p>
-
-
-<p>DUMBLANE <span class="fs70">OR</span> DUNBLANE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Called also the
-Battle of Sheriffmuir.&mdash;Fought between the Royalist army, and the Scotch
-rebels, November 12th, 1715. The Duke of Argyle, who commanded the
-Royalists, had in his army 4000 veteran troops; the Earl of Mar, who
-commanded the rebels, 8000, but all newly raised. The loss was equal on
-both sides, and each claimed the victory. The Highland foot behaved
-most gallantly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>DUNBAR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Scottish and
-English army, in which John Baliol was defeated by the Earl of Warrenne,
-and Scotland subdued by Edward I, April 27th, 1296. Another battle
-was fought here between the Scots and the English, under Cromwell, who
-obtained a great victory, September 3rd, 1650.</p>
-
-
-<p>DUNDALK.&mdash;Edward Bruce, being defeated in his unfortunate
-invasion of Ireland, was beheaded here, in 1318, and with him 6200
-Scots invaders, lost their lives. The walls and fortifications were destroyed
-in 1641.</p>
-
-
-<p>DUNGAN HILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Ireland.</em>&mdash;Fought between
-the English and Irish armies. The former commanded by Colonel
-Jones, who signally defeated the insurgent Irish, of whom 6000 were
-slain, while the loss of the English was inconsiderable. Fought July
-10th, 1647.</p>
-
-
-<p>DUNKIRK.&mdash;Taken by the English and French from the Spaniards,
-June 24th, 1658. Sold by Charles II, for £500,000, to Louis XIV,
-in 1662. The English attempted to besiege this place, but the Duke
-of York, who commanded, was defeated by Hoche, and forced to retire
-with loss, September 7th, 1793.</p>
-
-
-<p>DUNSINANE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Celebrated by Shakespeare. Fought
-between Macbeth, the thane of Glamis, and Seward, earl of Northumberland.
-Macbeth was signally defeated, fled, and was pursued, when he
-was slain, 1057.</p>
-
-
-<p>DURHAM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the English and
-Scottish armies, October 17th, 1316. See <em><a href="#NEV">Nevill’s Cross</a></em>.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="E" id="E"></a>E.</h3>
-
-
-<p>EBRO.&mdash;Scene of a signal defeat of the Spaniards, by the French,
-November 23rd, 1808. Scene also of several movements of the allied
-forces during the Peninsular War.</p>
-
-
-<p>ECKMUHL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, April 22nd, 1809, between
-the main armies of France and Austria. The French army was
-commanded by Napoleon, and the Austrian by the Archduke Charles.
-Napoleon, by one of his masterly movements, broke through the
-Imperial army, and completely routed them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>EDGEHILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, October 23rd, 1642, between
-the Royalists and the Parliament army, the first engagement of importance
-in the civil war. Charles I was present in this battle. Prince Rupert
-commanded the Royalists and the Earl of Essex the Parliamentarians.
-The Earl of Lindsay, one of Charles’ Generals, who commanded the
-foot forces, was mortally wounded and taken prisoner. The King’s
-army lost 5000 men, dead on the field of battle, with vast numbers of
-wounded and prisoners; but the great loss on the other side prevented
-them from making all they could of the victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>ENSIGN.&mdash;A flag or banner. The lowest commissioned officer in an
-infantry regiment&mdash;he who carries the flag or colors&mdash;hence the name;
-derived from the French.</p>
-
-
-<p>ENGHIEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, August 3rd, 1692, between
-the British, under William III, and the French, under Marshal Luxembourg,
-who were victorious. William had put himself at the head
-of the confederate army in the Netherlands, and leagued himself with
-the Protestant powers upon the continent against the ambition of
-Louis XIV, and in the end he triumphed.</p>
-
-
-<p>ENLISTMENT OF SOLDIERS AND SEAMAN.&mdash;None enlisted
-are to be sworn in before a magistrate in less than twenty-four hours,
-and then they are at liberty to withdraw, upon returning enlistment or
-bounty money and 21s. costs. All enlistment is now voluntary.</p>
-
-
-<p>ENNISKILLEN.&mdash;<em>Ireland.</em>&mdash;It made an obstinate defence against
-the army of Elizabeth; then against James II, 1689&mdash;1500 Enniskillens
-met General McCarty with a force of 6000 men&mdash;defeated him, with a
-loss of 3000 men, and took all the rest&mdash;losing only twenty men, July
-1689. The Enniskillen dragoons were raised here.</p>
-
-
-<p>ESSLING, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 22nd, 1809, between the
-armies of France and Austria, commanded by Napoleon and the Archduke
-Charles,&mdash;a dreadful conflict, which began on May 21st, and continued
-on the 22nd. Napoleon was defeated with the loss of 30,000
-men&mdash;but the Austrians lost 20,000. This was the most severe check
-that Napoleon had ever yet experienced, which rendered his army’s retreat
-very difficult.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>EUPATORIA.&mdash;<em>Crimea.</em>&mdash;Famous in the Crimean war. The
-following is an account of its capture by the Allies:</p>
-
-<p>“About 25,000 Turks, under Omer Pacha, the veterans for the most
-part of the army of the Danube, had occupied the town, and strongly
-entrenched themselves, assisted by a small force of English and French,
-and supported by the presence of a naval squadron, under the command
-of Captain Hastings, of the <i>Curaçoa</i>. For some days previous to the
-16th of February, large bodies of Russians had been observed in the
-vicinity; and on the morning of that day, a strong force of artillery,
-supported by bodies of cavalry and infantry, estimated at about 40,000
-men, opened a smart fire upon the town, at a distance of 1200 yards,
-subsequently advancing nearer. The small squadron, under Captain
-Hastings, was enabled to do good service; the <i>Valorous</i> pitching shells
-and shot among the enemy on the left; and the <i>Viper</i>, an active little
-gun-boat, smartly seconding her efforts on the left. The enemy’s infantry
-approached to the right of the town, through the cemetery. As they
-advanced from the burying-ground, they were met by a vigorous fire of
-musketry from the entrenchments. The <i>Furious</i> had detached a rocket-party,
-which coming round among the windmills to the right of the town,
-met the advancing Russians with a succession of volleys. The enemy
-advanced to within twenty yards of the ditch, and then fell into confusion.
-Selim Bey, the leader of the Egyptian contingent, seizing the
-opportunity, threw forward his brigade in a rapid charge with the bayonet
-upon the disordered columns, but fell mortally wounded at the head of his
-men. Unable to stand the terrific fire to which they were exposed, and
-yielding before the vigorous charge of the Egyptians, the Russians gave
-way, and the repulse was complete. The artillery limbered up their guns,
-and with the cavalry, drew leisurely from the spot. The enemy’s loss
-must have been immense, considering the short time the skirmish lasted,
-as the ground was strewed with the bodies of the slain, who were quickly
-despoiled by the ever ready Bashi-Bazouks, and left stark naked in their
-blood. The loss to the defenders of the town was 101 killed, and 286
-wounded. The Turkish artillery suffered greatly from the enemy’s fire,
-nineteen men being killed in one battery. Thus did Omer Pacha initiate
-his campaign in the Crimea.”</p>
-
-
-<p>EURYMEDON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most celebrated battles
-in Grecian history, when Cimon destroyed the fleet of the Persians at
-Cyprus, and the land forces also at the River Eurymedon, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 470.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>EVESHAM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, August 4th, 1265, between
-Prince Edward, afterwards Edward I, and Simon de Montfort, Earl of
-Leicester&mdash;in which the Barons were defeated, and Montfort slain. This
-victory broke up the confederation of the Barons against the King.</p>
-
-
-<p>EXETER.&mdash;When held by the Danes King Alfred invested and took
-it <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 894. Sweyn besieged it 1003. Again besieged by William the
-Conqueror, 1067. Surrendered to King Stephen, 1136. Besieged by Sir
-William Courtenay, 1469. Lastly assaulted by Perkin Warbeck 1497.</p>
-
-
-<p>EXPEDITIONS OF THE BRITISH. PRINCIPAL ONES.</p>
-
-<div class="fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" width="80%" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl">France near Port l’Orient</td><td class="tdl wd20">October 1,</td><td class="tdl wd10">1746</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Cherbourg</td><td class="tdl">August 7,</td><td class="tdl">1758</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">St. Malo</td><td class="tdl">September,</td><td class="tdl">1758</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Ostend</td><td class="tdl">May,</td><td class="tdl">1798</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Zuyder Zee</td><td class="tdl">September,</td><td class="tdl">1799</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Egypt</td><td class="tdl">March,</td><td class="tdl">1801</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Copenhagen</td><td class="tdl">September,</td><td class="tdl">1807</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Walcheren</td><td class="tdl">July,</td><td class="tdl">1809</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Bergen-op-Zoom</td><td class="tdl">March,</td><td class="tdl">1814</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<p>EYLAU, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, February 8th, 1807, between the
-French and Russians.&mdash;It was one of the most terrible and bloody in
-Napoleon’s wars. Napoleon lost 15,000 men, and the Russians 20,000,
-in slain alone. Both armies were dreadfully crippled by this battle, and
-both had to retire.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="F" id="F"></a>F.</h3>
-
-
-<p>FALCZI, PEACE OF.&mdash;This celebrated peace was concluded
-between Russia and Turkey, July 2nd, 1711,&mdash;the Russians giving up
-Azof and all their possessions on the Black Sea to the Turks. In the
-following year the war was renewed, and at last terminated in the peace
-of Constantinople, April 16th, 1712.</p>
-
-
-<p>FALKIRK, BATTLE OF.&mdash;First battle fought between Edward I
-of England, and the Scots under William Wallace, July 22nd, 1298;
-and the second between the King’s forces and Prince Charles Stuart, the
-Pretender, January 18th, 1746. Both are described in the following
-extracts:</p>
-
-<p>“Edward had been in Scotland for about a month. He had advanced
-as far as Kirkliston, ten miles west of Edinburgh. Symptoms of mutiny
-began to appear among his hungry soldiers. He was compelled to give<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span>
-orders for a retreat to Edinburgh, meaning to wait there till his fleet,
-laden with provisions, should arrive at Leith, and then to advance again.</p>
-
-<p>Things stood thus, when two scoundrels, the Earl of Dunbar and the
-Earl of Angus, came at daybreak into the camp of the English, and gave
-information that Wallace lay in the forest of Falkirk, intending to attack
-the English in their quarters that very night. Edward was filled with
-joy at the tidings. “Thanks be to God,” he cried, “who hath hitherto
-delivered me from every danger! They shall not need to follow me, for I
-shall instantly go and meet them.”</p>
-
-<p>In an hour’s time he had his army in motion for the west. That night
-they encamped on a moor near Linlithgow. Each man slept in his
-armour, each war-horse was kept ready bridled beside its rider. The king
-himself slept on the bare ground, like the meanest soldier in his army. In
-the middle of the night the sleeping king received a kick from his own
-charger, by which two of his ribs were broken. As soon as morning
-dawned the march was resumed. The king, wounded as he was, was
-among the first to mount.</p>
-
-<p>Passing through the town of Linlithgow, they continued their march,
-and gained a rising ground at some distance beyond. There they halted,
-and the fighting Bishop of Durham said mass. While the ceremony was
-performing the sun rose, and his rays, glancing upon the array of spears,
-showed them the Scottish army taking their ground on the slope of a
-small hill not far from Falkirk. Wallace arranged his battle thus: His
-main force lay in his infantry, who fought with long spears, and carried
-short daggers and axes for close battle slung at the girdle. They were
-divided into four circular masses, or <em>schiltrons</em>, as they were called in the
-military language of the time. In these circles the spearmen stood compactly
-together, with their long spears stretched out, and forming a ring
-of steel. The spaces between circle and circle were occupied by the
-archers, tall yeomen from the forests of Selkirk and Ettrick. The
-cavalry, amounting to 1000 heavy armed horse, were placed in the rear.
-Among them were most of the nobles who had joined Wallace; but the
-jealousy which these proud barons felt towards him, and their selfish fear
-of losing their estates, made them less than half-hearted in the cause.</p>
-
-<p>The English came on in three divisions, each division as strong as the
-whole Scottish army. At the first clash of spears the entire body of the
-Scottish cavalry, led by the traitor lords, turned bridle, and rode off the
-field without a blow given or taken. While the battle raged against the
-circles of spearmen, the English horse charged the Scottish archers. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span>
-brave foresters stood firm to meet the rush of 7000 of the finest cavalry
-ever present on a stricken field. But what could they, lightly armed as
-they were, do against mailed horse and steel-clad knights? They defended
-themselves so bravely with their short daggers that the very enemy
-admired them. But they died there to a man. After the battle the
-conquerors remarked their tall and handsome forms as they lay dead on
-the ground they had kept so well.</p>
-
-<p>The four circles of the Scottish spearmen remained yet entire, standing
-up like a wall, with their spears, point over point, so thick and close
-together that no living man could pierce through. But the cloth-yard
-arrows from the great bows of England fell thick and deadly among them.
-The columns of archers advanced near and discharged their shafts in
-perfect security, the Scots having neither cavalry to scatter them by a
-charge, nor archers to reply to them. Drawing their arrows to the head,
-they shot with all their force into the circles, and quickly breached the
-living walls. Through the gaps made by the archers the English cavalry
-charged, and having once broken in made a dreadful slaughter. The
-battle was lost. One duty alone remained to the Scottish leader, and
-that was to save the remainder of his army from destruction by a retreat.
-Well and soldierly he did it. Retiring slowly, and himself with his best
-knights defending the rear, he was able to draw off the broken remains of
-his circles, and to gain the shelter of Torwood forest.”</p>
-
-<p><em>Second Battle.</em>&mdash;“Being joined by Lord Drummond, Prince Charles
-invested the castle of Stirling, commanded by General Blakeney; but the
-rebel forces, being unused to sieges, consumed much time to no purpose.
-It was during this attempt that General Hawley, who commanded a considerable
-body of forces near Edinburgh, undertook to raise the siege,
-and advanced towards the rebel army as far as Falkirk. After two days
-spent in mutually examining each other’s strength, the rebels being
-ardent to engage, were led on, in full spirits, to attack the King’s army.
-The Pretender, who was in the front line, gave the signal to engage, and
-the first fire put Hawley’s forces into confusion. The horse retreated
-with precipitation, and fell upon their own infantry; while the rebels,
-following up the blow, the greatest part of the royal army fled with the
-utmost precipitation. They retired in confusion to Edinburgh, leaving
-the conquerors in possession of their tents, their artillery, and the field of
-battle.”</p>
-
-
-<p>FEROZESHAH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>India.</em>&mdash;Between the Sikhs and
-British. The British attacked the entrenchments of the Sikhs, and carried<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span>
-by storm the first line of works, December 21st, 1845. Night
-coming on the operations were suspended till day-break next day, and
-their second line was carried and their guns captured; the Sikhs advanced
-to recapture the guns but were repulsed with great loss, and retreated
-towards the Sutlej, December 22nd, and re-crossed the river unmolested,
-December 27th.</p>
-
-
-<p>FERROL, BRITISH EXPEDITION TO.&mdash;Upwards of 10,000
-British landed, August, 1800, near Ferrol, commanded by Sir James
-Pulteney. Despairing of success, though they had gained the heights,
-they re-embarked and returned to England, by order of the General, and
-in opposition to the wishes and advice of his officers.</p>
-
-
-<p>FIELD OF THE CLOTH OF GOLD.&mdash;Henry VIII embarked
-at Windsor to meet Francis I of France, at Ardres, May 31st, 1520.
-So much magnificence was displayed on the occasion, that the field
-received that name, by which it is now always known in history.</p>
-
-
-<p>FIRE SHIPS.&mdash;Used first in the 16th century. The first use of
-them, in the English navy, was by Lord Effingham, in the engagement
-of the Armada, July, 1588.</p>
-
-
-<p>FLAG.&mdash;Acquired its present form in the 6th century, in Spain;
-introduced, it is said, by the Saracens.</p>
-
-<p>FLAT BUSH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>Long Island, America.</em>&mdash;Fought
-August 27th, 1776, between the British forces and American colonists,
-when the latter, after a desperate engagement, were compelled to retire,
-with the loss of 2000 men killed, and 1000 prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="FLE" id="FLE"></a></div>
-<p>FLEURIS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June, 17th, 1794, between the
-Allies, under the Prince of Cobourg, and the French revolutionary army,
-commanded by Marshal Jourdan. The Allies had 100,000 men, and
-having met the enemy on the plains of Fleuris, were signally defeated.
-Between 8000 and 10,000 were killed, wounded and taken prisoners,
-and Jourdan was able to form a junction with the French armies of the
-Moselle&mdash;the Ardennes and the north. In this memorable battle, the
-French made use of a balloon to reconnoitre the enemy’s army&mdash;an experiment
-which it is said very materially tended to their gaining the victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>FLODDEN.&mdash;Fought on the 9th September, 1513, between the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span>
-English and Scots. Underneath is a graphic account of the most disastrous
-battle that ever befell the Scottish arms.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 22nd of August, 1513, James IV of Scotland, at the head of
-a gallant army, crossed the Tweed, for the purpose of revenging some
-injuries which he conceived himself to have received at the hands of the
-King of England, who was then pursuing hostilities in France. Immediately
-on his crossing that river, he laid siege to the castles of Etel and
-Ford, and spent much precious time in endeavouring to reduce those
-fortresses.</p>
-
-<p>Whilst such was the course pursued by the King, the Earl of Surrey concentrating
-the strength of the northern counties, soon raised an army of
-26,000 men; and marching through Durham, received there the sacred
-banner of St. Cuthbert. He was soon after joined by Lord Dacre, Sir
-William Bulmer, Sir Marmaduke Constable, and other northern Barons;
-and on proceeding to Alnwick, was met by his son, Lord Thomas Howard,
-Lord Admiral of England, with a reinforcement of 5000 men. On
-advancing with this united force, Surrey dispatched Rouge Croix Herald
-to carry his challenge to the King of Scots, which was couched in the
-usual stately terms of feudal defiance. It reproached him with having
-broken his faith and league, which had been solemnly pledged to the King
-of England, in thus invading his dominions&mdash;and offered him battle on
-the succeeding Friday, if he would be content to remain so long in England
-and accept it. Lord Thomas Howard added a message, informing
-the King, that, as High Admiral, and one who had borne a personal share
-in the action against Andrew Barton, he was now ready to justify the
-death of that pirate, for which purpose he would lead the vanguard, where
-his enemies, from whom he expected as little mercy as he meant to grant
-them, would be sure to find him. To this challenge, James instantly replied,
-that “he desired nothing more earnestly than the encounter, and he would
-abide the battle on the day appointed.” As to the rude accusation of
-broken honour which had been brought against him, he desired his herald
-to carry a broad denial of the statement. “Our bond and promise,” he
-observed, “was to remain true to our royal brother, so long as he maintained
-his faith with us. This he was the first to break; we have desired
-redress, and have been denied it; we have warned him of our intended
-hostility&mdash;a courtesy which he has refused to us; and this is our just
-quarrel, which, with the grace of God, we shall defend.” These mutual
-messages passed on the 4th of September; and on the day appointed,
-Surrey advanced against the enemy. By this time, the distress for provisions,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
-the incessant rains, and the obstinacy of the King in waiting
-upon his pleasures, and his observation of the punctilios of chivalry, the
-hours which might have been spent in active warfare, had created dissatisfaction
-in the soldiers, many of whom deserted, with the booty they had
-already collected; so that in a short time the army was much diminished
-in numbers. To accept the challenge of his adversary, and permit him
-to appoint a day for the encounter, was contrary to the advice of his best
-councillors; and he might have recollected, that in circumstances almost
-similar, two great masters in war, Douglas and Randolph, had treated a
-parallel proposal of Edward III with a sarcastic refusal. He had the
-sagacity, however, to change his first encampment for a stronger position
-on the hill of Flodden, one of the last and lowest eminences which detach
-themselves from the range of the Cheviots; a ground skillfully chosen,
-inaccessible on both flanks, and defended in front by the river Till, a deep
-sluggish stream, which ran between the armies.</p>
-
-<p>On advancing and reconnoitering the spot, Surrey, who despaired of
-being able to attack the Scots without exposing himself to the probability
-of defeat, again sent a herald to request the King to descend from the
-eminence into the plain. He complained, somewhat unreasonably, that
-James had “putte himself into a ground more like a fortress or a camp,
-than any indifferent field for battle to be taxed;” but James would not
-even admit the messenger into his presence. So far all had succeeded
-and nothing was required on the part of the King but patience. He had
-chosen an impregnable position, had fulfilled his agreement by abiding
-the attack of the enemy; and such was the distress of Surrey’s army in
-a wasted country, that to keep it longer together was impossible. He
-attempted, therefore, a decisive measure, which would have appeared
-desperate, unless he had reckoned upon the carelessness and inexperience
-of his opponent. Passing the Till on the 8th of September, he proceeded
-on its east side to Barmoor wood, two miles distant from the Scottish
-position, where he encamped for the night. His march was concealed
-from the enemy by an eminence on the east of Ford; but the manœuvre
-being executed without observation or interruption, evinces a shameful
-negligence in the Scottish commanders. Early on the morning of the
-9th, he marched from Barmoor wood in a north-westerly direction; and
-then turning suddenly to the eastward, crossed the Till with his vanguard
-and artillery at Twisel bridge, not far from the confluence of the
-Till and the Tweed&mdash;whilst the rear division, under Surrey in person,
-passed the river at a ford. Whilst these movements were taking place<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span>
-the Scottish King remained unaccountably passive. His veteran officers
-remonstrated. They showed him, that if he advanced against Surrey,
-when the enemy were defiling over the bridge with their vanguard
-separated from the rear, there was every chance of destroying them in
-detail, and gaining an easy victory. The Earl of Angus, whose age and
-experience gave great weight to his advice, implored him either to assault
-the English, or to change his position by a retreat, ere it was too late;
-but his prudent counsel was only received by a cruel taunt. “Angus,”
-said the King, “if you are afraid, you may go home;” a reproach which
-the spirit of the old Baron could not brook. “My age,” said he, “renders
-my body of no service, and my counsel is despised; but I leave my two
-sons and the vassals of Douglas in the field; may the result be glorious,
-and Angus’s foreboding unfounded!”</p>
-
-<p>The army of Surrey was still marching across the bridge, when Borthwick,
-the master of the artillery, fell on his knees before the King, and
-solicited permission to bring his guns to bear upon the columns, which
-might then be done with the most destructive effect; but James commanded
-him to desist on peril of his head, declaring that he would meet
-his antagonist on equal terms in a plain field, and scorned to avail himself
-of such an advantage. The counsel of Huntly was equally ineffectual;
-the remonstrance of Lord Lindsay of the Byres was received by
-James with such vehement indignation, that he threatened on his return
-to hang him up at his own gate. Time ran on amidst these useless
-altercations, and the opportunity was soon irrecoverable. The last divisions
-of Surrey’s force had disentangled themselves from the narrow
-bridge; the rear had passed the ford; and the Earl, marshalling his army
-with the leisure his enemy allowed him, placed his entire line between
-James and his own country. He was thus enabled, by an easy and
-gradual ascent, which led to Flodden, to march upon the rear of the
-enemy; and without losing his advantage for a moment, he advanced
-against them in full array, his army being divided into two battles, and
-each battle having two wings. On becoming aware of this, the King
-set fire to the temporary huts and booths of his encampment, and descended
-the hill, with the object of occupying the eminence on which the village
-of Brankston is built. His army was divided into five battles, some of
-which had assumed the form of squares, some of wedges; and all were
-drawn up in line, about a bow-shot distant from each other. Their march
-was conducted in complete silence; and the clouds of smoke which arose
-from the burning camp, being driven in the face of the enemy, mutually<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
-concealed the armies; so that when the breeze freshened, and the misty
-curtain was withdrawn, the two hosts discovered that they were within a
-quarter of a mile of each other. The arrangement of both armies was
-simple. The van of the English, which consisted of 10,000 men, divided
-into a centre and two wings, was led by Lord Thomas Howard; the
-right wing being intrusted to his brother, Sir Edmund, and the left to
-Sir Marmaduke Constable. In the main centre of his host Surrey himself
-commanded; the charge of the rear was given to Sir Edward Stanley;
-and a strong body of horse, under Lord Dacre, formed a reserve. Upon
-the part of the Scots, the Earls of Home and Huntly led the advance;
-the King, the centre; and the Earls of Lennox and Argyle, the rear;
-near which was the reserve, consisting of the flower of the Lothians, commanded
-by the Earl of Bothwell. The battle commenced at four in the
-afternoon, by a furious charge of Huntly and Home upon the portion of
-the English advance under Sir Edmund Howard; which, after some
-resistance, was thrown into confusion, and totally routed. Howard’s
-banner was beaten down; and he himself escaped with difficulty. Lord
-Thomas Howard, dreading the consequences of a defeat, dispatched a
-messenger to his father, Lord Surrey, entreating him to extend his line
-with all speed, and strengthen the van by drawing up a part of the centre
-on its left. The manœuvre was judicious, but it would have required
-too long a time to execute; and at this critical moment, Lord Dacre
-galloped forward with his cavalry to the support of his advance. Nothing
-could have been more timely than this assistance; he not only checked
-the career of the Scottish Earls, but drove back the division of Huntly
-with great slaughter; whilst Home’s men, imagining they had already
-gained the victory, began to disperse and pillage. Dacre and the Admiral
-then turned their attack against another portion of the Scottish advance,
-led by the Earls of Crawford and Montrose, who met them with levelled
-spears, and resolutely withstood the charge. Whilst such was the state
-of things on the right, a desperate contest was carried on between James
-and the Earl of Surrey in the centre. In his ardour, the King forgot
-that the duties of a commander were distinct from the indiscriminate
-valour of a knight: he placed himself in the front of his lances and billmen,
-surrounded by his nobles, who, whilst they pitied the gallant weakness
-of such conduct, disdained to leave their sovereign unsupported.
-The first consequence of this was so furious a charge upon the English
-centre, that its ranks were broken, and for a while the standard of the
-Earl of Surrey was in danger; but by this time Lord Dacre and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span>
-Admiral had been successful in defeating the division led by Crawford
-and Montrose, and wheeling towards the left, they turned their whole
-strength against the flank of the Scottish centre, which wavered under
-the shock, till the Earl of Bothwell came up with the reserve, and restored
-the day in this quarter. On the right, the divisions led by the Earls of
-Lennox and Argyle were composed chiefly of the Highlanders and Isle-men,
-the Campbells, Macleans, Macleods, and other hardy clans, who
-were dreadfully galled by the discharge of the English archers. Unable
-to reach the enemy with their broadswords and axes, which formed their
-only weapons, and not very amenable to discipline, their squadrons began
-to rush fiercely forward, eager for closer fight, and thoughtless of the fatal
-consequences of breaking their array. It was to little purpose that La
-Motte and the French officers with him attempted by entreaties and blows
-to restrain them; they neither understood their language nor cared for
-their violence, but threw themselves sword in hand upon the English.
-The squares of English pikemen stood to their ground; and though for
-a moment the shock of the mountaineers was terrible, its force once
-sustained, became spent with its own violence, and nothing remained but
-a disorganisation so complete that to recover their ranks was impossible.
-The consequence was, a total rout of the right wing of the Scots,
-accompanied by a dreadful slaughter, in which the Earls of Lennox and
-Argyle were slain. Yet, notwithstanding this defeat on the right, the
-centre, under the King, still maintained an obstinate and dubious conflict
-with the Earl of Surrey. No quarter was given on either side; and the
-combatants were disputing every inch of ground, when Stanley, without
-losing his time in pursuit of the Highlanders, drew back his division and
-impetuously charged the rear of the Scottish centre. It was now late in
-the evening, and this movement was decisive. Pressed on the flank by
-Dacre and the Admiral&mdash;opposed in front by Surrey, and now attacked
-in the rear by Stanley, the King’s battle fought with fearful odds against
-it; but James continued by his voice and his gestures to animate his
-soldiers, till he fell pierced with an arrow, and mortally wounded in the
-head by a bill, within a few paces of the English Earl, his antagonist.
-The death of their sovereign seemed only to animate the fury of the
-Scottish Nobles, who threw themselves into a circle round the body, and
-defended it till darkness separated the combatants. At this time Surrey
-was uncertain of the result of the battle; the remains of the enemy’s centre
-still held the field; Home with his borderers hovered on the left; and the
-commander allowed neither pursuit nor plunder, but kept a strict watch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span>
-during the night. When the morning broke, the Scottish artillery were
-seen standing deserted on the side of the hill, their defenders had disappeared;
-and the Earl ordered thanks to be given for a victory which
-was no longer doubtful.</p>
-
-<p>The loss of the Scots, in this fatal battle, amounted to about 10,000
-men. Of these a great proportion were of high rank; the remainder
-being composed of the gentry, the farmers and landed yeomanry, who
-disdained to fly when their sovereign and his nobles lay stretched in heaps
-around them. Among the slain were thirteen Earls&mdash;the King’s natural
-son, the Archbishop of St. Andrews&mdash;the Bishops of Caithness and the
-Isles&mdash;the Abbots of Inchaffray and Kilwinning&mdash;and the Dean of
-Glasgow; besides fifteen Lords and chiefs of clans. The body of James
-was found on the morrow amongst the thickest of the slain, and recognised
-by Lord Dacre, although much disfigured by wounds. It was carried to
-Berwick, and ultimately interred at Richmond.”</p>
-
-
-<p>FONTAINBLEAU, PEACE OF.&mdash;Concluded between France and
-Denmark, in 1670. Treaty of ditto between the Emperor of Germany
-and Holland, signed November 8th, 1785. Second Treaty of ditto,
-between Napoleon and the Royal Family of Spain, October 27th, 1807.
-Concordat of ditto, between Napoleon and Pope Pius VII, January 25th,
-1813. Entered by the Austrians, February 17th, 1814. Napoleon
-here resigned his imperial dignity, and bade farewell to his army, April
-5th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>FONTENOY.&mdash;Fought, April 30th, 1745,&mdash;according to others,
-May 11th, 1745&mdash;between the French, commanded by Count Saxe, and
-the English, Hanoverians, Dutch, and Austrians, commanded by the
-Duke of Cumberland. “The French entered upon the war with great
-alacrity. They besieged Fribourg, and in the beginning of the succeeding
-campaign invested the strong city of Tourney. Although the Allies
-were inferior in number, and although commanded by the Duke of Cumberland,
-yet, they resolved, if possible, to save the city by hazarding a
-battle. They accordingly marched against the enemy, and took post in
-sight of the French, who were encamped on an eminence, the village of
-St. Antoine on the right, a wood on the left, and the town of Fontenoy
-before them. This advantageous situation did not repress the ardour of
-the English, who began the attack at two o’clock in the morning, and
-pressing forward, bore down all opposition. They were for nearly an
-hour victorious, and confident of success, while Saxe, a soldier of fortune,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
-who commanded the French army, was at that time sick of the same disorder
-of which he afterwards died. However, he was carried about to
-all the posts in a litter, and assured his attendants that, notwithstanding
-all unfavourable appearances, the day was his own. A column of the
-English, without any command, but by mere mechanical courage, had
-advanced upon the enemy’s lines, which, opening, formed an avenue on
-each side to receive them. It was then that the French artillery on the
-three sides began to play on this forlorn body, which, though they continued
-for a long time unshaken, were obliged at last to retreat. This
-was one of the most bloody battles that had been fought in this age; the
-Allies left on the field 12,000 men, and the French bought their victory
-with nearly an equal number of slain.”</p>
-
-
-<p>FORT DU QUESNE.&mdash;<em>United States.</em>&mdash;Famous in the French war
-of Canada with the English. The following extract well describes the
-expedition:</p>
-
-<p>“Braddock, who had been recommended to this service by the Duke of
-Cumberland, set forward upon this expedition in June, and left the
-cultivated parts of the country on the 10th, at the head of 2200 men,
-directing his march to that part of the country whence Major Washington
-had retreated the year before. Being at length within ten miles of
-the French fortress he was appointed to besiege, and marching forward
-through the forest with full confidence of success, on a sudden his whole
-army was astonished by a general discharge of arms, both in front and
-flank, from an enemy that still remained unseen. It was now too late to
-think of retreating; the troops had passed into the defile which the enemy
-had artfully permitted them to do before they offered to fire. The vanguard
-of the English therefore, fell back in consternation upon the
-main body, and the panic soon became general. The officers alone disdained
-to fly, while Braddock himself still continued to command his
-brave associates, discovering at once the greatest intrepidity and imprudence.
-An enthusiast to the discipline of war, he disdained to fly from
-the field, or to permit his men to quit their ranks, when their only method
-of treating the Indian army was by precipitate attack, or an immediate
-desertion of the field of battle. At length Braddock, having received a
-musket shot through the lungs, dropped, and a total confusion ensued.
-All the artillery, ammunition, and baggage of the army was left to the
-enemy, and the loss sustained by the English amounted to 700 men. The
-remnant of the army, in this emergency, was saved by the courage and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span>
-ability of Washington, who first here appears conspicuously on the
-theatre of this world’s great events.”</p>
-
-
-<p>FORT ERIE.&mdash;<em>Canada.</em>&mdash;This fortress was taken by the American
-General Brown, July 3rd, 1814. Defended by only 170 men, no wonder
-it yielded to the Americans with 4000 strong. On the 15th August,
-General Drummond tried to retake it, but failed. September 17th the
-besieged made a sortie but were driven back, each side losing 600 men.
-Evacuated by the Americans, who blew up to the fort November 5th,
-1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>FORT NIAGARA.&mdash;<em>Canada.</em>&mdash;Captured by Sir William Johnston.
-In the war of 1813 it was surprised and captured by the Canadians.</p>
-
-
-<p>FREDERECKSHALL.&mdash;Rendered memorable by the death of
-Charles XII of Sweden, who was killed by a cannon ball before its walls,
-and while in the trenches leaning against the parapet examining the works.
-He was found in that position with his hand on his sword and a prayer
-book in his pocket.&mdash;December 11th, 1718. It is now generally believed
-that some traitor shot the King with a pistol.</p>
-
-
-<p>FRENCHTOWN.&mdash;<em>Canada.</em>&mdash;This town was taken from the
-British by the American General Winchester, January 22nd, 1813.
-Retaken by the British forces under General Proctor immediately afterwards,
-when the American commander and the whole of his troops were
-made prisoners of war.</p>
-
-
-<p>FRIEDLAND, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 14th, 1807, between
-the allied Russian and Prussian armies on the one side and the French,
-commanded by Napoleon in person, who signally defeated them, with the
-lose of eighty pieces of ordnance and 50,000 men. This victory led to
-the peace of Tilsit.</p>
-
-
-<p>FUENTES DE ONORE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Napier thus describes
-this great battle: “On May 2nd, 1811, Messina crossed the Agueda
-with 40,000 infantry, 5000 cavalry, and about thirty pieces of artillery, to
-relieve Almeida. He expected every day to be superseded in his command,
-and he wished to make a last effort for his own military character.
-Wellington could muster no more than 32,000 men, of which force only
-1200 were cavalry. He, however, determined to fight rather than give
-up the blockade of Almeida; after much fighting night came on and put<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-an end to the battle. Next day Messina was joined by Bessières, with a
-body of the Imperial Guard, and on the 5th the enemy made the grand
-attack. The battle raged throughout a vast plain, and in all the Peninsular
-War there was never so dangerous an hour for England. The fight lasted
-till evening, when the lower part of the town was abandoned by both sides&mdash;the
-British keeping the chapel and crags, and the French retiring a
-cannon shot from the stream.” Fought, May 5th, 1811.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="G" id="G"></a>G.</h3>
-
-
-<p>GALWAY.&mdash;<em>Ireland.</em>&mdash;In 1690, Galway declared for King James,
-but it was invested and taken by General Ginckel, immediately after the
-memorable battle of Aughrim, July 12th, 1691.</p>
-
-
-<p>GENERAL.&mdash;This rank has been given to commanders from very
-remote antiquity. In the French army, Montmorency was the first
-officer who was so called, in 1203. Cardinal Richelieu was the first who
-took the title <em>Generalissimo</em>, having coined the word when he assumed
-supreme command of the French armies in Italy, in 1629.</p>
-
-
-<p>GENOA.&mdash;Bombarded by the French, in 1684, and by the British,
-in 1688 and 1745. Taken by the Imperialists, December 8th, 1746.
-Sustained a siege from the British fleet and Austrian army, when it
-capitulated, May, 1800. Surrendered to the French, after the battle of
-Marengo. Next surrendered to the combined English and Sicilian armies,
-April 8th, 1814, but was transferred to the Kingdom of Sardinia, in 1826.
-The city seized by insurgents, who, after a murderous struggle, drove out
-the garrison, and proclaimed a Republic, April, 1850, but in the end the
-insurgents surrendered to General Marmora.</p>
-
-
-<p>GERMANIC CONFEDERATION.&mdash;When Napoleon determined
-that the German or Holy Roman Empire should no longer exist, but
-that a Confederation of States should be in its stead, the proposal was
-adopted by the Allied Sovereigns, in 1815, which has continued ever
-since.</p>
-
-
-<p>GETTYSBURG.&mdash;<em>United States.</em>&mdash;This battle was fought between
-the Confederates of the Southern States, and the Northern army.
-General Lee was defeated by the United States’ troops. This battle immediately
-followed the surrender of Vicksburg to General Grant. Fought
-on the 4th July, 1863.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>GHENT.&mdash;Taken by the Duke of Marlborough, in 1706. Several times
-taken and retaken during the Napoleon wars. The peace of Ghent,
-between Great Britain and America, signed here, December 24th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>GHIZNEE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The British, under Sir John Keane,
-attacked this place, and having blown up the gates, forced their way into
-the city, and succeeded in fixing the British colors on the towers, July
-23rd, 1839. Ghiznee capitulated to the Affghans, March 1st, 1842. The
-following account gives the items of General Nott’s entering it, September
-7th, 1842:</p>
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Ghiznee</span> is situated on the base of a hill, which supports its rear or
-main post, and commands a most extensive plain, and it is in the midst
-of a rich, fertile country; it has ever held the most noble rank as a
-capital, and is capable of being rendered one of the most important fortifications
-in the Eastern nations; its adjacent hills are great, and border
-on Dora and Bameean; it covers the routes of the latter, as well as
-Loghar and Cabool; near the low hills which command the city, are
-several cemeteries, and ancient buildings; at a short distance is Rozah,
-in which stands the great sepulchre, and shrine of Mahmood, the once
-famed Emperor of Ghiznee; and of whom “Dow” speaks so much in his
-History of Hindostan.</p>
-
-<p>The fortress in itself is of great importance; the town is walled round,
-and contains several thousand houses; the former principally of stone,
-and the latter of mud. It is surrounded by a deep trench; the main
-entrance, being the one blown up by Sir John Keane, is in ruins, and
-another was made to the right. In the centre of the town stands the
-citadel, which had three tiers; the lower one had been much improved
-since we possessed it, and a parade ground, or large square, had been
-formed, as a park for the ordnance. A river ran close by, which afforded
-good water, and rendered it almost complete. All remained quiet, till
-within a short distance from them, fortunately for us, as it enabled us
-to get up our baggage, and cattle; close to the rear of the column
-the road was very difficult, being over extensive fields of long grass, and
-the ditches very numerous and wide, in crossing which the cattle were
-continually falling, which greatly delayed us. General Nott directed the
-Light Battalion to proceed with the Quarter Master General, to take up
-an encampment opposite to Ghiznee, at a place some two and a half miles
-from the fortress, known as Sir John Keane’s garden. I accompanied
-this body, and as we proceeded, we discovered the enemy in the citadel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
-and a great number outside, preparing to advance. The Quarter Master
-General ordered a portion of his force to man a small hill, which
-commanded their approach, and left it in charge of Captain Adamson, of
-the 40th. The General dispatched, in another direction, the 16th Native
-Infantry, under Colonel McLaren, who were met by the enemy, and a
-smart action took place; fortunately, however, after having rallied for
-some time, the corps managed to get under cover, in a walled garden,
-about a mile from the fort, and kept them off in fine style; the Colonel,
-finding the enemy so numerous, feared a serious result, as the chances
-were, the General could not send him a re-inforcement before the whole
-of his ammunition would be expended, and a soldier without ammunition
-is not in the most enviable situation. The Quarter Master
-General’s party was attacked, but effected a complete mastery over them,
-and drove them back. The General, perceiving the situation of McLaren,
-dispatched the 3rd Regiment Light Cavalry, and two of Anderson’s
-guns, who got up just in time to save them, as they were getting short of
-shot; at length came up the General with the main body; the cavalry
-made a grand charge after those outside the town, and we lost a great
-number of our men, but not before leaving a greater number of the enemy
-lying on the field; during all this time those in possession of the citadel
-were not idle, but made some excellent play with their guns from the
-square I named, as being situated on the lower part of the citadel; but
-fortunately for us their knowledge of the art of gunnery was so shallow
-that they did little or no damage with their guns. One of the hills mentioned
-as adjacent to the fortress, was called Balloon Hill, from its
-peculiar form, and difficulty of ascent; this hill was literally crowded
-with rebels, and their colours were planted in every direction; they
-now began to emerge from the gates in great numbers, and finding, after
-the charge of the cavalry, that they had no chance of overpowering the
-front, Shooms-ood-Dien dispatched a large force round, to attack the rear
-of our columns. The General had, however, taken the necessary precaution,
-and reinforced the rear guard to 3000 men, with six guns, including the
-heavy battery. Perceiving the object the enemy had in view, he let fly
-a volley of grape to meet them, which had the desired effect, and left
-numbers of them dead on the ground, and the rest immediately made
-off; the next thing to be done was to got possession of Balloon Hill.
-This hill was so situated that it commanded all around it, and more particularly
-the square in the citadel, as it immediately covered it. The
-General directed the 40th and 16th to proceed at once and take the hill.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span>
-The order was in itself easily given; my readers may imagine the
-position.</p>
-
-<p>The guns from the citadel were in full play, the hill was in possession
-of, and covered by several hundreds of the enemy, both horse and foot;
-the ascent was considerable, and we were nearly two miles from it.
-However, it is not for Britons to look at difficulties in such a moment,
-for had we done so we should never have accomplished it; we set forward,
-and those in the fortress seeing our advance, opened a heavy fire upon us,
-which, Providence be thanked, showed us that they could not hit their
-mark, and we reached the foot of the hill with little loss. Those in possession
-leapt for joy, at the apparent opportunity of cutting us off. We
-commenced the ascent, throwing out skirmishers in every direction; our
-fire was kept up steadily as on a parade, and every ball seemed to find
-its desired billet; numbers fell, of course, but not near so many as we
-had been anticipating. We were obliged to halt half way to gain breath,
-and necessitated to keep up a heavy fire; we again advanced, and the
-enemy began to show symptoms of retiring, which greatly encouraged us,
-and we made a desperate effort, and sent a volley into them, charged, and
-at length they retired; we followed, and at last gained the summit. They
-rushed down the other side, and made off in the direction of Candahar,
-where they were met by a brigade sent round by the General for that
-purpose.</p>
-
-<p>Having gained possession of the hill, those in the citadel began to
-pour the fire of artillery into us, but as usual without success, and in
-order to get out of sight we were ordered to lie down, that they might
-imagine we had evacuated our position; as we lay there, the balls were
-fast whistling over us, and the force under the command of the General
-was making a clean sweep of all those outside the walls, which, after he
-had effected, next repaired to the citadel. It was, however, found impracticable
-to storm the fortress that day; first, because the Sappers and Miners
-would not have time to complete their operations; and secondly, in
-consequence of the fatigued state of the troops. The 16th was to be left
-in charge of the hill, and the 40th were ordered to return to the encampment;
-this order was, if anything, even worse than the first, because all
-being comparatively quiet, we should, on retiring, be the only targets for
-them to fire at, and our utter destruction seemed inevitable; we, however,
-had to obey, and as was expected, no sooner did we come under
-cover of their guns than they opened a severe fire from all their pieces,
-but their firing was always either too far, or too short; and thus we
-reached camp in almost safety.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The followers had been all employed in pitching the tents, and the
-cooks (natives) had prepared our scanty meal; the 16th were left in possession
-of the hill; and the General ordered two guns, either under
-Captain Blood or Anderson, to proceed to the top of the hill, and dislodge
-them in the citadel, which, after some difficulty, was effected, and most
-ably did they accomplish their duty; they soon put a stop to them, and
-by their superior arrangement and management of artillery, disabled
-nearly all their guns. We had scarcely got well seated in our tents when
-we were suddenly surprised by the whizzing of a ball over the camp,
-which lodged in the officer’s mess tent of the 41st; after that came
-another and another, and they kept up a fine string of them, aiming
-most admirably. We soon discovered that they had a sixty-eight pounder,
-which before had remained quiet.</p>
-
-<p>Those shots coming so fast, and lodging just in our midst, doing considerable
-damage, although we were nearly two miles from it, compelled
-the General to shift camp a mile further off, and we were at last out of
-the reach of the bull-dog; they most certainly in this distance did put us
-to the rout. This piece was called “Chuppa Jung,” of Persian manufacture,
-and as is usual in all the forts of importance in Asia, was placed
-in the citadel; and a most powerful piece it was.</p>
-
-<p>The General now began to arrange his plans for storming and taking
-the fortress; the engineers were all busily employed in preparing for the
-operation; and as the day began to draw to a close, orders were issued
-for the troops to be in readiness to move just before daylight on the
-morrow. The night at length came on, and lights were ordered to be
-extinguished at eight <span class="fs70">P.M.</span>; and at that hour all was darkness, and
-enveloped upwards of 20,000 souls.</p>
-
-<p>All was at length prepared for the attack, and about half an hour
-before the day broke, the word was passed from tent to tent, to form up.
-Each rose in sadness, and many shook the hand of his comrade as for the
-last time; the cattle were dispatched with the powder, to ensure the
-explosion, and platforms had been carefully planted for the heavy battery
-to commence a breach. The troops were slowly and silently advanced,
-and arranged ready to storm immediately after the gates were blown up;
-and daybreak was to be the signal. At length the day dawned, and lo!
-what was our surprise when we saw floating on the highest tower the
-English colors. The sight relieved each heart as though we had a
-fortune. The enemy had during the night evacuated the citadel, having
-received certain orders to that effect from Caboul. Colonel McLaren,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span>
-who had kept the hill, finding they had left it, took immediate possession,
-and placed “The Flag that braved a thousand years” on the highest
-point. Thus did Providence prevent the inevitable loss of some hundreds
-of our force, and never was a force more agreeably surprised than those
-at Ghiznee, on the 6th of September, 1842.”</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="GIB" id="GIB"></a></div>
-<p>GIBRALTAR.&mdash;A British fortress on the Straits of the same name.
-From the circumstance of its immense strength and impregnability, other
-great fortresses have also received its name, as Quebec, which is called the
-Gibraltar of America. The height of the wall is 1437 feet. Taken by
-the Saracens, in 712. In 1462, the King of Castile took the fortress and
-town from the Moors; and the English, under Sir George Brooke, the
-Prince of Hesse-Denmark, Sir John Leake, and Admiral Byng, bravely
-won it, July 24th, 1704. It was surrendered, after a dreadful cannonade,
-to the British by the Governor, the Marquis de Salines, and has ever
-since continued one of the most brilliant gems in the coronet of England’s
-Queen. Long may she reign to wear it. The following are the different
-attacks which have been made upon it since the British took it. On the
-11th October, 1704, the same year it was captured by the British, it
-sustained a siege from the Spaniards and French, who lost 10,000 whilst
-the British loss was only 400. Again the Spaniards attacked it in 1720,
-but were repulsed with great loss. In 1728, they again attacked it but
-were driven back with the loss of 5000 out of 20,000, while the English
-lost 300. After this came the memorable siege of the Spaniards and
-French, whose prodigious armaments astonished the whole of Europe.
-They were the most stupendous up to that time ever brought before any
-city or fortress. The siege continued from July, 1770, to February,
-1783. The allied army amounted to 40,000 men. The Duke of Crillon had
-12,000 of the best troops of France, 1000 pieces of artillery were brought
-to bear against the fortress, besides which there were forty-seven sail of
-the line all three-deckers, ten great floating batteries esteemed invincible,
-carrying 212 guns, an immense number of frigates, xebeques, bomb-ketches,
-cutters, and gun and mortar boats; while small craft literally
-covered the bay. For weeks and weeks together 6000 shells were daily
-thrown into the town, and, on one single occasion, 8000 barrels of gunpowder
-were expended by the enemy, yet in one single night were all
-these immense batteries destroyed by red-hot cannon balls, and their whole
-line of works annihilated by a sortie of the garrison, commanded by
-General Elliot, November 27th, 1781. The loss of the enemy in this
-memorable night alone, amounted to upwards of £2,000,000 sterling.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span>
-The grand defeat by the garrison of only 7000 British, occurred
-September 13th, 1782. Since then the British have remained in peaceful
-possession.</p>
-
-
-<p>GISORS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In France.</em>&mdash;Fought between the armies
-of France and England, in which the former were signally defeated by
-Richard I, who commanding in person, and whose parole for the day
-was “<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Dieu et Mon Droit</span>,” and from this it was made the motto of the
-Royal Arms of England, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1193.</p>
-
-
-<p>GLENCOE, MASSACRE OF.&mdash;The McDonalds of Glencoe, were
-cruelly massacred, May 9th, 1691, merely for not surrendering in time
-after King William’s proclamation perpetrated by the Earl of Argyle’s
-regiment. 38 men besides women and children perished.</p>
-
-
-<p>GOOJERAT, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>India.</em>&mdash;Fought February 21st, 1849.
-Lord Gough with 21,000 men and 100 guns attacked the enemy, numbering
-60,000 men, with 59 guns. The Sikh Chief was strongly
-posted between two river courses which protected his flanks, and yet allowed
-him good manœuvring space to retire either on the east or west side of
-the town of Goojerat, which afforded shelter and protection to his rear.
-The battle began at 7 <span class="fs70">A.M.</span> After a severe engagement of nine hours, at
-4 <span class="fs70">P.M.</span> the enemy had been driven from every post and was in general
-retreat, which the field artillery and cavalry converted into a rout and
-flight. They were pursued for 15 miles, and next day another fresh
-force took up the direct pursuit. Some of the guns and the whole of
-the ammunition and camp equipage fell into the hands of the British.
-The Chief, Shere-Singh, escaped with only 8000 men out of 60,000.
-The loss on the side of the British was 100 killed and 900 wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>GOREE.&mdash;Taken by the English Admiral Holmes, in 1693&mdash;ceded to
-France 1678. Again taken by the British, 1758&mdash;1779&mdash;1800&mdash;and
-1804.</p>
-
-
-<p>GOREY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought June 4th, 1798, between the
-King’s troops and the Irish rebels, in which, after a desperate battle,
-the King’s forces were routed with great slaughter. They lost several
-pieces of artillery, and retreated to Gorey and afterwards to Arklow.</p>
-
-
-<p>GORGET.&mdash;An ancient breastplate. It was of great size, and gave
-rise to the modern diminutive breastplate which was in existence at the
-Restoration. It is now disused.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>GRAMPIAN HILLS, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;This was a celebrated
-engagement between the Scots and Picts&mdash;the former under Galgacus, and
-the latter under Agricola. Fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 79.</p>
-
-
-<p>GRAND ALLIANCE.&mdash;Signed at Vienna between England and
-the States General&mdash;to which Spain and the Duke of Savoy afterwards
-acceded, May 12th, 1689.</p>
-
-
-<p>GRANICUS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Alexander the Great fought and won
-this battle against the Persians&mdash;<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 334. The Macedonian troops
-crossed the Granicus in the face of the Persian army, and totally
-defeated them. Alexander’s army was only 30,000 foot and 5000 horse
-and the Persian 600,000 foot, and 60,000 horse.</p>
-
-
-<p>GRENADES.&mdash;A kind of bombshell invented in 1594. It is a small
-hollow globe or ball of iron, two inches diameter, and filled with fine powder
-and set on fire by a fusee at a touch-hole. The grenadiers were those
-soldiers who were armed with a pouch of hand grenades&mdash;established in
-France in 1667&mdash;and England in 1685. The latter word is applied now,
-according to Gay, to the tall soldiers&mdash;of which there is generally a company
-in every regiment.</p>
-
-
-<p>GROCHOW, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>Near Praga, Warsaw.</em>&mdash;Fought
-February 20th, 1831, between the Poles and Russians. After a bloody
-battle, which continued all day and almost all the next, the Poles remained
-masters of the field. The Russians retreated, having lost 70,000 men,
-and the Poles, 2000.</p>
-
-
-<p>GUADALOUPE.&mdash;Taken by the English, in 1759, and restored 1763.
-Again taken in 1779, 1794, and 1810. At last, restored to France at
-the peace of 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>GUARDS.&mdash;The custom of having guards was introduced by Saul,
-King of Israel, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 1093. Bodyguards instituted by Henry VII, 1485.
-Horse guards by Edward VI, 1550. The three regiments of the British
-service, the 1st, 2nd and 3rd Foot Guards, were raised in 1660, and the
-command of them given to Colonel Russell, General Monk, and Lord
-Linlithgow. The Second, or the Coldstream, was the first raised. The
-Horse Grenadier Guards, first troop raised 1693, and second in 1702.</p>
-
-
-<p>GUNPOWDER.&mdash;Invented by a Monk of Cologne, 1320. It has
-entirely revolutionized the art of war; consists of three ingredients, viz.,
-charcoal, sulphur and saltpetre.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span></p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="H" id="H"></a>H.</h3>
-
-
-<p>HALIDON HILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought July 19th, 1333.&mdash;“The
-Scots were rash enough to attack the English as they held the
-top of a bold hill, at the foot of which lay a marsh. The English
-archers, posted on the face of the hill, shot down the Scots, almost at
-their leisure, while they struggled heavily through the spongy ground.
-Under the deadly arrow flight, the Scots dragged themselves through the
-bog, and attempted, all breathless and exhausted, to charge up the hill
-against the fresh troops of England. They were forced down with great
-slaughter. Many more were slain as they struggled back through the
-fatal bog. The bloody lesson, however, seems not to have been lost.
-Once and again King Edward made the savage apparition of war to pass
-through Scotland. But the Scots baffled him by following the wise
-policy of Bruce. He traversed a country completely deserted and laid
-waste. The inhabitants, with their cattle and all their property, had
-retired to the inaccessible fastnesses of the mountains. Every advanced
-column and detached party of the English was assailed, stragglers cut off,
-and alarms kept up. Famine and disease did the work. Captain Hunger
-was more than a match for Captain Sword. Edward made nothing by
-his invasions, though he marched through the country as far north as
-Inverness. He was compelled each time to fall back again on his own
-territory, with great loss of men from hardships and misery, and the
-harassing attacks of the Scots, who sallied out from every glen, forest, and
-mountain defile.”</p>
-
-
-<p>HALYS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This great battle was fought between the
-Lydians and Medes, on the banks of the river Halys. It was interrupted
-by an almost total eclipse of the sun. Fought, May 28th, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>
-585.</p>
-
-
-<p>HANAN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, October 29th, 1813, between a
-division of the combined armies of Austria and Bavaria, 30,000 strong,
-under General Wrede and the French, 70,000 strong. The latter were
-on their retreat from Leipsic when encountered by the Allies, and suffered
-severely, although at the end of the battle the Austrians had to retire.</p>
-
-
-<p>HARLAW, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 24th, 1411, between the
-Earl of Mar, who commanded the Royal army, and Donald, the Lord of the
-Isles. Neither army gained the victory, it being a drawn battle. So
-many nobility and gentry were slain in this engagement that a Scottish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-historian declares, “more illustrious men fell in this one conflict alone than
-had fallen in foreign wars during many previous years.”</p>
-
-
-<p>HASTINGS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, October 14th, 1066. In the
-beginning of summer, William embarked his powerful army of 60,000 men
-on board a fleet of 300 sail; and, after some small opposition from the
-weather, landed at Pevensey, on the coast of Sussex, tranquilly.</p>
-
-<p>“Harold, who seemed resolved to defend his right to the crown, and
-retain that sovereignty which he had received from the people, who only
-had a right to bestow it, was now returning, flushed with conquest, from
-defeating the Norwegians, who had invaded the kingdom, with all the
-forces he had employed in that expedition, and all he could invite or collect
-in the country through which he passed. His army was composed
-of active and valiant troops, in high spirits, strongly attached to their
-king, and eager to engage.</p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, the army of William consisted of the flower of the
-continent, and had long been inured to danger. The men of Britanny,
-Boulogne, Flanders, Poictou, Maine, Orleans, France, and Normandy,
-were all voluntarily united under his command. England never before
-nor ever since, saw two such armies drawn up to dispute its crown.</p>
-
-<p>The day before the battle, William sent an offer to Harold to decide
-the quarrel between them by single combat, and thus to spare the blood
-of thousands: but Harold refused, and said he would leave it to the God
-of armies to determine. Both armies, therefore, that night pitched in
-sight of each other, expecting the dawning of the day with impatience.
-The English passed the night in songs and feasting; the Normans in
-devotion and prayer.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning, at seven as soon as day appeared, both armies were
-drawn up in array against each other. Harold appeared in the centre of
-his forces, leading on his army on foot, that his men might be more
-encouraged, by seeing their king exposed to an equality of danger.
-William, fought on horseback, leading on his army, that moved at
-once, singing the songs of Roland, one of the famous chiefs of their
-country. The Normans began to fight with their cross-bows, which, at
-first, galled and surprised the English; and, as their ranks were closed,
-their arrows did great execution. But soon they came to closer fight, and
-the English with their bills hewed down their adversaries with great
-slaughter. Confusion was spreading among the ranks, when William,
-who found himself on the brink of destruction, hastened with a select<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span>
-band to the relief of his forces. His presence restored the suspense of
-battle; he was seen in every place, endeavouring to pierce the ranks of
-the enemy, and had three horses slain under him. At length, perceiving
-that the English continued impenetrable, he pretended to give ground,
-which, as he expected, drew the enemy from their ranks, and he was
-instantly ready to take advantage of their disorder. Upon a signal given
-the Normans immediately returned to the charge with greater fury than
-before, broke the English troops, and pursued them to a rising ground.
-It was in this extremity that Harold was seen flying from rank to rank,
-rallying and inspiring his troops with vigour; and though he had toiled
-all day, till near night-fall, in front of his Kentish men, yet he still seemed
-unabated in force or courage, keeping his men to the post of honour.</p>
-
-<p>Once more, therefore, the victory seemed to turn against the Normans,
-and they fell in great numbers, so that the fierceness and obstinacy of
-this memorable battle was often renewed by the courage of the leaders,
-whenever that of the soldiers began to slacken. Fortune at length determined
-a victory that valour was unable to decide.</p>
-
-<p>Harold, making a furious onset at the head of his troops against the
-Norman heavy armed infantry, was shot into the brains by an arrow; and
-his two valiant brothers, fighting by his side, shared the same fate. He
-fell with his sword in his hand, amidst heaps of slain.”</p>
-
-
-<p>HAVRE-DE-GRACE.&mdash;Defended for the Huguenots by the English
-in 1562. Bombarded several times by the British Navy. Successfully
-attacked for three days from July 6th to 9th, 1759. Again bombarded in
-1794 and 1795&mdash;and again by Sir Richard Strachan in 1798. Declared
-in a state of blockade 1803; and the attempts of the British to burn
-the shipping here signally failed, August 7th, 1804.</p>
-
-
-<p>HERARA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Arragon.</em>&mdash;In this battle, Don
-Carlos of Spain, in his struggle for his hereditary right to the throne of
-that kingdom, encountered, at the head of 12,000 men, and defeated
-General Buerens, who had not half the number of the Queen’s troops.
-The loss of Buerens was about 1000 killed and wounded. Fought, August
-24th, 1837.</p>
-
-
-<p>HERRINGS, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Vertot says that this battle,
-fought in 1429, received its name from the following ludicrous occasion.
-The Duc de Bourbon, in attempting to intercept a convoy on the road to
-the English Camp, before Orleans, was severely beaten. It was a convoy
-of salt-fish&mdash;and this action has ever since been called by the above name.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>HOCHKIRCHEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Prussian army,
-commanded by Frederick II, and the Austrians, commanded by Count
-Daun. The King was surprised in his camp and defeated by the Imperial
-General. In this battle, an illustrious Scotsman, Field-Marshal Keith,
-in the service of Prussia, was killed; and such was the respect and admiration
-which his name inspired, that Counts Daun and Lacy, the Austrian
-Generals, shed tears on beholding the corpse, and ordered its interment
-with military honours. Fought, October 14th, 1758.</p>
-
-
-<p>HOCHENLINDEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought November 3rd, 1800,
-between the Austrian and French armies&mdash;the latter commanded by
-General Moreau. The Austrians were defeated with dreadful slaughter,
-losing 10,000 men in killed and wounded, and 10,000 more in prisoners.
-The forces of each army were nominally equal at the commencement of
-the battle.</p>
-
-
-<p>HOMELDEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Scots, headed by the
-Earl of Douglas, and the Percys, in which the Scots were defeated.
-Douglas and many of the nobility were taken prisoners in this battle.
-Fought in 1403.</p>
-
-
-<p>HORATII AND CURIATII, COMBAT BETWEEN THE.&mdash;Fought
-<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 669. The forces of the two states met about five miles
-from Rome. While the armies were awaiting the signal for the battle,
-the Alban General, stepping into the space between them, proposed to
-decide the dispute by single combat. To this proposition Tullus agreed.
-There were in each army three twin brothers, all remarkable for their
-courage, strength, and activity, and to them it was resolved to commit
-the management of the combat. The Roman brothers were called Horatii
-and the Albans Curiatii. The champions met. Victory, which for a
-time, appeared doubtful, at last seemed to decide against the Romans.
-Two of their champions lay dead on the field, and the third seemed, by
-flight, to beg for mercy. Defeat was however only apparent. It soon
-became evident that this flight of the surviving Roman was pretence in
-order that, by separating his antagonists, he might have an opportunity
-of engaging them singly. Turning suddenly upon the foremost of the
-Curiatii, he laid him dead at his feet. The second instantly shared his
-fate. Fatigued and disabled by his wounds, the third slowly advanced to
-offer an easy victory. He was slain almost unresisting, while the conqueror
-exclaimed “Two have I already sacrificed to the Manes of my
-brothers; a third will I offer up to my country.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>HUSSAR.&mdash;This kind of soldier originated in Poland and Hungary,
-and as they, being light cavalry, were more suited for hasty attacks than
-a set battle, they are supposed to have taken their name from the
-<em>huzzas</em> or shouts which they made at their first onset. Pardon says that
-they were oddly clothed, having the skins of tigers, &amp;c., hanging on
-their backs, against bad weather, and wore fur caps, with a cock’s
-feather. Introduced into the British service in the last century.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="I" id="I"></a>I.</h3>
-
-
-<p>INKERMANN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most brilliant achievements
-in the history of the British Army. Fought on the 5th of
-November, 1854.</p>
-
-<p>“Two days after the repulse of the enemy’s sortie, by Sir De Lacy
-Evans’ division, General Dannenberg, with a large Russian reinforcement,
-arrived at Baktchi-Serai from Odessa, which place he left on the
-19th of October. In order that his men might reach the scene of action
-with the greatest practicable rapidity, and in good condition, every
-available cart and rustic conveyance was pressed into the service. They
-were thus comparatively fresh and vigorous after so rapid a march. On
-the 3rd of November, one division, under General Soimonoff, entered
-Sebastopol. The remainder, under General Pauloff, encamped at Tchorgoun,
-a short distance to the east.</p>
-
-<p>Strengthened by this considerable reinforcement, the Russian Generals
-decided upon an attack upon the position of the Allies in such strength
-that it should be scarcely possible to make an effectual resistance. The
-Grand Dukes Michael and Nicholas, sons of the Emperor, had arrived at
-Sebastopol, with the purpose of encouraging the garrison by their presence,
-and witnessing the total defeat of the haughty invaders. On
-Sunday, the 4th of November, solemn religious services were held in the
-town. Patriarchs and Bishops of the Greek Church addressed the soldiery,
-urged upon them the importance of the trust which their good father the
-Czar had thought proper to impose upon them,&mdash;assured them that death
-in his service was only the road to a martyr’s crown, and that the English
-were monsters of cruelty, who committed the most atrocious barbarities
-upon all prisoners of war. Finally, they said the British camp abounded
-in treasure, one-third of which should be the property of the soldiery.
-Incited by these promises,&mdash;stimulated by extra rations of ardent spirits,&mdash;and
-fanatically believing that the destruction of the English heretics
-would be a work of acceptable piety, the Russian soldiers mingled shouts<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
-of devotion to the Czar and death to the Allies, and prepared themselves
-for the encounter of the morrow.</p>
-
-<p>The plan of attack, as decided upon by the enemy’s commanders, was
-shortly this:&mdash;The extreme right of the British position, near the bridge
-which crossed the Tchernaya at Inkermann, was notoriously our weak
-point. Sir De Lacy Evans, whose division occupied this position, had
-repeatedly called Lord Raglan’s attention to this vulnerable point; but
-so laborious were the duties devolving upon our men, and so extended
-the line of defence, that it was impossible to spare either men or guns for
-the establishment of works. The French, whose large numbers and secure
-position on the western plateau left them a far smaller share of the duty,
-had been early applied to for assistance, but had hitherto refused. Sir
-John Burgoyne had called the special attention of General Biot to the
-danger of leaving exposed such an avenue to the camp of the Allies; but
-the French commander seems to have been at this time but little disposed
-to relieve the English of any of the toil or danger they had so willingly
-undertaken, but which proved too much for their effectual performance.
-At length the English, by almost superhuman exertions, had erected a
-small work on the brow of the hill, intended to carry two guns, but they
-had not yet been mounted.</p>
-
-<p>Towards this point, then,&mdash;of the unprotected nature of which the
-Russians were perfectly well aware, thanks to the newspaper correspondents,
-who, in their anxiety to satisfy the curiosity of the readers at home,
-contrived (unwittingly, we believe) to afford the enemy a very great deal
-of valuable information,&mdash;the attention of the Russians was naturally
-directed. It afforded a convenient access to the very centre of the
-English lines, and would, in all probability, offer but a feeble resistance.
-It was arranged that Gortschakoff should, at an early hour on the morning
-of the 5th, make a threatening demonstration in front of Balaklava,
-apparently renewing the attempt of the 25th of October. This would
-have the effect of drawing a considerable portion of the armies to the
-defence of that important position, thus leaving the front comparatively
-unprotected. On the extreme left of the line, General Timofeyer would
-also make a feigned attack, occupying the attention of the French. The
-actual assault was to be made by the recently-arrived army of General
-Dannenberg. The two divisions already named, according to the Russian
-computation (most probably understated), were of the following strength:
-General Soimonoff’s corps consisted of three regiments of the 10th division,
-three of the 16th, and one of the 17th, amounting altogether to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span>
-16,200 bayonets, with twenty-two heavy and sixteen light guns; that
-of General Pauloff, numbering 13,200 bayonets, was composed of three
-regiments of the 10th division, two Chasseur regiments of the 18th, with
-twelve guns. The two corps thus numbered 29,400 bayonets, and fifty
-guns. Soimonoff was ordered to march from the Malakoff Tower in a
-westerly direction, until he reached the Kilen ravine, under cover of which
-he was to penetrate into the English centre on the western side of the
-ravine. Five o’clock in the morning was fixed as the time for the assault.
-Pauloff’s division was to cross the Tchernaya, force the English lines at
-the unprotected point, and cutting their way through the second division
-join Soimonoff in the main attack, when General Dannenberg, with the
-remainder of the army, would appear upon the scene, and, it was fondly
-imagined, give the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup de grace</i> to the invaders. Such was the plan of
-the Russian Generals, carefully matured, and kept profoundly secret from
-the Allies. We shall see the result.</p>
-
-<p>All night the bells of Sebastopol rang loudly. The heavy November
-mist obscured the sound; and most probably, the English soldiers, far
-from considering the clashing from the belfries as the signal for the
-gathering of troops, imagined that one of the multitudinous festivals of
-the Greek Church was being celebrated with unwonted ostentation.
-Towards morning the mist thickened, and it was impossible to discern
-any object at above a few yards’ distance. Taking advantage of the fog,
-the Russians conveyed their guns to the lofty eminences beyond the
-Tchernaya, facing the British position, and by almost incredible efforts,
-in a very brief time, had established a formidable battery in a most commanding
-situation. About four o’clock in the morning, intelligence
-arrived at head-quarters that Balaklava was again threatened. General
-Bosquet was immediately on the alert, with his French chasseurs, and
-the indomitable Sir Colin Campbell was fully prepared to meet any force
-which might be despatched against him. It was no part, however, of the
-enemy’s tactics seriously to attack this position. His purpose was fully
-served by the attention of the French being attracted to this point, and
-the English being diverted from the real point of assault. About five
-o’clock enormous bodies of Russian infantry, under cover of the heavy
-fog, silently passed the bridge across the Tchernaya, and stealthily crept
-up the hill towards the weak point of the English position at the newly-erected
-two-gun battery. The pickets of the 55th, on duty at this spot,
-suddenly found themselves in presence of an over-whelming force of the
-enemy. Desperately fighting, the courageous little band slowly yielded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-ground, contesting every step, and retreating up the hill towards the
-redoubt. Their smart firing, in reply to the tremendous volleys of the
-enemy’s musketry, which were now poured into the handful of men,
-aroused the camp, and indicated the real nature of the enemy’s plans.
-General Pennefather, who commanded the Second Division, in the absence
-of Sir De Lacy Evans (who was compelled by the debilitated state of his
-health to leave his active duties, and retire on board one of the ships in
-the harbor), immediately hastened to the scene; and the men of his
-division, hastily shaking off their sleep, quickly responded to the alarm.
-In a few minutes all was bustle and activity. Officers and men, alike
-hurried forward, some half-dressed, all unbreakfasted, many suffering
-from sickness, and none free from the effects of privation and over-toil.
-From the Second Division the intelligence of the attack was quickly carried
-to the camps of the First, Fourth and Light Divisions, and the Duke
-of Cambridge, Sir George Cathcart, and Sir George Brown, instantly
-put themselves at the heads of their men, and lost no time in marching to
-the scene of action.</p>
-
-<p>When the pickets were driven in, they retreated to the little two-gun
-battery, and fired through the embrasures at the masses of the enemy,
-now advancing in dense columns to the attack. The Russian batteries
-on the opposite hills opened a tremendous fire upon them, and the guns
-of the town and the ships in the harbor threw enormous volleys of shell
-and shot right into the camp of the Second Division, tearing up the
-ground, and destroying the tents. For a few moments the gallant fellows
-of the 51st held their ground, but no courage could long contend against
-such fearful odds. In spite of their fire, much too feeble to stay the
-advance of such massive columns, the Russians advanced at a rapid pace
-up the hill, the few shots of the undaunted defenders of the redoubt telling
-fatally in their ranks. Almost before the English could reload, the
-Russians were swarming around the battery, and leaping over the embrasure.
-Many were hurled back again by the bayonets of the undaunted
-picket, who at length, borne down by the weight of the attack, were
-driven from the work, and retreated down the hill. The 41st and 49th
-now came into the action, and forming into line, charged the advancing
-Russians, and drove them back to the redoubt. Again was this little
-work the scene of a tremendous contest. The two regiments discharging
-a brisk volley from their Minié rifles, levelled their bayonets, and driving
-the enemy pell-mell before them, hurled them out of the battery, and once
-more the English were masters of the position. The retreating Russians<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span>
-were speedily met and reinforced by other columns of infantry, and then
-doubled in numbers, again advanced to the attack. The fire, too, from
-their batteries, poured unceasing destruction into the thin ranks of the
-English regiments. Already the dead and dying were lying thick
-around, and many of the bravest and best among them had fallen beneath
-the intense fire of the enemy. The Russian masses literally surged up
-the hill, and hurled themselves once more at the devoted little band. A
-fearful struggle followed. Hand to hand was the combat waged, the
-bayonet doing deadly havoc upon friend and foe. In vain the brave
-defenders of their post struggled against the unequal odds; in vain the
-officers heroically exposed themselves and encouraged their men to the
-desperate encounter; and in vain the men themselves emulated their
-leaders’ undaunted courage&mdash;the enemy, so immensely superior in numbers,
-drove them, after a sanguinary defence, from the work, and pursued
-them, desperately fighting in their retreat, towards the camp of their
-division.</p>
-
-<p>The alarm had now spread throughout the entire camp, and even
-reached Balaklava, rousing the sleepers on board the ships in the harbour.
-The heavy booming of the cannon told how fierce was the contest. Sir
-De Lacy Evans forgot his sickness, and leaving the bed to which for
-many days he had been confined, insisted on being rowed ashore; and
-mounting a horse, which he was almost too weak to guide, started for
-the field of battle. Lord Raglan, with his staff, had by this time reached
-the spot, and at once saw the critical position of the Allies; and saw, too,
-the blunder which the enemy had committed. General Soimonoff, who
-should, upon issuing from the ravine near Careening Bay, have turned
-to the right and attacked the centre of the English line, weakened by the
-tremendous assault on the extreme left of the position, mistook the direction
-and marched to the left, thus reaching the ground occupied by the
-Second Division, and embarrassing General Pauloff’s operations by permitting
-the concentration of the English forces to repel his assault, instead
-of diverting their attention by an attack at a comparatively remote point.
-For a General of Raglan’s experience to take advantage of this blunder
-was an easy task. He immediately made such arrangements of the small
-means at his command as would enable him to present two fronts of resistance
-on the threatened points, while preserving the solidity of his
-position.</p>
-
-<p>The 20th and 47th regiments now arrived to the assistance of the
-gallant 49th and 41st, driven with such dreadful slaughter from the two-gun<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
-battery. The brave Colonel Carpenter, of the 41st, had fallen
-pierced with many bullets; and the blood-thirsty Russians, with that
-tiger-like ferocity which has made the day of Inkermann so fearfully
-memorable, mutilated the senseless form of the grey-headed old warrior,
-clubbing their muskets, and beating him on the face till it was almost
-impossible to distinguish his features. Covered with blood, frightfully
-mangled, and recognised only by his uniform, the colonel was at length,
-when the enemy retreated, found by his men, and borne, still breathing,
-from the field, to linger for a few days in acute agonies, and then to
-breathe his last. Amidst a hurricane of bullets from the Russian troops,
-and exposed to a deadly storm of missiles from the enemies’ batteries,
-the 20th and 47th fearlessly charged the opposing masses, and endeavoured
-to take the redoubt. They were successful in the attempt. The
-Russian lines trembled before their impetuous onset. The levelled
-bayonets, borne onwards by the resistless vigour of Englishmen, now
-maddened by the excitement of battle, cheered by their officers, and with
-the memory of Alma, swept down the hordes of irresolute Muscovites,
-and with a ringing cheer, the victorious Britons were once again in the
-earthwork. There, indeed, was a sight to rouse their hearts&mdash;if, indeed,
-further stimulant were needed&mdash;to deeds of vengeance. Not one of those
-who in the previous attacks had fallen wounded was now alive. The
-remorseless Russians&mdash;assassins rather than soldiers&mdash;had bayonetted
-every one who showed signs of life. The little battery was choked with
-heaps of dead. Englishmen and Russians lay as they fell stiff in their
-blood, and disfigured by the agonies of death. Not one was left to tell
-his victorious comrades, who leaped shouting into the redoubt, how
-bravely their companions in arms had disputed its possession, how dearly
-the enemy had purchased a temporary success, or how basely that success
-had been consummated by the most brutal murder of wounded and
-unarmed men. But the Russians were not disposed to submit to the loss
-of this important position which they had made so many efforts to retain.
-Fresh legions were launched against the two regiments who had been thus
-far successful; and in irresistible strength, still another attempt was made
-to regain the post. Against such numbers it was impossible to contend
-successfully. The brave holders of the redoubt fought desperately, with
-that unyielding pertinacity for which the British infantry, beyond any
-soldiery in the world, is distinguished. But the shot from the batteries
-on the hills beyond the river swept through their lines; on every hand
-brave fellows fell pierced with bullets, or mangled by exploding shells.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span>
-The enemy was tenfold their number, and swept on like a torrent
-against their feeble defence. After a brief but most heroic struggle, the
-noble remnant of the gallant 20th and 47th yielded to a force they could
-no longer withstand, and retreated to the main body, leaving the Russians
-for the third time the masters of the two-gun battery.</p>
-
-<p>The masters, it is true; but not the undisputed masters. A yet
-bloodier contest was to be waged for its possession&mdash;a contest which
-should make that small unfinished work, on which as yet no gun had
-been mounted, renowned throughout Europe. By the time that the 20th
-and 41st had been driven back, as we have just recorded, the Duke of
-Cambridge had reached the scene of action with the brigade of Guards&mdash;those
-renowned soldiers whose bayonets had carried the heights of
-Alma, and whose prowess was a theme of terror in the Russian camps.
-No soldier who had shared in or witnessed that tremendous fight could
-forget the terrible onslaught of those bear-skinned warriors, when the
-choicest troops of the Czar were trampled under foot, or scattered like
-chaff before their irresistible charge. The Coldstreams, no longer the
-magnificent battalion which a few months before left the shores of
-England, but reduced by the casualties of war and sickness to a few
-hundred badly fed and miserably-clothed men, though retaining all the
-ancient courage, heightened, indeed, by the hardships they had endured
-and the memory of their former achievements,&mdash;advanced in close ranks,
-at a rapid pace and with fixed bayonets, against the living wall of the
-Russians, who held the crown of the hill. Though the enemy were as
-ten to one, they yielded and broke before that matchless onset. Scattering
-the foe before them, the valiant Guardsmen swept like a hurricane
-into the battery, and the defeated Russians were precipitated, a flying and
-disordered mass, down the hill. The Coldstreams had well avenged their
-comrades’ fall, but they had not yet gained an undisputed success. On
-came fresh battalions of the Russians. The flying regiments were mingled
-with, or sought refuge behind the advancing legions. Again the
-dense mass struggled up the hill, and again did it devolve upon English
-valour to defend the post which had been so dearly won. Not less than
-6000 Russians advanced in a compact mass towards the two-gun battery.
-The defenders did not muster more than as many hundreds. Nothing
-daunted, they fired through the embrasures and from the brow of the hill
-smart volleys; and when their ammunition failed, as at length it did,
-many hurled stones at the enemy. But moment by moment the advancing
-host drew nearer and nearer. The summit of the hill is reached,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span>
-they surround the fort, leap over the earthworks, and in an instant there
-is a hand to hand struggle, such as, perhaps, was never excelled in
-modern warfare. They are repulsed&mdash;literally dashed down the hill.
-Twice the assault renewed; the second time they are again defeated;
-the third time they are once more in the battery. Bayonet crosses
-bayonet in rapid thrusts, fearful shrieks of agony are mingled with the
-shouts and curses of infuriated men, the floor is cumbered with the fallen
-and slippery with blood; the gallant Coldstreams are alone and unaided,
-and every moment fresh foemen rush into the deadly <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mêlée</i>. Hundreds
-fall before the fatal bayonets of the dauntless Guards&mdash;their places are
-supplied by hundreds more, fresh and unwounded. In front, on either
-side, they swarm around, ferocious and malignant. Back to back, the
-English heroes meet their tremendous charge. In all the horrors of that
-scene, amid all the carnage which surrounds them, their high courage
-never fails, their firm bearing is never relaxed. Though many fall mortally
-wounded, their comrades bestride their bodies, and there is still the
-bristling <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">chevaux-de-frise</i> of bayonets, against which the foe hurl themselves
-in vain, and only to fall in hundreds, thrust to the heart by the
-fatal steel, wielded by the hands of the most determined soldiers in the
-world. At length the limit is reached beyond which resistance is impossible,
-and slowly yielding to the immense superiority of numbers, the
-Guards give ground, and prepare to leave the battery once more in the
-hands of the enemy. They retreat from the spot, and then see that their
-path is barred by another and fresh force of the enemy. Death appears
-inevitable; other soldiers might lay down their arms, and few would
-doubt their courage, so great is the disparity of strength. But the
-Guards are not dismayed even then. Struggling into line, with rapidity
-gained only by their perfect discipline, they level their bayonets, charge
-the fresh foe, and in an instant are among them. Down go the Russian
-infantry, stabbed and trampled on. A brief struggle, and the invincible
-Coldstreams have cut through the masses of the foe, and sweeping all opposition
-from their path, have rejoined the main body of their comrades.</p>
-
-<p>While this deadly contest was waging, the battle on the left of the
-position was rivalling it in intensity. Soimonoff’s army had attacked,
-and the greater portion of the Second Division were bravely opposing
-their advance. The English artillery were ordered up to the support,
-and taking position on the hill, did good service, and sent many a Russian
-to his great account. But at length their ammunition was exhausted,
-and the enemy advancing in great force, after a stirring combat, in which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>
-Major Townsend, a gallant and experienced officer, was killed, and prodigies
-of valour were performed, succeeded in capturing four of our guns.</p>
-
-<p>The battle had now assumed tremendous proportions. The whole of
-the Second and Fourth Divisions were engaged, as well as portions of the
-First and Light Divisions, about 8000 men in all. Including the fresh
-regiments which Dannenberg now brought into action, not less than
-60,000 Russians were in the field. Against this overwhelming force the
-English bravely held their ground. The brigade of Guards, gallantly led
-by their royal commander, had again united, and waged a desperate warfare
-against unequal odds. In front, the Light Division and a portion of
-the Second preserved a firm bearing, and opposed themselves fearlessly to
-the shock of the advancing battalions. On the left, Soimonoff’s <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps
-d’armée</i> was met by the remainder of the Second Division, who bore the
-assault of the enemy, inspirited by their success in driving back the artillery
-and capturing the guns. Their exultation was fated to be of brief
-duration, for the gallant Second, having repulsed their first attack, now
-assumed the offensive, and charging the Russian columns, after a sanguinary
-struggle, drove them back, and recaptured the guns.</p>
-
-<p>The ground to which the struggle was now confined was hilly and
-covered with thick brushwood, sloping towards the harbour, the ships in
-which, moored so as to command the English lines, poured a destructive
-fire into our ranks. The brigade of Guards, forced by the enormous
-odds to quit the Two-gun Battery, after such a terrific contest, were now
-engaged in hand-to-hand conflict with nearly ten times their number of
-the enemy. It was impossible, from the fierceness of the contest and the
-nature of the ground, to preserve military order. The battle was a series
-of detached groups, sometimes a few dauntless Guardsmen, bareheaded
-and back to back, disputing every inch of ground, and with their
-bayonets inflicting terrible execution on the enemy; sometimes a young
-officer, rallying a few of his men around him, dashing with a ringing
-cheer at a phalanx of the foe, and as their dense mass was broken by the
-impetuosity of the attack, falling pierced by a dozen bullets, with his last
-breath cheering on his men to the charge. So fell Lieut.-Colonels Mackinnon
-and Cowell; so fell Sir Robert Newman; and so fell many another
-brave soldier and good man. The Duke of Cambridge, affected almost to
-tears by the sight of so many lying in their blood, was everywhere in the
-thick of the fight, urging on his men, and setting them an example of the
-most daring courage. Almost alone, he dashed into the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mêlée</i>, amid a
-shower of bullets from the Russian rifles. Once he had nearly fallen a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-victim to his own enthusiasm and contempt of danger. Conspicuous by
-his uniform and fine person, he presented a prominent mark for the aim
-of the ambushed enemy. Reckless of the danger, he disdained even ordinary
-precautions. In this emergency, Dr. Wilson, anxious to lend his
-professional services to the wounded, saw the peril of the Duke, and collecting
-a handful of men, dispersed the enemy’s riflemen, and rescued the
-too daring leader. Nothing could exceed the deadly nature of the combat.
-The Guards fought as only men can fight, when utterly desperate.
-There seemed but small probability that one of that noble brigade
-would leave the ground unhurt. The Russians, strong in their numbers,
-inspirited by intoxication and fanaticism, poured their legions in vain
-against the resistance of such unquenchable heroism. Heaps of dead
-covered the ground, and the assassin Muscovites, unable to subdue the
-living, wreaked a miserable vengeance on the fallen, bayonetting and
-madly disfiguring with their clubbed muskets every prostrate antagonist.
-When the battle was over, many a brave fellow, who had fallen wounded,
-was found an unrecognisable mass of mangled flesh and blood. Rendered
-nearly mad by the sight of such devilish atrocity, the survivors redoubled
-their almost surpernatural efforts, and though pressed on every side,
-maintained the struggle with unfailing valour, still the same invincible
-Guardsmen, so terrible at Alma, so heroic at the fight for the Two-gun
-Battery.</p>
-
-<p>The Light Division meanwhile maintained its reputation in the vigorous
-struggle in which they were now engaged. Sir George Brown, their
-General, was severely wounded, and borne from the field, his white hair
-streaming in the wind, and his face deadly pale, from the acuteness of his
-suffering. A five-gun battery, under the direction of Sir Thomas Troubridge,
-Major of the 7th Fusiliers, did good service against the advancing
-columns of the enemy; but the brave fellows who manned it suffered terribly
-from the fire from the batteries of the town. Sir Thomas himself
-had his right leg and left foot carried away by a thirty-nine pounder
-from the Round Tower, or Malakoff. Notwithstanding the severity of
-the injury, and the excruciating agony he must have endured, he refused
-to permit his men to carry him to the rear; but ordered them to lift him
-to a gun-carriage, whence, streaming with blood, he continued to give the
-word of command, nor quitted his post till the enemy were routed.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing the desperate nature of the contest, Sir George Cathcart conceived
-the idea that by descending the side of the hill, he might take the
-enemy in flank, and so relieve the Guards from the unequal struggle in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>
-which they were engaged. He despatched General Torrens, with portions
-of the 46th and 68th regiments on this duty. They advanced
-rapidly, but from either hand rained the bullets of the Russian riflemen,
-concealed in the brushwood. The horse of General Torrens fell pierced
-by five bullets, and on every side, the number who were struck down
-attested the severity of the fire to which they were exposed. Torrens
-himself received a ball through his lungs, and was carried senseless from
-the field. Sir George Cathcart, seeing the fierce opposition which his
-brigade sustained, immediately dashed forward with the remainder of
-his men, and fearlessly charged the enemy. Too late he saw the error
-into which he had been led. He was perfectly surrounded by the enemy,
-who held the high ground commanding the valley into which he had led
-his brigade, in the hopes of making a vigorous flank attack. For some
-time, his little band returned sharp volleys to the enemy’s rifles. Then
-a cry was raised that their cartridges were exhausted. There was no
-retreat, and the fierce fire poured like hail into their ranks. “You have
-got your bayonets!” shouted their dauntless leader, and dashed forwards
-followed by his men. As he raised himself in his stirrups, a bullet
-pierced his brain, and the heroic Cathcart, the subduer of the Cape
-savages, fell headlong from his horse, quite dead. By his side fell
-Colonel Seymour, Adjutant-General of the Fourth Division, sharing his
-leader’s fate. He was wounded before Sir George, but concealed his
-hurt. When the General fell, Colonel Seymour dismounted to render
-him assistance. The brigade had swept on, unable to pause in their
-career, and then the enemy rushing on the wounded Seymour cruelly
-murdered him, as he stooped over the body of his friend, and consummated
-their infamy by basely stabbing with their bayonets the insensible
-body of the noble Cathcart.</p>
-
-<p>It was now eleven o’clock, and it seemed impossible that the English
-could much longer withstand the terrible assault. They were driven
-back exhausted by the long struggle; hundreds of their best and bravest
-had fallen heroically; and the enemy was still pouring fresh legions into
-the fray. The fog and drizzling rain obscured the scene of action, so
-that it was impossible for the Generals to concert a scheme of operations,
-or even to know accurately the state of affairs: it was rather a series of
-battles than one action. Lord Raglan and his staff were eagerly watching
-the fray, but unable to control the movements of the troops. Nothing
-could save the entire army but the self-devotion and valour of the
-men: tactics were unavailable, and generalship useless. Now, however,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-came the crisis of the struggle. General Bosquet had by this time discovered
-that the threatened attack on Balaklava was but a feint; and
-warned by the thunder of cannon and the roll of musketry of the real
-point of attack, hastened to, the rescue. Two troops of horse-artillery
-were speedily despatched, and took up a position whence they could
-effectively play upon the Russian guns. Hastening to the spot, with his
-dashing regiments of Zouaves and Chasseurs Indigènes, he precipitated
-himself upon the left flank of the Russian hordes. General Canrobert,
-too, at the same time, ordered up several French regiments of the line to
-the assistance of the English Second Division, on the left.</p>
-
-<p>Wearied, wounded, and almost disheartened, the English heroes were
-gradually giving ground to the foe, when their ears caught, above the din
-of battle, the rapid tread and loud shouts of advancing troops, and perceived
-through the mist the forms of massive columns, moving at a rapid
-pace, whether friends or foes they scarcely knew. In a few moments, a
-joyous “Hurrah!” rang from the broken lines, and a mighty cheer was
-echoed through the fog: then they knew the French were there to help
-them. A new life seemed to animate them; no longer they retreated,
-but summoning up the last flashes of their failing fire, charged the foe
-anew. The Russians, staggered by the fresh assault, surprised by the
-sudden appearance of the warriors of Africa, hesitated and gave way.
-Then, uniting their ranks, the English and the French, with mingled
-shouts, loud “Hurrahs!” and “<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Vive l’Empereur!</span>” dashed into the
-paralyzed columns, and drove the bayonets home through many a Russian
-breast. The Zouaves leaped through the tangled brushwood, and,
-with wondrous activity, scattered the confused and retreating battalions.
-Then came the tremendous fire from the ships in the harbour, and the
-guns from the heights, which almost swept them from the field, and
-forced them for a brief space to pause in their career. It was but for an
-instant. Renewing their charge, English and French once more dashed
-at the flying foe, and at the bayonet’s point, with fearful slaughter, drove
-them, a disorderly mob, down the hill-side.</p>
-
-<p>The moment had now come when Lord Raglan could effectively exhibit
-his generalship: for hours he had sat in his saddle, in a most exposed
-situation, unable to control the fluctuating fortunes of the day. Under
-his direction, General Strangways had opened a heavy fire of artillery
-upon the Russian guns upon the opposite hills, with the hope of silencing
-their fatal volleys. This was all he had been enabled to perform for the
-succour of the troops engaged. Many fell around him, but the brave old<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span>
-General refused to move from his exposed situation, anxious for the time
-to arrive when he might be enabled so to manœuvre his forces as to drive
-back the enemy. General Strangways was within a short distance of the
-Commander-in-Chief, when a shot, which had actually passed between the
-legs of Lord Raglan’s horse, shattered his leg, and he fell to the ground.
-He was borne carefully to the rear, where, in a few moments, the gallant
-old man, who had survived the dangers of Leipzig, and a fearful wound
-at Waterloo, breathed his last; meeting his fate with a calm heroism that
-affected to tears many a brave man fresh from the honours of that sanguinary
-field. The Russians had left on the field two 18-pounder guns, and
-Lord Raglan now ordered them to be brought up to the front. Colonel
-Dickson had already anticipated the order, and the guns had been dragged
-by main strength to the fitting position on a ridge front of the Second
-Division. Assisted by Captain D’Aguilar, a well-aimed fire was poured
-into the Russian batteries; the guns were overthrown, the gunners killed,
-and the fire for an instant quelled; but the fertility of the enemy’s
-resources did not fail them even now: fresh gunners supplied the places
-of those struck down by the English fire, and the deadly duel was
-resumed. Then came the retreating infantry&mdash;a headlong mass, and the
-fiery Zouaves and reanimated British in hot pursuit. Three times were
-the artillerymen swept away from their guns; as many times their places
-were supplied. Then, under cover of fierce volleys from the town and
-ships, they succeeded in carrying off their guns. The French batteries
-now advanced to the crown of the ridge, and opened fire on the retreating
-masses, flying pell-mell towards the heights. Hundreds fell beneath the
-deadly volleys&mdash;the thunders of the death-dealing artillery drowned alike
-the shrieks and groans of the wounded and the triumphant shouts of the
-victors, and the battle of Inkermann was won!</p>
-
-<p>About 8000 English and 6000 French had thus utterly defeated
-more than 50,000 of the enemy, with the disadvantage of being taken by
-surprise. The English were enfeebled by sickness, imperfectly fed, and
-inadequately provided with necessary equipments and ammunition. The
-Russians were mostly fresh troops, prepared for the attack, and supported
-by the tremendous batteries of the town and ships. It is to the French
-unquestionably that we were indebted for the victory: no human courage
-could much longer have withstood such disproportionate odds. The
-gallant Bosquet, by his promptitude and the dashing valour of his African
-soldiers, saved not only the fortunes of the day, but the very existence of
-the English army. Our loss was 462 killed, including 43 officers, 1952<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span>
-wounded, and 198 missing; giving a total of 2612 casualties. Three
-generals were killed&mdash;Cathcart, Goldie, and Strangways; and three&mdash;Brown,
-Torrens, and Bentinck&mdash;were wounded. If we reckon that only
-about 8000 were engaged, these numbers show that nearly every third
-man was killed, wounded, or fell into the hands of the enemy. The
-Russians admit a loss of 2969 killed, of whom 42 were officers; and
-5791 wounded, including 206 officers; giving a total loss of 8760.
-There can be no rational doubt that their real loss was nearly double,
-and the number of Russians killed or wounded was at the least equal to
-the entire English and French forces engaged in the battle. Our
-brigade of Guards alone lost twelve officers killed on the field, besides
-many wounded. Truly the daring courage of the English gentleman has
-not deteriorated in these latter days! The chivalric valour which placed
-the officers in the very front of danger was nobly seconded by the
-unquenchable spirit of the men whom they led; they were mostly fasting,
-when they hurried to the scene of conflict, and for ten long hours were
-engaged in one of the deadliest struggles the military historian has ever
-recorded. Some were sick, all were gaunt and emaciated. It was Agincourt
-once more. The starved legions met and overthrew five times their
-number. Such was the bloody battle of Inkermann!”</p>
-
-
-<p>IPSUS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 301. Between Seleucus and
-Antigonus, King of Asia. On the side of Antigonus was his son,
-whilst Ptolemy, Lysimachus and Cassander were ranged on the side of
-Seleucus. The army of Seleucus consisted of 70,000 foot, and 10,000
-cavalry, with 75 elephants. The other army amounted to 64,000 infantry,
-and 10,500 horse, with 600 elephants and 120 chariots. Antigonus and
-his son were signally defeated.</p>
-
-
-<p>IRUN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British auxiliary legion, under
-General Evans, and the Carlist forces. It was fought, May 17th, 1837.
-On the 16th, the legion marched from St. Sebastian to attack Irun, which,
-after a desperate resistance, they carried by assault. Great exertions were
-made by the British officers to save the lives of the prisoners from the
-fury of the soldiers of the legion, their minds having been exasperated by
-the frequent massacre of such of their comrades as had from time to
-time fallen into the hands of the enemy. The town was pillaged.</p>
-
-
-<p>ISLE-AUX-NOIX.&mdash;<em>In the Richelieu River, Lower Canada.</em>&mdash;Commands
-the entrance to Lake Champlain. Fortified by the French, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
-1759. Captured by the English, in 1760. Taken by the Americans, in
-1775 (from which place they issued their proclamation to the Canadians).
-It rendered important service in the war of 1812&ndash;1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>ISLE OF FRANCE.&mdash;Taken, with six French frigates, and many
-Indiamen, by the British from the French, December 2nd, 1810. The
-British retain possession of it, and it is now a freed colony.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="ISM" id="ISM"></a></div>
-<p>ISMAEL, SIEGE OF.&mdash;<em>In Bessarabia.</em>&mdash;After a long siege by the
-Russians, who lost 20,000 men before the place, the town was taken by
-storm, December 22nd, 1790, when the Russian General, Suwarrow, the
-bloodiest and most merciless warrior of modern times, put the brave
-Turkish garrison, consisting of 30,000 men, to the sword&mdash;every man
-was butchered. Not satisfied with this vengeance, the General ordered the
-town to be pillaged by his ferocious soldiery, and 6000 women were
-murdered in cold blood.</p>
-
-
-<p>ISSUS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Alexander the Great completely defeated
-Darius in this battle, fought <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 333. The Persian army, according to
-Justin, amounted to 400,000 foot and 100,000 horse, of which 61,000
-foot and 10,000 cavalry were left dead on the field, and 40,000 were
-taken prisoners. The Macedonians lost only 300 foot and 150 horse,
-according to Diodorus Siculus.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="J" id="J"></a>J.</h3>
-
-
-<p>JAFFA.&mdash;Celebrated in Scripture as Joppa. Taken by Napoleon, in
-February, 1799. The French driven out by the British, in June, the
-same year. Here, according to the account of Sir Robert Wilson, Napoleon
-massacred 3800 Arab prisoners of war; but this is reasonably doubted.</p>
-
-
-<p>JANVILLIERS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the French and Prussians,
-which, after a severe engagement, Blucher, who commanded the
-latter army, was driven back to Chalons with considerable loss. Fought,
-February 14th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>JARNAC, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The Duke of Anjou, afterwards Henry
-III of France, defeated the Huguenots, under Louis, Prince of Condé,
-who was killed in cold blood by Montesquieu. The victor was but
-seventeen years of age, and on account of his successes and his triumph
-at Moncontour, the Poles chose him for their king; he had his arm in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-a sling, and a moment before the battle, his leg was broken by a kick
-from a horse. Fought, March 13th, 1569.</p>
-
-
-<p>JAVA.&mdash;This island capitulated to the British, August 8th, 1811.
-The sultan dethroned by the English and the hereditary Prince raised to
-the throne, June, 1813. Restored to Holland, in 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>JEMMAPPES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This was one of the most obstinate
-and hard-fought battles in modern times; 40,000 French troops
-forced 28,000 Austrians, who were entrenched in woods and mountains,
-defended by forty redoubts and an immense number of cannon. The revolutionary
-general Dumouriez, was the victor in this battle, which lasted
-four days. According to the most authentic accounts, the loss on the
-Austrian side was 10,000 men killed, and that of the French 12,000.
-Fought, November 5th, 1792.</p>
-
-
-<p>JENNA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most bloody battles fought in
-the Napoleon wars, between the French and Prussian armies; the former
-commanded by Napoleon&mdash;the latter by the Prussian King. The latter
-was signally defeated with the loss of 30,000 slain, and 30,000 taken
-prisoners, and 200 field pieces taken. After this Napoleon advanced to
-Berlin, October 14th, 1806.</p>
-
-
-<p>JERUSALEM.&mdash;Taken by the Israelites <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 1048, and by Nebuchadnezzar
-<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 587. Razed to the ground by Titus <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 70, after
-one of the most awful as well as remarkable sieges recorded in history
-and predicted by our Blessed Lord. More than 1,100,000 Jews perished
-on this occasion. Rebuilt by Adrian <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 130. Taken by the Persians
-in 614; by the Saracens in 636; and by the Crusaders in 1099, when
-70,000 infidels were put to the sword. A new kingdom was then
-founded, and lasted eighty-eight years. Again taken from the Christians
-by Saladin, in 1187, and by the Turks in 1217. Lastly taken by
-Bonaparte, in February, 1799.</p>
-
-
-<p>JUGURTHA, THE WAR WITH.&mdash;A memorable war, of which
-the Roman historian, Sallust, has written an account, commenced <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>
-111, and continued five years. Metellus was first sent against him, then
-Sylla and Marius&mdash;the latter of whom took him prisoner, and at last he
-died in prison, at Rome.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span></p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="K" id="K"></a>K.</h3>
-
-
-<p>KAFFIR WAR.&mdash;There was an invasion of the Kaffirs, or Caffres,
-in the vicinity of Grahamstown, Cape of Good Hope, in October, 1831.
-The invaders fell upon the settlers, murdered them, burnt their houses,
-destroyed their crops, and carried off their cattle; this irruption was
-eventually suppressed by the colonial authorities. Other, but slighter
-annoyances to the colonists took place occasionally, up to December, 1850,
-when Sir Harry Smith, the then Governor, proclaimed martial law,
-and ordered the colonists to rise <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en masse</i> for the defence of the frontier;
-the Kaffirs had previously defeated the British troops, and had committed
-many murderous forays on the villages. Then followed several disastrous
-operations in the Water Kloof, and Colonel Fordyce and several
-officers and men of the 74th Regiment were killed, November 6th, 1847.
-Captain Oldham, and others, had just before this fallen into an ambuscade
-and been killed. The wreck of the <i>Birkenhead</i> with re-enforcements
-from England, took place February 26th, 1852. General Cathcart, at
-last, on the 20th December, 1852, attacked them with 2000 British
-troops at Berea, where they numbered 6000 cavalry. In this action
-Captain Tanner and 38 men were killed, and two other officers and 15
-men wounded. The Kaffirs suffered severely, and at last were obliged to
-sue for peace.</p>
-
-
-<p>KALITSCH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, February 13th, 1813,
-between the Saxons, under the French General Regnier, and the Russians
-under Winzingerode. An obstinate engagement in which the French
-were defeated, with the loss of 2000 killed and some thousands taken
-prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>KALUNGA, FORT.&mdash;<em>In the East Indies.</em>&mdash;Unsuccessfully attacked
-by the East India Company’s forces, and General Gillespie killed, October
-31st, 1814. Again unsuccessfully attacked, November 25th, following,
-and evacuated by the Nepaulese on the 30th November, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="KAR" id="KAR"></a></div>
-<p>KARS, THE BATTLE OF THE HEIGHTS OF.&mdash;“On the 29th
-September, 1855, about 3.30 <span class="fs70">A.M.</span>, the Russians were seen advancing up
-the Shorak valley in dense masses, but in what order could not then, on
-account of the darkness, be ascertained. Our troops were in a moment
-under arms, and at their posts. General Kmety, with one battalion of
-infantry and seven companies of chasseurs, was stationed in Sheshanegee<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span>
-Tabia; Major Teesdale, with one battalion of infantry, in Yuksek Tabia;
-and Hussein Pacha, with the Arabistan Corps, in Tahmasb Tabia, where
-he was soon joined by Kerim Pacha, the second in command of the army.
-Bashi-bazouks were also dispersed throughout the different works, and
-the Laz held a small work called Yarem Ai Tabia, in front of Yuksek
-Tabia. General Kmety was the first to open fire with round-shot on the
-advancing battalions of the enemy; he was immediately answered by two
-guns placed in position on a height forming the north-west boundary of
-the Shorak valley. In a few minutes the whole visible force of the
-Russians charged up the hill with loud cries; they were received with a
-terrific fire of grape and musketry, which mowed down whole ranks at
-every volley. General Kmety’s position was attacked by eight battalions
-of the enemy; they advanced very gallantly to within five paces of the
-work, when so heavy a fire was opened on the head of the column that
-the whole corps wavered, halted, then turned, and fled down the hill in
-the greatest confusion, leaving 850 dead. They did not renew the
-attack there.</p>
-
-<p>Tahmasb Tabia bore the brunt of the battle; about 16 battalions,
-with many guns, were brought up against it, but its garrison was undaunted,
-and for a long time the Russians could not even get possession of the
-breast-work forming the left wing of that battery; but, at length, an
-overwhelming force obliged the Turks to retire within the redoubt. A
-scene of carnage now ensued perfectly terrible to behold. As the Russians
-came over the brow of the hill within the breastwork, to take the
-battery in rear, Tchim and Tek Tabias and Fort Lake opened on them
-with 24-pound shot, which tore through their ranks, but they did not
-seem to heed this. They charged Tahmasb Tabia, which was one sheet
-of fire, over and over again, and so resolute were their assaults that many
-of the Russian officers were killed in the battery, but they could not succeed
-in carrying it.</p>
-
-<p>General Kmety, after having repulsed the Russians, went forward with
-four companies of chasseurs to Yuksek Tabia, which was sorely pressed.
-Major Teesdale pointed out a battalion of Russian chasseurs which lay
-hidden behind Yarem Ai Tabia (this work having been abandoned by
-the Laz at the commencement of the battle), and begged that they
-might be dislodged. The General at once determined to carry the battery;
-so, forming up his men, he charged and drove the Russians down the hill;
-leaving a company to defend the work, he returned to Yuksek Tabia, from
-whence perceiving a battalion of the enemy trying to turn the right wing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>
-of Tahmasb Tabia, he reinforced his corps with three companies from
-Major Teesdale, and charged the Russians; here, too, he was successful.
-In the meantime reinforcements were sent up from below; these formed
-behind the tents of the reserve, and watched their opportunity in attacking
-the Russian columns, when driven back from an assault on the
-batteries. For seven hours this went on; reserve after reserve of the
-enemy was brought forward, but only to meet death. Nothing could
-shake the firmness of our troops, till at length the Russians, wearied and
-dispirited, at eleven <span class="fs70">A.M.</span>, turned and fled down the hills in a confused
-mass, not one single company keeping its ranks. The army was followed
-in its flight by the townspeople and Bashi-bazouks, who brought down
-hundreds as they fled. While the infantry were engaged in this conflict,
-the Cossacks tried to penetrate into the tents of the reserve, but they were
-soon driven back by the townspeople and infantry reserves with heavy
-loss.</p>
-
-<p>One battalion of Russian infantry attempted to march round the
-position, and take a small battery situated in a commanding position on
-the road leading to a village called Tchakmak. It commenced its march
-in splendid order, but ere it went 600 yards it was broken and in great
-disorder, and so terrified, that fifty or sixty of our chasseurs drove the
-broken mass down the Tchakmak valley like a flock of sheep. The cause
-of the terror was the terrible fire opened upon it by Yuksek Tabia, the
-guns of Sheshanegee Tabia and Fort Lake.</p>
-
-<p>A column of eight battalions, with 16 guns and three regiments of
-cavalry, attacked the English lines at half-past five <span class="fs70">A.M.</span> This line of
-fortification was at the time very weakly garrisoned; the breastwork was
-carried in a few minutes, the batteries Teesdale, Thompson, and Zohrah,
-successively fell into the enemy’s hands, and the men who formed their
-garrisons retired into Williams Pacha Tabia. The Russians then brought
-up their artillery into position in front of Zohrab Tabia, and began firing
-upon Fort Lake and shelling the town, but Fort Lake (under the able
-superintendence of the gallant officer whose name it bears), Arab Tabia,
-and Karadagh, opened so heavy a fire on them with 24 pounders, that
-they were compelled to withdraw their artillery altogether. The Russian
-infantry then charged Williams Pacha Tabia, but were repulsed by a
-flanking fire from Fort Lake and a severe fire of musketry from the
-defenders of the battery attacked. They retired into Zohrab Tabia,
-re-formed, and again assaulted; a body of their chasseurs was at the same
-time sent forward to within 500 yards of Fort Lake, to take a small open<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span>
-work called Churchill Tabia, which was doing the enemy without the
-lines much harm. This was occupied by two companies of our chasseurs:
-they turned to receive the attack of the enemy; and, after retiring a short
-distance halted, and kept the Russians at bay. While this was going on,
-Captain Thompson, who had charge of the batteries of Karadagh and
-Arab Tabia, sent over the 5th regiment of infantry from Arab Tabia to
-retake the English Tabias of Teesdale and Thompson, and from below
-two battalions of the 2nd regiment came up to recapture Zohrab Tabia.
-The forces commenced the attack together from each end of the line, and
-drove the Russians out of the forts and breastworks at the point of the
-bayonet. Once out of the lines, they did not attempt to retake them.
-Unfortunately the enemy had time, while in possession of the batteries,
-to take away five guns, and to spike three, but they abandoned three of
-the captured guns at a short distance from the redoubts, so that we only
-lost two. As the enemy retreated our long guns again played on their
-columns, and they retired as speedily as possible.</p>
-
-<p>Some cavalry attempted to engage the battery above the village of
-Tchakmak, but again the terrible guns of Fort Lake drove them off. By
-10.30 <span class="fs70">A.M.</span> the English Tabias were silent.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the dreadful battle of “The Heights of Kars.” This is but
-a very lame account of the glorious fight. I have not the time to enter
-into greater details, but it will give an idea of what our men did and had
-to endure. The forces of the enemy exceeded 30,000, while ours, engaged,
-were below 8000. Not one of our men had tasted anything since the
-previous afternoon; hungry and thirsty, they remained undaunted, and
-repulsed column after column of the Russians; at last their heroism was
-rewarded with perhaps the most brilliant victory that has been gained
-during this war.</p>
-
-<p>The field of battle was a sight too horrible ever to be forgotten by me;
-the dead lay in vast heaps in every direction around the forts&mdash;the ditches
-were full of mutilated bodies&mdash;the tents were torn to rags&mdash;arms, clothes,
-broken ammunition-boxes lay strewed about. Upwards of 6000 Russians
-fell, and more than 4000 muskets have been collected, and 150 prisoners
-taken. The total loss to the enemy in killed and wounded must have
-been very near, if not more than, 15,000. Several Generals were killed
-or wounded; amongst the former, reports say, General Breumer, the
-second in command; and General Baklanoff, who commanded the attack
-on Canly Tabia on the 7th of last August. Thousands of carts have
-been sent to Gumri (Alexandropoli) with wounded.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Our list of casualties is but small, about 1000 in killed and wounded.
-Dr. Sandwith, the Inspector of Hospitals, had made his arrangements,
-and, thanks to his abilities, the hospitals are in good order.</p>
-
-<p>For this great victory, Turkey has to thank General Williams; during
-the past four months his exertions to get things into order have been
-astonishing; night and day he has laboured. He has had many and
-great obstacles to overcome, but nothing could break his energy. On the
-memorable 29th he directed the movements of the troops; the reinforcements
-always reached their appointed position in time. The great results
-of the day prove how well his operations were conceived.</p>
-
-<p>The loss inflicted on the enemy fully shows how well the positions of
-the redoubts were chosen by Colonel Lake. All the batteries flanked
-each other, and the Russians were unable to bring up guns to command
-any of our positions. The troops kiss the batteries, and say that the
-Miralai Bey (Colonel) was “Chok akill” (very wise) when he made
-them work.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Thompson aided greatly in recapturing the English lines.
-He directed, by order, the guns of Arab Tabia and Karadagh, and sent
-the troops over to attack the Russians.</p>
-
-<p>Major Teesdale was in the hottest fire, and acted with great coolness
-and bravery. He is the admiration of the Turks. He showed them
-how English officers behave in battle.</p>
-
-<p>All the Turkish officers did their duty nobly. Kerim Pacha was
-slightly wounded, and had two horses killed under him; Hussein Pacha
-was hit; two Colonels, and many other officers, were killed.”</p>
-
-<p>Another account thus graphically describes the fall of Kars:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Omer Pacha, gradually overcoming the difficulties of that deficiency
-in transports found himself at the head of about 15,000 troops in
-Abasia, a good many of these being his own trustworthy veterans.
-He had gradually edged them down towards redoubt Kaleh, which
-he fixed on as his basis of operations. On the 30th Shemserai was
-secured, and, having driven in the Russian outposts from Sogdidi
-and endeavoured to open relations with Schamyl, while conciliating the
-Princess Dalian and the Christian population in his own neighbourhood,
-he moved inland in a south-eastern direction. But, owing to the
-difficulties of the country, which is an entanglement of woods interspersed
-with very rich but neglected farm lands, and owing still more to the
-precariousness and uncertainty of any supplies from the inhabitants, his
-progress was extremely slow. He did all that lay in his power, purchasing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>
-provisions in every direction, and organizing, as his principal resource,
-a regular commissariat at Redoubt Kaleh. The river Phasis, which
-flows from the Caucasus to the Euxine, is navigable for nearly a hundred
-miles from the sea; and he had hoped to have availed himself of this
-channel for important manœuvres. His plan was this:&mdash;The first strong
-Russian post was at Kutais, where the great high road&mdash;by Gori, into
-Georgia, and down to Tiflis&mdash;would take his advancing columns over the
-celebrated Soorem Pass. Once master of Kutais, and with his communications
-well secured upon the Black Sea along his rear line, he
-hoped either to be able to defeat all the local Russian garrisons and posts
-between Soorem and the capital of the fertile province lying beyond and
-below it, or else to recall by the terror of his progress the army of General
-Mouravieff, then menacing Armenia, and beleaguering Kars. In
-either case a great blow would be struck, and the hard-pressed troops of
-General Williams relieved. Then, should it even prove too late to
-advance permanently that year beyond Mingrelia, he could at least
-strengthen himself in Kutais, make it his new centre for future operations,
-and call up, meantime, additional forces for the campaign of
-spring. General Mouravieff would then be pressed from the side of
-Armenia, where he was now acting offensively, and from the side of
-Imeretia, on which he would be thrown also upon the defensive. But it
-was already too late; and the Russian chief knew it. Well informed of
-the true state of the Kars garrison, he never disquieted himself, or in the
-slightest altered his plans, in consequence of Omer Pacha’s diversion.
-Should the Muchir even beat the militia which now guarded the northern
-gorges of Georgia, he felt sure that it would all come to the same result.
-The season, the floods, scarcity, would compel the victor to retreat; much
-more would such become his necessity if, in the interim, he, General
-Mouravieff, should succeed in reducing Kars, and, while thus liberating
-his own army for an encounter with the Ottoman, should rob the latter
-of the chief motive which prompted this venturous advance by depriving
-it of its character <em>as a diversion</em>. Indeed, in such a contingency, the
-further Omer might have penetrated, the worse, perhaps, would be his
-situation; since General Mouravieff, by not returning directly towards
-Tiflis (which would be rather better able than Kars had been to stand a
-siege in its turn and to hold any assailant in play), but by moving
-diagonally, north-east by north, along the excellent Russian line from
-Alexandropol to Akhazik, would himself take Omer Pacha in flank and
-rear, shatter his line of communication, overwhelm his detached supports,
-and cut him off from the sea.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>For these reasons, General Mouravieff tranquilly and steadily persisted
-in the blockade of Kars; and never for a moment showed any inclination
-to turn aside to face the Turkish invader. A month and seven days had
-now elapsed since the assault on Kars was repulsed so gloriously, when
-Omer Pacha at length brought his labouring columns through the miry
-woodlands as far as the Ingour. There he saw, for the first time, a
-regular stand prepared by the enemy, about 12,000 strong, intrenched
-on the opposite bank, and commanding the passage by batteries. They
-were chiefly the Russian militia of Georgia and were under the command
-of General Bragation-Makrausky. The Turks had some 20,000 men.
-The stream was barely fordable in half-a-dozen places, by which the
-enemy’s intrenchments could be turned. The Turks passed it, up to
-their armpits in water, holding their muskets aloft; our countrymen&mdash;Colonel
-Ballard, Captain Dymsck, and others&mdash;showing a splendid
-example worthy of English officers. The engagement lasted five hours,
-when the Russians fled, leaving behind them 60 prisoners, five gun-carriages
-and ammunition carts, and 400 killed. They appear to have
-carried off their wounded. Omer Pacha had 220 wounded and 68
-killed. Pressing on the track of the fugitives he came up with them
-before the end of November, within sight of Kutais, and obtained
-another advantage. But the floods had come; the Phasis had assumed
-the dimensions of a torrent; great forest trees were swept down the
-stream as if they were reeds&mdash;now engulfed out of sight in the eddies,
-now reappearing on the surface for a moment as they were borne away;
-the roads were impassable to artillery, and almost to infantry; the
-whole country was transformed into an alternation of morass and lagoon;
-a day’s march was the work of a week; the troops were broken up and
-islanded, as it were, into helpless detachments; the commissariat could
-not act; the supplies arrived with greater irregularity, incertitude, and
-insufficiency from day to day; the whole army was suffering incredible
-hardships and privations; it was threatened with annihilation unless a
-retrograde movement were promptly made; and, finally, came the news
-Kars had succumbed at last. The conquerors, therefore, retired,
-unpursued, and gradually straggled back to Redoubt Kaleh, where
-Omer Pacha soon succeeded in restoring their tone and refreshing their
-energies.</p>
-
-<p>So ended the war of 1855 with Russia; for this was really its last
-incident, General Mouravieff having already dismantled the fortifications
-of Kars, and withdrawn the bulk of his forces to Gumri. It was on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
-28th of November that General Williams at last surrendered to him the
-stubborn Armenian fortress. The heroic garrison had long been macerated
-by the failure of rations and by disease. Even their ammunition was
-expended. In another assault on the day of their surrender they would
-have had no means of firing half-a-dozen rounds from their guns, and
-they were completely past the power of personal resistance as a body,
-being unable to wield their weapons, and hardly able to stand erect.
-They had borne literally the fiercest extremities of famine. They were
-now a corps of spectres, with scarcely the strength to speak. Yet these
-men had furnished indiscriminately the sentinels who had mounted
-guard over the little pile of half-rotten farina which was to be doled out
-in a biscuit a day for each; and the trusty sentries never touched the
-food which was the sole remaining common stock. Under such circumstances
-it was that General Williams rode out with a flag of truce, and
-told Prince Mouravieff that he would surrender Kars provided all the
-courtesies and honours of war were conceded to the garrison. General
-Kmety and some few attendants had tried a different expedient&mdash;they
-stole out and cut their way through the leaguer on the only serviceable
-horses left.</p>
-
-<p>Mouravieff listened with attention to General Williams, who threatened,
-if his various stipulations were not granted, to burst every gun and
-destroy every military trophy still extant in Kars. The Russian chief
-replied with chivalrous warmth and visible emotion as he looked at the
-emaciated hero, that all was granted, and that he was proud as an enemy
-to testify that General Williams and those under him had immortalised
-themselves. Nothing, in short, could surpass the nobility of sentiment
-displayed (both then and in the subsequent treatment of the prisoners)
-by Prince Mouravieff and the Russian army.”</p>
-
-
-<p>KERTCH.&mdash;An expedition undertaken against this place during the
-late Russian war was completely successful. “Notwithstanding the
-recall of the expedition to Kertch in the early part of the month, the
-Allied Generals were resolved to carry out the project of a descent upon
-that part of the coast; and, on the 22nd of May, another expedition
-departed: the English force under Sir George Brown, and the French
-under General D’Autemarre. The two Admirals, Sir Edmund Lyons
-and Bruat, accompanied the land forces. The troops engaged numbered
-15,000, with five batteries of artillery. It was apprehended that a
-serious resistance would probably be made at Kertch, and that the fleets<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>
-would have difficulty in forcing the straits into the Sea of Azov, if they
-were exposed to the fire of the powerful batteries of Kertch and Yenikale.
-In order, then, that the town might be attacked from the land side, Sir
-George Brown landed his force at Kamiesch Bournu, a few miles to the
-south of Kertch, and advanced overland. The enemy, however, had no
-intention of risking a contest, and evacuated the town, destroying the
-magazines, and blowing up the fortifications. When the troops entered
-Kertch, they found it deserted by nearly all the inhabitants; and the
-ships in the straits hurredly endeavouring to escape into the Sea of
-Azov. In this attempt they were frustrated by the activity of the allied
-fleets; and the Admirals, finding the depth of water more than they had
-anticipated, started in full pursuit, capturing and burning every vessel
-they could approach. Yenikale was, like Kertch, deserted by its garrison;
-and in a few hours the Allies were in undisturbed and bloodless possession
-of the two towns commanding the outlet of the Sea of Azov, and
-the fleets were in full chase of the Russian navy in those waters.”</p>
-
-
-<p>KIEL, TREATY OF.&mdash;Between Great Britain, Sweden and Denmark,
-signed January 14th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>KILCULLEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought May 23rd, 1798, between
-a vast body of insurgent Irish and the British forces, commanded by
-General Dundas. The latter were defeated. General Dundas, however,
-subsequently beat the rebels near Kilcullen bridge, when 3000 were slain,
-and hundreds wounded and taken prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>KILDARE.&mdash;The great rebellion commenced here in May 23rd, 1798.
-On that night Lieutenant Gifford, of Dublin, and a number of gentlemen
-were murdered. Quelled in the following year.</p>
-
-
-<p>KILLALA.&mdash;A French force landed here, August 22nd, 1798.
-They were joined by the Irish insurgents, and the actions of Castlebar,
-Colooney and Ballyhannack followed. At the battle of Killala the insurgents
-were defeated with great slaughter, by the Royalist forces, September
-23rd, 1798.</p>
-
-
-<p>KILLIECRANKIE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought July 17th, 1689,
-between the forces of William III and the adherents of James II.
-“General Mackay, the officer sent against Claverhouse, had about 3000
-foot and some companies of horse under his command. But they were
-mostly all raw recruits, and entire strangers to the Highland way of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span>
-fighting. At the head of the wild and gloomy pass of Killiecrankie,
-Mackay found himself in front of the rebels. He drew up his men, three
-deep, along the side of the narrow valley into which the pass opens. The
-Highlanders occupied the hill on the north side of the valley. At this
-time, the bayonet screwed into the muzzle of the musket, so that troops
-could not fire with bayonets fixed. The Highlanders, in dense masses
-broke down from the hill. Firing their guns once, they dropped them,
-and then with target on the left arm, and flashing broadsword they
-rushed, wildly yelling, on the enemy. Mackay’s troops fired a volley,
-which did little harm to the loose array of their leaping, bounding foes,
-and before they could screw in their bayonets, the Highlanders were
-among them. An empty musket without a bayonet could do little against
-the sweeping broadsword. A panic seized Mackay’s raw levies, and they
-broke and fled, pursued and cut down by the savage Highlanders.</p>
-
-<p>Claverhouse never knew that he had won a victory. He fell at the
-beginning of the action, pierced by a musket ball which entered beneath
-his arm. When one in a pack of hungry wolves is killed, the rest turn
-upon him and eat him up. Claverhouse’s own men, true to their savage
-instinct of plunder, stripped his body, and left it naked upon the field,
-where it was with difficulty distinguished from the other bodies of the
-fallen!”</p>
-
-
-<p>KOLIN, <span class="fs70">OR</span> KOLLIN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In this engagement the
-famous Austrian General Daun, gained a celebrated victory over Frederick
-the Great of Prussia, June 18th, 1757. Next year he obliged the
-Prussians to raise the siege of Olmutz and to retreat to Moravia.</p>
-
-
-<p>KONIAH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought on the Plains of Koniah, formerly
-Jornium, between the army of the Sultan of Turkey and the Pacha of
-Egypt, in which, after a most bloody action which continued all the day,
-the Turkish army was defeated, and the Grand Vizier himself wounded
-and taken prisoner, December 31st, 1833.</p>
-
-
-<p>KOWNO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the French and Russian
-armies, in which the French were defeated with great slaughter,
-and the loss of upwards of 6000 prisoners, 21 pieces of cannon; many
-thousands on both sides were slain. Fought, December 14th, 1812.</p>
-
-
-<p>KRASNOI, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the French under
-Davoust, and the Russian army commanded by Kutusoff. In this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span>
-bloody battle Davoust was entirely overthrown, and his army dispersed,
-thousands upon thousands being left dead on the field, November 16th,
-1812.</p>
-
-
-<p>KUNNERSDORF, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most bloody battles
-on record, and fought between the Prussian and Russian armies. The
-King of Prussia, after a great slaughter of the enemy for upwards of six
-hours, had gained many advantages and had nearly accomplished victory;
-but too eager in pursuing the retreating enemy, the latter rallied, and in
-the end the Prussians were defeated with the loss of 20,000 men and
-200 pieces of cannon, August 12th, 1759.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="L" id="L"></a>L.</h3>
-
-
-<p>LACOLLE MILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Operations were commenced
-early in the spring of 1814. An American army, commanded by General
-Wilkinson, and amounting to upwards of 3000 men, entered Lower
-Canada on the western shore of Lake Champlain. They attacked and
-completely invested Lacolle Mill, which was defended by Major Handcock,
-of the 13th regiment, and about 180 men. They were vigorously
-repulsed from this little fortress and driven back to the United States.</p>
-
-
-<p>LA HOGUE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the English and Dutch
-combined fleets under Admirals Russel and Rooke, and the French
-under Tourville. The Allies gained a complete victory, burning thirteen
-ships of the French, and destroying eight more, and forcing the rest to
-fly, and so preventing the threatened invasion of England, May 19th,
-1692.</p>
-
-
-<p>LA ROTHIÈRE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the French, commanded
-by Napoleon, and the Prussian and Russian armies, which were defeated
-after a desperate engagement with the loss of some thousands slain, and
-3000 prisoners and 30 pieces of cannon, February 1st, 1814. This was
-about one of the last victories of Napoleon.</p>
-
-
-<p>LA VENDÉE, WAR OF.&mdash;Many battles in this war were fought
-between the French Royalists of La Vendée and the Republican armies
-in 1793&ndash;4. The war terminated January 10th, 1800.</p>
-
-
-<p>LAKES CHAMPLAIN, ERIE, AND ONTARIO.&mdash;These lakes
-were the scene of many engagements between the English and American<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span>
-colonists in the War of Independence, and also in the war of 1812&ndash;15,
-the chief of which was the capture of the British fleet by the Americans
-after a severe action, September 11th, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>LANDEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Allies and French, in
-which William III of England commanded. Owing chiefly to the
-cowardice of the Dutch horse, this sanguinary engagement ended in the
-defeat of the Allies, July 19, 1693. The Duke of Berwick, illegitimate
-son of James II, who was fighting on the side of France, was taken prisoner
-in this battle by Brigadier Churchill, afterwards the great Duke
-of Marlborough.</p>
-
-
-<p>LANGSIDE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 13th, 1568, between
-the forces of Queen Mary of Scotland and the Regent. “Many powerful
-Barons called their vassals to their banners, and hastened to support
-the Queen. In a few days her camp at Hamilton contained 6000 men.
-The Regent had with difficulty mustered 4000, but he determined to
-bring the Queen’s army to battle at once. She broke up her camp at
-Hamilton, and marched towards Dumbarton. The village of Langside
-lay on her line of march, and her troops must pass through a narrow
-lane leading up the face of the hill on which the village stood. Moray
-posted his hag-butters, or matchlock-men, among the cottages, and lined
-with them the garden-hedges on both sides of the lane. The Queen
-took her station on an eminence half a mile distant, from which she had
-the battle full in sight. She saw her troops press up the hill, and
-endeavour to force the passage of the lane. She saw them reel under
-the close and deadly fire of the hagbut-men who lined the hedges. She
-saw them come on again stoutly, and meet the shock of Moray’s spearmen.
-She saw the mass of combatants swaying to and fro in doubtful
-conflict. And then she saw her troops swept down the hill, broken and
-scattered, the Regent’s men fiercely pursuing and spearing the wretched
-fugitives.”</p>
-
-
-<p>LAON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In France.</em>&mdash;Between the Allies, chiefly the
-Prussian army, and the French. This battle or rather succession of
-actions, was fought under the walls of the town, and ended, after a
-sanguinary and obstinate contest in the defeat of the latter with great
-loss, March 9th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>LARGS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the ancient inhabitants
-of Scotland and the Northmen. A bloody battle, fought 30th September,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span>
-1263. The following description is from the pen of an eminent Scottish
-modern writer:</p>
-
-<p>“It was about the middle of August when the fleet of Haco, which
-counted 160 ships, rounded the Mull of Cantyre and entered the Frith
-of Clyde. Time is everything in war. Haco should have landed immediately.
-Every day was bringing the storms of Autumn nearer, and
-every day was giving time to the King of Scotland to increase his forces.
-Haco was a veteran who had been King of Norway forty-six winters.
-Alexander was a young man who had lived fewer than half the years
-that Haco had reigned. But the youth fairly outwitted the veteran.
-He sent an embassy of barefooted friars on board of Haco’s ship to propose
-terms of peace. The barefooted envoys came and went between
-the two kings, and the time was spun out in negociations till the weather
-began to break; the fleet was running short of provisions, and the Scots
-in formidable numbers were assembling on the shore.</p>
-
-<p>“It was now the last day of September. At night there came on a
-storm so sudden and so wild that the Norwegians believed it to have
-been raised by the spells of the Scotch witches. The ships were torn
-from their anchors and ran ashore, or dashed against each other in the
-pitchy darkness. Haco ordered the attendance of his priests, took to his
-boat, and landed on the island of Cumbrae, where, amid the howling of
-the storm, he had mass performed. In stranger circumstances, surely,
-mass was never said or sung. Unluckily for Haco, the strong-winged
-tempest heeded it not. It continued with unabated fury all night and
-all the next day. The fleet drove up the channel, scattering the sea with
-wreck, and the shore with stranded vessels. The heights above the
-coast were covered by a multitude of armed peasants, who watched their
-opportunity and rushed down to attack the stranded ships.</p>
-
-<p>“When the second morning broke, and the violence of the tempest
-had somewhat abated, Haco, by means of his boats, landed with a large
-force to protect his stranded vessels from the armed peasantry, and if
-possible to tow them off. While the Norwegians were engaged in the
-operation of floating off their ships, the sun rose, and his level rays
-caught the surrounding hills. Through the grey sheet of morning mist
-which covered the landscape, flashes as of fire were seen. It was the
-sun’s rays glancing upon the polished armour of the Scottish army.
-They advanced rapidly, and the Norwegians could soon discern their
-pennons and banners waving above their wood of spears, and the knights
-and leaders, blazing in complete steel, marshalling the line. They were
-commanded by King Alexander in person.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“They attacked with fury, and drove back the advanced body of the
-Norwegians. It seemed as if the whole force of the enemy was about to
-be swept into the sea before the fierce onset of the Scots. But the
-Norsemen, who fought entirely on foot, threw themselves into a circle
-with their long spears pointing out to the foe, like a huge hedgehog with
-prickles of steel. All day long the battle raged around this ring of
-spears. The storm had renewed its violence, so that it was impossible
-to send help on shore. Again and again the Scottish horse repeated
-their furious charge. The circle of steel was slowly forced back along
-the shore, but it could not be broken. A Scottish knight, Sir Piers de
-Curry, rode round and round it brandishing his spear and challenging
-any Norse captain to single combat. He wore a helmet inlaid with gold
-and set with precious stones; his mail was gold-embossed; his sword-belt
-studded with jewels. A leader of the Northmen accepted his challenge,
-and stepped out from the circle of spears. The Scottish knight
-spurred his horse and rushed down upon him with levelled lance. The
-Norseman with his great sword parried the spear-thrust, and as the
-knight passed him in his career, smote him with his whole strength
-upon the thigh. The sword cut sheer into the saddle through steel and
-bone, so that the limb was separated from the body, and the proud
-knight fell dead beneath his horse.</p>
-
-<p>“A re-inforcement from the ships at length succeeded in landing
-through the surf; and with the aid of these fresh troops the Norwegians
-bore back the Scots from the shore. Night fell upon the weary combatants,
-and under cover of the darkness the Norwegians got on board
-their ships.”</p>
-
-
-<p>LAYBACH, CONGRESS OF.&mdash;Attended by the Sovereigns of
-Russia, Prussia, and Austria, and resulting in two circulars, stating that
-Naples should be occupied with the Austrian troops, May 6th, 1821.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEGHORN.&mdash;Entered by the French revolutionary army, July 27th,
-1796, but the immense amount of British property in the city had been
-previously removed. Evacuated by the French in 1799, and retaken
-the next year. The Austrian took the city May 12th, 1849.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEGION.&mdash;A Roman body of soldiers, about 6000 men. The 10th
-legion was a favourite one with Cæsar. Ancient Britain was generally
-protected by three legions.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>LEIPSIC, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle fought, October 16th, 17th,
-and 18th, 1813, between the allied army of Russia, Prussia, and Austria
-on the one side, and Napoleon on the other, was one of the greatest,
-bloodiest, and most decisive of modern times. The French numbered
-160,000 men, and the Allies 260,000 strong. This great battle was lost
-by the French, chiefly owing to the seventeen German battalions, then
-Saxon allies, turning upon them in the heat of the action; 80,000 perished
-on the field, of whom more than 40,000 were French, who also lost sixty-five
-pieces of cannon and many standards. This victory of the allied
-army was followed by that of the capture of Leipsic, and the rear guard of
-the French army next day. The King of Saxony and his family were
-also made prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEPANTO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The great naval battle between the
-combined fleets of Spain, Venice, and Pius V, and the whole maritime
-force of the Turks. Don John of Austria commanded the allied fleet,
-which consisted of 206 galleys and 30,000 men. The Turks had 200
-galleys. After a dreadful engagement they lost 150 galleys, and 30,000
-men in killed and prisoners. Fought, October 7th, 1571.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEUCTRA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most famous in ancient
-history, fought July 8th, 371 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> In this battle 4000 Spartans, with
-their King, were slain, and not more than 300 Thebans. After this
-battle the Spartans lost their position in Greece, which they had held
-for 500 years.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEWES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between Henry III of England and
-Montfort, Earl of Leicester. Fought, May 14th, 1264. The Royal
-army was overthrown, and the King, his brother and son Prince
-Edward, were taken prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEXINGTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The first battle fought between
-Great Britain and her revolted colonies of America; gained by the
-British, who destroyed the stores of the colonists, but they lost in battle
-273 men killed and wounded. Fought, April 19th, 1775.</p>
-
-
-<p>LEYDEN, SIEGE OF.&mdash;A memorable siege sustained against the
-armies of Spain; 6000 of the inhabitants died during the siege, of
-famine and pestilence, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1574. A University was afterwards founded
-in commemoration of this event.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>LIEUTENANT.&mdash;An officer who supplies the place of a superior
-in his absence. In military affairs the second commissioned officer in a
-company of infantry, cavalry or artillery. In ships of war, a lieutenant
-is next in rank to the captain.</p>
-
-
-<p>LIGNY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 16th, 1815, just before the
-celebrated battle of Waterloo, between the Prussians under Blucher,
-and the French commanded by Napoleon. The French gained the
-victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>LINCELLES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the allied English and
-Dutch armies and the French, in which the French were defeated
-August 18th, 1793. In this battle, General Lake commanded the 3rd
-battalion of Foot Guards, who so much distinguished themselves. Colonel
-Bosville, of the Coldstreams, was killed; the French lost 11 cannon.</p>
-
-
-<p>LINCOLN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;A battle was fought at Lincoln
-between the armies of the Princess Maud and King Stephen of England.
-Stephen was defeated and captured, February 2nd, 1141. Another
-battle was fought here between the Dauphin of France and Henry III
-of England. This was a bloody engagement, in which the French and
-their English adherents were completely defeated, and Louis withdrew
-his pretensions to the English crown, May 19th, 1217.</p>
-
-
-<p>LINLITHGOW-BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the forces
-of the Earl of Angus, and the forces of Lenox, who fought to get possession
-of the person of James V, then a minor. Lenox was slain by Sir
-James Hamilton, 1525.</p>
-
-
-<p>LIPPSTADT, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most bloody battles ever
-fought in the world. Called also <em>Lutzen</em>, which see.</p>
-
-
-<p>LISLE, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Besieged by the Duke of Marlborough and
-the Allies, and taken after three months, in 1708. Restored at the
-treaty of Utrecht, 1713&mdash;this siege is accounted one of the most famous
-in modern times. It also sustained a severe bombardment by the
-Austrians in the revolutionary war, but they were obliged to raise the
-siege, October 7th, 1792.</p>
-
-
-<p>LISSA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle, fought December 5th, 1757,
-closed the campaign, in which the King of Prussia vanquished Prince<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span>
-Charles of Lorraine; 6000 Austrians were slain. Laid in ashes by the
-Russians in 1707.</p>
-
-
-<p>LODI, BATTLE OF THE BRIDGE OF.&mdash;One of the earliest of
-Napoleon’s victories. Fought in Italy, May 10th, 1796. Napoleon commanded
-the French army, which was opposed to the Austrians, under General
-Beaulieu, and obtained a splendid victory after a bloody engagement,
-in which several thousands of the Imperialists were slain, and many thousands
-made prisoners. Napoleon nearly lost his life at this battle, and
-was wounded in the hip with a bayonet. One of his great Marshals in
-this battle, a sergeant, saved him, and was commissioned on the spot.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="LND" id="LND"></a></div>
-<p>LONDONDERRY, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Memorable for a siege during the
-reign of James II, of England. James’ army, under the French General
-Rosene, retired with the loss of 8000 men, after having practised almost
-unparalleled cruelties upon the inhabitants of the surrounding villages,
-April 20th, 1689.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="LON" id="LON"></a></div>
-<p>LONGBEARDS <span class="fs70">OR</span> LONGOBARDS.&mdash;Hence Lombardy. The
-Longobards or Longbeards, who had overrun and taken possession of the
-great plain of the basin of the Po, retained to some extent their separate
-independence even under the empire of Germany. They had their own
-laws and customs, and were in the habit of crowning the emperor, or
-whoever else was acknowledged, as king of Lombardy. Hence, too, Napoleon
-wore the iron crown of their kings. This famed symbol of kingship
-was deposited in the Cathedral of Monza; it is a broad circle of gold, set
-with large rubies, emeralds, and sapphires, and was secured in an ornamented
-cross placed over an altar, closely shut up within folding doors of
-gilt brass. The crown is kept in an octagonal aperture in the centre of
-the cross. It is composed of six equal pieces of beaten gold, joined
-together by close hinges, and the jewels and embossed gold ornaments are
-set in a ground of blue and gold enamel, interesting as exhibiting an
-exact resemblance to the workmanship of the enamelled part of a gold
-ornament now in the Ashmolean Museum, which once belonged to King
-Alfred. But for those who have an appetite for relics, the most important
-part of this crown is a narrow iron rim, which is attached to the
-inside of it all round. The rim is about three-eighths of an inch broad,
-and a tenth of an inch thick, made out of one of the nails used in the
-Crucifixion. The crown is said to have been presented to Constantine
-by his mother; and the sacred iron rim, from which it has its name, was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span>
-to protect him in battle. And, although this iron has now been exposed
-more than fifteen hundred years, there is not a speck of rust upon it.</p>
-
-
-<p>LONG ISLAND, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British troops under
-Sir William Howe and the revolted Americans, who suffered a severe
-defeat, after a well fought action, losing 2000 men in killed and wounded
-and 1000 prisoners. The Americans were pursued to New York, but
-were saved by a thick fog, which enabled them to escape. Fought,
-August 27th, 1776.</p>
-
-
-<p>L’ORIENT, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Lord Bridport achieved a memorable
-victory over the French fleet, June 23rd, 1795. The British squadron
-actually engaged consisted of 10 ships of the line&mdash;the enemy’s, of
-12 ships of the line, 11 frigates, and some smaller vessels. After an
-action of three hours the French got into port, leaving three sail of
-the line in the possession of the British. The loss of the French was
-severe.</p>
-
-
-<p>LOSSES IN GREAT BATTLES.&mdash;The <cite>Military Gazette</cite> of Vienna
-makes the following comparisons of the forces engaged in the battle of
-Solferino and in former great battles:&mdash;“At that battle there were more
-than 300,000 soldiers in the field, and the losses must have amounted
-to at least from 30,000 to 37,000. At the battle of Leipsic, which
-lasted for three days, the 330,000 allies had against them 260,000 French;
-the latter lost 30,000 prisoners and 45,000 killed and wounded, and the
-former 48,000 killed and wounded. After Leipsic, the most sanguinary
-battle was that of Moscow, on the 7th of September, 1812. The Russians
-had 130,000 men and 600 pieces of cannon, the French 134,000
-men and 587 cannon; the former lost 58,000 and the latter 50,000; the
-losses were, therefore, 40 per cent. At Bautzen, on the 21st of May,
-1813, there were 110,000 Russians and Prussians opposed to 150,000
-French; the latter lost 20,000 men and the allies 15,000, and not a
-single cannon. At Wagram, on the 5th and 6th of July, 1809, we had
-137,000 men, and Napoleon 170,000; we lost 20,000 men and the enemy
-22,000. At Esling we were 70,000 against 85,000; we had 20,000
-killed and wounded, the enemy 13,000 killed; but he left in our hands
-33,000 prisoners, and was obliged to send 30,000 to Vienna to have their
-wounds attended to, so that out of the 160,000 men engaged about one-half
-were put <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">hors de combat</i>. At Austerlitz there were 70,000 French,
-as many Russians, and 13,000 Austrians; the losses were 21,000 Russians,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>
-with 160 pieces of cannon, 5,800 Austrians, and 10,000 French.
-At Jena there were 142,000 French against 150,000 Prussians. At
-Waterloo there were 170,000 men, of whom 70,000 were French, who
-lost 25,000 men and 250 cannon, whilst the Allies lost 31,000 men.”</p>
-
-<p>The following statistics of Mr. Haussener will complete the account of
-the losses in Great Battles:</p>
-
-<p>“The wars which have been waged from 1815 to 1864, have caused
-the death of 2,762,000 men, of whom 2,148,000 were Europeans, and
-614,000 from other quarters of the globe, which gives an average of
-43,800 per annum. The figures do not include the deaths caused by
-epidemics resulting from war. The most sanguinary hostilities of that
-period are these:&mdash;The Eastern war of 1856, in which 508,600 men
-fell in the following proportions: 256,000 Russians, 98,900 Turks,
-107,000 French, 45,000 English, and 2600 Italians. The Caucusus
-(1829&ndash;60) 330,000 men lost their lives. The revolt in India (1857&ndash;59)
-cost 196,000 lives. The Russo-Turkish war (1820&ndash;29) 193,000. The
-Polish insurrection (1831) 190,000. The whole of the French campaigns
-in Africa (1830&ndash;59) 147,000. The Hungarian insurrection
-142,000. The Italian war 129,870, of whom 96,874 died on the field
-or from their wounds; and 33,000 from various diseases. The total
-number of lives lost in Europe during the wars from 1793 to 1815
-amounted to 5,530,000, which gives for the twenty-three years an average
-of 240,434 deaths per year.”</p>
-
-
-<p>LUCKNOW, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Memorable in the Great Indian Mutiny.
-The following account of the gallant defence of a few Europeans at the
-Gateway, Lucknow, where General Neill fell, September 26th and 27th,
-1857, is abridged from the Account of Dr. A. C. Home, contained in
-“The Mutinies of Oude:”&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“There were present, including Dr. Home, nine sound men, two
-wounded officers, Captain Beecher and Lieutenant Swanson, and three
-wounded men: total, fourteen. Private McManus kept outside the doorway,
-sheltering himself behind a pillar, and killed so many of the assailants
-that at length he had only to raise his piece to cause all the enemy to
-leave their loopholes. The bodies of the dead Sepoys round the door
-were, in fact, a defence. Ryan and McManus actually rushed out and
-brought in a wounded officer who lay in a dhoolie in the adjoining street,
-returning in safety, although the ground was torn by musket balls about
-them. The conduct of Hallowell also was splendid. He always managed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
-to kill an enemy at a most critical moment, and at length shot the leader.
-Finally the Sepoys pushed a screen on wheels before them, to protect
-themselves from the Minié rifle, and set the building on fire, when the
-gallant little band retreated in good order to a shed at a short distance,
-and defended themselves afresh. Their cowardly assailants took this
-opportunity to massacre all the wounded in dhoolies near to the house
-first defended. This small company of heroes kept the foe at bay during
-the night. At daybreak, however, they heard firing, when Ryan suddenly
-jumped up and shouted, ‘Oh, boys! Them’s our own chaps!’ In
-about three minutes Captain Moorsom appeared at the entrance-hole of
-the shed, and they were brought off in safety.”</p>
-
-<p>The following is an account of Havelock’s relief of Lucknow:</p>
-
-<p>“It was thus the 19th of September before General Havelock was in a
-position to cross the Ganges for a third time, and to advance with an
-efficient force to relieve the long-beleaguered garrison at Lucknow. On
-that day the army of relief crossed the river by a bridge of boats, and
-encamped on the other side. General Havelock’s force consisted of about
-2000 European infantry, the Sikh regiment of Ferozepore, three batteries
-of field artillery, and a handful of volunteer cavalry. The rebels mustered
-above 40,000 strong, but their numerical superiority only served to
-enhance the prowess of their conquerors. The first engagement took
-place on the 21st of September, at the village of Mungarwar, and resulted
-in the total defeat of the mutineers. Five field-pieces and guns in position
-were taken, two of the former being captured by the volunteer cavalry,
-led on to the charge by General Outram in person. From this point the
-army pushed on by forced marches, without encountering any organized
-opposition, until it arrived before the city of Lucknow. Skirting the
-suburbs of that once stately capital, General Havelock forced his way
-through every obstacle, and, by the evening of the 25th, had relieved the
-heroic garrison. The relief was opportune. Two mines had already
-been driven under the chief works, and, in a few hours more, would have
-been loaded and sprung. The besieged would thus have been placed at
-the mercy of those who knew no mercy. The city, however, had still to
-be subdued. From several advantageous positions the enemy continued
-to fire upon the fort, and were only finally dislodged after a series of
-determined assaults. In these operations the loss of the British was
-very severe. General Neill, the brave and energetic saviour of Benares,
-and the inexorable avenger of the massacre at Cawnpore, was among the
-slain. With him fell major Cooper, in command of the artillery, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span>
-many other gallant spirits. Even now much remained to be done.
-Taking courage from their overwhelming numbers, the enemy soon closed
-again around the army of deliverance, and cut off their communications
-with Cawnpore. Encumbered with not less than 1000 women and children,
-and sick and wounded men, it would have been hazardous if not
-impossible to have attempted a march across a difficult country. Under
-these circumstances Sir James Outram, who had assumed the chief
-command, determined on remaining at Lucknow, and awaiting the
-arrival of re-inforcements. Sir Colin Campbell, the Commander-in-Chief,
-left Cawnpore with a strong force, on the 9th of November, to relieve
-Lucknow. He succeeded, by a well-conceived stratagem on the 12th, in
-bringing away the garrison with the women and children, and marched
-for Cawnpore. On the third day after leaving Lucknow, General Havelock
-died from the effects of dysentery, brought on by excessive fatigue
-and anxiety. In December, Cawnpore was attacked by 25,000 rebels
-with fifty guns, and Sir Colin Campbell was summoned from the neighbourhood
-of Lucknow for its defence. He arrived in season to save the
-place, after a severe action with the enemy. Sir Colin remained at
-Cawnpore, collecting a large force for the final siege of Lucknow. During
-the time which was thus occupied, several actions of minor importance
-took place; but it was not till the 17th of March that Lucknow was
-recovered, after a short but active siege. After its fall, the kingdom of
-Oude, of which it was the capital, was speedily restored to obedience and
-comparative tranquillity.”</p>
-
-
-<p>LUNEVILLE, PEACE OF.&mdash;Between the French Republic and the
-Emperor of Germany, concluded February 9th, 1801.</p>
-
-
-<p>LUTZEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the French, commanded by
-Napoleon, and the combined armies of Russia and Prussia, commanded by
-General Wittgenstein, May 2nd, 1813. This bloody battle opened the
-campaign of that year, and though each side claimed the victory, it was
-manifestly on the side of France. Marshal Duroc was mortally wounded
-in this battle.</p>
-
-
-<p>LUTZENGEN <span class="fs70">OR</span> LUTZEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Gustavus Adolphus,
-King of Sweden, fought this battle against the Emperor. In this
-sanguinary engagement Gustavus was basely killed in the victory,
-November 6th, 1632. This Gustavus was the most illustrious hero<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
-of his times, and the chief support of the German Protestants, and an
-ally to Charles I of England.</p>
-
-
-<p>LUXEMBURG.&mdash;Considered the strongest fortress in the world,
-taken by the French in 1543; then by the Spaniards in 1544; again by
-the French in 1684&mdash;restored to Spain in 1697. Again taken by the
-French, in 1701, and given to the Dutch, and ceded to the Emperor at
-the peace of 1713. During last century it also sustained a long and
-memorable siege, June 17th, 1795. The garrison surrendered to the
-French, and were liberated on parole.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="M" id="M"></a>M.</h3>
-
-
-<p>MAESTRICHT.&mdash;Taken by the Prince of Parma in 1579; reduced
-by the Prince of Orange, in 1632. Louis XIV took it in 1675. William,
-Prince of Orange, invested it in 1676; restored to the Dutch
-in 1678; besieged by the French, in 1748. In 1793, attacked by the
-French, who took it the following year; but in 1814, it was delivered up
-to the allied forces.</p>
-
-
-<p>MAGENTA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought June 4th, 1859, between the
-French and Austrians. The French gained a splendid victory, the Allies
-losing 12,000, the Austrians 15,000. The latter rapidly retreated and
-evacuated Milan. The battle of Magenta was begun by the Austrians,
-who, although in full retreat towards Pavia, were ordered to change their
-front, and attack the advanced guard of the Allies, who had crossed the
-Ticino at Buffalora. Suddenly 25,000 Austrians attacked a battalion of
-Zouaves, together with two battalions of grenadiers; a close and deadly fire
-was now exchanged. Then the Austrians charged with the bayonet. At
-12 o’clock the French were retiring, having lost General Leclere, a colonel,
-a lieutenant colonel, and 12 officers, when reinforcements appearing on
-their left, they rallied and forced the Austrians to withdraw. The bold
-assault of General McMahon decided the victory; and for his brave
-conduct and efficient generalship, Napoleon conferred on him the rank of
-Marshal, with the title of Duke of Magenta. General Guyalai brought
-into the action 120,000 men; he left 20,000 of them wounded or dead on
-the battle-field: 7000 were taken prisoners; 5 flags, 4000 knapsacks,
-12,000 muskets and 4 guns, fell into the hands of the French.
-During the battle of Magenta the bridge and the village of Magenta were
-taken and retaken seven times. It was only at half-past eight at night
-that the Austrians withdrew. Their retreat was slow and orderly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>MAIDA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the French, commanded
-by General Regnier, and the British, under Major General Sir John
-Stuart. The French were nearly double the number of the British, yet
-the latter gained a most glorious victory on the “Plains of Maida,” a
-village of Calabria. The loss of the French was very great, July
-4th, 1806. The British commander, from this victory, has historically
-received the name of the “Hero of the Plains of Maida.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MAJOR.&mdash;This officer holds the rank between a Lieutenant Colonel
-and a Captain. A Major General is one who commands a division, next
-above rank to a Brigadier General.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="MAL" id="MAL"></a></div>
-<p>MALAKOFF AND REDAN, ATTACK ON THE.&mdash;In the celebrated
-Crimean war. The following is a good description of the attack:</p>
-
-<p>“General Pelissier divided his attacking force into three columns,
-numbering altogether about 25,000 men. The first, under General Mayran,
-was to assault the extreme left of the Russian line; the second, in
-the centre, led by General Brunet, was to turn the Malakoff on its proper
-left; while the third, under General d’Autemarre, was to operate upon
-its right. The Imperial Guard was held in reserve, and two batteries of
-artillery occupied the Mamelon. The signal for advance was to be three
-rockets fired from the Lancaster battery, which General Pelissier had
-chosen as his position of observation. By an unfortunate mistake, General
-Mayran mistook the flaming fuse of a bomb-shell for the rocket, and
-eager for the fray, led his division rapidly forward. It was now apparent
-that the enemy had full notice of our intended attack. Not only the
-batteries were fully armed, but the steamers were anchored so as to be
-able to pour their broadsides upon the French columns. Generals Saurin
-and De Failly, obedient to the commands of their General, dashed forward,
-followed at an impetuous pace by their troops. Then the Russians
-opened fire from their batteries and steamers, and a hurricane of shot and
-shell arrested the career of the brave French; and their leader, General
-Mayran, paid the penalty of his mistake, falling mortally wounded at their
-head. General Pelissier had now arrived upon the scene of action, and
-perceiving the error, at once ordered up reinforcements to the threatened
-division, which, strengthened by the addition of the voltigeurs of the
-Guard, some regiments of the line, and a battalion of grenadiers, was
-enabled to maintain its position under the orders of General De Failly,
-who succeeded to the command, though prevented by the deadly fire of
-the enemy from advancing further. The centre column, under General<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span>
-Brunet, had little better success than the other division. In fact, the
-unlucky mistake of Mayran, in precipitating the attack, had disordered
-the entire plan of advance, and aroused the Russians, and enabled them
-to concentrate their strength for defence. General Brunet himself was
-struck in the chest by a musket-ball; and his division was forced to retire
-to the trenches with great loss. General D’Autemarre, who commanded
-the left attack, no sooner saw the preconcerted signal, than he gave the
-word to advance, and the 5th Foot Chasseurs and the first battalion of
-the 19th regiment of the line, deploying to the left, along the crest of the
-ravine which there enters the town, carried the entrenchment which connects
-it with the Malakoff, and succeeded in entering the fortification.
-The sappers who accompanied the advance immediately planted ladders,
-the remainder of the regiments hurried forward, and the eagles of the
-French army waved aloft, encouraging the repulsed troops of the other
-divisions to renewed exertions.</p>
-
-<p>While the French were thus straining every nerve against tremendous
-odds, and with fearful loss, to perform their parts in the achievements of
-the day, the English were none the less eager to win their laurels before
-the Great Redan. Sir George Brown, just returned from the Kertch
-expedition, was intrusted with the direction of the assaulting party, composed
-of detachments of the Light, Second, and Fourth Divisions. The
-plan of attack was, that the force should be divided into three columns;
-the Light Division to storm the right of the Redan at the re-entering
-angle; the Fourth Division was to attack the left flank of the fortification
-at a similar position; while the Second was to storm the apex of the
-Redan, as soon as the other divisions had established themselves in the
-work. Colonel Yea, of the 7th Fusiliers, led the storming party of the
-Light Division, composed of the 7th, 23rd, 33rd, and 34th. Colonel Shirley
-held the 19th, 77th, and 85th in reserve. The troops advanced in
-good order from the trenches, preceded by a covering party of Rifles, and
-dashed forward to the attack. They had, however, several hundred yards
-of broken ground to cross; and the enemy, well prepared for their reception,
-poured from every embrasure such a storm of shot and shell as effectually
-broke their ranks. Colonel Yea and the regimental officers
-gallantly endeavoured to animate their men to the assault, and led them
-fearlessly forward against the belching fire of the batteries. As the brave
-old colonel was cheering on his men, a shower of grape swept along, and
-he rolled in the agonies of death, struck at once in the head and stomach.
-His brave companions fell around him dead or wounded; and the regiments,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span>
-unable to face such a sheet of fire, fell back disordered to the
-trenches, leaving nearly a third of their number on the field.</p>
-
-<p>On the left attack, Sir John Campbell, with the Fourth Division, exhibited
-extraordinary courage, and led his men forward to the attack with
-tremendous energy. Here again was the tragedy of the Light Division
-repeated. The men were mowed down as they left the trenches, and Sir
-John, like Colonel Yea, fell cheering on his men. The loss was terrific.
-The Second Division, to whom had been reserved the duty of attacking
-the apex of the Redan, seeing the failure of the flank assaults, desisted
-from the attempt, and withdrew to the trenches, though having suffered
-considerably from the enemy’s fire.</p>
-
-<p>The only success of the day was that achieved by the Third Division
-under General Eyre, who had been ordered by Lord Raglan to attack the
-Cemetery Batteries, at the head of the ravine leading to the Dockyard
-Creek. The brigade consisted of the 9th, 18th, 28th, and 44th regiments.
-Four volunteers from each regiment, under Major Fielden, of
-the 44th regiment, were selected to feel the way, and cover the advance.
-The 18th Royal Irish formed the storming party. They possessed themselves
-of the Cemetery with but little difficulty; and then four companies
-of the 18th dashed forward, so eager were they for the fray, and actually
-entered the town, and established themselves in the Russian houses.
-They were followed by the 9th, under Colonel Borton. The enemy’s
-batteries now opened a fierce fire on the daring handful of men; and
-although they could not drive them from their position, effectually prevented
-their retreat, from four o’clock in the morning until eight at night.
-During that time they suffered terribly from thirst, and some of the brave
-fellows actually crawled from the houses, reached the English lines, and
-returned with cans of water to their comrades. In this way a letter was
-convoyed asking for reinforcements; but General Eyre had already
-retired from the spot, and the two gallant regiments were left unsupported,
-to bear the brunt of the enemy’s fire until nightfall, when the
-remnant of them withdrew from their dangerous post, and rejoined the
-main body.</p>
-
-<p>The failure of the English attack enabled the Russians to draw from
-the Redan reinforcements to repel the French under General D’Autemarre,
-who were so nearly redeeming the fortunes of the day at the
-Malakoff. Unable to contend against the forces now brought against
-them, the French were compelled to retire from the commanding position
-they had obtained. General Pelissier sent reinforcements; but it was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span>
-impossible a single division, exposed to an appalling flank fire and an
-immensely superior force in front, could long sustain such an unequal
-contest. They fought bravely; but on that fatal day bravery availed but
-little, and they, too, added to the numbers of the defeated.</p>
-
-<p>Such was the great disaster of the 18th of June, the anniversary of that
-day when the two nations, now brothers in defeat, were opposed to each
-other on the plains of Waterloo. Want of concert between the generals&mdash;and
-to Pelissier the blame is mainly due&mdash;resulted in a most disheartening
-repulse, and the loss of thousands of brave men; the English casualties
-amounting to no less than 251 killed (including 21 officers); 70
-officers and 1130 men wounded; and 22 missing. The French loss
-must have been greater.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MALPLAQUET, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The Allies under the Duke of
-Marlborough and Prince Eugene, gained this battle, September 11th,
-1709, over the French, commanded by Marshal Villars. The armies of
-each consisted of nearly 120,000 choice men. It was attended with
-immense slaughter on both sides, the Allies losing 18,000 men, which terrible
-loss was but ill-repaid by the capture of Mons, which followed the
-victory.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="MAM" id="MAM"></a></div>
-<div><a name="QUA" id="QUA"></a></div>
-<p>MAMELON AND QUARRIES.&mdash;The capture of the Mamelon and
-the action of the Quarries, took place in the great siege of Sebastopol.
-The former was gallantly stormed and taken by our allies the French
-and the action of the Quarries redoubted to the indomitable pluck of
-British soldiers. The following is a good account of the action and
-capture of the fort:</p>
-
-<p>“A third general bombardment opened on the 6th of June. At half-past
-two o’clock in the afternoon, the fire of 157 English and 300 French
-guns and mortars simultaneously opened upon the town. The Russian
-reply was feeble, and inflicted but little damage upon our batteries. A
-fierce cannonade was maintained by the Allies during that and the following
-day, and towards evening, on the 7th, a grand combined attack was
-made by the English on the Quarries, and by the French on the Mamelon.
-The former of these works, as the name implies, were pits from
-which stone had formerly been excavated for the buildings in the town,
-and occupied a position between the head of our advanced sap and the
-Great Redan, the most formidable work of Russian defence, and which
-in the general plan of attack had been apportioned to the English. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span>
-Mamelon, as it was specifically called&mdash;the general term <em>mamelon</em>, a
-rounded hill, describing its appearance&mdash;was the foremost of two similar
-eminences, at a short distance from each other. The one nearest the
-town was surmounted by the Malakoff tower and works, and was the
-most elevated and commanding position of the enemy’s line of defence,
-the Mamelon, or Mamelon Vert, as the French designated it, had long
-since lost all claim to the latter name, being excavated into trenches and
-rifle-pits, from which a most annoying fire was maintained upon the
-French lines. Our Allies had already made a very gallant though unsuccessful
-attempt at its capture; and it was under the cover of its guns
-that the Russian sortie of the 22nd of March was made.</p>
-
-<p>It was then absolutely necessary that an endeavour should be made by
-the besieging army to carry these formidable works, which presented such
-obstacles to their advance; and accordingly the evening of the 7th of
-June was fixed for the assault. At about six o’clock, the French battalions,
-chosen for the assault, consisting of the Algerine Zouaves,
-detachments of the 61st, 7th, and 50th regiments of the line, and of the
-<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chasseurs-à-Pied</span>, and Imperial Guard, about 1200 men in all, moved
-up to the front, closely followed by the reserve or working party, to follow
-the attacking column, and secure possession of the works. This second
-column, commanded by General Brunet, comprised a battalion of the
-<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chasseurs-à-Pied</span>, and the 11th, 24th, 69th, and 16th regiments of the
-line. General Bosquet was entrusted with the entire direction of the
-assault.</p>
-
-<p>Our attacking force was composed of detachments from the Light and
-Second Divisions. About 400 men from the 18th, 7th, 47th, 49th, were
-told off to lead the assault, under the immediate command of Colonel
-Shirley, of the 90th regiment. The working parties were selected from
-remaining regiments of the Light Division; the main body remaining
-under arms in reserve.</p>
-
-<p>Immediately the signal rockets took their flight towards the town, the
-attacking columns darted forward. The active French troops swarmed
-up the sides of the Mamelon, and in a few moments were in hand-to-hand
-contest with the Russian defenders. With an unusual supineness the
-batteries of the town offered no impediment to the advance. It might
-be that the fierce bombardment to which for twenty-four hours they had
-been exposed, had temporarily silenced them. Whatever might be the
-cause, but little opposition was sustained by, and scarcely any loss inflicted
-on the attacking columns, who reached the parapet on the crown of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span>
-hill at a rapid pace. Here the enemy made a stand, and for a brief space
-struggled bravely to maintain their position. It was, however, but an
-ineffectual effort. The French fought with the utmost daring; and the
-enemy giving way before the impetuous onslaught, retreated down the
-hill, the French in eager pursuit. In the valley, however, the Russians
-received large reinforcements from the Malakoff Tower on the opposite
-eminence, and a fierce fire was opened on the French from the batteries
-of the Malakoff. Then the tide of battle turned; and the hitherto
-assailants, out-numbered, were driven up the hill, contesting every foot
-of ground. Some of the Zouaves, with characteristic daring, evading
-the attacking force, pressed onwards, and, as on the previous occasion,
-positively entered the Malakoff, and spiked some of the guns. Our
-allies, unable to bear the vigorous charge and overwhelming numbers of
-the enemy, who now pressed upon them, were forced to relinquish the
-hold they had obtained upon the Mamelon, and retreated over the brow
-of the hill, reluctantly relinquishing the advantage they had gained.
-The French, after a brilliant attack, were driven back by the reinforced
-defenders of the hill, and the Russians were once more masters of the
-Mamelon.</p>
-
-<p>General Bosquet, however, was not the man to accept a repulse as a final
-defeat. Reforming the column in the trenches at the foot of the hill, and
-sending fresh troops to their assistance, he prepared for a second assault.
-This time the French, eager to retrieve their disaster, rushed forward with
-emulous bravery, and again the hill side was covered with the advancing
-columns, pressing onwards to the attack. Trench after trench was carried
-and in a few moments the assailers again occupied the topmost parapet.
-The Russians fought desperately; but no courage could withstand the
-fierce valour of the French. The enemy were hurled down the hills, and
-our allies, mad with excitement, rushed after them, in a rapid bayonet
-charge, covering the ground with the killed and wounded, and driving
-the flying enemy to the refuge of the Malakoff. Meanwhile the working
-party in their rear had speedily thrown up parapets and breastworks on
-the Russian side; and although the guns from the town and the shipping
-in the harbour played vigorously upon the hill, they were enabled to hold
-their important acquisition.</p>
-
-<p>Farther to the right, the French had also attacked and carried, after
-considerable resistance, a line of works leading to and defending Careening
-Bay, and connected with the works of the Mamelon, known as the White
-Works. A number of guns were taken, and the French were thus in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span>
-possession of an access to the great harbour, and enabled to throw up
-works commanding the shipping.</p>
-
-<p>We have thus far related the varying fortunes of the French attack.
-Let us now turn to the English assault on the Quarries. Simultaneously
-with the advance of our allies, Colonel Campbell threw his small force into
-the Russian works, experiencing but trifling opposition; and congratulating
-himself upon having so easily achieved his object. Advancing
-beyond the Quarries towards the Redan, there is no doubt the adventurous
-English might even have entered that great work itself, so great was
-the confusion among the Russians, caused by the attack on the Mamelon,
-had they been in sufficient force to warrant such a feat. The enemy,
-however, soon mustered their strength, and Colonel Campbell was forced,
-after a stubborn resistance, to yield his position. Three times did the
-small British force retreat from the Quarries, and as many times they
-retook them with the bayonets. At length they were enabled to throw
-up an earthwork, which ensured their possession of this important position.
-In one of the Russian attacks, an instance of individual prowess occurred,
-which obtained for the performer of it the rare honour of being named,
-though a non-commissioned officer, in Lord Raglan’s despatch. The
-assailing party had wavered a little before the sharp fire from the British
-muskets, when Lance-Corporal Quin, of the 47th, darted out of the work
-towards a Russian officer and four men, who had advanced somewhat in
-front of the main body of the enemy. With the butt-end of his musket
-he brained one of the soldiers, bayoneted a second and the other two
-precipitately fled from the doughty corporal. Then collaring the officer,
-and administering a gentle stimulant with the point of his bayonet to
-quicken his advance, he dragged him a prisoner into the work, in less
-time than we have occupied to tell the tale.</p>
-
-<p>The enemy’s loss must been very great, judging by that which the
-victors sustained in the two attacks. The French lost about 60 officers,
-and 2000 men killed and wounded; and the British, 35 officers, and 365
-rank and file.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MARSHAL, FIELD.&mdash;This rank is of modern date in the British
-army. It is the highest military rank in the army.</p>
-
-
-<p>MARSTON MOOR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle was the beginning
-of the misfortunes of Charles I of England&mdash;fought July 3rd, 1644.</p>
-
-<p>“The Scots and Parliamentarian army had joined, and were besieging
-York, when Prince Rupert, joined by the Marquis of Newcastle, determined<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
-to raise the siege. Both armies drew up on Marston Moor, to the
-number of 50,000, and the victory seemed long undecided between
-them. Rupert, who commanded the right wing of the Royalists, was
-opposed by Oliver Cromwell, who now first came into notice, at the
-head of a body of troops which he had taken care to levy and discipline.
-Cromwell was victorious; he pushed his opponents off the field, followed
-the vanquished, returned to a second engagement, and a second victory;
-the Prince’s whole train of artillery was taken, and the Royalists never
-after recovered the blow.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MERIDA.&mdash;<em>In Spain.</em>&mdash;Taken by the French in January, 1811.
-Near here the British army, under Lord Hill, defeated the French,
-under General Girard, after a severe engagement October 28th, 1811.
-The British took Merida from the French, July 1812, after a severe
-encounter,&mdash;General Hill himself leading the combined armies of Britain
-and Spain.</p>
-
-
-<p>MILAN.&mdash;French expelled from it by Charles V, of Germany, 1525.
-Seized again by the French, June 30, 1796. Retaken by the Austrians
-in 1799; regained by the French, May 31, 1800. Napoleon crowned
-with the Iron crown, at Milan, May 26, 1805. (See <em><a href="#LON">Longbeards</a></em> or
-<em><a href="#LON">Longobards</a></em>). This city, celebrated for the Milan decrees against all
-continental intercourse with England, issued by Napoleon, December
-17th, 1807. Here an insurrection occurred against the Austrians, March
-18th, 1848, which resulted in a battle, and flight of the viceroy and troops.</p>
-
-
-<p>MILITIA.&mdash;Supposed to have been introduced into England by King
-Alfred. The English volunteers and militia, a splendid body of men,
-who have more than once materially assisted Government in times of
-necessity. The Canadian Volunteers are a body of men almost equal to
-the soldiers of the line; and during the late Fenian excitement, have shown
-to the whole world that a brave man delights to defend his hearth and
-home, and that “<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">dulce est mori pro patriâ</i>.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MINDEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, August 1st, 1759, between the
-English, Hessians and Hanoverians, on the one side, and the French on
-the other. The Allies were commanded by Prince Ferdinand, and under
-him Lord George Sackville. The Allies gained a complete victory, and
-pursued the French to the very ramparts of Minden. Lord Sackville,
-who commanded the Allied cavalry, for some disobedience of orders, on his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span>
-return to England was tried by court martial and dismissed the service,
-but was afterwards restored.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOCKERN, BATTLES OF.&mdash;Between the French, under Eugène
-Beauharnois, and the allied Russian and Prussian army, which was
-signally defeated with great loss, April, 1813. There was another
-bloodier battle fought here, October 14th, 1813, between the same
-contending armies; five times Mockern was taken and retaken during
-this conflict.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOHATZ, BATTLES OF.&mdash;<em>In Hungary.</em>&mdash;Here, in 1526, Louis,
-King of Hungary, was defeated by the Turks, under Solyman II, with
-the loss of 22,000 men. Another battle was fought here between the
-Christians, commanded by Prince Charles of Lorraine, and the Turks,
-who were defeated with the loss of 10,000 men, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1687.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOHILON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Russians, under the
-celebrated Prince Bagration, and the French, under Marshal Davoust.
-This was one of the most bloody engagements in the campaign of 1812.
-The Russians were totally defeated, with immense loss in killed and
-wounded; fought, July 23rd, 1812.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOLWITZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Prussians and Austrians.
-The Prussians were commanded by Frederick III, who obtained a great
-and important victory. An immense number of killed and wounded on
-the side of the Austrians was the result of this sanguinary battle.
-Austria being at the time in alliance with Great Britain, the consequence
-of the victory seriously affected the interest of that country. Fought,
-April 10th (March 30th), 1741.</p>
-
-
-<p>MONTEBELLO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought May 20th, 1859, between
-the Austrians and French. “On the 20th May, a severe action was
-fought at Montebello, which lasted six hours. The Austrians
-appear, in the first instance, to have taken Montebello from the French,
-and to have been afterwards expelled by the French. A desperate hand
-to hand conflict took place in the village, which had to be carried, house
-after house. The Austrians, after the battle, evacuated Casteggio, and
-retired along the Creatisma road.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MONTE VIDEO.&mdash;Taken by storm, by the British force, under Sir
-Samuel Auchmuty, February 3rd, 1807, with a terrible loss of nearly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span>
-two-thirds of his army. It was evacuated, July 7th, same year, in consequence
-of the severe repulse of the British at Buenos Ayres.</p>
-
-
-<p>MONTEREAU, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, February 18th, 1814,
-between the Allied army and the French, the latter commanded by
-Napoleon himself. In this desperate engagement, the Allies were defeated
-with great loss in killed and wounded. This battle was one of the last
-ever gained by Napoleon. Four months after he was ruined at Waterloo.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOODKEE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In India.</em>&mdash;Between the British and
-Sikhs. The advanced guard of the British was attacked by the Sikh
-forces, but the latter were repulsed and driven back three miles, losing
-great numbers of men and 15 pieces of cannon, December 18th, 1845.
-Sir Robert Sale was mortally wounded in this battle, being in his sixty-fifth
-year. Lady Sale signalized herself during the two memorable
-retreats from Afghanistan.</p>
-
-
-<p>MORGARTEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Swiss and Austrians.
-The Swiss numbered 1300, the Austrians 20,000. Fought, November
-15th, 1315. “The 15th November, 1315, dawned; the sun darted his
-first rays on the shields and armour of the advancing host; and this
-being the first army ever known to have attempted the frontiers of the
-Cantons, the Swiss viewed its long line with various emotions. Montfort
-de Tettnang led the cavalry into the narrow pass of Morgarten, and soon
-filled the whole space between the Mountain (Mount Sattel) and the
-lake. Fifty men, on the eminence above Morgarten, raised a sudden
-shout, and rolled down heaps of rocks and stones among the crowded
-ranks. The confederates on the mountain, perceiving the impression
-made by this attack, rushed down in close array, and fell upon the flank
-of the disordered column. With massy clubs they dashed in pieces the
-armour of the enemy, and dealt their blows and thrusts with long pikes.
-The narrowness of the defile admitted of no evolutions, and a slight
-frost having injured the road, the horses were impeded in all their
-motions; many leaped into the lake; all were startled; and at last the
-whole column of soldiers gave way, and suddenly fell back on the infantry;
-and these last, as the nature of the country did not allow them to open
-their files, were run over by the fugitives, and many of them trampled to
-death. A general rout ensued, and Duke Leopold was, with much
-difficulty, rescued by a peasant, who led him to Winterthur, where the
-historian of the times saw him arrive in the evening, pale, sullen and
-dismayed.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>MORTAR.&mdash;A short gun of an extraordinary large bore and close
-chamber, used for throwing bomb shells. The mortar was first made in
-England in 1543.</p>
-
-
-<p>MOSCOW, BURNING OF.&mdash;Entered by the French, September
-4th, 1812. “At length Moscow, with its domes, and towers, and palaces,
-appeared in sight; and Napoleon, who had joined the advance guard,
-gazed long and thoughtfully on that goal of his wishes. Murat went
-forward, and entered the gates with his cavalry; but as he passed
-through the streets, he was struck by the solitude which surrounded
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing was heard but the heavy tramp of his squadrons as he passed
-along, for a deserted and abandoned city was the meagre prize, for which
-such unparalleled efforts had been made. As night drew its curtains
-over the splendid capital, Napoleon entered the gates, and immediately
-appointed Mortier governor. In his directions, he commanded him to
-abstain from all pillage. For this, said he, you shall be answerable with
-your life. Defend Moscow against all, whether friend or foe. The
-bright moon rose over the mighty city, tipping with silver the domes of
-more than 200 churches, and pouring a flood of light over 1000 palaces,
-and the dwellings of 300,000 inhabitants. The weary army sunk
-to rest; but there was no sleep for Mortier’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Not the gorgeous and variegated palaces and their rich ornaments,
-nor the parks and gardens, and oriental magnificence that everywhere
-surrounded him, kept him wakeful, but the ominous foreboding that
-some dire calamity was hanging over the silent capital. When he
-entered it, scarcely a living soul met his gaze, as he looked down the
-long streets; and when he broke open the buildings, he found parlors,
-and bedrooms, and chambers all furnished and in order, but no occupants.
-The sudden abandonment of their homes, betokened some secret
-purpose yet to be fulfilled. The midnight moon was sailing over the
-city, when the cry of “Fire!” reached the ears of Mortier; and the
-first light over Napoleon’s falling empire was kindled, and the most
-wondrous scene of modern time commenced,&mdash;the burning of Moscow.
-Mortier, as governor of the city, immediately issued his orders, and was
-putting forth every exertion, when, at day-light, Napoleon hastened to
-him. Affecting to disbelieve the reports that the inhabitants were firing
-their own city, he put more rigid commands on Mortier to keep the
-soldiers from their work of destruction.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The marshal simply pointed to some iron covered houses that had not
-yet been opened, from every crevice of which smoke was issuing like
-steam from the sides of a pent up volcano. Sad and thoughtful, Napoleon
-turned toward the Kremlin, the ancient palace of the Czars, whose
-huge structure rose high above the surrounding edifices.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning, Mortier, by great exertions, was enabled to subdue
-the fire. But the next night, at midnight, the sentinels on watch, on
-the lofty Kremlin, saw below them the flames bursting through the
-houses and palaces, and the cry of “Fire!” “Fire!” passed through
-the city. The dread scene had now fairly opened. Fiery balloons were
-seen dropping from the air, and lighting upon the houses; dull explosions
-were heard on every side from the shut up dwellings, and the next
-moment a bright light burst forth, and the flames were raging through
-the apartments. All was uproar and confusion. The serene air and
-moonlight of the night before, had given way to the driving clouds, and
-a wild tempest that swept with the roar of the sea over the city. Flames
-arose on every side, blazing and crackling in the storm, while clouds of
-smoke and sparks, in an incessant shower, went driving toward the
-Kremlin. The clouds themselves seemed turned into fire, rolling in
-wrath over devoted Moscow. Mortier, crushed with the responsibility
-thus thrown over his shoulders, moved with his young guard amid this
-desolation, blowing up the houses, and facing the tempest and the
-flames, struggling nobly to arrest the conflagration. He hastened from
-place to place amid the blazing ruins, his face blackened with the smoke,
-and his hair and eyebrows seared with the fierce heat. At length, the
-day dawned, a day of tempest and of flame; and Mortier, who had
-strained every nerve for 36 hours, entered a palace, and dropped down
-with fatigue.</p>
-
-<p>The manly form and stalwart arm, that had so long carried death
-into the ranks of the enemy, at length gave way, and the gloomy
-marshal lay and panted in utter exhaustion. The day was one of tempest;
-and when night again enveloped the city it was one broad flame,
-wavering to and fro in the blast.</p>
-
-<p>The wind had increased to a perfect hurricane, and shifted from
-quarter to quarter, as if on purpose to swell the sea of fire, and extinguish
-the last hope. The fire was approaching the Kremlin, and already
-the roar of the flames and the crash of the falling houses, and the crackling
-of burning timbers, were borne to the ears of the startled Emperor.</p>
-
-<p>He arose and walked to and fro, stopping and convulsively gazing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>
-on the terrific scene. Murat, Eugène, and Berthier rushed into his
-presence, and on their knees besought him to flee; but he still clung to
-that haughty palace, as if it were his empire. But at length the shout,
-“The Kremlin on fire!” was heard above the roar of the conflagration,
-and Napoleon reluctantly consented to leave. He descended into the
-street with his staff, and looked about for a way of egress, but the flames
-blocked every passage. At length they discovered a postern gate, leading
-to the Moskwa, and entered it, but they had only entered still further
-into the danger. As Napoleon cast his eyes around the open space,
-girdled and arched with fire, smoke, and cinders, he saw one single street
-yet open, but all on fire.</p>
-
-<p>Into this he rushed, and amid the crash of falling houses, and raging
-of the flames, over burning ruins, through clouds of rolling smoke, and
-between walls of fire, he pressed on; and at length, half suffocated,
-emerged in safety from the blazing city, and took up his quarters in the
-imperial palace of Petrousky, nearly three miles distant.</p>
-
-<p>Mortier, relieved from his anxiety for the Emperor, redoubled his
-efforts to arrest the conflagration. His men cheerfully rushed into every
-danger. Breathing nothing but smoke and ashes,&mdash;canopied by flame,
-and smoke, and cinders,&mdash;surrounded by walls of fire that rocked to and
-fro, and fell with a crash amid the blazing ruins, carrying down with
-them red hot roofs of iron,&mdash;he struggled against an enemy, that no
-boldness could awe, or courage overcome.</p>
-
-<p>Those brave troops had heard the tramp of thousands of cavalry,
-sweeping battle without fear, but now they stood in still terror, before
-the march of the conflagration, under whose burning footsteps was heard
-the incessant crash of falling houses, and palaces, and churches. The
-continuous roar of the raging hurricane, mingled with that of the flames,
-was more terrible than the thunder of artillery; and before this new foe,
-in the midst of this battle of the elements, the awe-struck army stood
-powerless and affrighted. When night descended again on the city, it
-presented a spectacle, the like of which was never seen before, and which
-baffles all description: the streets of fire, the heavens a canopy of fire,
-and the entire body of the city a mass of fire, fed by a hurricane that
-whirled the blazing fragments in a constant stream through the air.
-Incessant explosions, from the blowing up of stores of oil, and tar, and
-spirits, shook the very foundations of the city, and sent volumes of
-smoke rolling furiously toward the sky. Huge sheets of canvas, on fire,
-came floating, like messengers of death, through the flames; the towers<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span>
-and domes of the churches and palaces, glowed with red-hot heat over
-the wild sea below, then tottering a moment on their bases, were hurled
-by the tempest into the common ruin.</p>
-
-<p>Thousands of wretches, before unseen, were driven by the heat from
-the cellars and hovels, and streamed in an incessant throng through the
-streets. Children were seen carrying their parents,&mdash;the strong the
-weak,&mdash;while thousands more were staggering under loads of plunder,
-they had snatched from the flames. This, too, would frequently take
-fire in the falling shower, and the miserable creatures would be compelled
-to drop it and flee for their lives. Oh, it was a scene of woe and fear
-indescribable! A mighty and close packed city of houses, and churches,
-and palaces, wrapt from limit to limit in flames, which are fed by a
-whirling hurricane, is a sight this world will seldom see. But this was
-all within the city. To Napoleon, without, the spectacle was still more
-sublime and terrific. When the flames had overcome all obstacles, and
-had wrapped everything in their red mantle, that great city looked like
-a sea of fire, swept by a tempest that drove it into vast billows.</p>
-
-<p>Huge domes and towers, throwing off sparks like blazing firebrands,
-now towered above these waves, and now disappeared in their maddening
-flow, as they rushed and broke high over tops, and scattered their spray
-of fire against the clouds. The heavens themselves seemed to have
-caught the conflagration, and the angry masses that swept it, rolled over
-a bosom of fire. Columns of flame would rise and sink along the surface
-of the sea, and huge volumes of black smoke suddenly shoot into the air,
-as if volcanoes were working below.</p>
-
-<p>The black form of the Kremlin alone towered above the chaos, now
-wrapped in flame and smoke, and again emerged into view, standing
-amid the scene of desolation and terror, like virtue in the midst of a
-burning world, enveloped but unscathed by the devouring elements.
-Napoleon stood and gazed upon this scene in silent awe. Though nearly
-three miles distant, the windows and walls of his apartment were so hot,
-that he could scarcely bear his hand against them. Said he, years afterwards,
-“It was the spectacle of a sea and billows of fire, a sky and
-clouds of flame; mountains of red rolling flame, like immense waves of
-the sea, alternately bursting forth, and elevating themselves to skies of
-fire, and then sinking into the ocean of flame below. Oh! it was the
-most grand, the most sublime, the most terrific sight the world ever
-beheld.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>MOSKWA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Also called the battle of <em>Borodino</em>,
-which see.</p>
-
-
-<p>MUSKET.&mdash;First used at the siege of Anasitti, 1414. Introduced
-generally into the British army, and bows and arrows laid aside, 1521.</p>
-
-
-<p>MUNCHENGRATZ <span class="fs70">AND</span> GITSCHIN, BATTLES OF.&mdash;Fought,
-28th June, 1866, between the Austrians and the Prussians. The <em>Times’</em>
-correspondent, with the Prussian army, gives the following account of
-these battles:</p>
-
-<p>“The Prussian leader calculated that if he made a demonstration of
-a careless march towards Munchengratz by the highroad and railway, the
-Austrians, who might be on the Mushey Berg, would lie there quiet till
-the heads of his columns had passed their position in order that their
-artillery might take the marching troops in reverse, and that he might
-himself in the meantime turn their position. By the same bait he also
-hoped to hold his adversaries on the Kaczowberg until their retreat was
-cut off. To effect this double object, the seventh division was to move
-from Turnau by a road on the south side of the Iser, whereby the village
-of Wschew crosses the road from Podoll to Sobotka, at Zdiar. It was
-then to take the Austrians on the Mushey Berg in rear&mdash;for this hill
-slopes gently on its reverse side towards a rivulet which forms the little
-lake of Zdiar. The division was afterwards to push on over the hill
-and strike the road from Munchengratz to Furstenbruck, between the
-village of Bossin and the former place. On the right bank of the river
-General Herwarth was to advance from Huhnerwasser on Munchengratz,
-cross the Iser, and occupy the town, throwing out at the same time a
-division to his left, which by Mohelnitz should take in reverse the
-defenders of the Kaczowberg. The divisions of Horne and Manstein
-were to push down the main road from Podoll, while strong reserves
-closed down to Podoll. A division of infantry was to cross at Huberlow
-and attack the Kaczowberg in front, while a division of cavalry kept the
-communications open between the divisions on the right bank of the
-river. A strong division of cavalry was also sent from Turnau to scour
-the country to Jicin in the direction of Josephstadt.</p>
-
-<p>About eight o’clock this morning, Prince Charles, with General Von
-Voigts-Retz, his chief of the staff, and General Stuhltnahl, his Quarter-master-General,
-came down to the bridge of Podoll, and almost immediately
-the Jagers, who formed the advanced guard of Horne’s division,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span>
-crossed the bridge, but not before an opening cannonade in the direction
-of Munchengratz told that Bittenfeld was already engaged. On a hill
-upon the northern bank there was a convenient spot from which to see
-the whole theatre of the combat, and here the Prussian staff went to
-watch the course of the action.</p>
-
-<p>Attention was called towards Munchengratz, where the progress of
-Bittenfeld’s attack could be traced by the puffs of white smoke which
-rose from the discharges of the artillery. The Prussian cannonade was
-seen to be slowly advancing, and that of the Austrian to be retiring,
-while a heavy cloud of black smoke rising close beside the town showed
-that the Austrians had retired from the right bank of the river and had
-burned the bridge. For a short time the fight was stationary, but in
-about a quarter of an hour a bright flash of flame and a much heavier
-smoke rising from the Austrian line told that an ammunition waggon had
-exploded. Their battery then ceased firing and rapidly retired, while a
-quick advance of the Prussian cannonade showed that Bittenfeld’s
-pioneers had quickly thrown their bridge, and that his corps was across
-the Iser. But the Austrians did not go far, for in a short time they
-were again in action in the direction of the Jung Bunzlau Road, and
-one battery was drawing off towards Furstenbruck. It then seemed
-that Bittenfeld had halted; the cannonade ceased in this direction.
-The heads of the Prussian columns were some way past the hill, and
-were pushing steadily towards Munchengratz, when the well-known puff
-of smoke rising from the dark firs on the Mushey Berg plateau showed
-that the Austrians had opened fire upon them. The battery on the hill
-did not appear to be more than four guns, and at first they fired slowly,
-nor did they do much execution. Their shells, projected from so great
-a height, went straight into the ground, and did not ricochet among the
-troops; but they were well aimed, and in most cases burst at the proper
-moment, and every now and then a man went down. A squadron of
-Uhlans was directed to pass close along the foot of the Mushey Berg, so
-that the guns on the plateau could not be depressed sufficiently to hurt
-them, and were to gain a steep path which leads to the summit between
-the highest point and Bossin, while an infantry brigade was to support
-the movement; but before this plan could be carried into execution the
-Seventh Division was heard engaged on the reverse side, and the Austrian
-battery quickly limbered up and retired. The guns were not intercepted
-by the Seventh Division; but here General Franscky made 600 prisoners
-from the infantry which was on the hill to support the battery.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span>
-While the Seventh Division was still engaged behind the Mushey Berg,
-four Austrian guns appeared on the summit of the hill, between Bossin
-and Wessely, and opened fire against the Prussian columns, who were
-now again advancing over the plain. But Franscky was pushing towards
-them, and his artillery threatened to enfilade them, so that they soon
-had to retire. The Seventh Division then struck the road between
-Munchengratz and Bossin, and attacked the latter village. Bittenfeld
-had already pushed towards it from Munchengratz, and supported this
-attack. The first round of Franscky’s artillery set fire to a house,
-which began to burn fiercely, and the flames were soon communicated to
-the next, for most of the cottages in this country are built of wood,
-which, dried in the hot summer sun, readily takes fire. After a sharp
-skirmish, the Austrians were driven from the village and retired in the
-direction of Furstenbruck, and they left here 200 prisoners; and General
-Herwarth von Bittenfeld had already captured 200.</p>
-
-<p>With the occupation of the village of Bossin ended the combat of
-Munchengratz, in which, by a series of strategic movements, with little
-fighting, and slight loss&mdash;for the Prussian killed, wounded, and missing
-do not number 100&mdash;Prince Frederick Charles has gained about twelve
-miles of country, and has taken 1000 prisoners, has turned the strong
-position of the Kaczowberg, and has effected his secure junction with the
-corps of General Bittenfeld.</p>
-
-<p>The corps of General von Schmitt marched yesterday from the neighbourhood
-of Podoll to Sobotka, and there, striking the road from Munchengratz
-to Gitschin, General von Schmitt changed the direction of his
-march to the left, and advanced towards Gitschin. He moved with his
-two divisions at some distance apart&mdash;that of General von Werder, or
-the Third Division, as it is named in the muster-roll of the army, led the
-way. Von Werder’s advanced guard consisted of the 2nd battalion of
-Jagers, and the 3rd battalion of the 42nd Regiment. In rear of these
-followed the three battalions of the regiment of the late King of Prussia,
-the two remaining battalions of the 42nd, and one battalion of the 14th
-Regiment, with one six-pounder and two four-pounder field-batteries.</p>
-
-<p>A strong Austrian force held the wood behind the first ravine, with its
-sharpshooters hidden behind the trunks of the fir-trees, with the view of
-compensating for the inferiority of their rifle to the Prussian needle-gun.
-Behind each marksman two soldiers were placed, whose only duty was to
-load their rifles and hand them to the picked men to whom the firing was
-intrusted. The Austrian artillery was placed behind the wood, so that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>
-it could bring a cross fire on the opening in the front through which the
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">chaussée</i> passes, and strike heavily on the Sobotka bank of the ravine and
-the open country beyond. As the Prussian advanced guard approached
-the ravine, the Austrian batteries opened fire upon them, and the marksmen
-from behind the trees also soon commenced a biting fire. The Jagers
-and the men of the 42nd quickly spread out as skirmishers, and, regardless
-of the withering fire to which they themselves were exposed, showered
-bullets from their quickly loaded arms against the defenders of the wood,
-while some of their artillery quickly brought into action tried to silence
-the Austrian guns. But the fight was unequal, the sharpshooters behind
-the trees could rarely be seen, and the fire of the Prussians did not tell
-much upon their concealed enemies, nor were their guns in sufficient
-force to engage successfully the more numerous Austrian pieces. The
-Jagers from among the trees were aiming well; the men of the 42nd
-were falling fast, and it seemed that the defenders would be able to hold
-the wood. But the rest of the Prussian division was coming up; more
-artillery was already in action; and the Austrian gunners began to fire
-with less effect. The regiment of the King of Prussia soon arrived. The
-Prussian soldiers, unable to make much impression with their fire on the
-riflemen in the trees, were already anxious to come to close quarters, and
-then General von Werder sent his men forward to take the woods with
-the bayonet. They were carried, but not without loss, for the Austrians
-retired from tree to tree, and only when pressed beyond the last skirt of
-the wood retired under cover of their guns and reserves to take up a
-position on the further brow of the next ravine. The musketry fire
-recommenced. The opponents stood on either bank of the hollow, and
-poured volley after volley into each other’s ranks, while the artillery,
-from positions on the flanks of both lines, sent their shells truly among
-their adversaries’ infantry. But here the needle-gun had more success,
-for the Austrians stood up clear against the sky, and soon the white uniforms
-began to go down quickly. No troops so ill-armed could have stood
-before the murderous fire which the Prussians directed against the opposite
-line. The Austrians did all that men could do; but, after losing
-fearfully, were obliged to fall back and take up their third position in the
-village of Lochow.</p>
-
-<p>It was now about seven o’clock in the evening; the combat had already
-lasted almost two hours, but here it was renewed more fiercely than ever.
-The Prussians, encouraged by their success&mdash;brave soldiers and bravely
-led&mdash;eagerly came to the attack. With hearts as big and with officers as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
-devoted, the Austrians stood with a desperate calmness to receive them.
-On both sides the fighting was hard; but at any distance the Austrian
-rifle had no chance against the needle-gun; and at close quarters the
-boyish soldiers of the Kaiser could not cope with the broad-shouldered
-men of Pomerania, who form the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps d’armée</i>, one division of which
-was here engaged. Yet for three-quarters of an hour the little village of
-Lochow was held, and the continuous rattle of the rifles and the heavy
-cannonade of the guns remaining almost stationary told the determination
-of the assault and the stoutness of the defence. But the Austrians were
-slowly forced from house to house and from orchard to orchard, and had
-to retreat to their last vantage ground on the top of the Gitschin bank of
-the fourth ravine.</p>
-
-<p>And here both sides re-engaged in the fight with the utmost fury. The
-defenders felt that this was their last standing-point, and on its maintenance
-depended the possession of Gitschin; the assailants knew that success
-here would almost certainly bring them to the object of all their
-exertions. The Prussian line soon formed on the top of the opposite
-bank to that held by the Austrians, and then began to fire rapidly against
-the brow where the Austrians stood. The latter returned the fire, but
-from necessity more slowly; still their guns smote the Prussian troops
-heavily, and the shells, bursting in front of the assailants’ line, caused
-many casualties. But the Pomeranians were highly excited, and it is
-said that a heavy mass of the Prussians dashed down the road and rushed
-up the opposite slope with their rifles at the charge. There a fierce
-struggle ensued. The strong men of Pomerania pressed hard against
-their lighter opponents, and pushed them beyond the brow of the slope
-on to the level plain; yet the lithe and active Austrians fought hard, and
-strove to drive their bayonets into the faces of their taller antagonists;
-but strength and weight told, for their more powerful adversaries urged
-them back foot by foot till a gap was clearly opened in the defenders’
-line. The musketry bullets had also told sharply on the Austrians, and
-they were obliged to retire. They drew off across the plain towards
-Gitschin, but not in rout. Slowly and sullenly they drew back, suffering
-awful loss in the open plain where the needle-gun had a fair range; but
-they fought for every yard of ground, ever turning to send among the
-advancing Prussians shots which were often truly aimed, but which
-formed no sufficient return for the showers of bullets which were rained
-upon themselves. For long the plain was the scene of the advancing
-combat, and it was not till near midnight that General von Werder occupied<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span>
-Gitschin. In the town the Austrians did not stand; they held some
-houses at the entrance for a short time, but these were carried, and then
-they retired rapidly towards the south. In their haste they left their
-hospitals; and here, as well as in Lochow, Von Werder’s division took a
-large number of prisoners.”</p>
-
-
-<p>MUTINY:&mdash;A memorable mutiny in the British fleet,</p>
-<div class="center">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">for an advance of wages</td><td class="tdl">April 15th, 1797;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Of the Nore</td><td class="tdl">June, 1797;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Of Admiral Mitchell’s fleet at Bantry Bay</td><td class="tdl">December, 1801;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Great Indian mutiny, begun</td><td class="tdl">March 27th, 1857.</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p>MYCALE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, September 22nd, 479 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>,
-between the Greeks and Persians. The Persians consisted of about
-100,000 men. They were completely defeated, many thousands of them
-killed, their camp burned, and the Greeks triumphantly embarked their
-troops, and sailed to Samos with an immense booty.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="N" id="N"></a>N.</h3>
-
-
-<p>NAAS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;A desperate engagement between a body
-of the King’s forces, consisting of the ancient Britons and the Armagh
-militia. The insurgent Irish, who had just begun the Great Rebellion
-of 1798, were 3000 strong, and were defeated with the loss of 300 killed
-and some hundreds wounded. Fought, May 24th, 1798.</p>
-
-
-<p>NARVA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This was the celebrated battle in which
-Peter the Great of Russia was totally defeated by the renowned Charles
-XII of Sweden. Fought, November 30th, 1700. The Russians
-amounted to 70,000 men, while the Swedes had only 20,000. The
-enemy lost 30,000 in killed, whilst as many surrendered to the conqueror.</p>
-
-
-<p>NASEBY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between Charles I of England and the
-Parliamentary army, under Fairfax and Cromwell. The main body of
-the Royal army was commanded by Lord Astley. Prince Rupert led
-the right wing, Sir Marmaduke Langdale the left, and the King himself
-headed the body of reserve. The forces of the Parliament gained the
-victory, the Royalists being obliged to abandon the field, losing all their
-cannon and baggage and 5000 men made prisoners. Fought, June 14th,
-1645.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>NAVY OF ENGLAND.&mdash;What the British Navy has done, and
-the number of vessels captured by it, is shown in the following table:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="p1 fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdcx bold" colspan="6">In the French War, ending 1802.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdcx smcap">Force.</td><td class="tdrz">French.</td><td class="tdrz">Dutch.</td><td class="tdrz">Spanish.</td><td class="tdc">Other<br />Nations.</td><td class="tdrz">Total.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Of the Line</td><td class="tdrz">45</td><td class="tdrz">25</td><td class="tdrz">11</td><td class="tdrz">2</td><td class="tdrz">83</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Fifties</td><td class="tdrz">2</td><td class="tdrz">1</td><td class="tdrz">0</td><td class="tdrz">0</td><td class="tdrz">3</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Frigates</td><td class="tdrz">133</td><td class="tdrz">31</td><td class="tdrz">20</td><td class="tdrz">7</td><td class="tdrz">191</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Sloops, &amp;c.</td><td class="tdrz">161</td><td class="tdrz">32</td><td class="tdrz">55</td><td class="tdrz">16</td><td class="tdrz">264</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4 nowrap">Total &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;</td><td class="tdrz">341</td><td class="tdrz">89</td><td class="tdrz">86</td><td class="tdrz">25</td><td class="tdrz">541</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdcx bold" colspan="6">In the French War, ending 1814.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdcx smcap">Force.</td><td class="tdrz">French.</td><td class="tdrz">Spanish.</td><td class="tdrz">Danish.</td><td class="tdrz">Russian.</td><td class="tdrz">American.</td><td class="tdrz">&nbsp; &nbsp; Total.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Of the Line</td><td class="tdrz">70</td><td class="tdrz">27</td><td class="tdrz">23</td><td class="tdrz">4</td><td class="tdrz">0</td><td class="tdrz">124</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Fifties</td><td class="tdrz">7</td><td class="tdrz">0</td><td class="tdrz">1</td><td class="tdrz">0</td><td class="tdrz">1</td><td class="tdrz">9</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Frigates</td><td class="tdrz">77</td><td class="tdrz">36</td><td class="tdrz">24</td><td class="tdrz">6</td><td class="tdrz">5</td><td class="tdrz">148</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Sloops, &amp;c.</td><td class="tdrz">188</td><td class="tdrz">64</td><td class="tdrz">16</td><td class="tdrz">7</td><td class="tdrz">13</td><td class="tdrz">288</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4 nowrap">Total &nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;</td><td class="tdrz">342</td><td class="tdrz">127</td><td class="tdrz">64</td><td class="tdrz">17</td><td class="tdrz">19</td><td class="tdrz">569</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td><td class="bt"></td></tr>
-<tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p>NAVARINO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought on the 20th October, 1827.
-“The atrocities which marked the warfare between the Greeks and
-Turks were so shocking to humanity, that the Sovereigns of Europe felt
-themselves bound to interfere, and a treaty for the pacification of Greece
-was signed in London, on the 6th of July, 1827, by the representatives
-of England, France, and Russia. In consequence of this, the allied
-fleets in the Mediterranean prepared to force the combatants to consent
-to an armistice, and blockaded the Turkish fleet in the harbour of Navarino.
-Ibrahim Pacha, the Turkish commander in the Morea, paying
-but little attention to the remonstrances of the allied Admirals, the
-united fleets sailed into harbour, on the 20th of October, under the command
-of Sir Edward Codrington, to intimidate him into submission.
-A shot fired by a Turkish vessel was the signal for a general engagement,
-which lasted four hours. It terminated in the almost utter annihilation
-of the Turkish fleet, with comparatively little loss to the allied squadrons.
-The independence of Greece was virtually achieved by this
-brilliant victory, and was further secured by the arrival of a small
-military force from France; the Turkish government, however, refused
-submission, and war was commenced against Russia. The events of
-this war, though not properly belonging to English history, demand a
-brief notice; in the first campaign the Turks made an obstinate resistance,
-and gained some advantages over their opponents; but in the
-following year (1829), the Russian arms were everywhere successful;
-the passages of the Balkan were forced; Adrianople, the second city in
-the empire, was captured, and the Sultan forced to consent to terms of
-peace, dictated almost at the gates of Constantinople. The demands of
-Russia were, however, less exhorbitant than might have been expected<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span>
-under the circumstances, but there is reason to believe that this moderation
-was inspired by a dread of provoking the jealousy and resentment
-of England.”</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="NEV" id="NEV"></a></div>
-<p>NEVILL’S CROSS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought October 17th, 1346,
-between the Scots and English. More than 15,000 of the Scots were slain.</p>
-
-<p>“Philippa, Edward’s Queen, took upon her the conduct of the field,
-and prepared to repulse the enemy in person: accordingly, having made
-Lord Percy general under her, she met the Scots at a place called
-Nevill’s Cross, near Durham, and offered them battle. The Scots King
-was no less impatient to engage; he imagined that he might obtain an
-easy victory against undisciplined troops, and headed by a woman. But
-he was miserably deceived. His army was quickly routed and driven
-from the field. 15,000 of his men were cut to pieces; and he himself,
-with many of his nobles and knights, were taken prisoners, and carried
-in triumph to London, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1346.”</p>
-
-<p>Another historian says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Some years after his return home, King David burst into England
-at the head of an army. Edward was absent in France, and David
-thought to avail himself of the opportunity. It turned out a dear business
-to him. Marching southward as far as Durham, he laid waste the
-country with fire and sword. At a place called Nevill’s Cross, an
-English army came up. A Scottish knight, seeing their archers gathering
-in a vast cloud, and knowing well the bitter shower which that cloud
-would discharge, said to the King, “Give me but 100 horse, and I will
-disperse them all.” The conceited and headstrong King gave no heed.
-The archers commenced their deadly practice without interruption.
-Three hours of the arrow sleet, three hours of furious charging by the
-English horse, and the Scots were a rout of fugitives. Their King
-was taken prisoner and convoyed to London. Mounted on a tall black
-horse that he might be seen by all the people, the son of Robert the
-Bruce was conducted to the Tower.”</p>
-
-
-<p>NEWARK, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle was fought March 21st,
-1644, between the army of the Parliament and the Royal forces, under
-Prince Rupert. He was defeated, and here afterwards Charles I put
-himself into the hands of the Scotch army.</p>
-
-
-<p>NEWBURY, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The first battle, fought September<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span>
-20th, 1643, was between the Parliamentary army and that of Charles I.
-It lasted till midnight, and among the slain was Lucius Carey, Viscount
-Falkland. A second battle was fought here next year, October
-10th, and the result, as the first, was equally dubious, both sides claiming
-victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>NEW ORLEANS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;(See <em><a href="#ORL">Orleans</a></em>.)</p>
-
-
-<p>NIAGARA FORT.&mdash;<em>Upper Canada.</em>&mdash;“The Fort of Niagara was a
-place of great importance, and served to command all the communication
-between the northern and western French settlements. The siege was
-begun with vigour, and promised an easy conquest; but General Prideaux
-was killed in the trenches by the bursting of a mortar, so that the
-whole command of the expedition devolved upon General Johnson, who
-omitted nothing to push forward the vigorous operations of his predecessor,
-to which also he added his own popularity with the soldiers under
-him. A body of French troops, who were sensible of the importance of
-this fort, attempted to relieve it; but Johnson attacked them with intrepidity
-and success; for in less than an hour their whole army was put
-to the rout. The garrison soon after perceiving the fate of their countrymen,
-surrendered prisoners of war.”</p>
-
-
-<p>NICOPOLIS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Christian powers, under
-Sigismund, King of Hungary, and the Turks. This battle, fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span>
-1396, is celebrated as the first fought between the Cross and Crescent.
-The Christians triumphed; the Turks lost 20,000 in slain, and 20,000
-in wounded and prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="NIL" id="NIL"></a></div>
-<p>NILE, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought, August 1st, 1798, between the
-fleets of England and France. The French fleet arrived at Alexandria
-August 1st, 1798, and Admiral Brueys, not being able to enter port,
-which time and neglect had ruined, moored the ships in Aboukir Bay, in a
-strong and compact line of battle; the headmost vessel, according to his
-own account, being as close as possible to a shoal on the north-west, and
-the rest of the fleet forming a kind of curve along the line of deep water,
-so as not to be turned by any means in the south-west.</p>
-
-<p>The advantage of numbers, both in ships, guns, and men, was in favour
-of the French. They had 13 ships of the line and 4 frigates, carrying
-1196 guns, and 11,230 men. The English had the same number of
-ships of the line, and one 50 gun ship, carrying 1012 guns, and 8068 men.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
-The English ships were all seventy-fours; the French had three 80 gun
-ships, and one three-decker of 120.</p>
-
-<p>During the whole pursuit it had been Nelson’s practice, whenever circumstances
-would permit, to have his captains on board the <i>Vanguard</i>,
-and explain to them his own ideas of the different and best modes of
-attack, and such plans as he proposed to execute on falling in with the
-enemy, whatever their situation might be. There is no possible position,
-it is said, which he did not take into consideration. His officers were
-thus fully acquainted with his principles of tactics; and such was his
-confidence in their abilities, that the only thing determined upon, in case
-they should find the French at anchor, was for the ships to form as most
-convenient for their mutual support, and to anchor by the stern. “First
-gain your victory,” he said, “and then make the best use of it you can.”
-The moment he perceived the position of the French, that intuitive
-genius with which Nelson was endowed displayed itself; and it instantly
-struck him that where there was room for an enemy’s ship to swing there
-was room for one of ours to anchor. The plan which he intended to
-pursue, therefore, was to keep entirely on the outer side of the French
-line, and station his ships, as far as he was able, one on the outer bow
-and another on the outer quarter of each of the enemy’s. Captain Berry,
-when he comprehended the scope of the design, exclaimed with transport,
-“If we succeed, what will the world say?” “There is no <em>if</em> in the case,”
-replied the Admiral; “that we <em>shall</em> succeed is certain&mdash;who may live to
-tell the story is a very different question.”</p>
-
-<p>As the squadron advanced, they were assailed by a shower of shot and
-shell from the batteries on the island, and the enemy opened a steady
-fire from the starboard side of their whole line, within half gunshot distance,
-full into the bows of our van ships. It was received in silence;
-the men on board every ship were employed aloft in furling sails, and
-below in tending the braces, and making ready for anchoring;&mdash;a miserable
-sight for the French, who, with all their skill and all their courage,
-and all their advantages of number and situation, were upon that element
-on which, when the hour of trial comes, a Frenchman has no hope.
-Admiral Brueys was a brave and able man; yet the indelible character
-of his country broke out in one of his letters, wherein he delivered it as
-his private opinion that the English had missed him, because, not being
-superior in force, they did not think it prudent to try their strength with
-him. The moment was now come in which he was to be undeceived.</p>
-
-<p>A French brig was instructed to decoy the English. By manœuvring<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span>
-so as to tempt them towards a shoal lying off the island of Beguieres;
-but Nelson either knew the danger, or suspected some deceit, and the
-lure was unsuccessful. Captain Foley led the way in the <i>Goliath</i>, out-sailing
-the <i>Zealous</i>, which for some minutes disputed this post of honour
-with him. He had long conceived that, if the enemy were moored in
-line of battle in with the land, the best plan of attack would be to lead
-between them and the shore, because the French guns on that side were
-not likely to be manned, nor even ready for action. Intending, therefore,
-to fix himself on the inner bow of the <i>Guerrier</i>, he kept as near the edge
-of the bank as the depth of water would admit; but his anchor hung,
-and, having opened his fire, he drifted to the second ship, the <i>Conquérant</i>,
-before it was cleared, then anchored by the stern, inside of her, and in
-ten minutes shot away her masts. Hood, in the <i>Zealous</i>, perceiving this,
-took the station which the <i>Goliath</i> intended to have occupied, and totally
-disabled the <i>Guerrier</i> in twelve minutes. The third ship which doubled
-the enemy’s van was the <i>Orion</i>, Sir J. Saumarez; she passed to windward
-of the <i>Zealous</i>, and opened her larboard guns as long as they bore on the
-<i>Guerrier</i>; then passing inside the <i>Goliath</i>, sunk a frigate which annoyed
-her, hauled toward the French line, and, anchoring inside between the
-fifth and sixth ships from the <i>Guerrier</i>, took her station on the larboard
-bow of the <i>Franklin</i> and the quarter of the <i>Peuple Souverain</i>, receiving
-and returning the fire of both. The sun was now nearly down. The
-<i>Audacious</i>, Captain Gould, pouring a heavy fire into the <i>Guerrier</i> and
-the <i>Conquérant</i>, fixed herself on the larboard bow of the latter, and when
-that ship struck, passed on to the <i>Peuple Souverain</i>. The <i>Theseus</i>,
-Captain Miller, followed, brought down the <i>Guerrier’s</i> remaining main
-and mizen masts, then anchored inside the <i>Spartiate</i>, the third in the
-French line.</p>
-
-<p>While these advanced ships doubled the French line, the <i>Vanguard</i>
-was the first that anchored on the outer side of the enemy, within half
-pistol shot of their third ship, the <i>Spartiate</i>. Nelson had six colours
-flying in different parts of the rigging, lest they should be shot away&mdash;that
-they should be struck, no British Admiral considers as a possibility.
-He veered half a cable, and instantly opened a tremendous fire, under
-cover of which the other four ships of his division, the <i>Minotaur</i>, <i>Bellerophon</i>,
-<i>Defence</i> and <i>Majestic</i>, sailed on ahead of the Admiral. In a few
-minutes every man stationed at the first six guns in the fore part of the
-<i>Vanguard’s</i> deck was killed or wounded&mdash;these guns were three times
-cleared. Captain Louis, in the <i>Minotaur</i>, anchored next ahead, and took<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span>
-off the fire of the <i>Aquilon</i>, the fourth in the enemy’s line. The <i>Bellerophon</i>,
-Captain Darby, passed ahead, and dropped her stern anchor on the
-starboard bow of the <i>Orient</i>, seventh in the line, Bruey’s own ship of one
-hundred and twenty guns, whose difference in force was in proportion of
-more than seven to three, and whose weight of ball, from the lower deck
-alone, exceeded that from the whole broadside of the <i>Bellerophon</i>. Captain
-Peyton, in the <i>Defence</i>, took his station ahead of the <i>Minotaur</i> and engaged
-the <i>Franklin</i>, the sixth in the line, by which judicious movement the
-British line remained unbroken. The <i>Majestic</i>, Captain Wescott, got
-entangled with the main rigging of one of the French ships astern of the
-<i>Orient</i>, and suffered dreadfully from that three-decker’s fire; but she
-swung clear, and closely engaging the <i>Heureux</i>, the ninth ship in the
-starboard bow, received also the fire of the <i>Tonnant</i>, which was the eighth
-in the line. The other four ships of the British squadron, having been
-detached previous to the discovery of the French, were at a considerable
-distance when the action began. It commenced at half-after six, about
-seven the night closed, and there was no other light than that from the
-fire of the contending fleets.</p>
-
-<p>Trowbridge, in the <i>Culloden</i>, then foremost of the remaining ships,
-was two leagues astern. He came on sounding, as the others had done.
-As he advanced, the increasing darkness increased the difficulty of navigation,
-and suddenly, after having found eleven fathoms’ water, before
-the lead could be hove again, he was fast a-ground; nor could all his own
-exertions, joined to those of the <i>Leander</i> and <i>Mutiné</i> brig, which came
-to his assistance, get him off in time to bear a part in the action. His
-ship, however, served as a beacon to the <i>Alexander</i> and <i>Swiftsure</i>, which
-would else, from the course they were holding, have gone considerably
-further on the reef, and must inevitably have been lost. These ships
-entered the bay and took their stations, in the darkness, in a manner still
-spoken of with admiration by all who remember it. Captain Hallowell,
-in the <i>Swiftsure</i>, as he was bearing down, fell in with what seemed to be
-a strange sail. Nelson had directed his ships to hoist four lights horizontally
-at the mizen peak as soon as it became dark, and this vessel had
-no such distinction. Hallowell, however, with great judgment, ordered
-his men not to fire. “If she was an enemy,” he said, “she was in too
-disabled a state to escape; but, from her sails being loose, and the way
-in which her head was, it was probable she might be an English ship.”
-It was the <i>Bellerophon</i>, overpowered by the huge <i>Orient</i>. Her lights
-had gone overboard, nearly two hundred of her crew were killed or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-wounded, all her masts and cables had been shot away, and she was
-drifting out of the line towards the lee-side of the bay. Her station at
-this important time was occupied by the <i>Swiftsure</i>, which opened a steady
-fire on the quarter of the <i>Franklin</i> and the bows of the French Admiral.
-At the same instant Captain Ball, with the <i>Alexander</i>, passed under his
-stern, and anchored within sight on his larboard quarter, raking him, and
-keeping a severe fire of musketry upon his decks. The last ship which
-arrived to complete the destruction of the enemy was the <i>Leander</i>.
-Captain Thompson, finding that nothing could be done that night to get
-off the <i>Culloden</i>, advanced with the intention of anchoring athwart-hawse
-of the <i>Orient</i>. The <i>Franklin</i> was so near her ahead, that there was not
-room for him to pass clear of the two; he therefore took his station
-athwart-hawse of the latter, in such a position as to rake both.</p>
-
-<p>The two first ships of the French line had been dismasted within a
-quarter of an hour after the commencement of the action; and the others
-in that time suffered so severely, that victory was already certain. The
-third, fourth and fifth were taken possession of at half-past eight. Meantime
-Nelson received a severe wound on the head from a piece of langridge
-shot. Captain Berry caught him in his arms as he was falling.
-The great effusion of blood occasioned an apprehension that the wound
-was mortal. Nelson himself thought so; a large flap of the skin of the
-forehead cut from the bone, had fallen over the eye; and, the other being
-blind, he was in total darkness. When he was carried down, the surgeon,
-in the midst of a scene scarcely to be conceived by those who have never
-seen a cockpit in time of action, and the heroism which is displayed
-amid its horrors&mdash;with a natural but pardonable eagerness, quitted the
-poor fellow then under his hands, that he might instantly attend the
-admiral. “No!” said Nelson, “I will take my turn with my brave
-fellows.” Nor would he suffer his own wound to be examined, till every
-man who had been previously wounded was properly attended to. Fully
-believing that the wound was mortal, and that he was about to die, as he
-had ever desired, in battle and in victory, he called the chaplain, and
-desired him to deliver what he supposed to be his dying remembrance to
-Lady Nelson; he then sent for Captain Louis on board, from the <i>Minotaur</i>,
-that he might thank him personally for the great assistance he
-had rendered to the <i>Vanguard</i>; and, ever mindful of those who deserved
-to be his friends, appointed Captain Hardy from the brig to the command
-of his own ship, Captain Berry having to go home with the news
-of the victory. When the surgeon came in due time to examine the wound<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-(for it was in vain to entreat him to let it be examined sooner), the most
-anxious silence prevailed; and the joy of the wounded men, and of the
-whole crew, when they heard that the hurt was superficial, gave Nelson
-deeper pleasure than the unexpected assurance that his life was in no
-danger. The surgeon requested, and, as far as he could, ordered him to
-remain quiet; but Nelson could not rest. He called for his secretary,
-Mr. Campbell, to write the despatches. Campbell had himself been
-wounded, and was so affected at the blind and suffering state of the Admiral
-that he was unable to write. The chaplain was sent for; but before
-he came, Nelson, with his characteristic eagerness, took the pen, and
-contrived to trace a few words, marking his devout sense of the success
-which had already been obtained. He was now left alone; when suddenly
-a cry was heard on the deck that the <i>Orient</i> was on fire. In the
-confusion he found his way up, unassisted and unnoticed; and, to the
-astonishment of every one, appeared on the quarter-deck, where he
-immediately gave order that boats should be sent to the relief of the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>It was soon after nine that the fire on the <i>Orient</i> broke out. Brueys
-was dead; he had received three wounds, yet would not leave his spot;
-a fourth cut him almost in two. He desired not to be carried below, but
-to be left to die upon deck. The flames soon mastered his ship. Her
-sides had just been painted, and the oil-jars and paint-buckets were
-lying on the poop. By the prodigious light of this conflagration, the
-situation of the fleets could now be perceived, the colours of both being
-clearly distinguishable. About ten o’clock the ship blew up, with a shock
-which was felt to the very bottom of every vessel. Many of her officers
-and men jumped overboard, some clinging to the spars and pieces of wreck
-with which the sea was strewn; others swimming to escape from the
-destruction which they momently dreaded. Some were picked up by our
-boats; and some, even in the heat and fury of the action, were dragged
-into the lower ports of the nearest British ships by the British Sailors.
-The greater part of her crew, however, stood the danger to the last, and
-continued to fire from the lower deck. This tremendous explosion was
-followed by a silence not less awful; the firing immediately ceased on
-both sides; and the first sound which broke the silence was the dash of
-her shattered masts and yards falling into the water from the vast height
-to which they had been exploded. It is upon record, that a battle
-between two armies was once broken off by an earthquake:&mdash;such an
-event would be felt like a miracle: but no incident in war produced by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span>
-human means, has ever equalled the sublimity of this coinstantaneous
-pause, and all its circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>About seventy of the <i>Orient’s</i> crew were saved by the English boats.
-Among the many hundreds who perished were the Commodore, Casa
-Bianca, and his son, a brave boy only ten years old. They were seen floating
-on a shattered mast when the ship blew up. She had money on board
-(the plunder of Malta) to the amount of six hundred thousand pounds
-sterling. The masses of burning wreck which were scattered by the
-explosion, excited for some moments apprehensions in the English which
-they had never felt from any other danger. Two large pieces fell into the
-main and foretops of the <i>Swiftsure</i>, without injuring any person. A
-port-fire also fell into the main-royal of the <i>Alexander</i>; the fire which it
-occasioned was speedily extinguished. Captain Ball had provided, as far
-human foresight could provide, against any such danger. All the shrouds
-and sails of his ship, not absolutely necessary for its immediate management,
-were thoroughly wetted, and so rolled up, that they were as hard
-and as little inflammable as so many solid cylinders.</p>
-
-<p>The firing recommenced with the ships to leeward of the centre, and
-continued till about three. At daybreak the <i>Guillaume Tell</i> and the
-<i>Généreuse</i>, the two rear ships of the enemy, were the only French ships
-of the line which had their colours flying: they cut their cables in the
-forenoon, not having been engaged, and stood out to sea, and two frigates
-with them. The <i>Zealous</i> pursued; but, as there was no other ship in a
-condition to support Captain Hood, he was recalled. It was generally
-believed by the officers that, if Nelson had not been wounded, not one of
-these ships could have escaped; the four certainly could not, if the
-<i>Culloden</i> had got into action; and, if the frigates belonging to the
-squadron had been present, not one of the enemy’s fleet would have left
-Aboukir Bay. These four vessels, however, were all that escaped; and
-the victory was the most complete and glorious in the annals of naval
-history. “Victory,” said Nelson, “is not a name strong enough for
-such a scene;” he called it a conquest. Of thirteen sail of the line, nine
-were taken and two burnt; of the four frigates, one was sunk; another
-the <i>Artemise</i> was burnt in a villainous manner by her captain, M. Estandlet,
-who having fired a broadside at the <i>Theseus</i>, struck his colours,
-then set fire to the ship, and escaped with most of his crew to shore.
-The British loss in killed and wounded amounted to 895. Westcott was
-the only captain who fell: 3105 of the French, including the wounded,
-were sent on shore by cartel, and 5225 perished.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus ended this eventful battle, which exalted the name of Nelson to
-a level at least with that of the celebrated conqueror, whose surprising
-success at the head of the French armies had then begun to draw
-the attention of the civilized world. The first words of his despatches
-on this memorable occasion prove his gratitude to that Providence which
-had protected him:&mdash;“<em>Almighty God has blessed his Majesty’s arms.</em>”</p>
-
-
-<p>NISBET, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 7th, 1602, between the
-English and Scotch armies,&mdash;10,000 of the latter were left dead on the
-field and in the pursuit.</p>
-
-
-<p>NORTHALLERTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>Or the Standard.</em>&mdash;A
-furious engagement fought in Yorkshire, England, August 22nd, 1137,
-between the Scottish and English armies. This battle received the
-latter name from a high crucifix which was erected by the English on a
-waggon and was carried along by the troops. (See <em><a href="#STA">Standard, Battle of</a></em>)</p>
-
-
-<p>NORTHAMPTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Duke of
-York and Henry VI of England. Henry was defeated, and made
-prisoner, after a bloody fight, which took place July 19th, 1460.</p>
-
-
-<p>NOIR, BATTLES OF.&mdash;First, fought, August 15th, 1799, between
-the French army commanded by Joubert, and the Russians, under Suwarrow.
-The French were defeated with immense slaughter,&mdash;10,000
-being left dead on the battlefield, among whom was their General,
-Joubert, and several distinguished officers. A second battle was fought,
-January 8th, 1800, between the Austrian and French armies, when the
-latter a second time were signally defeated.</p>
-
-
-<p>NUMANTIA, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Celebrated in the life of Scipio Africanus.
-He besieged the city with 60,000 men, the Numantines had only
-4000 able to bear arms, but for 14 years it bravely withstood all
-attempts, till at last it fell, and every soul preferred to perish rather than
-fall into the hands of the Romans.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="O" id="O"></a>O.</h3>
-
-
-<div><a name="ORL" id="ORL"></a></div>
-<p>ORLEANS.&mdash;<em>France.</em>&mdash;Besieged by John Talbot, the Earl of Salisbury,
-October 12th, 1428; relieved, and the siege raised by the Maid
-of Orleans&mdash;Joan of Arc&mdash;from which circumstance she received her
-name.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>ORLEANS NEW.&mdash;The British made an attack on New Orleans,
-December, 1814; they were repulsed by the Americans, under General
-Jackson, with great loss January, 7th, 1815. The American troops
-were entrenched behind a large number of cotton bales, and the British
-were obliged to advance in an open and exposed plain for more than
-a mile, during which they were literally mowed down by the shot from
-the cotton batteries. Some of the bravest Peninsular heroes fell here
-and met a soldier’s grave.</p>
-
-
-<p>ORTHES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, February 27th, 1814, between
-the British and Spanish armies, on the one side, and the French on the
-other. The Allies were commanded by Wellington&mdash;the French by Soult.
-In this memorable engagement the Allies gained a complete victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>OSTROLENKA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Poles and Russians.
-It was one of the most sanguinary and desperate battles fought between
-the two countries, and took place May 26th, 1831. On both sides
-the slaughter was immense, but the Poles remained masters of the field.</p>
-
-
-<p>OTTERBURN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 31st, 1388. The following
-is a graphic account of this engagement:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“One of the Scotch inroads into England, in the time of Robert II,
-led to the famous battle of Otterburn, or “Chevy Chase.” This was
-considered, by the judges of fighting in those days, to have been the best
-fought, and, for the numbers engaged, the most severe of all the battles
-of that age. There was not a man, knight or squire, that did not acquit
-himself gallantly, fighting hand to hand with his enemy. It was about
-the time of Lammas, when the moor men were busy with their hay harvest,
-that the Earl of Douglas rode into England to drive a prey. The
-warders on the walls of Newcastle and Durham saw, rising in all directions,
-thick columns of smoke. This was the first intimation of the
-presence of the Scots. In their return homeward they halted three days
-before Newcastle, where they kept up an almost continual skirmish. The
-Earl of Douglas had a long combat with Sir Henry Percy, and took his
-pennon. “Hotspur, I will carry this pennon into Scotland,” said the
-Douglas, “and fix it on the tower of my castle of Dalkeith, that it may
-be seen from far.” “That shall you never, Earl of Douglas,” said Hotspur;
-“be assured you shall never have this pennon to boast of.” “I
-will fix your pennon before my tent,” said Douglas, “and shall see if you
-will venture to take it away.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The Scots resumed their march homeward. They encamped at Otterburn,
-“upon the bent so brown,” and Douglas declared his resolution to
-wait there for two or three days, and see if the Percy would come to
-recover his pennon. On the evening of the second day the Scots were
-supping, some, indeed, had gone to sleep, when a loud shout of “Percy!
-Percy!” was heard, and the English were upon them. It was a sweet
-moonlight evening in August, clear and bright, and the breeze blew soft
-and fresh. The Scots, though somewhat taken by surprise, rose to the
-fight cool and “siccar,” as at Bannockburn itself. The lances crossed,
-and many on both sides went down at the first shock. Douglas, shouting
-his war cry, ordered his banner to advance. Percy, eager to encounter
-the Douglas, advanced his banner also. The two banners met, and many
-valiant deeds of arms were done around them. But the English were
-three to one, and the Scots were beginning to be forced back.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing this, the Earl of Douglas seized a battle-axe with both hands
-and dashed into the midst of the enemy, his men following close. He
-struck right and left, and cut a lane deep into the battalion of the
-English. At last three spears were thrust against him all at once. One
-struck him on the shoulder, one on the breast, and the stroke glanced off
-his armour down into his groin; the third struck him in the thigh.
-With these three strokes he was borne to the earth, and as soon as he fell
-a battle-axe hewed deep into his head. The English marched over him
-without knowing who he was.</p>
-
-<p>Sir John Sinclair, cousin to the Earl, knelt beside him, supported his
-bloody head, and asked, “Cousin, how fares it with you?” “Indifferently,”
-said he. “Thanks be to God, there are but few of my ancestors
-who have died in their beds. I bid you revenge my death, for my heart
-grows every moment more faint. Lift up my banner, which is on the
-ground, from the death of the valiant squire who bore it. Shout ‘Douglas!’
-and tell neither friend nor foe but what I am with you.” Having
-spoken thus he expired. His orders were obeyed. They cast a mantle
-over his body, took his banner from the dead hand of the squire, raised
-it, and shouted, “Douglas!” The Scots came thronging up to the cry.
-They levelled their lances, and pushed with such courage that the English
-were soon driven beyond the spot where the Douglas lay. Again the
-shout of “Douglas!” rose more vehement and loud. The Scots in a
-dense mass renewed the onset, bore the enemy before them, and broke
-them so completely that they never rallied again. Percy himself was
-made prisoner. He and his pennon, too, had to go to Scotland.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus the dead Douglas won the field. The Scots laid the body of
-their leader in a coffin, which they placed on a car, and began their
-march home. They came without interruption to Melrose, and there,
-in the fair abbey, the Douglas was laid. The banner, about which his
-dying charge had been given at Otterburn, was hung above the place of
-the warrior’s rest.”</p>
-
-
-<p>OUDENARDE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 11th, 1708, between
-the Allies, commanded by Marlborough, and Prince Eugene and the
-French. The French were defeated, and completely routed, with great
-loss. The result of this victory was, that the French King entered
-into a negotiation for peace.</p>
-
-
-<p>OULART, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 27th, 1798, between a body
-of 3000 Irish insurgents and the King’s troop, a small number. In this
-engagement the North Cork Militia were cut to pieces&mdash;the Lieut.
-Colonel, one Sergeant and three Privates alone remaining.</p>
-
-
-<p>OURIQUE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 25th, 1139. Alfonso,
-Count of Portugal, encountered five Saracen Kings and an immense army
-of Moors on the plains of Ourique. After a glorious victory, he was hailed
-King by his soldiers on the spot. He afterwards entered Lisbon in
-triumph, and overthrew the Moorish dominion in Portugal. This was,
-perhaps, the greatest battle recorded in the History of Portugal.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="P" id="P"></a>P.</h3>
-
-
-<p>PALESTRO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, 29th May, 1859, between
-the Austrians and the French.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 29th May, was fought the battle of Palestro. The Austrian
-avant-garde, 1500 strong, occupied the villages of Palestro and Vinzaglio.
-They were carried by the Allies at the point of the bayonet, and two
-cannons, the first captured since the opening of the war, were taken. The
-next morning the Austrians advanced to retake Palestro. Having
-cannonaded the village, a body of Austrians advanced to cut off the
-communication between the Piedmontese troops and the river. Perceiving
-this, the Zouaves, who had arrived during the night, threw themselves,
-in spite of a murderous fire, on the Austrians, take eight guns and put
-the Austrians to flight. During this engagement the King of Sardinia
-headed an attack on a battery. The Emperor of the French, a few days<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-afterwards, complimenting him on his bravery, told him that if he wished
-to be King of Italy, he must take rather more care of his august person.
-This engagement inspired the Austrians with a great dread of the
-Zouaves, whom they call the <i lang="it" xml:lang="it">quei terribili zuai</i>.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PAMPELUNA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Taken by the French on their
-invasion of Spain; invested by the British; hence very bloody engagements,
-July 27th and 29th, 1813. It surrendered to the British same
-year.</p>
-
-
-<p>PARMA, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The confederates, England, France and
-Spain, fought against the Emperor of Austria, June 29th, 1734. Both
-sides claimed the victory. A second battle, called the great battle of
-Parma, in which the French, under Marshal McDonald, were defeated by
-the celebrated Suwarrow, with the loss of 20,000 men and four Generals,
-July 12th, 1799.</p>
-
-
-<p>PATAY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This battle was fought, June 10th, 1429.
-Joan of Arc was present in this battle. The French signally defeated
-the English; the consequence of which was that Charles VII of France
-entered Rheims in triumph, and was crowned July 17th, same year&mdash;Joan
-of Arc assisting in the ceremony in full armour and holding the
-sword of state.</p>
-
-
-<p>PAVIA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, February 24th, 1525, between
-the French and Imperialists, when the former were defeated and their
-King, Francis I, after fighting with heroic bravery and killing seven men
-with his own hand, was obliged to surrender himself a prisoner of war.
-He wrote to his mother a letter acquainting her with the melancholy
-news in these expressive words&mdash;“<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Tout est perdu, Madame, hors l’honneur.</i>”</p>
-
-
-<p>PEAFFENDORF, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, August 15th, 1760,
-between the Imperialists and Prussians; the Austrians were totally
-defeated by the King of Prussia, who, by this victory, prevented the
-Austrian army from forming a junction with the Russians.</p>
-
-
-<p>PHALANX.&mdash;This word originally signified a battalion or squadron.
-The Greek Phalanx consisted of 8000 men, in a square battalion, with
-shields joined and spears crossing each other. The celebrated Phalanx
-of Epaminondas, or the Theban Phalanx, was wedge shaped, and by it he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-achieved his two great victories. The modern square is based on the
-Grecian Phalanx, which was itself, as well as the Roman Orb, taken from
-the Theban. The renowned Macedonian Phalanx of Alexander the
-Great’s father, Philip, was instituted <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 360. This consisted of 16,000
-picked men divided into four equal parts of 4000 each. They performed
-their evolutions upon the enomoty or single file, whether it were required
-to extend or deepen the line, and there was an interval between every two
-sections for the convenience of manœuvring.</p>
-
-
-<p>PHARSALIA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 12th, 48 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>, between
-Julius Cæsar and Pompey.</p>
-
-<p>“The battle commenced about daybreak, and before noon the army
-of Pompey was utterly defeated. Pompey himself, early in the battle,
-seemed entirely to have lost his presence of mind, and fled in despair to
-his tent, there to await the result. Cæsar, determined to make the most
-of his advantage, notwithstanding the weariness of his troops, did not
-permit the pursuit to slacken till the army of Pompey was entirely
-scattered. A considerable body of them had taken refuge in an adjacent
-mountain. By cutting off all hope of succor, Cæsar induced them to
-surrender. He received their submission with the greatest gentleness, and
-forbade his soldiers from offering violence to their vanquished countrymen.
-This was the most complete victory Cæsar ever obtained. His loss did not
-exceed 200, while that of Pompey was 10,000, and 24,000 surrendered
-themselves prisoners of war. On passing over the battle field, so thickly
-strewn with Romans, Cæsar is said to have been affected even to tears,
-while he exclaimed to one near him, “They would have it so.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PHILIPPI, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, October, 42 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>, between
-Octavius Cæsar and Marc Antony, on the one side, and Brutus and
-Cassius on the other.</p>
-
-<p>“In the meantime, Brutus and Cassius, the principal conspirators
-against Cæsar, having retired into Greece, persuaded the Roman students
-at Athens to declare for the cause of freedom. In Syria and Macedonia
-they succeeded in raising large armies, and soon found themselves in a
-condition to support a contest on which the empire of the world depended.
-While at Sardis, Brutus and Cassius are said to have had a serious misunderstanding,
-the effect of a jealousy which had been industriously raised
-between them. But no bad consequences arose from it, for immediately
-joining their armies, they hastened to oppose Antony and Octavius, who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span>
-were rapidly advancing to meet them. Once more the empire of the
-world was about to be decided by a single battle. It was a time of fearful
-suspense. Should the arms of Brutus be successful, the Roman
-people might again form a free republic. On the other hand, should
-Octavius triumph, they had to fear a worse tyranny than ever had been
-exercised by Julius Cæsar. Brutus and Cassius took their station each
-on a little hill near the city of Philippi. Behind them was the sea, by
-which they might obtain supplies, and between them and the plain on
-which the Triumviri had encamped their army, was an impassable morass.
-In this favorable position, it was their policy to delay a battle as long as
-possible. On the contrary, the Triumviri, not being able to obtain supplies
-by sea, and conscious that their army could not long be sustained by
-the resources of the surrounding country, were eager immediately to
-engage. A road was constructed by them through the morass which
-separated the armies. The tall reeds of the morass having concealed the
-soldiers while making the road, Brutus and Cassius were in some measure
-taken by surprise when the enemy advanced over it, and the impatience
-of their own soldiers prevented a longer delay.</p>
-
-<p>A battle therefore ensued. Antony led his forces against that part of
-the army commanded by Cassius, and in a short time put his cavalry to
-flight. Cassius did all that the courage of a single man could do to rally
-his troops, but in vain. Supposing the battle to be entirely lost, and
-determined not to fall into the hands of the enemy, he returned into
-his tent and killed himself. Brutus still kept possession of the camp,
-and did all in his power to encourage his men. Still he determined for
-the present to avoid seeking another battle. His design was to starve
-the enemy, whom he know to be in great want of provisions. After
-a respite of twenty days, he was, however, forced to give in to
-the impatience of his men, and try the fate of a battle. In the
-engagement that followed, wherever Brutus commanded in person, he
-had the advantage. But the troops of Cassius being seized with
-a panic, communicated their terror to the rest, and soon the whole
-army gave way. In the midst of his bravest officers Brutus fought
-with undaunted courage. The son of Cato, and the brother of Cassius,
-fell fighting at his side. At last, however, yielding to the necessity of
-the case, Brutus fled. Octavius and Antony, secure of the victory,
-thought only of getting Brutus into their power. He was on the point
-of being overtaken, when Lucilius, his friend, determined to save his life
-by the sacrifice of his own. Giving himself up to a band of Thracians,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span>
-he told them he was Brutus, and requested to be conducted into the
-presence of their General. Antony seeing the Thracians approach, and
-being informed of the prisoner’s capture, prepared himself for an interview
-with his enemy. But Lucilius, advancing with a cheerful air, said,
-“It is not Brutus that is taken. Fortune has not yet had the power to
-commit so great an outrage upon virtue. As for my life, it is well lost
-in preserving his honor. Take it, for I have deceived you.” Antony,
-struck with such fidelity, pardoned him, and gave him his friendship.
-Meanwhile Brutus, with a few friends had escaped over a rivulet, and
-night coming on, they concealed themselves under a rock. An officer
-whom Brutus had sent out to ascertain the extent of their defeat, did
-not return, and he rightly judged that he had fallen into the hands of
-the enemy. Before the first battle, Brutus had told Cassius that if he
-was defeated, he would not fall alive into the power of Octavius, and he
-now prepared to end his misfortunes with his life. After calling to mind
-with great tenderness many of his friends, who had fallen in the battle,
-he bade farewell to all present, one by one, saying aloud, that he was
-happy in never having been betrayed by any one whom he had trusted as
-a friend. Soon after, falling upon his sword, he expired in the forty-third
-year of his age.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PIGEON HILL.&mdash;Famous as the scene of a skirmish between the
-British Regulars and Volunteers and the Fenian bandits, who attempted
-to invade Canada during the past summer. The following gives honor
-to whom honor is due, and is written by a gentleman who can be relied on:</p>
-
-<p>“If any evidence were required, more than we possess, of the essentially
-weak and contemptible character of the Fenian organization, the circumstances
-attending the operations of Her Majesty’s forces and our own
-volunteers on Saturday, June 9th, in the neighborhood of Pigeon Hill,
-would furnish it. As one who accompanied that expedition, and had an
-opportunity of observing all that passed, I shall be happy to furnish you
-with a few details. I arrived at St. Armand’s Station between 11 and
-12 o’clock, just at the moment that two waggons from Pigeon Hill arrived,
-bringing five Fenian prisoners, who had been taken that morning by
-different parties, whose names I need not mention, as I cannot give all
-with accuracy. I must confess that my astonishment was great when I
-saw them. Three were little scamps&mdash;such as one sees about the streets
-of all great cities, as news-boys, &amp;c. One was a tolerably stout, resolute
-looking-fellow, the other a mild-looking young man, much better dressed,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>
-who, I am sorry to say, stated himself to have been born in Yorkshire,
-though hailing from Montpelier, Vt. Shortly after they were lodged in
-the guard-house, another prisoner, an able-bodied hard-looking customer,
-about 28 or 30 years of age, was brought in. He had a tremendous
-black eye, which he told me he received in a brawl with his own companions
-the night previous. Leaving these in the custody of the St. Armand
-volunteers, the column of attack started for Pigeon Hill about 2 <span class="fs70">P.M.</span>
-The Granby and Waterloo volunteers, commanded by Captain Millar,
-formed the advance guard, being followed by two 12-pounder Armstrong
-guns of Captain Balfour’s battery, with their complements of artillerymen,
-commanded by Captain Phipps, R.A. These were followed by two companies
-of the Rifle Brigade, under Major Nixon, who, I understand, commanded
-the whole column, and two companies of the 25th regiment&mdash;another
-company of that regiment forming the rear guard. Between the
-main body and the rear guard, the supply waggon and a farmer’s waggon,
-carrying the Surgeon’s apparatus and medical comforts, were placed.</p>
-
-<p>The officers and men were in the highest spirits, only fearing lest the
-redoubtable Fenians should seek shelter too promptly in Uncle Sam’s dominions,
-the line being only half a mile from their camp. The day was very
-fine, a bright sun, tempered by a cool breeze, having dried up the roads,
-and made marching pleasant. And I may here remark a circumstance
-creditable to the pluck and training of our volunteers, that, although several
-soldiers of the line and rifles were knocked up, and obliged to fall out,
-the volunteers, though forming the advance guard and obliged to keep in
-advance of the powerful artillery horses, had not a man who manifested the
-least fatigue. At Holt’s Corner a short halt took place, and a prisoner was
-brought up from the south road, leading to Highgate, by a farmer I understood,
-of the name of Reynolds, who with his son and hired man, had just
-captured him while reconnoitering. He was mounted upon a handsome
-horse, and had rather a gentlemanly and refined appearance. He was
-speedily dismounted, being succeeded in his saddle by Captain Hallowes
-of the 25th Regiment, and conducted to the rear in charge of a guard from
-that regiment. Another prisoner was met squatted in a single waggon
-between the feet of two farmers of Stanbridge who had captured him&mdash;a
-very low and unintellectual type of humanity. Just before the column
-reached Pigeon Hill there was a cry, “Incline to the right,” and that
-splendid body of horsemen, the Guides, under Captain D. L. Macdougall,
-dashed past in single file, and took their place in front. They had no
-opportunity that day, more is the pity, to “flesh their maiden swords”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span>
-upon any considerable body of the Fenians. But they rode round by the
-Cook’s Corner road, and thus, at a later period of the day, cut off the
-retreat of some who would have escaped, and took two of the scoundrels
-prisoners. If the Fenians had a good sight of them, they must have felt
-inclined to keep out of their way. In turning to the right at the tavern at
-Pigeon Hill, the whole column descended the hill on the road leading
-directly to the line&mdash;the artillery taking the lead. The guns were placed
-in position on a high point overlooking the whole valley, and about half-a-mile
-within the line. One company of the 25th remained with the
-guns, and the remainder of the infantry, in two lines, with the rifles thrown
-out in front as skirmishers, descended into the valley in the direction of
-the woods, which were about three-fourths of a mile distant. The last
-red coat disappeared among the trees, and we remained in anxious expectation
-awaiting the result. Meantime the farmer’s family before whose
-door the guns were placed, and who had suffered sore annoyance for
-several days from the constant demand of the ragamuffins for food, gladly
-brought to their deliverers such simple refreshment as could be hastily
-prepared. Presently a single rifle shot was heard, echoing loudly through
-the woods&mdash;two more followed, then a dropping fire of twenty-five or
-thirty shots and all was silent.</p>
-
-<p>At the first report the whole party sprang to their feet, the gunners
-placed themselves by their pieces, and the officers of artillery prepared to
-point them upon any body of the enemy that might break cover. And
-much were all disappointed when the firing ceased.</p>
-
-<p>Presently the red coats emerged from the woods, marched across a
-small clearing and disappeared in the woods beyond. After waiting
-some time longer and the sun beginning to approach the horizon, the
-horses were put to the guns and waggons and preparations were made for
-returning to St. Armand. One company of the 25th regained their
-comrades on the hill. The rest of the force made their way by the
-Cook’s Corner road back to Pigeon Hill, with the exception of one
-company of the Rifles, which was detached towards Frelighsburg. The
-rest of the force reached St. Armand’s Station between 9 and 10 o’clock
-at night.</p>
-
-<p>The result of this expedition was unsatisfactory, though all concerned
-did their duty with the utmost alacrity and zeal. But when there was
-really no enemy to fight, no great victory could be achieved.</p>
-
-<p>It was generally supposed that 2 Fenians only were killed and 16
-captured, but I have been since informed that 4 bodies were found
-in the woods on Sunday.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Thus ended most ingloriously to those concerned in it this base attempt
-to desecrate, by unlawful invasion, the soil of Canada, <em>and to detach from
-their allegiance to their rightful Sovereign a contented, happy and loyal
-people</em>. I may add, in conclusion, that the inhabitants were most active
-in searching for and arresting straggling Fenians and bringing them into
-head-quarters.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PINKEY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, September 10th, 1547, between
-the English, under the Earl of Hertford Protector, and the Scots, when
-the latter were totally defeated. Few victories have been achieved with
-less loss to the victors; the English loss was no more than 200, whilst
-the Scots lost the enormous number of 20,000.</p>
-
-
-<p>PISTOL.&mdash;The smallest sort of fire arms. First used by the
-English cavalry, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1544.</p>
-
-
-<p>PLAINS OF ABRAHAM.&mdash;<em>See <a href="#QUE">Quebec</a>.</em></p>
-
-
-<p>PLASSY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 23rd, 1757, between the
-British, under Lord Clive, and the native Hindoos, under Surajah
-Dowlah. The Hindoo army consisted of 70,000 men, whilst the British
-did not exceed 3000, yet the Surajah was signally defeated. This battle
-laid the foundation of the British power in India.</p>
-
-
-<p>PLATÆA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, September 22nd, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 479,
-between Mardonius, General of the Persians, and the Lacedæmonians and
-Athenians under Pausanias. The Persian army consisted of 300,000
-men, 3000 of which only remained alive after the battle. The Grecians
-lost only 91 Spartans, 52 Athenians, and 16 Tegeans. Pausanias received
-one-tenth of all the immense plunder for his uncommon valour, and
-the rest were rewarded each according to his respective merit.</p>
-
-
-<p>PLATTSBURG, EXPEDITION TO.&mdash;The British squadron
-against Plattsburg, on Lake Champlain, was designed under General Sir
-George Prevost, but it was abandoned, after a severe defeat of the naval
-squadron of England on the Lake, September 11th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>PODULTZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 28th, 1866, between the
-Austrians and the Prussians. The Prussians everywhere were victorious.
-The needle gun of their army was decidedly superior to any other
-weapon used. The following is the <cite>Times</cite> account:</p>
-
-<p>“On the northern side of Gitschin and on the Turnau road the Austrians<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>
-had taken up a position to cover the town against the Prussians,
-advancing from the direction of Turnau. As the Prussians advanced they
-saw the village of Podultz close to the road, and on their right, standing
-at the top of the gentle ascent by which the road rises to the top of the
-lower spur, on the other side of the road and about 300 yards from
-it, nearer to the advancing division by 200 yards than Podultz, the
-village of Diletz, lying in the plain, while high on their right they could
-see the chimneys of Brada above the thick fir wood which, lying on the
-hill side, in front of that village, runs down nearly to Podultz, and traced
-by the different colours of the foliage the ground occupied by its orchards.
-The three villages and the fir wood were held by Austrian and Saxon
-troops, supported by seven battalions of artillery, which were placed both
-on the spur and on the Brada Hill, while behind the spur were hidden
-three of Austria’s finest cavalry regiments&mdash;the Hussars of Radetzky, of
-Lichtenstein, and of the Austrian Regiment the King of Prussia. As
-soon as the Prussians came within range the Austrian batteries opened
-upon them; the Prussian guns replied, and, under cover of their artillery,
-the columns advanced to the attack of the position. The 8th and
-48th Regiments advanced against the village of Diletz, which was garrisoned
-by the 1st, 2d, 3d, and 4th Saxon battalions, and where, as the
-prisoners report, the King of Saxony himself took part in the fight. The
-12th and 18th Regiments advanced against the village of Podultz. Both
-attacking columns were exposed to a very hot fire, but after a severe
-struggle both villages were carried, though that of Podultz, set on fire by
-a shell, was burning when the Prussians occupied it. General Edelsheim,
-who commanded the Austrian cavalry, with a desperate valour, attacked
-the burning village, but the horses would not face the flames, and the
-Prussian infantry, from behind the blazing houses, fired on the disordered
-squadrons and killed many troopers. After taking Podultz, the 12th and
-18th Regiments pushed past Brada, leaving it to their right, and made
-for the Lochow Road, in order to cut off the retreat of the Austrians,
-who were retiring from Lochow on Gitschin. The Austrian cavalry
-charged the advancing Prussians, but the latter received them without
-forming square, and the horsemen recoiled, broken by their steady fire.
-The Austrian troops in Brada, and the Saxons and Austrians in Diletz
-were quite separated by the capture of the village of Podultz, and the
-former were almost entirely taken; the latter were cut off from retreat
-in large numbers, for Von Werder was pressing towards Gitschin, the
-roads were crowded, and the little river formed on the right of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span>
-broken allies a wide extent of marshy ground, which it was almost
-impossible to cross. The loss of the Saxons between Diletz and Gitschin
-was tremendous; they fell thickly, and the ground was covered with
-corpses. The Prussians suffered much, but they fought most bravely,
-and, with only four regiments, and half as many guns as their opponents,
-carried a very strong position held by a much superior force; for the
-Prussians had in the field but 16,000 men, and the allied strength is estimated
-at 30,000. Under a crushing fire they advanced to the attack of
-Podultz and Diletz, and the vacancies in the muster-roll show how
-fearfully they suffered; but every man who fell on the Prussian side was
-trebly avenged, and a long broad track of fallen enemies marks the line of
-march of the four regiments who so well fought and won Diletz.</p>
-
-<p>The field of Diletz is almost more thickly strewn with killed and
-wounded. Here the Prussians lie more thickly than at Lochow, for the
-more numerous artillery of the defenders ploughed with terrible effect
-through the dense columns of the assailants as they advanced to the
-attack. But between Diletz and Gitschin the ground is covered with
-broken arms, knapsacks, shakos, and fallen men, who are mostly either
-Saxons or Austrians, for here the needle-gun was more used than artillery.</p>
-
-<p>The Prussians took 7000 prisoners in the two combats, and many
-officers: and the Austrian loss in killed and wounded is estimated at
-3000, so that yesterday evening has withdrawn 10,000 soldiers from
-under the Austrian colours.”</p>
-
-
-<p>POICTIERS, 1356.&mdash;“Ten years after the victory of Crecy, a
-similar event took place in one of the south-west districts of France, at
-Poictiers, the capital of Poiteau. Edward “the Black Prince,” now in
-the prime of his early manhood, regarding his country as at war with
-France, sallied forth from the Gascon province in the summer of 1356,
-on a ravaging expedition, to do his enemy all the damage in his power.
-He left Bourdeaux with about 12,000 men; ascended the Garonne
-as far as Agen, and then, turning to the left, entered central France,
-and overran the fertile provinces of Limousin, Querci, Auvergne, and
-Berri. It was harvest-time, and everywhere the harvest was seized, the
-towns plundered, and all captives able to pay a ransom were carried to
-Bourdeaux. One account states that the English army sent off no fewer
-than 5000 cartloads of plunder to Bourdeaux. This employment
-doubtless had its attractions for the army; but its commander seems
-to have forgotten that he was invading and exasperating a powerful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-kingdom, whose people and sovereign might be expected to take vengeance
-for such an inroad as this.</p>
-
-<p>Philip of Valois was now dead, and John, his son, a high-spirited but
-indiscreet prince, had succeeded him. Hearing of young Edward’s
-performances in Limousin and Berri, “he instantly declared with an
-oath,” says Froissart, “that he would forthwith set out after him, and
-would fight him whenever he could find him. He therefore issued forth
-a general summons to all his nobles and vassals of every kind, that they
-should set forth to meet him on the borders of Touraine and Blois,
-for he was determined to fight the English.”</p>
-
-<p>He soon marched from Paris, having with him a considerable body of
-troops, and went to Chartres to be nearer the enemy, and to gain quicker
-intelligence of his proceedings. Here he rested some days, and “great
-crowds of knights and men at arms daily joined him, from Auvergne,
-Berri, Burgundy, Lorraine, Hainault, Picardy, and other provinces.”
-But as yet neither of these two Princes seems to have been well informed
-of the other’s movements.</p>
-
-<p>“The Prince,” says Froissart, “having with him 2000 men-at-arms
-and 6000 archers, rode on at his ease, having all things at his command.
-They found Auvergne, which they were now overrunning, very rich and
-teeming with abundance; and when they entered any town, they
-rested there for some days to refresh themselves, consuming what they
-pleased, and destroying the rest, whether of corn, wine, or other provisions.”
-“They kept advancing, and found plenty everywhere, for
-the provinces of Berri, Poiteau, Touraine and Maine,” says Froissart,
-“were very rich, and full of provisions for an army.”</p>
-
-<p>At Bourges they were stopped by the strength of the place; having
-no means of besieging a fortified town, they passed on, and came to
-another town, the name of which Froissart does not give, but which, he
-says, had great plenty of wines and provisions. This they carried by
-storm, and here they remained three days.</p>
-
-<p>And now tidings were brought to the Prince that the King of France
-was at Chartres with a large army, and that all the passes and towns on
-the north of the Loire were manned and well defended. He therefore
-held a council of war, in which it was resolved to return at once to Bourdeaux,
-doing the enemy what damage was possible on the road. But the
-castle of Romorontin delayed their retreat, the Prince making it a point
-of honour not to be foiled by so small a place, and wasting therefore
-three days before it. This delay enabled the French army to reach him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
-The King of France, having now a large force, had set forward from
-Chartres, had crossed the Loire at Blois, and was rapidly marching on
-the city of Poictiers. Both of the chiefs seem to have been in the dark
-as to the exact position of the other&mdash;John, imagining the English to be
-far before him, and Edward similarly deeming the French to be in his
-rear. At last, at Chauvigny, on the Vienne, the two armies came in
-sight of each other, or rather, learned each other’s proximity by an
-encounter of outposts. A party of French knights falling in with two of
-Edward’s captains and a party of sixty men, pursued them until they
-came to the main body of the English, and here, not retreating, the
-greater part of the assailants were either slain or captured. From the
-prisoners, the Prince learned that the King of France was close by with
-his army, and that he could not retreat without fighting him. He called
-in immediately all foragers; and ordered every man to keep under his
-standard. Four experienced Captains, with 200 horse, were sent out
-to reconnoitre the French positions. They were not long before they fell
-in with it, and captured some stragglers. They soon perceived the whole
-plain to be covered with troops. Their approach alarmed the French,
-who, instead of entering Poictiers, turned towards the English army,
-and as it was late encamped for the night in the open fields. The English
-detachment returned to the Prince, and told him that the French
-“were in immense numbers.” The Prince replied, “God help us! we
-must begin to consider how we can best receive them.”</p>
-
-<p>The next day was Sunday. The French king ordered a solemn mass
-in his pavilion, and he and his four sons communicated. There then
-assembled around him the great Lords, the Duke of Orleans, the Duke of
-Bourbon, the Earl of Ponthieu, the Constable of France, the Marshal of
-France, and a great body of Lords and famous knights. They were long
-debating; at last it was resolved “that each Lord should display his
-banner, advance into the plain, and push forward in the name of God and
-St. Denis.” It is already tolerably clear, that this great army had <em>no
-General</em>.</p>
-
-<p>“Then might be seen all the nobility of France, richly dressed out in
-shining armour, with banners and pennons gallantly displayed; for all the
-flower of the French nobility was there.” By the advice of the Constable
-and marshals, the army was divided into three battalions, each
-consisting of 16,000 men-at-arms. Nearly 50,000 spears then, a large
-proportion doubtless mounted, were arrayed against 2000 English lances,
-and 4,000 archers, with a few irregulars. Michelet says: “There were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span>
-the King’s four sons, 26 Dukes or Counts, and 140 knights-bannerets&mdash;a
-magnificent spectacle; but the army was none the better for all that.”</p>
-
-<p>The King sent forward three knights to reconnoitre the English army.
-They returned, and Sir Eustace Ribeaumont said, “Sir, we have
-examined the English closely; they amount, according to our estimate,
-to about 2000 men-at-arms, 4000 archers, and 1500 footmen. They
-are posted very strongly; and have fortified their position as well as
-they can. They are on a hill, which is only approachable by one road or
-lane; so narrow that only four men can ride abreast.”</p>
-
-<p>The French were now on the point of moving forward to the attack,
-when the Cardinal de Perigord came up at a full gallop, and making a
-low reverence, entreated the King to listen to him a moment. “You
-have here,” he said, “all the flower of your kingdom against a mere
-handful of English; you may have them on other terms than by a battle.
-Let me go to the Prince, and remonstrate with him on the dangerous
-situation he is in.” The King said, “It is very agreeable to us; but
-make haste back again.”</p>
-
-<p>The Cardinal set off at full speed; and was admitted to the Prince,
-whom he found on foot in the midst of his army. He said, “Fair son,
-if you have well considered the great army of the King of France, you
-will allow me to make up matters between you, if I possibly can.” The
-Prince said, “Sir, save my own honour, and that of my army, and I will
-agree to any reasonable terms.” The Cardinal then returned to the
-French camp, and saw the King; and all that day he rode from one army
-to the other, trying to bring about an agreement. Many proposals were
-made, the Prince offered to give up all the towns and castles which he
-had taken; to release all his prisoners without ransom; and to engage not
-to take up arms against the King of France for the next seven years.
-But John refused the offer; demanding that Edward, with an hundred
-of his knights, should surrender themselves prisoners. “The Prince
-and his army,” says Froissart, “disdained to accept any such conditions.”
-Another account says, that Edward exclaimed, “England shall
-never have to pay a ransom for me!”</p>
-
-<p>Thus Sunday was spent; and the battle was necessarily deferred till
-the morrow. The English, however, had well employed their time in
-still further strengthening their positions. But they were short of
-provisions; and could the French have stooped to defer the attack, and
-to be content with cutting off all supplies, Edward and his whole force
-must have submitted themselves before the termination of another week.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-But such a course would have been humbling to the pride of France. A
-certain triumph seemed in the power of the French commanders, and
-they could brook no delay.</p>
-
-<p>Edward, therefore, made up his mind for a struggle for life or liberty
-on the Monday morning. He remained on the defensive; except that
-he detached a body of 300 men-at-arms, and as many archers, with orders
-to make a circuit, and get into the flank and rear of the Duke
-of Normandy’s battalion; the position of which he could survey from
-his hill.</p>
-
-<p>“And now,” says Froissart, “the whole army of the Prince, including
-every one, did not amount to more than 8000; while the French
-had upwards of 60,000 combatants, among whom were more than 3000
-knights. The Prince, seeing all hope of an accommodation at an end,
-addressed his captains and men, saying:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Now, my gallant follows! what though we be but a small body when
-compared with our enemies; let us not be cast down on that account;
-for victory is not always with the greater numbers, but God gives it to
-whom he pleases. If the day shall be ours, great will be the honour of
-it: if not, I have a father, and you all have friends, who will be sure to
-avenge our deaths. Stand fast, therefore, and fight like men; and if it
-please God, you shall see me play the part of a true knight.”</p>
-
-<p>And now came on the French, and soon it was seen that here, as in
-many other battles of the time, the English bow was a most formidable
-weapon. The battalion of the French marshals entered the lane by
-which the English position must be approached; and now the archers
-began to ply their weapons “in such sort that the horses, smarting under
-the pain of their wounds, would not advance, but turned about, threw
-their masters, and created a general confusion. And if a few of the
-French struggled through and came in sight of the Prince’s battalion, a
-small party or two of English knights, who waited for them, instantly
-attacked them and slew them, or made them prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Thus, in a short time, this battalion of the marshals was defeated.
-The front line was driven back in confusion on the division immediately
-behind it. This, unable to advance, began to give ground, impelled by
-the crowd of fugitives pressing back upon it. But in retreating, this
-battalion fell back upon the Duke of Normandy’s and soon confusion
-and terror spread through the whole army. The detachment which the
-Prince had placed over-night on the flank and rear of the Duke of Normandy’s
-battalion, now came forth from their ambuscade, and fell vehemently<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
-upon the already disordered ranks of the French; “and, in
-truth,” says Froissart, “the English archers shot so thickly and so well,
-that the French did not know which way to turn themselves to avoid the
-arrows.” And now, this battalion, which was broad enough in the front,
-grew thin and scanty in the rear, for the news of the repulse of the marshals
-had spread, and the men began to escape in crowds. Meanwhile the
-English on the hill, perceiving that the first battalion was beaten, and
-that the Duke of Normandy’s was in great disorder, gave the word, and
-the knights and men-at-arms were in a moment in their saddles.</p>
-
-<p>“The day is ours,” said Sir John Chandos, and, giving a shout, the
-2000 horse pushed down the hill, charging with vehemence the disordered
-battalion.</p>
-
-<p>“Let us make for the King himself,” said Sir John to the Prince,
-“for I know that he will not fly, and we shall have him&mdash;if it please
-God.”</p>
-
-<p>And now the battle grew hot; the French were so numerous, and in
-such disorder, that it was an arduous task that still remained. Edward
-charged the division of the Duke of Athens, broke it, and drove it before
-him;&mdash;then the battalion of Germans, under the Count of Salzburg,
-which was soon overthrown and put to flight. Meanwhile “the English
-archers, advancing with the cavalry, shot so well that none dared to
-stay within their reach.”</p>
-
-<p>And now three of the King’s sons, the Duke of Normandy, the Earl of
-Poictiers, and the Earl of Touraine, with 800 lances which had never
-put spear in rest, took flight and rode off the field.</p>
-
-<p>The King himself stood firm. “If one-fourth of his soldiers,” says
-Froissart, “had behaved as well as he did, the day would have been his
-own.” Again he says, “King John himself did wonders, he fought with
-a battle-axe, with which he defended himself bravely.” The English
-knew the value of such a prize, and they directed their chief efforts to
-his capture. The Earl of Tancarville was made prisoner close to him,
-as were the Earl of Ponthieu, and the Earl of Eu. A little further on,
-the Lord Charles d’Artois and many other knights were captured by
-the flank attack. “The English and Gascons poured so fast upon the
-King’s division that they broke all its ranks,” and now the last show of
-order was lost, and the whole field was one confused mass. Every one
-was pressing forwards, eager to seize the King; at last a young French
-knight, who had been banished and had entered the English service,
-entreated the king to surrender or he would lose his life. “To whom<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
-am I to surrender?” said John, “where is my cousin the Prince of
-Wales? Who are you?” “I am Denis de Morbeque, knight of Artois,”
-said the Frenchman, “surrender yourself to me and I will lead you to
-the Prince.” “Well,” said the King, giving him his glove, “I surrender
-myself to you.”</p>
-
-<p>Sir John Chandos, who had remained by the Prince’s side all the day,
-had now advised him to raise his banner on an elevated point, and to
-pitch his tent, for there was no longer any French army in sight.
-Accordingly, the banner was raised, a small pavilion was pitched, wine
-was brought, the Prince took off his helmet, and the trumpets began to
-sound. But now the Prince addressed the Earl of Warwick and Lord
-Cobham, saying. “I pray you to mount your horses, and ride over the
-field, that I may know, if possible, what has become of the King.” These
-two lords immediately rode forth, and they soon perceived a great crowd
-of knights and men-at-arms, all striving with a great noise. More than
-ten knights were loudly claiming the honour of having taken the King.
-“The two lords then pushed through the crowd by main force, and
-ordered all to stand aside. They commanded, in the Prince’s name, all
-to keep their distance, on pain of death. They then, dismounting,
-approached the King with profound reverence, and conducted him peaceably
-to the Prince of Wales.” Edward received the King with a low
-obeisance, and comforted him as well as he was able, ordering wines and
-refreshments to be brought, which he presented to the King with his own
-hand. “In the evening a supper was spread in the Prince’s pavilion;
-and the King, his son Philip, with Bourbon, Artois, the Earl of Tancarville,
-Estampes, Granville, and others, were seated at an elevated table,
-while the Prince served the King with his own hands. The French
-princes, struck with Edward’s courtesy, declared that he would be one
-of the most gallant knights in Christendom, if it please God to grant
-him life.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the English horse continued its pursuit of the fugitives,
-up to the very gates of Poictiers. “There was such an horrible spectacle
-of men slaughtered and trampled down, as it is wonderful to think of.
-The frightened French, in crowds, surrendered the moment they caught
-sight of an Englishman.”</p>
-
-<p>The report now given in to the Prince, showed that the King and one
-of his sons, and 17 Earls, besides a great number of Barons and
-knights, were prisoners; and that from five to six thousand lay dead on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-the field.<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> But the victors were troubled what to do with the crowds of
-captives of all ranks, who were <em>twice as numerous as themselves</em>. They
-concluded, at last, to ransom them on the spot, and even to take the
-pledges of those who had no money. As for the booty, it was immense;
-“there being quantities of gold and silver plate, rich jewels, and trunks
-full of gold and silver ornaments. As to fine armour, that was in such
-abundance as to be little regarded.”</p>
-
-<p>The prince and his little army, now undisturbed, continued their
-march, and in a few days passed the Garonne, and arrived safely at
-Bourdeaux. “Great was the dismay at Paris, when the fugitives brought
-word that there was no longer a King nor Barons in France, but all were
-killed or taken.”</p>
-
-<p>England, very naturally, rejoiced through all her coasts. The Prince,
-after a short stay, embarked for England with his illustrious prisoner, to
-whom, for greater ease and comfort, he assigned a separate vessel. He
-entered London with knightly courtesy, riding a small black horse, while
-the King of France, royally mounted on a white charger, rode by his
-side. The palace of the Savoy was made the residence of the captive
-monarch, and there king Edward and his Queen frequently visited him.
-John, however, was long detained in England, the enormous sum of
-3,000,000 of gold crowns being demanded from France for his ransom.
-He finally consented to those hard terms; but on returning to
-his own kingdom, he found so much difficulty in persuading his people
-to raise this great ransom, that he finally resolved to return to his prison
-in Westminster. As true as he was brave, he nobly answered his council,
-who tried to persuade him to be guilty of a breach of his engagement,
-that “if honour were banished from every other abode, it ought at least
-to find a home in the breast of Kings.” He returned to his home in
-the Savoy; where, a few months after, he died. Edward III ordered
-his obsequies to be performed with royal magnificence, and sent his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span>
-corpse, with a splendid retinue to France, where it found a place in the
-burial-place of the Kings, in the abbey-church of St. Denis.”</p>
-
-
-<p>POLOTSK, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 30th, 1812, between the
-French Marshal, Oudinot, and the Russians under Wittgenstein. The
-Russians were defeated with great loss.</p>
-
-
-<p>PONDICHERRY.&mdash;<em>India.</em>&mdash;Settled by the French in 1674; taken
-by the Dutch in 1693; besieged by the British in 1748, and taken by
-our forces in January, 1761, but restored in 1763. Again taken in October,
-1778, and restored in 1783. Again captured by the British, August
-23rd, 1793, and finally in 1803.</p>
-
-
-<p>PORTOBELLO.&mdash;<em>South America.</em>&mdash;Taken from the Spaniards by
-Admiral Vernon, November 22nd, 1739. Again taken by the British,
-who destroyed the fortifications, in 1742.</p>
-
-
-<p>PRAGA, BATTLES OF.&mdash;Fought, October 10th, 1794, between
-the Poles and Russians; 30,000 Poles were butchered in this battle by
-the merciless Suwarrow. A second battle, fought March 31st, 1831,
-between the same countries, resulted with defeat of the Russians who lost
-4000 killed and wounded, and 6000 prisoners and 12 pieces of cannon.</p>
-
-
-<p>PRESCOTT, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>Upper Canada.</em>&mdash;Fought, November
-27th, 1838, between the Canadian Rebels and the British, under Major
-Young, and on the following day by Lieut.-Colonel Dundas, who, after
-a desperate resistance, succeeded in dispersing the insurgents, several
-of whom were killed and many taken prisoners; the troops also suffered
-considerably. After the attack the remainder of the rebels surrendered.
-In these engagements the rebels were aided by the Americans, who
-invaded the Canadian territory in great numbers.</p>
-
-
-<p>PRESTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, November 12th, 1715, between
-the Scotch insurgents, under Forster, and the British, under General
-Willis. The first attack was successful, on the side of the Jacobites, but
-the Royal forces being augmented by the arrival of General Carpenter,
-Preston was invested on every side, and the Scots at length laid down
-their arms, and their nobles and leaders were secured. Some were shot as
-deserters, and others sent off to London, pinioned and bound together, to
-frighten their party.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>PRESTON-PANS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, September 21st, 1745,
-between Prince Charles the Pretender and the Royal forces.</p>
-
-<p>“In the meantime Sir John Cope, who had pursued the rebels through
-the Highlands, but had declined meeting them in their descent, being
-now reinforced by two regiments of dragoons, resolved to march towards
-Edinburgh and give the enemy battle. The young Adventurer, whose
-forces were rather superior, though undisciplined, attacked him near
-Preston-Pans, about twelve miles from the capital, and in a few minutes
-put him and his troops to flight. This victory, by which the King lost
-500 men, gave the rebels great influence; and had the Pretender taken
-advantage of the general consternation, and marched directly for England,
-the consequence might have been fatal to freedom. But he was amused
-by the promise of succours which never came; and thus induced to
-remain at Edinburgh, to enjoy the triumphs of an important victory,
-and to be treated as a monarch.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PULTOWA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 8th, 1709, between
-Charles XII of Sweden and Peter the Great of Russia. In this celebrated
-battle the Czar entirely defeated the Hero of Sweden, and forced
-him to flee to Turkey. This battle was lost on account of Charles having
-been wounded just before, being obliged to issue his orders from a litter,
-his soldiers thus having no opportunity of seeing their loved commander.</p>
-
-
-<p>PULTUSK, BATTLES OF.&mdash;One between the Saxons and Swedes,
-in which the former were defeated, 1703; and the other between the
-French, under Napoleon, and the Russian and Prussian armies.
-Both sides claimed the victory, but it inclined in favour of the French.</p>
-
-
-<p>PYRAMIDS, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought between the French and
-Turks, 1798. “The sight of the Pyramids, and the anxious nature of
-the moment, inspired the French General with even more than usual
-ardour; the sun glittered on those immense masses, which seemed to
-arise in height every step the soldiers advanced, and the army, sharing
-his enthusiasm, gazed, as they marched, on the everlasting monuments.
-“Remember,” said he, “that from the summit of those Pyramids forty
-centuries contemplate your actions.”</p>
-
-<p>With his usual sagacity, the General had taken extraordinary precautions
-to ensure success against the formidable cavalry of the Desert.
-The divisions were all drawn up as before, in hollow squares six deep,
-the artillery at the angles, the general and baggage in the centre. When<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span>
-they were in mass, the two sides advanced in column, those in front and
-rear moved forward in their ranks, but the moment they were charged,
-the whole were to halt, and face outward on every side. When they
-were themselves to charge, the three front ranks were to break off and
-form the column of attack, those in the rear remaining behind, still in
-square, but three deep only, to constitute the reserve. Napoleon had no
-fears for the result, if the infantry were steady; his only apprehension
-was, that his soldiers, accustomed to charge, would yield to their
-impetuosity too soon, and would not be brought to the immovable firmness
-which this species of warfare required.</p>
-
-<p>Mourad Bey, no sooner perceived the lateral movement of the French
-army, than, with a promptitude of decision worthy of a skilful general,
-he resolved to attack the columns while in the act of completing it. An
-extraordinary movement was immediately observed in the Mameluke
-line, and speedily 7000 horsemen detached themselves from the
-remainder of the army, and bore down upon the French columns. It
-was a terrible sight, capable of daunting the bravest troops, when this
-immense body of cavalry approached at full gallop the squares of infantry.
-The horsemen, admirably mounted and magnificently dressed, rent
-the air with their cries. The glitter of spears and cimeters dazzled the
-sight, while the earth groaned under the repeated and increasing thunder
-of their feet. The soldiers, impressed, but not panic-struck, by the sight,
-stood firm, and anxiously waited, with their pieces ready, the order to
-fire. Desaix’s division being entangled in a wood of palm-trees, was not
-completely formed when the swiftest of the Mamelukes came upon them;
-they were, in consequence, partially broken, and thirty or forty of the
-bravest of the assailants penetrated, and died in the midst of the square,
-at the feet of the officers: but before the mass arrived the movement
-was completed, and a rapid fire of musketry and grape drove them from
-the front round the sides of the column. With matchless intrepidity,
-they pierced through the interval between Desaix’s and Regnier’s divisions,
-and riding round both squares, strove to find an entrance; but an
-incessant fire from every front mowed them down as fast as they poured
-in at the opening. Furious at the unexpected resistance, they dashed
-their horses against the rampart of bayonets, and threw their pistols at
-the heads of the grenadiers, while many who had lost their steeds crept
-along the ground and cut at the legs of the front rank with their cimetars.
-In vain thousands succeeded, and galloped round the flaming walls
-of steel; multitudes perished under the rolling fire which, without intermission,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span>
-issued from the ranks, and at length the survivors, in despair,
-fled towards the camp from whence they had issued. Here, however,
-they were charged in flank by Napoleon at the head of Dugua’s division,
-while those of Vial and Bon, on the extreme left, stormed the intrenchments.
-The most horrible confusion now reigned in the camp;
-the horsemen, driven in disorder, trampled under foot the infantry, who,
-panic-struck at the rout of the Mamelukes, on whom all their hopes
-were placed, abandoned their ranks, and rushed in crowds towards the
-boats to escape to the other side of the Nile. Numbers saved themselves
-by swimming, but a great proportion perished in the attempt. The
-Mamelukes, rendered desperate, seeing no possibility of escape in that
-direction, fell upon the columns who were approaching from the right,
-with their wings extended in order of attack; but they, forming square
-again with inconceivable rapidity, repulsed them with great slaughter,
-and drove them finally off in the direction of the Pyramids. The intrenched
-camp with all its artillery, stores, and baggage fell into the
-hands of the victors. Several thousands of the Mamelukes were drowned
-or killed; and of the formidable array which had appeared in such
-splendour in the morning, not more than 2500 escaped with Mourad
-Bey into Upper Egypt. The victors hardly lost 200 men in the action;
-and several days were occupied after it was over in stripping the
-slain of their magnificent appointments, or fishing up the rich spoils
-which encumbered the banks of the Nile.”</p>
-
-
-<p>PYRENEES, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought, July 28th, 1813, between
-the British army, commanded by Wellington, and the French,
-commanded by Marshal Soult. The French were defeated, with great
-slaughter. After the battle of Vittoria, fought, June 21st, Napoleon
-sent Soult to supersede Jourdan, with instructions to drive the British
-across the Ebro; a duty which he could not accomplish; for he was obliged
-to retreat into France, which was entered by the British, and he lost
-20,000 men, in a series of engagements in the Pyrenees, which separate
-France from Spain, from July 25th to August 2nd, same year.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="Q" id="Q"></a>Q.</h3>
-
-
-<p>QUARTRE BRAS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 16th, 1815,
-between the French and English. The French were commanded by
-Marshal Ney, and the British by the Duke of Brunswick, the Prince
-of Orange, and Sir Thomas Picton. It was fought two days before<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-Waterloo. The British fought, to maintain their position, with wonderful
-intrepidity, notwithstanding their inferiority in number, and the fatigue
-of marching all the preceding night. The gallant 42nd Regiment of
-Scotch Highlanders, or the Black Watch, suffered very severely in
-pursuit of a French division repulsed early in the morning, by cuirassiers
-being posted in ambush behind growing corn as high as the
-shoulders of the tallest men. In this battle, the Duke of Brunswick
-fell, whose death is alluded to in the well-known lines of Byron on the
-field of Waterloo.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="QUE" id="QUE"></a></div>
-<p>QUEBEC.&mdash;Has been five times assaulted. Founded by the French
-in 1605. Reduced by the English, with all Canada, in 1626, and restored
-in 1632. Besieged again by the English, but without success, in 1711,
-but was taken, under Wolfe, September 13th, 1759. The following is
-a good account of the capture of the city, under the immortal Wolfe.
-Quebec was again besieged by the American General Montgomery, who
-was slain before it, December 31st, 1775, and the siege was raised early
-next year. Appended is also an account of the siege and death of
-the American General.</p>
-
-<p>“Wolfe’s army, amounting to about 8000, was conveyed to the vicinity
-of Quebec by a fleet of vessels of war and transports, and landed, in two
-divisions, on the island of Orleans, on the 27th of June. The Marquis
-de Montcalm made vigorous preparations for defending Quebec. His
-armed force consisted of about 13,000 men, of whom six battalions were
-regulars, and the remainder well disciplined Canadian militia, with some
-cavalry and Indians. He ranged these forces from the River St. Charles,
-to the Falls of Montmorency, with the view of opposing the landing of
-the British.</p>
-
-<p>“Wolfe first attempted the entrenchment of Montmorency, landing
-his troops under cover of the fire from the ships of war, but he was
-gallantly repulsed by the French. In consequence of this repulse, he
-sent dispatches to England, stating that he had doubts of being able to
-reduce Quebec during that campaign. His prospects, indeed, were not
-encouraging: the great stronghold kept up an incessant fire from its
-almost inaccessible position, bristling with guns, defended by a superior
-force, and inhabited by a hostile population. Above the city, steep
-banks rendered landing almost impossible; below, the country for eight
-miles was embarrassed by two rivers, many redoubts, and watchful
-Indians. A part of the fleet lay above the town, the remainder in the
-north channel, between the island of Orleans and Montmorency.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Soon after this repulse, however, Wolfe roused his brave and vigorous
-spirit, called a council of war, and proposed, it is generally said, at
-the instigation of his second in command, General Townsend, to gain
-the heights of Abraham behind and above the city, commanding the
-weakest part of the fortress. The council acceded to this daring proposal,
-and their heroic commander commenced his preparations; in the
-meanwhile, making such active demonstrations against Montcalm’s position,
-that the French still believed it to be his main object.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 11th of September, the greater part of the troops landed,
-and marched up the south shore opposite Quebec,&mdash;forded the river
-Etchemin&mdash;and embarked on board the men of war and transports
-which lay above the town. On the 12th, the ships of war sailed nine
-miles up the river, to Cap Rouge. This feint deceived Montcalm, and
-he detached De Bougainville, who, with his army of reserve, proceeded
-still farther up the river to prevent the English from landing. During
-the night, the English troops dropped silently down the river, with the
-current, in boats, and at four o’clock in the morning began to land.</p>
-
-<p>“It is surprising how the troops contrived to land, as the French had
-posted sentries along the shore, to challenge boats and give the alarm.
-The first boat was questioned, when Captain Donald M‘Donald, one of
-Frazer’s Highlanders, who was perfectly well acquainted with the French
-language and customs, answered to “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Qui vive?</i>” which is their challenge,
-the word “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">La France</i>”&mdash;when the sentinel demanded “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">A quel
-régiment?</i>” the captain replied, “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">De la Reine</i>,” which he knew by
-accident to be one of those commanded by De Bougainville. The
-soldier took it for granted that it was an expected convoy, and saying
-“<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Passe</i>,” the boats proceeded without further question. One of the
-sentries more wary than the rest, running down to the water’s edge
-called out, “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Pourquoi est-ce que vous ne parlez pas plus haut?</i>” to
-which the captain answered in a soft tone of voice, “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Tais-toi, nous
-serons entendus</i>.” Thus cautioned, the sentry retired, and the boats
-proceeded without further altercation, and landed at the spot now celebrated
-as “Wolfe’s Cove.”</p>
-
-<p>“General Wolfe was one of the first on shore, and on seeing the
-difficulty of ascending the precipice, observed familiarly to Captain
-M‘Donald, “I don’t believe there is any possibility of getting up, but
-you must do your endeavour.” Indeed the precipice here was so steep,
-that there seemed no possibility of scaling it, but the Highlanders,
-grasping the bushes which grew on its face ascended the woody precipice<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>
-with courage and dexterity. They dislodged a small body of troops
-that defended a narrow path-way up the bank; and a few more mounting,
-the General drew up the rest in order as they arrived. With great
-exertion they reached the summit, and in a short time, Wolfe had his
-whole army drawn up in regular order on the plains above.</p>
-
-<p>“Montcalm, struck with this unexpected movement, concluded, that
-unless Wolfe could be driven from this position, Quebec was lost.
-Hoping probably that only a detachment had as yet reached it, he lost
-his usual prudence and forbearance, and finding that his opponent had
-gained so much by hazarding all, he, with an infatuation for which it is
-difficult to account, resolved to meet the British army.</p>
-
-<p>“He crossed the St. Charles on the 13th, sallying forth from a strong
-fortress without field artillery&mdash;without even waiting the return of Bougainville,
-who, with 2000 men, formed a corps of observation,&mdash;before he
-could concentrate his forces, advanced with haste and precipitation, and
-commenced a most gallant attack, when within about 250 yards of the
-English line. The English moved forward regularly, firing steadily,
-until within thirty or forty yards of the French, when they gave a
-general volley which did great execution. The English had only a light
-cannon, which the sailors had dragged up the heights with ropes. The
-sabre, therefore, and the bayonet decided the day. The agile Scotch
-Highlanders, with their stout claymores, served the purposes of cavalry,
-and the steady fire of the English Fusiliers compensated, in some
-degree, for the want of artillery.</p>
-
-<p>“The heroism of Montcalm was as conspicuous as that of his illustrious
-opponent,&mdash;both headed their men,&mdash;both rushed with eagerness where
-the battle raged most fiercely. Often by their personal prowess and
-example did they change the fortune of the moment. Both were
-repeatedly wounded, but still fought on with enthusiasm. And, at last,
-both those gallant commanders fell mortally wounded, whilst advancing
-to the last deadly charge at the head of their respective columns.</p>
-
-<p>“Wolfe was first wounded in the wrist. He immediately wrapped a
-handkerchief round his arm, and, putting himself at the head of his
-grenadiers, led them on to the charge. He was then struck with a
-second ball, but still pressed on, when, just as the enemy were about to
-give way, he received a third ball in the breast and groin, and sank.
-When they raised him from the ground, he tried with his faint hand to
-clear the death-mist from his eyes. He could not see how the battle
-went, and was sinking to the earth, when the cry “<em>They run!</em>” “<em>They<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span>
-run</em>;” arrested his fleeting spirit. “<em>Who run?</em>” asked the dying hero.
-“<em>The French</em>,” replied his supporter, “<em>they give way everywhere</em>.”
-“<em>What!</em>” said he, “<em>do they run already? now God be praised; I die
-happy!</em>” and so saying, the youthful victor breathed his last. Such
-was the death of Wolfe, at the early age of thirty-five, when but few men
-begin even to appear on the theatre of great events.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">DEATH OF GENERAL MONTGOMERY, ETC.</p>
-
-<p>“The first Congress of what is now called “The United States,”
-met in Philadelphia, on the 5th of September, 1774. It is remarkable
-that one of their first objects, after obtaining their own independence,
-was to attempt to seize on the country they had assisted England to
-conquer. It is a singular fact that the money, which it was endeavoured
-to levy upon the New Englanders and their fellow-colonists, and which,
-in a great measure, caused the rupture, was for the express purpose of
-defraying the great expenses incurred by England in the capture of
-Canada.</p>
-
-<p>Having resolved to invade Canada, the Americans entered it in the
-fall of 1775, in two directions&mdash;by Lake Champlain and by the sources
-of the Kennebec River. The first division, under General Montgomery,
-was very successful. After obtaining possession of Ticonderoga, Crown
-Point, and St. Johns, he advanced towards Montreal. His force was
-very considerable, while there were but few British soldiers in Canada.
-General Carleton, who succeeded General Murray in the military command,
-had been repulsed at Longueuil; so that Montgomery had only
-to take possession of the city, which he did on the 19th of November.
-The naval force in the river, and all the military stores and provisions,
-were surrendered into his hands, and General Prescott, with the volunteers
-and soldiers, became prisoners of war. Finding plenty of woollen
-cloth in the city, General Montgomery took the opportunity of new-clothing
-his troops, who had suffered much from the severity of the
-weather. The second division of the American army, under General
-Arnold, reached the St. Lawrence on the 9th of November. They had
-traversed, with dreadful fatigue, the forests and swamps in the District
-of Maine, and arrived at Point Levi, opposite Quebec, worn out and
-dispirited. Quebec was at this time defenceless; and had General
-Arnold been able to cross the river, that capital, and with it the territory
-of Canada, must have passed into the hands of the Americans. Fortunately<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-all the shipping had been removed to the other side, and it was
-not until the 14th that he was able to cross over. He landed 500 men
-at Wolfe’s Cove, and waited near that place in the hope of being joined
-by Montgomery from Montreal. General Carleton, the British Governor,
-was at this time occupied, with his troops near Montreal, in endeavouring
-to repulse Montgomery. The latter wished to effect a junction with
-General Arnold, that they might unitedly attack the fortress. Perceiving
-that the safety of the country depended upon the possession of
-Quebec, Carleton effected a masterly movement to reach that place. In
-this, he was assisted by Captain Bouchette, R.N., who conveyed him
-through the American forces by night, in a canoe with muffled paddles.
-He arrived at the citadel of Quebec on the 19th, whilst the Americans
-thought him busily engaged with Montgomery, near Montreal.</p>
-
-<p>General Carleton’s arrival at Quebec was hailed with great joy by the
-Canadians, who vied with the oldest British soldiers in preparations for
-defence. The force under his command amounted to only 1800 men.
-Not more than 350 were regulars&mdash;of whom 230 were Frazer’s Highlanders,
-who had settled in the country, and were re-embodied under
-Colonel McLean. The remainder were 450 seamen, and a gallant band
-composed of Canadian militia and artificers. The American Generals
-had now effected a junction of their forces, and summoned the fortress
-to surrender. This was at once rejected. After pushing the siege
-during the month of December, without any prospect of success, Montgomery
-determined upon making a night-attack. This intention soon
-became known to General Carleton, who made every preparation to
-defeat the enemy. The Governor, with the officers and gentlemen off
-duty, took up their quarters for several days at the Recollet Convent,
-where they slept in their clothes. During this month’s siege, the
-American riflemen kept up an unintermitting fire upon the sentinels,
-and threw from forty to fifty shells every night into the city. The
-inhabitants became so accustomed to the occurrences of a siege that they
-ceased to regard them with alarm, all joining cheerfully in bearing arms
-and performing the duty of soldiers. Two strong parties were formed
-on the 31st of December&mdash;one under Montgomery, the other under
-Arnold, whose local knowledge of Quebec was accurate. They were to
-advance from opposite sides and meet at the foot of Mountain street;
-then force Prescott gate and reach the Upper Town.</p>
-
-<p>The besiegers approached the city with the most careful silence, aided
-by the raging of a furious storm. Advancing by the road which winds<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
-round the face of the rock, the army was crowded into the narrow pass
-which led to the gate. Notwithstanding every precaution the confused
-noise of the approaching troops rose above the conflict of the elements,
-and struck the watchful ear of the outer sentinel, who, receiving no
-answer to his challenge, roused the British guard. The party who
-defended the battery, consisted of Canadian militia, with nine British
-seamen to work the guns. They kept a close watch, and, as soon as the
-day broke, discovered the troops marching in the snow. Orders were
-given to make no movement; and the Americans, having halted at the
-distance of fifty yards, sent forward an officer to reconnoitre. On his
-return the troops marched forward with a quickness and precision
-deserving the highest praise. The English then opened a tremendous
-fire from the artillery which commanded the path; the groans which
-succeeded plainly revealed the enemy; and it was not until every sound
-in answer to their fire had died away, that they ceased their cannonade.
-The enemy having retired, thirteen bodies were found in the snow.
-Montgomery’s orderly sergeant, desperately wounded, but yet alive, was
-found and brought into the guard-room. On being asked if the General
-himself had been killed, he evaded the question by replying that he had
-not seen him for some time. This faithful sergeant died in about an
-hour afterwards. It was not ascertained that the American General
-had been killed, until General Carleton, anxious to learn the truth, sent
-to inquire if any of the prisoners would identify the body. An officer
-consenting accompanied the aide-de-camp to the “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Près de Ville</i>” guard,
-and pointed out the body, pronouncing over it a glowing eulogium on
-Montgomery’s bravery. His two aides-de-camp were also recognised
-among the slain. This brave man had fought by the side of Wolfe on
-the Plains of Abraham; but, marrying an American lady, the daughter
-of Judge Livingston, he imbibed the politics of his father-in-law’s family,
-and joined the cause of the colonists against the Mother Country. The
-excellence of his qualities and disposition procured him an uncommon
-share of private affection and esteem. After his death the Continental
-Congress ordered a magnificent cenotaph to be erected to his memory in
-St. Paul’s Church, N.Y. Thither his remains were removed in 1818,
-by the desire of his widow, and with the permission of the then British
-Governor, Sir John Sherbrooke. In the meantime, Arnold, who had
-been repulsed at the opposite side of the town, took the command, and
-attempted still to maintain his ground; but the dispirited state of his
-men rendered him unable to keep up more than an imperfect blockade<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span>
-at a distance of three miles, which he at last abandoned. In the whole
-attack upon Quebec the Americans lost about 100 killed and wounded,
-and six officers of Arnold’s division, inclusive of the loss at <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Près de
-Ville</i>. The British had one officer and seventeen men killed and
-wounded. The number of those who surrendered was 426.”</p>
-
-
-<p>QUEENSTON.&mdash;<em>Upper Canada.</em>&mdash;This town, on the River Niagara,
-was taken by the United States troops in the American war of 1812,
-October 13th, but was retaken by the British, who defeated the
-Americans with loss. The following is a succinct account of the battle
-and death of general Brock, the Hero of Upper Canada:</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">WAR OF 1812 AND DEATH OF GEN. BROCK.</p>
-
-<p>“The American Government assembled at the Niagara frontier a force
-of 6300 men; of this force, 3170 (900 of whom were regular troops)
-were at Lewiston, under the command of General Van Rensselaer. In
-the American reports this army is set down at 8000 strong, with 15 pieces
-of field ordnance. To oppose this force Major General Brock had part of
-the 41st and 49th regiments, a few companies of militia, and about 200
-Indians, in all 1500 men; but so dispersed in different posts at and
-between Fort Erie and Fort George, that only a small number was available
-at any one point. Before daylight on the morning of the 13th of
-October, a large division of General Van Rensselaer’s army, numbering
-between 1300 and 1400, under Brigadier General Wadsworth, effected a
-landing at the lower end of the village of Queenston (opposite Lewiston),
-and made an attack upon the position, which was defended with the most
-determined bravery by the two flank companies of the 49th regiment, commanded
-by Captains Dennis and Williams, aided by such of the militia
-forces and Indians as could be collected in the vicinity. Captain Dennis
-marched his company to the landing place opposite Lewiston, and was
-soon followed by the light company of the 49th, and the few militia who
-could be hastily assembled. Here the attempt of the enemy to effect a
-passage, was for some time successfully resisted, and several boats were
-either disabled or sunk by the fire from the one-gun battery on the
-heights, and that from the masked battery, about a mile below. Several
-boats also were, by the fire from this battery, so annoyed, that falling
-before the landing place, they were compelled to drop down with the
-current and recross to the American side. A considerable force, however,
-effected a landing some distance above, and succeeded in gaining the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
-summit of the mountain. No resistance could now be offered to the
-crossing from Lewiston, except by the battery at Vromont’s Point, half
-a mile below, and from this a steady and harassing fire was kept up, which
-did considerable execution.</p>
-
-<p>At this juncture Sir Isaac Brock arrived. He had for days suspected
-this invasion, and on the preceding evening he called his staff together
-and gave to each the necessary instructions. Agreeable to his usual custom
-he rose before daylight, and hearing the cannonade, awoke Major
-Glegg, and called for his horse Alfred, which Sir James Craig had presented
-to him. He then galloped eagerly from Fort George to the scene
-of action, and with two Aides-de-Camp passed up the hill at full gallop in
-front of the light company, under a heavy fire of artillery and musketry
-from the American shore. On reaching the 18-pounder battery at the
-top of the hill, they dismounted and took a view of passing events, which
-at that moment appeared highly favourable. But in a few minutes a
-firing was heard, which proceeded from a strong detachment of American
-regulars under Captain Wool, who, as just stated, had succeeded in gaining
-the brow of the heights in rear of the battery, by a fisherman’s path
-up the rocks, which being reported as impossible, was not guarded. Sir
-Isaac Brock and his Aides-de-Camp had not even time to remount, but
-were obliged to retire precipitately with the twelve men stationed in the
-battery, which was quickly occupied by the enemy. Captain Wool having
-sent forward about 150 regulars, Captain Williams’ detachment of about
-100 men advanced to meet them, personally directed by the General, who,
-observing the enemy waver, ordered a charge, which was promptly executed;
-but as the Americans gave way, the result was not equal to his
-expectations. Captain Wool sent a reinforcement to his regulars,
-notwithstanding which, the whole was driven to the edge of the
-bank. Here some of the American officers were on the point of hoisting
-a white flag with an intention to surrender, when Captain Wool tore it off
-and reanimated his dispirited troops. They now opened a heavy fire of
-musketry, and, conspicuous from his cross, his height, and the enthusiasm
-with which he animated his little band, the British Commander was soon
-singled out, and he fell about an hour after his arrival.</p>
-
-<p>The fatal bullet entered his right breast, and passed through his left
-side. He had but that instant said, “<em>Push on the York Volunteers!</em>”
-and he lived only long enough to request that his fall might not be noticed,
-or prevent the advance of his brave troops, adding a wish which could not
-be distinctly understood, that some token of remembrance should be transmitted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
-to his sister. He died unmarried, and on the same day, a week
-previously, he had completed his 43rd year. The lifeless corpse was
-immediately conveyed into a house close by, where it remained until the
-afternoon, unperceived by the enemy. His Provincial Aide-de-Camp,
-Lieutenant Colonel McDonell, of the militia, and the Attorney General
-of Upper Canada, a fine promising young man, was mortally wounded
-soon after his chief, and died the next day, at the early age of twenty-five
-years. Although one bullet had passed through his body, and he
-was wounded in four places, yet he survived twenty hours, and during a
-period of excruciating agony his thoughts and words were constantly
-occupied with lamentations for his deceased commander and friend.
-He fell, while gallantly charging up the hill, with 190 men, chiefly York
-Volunteers, by which charge the enemy was compelled to spike the 18-pounder
-in the battery there.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">THE BATTLE OF QUEENSTON HEIGHTS.</p>
-
-<p>At this time, about two in the afternoon, the whole British and Indian
-force thus assembled was about 1000 men, of whom 600 were regulars.
-In numbers the Americans were about equal&mdash;courage they had, but
-they wanted the confidence and discipline of British Soldiers. After carefully
-reconnoitering, General Sheaffe, who had arrived from Fort George,
-and who had now assumed the command, commenced the attack by an
-advance of his left flank, composed of the light company of the 41st, under
-Lieutenant McIntyre, supported by a body of militia and Indians. After
-a volley, the bayonet was resorted to, and the American right driven in.
-The main body now advanced under cover of the fire from the two
-3-pounders, and after a short conflict forced the Americans over the first
-ridge of the heights to the road loading from Queenston to the Falls.
-The fight was maintained on both sides with courage truly heroic. The
-British regulars and militia charged in rapid succession, until they succeeded
-in turning the left flank of the enemy’s column, which rested on
-the summit of the hill. The Americans who attempted to escape into
-the woods were quickly driven back by the Indians; and many cut off in
-their return to the main body, and terrified by the sight of these exasperated
-warriors, flung themselves wildly over the cliffs, and endeavoured
-to cling to the bushes which grew upon them; but some, losing their hold,
-were dashed frightfully on the rocks beneath; while others, who reached
-the river, perished in their attempts to swim across it. The event of the
-day no longer appeared doubtful.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Major-General Van Rensselaer, commanding the American army,
-perceiving his reinforcements embarking very slowly, recrossed the river
-to accelerate their movements; but, to his utter astonishment, he found
-that at the very moment when their services were most required, the
-ardour of the unengaged troops had entirely subsided. He rode in all
-directions through the camp, urging his men by every consideration, to
-pass over. Lieutenant-Colonel Bloome, who had been wounded in the
-action and recrossed the river, together with Judge Peck, who happened to
-be in Lewiston at the time, mounted their horses and rode through the
-camp, exhorting the companies to proceed, but all in vain. Crowds of the
-United States militia remained on the American bank of the river, to
-which they had not been marched in any order, but ran as a mob; not one
-of them would cross. They had seen the wounded recrossing, they had
-seen the Indians; and they had seen the “Green Tigers,” as they called
-the 49th, from their green facings, and were panic struck. There were
-those to be found in the American ranks who, at this critical juncture,
-could talk of the Constitution, and the right of the militia to refuse crossing
-the imaginary line which separates the two countries. General Van
-Rensselaer having found that it was impossible to urge a single man to
-cross the river to reinforce the army on the Heights, and that army
-having nearly expended its ammunition, boats were immediately sent to
-cover their retreat; but a desultory fire which was maintained upon the
-ferry from a battery on the bank at the lower end of Queenston, completely
-dispersed the boats, and many of the boatmen relanded and fled
-in dismay. Brigadier-General Wadsworth was, therefore, compelled, after
-a vigorous conflict had been maintained for some time upon both sides, to
-surrender himself, all his officers, and 900 men, between three and
-four o’clock in the afternoon. The loss of the British army was 16 killed
-and 69 wounded; while that on the side of the Americans was not less
-than 900 men, made prisoners, and one gun and two colours taken, and
-90 killed and about 100 wounded. But amongst the killed of the
-British army, the government and the country had to deplore the loss of
-one of their bravest and most zealous Generals, in Sir Isaac Brock, and
-one whose memory will long live in the warmest affections of every Canadian
-and British subject. The country had also to deplore the loss of
-the eminent services and talents of Lieutenant-Colonel McDonell, whose
-gallantry and merit rendered him worthy of his chief.</p>
-
-<p>The gratitude of the people of Canada to the memory of Brock
-was manifested in an enduring form. They desired to perpetuate the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>
-memory of the hero who had been the instrument of their deliverance,
-and they were not slow in executing their design; and whilst his noble
-deeds were still fresh in the memory of all, the Provincial Legislature
-erected a lofty column on the Queenston Heights, near the spot where
-he fell. The height of the monument, from the base to the summit,
-was 135 feet; and from the level of the Niagara River, which runs
-nearly under it, 485 feet. The monument was a Tuscan column, on
-rustic pedestal with a pedestal for a statue; the diameter of the base of
-the column was 17½ feet and the abacus of the capital was surmounted
-by an iron railing. The centre shaft, containing the spiral staircase,
-was 10 feet in diameter.</p>
-
-<p>On Good Friday, the 17th of April, 1840, a vagabond of the name of
-Lett, introduced a quantity of gunpowder into the monument with the
-fiendish purpose of destroying it, and the explosion, effected by a train,
-caused so much damage us to render the column altogether irreparable.
-Lett had been compelled to fly into the United States for his share in the
-rebellion of 1837, and well knowing the feeling of attachment to the name
-and memory of General Brock, which pervaded all classes of Canadians, he
-sought to gratify his malicious and vindictive spirit, and at the same
-time to wound and insult the people of Canada by this atrocious deed.</p>
-
-<p>He afterward met with some meed of his deserts in the State Prison
-at Auburn, New York.</p>
-
-<p>After the first monument had remained in the dilapidated condition, to
-which it was reduced, for some years, a new and beautiful column was a
-short time ago raised on its site. It is thus described: “Upon the solid
-rock is built a foundation 40 feet square and 10 feet thick of massive
-stone; upon this, the structure stands in a grooved plinth or sub-basement
-38 feet square and 27 feet in height, and has an eastern entrance
-by a massive oak door and bronze pateras, forming two galleries to the
-interior 114 feet in extent, round the inner pedestal on the North and
-South sides of which, in vaults under the ground floor, are deposited the
-remains of General Brock, and those of his Aide-de-Camp, Colonel
-McDonell, in massive stone sarcophagi. On the exterior angles of the
-sub-basement are placed lions rampant 7 feet in height, supporting shields
-with the armorial bearings of the hero: The column is of the Roman
-composite order, 95 feet in height, a fluted shaft, 10 feet diameter at the
-base; the loftiest column known of this style; the lower part enriched
-with laurel leaves, and the flutes terminating on the base with palms.”</p>
-
-<p>The height from the ground to the top of the statue is 190 feet,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-exceeding that of any monumental column, ancient or modern, known,
-with the exception of that on Fish-street Hill, London, England, by Sir
-Christopher Wren, architect, in commemoration of the great fire of 1666,
-202 feet high, which exceeds it in height by 12 feet.”</p>
-
-
-<p>QUESNOY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, September 11th, 1773, between
-the French and British, in which the British were defeated, with some
-loss. Taken by the Austrians in 1793, but recovered by the French the
-following year. It surrendered to Prince Frederick of the Netherlands,
-after the battle of Waterloo.</p>
-
-
-<p>QUIBERON BAY.&mdash;A British force landed here in 1736, and was
-repulsed. In this Bay Admiral Hawke gained a complete victory over
-the French, under Conflans. This most perilous and important action
-defeated the French invasion, November 10th 1758. Taken by some
-French regiments in pay of the British, July 3rd, 1795; but on July
-21st, retaken by the French Republicans. About 900 of the troops
-and near 1500 Royalist inhabitants effected their escape on board the
-ships.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="R" id="R"></a>R.</h3>
-
-
-<p>RAMILIES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the English and Allies, commanded
-by Marlborough, on the one side, and the French, commanded by
-the Elector of Bavaria and the Marshal de Villeroy. The French, having
-no confidence in their Commander, were soon seized with a panic, and a
-general rout ensued. About 4000 of the Allied army were slain. Fought
-on Whitsunday, May 26th, 1706.</p>
-
-<p>“The year following the victory of Blenheim was, for the most
-part, wasted in the struggles of Marlborough with his enemies at
-home, and with the dilatory and uncertain course of the allies of
-England abroad. He succeeded in forcing the French lines in Flanders;
-but the fruits of this great achievement were snatched from
-him by the constant backwardness of the Dutch Generals, who opposed
-every measure which was urged by him. So grieved was he by their
-continual opposition, that on one occasion, when the opportunity of a
-brilliant success was thus lost, he exclaimed, “I feel at this moment ten
-years older than I was four years ago.” In fact, towards the end of
-what he had hoped to make a glorious campaign, but which through this
-opposition had been lost in disputes, he fell seriously ill, and was obliged
-to retire for a time from active employment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, the Imperial government had begun to show signs of
-jealousy and uneasiness that this great General should be employed in
-Flanders, and in the defence of Holland, instead of recovering the Austrian
-possessions on the Rhine, and liberating Lorraine. Pressing
-applications were made that the Duke, instead of prosecuting the war in
-Belgium, would return to the Moselle, and co-operate with the Imperial
-forces in that quarter. Taking his departure from the army at the end
-of October, 1705, Marlborough set out for Vienna, which he reached on
-the 12th of November. Here the Emperor Joseph created him a Prince
-of the Empire, and conferred on him the lordship of Mindelheim. But
-which gave him far more satisfaction, he succeeded in reconciling all
-differences, and in cementing the alliance, which seemed in danger of
-dissolution, between Austria, Prussia, and the Netherlands, against the
-ambitious designs of France. He then returned to the Hague, which he
-reached on the 11th of December, proceeding thence to London, which he
-reached early in the new year.</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th of April, 1706, he again arrived at the Hague for the
-active duties of the approaching campaign. This year’s warfare began
-at an earlier period than the previous ones, for the French General, with
-commendable zeal and activity, took the field in the spring, forced the
-German lines on the Motter, reduced Dreisenheim and Hagenau, and
-threatened the Palatinate. The Duke, therefore, left the Hague on the
-9th May, the Dutch being now anxious to retain him with them, and
-offering him uncontrolled power over their forces. Accompanied by
-Overkirk, he passed through Rimemont, and reached Maestricht on the
-12th. Here he reviewed the Dutch troops, and began to take measures
-for an attack on Namur. But Villeroy received orders from Paris rather
-to risk a battle than to give up this important place. Hence, in the
-third week in May, the two armies began to approach each other.</p>
-
-<p>Villeroy and the Elector of Bavaria passed the Dyle, and approached
-Tirlemont. Their combined forces amounted to about 62,000 men.
-The Duke, with his English, joined the Dutch at Bilsen on the
-20th of May, and on the 22nd he had intelligence of the arrival of the
-Danish contingent, which raised the strength of his army to about
-60,000 men. His first desire, now, was to learn the position of the
-enemy, and how best to come in contact with them. The field of battle
-ultimately proved to be in an elevated part of the plain of Brabant, lying
-between Maestricht, Louvain, and Namur. The village of Ramilies
-itself is but a few miles to the east of Wavre, the position of Marshal
-Blucher on the morning of the day of Waterloo.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 23rd of May, then, in 1706, the English, Dutch, and Danish
-army, commencing their march early in the morning, came in sight, about
-eight o’clock, of the Franco-Bavarian outposts. A fog for some time made
-everything obscure, but about ten o’clock the two armies stood in presence
-of each other. The French commander had formed his order of battle
-with the skill which experience generally gives; but he was opposed by
-a greater commander, whose eye speedily detected the weaknesses of his
-position.</p>
-
-<p>The French and Bavarians were drawn up on ground which, by its
-nature, gave their order of battle a concave form. Thus the attacking
-enemy would have the advantage of being able to bring his men more
-rapidly from one side to the other, as required. The left wing of the
-French, also, though strongly posted, was in a position from which it
-could not easily move. Marlborough, therefore, was not long in forming
-his plan, which was, to turn the enemy’s right wing; to seize an elevated
-position in the rear of that wing, and from that position to outflank the
-whole army.</p>
-
-<p>He therefore began a feigned attack, by his own right wing, upon
-the left of the French. Villeroy immediately met this, as Marlborough
-intended, by sending for fresh troops from his centre, and by weakening
-his right. Pausing in his apparent attack, Marlborough promptly moved
-to the left all the infantry that were out of sight of the French, and fell
-upon the enemy’s right wing, which was posted in Tavieres.</p>
-
-<p>The attack succeeded, and Tavieres was carried. Villeroy, finding
-out his mistake, hurried his squadron of dragoons to the succour of his
-right wing; but these squadrons were met by the Danish cavalry emerging
-from Tavieres, and they were all cut to pieces, or driven into the
-Mehaigne.</p>
-
-<p>And now Ramilies itself, in the centre, became the object of attack.
-The Duke ordered up from his own right wing every available squadron,
-and exposed himself much in leading the attack. He was, at one moment,
-thrown from his horse, and in danger of being made prisoner.
-While he was remounting, a cannon-ball killed his equerry, Captain
-Bingfield, who was assisting him.</p>
-
-<p>But now the allied cavalry had reached the height of Ottomond, in the
-rear of the French position, and the success of the attack was secured.
-The French were in utter confusion in all parts of the field, and Ramilies
-itself was carried. There remained only the left wing of Villeroy’s
-army; and this, attacked now by the reserves on Marlborough’s right,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
-and by the victorious troops which had cleared Ramilies, gave way as
-evening drew on, rushed in crowds down the descent behind their position,
-and fled for Judoigne. The cannon and baggage fell into the hands of
-the victors, who pursued the flying French and Bavarians until two
-o’clock in the morning. The allied army did not halt in its pursuit till
-past midnight, when it had advanced to Meldert, five leagues from the
-field of battle, and two from Louvian.</p>
-
-<p>This battle cost the Franco-Bavarian army 13,000 men, in killed,
-wounded, and prisoners: among whom were the Princes of Soubise
-and Rohan, and a son of Marshal Tallard. The spoils of the day consisted
-of 80 colours and standards taken from the French; nearly all
-their artillery, and all the baggage which was in the field. The loss of
-the Allies was 1066 killed, and 2567 wounded. The vast difference
-between this, and the loss sustained at Blenheim, shows that the victory
-of Ramilies was gained by the Duke’s masterly manœuvres; and was not
-owing merely to the courage of the soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>The results of the battle of Ramilies were very great. Louvain
-instantly surrendered; Brussels received the Duke with open arms on the
-28th. Mechlin, Alost, and Lierre, quickly followed. All Brabant was
-gained by this one victory. Nor was this all. Flanders caught the
-infection. Ghent opened its gates on the 1st of June; and Antwerp
-surrendered a few days afterwards. Ostend fell on the 6th of July; and
-in its harbour were taken two men-of-war, and 45 smaller vessels.”</p>
-
-
-<p>RATHMINES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Ireland.</em>&mdash;Colonel Jones, Governor
-of Dublin Castle, made a sally, August 2nd, 1649, and routed the
-Marquis of Ormond, killed 4000 men and took 2517 prisoners, with their
-cannon, baggage and ammunition. This battle, and other successes, completely
-discomfited the rebels in this part of Ireland.</p>
-
-
-<p>RAVENNA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, April 11th, 1512, between the
-French, under the great Gaston de Foix, Duke of Nemours, and nephew of
-Louis XII, and the Spanish and Papal armies. De Foix, gained this
-memorable battle, but perished in the moment of victory, and the French
-fortunes in Italy were thus closed. The confederate army was cut to
-pieces. The Duke had performed prodigies of valor, but being too eager
-in his pursuit of the Spaniards, who were retiring in good order, he was
-slain.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>REVOLUTION.&mdash;The Great Revolution which overturned the old
-Monarchy of France occurred at the close of the last century. The 2nd,
-the one here described sent Charles X into exile and was somewhat
-like that of 1848 which also exiled Louis Philippe.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">SECOND FRENCH REVOLUTION.</p>
-
-<p>“The political history of 1830 commenced on March 2nd, by a speech
-from the throne, announcing war against Algiers for the insults offered
-to the French flag, and a wish for a reconciliation with the Bragazana
-family.</p>
-
-<p>This caused great dissatisfaction; the funds fell, the Chamber
-of Deputies were against the measure, and on the 19th were convoked
-till August 3rd, and several fires took place, evidently the work of
-incendiaries.</p>
-
-<p>On the 25th July, Polignac addressed a report to the king on “legitimate
-power,” and which formed the ground-work of three memorable
-ordinances, which were signed on that day by Charles, and countersigned
-by the ministers.</p>
-
-<p>The first ordinance abolished the freedom of the press; the second
-dissolved the Chamber of Deputies; and the third abrogated the most
-important rights of the elective franchise.</p>
-
-<p>On the publication of the <cite>Moniteur</cite> on the following morning, all Paris
-was astounded by the mystifying report of the ministers of Charles X
-and the king’s arbitrary decrees. The <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Rentes</i> fell, and the bank stopped
-payment.</p>
-
-<p>All work was now abandoned, every manufactory closed, and detachments
-of artisans with large sticks traversed the streets. Troops of gendarmes
-patrolled the streets at full gallop to disperse the accumulating
-crowds. The people were silent; and at an early hour the shops were
-closed. Early on the 27th, troops of the royal guard and soldiers of the
-line came pouring in. The people looked sullen and determined. The
-chief points of rendezvous were the Palais Royal, the Palais de Justice,
-and the Bourse. Here were simultaneous cries of “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Viva la Charte!</i>”&mdash;“Down
-with the absolute king!” but no conversation&mdash;no exchange of
-words with each other. The King was at the Tuilleries. In the Place
-Carousel there was a station of several thousands of the military,
-including the lancers of the royal guard, with a great number of cannon.
-At the Place Vendome a strong guard of infantry was stationed
-around the column, to guard the ensigns of royalty upon it from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-being defaced. Crowds of people assembled, and several skirmishes
-took place.</p>
-
-<p>On Wednesday morning, July 28th, the shops of Paris were closely
-shut, and the windows fastened and barred, as if the inhabitants of the
-city were in mourning for the dead, or in apprehension of approaching
-calamity. The tocsin sounded, and the people flocked in from the fauxbourgs
-and different quarters of the city. That determined enemy to
-oppression, the press, had been at work during the night. Handbills
-were profusely distributed, containing vehement philippics against the
-king and his ministers, and summoning every man to arm for his country,
-and to aid in ejecting the Bourbons. Placards were constantly posted
-up and eagerly read. During the preceding night an organisation of the
-people had been arranged. All the arms that could be found at the
-theatres, and remaining in the shops of armourers that had not been
-visited the evening before, were seized and distributed. Every other
-kind of property, however, was respected.</p>
-
-<p>Strong detachments guarded the different hotels of the ministers.
-Loud cries and shouts were constantly heard, of “Down with the
-Jesuits!”&mdash;“Down with the Bourbons!” “Death to the Ministers!” Each
-man strove to provide himself with a musket, a pistol, a sword, a pole with a
-knife, or some cutting instrument to form a weapon of offence. Troops
-continually arrived from St. Denis, St. Cloud, and other military stations.
-Rude barricades were hastily thrown up in different places, to prevent the
-attacks of cavalry. Several telegraphs, including that on the Church des
-Petits Peres, were dismounted. Groups of the people, armed with sticks,
-bayonets, pikes, and muskets, removed or effaced all the insignia and
-emblems of royalty. A red flag was hoisted on the gate of St. Denis,
-amidst the shouts of the people. Tri-coloured flags were promenaded in
-the streets, and tri-coloured cockades and breast-knots were worn, not
-only by the French, but by the English and foreigners of all nations. The
-royal arms, and other ensigns of the government of Charles X that were
-moveable, were burned in the Place Publique. All Paris was in insurrection.
-Every movement of the people portended a terrible conflict. The
-government reposed in security upon a blind and implacable dignity.</p>
-
-<p>M. Lafitte had an interview with Polignac, who said “that the ministers
-could enter into no compromise or concession.” “We have, then,
-civil war,” said Lafitte. The prince bowed, and Lafitte retired.</p>
-
-<p>As soon, however, as Polignac’s answer was made known, that “ministers
-would enter into no compromise or concession,” war, and war to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
-the knife, commenced; and never were witnessed more heroic acts of
-personal bravery, and more generous disregard of selfish feelings, than
-were displayed by the citizens of Paris on this memorable day and night.
-The drums of the national guards soon beat “to arms!” The populace
-answered the call amid the incessant ringing of the tocsin, and the
-struggle began in earnest. About two o’clock a cannon on the bridge
-near the Marche aux Fleurs raked with grape-shot the quay, while the
-troops were resolutely attacked by the people, and numbers of the guards
-led off, killed or wounded.</p>
-
-<p>There was a tremendous conflict in La Halle, the great market-place
-of the Rue St. Denis. The royal guard were early in possession of it.
-All the outlets were speedily closed by barricades, from behind which,
-from the corners of the various streets, and from the windows of the
-houses, the people fired on the guards, and there was a terrible slaughter
-on both sides. The hottest engagement seems to have been in the Rue
-St. Honoré, opposite the Palais Royal, where the military were assembled
-in great force, and the people resisted their assailants with desperate
-determination.</p>
-
-<p>At the Place de Grêve they fiercely contended with the household
-troops, the Swiss guards, and compelled them to fly with great loss. In
-the Rue Montmartre an attack was made by the duke of Ragusa in
-person. During part of the day the Place des Victoires was occupied by
-some troops, among whom was a part of the fifth regiment of the line,
-who had gone over to the national guards established at the Petits Peres.
-About two o’clock the duke de Ragusa arrived at the place at the head of
-fresh troops. He drew them up opposite the Rues du Mail, des Fosses,
-Montmartre, Croix des Petits Champs, and Neuve des Petits Champs.
-He immediately commanded a charge, and on both sides hundreds of men
-were killed. The marshal directed his troops down the Rue du Mail,
-and they scoured the Rue Montmartre without much difficulty till they
-reached the Rue Joquelet, where the people were prepared. Each house
-was armed and guarded. The black flag was displayed on the Porte St.
-Denis and other edifices.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the firing ceased, the people made preparations for the next
-day by strengthening the barricades and increasing their number. They
-were assisted by women and even children. The remainder of the afternoon
-and evening, and the whole of the night, was spent in raising these
-important obstacles to the evolutions of cavalry. Excellent materials
-were at hand in the paving-stones; they were dug up and piled across<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span>
-the streets in walls breast high, and four or five feet thick. These walls
-were about fifty paces distant from each other. Hundreds of the finest
-trees were cut down for blockades. Nothing could be more effective for
-the defence of a large open town like Paris, traversed in every direction
-by long narrow streets, overlooked by houses of six, seven, and eight
-stories, than such barriers, scientifically constructed. All the means that
-industry and ingenuity could devise, in so short a time, were carried
-into execution, for the energetic stand and assault determined to be
-made against the military in the morning.</p>
-
-<p>At day-break on Thursday the tocsin sounded “To arms;” and the
-people began to assemble rapidly and in great crowds. The military,
-whose guard-houses had been destroyed, were chiefly quartered at the
-Louvre and the Tuilleries, the Swiss and the royal guards being posted
-in the houses of the Rue St. Honoré and the adjacent streets. At the
-same time, the students of the Polytechnic School joined the citizens
-nearly to a man; they then separated, proceeding singly to different
-parts to take the command of the people, and nobly repaid the confidence
-reposed in them. The garden of the Tuilleries was closed. In the
-Place du Carousel were three squadrons of lancers of the garde royale, a
-battalion of the third regiment of the guards, and a battery of six pieces,
-also belonging to the guards.</p>
-
-<p>About one o’clock in the afternoon, a party of the royal guards and of
-Swiss, to the number of nearly 800 men, appeared on the Place de
-Grêve. A brisk fire commenced, but the national guards not being in
-sufficient strength, were obliged to give ground and to suffer the royal
-guards to take possession of their post. The royal guards had scarcely
-made themselves masters of the Hotel de Ville, when they were assailed
-on all sides with a shower of bullets from the windows of the houses on
-the Place de Grêve and in the streets abutting on the quay. The royal
-guards resisted vigorously, but were ultimately compelled to retreat along
-the quay; their firing by files and by platoons succeeding each other
-with astonishing rapidity. They were soon joined by fresh troops of the
-royal guard and of Swiss, including 100 cuirassiers of the guard and four
-pieces of artillery, each of them escorted by a dozen of artillerymen on
-horseback. With this terrible reinforcement they again advanced on the
-Hotel de Ville, and a frightful firing began on all sides. The artillery
-debouching from the quay, and their pieces charged with cannister shot,
-swept the Place de Grêve in a terrific manner. They succeeded in
-driving the citizens into the Rues de Matriot and du Mouton, and entered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-for the second time that day into their position at the Hotel de Ville.
-But their possession of it did not continue long; for they were soon again
-attacked with a perseverance and courage which was almost irresistible.
-Their artillery ranged before the Prefecture of the Seine and the Hotel
-de Ville threatened death to thousands.</p>
-
-<p>Hundreds of the constitutionalists were killed by the fire of the Swiss
-guard from the windows of this edifice. It was erected in 1600, and
-though it does not appear to possess any of the characteristics of strength
-in a military sense of the word, yet its gates, being of immense thickness,
-furnished a good defence from the musketry of the attacking parties.
-The Hotel de Ville was afterwards employed as the head-quarters of La
-Fayette and the provisional government.</p>
-
-<p>The Rue St. Honoré, for two days, was a perpetual scene of slaughter.
-The Louvre, except the picture-gallery, was on all sides attacked and
-defended at the same moment, and for hours. In the court of the Louvre
-a field-piece was planted, which commanded the Pont des Arts, being
-exactly opposite the Institute. Here the fighting was so dreadful and
-so maintained, that the front of the building of the Institute was completely
-covered with muskets and grape shot. One cannon ball smashed
-a portion of the wall, and from its elevation did dreadful execution in
-sweeping the bridge. The attack on the Tuilleries was over in two or
-three hours. A young man marched with a tri-coloured flag at the head
-of the attacking bourgeois. A thousand balls, fired from the front of the
-chateau, whistled by him without touching him. He continued to march
-with perfect <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">sangfroid</i>, but with, at the same time, an air of importance,
-up to the triumphal arch, and remained until the end of the battle.</p>
-
-<p>While the people and the military were combating at the Place de
-Grêve, the Louvre, and the Tuilleries, troops were arriving by the
-Champs Elysees. A great party of the people, and many national guards,
-with two pieces of cannon, were hastening along near the Place Louis
-XVI towards the Barrier St. Etoile, when a largo troop of dragoons
-arrived, made a desperate charge, and cut down the people without mercy
-who made a very bold stand. Many of the soldiers solemnly vowed that
-they would not continue to obey orders to massacre their brothers and
-sons. Their numbers were thinned, they were fatigued, disheartened,
-discomfited, beaten, and fled. At Chaillot, a district of Paris, verging
-on the route to St. Cloud, the inhabitants, though few in number,
-sustained the fire of five regiments of the guards, who attempted to
-effect their retreat by the barrier of Passy. At length, all the royal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
-troops left the capital by the way of the Champs Elysees, and in their
-retreat were fired upon by the people.</p>
-
-<p>At night, part of the town was illuminated, particularly the streets of
-St. Denis, St. Martin, St. Jacques, and the neighbourhood of the Hotel
-de Ville. Perfect tranquillity prevailed throughout the city. Strong
-patroles silently paraded the streets, passed gently from barricade to barricade,
-and disarmed individuals whom fatigue and the heat of the
-weather, more than wine, had rendered incapable of employing their
-weapons usefully.</p>
-
-<p>A deputation from Charles X at St. Cloud, arrived at the Hotel de
-Ville early in the morning. It consisted of the marquis de Rastoret,
-chancellor of France; M. Semonville; and count d’Argout, peer of
-France. They announced that Charles had named the duke de Mortemart
-president of the council, and that he was willing to accept a ministry
-chosen by him.</p>
-
-<p>At eleven o’clock, the deputies and peers then in Paris assembled in
-their respective halls, and established regular communications with each
-other. The duke de Mortemart was introduced to the chamber of
-deputies, and delivered four ordinances, signed, the previous day, by
-Charles X. One of them recalled the fatal ordinances of the 25th;
-another convoked the chambers on the 3rd; the third appointed the
-duke de Mortemart president of the council, and the fourth
-appointed count Gerard minister of war, and M. Casimir-Perier minister
-of finance. The reading of these ordinances was listened to with the
-greatest attention. At the termination profound silence continued;&mdash;no
-observation was made;&mdash;the deputies passed to other business.&mdash;The
-duke de Mortemart returned to acquaint his master that he was no longer
-acknowledged as king of France. The manner in which the duke and
-his communications were received by the deputies, was an announcement
-that Charles X had ceased to reign.</p>
-
-<p>On the 31st, the deputies published a proclamation, declaring that
-they had invited the duke of Orleans to become Lieutenant-General of the
-kingdom. At noon of the same day, Louis Philippe d’Orleans issued a
-proclamation, declaring that he had hastened to Paris, wearing the
-“glorious colours” of France, to accept the invitation of the assembled
-deputies to become Lieutenant-General of the kingdom. A proclamation
-of the same date appointed provisional commissaries for the different
-departments of government. The king, with his family, escaped to St.
-Cloud.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On the 3rd of August the chambers met, when the abdication of
-Charles was announced; and on the 9th, Louis Philippe, having taken
-the prescribed oath, was created king, under the title of “King of the
-French.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus terminated this desperate struggle for popular rights, and which
-has no parallel in the annals of history. The Parisians left their homes
-to fight, without organization and almost without arms, against some of
-the best troops in the world;&mdash;and for what? Were they a rabble
-driven by hunger, or a rebellious nobility endeavouring to wrest new
-privileges from the monarch? No: they were men who, animated with
-an ardent desire to be free, would not suffer themselves to be stripped of
-their civil rights, but firmly and manfully defended them with their
-lives. It was in this respect a great moral revolution, and forms a brilliant
-epoch in the annals of the world.”</p>
-
-
-<p>RETREAT OF THE GREEKS.&mdash;Whoever has read the beautiful
-descriptions of Xenophon, has read of the memorable retreat of the 10,000
-Greeks. It happened <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 401, after the battle of Cunaxa; Xenophon
-was chosen commander. He rose superior to danger, and though under
-continual alarms from the sudden attacks of the Persians, he was enabled
-to cross rapid rivers, penetrate through vast deserts, gain the tops of
-mountains, till he could rest secure for a while, and refresh his tired
-companions. At last they returned home, after a retreat of 1155 parasangs
-or leagues, which was performed in 215 days,&mdash;and after an absence
-of 15 months.</p>
-
-
-<p>RIDGEWAY, BATTLE OF, <span class="fs70">OR</span> LIME RIDGE.&mdash;Fought, Saturday,
-June 2nd, 1866, between the Canadian Volunteers of Toronto and
-Hamilton, and the Fenians, a lawless band of predatory scoundrels, who
-wantonly invaded Canada, and were driven back by Canada’s brave sons.
-The following succinct account is from the pen of the Rev. D. Inglis,
-D.D., of Hamilton, who was present in the engagement.</p>
-
-<p>“Rev. Mr. Burwash and myself were appointed by a number of the
-ministers of this city to join the 13th Battalion of Hamilton volunteers,
-and to render them such assistance as might be in our power. The
-shadows of night had just given way to the bright light of that June
-morning when we reached Port Colborne and joined the battalion in the
-cars, a few minutes before the train left for Ridgeway. Much has been
-written on the proper rations and equipments for the men, and I only<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span>
-refer to this with the view of noticing the want of shoulder-straps with
-which to fasten the overcoats on the back of the soldiers, and the fact
-that they were obliged to roll them up and sling them over their right
-shoulders, under their left arm-pits, an expedient which afterwards greatly
-impeded them in aiming and firing, and caused them to abandon their
-overcoats when going into battle.</p>
-
-<p>The train proceeded slowly to Ridgeway, where the men left the cars
-and were drawn up on the Stevensville road. The Queen’s Own were in
-the front, then came the 13th Battalion, and a company of riflemen from
-Caledonia forming the rear-guard. The men were in good spirits, and I
-could not look without admiration upon the coolness and intrepidity with
-which these volunteer soldiers, many of them mere lads, prepared for
-the advance. The ammunition was distributed to the men, the order
-given to load with ball cartridge, and then followed an interval of suspense
-and waiting. The sensation of relief was great when after some
-minutes of anxiety and impatience the order to advance was given. The
-position assigned to the waggon containing the ammunition, &amp;c., in
-which Mr. Burwash and myself were riding, was immediately behind the
-main body, and in front of the rear guard. When about a mile and a
-half from Ridgeway several companies of the Queen’s Own were ordered
-into the fields and woods to clear them of Fenians&mdash;and in a short time
-the first shot was fired&mdash;and then in a rapid succession we saw small
-clouds of blue smoke issuing from the woods, telling us of a rapid discharge
-of musketry before the reports reached our ears. The sergeants
-in charge concluded to halt with their waggon, and Mr. Burwash and
-myself hurried on in the rear of our main body. The Fenian skirmishers
-fell back upon the main body of their force, who were drawn up in an
-entrenched position along the Fort Erie road. They had converted a
-stone wall and the ordinary snake-fences into barricades, and held a strong
-position; but on the advance of our forces, fearing lest our skirmishers
-should out-flank them, they retired in good order, and amid rapid firing, to
-a slightly elevated piece of ground covered with thick woods, some distance
-in their rear. It was in this advance that Ensign McEachren was mortally
-wounded. It has been stated that Colonel Booker rushed to the rear
-calling for a surgeon. I am in a position positively to deny this; the
-cry for a surgeon was heard by me, but it did not come from the Colonel.
-Mr. McEachren was borne to the rear by some men of his company,
-accompanied by the Captain, a noble fellow, whose name I do not know,
-to whom I at once introduced myself as a minister, and offered to do all<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
-I could for his friend. He thanked me with tears in his eyes, and hastened
-back to the post of danger. Dr. May was in attendance; but a
-glance at the wound shewed that it was mortal&mdash;and it fell to me to
-inform him of the fact. He received the intelligence as a Christian soldier&mdash;informing
-me that his faith rested in the Lord Jesus Christ. I
-prayed with him, and after a few moments’ conversation I mentioned Mr.
-Burwash’s name, and finding that he was an old parishioner of Mr.
-Burwash, I left him mainly to his care&mdash;though I several times spent a
-few moments with him afterwards. I then returned to the battle-field
-to see if I could be of use there. Our forces had advanced, throwing out
-their skirmishers right and left of the skirmishers&mdash;Queen’s Own&mdash;to the
-extreme right&mdash;13th battalion&mdash;the distance was probably a little more
-than three-quarters of a mile. Not a Fenian was to be seen, but as our
-brave soldiers advanced, nearer and nearer, there came again first a single
-shot, and then a rapid discharge of fire-arms along the whole line. From
-their elevated position, or from what other cause, I know not, the shots
-went over the heads of our men, and I could see them striking the field
-behind. I hastened back to the hospital with feelings of admiration for
-the brave fellows who, exposed to a terrible fire from an unseen foe, so
-nobly stood their ground, while the sharp crack of their rifles assured me
-that the gallant fellows were doing their duty amidst those showers of
-bullets, in spite of all the manifest disadvantages of their position; but I
-could not rid myself of a feeling of depression and anxiety when I thought
-of the result.</p>
-
-<p>In the hospital I found a few men slightly wounded. One of them
-told me there were no litters with which to bear the wounded from the
-field. I set the men who were on guard to work to make litters with
-some poles which we found near&mdash;and such sheets and blankets as I could
-lay my hands on&mdash;and returned to the field with the men carrying the
-litters. I took my old position, from which I had a full view of the
-whole field, and was startled to notice strange movements going on
-among our men. They had halted&mdash;the whole line trembled&mdash;I do not
-mean that the brave men trembled, but there was a movement along their
-line which I find no other word to describe. The order to receive cavalry
-was given, and an effort was made to obey it. Then another and another
-order. The only one which the men seemed eager to obey was the one
-to advance, and then came the fatal bugle’s notes that told them to retreat,
-and our men began to fall back. I hurried to the hospital and told the
-Doctor and Mr. Burwash that I feared the day was against us, but said<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span>
-I would return to the field while they made the necessary preparations
-to remove the sick and wounded from a place which should soon be the
-very centre of the battle. When I again reached my old post of observation
-a shower of bullets fell around me, and before I got back to the
-hospital, a number of men belonging to the Queen’s Own had got
-between me and the house. These were quickly followed by a large
-number of the 13th Battalion, and I was forced to leave without again
-communicating with my friends. I soon found, however, that the Doctor
-and his wounded men, as well as Mr. Burwash, had got safely out of
-that terrible fire.</p>
-
-<p>The descriptions given of the retreat, are, for the most part greatly
-exaggerated. Some men, it is true, ran away in terror, but the main
-body, though in confusion, were not panic-stricken. The feeling was
-one of vexation, and at the very moment when they expected victory,
-all had unaccountably gone wrong with them. Tears were shed, but they
-were tears wrung from brave men at the bitter thought of being called to
-retreat before their foes. In the rear, Major Skinner, with a number
-of men belonging to the 13th and the Queen’s Own, kept in good order,
-and so effectually covered our retreat, that the enemy were unaware of
-the disorder in which the main body were retiring. Beyond all doubt,
-we were at this point saved from further disaster by the coolness and
-steadiness of Major Skinner, and the officers and men who were with
-him.</p>
-
-<p>At Ridgeway the confused and scattered mass of men who got into
-order through the exertions of a Toronto officer whose name I have been
-told is Captain Arthurs, and who certainly discharged his duty in a way
-that marked him out as a man able to control and lead others.</p>
-
-<p>I have refrained from all criticism of the conduct of the officers on
-whom the responsibilities of this matter lie. I know nothing of military
-tactics, and it does not become me to say anything of why this little
-band of volunteers should have been led into a conflict with superior
-numbers of trained and veteran soldiers without support from artillery
-or the regulars&mdash;it is not my part to say what the commanding officer
-should or should not have done. This only I am bound to say, that the
-officers and men of the Queen’s Own and 13th Battalion, behaved
-throughout the battle with coolness and gallantry&mdash;and even the unfortunate
-retreat only brought out more clearly that, with few exceptions,
-they were men of unflinching courage. The hospital, no less than the
-battle-field proved the noble courage of our men, and it would have moved<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span>
-the stoutest heart to tears, to see those boy-heroes suffering as they did,
-without a murmur or a groan.</p>
-
-<p>Major Gilmore, of the Queen’s Own, and Major Skinner, of the 13th,
-distinguished themselves greatly, their words of command inspiring their
-men with courage&mdash;while they themselves were steady as rocks under
-the hottest fire. Indeed, but for Major Skinner’s coolness and power
-over the men under his command, the retreat of Ridgeway must have
-resulted in fearful consequences.”</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="RIF" id="RIF"></a></div>
-<p>RIFLE PITS, CONTEST AT THE.&mdash;<em>Crimean war.</em> “The
-bombardment was re-opened on Easter Monday, the 9th April, soon after
-daybreak. Heavy rain fell all day, and the dense atmosphere prevented
-our men from observing the effect of the fire. This time the fleets did
-not share in the bombardment. At the close of the day, it was evident
-that our weight of metal, though greatly superior to that employed on the
-occasion of the first bombardment in October, was yet inadequate to the
-task of destroying the colossal works of the enemy. In vain our artillery
-pounded the earthworks and batteries. In vain showers of shell were
-poured into the town. The Russian engineers proved themselves consummate
-masters of their art, and every morning fresh guns poured forth
-a deadly reply from the repaired embrasures. Their resources seemed
-literally inexhaustible, and their courage was fully equal to the occasion.
-For more than a week the tremendous bombardment continued, and
-notwithstanding the intensity of the fire from the French and English
-batteries, comparatively little effect was produced. In the meanwhile
-both armies worked assiduously at the trenches. The French succeeded
-in carrying their parallels yet nearer to the Mamelon, a large rounded hill
-in front of the Malakoff Tower, and covered with rifle pits and earthworks;
-while the English gradually extended their lines towards the formidable
-Redan. Their great difficulty lay in forming a trench which
-should connect the zigzags leading on the right towards the Malakoff,
-and on the left towards the Redan. In order to obstruct the formation
-of this work, the enemy established a series of rifle-pits which enfiladed
-the new parallel, and whence considerable loss was inflicted upon our
-working parties. In addition to the fire from the rifle-pits, the enemy
-brought down a 12-pounder gun which swept our trenches, and effectually
-hindered the progress of the work. It became necessary, therefore,
-to attempt to drive the Russians from their vantage-ground; and on the
-night of the 19th of April, Colonel Egerton, at the head of 250 men of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span>
-the Light Division, attempted the exploit, dashed from the breastwork,
-and, taking the enemy by surprise, drove him out. The successful
-English immediately established themselves in the pits, but the Russians
-were too sensible of the value of the position to permit the advantage to
-remain undisputed, and marched down a column 1000 strong, to attempt
-the recovery of the pits. Our troops met them with a well-directed
-volley, which shook their ranks and then closed with them in a deadly
-contest. The enemy was, after an obstinate fight, completely routed, and
-the British had secured an important advantage, though not without the
-loss of the gallant Colonel. On the following night, the second line of
-rifle-pits was also carried, after a feeble resistance; and our working
-parties were thus enabled to pursue their labours without annoyance, and
-in comparative security.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ROADS, LORD COCHRANE AT BASQUE.&mdash;“Our fire-ships
-were sent in, each conducted by a lieutenant and five men; the
-ships were sixteen in number, and some very heavy. When they got
-in, the French ships cut and slipt, nine sail of the line got on shore on
-the Isle of Aix, and the next morning we discovered them: the fire-ships
-having done little good, the small craft and frigates were ordered in to
-attempt to destroy them. The place where they lay was like Portsmouth
-harbour, under the fire of the two batteries, each of which had three tiers
-of guns, of twenty-nine each, all heavy metal: the navigation to get at
-them was very difficult, in some places there being only four fathoms
-water. Just as we were sitting down to dinner on board the Revenge,
-our signal was made to go in and assist the gun and mortar vessels; our
-ship was cleared for action in fifteen minutes, and in half an hour we
-were alongside of three sail of the line, when we opened a dreadful
-cannonade on them, which continued for an hour and a quarter, the
-Warsaw, a fine 80-gun ship, and the Aquilon, struck to us. We were
-now in a very critical state ourselves, being in only five fathoms water,
-which was ebbing very fast; the batteries on shore, having got our length,
-struck us almost every shot for the last quarter of an hour; luckily, a
-breeze springing up, we got off into deeper water, and out of reach of their
-guns, when we anchored again, and sent our boats to take out the
-prisoners, and set them on fire, about seven, p.m. At nine they were
-all in flames, and at two in the morning they blew up with a tremendous
-explosion; the French set fire to the Tonniere, and the Imperieuse to the
-Calcutta; three other ships of the line were on shore, very much mauled<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span>
-by the frigates and boom-ships; some of them were on their beam-ends,
-and but little chance of getting off again. The captain of the Warsaw
-was on board our ship; he said, they were bound out to relieve Martinique
-with troops and provisions. I went on board his ship after she
-struck, and the decks were strewed with dead and dying, a most dreadful
-slaughter. We also lost several killed and wounded, and our ship was
-much cut up in sails and rigging.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Cochrane caused about 1500 barrels of gunpowder to be started
-into puncheons, which were placed end upwards: upon the tops of these
-were placed between 3 and 400 shells, charged with fuses; and again,
-among and upon these were between 2 and 3000 hand-grenades. The
-puncheons were fastened to each other by cables wound round them, and
-jammed together with wedges; and moistened sand was rammed down
-between these casks, so as to render the whole, from stem to stern, as
-solid as possible, that the resistance might render the explosion the more
-violent.</p>
-
-<p>In this tremendous instrument of destruction, Lord Cochrane committed
-himself, with only one lieutenant and four seamen; and after the boom
-was broken, his lordship proceeded with this explosion-ship towards the
-enemy’s line. Let it be recollected, that at this moment the batteries on
-shore were provided with furnaces to fire red-hot shot, and then his lordship’s
-danger in this enterprize may be properly conceived.</p>
-
-<p>The wind blew a gale, and the tide ran three knots an hour. When
-the blue lights of the fire-ships were discovered, one of the enemy’s line
-made the signal for fire-ships; which being also a blue light, the enemy
-fell into great confusion, firing upon her with very injurious effect, and
-directly cut their cables.</p>
-
-<p>When lord Cochrane had conducted his explosion-ship as near as was
-possible, the enemy having taken the alarm, he ordered his brave little
-crew into the boat, and followed them, after putting fire to the fuse,
-which was calculated to give them fifteen minutes to get out of reach of
-the explosion. However, in consequence of the wind getting very high,
-the fuse burnt too quickly; so that, with the most violent exertion
-against wind and tide, this intrepid little party was six minutes nearer
-than they calculated to be, at the time when the most tremendous explosion
-that human art ever contrived took place, followed by the bursting
-at once in the air of nearly 400 shells and 3000 hand-grenades, pouring
-down a shower of castmetal in every direction. But fortunately our
-second Nelson was spared, the boat having reached, by unparalleled<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span>
-exertion, only just beyond the extent of destruction. Unhappily, this
-effort to escape cost the life of the brave lieutenant, whom his noble
-captain saw die in the boat, partly under fatigue, and partly drowned
-with waves that continually broke over them. Two of the four sailors
-were also so nearly exhausted, that their recovery was for some time
-despaired of.</p>
-
-<p>The repetition of his explosions was so dreaded by the enemy, that
-they apprehended an equal destruction in every fire-ship, and, immediately
-crowding all sail, ran before wind and tide so fast, that the fire-ships,
-though at first very near, could not overtake them, before they were high
-and dry on shore, except three seventy-fours, besides the Calcutta, which
-were afterwards engaged, taken, and burned.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Cochrane now turned his attention to rescue the vanquished
-from the devouring elements; and in bringing away the people of the
-Ville de Varsovie, he would not allow even a dog to be abandoned, but
-took the crying little favourite up into his arms and brought it away.
-But a still greater instance of goodness was displayed in his humanity to
-a captain of a French seventy-four, who came to deliver his sword to
-Lord Cochrane, and lamented that all he had in the world was about to
-be destroyed by the conflagration of his ship. His lordship instantly got
-into the boat with him, and pushed off to assist his prisoner in retrieving
-some valuable loss; but in passing by a seventy-four, which was on fire,
-her loaded guns began to go off; a shot from which killed the French
-captain by Lord Cochrane’s side, and so damaged the boat, that she filled
-and the rest of the party were nearly drowned.”</p>
-
-
-<p>RODNEY’S, ADMIRAL, VICTORIES.&mdash;This renowned Admiral
-fought, near Cape St. Vincent, the Spanish Admiral Don Langara, whom
-he defeated, and made prisoner, destroying eight of his ships and taking
-four, January 16th, 1780. On April 12th, 1782, he encountered the
-French fleet in the West Indies, commanded by Count de Grasse&mdash;took
-10 ships of the line, and sent the French Admiral prisoner to England.
-The enemy lost also one ship, sunk, and three blown up.</p>
-
-
-<p>ROSAS, BAY OF.&mdash;Brilliant naval action by the boats of the Tigre,
-Cumberland, Volontaire, Apollo, Topaz, Philomel, Scout, and Tuscan,
-commanded by Lieutenant Tailour, which ended in the capture or
-destruction of 11 armed vessels in the bay. November 1st, 1809.</p>
-
-
-<p>ROSBACH, BATTLES OF.&mdash;In the first battle fought at Rosbach<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
-40,000 rebel Flemings, under the command of the Duke of Burgundy, the
-King Charles VI in France being present, fell November 17th, 1382. A
-second battle between the Prussians, commanded by their King and the
-combined army of the French and Austrians, in which the latter sustained
-a severe defeat. Many thousands were slain on both sides, November 5th,
-1757.</p>
-
-
-<p>ROSES, WARS OF THE.&mdash;These wars arose out of a contest for the
-throne, between the two houses of York and Lancaster. It was termed
-the War of the Roses, from the badge of the York party being a white,
-and that of the Lancaster a red rose. It arose in complicated disputes
-about the succession among the descendants of Edward III. The feud
-thus arising was not concluded until Henry VII asserted the ascendency
-of the Lancaster party, on the field of Bosworth, and united the two, by
-marriage with a daughter of the York party.</p>
-
-<p>King Richard was killed at Bosworth and the Crown conferred upon
-the Earl of Richmond, and an end put to the wars between the two
-houses of York and Lancaster, begun upon the intrusion of king Henry
-IV, and continued till the death of King Richard III. There were
-fought 12 pitched battles, and 2 kings, 1 prince, 10 dukes, 2 marquesses,
-24 earls, 27 lords, 2 viscounts, 1 lord prior, 1 judge, 139 knights, 441
-esquires, and 84,998 private soldiers were slain; which, being added to
-the 638 of superior quality, there appears to have been killed in the
-quarrels between the two roses, 85,625.</p>
-
-
-<p>ROSS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In Ireland.</em>&mdash;Fought, June 4th, 1698,
-between the Royal troops and the insurgent forces, when, after the most
-obstinate contest, the latter were defeated losing more than 2600 killed on
-the field.</p>
-
-
-<p>ROXBURGH.&mdash;The following describes the razing of this fortress
-<span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1460: “Ever since the captivity of David II, a period of more than
-a hundred years, the castle of Roxburgh had been in possession of the
-English. James laid siege to it. He had gone with several of his nobility
-to watch the effect of a battery of cannon which had begun to play on the
-fortress. One of the pieces, a large gun of Flemish manufacture, formed
-of iron bars hooped together, burst in firing. A heavy fragment struck
-the King on the groin, and killed him on the spot. A holly tree in the
-park of Fleurs Castle still marks the place where James of the Fiery
-Face, not yet 30 years old, came to his untimely end. On hearing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span>
-the lamentable tidings, the queen came immediately to the camp. She
-appeared in the midst of the army, leading by the hand her little son,
-now the King. The spirited woman exhorted the soldiers to spend no
-time in vain regrets, but to show their regard for the dead, by gaining
-the victory which he had so much at heart. Catching ardour from
-her appeal, the army renewed the attack and carried the castle by
-storm that same day. The ruins of the stronghold, which cost Scotland so
-dear, are still to be seen on the tongue of land where Tweed and Teviot
-join, a little way above Kelso Bridge.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="S" id="S"></a>S.</h3>
-
-
-<p>SACRED WAR.&mdash;<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Sacrum Bellum.</i>&mdash;The first, about the celebrated
-temple of Delphi, took place <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 448. The second occurred also at the
-same place, when it was attacked by the Phœnicians, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 356.</p>
-
-
-<p>SADOWA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 3rd, 1866, between the
-Prussians and Austrians. Dr. Russel thus writes:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“In spite of the sombre morning and of the grey clothing, relieved
-only by the darker but livelier green of the Jagers and their plumed
-hats, the effect of the whole host wheeling, deploying, advancing, taking
-ground to the right or left, or marching in lengthened column, was so
-bright that it was difficult to believe they all, horses and men, had been
-sleeping out under the veiled stars of heaven, and were still dank and
-heavy with the night dew and the rain of the morning. But there
-could be no mistake about the reality of the work in which they were
-engaged, for the Austrians on the brow of the slope to the right were
-pounding away fiercely at the invincible enemy in the valley. That
-there was an enemy was plain enough, for the earth flew up on the
-slope as the answering shells glanced upwards, and then exploded among
-the infantry in the rear. This was about 8.30 <span class="fs70">A.M.</span> At nine o’clock a
-heavy shower obscured the field, and when it drifted northwards three
-Austrian batteries were still busy on the slope, and several columns of
-infantry, deploying on its side, moved up around it and disappeared into
-the valley, whence there soon came masses of curling smoke, and then
-the batteries limbered up and moved over also, showing that the enemy
-were falling back. The second line on the right made a slight movement
-to the right and upwards, but it did not seem as if the Austrians
-concerned themselves much for the ground between the rear of Imilovitz
-and the river. The cannonade which had all this time been going on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
-towards the right now extended towards the middle or centre; a line of
-batteries moving on or halting to fire could be seen on the plateau to
-the right of Klum, and it was evident that the enemy was in great force
-in that direction. It looked as if the Prussians had attacked the position
-almost simultaneously from left to right, for no sooner had the
-action developed itself on the centre than it rolled back from Nechanitz
-on the left, and before 9.30 the whole range of hills and valleys and
-slopes for nine miles and more was as if the earth had been turned into
-snow wreaths agitated in a wintry gale. Before 10 o’clock a thicker
-and darker cloud rose from the trees and the village on the right. “My
-God, Imilovitz is in flames,” exclaimed the guardian of the tower.
-The officers said “<em>Ja so!</em>” “<em>Hem!</em>” and uttered various other sounds
-of varied import possibly, smoked their cigars, and looked on. Imilovitz,
-indeed, blazed up furiously after a time, and in about a quarter of an
-hour more the Austrian batteries which had gone down the slope toiled
-up again, unlimbered, and fired from the brow. Puffs of smoke high in
-the air or rising from the ground showed where the Prussian fire was
-plying the Austrians on the right; but their guns replied vigorously,
-and all through that day, though sometimes ill-placed, the Austrian
-artillery behaved most gallantly. It was difficult to ascertain why the
-Austrian corps on the right were so unsteady, and why so many men
-were leaving the ranks of regiments still invisible; but after a time
-another sponge-like rain-cloud wiped away everything, and left it all
-like a clean slate, from behind which there issued a rolling fire of cannon
-as close as the volleys of a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">feu de joie</i>. When the shower passed away,
-the cannonade on the right near the tree had sensibly diminished, and
-the Austrians seemed to have the advantage all along the front, judging
-by the advance of their guns and infantry, except near the left centre
-and right of their line. On the extreme left another black cloud now
-rose up, licked by flames at the base. “<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Gott in Himmel!</i>” exclaimed
-the guardian of the tower, “Sadowa burns now!” And so it was.
-The pleasant little village, snug church, hospitable mill&mdash;all were burning.
-It was with surer divination of the coming woe than we had that
-the poor people had fled in tears, or remained in hopeless sorrow in their
-homes. The heat of this great battle burned up whatever it touched,
-and sent forth the lava which destroyed as it flowed on all sides.
-Between the big tree and Klum, in the centre and far away towards the
-second ridge, the fight was raging with extraordinary fury from 10
-o’clock till 10.30&mdash;and that half-hour seemed an age. But still the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-Austrians advanced. One grey mass of men followed another into the
-smoke, and was lost there. Towards Sadowa and Nechanitz on the left
-they also were gaining ground, and before 11 o’clock their columns
-had gone out of sight into the valley or undulations, and the Prussians
-could be seen by their fire to have fallen back on the opposing slopes of
-the second range of hills.</p>
-
-<p>An animating and magnificent feature was now added to the terrible
-spectacle by the forward movement of the heavy cavalry near the Prague
-road and towards the centre. These great squares of white, spreading
-out slowly, obliterated the cornfields. The very colour of the ground
-was changed and darkened under the trampling of horses. One column
-went towards the Nechanitz road, the other two moved towards Klum;
-but after a few formations they halted again, and some of these regiments
-dismounted and stood by their horses. The Saxons, readily to be distinguished
-by their light blue, also advanced parallel with the Prague
-road towards the top of the slope. This was some time after eleven
-o’clock, when the Prussian left and centre had visibly given way, though
-fighting with extreme tenacity and fervour. The light cavalry, at the
-same time, or part of them, advanced towards Klum in the centre,
-awaiting the moment to deluge the plain with an exulting flood. But
-the time was not come. The Prussians, reinforced, or calling in their
-second line and reserves, came with a desperate impetus up the slopes on
-the left and centre, and also developed a new attack on the left of the
-Prague road, which looked like a black riband now and then as the smoke
-was driven off by the wind. They were intent on turning our left if
-possible, but they met with a stubborn and successful resistance at that
-point. Soon afterwards, in the midst of a heavy fall of rain, the cavalry
-made another advance, and when it cleared the Austrian infantry were
-seen to have moved still further to the left and centre, while the sound
-of the cannonade grew so deafening that the Prussians must have been
-driven back beyond the position they occupied when they began the
-action. Between half-past eleven and twelve o’clock the Austrians were
-to all intents successful on the centre and on its flanks, although the fury
-of the cannonade and the incessant rattle of musketry all along the front,
-from the front of Nechanitz to the plateau beyond Klum attested the
-severity of the struggle and the obstinate resistance of the Prussians.
-Probbis, another pretty village, was now in flames; three villages burning
-at once, farmhouses adding their contingents to the fire and smoke,
-caissons blowing up, shells bursting, and the slopes and hill tops covered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span>
-with grey and blue specs&mdash;each a man in agony or in death. Again the
-cavalry moved onwards. This time one division, in three bodies, crowned
-the ridge and formed near the front line under the church, on the left
-of Klum, in the centre and left of the position, and there they waited
-once more. But now on the right the action awoke again, and, to our
-surprise, a very heavy fire of musketry, comparatively close at hand, came
-from the direction of Smirlintz; the Austrians on the crest of the ridge
-moved uneasily, while many more stragglers than one cared to see pressed
-down towards the railroad. Whatever the cause of the agitation, the
-Prussians on the centre and left pressed their attack with renewed
-vigour, and the contest which ensued was of exceeding fierceness; but
-still the enemy did not prevail&mdash;the Austrians not only held their ground,
-but repulsed the enemy advanced against them, took their ground, and
-made prisoners. From the left of Klum to the Prague road, and beyond
-it, all was fire and smoke. The tumult of voices was dreadful, and such
-as is never to be heard save in such awful agony of battle. The Austrians
-again advanced a little nearer the big tree, and two batteries of
-reserve artillery could be seen driving fast to the left to strengthen the
-attack. But the Prussian reserves were once more called upon, and from
-12.30 till nearly 1 o’clock there was an artillery fire from centre to left
-for six miles or more, which could not well have been exceeded in any
-action of which history makes mention. That ammunition was becoming
-needed in the advanced position was evident from the motion of the trains
-of supply and reserve, and we watched the cavalry with intense interest,
-as it seemed to be the time for them to make an impression. The Prussians
-were wavering. At 1 o’clock the Prussians, however, recovered
-some of the ground on the right near the big tree. The Austrian artillery
-began to fall back over the brow of the hill, and again battalions of
-infantry came in sight and moved away obliquely towards the centre.
-Still, no Prussians appeared in that direction, but they were certainly
-forcing the Austrians back on the right. It might have been expected
-that the reserves to the right would have been sent up to hold the top of
-the slope, but I could not see it was so. Many stragglers now appeared
-on the railway, the fields were spotted with them; and now and then a
-shell bursting in or over the infantry marching along the slope or the
-reserves, struck them, or left a little pile of dead or struggling men in the
-voids which the opening columns displayed. I confess the advance of the
-Prussians in this direction appeared to me inexplicable and very serious;
-for, although the left and centre of the Austrians might be victorious,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-this movement threatened, by forcing back their right, to cut them off from
-Konigsgratz&mdash;so, at least, was the situation as viewed from the tower;
-but it is strange how different a field of action appears from different
-points of view, as any one may find out by riding from place to place on a
-field-day. However, a General who saw what was visible to those in the
-tower would have felt uneasiness and have turned his attention to fill the
-gap in his line at the centre, and to drive back the Prussians who were
-doubling up his right.</p>
-
-<p>While the centre advanced slowly, but surely, a space seemed to be
-left between the ground they had occupied and the left of the Austrians,
-who were continually retiring there. The houses burning fiercely in
-Klum emitted volumes of smoke, which were swept away towards the
-right. Another village lying apparently to the left of Prague road,
-named Gres Biaritz, or Hiaritz, as well as I could catch the name, was
-now in flames. More tumbrils blew up in that direction, so that there
-were now six or seven villages and hamlets on fire from left to right.
-The battle was assuming a more awful and tremendous aspect, and the
-faint rays of sunshine which shot at intervals through the lifting clouds
-only gave the scene greater terror. Horses without riders careered
-among the wounded, who were crawling all over the plain, dismounted
-dragoons dragged themselves to the rear, and men came crawling along in
-such numbers that they appeared like a broad fringe to the edges of the
-battle. The rolling of musketry in the hollows beyond smothered the
-voice of the cannon. At last the reserves behind were pressed forward
-with energy. Their artillery unlimbering opened from sixteen guns into
-the dense blue columns which were driving the Austrians before them,
-and checked their advance, till the Prussian artillery, getting upon the
-small ridge and firing down so as to get a slight enfilade, began to knock
-over horses and men. The Austrians, however, here, as elsewhere, stuck
-to their pieces admirably, and it was not till the Prussian infantry, getting
-into a clump of timber, opened a sharp fire on their flank that they
-limbered up, leaving more than one black heap to mark the position they
-had occupied. Meanwhile the Austrians on the left pursued their onward
-career. The Saxon reserves pushed up the hills in the direction of Nechanitz;
-and a great body of cavalry sweeping round between the left and
-centre, dashed in wavelike columns through the smoke towards the Prussians,
-and menaced their artillery, against which some thirty or forty
-pieces in line were directing a steady and rapid fire. Prussian prisoners
-begun to arrive at intervals between the convoys of wounded, winding<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
-their way along the Prague road. Most of those men belonged to the
-6th and 31st regiments, to judge from the numbers on their shoulder-straps;
-and among them was an officer of great stature, with red moustaches
-and whiskers, who bore his captivity with great <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">sang froid</i>, and
-walked along like a conqueror. As the Austrian left and centre gained
-ground, the right yielded, and column after column of Prussians came
-upon the ridge, firing as they advanced, while their guns on the flanks
-swept the slowly retreating, but not disorderly, Austrians with shrapnel
-and shell. At times the Austrians halting opened a brisk fire; once or
-twice several regiments formed square to receive cavalry, but I could not
-see any Prussian horse on the slope near them. There was a hesitation,
-both in the Austrians and the enemy, which was not intelligible, and
-several times the officers at the head of the Prussian columns riding forward,
-fired over their horses’ heads, and stood up in their stirrups as if
-to see into the hollows. A shell burst close over one of them, and when
-the smoke cleared away, man and horse were down, and never stirred
-again. The folds of the ground must have hid most of the Prussians
-from the Austrian artillery as they got near the big tree, for the gunners
-principally directed their pieces against the Prussian guns, which received
-accessions rapidly, and occupied their full attention. At last the Prussians
-were perceived, and five battalions of Austrians from the reserve,
-coming from the extreme right, tried to check their advance by a flanking
-fire. The Prussians halted, and in an instant a fire of surprising volume
-and sharpness flew along their front. The Austrians for a few minutes
-replied steadily, but they fell fast, and at last two battalions, with great
-vigour, charged up the hill, but were broken in the run, were shaken by
-a rolling volley and by several rounds from the artillery in flank, and
-retreated in some disorder towards the left, behind a spur of the ridge.
-The enemy pressed on anew, and soon gained the <em>plateau</em> close by the
-big tree, where they dipped into an undulation only to reappear at the
-other side, and then formed up in compact square-like formations, pushing
-out lines of skirmishers towards Klum, from which they were about a mile
-distant. The Austrians below them and nearer to Konigsgratz halted
-and faced round to meet a new enemy, for the Prussians now showed near
-the railway, and a sanguinary encounter took place around some houses
-in a wood, in which artillery and musketry raged for a quarter of an
-hour in a perfect tornado. A range of buildings near a large factory
-chimney on the very banks of the Elbe, as it seemed to me, was the
-scene of another very severe struggle. Another village, Trothina, burst<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>
-into flames, and from under the very smoke appeared the Prussian skirmishers
-on the very extreme right, followed by more infantry. The
-enemy were, indeed, quite inexhaustible in number, though still he could
-not hold his own on the left. Suddenly an Austrian battery, galloping
-from the left centre, began to mow down the Prussians on the right.
-They were retiring behind the burning Trothina. But their artillery
-was at hand again. From a lane above the village a battery opened on
-the Austrians, and, at the same time, another battery, wheeling over the
-slope below the big tree, crossed its fire on the devoted Austrians. “<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Ein
-Kreuz feuer? Ein Kreuz feuer?</i>” exclaimed the officers. “Good God!
-where do they come from?” Where, indeed! This combat now assumed
-larger proportions. The Prussian right showed in great force, and the
-hills were covered with their regiments advancing in the most perfect
-order. All over the field were hundreds limping away, and piles of dead
-lay in rows along the lanes and in the thick corn. The enemy, whose
-strength had been hidden from us by the hills, now displayed numbers,
-which accounted for the retreat of the Austrians on the right.</p>
-
-<p>The Austrian gunners could not hold up against the cross fire, and the
-weight of pieces opposed to them. What avail was it that they were
-winning on the centre? Through the glass they could be seen pressing
-on from point to point in a tempest of smoke and flame. It was now
-near two o’clock. On the left and centre there could be no hesitation in
-declaring that the Prussians were all but beaten. It seemed as if a charge
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en masse</i> of the horse deployed for miles on the <em>plateau</em> could roll up their
-centre on their left, or crumble the left into pieces. The fire at Klum,
-in the centre, which had died out, broke forth with fresh violence, and
-all the village began to burn. The Prussians in the centre made another
-grand effort, and it would only be a repetition of adjectives, utterly feeble
-at the strongest, to endeavour to give the smallest conception of the roar
-of cannon which announced and met this fresh attempt to change the
-fortunes of the day. The strong wind could not clear away the smoke,
-which poured in banks as agitated as the sea itself over the battle-field,
-now contracted to the centre and right, for all towards the Prague road
-the fight had apparently ended in the discomfiture of the Prussian left.
-As it contracted it heated up, and the caissons and tumbrils blew up
-repeatedly. The movements of the Austrians from the right centre to
-oppose the last effort of the Prussians increased the open interval between
-the centre and the extreme right resting on the lower ground near the
-river, but the Austrians did not perceive it, or if they did, could not prevent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
-the advance of the enemy along the <em>plateau</em> by the big tree towards
-Klum. The Austrian right and reserves become more unsteady, but
-their artillery contests every foot of ground. Suddenly a spattering of
-musketry breaks out of the trees and houses of Klum right down on the
-Austrian gunners, and on the columns of infantry drawn up on the slopes
-below. The gunners fall on all sides&mdash;their horses are disabled&mdash;the fire
-increases in intensity&mdash;the Prussians on the ridge press on over the
-<em>plateau</em>; this is an awful catastrophe&mdash;two columns of Austrians are led
-against the village, but they cannot stand the fire, and after three
-attempts to carry it, retreat, leaving the hill-side covered with the fallen.
-It is a terrible moment. The Prussians see their advantage; they here
-get into the very centre of the position. In vain the staff officers fly to
-the reserves and hasten to get back some of the artillery from the front.
-The dark blue regiments multiply on all sides and from their edges roll
-perpetually sparkling musketry. Their guns hurry up, and from the
-slope take both the Austrians on the extreme right and the reserves in
-flank. They spread away to the woods near the Prague road and fire
-into the rear of the Austrian gunners.</p>
-
-<p>Thus a wedge growing broader and driven in more deeply every instant
-was forced into the very body of the Austrian army, separating it at the
-heart and dividing its left and centre from the right. The troops in the
-centre and left are dismayed at hearing the enemy’s guns in their rear,
-and are soon exposed to the fire which most of all destroys the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">morale</i> of
-soldiers already shaken by surprise. The right, previously broken up
-and discomfited, hurry towards the Prague road in something like confusion,
-and spread alarm among the reserves of the centre and left. The
-regular lines of the columns below are gradually bulging out, and are at
-last swallowed up in disordered multitude. Officers gallop about trying
-to restore order. Some regiments hold together, though they are losing
-men in heaps every instant. The left wing is arrested in its onward progress.
-The Prussian Generals in front of them and on the centre, seeing
-their enemy waver, throw their battalions against them, and encourage
-their artillery to fresh efforts; but the formidable Austrian cavalry prevents
-any hasty or enthusiastic demonstrations on the part of the Prussian
-right, whom long continued fighting and heavy losses must have somewhat
-enervated.</p>
-
-<p>Even yet there was hope for the Austrians! There, on the Prussian
-front, wheeled a force of horse with which a Murat or a Kellerman or a
-Seidlitz could have won a battle and saved an empire. There, still<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span>
-unshaken, were at least 40,000 men, of whom scarcely one had ever fired
-a shot. The indomitable Austrian artillery still turned hundreds of muzzles
-on the enemy’s guns, and girt their men in a band of fire. To let slip
-that cavalry on both sides of Klum, to crash through infantry and guns,
-seemed really worth doing, though failure would have made the difference
-between a defeat and a rout. It would have been a supreme deed fit for
-such a force to accomplish or to perish in attempting. And there were
-no natural obstacles visible from the tower to a grand charge. The Prussian
-right, separated from its centre and left, would have been rolled down
-into the valley among the Austrians, and utterly crushed, and the Austrian
-centre and left have been liberated to continue their contest with the enemy.
-Moments were precious. The Prussian fire became more severe, the
-wavering of the Austrians greater. The falling of trees on the Prague
-road, the rush of fugitives, the near approach of the Prussian shells to the
-place, some of them bursting over the railway station, were awful warnings
-of the state of the battle. All the roads were blocked up with retreating
-trains and waggons. Men were throwing down their arms and wading
-through the inundations. The Austrian gunners on the causeway began
-to catch a sight of the Prussians near at hand in the woods, and opened
-on them with shrapnel and shell. It was now somewhere about 2.30;
-but it was not possible to note time when such things were going on so
-near. Scarce could the glass be directed to one point ere an exclamation
-from a bystanding officer or an awful clamour carried it to another.
-Seconds were of inestimable value&mdash;not only that hundreds were falling,
-but that they were falling in vain&mdash;that all the issues for which an empire
-had summoned its might and the Kaiser his people to the field were being
-decided, and that the toils of generations of Emperors, warriors, and
-statesmen were about being lost for ever. The genius of the Prussian
-was in the ascendant.</p>
-
-<p>The spirit of Bismark or his genius ruled the battle-field. While the
-Austrian was hesitating, the Prussian was acting. The lines of dark
-blue which came in sight from the right teemed from the vales below as
-if the earth yielded them. They filled the whole back ground of the
-awful picture of which Klum was the centre. They pressed down on the
-left of the Prague road. In square, in column, deploying or wheeling
-hither and thither&mdash;everywhere pouring in showers of deadly precision&mdash;penetrating
-the whole line of the Austrians; still they could not force
-their stubborn enemy to fly. On all sides they met brave but unfortunate
-men, ready to die if they could do no more. At the side of the Prague<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span>
-road the fight went on with incredible vehemence. The Austrians had
-still an immense force of artillery, and although its concentrated fire
-swept the ground before it, its effect was lost in some degree by reason of
-the rising ground above, and at last by its divergence to so many points
-to answer the enemy’s cannon. Many Austrians must have fallen by
-their own artillery. Once an Austrian column, separating itself from the
-great multitude below, with levelled bayonets, led by its officers in front
-waving caps and sabres, went straight at the wood around Klum and
-drove back the Prussian Tirailleurs, but were staggered by fearful volleys
-of musketry. Their officers were all killed or wounded. They fell
-suddenly back. Down came the Prussians, but they were received on the
-bayonet point and with clubbed muskets, and were driven back to the
-shelter of the wood, and some were carried off prisoners in the retreating
-column. Indeed, handfuls of Prussians were coming into the town behind
-us all the day, showing how close the fight was, and a considerable body
-of the 27th Regiment, with some officers, are now in the Grosser Ring.
-Chesta and Visa were now burning, so that from right to left the flames
-of ten villages, and the flashes of guns and musketry, contended with the
-sun that pierced the clouds for the honour of illuminating the seas of
-steel and the fields of carnage. It was three o’clock. The efforts of the
-Austrians to occupy Klum and free their centre had failed, the right was
-driven down in a helpless mass towards Konigsgratz, quivering and palpitating
-as shot and shell tore through it. “<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Alles ist verloren!</i>” Artillery
-still thundered with a force and violence which might have led a stranger
-to such scenes to think no enemy could withstand it. The Austrian
-cavalry still hung like white thunder-clouds on the flanks, and threatened
-the front of the Prussians, keeping them in square and solid columns.
-But already the trains were streaming away from Konigsgratz, placing
-the Elbe and Adler between them and the enemy. The grip of the
-Prussians could not be shaken. Word was brought to me to leave at
-once, for the city gates were about being closed, and the gunners on the
-walls were laying their pieces to cover the inundations and the causeways.
-One more glance showed a very hell of fire&mdash;cornfields, highways, slopes,
-and dells, and hillsides covered with the slain&mdash;the pride and might of
-Austria shattered and laid low. What happened more I can only tell
-from hearsay. But I am told that at the last the Austrian horse saved
-all that was not lost, and in brilliant charges rolled back the tide of Prussian
-infantry; that the gunners threw their pieces into the Elbe and into
-the inundated fields as they retreated; that men were drowned in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span>
-hundreds as they crowded over pontoon bridges hastily laid and sunk or
-burned ere the columns could cross over; that luggage-trains, reserve
-ammunition, guns, and prisoners, the spoils of that enormous host, fell
-into the hands of the victors, who remained masters of that hard-fought
-field, covered for nine miles with myriads of the slain. Well might
-Benedek exclaim, “All is lost but my life! Would to God I had lost
-that too!”</p>
-
-<p>There is no account of our losses, estimates varying from 10,000 to
-25,000. If prisoners be included, I am inclined to think the latter
-number correct. The loss in guns is reckoned at 150 to 180. It would
-not astonish me to hear it was more.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">INCIDENTS OF THE BATTLE.</p>
-
-<p>Incidents of the battle are furnished by several other correspondents
-of the London papers. The following are selections:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“In the Austrian ranks some striking instances of inhumanity have
-been exhibited. Yesterday, a prisoner was brought hither loaded with
-chains, to suffer well-deserved punishment. He was a Croat, and was
-taken in the very act of cutting off his own wounded captain’s fingers to
-get quicker at his rings.</p>
-
-<p>In the knapsacks of the fallen Austrians were found spare suits of
-regimentals that had never been worn; and, according to the prisoners,
-those uniforms were intended to be worn at the solemn entry into
-Berlin.</p>
-
-<p>One correspondent was informed by an Austrian officer, a prisoner,
-that in Konigsgratz, on the 2nd July even, there were 7000 wounded
-Austrians. But&mdash;disgraceful as the fact may seem&mdash;three days after
-the battle of Skalitz, wounded Austrians&mdash;such is the testimony of Prussian
-officers and surgeons&mdash;were found with wounds still bleeding on the
-field among the dead bodies.</p>
-
-<p>At 1.5 the staff galloped off to see the position on the right, passing
-through the 6th Corps, which was in reserve. As the green plumes were
-seen rapidly advancing, the bands broke into the National Anthem, and
-the men cheered their commander as he passed with no uncertain note.
-Faces broke out into broad smiles; Jager hats were thrown into the air;
-all seemed joyous in the anticipation of an approaching triumph.
-Benedek, however, waved to them to cease, shouting in his peculiar tone
-of voice, always clear and distinct, “Not now&mdash;wait till to-morrow, my
-children.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>By half-past four o’clock the whole army was in full retreat; its rear,
-harassed by the enemy, was protected by the artillery and cavalry, who
-are said to have made many desperate charges, and to have been more
-than decimated. The bridges across the Adler and the Elbe are few
-and narrow, and the several columns meeting at such points became confused
-and intermixed. Guns that could not be carried away, were thrown
-off their carriages into the river; many were lost in this manner, but it
-is said that comparatively few are taken. A captain of artillery, who
-heard me asking about the loss in guns, said, “Out of my whole battery
-I have but one gun and seven horses left, and many others are in like
-condition.” Another said, “We have no artillery.” Every head was hung
-down, every spirit depressed. It was not merely a battle, but an empire
-lost, unless diplomatists can at last unweave the net which baffled them
-before, and which the sword has failed to cut. The soldiers knew nothing
-of all this; their only trouble was the fatigue from which they
-suffered, or the thought that the day’s battle would have to be fought
-over again before they could reach the pleasant plains and reap the
-benefits held out to their imaginations in Benedek’s proclamation issued
-but a few days ago. The night was chilly, and bivouac fires lined the sides
-of the road at intervals. Had it been an advance instead of a retreat,
-we might have enjoyed the picturesque scene. Round fires of firwood,
-flaming high above their heads, stood or sat the brave fellows who had
-laboured so hard and fought so gallantly on that day. Some stood warming
-themselves by the blaze which lighted up their bronzed faces to as
-red a glow as that of the pine stems that towered over them; others sat
-resting a wounded arm or leg on the bed of branches plucked for them
-by their more fortunate comrades; others, again, lay about in every
-attitude of exhaustion.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SAGUNTUM, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Like Numantia, one of the most important
-in history, occurred <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 219. The citizens, after sustaining the
-siege for eight months, with heroic bravery, to prevent themselves falling
-into the hands of Hannibal, buried themselves in the ruins of their city.
-They burnt their houses and all their effects, and thus reduced the city
-to ashes.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. ALBANS, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The first fought, May 22nd,
-1455, between the houses of York and Lancaster. The second between
-the Earl of Warwick and Queen Margaret of Anjou, who conquered.
-Fought, February 2nd, 1461. This battle was fought on Shrove-Tuesday,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span>
-and resulted in the death of the Earl. “The Earl of Warwick,
-who now put himself at the head of the Yorkists, was one of the most
-celebrated generals of the age, formed for times of trouble, extremely
-artful and incontestably brave, equally skilful in council and the field;
-and inspired with a degree of hatred against the Queen that nothing
-could suppress. He commanded an army, in which he led about the
-captive King, to give a sanction to his attempts. Upon the approach of
-the Lancastrians, he conducted his forces, strengthened by a body of
-Londoners, who were very affectionate to his cause, and gave battle to
-the Queen at St. Alban’s. In this, however, he was defeated. About
-2000 of the Yorkists perished in the battle, and the person of the King
-again fell into the hands of his own party, to be treated with apparent
-respect, but real contempt.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. CHARLES.&mdash;On the 6th of November, 1837, a riot occurred at
-Montreal, but no lives were lost. On the 10th, Sir John Colborne, the
-Commander of the Forces, removed his head quarters from Sorel to
-Montreal. On the same day, a detachment proceeded to St. John’s
-under the command of Captain Glasgow. He found a large body of
-people posted on the opposite bank of the Richelieu, and the cavalry
-proceeded to take possession of the bridge, in order to prevent them from
-crossing. On the 16th, warrants were issued for the apprehension of twenty-six
-of the chief leaders. As a party of volunteer cavalry, newly organised,
-who had charge of two prisoners, were returning to Montreal, a large
-body of peasantry fired upon them from behind the fences near Longueuil,
-and compelled them to abandon their prisoners. Colonel Wetherall,
-with a considerable force, proceeded immediately from Chambly in the
-direction of St. Charles, for the purpose of dispersing a large body of
-people who had assembled there, and fortified their position. At some
-places the insurgents fled on the approach of the army, but at St. Charles
-the defenders were so obstinate that the Colonel was obliged to storm
-and carry the works, burning every house but one. The slaughter was
-great on the side of the unfortunate and misguided people, but slight on
-that of the troops. Another party of troops, who were marching from
-Sorel up the course of the Richelieu to effect a junction with Colonel
-Wetherall, were not so successful. At St. Denis they met with such a
-strong opposition, that they were compelled to abandon their intention
-and march back to Sorel. This success on the part of the insurgents
-was only of short duration, for, on the winter roads being formed, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span>
-same party marched through the country without opposition. Having
-captured St. Charles, and dispersed a considerable body collected for the
-purpose of cutting off his return, Colonel Wetherall came back to
-Montreal, bringing with him the pole and cap of liberty, which had
-been reared at St. Charles, and twenty-five prisoners. Four or five
-battalions of troops were raised in Montreal, and upwards of 50 corps
-of various kinds in other parts of the country. One of the most tragical
-events which took place at this time was the murder of Lieutenant
-Weir. This young officer had been sent overland to Sorel with a despatch
-directing the officer in command to prepare a force to accompany Colonel
-Gore, who was to leave Montreal in the afternoon in the steamboat.
-The roads were so bad that travelling was almost impossible, and he
-could not reach Sorel by land until half an hour after Colonel Gore and
-his division had crossed the St. Lawrence and marched on their route to
-St. Denis. Taking a fresh <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">calèche</span>, he hastened to join his troops; but,
-mistaking the road, he passed them and arrived at St. Denis before
-them. Here he was made a prisoner, closely pinioned, sent forward to
-St. Charles, and on the road was barbarously murdered by his brutal
-guardians. The fact and the circumstances attending it were only
-ascertained on the second expedition to St. Denis. The body was found
-in the Richelieu, and was brought to Montreal for interment. The
-funeral took place with military honours, and so solemn and imposing a
-sight was never before witnessed in the city.</p>
-
-<p>Martial law was proclaimed in the District of Montreal on the 5th of
-December, and Sir John Colborne invested with authority to administer
-it. Immediately after this the attention of Government was called to
-the preparations making at the Lake of the Two Mountains, at St.
-Eustache, St. Benoit and St. Scholastique, where the most active and
-able leaders of the revolt had fortified themselves in a formidable manner.</p>
-
-<p>On the morning of the 13th of December, Sir John Colborne, with
-about 1300 men, advanced towards the district from Montreal along the
-left hank of the Ottawa. On the 14th the army crossed the river and
-invested the village of St. Eustache. The attack was completely
-successful, though attended with much destruction of life and property.
-The handsome church was set on fire as well as the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">presbytère</i> and about
-60 of the principal houses. One of the leaders was killed near the
-church, and a large number burnt or suffocated from the flames; of the
-troops only one or two were killed and a few wounded.</p>
-
-<p>The next day, as the troops marched forward to St. Benoit, His<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-Excellency was met by delegates bearing a flag of truce, and stating that
-the insurgents were prepared to lay down their arms unconditionally.
-Almost every house exhibited something white; and, on arriving at St.
-Benoit, 250 of these misguided men were found drawn up in a line and
-suing for pardon, stating that their leaders had deserted them. They
-were immediately dismissed to their homes and occupations. With the
-return of the troops from the county of the Two Mountains the military
-operations, connected with the first insurrection in Lower Canada, may
-be said to have terminated.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. DIZIER, BATTLES OF.&mdash;<em>In France.</em>&mdash;Between the Allied
-armies and the French&mdash;one of the engagements being commanded by
-Napoleon himself. The French sustained in these battles, as in several
-proceeding, severe defeats, and led the way by which the Allied armies
-entered Paris. Fought, January 27th and March 26th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. JEAN DE LUZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;“Soult had a strong position
-on the Nivelle from St. Jean de Luz to Ainhoe, about twelve miles in
-length. General Hill, with the British right, advanced from the valley of
-Baztan, and attacking the French on the height of Ainhoe, drove them
-towards Cambo, on the Nive, while the centre of the Allies, consisting of
-the English and Spanish troops, under Beresford and Alton, carried the
-works behind Sarre, and drove the French beyond the Nivelle, which the
-Allies crossed at St. Pé, in the rear of the enemy. Upon this the French
-hastily abandoned their ground and works on the left of the Nivelle, and
-during the night withdrew to their entrenched camp in front of
-Bayonne. Wellington’s headquarters were established at St. Jean de
-Luz, November 10th, 1813.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. QUENTIN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Philip II, of Spain, assisted by
-the British, defeated the French here, August 10th, 1557.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. SEBASTIAN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The fortified works, through
-which ran the high road to Hernani, were carried by the English
-Auxiliary Legion, under General Evans, after very hard fighting. The
-British naval squadron off the place, lent, under Lord John Hay, very
-great aid to the victors. Fought, May 5th, 1836. Again, on the 1st of
-October, same year, a vigorous assault was made on the lines of General
-De Lacy Evan by the Carlists. Both sides fought with great bravery,
-but the Carlists were repulsed after suffering severely. The Anglo-Spanish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span>
-loss was 376 men, and thirty-seven officers killed and wounded.
-The General was also wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. SEBASTIAN, SIEGE OF.&mdash;By the British and Allied armies,
-under Wellington. After a short siege, during which it sustained a heavy
-bombardment, and by which the whole town was nearly laid in ruins,
-it was stormed by General Graham, and taken, August 31st, 1803. The
-loss was almost all on the British side in the storming&mdash;the Spaniards
-losing few.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. VINCENT, BATTLE OF CAPE.&mdash;Between the Spanish and
-British fleets off this Cape. The latter was commanded by Admiral Sir
-John Jarvis, who took four line of battle ships, and damaged considerably
-the rest of the Spanish fleet, February 14th, 1797. His own fleet
-consisted of 15 sail of the line only&mdash;whilst the enemy’s fleet was 27
-sail, 7 of which carried from 112 to 130 guns each.</p>
-
-
-<p>ST. VINCENT, CAPE.&mdash;Admiral Rooke, with 20 men of war, and
-the Turkish fleet, under his convoy, was attacked by Admiral Tourville
-with a force vastly superior to his own, when 12 English and Dutch
-men of war, and 80 merchant men were taken or destroyed by the
-French, June 16th, 1693. Here, also, Admiral Rodney destroyed several
-Spanish ships, January 16th, 1780.</p>
-
-
-<p>SALAMANCA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought July 22nd, 1812.&mdash;“Lord
-Wellington had fought the battle of Talavera in less than three
-months after he had marched out of Lisbon, and in only three months
-and six days after his landing in Portugal. He had seen some kind of
-action and enterprise to be absolutely necessary. It was demanded by
-England; it was expected by Spain and Portugal. Hence he first drove
-the French out of Oporto and out of the Portuguese dominions, and
-then, in conjunction with a Spanish army, marched upon Madrid, and
-fought a battle with the French.</p>
-
-<p>But these three months sufficed to show him, how utterly valueless
-was the aid proffered him by the Spaniards. They left him without
-provisions; they furnished him with no means of transport; and when
-they placed an army by his side, that army could do nothing but run
-away, and spread alarm and consternation on every side. Hence, so
-soon as he fully understood the real condition of affairs, he wrote home
-to the British government in these plain terms:</p>
-
-<p>“Spain has proved untrue to her alliance because she is untrue to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
-herself;” “and until some great change shall be effected in the conduct
-of the military resources of Spain, and in the state of her armies, no
-British army can attempt safely to co-operate with Spanish troops in
-the territories of Spain.”</p>
-
-<p>Having arrived at this conclusion, Lord Wellington soon withdrew his
-army from Spain, retired into Portugal, and began to concert measures
-for the effectual defence of that kingdom. At home, party spirit, as
-usual, led to injustice. The opposition in the British parliament questioned
-the whole of his conduct of the past campaign. Sir W. Napier
-tells us, that “his merits, they said, were nought; his actions silly,
-presumptuous, and rash; his campaign one deserving not reward but
-punishment. Yet he had delivered Portugal, cleared Galicia and Estramadura,
-and forced 100,000 French veterans to abandon the offensive
-and concentrate about Madrid!”</p>
-
-<p>He now calmly submitted to the British government his views of the
-defence of Portugal. He assigned to Marshal Beresford the organization
-of the Portuguese army; he required only 13,000 British troops to
-be permanently maintained; and with this force he expected to be able
-to defend Portugal, at least until Spain should be thoroughly subdued
-by the French; so as to allow of the concentration of their whole force
-on the work of subjugating Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>The wisdom and expediency of this employment of English troops and
-English revenues in foreign war, was abundantly evident. For, when
-the Continent should have been wholly conquered by Napoleon, he would
-then, as he plainly declared, attempt the invasion of England. Hence,
-to keep his armies employed in the Peninsula, was the way plainly
-pointed out by common sense, as likely to postpone or wholly avert a
-French invasion of the British islands. To defend Portugal, therefore,
-was Wellington’s first object; for Portugal had become a sort of outwork
-of England.</p>
-
-<p>The Spanish government, meanwhile, with equal imbecility and self-sufficiency,
-chose to rush into inevitable defeat. They had starved the
-English army; which, in a whole month, got only ten days’ bread; and
-which lost 1000 horses from mere want of provender; and had thus
-forced Lord Wellington to retire into Portugal. They now choose, with
-an army of 50,000 men, to give battle to the French at Ocana; where,
-on the 12th of November, they sustained such a total defeat, that ten
-days after the battle not a single battalion kept the field. No fewer
-than 20,000 of the Spaniards laid down their arms, and the rest were
-utterly scattered and dispersed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At the opening of 1810, Napoleon resolved to complete the conquest
-of the Peninsula. He augmented his armies in Spain to 360,000 men.
-One army, consisting of 65,000 men, under the command of Soult, was
-charged with the subjugation of Andalusia; and another, of 80,000 men,
-under Massena, was to move to the west, and reduce Portugal. Now,
-therefore, must Wellington’s plans for the defence of Portugal be brought
-to the test.</p>
-
-<p>The actual force of Massena’s army in May, 1810, is shown by French
-returns given by Sir W. Napier, to have been 86,847 men.</p>
-
-<p>On the 1st of June the French commander invested Ciudad Rodrigo,
-which capitulated on the 11th of July. Almeida surrendered on the
-26th of August, and thus the road to Lisbon was opened to the French
-army. Wellington would gladly have fought a battle to save these fortresses;
-but if he engaged 80,000 French, with 32,000 English and
-Portuguese, and did not signally defeat them; what would then have
-become of Portugal? Still, when on Portuguese ground, and engaged
-in the defence of Portugal, he thought it right, on September 27th, to
-make one stand at Busaco; where he inflicted on the French a loss of
-4500 men, at a cost, to his own army, of only 1300. Massena then
-began even to think of retreating into Spain; when a peasant informed
-him of a mountain-pass by which he might carry his army into a position
-from which he could threaten Wellington’s left. This compelled the
-English General again to make a retrograde movement; and on the 15th
-of October the whole British and Portuguese army was collected within
-the lines of Torres Vedras.</p>
-
-<p>These now famous lines, which Wellington had long been silently constructing,
-were so little thought of either in England or in France, that
-military instructions were actually given in England commencing thus:
-“As it is probable the army will embark in September.” And the
-French commander on his part, found his way suddenly stopped by an
-insurmountable obstacle, of the existence of which he had never before
-heard.</p>
-
-<p>Lord Wellington had observed that on the land side (and the French
-had no force upon the water) Lisbon could be completely defended by a
-series of entrenchments properly manned. Silently, therefore, during
-many months past, he had been at work on these lines. They were
-now complete, mounting 600 guns and when manned by 50,000 men
-they might have defied Napoleon himself at the head of one of his largest
-armies.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Massena, astonished, employed several days in examining these lines
-on every side, but at no point could he find an attack to be feasible.
-One or two attempts were made, in which his troops were roughly
-handled, and one of his Generals killed. At last, altogether perplexed,
-he sent off General Foy to Paris to ask of Napoleon what was to be done.
-But Napoleon himself had no remedy to prescribe, and hence, after
-remaining before the lines for one whole month, until utter starvation
-menaced his army, the French Marshal commenced a retreat. He first
-retired to Santaren, where he remained until the following March. He
-then finally retreated out of Portugal, having lost, in the short space of
-seven months, not fewer than 45,000 men, chiefly by exposure, disease,
-and starvation. Lord Wellington followed him, and at once invested
-Almeida. Massena ventured on an engagement at Fuentes d’Onore,
-but failed, and Almeida capitulated to the English on the 12th of May,
-1811.</p>
-
-<p>This campaign had greatly raised the hopes and the confidence of
-England, and had placed the character of her General on an unassailable
-elevation. Portugal had been defeated, and a French Marshal with a
-noble army had been driven back in defeat. Lord Wellington now,
-therefore, resolved to begin offensive operations in Spain, and he sat
-down before Badajoz. But Napoleon had at last awakened to the real
-character of this great struggle. He resolved that Badajoz should not
-be lost. He therefore earnestly and strenuously increased his forces in
-Spain, until, in September, 1811, they again amounted to 368,000 men.
-Soult and Marmont received their orders, and approached Badajoz with
-60,000 men. Lord Wellington retired, but in July he threatened
-Ciudad Rodrigo, when again the two French Marshals marched to its
-relief with a greatly superior army. And now, as the winter approached,
-both armies went into cantonments, and the campaign of 1811 ended.</p>
-
-<p>But with January, 1812, commenced that career of triumph which
-only ended at Waterloo. In 1810, Wellington had saved Portugal; in
-1811, he had threatened and disquieted the French armies in their possession
-of Spain; but the opening year was not to close until that possession
-was very seriously endangered.</p>
-
-<p>Silently, all November and December, Wellington’s preparations were
-going on. Soult imagined that he was about to renew the siege of
-Badajoz, but suddenly, in the earliest days of January, a bridge was
-thrown over the Agueda, and the English army crossed the river and
-invested Ciudad Rodrigo. The siege commenced on the 8th, and on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span>
-the 19th the place was stormed and carried. It had cost the French a
-siege of six weeks to take it from the Spaniards two years before. On
-hearing of its capture in twelve days, Marmont wrote to Napoleon,
-saying, “On the 16th, the English batteries opened their fire: on the
-19th the place was taken by storm, and fell into the power of the enemy.
-There is something so incomprehensible in all this, that until I know
-more I refrain from any observation.”</p>
-
-<p>Badajoz, a far stronger place, was next invested, on the 17th of March,
-and on the 6th of April it was taken by storm. And here, too, General
-Lery, a French engineer, expressed his astonishment, writing thus: “I
-think the capture of Badajoz a very extraordinary event, and I should
-be at a loss to account for it in any manner consistent with probability.”
-These two great strongholds, the border-fortresses, had now been taken,
-and the way was thus opened into the heart of Spain. All Europe saw
-with astonishment that a little English army, seldom amounting&mdash;even
-with the aid of the Portuguese,&mdash;to more than 40,000 men, could counteract
-the efforts of the best armies of France, led by Napoleon’s most
-trusted Generals.</p>
-
-<p>After these exploits, Wellington gave his army some rest until the
-harvest should grow up, and provisions be more easily obtained. But
-in May he sent General Hill to storm the forts at Almarez on the Tagus,
-when the French works, with all their artillery and stores, fell into the
-hands of the English, who lost only 180 men. By this able manœuvre
-the two armies of Marmont and Soult were separated.</p>
-
-<p>On the 13th of June, the rains having ceased, and the field magazines
-being completed, Wellington passed the Agueda, and on the 17th be
-entered Salamanca, the people shouting, singing, and weeping for joy.
-The forts, however, were still held by French garrisons, and were not
-taken until the 27th.</p>
-
-<p>On the 8th of July, Marmont, the French General now opposed to
-Wellington, received a reinforcement of 6000 men, and both he and
-Wellington began to prepare for a battle. On the 15th and 16th, Marmont,
-who had previously made several deceptive movements, concentrated
-his beautiful and gallant army between Toro and the Hornija
-rivers. Then began a series of manœuvres, continued for several successive
-days, until, on the 20th, the two armies were in sight, marching on
-parallel heights within musket-shot of each other in the most perfect
-array. The strength of each army amounted to from 45,000 to 48,000
-men; but of Wellington’s force a considerable portion consisted of Portuguese
-troops.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In two or three days more, Marmont would have been joined by two
-other French corps, augmenting his force by nearly 20,000 men. But
-then he apprehended the arrival of either King Joseph, or Jourdan, the
-senior Marshal then in Spain, either of whom would have superseded him
-in the command. His object, therefore, was either to force the English
-to retreat from Salamanca, or else to fight a battle, and if possible gain
-a victory, before either of his superiors in command could arrive.</p>
-
-<p>On the 22nd of July, some change of position on the part of the
-English army gave Marmont the impression that Wellington was about
-to retire towards Ciudad Rodrigo. Eager not to let the English thus
-escape him, the French General ordered Maucune’s division, which formed
-his left, to march forward so as to fall upon the flank of the British
-in their expected retreat. They did so; but in so advancing a chasm
-intervened between them and the division of Bonnet, which formed part
-of the French centre. Word was brought to Wellington of this movement.
-“Starting up, he repaired to the high ground, and observed
-their movements for some time with stern contentment. Their left
-wing was entirely separated from the centre. The fault was flagrant, and
-he fixed it with the stroke of a thunderbolt.” Turning to the Spanish
-General Alava who stood by his side, he exclaimed, “<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Mon cher Alava,
-Marmont est perdu!</span>”</p>
-
-<p>A few orders issued suddenly from his lips like the incantations of a
-wizard, and suddenly the dark mass of troops seemed animated by some
-mighty spirit. Rushing down the slope of the mountain, they entered
-the great basin. And now, after long coiling and winding like angry
-serpents, the armies suddenly fastened together in deadly strife.</p>
-
-<p>Marmont saw the country beneath him suddenly covered with
-enemies when he was in the act of making a complicated evolution; and
-when by the rash advance of his left, his troops were separated into three
-parts, each at too great a distance to assist the other. In this crisis,
-despatching officer after officer, some to hasten up his troops from the
-forest, some to stop the march of his left wing, he still looked for victory,
-till he saw Pakenham with his division penetrate between his left and
-his centre; then hope died within him, and he was hurrying in person
-to the fatal spot, when an exploding shell stretched him on the field,
-with two deep wounds in his side.”</p>
-
-<p>This naturally augmented the confusion of the French; but they still
-fought manfully. It was just five o’clock when Pakenham fell on Maucune,
-who, little thinking of such an onset, expected to see, from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span>
-summit of a hill he had just gained, the Allies in full retreat. Still, his
-gunners stood to their guns, and his cavalry charged; but both were
-killed or repulsed; the infantry endeavoured to form a front, but in the
-midst of its evolution it was charged and broken. The British cavalry
-fell upon the rear, while Leith, with the fifth division, bore down on the
-right flank. For awhile, the French veterans maintained some kind of
-order, but at last the cavalry broke them; Thomiere, one of their
-Generals, was killed, 2000 of the French threw down their arms, and the
-whole division was utterly routed.</p>
-
-<p>The next portion of the French line, Clausel’s division, while warmly
-engaged with the English under Cole and Leith, had to sustain a charge
-from 1200 British dragoons. The whole French division was broken in
-an instant. Five guns and 2000 prisoners were taken in a few minutes.
-The entire of the left wing of the French army was now only a helpless
-mob of fugitives. In the centre the struggle was a more arduous one.
-The French still held a strong position on a hill&mdash;the Arapiles. Two
-attacks by the Portuguese and English were repelled. Beresford, Cole
-and Leith, were all wounded, and the English centre for a moment was
-shaken and in danger. But Wellington, whose eye was always where
-the peril was greatest, immediately ordered up Clinton’s division from
-the rear, and restored the battle. The ridge of the Arapiles was regained,
-“And now the current once more set in for the British. Pakenham
-continued to outflank the French left; Foy retired from the ridge of
-Calveriza, and the Allied host, righting itself like a gallant ship after a
-sudden gust, again bore right onwards, holding its course through blood
-and gloom.”</p>
-
-<p>There remained only the division of Foy, which formed the extreme
-right of the French line, and still maintained a gallant fight. It seemed
-difficult for this General to extricate his division, but he did it with
-great dexterity. Just as the darkness fell, he increased his skirmishers,
-and brought forward some cavalry, as if for a charge. But when the
-English had prepared themselves for a real encounter, the skirmishers
-fell back, and the English pursued; but when they reached the top of
-the hill, the main body of the French had escaped into a forest hard by,
-where darkness gave them safety.</p>
-
-<p>Another failure on the part of a Spaniard, here, again, favoured the
-French. The castle of Alba, on the Tormes, was garrisoned by a
-Spanish force, under Carlos d’Espana. This, if maintained, would have
-stopped the French in their flight by the main road, and have forced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span>
-them to take the fords. But d’Espana, without informing Wellington,
-had withdrawn the garrison, and left the road open! “Had the castle
-of Alba been held,” says Napier, “the French could never have carried
-off a third of their army.” But by this piece of Spanish folly or
-cowardice, they were permitted to escape.</p>
-
-<p>As it was, their loss was enormous. They went into action with
-43,800 infantry and 4000 cavalry. Three weeks after, their General,
-Clausel, who succeeded Marmont in the command, wrote to the Minister
-of War at Paris, “The army consists of 20,000 infantry, and 1800
-horse.” So that, by death or wounds or capture, it had lost more than
-half of its numbers. On the part of the Allies, the loss was 3176 British,
-2018 Portuguese, and eight Spanish. One General was killed, and five
-were among the wounded. Wellington himself was struck in the thigh
-by a spent ball, which passed through his holster. This was one of the
-last incidents of this great battle; in which the English leader, to use a
-French officer’s expression, “defeated 40,000 men in forty minutes.”
-“Late in the evening of that great day,” says Sir William Napier, “I
-saw him behind my regiment, then marching towards the ford. He was
-alone; the flush of victory was on his brow, his eyes were eager and
-watchful, but his voice was calm and even gentle. More than the rival
-of Marlborough,&mdash;for he had defeated greater Generals than Marlborough
-ever encountered, he seemed with prescient pride to accept this victory
-only as an earnest of future glory.”</p>
-
-<p>The French fled with such celerity, that their headquarters, on the
-following night, were at Flores d’Avila, no less than forty miles from
-the field of battle! The English army, on the other hand, entered Madrid
-on the 12th of August, amidst a scene of the wildest ecstasy. “No
-words can express the enthusiasm which prevailed when the English
-standards were seen in the distance, and the scarlet uniforms began to
-be discerned through the crowd. Amidst a countless multitude, wrought
-up to the highest pitch of rapturous feeling; amidst tears of gratitude
-and shouts of triumph, the British army entered the Spanish capital, not
-as conquerors, but as friends; not as oppressors, but deliverers.” As
-for Wellington, “with tears and every sign of deep emotion, the multitudes
-crowded round his horse, hung by his stirrups, touched his clothes,
-and throwing themselves on their knees, blessed him aloud.” The
-intrusive King, with about 12,000 men, had fled out of the city a few
-days previous.</p>
-
-<p>The Retiro, the largest arsenal which the French possessed in Spain,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span>
-still had a garrison of 1700 men. But it surrendered on the 13th, and the
-British found in it, 180 pieces of cannon, 20,000 stand of arms, and
-immense stores of all kinds. Meanwhile, “the French affairs in every
-part of the Peninsula now exhibited that general crash and ruin which
-so usually follows a great military disaster, and presages the breaking up
-of a political power.”</p>
-
-<p>Nor were the mighty results of this great battle limited to Southern
-Europe. At the very moment when it took place, Napoleon, at the head
-of 450,000, was entering the heart of the Russian empire. The news of
-the defeat of his forces in Spain, reached him on the evening preceding
-the great battle of Borodino. It doubtless reached the Emperor Alexander
-also; and the news must have greatly aided the Russian Monarch
-in forming that remarkable resolve, “I am <em>immovable</em>; and no terms
-whatever shall induce me to terminate the war, or to fail in the sacred
-duty of avenging our country.” And, in a general order, issued shortly
-after, General Kutusoff, Alexander’s chief commander, said, “The hand
-of God is falling heavily on Napoleon: <em>Madrid is taken</em>.” Still, when,
-in October, Wellington, from the want of battering-artillery, failed in
-carrying the castle of Burgos, faction again raised its head in England,
-and even dared to question his skill and talent as a General! It was
-with reference to some of these attacks that Wellington took the following
-review of the results of the year.</p>
-
-<p>“I fear that the public will be disappointed at the results of the last
-campaign: and yet it is, in fact, the most important and successful
-campaign in which a British army has been engaged for the last century.
-We have taken by siege Ciudad Rodrigo, Badajoz, and Salamanca, and
-the Retiro has surrendered. Since January, this army has sent to
-England little short of 20,000 prisoners; and it has taken and destroyed,
-or we now possess, little short of 3000 pieces of cannon.”</p>
-
-<p>More wonderful achievements, occupying a series of years, never were
-wrought out by a British army. Sir William Napier justly traces the
-triumph of Salamanca and other victories to the forethought of Wellington,
-in having laid such a foundation as he had provided in Torres
-Vedras. “This strong post was of his own planning,&mdash;he had chosen
-it, fortified it, defended it, and now, knowing its full value, he was availing
-himself of its advantages. The tree was planted to bear such fruit
-as was gathered at Salamanca, and the value of his combinations must be
-estimated from the general result. He had only 60,000 disposable troops,
-and 100,000 were especially appointed to watch and control him; yet<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>
-he passed the frontier, defeated 45,000 men in a pitched battle, and drove
-20,000 others from Madrid in confusion, without difficulty and without
-risk. No General was ever more entitled to the honour of victory.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SALAMIS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The Persians defeated by the Greeks
-in this great battle, October 20th, 480 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> Themistocles, the Greek
-commander, with only 310 sail defeated the whole fleet of Xerxes, consisting
-of 2000 sail. One of the greatest naval engagements in ancient
-times.</p>
-
-
-<p>SALDANHA BAY.&mdash;<em>Near the Cape of Good Hope.</em>&mdash;Here a Dutch
-squadron was captured by Admiral St. George Keith Elphinstone, without
-resistance. Five men of war and nine frigates surrendered, and St.
-George was in consequence of this bloodless victory, which was executed
-with wonderful judgment, created Lord Keith, August 17th, 1796.</p>
-
-
-<p>SANTA CRUZ.&mdash;Here, April 25th, 1657, the renowned Blake
-totally destroyed 16 Spanish ships, secured with great nautical skill,
-and protected by the castle and the forts on the shore. This was thought,
-at that time, one of the greatest feats ever accomplished. The Earl of
-Clarendon, speaking of this exploit, says, “It was so miraculous, that
-all who knew the place wondered that any sober man, with what
-courage soever endowed, would have undertaken it; and the victors
-could hardly persuade themselves to believe what they had done,
-whilst the surviving Spaniards thought that they were devils and
-not men who had destroyed their ships so.” Here also, in an unsuccessful
-attack made upon this place by Nelson, several officers and 141 men
-were killed, and the brave Admiral lost his right arm, July 24th, 1797.
-It is remarkable that Captain Freemantle, the great friend of Nelson, and
-a companion of his in most of his great and brilliant achievements was
-also wounded in the arm immediately before Nelson had received his
-wound in the same limb. The following laconic note addressed to the
-lady of Captain Freemantle, (who was on board with her husband at the
-time he wrote) has been preserved, as being the first letter written by the
-glorious hero with his left hand:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p><span class="smcap">My Dear Mrs. Freemantle</span>,</p>
-
-<p><span class="pad6">Tell</span> me how Tom is? I hope he has saved his arm.
-Mine is off; but, thank God, I am as well as I hope he is.</p>
-
-<p class="right padr6">Ever Yours,</p>
-<p class="right">HORATIO NELSON.</p></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>SARATOGA, BURGOYNE’S SURRENDER AT.&mdash;General
-Burgoyne, commander of a body of the British Army, after a very severe
-engagement with the American Provincials in the American War of
-Independence, October 17th, 1777, surrendered to the American General
-Gates. No less than 5791 men laid down their arms. This was the
-greatest check the British suffered during the war.</p>
-
-
-<p>SCOPOLO.&mdash;On July the 5th, 1808, a desperate action was fought
-off the island of Scopolo, between a large Turkish frigate and corvette,
-and the Seahorse thirty-eight guns, captain Stewart, exhibiting the skill
-and gallantry of the latter against a great disparity of force, by which
-his own ship was so well preserved, while that of his opponent was ruined.
-The action began at half-past nine in the evening, the Turks under easy
-sail, a little off the wind, and continually endeavouring to board. At
-ten o’clock, after a quarter of an hour’s hot fire, the small ship was silenced;
-the large ship, which had during this time fallen a little to leeward, and
-thus been prevented from assisting her consort, recovered her position;
-the action was recommenced; and the resistance of the Turks was so
-obstinate, that it was not till a quarter past one she was rendered a
-motionless wreck. As they would neither answer nor fire, captain Stewart,
-knowing the character of the people, conceived it most prudent to
-wait for daylight to send on board her. At daylight, observing her
-colours upon the stump of the mizenmast, the Seahorse poured a broadside
-into her stern, when she struck. She was named the Badere Zaffer,
-of fifty-two guns, with a complement of 500 men, commanded by captain
-Scanderli Kichuc Ali, who had been prevented by his own people from
-blowing her up. Her loss was prodigious&mdash;165 killed and 195 wounded.
-The Seahorse had only five killed and ten wounded.</p>
-
-
-<p>SEBASTOPOL.&mdash;The celebrated city besieged during the Crimean
-war. See <em><a href="#BOM">Bombardment, first and second (final) of Sebastopol</a></em>; also,
-<em><a href="#MAM">Mamelon</a></em>, <em><a href="#MAL">Malakoff</a></em> and <em><a href="#SOR">Sortie</a></em>.</p>
-
-
-<p>SEDGMOOR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 5th, 1685, in which
-the Duke of Monmouth was completely defeated by the army of James
-II of England. The Duke, who was the natural son of Charles II, by
-Lucy Walters, one of his mistresses, was made prisoner, and soon afterwards
-executed.</p>
-
-
-<p>SEIDLITZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, April 10th, 1831, between<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span>
-the Poles and Russians. The Poles obtained the victory, after a bloody
-battle, taking 4000 prisoners, and several pieces of cannon. The killed
-and wounded, on both sides, amounted to many thousands.</p>
-
-
-<p>SEMINCAS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 938. One of the most
-bloody battles ever fought. Between the Moors and Ramirez II, King
-of Leon, and the Austrians. More than 80,000 of the infidels were slain,
-the dead lying in heaps for miles around.</p>
-
-
-<p>SEMPACH, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 9th, 1386, between the
-Swiss and Leopold, Duke of Austria. The heroic Swiss, after prodigies
-of valour, gained a great and memorable victory over the Duke, who was
-slain. By this battle they gained their independence, which they possess
-until this day; and they annually commemorate, with great solemnity,
-this victory.</p>
-
-
-<p>SERGEANT.&mdash;The highest non-commissioned officer of a company.
-This word enters into the title of different officers, as sergeant-major,
-color-sergeant, &amp;c.</p>
-
-
-<p>SERINGAPATAM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This first battle, called also
-the Battle of Arikera, in which the British defeated Tippoo Saib, was
-fought May 15th, 1791. The second, in which the redoubts were
-stormed, and Tippoo reduced by Lord Cornwallis, fought February 6th,
-1792. After this capture peace was signed, and Tippoo agreed to cede
-one-half of Mysore, and to pay 33,000,000 of rupees, about £3,000,000,
-sterling to England, and to give up his two sons as hostages. In a new
-war the Madras army arrived before Seringapatam, April 5th, 1799. It
-was joined by the Bombay army, April 14th, and the place was stormed
-and carried by Major General Baird, May 4th, same year. Tippoo was
-killed in this engagement.</p>
-
-<p>The following account gives the particulars of the 1st engagement
-previous to the capture of Seringapatam.</p>
-
-<p>“On the 27th of March, 1799, at three o’clock p.m., the right wing
-(of the British army destined for the capture of Seringapatam) moved
-slowly off the ground of encampment, along a heavy sandy road, impeded
-in their progress by the ponderous battering-train of guns, each 42
-pounder being drawn majestically along by thirty, forty, and sometimes
-fifty bullocks, harnessed four abreast; and even these numbers were
-frequently found insufficient to extricate the wheels of the carriages from<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span>
-the deep sloughs into which they often sank, even up to the axles, when
-the aid of elephants was required; these sagacious animals would wind
-their trunks or probosci around the nave and between the spokes of the
-wheels, and thus lift gun and carriage from the impending difficulty,
-whilst the bullocks were being goaded and whipped with leather thongs.
-The ponderous machines were thus drawn forward. It was indeed an
-admirable and beautiful sight to observe the sagacity of these huge
-creatures; for when one only was brought up to assist, if the weight was
-too considerable for its animal strength, a shrill trumpeting proceeding
-from its proboscis would instantly proclaim this deficiency in strength for
-the object required, when the keeper would call for another elephant, and
-then the united power of the two, simultaneously applying their whole
-force, would speedily overcome almost insurmountable difficulties; though,
-when guns and carriages were embedded up to the axles of the four
-wheels, several of these noble animals have been required to lift the
-machines bodily from the tenacious clay into which they had sunk.</p>
-
-<p>Clouds of looties, or irregular predatory horsemen, were on the right
-flank of the line, who fired incessantly on the British as they advanced;
-and when a stoppage occurred, to extricate the guns, large bodies of these
-looties would suddenly dash through the intervals, cutting down the
-artillerymen, maiming the bullocks, and destroying the whole paraphernalia
-of harness; and this in spite of all the exertions of skirmishers to
-keep them at a respectable distance. The fierce sun was almost intolerable,
-and many Europeans fell dead from <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coups-de-soleil</i>. Only three
-miles and a half could be marched from three o’clock until nearly twelve,
-when the little mud-walled fort of Malleville was descried, with the
-gallant 19th dragoons, drawn up in close column under the walls, to
-shelter them from the enemy’s brisk cannonade. At a hill fortress
-(Amboor), previous to mounting the Ghauts and entering the Mysore
-country, the British army had been joined by about 10,000 of the Nizam’s
-troops&mdash;a disorderly set of savage, undisciplined barbarians (clothed in
-stuffed cotton jackets, covered with steel-chained armour, capable of
-resisting a musket-ball), prancing and skirmishing about the country in
-every direction, wielding their long lances with uncommon dexterity,
-managing their horses with grace and ease, almost to perfection in the
-equestrian art&mdash;sometimes casting their spears, and then, at full gallop,
-bending the body so low under the horse, as to recover possession of the
-spear that lay flat on the sand. This heterogeneous force was certainly
-an additional strength to the numerical force of the British, but, in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span>
-military point of view, of dubious advantage to the invading regular army,
-whose movements they frequently disconcerted by dashing furiously
-through the intervals between the columns on the line of march, and,
-being often mistaken for the enemy’s irregular horse, were fired at accordingly,
-many of them perishing in this unprofitable manner; and had any
-adverse fortune occurred in the campaign, confusion and defeat must
-have ensued, as these disorderly masses would inevitably have incommoded,
-and rendered all military discipline abortive. Accordingly, to
-protect them from absolute annihilation, the 33rd regiment of infantry,
-under command of the hon. colonel Wellesley (the Duke of Wellington),
-was attached to this disorderly crew, and acted with them during the
-advance to Seringapatam. The movements of the whole army was entirely
-confided to the management of Colonel Barry Close, a Company’s
-officer, and adjutant-general to the forces&mdash;a man of extensive capacity,
-who had displayed eminent talents in both civil and military departments
-during his long residence in India. He was an ornament to his profession,
-and, had fortune favoured him, might have proved a first-rate general.
-For his amiable and conciliatory disposition, he was beloved and
-esteemed by all who enjoyed the advantage of his society.</p>
-
-<p>During the march, the towns and villages were involved in flames in
-every direction, and not an atom of food or forage was anywhere procurable
-(every officer of the army was provided with three months’ provision
-of biscuit, &amp;c., borne on the backs of bullocks in various numbers,
-according to the grade of the officer), and every tank or pool of water
-was impregnated with the poison of the milk hedge, large quantities of
-the branches of which the enemy had industriously thrown in&mdash;so that
-many horses, bullocks, and even, in some instances, men, fell victims to
-the deleterious infusion.</p>
-
-<p>As the head of the British column passed the little fort of Malleville,
-the quarter-master-general was observed marking out the site for encampment
-on an extensive sandy plain in front of the fort. The booming of
-distant heavy ordnance was plainly distinguishable. The lascars had
-commenced pitching the tents and marquees for the reception of the
-exhausted troops, but were suddenly interrupted in their occupation by
-the successive bounding of cannon-balls amongst them, when they precipitately
-quitted the dangerous situation, and fled for protection to the
-rear of the approaching troops. The enemy were posted on a commanding
-eminence about two miles distant, at the extremity of the sandy plain,
-supported by a long range of numerous heavy artillery and strong imposing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span>
-bodies of regular cavalry. The English pickets, commanded by
-Captain Macpherson, of the 12th foot, pushed on towards the enemy’s
-left flank with two 12-pounder galloppers, and the action became brisk
-in that quarter&mdash;for, having ensconced themselves in a wood, they were
-thus secure from the charges of hordes of cavalry surrounding, whom they
-saluted with reiterated discharges of grape-shot from the galloppers. In
-the interim, whilst this scene was agitating, the right wing of the British
-army formed, on the intended ground of encampment, in contiguous close
-columns, and in this form cautiously advanced towards the eminence in
-front. I now, for the first time, became acquainted with the whirring,
-hoarse noise of cannon-balls&mdash;the phitz, phitz, of musket-bullets passing
-close to the body&mdash;and the ping, ping, of those flying distantly over head:
-fortunately, the balls, rockets, &amp;c., were ill-directed, and did little execution.
-As the columns approached nearer the enemy’s position, the heavy
-guns were withdrawn behind the eminence (Tippoo Saib fearing nothing
-so much as the capture of his artillery, which he had invariably lost in his
-former battles with lord Cornwallis, in 1782), and ultimately disappeared!
-In this short advance, Captain Whitley, of the grenadiers of the 12th
-(to which company I was attached), observing, I presume, the unaccustomed
-paleness of my countenance, turned round and offered me a refreshing
-draught of brandy and water from the contents of his canteen, or
-leathern bottle attached to his side, which I gratefully accepted; for at
-eighteen we have not the nerves and stamina of a man of forty years old.
-Untried individuals may sarcastically sneer at this apparent indication of
-pusillanimity; but never, during all my service, did I observe soldiers
-enter on a scene of action with that calm, florid appearance, denoting a
-sense of health and security: did man ever yet exist exempt from the
-common feelings of human nature? In point of fact, there is an evident,
-palpable alteration of feature in every man, at the commencement of a
-battle; as it rages, this marked difference in the lineaments of the countenance
-disappears, and the excitement of exertion soon produces the usual
-effect of renewed animation, with a spirit of recklessness indifferent to the
-consequences of existing danger.</p>
-
-<p>The advancing columns having approached within a few yards of the
-summit of the eminence, halted, and deployed into line, and thus marched
-on, when having reached the apex of the ascent, the formidable army of
-the redoubtable Tippoo Saib appeared drawn up on the plain below in
-battle array, with woods on both flanks, covered with tens of thousands of
-horsemen: the first indication of a serious attack proceeded from a body<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span>
-of cavalry, who charging the light infantry skirmishing front, soon drove
-them with headlong speed into the British line, where they rejoined their
-battalions; this body of horse, of about 1500, was formed in a compact
-wedge-like shape, with the front angle headed by two enormous elephants
-(saddled with howdahs, filled with distinguished officers), having each a
-huge iron chain dangling from the proboscis, which they whirled about
-with great rapidity, a blow from which would have destroyed half a company
-of infantry; at the first superficial view they were mistaken for the
-Nizam’s troops, but as they rapidly approached (firing their pistols and
-carbines, which produced some trifling effect) towards an interval of a
-few yards extent between his majesty’s 12th regiment and a battalion of
-Sepoys on the right, it was soon obvious they intended passing through
-this interval to the rear of the British line; fortunately, at this momentous
-crisis, a detachment of the Company’s native cavalry suddenly galloped
-from the rear, and completely filled up the space, when the enemy
-edged off, and directed their whole column to the front of the 12th regiment.
-General Harris, the commander-in-chief, suddenly appeared in
-the rear, vociferating aloud, “Fire, 12th! fire!” To their eternal
-credit, coolness, and unexampled discipline, be it recorded, that although
-standing with recovered arms, not a shot was fired, nor even a movement
-made, that indicated indecision; the men knew it was not the voice of
-the colonel, who, however, thus pressed by the authority of his superior
-officer, now gave the command&mdash;“Steady, 12th! and wait until these
-fellows are within ten yards of you,&mdash;then singe the beggars’ whiskers.”
-This order was implicitly obeyed. At the word “Fire!” a volley was
-effectually poured into the wedge of cavalry, followed by a rapid and well-directed
-file-firing, which produced the happiest effect; for on the smoke
-clearing away, a complete rampart of men and horses lay extended on the
-earth, in front of this invincible old corps! The elephants, maddened,
-with pain from their innumerable wounds, were shuffling away with speed,
-and swinging the enormous chains to right and left amidst the retiring
-cavalry, many of whom were thus destroyed. The howdahs (from which
-the leading chiefs had directed the charge) were dashed to atoms, and
-several of these brave men’s heads hung from the backs of the enraged
-animals; horses rearing, and crushing the riders to death&mdash;other loose
-and wounded horses scouring the plain on all sides&mdash;the scene was awfully
-terrific! Just at this eventful period, two 9-pounder field-pieces replaced
-the cavalry in the interval alluded to, at once opening a destructive shower
-of grape-shot on the discomfited horsemen, who were attempting to join<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span>
-their main body stationed in the woods below; these latter, perceiving
-the entire defeat of the “<em>Forlorn Hope</em>,” poured forth their tens of
-thousands, scouring rapidly over the sandy plain, exposed to the exterminating
-effects of the British artillery. The battle now became general
-along the whole line&mdash;infantry, cavalry, and artillery, all exerting their
-utmost efforts of destruction. Unfortunately, a large body of the Mysorian
-cavalry outflanked and cut into the rear of the British line, destroyed
-crowds of sick men and lascars, who were considered safe from such indiscriminate
-and inhuman butchery. Many of these gallant fellows, although
-in the last stage of human debility, crawled out of the doolies (rough
-palanquins for sick men), and fought manfully to the last gasp. On the
-extreme right of the line, the hon. colonel Wellesley was stationed, with
-his majesty’s 33rd regiment of foot, surrounded by the Nizam’s cavalry.
-The Mysorians at once charged the Nizam’s horse, who as suddenly
-scampered off. When the 33rd regiment were first observed by the
-enemy, the usual cry of “Feringee bong chute!” (“Rascally English!”)
-was uttered, and Tippoo’s cavalry fled in confusion, leaving several battalions
-of infantry to receive the dreadful charge of the British regiment!
-One hurrah! and the opposing infantry came in contact; several thousands
-of the Mysorians were bayonetted, the rest retiring in dismay,
-followed by the 19th dragoons, who cut and slashed without mercy. The
-right wing of the enemy being thrown into irretrievable confusion, and
-all parts of their line wavering, the battle was soon ended, Tippoo Saib
-drawing off with all possible haste. The British line now began to
-advance from their fighting position; but so numerous were the dead
-bodies of men and horses in front of the 12th regiment, that some difficulty
-was experienced in surmounting the obstacle! Two or three horsemen,
-in the attack of the wedge of cavalry, cut through the 12th regiment,
-but were immediately shot in the rear. To give an idea of the temper,
-sharpness, and weight of the swords of these men, who had all drugged
-themselves with bang (a narcotic herb, resembling opium in its effects on
-the human frame), for the attack, I have only to mention, that the barrel
-of one of the European’s muskets was completely severed by one cut from
-a Moorman’s sabre, the blade of which was three and a half feet long,
-half an inch thick at the back, and four inches broad, weighing fourteen
-pounds!</p>
-
-<p>It is now only necessary to add, that the victory was in favour of the
-British, who with the right wing of their army (about 16,000 men) had
-engaged the combined forces of the sultan, destroying several thousands,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span>
-with the loss only of a few hundreds. No guns were captured on either
-side. About six o’clock in the afternoon, the only indication of the
-proximity of an enemy was the distant booming of heavy artillery. The
-British, on reaching their original ground of encampment, were congratulated
-by the left wing of the army (just encamping, after a tedious hot
-march) on the success of the engagement, expressing regret that they had
-not arrived in time to participate in the glory of the day.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SERINGAPATAM, OPENING THE TRENCHES BEFORE.&mdash;“On
-the morning of the 5th April, 1799, the British army encamped on
-their permanent ground for the siege of the celebrated fortress of Seringapatam;
-and, after due deliberation, it was decided to open the trenches,
-if possible, the same evening. In accordance with this determination,
-two separate bodies of troops were ordered to parade, at six o’clock in the
-afternoon&mdash;one destined to drive the enemy from the dry bed of a nullah,
-or narrow river&mdash;the other to take possession of a small wood situated in
-a line on the right of the river, and rather nearer the encampment, which
-had been occupied the night before by a detachment of flankers under
-General Baird, and evacuated, the enemy having silently retreated from it
-on the approach of the English. Both these positions were, on the 5th,
-strongly occupied by select bodies of Tippoo’s troops. To accomplish
-these arduous enterprises, his Majesty’s 12th regiment, with a proportion
-of sepoys or native troops, consisting of about 2000 effective men, under
-the command of lieutenant-colonel Shaw (of the 12th foot), marched from
-the British lines at a quarter past six o’clock, to take possession of the
-bed of the river; his majesty’s 33rd regiment of foot, with a detachment
-of sepoys, amounting, in toto, to 2000 men, under the command of
-colonel Wellesley (now the duke of Wellington), quitted camp about the
-same time, to occupy the tope, or wood, on the right of the bed of the
-river. The two posts were intended to be carried at or near the same
-time as possible, for the mutual protection and security of both detachments&mdash;as
-one position was almost untenable without the occupation of
-the other. The British encampment was situated three miles from
-Seringapatam, on a rising ground gradually sloping up from the fortress,
-with the exception of partial undulations, which, however, did not prevent
-a perfect view of the whole intermediate spaces. The two posts
-(nullah and top) were midway between the camp and the besieged town.
-Scarcely had these two little columns quitted the camp, than they were
-assailed by showers of rockets and blue lights from every direction in<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span>
-front, which completely illumined the atmosphere, and exposed the
-British to the fire of Tippoo’s tiger sepoys; heavy masses of whom poured
-death into Shaw’s force, with the most terrific effect. Still this gallant
-little body moved slowly on (as the night was exceedingly dark), although
-more encumbered each moment with dead, dying, and wounded: the
-rockets and musketry from upwards of 20,000 of the enemy were incessant&mdash;no
-hail could be thicker; with every blue light came a shower of
-bullets, and several rockets passed through the head to the rear of the
-column, causing death, wounds, and dreadful lacerations:<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> the cries of
-the wounded were quite awful. Not a shot did the British fire, nor had
-the men even loaded their pieces; a caution from the brave old colonel
-Shaw, that “<em>all must be done with the bayonet</em>,” needed no repetition
-to ensure obedience; but scarcely had this caution been conveyed through
-the ranks, when a tremendous peal of musketry was heard on the right
-flank, in the direction of the wood, which caused Shaw’s force to halt, as
-the attack became so formidable from the front, and both flanks, that it
-would have been an useless sacrifice of the men’s lives to stand up; they
-were consequently directed to lie down for a few minutes, to avoid the
-effects of the enemy’s scorching fire, which now proceeded from a very few
-yards’ distance&mdash;the brilliant light of their fire-balls or blue lights exposing
-Shaw’s column to the full force of their musketry; and imagining, from
-the recumbent posture of the British, that the majority was killed, a large
-column of the tiger sepoys ventured an attack with the bayonet, and
-drove in the battalion of the Company’s sepoys, who were a few yards in
-advance on the right, and killing their major. The command, “<em>Up,
-12th and charge!</em>” was no sooner given, than each man sprang up and
-advanced to the charge in silence and compact order. The tiger sepoys
-stood, until a very few yards intervened between the combatants, when a
-general shout of “Feringee bong chute!” (“the rascally English!”)
-was uttered, and the enemy dispersed on all sides in considerable confusion;
-but, shortly after, again threw out their blue lights, and recommenced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span>
-their murderous file-firing, which once more compelled the British
-to resume their prostrate posture. It was now about twelve o’clock at
-night, when the solemn trampling of a body of troops was plainly distinguished,
-approaching from the right flank in a hasty and rather tumultuous
-manner. Once more Shaw’s column were on their feet and preparing
-to charge, when a few stragglers from the hon. colonel Wellesley’s
-force rushed in, and announced that the detachment had been repulsed
-from the wood, and that the approaching trampling was part of the force
-coming to join Shaw&mdash;that two companies of the 33rd, with their
-colonel (Wellesley), were missing! A few minutes after this report,
-major Shea (second in command to Wellesley) joined Shaw’s force with
-the remains of that detachment: he stated that colonel Wellesley, with
-two companies of the 33rd regiment, had been either taken prisoners or
-had retreated to camp! As second in command, he had considered it his
-duty to traverse the wood in search of him, which proving unsuccessful,
-and the fire from the enemy becoming so exceedingly heavy, had induced
-him to lead the remaining troops to colonel Shaw, for the purpose of
-obtaining information, and receiving instructions how to act. Colonel
-Shaw replied, ironically, “that he had better follow his colonel to camp”&mdash;a
-hint that was implicitly and immediately complied with. Indignation
-here overcame prudence, as Shaw soon saw the enemy pouring in
-from all sides, and the stoutest heart in his force predicted a fatal result,
-from the united and concentrated efforts of so numerous an enemy. Large
-quantities of ammunition were sent from camp during the night, for the
-supply of Shaw’s column, as, from the tremendous firing, it was naturally
-apprehended that all their cartridges had been expended; but these incessant
-peals of musketry had all proceeded from Tippoo’s troops (not a
-single shot had been returned by Shaw’s column). The oldest soldier in
-camp declared they had never heard so tremendous a fire: in fact, it continued
-for twelve hours without intermission, blue lights and rockets
-illuminating the air the whole time&mdash;beautiful, though terrific. It was
-generally imagined in camp that Shaw and his detachment must have
-been inevitably annihilated; but this gallant old officer only waited the
-dawn of day, to exhibit one of the most glorious and impressive spectacles
-that ever added lustre to the annals of British military fame! The appearance
-of Wellesley in camp, followed by part of two companies of the 33rd
-regiment, reporting that the remainder of his detachment had been cut
-to pieces, increased the probability of the inevitable destruction of the
-other attacking column, and all was anxiety and commiseration, in camp,
-for the fate of this devoted little band.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>At five o’clock on the morning of the 6th April, the fire of musketry
-began to relax; the whole were under arms, and generously anxious for
-the safety of the column under Shaw’s command: but scarcely had the
-day dawned, than a glorious and exhilarating scene was displayed: the
-gallant old 12th, and the sepoys in line with them, were seen rushing on
-the entrenched enemy at the point of the bayonet, and driving them from
-the bed of the river, in spite of a heavy cannonade from the fortress of
-Seringapatam, and the resistance of the numerous columns opposed to
-them. Never did men more heroically perform their duty: the conflict
-was excessively murderous and obstinate, as the tiger sepoys were brave,
-numerous and well-disciplined. For some time the result of the attack
-appeared most dubious, as a considerable body of French troops persevered
-in most gallant style, in leading on Tippoo’s sepoys. The rapid
-charge of the 12th regiment, supported by the sepoys composing the
-force, excited the admiration of the whole British army. General Harris
-was heard to exclaim, “Well done, old 12th! why, they are going to
-take Seringapatam!” The occupation of the bed of the nullah being at
-length achieved by Shaw’s column, it had scarcely secured itself under the
-embankment of the river, from the thundering cannon of the fortress,
-when the enemy in the wood (who had opposed and put Wellesley to
-flight) opened a destructive fire from several field-pieces, which completely
-enfiladed Shaw’s post. A mound of earth was quickly thrown up on
-the right flank of the 12th regiment, to protect them, as much as possible,
-from this fresh annoyance; but this precaution could not have prevented
-the British from being dislodged from the bed of the river, had
-not several brigades from camp been observed advancing to support the
-position of Shaw’s post, and to drive the enemy from the wood. The
-certainty of speedy support inspired Shaw’s column with renewed ardour,
-and a fire was for the first time returned, with a rapidity and effect that
-completely disconcerted the enemy, who retired in good order, ever and
-anon facing about and firing a volley of musketry.</p>
-
-<p>They were not relieved until the close of the evening of the 6th, as
-the enemy’s firing from the fortress of Seringapatam was so destructive,
-that Baird’s brigade was compelled to halt and return to camp; the
-other brigade, under Wellesley, advanced and took possession of the wood
-which the enemy abandoned, and thus relieved Shaw’s post from an annoying
-enfilade of cannon and musketry, from which they suffered for at
-least an hour and a half after daybreak, with the greatest constancy and
-courage. Eleven officers and 180 rank and file were killed and wounded<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>
-in this small force during the night and morning of the 5th and 6th
-April. About seven o’clock in the evening of the latter day, the 74th
-regiment relieved the 12th, who were right happy to break their fast
-after twenty-four hours’ hard fighting and fasting.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SEVILLE.&mdash;Surrendered to the French, February 1st, 1810; taken
-by assault by the British and Spaniards, after the battle of Salamanca,
-August 27th, 1812, when the French left it, at the general evacuation of
-the south of Spain, in consequence of their signal defeat in that battle.</p>
-
-
-<p>SHERRIFMUIR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, November 12th, 1715,
-between the Royal army, under the Duke of Argyle, and the Scotch rebel
-forces, who favored the Pretender, and commanded by the Earl of Mar.
-The insurgents were defeated. Fought on the same day in which the
-rebel forces were defeated at Preston.</p>
-
-
-<p>SHREWSBURY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 21st, 1403,
-between the Royal army of Henry IV, and the army of the Nobles, led by
-Percy, surnamed Hotspur, who had conspired to dethrone Henry.
-Each army consisted of about 12,000 men, and the engagement was most
-obstinate and bloody. Henry was seen everywhere in the thickest of the
-fight, while his valiant son, who was afterwards the renowned conqueror
-of France, fought by his side, though wounded in the face by an arrow,
-still kept the field and performed astonishing deeds of bravery. On the
-other hand, Hotspur performed prodigies of valour; 2300 gentlemen
-were slain, and about 6000 private men. Hotspur was killed by an
-unknown hand, and his death decided the fortune of the day.</p>
-
-
-<p>SHROPSHIRE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In which the Britons were completely
-defeated, and Caractacus, their leader, taken prisoner and sent to
-Rome; fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 51.</p>
-
-
-<p>SIEGES.&mdash;Numerous in History; the following are the most important:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><em>Acre</em>, 1799, by Bonaparte; siege raised after sixty days, open trenches.</p>
-
-<p><em>Algiers</em>, 1816. <em>See <a href="#ALG">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Almeida</em>, August 27th, 1810.</p>
-
-<p><em>Antwerp</em>, 1576, use of infernal machines; also besieged 1583, 1585,
-1706, 1792, and 1814.</p>
-
-<p><em>Badajoz</em>, March 11th, 1811, but raised June 9th. Taken by escalade
-on the night of April 6th, 1812.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><em>Bagdad</em>, 1248.</p>
-
-<p><em>Bayonne</em>, 1451.</p>
-
-<p><em>Berwick</em>, 1293. <em>See <a href="#BER">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Bommel</em>, 1794; the invention of the covert-way used here.</p>
-
-<p><em>Burgos</em>, September to October, 1812, raised; the French in their
-retreat blew up the works, June 13th, 1813.</p>
-
-<p><em>Calais</em>, 1347; British historians affirm cannon first used here at this
-siege. <em>See <a href="#CAL">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Candia</em>, 1667; the largest cannon then known in Europe, used here
-by the Turks.</p>
-
-<p><em>Carthagena</em>, 1706.</p>
-
-<p><em>Chalons</em>, 1199.</p>
-
-<p><em>Cherbourg</em>, 1650.</p>
-
-<p><em>Ciudad Rodrigo</em>, 1706, July, 1810; January, 1812. <em>See <a href="#CIU">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Constantinople</em>, 1453.</p>
-
-<p><em>Copenhagen</em>, 1700, 1801, and 1807. <em>See <a href="#COP">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Cracow</em>, 1772.</p>
-
-<p><em>Dunkirk</em>, 1646, 1793.</p>
-
-<p><em>Frederickshall</em>, 1718, Charles XII killed here.</p>
-
-<p><em>Gibraltar</em>, 1704, 1799, and 1782; red hot cannon balls used here to
-burn the French fleet. <em>See <a href="#GIB">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Ismael</em>, 1790. <em>See <a href="#ISM">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Kars</em>, 1855. <em>See <a href="#KAR">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Londonderry</em>, 1689. <em>See <a href="#LND">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Mons</em>, 1572, 1691, 1709, 1746, 1792, and 1794.</p>
-
-<p><em>Mothe</em>, 1634; the French taught by Mr. Muller, an English engineer,
-first practised the art of throwing shells.</p>
-
-<p><em>Naples</em>, 1381, 1435, 1504, 1557, 1792, 1799, and 1806.</p>
-
-<p><em>Orleans</em>, 1428, 1563.</p>
-
-<p><em>Philipsburg</em>, 1644, 1675, and 1688; first experiment of firing artillery
-<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">à-ricochet</span> here, also besieged 1734 and 1795.</p>
-
-<p><em>Romorentin</em>, 1356; according to Voltaire, artillery first used here in
-sieges.</p>
-
-<p><em>St. Sebastian</em>, September, 1813.</p>
-
-<p><em>Salamanca</em>, June, 1812.</p>
-
-<p><em>Saragossa</em>, oftener spelled <em>Zaragosa</em>,&mdash;appended to this article is a
-graphic account of the 2nd siege. It was besieged three times, in 1710,
-1808, and 1809, the two last were dreadful sieges.</p>
-
-<p><em>Schweidnitz</em>, 1762 and 1807. Here was the first experiment to
-reduce a fortress by springing globes of compression.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><em>Sebastopol</em>, 1854 and 1855. <em>See this article under the heads of
-<a href="#BOM">Bombardment of Sebastopol</a>, <a href="#MAM">Mamelon</a>, <a href="#QUA">Quarries</a>, <a href="#RIF">Rifle Pits</a>, <a href="#SOR">Sortie</a>, &amp;c.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Seville</em>, 1096, 1247, 1248, one of the most memorable sieges mentioned
-in Spanish history.</p>
-
-<p><em>Silistria</em>, 1854. <em>See <a href="#SIL">this article</a></em>.</p>
-
-<p><em>Stralsund</em>, 1675, 1713, and 1807; the method of throwing red hot
-cannon balls first practiced here with certainty.</p>
-
-<p><em>Tarifa</em>, December 20th, 1811.</p>
-
-<p><em>Toulon</em>, 1707 and 1793.</p>
-
-<p><em>Tournay</em>, 1340, 1312, 1581, 1667, and 1709. During this siege the
-best defence ever drawn from countermines was here practised; also
-besieged in 1765 and 1794.</p>
-
-<p><em>Tunis</em>, 1270, 1535.</p>
-
-<p><em>Valenciennes</em>, May 23rd to July 14th, 1793. <em>See <a href="#VAL">this article</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><em>Warsaw</em>, September 8th, 1831.</p>
-
-<p><em>Zutphen</em>, 1572 and 1586.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="SIL" id="SIL"></a></div>
-<p>SILISTRIA, SIEGE OF.&mdash;In 1854.&mdash;The following is an admirable
-account of the siege of this place:</p>
-
-<p>“After the battle of Citate, so bitter a blow to the pretensions of Russia,
-the enemy’s Generals found it advisable to change their plan of operations.
-Adopting Foktchani as their basis, they accumulated a large amount of
-military stores, and finding that the Turks were not to be tempted into
-crossing the Danube, calmly awaited reinforcements. When these had
-arrived, it was resolved to make a desperate effort to force the passage of
-the river. Imperative orders arrived from St. Petersburg to press the
-war vigorously, and at any cost. On the 13th of February they attacked
-Giurgevo, on the Wallachian bank of the Danube, with a considerable
-force, and after a vigorous resistance, the Turks were forced to evacuate
-their position, though not without being able to effect an orderly retreat
-across the river, and establish themselves firmly in the opposite town of
-Rustchuk. The Russian Generals now resolved on concentrating their
-strength, and making an irresistible advance into Bulgaria. With characteristic
-promptness, however, Omer Pacha initiated the attack. Throwing
-a small column across the Danube at Rahova, he assaulted and drove
-back the outposts at Kalarasch with considerable slaughter; and the
-Turks, after this dashing feat, retired in security to Rahova. Another
-attempt was made by the extreme right of the Russian line, on the 11th
-of March, to seize Kalafat; but they were energetically repulsed by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span>
-brave garrison of that renowned town. Four days later, Prince Gortschakoff
-made a desperate effort to wrest from its Ottoman defenders the
-island in the Danube between Tukurtai and Oltenitza, which had been so
-important a position in the battle at the latter place. The Russians were
-again driven back, but some idea of the sanguinary nature of the struggle
-may be formed from the fact that 2000 soldiers of the Czar left their
-bodies on the disputed ground.</p>
-
-<p>“Five days before this desperate attempt to force the passage of the
-river at Oltenitza, General Luders had succeeded in crossing, at Galatz,
-into the Dobrudscha. Gortschakoff, defeated as he had been, resolved
-upon abandoning the position he had so disastrously occupied, and shifting
-his ground farther to the east, effected a passage at Tultscha, beyond the
-point where Luders had passed with his army. The two divisions were
-now united, and numbered about 5000 men. By a curious coincidence,
-the 23rd of March, the day on which Gortschakoff crossed the river, was
-the same day in which Odessa was so successfully bombarded by the allied
-fleets. Thus was the Russian success more than counterbalanced. Four
-days later, England and France had officially entered into the struggle.
-The great object of the enemy’s movements now became apparent. Prince
-Paskiewitch, the veteran General, the most celebrated commander of the
-Russian army, was summoned from Poland to assume the supreme command,
-and Schilders, the most accomplished general of engineers, also
-hastened to the scene of operations. The capture of Silistria, the strongest
-fortress on the southern bank of the Danube, and the key to Bulgaria,
-was evidently the object of the Russians. So important was the possession
-of this place deemed by the Czar, that the most imperative directions
-were forwarded to accomplish it at any cost. The plan of operations was
-this. Gortschakoff and Luders, having crossed the Danube, were to
-advance towards Silistria, intercepting communications, and investing it
-on the land side; while Paskiewitch was to throw forward the main body
-of the army and vigorously assault it from the northern side. The garrison
-of Silistria, commanded by Moussa Pacha, a General of great ability
-and indomitable courage, did not number more than 8000 men.</p>
-
-<p>“Now commenced one of the most memorable sieges which history has
-ever recorded. Others have exceeded it in the number of men engaged,
-in the length of time occupied, but none in heroic episodes and unflinching
-constancy. On the 14th of April, batteries were thrown up on the north
-bank of the Danube, opposite the devoted town, and a vigorous bombardment
-opened, but without much effect. On the 28th the first assault was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span>
-made, but so hot was the reception the attacking force met with, that
-three weeks elapsed before they had sufficiently recovered to completely
-invest the town. By that time 53,000 Russians had surrounded the
-fortress, and batteries had been established, commanding the most important
-points. On the south-west front, and consequently the land side of
-the town, two very important earthworks were thrown up, known as Arab
-Tabia and Illanii. The ground on which these works were situated rises
-in a series of platforms, which virtually command the town. Their defence,
-therefore, was of the utmost importance to the brave garrison.
-Again and again, for the space of ten weeks, did the enemy precipitate
-strong columns of men against these mounds of earth, and again and
-again were they driven back with enormous loss. In vain the Russian
-cannonade levelled the bastions and slaughtered the defenders; others supplied
-their places, and once more the works rose defiantly. The Russian
-shells swept the ground, and the Turks burrowed in the trenches, till the
-advancing columns of assailants rushed to the breach. Then the undaunted
-defenders sprang upon them, and hurled them back, covered with
-defeat. Every attack was made with increased numbers, and made only
-to be the more ignominiously defeated. Mines were stealthily advanced
-towards the works; but the Turks countermined, and the Russian sappers
-were blown into the air. All this while an incessant bombardment
-from the river batteries poured death into the town. But the undaunted
-besieged never for a moment relaxed their resistance. Three master-spirits
-guided their operations, and infused heroic courage into their
-ranks. Captain James Butler, a young Englishman, who had volunteered
-for service in the army of the East, had joined the garrison, in company
-with Lieutenant Nasmyth, another young officer, animated by similar
-motives. These two gallant men were the very soul of the defence, and
-aided by the brave Maussa Pacha, the Ottoman Commander, successfully
-defied the power of the assailants. Butler, as the senior of the two
-Englishmen, assumed a position readily acceded to him by his Turkish
-allies, and to him they were indebted for the admirable construction and
-disposition of the defensive works. Lieutenant Nasmyth proved himself
-a most able seconder of his friend’s exertions, and in the capacity of
-“special correspondent” of the <cite>Times</cite> newspaper, made all Europe
-acquainted with the details of this extraordinary siege.</p>
-
-<p>“Straining every nerve, and exhausting every resource, to become
-masters of the place, the Russian Generals summoned to their aid the
-larger portion of the right wing of their army, thus materially weakening<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span>
-their power of opposing the Turkish forces to the westward of Silistria,
-who, in consequence, obtained some easy successes. On the 12th of May,
-a tremendous assault was made by the besiegers on the town, and repulsed
-after a sanguinary struggle, in which more than 2000 Russians was
-lost. Ten days afterwards another assault was attempted, and again was
-the enemy defeated. With true Russian wiliness, overtures were secretly
-made to Moussa Pacha to betray his trust, and for an adequate price to
-deliver the fortress to the Czar. The brave man scornfully rejected the
-proposition, and bade the enemy to take it if they could. Meanwhile,
-Omer Pacha was anxiously endeavouring to succour the devoted garrison.
-Obstacles interposed by the stupidity, if not traitorous connivance, of
-officials in the ministry, had hitherto effectually tied his hands; but at
-length, on the 5th of July, a detachment of Turkish troops effected an
-entrance into the town after a smart skirmish; and on the 8th, about a
-thousand more literally cut their way through the Russians, and were
-added to the garrison. Aided by those welcome reinforcements, the Turks
-now assumed the offensive, and on the night of the 13th made a sortie,
-and succeeded in destroying the Russian works, springing their mines,
-and inflicting a terrible loss upon their ranks.</p>
-
-<p>“It was now evident to the Russian Commanders that, if the town were
-to be taken at all, it must be by a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup de main</i>, and a grand assault was
-ordered for the 28th of June. But they had miscalculated the valour of
-their soldiers. Daunted by the warm reception they had hitherto experienced,
-they absolutely refused to march again to the breach; and nothing
-but the threat of stopping their rations unless Silistria were taken the
-next day, could induce these valiant warriors to perform their duty. On
-the next day, the Russian Generals led their half-starved and unwilling
-forces against the redoubts of Silistria. The Commanders, Prince Paskiewitch,
-Count Orloff, Generals Schilders, Gortschakoff, and Luders, placed
-themselves in the very front of the attacking force, anxious to stimulate
-the soldiers by their own exposure. The assault was attempted, and
-most triumphantly repulsed. The Russians were thrown into the utmost
-disorganization, and fled precipitately from the well-directed volleys of the
-garrison. Their leaders, too, paid dearly for their temerity. Paskiewitch
-himself was severely wounded; Schilders had both his legs shattered,
-Luders his jaw shot away, Count Orloff was killed, and Gortschakoff
-received a serious wound. Nor did the brave defenders escape without
-irreparable loss. Their gallant chief, Moussa Pacha, was struck on the
-head by a round shot, and expired instantly; and the noble Butler fell a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>
-sacrifice to his undaunted courage. The Turkish reinforcements outside
-the garrison fell upon the rear of the retreating Russians, and completed
-the rout their compatriots had so gloriously initiated. Beaten on every
-hand, the enemy dashed pell-mell across the river, in confused retreat
-towards Foktchani. The siege was raised. More than 30,000 Russian
-soldiers had perished in the attempt to take Silistria, and the broken
-remnant was now in full flight, owing its safety solely to the limited
-number of the victorious Turks, which forbade pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>“With the exception of the small force which still lingered in the
-plague-stricken plains of the Dobrudscha, not a Russian remained to the
-south of the Danube. The mighty legions, precipitated so recklessly
-across the Danube, were dead upon the Turkish bank, or flying ignominiously
-from the scene. The despised Turks were the triumphant
-conquerors, and the great Czar had received another and a greater blow
-from the “sick man.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SLAUGHTER <span class="fs70">OR</span> MASSACRE.&mdash;Under this head both Ancient
-and Modern History abound with events which can be so called. The
-following are among the most remarkable, as recorded by various authors:</p>
-
-<p>The Carthagenians in Sicily who were totally slaughtered, 397 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>2000 Tyrians crucified and 8000 put to the sword by Alexander the
-Great. 331 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>The Romans throughout Asia, women and children not exempted,
-cruelly butchered in one day, by order of Mithridates, King of Pontus,
-88 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>The massacre of Roman Senators, &amp;c., 86 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>That of Octavianus Cæsar to the Manes of Julius Cæsar, 41 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span></p>
-
-<p>Jerusalem, 1,100,000 Jews cruelly put to the sword, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 70.</p>
-
-<p>Cassius slaughtered 400,000 of the inhabitants of Selucia, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 167.</p>
-
-<p>Eighty Christian Fathers by order of the Emperor Gratian were put
-into a ship which was set on fire and then driven out to sea, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 370.</p>
-
-<p>Belisarius massacred 30,000 citizens of Constantinople, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 552.</p>
-
-<p>That of the Albigenses and Waldenses, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1209.</p>
-
-<p>The Sicilian Vespers&mdash;all the French in Sicily butchered without distinction
-of age or sex, the first bell for vespers being the signal, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span>
-1282.</p>
-
-<p>That of St. Bartholomew’s day throughout France, August 24th,
-1572.</p>
-
-<p>Ismael, 30,000 of the inhabitants old and young slain, December,
-1790. <em>See <a href="#ISM">Ismael</a>.</em></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Of all the whites in the Island of St. Domingo, March 29th, 1804.</p>
-
-<p>Massacre of the Mamelukes in Egypt, March 1st, 1811. <em>See <a href="#MLK">account
-appended</a> to this list.</em></p>
-
-<p>Sinopé during the Crimean war, 1854.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs80"><span class="smcap">Massacres in English History.</span></p>
-
-<p>Of 300 nobles on Salisbury Plain, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 474.</p>
-
-<p>The Danes in England, November 13th, 1002.</p>
-
-<p>The Jews in England, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1189.</p>
-
-<p>The unoffending McDonalds of Glencoe, 1692. <em>See <a href="#GLN">account appended</a>
-to this list.</em></p>
-
-<p>Massacres of Cawnpore, Delhi, and other places during the Great
-Indian Mutiny, 1857. <em>See <a href="#CAW">Cawnpore</a> and <a href="#DEL">Delhi</a>.</em></p>
-
-
-<div><a name="GLN" id="GLN"></a></div>
-<p>SLAUGHTER or MASSACRE OF GLENCOE.&mdash;This barbarous
-and diabolical massacre, which, at the time of its commission, excited
-universal and heartfelt indignation, took place in February, 1692. About
-the middle of 1691, “as the Highlanders were not yet totally subdued,
-the Earl of Breadalbane undertook to bring them over by distributing
-sums of money among their chiefs; and £15,000 were accordingly
-remitted from England for that purpose. The clans being informed of
-this, suspected that the Earl’s design was to appropriate to himself the
-best part of the money; and when he began to treat with them, they
-made such extravagant demands, that he found his scheme impracticable.
-He had therefore to refund the sum he had received; and resolved to
-wreak his vengeance on those who had frustrated his intention. He
-who chiefly thwarted him was McDonald of Glencoe, whose opposition
-rose from a private circumstance, which ought to have had no effect on
-a treaty that regarded the public weal. McDonald had plundered the
-lands of Breadalbane during the course of hostilities; and the Earl
-insisted upon being indemnified for his losses, from the other’s share of
-the money which he was employed to distribute. The Highlander, however,
-not only refused to acquiesce in these terms, but, by his influence
-among the clans, defeated the whole scheme, and, in revenge, Breadalbane
-devoted him to destruction. King William had, by proclamation,
-offered an indemnity to all those who had been in arms against him, provided
-they would submit and take the oaths by a certain day; and this
-was prolonged to the close of 1691, with a denunciation of military execution
-against those who should hold out after the end of December.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span>
-McDonald, intimidated by this declaration, repaired, on the very last
-day of the month, to Fort William, and desired that the oaths might be
-tendered to him by Colonel Hill, governor of that fortress. As this
-officer was not vested with the power of a civil magistrate, he refused to
-administer them; and McDonald set out immediately for Inverary, the
-county-town of Argyle. Though the ground was covered with snow, and
-the weather intensely cold, he travelled with such diligence, that the
-term prescribed by the proclamation was but one day elapsed when he
-reached the place, and addressed himself to Sir John Campbell, sheriff
-of the county, who, in consideration of his disappointment at Fort William,
-was prevailed upon to administer the oaths to him and his adherents.
-Then they returned to their own habitations in the valley of
-Glencoe, in full confidence of being protected by the government, to
-which they had so solemnly submitted.</p>
-
-<p>Breadalbane had represented McDonald at court as an incorrigible
-rebel, as a ruffian inured to bloodshed and rapine, who would never be
-obedient to the laws of his country, nor live peaceably under any sovereign.
-He observed, that he had paid no regard to the proclamation,
-and proposed that the government should sacrifice him to the quiet of
-the kingdom, in extirpating him, with his family and dependants, by
-military execution. His advice was supported by the suggestions of the
-other Scottish ministers; and the King, whose chief virtue was not
-humanity, signed a warrant for the destruction of those unhappy people,
-though it does not appear that he knew of McDonald’s submission. An
-order for this barbarous execution, signed and counter-signed by his
-majesty’s own hand, being transmitted to the master of Stair, secretary
-for Scotland, this minister sent particular directions to Livingstone, who
-commanded the troops in that kingdom, to put the inhabitants of Glencoe
-to the sword, charging him to take no prisoners, that the scene might
-be more terrible. In the month of February, captain Campbell of Glenlyon,
-by virtue of an order from major Duncanson, marched into the
-valley of Glencoe with a company of soldiers belonging to Argyle’s regiment,
-on pretence of levying the arrears of the land-tax and hearth-money.
-When McDonald demanded whether they came as friends or
-enemies, he answered as friends, and promised, upon his honour, that
-neither he nor his people should sustain the least injury. In consequence
-of this declaration, he and his men were received with the most
-cordial hospitality, and lived fifteen days with the men of the valley in
-all the appearance of the most unreserved friendship. At length the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span>
-fatal period approached. McDonald and Campbell having passed the
-day together, parted about seven in the evening, with mutual professions
-of the warmest affection. As soon as Campbell had retired, he received
-the following letter from major Duncanson, quartered at Ballachalis, a
-place some distance from Glencoe. It is dated the 12th of February,
-1692, and runs thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Sir</span>,&mdash;You are hereby ordered to fall upon the rebels, the McDonalds
-of Glencoe, and put all to the sword under seventy years of age.
-You are to have especial care that the old fox and his sons do upon no
-account escape. This you are to put into execution at five o’clock in
-the morning (Saturday, the 13th) precisely; and by that time I will
-strive to be with you, with a stronger party. If I do not come to you
-at five, you are not to tarry for me, but to fall on. Secure all the
-avenues, that not a man may escape. <em>This is by the King’s especial
-command</em>, for the good of the country, that these miscreants may be cut
-off, root and branch.”</p></div>
-
-<p>This was instantly communicated to the officers and men under his
-command, and immediate preparations made for carrying the inhuman
-massacre into effect.</p>
-
-<p>The younger McDonald, perceiving the guards doubled, began to suspect
-some treachery, and communicated his suspicion to his brother;
-but neither he nor the father would harbour the least doubt of Campbell’s
-sincerity; nevertheless, the two young men went forth privately,
-to make farther observations. They overheard the common soldiers say
-they liked not the work; that though they would willingly have fought
-the McDonalds of the glen fairly in the field, they held it base to murder
-them in cold blood; but that their officers were answerable for the
-treachery. When the youths hasted back to apprise their father of the
-impending danger, they saw the house already surrounded; they heard
-the discharge of muskets, the shrieks of women and children; and, being
-destitute of arms, secured their own lives by immediate flight. The
-savage ministers of vengeance had entered the old man’s chamber, and
-shot him through the head. He fell down dead in the arms of his wife,
-who died next day, distracted by the horror of her husband’s fate. The
-laird of Auchintrincken, McDonald’s guest, who had, three months before
-this period, submitted to the government, and at this very time had a
-protection in his pocket, was put to death without question. A boy of
-eight years, who fell at Campbell’s feet, imploring mercy, and offering<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span>
-to serve him for life, was stabbed to the heart by one Drummond, a
-subaltern officer. Eight and thirty persons suffered in this manner,
-the greater part of whom where surprised in their beds, and hurried into
-eternity before they had time to implore the divine mercy. The design
-to butcher all the males under seventy years of ago that lived in the
-valley, the number of whom amounted to 200, was defeated by Duncanson
-not arriving in time to secure the passes, so that one young man and
-woman had nearly succeeded in escaping, and were climbing the last
-rugged height of their native place, when they were discovered, and
-shots immediately sent after them. Struck by one of them the unfortunate
-young man made a convulsive spring, and fell headlong into the
-valley below. His companion, alarmed by the report, lost her hold, and
-tumbled after him. They were both killed by the fall.</p>
-
-<p>Campbell, having perpetrated this brutal massacre, ordered all the
-houses to be burned, made a prey of all the cattle and effects that were
-found in the valley, and left the helpless women and children, whose
-husbands and fathers he had murdered, naked and forlorn, without
-covering, food, or shelter, in the midst of the snow that covered the whole
-face of the country, at the distance of six long miles from any inhabited
-place. Distracted with grief and horror, surrounded with the shades of
-night, shivering with cold, and appalled with the apprehension of immediate
-death from the swords of those who had sacrificed their friends and
-kinsmen, they could not endure such a complication of calamities, but
-generally perished in the waste, before they could receive the least comfort
-or assistance. This barbarous massacre, performed under the sanction
-of King William’s authority, answered the immediate purpose of the
-court, by striking terror into the hearts of the jacobite Highlanders; but
-at the same time excited the horror of all those who had not renounced
-every sentiment of humanity, and produced such an aversion to the government,
-as all the arts of a ministry could never totally surmount. A
-detail of the particulars was published at Paris, with many exaggerations,
-and the jacobites did not fail to expatiate upon every circumstance,
-in domestic libels and private conversation. The King, alarmed at the
-outcry which was raised on this occasion, ordered an inquiry to be set
-on foot, and dismissed the master of Stair from his employment of secretary;
-he likewise pretended that he had subscribed the order amidst a
-heap of other papers, without knowing the purport, of it; but as he did
-not severely punish those who made his authority subservient to their
-own cruel revenge, the imputation stuck fast to his character; and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span>
-Highlanders, though terrified into silence and submission, were inspired
-with the most implacable resentment against his person and administration.”</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="MLK" id="MLK"></a></div>
-<p>SLAUGHTER or MASSACRE OF THE MAMELUKES,
-March 1st, 1811.&mdash;“It has been related, that one of the chief means
-employed by Mahomet Ali in civilizing Egypt, or in improving the state
-of the country, was the destruction of the Mamelukes&mdash;a class of hired
-foreign soldiers, who, as usual in such cases, were opposed to all changes
-in the government. It was only by resorting to a barbarous stratagem
-in one of his campaigns, that the sanguinary blow was struck. The
-following is an account of this sanguinary affair:</p>
-
-<p>“The chiefs of the Mamelukes, with their adherents, being assembled,
-by invitation from the Pacha of Egypt, within the citadel of Cairo, after
-a time, according to eastern custom, coffee was brought, and, last of all,
-the pipes; but at the moment when these were presented, as if from
-etiquette, or to leave his guests more at their case, Mahomet Ali rose
-and withdrew, and, sending privately for the captain of his guard, gave
-orders that the gates of the citadel should be closed; adding, that as soon
-as Siam Bey and his two associates should come out for the purpose of
-mounting, they should be fired upon till they dropped, and that at the
-same signal the troops posted throughout the fortress should take aim at,
-every Mameluke within their reach, while a corresponding order was
-sent down at the same time to those in the town, and to such even as
-were encamped without, round the foot of the fortress, to pursue the
-work of extermination on all stragglers that they should find, so that
-not one of the proscribed body might escape. Siam Bey, and his two
-brothers in command, finding that the Pacha did not return to them,
-and being informed by the attendants that he was gone into his harem
-(an answer that precluded all farther inquiry), judged it time to take
-their departure. But no sooner did they make their appearance without,
-and were mounting their horses, than they were suddenly fired
-upon from every quarter, and all became at once a scene of confusion,
-and dismay, and horror, similar volleys being directed at all the rest,
-who were collected round, and preparing to return with them, so that
-the victims dropped by hundreds. Siam himself had time to gain his
-saddle, and even to penetrate to one of the gates of the citadel; but all
-to no purpose, for he found it closed like the rest, and fell there pierced
-with innumerable bullets. Another chief, Amim Bey, who was the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span>
-brother to Elfi, urged the noble animal which he rode to an act of
-greater desperation, for he spurred him till he made him clamber upon
-the rampart; and preferring rather to be dashed to pieces than to be
-slaughtered in cold blood, drove him to leap down the precipice, a height
-that has been estimated at from thirty to forty feet, or even more; yet
-fortune so favoured him, that though the horse was killed in the fall,
-the rider escaped. An Albanian camp was below, and an officer’s tent
-very near the spot on which he alighted. Instead of shunning it, he
-went in, and throwing himself on the rites of hospitality, implored that
-no advantage might be taken of him; which was not only granted, but
-the officer offered him protection, even at his own peril, and kept him
-concealed so long as the popular fury and the excesses of the soldiery
-continued. Of the rest of that devoted number, thus shut up and surrounded,
-not one went out alive; and even of those who had quietly
-remained in the town, but very few found means to elude the activity
-and greedy search that was made after them&mdash;a high price being set
-upon every Mameluke’s head that should be brought. All Cairo was
-filled with wailing and lamentations; and, in truth, the confusion and
-horrors of that day are indescribable; for not the Mamelukes alone, but
-others also, in many instances wholly unconnected with them, either
-from mistake, or from malice, or for plunder, were indiscriminately
-seized on and put to death; so that great as the number was that
-perished of that ill-fated body, it yet did not comprehend the total of
-the victims. The strange fact of the leap and escape of Amim Bey, and
-of his asylum in the officer’s tent, reached at last the Pacha’s ears, who
-sent instantly to demand him; and when the generous Albanian found
-that it would be impossible any longer to shelter or screen his fugitive,
-he gave him a horse, and recommended him to fly with all speed into
-Asia, where, in the palace of Suleyman Pacha at Acre, he found safety.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SLAVE TRADE.&mdash;The following is a good description of this horrible
-trade now nearly at an end:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“On our return from Brazil, we fell in with a slave-ship. She had
-taken in, on the coast of Africa, 336 males and 226 females, making in
-all 562, and had been out seventeen days, during which she had thrown
-overboard 55. The slaves were all enclosed under grated hatchways,
-between decks. The space was so low, that they sat between each
-other’s legs, and stowed so close together, that there was no possibility
-of their lying down, or at all changing their position, by night or day.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span>
-As they belonged to, and were shipped on account of different individuals,
-they were all branded, like sheep, with the owners’ marks, of different
-forms. These were impressed under their breasts, or on their arms,
-and, as the mate informed me, with perfect indifference, “<span lang="pt" xml:lang="pt">queimados
-pelo ferro quento</span>&mdash;burnt with the red-hot iron.” Over the hatchway
-stood a ferocious-looking fellow, with a scourge of many twisted thongs
-in his hand, who was the slave-driver of the ship; and whenever he
-heard the slightest noise below, he shook it over them, and seemed eager
-to exercise it. As soon as the poor creatures saw us looking down at
-them, their dark and melancholy visages brightened up. They perceived
-something of sympathy and kindness in our looks, which they
-had not been accustomed to, and feeling, instinctively, that we were
-friends, they immediately began to shout and clap their hands. One or
-two had picked up a few Portuguese words, and cried out, “Viva!
-viva!” The women were particularly excited. They all held up their
-arms; and when we bent down and shook hands with them, they could
-not contain their delight; they endeavoured to scramble upon their
-knees, stretching up to kiss our hands; and we understood that they
-knew we had come to liberate them. Some, however, hung down their
-heads in apparently hopeless dejection; some were greatly emaciated,
-and some, particularly children, seemed dying. But the circumstance
-which struck us most forcibly, was, how it was possible for such a number
-of human beings to exist, packed up and wedged together as tight
-as they could cram, in low cells, three feet high, the greater part of
-which, except that immediately under the grated hatchways, was shut
-out from light or air, and this when the thermometer, exposed to the
-open sky, was standing in the shade, on our deck, at 89 deg. The
-space between decks was divided into compartments, three feet three
-inches high; the size of one was sixteen feet by eighteen, and of the
-other, forty by twenty-one; into the first were crammed the women and
-girls; into the second, the men and boys: 226 fellow-creatures were
-thus thrust into one space 288 feet square, and 336 into another space
-800 feet square, giving to the whole an average of twenty-three inches,
-and to each of the women not more than thirteen inches, though many
-of them were pregnant. We also found manacles and fetters of different
-kinds; but it appeared that they had all been taken off before we
-boarded. The heat of these horrid places was so great, and the odour
-so offensive, that it was quite impossible to enter them, even had there
-been room. They were measured, as above, when the slaves had left<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span>
-them. The officers insisted that the poor suffering creatures should be
-admitted on deck, to get air and water. This was opposed by the mate
-of the slaver, who, from a feeling that they deserved it, declared they
-would murder them all. The officers, however, persisted, and the poor
-beings were all turned up together. It is impossible to conceive the
-effect of this eruption&mdash;507 fellow-creatures, of all ages and sexes, some
-children, some adults, some old men and women, all in a state of total
-nudity, scrambling out together to taste the luxury of a little fresh air
-and water. They came swarming up, like bees from the aperture of a
-hive, till the whole deck was crowded to suffocation, from stem to stern,
-so that it was impossible to imagine where they could all have come
-from, or how they could all have been stowed away. On looking into
-places where they had been crammed, there were found some children
-next the sides of the ship, in the places most remote from light and air;
-they were lying nearly in a torpid state, after the rest had turned out.
-The little creatures seemed indifferent as to life or death; and when
-they were carried on deck, many of them could not stand. After enjoying
-for a short time the unusual luxury of air, some water was brought;
-it was then that the extent of their sufferings was exposed in a fearful
-manner. They all rushed like maniacs towards it. No entreaties, or
-threats, or blows, could restrain them; they shrieked and struggled, and
-fought with one another, for a drop of this precious liquid, as if they
-grew rabid at the sight of it. There is nothing which slaves, in the
-middle passage, suffer from so much as the want of water. It is sometimes
-usual to take out casks filled with sea-water as ballast, and when
-the slaves are received on board, to start the casks and refill them with
-fresh. On one occasion, a ship from Bahia neglected to change the contents
-of the casks, and on the mid-passage found, to their horror, that
-they were filled with nothing but salt water. All the slaves on board
-perished! We could judge of the extent of their sufferings from the
-afflicting sight we now saw.”</p>
-
-
-<p>SLUYS, NAVAL BATTLE OF.&mdash;In this battle Edward III
-gained a signal victory over the French. The English had the wind of
-the enemy, and the sun at their backs, and began the action, which
-was fierce and bloody&mdash;the English archers galling the French on their
-approach; 230 French ships were taken; 30,000 Frenchmen were killed,
-and two Admirals; English loss inconsiderable.&mdash;Fought, June 24th, 1340.</p>
-
-
-<p>SMOLENSKO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most memorable battles<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span>
-fought during the Russian campaign of 1812, between the French and
-Russian armies. Fought, August 17th, 1812. The French were three
-times repulsed, but at last gained the victory, and on entering Smolensko,
-found it in ruins, on account of their bombardment.</p>
-
-
-<p>SOBRAON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;<em>In India.</em>&mdash;Fought, February 10th,
-1846, between the British army, 35,000 strong, under Sir Hugh Gough,
-and the Sikh force on the Sutlej. The enemy were dislodged after a
-dreadful contest, and all their batteries taken; and in attempting the
-passage of the river by a floating bridge in their rear, the weight of the
-masses that crowded upon it caused it to break down, and more than
-10,000 Sikhs were killed, wounded or drowned. They also lost sixty-seven
-cannon and some standards. The British lost 2383 men.</p>
-
-
-<p>SOLEBAY, NAVAL BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the fleets of England
-and France on the one side and the Dutch on the other; the Allies commanded
-by the Duke of York. The Dutch were compelled to flee, having
-lost three ships, but the English lost four. In this obstinate and bloody
-engagement the <i>Earl of Sandwich</i> man-of-war blew up, and 1000 men
-were either killed or wounded. Fought, May 28th, 1672.</p>
-
-
-<p>SOLFERINO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This great battle, one of the most
-bloody ever fought, took place during the war of Italy and France
-against Austria. Fought, June 24th, 1859. The loss on both sides
-was tremendous. The Austrians mustered 250,000 men; the Allies
-150,000. The number slain and wounded ranged from 30,000 to
-37,000. The result of this battle was the Austrians repassed the
-Mincio, whilst the Allied headquarters were placed at Cavriana.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="SOR" id="SOR"></a></div>
-<p>SORTIE FROM SEBASTOPOL.&mdash;The great sortie, during which
-the good Captain Hedley Vicars was killed, is well described in the
-following account:</p>
-
-<p>“On the night of the 22nd of March, the enemy, about 7000 strong
-made a sortie from the works of the Mamelon, which the French, as
-already related, had so gallantly endeavoured to wrest from them. The
-distance between the advanced parallels of the opposing forces was not
-more than sixty yards; and the Russians were fully alive to the necessity
-of preventing, if possible, any further advance on the part of the
-Allies. The French and English Generals were equally aware of the
-importance of the position, and not less than 6000 or 7000 French<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span>
-soldiers were nightly marched down to the trenches; our working and
-covering parties numbering about 1500. Advancing stealthily in two
-columns, the enemy attacked the head of the French sap, and were gallantly
-met by a division of the 3rd Zouaves, under <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chef de Bataillon</span>
-Balon. Three times was the attack made, and three times repulsed, not
-without great loss both to assailants and defenders. Finding themselves
-unable to force the French lines in this direction, the enemy changed his
-front, and threw himself against the left of the French position; but
-here, too, our brave Allies were equally on the alert, and a sharp volley
-assured the adventurous Russians that but little success was to be hoped
-for in that quarter. Rapidly extending their attack, they succeeded in
-occupying the nearest English parallel, and thence poured a murderous
-fire into the French lines. General D’Autemarre, the officer in command,
-seeing the fierce nature of the attack, now ordered up the 4th battalion
-of the <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chasseurs-à-Pied</span>, who, in a vigorous bayonet charge, drove the
-enemy from his position.</p>
-
-<p>While this was going on in the French trenches, to the right of our
-lines, our troops were also engaged in repelling an equally determined
-attack. A portion of the Russian columns advanced under cover of the
-darkness, and succeeded in approaching the English lines. The first
-intimation our men had of the threatened attack was from the advanced
-sentinels, who quietly fell back with the intelligence that a large body of
-the enemy was approaching our position. The English troops engaged
-that night in the trenches consisted of detachments of the 7th, 34th,
-77th, 88th, 90th, and 97th regiments, under the command of Colonel
-Kelly, of the 34th. The advanced posts on the right nearest the French
-lines were composed of men from the 77th and 97th, led by Captain
-Vicars, who, hearing the approach of the enemy, ordered his men to keep
-silence. On came the Russians, and when within a few yards of the
-English trenches, they rushed forward and leaped into the works. They
-were immediately met by the brave defenders of the lines, who, hitherto
-motionless, now made an irresistible charge upon the advancing foe, and
-after a few moments of desperate hand-to-hand conflict, literally pitched
-them from the parapet. Captain Vicars, who led his men with distinguished
-courage, met his death in this vigorous repulse. Major Gordon,
-of the Engineers, who commanded the detachment on the right, was
-severely wounded. While the attention of the defenders of the trenches
-was thus drawn to the conflict in this direction, the enemy made another
-attempt to penetrate our lines farther to the left, where two mortars had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span>
-been established for the defence of the trenches. Here they succeeded
-in gaining a footing, notwithstanding a most brilliant resistance from a
-few men of the 90th, who actually drove them from the battery, though
-they were unable effectually to oppose their advance. The 7th and 34th,
-under the command of Lieut.-Colonel Tylden, were now brought up to the
-scene of action, and gallantly met the fierce assault. After a severe contest,
-the Russians gave way, and were precipitated from the works. A
-general attack was now made upon the retreating masses, who fled utterly
-beaten. The French followed them so far as to be enabled to destroy
-some of the rifle-pits they had established on the slope of the Mamelon,
-which had been the means of such constant annoyance to our Allies. In
-this pursuit Colonel Kelly was killed. The Russian loss must have been
-very great. On our side, the casualties were not more than 38 killed
-and wounded; the French lost over 300.</p>
-
-<p>On the next day an armistice, for the purpose of burying the dead,
-was requested by General Osten-Sacken, the Russian Commander. This
-was granted, and for two hours, on the 24th, the guns ceased firing, and
-the officers and men of the opposed armies enjoyed a brief respite from
-their deadly contest. There was a natural desire on each side to
-approach as nearly as possible the lines of the other; and the soldiers
-mingled freely in the open space between the Allies on the one side and
-entrenched sides of the Mamelon in front. Burial parties were formed
-and the dead and wounded of either army borne away by their comrades.
-Meanwhile the officers chatted and exchanged cigars, and the men passed
-equivocal compliments&mdash;such as their very limited acquaintance with
-each other’s language would permit; the Russians making kind inquiries
-as to when the Allies would favour them with a visit at Sebastopol; and
-our fellows requesting them not to trouble themselves with special preparations,
-as they intended to make themselves quite at home when they
-did come. The dead and wounded, in every variety of attitude, were a
-frightful spectacle, even to those inured to scenes of strife and bloodshed.
-At length the armistice expired, the white flags disappeared from the
-parapet of the Mamelon, the stragglers hastily ran to the protection of
-their works, and in an instant the boom of hostile cannon again thundered
-on the ear, and clouds of white smoke again obscured the scene of
-the brief truce.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>SOVEREIGNTY OF THE SEAS, THE.&mdash;“The grand truth
-embodied in the majestic lines&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“Let us be back’d with God, and with the seas,</p>
-<p class="verse0">Which he hath given for fence impregnable,</p>
-<p class="verse0">And with their helps alone defend ourselves;</p>
-<p class="verse0">In them, and in ourselves, our safety lies.”</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<p class="noindent">seems to have been a heartfelt conviction in the breasts of all true
-Englishmen, long centuries before the poet was born.</p>
-
-<p>King John, whom history has generally branded as a very unworthy
-monarch, had some redeeming kingly qualities&mdash;not the least of which
-was his determined assertion of England’s sovereignty of the seas. He
-ordered his sea-captains to compel all foreigners to salute his flag by
-“striking” their own national flags, and, probably, by also lowering
-their topsails (as was the practice at a subsequent period), in acknowledgment
-of England’s maritime supremacy. If any foreign ship, even
-though belonging to a friendly power, refused compliance, it was to be
-seized, and adjudged a lawful prize. This and other facts lead to the
-conclusion that John only enforced an ancient claim to dominion of the
-seas, which had been asserted and enforced occasionally time out of mind.</p>
-
-<p>Edward III, during his wonderfully long reign of fifty-one years, was
-a most jealous asserter of his sovereignty of the seas, over which he
-claimed a judicial power. Dr. Campbell says that Edward, “in his
-commissions to admirals and inferior offices, frequently styles himself
-sovereign of the English seas, asserting that he derived this title from
-his progenitors, and deducing from them by the grounds of his instructions,
-and of the authority committed to them by these delegations.
-His parliaments, likewise, in the preambles of their bills, take notice of
-this point, and that it was a thing notorious to foreign nations that the
-King of England, in right of his crown, was sovereign of the seas. In
-old “Hakluyt’s Voyages” is printed a very curious poem, called “<span lang="la" xml:lang="la">De
-politia conservativa maris</span>,” supposed to have been written in the time
-of Edward IV. It contains a number of separate chapters, each of
-which is full of most valuable and instructive information concerning the
-commerce of England with various countries. The unknown author,
-who must have been a man of very extensive information in his day,
-urges most strongly his countrymen to maintain inviolate the sovereignty
-of the seas, as the only means to preserve their prosperity and safety.</p>
-
-<p>In the reign of Charles I, both the French and Dutch began to
-express great jealousy of the British claim to dominion of the seas, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span>
-Hugo Grotius endeavoured very learnedly to prove that Albion had no
-better natural right than Holland, or any other maritime nation, to such
-a title. Our own equally learned and eloquent Selden retorted by his
-celebrated treatise “Mare Clausum.” We need not quote any of his
-arguments, which are generally profound, and, if not always impregnable
-to impartial criticism, are at any rate patriotic and singularly striking
-and ingenious. Suffice it that the general conclusion to which he arrives
-is conveyed in one very impressive sentence: “That they (the English)
-have an hereditary, uninterrupted right to the sovereignty of their seas,
-conveyed to them from their earliest ancestors, in trust for their latest
-posterity.” Mainly with a view to enforce his claim to the sovereignty
-of the narrow seas, did Charles I endeavour to provide a naval
-force sufficient to overawe both French and Dutch, and therefore issued
-his writs for levying “ship-money”&mdash;a most fatal undertaking as concerned
-himself; for, as every reader knows, this arbitrary measure
-(however honourable its original motives might have been) was the
-beginning of that deplorable alienation between the King and his subjects
-which resulted in the great civil war, and eventually cost the
-hapless monarch both his crown and his life.</p>
-
-<p>In 1635 the King, by his secretary of state, addressed a long and
-deeply interesting letter of instructions to his ambassador at the Hague,
-in order to enable the latter to explain and justify to their “High
-Mightinesses” his naval preparations, and their meaning and objects.
-We will extract a few passages illustrative of our theme: “We hold it,”
-saith King Charles, “a principle not to be denied, that the King of
-Great Britain is a monarch at land and sea, to the full extent of his
-dominions; and that it concerneth him as much to maintain his sovereignty
-in all the British seas, as within his three kingdoms; because,
-without that, these cannot be kept safe, nor he preserve his honour, and
-due respect with other nations. But, commanding the seas, he may
-cause his neighbours, and all countries, to stand upon their guard whensoever
-he thinks fit. And this cannot be doubted, that whosoever will
-encroach on him by sea, will do it by land also, when they see their
-time.... The degrees by which his Majesty’s dominion at sea
-hath of later years been first impeached, and then questioned, are as
-considerable as notorious.... But withal, considering that peace
-must be maintained by the arm of power, which only keeps down war
-by keeping up dominion; his Majesty, thus provoked, finds it necessary,
-for his own defence and safety, <em>to re-assume and keep his ancient and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span>
-undoubted right in the dominion of the seas</em>, and suffer no other prince
-or state to encroach upon him, thereby assuming to themselves or their
-admirals any sovereign command, but to force them to perform due
-homage to his admirals and ships, and to pay acknowledgments as in
-former times they did.”</p>
-
-<p>The Protector of the Commonwealth proved himself quite as jealous
-of maintaining the power and privileges of the navy, as any of his kingly
-predecessors, and he did what not one of them had ever effected, namely,
-made a treaty with the United Provinces (the Low Countries), by which
-it was solemnly stipulated “that the ships and vessels of the United
-Provinces, as well those fitted for war as others, meeting any ships of
-war of the said Commonwealth in the British seas, shall strike their
-flag and lower their topsail, in such manner as had been any time before
-practised under any former government.” This was in 1654. After
-the restoration, Charles II renewed the treaty in 1662, and in 1667, in
-almost precisely the same terms as the above; and at the conclusion of
-the Dutch war, in 1673, in the fourth article of the treaty of peace it
-was expressly stipulated that if any “ships or vessels of war, or others,
-or whether single or in fleets, shall meet in any of the seas from Cape
-Finisterre to the middle point of the land of Vanstaten in Norway, with
-any ships or vessels belonging to his Majesty of Great Britain, whether
-those ships be single or in greater numbers, if they carry his Majesty of
-Great Britain’s flag or jack, the aforesaid Dutch vessels or ships shall
-strike their flag and lower their topsail, in the same manner, and with
-as much respect, as has at any time and in any place been formerly
-practised,” &amp;c. The reader will bear in mind that the Dutch were at
-that time the most powerful naval power next to Great Britain. The
-treaty appears to have confirmed the dominion of the latter beyond what
-might properly be called the “narrow,” or “British seas,” including,
-as it did, all from the south-west of Portugal to a cape in Norway.</p>
-
-<p>During the reigns of the four Stuart kings, as well as under the protectorate
-of Cromwell, the “Mariners of England,”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“Whose flag has braved, a thousand years,</p>
-<p class="verse0">The battle and the breeze,”</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<p class="noindent">did indeed jealously “guard our native seas,” and assert and maintain
-their country’s sovereignty thereof. In 1652, two fierce actions were
-fought on this very score “On the 14th of May, Commodore Young
-fell in with a Dutch convoy, escorted by three ships of war, from whom
-he civilly demanded <em>the usual honours to be paid to the English flag</em>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span>
-The Dutch commander positively refused to comply, giving as a reason
-that he had express orders from the States-General not to pay those
-honours which the English exacted from their ships in the Channel.
-Commodore Young, on this refusal, fired into the Dutch, which brought
-on a smart action; but at length the Dutch ships struck, and, <em>after
-paying the compliment</em>, were allowed to proceed on their voyage.” Only
-four days later, Blake himself and Van Tromp had a far more serious
-encounter on the very same score. Van Tromp and his fleet stood
-towards Dover, off which Blake was lying with fifteen men-of-war, and
-paid no respect whatever to the English flag. Blake instantly fired,
-from his own ship, three unshotted guns at the Dutchman as a reminder
-of his want of respect. Van Tromp retorted with a broadside. “A
-most furious engagement instantly began. At first the whole of the
-Dutch fleet directed their fire at the English admiral, but he was soon
-bravely supported by the rest of the ships, and Commodore Bourne
-joining at the same time with eight sail more, obliged the Dutch to bear
-away, though still superior in number, and seek shelter at the back of
-the Goodwin Sands, after having been most severely mauled. The
-action lasted from four till nine at night. One of the Dutch ships was
-taken, and another sunk.”</p>
-
-<p>In a volume of the “Naval Chronicle,” for 1807, the sovereignty of
-the sea is described as being “an actual and peculiar use and enjoyment
-of the sea itself, and the performance of all the functions of a sovereign
-upon it; such as prescribing rules of navigation to those who frequent
-it, punishing delinquents, protecting others, and receiving from all that
-homage and advantage which are due to every lawful sovereign.” The
-writer proceeds to state that the dominion of the sea entitles the “lawful
-possessors” to six several prerogatives. The first two refer to the right
-of fishing, &amp;c., and the residue we will give at length.</p>
-
-<p>“3. To impose tribute and customs on all merchant ships and fishermen,
-fishing and trading within the limits of the sea that is subjected to
-any particular dominions.</p>
-
-<p>“4. The regular execution of justice for protecting the innocent, and
-punishing the guilty for all crimes committed within the extent of such
-sea-dominions.</p>
-
-<p>“5. To grant free passage through any such sea to any number of ships
-of war belonging to any other prince or republic, or to deny the same,
-according to the circumstances and occasion of such passage, in the same
-manner as any prince or state may grant or deny free passage to foreign<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span>
-troops through their territories by land, even though the prince or state
-to whom such ships or land forces belong <em>be not only at peace, but in
-alliance</em> with the prince or republic of whom passage is desired.</p>
-
-<p>“6. To demand of all foreign ships whatsoever within those seas to
-strike the flag and lower the topsail to any ships of war, or others bearing
-the colours of the sovereign of such seas.”</p>
-
-<p>The latest example of an English commander insisting on a salute to
-his flag, which we have been able to find, occurred in the month of June,
-1769, when “a French frigate having anchored in the Downs, without
-paying the usual compliment to the British flag, Captain John Holwell,
-who was the senior officer lying there, in the ‘Apollo’ frigate, sent an
-officer on board to demand the customary salute; the French captain
-refused to comply, upon which Captain Holwell immediately ordered the
-‘Hawk,’ sloop of war, to fire two shot over her, which being done, the
-French commander thought proper instantly to salute.”</p>
-
-<p>Many of the greatest of our poets have eloquently alluded to the sea-sovereignty
-of their native island, ramparted with tidal waters. Who
-does not remember the truly magnificent lines:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“This precious stone set in the silver sea,</p>
-<p class="verse0">Which serves it as the office of a wall,</p>
-<p class="verse0">Or as a moat defensive to a house</p>
-<p class="verse0">Against the envy of less happy lands!</p>
-<hr class="r20" />
-<p class="verse0">England, bound in with the triumphant sea,</p>
-<p class="verse0">Whose rocky shore beats back the envious siege</p>
-<p class="verse0">Of watery Neptune.”</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<p class="noindent">The popular strain of Thomson’s “Rule Britannia” gives an emphatic
-assertion of Britain’s naval greatness. No poet, however, has so celebrated
-the floating bulwarks of Britain, and the “Hearts of Oak” who
-man them, as Campbell. His marvellously spirit-stirring lyric, “Ye
-Mariners of England,”<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> has no rival in its intense patriotism.</p>
-
-<p>In conclusion, suffice it that for a considerable time the claim of
-England’s sovereignty of the seas, so far as it includes special homage to
-our flag, or anything resembling a judicial supremacy over the ships of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span>
-other nations, within the limits of the narrow (or any other) seas, has
-been a dead letter. But we can well afford to dispense with what was
-at best a somewhat questionable sort of shadowy honour, for we know
-that we yet retain the substantial maritime supremacy which alone
-enables us to rank as the foremost nation of the world&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“Mistress, at least while Providence shall please,</p>
-<p class="verse0">And trident-bearing Queen of the wide seas!”</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<p class="noindent">to quote the noble lines of the patriotic and Christian poet, Cowper.
-Well will it be for us to constantly bear in mind the vital truth that the
-same great poet proclaimed:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“They trust in navies, and their navies fail:</p>
-<p class="verse0">God’s curse can cast away ten thousand sail!”</p>
-</div></div>
-
-
-<p>SPURS, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Henry VIII of England landed in
-France, July, 1513, and soon gathered an army of 30,000 men. He was
-shortly after joined by the Emperor Maximilian, with a well-appointed
-army of horse and foot. They laid siege to Terouenne, which they invested
-with an army of 50,000 men; and the Duc de Longueville advancing to
-its relief was signally defeated. The French were everywhere routed
-in the battle. This battle of Guinnegate was called the Battle of the
-Spurs, because the French made more use of their spurs than their
-swords. Fought 18th, August, 1513.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="STA" id="STA"></a></div>
-<p>STANDARD, BATTLE OF THE.&mdash;Fought <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1135. The
-following graphic account gives the reason why the engagement was so
-called:</p>
-
-<p>“King David at once marched into England to strike for the rights of
-his niece. Twice he ravaged Northumberland with merciless barbarity.
-In a third invasion he penetrated into Yorkshire. Stephen was in the
-south, hard pressed by the partisans of Matilda, and was obliged to leave
-the northern part of his kingdom to look to its own defence. There was
-a man in those parts who knew what to do. This was the aged Thurstan,
-Archbishop of York. He assembled the Barons at York, held a solemn
-fast, gave them absolution and his blessing, and delivered into their hands
-his crozier and the holy banner of St. Peter of York. He ordered processions
-of the priests with crosses, banners, and relics in every parish.
-He enjoined all men capable of bearing arms to rise “for the defence of
-the Church against the barbarians.” To all who should die in battle he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span>
-promised salvation. He sent forth the priests to lead their parishioners
-to battle. Sickness alone prevented him, aged as he was, from putting
-on his own coat of mail.</p>
-
-<p>The English standard was erected on Cutton Moor, near Northallerton.
-The mast of a ship was set up on a high four-wheeled car. At the top
-of the mast was a large cross; in the centre of the cross a silver box containing
-the consecrated wafer. Below the cross floated the banners of
-three Saints, St. Peter of York, St. John of Beverley, and St. Wilfred
-of Ripon. The idea of this car seems to have been taken from the great
-standard car which was used by the people of Lombardy.</p>
-
-<p>The Scottish army was 26,000 strong. Men from the Lowlands of
-Scotland were there armed with cuirasses and long spears; archers from
-the southland “dales,” or valleys of the rivers that run into Tweed and
-Solway; troopers from the Border mountains, who rode small, but strong
-and active horses; the fierce men of Galloway, who carried long pikes
-and wore no defensive armour; clansmen from the Highlands with the
-small round target and claymore; men of the isles, who wielded a long-handled
-battle-axe. A strong body of knights and men-at-arms, sheathed
-in complete mail, rode around the King.</p>
-
-<p>The English placed their standard in their centre. Their steel-clad
-knights dismounted, sent their horses to the rear, and formed in a compact
-mass round the standard car. The Scots came on, shouting their
-war cry, “Alban! Alban!” Their fierce charge drove in the English
-infantry, but they could not break through the dense array of mailed
-warriors who surrounded the standard, and received them on the points
-of their levelled lances. The long pikes of the Galloway men were
-shivered against the strong plate-armour of the knights. In vain the
-Highlanders tried to hew their way with the claymore into the mass of
-iron-cased chivalry. The archers of Yorkshire, Nottingham, and Lincolnshire,
-with their great bows, and arrows of three feet in length,
-ranged themselves on both flanks of the Scots, and kept up from either
-side a constant flight of their deadly shafts. On many another bloody
-day the Scots were destined to know right cruelly the fatal force of the
-cloth-yard arrow!</p>
-
-<p>For full two hours the attack was maintained. At length the Scots
-began to recoil. An English soldier, cutting off the head of one of the
-slain, raised it aloft, and cried, “The head of the King of Scots.” The
-report that their King was killed flew through the Scottish army and filled
-them with dismay. They broke and fled. The King, tearing off his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span>
-helmet to show his face, kept together a small body of troops around
-himself, and was able in some degree to check the pursuit. On that
-bloody moor he left 12,000 dead.”</p>
-
-
-<p>STIRLING, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1297.</p>
-
-<p>“Wallace was engaged in the siege of Dundee when tidings were
-brought him that an army, fifty thousand strong, was on the march from
-England to put the Scots down. They were holding their course
-towards Stirling. Wallace immediately left Dundee and advanced to
-meet them. If he could reach the river Forth before the English, he
-meant to make them pay for their passage. He marched swiftly, talking
-over and arranging his plans with the good Sir John the Graham as they
-rode. When they reached the hill above Cambuskenneth, two miles east
-from Stirling, no English were in sight. It was not long, however, till
-their banners were seen approaching. The chief of their host was the
-Earl of Surrey. But he was old and in broken health, and the man who
-really took the command was Sir Hugh Cressingham, Edward’s Lord
-Treasurer of Scotland. Cressingham was a priest, haughty and insolent,
-who loved the corslet better than the cassock.</p>
-
-<p>The English, three times more in number than the Scots, advanced
-and took up their position on the banks of the Forth. Wallace occupied
-the high ground to the north. The river, spanned by a long and narrow
-wooden bridge, flowed between the armies. The towers of Cambuskenneth
-Abbey threw their shadows slant and long as the September sun
-sank behind Ben Lomond. The glow of the watchfires lighted up the deep
-and sluggish waters of the Forth, as the two armies lay under the silent
-night, waiting for day, and what fortune God might send.</p>
-
-<p>Morning came, but Surrey was in no haste to begin. The bridge was
-so narrow that only two men-at-arms could pass it abreast. The attempt
-to cross a deep river in the face of an enemy, by one narrow passage, was
-so dangerous that the English general hesitated to risk it. But the rash
-and scornful churchman, Cressingham, would try it. He insisted on
-instantly attacking the Scots with the division under his command.
-Surrey gave way to the taunts of the headstrong priest, and ordered the
-attack.</p>
-
-<p>A brave knight, Sir Marmaduke de Twenge, led the advance at the
-head of a squadron of cavalry, heavily sheathed in steel, both horse and
-man. Cressingham with his division followed. The Scots, posted on
-high ground, kept their ranks and allowed the English to defile over the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span>
-bridge. Wait! they know what they are about. Twenge has got his
-division of heavy cavalry over to the opposite shore. Cressingham’s
-division are eagerly crowding along the bridge. Twenge forms his cavalry
-and leads them up the hill against the main body of the Scots. Nearly
-half the English army has crossed without interruption. But see that
-strong force of Scottish spearmen who, fetching a circuit, and keeping
-near the river, make swiftly for the head of the bridge. They dash across
-the line of English as it issues from the bridge, and cut it in two.
-Forming in a solid mass bristling with spears, they occupy the bridgehead,
-and bar the bridge against all passage. Surrey looks on over the
-water. In three minutes the old General shall see a sight to make his
-white hair stand up!</p>
-
-<p>The moment Wallace has waited for has come. Up then, and at them!
-The Scots charge furiously down the hill on Twenge and his cavalry, and
-hurl them back in disorder on the squadrons of Cressingham, great part
-of which have not had time to form since they passed the bridge. The
-English are mingled, horse and foot, in desperate confusion. Hundreds
-of them go down before the fierce charge of the Scots. The long spears
-plough the thick, disordered mass. Vast numbers are driven back into
-the river. The deep, still-flowing river swallows horse and man with
-splash and gurgle. Multitudes madly plunge in, vainly hoping to struggle
-to the other side, and the water is lashed into a foam by the drowning
-struggles of thousands of men and horses. This is the sight which old
-Surrey sees, sitting his warhorse on the safe side of the Forth.</p>
-
-<p>He did what he could to send help to his reeling squadrons. The
-royal standard of England, with its three gold leopards set on red, was
-advanced to the cry of “For God and St. George!” A strong body of
-knights attended it. Then came Surrey’s own banner, of chequered blue
-and gold, followed by a numerous force of his vassals. It was in vain.
-They forced their way over the bridge, but finding no room to form, they
-only served to increase the confusion and swell the slaughter made by the
-Scottish spearmen. Of all who crossed that fatal bridge there returned
-but three. Sir Marmaduke Twenge with his nephew and armour-bearer,
-spurring their steads, rushed into the midst of the Scots at the bridgehead,
-cut their way through, and escaped unharmed. The haughty
-churchman, Cressingham, lay dead on the field. A Scottish spear had
-pierced his mail like silk, and run him through the body, till the point
-stood out on the other side. It was said that Wallace’s own hand drove
-that spear home.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Surrey saw that the safe side of the Forth was safe no longer, for the
-Scots were preparing to cross. He turned his horse, and fled without
-drawing bridle to Berwick. His troops broke and scattered in all directions.
-The face of the country was covered with a confused mass of
-terrified fugitives, who threw away their arms and standards as they fled.
-Keen and fierce the Scots pressed the chase, and their thirsty swords
-drank much blood. The powerful host which a few hours before had
-marshalled so proudly beside Stirling Bridge was beaten small and scattered
-like chaff.”</p>
-
-
-<p>STONY CREEK.&mdash;<em>Canada.</em>&mdash;Fought, June 5th, 1813. Between
-the Canadians and Americans, the latter commanded by Generals Chandler
-and Winder. The Americans had advanced as far as Stony Creek with
-the intention of dislodging him, when Lieutenant Colonel Harvey, now
-Sir John Harvey, conceived and executed a plan of surprising them in
-the night. Before day he entered their camp, consisting of 3000
-men, with only 704 soldiers, killed and wounded a great number, and
-captured two Generals and 120 prisoners. This affair so disconcerted
-the Americans that they returned hastily to Fort George, leaving the
-communication with part of Niagara frontier open to the British, and
-perhaps eventually saving the whole of the Province.</p>
-
-
-<p>STRATTON HILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Royal army and
-the forces of the Parliament, headed by the Poet Waller. The Parliamentarians
-lost the battle, with numbers of killed and wounded, and Waller
-was obliged to flee to Bristol. Fought, May 16th, 1643. Waller was
-nephew to the great Hampden.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="T" id="T"></a>T.</h3>
-
-
-<p>TALAVERA.&mdash;Fought, July, 27th and 28th, 1809, between the
-English and French and Spanish armies.&mdash;“After the campaigns of Marlborough,
-the English army acquired little distinction in the field for more
-than a century. The battles of Dettingen (1743), Fontenoy (1745), and
-Minden (1759), were affairs in which England was involved by her Hanoverian
-alliances, and in which small bodies of English troops were engaged,
-with little glory, and with but trifling results. It was not until the next
-century had opened, and the talent and ambition of one of the world’s
-greatest conquerors had almost reached the climax of universal dominion,
-that England, for her own preservation, and for the rescue of the Spanish<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span>
-peninsula from his grasp, was compelled to send an army into Spain;
-which, under the guidance of one of the most consummate Generals that
-the world has ever seen, chased the armies of France over province after
-province, from Lisbon to Biscay, and ultimately drove them over the
-Pyrenees.</p>
-
-<p>The peninsular campaigns of the Duke of Wellington commenced with
-the brilliant affair of Vimiera; but we cannot dignify that engagement
-with the name of a great battle, in which the forces on either side, did
-not exceed thirteen or fourteen thousand men; and the fruits of which
-were snatched from the victor’s hands by the sudden arrival of a superior
-in command. It was on Sir Arthur Wellesley’s second appearance in
-Portugal, in the year following the battle of Vimiera, that the contest
-really began; and the three great battles which distinguished its successive
-stages, were those of Talavera, Salamanca, and Vittoria. The first
-exhibited the power of Napoleon in Spain fairly grappled with; the
-second showed that power defeated; the third closed the struggle by its
-absolute downfall and expulsion.</p>
-
-<p>After his supercession in 1808, on the very day of Vimiera, Sir Arthur
-Wellesley had returned to England; but, happily, the indignation felt by
-the English people at the convention of Cintra, by which the results of
-that victory had been thrown away, warned the British government that
-it was needful in times of great emergency to depart from the rule of
-<em>seniority</em>, and to select a Commander mainly on the ground of known and
-proved talent and ability. Hence the victor of Vimiera was again called
-into the field, and, on the 22nd of April, 1809, Sir Arthur Wellesley a
-second time landed in Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>“The unexpected arrival of a victorious Commander,” says Sir W.
-Napier, “created the greatest enthusiasm:&mdash;the Regency nominated him
-Captain-General; the people hailed his presence, and an undefined but
-powerful sentiment that something great would be achieved, pervaded the
-public mind.” Still, somewhat surprising, and rather overweening, was
-this confidence; for Sir Arthur Wellesley commanded only 26,000
-English and German troops;&mdash;the Spanish and Portuguese armies were
-of little worth, and the French Emperor had at that moment in the
-Peninsula, a force of <em>two hundred and seventy thousand men</em>.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur lost no time in bringing his troops into action. On the
-12th of May he crossed the Douro, in the face of the French army, and
-carried Oporto. Soult had entered it two months before with 25,500
-men; he quitted it with 19,500, having lost by the sword and by sickness,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span>
-by assassination and capture, 6,000 good soldiers. He had marched
-into Portugal with 58 pieces of artillery, he quitted it without a gun! Yet
-Soult was perhaps the greatest of all Napoleon’s Generals. Sir Arthur’s next
-object was, and indeed it seemed a necessity of his position, to seek the
-French armies, and to fight them with the least possible delay. The
-demand of the English, and of the Portuguese also, was to be led against
-the foe. To raise the spirit of the people of Spain and Portugal, and also
-of the governments of both countries, it was necessary to show that there
-was an army and a General in the field, and that neither the army nor
-the General were afraid of meeting the French.</p>
-
-<p>At this period the Spanish Generals and the Spanish Ministers had not
-fully proved their entire inefficiency. They still boasted of their power
-to “drive the French out of Madrid, and out of Spain;” and if the
-English General had refused to co-operate with them, he would have been
-charged with cowardice or with treachery. On the 27th of June, 1809,
-therefore, Sir Arthur, at the head of 22,000 British troops, and with
-30 guns, entered Spain, and began his march on Madrid. The Spanish
-General Cuesta, with an army of 39,000 men, was to co-operate with
-him.</p>
-
-<p>This co-operation, however, proved to be nothing but hindrance and a
-source of vexation. The two armies marched forward, Sir Arthur grieved,
-day by day, by some failure of supplies, means of transport, or other
-necessary aid. On one occasion a delay of two whole days was created by
-the Spanish General’s obstinacy. On the 24th of July Sir Arthur wrote
-to Lord Castlereagh, “I am not able to follow the enemy as I could wish;
-having found it impossible to procure <em>even one mule, or a cart in Spain</em>; ... My
-troops have been in actual want of provisions for the last two
-days.” Meanwhile the Spanish Government took care of its own troops,
-and left the English to shift for themselves. “The French,” writes Sir
-Arthur, “can take what they like and will take it&mdash;while we cannot
-even buy common necessaries.”</p>
-
-<p>Joseph, the nominal King of Spain, was apprized of the approach of
-the English and Spanish forces, and marched out of Madrid with
-25,000 French veterans, commanded by Marshals Jourdan and Victor,
-to meet them. The two armies came into the neighbourhood of each
-other about the 22nd of July, 1809. Sir Arthur and Cuesta had agreed,
-on that day, that Victor’s corps, which had been found detached from the
-rest of the French army, should be attacked on the following day. But
-when the English troops were getting under arms the next morning, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span>
-old Spaniard was not up, and finally, he objected to any attack that day.
-The fact was, that the French General had contrived to corrupt some of
-Cuesta’s staff, and thus difficulties were constantly thrown in the way.</p>
-
-<p>Victor, whose discomfiture would have been easy on the 23rd, had now
-escaped, and had joined Sebastiani and King Joseph. The whole French
-army now amounted to 56,122 men, and, confident in their strength,
-the Commanders resolved at once to march upon Talavera, and to attack
-the Anglo-Spanish army.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three minor engagements preceded the general battle. On
-the 27th, in the afternoon, Victor’s advanced guards came upon the
-British outposts, and immediately attacked them. The English troops,
-some of whom then saw fire for the first time, were thrown into some
-confusion, and Sir Arthur himself narrowly escaped being made prisoner.
-A body of 10,000 Spanish which was posted near, took such an alarm,
-that they broke and fled, giving out that “all was lost.” Sir Arthur,
-with some difficulty, restored order, brought up fresh troops, and the
-French were finally driven off. Yet such was the effect of this panic
-among the Spanish troops, that they went into action the next day with
-6000 men less than their previous number.</p>
-
-<p>That same night Victor, encouraged by the effect of the surprise thus
-narrated, made an attack after sunset on a hill which was the key of the
-English position. For a moment the French attack succeeded, but
-General Hill brought up the 48th regiment, and at last expelled the
-French from the ground which they had gained. The British lost 800
-men, and the French 1000, in this affair, which was not ended until long
-after dark.</p>
-
-<p>As soon, however, as the day dawned, the French renewed the attack.</p>
-
-<p>Once more they ascended the hill, and struggled hand to hand with
-the English infantry. General Hill was wounded, and many officers fell
-around him. But the French never gained the upper hand. After a
-severe contest, they fell back; and the English pressed down the hill,
-after them, until the whole of the attacking column got into confusion,
-and finally rushed down the declivity in headlong rout. This single
-attack, which lasted only forty minutes, cost the French nearly 1500
-men.</p>
-
-<p>A consultation was now held in the French camp, as to the expediency
-of immediately risking a general battle. Jourdan strongly urged
-the taking up a position behind the Alberche, and there awaiting the
-approach of Soult, who, with another army, was expected to menace the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span>
-English on their flank and rear in a few days. Victor was more confident,
-promising to carry the hill on the English left, if Sebastiani would
-attack the centre and right at the same moment. He added, “If such
-a combination can fail, it is time that we gave up war.”</p>
-
-<p>King Joseph hesitated; when, at that moment, a despatch arrived
-from Soult, stating that he could not reach the neighbourhood in less
-than a week. This decided the matter, and orders were given to attack.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, many discouragements prevailed in the English camp.
-Provisions were scarce, and the men suffered from hunger. Among the
-Spaniards all was confusion and distrust. Such alarm was created by
-Cuesta’s conduct, that in the very midst of the battle, his own countryman,
-the Duke d’Albuquerque, sent one of his staff to warn Sir Arthur
-Wellesley that “Cuesta was betraying him.” Sir Arthur received the
-message while seated on the hill, intently watching the movements of
-the French. He listened to it without even turning his head; and
-coolly replied to the officer who brought him the message, “Very well,
-you may return to your brigade;” and then quietly resumed his survey.</p>
-
-<p>But now the battle began. The allied army was posted near Talavera,
-having that city and the Tagus on its right, a hill already referred to on
-its left, a sort of ravine and water-course in front; and looking towards
-the Alberche,&mdash;a river which flows into the Tagus,&mdash;in front of which
-lay the whole French army. “The British and Germans,” says Sir W.
-Napier, “were somewhat above 19,000 sabres and bayonets, with 30
-guns. The Spaniards were 33 or 34,000 men, with 70 guns. The
-French advanced with 80 guns, and nearly 50,000 men. But what a
-difference in the quality of the troops! The French were all hardy
-veterans; while the genuine soldiers of the allied army did not exceed
-19,000.”</p>
-
-<p>Before one o’clock the French soldiers were seen to gather round their
-eagles, and the rolling of drums was heard along the whole line. Half
-an hour later, King Joseph’s guards, the reserve, and the fourth corps
-were descried in march; and soon the table-land and the height on the
-French right were covered with dark and lowering masses. Victor gave
-the signal for battle, and 80 pieces of artillery sent a tempest of bullets
-before the light troops, who came on with all the swiftness and
-violence of a hailstorm, followed by the broad black columns in all the
-majesty of war.</p>
-
-<p>“Sir Arthur Wellesley from the hill viewed the whole field of battle.
-He saw the fourth corps rushing forwards with the usual impetuosity of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span>
-French soldiers and falling upon Campbell’s division, which held the
-right centre, with infinite fury; yet that General, assisted by Mackenzie’s
-brigade and two Spanish battalions, withstood their utmost efforts. The
-British regiment met the advancing columns with loud shouts, broke their
-front, lapped their flanks with fire, and at last pushed them back with a
-terrible carnage. Ten guns were taken; but as Campbell feared to break
-his line by a pursuit, the French rallied, and made head for another
-attack. Then the British artillery played vehemently upon them; a
-Spanish regiment of cavalry charged their flank; they retired in disorder,
-and the victory was secured in that quarter.”</p>
-
-<p>This was on the right of the English line. On the left, two different
-columns of French were seen advancing towards the hill, the key of the
-position. Sir Arthur sent forward an English regiment of cavalry, and
-the 1st German hussars, to charge the heads of these columns. A hollow
-cleft, not before perceived, stopped the Germans; some of the English
-leaped it, in twos and threes, and in desultory manner fell upon the
-French infantry. Some Polish lancers charged them while thus disordered,
-and the regiment was broken, and lost 207 officers and men.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, one of the French attacking columns was actually contending
-for possession of the hill; and at the same time a powerful mass of
-infantry, crossing the ravine, pressed hard upon the English centre. The
-French attack was at first driven back; then the English Guards, in the
-excitement of success, rushed after them with reckless ardour. The
-French reserves charged them; the Guards, disordered, were broken;
-the German Legion, adjoining, got into confusion, and for the moment
-the English centre seemed to be shaken and in disorder.</p>
-
-<p>But when the Guards had made their rash charge, Sir Arthur, foreseeing
-the issue of it, had ordered up the 48th regiment; and had also
-sent for Cotton’s light-horse. The French came on, pushing before them
-the disordered foot-guards. Sir Arthur charged them with the 48th,
-brought them to a stand; the Guards and the German Legion speedily
-recovered their ranks; and at last this terrible attack was defeated, and
-the French were pushed back over the ravine, carrying with them their
-general, Lapisse, mortally wounded.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile their attack on the hill had failed; while on the Spanish
-part of the army, safely posted behind redoubts in Talavera, they had
-made no assault. And so closed the battle of Talavera. Both sides
-remained in the position of the morning when night closed upon them.
-But at day-break the French began their retreat; and before six o’clock<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span>
-their whole army was safely encamped behind the Alberche. That day,
-too, Sir Robert Crawford joined the British army, bringing with him the
-43rd, the 52nd, and the 95th regiments; which troops immediately
-relieved the rest of the army of the outpost-duty.</p>
-
-<p>The loss of the English in this terrible contest was 6268; including
-in the reckoning all the attacks, both on the 27th and the 28th. The loss
-of the French was 8794, according to their own returns. They lost
-also 17 guns, some tumbrils, and several hundred prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur Wellesley, as we have said, was obliged to fight this battle.
-Had he refused to advance, the Spanish government and people would
-have deemed his presence useless, and would have upbraided him with
-want of courage. And having advanced, the French Marshals very
-naturally looked upon him as their prey; and attacked him, deeming his
-defeat certain.</p>
-
-<p>The reputation gained by the victory was obviously that arising from
-a fearless meeting of the attack of a fine French army of 50,000 men,
-led by two celebrated Generals, with an Anglo-German force of 19,000,
-encumbered with the merely nominal aid of Spaniards. A French
-critic, General Jomini, thus speaks of the moral result: “This battle at
-once restored the reputation of the British army, which, during a century
-past, had declined. It was now ascertained, that the English
-infantry could dispute the palm with the best in Europe.”</p>
-
-<p>Sir Arthur, too, had now seen, and his troops had seen and proved,
-the value of the Spanish army; and all illusion on that subject had ceased.
-Their artillery was well trained, and sometimes rendered good service;
-but their cavalry was wretched; and their infantry was totally unable to
-perform evolutions under fire without falling into confusion. The result
-therefore naturally was, that the English General, retiring into Portugal,
-commenced plans to be carried out by English and Portuguese forces, in
-which the Spanish armies bore little or no part.</p>
-
-<p>The merits of the English Commander were promptly recognized by his
-own government. He was immediately created Baron Douro and Viscount
-Wellington of Talavera, and of Wellington in the county of
-Somerset.</p>
-
-<p>There is a remarkable similarity, in all its chief features, between this,
-the first of Wellington’s great battles, and Waterloo, his last. Doubling
-the numbers on both sides, the proportions were nearly the same. The
-French at Talavera had more than 50,000 excellent troops,&mdash;at Waterloo
-they had almost twice as many. The great English General had about<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span>
-19,000 good troops at Talavera, with the nominal aid of 30,000 worthless
-ones. At Waterloo, he had about 33 or 34,000 good troops, with
-the addition of about as many unreliable ones. In both cases alike, the
-French, confident of success, made the attack; and in both cases they
-were foiled and driven back by a British force of less than half their number.
-The one material difference between the two conflicts lay in this,&mdash;that
-in the second great battle, just as Napoleon’s last attack had
-been repelled, a force of 50,000 Prussians broke in upon the retreating
-French, and utterly dispersed and annihilated their already-beaten army.”</p>
-
-
-<p>TARA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This was one of the earliest battles in
-Ireland in ’98. Fought between the Royal forces, only 400 strong, and
-the insurgent Irish, amounting to 4000, yet they were completely
-beaten, and 500 slain, May 26th, 1798.</p>
-
-
-<p>TARBES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, March 20th, 1814, between the
-English and French. Marshal Soult was forced from his position, with
-great loss, by the Duke of Wellington. This engagement shortly preceded
-that of Toulouse.</p>
-
-
-<p>TARENTUM WAR.&mdash;One of the most celebrated wars in Roman
-History. Undertaken by the inhabitants of Tarentum, with the aid of
-the renowned Pyrrhus, King of Epirus, which resulted, after many battles,
-in their subjugation by the arms of the Romans.</p>
-
-
-<p>TCHERNAYA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the brilliant engagements
-during the Crimean war. Fought, August 10th, 1854. The enemy, in
-dense columns of infantry and cavalry, supported by 160 guns, advanced
-from the heights towards the river, here crossed by two bridges, the larger
-one being known as the Traktir Bridge. They carried pontoons, and
-appliances for crossing the stream; and there were also several places in
-which the Tchernaya was fordable. Favoured by the dim light of early
-morning, they succeeded in throwing several battalions unobserved across
-the river, and attacking the division led by General Camon, on the
-extreme left of the French line. Though taken by surprise, the French
-made a brave resistance, and the 3rd Zouaves and 50th of the line
-assisted by the 82nd, which attacked them in the flank, succeeded in
-repelling them with considerable loss.</p>
-
-<p>In their second attempt the Russians were somewhat more successful.
-They advanced across the Traktir Bridge. The <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">tête du pont</i> was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span>
-guarded by the 20th regiment of the line, who were too weak to offer
-any effective resistance. They bravely disputed the ground, and lost
-twelve officers before they would give way. The dense masses of the
-Russians now thronged across the bridge. In their train followed three
-guns, which were promptly got into position to sweep the road along
-which the French would advance. The infantry swarmed across the
-bridge, or waded breast high through the stream. Quickly forming into
-heavy columns, they advanced in gallant style up the hill in front of the
-French centre. General Herbillon was fully prepared for the attack, and
-the enemy was promptly met, and, after a very animated contest, driven
-back across the bridge by the 2nd Zouaves, the 97th of the line, and one
-battalion of the foot Chasseurs. The slaughter was terrific; the French
-and Sardinian guns playing on the retreating mass, and the French pursuing
-them in a vigorous bayonet charge.</p>
-
-<p>The right of the French position occupied some low hillocks, defended
-in front by the river, and by the aqueduct used to supply the Turkish
-army with water. The Sardinian army was encamped on their right
-and had manned a very effective battery. General Faucheux was the
-French commander at this portion of the line, and a considerable body
-of artillery was under his command. While the Russians were attacking
-the French centre, as already related, another column of enormous
-strength advanced across the river and aqueduct, and attacked the
-French right. The artillery and the rifles of the Sardinians made dreadful
-havoc in their ranks; but the Russian officers cheered on their men
-to the advance, and, in defiance of dreadful loss, charged gallantly the
-French position. The Zouaves, who held the brow of the hill, retired
-slowly to the main body, which was partially hidden by the nature of the
-ground, and the enemy came on with loud cheers, imagining an easy
-conquest. Then the French suddenly formed up into line, and charging
-forward with an impetuosity that defies description, literally crushed the
-enemy in their tremendous rush, and hurled them down the hill.
-Many rolled into the aqueduct and were suffocated; others had their
-limbs broken by the fall; and the main hotly turned and fled precipitately
-towards the bridge. As the broken and flying mass poured onwards,
-the batteries opened upon them, and a scene of fearful massacre ensued.
-The bridge was choked with the troops endeavouring to pass across, and
-the river was crowded with the fugitives. Among them poured the iron
-hail of the Sardinian batteries; and when they struggled into the open
-ground, hundreds more fell mortally wounded. Never was there a more
-complete or ignominious defeat.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The remnants of the infantry withdrew behind the cavalry, and
-retreated to the hill; the Russian artillery covering them by a heavy
-fire against the French batteries. Prince Gortschakoff manœuvred his
-cavalry for some time in sight of the Allies, hoping apparently to draw
-our dragoons in pursuit among the hills, where a second Balaklava massacre
-would probably have awaited them. General Scarlett, commanding
-the English cavalry division, eagerly proffered the services of his splendid
-warriors, but General Pelissier wisely declined to hazard such valuable
-troops in such a perilous adventure.</p>
-
-<p>Towards evening the Russians drew off, leaving about 3000 dead
-upon the field, and their wounded could not have amounted to less than
-5000. The French carried off in their ambulances, 1626 soldiers and
-thirty-three officers, besides 400 prisoners. Among the dead was General
-Read, a very distinguished Russian officer, upon whose person was
-found a plan of the attack. The French lost 9 officers killed and 61
-wounded, 172 men killed and 1163 wounded, besides 146 missing.
-The gallant Sardinians, besides the death of General the Count of Montevecchio,
-sustained a loss of 250 men. The Turkish battalions arrived
-too late to take any part in the affair.</p>
-
-
-<p>TEWKESBURY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, May 4th, 1471. The
-very day of the battle of Barnet, Queen Margaret landed at Plymouth.
-At the news of the defeat of Warwick she sank to the ground in despair;
-but the arguments of her friends soon awakened her natural courage, and
-she advanced to Bath. It was there resolved to try to effect a junction
-with the Earl of Pembroke, who had a large force in Wales; but the
-people of Gloucester had secured the only bridge over the Severn, and at
-Tewkesbury it was found that Edward was at hand with a more numerous
-army. The Lancastrian leaders then drew up their forces without
-the town; the Yorkists, led by the King’s brother, the Duke of Gloucester,
-fell on them furiously, and after a short but gallant resistance, the Lancastrians
-were totally routed. The Queen and Prince were made prisoners;
-the latter being led into the royal tent, Edward demanded of him what
-had brought him to England. “To recover my father’s kingdom and
-heritage, from his father and grandfather to him, and from him to me
-lineally descended,” replied the undaunted youth. Edward struck him
-in the face with his gauntlet, and Gloucester, Clarence, and some others
-despatched him with their swords. Edward then set out for London,
-and on the evening of his arrival king Henry died in the Tower, of grief<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span>
-as was given out, but there can be little doubt that he was murdered by
-order of Edward. The guilt of the deed, though without any proof, was
-afterwards laid on the Duke of Gloucester.</p>
-
-
-<p>TEXEL, BATTLES OF THE.&mdash;The vicinity of the Texel has been
-the scene of some remarkable engagements, among others a battle of three
-days was fought here, between the English, under Blake and Monk, and
-the Dutch, under Van Tromp and DeRuyter, when the Dutch were
-signally defeated and Van Tromp killed, 1653. Again Ruyter was defeated
-here, August 11th, 1673. The Dutch fleet gloriously vanquished by
-Lord Duncan, October 11th, 1797. Twelve ships of war and thirteen
-Indiamen of the Dutch surrendered to Admiral Mitchell, who took them
-without firing a shot, August 28th, 1799.</p>
-
-
-<p>THERMOPYLÆ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Leonidas, at the head of 300
-Spartans at this defile withstood the whole army of the Persians, until
-of the 300 heroes who surrounded him, all were slain but one man; 20,000
-Persians perished by the hands of the Spartans, August 7th, 480 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span>
-This battle was one of the most celebrated events in the annals of Greece,
-and effectually, at last, gave a check to the invading Persian army. The
-following is from Rollin’s Ancient History.</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a>“Thermopylæ is a strait or narrow pass of mount Œta, between
-Thessaly and Phocis, but 25 feet broad, which therefore might be
-defended by a small number of forces, and which was the only way
-through which the Persian land army could enter Achaia, and advance
-to besiege Athens. This was the place where the Grecian army thought
-fit to wait for the enemy: the person who commanded it was Leonidas,
-one of the two kings of Sparta.</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a>Xerxes in the meantime was upon his march: he had given orders
-for his fleet to follow him along the coast, and to regulate their motions
-according to those of the land army. Wherever he came, he found
-provisions and refreshments prepared beforehand, pursuant to the orders
-he had sent; and every city he arrived at gave him a magnificent entertainment,
-which cost immense sums of money. The vast expense of
-those treats gave occasion to a witty saying of a certain citizen of Abdera
-in Thrace, who, when the king was gone, said, they ought to thank the
-gods, that he ate but one meal a-day.</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a>In the same country of Thrace, there was a prince who showed an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span>
-extraordinary greatness of soul on this occasion: it was the king of the
-Bisaltes. Whilst all the other princes ran into servitude, and basely
-submitted to Xerxes, he bravely refused to receive his yoke, or to obey
-him. Not being in a condition to resist him with open force, he retired
-to the top of the mountain Rhodope, into an inaccessible place, and
-forbade all his sons, who were six in number, to carry arms against
-Greece. But they, either out of fear of Xerxes, or out of a curiosity to
-see so important a war, followed the Persians, in contradiction to their
-father’s injunction. On their return home, their father, to punish so
-direct a disobedience, condemned all his sons to have their eyes put
-out. Xerxes continued his march through Thrace, Macedonia, and
-Thessaly, every thing giving way before him till he came to the Strait of
-Thermopylæ.</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a>One cannot see, without the utmost astonishment, with what an
-handful of troops the Grecians opposed the innumerable army of Xerxes.
-We find a particular account of their number in Pausanias. All their
-forces joined together, amounted only to 11,200 men, of which number
-4000 only were employed at Thermopylæ to defend the pass. But these
-soldiers, adds the historian, were all determined to a man either to
-conquer or die. And what is it that an army of such resolution is not
-able to effect?</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a>When Xerxes advanced near the Straits of Thermopylæ, he was
-strangely surprised to find that they were prepared to dispute his passage.
-He had always flattered himself, that on the first hearing of his arrival,
-the Grecians would betake themselves to flight: nor could he ever be
-persuaded to believe, what Demaratus had told him from the beginning
-of his project, that at the first pass he came to, he would find his whole
-army stopped by an handful of men. He sent out a spy before him to
-take a view of the enemy. The spy brought him word, that he found
-the Lacedæmonians out of their intrenchments, and that they were
-diverting themselves with military exercises, and combing their hair:
-this was the Spartan manner of preparing themselves for battle.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes, still entertaining some hopes of their flight, waited four days
-on purpose to give them time to retreat;<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> and in this interval of time
-he used his utmost endeavours to gain Leonidas, by making him magnificent
-promises, and assuring him, that he would make him master of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span>
-all Greece if he would come over to his party. Leonidas rejected his
-proposal with scorn and indignation. Xerxes, having afterwards written
-to him to deliver up his arms, Leonidas, in a style and spirit truly
-laconical, answered him in these words,<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> “Come and take them.”
-Nothing remained but to prepare themselves to engage the Lacedæmonians.
-Xerxes first commanded his Median forces to march against
-them, with orders to take them all alive, and bring them to him. These
-Medes were not able to stand the charge of the Grecians; and being
-shamefully put to flight, they showed, says Herodotus,<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> that Xerxes
-had a great many men, and but few soldiers. The next that were sent
-to face the Spartans, were those Persians called the Immortal Band,
-which consisted of 10,000 men, and were the best troops in the whole
-army. But these had no better success than the former.</p>
-
-<p>Xerxes, out of all hopes of being able to force his way through troops
-so determined to conquer or die, was extremely perplexed, and could not
-tell what resolution to take, when an inhabitant of the country came to
-him, and discovered a secret<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> path to the top of an eminence, which
-overlooked and commanded the Spartan forces. He quickly dispatched
-a detachment thither; which, marching all night, arrived there at the
-break of day, and possessed themselves of that advantageous post.</p>
-
-<p>The Greeks were soon apprized of this misfortune; and Leonidas, seeing
-that it was now impossible to repulse the enemy, obliged the rest of
-the allies to retire, but staid himself with his 300 Lacedæmonians, all
-resolved to die with their leader; who being told by the oracle, that either
-Lacedæmon or her king must necessarily perish, determined, without the
-least difficulty or hesitation, to sacrifice himself for his country. The
-Spartans lost all hopes either of conquering or escaping, and looked upon
-Thermopylæ as their burying-place. The king, exhorting his men to
-take some nourishment, and telling them at the same time, that they
-should sup together with Pluto, they set up a shout of joy as if they had
-been invited to a banquet, and full of ardour advanced with their king
-to battle. The shock was exceedingly violent and bloody. Leonidas
-himself was one of the first that fell. The endeavours of the Lacedæmonians
-to defend his dead body were incredible. At length, not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span>
-vanquished, but oppressed by numbers, they all fell except one man, who
-escaped to Sparta, where he was treated as a coward and traitor to his
-country, and nobody would keep company or converse with him. But
-soon afterwards he made a glorious amend for his fault at the battle of
-Platæa, where he distinguished himself in an extraordinary manner.
-Xerxes, enraged to the last degree against Leonidas for daring to make
-head against him, caused his dead body to be hung up on a gallows, and
-made his intended dishonour of his enemy his own immortal shame.”</p>
-
-
-<p>THRASYMENE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 217.&mdash;On a
-circular range of hills, near the lake, Hannibal disposed his army, and
-Flaminius, the Roman General, took his station in the valley beneath.
-A mist rising from the lake completely concealed the Carthaginians from
-the Romans, while it left the view of the former unimpeded. The fortune
-of the day was such as might have been expected&mdash;15,000 soldiers fell
-with Flaminius in the valley, and 6000 more were obliged to surrender
-themselves prisoners of war. The following is from Rollin’s Ancient
-History:</p>
-
-<p><a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a>“Hannibal being thus got, almost unexpectedly, out of this dangerous
-place, refreshed his troops, and then marched and pitched his camp between
-Arretium and Fesulæ, in the richest and most fruitful part of
-Tuscany. His first endeavours were to discover the genius and character
-of Flaminius, in order that he might take advantage of his foible, which,
-according to Polybius, ought to be the chief study of a general. He
-was told that Flaminius was greatly conceited of his own merit, bold,
-enterprising, rash, and fond of glory. To plunge him the deeper into
-these excesses, to which he was naturally prone,<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a> he inflamed his impetuous
-spirit, by laying waste and burning the whole country, in his sight.</p>
-
-<p>Flaminius was not of a temper to continue inactive in his camp, though
-Hannibal should have lain still. But when he saw the territories of his
-allies laid waste before his eyes, he thought it would reflect dishonour
-upon him, should he suffer Hannibal to ransack Italy without control,
-and even advance to the very walls of Rome, without meeting any resistance.</p>
-
-<p>He rejected with scorn the prudent counsels of those who advised him<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span>
-to wait the arrival of his colleague, and to be satisfied for the present with
-putting a stop to the devastation of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime, Hannibal was still advancing towards Rome, having
-Cortona on the left hand, and the lake Thrasymene on the right. When
-he saw that the consul followed close after him, with the design to give
-him battle, by stopping him in his march; having observed that the
-ground was convenient for that purpose, he also began to prepare himself
-for the battle. The lake Thrasymene and the mountains of Cortona
-form a very narrow defile, which leads into a large valley, lined on both
-sides, with hills of a considerable height, and closed at the outlet by a
-steep hill of difficult access. On this hill, Hannibal, after having crossed
-the valley, came and encamped with the main body of his army; posting
-his light-armed infantry in ambuscade upon the hills on the right, and
-part of his cavalry behind those on the left, as far almost as the entrance
-of the defile, through which Flaminius was obliged to pass. Accordingly,
-this general, who followed him very eagerly, with the resolution to fight
-him, being come to the defile near the lake, was forced to halt, because
-night was coming on; but he entered it the next morning at day-break.</p>
-
-<p>Hannibal having permitted him to advance, with all his forces, above
-half way through the valley, and seeing the Roman vanguard pretty
-near him, he sounded the charge, and commanded the troops to come out
-of their ambuscade, in order that he might attack the enemy, at the same
-time, from all quarters. The reader may guess at the consternation with
-which the Romans were seized.</p>
-
-<p>They were not yet drawn up in order of battle, neither had they got
-their arms in readiness, when they found themselves attacked in front, in
-rear, and in flank. In a moment all the ranks were put into disorder.
-Flaminius, alone undaunted in so universal a surprise, animates his
-soldiers both with his hand and voice; and exhorts them to cut themselves
-a passage with their swords through the midst of the enemy. But
-the tumult which reigned everywhere, the dreadful shouts of the enemy,
-and a fog that was risen, prevented his being seen or heard. However,
-when the Romans saw themselves surrounded on all sides, either by the
-enemy or the lake, and the impossibility of saving their lives by flight, it
-roused their courage, and both parties began the fight with astonishing
-animosity. Their fury was so great, that not a soldier in either army
-perceived an earthquake, which happened in that country, and buried
-whole cities in ruins. In this confusion, Flaminius being slain by one of
-the Insubrian Gauls, the Romans began to give ground, and at last quite<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span>
-ran away. Great numbers, to save themselves, leaped into the lake, whilst
-others, climbing over the mountains, fell into the enemy’s hands whom
-they strove to avoid. Six thousand only cut their way through the conquerors,
-and retreated to a place of safety; but the next day they were
-taken prisoners. In this battle 15,000 Romans were killed, and about
-10,000 escaped to Rome, by different roads. Hannibal sent back the
-Latins, who were allies of the Romans, into their own country, without
-demanding the least ransom. He commanded search to be made for the
-body of Flaminius, in order to give it burial, but it could not be found.
-He afterwards put his troops into quarters of refreshment, and solemnized
-the funerals of 30 of his chief officers, who were killed in the battle. He
-lost in all but 1500 men, most of whom were Gauls.</p>
-
-<p>Immediately after, Hannibal dispatched a courier to Carthage, with
-the news of his good success in Italy. This caused the greatest joy for
-the present, raised the most promising hopes with regard to the future,
-and revived the courage of all the citizens. They now prepared with
-incredible ardour to send into Italy and Spain all necessary succours.</p>
-
-<p>Rome, on the contrary, was filled with universal grief and alarm, as
-soon as the prætor had pronounced from the rostra the following words,
-“we have lost a great battle.” The senate, studious of nothing but the
-public welfare, thought that in so great a calamity and so imminent a
-danger recourse must be had to extraordinary remedies. They therefore
-appointed Quintus Fabius, dictator, a person as conspicuous for his wisdom
-as his birth. It was the custom at Rome that the moment a dictator
-was nominated, all authority ceased, that of the tribunes of the people
-excepted. M. Minucius was appointed his general of horse.”</p>
-
-
-<p>TILSIT, PEACE OF.&mdash;Between France and Russia, when Napoleon
-restored to the Russian Monarch one-half his dominions, and Russia
-recognized the confederation of the Rhine and the elevation of his three
-brothers, Joseph, Louis, and Jerome to the thrones of Naples, Holland,
-and Westphalia. Signed, July 7th, 1807.</p>
-
-
-<p>TINCHEBRAY, BATTLE, OF.&mdash;Fought, 1106, between Henry I
-of England, and Robert, Duke of Normandy. The two brothers met at
-this place, and Robert was defeated, and all Normandy was taken by
-Henry,&mdash;Robert himself being thrown into a dungeon, and kept for more
-than twenty-five years a prisoner.</p>
-
-
-<p>TOPLITZ, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The first was fought between the
-Austrians and Prussians, the latter defeated, in 1762. Another battle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span>
-August 30th, 1813. Treaty of ditto, September 9th, 1813. Second
-treaty of ditto, October 3rd, 1813.</p>
-
-
-<p>TORGAN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between Frederick II of Prussia and
-the Austrians, in which the former obtained a complete victory. The
-Austrian General, Count Daun, was wounded, November 11th, 1760.</p>
-
-
-<p>TOULON, NAVAL BATTLES OF.&mdash;A memorable battle off this
-port between the English, French and Spanish fleets, February 10th,
-1744. The English lost the victory through a misunderstanding of their
-Admirals. Another battle fought here, when Lord Hood took six ships of
-the French fleet, and sunk one of very large force, and several others,
-June 4th, 1794. While the two fleets were engaged, a large fleet of
-Indiamen got safely into Brest harbour. As on this fleet depended the
-means of the French carrying on the war, they claim the victory, notwithstanding
-their loss in ships and men.</p>
-
-
-<p>TOULOUSE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This was the final battle of the
-Peninsular war&mdash;one of the most bloody that was fought between the
-French and English. The French were commanded by Soult, and the
-English by Wellington. Wellington forced the French to retreat after
-twelve hours of hard fighting, the battle raging from seven in the morning
-till seven at night. The English lost between 4000 and 5000 men,
-that of the French exceeded 10,000. Fought, April 10th, 1814.</p>
-
-
-<p>TOURNAMENTS, <span class="fs70">OR</span> TILTS.&mdash;Every one has read of these
-ancient modes of duelling. If not, let them read Sir Walter Scott’s
-“Ivanhoe,” &amp;c. The Arabs are very expert in their management of
-horses at these tilts. The following will describe the whole:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The tournament field is oblong, and bordered by rows of spectators,
-sitting cross-legged round the open space. The best riders of the tribe,
-mounted on the most active horses, are then introduced into the arena,
-the men being clothed with as much splendour as their means will permit
-them, while the chargers are covered with large silk housings of
-different colours, reaching to the ground, and resembling those of ancient
-knights, as represented in Froissart. Some of the Arabs then commence
-making their horses dance to the sound of drums and trumpets, whilst
-men on foot occasionally rush forward and discharge their muskets
-close to the horses’ ears. Others dash forward at full speed along the
-line of seated spectators, as close to their feet as they possibly can, without
-actually trampling upon them: and every now and then suddenly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span>
-throwing their horses on their haunches, spin them round on their hind
-legs, and resume in the opposite direction their wild career. It is a
-nervous sight to behold; for you momentarily expect to see some person
-or child crushed beneath the horses’ hoofs; but no accident ever happens,
-and men, women, and children, maintain their seats with the
-greatest calmness and feeling of security, saluting any well-executed point
-of horsemanship with loud and exulting shouts of approbation, whilst
-the women accompany them with the usual but indescribable cries of the
-quick-repeated lu-lu-lu-lu; in return for which they are covered with
-clouds of sand and dust, which the impetuous coursers throw up behind
-them. Three or four others dashing their sharp stirrups into the flanks
-of their impatient steeds, rush madly along the length of the arena,
-shouting forth their <em>tekbir</em>, or war-cries, and whirling round their heads
-the long and silver-adorned Arab guns, which they discharge at the
-spectators when they have reached the farthest extremity of the lists.
-Others engage with swords soldiers on foot, galloping round their adversaries
-in incredibly small circles, twisting their horses suddenly round,
-and then circling to the other hand; and I know not which most to
-admire, the activity and suppleness of the rider or of his horse. Others,
-whilst at full speed, will lean over, and without in the least reducing
-their pace, pick up from the ground a piastre or any other equally small
-object, thrown down for the purpose. These sports form, on the whole,
-one of the gayest and most animating scenes I ever beheld, increased as
-it is by the waving of many silken sanjaks of the brightest colours, by
-the music, the report of fire-arms, the war-cries of the performers, and
-the shouts of the numerous spectators.”</p>
-
-
-<p>TOURNAY.&mdash;Taken by the Allies in 1709; taken again by the
-French, November 11th, 1792. A battle was fought here by the Anglo-Austrian
-army, against the French, in which they were defeated, May
-8th, 1793. Another battle was fought between the English and French,
-when the French were repulsed, losing 200 men and three field pieces.
-Fought, May 6th, 1794.</p>
-
-
-<p>TOURS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the glorious victories of Charles
-Martel, and that which most established his fame; gained over the
-Saracens, near Tours, and from which he acquired the name of Martel
-or the Hammer. Some historians declare that but for this victory, all
-Europe, us well as Asia and Africa, would otherwise have become
-Mahommedan. Fought, October 10th, 732.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>TOWTON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;This great battle is supposed to be
-the most fierce and bloody that ever happened in any domestic war.
-Fought, March 29th, 1461, between the houses of York and Lancaster,
-to the latter of which it proved fatal; more than 37,000 men of the
-Lancastrians fell. Edward IV of York issued orders to give no quarter,
-and a merciless massacre ensued.</p>
-
-
-<p>TRAFALGAR, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The most glorious and splendid
-naval engagement ever achieved by the British navy. The French had
-18 and the Spaniards 15 ships of the line; the British had 27 ships.
-Several of the enemies’ Admirals were taken prisoners. The following
-is Southey’s fine description of the death of England’s greatest naval
-hero. He says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Nelson having despatched his business at Portsmouth, endeavoured
-to elude the populace by taking a by-way to the beach, but a crowd
-collected in his train, pressing forward to obtain a sight of his face: many
-were in tears, and many knelt down before him, and blessed him as he
-passed. England has had many heroes, but never one who so entirely
-possessed the love of his fellow-countrymen as Nelson. All men knew
-that his heart was as humane as it was fearless; that there was not in
-his nature the slightest alloy of selfishness or cupidity; but that, with
-perfect and entire devotion, he served his country with all his heart, and
-with all his soul, and with all his strength; and therefore they loved
-him as truly and as fervently as he loved England. They pressed upon
-the parapet to gaze after him when his barge pushed off, and he returned
-their cheers by waving his hat. The sentinels who endeavoured to prevent
-them from trespassing upon this ground, were wedged among the
-crowd; and an officer who, not very prudently upon such an occasion,
-ordered them to drive the people down with their bayonets, was compelled
-speedily to retreat; for the people would not be debarred from
-gazing till the last moment upon the hero&mdash;the darling hero of England!</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="noindent">It had been part of Nelson’s prayer, that the British fleet might be
-distinguished by humanity in the victory which he expected. Setting
-an example himself, he twice give orders to cease firing on the Redoubtable,
-supposing that she had struck, because her guns was silent; for,
-as she carried no flag, there was no means of instantly ascertaining the
-fact. From this ship, which he had thus twice spared, he received his
-death. A ball fired from her mizen-top, which, in the then situation of
-the two vessels, was not more than 15 yards from that part of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span>
-deck where he was standing, struck the epaulette on his left shoulder,
-about a quarter after one, just in the heat of action. He fell upon his
-face, on the spot which was covered with his poor secretary’s blood.
-Hardy, who was a few steps from him, turning round, saw three men
-raising him up. “They have done for me at last, Hardy,” said he.
-“I hope not,” cried Hardy. “Yes” he replied, “my back-bone is
-shot through.” Yet even now, not for a moment losing his presence of
-mind, he observed, as they were carrying him down the ladder, that the
-tiller ropes, which had been shot away, were not yet replaced, and
-ordered that new ones should be rove immediately: then, that he might
-not be seen by the crew, he took out his handkerchief, and covered his
-face and his stars. Had he but concealed these badges of honour from
-the enemy, England, perhaps, would not have had cause to receive with
-sorrow the news of the battle of Trafalgar. The cockpit was crowded
-with wounded and dying men, over whose bodies he was with some difficulty
-conveyed, and laid upon a pallet in the midshipmen’s berth. It
-was soon perceived, upon examination, that the wound was mortal.
-This, however, was concealed from all except Captain Hardy, the
-Chaplain, and the medical attendants. He himself being certain,
-from the sensation in his back, and the gush of blood he felt momently
-within his breast, that no human care could avail him, insisted that the
-surgeon should leave him, and attend to those to whom he might be
-useful; “for,” said he, “you can do nothing for me.” All that could
-be done was to fan him with paper, and frequently to give him lemonade
-to alleviate his intense thirst. He was in great pain, and expressed
-much anxiety for the event of the action, which now began to declare
-itself. As often as a ship struck, the crew of the Victory hurrahed, and
-at every hurrah, visible expression of joy gleamed in the eyes, and
-marked the countenance of the dying hero. But he became impatient
-to see Hardy; and as that officer, though often sent for, could not leave
-the deck, Nelson feared that some fatal cause prevented him, and
-repeatedly cried, “Will no one bring Hardy to me? he must be killed!
-he is surely dead!” An hour and ten minutes elapsed from the time
-when Nelson received his wound, before Hardy could come to him.
-They shook hands in silence, Hardy in vain struggling to suppress the
-feelings of that most painful and yet sublime moment. “Well, Hardy,”
-said Nelson, “how goes the day with us?” “Very well,” replied
-Hardy; “ten ships have struck, but five of the van have tacked, and
-show an intention to bear down upon the Victory. I have called two
-or three of our fresh ships round, and have no doubt of giving them a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span>
-drubbing.” “I hope,” said Nelson, “none of our ships have struck.”
-Hardy answered, “there was no fear of that.” Then, and not till then,
-Nelson spoke of himself. “I am a dead man, Hardy,” said he; “I
-am going fast; it will be all over with me soon. Come nearer to me.
-Let my dear Lady Hamilton have my hair, and all other things belonging
-to me.” Hardy observed, that he hoped Mr. Beatty could yet hold
-out some prospect of life. “Oh! no,” he replied; “it is impossible.
-My back is shot through. Beatty will tell you so.” Hardy then once
-more shook hands with him, and with a heart almost bursting, hastened
-upon deck.</p>
-
-<p>By this time all feeling below the breast was gone, and Nelson, having
-made the surgeon ascertain this, said to him: “You know I am gone.
-I know it. I feel something rising in my breast,” putting his hand on
-his left side, “which tells me so.” And upon Beatty’s inquiring
-whether his pain was very great, he replied, “so great that he wished
-he was dead. Yet,” said he, in a lower voice, “one would like to live
-a little longer too!” And after a few minutes, in the same undertone,
-he added: “What would become of poor Lady Hamilton if she knew
-my situation!” Next to his country she occupied his thoughts. Captain
-Hardy, some fifty minutes after he had left the cockpit, returned, and
-again taking the hand of his dying friend and commander, congratulated
-him on having gained a complete victory. How many of the enemy
-were taken he did not know, as it was impossible to perceive them
-distinctly, but 14 or 15 at least. “That’s well,” cried Nelson, but
-“I bargained for 20.” And then, in a stronger voice, he said:
-“Anchor, Hardy, anchor.” Hardy, upon this, hinted that Admiral
-Collingwood would take upon himself the direction of affairs. “Not
-while I live, Hardy,” said the dying Nelson, ineffectually endeavouring
-to raise himself from the bed: “do you anchor.” His previous orders
-for preparing to anchor had shown how clearly he foresaw the necessity
-of this. Presently calling Hardy back, he said to him in a low voice,
-“Don’t throw me overboard;” and he desired that he might be buried
-by his parents, unless it should please the King to order otherwise.
-Then reverting to private feelings: “Take care of my dear Lady
-Hamilton, Hardy; take care of poor Lady Hamilton. Kiss me,
-Hardy,” said he. Hardy knelt down and kissed his cheek; and
-Nelson said, “Now I am satisfied. Thank God I have done my duty!”
-Hardy stood over him in silence for a moment or two, then knelt again
-and kissed his forehead “Who is that?” said Nelson; and being<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span>
-informed, he replied, “God bless you, Hardy.” And Hardy then left
-him for ever. Nelson now desired to be turned upon his right side, and
-said, “I wish I had not left the deck; for I shall soon be gone.”
-Death was, indeed, rapidly approaching. He said to the Chaplain,
-“Doctor, I have <em>not</em> been a <em>great</em> sinner;” and after a short pause,
-“Remember that I leave Lady Hamilton and my daughter Horatia as
-a legacy to my country.” His articulation now became difficult; but
-he was distinctly heard to say, “Thank God, I have done my duty!”
-These words he repeatedly pronounced, and they were the last words
-which he uttered. He expired at thirty minutes after four, three hours
-and a quarter after he had received his wound.”</p>
-
-
-<p>TRAKTIR BRIDGE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought during the Crimean
-campaign, between the French and Sardinian forces, and the Russians&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The garrison of Sebastopol having failed, on the 2nd of August, in a
-desperate attempt to forces the Allied lines by the Woronzoff Road,
-remained inactive only in appearance. They were ready for a new
-Balaclava and a new Inkerman all in one, so far as the strategic movement
-is concerned. In August the Tchernaya is fordable at many points,
-well known, of course, to the enemy. On the 16th of that month they
-debouched from the Tchouliou Heights, and descended to the Tchernaya,
-in the neighbourhood of Traktir-bridge. Behind this bridge rise, at a
-little distance, the Fediukine hills, on which rested the rear of the French
-army, which now faced about. To their right were the Sardinians,&mdash;to
-theirs the Turks. Beyond the river, and under Tchouliou hills is a
-valley, along which swarmed the Russian masses, driving the outposts of
-the Sardinian Bersaglieri, or sharp-shooters. About 1500 Zouaves and
-Chasseurs guarded the bridge: they were attacked by 10,000 Russians,
-under General Read. For an hour the 1500 held the 10,000 beneath the
-storm of artillery which pound upon their dense columns from one
-English battery and from the Sardinian and French artillery. At last,
-the Russians swarmed over the fords, forced the bridge, and slowly pushed
-the brave Zouaves up the hill; but executed this movement painfully,
-out of breath, in disorder, and rent by ordnance. At the hill’s brow the
-main body of the French received in their openings comrades worthy of
-Leonidas, who, turning, and now backed by strong columns, charged
-bayonets down the declivity. Twice the enemy rallied, but in vain.
-The Sardinians and French made a final rush, and drove them with
-carnage upon their supports, who were thus disarrayed. The artillery<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">[363]</a></span>
-reopened, and the battle was won. General Scarlett’s dragoons came up
-at this moment, but General Pelissier deemed pursuit unwise. The
-enemy retired on Mackenzie’s Farm. He left on the field a quantity of
-fascines, planks, beams, ladders, and sappers’ tools, destined to destroy the
-works of the besiegers. He left also 2500 dead; and 1620 of his
-wounded were that night in the ambulances of the French, who took, in
-addition, 500 prisoners. They themselves lost 180 killed, and 810
-wounded&mdash;chiefly on and near the bridge. This great battle occurred
-the day succeeding the First Napoleon’s natal anniversary, and the fête-day
-of the French Empire. It was on that very morning that the Queen
-of England set out to pay the first Royal visit ever made by English
-Monarch to a Sovereign of that warlike dynasty. It seemed as if events
-both in the East and in the West were conspiring to raise to the highest
-point the glory of the Napoleon destinies at one and the same hour.”</p>
-
-
-<p>TREBIA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between Hannibal and the
-Romans. Hannibal taking advantage of the well known impetuosity
-of the Romans, sent over at first a detachment of 1000 horse. These
-pretending defeat, hastily recrossed the river, followed by the main body
-of the Romans. By this means the defeat of the Romans was insured.
-Benumbed with wading up to their armpits in water, they became an
-easy prey to their enemies; 26,000 were either slain, or drowned in
-attempting to cross the river.</p>
-
-
-<p>TRINCOMALEE.&mdash;Taken from the Dutch by the English in
-1782. Retaken by the French same year; restored to the Dutch in
-1783. Surrendered to the British, under Colonel Stewart, August 26th,
-1795, and was confirmed by the peace of Amiens in 1802. Of a series
-of actions fought off Trincomalee, between Sir Edward Hughes and the
-French Admiral Suffrein, one was fought February 18th, 1782, the
-enemy having 11 ships and the British 9. On April 12th following,
-they had 18 to 11 ships, and on July 6th, same year, they had 15 to 12
-ships. Yet, in every one of these battles, the French suffered severe
-defeats.</p>
-
-
-<p>TRIPLE ALLIANCE.&mdash;This celebrated party alliance between
-the States General and England against France, was for the protection
-of the Netherlands (Holland and Belgium). Sweden afterwards joined
-the alliance, January 28th, 1668.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">[364]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>TRIUMPH.&mdash;On the day appointed, the General, crowned with
-laurels, pronounced an oration to the soldiers and surrounding multitude,
-relating his military achievements; then the march began with a long
-procession, in which were carried inscriptions, containing the names of
-the nations, provinces, or cities, he had conquered; the priests assisted,
-leading the beasts used for sacrifice. The conqueror, in an ivory car,
-richly ornamented, closed the procession. He was surrounded by his
-friends and relations, bearing branches of laurel; the procession stopped
-at the Capitol, where they sacrificed to Jupiter, and deposited part of
-the spoils. The lustre of the Roman conquests was often tarnished by
-their inhumanity to the conquered; their prisoners, if of high rank,
-were only reserved to suffer superior mortifications; the captive Monarchs
-and Generals were bound in chains, their heads closely shaven (a mark
-of peculiar degradation), and they were thus presented a sad spectacle to
-the gazing multitude.</p>
-
-
-<p>TROYES.&mdash;Celebrated for the treaty, May 24th, 1420. The French
-were driven from Troyes by the Allied armies, February 7th, 1814.
-Retaken by Napoleon, February 28th, and finally occupied by the Allies,
-March 4th, same year.</p>
-
-
-<p>TYRE.&mdash;A celebrated city in Asia Minor. Besieged by Nebuchadnezzar,
-<span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 572, and the city demolished a year after its rebuilding.
-Taken by Alexander the Great, who spent seven months in the siege,
-August 20th, 332 <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> Thousands of the inhabitants were crucified by
-Alexander, along the shore, for the bravery with which they had
-defended their city.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="U" id="U"></a>U.</h3>
-
-
-<p>ULM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;A fierce and bloody engagement between the
-French and Austrians, the latter commanded by General Mack, and the
-French by Marshal Ney. The French gained a complete victory, the
-Austrians losing 36,000 men as prisoners, the flower of their army, and
-an immense number of killed and wounded. Fought, October 17th,
-and 19th, 1805.</p>
-
-
-<p>UNIFORMS.&mdash;First used in France by Louis XIV in 1668,
-adopted in England not long after.</p>
-
-
-<p>USHANT, NAVAL BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span>
-French fleets, when after an indecisive action of three hours, under cover of
-the night, the latter withdrew in a deceptive manner to the harbour of
-Brest. Keppel commanded the English fleet and the Count d’Ovillier the
-French. A dispute occurring between the English Admiral and the
-second in command caused the victory to be not so complete as it would
-otherwise have been. Fought, July 27th, 1778.</p>
-
-
-<p>UTRECHT, TREATY OF.&mdash;The Union of the seven Provinces
-began here <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1579. Celebrated treaty, April 11th, 1713. Surrendered
-to the Prussians, May 9th, 1787. Possessed by the French, January
-17th, 1795.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="V" id="V"></a>V.</h3>
-
-
-<p>VALENCIA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Taken by the Earl of Peterborough
-in 1705, and soon again lost. Resisted the attempts of many, but was
-taken from the Spaniards by the French, under Suchet, January 9th,
-1812; all the garrison, 16,000 men, and immense stores, surrendered.</p>
-
-
-<div><a name="VAL" id="VAL"></a></div>
-<p>VALENCIENNES, SIEGE OF.&mdash;Besieged from May 23rd to July
-14th, when the French garrison surrendered to the Duke of York, 1793.
-Retaken by the French, on capitulation; the garrison and 1100 emigrants
-made prisoners, with immense stores, viz. 200 cannon, 1,000,000 pounds
-of gunpowder, 8,000,000 florins in specie, 6,000,000 of livres, 1000 head
-of cattle, &amp;c., on August 30th, 1794.</p>
-
-
-<p>VALUE OF PRINCES.&mdash;£400,000 was the price paid to the Scots
-for delivering up to the English Charles I.</p>
-
-<p>Margaret of Anjou was ransomed for £12,500.</p>
-
-<p>£1,000 offered by Parliament for the head of Charles II.</p>
-
-<p>£30,000 for that of the Pretender.</p>
-
-<p>Richard I was ransomed for the large sum of £100,000 or 150,000
-marks; he had before been sold by the Duke Leopold of Austria, to
-the Emperor Henry IV, for £60,000.</p>
-
-<p>King John, of France, was to be redeemed by his subjects for the
-enormous sum of 3,000,000 crowns, but they could not raise the amount.</p>
-
-
-<p>VARNA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The Emperor Nicholas of Russia arrived
-before Varna, the head-quarters of his army, then besieging the place,
-August 5th, 1828. The Turks made a vigorous attack on the besiegers
-August 7th; another on the 21st, but they were repulsed; surrendered to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span>
-the Russians, October 1st, 1828. Famous as the point of <em>rendezvous</em> of the
-Allied army, preparatory to the Crimean war. The cholera made dreadful
-devastation in both the English and French armies; then a great fire
-nearly destroyed the town, but purified the air; and the news of the
-Crimean invasion expedition dispelled the gloom and melancholy which
-pervaded, to a very great degree, our troops.</p>
-
-
-<p>VIENNA.&mdash;Besieged by the Turks, under Solyman the Magnificent,
-with an army of 300,000 men, but forced to raise the siege having lost
-70,000 soldiers. Again besieged in 1683, and the siege raised by the
-celebrated John Sobieski, King of Poland, who totally routed the Turkish
-army of 100,000 men. Taken by the French, November 14th, 1805,
-and afterwards retaken and taken for some time.</p>
-
-
-<p>VILLA FRANCA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Engagement here between the
-British cavalry, under Cotton, and the French cavalry, under Soult. The
-French were defeated, April 10th, 1812. When Napoleon heard of the
-result he reproached Soult the first time in his life.</p>
-
-
-<p>VIMEIRA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British, under Wellington,
-and the whole of the French and Spanish forces, in Portugal, under
-Marshal Guinot, whom the British signally defeated, August 21st, 1808.
-The enemy’s force were 14,000 men, of whom 1600 were cavalry. They
-attacked the English at Vimeira early in the morning. The principal
-assault was on the English centre and left, with the view, according to a
-favourite French expression of “driving the English into the sea,” which
-was close in their rear. The attack was made with great bravery but as
-bravely repulsed. It was repeated by Kellerman, at the head of the French
-reserve, which was also signally repulsed, and the French being charged
-with the British bayonet, withdrew on all sides in confusion, leaving many
-prisoners, a General Officer, and 14 cannon, with ammunition, in the
-hands of the British. French loss, killed and wounded, 1800. English
-720; only one-half of the British force was actually engaged.</p>
-
-
-<p>VINEGAR HILL, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the British troops and
-the Irish insurgents, in 1798. The rebels suffered a severe defeat, and
-much blood shed on both sides. June 12th, 1798.</p>
-
-
-<p>VITTORIA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, June 21st, 1813, between<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">[367]</a></span>
-the French and English. The following is a graphic account of this great
-victory:</p>
-
-<p>“The splendid achievements of the campaign of 1812 produced their
-natural results. Even the torpid obstinacy of Castilian pride was at
-last overcome, and by a decree of the Cortes of September 22nd, 1812,
-the great English General was invested with the supreme command of
-the Spanish armies. He repaired to Cadiz on the 24th of December,
-and on the 30th he was received by the Cortes in full assembly. The
-news of Napoleon’s overthrow in Russia had just arrived, and all hearts
-seemed to expand with hope of the speedy expulsion of his troops from
-Spain.</p>
-
-<p>England herself also now began to put forth efforts commensurate with
-the crisis. At the opening of the year 1813 her land forces consisted of
-228,000 men, besides 28,000 in India, 95,000 militia at home, and
-32,000 foreign troops in the British service. And, besides these, she
-had 200,000 native troops in India, a local militia of 300,000, and a
-yeomanry cavalry of 68,000, forming a grand total of 949,000 men in
-arms; and her expenditure in the year amounted to £118,000,000 sterling.</p>
-
-<p>Thus supported, her great Commander, of whom it may be questioned
-if his equal <em>in all respects</em> ever stood upon a field of battle, looked forward
-with reasonable expectation to a coming harvest; to a campaign in which,
-after four years’ toils and sufferings, the grand object of the final expulsion
-of the French from Spain might be anticipated. And assuredly the
-means he took to gain this end in the simplest and completest manner,
-were marked by the most consummate skill and wisdom.</p>
-
-<p>To be nearer to his supplies, and to relieve the wasted provinces of
-Spain, Wellington had withdrawn his army into cantonments on the
-Coa and the Agueda, that is, in Leon and in Beira, or Northern Portugal.
-All the Lusitanian kingdom had long been free from the French, and
-the campaign of 1812 had compelled them to abandon all Andalusia
-Murcia, Granada, Asturias and Estramadura. The French army now
-occupied only central and eastern Spain, the bulk of the troops being
-quartered in New and Old Castile.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington’s chief attention was naturally devoted, during the winter,
-to the task of reorganizing his forces for the final struggle of the opening
-year. His own English army was the only force he had which was at
-all in a condition to march against the enemy. Of the Spanish troops
-he found it necessary to give the Spanish Minister of War, in March
-1813, the following description:&mdash;“There is not a single battalion or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">[368]</a></span>
-squadron in the Spanish armies in a condition to take the field; there
-is not in the whole kingdom of Spain a depôt of provisions for the support
-of a single battalion for one day; there is not a shilling of money in any
-military chest. To move them forward at any point now, against even
-inconsiderable bodies of the enemy, would be to insure their certain
-destruction.”</p>
-
-<p>But by unceasing exertions these evils were, in a measure, overcome:
-and Wellington found himself, in the month of May, 1813, for the first
-time in a state approaching to an equality with the French. Their force,
-which in former years had often amounted to nearly 400,000 men, was
-now reduced to 239,000 of which about 197,000 were present with the
-eagles. Meanwhile Wellington’s nominal force now amounted to 200,000,
-and although only about one-half of this number were fit to take the field,
-the remainder was still of use in maintaining the communications, guarding
-convoys, and cutting off the foraging parties of the enemy. His
-principal army of English and Portuguese mustered about 75,000 men,
-of whom about 44,000 were English. The efficiency of the Portuguese
-troops was advanced in a surprising manner; reinforcements, especially of
-cavalry, had arrived from England; and the Anglo-Portuguese troops,
-conscious of an improved organization, were more confident than ever;
-while the French, hearing of the calamities of their brethren in Russia, were
-proportionably depressed. Even the Spaniards had, in some numbers,
-been brought into better condition:&mdash;Wellington had kept them fed and
-clothed during the winter, and had now several efficient corps of native
-troops, ready to act in conjunction with his own army. Hence, on the
-22nd of May the great English General began his march, and when he
-crossed the stream which divides Portugal from Spain, he rose in his
-stirrups, and waving his hand, exclaimed, “Good bye to Portugal!”</p>
-
-<p>The military skill and talent of a commander is never more conspicuously
-seen than in those manœuvres by which an enemy is defeated
-<em>without a battle</em>. Such manœuvres often resemble the skill and power
-with which an able and fearless horseman, even while on the ground,
-will control a powerful courser, forcing him backwards by a small leverage
-upon his mouth. In the present instance the French still had a considerable
-army and able Generals, and they occupied the centre of Spain,
-defending the capital, and ready to fight, if needful, a succession of
-battles before they would relinquish their prey. But their more able
-antagonist forced them to retreat, step by step, without fighting, until
-their last and only stand was made at Vittoria, almost in sight of France;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">[369]</a></span>
-and then delivering his attack, he utterly routed them, and chased them
-over the Pyrenees. On the 22nd of May, as we have said, the English
-army marched out of Portugal; on the 21st of June it fought and gained
-the battle of Vittoria; and before the 1st of July the shattered remains
-of the French army, with their King Joseph at their head, had fled over
-the Pyrenees. Little more than a single month had sufficed to destroy,
-uproot, and utterly abolish the French dominion in Spain, and that at a
-time, too, when there were still 197,000 French soldiers in the field,
-under many able Commanders.</p>
-
-<p>A brave general of the ordinary kind would have marched in quest of
-the French, lying in front of Madrid; would have defeated them, and
-taken the capital. All the smaller bodies of French in Spain would then
-have been called round the King; and in July a second battle would
-have been fought in Arragon, or in front of Burgos. One more victory,&mdash;a
-third, supposing the English to have been always victorious, might
-have sent the French out of Spain; but any mistake or mishap might
-have prevented this. But Wellington, by masterly tactics, always threatening
-to turn the enemy’s right wing and to get upon his communications,
-backed his foe as a man backs a horse, till he could bring the opposing
-army into a position fit for his purpose; and then, delivering at once a
-knock-down blow, he drove the whole mass, king and army, in four-and-twenty
-hours, out of Spain.</p>
-
-<p>King Joseph had reckoned, in the spring, upon a direct attack by the
-great road of Madrid; but when it would come, or where it would fall,
-he could not divine, for Wellington kept him constantly in doubt, by a
-variety of feigned movements.</p>
-
-<p>At last, towards the end of May, he found that Wellington, sending
-40,000 men under Graham through the difficult passes of the
-Tras-os-Montes, and moving himself a week after on the Esla, had
-carried his whole army, by the 4th of June, over the Douro, and was now
-in full march for Valladolid. If he should gain that place, Joseph well
-knew that his communications would be cut off, and his whole army
-taken, to use Napoleon’s phrase, “<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">flagrante delicto</i>.” Hastily, therefore,
-Madrid was abandoned, the whole army put in retreat; and now Joseph
-would make his stand at Burgos.</p>
-
-<p>Thus 100 miles of Spanish ground had been cleared of the
-French without firing a shot. And now, Joseph would fight for his
-kingdom in this, his second position. But his Generals examined the
-country, and disliked the prospect. Meanwhile Wellington pushed on,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span>
-conducting his operations continually on the same principle,&mdash;pushing
-forwards his left wing, and out-flanking and turning the French right.
-Again perplexed, Joseph now abandoned his second purpose, as he had
-abandoned his first. Burgos must be given up, and the retreat must be
-continued on Vittoria. Into Vittoria there was poured, therefore, the
-artillery depôts of Madrid, of Valladolid, and of Burgos, and the baggage
-and stores of several armies; with the King’s valuables, the archives, and
-papers of the State and of the army, and a large amount of treasure.</p>
-
-<p>Vittoria is only 26 miles from Irun, on the French frontier. Here,
-therefore, had been driven together, like a flock of sheep, the intruders
-and plunderers of Spain, and one vigorous assault only was needed to
-rid the land of them altogether. It was not long delayed.</p>
-
-<p>It was about the 15th of June when King Joseph found his army
-assembled round Vittoria, reckoning, Napier tells us, from 60,000
-to 70,000 men. Wellington had left his sixth division at Medina
-de Pomar, and therefore had 60,000 English and Portuguese, besides
-some Spanish troops. In the number and calibre of their guns the
-French had the advantage.</p>
-
-<p>From the mountain-region through which the British army was
-marching, the way to Vittoria lay over many a rugged steep, and through
-many dangerous defiles; but no difficulty was allowed to stop their
-march. “Six days they toiled unceasingly; but on the seventh, swelled
-by a Spanish reinforcement, they burst like raging streams from every
-defile, and went foaming into the basin of Vittoria.”</p>
-
-<p>The French army was drawn up round this basin, which is a small
-plain about 10 miles in length, by 8 in breadth, through which runs
-the river Zadora. As this battle-field was approached by various mountain-passes,
-Wellington resolved to enter it from three sides at once,
-forming three distinct combats. General Graham, with a corps of about
-20,000 men, was to attack from the British left, and to pass the
-Zadora at Ariaga, near the city of Vittoria. Hill was to attack from
-the right with an equal force. Wellington stationed himself in the
-centre, with a rather larger force, which was to descend from the mountain
-ridges, to cross the Zadora by various roads, and to march straight
-upon Vittoria. In fact, the whole battle was merely an attack on a
-strong army hemmed in, by an army equally strong, and marching to
-the attack on three sides at the same moment.</p>
-
-<p>At daybreak the English began to move; but the distance to Vittoria
-was several miles, and every step was to be contended for. Hill reached<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">[371]</a></span>
-the village of Puebla about ten in the morning; pushed on, fighting hard,
-till he gained the village of Subijana de Alava, and so placed himself in
-communication with the English centre. Graham had to make a march
-of several miles to reach Ariaga, near Vittoria; but about one o’clock his
-attack began to tell. This was a serious one for the French; for, if
-successful, it would cut them off from the great road to Bayonne. King
-Joseph, finding both his flanks thus threatened, sent an order to the
-centre to retire. But the troops were fiercely engaged, and retreat was
-difficult. Meanwhile, however, three attacks of the English, right, left,
-and centre, were all succeeding; and step by step, the French were being
-pushed back upon Vittoria.</p>
-
-<p>“At six o’clock,” says Napier, “the French reached the last defensible
-height in front of Vittoria. Behind them was the plain in which the
-city stood, and beyond the city were thousands of carriages and animals,
-and of men, women, and children, crowded together in all the madness of
-terror; and as the English shot went booming overhead, the vast crowd
-started and swerved with a convulsive movement, while a dull and horrid
-cry of distress arose; but there was no hope, no stay for army or multitude,
-it was the wreck of a nation!” Still the courage of the French
-soldiers was unquelled. Their artillery for a time kept the Allies in
-check, but suddenly the fourth English division, rushing forward, carried
-a hill on the left, and the heights were at once abandoned. Joseph
-finding the main road so completely blocked up by carriages that the
-artillery could not pass, indicated the road of Salvatierra as the line of
-retreat, and the army went off in a confused and yet compact body on
-that side, leaving Vittoria on its left. The British infantry followed
-hard, and the light cavalry galloped through the town to intercept the
-new line of retreat. All became disorder and confusion, the guns were
-left, while the artillerymen fled with the horses. Vehemently and closely
-did the British pursue, and nothing could stop their victorious career
-until night and the disappearance of the flying masses had ended the
-struggle. The French lost all their artillery, all their baggage, all their
-equipages, all their stores, treasures, and papers, “so that no man,” says a
-French writer, “could prove even how much pay was due to him.
-Generals and subordinate officers were alike reduced to the clothes on
-their backs, and many of them were barefooted.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never was victory more complete. The trophies were innumerable.
-Marshal Jourdan’s baton of command was brought to Lord Wellington,
-who sent it to the Prince Regent, from whom he quickly received one of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span>
-an English marshal in return. The loss of the French was never ascertained;
-that of the Allies was 3,567 English, 1,059 Portuguese, and 550
-Spanish. The spoil taken was enormous. “The soldiers of the army,”
-wrote Lord Wellington, “have got among them about 1,000,000 sterling
-in money, with the exception of about 100,000 dollars found in the
-military chest. Rich vestures of all sorts, gold and silver plate,
-pictures, jewels, parrots, monkeys, and children, lay scattered about the
-field amidst weeping mothers and wailing children. Joseph himself
-narrowly escaped; a squadron of dragoons pursued his carriage and fired
-into it.”</p>
-
-<p>All the remaining bodies of the French in Spain fell in the fall of
-Vittoria. They escaped out of the kingdom by various roads as quickly
-as possible. “Joseph’s reign was over, the crown had fallen from his
-head, and after years of toil and combats, which had rather been admired
-than understood, the great English leader, emerging from the chaos of
-the Peninsular struggle, stood on the summit of the Pyrenees a recognized
-conqueror. From those lofty pinnacles the clangour of his
-trumpets pealed clear and loud, and the splendour of his genius appeared
-as a flaming beacon to warring nations.”<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus, in some five or six weeks, had a great kingdom been cleared of
-its invaders and oppressors&mdash;not by the power of superior numbers, but
-by the natural ascendency of a consummate military genius. “Here,”
-remarks Napier, “was a noble army driven like sheep before prowling
-wolves, although in every action the officers had been prompt and skilful,
-and the soldiers brave, firm, and obedient. The French troops were
-excellent and numerous, and the country strong and favourable for
-defence; but the soul of a great Commander was wanting; and hence,
-the Esla, the Tormes, the Douro, the Pisuerga, seemed to be all dried up,
-the mountains to be levelled; and 60,000 veteran soldiers, willing to
-fight at every step, were hurried with all the tumult and confusion
-of defeat across the Ebro.”</p>
-
-<p>The deliverance of the Peninsula, by a force so far inferior to that of
-the French, must always remain one of Wellington’s greatest glories.
-The same French writer, whom we have already quoted, Jules Maurel,
-remarks this surprising fact. He says: “The truth is, that from 1808
-to 1813, Wellington never had 30,000 English under his orders, even
-at a period when the Imperial armies deluged the Peninsula with no
-fewer than 370,000 men.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Nor were the results of this great day confined to the Spanish peninsula.
-Like its predecessor, the victory of Salamanca, the battle of Vittoria shook
-the whole continent of Europe. Napoleon himself, holding his ground at
-Dresden, had, up to this moment, succeeded in withholding Austria from
-any actual participation in the confederacy against him. He had even
-succeeded, on the 30th of June, in obtaining a convention for the restoration
-of peace between himself, Russia and Prussia. But the very next
-day the news of the expulsion of the French from Spain reached Dresden,
-filling Napoleon and his ministers with consternation, and giving new life
-and vigour to the Russian and Prussian councils. The Allies regretted
-that any cessation of arms had been agreed to, and they began to long for
-its termination. The very moment it expired by lapse of time, Austria
-joined the Allies; war was actively resumed, and the autumn had not ended
-before Napoleon had been driven across the Rhine, and Germany freed
-from the presence of the French armies.</p>
-
-<p>The French writer from whom we have just quoted, Jules Maurel,
-thus notices this remarkable passage in modern history:</p>
-
-<p>“Scarcely had the armistice been signed when intelligence arrived that
-the French had lost everything in Spain. In 40 days Wellington had
-turned, one after another, all the positions occupied by the French armies
-of the centre, of the south and of the north, and had crossed the Tormes,
-the Douro, the Esla, the Carrion, and the Ebro. He had reached Vittoria;
-he had gained a decisive battle; he had expelled King Joseph from
-the Peninsula, and had planted his army on the Pyrenees. In the beginning
-of May he was in Portugal; on the 23rd of June he was on the
-frontiers of France. The defeat of Vittoria entirely neutralized the victories
-of Lutzen and Bautzen, and at once restored the coalition.”</p>
-
-
-<p>VOUGLE, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between Alaric II and Clovis
-of France. Alaric was entirely overthrown, and the whole country
-subdued. Clovis afterwards made Paris the capital, and became the
-founder of the French Monarchy.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="W" id="W"></a>W.</h3>
-
-
-<p>WAGRAM, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, July 5th, 1809, between the
-Austrians and French, in which the former were completely overthrown;
-20,000 were taken by the French. The slaughter on both sides was
-dreadful. The defeated army retreated into Moravia.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>WAKEFIELD, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, December 31st, 1460,
-between Queen Margaret, the wife of Henry VI, and the Duke of York,
-in which the latter was slain, and 3000 Yorkists fell in the field. This
-was one of the bloodiest battles between the houses of York and Lancaster.</p>
-
-
-<p>WALCHEREN EXPEDITION.&mdash;This important expedition consisted
-of thirty-five ships of the line, and 200 smaller vessels, and
-40,000 troops, under the command of the Earl of Chatham. The fleet
-was commanded by Sir Richard Strachan. A large number of the forces
-died, and the whole expedition came to nothing, December 28th, 1809.</p>
-
-
-<p>WARSAW, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The Poles suffered a great defeat here
-from the Russians, October 10th and 12th, 1794. Suwarrow, the Russian
-General, after the siege of Warsaw, cruelly butchered 30,000 Poles,
-November 8th, 1794. The battle preceding the surrender of Warsaw
-was fearfully bloody; of 26,000 men, more than 10,000 were killed;
-nearly 10,000 were made prisoners, and only 2000 escaped the merciless
-fury of the Russian butcher. Another battle fought here, and the Poles
-again defeated, September 7th and 8th, 1831.</p>
-
-
-<p>WASHINGTON.&mdash;Taken, August 24th, 1814, in the war between
-Great Britain and the United States, by General Ross, when all the
-superb national structures were consumed, in a general conflagration&mdash;the
-troops not sparing the national library.</p>
-
-
-<p>WATERLOO, BATTLE OF.&mdash;The greatest of all British engagements,
-fought June 18th, 1815, between the Duke of Wellington and
-Napoleon. The carnage on both sides was immense. The account of this
-great battle is taken from the “Twelve Great Battles of England.” The
-following is a fine account of the visit of Scott to the field of Waterloo
-after the battle, and also Alison on the defeat of the Old Guard:</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">WATERLOO AT NOON ON THE DAY AFTER THE BATTLE.</p>
-
-<p>“On a surface of two square miles, it was ascertained that 50,000 men
-and horses were lying! The luxurious crop of ripe grain which had
-covered the field of battle was reduced to litter, and beaten into the earth;
-and the surface, trodden down by the cavalry, and furrowed deeply by the
-cannon wheels, was strewn with many a relic of the fight. Helmets
-and cuirasses, shattered fire-arms and broken swords; all the variety of
-military ornaments; Lancer caps and Highland bonnets; uniforms of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span>
-every colour, plume, and pennon; musical instruments, the apparatus of
-artillery, drums, bugles; but, good God! why dwell on the harrowing
-picture of a foughten field? Each and every ruinous display bore mute
-testimony to the misery of such a battle. * * * Could the melancholy
-appearance of this scene of death be heightened, it would be by witnessing
-the researches of the living midst its desolation for the objects of
-their love. Mothers, and wives, and children, for days were occupied
-in that mournful duty; and the confusion of the corpses, friend and foe
-intermingled as they were, often rendered the attempt at recognising
-individuals difficult, and in some cases impossible. * * * In many
-places the dead lay four deep upon each other, marking the spot some
-British square had occupied, when exposed for hours to the murderous
-fire of a French battery. Outside, lancer and cuirassier were scattered
-thickly on the earth. Madly attempting to force the serried bayonets of
-the British, they had fallen, in the bootless essay, by the musketry of
-the inner files. Farther on, you traced the spot where the cavalry of
-France and England had encountered. Chasseur and hussar were intermingled;
-and the heavy Norman horse of the Imperial Guard were
-interspersed with the grey chargers which had carried Albion’s chivalry.
-Here the Highlander and tirailleur lay, side by side, together; and the
-heavy dragoon, with Green Erin’s badge upon his helmet, was grappling
-in death with the Polish lancer. * * * On the summit of the ridge,
-where the ground was covered with death, and trodden fetlock-deep in
-mud and gore, by the frequent rush of rival cavalry, the thick-strewn
-corpses of the Imperial Guard pointed out the spot where Napoleon had
-been defeated. Here, in column, that favoured corps, on whom his last
-chance rested, had been annihilated; and the advance and repulse of the
-Guard was traceable by a mass of fallen Frenchmen. In the hollow
-below, the last struggle of France had been vainly made; for the Old
-Guard, when the middle battalion had been forced back, attempted to
-meet the British, and afford time for their disorganised companions to
-rally. Here the British left, which had converged upon the French
-centre, had come up; and here the bayonet closed the contest.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">DEFEAT OF THE OLD GUARD AT WATERLOO.</p>
-
-<p>“The Imperial Guard was divided into two columns, which, advancing
-from different parts of the field, were to converge to the decisive point on
-the British right centre, about midway between La Haye Sainte and the
-nearest enclosures of Hougoumont. Reille commanded the first column,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span>
-which was supported by all the infantry and cavalry which remained of
-his corps on either flank, and advanced up the hill in a slanting direction,
-beside the orchard of Hougoumont. The second was headed by Ney in
-person, and moving down the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">chaussée</i> of Charleroi to the bottom of the
-slope, it then inclined to the left, and leaving La Haye Sainte to the
-right, mounted the slope, also in a slanting direction, converging towards
-the same point whither the other column was directing its steps. Napoleon
-went with this column as far as the place where it left the hollow of
-the high road, and spoke a few words&mdash;the last he ever addressed to his
-soldiers&mdash;to each battalion in passing. The men moved on with shouts
-of <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Vive l’Empereur!</i> so loud as to be heard along the whole British line,
-above the roar of artillery, and it was universally thought the Emperor
-himself was heading the attack. But, meanwhile, Wellington had not
-been idle. Sir Frederick Adam’s brigade, consisting of the 52nd, 71st,
-and 95th, and General Maitland’s brigade of Guards, which had been
-drawn from Hougoumont, with Chasse’s Dutch troops, yet fresh, were
-ordered to bring up their right shoulders, and wheel inward, with their
-guns in front, towards the edge of the ridge; and the whole batteries in
-that quarter inclined to the left, so as to expose the advancing columns
-coming up to a concentric fire on either flank: the central point, where
-the attack seemed likely to fall, was strengthened by nine heavy guns;
-the troops at that point were drawn up four deep, in the form of an
-interior angle: the Guards forming one side, the 73rd and 30th the
-other;&mdash;while the light cavalry of Vivian and Vandeleur was brought
-up behind the line, at the back of La Haye Sainte, and stationed close
-in the rear, so as to be ready to make the most of any advantage which
-might occur.</p>
-
-<p>It was a quarter past seven when the first column of the Old
-Guard, under Reille, advanced to the attack; but the effect of the
-artillery on its flank was such, that the cavalry were quickly dispersed:
-and the French battalions uncovered, showed their long flank to Adam’s
-guns, which opened on them a fire so terrible, that the head of the
-column, constantly pushed on by the mass in the rear, never advanced,
-but melted away as it came into the scene of carnage. Shortly after,
-Ney’s column approached with an intrepid step; the veterans of Wagram
-and Austerlitz were there; no force on earth seemed capable of resisting
-them; they had decided every former battle. Drouot was beside the
-Marshal, who repeatedly said to him they were about to gain a glorious
-victory. General Friant was killed by Ney’s side: the Marshal’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_377" id="Page_377">[377]</a></span>
-own horse was shot under him; but bravely advancing on foot, with his
-drawn sabre in his hand, he sought death from the enemy’s volleys.
-The impulse of this massy column was at first irresistible; the guns
-were forced back, and the Imperial Guard came up to within forty paces
-of the English Foot Guards, and the 73rd and 30th regiments. These
-men were lying down, four deep, in a small ditch behind the rough road,
-which there goes along the summit of the ridge. “Up Guards, and at
-them!” cried the Duke, who had repaired to the spot; and the whole,
-on both sides of the angle into which the French were advancing,
-springing up, moved forward a few paces, and poured in a volley so close
-and well directed, that nearly the whole first two ranks of the French
-fell at once. Gradually advancing, they now pushed the immense column,
-yet bravely combatting, down the slope; and Wellington, at that decisive
-instant, ordered Vivian’s brigade to charge the retiring body on one
-flank, while Adam’s foot advanced against it on the other. The effect
-of this triple attack, at once in front and on both flanks, was decisive:
-the 52nd and 71st, swiftly converging inward, threw in so terrible a
-volley on their left flank, that the Imperial Guard swerved in disorder
-to the right; and at that very instant the 10th, 18th, and 21st dragoons,
-under Vivian, bore down with irresistible fury, and piercing right
-through the body, threw it into irrevocable confusion. The cry, “Tout
-est perdu&mdash;la Garde recule!” arose in the French ranks, and the enormous
-mass, driven headlong down the hill, overwhelmed everything
-which came in its way, and spread disorder through the whole French
-centre.”</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">DESCRIPTION OF WATERLOO FROM THE TWELVE BATTLES.</p>
-
-<p>“We have seen the three several stages by which the Duke of Wellington
-had conducted the British army to that elevated position in which the peace
-of 1814 left it. We have seen how it had, first, on the broad fields of
-Castile, boldly encountered a French army of twice its strength, and had
-sent it back in defeat. Next, at Salamanca, meeting an army of equal
-force, it had scattered it by an assault of a single hour, annihilating at a
-blow one-half of its strength. And lastly, falling upon the intrusive King
-himself in his final position of retreat and defence at Vittoria, it had
-driven his entire array, like a flock of frightened sheep, over the Pyrenees.
-After those triumphs, by which a whole realm of great extent had been
-delivered from its invaders, there seemed scarcely any way by which the
-fame and honour of the British army and its illustrious Commander
-could be enhanced, except by an event not to be anticipated&mdash;an encounter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_378" id="Page_378">[378]</a></span>
-with the great conqueror of modern times, now an exile at Elba; and a
-triumph over him.</p>
-
-<p>This event, however unlikely it might seem, was reserved for England’s
-soldiers and her General; and it occurred in less than a year after
-the apparent restoration of peace. Napoleon suddenly left his island-home,
-reappeared in France, gathered his soldiers round him, and re-entered
-Paris as once more its Emperor. Naturally enough, the Sovereigns
-who had compelled his retirement, scarcely nine months before,
-resolved to maintain their position; and they covenanted with each
-other to place armies amounting to 600,000 men on the soil of France
-in the course of July, 1815. The British portion of this force was
-collecting together in the months of May and June, under the Duke’s
-command; when Napoleon determined not to wait for the attack,
-but to carry the war into the allied territories; and, accordingly,
-in the second week in June he entered Belgium. Before he had proceeded
-twenty miles he encountered both the English and the Prussian
-armies, and on the fourth day, at a distance of about thirty miles from
-the French frontier, was fought the great and decisive battle of
-Waterloo.</p>
-
-<p>This momentous contest will require of us a more lengthened description
-than we have given of any of the great battles; both because it
-was an event of the highest possible importance to the fate of
-England, of Europe, and of the world; and also because it was, so to
-speak, a succession of battles fought on one field, and on the same day.
-In a former case we have seen “an army of forty thousand men defeated
-in forty minutes;” but here the deadly strife occupied nearly ten hours.
-The French opened the attack at eleven in the morning, and at nine
-o’clock at night the last of their battalions had not yet quitted the
-field. In the course of these ten hours four or five desperate and prolonged
-contests had taken place; each of which might have been justly
-called a battle. It will be impossible, therefore, to give any fair or complete
-idea of this long continued struggle, without occupying much
-greater space than is required for an ordinary battle.</p>
-
-<p>It is also a history which is thickly strewn with controversies. The
-defeated General himself was the first to open this wordy strife. The
-loss of the fight of Waterloo was a fact to which he never could
-be reconciled. That battle hurled him, finally, from the throne on
-which he had for the second time seated himself, and sent him to wear
-out the few remaining years of his life on the rock of St. Helena. In<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_379" id="Page_379">[379]</a></span>
-that retirement he occupied himself, for the most part, in a series of
-efforts to resuscitate his extinguished “glory.”<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> In these attempts he
-was hampered by no moral scruples; for, as Emerson has remarked,
-“this, the highest-placed individual in the world, had not the merit of
-common truth and honesty; he would steal, slander, assassinate, as his
-interest indicated.” Any reasonable man, therefore, will read his “Historical
-Memoir,” book ix, written at St. Helena, and published in London
-in 1820, with that caution which is so plainly called for when a
-document is confessedly an <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">exparte</i> statement, and written by one who is
-known to be of unscrupulous character.</p>
-
-<p>Yet that document has been received in many quarters with a credulity
-which is somewhat surprising. It is true that this credulity may be
-accounted for in the case of the French historians&mdash;who, obliged to confess
-that their defeat at Waterloo was “horrible”&mdash;a “massacre”&mdash;a “deluge
-of blood”&mdash;are glad to have supplied to them, under Napoleon’s own
-hand, the apology that he was overmatched and greatly outnumbered;
-and that yet, after all, he would have proved victorious if one of his
-Generals had not disobeyed his commands.</p>
-
-<p>The latter of these two pleas has been generally rejected by English
-writers&mdash;utterly denied as its truth has been by the party so accused.
-But, strangely enough, although there was every probability that Napoleon’s
-account of his own strength, and of that of his opponent, would be
-wholly untrustworthy&mdash;several of our best English writers have given
-entire credence of his statement of the real amount of his army; even
-while those statements are clearly refuted by abundant testimonies of
-many Frenchmen. And this point is not an immaterial one. For if we
-could admit the truth of Napoleon’s final conclusion, that “On that day
-69,000 French beat 120,000 men, and the victory was only torn from
-them between eight and nine o’clock at night by the increase of the allies
-to 150,000 men”<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a>&mdash;what merit could we assign to the British soldiers,
-or to their great commander, for such a victory? But, in sober verity,
-of all the falsehoods deliberately put forth by Napoleon in the course of
-his life, this, probably, is nearly the greatest.</p>
-
-<p>Let us, however, now endeavour to arrange our narrative in its proper
-order. The army which was assembling in Belgium under the Duke’s
-command, had reached, in the beginning of June, the respectable amount<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span>
-of almost 100,000 men. It contained, however, far more Belgians, Hanoverians,
-Brunswickers, and Dutchmen, than British troops, and far more
-new levies, landwehr, and militia, than of experienced soldiers. The English
-regiments which had followed the Duke through all the fields of
-Spain had been sent to America, and were now on the Atlantic, on their
-return home. He had some of the Guards, and a few other regiments of
-some standing; but the largest portion of the British troops which had
-yet reached Belgium were second battalions&mdash;new recruits drafted from
-the militia&mdash;and the same observation would apply to the Hanoverians
-and other auxiliaries.</p>
-
-<p>It was a knowledge of this intrinsic weakness of the Duke’s army, and
-of the fact that 10,000 or 15,000 of his old Peninsular troops would soon
-join him, that decided Napoleon, as is frankly confessed,<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> to make a
-sudden attack on the British and Prussian forces before they were fully
-prepared to meet him. Silently, therefore, but with his usual skill and
-rapidity, Napoleon brought together a powerful army, and on the
-morning of the 15th of June he moved forward and entered Belgium.</p>
-
-<p>And here we are met by the most current of all the fictions which are
-connected with this history. A variety of writers have repeated, one after
-another&mdash;Napoleon himself setting them the example&mdash;the story that the
-Duke never heard of the approach of the French until eleven o’clock in
-the evening of that day, while at a ball at Brussels. The facts, however,
-which are beyond dispute, are these&mdash;that the French did not enter
-Charleroi, the first Belgian town, until eleven or twelve o’clock on June
-the 15th&mdash;that tidings of their movement reached the Duke at Brussels
-by three o’clock, and that between four and five o’clock that same afternoon
-orders went out to every corps of the British army to move to the
-front, many of them beginning their march that same evening. There
-was no surprise, then, nor was there the loss of a single day. The French
-had not marched thirty miles&mdash;had not entered any place of the least
-importance, when, on the third day, they found the British army drawn
-up across their path, and had to fight the battle of Waterloo.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_381" id="Page_381">[381]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>They had, indeed, found their progress arrested still earlier. Entering
-Belgium on the 15th, they were stopped the very next day at Ligny by
-the Prussians, at Quatre Bras by a part of the English army. Marshal
-Blucher being defeated, and retiring a few miles, the Duke fell back also,
-and thus was enabled to draw up his army at Waterloo&mdash;a position which
-he had before observed to be an advantageous one, and which was in all
-respects well suited to the defence of Brussels.</p>
-
-<p>It was on the afternoon of the 17th June that the Duke’s army found
-itself assembled on this spot. The French army, led by Napoleon himself,
-soon approached, but the day was too far advanced to afford time for
-a general engagement. The two armies, therefore, took position, the
-English on a rising ground called Mont St. Jean, about half a mile in
-advance of the village of Waterloo, and nine miles on the French side of
-Brussels; the French on a series of heights facing Mont St. Jean, having
-the village of Planchenoit on the right, and looking down upon a small
-valley which separated the two hosts.</p>
-
-<p>And now we are naturally brought to a consideration of the question,
-what was the respective strength of these two armies? This is a point
-upon which Napoleon has bestowed great pains in his “Historical
-Memoir, Book ix,” and on which he has succeeded in deluding many
-English writers.</p>
-
-<p>As to the strength of the British army, there can be no kind of doubt
-upon that point, for the actual numbers present in each battalion and
-squadron was carefully recorded; and these records were needed to
-establish the respective rights of all present to honours and rewards. We
-have spoken of a gross amount of nearly 100,000 men. But of these,
-several thousands were required to garrison Antwerp, Ostend, Nieuport,
-Ypres, Tournai, and Mons,&mdash;the loss at Quatre Bras had been 3000 or
-4000, and a post of observation at Hal, consisted of nearly 6000. When
-these deductions were made, not quite 70,000 men remained, to meet
-Napoleon’s attack at Waterloo.</p>
-
-<p>The British infantry in the field were 15,181, and the German Legion
-infantry were 3301. The British and German cavalry were 7840, and
-their artillery was 3493. Thus the whole reliable force of the Duke&mdash;the
-force to which he must look to stand the French attack&mdash;was not
-quite 30,000 men. All this was well known to Napoleon, who, in his
-“Book ix,” says, “Victory appeared to be <em>certain</em>,” for the French army
-consisted of “good troops, while, in the enemy’s army, the English only,
-amounting to 40,000 <em>at most</em>, could be reckoned upon as such.”<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a></p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_382" id="Page_382">[382]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The “Allied troops,” who made up the Duke’s array, consisted of
-10,755 Hanoverians, many of whom were mere landwehr or militia, and
-nearly 25,000 Belgians, Dutch, and men of Brunswick and Nassau.
-Some of these fought gallantly, but others retreated whenever the French
-approached,&mdash;some actually flying from the field. Hence Napoleon justly
-says, “one Englishman might be counted for one Frenchman:&mdash;two
-Dutchmen, Prussians, or soldiers of the Confederation, for one Frenchman.”</p>
-
-<p>Adopting, therefore, Napoleon’s own method of calculation, we may
-say, that the Duke had an army nominally amounting to about 68,000
-men, really equal to something less than 50,000.</p>
-
-<p>And now we turn to the other side of the account. Here we must, to
-be safe, accept only French testimony. If we draw together all the
-credible statements of this class that we can find, we shall probably be
-able to arrive at a just conclusion.</p>
-
-<p>There was published at Paris, in 1815, a volume by an officer attached
-to the staff, which may be considered to be “the French account,” at
-the time and in detail, of this battle. In this volume, the whole army
-which entered Belgium is stated to have been “150,000 effective men of
-whom about 30,000 were cavalry.” It seems improbable that a staff-officer
-should have greatly erred, or that a Frenchman should have exaggerated
-the strength of the beaten army. Reckoning, therefore, the gross
-number to have been 150,000; and deducting 15,000 for losses at Ligny,
-and at Quatre Bras, we may estimate the force detached under Grouchy
-on the 17th, at about 38 or 40,000 men, and the strength of the French
-army at Waterloo at something more than 90,000.</p>
-
-<p>And this estimate precisely agrees with Napoleon’s own statement,
-written at Paris three days after the battle. In this bulletin he says,
-“We estimated the force of the English army at 80,000 men. We
-<em>supposed</em> that a Prussian corps which <em>might be</em> in line toward the right
-might be 15,000 men. The enemy’s force, then, was upwards of 90,000
-men; ours less numerous.”</p>
-
-<p>He is here speaking of the morning. But there was not a Prussian
-soldier in the field until five o’clock in the afternoon; and this Napoleon
-well knew. Why, then, does he here introduce a “supposed” Prussian
-corps? Clearly, in order to bring up the allied force to 95,000 men, so
-that he might be able to add, “Ours, <em>less numerous</em>.” He had every
-possible motive, as a beaten General, striving to make the best of his case,&mdash;for
-saying, <em>if he had dared</em>,&mdash;“The enemy was more than 90,000<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_383" id="Page_383">[383]</a></span>
-strong, but we had not quite 70,000.” But he could not venture, in the
-face of abundant evidence then existing, to say that his army was less
-than 80,000, the force he assigns to the English. He therefore, by an
-“ingenious device,” augments the allied force to 95,000; and then he
-can venture to assert that his own army was inferior in numbers. There
-is clearly implied in this statement an admission that his own force was
-not greatly below 95,000.</p>
-
-<p>Yet when Ney and others were dead, and the records, in all probability,
-scattered or destroyed, the same man who wrote this bulletin, concocted
-at St. Helena, four or five years after, a widely-different account. In his
-“Book ix,” p. 128, he puts forth an elaborate table, purporting to show,
-that the whole force of the French army at Waterloo was only 68,650
-men! And such has been the imposing effect of this table, that many
-English writers, while they could detect the falsehood of other statements
-in that same volume, still accepted, as an undeniable fact, the conclusion,
-that Napoleon’s army at Waterloo consisted of only 68,650 men! Yet
-only common prudence, and the use of a little careful scrutiny, was needed,
-to prove that these same elaborate tables in “Book ix” were nothing
-more than what is usually called, in railway language, “a cooked account.”</p>
-
-<p>The proof of this shall be given from French writers alone. And,
-first, let “Book ix” refute itself, by its own self contradictions. At
-page 71, it gives the second corps, 19,800 infantry; while at p. 95-97,
-it states the same infantry, at the same moment, at 21,000. At page
-128 it gives the first corps 16,500 infantry, and at table F it calls the
-same infantry, 17,600. At page 128 the cavalry of the Guard and the
-third and fourth corps of cavalry are stated at 10,000; while at pp. 158
-and 173 they are twice called 12,000. At p. 35 we are told that “the
-regiments generally had but two battalions; each battalion consisting of
-600 men, <em>present and under arms</em>.” Yet in the principal table, F, the
-regiments are always estimated at either 1000 or 1100 men, the battalions
-at 500 or 550. Thus it is abundantly clear, even from the pages of
-“Book ix” itself, that its writer is one who “plays at fast and loose
-with figures.”</p>
-
-<p>But other refutations, from purely French sources, are abundant. We
-have seen that Napoleon states, in “Book ix,” p. 35, that his battalions
-had 600 men; but that he quietly puts them down in table F, as being
-only 500 or 550.</p>
-
-<p>Now in his portfolio, captured at Charleroi, and published at Brussels,
-there was one report, made by an officer named De Launoy, and dated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_384" id="Page_384">[384]</a></span>
-“Montalimert, June 4th,” which said, “The first battalion, 720 strong,
-marched on the 1st of June.” And, in the <cite>Moniteur</cite> of May 28th, published
-at Paris under Napoleon’s own authority, there was given a letter
-dated “Lille, May 26th,” which says, “Our garrison is entirely composed
-of battalions of select troops, which successively arrive: the 20th
-arrived yesterday; almost all consist of 720 men; we are expecting two
-battalions of veterans.” Now these troops formed part of the first corps,
-as stated in “Book ix,” p. 31; and in table F they are all set down as
-having in each battalion, 550 men!</p>
-
-<p>It was of this first corps that Marshal Ney spoke in his letter of June
-26th, 1815, in which he complained of having it taken away from him
-on the 16th. He describes it as having consisted of “between 25,000
-and 30,000 men.” He must have had the actual returns in his pocket
-when he wrote this. Now if the battalions generally consisted of 720
-men, as the <cite>Moniteur</cite> of May 28th had told us, then its thirty-two battalions
-would have contained 23,040; which added to 1400 cavalry, and
-1564 artillery men, would be accurately described as “between 25,000
-and 30,000 men.” But Napoleon, in his statement of the force at Waterloo,
-sets down the infantry of this corps as only 16,500; thus contradicting
-at once the statement of the <cite>Moniteur</cite>, the report found in his own
-portfolio, and the declaration of the Marshal who commanded that corps!</p>
-
-<p>In the same spirit, in the table of the troops at Waterloo, (Book ix, p.
-128,) we find the infantry of the Guard set down as being 11,500.
-Yet Gourgaud, Napoleon’s Aide-de-Camp, and Fleury de Chaboulon, his
-secretary, both concur in stating this infantry to have been 14,000.<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a></p>
-
-<p>Of the heavy cavalry we have already seen, that while Napoleon, in his
-table, at p. 128, sets it down at 4000, 3000, and 3000, or 10,000 in all,
-he afterwards twice describes it, at p. 158 and at p. 173, as “these
-12,000 select horse.”</p>
-
-<p>Once more, in “Book ix,” p. 129, he states the force detached under
-Grouchy to have been 34,300. His own companion at St. Helena,
-General Montholon, in his history, (vol. i, p. 14,) calls this force 42,000.</p>
-
-<p>All this evidence, then, drawn from several quarters, but wholly French,
-points to one conclusion,&mdash;namely, that Napoleon, in forming his tables
-for “Book ix,” deliberately reduced his real strength at Waterloo by
-about one-fourth or one-fifth; and that his first statement, in his bulletin
-issued at the time, was the true one; namely, that his army was only
-somewhat “less numerous than 95,000.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_385" id="Page_385">[385]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>And to this conclusion a remarkable support is found, in the behaviour
-of the two Generals on the day preceding the action. Wellington had
-beaten nearly every one of Napoleon’s Marshals;<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a>&mdash;and could not but
-feel a degree of exultation at the thought of meeting the master of them
-all. Napoleon, on his part, had to encounter a General who had never
-been conquered. Supposing, then, the armies to have been nearly equal
-in strength, what might have been anticipated, but a degree of eager
-anticipation on Wellington’s side, and of seriousness on Napoleon’s? Instead
-of which, what do we hear? The Duke writes to Marshal Blucher,
-that he will accept battle, <em>if</em> the Marshal will assist him with one corps of
-his army. Meanwhile, Napoleon’s only anxiety is lest the English should
-escape him. “He was surprised,” writes his secretary, Fleury, “when
-daylight discovered to him that the English army had not quitted its
-positions, but appeared disposed to accept battle.” “He returned to his
-head-quarters (Book ix, p. 125) full of satisfaction at the great fault committed
-by the enemy’s General.” “He held this,” says Brialmont, “to
-be rashness, and a fault, exclaiming, ‘At last, then, I have them,&mdash;these
-English!’” Do not these views and anticipations, on the part of both of
-the Generals, make it quite evident that each of them was fully aware of
-the great superiority of the French army; and of the temerity of which
-the Duke would be guilty if, without any assurance of support, he ventured
-on an engagement in the face of such odds?</p>
-
-<p>It is worth remark, too, that while several of the best English writers
-have accepted with the most good-natured simplicity, Napoleon’s own account
-of the force with which he fought this battle&mdash;French historians,
-even when admirers of Napoleon, show much less faith in his assertions.
-Thus, Lamartine, having Napoleon’s ixth Book before him, in which
-the number, “sixty-eight thousand, six hundred and fifty men,” is strenuously
-insisted on&mdash;quietly disregards the fiction, and repeatedly speaks of
-the French force as being “eighty thousand men.”<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a></p>
-
-<p>But Napoleon’s “<em>certainty</em> of success,” of which he speaks at p. 127
-of his Book ix, rested more upon the superior <em>quality</em> of his troops than
-on their superior <em>numbers</em>. He was thoroughly well aware, both of the
-slight value of the Belgian and Hanoverian auxiliaries, and of the
-excellence of his own troops. And the Duke, also, knew full well both of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_386" id="Page_386">[386]</a></span>
-these facts. On the 8th of May he had written to Lord Stewart, “I
-have got an infamous army; very weak and ill-equipped; and a very
-inexperienced staff.” And seven days after the battle, he repeated to
-Lord Bathurst, that he had got “not only the worst troops, but the
-worst-equipped army, with the worst staff, that ever was brought
-together.”<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a></p>
-
-<p>On the other hand, Napoleon’s army was, for its amount, the finest
-that he had ever led into the field. Thus his secretary, Fleury, says,
-“The whole army was superb, and full of ardour.” Lamartine speaks
-of it as “his grand army of chosen men; every battalion of which had a
-soul equal to the utmost extremity.” Napoleon himself, in “Book ix,”
-says: “The spectacle was really magnificent: the earth seemed proud of
-being trod by such intrepid combatants.” And at St. Helena he told
-O’Meara: “My troops were so good, that I esteemed them sufficient to
-beat a hundred and twenty thousand.”<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus, as Brialmont remarks, whatever might be the numerical proportion
-of the two armies, “when we come to look at the respective qualities
-of the troops, the inferiority of the Anglo-Belgian army <em>was enormous</em>.
-Not only was it composed of heterogeneous elements, but it consisted
-almost entirely of young soldiers, a large proportion of whom had never
-been under fire. The Hanoverian contingent was made up of militia;
-and many regiments were fit only for garrison duty.”<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a></p>
-
-<p>The evening which preceded the memorable 18th of June was dark
-and cloudy; the rain fell in torrents, and the men were often ankle-deep
-in water. But, however deplorable might be their outward condition, the
-interest of this eventful moment rendered the combatants on either side,
-almost insensible to physical sufferings. Every man in both armies knew
-that a great and decisive battle was to be fought on the following day.
-With the opening morning, then, would begin what might prove the final
-contest,&mdash;ending a strife of nations which had lasted more than twenty
-years. The two greatest Generals of the age were for the first time to be
-brought into collision: the conqueror of Europe was to measure swords
-with the deliverer of Spain. No two such leaders, it has been well
-observed, had confronted each other, since Hannibal and Scipio met
-at Zama.</p>
-
-<p>Doubtless, and very naturally, the greatest degree of confidence was
-felt in the camp of the invaders. The French soldiers relied with reason<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_387" id="Page_387">[387]</a></span>
-on the extraordinary talents of their great leader, victorious in fifty contests,
-foiled in scarcely any. The men who stood by his side, too, were
-the veterans who had marched triumphantly over many victorious fields,
-and who now felt defeat, under such a Captain, to be scarcely possible.
-They were confident, too, in their numbers. All of them had heard that
-the Emperor had carried over the frontier a picked army of 150,000
-men. They saw on the heights around them the first and second corps,
-amounting together to nearly 50,000 men, with the sixth, less numerous,
-in reserve. The Imperial Guard was there, from 18,000 to 20,000
-strong,&mdash;the finest troops that France had ever possessed, and the
-cuirassiers, nearly 6,000 in number. What could a mixed force of a few
-English, joined with Belgians, Hanoverians, and Dutchmen, do against
-such a power?</p>
-
-<p>Very naturally, therefore, we learn from Gourgaud, that “the French
-troops were full of enthusiasm. Such were the acclamations of joy, that
-they prevented the orders from being heard.”<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> From Napoleon to his
-Generals, from the Generals to the troops, the feeling had spread and
-become universal. “Ah! we have them, then,&mdash;these English!”</p>
-
-<p>The British troops had not the same ground of confidence. They knew
-well that their own numbers did not amount to one-third of the strength
-of Napoleon’s army, and that the Hanoverian and Belgian landwehr, by
-whom their line was to be filled up, were of very uncertain value. Many
-of the battalions, both English and foreign, had never been in action
-before. Still, they had a great and well-founded trust in their Commander;
-and with a spirit like his own, they meant to <em>do their duty</em>,
-and while they lived, to stand their ground.</p>
-
-<p>The field of Waterloo, or the heights of Mont St. Jean, as the English
-and the French respectively call this spot, is a piece of slightly-elevated
-ground lying, as we have already said, about 1000 yards in advance of
-the village of Waterloo. Brussels, in which Napoleon intended to sleep
-that night, was about nine miles in the rear of the English army. The
-main road from Charleroi to Brussels passed through the French position,
-descended into the valley, and then ascended Mont St. Jean, cutting
-the English position at right angles near a farm-house called La Haye
-Sainte. The English line lay about 200 yards behind this farm-house.
-Here was the centre and left centre. In advance of the right wing of
-the English army, and between it and the left wing of the French, stood
-a larger house, surrounded by walled gardens and orchards, and called<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_388" id="Page_388">[388]</a></span>
-Hougoumont. As this place would have afforded great advantages to
-the French in preparing attacking columns, the Duke placed in it some
-companies of the Foot-Guards, with some Nassau and Hanoverian troops,
-and enjoined its resolute defence. Well were his orders obeyed, for the
-utmost efforts of a whole army corps of the French were ineffectual to
-carry this position. The French lost 6 or 8000 men in the attempt, but
-up to the very close of the day the English Foot-Guards maintained
-their possession.</p>
-
-<p>The position of Waterloo was deliberately chosen by the Duke, and
-the choice is commended by all unprejudiced critics. Yet Napoleon,
-ungenerous throughout, strives to depreciate his antagonist’s judgment
-in this particular. He says, in “Book ix:”&mdash;“The English General
-had in his rear the defiles of the forest of Soignes, so that if beaten,
-retreat was impossible” (p. 125). Upon which M. Lamartine observes:
-“In fighting on the borders of a forest fortified in all its approaches, as
-well as by its own impenetrability, the Duke had every pledge of victory,
-if victory was possible; and of a secure retreat if defeat were unavoidable.
-Waterloo was an admirable field of battle, and it is to be regretted that
-Napoleon has not acknowledged this, but has obstinately striven to prove
-that his conqueror was unworthy of him. These are the littlenesses of
-glory. The choice of Waterloo on Wellington’s part was a further mark
-of that genius, at once resolute, powerful, and prudent, which has characterized
-all the campaigns of this General.”</p>
-
-<p>It should be added, that the Duke, during five years of constant warfare
-with the French armies, had never once been beaten by them in a
-pitched battle. Nor had he any thought of retreating upon the present
-occasion, or any desire to make a special provision for such an emergency.
-In after years he dropped the remark: “I knew that they could never
-so beat us, but that we could have made good the forest against them.”</p>
-
-<p>And now the several divisions of the two armies were placed in the
-positions which to the two commanders seemed suitable. On the left of
-Napoleon’s line he placed his second corps, which he himself states to
-have consisted of 17,000 men, and which undoubtedly was nearer
-20,000. This corps, to which his brother Jerome was attached, was
-ordered to seize upon Hougoumont, and then to attack the right of the
-British army. Napoleon’s right wing was formed of his first corps,
-under Ney’s command. This corps had not yet been in action, and was
-complete. Napoleon sets down its strength us 17,900 men; but Ney,
-who commanded it, describes it as “from twenty-five to thirty thousand.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_389" id="Page_389">[389]</a></span>
-In the second line stood the sixth corps, consisting of 7 or 8000 men;
-the heavy cavalry, of about 7000; and in a third line stood the Imperial
-Guard, which, of cavalry and infantry, had at least 18,000. The artillery
-numbered more than 6000 men, with 240 cannon. The entire force
-was probably described with truth in Napoleon’s bulletin of the battle,
-in which he calls it “less than 95,000.”</p>
-
-<p>Against these the Duke had to place in position, on the opposite heights,
-his 15,181 British infantry, his 3,300 infantry of the German Legion,
-and about 28,000 Belgians, Hanoverians, and Brunswickers. Many of
-these showed themselves, in the battle, unable to stand a French attack.
-In the second line he had 7,840 English and German cavalry, and about
-4,500 Belgians, Hanoverians, and Brunswickers. His artillery (English,
-Belgian, &amp;c.,) were 5,600 and his guns, 156. At Hal and Enghien, on
-the road from Mons to Brussels, the Duke placed a detachment of 5,819
-men to guard against any possible device in that quarter. These could
-take no part in the battle, being fixed by their orders at a distance
-of several miles from it.</p>
-
-<p>The Duke had slept for a few hours at his headquarters in the village
-of Waterloo, and then rising before dawn on the morning of the 18th he
-wrote several letters, in which he expressed his confidence that all would
-go well, but still gave specific orders for all that was to be done in Brussels,
-Antwerp, &amp;c., in the event of the success of the French attack. He
-then saw to the distribution of the reserves of artillery, which had been
-packed in the village, so that supplies should be readily forwarded to
-every point where they might be needed. He also personally inspected
-the arrangements made for the reception of the wounded. Then mounting
-his horse Copenhagen, he rode to Hougoumont, and thence down a
-lane leading through the wood beyond it. Halting on the eastern slant
-of the thicket, he narrowly surveyed all of the enemy’s arrangements that
-could be seen. Then giving some final orders at Hougoumont, he galloped
-back to the high ground in the right centre of his position, where
-he began to chat with the members of his staff with as much liveliness as
-if they were about to take part in an ordinary review.</p>
-
-<p>There was now a pause of considerable duration. This was one of the
-chief mistakes committed by Napoleon. He had before him, as he well
-know, an army exceedingly inferior to his own; so inferior, in short,
-that it was a matter of joyful surprise to him that the Duke had not
-decamped in the night. But on his right he knew that there was Grouchy
-with less than 40,000 men, opposed to Blucher, who had 80,000 or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_390" id="Page_390">[390]</a></span>
-90,000. It was obvious to every one that the Prussian general might,
-and probably would, engage Grouchy with one or two corps, and
-carry the rest of his army to the succour of the English. It was, then, a
-great error not to use the present opportunity with decision and rapidity.
-He accounts for the delay by the state of the ground; but
-when Grouchy justified his inertness at Wavre by the same plea, Napoleon
-exclaims, in “Book ix,” p. 153, “The dreadful state of the weather,
-ridiculous motive!”</p>
-
-<p>The village clock was striking eleven when the first gun was fired from
-the French centre, and this great battle began, which only ended with the
-darkness of night. There has never been a battle which was so distinctly
-divided, like a drama, into four or five acts. These were: 1. The attack
-on Hougoumont and the English right; 2. The attack on La Haye Sainte
-and the English centre and left; 3. The irruption of the French heavy
-cavalry upon the centre of the English position; 4. The Prussian diversion;
-5. The charge of the Imperial Guard, and final defeat of the French army.
-These several acts or stages in this great contest usually followed each other
-at intervals of about two hours, <em>i.e.</em> at 11, at 1, at 3, at 5, and at 7 o’clock.
-There cannot, therefore, be a better way of obtaining a clear idea of the progress
-of this tremendous struggle, than by passing in review these five acts
-or stages, just us they occurred, and distinctly from each other.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">ELEVEN O’CLOCK.</p>
-
-<p>Precisely at this hour the French artillery opened fire upon the orchards
-of Hougoumont, and Jerome, with his division, moved forward to the
-attack. As we have seen, Napoleon himself assigns to his second corps, to
-whom this duty was assigned, a strength of 17,900 men; and, reasoning
-upon his uniform practice of diminishing his real numbers, we may
-safely estimate its real force at 20,000. This corps was to storm and
-take Hougoumont, and then, from this position, to annoy and perhaps to
-attack with success, the Duke’s right. But it never succeeded even in
-its first object. The whole power of these 18,000 or 20,000 men
-failed to carry a post which was never garrisoned by so many us
-2,800. Thus, Gourgaud tells us that at noon “Prince Jerome with
-his division took possession of the wood: he was driven out, but
-a new attack once more rendered him master of it. The enemy,
-however, kept possession of the largo house in the centre.” Again, at
-half-past four, he says, “General Reille supported the attack of Jerome’s
-division by Foy’s division. (Each being 5,000 or 6,000 strong.)<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_391" id="Page_391">[391]</a></span>
-Howitzers had set fire to the house and nearly destroyed it; three-fourths
-of the wood was in our possession; the fields were strewed with the English
-guards, the flower of the enemy’s army.” But beyond this partial
-success the French never attained. They never carried the chateau
-itself, but in the attempt they lost from 6,000 to 8,000 men, while
-the killed and wounded of the defenders amounted to a few hundreds only.
-This portion of the battle lasted from noon until night, and all that
-the French could boast of, was, that with five or seven times the
-number of the British, they obtained possession of “three-fourths of
-the wood.”<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Napoleon says, in “Book ix,” “The wood remained
-in the possession of the French; but the chateau, in which some hundreds
-of intrepid English troops defended themselves, opposed an
-invincible resistance.”<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a></p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">ONE O’CLOCK.</p>
-
-<p>But now, having commenced the battle by this vehement assault on
-Hougoumont by his left wing, Napoleon prepared what he admits to
-be his main attack, on the Duke’s centre and left, by Count d’Erlon’s
-whole corps, led by Marshal Ney. This was the corps which had not
-been engaged at either Ligny or Quatre Bras. Napoleon states its
-strength at 17,900; but Ney more frankly describes it us between
-“twenty-five and thirty thousand.” This force was directed against
-the centre of the English position. Throughout the day Napoleon seemed
-to rely on <em>mere strength</em>. He knew that he was superior on every point,
-in each branch of the service, and in every particular, and he had never
-experienced the obstinate endurance of the English infantry. Thus, as
-the Duke afterwards said, “He did not manœuvre at all. He just moved
-forward, in the old style, in columns, and was driven off in the old style.”</p>
-
-<p>Great were the expectations based on this attack. Napoleon himself
-said to Ney: “This is a day and an action worthy of you: I give you
-the command of the centre; and it is you who are to gain the battle.”<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a>
-But while all the French accounts admit the vast importance which was
-attached to this, the main attack, they entirely forget to say <em>what was the
-result of it</em>. Thus Gourgaud writes: “The Emperor directed Marshal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_392" id="Page_392">[392]</a></span>
-Ney to commence the attack, and to take possession of La Haye Sainte;”
-“Our infantry advanced;” “The enemy’s line, however, made no
-manœuvre; it maintained its immobility. His cavalry made several successful
-charges on the flank of one of the columns of the first corps, and
-about 15 of our pieces of artillery, which were advancing, were driven
-back into a hollow road. One of Milhaud’s brigades of Cuirassiers advanced
-against this cavalry, and the field of battle was soon covered with
-their slain. When the Emperor perceived that some disorder prevailed
-on our right, he proceeded at full gallop.”<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a></p>
-
-<p>Napoleon says, in “Book ix,” “Many charges of infantry and cavalry
-followed it; the detail of them belong more to the history of each regiment,
-than to the general history of the battle; it is enough to say, that
-after three hours’ fighting, the farm of La Haye Sainte was occupied by
-the French infantry; while the end which the Emperor had in view was
-obtained.”<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a></p>
-
-<p>Thus, from the French accounts, we gain no intelligible information as
-to the actual result of this attack of 25,000 men on the English centre;
-except, indeed, that Gourgaud’s single phrase, “the enemy’s line maintained
-its immobility,” tacitly implies that the attack failed. We turn,
-then, to the English narrators, and learn from them what actually
-occurred.</p>
-
-<p>“Seventy-four guns” (“Book ix,” says eighty) were ordered forward
-to a little elevation, so as to bring their fire to bear upon the English line
-at a range of about 700 yards. Soon after, as two o’clock approached, the
-columns of attack, under Ney’s command, were seen descending from
-their elevated ground, crossing the valley, and ascending the northern
-slope. The British artillery gave them a warm reception; but still the
-columns pressed on, until they approached the Duke’s line, near the
-centre and left centre. Here were placed the brigade of Sir Thomas
-Picton, about 3000 strong; and a Belgic-Dutch brigade under Bylandt.
-As the French columns drew near, with shouts of “<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Vive l’Empereur!</span>”
-the courage of the Belgians gave way, and the whole brigade, amidst the
-groans and hooting of the British soldiers, begun a hasty movement to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_393" id="Page_393">[393]</a></span>
-the rear, from which they could not be induced to advance during the
-whole remainder of the day.</p>
-
-<p>Left thus to himself, to sustain the whole attack of twice or three
-times his numbers, the gallant Picton never hesitated. Forming his
-little band two deep, he waited till the French column came within
-charging distance. It then halted, and endeavoured to deploy into line.
-Saluting it, at this moment, with a volley from his whole brigade, Picton
-gave the word “Charge!” and his men sprang forward with the bayonet.
-In an instant the whole French column was in confusion; and before
-they had time to recover themselves, Ponsonby’s brigade of heavy cavalry,
-the Royals, the Scots Greys, and the Enniskilleners, broke in upon them,
-and in a few moments the whole side of the hill was covered with fugitives.
-The heroic leader of “the fighting division,” however, the gallant
-Picton, fell, shot through the brain in the moment of triumph. Another
-fierce encounter was at hand. Milhaud’s Cuirassiers were close behind the
-French columns, and they essayed to retrieve the fight. But the Household
-Brigade met them, and after a desperate encounter&mdash;of the best horsemen
-in England and the best in France&mdash;the whole mass of the French, horse
-and foot, were driven back in confusion, leaving behind them the eagles
-of the 45th and 105th regiments, and nearly 3000 prisoners. The grand
-attack of Ney on the British centre had failed; and the first corps of the
-French army was so seriously cut up and disorganized, as to be in no condition
-to renew the attack. We now understand Gourgaud’s confessions,
-“The enemy’s cavalry made several successful charges on the flank of one
-of the columns of the first corps;” and, “when the Emperor perceived
-that some disorder prevailed on our right, he proceeded thither at full
-gallop.”</p>
-
-<p>It was now considerably past two o’clock. The principal attack had
-been repelled: the English position had not been forced, or even endangered.
-“The enemy’s line,” says Gourgaud, “maintained its immobility.”
-But Napoleon’s second corps had been beaten and much
-damaged at Hougoumont; and now his first was crippled and nearly
-disabled in front of La Haye Sainte. In this strait, either Ney or
-Napoleon, or both of them, still confident in their superior strength, had
-recourse to a desperate measure, which had, indeed, a probability of
-success; but which, if it failed, would involve a serious danger.</p>
-
-<p>They had, still untouched, or nearly so, a reserve of what Napoleon
-himself styles, “twelve thousand select horse,” the two corps of Cuirassiers,
-the light cavalry of the Guard, and the horse grenadiers and dragoons<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_394" id="Page_394">[394]</a></span>
-of the Guard. There need be no dispute as to the strength of
-this force, since Napoleon himself twice states it to have been 12,000.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">THREE O’CLOCK.</p>
-
-<p>At this period of the battle, then, desperate at the two failures on the
-left and on the right, either Ney or his master launched this enormous
-mass of “select cavalry” against the centre of the British line. The
-error, if it is one, is sought by Napoleon to be charged on somebody
-else. In his bulletin, written at the time, he says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Our two divisions of cuirassiers being engaged, all our cavalry ran
-at the same moment to support their comrades.”</p>
-
-<p>Gourgaud endeavours to cast the blame upon Ney, saying:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Marshal Ney, borne away by excess of ardour, lost sight of the orders
-he had received; he debouched on the level height, which was immediately
-crowned by two divisions of Milhaud’s cuirassiers, and the light
-cavalry of the Guard. The emperor observed to Marshal Soult, “This
-is a premature movement, which may be attended with fatal consequences.”</p>
-
-<p>These accounts would represent Napoleon himself famous for his
-rapidity and decision, to have had no command over his own troops.
-They are, therefore, not credible.</p>
-
-<p>But remembering that Napoleon was himself at this moment in a
-forward position, and that the heavy cavalry placed in the rear as a
-reserve force must have defiled past him, we must at least believe
-him to have permitted this movement. Gourgaud says that Ney
-ordered forward Milhaud’s Cuirassiers, and that “the emperor ordered
-Kellerman’s corps to support him.” Colonel Heymes, aide-de-camp
-to Ney, says, “That movement took place under the eyes of the
-emperor, who might have stopped it, but did not.” Still as he afterwards,
-in private conversation, charged the fault on Ney,<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> we must suppose
-that the marshal, in his desperation, called for the reserve of cavalry,
-and that Napoleon permitted him to employ them. However this might be,
-it is certain that about three or four o’clock&mdash;the attack of the first corps
-on the centre and left of the English having failed, the whole mass of the
-“cavalry of reserve,” was brought forward and thrown upon the centre
-of the Duke’s position. Such an assault has rarely been made upon any
-other army in modern times. Deducting the troops in Hougoumont, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_395" id="Page_395">[395]</a></span>
-the losses from four hours’ fighting, there could not have been at this
-moment so many as 12,000 British infantry in the whole line. Yet
-it is from Napoleon’s own narrative that we learn, that upon this weak
-array there was launched a mass of 12,000 heavy horse, 6,000 of whom
-wore armour, and who seemed, in their united strength, able positively to
-ride down the insignificant force of resolute soldiers who still kept the
-heights of Mont St. Jean.</p>
-
-<p>The British accounts generally divide this tremendous onset of the
-cavalry into two attacks, the first, between three and four o’clock, when
-forty squadrons, twenty-one of them being composed of cuirassiers,
-ascended the heights behind La Haye Sainte; the second perhaps an
-hour later, when the first assailants, having found it difficult to maintain
-their ground were rallied behind thirty-seven fresh squadrons sent by
-Napoleon to their succour. And this agrees with Gourgaud’s account
-who tells us, first, that “Ney debouched upon the level height, with Milhaud’s
-Cuirassiers and the light cavalry of the Guard,” and then adds, a
-little after, that “the Emperor directed Kellerman’s Cuirassiers to
-support the cavalry on the height lest it should be repulsed.” It is clear,
-therefore, that the first onset of 5,000 or 6,000 men had failed, or
-was in danger of failing, when Napoleon sent forward a second until, as
-he himself says, the whole “twelve thousand select horse” were involved
-in the struggle.</p>
-
-<p>How it was that this tremendous attack failed, it is not easy at this
-distance of time to understand. The whole of the infantry in the British
-line were quickly formed into squares; the front ranks kneeling and presenting
-fixed bayonets, and the second and third lines keeping up a constant
-fire of musketry. The artillery, also, saluted the intruders with
-grape-shot; but many of the British guns were soon taken possession of by
-the cuirassiers. The Duke, always prepared for every emergency, had
-instructed the artillerymen that they should, on the approach of danger,
-take off a wheel and retire with it into the nearest square of infantry.
-Thus the cuirassiers, when they had seized a gun, found themselves
-hampered with it, and while they were trying to carry it off, the musketry
-of the British squares thinned their numbers.</p>
-
-<p>Wellington, in describing the battle in a letter to Marshal Beresford,
-said, “I had the infantry for some time in squares, and the French
-cavalry walking about us as if it had been our own.”</p>
-
-<p>There probably never was such a trial of “pluck” as this part of the
-contest presented. It was a hand-to-hand struggle, <em>lasting two or three<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_396" id="Page_396">[396]</a></span>
-hours</em>. Had a regiment of cuirassiers ever found courage enough to
-throw themselves on the British bayonets, there can be little doubt that
-some of the weaker squares might have been broken. But this never
-once occurred. Gourgaud, indeed, says, “Our cavalry penetrated many
-of the enemy’s squares, and took three standards,” but he must here be
-speaking of the Belgian or Hanoverian troops, many of whom were
-unsteady, and some of whom were scattered and cut up. There was, in
-fact, no absolute reliance to be placed on any but the British troops, and
-some of the best of the German. A whole Dutch-Belgian brigade, on
-the approach of the cuirassiers, moved off without firing a shot. After
-several charges of the British horse upon portions of the French cavalry,
-Lord Uxbridge put himself at the head of Tripp’s brigade of Dutch-Belgian
-carabineers, and ordered them to charge; and so they did, but
-not until they had first turned their backs to the enemy! Somewhat
-later, he ordered forward the Hanoverian regiment called the Cumberland
-hussars; but the colonel “did not see what good was to be done” by
-moving him from his snug position, which was out of reach of the firing.
-He added, that he could not answer for his men, for that they rode their
-own horses, and could not afford to lose them! Receiving from Lord
-Uxbridge the vehement reproof which might have been expected, he and
-his men moved off to Brussels, where they spread the report that the
-allied army was destroyed, and that Napoleon was advancing at the head
-of his Guards!</p>
-
-<p>Yet this tremendous attack failed, as the two preceding attacks
-had done. And its failure was one chief cause of Napoleon’s
-ruin. He had risked his cavalry reserve, and had lost it. For
-it is a remarkable and wonderful fact, that, continuing this struggle
-for two or three hours, this splendid body of “twelve thousand
-select cavalry” was wholly destroyed. Individuals, and parties of fugitives,
-doubtless escaped, and their number in the aggregate might be
-considerable; but this arm of the service was utterly disabled. In his
-Bulletin, Napoleon said, “For three hours numerous charges were made,
-several squares penetrated, and six standards taken;&mdash;an advantage
-bearing no proportion to the loss which our cavalry experienced by the
-grape-shot and musket-firing.” Fleury de Chaboulon, his secretary, says,
-“Our cavalry, exposed to the incessant firing of the enemy’s batteries and
-infantry, sustained and executed numerous brilliant charges, took six
-flags, and dismounted several batteries; but in this conflict we lost the
-flower of our intrepid cuirassiers, and of the cavalry of the Guard.” He<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span>
-adds, that on reaching Paris, and describing the battle, the emperor
-said, “Ney behaved like a madman!&mdash;he got my cavalry <em>massacred</em> for
-me.” And it is the chief complaint of all the French accounts, that
-when at the close of the day the English horse swept over the field, the
-Emperor had not a single regiment of cavalry to oppose to them!<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a> The
-“twelve thousand select cavalry” had broken into the English position;
-but, except as scattered fugitives, they never returned!</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">FIVE O’CLOCK.</p>
-
-<p>But the battle had now lasted six hours, and Napoleon had allowed
-his opportunity to pass away. Five o’clock brought the Prussians; and
-after they had entered the field a decisive victory for Napoleon became
-impossible.</p>
-
-<p>Bent on his object of proving that he had been not so much beaten as
-overpowered by numbers, Napoleon in his “Book ix,” brings the Prussians
-into the field at <em>noon-day</em>! In doing this he does not scruple to
-employ the most direct and obvious falsehood. To give a single
-instance,&mdash;Gourgaud, his <em>aide-de-camp</em>, in his account of the battle,
-thus writes:</p>
-
-<p>“It was <em>half-past four o’clock</em>, and the most vigorous fire was still
-kept up on every side. <em>At this moment</em> General Domont informed his
-Majesty that he observed Bulow’s corps in movement, and that a division
-of 8,000 or 10,000 Prussians was debouching from the woods of
-Frischenois.”</p>
-
-<p>Yet in “Book ix” Napoleon does not hesitate to say: At <em>two o’clock</em>
-in the afternoon General Domont had given notice that Bulow formed in
-three columns; that the enemy appeared to him to be very numerous,&mdash;he
-estimated the corps at 40,000 men.”</p>
-
-<p>But he does not even postpone their arrival until two o’clock:&mdash;two
-pages earlier he insists upon it that he saw them, in the distance, at
-<em>noon</em>.<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> Now as it is absolutely certain that, with the greatest exertion,
-the earliest of the Prussian brigades were unable to reach the field until<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span>
-half-past four, we may be sure that at twelve o’clock they must have
-been eight or ten miles off! Hence this passage in “Book ix” must
-either be a downright fiction; or else Napoleon must have discovered
-on a distant hill a party of the Prussian staff who had ridden forward
-to observe the position of affairs, and who must have been magnified by
-his alarms into an army-corps!</p>
-
-<p>The real time of the arrival of the Prussians is one of the most
-clearly-defined facts of the whole history. All the witnesses agree upon
-it. We have just cited Gourgaud’s words, that “at half-past four General
-Domont observed a division of 8,000 to 10,000 Prussians debouching
-from the woods of Frischenois.”</p>
-
-<p>In strict agreement with which the Prussian official account says.</p>
-
-<p>“It was half-past four o’clock.... The difficulties of the road had
-retarded the march of the Prussian columns; so that only two brigades
-had arrived at the covered position which was assigned them. The generals
-resolved to begin the attack with the troops which they had at
-hand.”<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a></p>
-
-<p>And General Drouet, who was at Napoleon’s side during the action,
-said, in his speech in the Chamber of Peers on the 24th of June, 1815,&mdash;“The
-Prussians began to attack us at about half-past five in the afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>It is quite clear, then, and beyond all dispute, that the Prussians first
-began to enter the field of battle, and to be visible to the French at half-past
-four in the afternoon; that the Prussian commanders immediately
-proceeded to make arrangements for an attack;&mdash;and that their first
-collision with the French troops took place about half-past five in the
-afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>But Napoleon had been forewarned of their approach; for his flying
-parties had brought in, he tells us, two or three hours before, a Prussian
-hussar who was bearing a letter to the Duke of Wellington, announcing
-that General Bulow and his corps were on their march. Hence Napoleon
-had already set apart his sixth corps, under Count Lobau, to receive the
-Prussians whenever they should make their appearance.</p>
-
-<p>He introduces at this period many complaints of Marshal Grouchy,
-who, he pretends, ought to have followed Bulow’s corps, and have taken
-part in the battle of Waterloo. This is the very height of injustice and
-absurdity; since he had employed Grouchy distinctly to follow and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span>
-occupy the attention of the main body of the Prussian army; and in
-obedience to this command the marshal was at that moment engaged with
-the Prussian third corps at Wavre. But, on looking at Napoleon’s first
-bulletin of the battle, we see that this aspersion of Grouchy is an afterthought,&mdash;a
-mere device to lessen his own defeat. Writing at the time,
-and giving to France a full account of the battle, in that bulletin <em>not one
-word</em> of any default of Grouchy’s appears.</p>
-
-<p>This, of itself, is enough to show the hollowness of the excuse for the
-loss of the battle. Grouchy himself, when the “ixth Book” made its
-appearance, instantly wrote and published an indignant denial of its
-statements; and Brialmont remarks, that “Napoleon has so expressed
-himself to make it clear that he was anxious to diminish the amount of his
-own responsibility by sacrificing the reputation of his subordinates. Thus
-he pretends that he received on the night of the 17th a letter from Grouchy,
-which letter <em>never could have existed</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>But Gourgaud himself, Napoleon’s own aide-de-camp, is the best witness
-in exculpation of Grouchy. He tells us, that in the afternoon, hearing the
-cannonade of Waterloo, General Excelmans urged upon Grouchy to leave
-following the Prussians and to march towards the cannonade. But
-Grouchy, “though he burnt with desire to take part in the great battle,
-<em>showed Excelmans his instructions</em>, which were to march upon Wavre,
-and said, that he could not take such a responsibility on himself.”<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> It
-is clear therefore, that up to the afternoon of the 18th Grouchy had no
-other orders than those which bade him follow the Prussians who were
-in position at Wavre.</p>
-
-<p>Grouchy then, was not at Waterloo, simply because Napoleon had sent
-him to Wavre, a town some twelve miles distant; and because he was
-there engaged in a struggle with the third Prussian corps. But the
-fourth Prussian corps was at Waterloo at five o’clock, because Blucher
-had promised to send it there, and because Wellington expected it; and
-gave battle with inferior forces, relying on this assistance. Napoleon
-ought to have foreseen the probability of all this,&mdash;and, foreseeing it, he
-ought to have delivered his blows more rapidly so as to break the English
-line, if that were possible, before the Prussians could enter the field.
-But now that he had allowed his opportunity to pass, and now that
-Bulow was actually beginning to take part in the battle,&mdash;what was the
-respective strength ranged on either side? This question must be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_400" id="Page_400">[400]</a></span>
-answered; for Napoleon says, “The enemy’s army had just been augmented
-by 30,000 men, already ranged on the held of battle; thus
-placing 120,000 men against 69,000, or two to one.” (p. 148.) And
-then he immediately afterwards, adds “It was <em>noon</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>This statement, however, like most of Napoleon’s other statements, is
-untrue. The Duke’s army had never amounted to 70,000 men, of
-whom some 10 or 15,000 were merely nominal combatants, whom it was
-impossible to persuade to fight. And Napoleon wilfully overlooks the
-plain averment of the Prussian official account, that when their commanders
-began the attack,&mdash;not at <em>noon</em>, but some time after half-past four,
-<em>only two brigades</em>, had arrived on the field. Captain Siborne, who took
-the greatest pains to ascertain every fact of the case, states that at half-past
-four o’clock the Prussian force which had come up, amounted to
-16,000 men; which, added to the Duke’s army of 68,000, made a joint
-force of about 84,000; but, if the non-fighting part of the Duke’s army
-were deducted,&mdash;of scarcely 70,000. Thus, even with the addition of
-the newly-arrived Prussians, the allied force was still numerically weaker
-than Napoleon’s army.</p>
-
-<p>This diversion, however, which was caused so opportunely by
-Bulow’s arrival, naturally brought great relief to the British line. It
-drew off Count Lobau’s corps, the sixth, of 7000 men, which might
-otherwise have been sent forward to attack the British centre. The
-remark, however, which is sometimes made, that “the English were
-saved by arrival of the Prussians,” is singularly absurd. Bulow’s arrival
-was not an unexpected thing; or a lucky chance;&mdash;it was a part of the
-Duke’s plan. He had demanded this aid of Blucher, and had obtained
-the promise of it, and without this aid, his acceptance of battle would
-have been an act of great temerity. The arrival of the Prussians, so far
-from being unexpected, had been calculated on three hours earlier; Blucher
-having promised that they should be in the field by two o’clock.</p>
-
-<p>And sorely had they been needed. The “thin red line” of the British
-infantry had scarcely ever found it so difficult to maintain its ground.
-At this moment, as we have already remarked, there could not have
-been so many as 12,000 of this branch of the Duke’s army left in position.
-And yet upon them rested the whole burden of the battle. Some
-of the German troops behaved gallantly; but of the mixed mass of
-25,000 Belgians, Hanoverians, Dutchmen, &amp;c., a large proportion were
-unable to stand the French attacks. So soon as one of Napoleon’s columns
-approached them, they became unsteady, and often went to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span>
-rear. Meanwhile there still stood in front of the Duke’s right wing, the
-second corps; and in front of his left wing, the first corps; and all that
-were left of Napoleon’s “12,000 select cavalry” were riding about the
-British position, as if they were masters of it. This hour, then, or two
-hours, from five o’clock till seven, must have been a most anxious one
-for the British General and his troops. The commander of one brigade
-sent to the Duke to beg for some relief or reinforcement; and the answer
-he received was, “Tell him, that what he wishes is impossible. He, and
-I, and every man here, must fight till we die on the spot where we
-stand.” Some one asked for a general instruction, as to what plan should
-be followed if the Duke himself should fall. “My only plan,” said the
-Duke, “is to stand my ground here to the last man.” Long after the
-battle, he remarked, of this period of the day, “I looked oftener at my
-watch than at anything else. I knew that if my troops could keep their
-position till night, I must be joined by Blucher before morning; and we
-should not have left Bonaparte an army next day. But I was glad, as
-one hour of day-light slipped away after another, and our position was
-still maintained.” It is scarcely possible for words to imply more distinctly,
-that the Duke felt that he was standing his ground with an
-inferior force; relying on Blucher’s aid, to enable him to strike a blow
-in return.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, as he was constantly calm, so he was ever hopeful and
-high-minded. An Italian officer in the French service, being taken prisoner
-afterwards described the dismay he felt, on observing the quietness
-of the Duke’s demeanour, and the calmness of his countenance; which
-forced him to think that he must have some concealed reserve, of which
-the French generals knew nothing. His brief remarks, too, were always
-cheerful and reassuring. A young Piedmontese officer made himself
-useful, in carrying orders. “Were you ever in a battle before?” asked
-the Duke. “No, my lord.” “Then you are a lucky fellow, for you
-will never see such another!” was the rejoinder. At another time, encouraging
-the 95th regiment, expecting a charge of cavalry, he said, “Stand
-fast! 95th, we musn’t be beat; what would they say in England!”
-Shortly after, when the French cavalry came on with threatening aspect,
-he said, “Never mind, we’ll win this battle yet!” To a regiment exposed
-to a brisk cannonade, he remarked, “Hard pounding this! let’s see
-who’ll pound longest!” Often he was evidently the object of the enemy’s
-aim, and a tree under which he sometimes took his stand, was repeatedly
-struck. “That’s good practice,” said the Duke; “I think they fire<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_402" id="Page_402">[402]</a></span>
-better than in Spain.” But, as we have said, he was ever high-minded;
-and when an officer of artillery came to the Duke to tell him, that he
-had a clear view of Napoleon, and had several guns pointed in that direction,
-the Duke exclaimed, “No! I’ll not allow it. It is not the business
-of commanders to be firing upon one another!”</p>
-
-<p>At half-past five, according to Count Drouet, the Prussians first
-came into collision with the sixth corps, which, with Domont’s cavalry,
-had been placed on Napoleon’s right wing, specially to give these new
-comers a warm reception. The contest soon became an earnest one on
-this side; Planchenoit, in the rear of Napoleon’s right centre, was taken,
-and retaken, and he felt obliged to send some battalions of the Young
-Guard to strengthen Count Lobau. In this new struggle an hour or
-more passed, and seven o’clock, the last hour of the day drew on.</p>
-
-<p>Here Gourgaud stops to claim a triumph. He says, “65 to 68,000
-French troops <em>had beaten</em> 115,000 English, Prussians, &amp;c.” But then
-he adds, “The Emperor was of opinion that this was the moment for
-making a decisive attack, and <em>determining the fate of the day</em>.” So that,
-although the English and Prussians are assumed to be beaten, the “fate
-of the day” remains “to be determined.”</p>
-
-<p>In fact, not one single step in retreat had the English army yet taken.
-About six o’clock, indeed, the farm-house of La Haye Sainte was abandoned
-by its English defenders, simply because their ammunition was
-expended, and without ammunition they could not defend the place.
-This was the one solitary advantage gained by the French in the whole
-day; and even this was not wrested by them from the English; the post
-was evacuated by the latter for the reason we have stated. And La
-Haye Sainte, it should be remembered, was about 200 yards <em>in advance</em>
-of the British line. It was an outpost, and not a part of the main line.
-Its capture at an earlier period might have seriously endangered the
-Duke’s centre; but at this late hour Napoleon had but one card left to
-play, and in playing it the possession of La Haye Sainte did not greatly
-aid him.</p>
-
-<p>Up to seven o’clock, then, this one poor outpost was the only foot of
-ground gained by the French, in compensation for what Ney calls “the
-most frightful carnage that I have ever witnessed.” He is not here
-speaking of the defeat of the Imperial Guard, but of what preceded it.
-He had led, at one o’clock, the attack by D’Erlon’s corps on the centre
-and left of the English position, and at three o’clock he had sent the
-heavy cavalry in among the British battalions. It is of these two attacks<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_403" id="Page_403">[403]</a></span>
-that Ney is speaking, and of the manner in which they were repulsed;
-and this veteran soldier, after witnessing Borodino, Leipsic, and twenty
-other fields of slaughter, describes the defeat of the first corps, and the
-destruction of the cavalry, as a “carnage” the like of which he had never
-before beheld.</p>
-
-<p>“The Emperor,” says Gourgaud, “was now of opinion that the
-moment was come for making a decisive attack, and determining the fate
-of the day.” Yes, the moment was come; for, if the matter had been
-left as it stood, Napoleon’s overthrow on the following morning would
-have been made certain. “I knew,” said the Duke, long after, “that
-if my troops could keep their position till night, I must be joined by
-Blucher before morning, and we should not have left Bonaparte an army
-next day.” To keep the English and Prussian armies apart had been
-Napoleon’s chief endeavour, but the sagacity and military talent of the
-two Generals had defeated this purpose. The French army had only
-crossed the frontier on the 15th, and here, on the 18th, were the two
-allied armies already uniting on the same battle-field. When, therefore,
-Gourgaud tells us, in lofty and decorous language, that “the Emperor
-was of opinion that this was the moment for making a decisive attack,
-and determining the fate of the day,” the real meaning of these dignified
-phrases is, that Napoleon saw that one chance only remained to him,
-and that he must break the British line by the whole force of the
-Imperial Guard, or retire from the field a discomfited commander; to
-sustain in his turn an attack from the united armies the very next day.
-His strongest army-corps, the first and second, had both been cut up and
-crippled; his splendid cavalry were at that moment being “massacred”
-by the English grapeshot and musket-firing; and the only weapon of
-power that remained to him was this noble body of men, who had
-triumphed in fifty battles&mdash;his invincible phalanx, the Imperial Guard.
-At seven o’clock, therefore, or about that hour, he turned to this, his
-last resource, and ordered to the front this chosen and favourite arm,
-the right employment of which had given him so many victories.</p>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs70">SEVEN O’CLOCK.</p>
-
-<p>It is not easy, amidst the various and contradictory accounts of the
-different French historians, to ascertain with exactness the real force
-employed in this attack. The Young Guard, under General Duhesme,
-had been partly employed in the defence of Planchenoit. The Old Guard,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_404" id="Page_404">[404]</a></span>
-and the Middle Guard, had not up to this period of the battle drawn a
-trigger. Their strength is stated by Gourgaud to have been on this day
-4400 and 4200, or, united, 8600 men.<a name="FNanchor_37_37" id="FNanchor_37_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a> This force far exceeded any
-strength which the Duke could bring to bear upon any given point. In
-fact the two brigades of General Maitland and General Adam had to
-sustain this attack. The first, consisting of two battalions of Foot-guards,
-had marched forth two days before 1997 strong. On the evening of
-Waterloo it numbered only 1027; and doubtless, when this attack of the
-Imperial Guard came, it had not more than 1100 or 1150 bayonets.
-The other, General Adam’s brigade, consisting of the 52nd, 71st, and
-95th regiments, had been 2621 strong, but it was now reduced to about
-2000. Such was the force on either side which was now to engage in
-the last terrible encounter of this great contest.</p>
-
-<p>But, while he was preparing for what he hoped would be the decisive
-blow, Napoleon sent orders to both his wings to prepare for a renewed
-attack, simultaneously, on Hougoumont and on the British left and
-centre. The chateau defended itself bravely and successfully, as it had
-done throughout the day. But the possession of La Haye Sainte gave
-the first corps of the French army great advantages, and the pressure on
-the British line at this point became fearfully severe. A German battalion
-was cut up by a charge of French cuirassiers: a body of Brunswick
-infantry, which the Duke had moved up to strengthen the line, gave
-way, and retired about 100 paces, and it required all the Duke’s personal
-exertions to bring them to reform and stand their ground. The Prince
-of Orange had been wounded, and the Nassau troops under his command
-were with great difficulty induced to keep their ground. The British
-line had never been in so much danger of being broken as at this moment.
-But scarcely an hour of the day now remained, and the contest which
-was just taking place on the right centre was to be decisive of the fate of
-the day.</p>
-
-<p>The grand attack of the Imperial Guard, to which Napoleon looked to
-decide the fate of his empire, was now beginning. Captain Siborne states
-the two columns of attack to have consisted of ten battalions, besides two
-battalions left as a reserve. If these battalions consisted of 600 men
-each, they would amount to 6000; but if of 720 men each, they would
-amount, on the whole, to 7200 men, and these were unquestionably the
-first soldiers in France.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_405" id="Page_405">[405]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>These columns were formed in front of La Belle Alliance, and began
-their advance with that kind of mismanagement which had marked many
-of the movements of the French leaders throughout the day; they did
-not advance simultaneously, but the first column preceded the second,
-although the two took different courses. Neither did they assail that
-part of the Duke’s line which was the weakest, but threw themselves
-upon two brigades of the British infantry.</p>
-
-<p>Of the two columns,&mdash;one of which skirted the enclosures of Hougoumont,
-and aimed at the right of the British line, while the other made
-its onset nearer to the centre,&mdash;the latter gained the precedence. As it
-descended into the valley, and allowed the French artillery on the heights
-behind an opportunity for action, the whole of these guns opened fire
-with a rapidity and weight which had not been experienced before
-throughout the day. Wherever a regiment was visible in the British
-line, there the round-shot and howitzer shells rained death upon it. But
-by degrees the attacking columns passed through the hollow ground, and
-began to ascend the opposite heights. Now they became visible to the
-British artillery, and the cannon-shot plunged into their masses with
-tremendous effect. The horse of Marshal Ney was killed; General
-Friant was wounded, and General Michel was killed. On the fall of the
-latter, a battalion of grenadiers came to a halt; but another General succeeded
-in inspiring it with new courage. The column moved forward,
-sorely shaken by its losses; but at last it crowned the height, and to its
-astonishment saw nothing before it but a small battery of field-pieces,
-and a few mounted officers in the rear. But one of these was the Duke,
-and the next moment the word of command was heard, “Up, Guards,
-and at them!” The British Guards, who had been ordered to lie down,
-sprang to their feet, in a compact line of four deep, and in a few seconds,
-a volley was heard, and then another, and a third; and in the first
-minute 300 of the attacking column fell. The French officers rushed to
-the front, and called upon the men to deploy into line. Lord Saltoun
-exclaimed to the English Guards, “Now’s your time, my boys!”&mdash;and
-the Duke exclaimed, “Charge!” The brigade sprang forward, with a
-cheer, to the charge. All was disorder in the French ranks. Many
-flung down their arms and knapsacks and dispersed; the mass, in dire
-confusion, rushed down the slope, with the English Guards in full pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>But the English were instantly called back, for now appeared in sight
-the second column, which, shrinking from the fire of the batteries which
-had so crushed the first, diverged to the right, and by this mistaken<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_406" id="Page_406">[406]</a></span>
-move, presented its flank to General Adam’s brigade. The brigade of
-Guards was formed in its front, while the 52nd and 71st regiments were
-on its flank. The three regiments poured such a fire into the mass, that
-it melted like snow in the sunshine. Soon was repeated the order,
-“Charge!” and the two brigades assailing the devoted column at once
-in its front and on its flank, swept it from the field. In a few moments
-the hollow ground was crowded with fugitives; Napoleon’s last stake was
-lost; the battle of Waterloo was, practically, ended.</p>
-
-<p>Of this terrible conflict, Lamartine rapidly sketches the progress, in a
-few glowing lines,&mdash;a summary of various French narratives:</p>
-
-<p>“These 6000 grenadiers advanced with shouldered arms, amidst cries
-of ‘<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Vive l’Empereur!</span>’ Wellington awaited them with forty pieces of
-cannon, with the matches lighted. As they ascended and approached,
-the battery fired a volley point-blank into the advancing mass, which, as
-the smoke arose, was seen to waver for a moment; then to close up and
-advance as compact as ever. On a second discharge the same oscillation
-took place, the same closing up. On the third discharge the English saw
-the column reduced to a block of men, decimated by grape-shot:&mdash;two of
-the battalions had been struck down, the other two hesitated, and recoiled
-to seek another means of access to these impregnable heights. Napoleon
-turned pale, and at length doubted of victory.”</p>
-
-<p>This may be said to be the language of a florid writer, depicting the
-event long after its occurrence. But Count Drouet, who witnessed the
-whole scene, thus described it in the Chamber of Peers, just six days
-after the battle:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The (first) four battalions of the Guard, when they arrived on the
-plateau, were received by the most terrible fire of musquetry and grape.
-The <em>great number of wounded men</em> who separate from the column, cause
-it to be believed that the Guard is routed. A panic terror communicates
-itself to the neighbouring (or second) column, which precipitately takes
-flight.”</p>
-
-<p>Count Drouet, witnessing the repulse of both the columns, from the
-height behind, might suppose that the dispersal of the second arose from
-panic; but in so thinking, he did injustice to his countrymen. The
-second column came into action as gallantly us the first; but, although
-it was the stronger of the two, it had to contend with two English brigades
-instead of one; and its chance of success was therefore proportionally
-smaller. Clearly, it was bad generalship to send the two columns,
-one after the other, to be beaten separately. Had they reached the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_407" id="Page_407">[407]</a></span>
-British position at the same moment, they would have brought against
-the two British brigades a force outnumbering them by two to one.
-Gourgaud thus describes the fate of this second column: “The eight
-battalions of the Guard which were in the centre, after having withstood
-for a long time all the attacks of the enemy, and contended for every foot
-of ground, were at last completely disorganized by the mass of the fugitives,
-and overwhelmed by the numbers of the enemy.”</p>
-
-<p>With the failure of this, his last attack, Napoleon’s hopes, and his
-empire, ended. His fall, when it came at last, proved a crash which
-left nothing for destruction to do. At the moment when the Imperial
-Guards were sent back in confusion, the Prussians under Marshal Blucher
-had come into action. His cavalry had supported the English left,
-and two brigades of English cavalry, which guarded the extreme left of
-the Duke’s position, had been released from this duty, and had moved to
-the support of the British centre. And now, the Prussian infantry of
-the first corps, commanded by General Zieten, rushed upon the villages
-of La Haye and Smohain, and instantly carried them at the bayonet’s
-point. A third column renewed the attack on Planchenoit, which was
-almost in the centre of the French position. The moment was come for
-a general advance, and the Duke, with that wonderful perception which
-distinguished his whole career, instantly seized it. He himself describes
-this critical moment, in the account written the very next day. He
-says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Having observed that the troops (Imperial Guard) retired from this
-attack in great confusion, and that the march of the Prussians on Planchenoit
-had begun to take effect, I determined to attack the enemy,
-and immediately advanced the whole line of infantry, supported by the
-cavalry and artillery.”</p>
-
-<p>An eye-witness thus described the scene at the time, “The Duke, who
-had been attentively observing what was passing in the French and
-Prussian armies, suddenly shut up his telescope, and exclaimed to the
-officers near him, ‘Now, every man must advance!’”</p>
-
-<p>Long had this order been eagerly expected. The British troops had
-stood for more than eight hours under a terrible fire. They had seen
-more than one-fourth of their numbers struck down by cannon-shot, and
-they longed for one final struggle, which should end the whole contest.
-The order flew to the right and to the left, and loud were the shouts
-with which it was received. Everywhere the lines of infantry were
-formed, the cavalry mounted and rode on, and a scene of triumph and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_408" id="Page_408">[408]</a></span>
-exultation commenced, of which none who witnessed it could ever lose the
-memory.</p>
-
-<p>We have observed, a few sentences back, that only half an hour before,
-two brigades of light cavalry, Vivian’s and Vandeleur’s, had been moved
-from the extreme left of the English line, and brought nearer to the
-centre. These six regiments, numbering about 2000 sabres, were now
-of the greatest possible service, in driving before them the broken and
-scattered French. They charged and dispersed various bodies of cavalry
-which attempted to form and make a stand, and continued pressing upon
-the fugitives of the infantry till the whole mass of Napoleon’s army
-melted into a chaotic crowd. And now were seen, on all sides, “unfurled
-colours raised aloft, bands striking up, the soldiers cheering tumultuously,
-as, with one simultaneous movement, they quitted the height on which
-they had so long stood, and descended joyfully into the plain, over which
-the French, on all sides, were now retreating in disorder.”</p>
-
-<p>Their great commander himself was naturally among the foremost in
-this magnificent advance. Napier says, “The Duke, who was stationed
-on the left of the guns and the right of the Guards, gave the order to
-advance, and like lightning rode to the rear, and brought up the light
-cavalry, cheering them on, with his hat off&mdash;his cheers most cordially
-echoed by my brave fellows and myself.” He rode in front of Adam’s
-brigade, cheering it forward, speaking joyously to the men, and receiving
-their hearty shouts of congratulation. At last one of his staff ventured
-to hint to him that they were getting into the enemy’s lines, and that
-his life ought not to be thrown away. “Never mind,” was the reply,
-“the battle’s won, and my life is of no consequence now.”</p>
-
-<p>Down the slope of their own heights, across the valley, up the face of
-the enemy’s hill, marched the British line triumphantly. Here and there
-a remnant of a French battalion or squadron offered a brief resistance;
-but the cry of “<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Sauve qui peut!</i>” had been heard, and the French knew
-that the battle was lost, and that the Prussians were already in their rear.
-Hence Fleury de Chaboulon, Napoleon’s own secretary, thus describes the
-close:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Wellington did not allow our grenadiers time to recollect themselves.
-He caused them to be attacked in flank by his cavalry, and compelled
-them to retire in the greatest disorder. At the same moment the Prussians
-carried the village of La Haye; and our cavalry, our infantry,
-already staggered by the defeat of the Guard, were afraid of being cut
-off, and precipitately retreated. The other troops of the right, seeing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_409" id="Page_409">[409]</a></span>
-some of our squadrons pell-mell, and some of the Guards running away,
-thought all was lost, and quitted their position. This contagious movement
-was communicated in an instant to the left, and the whole army
-abandoned its strongest posts as eagerly as they had previously assailed
-them. Soon the whole army was nothing but a confused crowd, which the
-English and Prussians routed without effort, and massacred without pity.”<a name="FNanchor_38_38" id="FNanchor_38_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a></p>
-
-<p>“Napoleon,” says Lamartine, “saw that army which a few hours
-before was his only hope, now returning in broken fragments, and
-exclaimed, ‘All is lost!’ For a moment he contemplated the disastrous
-scene, turned pale, stammered, and shed some tears, the first he had ever
-shed upon a field of battle.”</p>
-
-<p>On marched the English, seized at every step the artillery which had
-so long poured its iron hail upon them, and driving before them the
-crowds of dismayed and disordered French. Up the heights on which
-Napoleon and his army had stood, they now exultingly pressed, and here
-the two Generals met, with mutual congratulations. Marshal Blucher
-had well performed his part, though the state of the roads had hindered
-his arrival until the very close of the battle. In less than an hour he
-had driven in the whole right wing of the French army, and now reached
-the very centre of Napoleon’s position, at the same moment when the
-Duke had penetrated to the same point with his attack in front. After
-a few moments of hearty rejoicing, the English commander gladly resigned
-to the Prussian, the remaining duty of a vigorous pursuit. The British
-troops, after a long day’s work, were physically unable to chase their
-enemies far. The Prussian General, therefore, to quote their own accounts,
-assembled his officers, and gave orders to send the last horse and
-the last man in pursuit of the enemy.”</p>
-
-<p>Well and earnestly was this duty performed. All night long were the
-wretched French pursued. Nine times did they attempt to halt for rest,
-and nine times was the Prussian drum heard, and the flight was again
-to be resumed. A French officer<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> thus describes the scene:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Near one of the hedges of Hougoumont, without even a drummer
-to beat the rappel, we succeeded in rallying 300 men; these were
-nearly all that remained of our splendid division. Thither came also
-a band of Generals. Here was Reille,<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a> D’Erlon, Bachelor, Foy, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_410" id="Page_410">[410]</a></span>
-others. All were gloomy and sorrowful. They said, one to another,
-‘Here is all that is left of my corps,&mdash;of my division,&mdash;of my brigade!&mdash;I
-myself!’</p>
-
-<p>“The enemy’s horse approached, and we were obliged to retreat. The
-movements of the English cavalry had demoralized our soldiers, who,
-seeing all regular retreat cut off, strove each man to save himself. Infantry,
-cavalry, artillery, all jammed together, were pressing along pell-mell.
-Figure to yourself 40,000 men all struggling along a single causeway.
-We could not take that way, so we struck across the fields. We were
-humiliated, we were hopeless; we walked like a troop of mourners.</p>
-
-<p>“We passed through Thuin, and finding a little copse, we gladly
-sought its shelter. While our horses grazed, we lay down and slept. We
-rested in the little copse till noon, and sat watching the wrecks of our
-army defile along the road. It was a soul-harrowing sight!</p>
-
-<p>“We drew near to Beaumont, when suddenly a regiment of horse was
-seen debouching from a wood on our left. The column that we followed
-cried out, ‘The Prussians! the Prussians!’ and hurried off in utter
-disorder.</p>
-
-<p>“I was trying to return to General Foy, when another horde of fugitives
-burst into Beaumont, swept me into the current of their flight, and
-hurried me out of the town with them. I reached Landrecy, though I
-know not how or when.”</p>
-
-<p>Such is the description given by one of the fugitives, and it exactly
-corresponds with the official report of the Prussian General, Gneisenau,
-who says, “The French army, pursued without intermission, was absolutely
-disorganized. The highway presented the appearance of an immense
-shipwreck; it was covered with an innumerable quantity of
-cannon, caissons, baggage, arms, and goods of every kind. As soon as
-the enemy heard the sound of our drums, they fled, while the moonlight
-favoured the pursuit, for the whole march was a continued chase, whether
-in the corn-fields or in the houses.”</p>
-
-<p>“At three o’clock Napoleon had despatched a courier to Paris with
-the news that victory was certain: a few hours afterwards he had no
-longer an army.”</p>
-
-<p>The French accounts, Gourgaud’s, Napoleon’s, &amp;c., written long after,
-endeavour to diminish the defeat by representing that within a week as
-many us 60 or 65,000 men were re-assembled at Laon. Some one
-attempted to make a representation of this sort in the French Chamber
-of Peers, on the 24th of June; when Marshal Ney rose in his place, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span>
-declared all such accounts to be deceptive. “It is a mere illusion to
-suppose that 60,000 men can be collected. Marshal Grouchy,” said he,
-“cannot have more than 20,000, or 25,000 at the most.”</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, however, the question is set at rest by Fleury de Chaboulon,
-Napoleon’s secretary, who describes very vividly what followed
-immediately after the battle. He tells us, how, in his flight, on meeting
-Maret, “the Emperor could not repress his emotion; a large tear, escaping
-from his eyes, betrayed the efforts of his soul.” Again he says,
-“The Emperor stopped beyond Rocroi to take some refreshment. We were
-all in a pitiable state: our eyes swelled with tears, our countenances
-haggard, our clothes covered with dust or blood.” And, on arriving at
-Paris, when one of his ministers spoke of the army, Napoleon exclaimed,
-“<em>I have no longer an army!</em> I have nothing but fugitives!”<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a></p>
-
-<p>It was this absolute destruction of the French army which made
-Waterloo one of the greatest and most important of all victories. Thus,
-Jules Maurel, a French historian, says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“From a comparison of all the documents, it appears, that Bonaparte
-was already beaten when the mass of the Prussian army appeared on the
-field; but the arrival of Bulow had powerfully assisted the British, and
-the arrival of Blucher changed the defeat into <em>an unparalleled disaster</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>Lamartine, another Frenchman, adds:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“This defeat left nothing undecided,&mdash;nothing for the future to do.
-Victory had given judgment: the war began and ended in a single battle.”</p>
-
-<p>But let us return for a moment to the great victor of the day. At a
-road-side house, near Rossomme, he left Blucher, who gladly undertook
-the pursuit, and after twelve hours of constant exertion, he turned his
-charger’s head once more towards Mont St. Jean and Waterloo. Darkness
-now shrouded a thousand scenes of horror, over which it had been useless
-to pause. At his quarters the Duke found assembled the survivors of
-his staff, the representatives of the allied powers, and a few other friends.
-All sorely needed rest and food, and the meal was ready. On leaving his
-quarters in the morning, he had desired his domestics to have dinner
-ready to place on the table “whenever it might be wanted” and his cook
-excited amusement by the confidence with which he asserted, that “his
-master had ordered dinner, and would certainly return to eat it.” But
-the thoughts which would throng into the conqueror’s mind, at that
-moment, must have been such as few men have ever experienced.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_412" id="Page_412">[412]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The foremost considerations with the Duke of Wellington always were,
-<em>his country, and his duty</em>. But besides these there was a personal question,
-little spoken of by him, but which could not be excluded from his
-thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>“I go to measure myself with Wellington,” exclaimed Napoleon, when
-he flung himself into his carriage, only a few days before, to join his
-army on the Belgian frontier. The Duke spoke not of such matters, but
-he could not possibly forget that the muse of history was waiting all
-that day, to know <em>which</em> of the two great names was to take the highest
-place among the many able commanders of the nineteenth century. The
-one had defeated, in turn, nearly every general in Europe, except Wellington.
-The other had triumphed over almost all the Marshals of France,
-but had not yet confronted Napoleon.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Moyle Sherer thus writes:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Upon the night of that memorable battle, the words and emotions of
-the conqueror will long be remembered by those who sat with him at
-supper, after the anxious and awful day had closed. The fountain of a
-great heart lies deep, and the self-government of a calm mind permits no
-tears. But, this night, Wellington repeatedly leaned back in his chair,
-and rubbing his hands convulsively, exclaimed, “Thank God! I have
-met him: Thank God! I have met him.”<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> And, ever as he spoke, the
-smile that lighted up his eye was dimmed by those few tears that gush
-warm from a grateful heart.</p>
-
-<p>“His many and deep anxieties; his noble desire to defeat his country’s
-implacable enemy; his rational doubts of success against so great a
-general;&mdash;these and many other fears and hopes, undisclosed to any one,
-all were now resolved and dissipated by a result more sudden, full, and
-glorious than any expectation he could have formed, or any hope he could
-have admitted. England was placed on the very pinnacle of glory; her
-foe was prostrate, his legions fugitives, and her general might joyfully
-look around and say, ‘This work was mine!’”</p>
-
-<p>But after necessary food, and the writing of despatches and letters,
-came such rest as the excited mind and body could take. The Duke
-threw himself, unwashed but exhausted, on his bed long after midnight.
-He had desired Dr. Hume to bring him the report of the surgeons at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span>
-seven in the morning. The doctor was punctual, but the claims of
-nature were not satisfied, the Duke’s sleep was still sound. Knowing
-that, with him, duty was paramount to all other considerations, the
-doctor at once awakened him. The list was produced, and the doctor
-began to read; but as name after name came forth&mdash;this one as dying,
-that as dead&mdash;the voice failed, and Hume, looking up, perceived the
-tears rapidly chasing each other down the victor’s blackened cheeks;&mdash;he
-laid down the list and instantly left the apartment.</p>
-
-<p>The British loss was indeed great. Of the Duke’s staff twelve were
-killed and forty-six wounded. The number of British officers killed and
-wounded in these three days exceeded 700, and of privates it was more
-than 10,000, so that about every third man in the British ranks had
-been struck down in this terrible battle. The loss of Dutch, Hanoverians,
-&amp;c., had been 7,000; and that of the Prussians exceeded 6,000.
-As to the French, their loss in killed and wounded never could be ascertained;
-but it is certain that of 150,000 men who crossed the
-frontiers, not 50,000 were ever re-assembled under their colours.</p>
-
-<p>The utter loss of his army sent Napoleon back to Paris. But the
-news of his total defeat arrived along with him. His fame, his “glory,”
-and his power perished together. The Chambers rose in rebellion against
-him; and his abdication was demanded. The English and Prussian
-armies, meanwhile, rapidly advanced; and on their arrival before Paris
-the city capitulated; the King returned to his palace; and Napoleon gave
-himself up to the Captain of an English ship of war. On the 15th of
-June one of the finest armies that he had ever led into the field entered
-Belgium to take advantage of the Duke of Wellington’s unprepared
-state;&mdash;on the 3rd of July, just fifteen days after, <em>Paris itself capitulated</em>!
-Such were the vast results of Waterloo.</p>
-
-<p>Napoleon, indeed, had been in some peril, for the Prussian general
-showed a particular anxiety to get hold of him, in order that he might
-hang him! The Duke had no fondness for him,&mdash;always designating
-him in his despatches, merely as “Bonaparte;” but the old Prussian
-field-marshal, remembering the cruel treatment of his country by the
-French in 1807, felt, and constantly expressed, sentiments of positive
-hatred. The Duke, however, with that loftiness of aim and of feeling
-which had forbidden his officers to fire upon Napoleon during the action,
-firmly resisted Blucher’s desires on this point. General Muffling, the
-Prussian commissioner, tells us, that the Duke said to him, “I wish my
-friend and colleague to see this matter in the light I do: such an act<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span>
-would give our names to history stained with a crime; and posterity
-would say of us, “They were not worthy to be his conquerors; the
-more so, as such a deed would be useless, and can have no object.”</p>
-
-<p>In the same tone the Duke wrote to Sir Charles Stuart, telling him,
-“I said, that as a private friend, I advised him to have nothing to do
-with so foul a transaction; that he and I had acted too distinguished
-parts in these transactions to become executioners; and that I was
-determined that if the Sovereign put him to death, they should appoint
-an executioner, <em>which should not be me</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>In a similar spirit, the Duke succeeded in preventing the Prussians
-from executing other plans of vengeance, such us the blowing up the
-bridge of Jena, pulling down the column of Austerlitz, and the like. In
-fact, had the old marshal been alone in these transactions, he would gladly
-have indulged his troops with the plunder of Paris.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, such an utter overthrow as France had received, and that in
-the course of a few days, was hardly to be paralleled in history. Sufficient
-stress has seldom been laid upon that wonderful working of the Divine
-Providence by which this great contest, expected by all men to be so
-long, so desperate, and so sanguinary, was suddenly brought to a close
-on the fourth day after its commencement. All the great powers of
-Europe had agreed upon a united effort. They had pledged their faith
-to one another to place 600,000 men on the soil of France in July, 1815.</p>
-
-<p>All at once, in the middle of June, while the bulk of these armies
-were moving up from Poland, Bohemia, Hungary, and other distant lands,
-they hear that the war is begun. And in four days after, they hear that
-it is <em>finished</em>! Such is not the ordinary course of human history.</p>
-
-<p>All, however, is easily accounted for. Napoleon saw in England the
-most resolute, consistent, and indomitable of his foes, and in England’s
-Great General, the only Captain whom he could hold in no light esteem.
-He said, and not unwisely, “If the Anglo-Belgian army had been
-destroyed at Waterloo, what service could the Allies derive from the
-number of armies which were preparing to cross the Rhine, the Alps,
-and the Pyrenees?”<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a></p>
-
-<p>And acting upon this sound view of the case, and knowing that one or
-two more weeks would elapse before Wellington could have his veteran
-battalions around him, he resolved to throw himself like an avalanche
-upon the Duke’s army in its unreadiness; in the hope that a campaign<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span>
-beginning with a defeat of this his chief opponent would alarm England,
-terrify the other powers, and so make peace, with his continued retention
-of the throne of France, attainable.</p>
-
-<p>This plan was a sagacious as well as a bold one. It grappled at once
-with the grand difficulty of the case. But the difficulty, when grappled
-with, overmastered him. Still, the peculiar characteristics of this momentous
-struggle deserves to be carefully remarked. A judicious writer has
-well observed, that:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Waterloo seemed to bear the features of a grand, immediate interposition
-of Providence. Had human judgments been consulted, they
-would have drawn a different plan. The Prussians would have joined
-the English and have swept the enemy before them; or, the British
-would have been in force enough to have beaten the French long before
-the set of sun, &amp;c., &amp;c. But if the French had suffered a common defeat,
-with consummate generals at their head they would have rallied; or,
-retiring in force, would have called in all available aids, and have renewed
-the struggle. So the conflict held on till the last moment, when they
-could neither escape nor conquer. If they had retreated an hour before
-nightfall they might have been saved; if they could have fought an hour
-after it, darkness would have covered them. But the crash came on the
-very edge of darkness. The Prussians came up unfatigued by battle and
-fresh for pursuit. The night was to be a night of slaughter. ‘Thou,
-moon, in the valley of Ajalon.’”</p>
-
-<p>Such was one of the grand events of modern history,&mdash;the victory
-which gave all Europe peace for forty years. Ascribing, as we most
-unreservedly do, the whole ordering of this momentous struggle to an
-overruling Providence, it still seems a duty to add a few words on the
-respective merits, or demerits, connected with this tremendous contest, of
-the two great commanders, who for the first and last time met at
-Waterloo. Let us first glance at the great deeds achieved, and the
-great mistakes committed, by Napoleon in the course of these three
-eventful days.</p>
-
-<p>He carried his magnificent army over the frontier, and threw it upon
-the allied armies in a manner exhibiting the most consummate skill.
-Twenty years spent in the practice of war had given him an expertness
-in the handling of large bodies of troops which few generals have ever
-possessed. He showed also on the 16th that he was a better general
-than Blucher, and that his army was a better army than that of the
-Prussians. But here our commendation must close; for a variety of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span>
-faults and errors have been pointed out by military critics, of which we
-shall only mention a few of the chief. Napoleon was guilty of two great
-miscalculations, and of three important practical mistakes. These were:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>1. He rashly and erroneously assumed that his appearance in Belgium
-at the head of a fine army would force his opponents, Wellington and
-Blucher, out of mere awe and terror, to fall back, to evacuate the country,
-and so to give him a triumph at the opening of the campaign. In his
-ixth Book he seriously argues that they <em>ought</em> to have done so: but this
-was a strange miscalculation. When had either Wellington or Blucher
-showed any alacrity in running away? And what right had he to
-assume that a force amounting, when united, to nearly 200,000 men,
-would act as if terror-stricken, on the mere appearance of a French
-army of only 150,000? Yet he constantly tells us that they ought to
-have retreated, and that his calculations always rested on the presumption
-that they certainly would retreat.</p>
-
-<p>2. In like manner was he disappointed when he sent Grouchy with
-35,000 or 40,000 men, to occupy and keep employed the whole Prussian
-army. Again did he absurdly overlook the real character of Blucher,
-who was not one to be easily duped. Napoleon might speculate, if he
-pleased, on the chance of keeping Blucher at Wavre while he was
-overpowering and crushing Wellington at Waterloo; but Blucher was
-equally at liberty to despise all such devices, and to leave Napoleon’s
-lieutenant in order to seek for Napoleon himself. This was what actually
-took place, and hence we see that again Napoleon is exposed to the
-imputation of having fatally miscalculated.</p>
-
-<p>3. But as in his plans there were these two errors, so in actual execution
-we meet with three egregious faults. Having found Wellington
-with his weak army apart from Blucher, why did he allow several hours
-to elapse before he seized the opportunity for which he had been hoping?
-He speaks of the softened state of the ground after several hours’ rain.
-But, as we have seen, when Grouchy advances the same excuse for
-inaction at Wavre, he styles it “ridiculous!” and who can say that the
-movements which he actually made at eleven o’clock, <em>could not</em> have
-been made at ten, or even at nine o’clock? Meanwhile, although
-Napoleon was <em>waiting</em>, the Prussians were <em>marching</em>. They found the
-task <em>difficult</em>, while he deemed it <em>impossible</em>. In earlier days he would
-have replied that “there was no such word in his vocabulary.”</p>
-
-<p>4. Again, to what strange hallucination was it owing, that, all through
-the day, attacks which might have been made simultaneously were only<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span>
-discharged in succession? Thus, at three or four o’clock, he sorely tried
-the nerve and pluck of the English infantry by pouring in upon them
-“twelve thousand select horse.” It took them three hours to kill or
-drive away these formidable intruders. And <em>then</em>, when the French
-cavalry had been destroyed, Napoleon next attacked the English line
-with six or eight thousand of his Imperial Guard. But what prevented
-his moving this formidable column up the heights of Mont St. Jean,
-while the cuirassiers were already in possession of the plateau? They
-had seized or silenced the English artillery; they had compelled the
-infantry to throw themselves into squares. If a mass of the finest
-infantry in France had then been thrown upon the British centre, how
-fearful would have been the trial? But Napoleon still delayed. He
-sent on his cavalry, unsupported by any infantry; and then, when the
-cavalry had been “massacred,” he sent on a column of infantry, unsupported
-by any cavalry. Will the greatest admirer of his genius hesitate
-to admit that his practical generalship, his excellence as a leader in battle,
-was not conspicuous at Waterloo? Yet, wherefore was he less vigorous,
-less audacious at Waterloo, than at Austerlitz or Jena? He was still in
-the very prime of life. Must we suppose that the toils and troubles and
-disappointments of 1812&ndash;1814 had prematurely worn out his mind;
-and that he was already, at only forty-six years of age, mentally decrepit?</p>
-
-<p>5. The most singular exhibition of defect in generalship, however,
-and of blindness to that defect, is seen in this,&mdash;that he could not lose a
-battle without utterly losing his army also!</p>
-
-<p>The general who can bear a defeat well, and can carry off his army
-with only a moderate loss, is entitled to take a high rank amongst commanders.
-He who cannot do this is only a fair-weather general.</p>
-
-<p>The Prussian commander was attacked on the 16th before his army
-was all assembled. He placed his men badly,&mdash;so badly that Wellington
-predicted their certain defeat. Yet, when that defeat fell upon him, he
-rallied his army at a distance of a quarter of a league, and was ready
-and eager to fight another battle on the second day after. It was this
-unconquerability which made Blucher one of the most formidable antagonists
-of his time.</p>
-
-<p>But let us turn to Napoleon. He invites us to do this, by the pertinacity
-with which he assails Wellington on this very point. Again and
-again he brings the charge vehemently against him, that at Waterloo he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span>
-had made no provision for a retreat. Thus, in Book ix, p. 124, he
-says:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“He had in his rear the defiles of the forest of Soignes, so that, if
-beaten, retreat was impossible.”</p>
-
-<p>And again, at p. 158&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The enemy must have seen with affright how many difficulties the
-field of battle he had chosen was about to throw in the way of his
-retreat.”</p>
-
-<p>And again, at p. 207&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“The position of Mont St. Jean was ill-chosen. The first requisite of
-a field of battle, is, to have no defiles in its rear. The injudicious
-choice of his field of battle, rendered all retreat impossible.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus Napoleon challenges our criticism on this very point. All military
-authorities are agreed that he was wrong in his censure on Wellington.
-It is conceded even by Frenchmen like Lamartine, that the forest of
-Soignes, instead of being a source of peril, was an element of safety.
-But he who assails his rival on this especial point, of a provision for
-retreat, must expect to be asked, himself, “How his own retreat was
-conducted?”</p>
-
-<p>There is no parallel to its disastrous character. An army of nearly
-90,000 fine soldiers, not 40,000 of which could have been killed or
-wounded, was nothing the next day but a vast horde of fugitives. We
-notice, with contemptuous pity, how the Spanish generals, in 1809, managed
-to incur such a disgraceful defeat at Ocana, that out of 50,000
-men, not 1,000 kept the field a week after. But here was one of the
-finest armies that ever France sent forth, commanded too, by the conqueror,
-of Europe; and even the very day after the battle, not a single thousand
-men were to be found in the field! All were utterly scattered
-and broken up. And yet their general has the assurance, in criticising
-the general who has beaten him, to censure him, especially, because
-“he had taken no precautions to secure his retreat!”</p>
-
-<p>But now of his great rival and conqueror:&mdash;The Duke of Wellington
-had not the same opportunity for displaying his skill and talent in 1815,
-which he had enjoyed in 1813. His proposed campaign was to open on
-the 1st of July, and it had been the favourite object of Napoleon to take
-the initiative, to open the campaign before the British troops from
-America had arrived, and thus to lead the campaign himself without
-waiting for the Duke to open it. Hence, during these three days,
-Napoleon was always advancing, attacking, while Wellington, with his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span>
-weak army was making the best defence he could. And, accordingly, at
-Waterloo, the Duke knowing the disparity of his force, could only hope
-to “keep his ground” till the Prussians should arrive. He was in the
-position of a small man attacked by a giant. He could only parry his
-blows and allow the assailant to exhaust his strength, in the hope that,
-at last, by a well-aimed thrust he might lay his enemy prostrate. For
-nine long hours, therefore, the Duke’s whole business was to meet and
-repel the powerful attacks of Napoleon; and he had to do this with,
-according to Napoleon’s own admission, “less than 40,000 good troops.”
-In fact, his infantry, British and of the German Legion, were only
-18,485, his British and German Legion cavalry 7,834, while Napoleon
-had very nearly 70,000 excellent infantry, and more than 18,000 splendid
-cavalry. Yet for these nine hours did the Duke meet and repel all his
-assaults. This sort of soldiership is less showy than daring manœuvres,
-but it is equally valuable; and in the present instance, when the materials
-the Duke had to work with are considered, the merit of it is not at all inferior.
-One of the best generals commanding under the Duke, when acknowledging
-the thanks of the House of Commons, said, “An army hastily
-drawn together, composed of the troops of various nations, and amongst
-which were counted several brigades of inexperienced militia, was the
-force which the Duke had to oppose to one of the most formidable and
-best-appointed armies that France ever produced. No other man living
-could have rendered the service which he performed, with an army so
-composed.”</p>
-
-<p>The chief point, however, in the character of a great general is the
-possession of that “eagle eye” which enables him, amid all the din and
-turmoil of a horrible contest, to perceive exactly the right moment for
-vigorous action, and the right place at which to aim an attack. It was
-this, especially, which gave the Duke his first signal victory over the
-French at Salamanca; and it was this which turned the repulse of the
-French at Waterloo into a disastrous defeat.</p>
-
-<p>Narrative-writers, collecting, long after, the best available testimony
-from all quarters, and carefully comparing and sifting the whole, are
-able to arrive at probable conclusions as to the order and date of the
-leading events. But this sort of calm investigation is wholly different
-from the horrible din, the ceaseless clamour, and the almost impervious
-smoke which obscures everything on the battle-field. We, for instance,
-comparing the accounts of the French, the Prussians, and the Austrians,
-are able to arrive at the conclusion, with absolute certainty that General<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span>
-Bulow’s corps first showed itself on the right of the French line about
-half-past four, and began to take part in the engagement about half-past
-five. But it is quite certain that the Duke, fully occupied just then with
-the French cavalry, who were riding round his squares, knew nothing of
-the actual arrival of the long-expected succour until long after. It was
-nearly two hours after this, when, by carefully examining every part of
-the left of his line, the Duke was able to perceive the rising of smoke
-over Planchenoit. This was not until seven o’clock; but it assured him
-of this, that some part of the promised Prussian support had arrived, and
-that more must be coming up. And this was sufficient to give him new
-hopes of ultimate success, though he could be certain, as yet, of very little
-more than that some aid was at hand.</p>
-
-<p>It was shortly after this, and about the time of the movement of the
-Imperial Guard, when news reached him from Marshal Blucher himself
-that he was then actually joining the extreme left of the British line. It
-was this support which enabled the British light cavalry to move from
-the left of the line, and to take a position nearer the centre. And hence,
-when the English and the French Guards had tried each other’s mettle,
-and the latter had retired in disorder, the Duke saw at one comprehensive
-glance the arrival of that moment for which he had been longing,&mdash;the
-defeat and confusion of Napoleon’s last reserve; the presence of the long-promised
-Prussian succours, at that last moment of daylight, which just
-allowed time for one daring movement and no more. And the decision
-and boldness with which the Duke seized this golden opportunity are
-among the finest traits in the whole history of great military deeds. A
-brief hesitation, if only of a quarter of an hour, would have allowed the
-French, although beaten, to retire at leisure. A renewal of the contest
-might have followed after the lapse of a couple of days, but how different
-would have been the whole history of such a campaign from that of
-Waterloo! It was this clear perception of the right moment for an
-attack, and the fearlessness with which fewer than 30,000 men were
-led forward to assault at least twice their numbers, commanded by Napoleon,
-Soult, and Ney,&mdash;it was this wonderful union of prudence,
-decision, and the highest kind of valour, which made the Duke of Wellington
-the first of all the generals of his day.</p>
-
-<p>And, united with those lofty endowments, there was the patient,
-enduring, untiring discharge of every duty of a commander. In this,
-as in every other of his battles, the Duke was constantly wherever his
-presence was needed. There could not be a pressure felt at any portion<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_421" id="Page_421">[421]</a></span>
-of the line,&mdash;there could not be an anxious moment when even the bravest
-might look around him and begin to think of the possibility of an
-overthrow, but presently the well-known chestnut-horse would be seen,
-and the whisper would run through the ranks, “Here’s the Duke! stand
-fast!” This might seem to some to be merely a matter of course; but it
-is the being always in the right place at the right time; it is the union of
-the commonest duties with the highest which fills up the outline of a great
-character, and leaves to posterity not only a brilliant name, but a really
-bright example.”<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a></p>
-
-
-<p>WAWZ, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, March 31st, 1831, between the
-Poles and the Russians. After two days of hard labour in fighting, the
-Poles carried the Russian works, who were obliged to retreat, with the
-loss of 12,000 men and 2000 prisoners. This triumph of the Poles was
-shortly after followed by defeat and massacre.</p>
-
-
-<p>WHITE PLAINS, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the revolted American
-Provinces and the British, under Sir William Howe. Fought,
-November 30th, 1776. This was the most serious of the early battles of
-that unfortunate war, and terminated in the defeat of the Americans,
-who suffered considerable loss in killed, wounded, and prisoners.</p>
-
-
-<p>WIGAN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In the civil war of England, fought
-between the King’s troops and the Parliamentary forces. The former
-were defeated, 1643. Another battle, between the same parties, was
-fought here, 1651.</p>
-
-
-<p>WITEPSK, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the French and Russians.
-The former commanded by Marshal Victor, and the latter by General
-Wittgenstein. The French were defeated, after a desperate engagement,
-having lost 3000 men. Fought, November 14th, 1812.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_422" id="Page_422">[422]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p>WORCESTER, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In the civil war fought between
-the Royalist army and the forces of the Parliament, the latter commanded
-by Cromwell, a large body of Scots having marched into England to
-reinstate Charles II, Cromwell signally defeated them, and it afforded
-to him what he called his <em>crowning mercy</em>; more than 2000 of the
-Royalists were slain, and of 8000 prisoners, nearly all were sold as slaves
-to the American Colonies. Fought, September 3rd, 1651. The following
-is an account of the flight of the young King, after the disastrous
-day of battle:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Charles, in his progress towards Bristol, was pursued by a party of
-the enemy to the new ferry over the Severn. He rode through Shire
-Newton, and crossed the Severn at Chiswell Pit, on the Gloucestershire
-side. The boat had scarcely returned, before a body of the republicans,
-amounting to 60 men, followed him to the Black Rock, and threatening
-them with instant death if they refused, compelled the ferrymen
-to take them across. The boatmen were royalists, and left them on a
-reef called English Stones, which is separated from the Gloucestershire
-side by a lake, fordable at low water; but the tide, which had just
-turned, flowed in with great rapidity, and they were all drowned in
-attempting to cross. Cromwell, when informed of this disaster, abolished
-the ferry, and it was not renewed until the year 1748. The renewal
-occasioned a law-suit between the family of St. Pierre and the guardians
-of the Duke of Beaufort. In the course of the suit, documents were
-produced which tended to confirm this anecdote.”</p>
-
-
-<p>WRECKS.&mdash;The most remarkable shipwrecks of British men of war
-or transports, or of ships, connected with military events, are the following
-which have happened within the last 85 years:</p>
-
-<p>A tremendous storm occurred in October, 1780, in the West Indies,
-and the following vessels of war were all lost.</p>
-
-<p><i>Thunderer</i>, of 74 guns; <i>Stirling Castle</i>, of 64 guns; <i>Phœnix</i>, of 44
-guns; <i>La Blanche</i>, of 42 guns; <i>Laurel</i>, of 28 guns; <i>Andromeda</i>, of
-28 guns; <i>Deal Castle</i>, of 24 guns; <i>Scarborough</i>, of 20 guns; <i>Barbadoes</i>,
-of 14 guns; <i>Cameleon</i>, of 14 guns; <i>Endeavour</i>, of 14 guns; and
-the <i>Victor</i>, of 10 guns.</p>
-
-<p><i>The Royal George</i>&mdash;June 28th, 1782,&mdash;1000 persons and brave Admiral
-Kenpenfeldt perished by the sinking, or rather oversetting of this 100<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span>
-gun man-of-war. The guns on one side all rolled over to the other, and
-with the extra weight immediately overset the ship riding at anchor at
-Spithead.</p>
-
-<p><i>Ramilies</i>, of 74 guns, off Newfoundland, September 21st, 1782. 100
-souls perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Pandora Frigate</i>, on a reef of rocks, August 28th, 1791. 100 souls
-perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Droits de l’Homme</i>&mdash;A British ship of the line, and the <i>Amazon</i>, a
-frigate, lost off Hodierne Bay. Many hundreds perished, January 14th,
-1797.</p>
-
-<p><i>Nassau</i>, of 64 guns, October 25th, 1799. 100 of the crew and marines
-perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Queen</i>, transport on Trefusis Point, January 14th, 1800. 369 souls
-lost.</p>
-
-<p><i>Queen Charlotte</i>, of 110 guns, lost March 17th, 1800. This was the
-flag ship of Lord Keith, commanding in the Mediterranean Sea, burnt
-by accidental fire off the harbor of Leghorn. More than 700 perished.
-The ship took fire just before day break. It was occasioned by a match
-kept burning for the purpose of firing salutes, having communicated
-itself to some hay, &amp;c., and so rapidly did the fire rage, that nothing
-could save the noble vessel. She burned rapidly to the water’s edge, and
-then blew up.</p>
-
-<p><i>Invincible</i>, of 74 guns, March 20th, 1801. 400 souls perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Apollo</i>, frigate, lost April 2nd, 1804, in a heavy gale off Capo Mondego.
-61 of her crew and her commander, perished, and with her 40
-sail of the outward-bound West India fleet, lost.</p>
-
-<p><i>Venerable</i>, of 74 guns, Nov. 24th, 1804. Crew saved.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tartarus</i>, of 74 guns, December 20th, 1804. Crew saved.</p>
-
-<p><i>Æneas</i>, transport, off Newfoundland, lost October 23rd, 1805. 340
-perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Aurora</i>, transport, lost on the Godwin Sands, December 21st, 1805.
-300 perished.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_424" id="Page_424">[424]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><i>Athenienne</i>, of 64 guns lost off Sardinia, October 20th, 1806. 347
-perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Ajax</i>&mdash;Lost by fire off the Island of Tenedos, February 14th, 1807.
-300 perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Boreas</i>, man-of-war, lost upon the Hannois Rock in the Channel,
-November 28th, 1807.</p>
-
-<p><i>Anson</i>, frigate, lost near Land’s End, December 29th, 1807. 125
-persons drowned.</p>
-
-<p><i>Magicienne</i>, frigate, August 16th, 1810. She ran aground at the
-Mauritius, and was abandoned and burnt by her crew.</p>
-
-<p><i>Satellite</i>, sloop-of-war of 16 guns, December 14th, 1810. Upset and
-all on board perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>Minotam</i>, of 74 guns, wrecked on the Haak Bank, December 27th,
-1810. Of 600 persons on board, about 480 were drowned.</p>
-
-<p><i>Amethyst</i>, frigate of 36 guns, lost in the Sound, February 15th, 1811.</p>
-
-<p><i>Barham</i>, of 74 guns. Foundered July 29th, 1811, on the coast of
-Corsica.</p>
-
-<p><i>Saldanha</i>, frigate, lost on the Irish coast, December, 1811. 300
-souls perished.</p>
-
-<p><i>St. George</i>, of 98 guns, and the <i>Defence</i>, of 74 guns, stranded on the
-coast of Jutland, and all souls perished, except 16 seamen, December
-24th, 1811.</p>
-
-<p><i>Seahorse</i>, transport, near Tramore Bay, January 30th, 1816. 365
-souls, chiefly soldiers of the 59th Regiment, and most of the crew, lost.</p>
-
-<p><i>Lord Melville</i>, and <i>Boadicea</i>, two transports lost near Kinsale, Ireland,
-when several hundred of the 82nd Regiment, and almost all the crew
-perished, January 31st, 1816.</p>
-
-<p><i>Harpooner</i>, transport, off Newfoundland, November 10th, 1816. 100
-persons drowned.</p>
-
-<p><i>Kent</i>, shattered by a dreadful storm, February 28th 1825. Afterwards<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span>
-she caught fire; but the passengers and crew were providentially
-saved by the <i>Cambria</i>. There were on board 301 officers and men of
-the 31st regiment, 66 women, 45 children, and 139 seamen.</p>
-
-<p>“The <i>Kent</i>, <i>Indiaman</i>, was making her way in the Bay of Biscay on
-the morning of the 1st of March, 1825, across the heavy swell common
-in that stormy entrance to the Atlantic, when her progress was arrested
-by a fatal accident. An officer, who was sent into the hold to see whether
-the rolling of the vessel had disturbed the stowage, perceiving that a cask
-of spirits had burst from its lashings, gave the lamp he had in his hand
-to a seaman to hold, while he should replace the cask. Unfortunately,
-in the continued rolling of the vessel, the man let the lamp fall near the
-spirits, to which it set fire in a moment. The flames spread; attempts
-were made to smother them by wet blankets and hammocks, but all was
-in vain, and they soon assumed an aspect so tremendous, as to show that
-it would be impossible to subdue them.</p>
-
-<p>At this moment of despair, the man at the mast-head exclaimed that
-a sail was in sight; guns were fired, and a signal of distress hoisted.
-The gale, however, was so heavy, that it was for some time doubtful
-whether the strange vessel perceived the signals, or was likely to turn
-aside from her course; but this painful suspense was soon removed by
-her approach. The boats of the <i>Kent</i> were now got out and placed, not
-alongside, on account of the flames and the danger of staving the boats,
-but a-head and a-stern. In the latter many got out from the cabin-windows,
-but the chief part were let down from the bowsprit into the
-boat a-head, and the men sliding down by a rope, while the soldiers’ wives
-were lowered into the boat slung three together.</p>
-
-<p>The fire had burst out about ten o’clock, and about twelve the signal of
-distress had been perceived by the strange sail, which proved to be the
-<i>Cambria</i>, outward-bound to Mexico, with mining workmen and machinery,
-shipped by the Anglo-Mexican company. It was two o’clock when the
-<i>Cambria</i> received the first boat-load of passengers, consisting of ladies
-and children, half clothed, and pale with fright and fatigue. The whole
-afternoon was passed in exertions on board the one vessel in sending off
-the sufferers, and in the other in receiving them. The <i>Cambria</i> had
-amongst her passengers several stout workmen, who took their station at
-the ship’s side, and were indefatigable in hoisting the poor sufferers on
-board; so that, out of 642 persons in the <i>Kent</i>, no less than 547 were safe
-in the <i>Cambria</i> before midnight. The remainder (95 in number) were
-lost, chiefly in getting out and in of the boats, the swell of the sea being<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_426" id="Page_426">[426]</a></span>
-very great all the time. The captain of the <i>Kent</i> was the last man to
-leave her. She blew up at a few minutes before two o’clock on Wednesday
-morning.</p>
-
-<p>It may naturally be asked how the vessel could keep so long together
-amid so destructive a conflagration? She could not have kept together
-two hours, had not the officers, to avoid one danger, encountered another
-by opening the ports and letting in the water, when she shipped such
-heavy seas as to become water-logged, which of course prevented her
-burning downwards.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Cambria</i>, a vessel of little more than 200 tons, was previously
-sufficiently filled, having goods in her hold, and about 50 persons in
-passengers and ship’s company. How great then must have been the
-pressure and confusion caused by the influx which carried the total on
-board to more than 600! The progress of the fire in the <i>Kent</i> had been
-so rapid, as to prevent the sufferers from saving any clothes, except what
-was on their persons, and both officers and soldiers were thus ill prepared
-to encounter the wet and cold of the deck. The cabin and the ’tween
-decks (the space for the steerage passengers) were thus crowded beyond
-measure, and most fortunate it was that the wind continued favourable
-for the return of the <i>Cambria</i> to an English port. She reached Falmouth
-in 48 hours after quitting the wreck, and landed her unfortunate inmates
-on the 4th of March.”</p>
-
-<p><i>Lord William Bentinck</i>, lost off Bombay; 58 recruits, 20 officers,
-and seven passengers perished. This lamentable occurrence happened
-June 17th, 1840.</p>
-
-<p><i>Abercrombie Robinson</i>, and <i>Waterloo</i>, transports, in Table Bay, Cape
-of Good Hope; of 330 persons on board the last named vessel, 189, principally
-convicts, were drowned, August 28th, 1842.</p>
-
-<p><i>H.M.S. Fantome</i>, of 16 guns, lost off Montevideo, June 25th, 1843.</p>
-
-<p>The troop ship <i>Albert</i> from Halifax with the 64th Regiment on board
-which was miraculously saved July 13th, 1843.</p>
-
-<p><i>H.M. Frigate Wilberforce</i>, lost on the coast of Africa, February 2nd,
-1844.</p>
-
-<p><i>Birkenhead</i>, troopship, from Queenstown to the Cape of Good Hope,
-with detachments of several regiments on board. She struck on a pointed
-rock off Simon’s Bay, and 454 of the crew and soldiers were drowned;
-184 only were saved by the ship’s boat.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>Trent</i>, and a great number of other ships of all capacity, wrecked
-off the Crimea during the war. A tremendous tornado swept the Black<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_427" id="Page_427">[427]</a></span>
-Sea and literally dashed many of the brave ships of England and France
-to pieces.</p>
-
-
-<p>WURTZCHEN, BATTLE OF.&mdash;One of the most bloody and
-fiercely contested battles of the campaign of 1813. Fought between the
-allied Russian and Prussian armies, and the French, commanded by
-Napoleon himself. The carnage was dreadful on each side, but the Allies
-retreated from the field. Fought, May 21st, 1813.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="X_AND_Y" id="X_AND_Y">X <span class="fs70">AND</span> </a>Y.</h3>
-
-
-<p>XIMERA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Spanish army, under the
-command of General Ballasteros, and the French corps, commanded by
-General Regnier. The Spaniards were defeated with great loss; the
-French also lost very much. Fought, September 10th, 1811.</p>
-
-
-<p>XERXES’ BRIDGE. See Bridge of Xerxes.</p>
-
-
-<p>YEAVERNY, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the Scots and the Earl of
-Westmoreland. Fought, 1415. In this memorable engagement, 430
-English discomfited 4000 Scots, and took 160 prisoners; also called the
-battle of Geteringe.</p>
-
-
-<p>YPRES, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between Henry IV of France, and the
-Generals of the Roman Catholic League, over whom he obtained a complete
-victory.</p>
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h3><a name="Z" id="Z"></a>Z.</h3>
-
-
-<p>ZAMA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Between the two greatest Generals of the
-age, Hannibal and Scipio Africanus. The Romans lost 2000 in killed
-and wounded, whilst the Carthaginians lost, in killed and prisoners, more
-than 40,000. Fought <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 202.</p>
-
-<p>“These two generals, who were not only the most illustrious of their
-own age, but worthy of being ranked with the most renowned princes and
-warriors that had ever lived, meeting at the place appointed, continued
-for some time in a deep silence, as though they were astonished, and
-struck with a mutual admiration at the sight of each other. At last
-Hannibal spoke; and, after having praised Scipio in the most artful and
-delicate manner, he gave a very lively description of the ravages of the
-war, and the calamities in which it had involved both the victors and the
-vanquished. He conjured him not to suffer himself to be dazzled by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span>
-splendor of his victories. He represented to him, that how successful
-soever he might have hitherto been, he ought, however, to tremble at the
-inconstancy of fortune: that without going far back for examples, he
-himself who was then speaking to him, was a glaring proof of this: that
-Scipio was at that time what himself, Hannibal, had been at Thrasymene
-and Cannæ: that he ought to make a better use of opportunity than
-himself had done, and consent to peace, now it was in his power to propose
-the conditions of it. He concluded with declaring, that the Carthaginians
-would willingly resign Sicily, Sardinia, Spain, and all the islands
-between Africa and Italy to the Romans. That they must be forced,
-since such was the will of the gods, to confine themselves to Africa; whilst
-they should see the Romans extending their conquests to the most remote
-regions, and obliging all nations to pay obedience to their laws.</p>
-
-<p>Scipio answered in few words, but not with less dignity. He reproached
-the Carthaginians for their perfidy, in plundering the Roman galleys
-before the truce was expired. He imputed to them only, and to their
-injustice, all the calamities with which the two wars had been attended.
-After thanking Hannibal for the admonition he gave him, with regard to
-the uncertainty of human events, he concluded with desiring him to prepare
-for battle, unless he chose rather to accept of the conditions that had
-been already proposed; to which he observed some others would be added,
-in order to punish the Carthaginians for their having violated the truce.</p>
-
-<p>Hannibal could not prevail with himself to accept these conditions and
-the generals left one another, with the resolution to decide the fate of Carthage
-by a general battle. Each commander exhorted his troops to fight
-valiantly. Hannibal enumerated the victories he had gained over the
-Romans, the generals he had slain, the armies he had cut to pieces. Scipio
-represented to his soldiers, the conquests of both the Spains, his successes
-in Africa, and the tacit confession their enemies themselves made of
-their weakness, by thus coming to sue for peace. All this he spoke with
-the tone and air of a conqueror. Never were motives more prevalent to
-prompt troops to behave gallantly. This day was to complete the glory
-of the one or the other of the generals; and to decide whether Rome or
-Carthage was to prescribe laws to all other nations.</p>
-
-<p>I shall not undertake to describe the order of the battle, nor the valour
-of the forces on both sides. The reader will naturally suppose, that two
-such experienced generals did not forget any circumstance which could
-contribute to the victory. The Carthaginians, after a very obstinate fight,
-were obliged to fly, leaving 20,000 men on the field of battle, and the like<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_429" id="Page_429">[429]</a></span>
-number of prisoners were taken by the Romans. Hannibal escaped in the
-tumult, and, entering Carthage, owned that he was irrecoverably overthrown,
-and that the citizens had no other choice left, but to accept of peace
-on any conditions. Scipio bestowed great eulogiums on Hannibal, chiefly
-with regard to his capacity in taking advantages, his manner of drawing
-up his army, and giving out his orders in the engagement; and he affirmed
-that Hannibal had this day surpassed himself, although the success had
-not answered his valour and conduct.</p>
-
-<p>With regard to himself, he well knew how to make a proper advantage
-of the victory, and the consternation with which he had filled the enemy.
-He commanded one of his lieutenants to march his land army to Carthage,
-whilst himself prepared to sail the fleet thither.</p>
-
-<p>He was not far from the city, when he met a vessel covered with
-streamers and olive branches, bringing ten of the most considerable persons
-of the state, as ambassadors to implore his clemency. However, he dismissed
-them without making any answer, and bid them come to him at
-Tunis, where he should halt. The deputies of Carthage, being 30 in
-number, came to him at the place appointed, and sued for peace in the
-most submissive terms. He then called a council there, the majority of
-which were for razing Carthage, and treating the inhabitants with the
-utmost severity. But the consideration of the time which must necessarily
-be employed before so strongly fortified a city could be taken, and
-Scipio’s fear lest a successor might be appointed him whilst he should
-be employed in the siege, made him incline to clemency.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ZARAGOZA, SECOND SIEGE OF.&mdash;“The sufferings of the gallant
-Zaragozans, during the former siege, had not subdued the spirit of
-heroic devotion by which they had been animated. Another trial awaited
-them, not less memorable and glorious, though less fortunate in its
-result.</p>
-
-<p>After the defeat of Tudela, Palafox retired to Zaragoza, to make preparations
-for a second siege. He was not present in the action. The
-intelligence of its issue came upon him like a thunderbolt; and the refusal
-of Castanos to throw his troops into Zaragoza, instead of retreating on
-Madrid, put an end to those feelings of confidence and frankness which
-had hitherto existed between the generals.</p>
-
-<p>The multiplied disasters of the Spanish armies, however, so far from
-shaking the resolution of Palafox or the Zaragozans, appear only to have
-stimulated them to redoubled exertions in the service of their country.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_430" id="Page_430">[430]</a></span>
-Proclamations were issued, commanding all women, old men, and children,
-to quit the city. Every inhabitant was imperatively called upon to
-make sacrifice, if necessary, of his life and property, in the common cause;
-and the whole population were required, by their personal exertions, to
-contribute to the completion of the fortifications of the city.</p>
-
-<p>The approach of the enemy cut short the preparations for defence.
-Neither women nor children left the place. Even these refused to seek
-safety at a distance from their fathers and husbands, and preferred participating
-in the danger and the glory which awaited them in Zaragoza, to
-wandering unprotected through a troubled and a suffering country.</p>
-
-<p>During the former siege, the defenders had been embarrassed by the
-presence of French residents in the city. These had been strictly guarded,
-with the double object of preventing any intercourse between them and
-the besiegers, and of protecting them against the fatal effects of popular
-suspicion, to which, without such precaution, it is more than probable
-they would have fallen victims. In order to prevent the repetition of
-such danger and inconvenience, Palafox determined that these unfortunate
-persons should be removed from the city to other places of confinement.
-This was done, notwithstanding the hostility of the populace,
-though not until Palafox had issued a proclamation appealing to Spanish
-honour and humanity, and imploring the gallant Zaragozans not to stain
-the sacred cause of liberty and justice by the foul murder of these defenceless
-victims.</p>
-
-<p>The aid of superstition was not wanting to strengthen the confidence
-of the Zaragozans. They relied on the miraculous protection of Our
-Lady of the Pillar, who had made their favoured city the seat of her
-peculiar worship. The successful termination of the former siege had
-given strength to their belief in the beneficent regards of the patron
-saint. Omens, too, had been observed in the sky. Approaching victory
-had been prefigured by unwonted conformations of the clouds; and
-celestial voices were heard in the elements, offering divine promise of glory
-and protection.</p>
-
-<p>Fortunately, the Zaragozans were not induced, by their belief in these
-flattering portents, to disregard any of the human means of safety in their
-power. A continued line of exterior defensive works had been planned
-and executed, as far as time and circumstances permitted. Yet this,
-imperfect as it was, added little to the real strength of the city; and, in
-forming a just estimate of the zeal and courage of the defenders, Zaragoza
-should almost be considered as an unfortified town. The walls,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_431" id="Page_431">[431]</a></span>
-originally built rather for the purpose of civic impost than defence, were
-surmounted by 150 pieces of cannon. Large stores of provisions had been
-formed. Arms and ammunition were in abundance; and the town contained
-upwards of 20,000 regular troops, besides 15,000 armed peasants.</p>
-
-<p>All the houses within 700 toises of the place were demolished, and the
-materials employed to strengthen the fortifications. The trees around
-the city were cut down. The greatest activity reigned on all hands; the
-women were employed in making clothes for the soldiers; the monks
-made cartridges: and all those not employed in labouring at the works,
-practised the use of arms.</p>
-
-<p>Measures were likewise taken for the defence of the city, in case the
-enemy, which was scarcely to be doubted, should effect an entrance.
-Traverses were cut across the streets. The doors and windows on the
-ground-floor were strongly barricaded. Communications were made
-between the houses; and parapets were constructed on the roofs. Every
-householder had in his dwelling an ample store of provisions, to enable
-him to continue his resistance when the enemy should gain possession of
-the streets. Thus prepared, the Zaragozans awaited the approach of the
-besiegers.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile, the corps of Marshal Moncey, which had been
-ordered to blockade the city, remained at Alagon, collecting materials,
-and awaiting the arrival of his heavy artillery from Pamplona. On the
-19th of December it was joined by the corps of Mortier, and on the 20th
-the united army appeared before Zaragoza. It consisted of about 35,000
-infantry, and was accompanied by a battering train of sixty pieces. A
-corps of cavalry was stationed at Fuentes, to keep the surrounding country
-in a state of subjection.</p>
-
-<p>The city was approached on both sides of the Ebro. Gazan’s division,
-having passed the river at Tauste, marched, by the road of Castejon, to
-Cuera and Villa Nuevo. That of Suchet took post on the right of the
-Ebro, near a convent, about a league distant from Zaragoza, after driving
-in the Spanish outposts.</p>
-
-<p>During the night, the enemy erected a battery, which commanded the
-Torrero, and, in the morning, opened fire on the fort. Unfortunately, a
-quantity of ammunition was blown up, by the bursting of a shell, which
-occasioned considerable disorder in the garrison. The French took
-advantage of this. A column crossed the canal by an aqueduct, of which
-on the evening before, they had become masters, and entering the fort by
-the gorge, succeeded in maintaining the place against the efforts of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_432" id="Page_432">[432]</a></span>
-garrison. At the same time, a brigade of Morlot’s division advanced up
-the ravine of the Huerba, and, passing the canal under the aqueduct on
-which it crosses that river, gained possession of a work commanding the
-sluices of the canal. Two guns were taken in this work. Three guns
-and 100 prisoners in the fort. General St. Mark succeeded in withdrawing
-the rest of the garrison.</p>
-
-<p>On the 22nd, General Gazan advanced against the suburb, on the left
-of the river. He was encountered by about 4000 of the garrison, posted
-in the woods and gardens, from which, after a warm contest, he succeeded
-in dislodging them. Gazan then attempted to carry the suburb by a
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup-de-main</i>. In this he failed. Repulsed in all his efforts, after a long
-and fruitless contention, he at length withdrew, pursued by the garrison,
-and with the loss of near 1000 men. The chief loss of the besieged consisted
-of a corps of Swiss, almost all of whom were killed or taken prisoners
-in a large building considerably in advance of the suburb.</p>
-
-<p>For several days all was quiet. The enemy were now aware that it
-was necessary to make a regular investment of the place; and the works
-in all quarters, were pushed on with vigour. The besieged on their part
-endeavoured, by incessant labour, to complete the works of defence;
-batteries were constructed, to enfilade the principal approaches&mdash;the
-magazines were rendered bomb-proof&mdash;every outlet was palisaded and
-traversed; and, thus prepared, they waited with calm fortitude for the
-approaching struggle.</p>
-
-<p>On the 30th, Marshal Moncey addressed a letter to Palafox, summoning
-him to surrender the city, now entirely invested, and to spare the
-effusion of blood which must necessarily follow any further attempt at
-hopeless resistance. Moncey likewise informed him that Madrid had
-fallen; and that Napoleon, at the head of a great army, was then in the
-act of chasing the English to their ships.</p>
-
-<p>To this Palafox replied, that if Madrid had fallen, Madrid had been
-<em>sold</em>. The works of Zaragoza were yet entire; but, were they levelled
-with the ground, the people and the garrison would rather be buried in
-the ruins of their city, than disgraced by surrender.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile, General Gazan succeeded in effecting the blockade
-of the suburb.</p>
-
-<p>On the 29th, the trenches were regularly opened against the Chateau
-of the Inquisition on the left, the bridge of the Huerba in the centre,
-and the convent of St. Joseph on the right. The last of these was the
-principal object of the enemy, because the works in rear were destitute<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_433" id="Page_433">[433]</a></span>
-of a rampart, and it was intended to connect the attack with a simultaneous
-attempt to gain possession of the suburb.</p>
-
-<p>The garrison, however, were not idle. The communication between
-the convent and the city could not be interrupted; and the garrison of
-the former, being daily relieved, made frequent sallies, by which the
-progress of the besiegers was materially retarded. On the 31st, a general
-sortie, supported by the whole guns of the place, was made against the
-enemy’s line. Though gallantly supported, it was unattended by any
-successful result. The repeated attacks of the garrison were repulsed;
-and, baffled in their efforts, they again entered the city. The loss on
-both sides was nearly equal.</p>
-
-<p>On the 2nd of January, Moncey was superseded by Marshal Junot in
-the command of the besieging army. The latter was the bearer of an
-order to Mortier, to move on Calatayud with Suchet’s division, in order
-to keep open the communication with Madrid. This arrangement
-occasioned a material diminution of the besieging force, but no cessation
-of hostile operations. The works against the convent of St. Joseph still
-went on, and between the 3rd and 6th of January the second parallel
-was completed. Till the 10th no action took place; but on that day a
-tremendous fire from thirty guns was opened on the convent. It was
-soon rendered untenable. But, amid the ruins, the gunners covered by
-bags of wool, still continued to exercise their vocation, and fired on the
-enemy, till the walls were levelled with the ground. Even then the post
-was not relinquished without a gallant effort. At midnight a sortie was
-made against one of the batteries, in ignorance that two guns had been
-planted for its protection. The intention of the brave assailants was
-thus defeated; and, having suffered heavy loss from a murderous fire,
-both in front and flank, they again retreated to the city.</p>
-
-<p>Even in the dilapidated condition of the convent, it was not till the
-evening of the next day that the enemy attempted to carry it by assault.
-At the same time a party, having turned the convent, succeeded, by
-means of a wooden bridge which the besieged had omitted to destroy,
-in effecting an entrance; and thus did the French at length become
-masters of a heap of ruins, and of about 100 gallant men by whom they
-were defended.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner were the enemy in possession of St. Joseph, than they
-employed themselves in repairing the works, and completing the communication
-between the second and third parallels, the latter of which they
-established on the right and left of the convent. The garrison on that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_434" id="Page_434">[434]</a></span>
-side were now compelled to remain within their walls; for the besiegers
-were secured against their efforts by the double obstacle of a river and an
-escarpment eight feet high.</p>
-
-<p>On the 15th a second parallel was opened against the town; and
-batteries were commenced in it, to enfilade the defences of the Augustine
-and Capuchin convents, and that of Sta. Engracia. Yet neither the loss
-of their outworks, nor a tremendous bombardment, which the French
-kept up for several days, had the effect of diminishing the ardour of the
-inhabitants. The Zaragozans were not only actuated by that active and
-living energy which stimulates to deeds of high enterprize, but they possessed,
-likewise, that calm and passive fortitude, that buoyant upbearing
-of the spirit, which suffering cannot depress, nor misfortune overthrow.</p>
-
-<p>But their cup was not yet full. The inhabitants of the part of the
-city most injured by the bombardment, were driven into the other
-quarters, where many of them took up their abode in cellars, which
-afforded comparative security from the shells. The consequence was,
-that these dark and miserable receptacles became the focus of infectious
-fever. The disease spread rapidly among a crowded and redundant
-population. Thus did death, on all hands, present itself to the unshrinking
-Zaragozans; and the greater part preferred exposing themselves on
-the ramparts, to breathing the infected air which pervaded the dark and
-noisome retreats in which they had sought refuge from the shells.</p>
-
-<p>From the 17th to the 21st, the besiegers were occupied in the construction
-of new batteries to overcome the defences of the garrison; and the
-third parallel was extended to command two sides of the convent of Sta.
-Engracia. In these circumstances, a sortie was made, in the hope of
-spiking the enemy’s artillery. The fire of a battery of four mortars was
-found peculiarly annoying: and eighty men, commanded by Don Mariano
-Galindo, volunteered to attack it. They boldly precipitated themselves
-on the guard of the third parallel, put them to the sword, and succeeded
-in entering the battery. At the same moment the enemy’s reserve came
-up. There was no retreat; all perished except the officers and a few
-wounded soldiers, who were made prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>The movements of the numerous bodies of armed peasantry, in the
-surrounding country, occasioned great inconvenience to the besiegers.
-Bands were formed on all hands; which, though unable to resist the
-attack of disciplined troops, yet were sufficiently formidable to require
-perpetual vigilance, and numerous enough to narrow the supplies of the
-besieging army, in a very considerable degree.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_435" id="Page_435">[435]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>About this time, Napoleon, dissatisfied with the slow progress of the
-siege, sent Marshal Lannes to assume the command. This officer directed
-Mortier, with his division, to leave Calatayud, and to act on the left of
-the Ebro. Mortier attacked the force of Francisco Palafox, and succeeded
-in dispersing it with very considerable loss. Lannes, in order to depress
-the hopes of the garrison of external assistance, addressed a letter to Palafox,
-communicating this circumstance, and all the other disasters which
-had befallen the Spanish armies. But the mortifying intelligence thus
-conveyed, did not shake the firmness of the undaunted leader. He
-rejected all compromise, and continued, with undiminished vigour, to
-oppose every possible obstacle to the progress of the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>All the outworks of the place had now fallen, except the castle of the
-Inquisition, which had been subjected to no serious attack. The newly-raised
-works of the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Enceinte</i> had been battered by fifty-five guns, and, on
-the 27th January, three breaches were declared practicable. One was
-near an oil-mill, which stood without the walls of the place, though but
-little removed from them. The second was to the left of this, between
-the convent of St. Joseph and the town. The third was in the convent
-of Sta. Engracia. All these were attacked. At mid-day, a column
-issued from the oil-mill, which had been occupied over-night, and, rapidly
-clearing the short distance which divided it from the walls, entered the
-breach, unbroken by the heavy fire to which they were exposed, and the
-explosion of two <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">fougasses</i>. Having reached the summit, the assailants
-found an interior retrenchment armed with two guns, which the garrison
-had unexpectedly erected to obstruct their progress. They attempted,
-without success, to surmount this obstacle, under a shower of grape,
-musketry and grenades. Forced to retire, the besiegers took advantage
-of the cover afforded by the exploded <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">fougasses</i> to effect a lodgment on
-the breach.</p>
-
-<p>The breach in face of St. Joseph presented fewer obstacles to be overcome.
-The column of attack having reached the summit, succeeded in
-occupying the opposite house, which the artillery, in firing on the wall,
-had laid open. The houses adjoining were then gained; and on the
-right of the breach they found a gate which afforded another entrance
-into the town. Here, however, their progress was arrested by a battery
-of the enemy, commanding a court which it was necessary to pass. On
-the left, a double <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">caponnier</i>, which the garrison had used to communicate
-with St. Joseph’s, was repaired and lengthened to the breach.</p>
-
-<p>The attack on Sta. Engracia was yet more successful. After a severe<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_436" id="Page_436">[436]</a></span>
-struggle, the assailants gained the breach of the convent, but in attempting
-to advance further, they met a spirited repulse. Another effort was
-made, which terminated in their gaining possession of the building. The
-curtain leading from Sta. Engracia to the bridge of the Huerba was then
-enfiladed, and, taking the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">tête-de-pont</i> in reverse, the enemy at once
-became masters of that important post. Here they were joined by fresh
-troops, and, pushing on within the curtain of the convent of Mount
-Carmel, made an effort to gain possession of it, which met with a repulse.</p>
-
-<p>From thence they advanced rapidly to the Capuchin convent, putting
-forty artillerymen, who constituted the whole of its garrison, to the sword,
-The assailants then established themselves along the rampart, in order
-to guard the posts they had been successful in acquiring.</p>
-
-<p>A dreadful fire was soon opened on the besiegers from the houses
-commanding the rampart. From this they in vain sought shelter among
-the ruins of the half-demolished walls. Retreat became necessary, and
-the column was directed to retire on the Puerta del Carmen. The garrison,
-by a bold attack, regained possession of the Capuchin convent;
-but two battalions coming up to reinforce the assailants, it was again
-taken, and maintained, though at a dear price, by the enemy.</p>
-
-<p>During the night, a strong but unsuccessful effort was made by the
-besieged to regain possession of the convents of Sta. Engracia and the
-Capuchins. The result of these operations were the loss to the besieged
-of fifteen guns and 200 prisoners, and that the enemy gained footing
-in the city at two different points. The loss in killed and wounded,
-by the French accounts, was nearly equal on both sides. It amounted
-to about 600.</p>
-
-<p>The misfortunes of the Zaragozans were hourly accumulating. The
-fever demon stalked through the city like a destroying angel, conquering
-and to conquer. The number of dead per day amounted to 350, without
-including those who fell the more immediate victims of war. The
-hospitals were too small to contain the host of patients, and the medicines
-were exhausted. The burying grounds were choked with corpses; and
-large pits were dug in the streets, into which the dead were tossed indiscriminately.
-Heaps of bloated and putrescent bodies were piled before
-the churches, which were often struck by the shells; and the maimed
-and ghastly carcasses lay dispersed along the streets, a frightful spectacle
-of horror. Even under such evils the courage of the Zaragozans did not
-quail.</p>
-
-<p>The city was now open to the invaders, and the war, as formerly, was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_437" id="Page_437">[437]</a></span>
-carried on in the streets and houses. Not one inch of ground was yielded
-by the besieged without a struggle; and when finally driven from a
-building, they frequently, by a desperate offensive effort, recovered it;
-and an equal resistance had again to be encountered by the assailants.
-Traverses were cut around the portions of the city occupied by the
-enemy; and at the sound of the tocsin, the garrison were ever ready to
-rush to any quarter where hostilities had commenced.</p>
-
-<p>Palafox, however, did not limit his efforts to obstructing the progress
-of the enemy; he made vigorous efforts to recover the ground already
-lost, and drive the assailants from their stations. Two attempts were
-made to regain the convent of the Capuchins. Both failed. A third
-more powerful effort was made on the 31st. A breach was effected during
-the day, and at night the assault took place. The besieged advanced
-with signal resolution towards the breach, but owing to a ditch sunk by
-the enemy, it was found impossible to mount it. They then threw
-themselves on the floor of the church, and endeavoured to force it. In
-spite of the fire from the windows, and the grenades showered from the
-steeple, they maintained their ground, and forced the door; but an
-epaulement within obstructed their progress; and fresh troops being
-brought up by the enemy, the project was at length renounced.</p>
-
-<p>Priests and women bore part in these operations. The former carried
-munitions, and gave ghostly succour to the dying, animating the soldiers
-at once by their words and their example. The latter bore refreshments
-to their sons, or husbands, or fathers; and sometimes, when one of those
-dear relatives fell by their side, they seized his arms, determined to
-revenge his death or perish in the same glorious cause. In truth, the
-contest lay between skill and enthusiasm&mdash;mingled, indeed, with superstition,
-yet active, firm, vigorous, and unshrinking; skill exerted in a
-struggle as unjust and degrading, as any by which the pages of history
-are contaminated and defaced.</p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding the utmost efforts of the garrison, the French gained
-ground. The 1st of February was marked by the capture of the convents
-of St. Augustin and St. Monica. Having been repelled in assaulting the
-breaches, the assailants sprung a mine, and by that means effected an
-entrance, and took in reverse the works erected for their defence. A
-deadly struggle took place in the church. Every chapel, every column,
-every altar, became a point of defence&mdash;the pavement was strewed with
-blood, and the aisles and nave of the church were covered with the dead.
-During this terrific conflict, the roof, shattered by bombs, fell in. Those<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">[438]</a></span>
-who escaped, renewed the contest on the bodies of the dead and dying.
-The French were at last successful, and advancing on the Rua Quemada,
-gained possession of several houses. From these, however, they were
-eventually compelled to retreat, with a loss of above 100 men.</p>
-
-<p>At the same time, an attack was made on the houses near Sta.
-Engracia. Two mines, one on the left, the other on the right, of the
-convent, were sprung by the besiegers; after which two columns of
-Polish infantry succeeded in gaining possession of the ruins caused by
-the explosion. The loss of the besiegers was very considerable, and
-General Lacoste, commandant of engineers, was killed. He was an
-officer of great professional eminence, and untarnished character.</p>
-
-<p>During four days, the besiegers were employed in constructing three
-galleries to cross the Rua Quemada. Two of these failed. By means of
-the third they succeeded in establishing themselves in the ruins of a
-house which formed an angle of the Cozo, and of the Rua del Medio. A
-building, called the Escuelas Pias, commanded several traverses, made
-for the defence of the Cozo. Aware of the importance of this post, the
-assailants made several unsuccessful efforts to gain possession of it. They
-then attempted the adjoining houses; but in this also they failed. The
-system of blowing up the houses, now adopted, was favourable to the
-besieged; for the enemy, who established themselves on the ruins, were
-thus exposed to the fire of the surrounding buildings. In the meanwhile
-the continual succession of formidable and unforeseen obstacles, which
-presented themselves to the French soldiers, had damped their ardour;
-while the spirits of the besieged, who had to contend against famine,
-fever, and the French army, were yet unbroken.</p>
-
-<p>The inner town is encircled by the Cozo, which reaches at both extremities
-to the river; and the French, in order to connect their operations
-with those of Gazan, on the left of the Ebro, determined, at all risks, to
-gain possession of it. The convent of St. Francisco, therefore, became
-their immediate object. A mine was exploded, which brought down
-part of the building; and a severe contest ensued, which lasted for two
-days. The Spaniards were at length driven out by the bayonet&mdash;the
-superiority of physical, as well as of numerical strength, being on the side
-of the assailants.</p>
-
-<p>From the tower of this building, the French now commanded the
-street, for a musket-shot on either side. There, however, their progress
-was for a time arrested. The buildings in the Cozo were large and massive;
-and from their construction with roofs of arched masonry, nearly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_439" id="Page_439">[439]</a></span>
-incombustible. Experience had perfected the Zaragozans in their defensive
-warfare; and the contest was continued with, if possible, augmented
-pertinacity. Three days were the French sappers successfully opposed
-in their endeavours to cross the Cozo. The university was partially
-breached by the explosion of two small mines. The besiegers then endeavoured
-to carry the building by assault; but they were met by a fire so
-destructive as to compel them to retreat.</p>
-
-<p>Hitherto the suburb on the left of the Ebro had been exempted from
-attack, since Gazan’s failure on the first night of the investment. That
-officer, availing himself of some ambiguity in his orders, had declined to
-re-engage in active operations; nor was it till Lannes arrived, with
-authority to enforce his orders, that Gazan was induced to resume the
-offensive.</p>
-
-<p>On the 7th, the convent of Jesus, on the left of the road to Lerida, was
-attacked. Trenches were opened against it; and twenty battering pieces
-having effected a breach, it was carried with little loss, the building not
-being considered by the besieged as of material importance. The enemy
-then succeeded in establishing a lodgment to the right and left.</p>
-
-<p>On the 18th, the suburb, after two unsuccessful efforts, was carried by
-assault. A tremendous fire from fifty guns soon laid open the way to the
-assailing columns. By mid-day a breach was effected in the convent of
-St. Lazarus, commanding the bridge; and the defenders, after a strenuous
-resistance, were driven from the building. All communication
-between the suburb and the city was now cut off; and the French
-advancing to the river, intercepted the retreat of about 1500 men, who,
-enfeebled by disease and suffering, were made prisoners. The capture of
-St. Lazarus necessarily involved that of the suburb, which was without
-ammunition or provisions, yet many of its defenders continued to wage a
-fierce but hopeless war in the streets. The loss of the besieged amounted
-to about 2000. The brave Baron de Versage, who commanded on the
-Ebro, was killed.</p>
-
-<p>The besiegers, imagining that the courage of the garrison had been
-abated by this irreparable misfortune, continued their operations with
-vigour. By means of mining, two enormous breaches were made in the
-university&mdash;both of which were attacked and carried; and the traverses
-of the Cozo were at length abandoned by the Spaniards. In the mean
-time, Palafox had been smitten with the dreadful disease, whose ravages
-had been more widely spread than even those of famine and the sword.
-This admirable and heroic leader, who, for above a month, had been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_440" id="Page_440">[440]</a></span>
-unable to quit the vault where he lay stretched on a bed of suffering, at
-length saw the necessity of resigning the command.</p>
-
-<p>On the 19th he transferred his authority to a junta, of which Don Pedro
-Ric was appointed president. A council was immediately assembled, to
-deliberate on the condition of the city, and the measures most proper to be
-adopted. At this meeting it was stated, by the general of cavalry, that
-only 62 horses remained, the rest having died of hunger. Of the infantry it
-appeared there were little more than 2800 men fit for service. Ammunition
-was nearly exhausted; and should a shell penetrate the Inquisition,
-their only manufactory of powder would be destroyed. The fortifications
-were stated, by the chief engineer, to have been almost utterly demolished.
-There were neither men nor materials necessary for repairing them; and
-bags of earth could no longer be formed from want of cloth.</p>
-
-<p>With regard to the measures to be adopted, the junta were divided in
-opinion. Twenty-six voted for capitulation; eight against it. The
-latter were averse to surrender, while even a possibility of succour
-remained. With proud gallantry of spirit, the opinion of the minority
-was adopted by the junta. A flag of truce was sent to the enemy, proposing
-a suspension of hostilities, with the view of ascertaining the situation
-of the Spanish armies; it being understood, that should no immediate
-succour be at hand, the junta would then treat for a surrender. This proposal
-was peremptorily declined by Marshal Lannes; and the bombardment
-recommenced.</p>
-
-<p>On the 20th, the garrison made a last and unsuccessful effort to recover
-two guns which the enemy had captured on the preceding day. Affairs
-were now desperate. The fifty guns which had been employed in the
-attack of the suburb, now opened fire on the city; and the streets of the
-quay were laid in ruins.</p>
-
-<p>Thus situated the junta ordered measures to be taken to ascertain the
-sentiments of the people with regard to the situation of their city. Two-thirds
-of it were in ruins. Fire, famine, and slaughter, had done their
-work; and from 300 to 400 persons were daily dying of the pestilence.
-Under such circumstances, the junta declared that they had fulfilled
-their oath of fidelity&mdash;and that <em>Zaragoza was destroyed</em>. A flag of
-truce was dispatched to the French head-quarters, followed by a deputation
-of the junta, to arrange the terms of capitulation. Marshal Lannes
-was at first disposed to insist on unconditional surrender. The proposal
-was indignantly rejected by the deputies; and Ric declared, that rather
-than submit to it the Zaragozans would die beneath the ruins of their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_441" id="Page_441">[441]</a></span>
-city. “I, and my companions,” said this noble patriot, “will return
-there, and defend what remains to us as best we may. We have yet
-arms and ammunition, and if these fail we have daggers. Should the
-Zaragozans be driven to despair, it yet remains to be proved who are to
-be victorious.”</p>
-
-<p>In this temper of the garrison, Lannes did not think it prudent to
-refuse granting terms. It was accordingly conceded that the troops
-should march out with the honours of war: that the heroic Palafox should
-be suffered to retire to any place where he might think proper to fix his
-residence, and that all persons, not included in the garrison, should be
-suffered to quit the city, to avoid the contagion.</p>
-
-<p>On the 21st of February, 1809, the city was delivered up to the French;
-and thus terminated one of the most strenuous and extraordinary struggles
-of which history bears record. The resistance continued for 52 days
-with open trenches; 29 of these were consumed by the enemy in
-effecting an entrance&mdash;23 in the war subsequently carried on in the
-streets and houses. By their own account, the French threw above
-17,000 bombs into the city, and expended above 160,000 pounds
-weight of powder. More than 30,000 men and 500 officers perished
-in the defence, exclusive of a vast number of women and children. The
-amount of loss sustained by the besiegers was studiously concealed&mdash;that
-it was very great, cannot be doubted; and the contemplated operations
-on Lerida and Valencia, for which the army was destined, were in consequence
-given up.</p>
-
-<p>When the garrison quitted the city, only 2400 men were capable of
-bearing arms; the rest were in the hospitals.</p>
-
-<p>Among the prisoners, was Augustina Zaragoza, who had distinguished
-herself in the former siege. At the commencement, she had resumed her
-station at the Portillo gate. When Palafox visited the battery, she
-pointed to the gun she had formerly served with so much effect, and
-exclaimed, “See, general, I am again with my old friend.” Once, when
-her wounded husband lay bleeding at her feet, she discharged the cannon
-at the enemy, in order to avenge his fall. She frequently led the assaulting
-parties, and with sword in hand mingled in the daily conflicts which
-took place in the streets. Though exposed, during the whole siege to
-the most imminent danger, Augustina escaped without a wound. On
-the surrender of the city, she was too well known to escape notice, and
-was made prisoner. But she had already caught the contagion; and
-being taken to the hospital, she subsequently succeeded in effecting her
-escape.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_442" id="Page_442">[442]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The terms of capitulation were shamefully violated by Lannes. Palafox
-was sent a prisoner into France; and the city became a scene of
-pillage and atrocity. Nothing was to be heard but the drunken shouts
-and cries of the French soldiery. Even the convents were not spared;
-their gates were beaten in, the costly plate seized, and the decorations
-torn down; while the monk, with uplifted hand and scowling brow,
-listened to the drunken revelry and obscene jests of the heavy mailed
-cuirassier.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ZEALAND, NEW.&mdash;Discovered by Tasman in 1642. Captain
-Cook planted several spots here in 1773. Great Britain’s right to this
-island recognized at the general peace of 1814. Since then it has continued
-slowly developing its inland resources. A rather disastrous war
-was waged against the British forces by the New Zealanders not long
-ago; but after some months of continual annoyance the Aborigines were
-subdued and the island quieted, with every prospect of commercial
-development.</p>
-
-
-<p>ZELA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;In which Julius Cæsar defeated Pharnaces,
-King of Pontus, and sent the Senate the well-known laconic letter of
-three words: “<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Veni, Vidi, Vici.</i>” Fought <span class="fs70">B.C.</span> 47.</p>
-
-
-<p>ZELICHON, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, April 6th, 1831, between the
-Poles and Russians. The Russians were terribly defeated, with the loss
-of 12,000 men, killed, wounded and prisoners, and Deibitsch, the Russian
-General, narrowly escaped being taken prisoner in the rout.</p>
-
-
-<p>ZEUTA, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought, between the Germans and Turks,
-the former commanded by Prince Eugene; and it is memorable for the
-tremendous slaughter of the enemy, <span class="fs70">A.D.</span> 1697.</p>
-
-
-<p>ZORNDORFF, BATTLE OF.&mdash;Fought between the Prussian and
-Russian armies: the Prussian commanded by their King. They gained a
-great victory over the forces of the Czarina of Russia&mdash;21,529 men being
-lost to the Russians, while the Prussians lost 11,000. Fought, August
-25th and 26th, 1758.</p>
-
-
-<p>ZOUAVE <span class="fs70">OR</span> ZOU-ZOU.&mdash;“The <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">gamins</i> of Paris, we believe, first
-applied to the world-renowned Zouaves the pet name of <em>Zou-Zous</em>; and
-France has confirmed the pleasant diminutive. We know well enough
-that Zou-Zou has certain faults; but we also know that he possesses<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_443" id="Page_443">[443]</a></span>
-some estimable qualities. On the whole, we gaze at his scarred bronzed
-face and long shaggy beard with respect, and do not shrink from cordially
-clasping his horny brown hand, powder-begrimed though it be. We
-read all about his valorous doings, and his somewhat ludicrous and not
-unpardonable misdoings, during the late Italian campaign, as chronicled
-daily by his own countrymen, and we shall now compile some
-interesting examples of his exploits and racy peculiarities, which have
-fallen under our notice.</p>
-
-<p>When the Zou-Zous embarked at Marseilles, they leapt on board the
-vessels as though charging a column of Croats, crying to their comrades,
-“Come, gentlemen, take your tickets for Austria!” Arrived at Genoa,
-they received their fair share of flowers and kisses from the enraptured
-signoras, and embracements and orations from their lords and fathers.</p>
-
-<p>M. Achard visited the camp of the famous 3rd Zouaves, and gives us
-a graphic sketch of the fire-eaters reposing. We must premise that they
-had only arrived four or five days from Algeria. “It was,” says he,
-“like a little corner of a great war picture. The canvas town possessed
-regularity, animated order, picturesque and lively movement, and one felt
-the presence of discipline, and a pleasing sense of gaiety and fearlessness.
-Behold the little, narrow, short tents reserved for the sub-officers; their
-neighbours large, and similar to a squab coffee-pot, for the captains and
-commandants; others ample and conical, each for five soldiers, ranged in
-ranks; groups of Zouaves round a candle, in a low tone chatting about
-their African campaigns; some silently smoking a pipe apart; two or
-three lying on the ground in corners, reading letters and dreaming, their
-comrades singing the chorus of songs; the evening dies away and sleep
-succeeds. Here and there, under the canvas, a little lamp gives light to
-an officer, who writes in haste a last letter. Little noise, great order; each
-battalion has its place. As the darkness increases, we see red sparks in
-the air along the tents. The cigar enlivens the promenade, then the sparks
-disappear one by one; the bivouac fires are extinguished; the mules of
-the regiment bite at each other, and endeavour to break their straps;
-close by, the Arab horses of the officers, digging the earth with their
-hoofs, snuffing the air, devoid of the warm odour of the desert, and shaking
-their manes. * * * The next day, at seven o’clock in the morning,
-the regiment, containing three battalions on a war strength&mdash;2700 men,
-exclusive of officers&mdash;was reviewed by Prince Napoleon. They looked
-models of hardy active soldiers. Their faces, which appeared cut out of
-Florentine bronze, had the manly ardour and the confidence resulting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_444" id="Page_444">[444]</a></span>
-from habitual acquaintance with danger. They were in marching order.
-At eight o’clock they started, clarions at their head and tarbouch in front
-for their first <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">étape de guerre</i>, twenty-seven kilometres, and in the evening
-they encamped in the mountain, at Toreglia, very near the Austrians!”</p>
-
-<p>We may remark that one great reason for the very singular celerity
-with which the Zouaves encamp, provide their food, etc., is the fact, that
-each company, or portion of a company, or “tribe,” as it is called by the
-men themselves, is subdivided for what we may term domestic duties,
-each individual being charged with a distinct and special function; and
-constant practice naturally renders them amazingly expert at doing whatever
-they are called upon to daily and nightly perform.</p>
-
-<p>The Zou-Zous, and their African friends the Turcos, are said to have
-an invincible preference for fighting at close quarters with the bayonet.
-A certain quantity of cartouches were served out at the moment of departure,
-but these cartridges were not forthcoming at Genoa. The officers
-were angry, and required the production of the missing ammunition.
-“Be not troubled,” said the Zou-Zous; “leave us alone, and we will
-return you ten for one at the first battle.” A stubborn old sergeant
-added, “We wish to see if the Austrians are like the Kabyles.” In fact,
-their point of honour is to charge with the bayonet, and to charge at a
-swift run. Their activity is incredible; and they have been aptly called
-“foot cavalry,” which is hardly a paradoxical jest like our own time-honoured
-sneer of “horse marines.”</p>
-
-<p>The Zou-Zous have a marvellous capacity for physical endurance.
-Some black coffee, and a biscuit or piece of hard ammunition bread
-steeped in it, generally formed their breakfast, and then they were able
-and willing to march with their very heavy knapsacks a whole day in the
-broiling sun before dining. A Zouave’s knapsack is full of a wonderful
-variety of articles, and, when in marching order, he actually carries the
-enormous weight of sixty pounds! But Zou-Zou is not an anchorite; he
-does not voluntarily endure hunger when he can lawfully, or (as some
-whisper) even unlawfully, obtain an appetizing addition to his rations. At
-Palestro, the Zouaves drolly distinguished themselves, by marching with a
-pleasing variety of edible prizes secured about their persons. They bore
-quarters of lamb, immense pieces of raw meat, salad, cabbage, and all
-kinds of vegetables; upon the shoulder of one was perched an old cock,
-tied by the foot by way of precaution! All the world knows how omnivorous
-Zouaves are; and, by way of illustration, we will only mention<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_445" id="Page_445">[445]</a></span>
-the astounding fact, that at Solferino they daintily feasted on fillets cut
-from the backs of the horses killed in that tremendous battle!</p>
-
-<p>The Austrians sent some daring spies into the Zouave camp, fully and
-carefully dressed as Zou-Zous, speaking French, and affecting in all
-respects the habits and language of the men among whom they treacherously
-stole. But, as an old soldier observed, “the asses who wear lions’
-skins are recognized, not by the dress, but by the language.” So it was
-with these Austrian spies. The touch-stone which infallibly detected
-them was the Arab, or rather the Sabir tongue. The Sabir is a dialect
-used by the Zouaves and the Turcos, and is a singular mixture of French,
-Italian, Maltese, Spanish and Arabian. Let us see what the Sabir can do
-with the wicked hawk who has stolen into the Zouave dovecot, disguised
-in innocent plumage like their own.</p>
-
-<p>“A spy, dressed as a Zouave, holding his cap behind him, accosts other
-Zouaves, (true ones these). They talk of war, ambuscades, battles; they
-drink and sing. An old Zouave addresses the spy: ‘<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Didou, camarade,
-gib el touchran; j’ai laisse mon sipsi dans la gitoun.</span>’ This, in Sabir,
-signifies, ‘Comrade, hand me some tobacco; I have forgotten my pipe in
-the tent.’ The spy, surprised, does not reply. ‘Enta machache narl el
-Arabi?’ (Dost thou not understand Arabian?) continues the Zouave.
-The same silence. Suspicions are aroused: the pretended Zouave is
-closely questioned. He is confused; he confounds Blidah with Orléansville:
-finally he is seized, and duly shot.”</p>
-
-<p>No body of men attracted more notice, on first landing in Italy, than
-the 3rd Zouaves. Nearly all the officers had risen from the ranks, or, at
-any rate, all had been sub-officers, and had won their epaulettes and
-crosses in Africa. The men could reckon a number of years’ service,
-both in Africa and the Crimea. Their flag was in tatters, and tied
-together with shoemaker’s thread.</p>
-
-<p>At Palestro, these 3rd Zouaves performed a brilliant feat of arms. A
-wounded Zou-Zou subsequently described it most graphically. “We
-were,” said he, “very tranquilly opposite a rivulet; we beheld five or six
-horsemen upon an eminence; it was said that they must be enemy’s
-hussars, watching us, and the word passed to prepare to have a chat with
-them. But all in a moment, and without a note of warning, a parcel of
-bullets, accompanied by a hail of cannon balls, saluted us. The rogues
-had mounted cannon on the hills, and their tirailleurs skulked in the
-corn, where one could not see them. Whilst we looked out, the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mitraille</i><a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_446" id="Page_446">[446]</a></span>
-mingled in the conversation. The colonel saw whence it came by
-the smoke. The officers turned towards us. ‘Eh Zouaves!’ cried
-they, ‘to the cannon!’ We leapt in the stream. There was water up
-to our elbows, and so our cartridge boxes took a bath; we were no longer
-able to fire a single charge. From the stream to the batteries we had to
-run about 300 metres. Ah, we already surpass the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">pas gymnastique</i>!</p>
-
-<p>The <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">mitraille</i> mowed the grass around our feet. In the twinkling of
-an eye we carried the guns!”</p>
-
-<p>Among the wounded Austrians taken prisoners, was a young man of
-twenty-two, who had previously studied at Paris five or six years. He
-fought at Palestro, and when he saw the Zouaves running and leaping
-with bayonets in advance, he cried, “Comrades! they are Zouaves!
-We are lost!”</p>
-
-<p>An Austrian officer related that General Jellachich, struck with astonishment
-at sight of the Zouaves in action, exclaimed, “They are not men,
-they are tigers!” And then he muttered, “They told me so, but I did
-not believe it.” A good many others of his countrymen had reason to
-think and speak very much the same. Yet, even among the Zouaves
-there are some who pre-eminently distinguish themselves by their surpassing
-activity, daring, and successful valour.</p>
-
-<p>Zou-Zou has a humour of his own even in the heat of battle&mdash;grimmest
-of all grim humours! Endless anecdotes are told of their strange
-speeches and stranger deeds in the midst of the storm of battle. Many
-of these would be painful to our readers, but the following give relief to
-the stern cruelties of war. Would that the kindly or generous feelings
-which they record could be displayed on more peaceful scenes!</p>
-
-<p>During a bayonet fight, a Zouave fought against an Austrian, and
-broke his thigh with a violent butt-end blow; the Austrian, in falling,
-broke the arm of the Zouave. There they lay side by side, their mutual
-fury extinguished. The Zouave, who had a smattering of Italian, said
-to the Austrian, “Thou art brave, and I will not leave thee to die like a
-dog. I have yet an arm and a pair of good legs, and I will carry thee to
-the ambulance.” He was as good as his word. When he arrived with
-his burthen, he said to the surgeon-major. “You see, major, that we
-are on a level; cure us quickly, that we may do our duty afresh.” We
-will add, that the compassion and kindness manifested after a battle by
-the erewhile fierce Zouaves towards their wounded enemies, is a fine trait
-in their character. Like our own matchless seamen, the Zouaves, are
-lions whilst the battle rages, and lambs after it is ended.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_447" id="Page_447">[447]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Here is a touching incident. The day after the battle of Palestro,
-the Zouaves buried their dead comrades in a great pit dug on a little
-eminence. When the earth was levelled, they bid adieu, with emotion,
-to their slain brothers-in-arms. “Comrades!” cried a sergeant, “may
-God receive you! ’Tis your turn to-day&mdash;to morrow it may be ours!”
-With these simple words the Zou-Zous left their dead brethren to repose
-on the field of their victory.</p>
-
-<p>And the wounded Zou-Zous, how bear they the agony of musket ball,
-or bayonet thrust, or sabre gash, when the excitement of the actual combat
-is over? When Commandant de Bellefonds, of the Zouaves of the
-Guard, was wounded at Magenta, his men wished to carry him to the
-ambulance. “Remain in your place,” said he. “Leave me, my friends;
-I forbid you to remove me: continue to fight.” After the Austrians were
-repulsed, the Zou-Zous sought their brave officer and bore him away.
-He eventually recovered.</p>
-
-<p>The Zouaves being by far the most popular and brilliant corps in the
-army, it is considered, both by officers and privates, an absolute privilege
-to wear their uniform, and both sub and superior officers have been
-known to refuse to exchange into line regiments even with prospect of
-higher rank.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the Zouaves were themselves taken prisoners and sent to
-Vienna, where they attracted extraordinary notice. On their arrival
-they were surrounded by Hungarian and Polish soldiers, who examined
-their uniform and criticized their personal appearance with lively curiosity,
-making each poor Zou-Zou exhibit himself and explain the use of every
-portion of his equipments&mdash;which, it is said, he did with great good
-humour. By way of contrast to the above, we present the following. A
-number of Austrian prisoners arrived at Toulouse. A sub-officer of the
-3rd Zouaves, whose family lived there, and who was himself <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en route</i> to
-Paris, happened to be at the railway station when the prisoners arrived,
-and he recognized three Austrians whom he had made prisoners at the
-battle of Magenta, where he was wounded by one of them. He now shook
-hands with his ex-captives, and having obtained permission to defer his
-own departure, he took all three home with him, and treated them with
-the utmost hospitality.”</p>
-
-
-<p>ZURICH, BATTLES OF.&mdash;The French were defeated here, losing
-4000 men, June 4th, 1799. The Imperialists were also defeated here
-by the French, under Messina, and lost the great number of 20,000 men
-in action. September 24th, 1799.</p>
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> In the Register of the Convent of the Friars Minors in Poictiers, there
-appear the names of the knights and great men buried there after this battle.
-Among these we find, the Constable of France, the Bishop of Chalons, the
-Viscount of Chauvigny, the Lords of Mailly, of Rademonde, of Rochecheruire,
-of Chaumont, of Hes, of Corbon, and a great number of knights. In the church
-of the Frères Prescheurs there were buried the Duke of Bourbon, the Marshal
-de Clermont, the Viscount de Rochechouart, the Lord de la Fayette, the
-Viscount d’Aumale, the Lord St. Gildart, and more than fifty knights.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> The rocket consisted of an iron tube, about two foot long, and three inches
-in diameter, attached to a bamboo cane of fifteen or twenty feet in length. The
-tube is filled with combustible matter; and this dreadful missile entering the
-head of a column, passes through a man’s body, and instantly resumes its
-original force; thus destroying or wounding twenty men, independent of innumerable
-lacerations caused by the serpentine motion of the long bamboo, which
-in its irresistible progress, splinters to atoms, when the iron tube assumes a
-rapid rotary motion, and buries itself in the earth.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> It is a curious and interesting literary fact, that Campbell wrote this in a
-foreign land, viz., at Ratisbon, on hearing of war being declared against Denmark.
-Some portion of it is said to have been previously roughly sketched
-out, owing to his admiration of the music of “Ye Gentlemen of England.”
-His splendid lyric, “The battle of the Baltic,” soon followed.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> Herod. 1. vii. c. 175, 177.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> Herod. 1. vii. c. 103, 132.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> Ibid. 1. viii. c. 116.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> Paus. 1. x. p. 645.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> Herod. 1. vii c. 207-231. Diod. 1. xi. p. 5-10.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> Plut. in Lacon. Apoph. p. 225.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> Ἀντεγραψε, μολων λαβε.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> Οτι πολλοι μεν ανθρωποι ειεν, ολιγοι δε ανδρες. <span lang="la" xml:lang="la">Quod multi
-homines essent, pauci autem viri.</span></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> When the Gauls 200 years after this, came to invade Greece, they possessed
-themselves of the Straits of Thermopylæ by means of the same by-path, which
-the Grecians had still neglected to secure. Pausan. 1. i. p. 7. et 8.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Polyb. 1. iii. p. 231-238.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> <span lang="la" xml:lang="la">Apparebat ferociter omnia ac præpropere acturum. Quoque pronior esset
-in sua vitia, agitare eum atque irritare Pœnus parat.</span> Liv. 1. xxii. n. 3.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> Napier, vol. v. p. 132.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> A French writer tells us, that when he had dictated, at Paris, the bulletin of this battle,
-he finished, by exclaiming with a groan, “It was lost, and <em>my glory</em> with it!”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> Hist. Memoirs, book ix, p. 209.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> “Information which might be depended upon had made known the position
-of the Allies in all particulars.&mdash;<cite>Fleury</cite>, vol. ii, p. 161.
-</p>
-<p>
-“To anticipate the Allies, and to commence hostilities <em>before they were ready</em>,
-it was necessary to take the field on the 15th June.”&mdash;<cite>Hist. Memoir</cite>, Book ix,
-p. 59.
-</p>
-<p>
-“The period of the arrival of the English army from America was known.
-The Allied armies could not be in readiness to act simultaneously until July.”&mdash;<cite>Gourgaud’s
-Campaign</cite>, p. 29.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> Hist. Memoir, Book ix, p. 127.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> Gourgaud, p. 38; Fleury, vol. ii, p. 167.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> Junot, at Rolica and Vimiera; Victor at Talavera; Massena at Busaco;
-Ney, after Torres Vedras; Marmont at Salamanca; Jourdan at Vittoria; and
-Soult in the Pyrenees, Toulouse, &amp;c. &amp;c.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> History of the Restoration, vol. ii, p. 377, 388.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> Despatches, vol. viii, p. 168.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> O’Meara, vol. i, p. 464.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> Brialmont’s Wellington, vol. ii, p. 440.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> Gourgaud’s Waterloo, p. 96.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> The first French attack was repulsed about two o’clock: but Bonaparte
-renewed it five or six times, until about seven o’clock in the evening.&mdash;<cite>Austrian
-Account.</cite></p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> Hist. Memoir, book ix, p. 143.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> Lamartine, b. xxv, § 34.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> Gourgaud’s Campaign of Waterloo, p. 97.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> <a href="#Page_151">Page 151</a>. This attack on the centre was made at one o’clock, and La
-Haye Sainte was not evacuated by the English till six in the evening. Of what
-occurred in the five hours which intervened the French accounts are ominously
-silent.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> Fleury, vol. ii, p. 217.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> At St. Helena, he told O’Meara, “When the English advanced, I had not a
-single corps of cavalry in reserve to resist them. Hence the English attack
-succeeded, and all was lost,”&mdash;<cite>O’Meara</cite>, vol. i, p. 465.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> “It was <em>noon</em>, the troops of General Bulow were stationary beyond the
-extreme right: they appeared to form and wait for their artillery.”&mdash;<cite>Hist.
-Mem.</cite> b. ix, p. 150.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> The Austrian account says “About five o’clock, the first cannon-shot of the
-Prussian army was fired from the heights of Aguiers.”</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> Gourgaud’s Campaign of 1815, p. 113.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> They are described, both in Count Drouet’s speech and in “Book ix,” as
-“sixteen battalions.” If the battalions consisted of 600 men, this would give
-a total of 9600.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> Vol. ii, p. 192.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_39_39" id="Footnote_39_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> Colonel Lemonnier de Lafosse: Memoirs, p. 385.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> Reille had commanded the second corps, D’Erlon the first&mdash;each of which
-had consisted of about 20,000 men! Can there be a more striking proof of the
-utter dissolution of the French army, than this fact, narrated by a French
-officer?</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> Fleury de Chaboulon, vol. ii, pp. 203, 206, 218.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> The modesty,&mdash;the singular abstinence from a boast or a vaunt,&mdash;which is
-perceptible in this exclamation, is wonderfully characteristic of the man. The
-same quietness of manner distinguished him through life; and it contrasts
-strongly with the constant strut and proud assumption of Napoleon.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> Hist. Memoir, book ix, p. 203.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> I cannot conclude this article on Waterloo without inserting the following:
-Many years ago a prize poem on the Duke of Wellington was announced at
-one of the English Universities, I forget which. The gainer took for his subject
-the life of Napoleon, and finished an elaborate description of that great
-commander, in the following couplet, which gained him the prize:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container"><div class="poetry">
-<p class="verseq">“So great a man, the world scarce ever knew,</p>
-<p class="verse0">Bent to <span class="smcap">thy Genius, Chief of Waterloo</span>.”</p>
-<p class="verse16">J. D. B.</p>
-</div></div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_45_45" id="Footnote_45_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> “Mitraille,” grape shot, with scraps of metal, and all sorts of small missiles.</p>
-
-</div></div>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_448" id="Page_448">[448]</a></span><br />
- <span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_449" id="Page_449">[449]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2 class="lsp">CHRONOLOGY.</h2>
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<div class="chron">
-<p>Chronology is the science of computing and adjusting the periods of time.
-It ascertains when events occurred, and assigns to each its correct date. Thus
-we learn from it that the world was created 4004 years before Christ, and that
-the flood took place 1656 years after the creation; and so of all other known
-and ascertained events, each one is placed in connection with its proper period
-or year. Of the transactions between the Creation and the Flood, we know
-nothing except from Scripture, and of many of those which occurred after the
-flood, and before the time of Christ, we know nothing with certainty, except
-from the same source; but about 800 or 900 years before our Saviour’s time, a
-succession of profane historians arose, from whom, especially those of Greece
-and Rome, numerous facts in Chronology have been obtained. Various Eras,
-Epochs, or methods of Chronology, have been adopted by different nations. The
-Greeks reckoned time by Olympiads of four years each, commencing from the
-year 776 before Christ. In marking a date by this method, the year and Olympiad
-were both given; for example, the year 1845 is the first of 656th Olympiad.
-The Romans reckoned time from the founding of Rome, 753 years before Christ.
-Dates reckoned from this Era are designated by the initials A. U. C. (ab urbe
-condita; that is, from the building of the city). The year 1845 is the 2598th
-year of the Roman Era. The Christian Era, now in use amongst all Christian
-nations, was first introduced in the sixth century, but was not very generally
-adopted for some centuries after. This begins 4004 years after the creation of
-the world, and four years after the birth of our Saviour. Dates reckoned backwards
-are usually marked B.C., or before Christ, but those reckoned forward
-are distinguished by the prefix A.D., signifying Anno Domini, or in the year of
-our Lord. The Mahomedans reckon time from the Hegira, or flight of Mahomet
-from Mecca to Medina, in the year 622 after Christ; but they use the lunar
-year of 354 days; so that thirty-two of our years make thirty-three of theirs.
-The year 1845 is the 1260th year of the Hegira. Many other epochs or eras
-have been used in different countries, and at different periods. The Jews,
-Egyptians, Tyrians, Babylonians, Persians, and other ancient nations, have each
-had their eras. The Hindoos and Chinese of the present day have modes of
-reckoning time which differ from each other, as well as from our method. In
-the United States, public documents, proclamations, &amp;c. have often, besides the
-date in common use, the year of the national independence attached to them.
-This is computed from July 4th, 1776, and hence may be reckoned a national
-era or chronological period.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum pg-brk"><a name="Page_450" id="Page_450">[450]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<p class="p4" />
-<h3>ANCIENT CHRONOLOGY</h3>
-
-<div class="fs70">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl fs80">&nbsp; B.C.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Creation</td><td class="tdl">4004 to the Deluge</td><td class="tdl nowrap">1656 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Antediluvian P.*</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Deluge</td><td class="tdl">2348 to the Call of Abraham</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 427 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Dispersion P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Call of Abraham</td><td class="tdl">1921 to the Exode from Egypt</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 430 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Patriarchal P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Exode</td><td class="tdl">1491 to the Kingdom of Saul</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 396 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Theocratic P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From Saul</td><td class="tdl">1092 to the Captivity of Israel</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 507 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Monarchical P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Captivity</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 588 to Alexander the Great</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 258 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Persian P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From Alexander the Great</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 330 to Subjugation of Greece</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 184 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Grecian P.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From Subjugation of Greece</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 146 to the birth of Christ</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 146 yrs elapsed.&mdash;Roman P.</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<p class="pad4 fs70">* P = Period.</p>
-
-<hr class="r10" />
-<h3>MODERN CHRONOLOGY.</h3>
-
-<div class="fs70">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl fs80">&nbsp; A.D.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">From the Birth of Christ</td><td class="tdl">to the Reign of Constantine the Great</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 306 years elapsed</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Extinction of the Western Empire</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 476 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the flight of Mahomet</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 622 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Crowning of Charlemagne at Rome</td><td class="tdl">&nbsp; 800 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Battle of Hastings</td><td class="tdl">1066 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Founding of the Turkish Empire</td><td class="tdl">1299 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Taking of Constantinople</td><td class="tdl">1453 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Edict of Nantes</td><td class="tdl">1598 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Death of Charles XII of Sweden</td><td class="tdl">1718 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Battle of Waterloo</td><td class="tdl">1815 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">&nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">“</span></td><td class="tdl">to the Present time</td><td class="tdl">1866 &nbsp; “ <span class="pad3">“</span></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_451" id="Page_451">[451]</a></span></p>
-<p class="p4" />
-
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h2 class="no-brk lsp"><a name="CHRONOLOGICAL_TABLE" id="CHRONOLOGICAL_TABLE"></a>CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE.</h2>
-<hr class="r10" />
-
-
-<div class="blockquoty">
-
-<p class="fs80">&nbsp; B.C.</p>
-
-<p>4004 <span class="smcap">Creation of the World</span>.</p>
-
-<p>2944 Birth of Noah.</p>
-
-<p>2348 The <em>Flood</em> or <em>Deluge</em> covers the whole earth&mdash;lasts about a year.</p>
-
-<p>2347 Noah quits the Ark; offers sacrifices of thanksgiving; God appoints the
-rainbow as a pledge that he will never again destroy the earth by the
-waters of a flood. (Gen. ix. 11.)</p>
-
-<p>2300 The Tower of Babel built; confusion of languages; dispersion of mankind.</p>
-
-<p>2233 Babylon founded by Nimrod; Nineveh founded by Asshur; commencement
-of the Assyrian monarchy.</p>
-
-<p>2188 The Egyptian monarchy founded by Mizraim; continues 1663 years.</p>
-
-<p>2059 Age of Ninus and Semiramis, Assyrian monarchs.</p>
-
-<p>2000 Sicyon founded&mdash;the earliest town in Greece; Sidon founded.</p>
-
-<p>1996 Birth of Abram, in Ur of the Chaldees; 1998 Noah dies.</p>
-
-<p>1921 <span class="smcap">Call of Abram</span>; he leaves Ur; comes to Haran, where his father, Terah,
-dies, aged 205 years; emigrates to Canaan, with Sarai his wife, and
-Lot his nephew, and dwells at Shechem.</p>
-
-<p>1920 Abram removes to Egypt; returns the same year.</p>
-
-<p>1912 Abram defeats Chedorlaomer and the confederate kings; rescues Lot.</p>
-
-<p>1910 Birth of Ishmael, the son of Abram and Hagar. (Gen. xvi. 16.)</p>
-
-<p>1897 Destruction of Sodom, Gomorrah, &amp;c.; Lot retires to Zoar; Abram’s name
-changed to Abraham; Sarai’s changed to Sarah.</p>
-
-<p>1896 Isaac born at Beersheba; 1871 Offered up as a sacrifice by his father.</p>
-
-<p>1836 Birth of Esau and Jacob; 1821 Abraham dies.</p>
-
-<p>1800 Argos founded by the Pelasgians, under Inachus.</p>
-
-<p>1759 Jacob retires to his uncle, Laban, in Padan Aram; 1745 Joseph born.</p>
-
-<p>1739 Jacob returns to Canaan; resides at Shechem.</p>
-
-<p>1728 Joseph sold by his brethren; 1716 Isaac dies.</p>
-
-<p>1706 Jacob removes to Egypt; 1689 his death.</p>
-
-<p>1705 Joseph raised to distinction in Egypt; 1635 Joseph dies.</p>
-
-<p>1600 Hyksos or shepherd kings conquer Egypt; they oppress the Israelites.</p>
-
-<p>1577 Age of Job; 1575, Birth of Aaron; 1571, Birth of Moses.</p>
-
-<p>1550 Athens founded by Cecrops; 1531 Moses leaves Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>1500 Tyre founded; Gades founded; 1493 Thebes founded by Cadmus.</p>
-
-<p>1491 Moses returns to Egypt; <em>Exodus</em> or <em>departure</em> of the Israelites from Egypt
-cross the Red Sea; law given on Mount Sinai.</p>
-
-<p>1452 Death of Aaron, aged 123 years; buried on Mount Hor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_452" id="Page_452">[452]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1451 Sihon defeated at Jahaz; Death of Moses, aged 120 years; Og defeated
-at Edrei; the Israelites cross Jordan; capture Jericho; sun and moon
-stand still at the command of Joshua; 1445, 1444 the <em>Land of Canaan</em>
-divided among the Twelve Tribes.</p>
-
-<p>1443 Death of Joshua, aged 110 years; 1423 Tribe of Benjamin destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>1406 Age of Minos, the Cretan lawgiver; 1405 Othniel first judge of Israel.</p>
-
-<p>1400 Troy founded; Pelasgians expelled from Greece by the Hellenes.</p>
-
-<p>1365 Age of Sesostris, king of Egypt; a great conqueror; built magnificent
-cities in his dominions.</p>
-
-<p>1329 Amphictyonic council established.</p>
-
-<p>1300 Voyage of the Argonauts from Aphetæ, in Thessaly, to Colchis, under the
-command of Jason; Hercules, Theseus, and his other companions were
-called Argonauts.</p>
-
-<p>1290 Age of Mœris, king of Egypt; he causes lake Mœris to be dug, to receive
-the surplus waters of the Nile.</p>
-
-<p>1285 Barak and Deborah defeat Jabin.</p>
-
-<p>1245 Age of Gideon; defeats the Midianites and Moabites.</p>
-
-<p>1187 Jephtha, the tenth judge of Israel, sacrifices his daughter.</p>
-
-<p>1184 Troy captured, after a siege of ten years; Age of Agamemnon, Achilles,
-Diomedes, Nestor, Ulysses, Helen, Priam, Hector, Æneas, Andromache,
-&amp;c.; Æneas sails for Italy.</p>
-
-<p>1156 Age of Eli; 1155 Birth of Samuel; 1150 Utica, in Africa, founded.</p>
-
-<p>1124 Æolian colonies established in Asia Minor.</p>
-
-<p>1107 Age of Samson; judged Israel twenty years; betrayed to the Philistines
-by Delilah; buries himself under the ruins of the temple of Dagon,
-with a great number of his enemies.</p>
-
-<p>1100 Salamis founded by Teucer.</p>
-
-<p>1095 Saul first king of Israel; 1085 Birth of David; 1062 slays Goliath.</p>
-
-<p>1055 Death of Saul; succession of David; 1048 crowned king of all Israel;
-1047 takes Jerusalem from the Jebusites.</p>
-
-<p>1044 Settlement of the Ionian colonies in Asia Minor; Age of Homer; the cities
-of Smyrna, Chios, Colophon, Salamis, Rhodes, Argos and Athens
-afterwards contend for the honour of his birth.</p>
-
-<p>1037 The Moabites and Ammonites conquered by David.</p>
-
-<p>1035 Rabbath Ammon taken by Joab; Uriah killed at the siege.</p>
-
-<p>1033 Birth of Solomon; Age of Hiram king of Tyre.</p>
-
-<p>1014 Death of David; succeeded by Solomon; Most flourishing period of the
-kingdom of Israel.</p>
-
-<p>1003 Temple at Jerusalem built and dedicated by Solomon.</p>
-
-<p>994 Dorians establish colonies in Asia Minor.</p>
-
-<p>975 <em>Death of Solomon</em>; Rehoboam succeeds him; his tyranny causes a division
-of the realm into the kingdom of Judah and Israel; Jeroboam king
-of Israel; Rehoboam king of Judah.</p>
-
-<p>971 Shishak, king of Egypt, plunders the temple at Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<p>907 Age of the poet Hesiod; 900 Pygmalion, brother of Dido.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_453" id="Page_453">[453]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>897 Ahab, king of Israel, slain; Ahaziah, king of Judah; Elisha taken up to
-heaven; 884 Jehu king of Israel.</p>
-
-<p>880 Lycurgus, the Spartan lawgiver.</p>
-
-<p>878 Carthage founded by Dido, a Tyrian Princess.</p>
-
-<p>827 Ethiopians conquer Egypt; 825 Jonah visits Nineveh; the people repent.</p>
-
-<p>820 Death of Sardanapalus; First Assyrian empire destroyed; Median empire
-founded; Kingdom of Macedonia founded.</p>
-
-<p>810 Uzziah, king of Judah, takes the cities of the Philistines.</p>
-
-<p>800 Persepolis built; 776 Era of the Olympiads begins.</p>
-
-<p>772 Pul invades Israel.</p>
-
-<p>753 Rome founded, April 20; 743 First Messenian war lasts 19 years.</p>
-
-<p>740 Damascus taken by Tiglath-pileser.</p>
-
-<p>732 Syracuse founded; 730 Tarentum founded.</p>
-
-<p>729 Samaria taken by Shalmanezer; End of the Kingdom of Israel; Captivity
-of the Ten Tribes.</p>
-
-<p>713 Sennacherib threatens Hezekiah; his army miraculously destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>685 Second Messenian war; lasts fourteen years; Ira besieged eleven years;
-its capture ends the war.</p>
-
-<p>657 Holofernes slain by Judith, near Bethulia.</p>
-
-<p>650 Naval battle between the Corcyreans and Corinthians&mdash;the first sea-fight
-on record.</p>
-
-<p>641 Josiah king of Judah reforms abuses; restores the worship of God.</p>
-
-<p>630 Cyrene founded; 627 Nabopolazzar king of Babylon.</p>
-
-<p>616 Age of Pharaoh Necho; Tyrians in his service sail round Africa.</p>
-
-<p>607 Nineveh taken by the Medes and Babylonians.</p>
-
-<p>604 Age of Pittacus (general of Mitylene); Sappho (Greek poetess).</p>
-
-<p>594 Age of Ezekiel.</p>
-
-<p>591 Pythian Games begin; Age of Thales (philosopher); Æsop (fabulist).</p>
-
-<p>588 Nebuchadnezzar takes Jerusalem; End of the kingdom of Judah; Beginning
-of the Babylonish captivity; 572 Nebuchadnezzar takes Tyre
-after a siege of thirteen years.</p>
-
-<p>570 Voyage of Hanno along the west coast of Africa; about the same time
-Himilco sails to Britain.</p>
-
-<p>560 Union of the Medes and Persians; Cyaxares king of the Medes.</p>
-
-<p>559 Persian empire founded by Cyrus; Age of Anaximander, inventor of
-globes and charts.</p>
-
-<p>548 Cyrus defeats Crœsus at Thymbra; Takes Sardis; Conquers Lydia.</p>
-
-<p>539 Massilia founded; Age of Pythagoras (philosopher); Anacreon (poet).</p>
-
-<p>538 Cyrus takes Babylon; Age of Daniel; 525 Cambyses conquers Egypt.</p>
-
-<p>521 Age of Darius Hystaspes; 518 End of the Babylonish captivity.</p>
-
-<p>516 Age of Artaxerxes Longimanus or Ahasuerus; Queen Esther.</p>
-
-<p>515 The Temple of Jerusalem rebuilt; 510 Sybaris, in Italy, destroyed.</p>
-
-<p>509 Consular government established in Rome.</p>
-
-<p>504 Athenians burn Sardis; Age of Heraclitus (naturalist); Democedes (physician);
-500 Milesians emigrate from Spain to Ireland.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_454" id="Page_454">[454]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>500 First Persian war against Greece; 490 Battle of Marathon; the Greeks
-commanded by Miltiades, defeat the Persians, under Dates and Artaphanes;
-480 Xerxes crosses the Hellespont at Abydos; invades
-Greece; Battle of Thermopylæ; Naval battles of Artemisium and
-Salamis; Age of Themistocles (Athenian statesman); Anaxagoras
-(philosopher); Pindar (poet); Æschylus (tragic writer); Corinna
-(poetess).</p>
-
-<p>479 Battles of Platæa and Mycale on the same day.</p>
-
-<p>470 The Athenians, under Cimon defeat the Persians, on the Eurymedon
-river, twice in one day, first on water and then on land.</p>
-
-<p>465 Third Messenian war; lasts ten years.</p>
-
-<p>457 Battle of Tanagra; Age of Pericles (Athenian statesman).</p>
-
-<p>445 Age of Herodotus (historian); Phidias (sculptor).</p>
-
-<p>431 First Peloponnesian war commences; continues twenty-seven years; Age
-of Hippocrates (physician); Democrates (philosopher, &amp;c.)</p>
-
-<p>424 Bœotians defeat the Athenians at Delium.</p>
-
-<p>406 Naval battle of Ægos Potamos; Athenian fleet defeated by the Spartans;
-Age of Protagoras (philosopher); Parrhasius (painter).</p>
-
-<p>401 Battle of Cunaxa; Death of Cyrus the younger; Retreat of the ten thousand
-under Xenophon.</p>
-
-<p>400 Death of Socrates; 396 Age of Zeuxis (painter); Aristippus (philosopher).</p>
-
-<p>395 Veii besieged by the Romans for ten years.</p>
-
-<p>394 Spartans defeat the Thebans at Coronæa; Falerii taken by Camillus; Age
-of the Cyrenaic philosophers.</p>
-
-<p>389 Battle of the Allia; Gauls defeat the Romans; burn Rome; inhabitants
-fly to Cære or Agylla; Gauls defeated near Cabii by Camillus.</p>
-
-<p>379 Age of Plato (philosopher); Conon (Athenian commander); Epaminondas
-and Pelopidas (Theban generals); Diogenes (Stoic).</p>
-
-<p>371 Epaminondas defeats the Spartans at Leuctra; 370 builds Messene in
-eighty-five days; Founds Megalopolis; Age of Eudoxius (astronomer).</p>
-
-<p>362 Battle at Mantinea; death of Epaminondas.</p>
-
-<p>360 Methone captured; Philip of Macedon loses his right eye.</p>
-
-<p>357 Phocian war begins; lasts ten years; 355 Alexander born.</p>
-
-<p>351 Capture of Sidon by Artaxerxes Ochus.</p>
-
-<p>343 Age of Aristotle (philosopher), Demosthenes (orator), Phocion (Athenian
-general).</p>
-
-<p>338 Battle of Chæronea; Philip defeats the Athenians and their allies.</p>
-
-<p>336 Philip assassinated; Archidamus, King of Sparta, killed in battle at
-Manduriæ.</p>
-
-<p>335 Alexander the Great destroys Thebes; 334 conquers Greece; begins his
-Persian expedition; battle of the Granicus; 333 battle of Issus; siege
-of Tyre; 332 conquers Egypt; founds the city of Alexandria; visits
-the temple of Jupiter Ammon; 331 crosses the Euphrates at Thapsacus;
-battle of Arbela; fall of the Persian Empire; death of Darius
-Codomanus; 326 Defeat of Porus by Alexander; the latter afterwards<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_455" id="Page_455">[455]</a></span>
-descends the Indus to the sea; his Admiral, Nearchus, navigates a
-fleet from the Indus to the Tigris; Age of Apelles (painter); Antipater
-(Macedonian General, &amp;c.)</p>
-
-<p>323 Death of Alexander, May 21; his empire divided between Ptolemy, Cassander,
-Lysimachus and Seleucus.</p>
-
-<p>320 Samnites defeat the Romans near Caudium; their army pass under the
-Caudine Forks; Age of Praxiteles (sculptor); Demetrius (orator);
-Phalerius Theopompus (historian); Apollodorus (poet.)</p>
-
-<p>312 Seleucus takes Babylon; dynasty of the Selucidæ begins.</p>
-
-<p>310 Pytheas, the navigator, sails from Gades to Thule.</p>
-
-<p>301 Battle of Ipsus, between Antigonus and Ptolemy, Seleucus, Lysimachus
-and Cassander; Age of Zeno (philosopher).</p>
-
-<p>292 The Sabines conquered by Curius Dentatus; Age of Euclid (mathematician).</p>
-
-<p>284 The Pharos, or light-house of Alexandria, built.</p>
-
-<p>281 The Achæan League formed, by the chief cities of the Peloponnesus, for
-mutual defence.</p>
-
-<p>280 The Romans defeated at Pandosia by Pyrrhus King of Epirus; Age of
-Antiochus 1st, surnamed Soter, King of Syria.</p>
-
-<p>274 Romans defeat Pyrrhus; 272, conquer Samnium, after a seventy years’
-war.</p>
-
-<p>262 First Punic war begins; continues twenty-six years; 260 Duillius obtains
-the first naval victory gained over the Carthaginians by the Romans;
-256 Regulus defeated by Xantippus; Age of Diodatus.</p>
-
-<p>251 Age of Eratosthenes (mathematician); Callimachus (poet).</p>
-
-<p>249 Asdrubal defeated at Panormus, in Sicily, by Metellus.</p>
-
-<p>246 Arsaces founds the Parthian empire; Age of Hamilcar, a noted Carthaginian
-General, and father of Hannibal.</p>
-
-<p>242 The Romans defeat the Carthaginians at sea, near the Ægades islands;
-ends the first Punic war.</p>
-
-<p>231 The Romans take Corsica and Sardinia.</p>
-
-<p>224 The Spartan king Cleomenes III defeated by Antigonus Doson; Colossus,
-at Rhodes, overthrown by an earthquake; Age of Apollonius (poet),
-Philopæmen (Achæan General.)</p>
-
-<p>219 Hannibal takes Saguntum; originates the second Punic war, which lasts
-seventeen years; 218 Crosses the Alps; defeats the Romans, first on
-the river Ticinus, then on the Trebia; 217 Battle of Thrasimene&mdash;his
-third victory; 216 Battle of Cannæ&mdash;his fourth victory; 50,000 Romans
-slain; Capua declares in his favour.</p>
-
-<p>212 Marcellus takes Syracuse, after a three years’ siege; death of Archimedes,
-the noted geometrician.</p>
-
-<p>206 Asdrubal, the brother of Hannibal, defeated and slain by the Romans;
-Age of Syphax (Latin poet); Ennius (Latin poet); Masinissa, King
-of Numidia.</p>
-
-<p>202 Sicily becomes a Roman province.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_456" id="Page_456">[456]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>201 Battle of Zama; Hannibal defeated by Scipio Africanus; End of the second
-Punic war.</p>
-
-<p>200 Romans conquer Illyricum; 197, defeat the Macedonians at Cynoscephalæ;
-196 Hannibal banished from Carthage.</p>
-
-<p>190 Antiochus defeated by the Consul Acilius at Thermopylæ; Age of Cato
-the elder.</p>
-
-<p>187 Scipio Asiaticus defeats Antiochus I at Magnesia and Sipylum.</p>
-
-<p>186 Scipio Africanus banished to Liturnum.</p>
-
-<p>183 Death of Hannibal in Bithynia, by poison, aged sixty-five.</p>
-
-<p>168 Insurrection of the Maccabees against Antiochus, King of Syria.</p>
-
-<p>168 Paulus Æmilius defeats Perseus at Pydna; Macedonia becomes a Roman
-province; Age of Hipparchus (philosopher); Polybius (historian), &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>167 Epirus conquered by the Romans; 165 Age of Judas Maccabæus.</p>
-
-<p>149 Third Punic war begins; 146 Scipio destroys Carthage, Mummius destroys
-Corinth; Agatharchides (Greek geographer).</p>
-
-<p>137 Demetrius Nicator defeated at Damascus by Alexander Zebina.</p>
-
-<p>133 Numantia destroyed by the inhabitants; Spain becomes a Roman province;
-The kingdom of Pergamus bequeathed to the Romans by Attalus, its
-last king.</p>
-
-<p>131 Tiberius Gracchus treacherously slain at Potentia.</p>
-
-<p>109 Jugurthine war begins; lasts five years; 106 Jugurtha betrayed by Bocchus
-to the Romans; Armenia Major becomes a Roman province.</p>
-
-<p>105 Aristobulus crowned king of the Jews; 106 Pompey born at Rome.</p>
-
-<p>102 Marius defeats the Cimbri and Teutones at Aquæ Sextæ; 101 defeats the
-Cimbri on the Raudian Plains.</p>
-
-<p>100 Birth of Julius Cæsar, July 12; this month was named after him.</p>
-
-<p>92 Bocchus sends Sylla a present of 100 lions from Africa.</p>
-
-<p>89 The Mithridatic war begins; lasts twenty-six years; 86 Sylla defeats the
-consuls Carbo and Cinna; Metellus (consul); Sertorius (Roman
-General); 78 death of Sylla; 76 Calaguris besieged by Pompey; the
-inhabitants, reduced to extremity, feed on their wives and children.</p>
-
-<p>75 Bithynia bequeathed to the Romans by Nicomedes.</p>
-
-<p>73 Sertorius assassinated by Perpenna and others at Osca.</p>
-
-<p>73 Servile war begins; Roman slaves revolt against their masters, under
-Spartacus; defeated, two years afterwards, by Pompey and Crassus.</p>
-
-<p>72 Lucullus defeats Mithridates the Great at Cabira; 69 defeats Tigranes;
-captures Tigranocerta; 68 defeats Mithridates at Zela; 66 again at
-Nicopolis.</p>
-
-<p>67 Pompey takes Coracesium; 65 dethrones Antiochus Asiaticus.</p>
-
-<p>64 Pontus annexed to Rome; Death of Mithridates the Great.</p>
-
-<p>63 Palestine conquered by Pompey; Cataline defeated and killed at Pistoria.</p>
-
-<p>60 First triumvirate of Cæsar, Pompey and Crassus; Age of Catullus (poet);
-Cicero (orator); Sallust (historian); Roscius (actor), &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_457" id="Page_457">[457]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>57 Gaul becomes a Roman province; 55 Cæsar invades Britain.</p>
-
-<p>53 Crassus plunders the Temple of Venus at Hierapolis; his defeat and death,
-by the Parthians, near Carrhæ.</p>
-
-<p>51 Siege and capture of Pindenissus by Cicero.</p>
-
-<p>50 Civil war between Cæsar and Pompey; 49 Cæsar crosses the Rubicon;
-takes Ariminum; 48 defeats Pompey at Pharsalia, July 30th, death of
-Pompey.</p>
-
-<p>47 Cæsar defeats Pharnaces at Zela; writes from thence his famous letter of
-three words, “Veni, vidi, vici;” I came, I saw, I conquered; 46 Victorious
-at Thapsus; Death of Cato; 45 Battle of Munda; the last in
-which Cæsar commanded.</p>
-
-<p>44 Cæsar killed in the Senate-house, March 15th, by Brutus, Cassius, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p>43 Antony defeats the Consul Pansa, and is defeated the same day by Hirtius;
-Cicero murdered by order of Antony; Age of Varro (historian and
-philosopher); Diodorus Siculus and Pompeius (historians).</p>
-
-<p>42 Antony and Octavius defeat Brutus and Cassius at Philippi.</p>
-
-<p>37 Herod, an Idumean, placed on the Jewish throne.</p>
-
-<p>31 Naval battle at Actium; Octavius defeats Antony; <em>Ends the Commonwealth
-of Rome</em>.</p>
-
-<p>30 Death of Antony and Cleopatra; Egypt becomes a Roman province.</p>
-
-<p>28 <em>Roman Empire begins</em>.</p>
-
-<p>27 Title of Augustus given to Octavius; Augustin age; Virgil, Livy, Ovid,
-Propertius (poets); Horace (historian); Dionysius Halicarnassus
-(antiquarian).</p>
-
-<p>20 Roman standards taken from Crassus restored to Augustus, by Phraates,
-king of Parthia; death of Virgil.</p>
-
-<p>19 Noricum and Pannonia conquered by the Romans; Candace, queen of
-Meroe, in Ethiopia, blind of an eye, invades Egypt, but is repelled.</p>
-
-<p>15 Rhætia and Vindelicia conquered by Drusus.</p>
-
-<p>6 Archelaus, surnamed Herod, banished to Vienna, in Gaul.</p>
-
-<p>4 <span class="smcap">Jesus Christ</span>, our <span class="smcap">Saviour</span>, born four years before the vulgar era, December
-25th.</p>
-
-<p>2 Massacre of the Innocents at Bethlehem, by order of Herod; his death;
-Archelaus succeeds him.</p>
-
-
-<br />
-<p><em>A.D. First year of the Christian Era, 4004 years after the Creation.</em></p>
-
-<p>2 Silk first introduced into Rome.</p>
-
-<p>6 Procurators or governors appointed over Judea.</p>
-
-<p>8 Christ, at twelve years of age, is three days in the temple.</p>
-
-<p>9 Arminius or Herman, a German chief, destroys the army of Varus; this
-defeat causes a great sensation at Rome; Ovid banished to Tomi.</p>
-
-<p>14 Augustus dies at Nola, after a reign of forty-five years; succeeded by
-Tiberius; Age of Germanicus (Roman general).</p>
-
-<p>20 Jews expelled from Italy by Tiberius; 28 Age of Strabo (geographer).</p>
-
-<p>29 John the Baptist commences preaching: 30 Baptizes our Saviour.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_458" id="Page_458">[458]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>31 Our Saviour delivers the Sermon on the Mount.</p>
-
-<p>32 Feeds the 5000: his transfiguration; John the Baptist beheaded.</p>
-
-<p>33 Our Saviour’s death; First Christian Church at Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<p>37 Conversion of St. Paul; Death of Tiberius; succeeded by Caligula; 40
-Caligula assassinated.</p>
-
-<p>41 Seneca banished to Corsica; is recalled eight years afterwards; Age of
-Pomponius Mela (geographer).</p>
-
-<p>43 Expedition of Claudius into Britain; 51 Caractacus, British king, taken
-as a prisoner to Rome.</p>
-
-<p>52 Paul visits Athens; 54 preaches the Gospel at Ephesus; Age of Persius
-(satirist); Age of Lucan the poet.</p>
-
-<p>60 St. Paul arrested; 62 voyage to Rome; 63 arrives in that city.</p>
-
-<p>61 Boadicea defeated by Suetonius Paulinus at Camulodunum.</p>
-
-<p>68 Nero dies: Josephus (historian); Pliny (naturalist); Petronius (poet).</p>
-
-<p>69 Galba slain; Suicide of Otho; Vitellius slain.</p>
-
-<p>70 Jerusalem taken and destroyed by Titus, September 8th; Agricola’s
-fleet sails around Britain; Agricola promotes useful arts among the
-Britons.</p>
-
-<p>76 Agricola defeats Galgacus at the foot of the Grampian Hills.</p>
-
-<p>79 Herculaneum, Pompeii, and other cities, overwhelmed by an eruption of
-Mount Vesuvius; Death of the elder Pliny.</p>
-
-<p>81 Titus dies, aged 40; Age of Martial (poet); Quintilian (rhetorician).</p>
-
-<p>96 Domitian slain; Age of Tacitus (historian); Juvenal (satirist).</p>
-
-<p>103 Dacia conquered by Trajan; 106 Age of Pliny the younger; Plutarch.</p>
-
-<p>117 Death of Trajan, at Selinus, in Cilicia; succeeded by Adrian.</p>
-
-<p>120 Wall built by Adrian across Britain.</p>
-
-<p>139 Death of Adrian, aged 71; Antoninus (emperor); Ptolemy (geographer).</p>
-
-<p>140 Wall built by Antoninus across Britain.</p>
-
-<p>169 Death of Polycarp the Martyr; Age of Galen (physician).</p>
-
-<p>180 Marcus Aurelius (emperor) dies at Sirmium.</p>
-
-<p>192 The Emperor Commodus slain; Pertinax succeeds him.</p>
-
-<p>194 Severus defeats Niger at Issus; becomes emperor.</p>
-
-<p>210 Wall built across Britain by Severus; 218 Heliogabalus emperor.</p>
-
-<p>226 Artaxerxes founds second Persian empire; Dynasty of the Sassanides
-begins.</p>
-
-<p>238 Maximinus killed by his own soldiers before the walls of Aquileia. This
-emperor was a monster of cruelty, and of gigantic size and strength,
-being eight feet high.</p>
-
-<p>259 Sapor I captures the emperor Valerian, and flays him alive; Odenatus king
-of Palmyra; Gallienus succeeds Valerian.</p>
-
-<p>267 Odenatus dies; Zenobia, his wife, assumes the title of Queen of the East.</p>
-
-<p>270 Death of Claudius; Aurelian succeeds; regards Zenobia as a usurper; 272
-defeats her at Antioch and Emesa; 273 captures Palmyra; takes Zenobia
-prisoner; puts Longinus, her secretary to death.</p>
-
-<p>275 Emperor Tacitus; 282 Emperor Probus killed, near Sirmium.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_459" id="Page_459">[459]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>286 Age of the emperors Diocletian and Maximianus.</p>
-
-<p>305 Both resign their authority to enjoy private life; the first retires to Salona
-in Illyricum, and the other to Lucania.</p>
-
-<p>306 Constantine the Great proclaimed emperor; 313 establishes Christianity
-as the religion of the empire; 315 defeats Licinius at Cibalis; 324
-again at Adrianopolis; 328 removes the government from Rome to
-Byzantium.</p>
-
-<p>338 Death of Constantine; succeeded by his sons Constantinus, Constantius
-and Constans.</p>
-
-<p>348 Sapor defeats Constantius at Singara; 350 Constantius sole emperor; 351
-defeats Magnentius at Mursa; 353, again at Mons Seleucus.</p>
-
-<p>360 Julian the Apostate (emperor); 363 dies; next year Jovian dies.</p>
-
-<p>367 Age of Ausonius (poet); 375 Emporor Gratian.</p>
-
-<p>378 Valens defeated by the Goths at Adrianopolis. This was the most disastrous
-defeat experienced by the Romans since the battle of Cannæ.</p>
-
-<p>380 Age of St. Augustine, one of the fathers of the Church.</p>
-
-<p>395 Theodosius, emperor, divides the Roman empire between his sons Arcadius
-and Honorius, into Eastern and Western.</p>
-
-<p>403 Stilicho defeated by the Goths at Pollentia.</p>
-
-<p>407 The Alans, Vandals and Sueves invade Gaul and Spain.</p>
-
-<p>408 Alaric takes Rome first time; 409, second time; 410, third time; the city
-given up to plunder for six days; Death of Alaric; Kingdom of
-Burgundy founded.</p>
-
-<p>441 Age of St. Patrick; 448 Romans leave Britain; next year Angles and
-Saxons land under Hengist and Horsa.</p>
-
-<p>451 Attila defeated at Durocatalaunum; 452 destroys Aquileia; 453 Dies.</p>
-
-<p>455 Rome captured by Genseric, king of the Vandals; Heptarchy established
-in Britain.</p>
-
-<p>474 Romulus Augustulus, last emperor of the west.</p>
-
-<p>476 <em>End of the Roman Empire</em>.</p>
-
-<p>489 Odoacer, chief of the Heruli, becomes king of Italy; Ostrogoths invade
-Italy and defeat Odoacer.</p>
-
-<p>496 Clovis the Great, king of France; Feudal system begins.</p>
-
-<p>529 Age of Justinian; Belisarius (Roman general).</p>
-
-<p>622 Mahomet, aged 53, flies from Mecca to Medina, which forms the first year
-of the Hegira or Mahometan Era.</p>
-
-<p>632 Death of Mahomet; Abubeker, his successor or first Caliph.</p>
-
-<p>636 Saracens conquer Egypt; destroy the Alexandrian Library.</p>
-
-<p>712 The Moors invade Spain; 713 conquer the Visigoths.</p>
-
-<p>742 Charlemagne, son of Pepin the Short, born; 768 crowned king of the
-Franks; 774 crowned king of Italy; 800 crowned emperor of the
-West, by Pope Leo III; 814 Charlemagne dies. Charlemagne was
-the most powerful Christian monarch of the middle ages; he was a
-renowned warrior, he also encouraged learning and religion, and
-collected around him the most noted scholars of his time.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_460" id="Page_460">[460]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>827 The Heptarchy united under Egbert, king of England.</p>
-
-<p>843 Kenneth Macalpine first king of Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>849 Alfred, King of England, born; 872 ascends the throne; 901 dies. This
-monarch rescued his country from the power of the Danes; encouraged
-learning and religion; enacted wise laws, and laid the foundation of
-the naval power of Britain.</p>
-
-<p>853 Tithes of all England granted to the church.</p>
-
-<p>856 The English crown first disposed of by will.</p>
-
-<p>862 Winchester burnt by the Danes.</p>
-
-<p>867 The monasteries ravaged by the Danes.</p>
-
-<p>886 Ships first built to secure the coasts. Learning restored at Oxford, by
-Alfred the Great.</p>
-
-<p>890 Brick and stone first used in building. Time calculated by wax candles
-marked.</p>
-
-<p>897 A plague happened which caused great desolation among the inhabitants.</p>
-
-<p>900 Athelstan created knight, and the first who enjoyed this title in England.</p>
-
-<p>937 A severe frost, which continued 120 days. The Bible translated into the
-Saxon. Colebrand, the Danish giant, killed by Guy, Earl of Warwick.</p>
-
-<p>944 A storm blew down 1500 houses in London.</p>
-
-<p>945 The first tuneable bells in England were this year hung in Croyland
-Abbey.</p>
-
-<p>946 Stealing first punished with death.</p>
-
-<p>955 Edred enjoyed the honor of being the first who was styled King of Great
-Britain.</p>
-
-<p>960 Laws to prevent excessive drinking. Wolves’ heads made a tribute. Eight
-princes rowed Edgar over the river Dee.</p>
-
-<p>979 Juries instituted.</p>
-
-<p>982 A fire destroyed the King’s palace and a great part of London.</p>
-
-<p>991 The land-tax first levied.</p>
-
-<p>999 Danegelt first levied, to bribe the Danes to leave the kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>1002 November 13, a general massacre of the Danes began at Welwin in Hertfordshire.</p>
-
-<p>1012 The priests first inhibited from marrying.</p>
-
-<p>1014 Selling English children and kindred to Ireland, prohibited.</p>
-
-<p>1017 Canute caused the assassins of Edmund, and the traitor Edric who by a
-plot of regicide had advanced him to the throne, to be hanged.</p>
-
-<p>1040 Macbeth murders Duncan king of Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>1058 Edward the Confessor began to cure the King’s evil. Godiva relieved
-Coventry from some heavy taxes by riding naked through the town.</p>
-
-<p>1060 The cross of Waltham erected.</p>
-
-<p>1065 The Saxon laws written in Latin.</p>
-
-<p>1066 William Fitzosborne created earl of Hereford, being the first Earl created
-in this kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>1068 The tax of Danegelt was re-established; and the curfew-bell ordered to
-be rung at eight every evening, when the people were obliged, on pain
-of death, to extinguish their fire and candle.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_461" id="Page_461">[461]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1072 Surnames first used in England.</p>
-
-<p>1075 William was reconciled with his son Robert, who had rebelled against
-him. Waltheof, earl of Northumberland, was beheaded for rebellion,
-and was the first English nobleman thus executed.</p>
-
-<p>1076 William refused to pay homage to the see of Rome for the possession of
-England, and forbade his bishops to attend the council that Gregory
-had summoned. He however sent to Rome the tribute of Peter-pence.
-A great earthquake in England, and a frost from November to the end
-of April.</p>
-
-<p>1078 William laid the foundation of London.</p>
-
-<p>1079 The Norman laws and language introduced.</p>
-
-<p>1085 Thirty-six parishes, containing a circuit of sixty miles in Hampshire, were
-depopulated and destroyed without any compensation to the inhabitants,
-in order to make New-Forest for William’s diversion of hunting.
-The tyrannical laws of the Forest were made.</p>
-
-<p>1087 A dreadful famine in England. William went to France and destroyed
-the country with fire and sword. He died at Rouen by a fall from his
-horse, and was buried at Caen, in Normandy, in the monastery he had
-himself founded, but was denied interment by the proprietor till the
-fees were paid.</p>
-
-<p>1088 An earthquake in London. A great scarcity this year, and corn not ripe
-till the end of November. William II embarked for Normandy, and made
-war against his brother Robert. William returned to England; and
-Henry his brother, was forced to wander without a residence.</p>
-
-<p>1091 A tempest which destroyed 500 houses. Great part of London consumed
-by fire.</p>
-
-<p>1092 Malcolm, king of Scotland, killed at Alnwick, by the Earl of Northumberland.</p>
-
-<p>1094 Man and beast destroyed by a great mortality.</p>
-
-<p>1095 Peter the hermit preached up a crusade to the Holy Land.</p>
-
-<p>1096 The Christian princes raised 700,000 men, and began the holy war. The
-first single combat for deciding disputes between the nobility.</p>
-
-<p>1097 The Voyage for the Holy War, was first undertaken. Being a contrivance
-of Pope Urban, to compose the divisions of the church, the whole
-Christian world being then at discord among themselves. This war
-lasted almost three hundred years.</p>
-
-<p>1098 Tower surrounded with a wall. Westminster Hall built. Its dimensions
-are 224 feet by 74.</p>
-
-<p>1099 Jerusalem taken by storm, and forty thousand Saracens put to the sword.</p>
-
-<p>1100 Godwin-Sands, the property of Earl Godwin, first overflowed by the sea,
-destroying four thousand acres of land. King Henry married the lady
-Maud, daughter of Margaret, late queen of Scots, and niece to Edgar
-Atheling, descended from Edmund Ironside. The use of fire and candle,
-after eight o’clock at night restored to the English.</p>
-
-<p>1106 King Henry subdues Normandy, takes Robert prisoner, and orders his
-eyes to be put out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_462" id="Page_462">[462]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1109 Three shillings levied on every hide of land, which tax produced £824,000.</p>
-
-<p>1110 Arts and sciences taught again at Cambridge.</p>
-
-<p>1112 A plague in London.</p>
-
-<p>1114 The Thames dry for three days.</p>
-
-<p>1116 A council called of the nobility, which is supposed by some to be the first
-parliament.</p>
-
-<p>1122 The order of the Knights Templars founded.</p>
-
-<p>1123 The first park (Woodstock) made in England.</p>
-
-<p>1129 The revenue of the royal demesne altered from kind to specie.</p>
-
-<p>1132 London mostly destroyed by fire.</p>
-
-<p>1134 Duke Robert, having been imprisoned and blinded twenty-eight years,
-ended his miserable existence. Wheat sufficient to subsist 100 men
-one day, sold at one shilling&mdash;a sheep 4d.</p>
-
-<p>1136 The distance from Aldgate to St. Paul’s (included), destroyed by fire in
-London.</p>
-
-<p>1136 The Empress Maud besieged in Oxford, and made her escape from thence
-on foot, being disguised in white, on a snowy night, to Abingdon.
-The tax of Danegelt entirely abolished. No less than fifteen hundred
-strong castles in the kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>1139 The Empress Matilda lands at Arundel, and claims the crown. Makes
-her natural brother, Robert, Earl of Gloucester, her general.</p>
-
-<p>1141 Stephen taken prisoner at the battle of Lincoln, and confined in chains
-by Maud, in Gloucester gaol. Stephen released.</p>
-
-<p>1148 A new Crusade undertaken.</p>
-
-<p>1151 Gratian of Bologna, the monk, collects the canon laws after twenty-four
-year’s labour.</p>
-
-<p>1153 Agreed, between Henry and Stephen, that eleven hundred of the castles,
-erected by permission of the latter, should be abolished. Appeals
-were first made to the Pope, and canon laws instituted. There was
-no regular mode of taxation. Contending parties supported themselves
-by plundering each other’s tenants. There were more abbeys
-built, than in the hundred years preceding.</p>
-
-<p>1155 The castles demolished, agreeably to the treaty of 1153.</p>
-
-<p>1157 The Welsh, subdued, do homage, and swear allegiance. A sect, called
-Publicans, rejecting baptism and marriage, came into England from
-Germany. The bishops pronounced them heretics; they were branded
-in the forehead and whipped.</p>
-
-<p>1174 Henry scourged for the supposed murder of Becket. The bishops and
-abbots of Scotland swore fealty to England and its church. The
-earls and barons of Scotland swore allegiance to Henry and his son.</p>
-
-<p>1176 London bridge begun by Peter Colmar, a priest. It was thirty-three
-years in building.</p>
-
-<p>1177 Glass windows in private houses first used. Debasers of coin first severely
-punished. A new coinage.</p>
-
-<p>1185 A total eclipse of the sun; and, at the same time, an earthquake, which
-destroyed Lincoln and other churches.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_463" id="Page_463">[463]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1186 Near Oxford in Suffolk, was a sort of wild-man caught in a fisherman’s
-net. Trial by jury established, or the verdict of twelve men, to punish
-offenders with the loss of a leg or banishment. Henry secreted his
-concubine (Rosamond, daughter of Walter, lord Clifford) in a labyrinth
-at his palace at Woodstock, who being discovered by his queen
-Eleanor, was poisoned by her, and buried at Godstow nunnery near
-Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>1189 The castles of Berwick and Roxburgh delivered up to William, king of
-Scotland, who was, at the same time relieved from subjection to England.
-Richard began, with Philip of France, his expedition to the
-Holy Land. About this time were those famous robbers and outlaws,
-Robin Hood, and Little John. Upon Richard’s coronation-day, (3rd
-September,) was a great slaughter of the Jews in London, who coming
-to offer their presents to the new king, were set upon by the mob, to
-the loss of their lives and estates; and the example of London was
-followed by other towns, as Norwich, St. Edmunds-Bury, Lincoln,
-Stamford and Lynn.</p>
-
-<p>1190 King Richard marries the Lady Berengaria, daughter to the king of Navarre,
-and goes to the Holy Land, having sold some of the crown
-lands to raise the money for that expedition. In which voyage he
-took the Island of Sicily and Cyprus.</p>
-
-<p>1191 Richard obtained a great victory over Saladin, at Jerusalem, September 3.
-He soon after defeated a Turkish troop of 10,000, who were guarding
-a caravan to Jerusalem. He took, on this occasion, 3,000 loaded
-camels, 4,000 mules, and an inestimable booty which he gave to his
-troops.</p>
-
-<p>1192 Multitudes destroyed by a raging fever, which lasted five months. Two
-suns appeared on Whitsunday, so resembling each other, that astronomers
-could scarcely distinguish which was the centre of our system,
-according to Copernicus.</p>
-
-<p>1194 Richard having been absent four years, returned to England, March 20.
-He made war with France, and having obtained a great victory over
-the French at Gysors “Not we” says he, “but <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Dieu et mon Droit</i>,”
-i.e. God and my Right, has obtained this victory. Ever since, the
-kings of England have made it their motto. The king of Scotland
-carried the sword of state at the second coronation of Richard.</p>
-
-<p>1197 Robin Hood, being indisposed, and desiring to be blooded, was purposely
-and treacherously bled to death. In this reign, companies and societies
-were first established in London. Three lions passant first borne
-in the king’s shield.</p>
-
-<p>1199 Surnames first used.</p>
-
-<p>1200 The king of Scotland performed public homage to John, at the parliament
-held in Lincoln. Assize of bread first appointed.</p>
-
-<p>1204 The Inquisition established by Pope Innocent III. The most ancient
-writ of parliament directed to the bishop of Salisbury. Five moons
-seen at one time in Yorkshire.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_464" id="Page_464">[464]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1205 A fish resembling a man taken on the coast of Suffolk, and kept alive six
-months.</p>
-
-<p>1207 The first annual mayor and common council of London chosen.</p>
-
-<p>1208 Divine service throughout the kingdom suspended by the Pope’s interdict.</p>
-
-<p>1209 John excommunicated.</p>
-
-<p>1210 Twenty Irish princes do homage to John at Dublin. The clergy taxed to
-the amount of £100,000.</p>
-
-<p>1211 England absolved by the Pope from its allegiance to John.</p>
-
-<p>1212 Great part of London burnt down by a fire which began in Southwark in
-Middlesex, and consumed the Church of St. Mary Overy, went on to
-the bridge; and whilst some were quenching the flames, the houses at
-the other end took fire, so that numbers were inclosed; many were
-forced to leap into the Thames, whilst others, crowding into boats that
-came to their relief, were the cause of nearly 3,000 people perishing,
-partly by water, and partly by fire.</p>
-
-<p>1213 John resigned his dominions to the Pope, and was absolved. In this
-reign, sterling money was first coined.</p>
-
-<p>1216 Wheat was sold for twelve-pence a quarter, and beans and oats for four-pence
-a quarter.</p>
-
-<p>1222 The ward-ship of heirs and their lands was granted to king Henry.</p>
-
-<p>1226 The Pope demanded a sum annually from every cathedral church and
-monastery in Christendom. This demand was refused. Thomas à
-Becket’s bones were enshrined in gold and precious stones. Two
-imposters executed, the one for pretending to be the Virgin Mary, the
-other Mary Magdalen.</p>
-
-<p>1228 The Jews obliged to pay a third part of their property to the king.</p>
-
-<p>1236 Water first conveyed to London with utility. The Pope’s ambassador
-going to Oxford, was set upon by the students, and his brother slain,
-himself hardly escaping; whereupon the Pope excommunicated the
-University, and made all the bishops who interceded in the University’s
-behalf, and the students, go without their gowns, and barefooted
-from St. Paul’s church to his house, being about a mile, before he
-would revoke the sentence.</p>
-
-<p>1246 Titles first used.</p>
-
-<p>1251 Wales entirely subdued and subjected to English laws.</p>
-
-<p>1253 Fine linen first made in England.</p>
-
-<p>1255 All possessing £15 per annum, obliged to be knighted, or pay a fine. Tapestry
-introduced by Eleanor, wife of prince Edward.</p>
-
-<p>1264 There were 700 Jews slain in London, because one of them would have
-forced a Christian to have paid more than two-pence, for the use of
-twenty shillings a week.</p>
-
-<p>1269 About this time, Roger Bacon, a divine of Merton College in Oxford, was
-imprisoned by the Pope, for preaching against the Romish church.</p>
-
-<p>1273 The Scots swear fealty to Edward, June 12.</p>
-
-<p>1275 Jews obliged to wear a badge; usury restrained by the same act of
-parliament, October 6.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_465" id="Page_465">[465]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1279 The first statute of Mortmain. 280 Jews hung for clipping and coining.</p>
-
-<p>1282 The Rolls in Chancery-lane given to the Jews. Wales reduced, after
-having preserved her liberties 800 years.</p>
-
-<p>1284 Edward II born at Caernarvon, and created first prince of Wales, April 25.</p>
-
-<p>1285 The abbey Church of Westminster finished, being sixty years in building.</p>
-
-<p>1286 The Jews seized, and £12,000 extorted from them by order of the king.
-He likewise laid great fines upon his judges, and other ministers, for
-their corruption; the sum imposed upon eleven of them was 236,000
-marks.</p>
-
-<p>1289 15,000 Jews banished.</p>
-
-<p>1291 Charing, Waltham, St. Albans, and Dunstable crosses erected, where the
-corpse of queen Eleanor was rested on its way from Lincoln to Westminster
-for interment.</p>
-
-<p>1295 The Scots confederate with the French against the English.</p>
-
-<p>1296 Baliol, king of Scotland, brought prisoner to London.</p>
-
-<p>1298 40,000 Scots killed by the English at the battle of Falkirk. Sir William
-Wallace defeated at Falkirk. Baliol released. Spectacles invented.</p>
-
-<p>1301 Parliament declared Scotland subject to England.</p>
-
-<p>1302 The treasury robbed of property to the amount of £100,000. Magnetic
-needle first used.</p>
-
-<p>1308 Crockery ware invented.</p>
-
-<p>1314 The king defeated at Bannockburn, in Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>1319 Dublin University founded.</p>
-
-<p>1322 Knights templar order abolished. Under the accusation of heresy and other
-vices, all the knights templar were seized by order of the king, in one
-day. The knights templar were an order instituted by Baldwin, king
-of Jerusalem, for the defence of the Holy City, and of the pilgrims
-that travelled thither, and were afterwards dispersed through all the
-kingdoms in Christendom. They were so enriched by the superstitious
-world, that they possessed no less than 14,000 lordships, besides
-other valuable lands.</p>
-
-<p>1325 The queen and her adherents declared enemies to the kingdom.</p>
-
-<p>1326 The nobility renounce all fealty to Edward. The king resigns his crown
-to his son Edward III.</p>
-
-<p>1327 The first general pardon granted at a coronation, which was afterwards
-imitated by succeeding kings.</p>
-
-<p>1330 Gunpowder invented. The use of guns by Berthold Swartz of Cologne in
-Germany, a monk, who being addicted to the study of Chemistry,
-and making up a preparation of Nitre, and other things, a spark of
-fire fell into it and caused a quick and violent explosion; whereupon
-he made a composition of powder, and inclosing it in an instrument of
-brass, found it answer his intention, and by this accident came the
-invention of Guns.</p>
-
-<p>1331 The art of weaving cloth brought from Flanders.</p>
-
-<p>1340 Copper money first used in Scotland and Ireland. Thomas Blanket and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_466" id="Page_466">[466]</a></span>
-some other inhabitants of Bristol, set up looms for weaving those woollen
-cloths that yet bear that name.</p>
-
-<p>1341 Gold first coined in England.</p>
-
-<p>1346 Cannon first used by the English at Cressy.</p>
-
-<p>1347 So great a plague in England, that in one year there was buried in London
-50,000; and there succeeded a famine and murrain. August 3rd,
-king Edward took the City of Calais, which he filled with English
-inhabitants; and it remained in the possession of the Crown of England
-210 years after.</p>
-
-<p>1348 The Order of the Garter instituted by Edward the Black Prince, April 3.
-The plague destroyed one-half of the people.</p>
-
-<p>1352 The largest silver coin in England was groats.</p>
-
-<p>1357 Coals first imported into London.</p>
-
-<p>1362 Council obliged to plead in English.</p>
-
-<p>1364 Four kings entertained at one time, by Sir Henry Picard, lord mayor of
-London.</p>
-
-<p>1377 The first champion at coronation. Orders to arm the clergy.</p>
-
-<p>1378 The plague in the north of England. In this year Greenland was discovered.</p>
-
-<p>1379 Every person in the kingdom taxed, April 25.</p>
-
-<p>1381 Bills of Exchange first used. Wat Tyler’s rebellion begun May 3. 1506
-rebels hung, July 2.</p>
-
-<p>1385 The French land in Scotland, in order to invade England, whereupon
-king Richard went to fight them, and put Edinburgh into flames, but
-they refusing to fight, he returns.</p>
-
-<p>1386 Linen-weavers company first settled.</p>
-
-<p>1387 The first high-admiral of England appointed. William of Wickham,
-bishop of Winchester, and lord treasurer, and chancellor of England,
-laid the foundation of the college in Winchester, as a nursery for his
-college in Oxford.</p>
-
-<p>1388 Bombs invented.</p>
-
-<p>1391 A great plague and famine. Cards invented for the King of France.
-Charles VI.</p>
-
-<p>1392 Thirteen counties charged with treason, and obliged to purchase their
-pardons. Provision seized, without payment, for the army. Duke of
-Lancaster landed, and declared his pretensions to the crown, July 4.
-Richard confined in the tower, August 20. Resigned his crown, September
-29. In this reign piked shoes were worn tied with ribands
-and chains of silver to the knees. Ladies began to ride on side
-saddles, before which time they used to ride astride like men.</p>
-
-<p>1399 Geoffrey Chaucer, the poet, died. A conspiracy formed to restore Richard.</p>
-
-<p>1400 Richard II murdered in Pontefract Castle. Emperor of Constantinople
-visited England.</p>
-
-<p>1403 The battle of Shrewsbury, July 22, gained by Henry and the valour of his
-sons.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_467" id="Page_467">[467]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1405 Great guns first used in England, at the siege of Berwick.</p>
-
-<p>1407 A plague destroyed 30,000 persons in London.</p>
-
-<p>1409 Wickliffe’s doctrine condemned.</p>
-
-<p>1414 King Henry sends his brother, the Duke of Bedford, &amp;c., with 200 sail of
-ships, who fell upon the French fleet, sunk 500 French vessels, and
-took three great Carricks of Genoa; relieved Harfleur, and so forced
-the French to raise the siege. In this action many thousands of the
-French were killed.</p>
-
-<p>1415 The battle of Agincourt gained by Henry, with a loss of 10,000 men to
-the French, killed, and 14,000 prisoners, October 25th. Henry sent
-David Gam, a Welsh captain, to view the strength of the enemy, who
-reported, “There were enough to be killed, enough to be taken prisoners,
-and enough to run away.”</p>
-
-<p>1418 Sir John Oldcastle burnt for heresy in St. Giles’s fields.</p>
-
-<p>1419 Vines and sugar-cane first planted in Madeira.</p>
-
-<p>1420 Henry assumes the title of King of France, on a new coin, April 18th.
-Kings of France and England make a magnificent entry into Paris.</p>
-
-<p>1421 The Duke of Clarence, making an inroad into Anjou, in an unhappy engagement
-with the French, he and about 2,000 English were slain.</p>
-
-<p>1422 The two Courts of England and France held at Paris, on Whitsunday:
-the two Kings and Queens dined together in public, May 21st. In
-this reign it was enacted that knights, citizens, and burgesses, should
-be resident in the place for which they were chosen. The crown and
-jewels were pawned to raise money for maintaining the war with
-France.</p>
-
-<p>1422 The French King enlisted 15,000 Scots.</p>
-
-<p>1424 The King of Scotland ransomed.</p>
-
-<p>1430 Every person possessed of £40 per annum, obliged to be knighted.</p>
-
-<p>1436 Paris taken by the English.</p>
-
-<p>1437 James, King of Scotland, murdered, February 19th. So great a dearth,
-that bread was made of fern roots and ivy berries.</p>
-
-<p>1447 The Bodleian library at Oxford founded.</p>
-
-<p>1448 Duke of York asserts his title to the crown.</p>
-
-<p>1449 A rebellion in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>1450 The King and his forces defeated at Seven-oaks, by Jack Cade, in May.
-Cade killed, and his followers dispersed, in June.</p>
-
-<p>1453 The first Lord Mayor’s show. Richard Plantagenet, Duke of York, encounters
-the Queen’s army, near Wakefield in Yorkshire, in which he
-was killed, and his army routed. Edward Plantagenet, Earl of March,
-hearing of his father’s death, took upon him the title of Duke of York,
-and in a battle, at Mortimer’s-cross, near Ludlow, overthrew the Earls
-of Pembroke, Ormond, and Wiltshire, and beheaded Owen Tudor, the
-King’s father-in-law. And in another battle with the Queen, he killed
-the Earls of Northumberland, and Westmoreland; the Lords Dacres,
-Wells, Clifford, Beaumont, and Grey. This was the bloodiest battle
-that England ever knew, for there were killed that day 36,776 men.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_468" id="Page_468">[468]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1454 The king defeated by the Duke of York, at Barnet.</p>
-
-<p>1459 Engravings and etchings invented.</p>
-
-<p>1460 The King taken prisoner at the battle of Northampton.</p>
-
-<p>1461 Edward, the Duke of York, proclaimed King. Richard Plantagenet,
-brother to Edward IV, created Duke of Gloucester. Henry, Margaret,
-their sons, and adherents, attained by parliament, November 6th.</p>
-
-<p>1463 Woollens, laces, ribands, and other English manufactures, prohibited exportation.</p>
-
-<p>1464 Henry, in disguise, taken prisoner, and conveyed to the Tower.</p>
-
-<p>1469 5,000 Welsh slain at the battle of Branbury.</p>
-
-<p>1470 Warwick, being offended at the marriage of Edward IV, landed September
-13th, with 60,000 men from France. Edward IV flies to the Duke
-of Burgundy, his brother-in-law, in Holland.</p>
-
-<p>1471 King Edward, endeavouring to re-obtain the crown, encounters King
-Henry in a bloody battle, upon Gladmore heath, near Barnet, and
-King Henry taken prisoner a second time. On both sides were slain
-10,000 men. King Henry’s Queen, in a battle with King Edward,
-was taken prisoner, 3,000 on her side were slain, and her son Edward
-killed; and soon after, King Henry himself was murdered by the hand
-of the crook-back’d Duke of Gloucester.</p>
-
-<p>1472 A plague in England destroyed more than preceding fifteen year’s war.</p>
-
-<p>1475 Margaret of Anjou, ransomed for £12,500.</p>
-
-<p>1481 James, King of Scotland, caused one of his brothers to be murdered.
-Thomas Parr born this year, and lived 152 years. A remarkable act
-was passed in this reign, which enacted what sort of dress each class
-of men should wear. Another enacted that no peaked shoes should
-be worn.</p>
-
-<p>1483 Gloucester conveyed the King to Northampton. Lords Hastings, Rivers,
-and Grey beheaded. The Lord Mayor, &amp;c., at the instigation of the
-Duke of Buckingham, offered the crown to the Duke of Gloucester,
-who, with affected hesitation, accepted it, June 17th. King Edward V,
-and his brother, the Duke of York, murdered in the Tower. Jane
-Shore, concubine to King Edward IV, and afterwards to Lord Hastings,
-was obliged to do penance publicly in St. Paul’s. She was
-afterwards starved to death, no person being allowed to relieve her,
-and died in a ditch; to which circumstance, Shoreditch is said to owe
-its name. Edward V was born in Westminster Abbey, November 4th,
-1470; reigning two months and eighteen days, was murdered in the
-Tower, and buried there privately. His remains were afterwards found
-in 1674, and removed to Westminster. Richard, Duke of Gloucester,
-(the English Nero,) proclaimed King of England. Post-horses and
-stages established. Earl of Richmond landed at Pool in Dorsetshire.
-Being nearly surprised by Richard, he embarked again, and returned
-to Picardy.</p>
-
-<p>1484 Anne, the Queen of Richard, died March 16th. Richard treats with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_469" id="Page_469">[469]</a></span>
-Laudais, the Duke of Bretagne’s prime minister, for surprising and
-delivering up the Earl of Richmond. Richmond, escaping from Bretagne,
-went to Angers, in Anjou.</p>
-
-<p>1485 Lord Stanley raises 5000 men, and his brother 2000, with whom they
-joined Richmond. The sweating sickness, raged in London.</p>
-
-<p>1486 King Henry, to balance the power of the Lords, found a way to raise that
-of the Commons, which ever since has carried a much greater sway
-than formerly in the government.</p>
-
-<p>1487 Lambert Simnel, who personated the Duke of York, was made a scullion
-in the King’s kitchen. The star chamber instituted.</p>
-
-<p>1488 The King of Scotland, James III, killed by his subjects. Cape of Good
-Hope discovered.</p>
-
-<p>1489 Maps and sea charts first brought into England by Bartholomew Columbus.</p>
-
-<p>1491 The Greek language first introduced into England.</p>
-
-<p>1492 3rd August, Columbus set sail from Palos, a port of Spain, and on the
-12th of October, to his unspeakable gratification, he made his first
-discovery in the New World. This was one of the Bahama Islands,
-called by the natives Guanahani, named by Columbus St. Salvador,
-and afterwards, by some unpardonable caprice, called by the English
-Cat Island. He landed the same day, took possession of it in the
-name of the Spanish sovereigns, and assumed the titles of Admiral
-and Viceroy, which had been awarded to him before he sailed from
-Europe.</p>
-
-<p>1493 15th March. Columbus arrived in Spain after a stormy and dangerous
-voyage, having taken not quite seven months and a-half to accomplish
-this momentous enterprize.</p>
-
-<p>1494 Poyning’s law, which enacted that the statutes in England, respecting
-the English, should be observed in Ireland likewise, first instituted by
-Sir Edward Poyning.</p>
-
-<p>1495 Cicely, Duchess of York, mother to King Edward IV, died, being very old,
-who had lived to see three Princes born of her body, crowned, and
-four murdered.</p>
-
-<p>1497 Perkin Warbeck besieged Exeter. The passage to the Indies by the way
-of the Cape of Good Hope discovered. 3rd July, John Cabot discovered
-Newfoundland. He sailed from the Port of Bristol, in the
-spring of 1497, and, on the 3rd of July, discovered the coast of Labrador.
-The opposite Island, now called Newfoundland, they called St.
-Johns, having landed there on St. John’s day. To the mainland they
-gave the name of <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Terra prima vista</i>&mdash;or Primavista (first seen). The
-English navigators thus reached the continent of North America only
-five years after Columbus had discovered the West Indies, and more
-than a year before he had landed on the continent or main land.</p>
-
-<p>1499 Perkin Warbeck taken and hung at Tyburn, and the last Earl of the
-Plantagenet line was beheaded on Tower-hill, November 28th.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_470" id="Page_470">[470]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1500 A plague in London, which destroyed 30,000 of its inhabitants. A marriage
-was concluded between James IV, King of Scotland, and Margaret,
-the daughter of King Henry VII, which afterwards united England
-and Scotland under one King.</p>
-
-<p>1505 Shillings first coined in England.</p>
-
-<p>1513 Earl of Surrey gained the battle of Flodden-field, over the Scots, whose
-King, James IV, fell in the contest. King Henry invades France in
-person, takes Terwin and Tournay, at the siege of which, the Emperor
-Maximilian served under the King’s pay. At which siege likewise,
-was fought that battle called the battle of Spurs, because the English
-put some of the French troops to flight who made great use of their
-spurs.</p>
-
-<p>1514 Enacted that surgeons should not sit on juries, nor be employed in parish
-offices.</p>
-
-<p>1517 Oxford depopulated by stagnated waters. Martin Luther began the
-reformation in Germany.</p>
-
-<p>1521 King Henry derived the title to him and his successors of Defender of the
-Faith, from writing a book against Luther. Musquets first invented.
-Mexico city yielded, after a prolonged siege, to Cortez, in August.</p>
-
-<p>1522 Magellan performed his voyage under the auspices of Charles V, of Spain.
-He set sail from Seville, in Spain, in August, 1519. After spending
-several months on the coast of South America, searching for a passage
-to the Indies, he continued his voyage to the South, passed through
-the strait that bears his name, and after sailing three months and
-twenty-one days, through an unknown ocean, he discovered a cluster
-of fertile islands, which he named the Ladrones, or the Islands of
-Thieves, from the thievish disposition of the natives. The fair weather
-and favourable winds which he experienced induced him to bestow on
-this the name of the Pacific, which it still retains. Proceeding
-from the Ladrones, he discovered the islands which were afterwards
-called the Philippines in honour of Philip, King of Spain, who subjected
-them forty years after the voyage of Magellan. Here, in a
-contest with the natives, Magellan was killed, and the expedition was
-prosecuted under other commanders. After taking in a cargo of
-spices at the Moluccas, the only vessel of the squadron then fit for a
-long voyage, sailed for Europe by the way of the Cape of Good Hope,
-and arrived in Spain in September, 1522.</p>
-
-<p>1530 The palace of St. James built.</p>
-
-<p>1535 Brass cannon first cast in England by John Owen. Jacques Cartier discovered
-the St. Lawrence on that Saint’s day. He explored the north-east
-coast carefully, and, passing through the Strait of Belleisle, traversed
-the great Gulf of the St. Lawrence, and arrived in the Bay of
-Chaleurs in July. He was delighted with the peaceable and friendly
-conduct of the natives, “who,” says Hakluyt, “with one of their
-boats, came unto us, and brought us pieces of seals ready sodden,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_471" id="Page_471">[471]</a></span>
-putting them upon pieces of wood: then, retiring themselves, they
-would make signs unto us, that they did give them to us.” From this
-hospitable place, where the natives seem to have displayed some of
-the politeness of modern society, Jacques Cartier proceeded to Gaspé
-Bay, where he erected a cross thirty feet high, with a shield bearing
-the three fleurs-de-lis of France, thus taking possession in the name of
-Francis the First. He carried off two natives from Gaspé, who were
-of great use to him on his succeeding voyage. It appears, however,
-that it was with their own consent, as they allowed themselves to be
-clothed in shirts, coloured coats and caps, and to have a copper chain
-placed about their neck, “whereat they were greatly contented, and
-gave their old clothes to their fellows that went back again.” Cartier
-coasted along the northern shores of the Gulf, when, meeting with
-boisterous weather, he made sail for France, and arrived at St. Malo
-on the 5th of September. This celebrated navigator deserves especial
-notice, inasmuch as he was the first who explored the shores of Canada
-to any considerable extent, and was the very first European who
-became acquainted with the existence of Hochelaga, and in 1535
-pushed his way through all obstacles till he discovered and entered
-the village which occupied the very spot on which now stands the
-city of Montreal.</p>
-
-<p>1536 376 monasteries suppressed.</p>
-
-<p>1539 Leaden pipes to convey water invented.</p>
-
-<p>1540 645 religious houses seized, and their property, amounting to £161,000,
-given to the King. The number of monasteries suppressed in England
-and Wales, were 313, Priories 290, Friaries 122, Nunneries 142, Colleges
-152, and Hospitals 129; in all 1148.</p>
-
-<p>1541 1st voyage to India by an English ship.</p>
-
-<p>1543 Mortars and cannon first cast in iron.</p>
-
-<p>1544 Pistols first used.</p>
-
-<p>1545 William Foxley slept fourteen days, and lived forty-one days after.</p>
-
-<p>1547 The vows of celibacy before taken by priests, annulled, and the communion
-ordered to be administered in both kinds. Evening prayers
-began to be read in English in the King’s chapel, April 16th. The
-Scots refusing to marry their young Queen to King Edward (according
-to their promise in his father’s life-time), the protector enters
-Scotland with an army of 12,000 foot, and 600 horse, and fights them
-in Pinkey-field, near Musselburgh, and kills 14,000 Scots, and takes
-1500 prisoners, having lost but sixty of his own men.</p>
-
-<p>1548 Some ceremonies were now abrogated, and an order of council against
-the carrying of candles, on Candlemas-day, ashes on Ash-Wednesday,
-and palms on Palm-Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>1549 Telescopes invented.</p>
-
-<p>1551 The sweating-sickness broke out this year In England with such contagion,
-that 800 died in one week of it in London. Those that were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_472" id="Page_472">[472]</a></span>
-taken with it were inclined much to sleep, and all that slept died;
-but if they were kept awake a day, they got well. A college founded
-in Galway in Ireland. Common-prayer books established by act of
-parliament. Monks and nuns allowed inheritances. Sternhold and
-Hopkins translated and put the Psalms into verse.</p>
-
-<p>1553 There was so great a plenty of malt and wheat, that a barrel of beer with
-the cock sold for six-pence, and four great loaves for one penny.
-The King founded St. Bartholomew’s Hospital, Bridewell, improved
-the Hospital of Christchurch and St. Thomas’ Hospital, Southwark.
-Judge Hales, in his circuit into Kent, required the justices to see to
-the execution of King Edward’s laws: for which he was committed,
-and removed from prison to prison, and threatened so, that he
-attempted to cut his own throat, and at last drowned himself.</p>
-
-<p>1553 Spitzbergen, the White Sea, and Nova Zembla, discovered by the English.</p>
-
-<p>1554 The laws against Lollards and Heretics were revived, and the statutes of
-Mortmain repealed. There was at this time a discovery in London of
-the imposter of the Spirit of the Wall, who, by the help of a whistle,
-uttered several things relating to religion, and the state, through a
-hole in a wall. It was found to be Elizabeth Croses, and one Drake,
-her accomplice, who were both made to do penance for it publicly at
-St. Paul’s. Scory, bishop of Chichester, renounced his wife, and did
-penance for his marriage. It is supposed there were 12,000 of the
-clergy deprived for being married, and most of them were judged upon
-common fame, without any process, but a citation.</p>
-
-<p>1555 The church lands, in the Queen’s possession, restored. Coaches first used
-in England.</p>
-
-<p>1556 300 Protestants burnt for heresy.</p>
-
-<p>1557 This year began with a visitation of the Universities. Commissioners
-were sent to Oxford, where they burnt all the English Bibles and
-heretical books they could find; and took up the body of Peter
-Martyr’s wife, who they said was a heretic, and buried it in a dunghill.
-And at Cambridge, they dug up the bodies of Bucer and Fagius,
-two heretics, and tied their coffins to stakes, and burnt them and their
-heretical books together. Cardinal Pole died November 15th.</p>
-
-<p>1576&ndash;77&ndash;78 Three voyages by Frobisher in search of a North-west passage.
-Greenland explored.</p>
-
-<p>1580 Drake, the first English circumnavigator.</p>
-
-<p>1584 Virginia discovered by Sir Walter Raleigh.</p>
-
-<p>1587 Davies’ Straits discovered by Davies, an English navigator. February
-9th. Execution of Mary, Queen of Scots, at Fotheringay Castle.</p>
-
-<p>1588 Destruction of the Spanish Armada.</p>
-
-<p>1595 Falkland Islands, discovered by Hawkins.</p>
-
-<p>1596 The first trading expedition to the East Indies.</p>
-
-<p>1599 East India Company. Chauvin made two voyages to Tadousac.</p>
-
-<p>1603 Death of Queen Elizabeth on 24th March, and accession of James VI.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_473" id="Page_473">[473]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1604 The present translation of the Bible made.</p>
-
-<p>1605 The gun-powder plot discovered. The channel for the New River allowed
-to be cut. 97,304 person died in London, this year, whereof 68,596
-died of the plague.</p>
-
-<p>1608 Virginia planted by the English. Champlain returned to Canada, and
-Quebec founded 3rd July.</p>
-
-<p>1609 East India company’s patent removed. Chelsea college founded. Alum
-brought to perfection by Sir J. Bouchier. Silk-worms first brought
-into England.</p>
-
-<p>1610 Thermometers invented. King Henry IV of France murdered at Paris, by
-Ravillac, a Romish priest.</p>
-
-<p>1611 Bartholomew Legat was condemned by the convocation for an Arian
-heretic. Legat was burnt at Smithfield for an Arian.</p>
-
-<p>1612 Edward Wightman of Burton, burnt at Lichfield for a heretic.</p>
-
-<p>1614 Sir Thomas Overbury poisoned in the Tower. The New River brought to
-London. Champlain returned to France. An inundation of the sea
-overflowed an extent of twelve miles in Norfolk and Lincolnshire.</p>
-
-<p>1618 Sir Walter Raleigh is executed for high treason, at the instigation of the
-Spanish ambassador. The poet Shakspeare flourished during the beginning
-of this and the latter part of the preceding reign. Synod of
-Dort began: who generally agreed to condemn the doctrines of Arminius,
-concerning election, reprobation, and the universality of Christ’s
-death, and man’s redemption by it.</p>
-
-<p>1623 The fatal Vespers at Black-Friars.</p>
-
-<p>1625 A plague in London destroyed 35,417 of its people.</p>
-
-<p>1626 The king raised money by sale of the crown lands, loans, and ship-money.</p>
-
-<p>1628 Dr. Lamb murdered in the streets of London. The city fined for Dr.
-Lamb’s death, £6,000.</p>
-
-<p>1629 Quebec surrendered to Sir David Kirkt.</p>
-
-<p>1635 Thomas Parr, reported to be aged 152 years, died November 15.</p>
-
-<p>1640 The fatal Long Parliament, began November 3. An act to abolish the
-Star-chamber.</p>
-
-<p>1641 The princess Mary married to William of Nassau, prince of Orange, at
-Whitehall. The earl of Strafford attained, May 8: executed May 12.
-A bill passed for pressing soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>1642 Edge-Hill fight: the number of the slain amounted to above 5,000,
-whereof two-thirds were conceived to be of those of the parliament
-party, and a third part of the king’s. June 17th, Montreal founded by
-Champlain. In the year 1640 the King ceded the whole Island of
-Montreal to the St. Sulpicians and in the following year M. de Maisonneuve
-brought out several families from France, and was appointed
-governor of the island. On the 17th of June, 1642, the spot destined
-for the city was consecrated by the Superior of the Jesuits, the
-“Queen of Angels” was supplicated to take it under her protection,
-and it was named after her “la Ville Marie.” On the evening of this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_474" id="Page_474">[474]</a></span>
-memorable day, Maisonneuve visited the mountain. Two old Indians
-who accompanied him, having conducted him to the summit, told him
-that they belonged to the nation which had formerly occupied the
-whole of the country he beheld, but that they had been driven away,
-and obliged to take refuge amongst the other tribes, except a few who,
-with themselves, remained under their conquerors. The governor
-kindly urged the old men to invite their brethren to return to their
-hunting-grounds, assuring them they should want for nothing. They
-promised to do so, but it does not appear that they were successful.
-In the year 1644, the whole of this beautiful domain became the property
-of the St. Sulpicians of Paris, and was by them afterwards conveyed
-to the Seminary of the same order at Montreal, in whose possession
-it still remains.</p>
-
-<p>1644 York relieved by Prince Rupert, after which happened the fight on Marston-Moor,
-in which action about 7000 were slain, and 3000 of the
-King’s party taken prisoners, with all their baggage.</p>
-
-<p>1645 The fatal battle of Naseby, in which 600 private soldiers were killed on
-the King’s side, and 4500 were taken prisoners; 3000 horse, &amp;c.
-Montrose defeated the Scotch army at Ketsith, near Glasgow, in Scotland.
-Cromwell made lieutenant-general.</p>
-
-<p>1646 The whole order of archbishops and bishops abolished, October 9th.</p>
-
-<p>1646&ndash;7 Charles delivered up by the Scotch to the English for the consideration
-of £400,000, January 30th.</p>
-
-<p>1648&ndash;9 The King sentenced to be beheaded as a tyrant, traitor, murderer, and
-public enemy.</p>
-
-<p>1649 Oliver Cromwell made Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, August 13th.</p>
-
-<p>1650 The Marquis of Montrose defeated in Scotland, taken prisoner, sentenced,
-and barbarously murdered.</p>
-
-<p>1651 Oliver Cromwell invaded Scotland, July 22nd. Charles II defeated at
-Worcester by Oliver, September 3rd.</p>
-
-<p>1653 Oliver chosen protector of England, December 16th. The Rump parliament
-turned out by the army, which had sat twelve years six months
-and thirteen days. Scotland and Ireland united in one commonwealth
-with England, April 12th. Jamaica taken by the English.</p>
-
-<p>1655 Cromwell dissolved the parliament.</p>
-
-<p>1656 Oliver would not suffer the French King to call himself the King of
-France.</p>
-
-<p>1656&ndash;7 A plot to destroy Oliver discovered.</p>
-
-<p>1657 Doctor William Harvey, the first discoverer of the circulation of the blood,
-died January 5th.</p>
-
-<p>1659 The House of Commons shut up, and entrance denied its members. The
-Rump sat again, May 7th. The Rump parliament turned out again by
-Lambert, October 18th. The Rump parliament re-admitted, December
-26th.</p>
-
-<p>1660 Oliver Cromwell’s corpse hung at Tyburn, December 2nd. The Long<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_475" id="Page_475">[475]</a></span>
-parliament dissolved, and another called, to be holden at Westminster,
-April 25th.</p>
-
-<p>1661 The body of the noble Marquis of Montrose taken up, and interred in
-great state.</p>
-
-<p>1662 152 slaves redeemed from Algiers.</p>
-
-<p>1663 Laird Warreston executed at Edinburgh, according to a sentence in parliament,
-on a gibbet twenty-two feet high.</p>
-
-<p>1665 90,000 people destroyed by the plague in London.</p>
-
-<p>1666 Great fire in London, September 2nd, when 13,200 dwelling-houses were
-destroyed. The Dutch and English fleets fight for four days, neither
-party having the advantage. They engage again, and the English
-obtain the victory.</p>
-
-<p>1669 Death of the poet Sir John Denham.</p>
-
-<p>1670 The church of Quebec constituted a bishopric.</p>
-
-<p>1671 The exchequer shut for want of money. Blood attempted to steal the
-crown from the Tower.</p>
-
-<p>1674 King Charles received from France a pension of £100,000 per annum.
-Milton, the poet, and the Earl of Clarendon died.</p>
-
-<p>1676 Carolina planted by English merchants.</p>
-
-<p>1678 Statue at Charing-Cross erected.</p>
-
-<p>1679 The meal-tub plot.</p>
-
-<p>1683 The charter of London taken away by Charles. The Rye-house plot.
-Lord Russel beheaded on a charge of high treason. Algernon Sidney
-beheaded, for writing a libel never published, November 21st.</p>
-
-<p>1684 The Buccaneers of America, about 100 in number, with the assistance of
-some Indians, went into the South seas, and made a bold attack on
-the Spaniards. Bombay, in the East-Indies, was surrendered to Sir
-Thomas Grantham, for the use of the East-India company.</p>
-
-<p>1685 Duke of Monmouth proclaimed King at Taunton Dean, defeated at Sedgemore,
-taken and beheaded.</p>
-
-<p>1685 Justice Jeffries and General Kirk exercise great cruelties on the adherents
-of Monmouth.</p>
-
-<p>1686 The Newtonian philosophy published. Kirk, at Taunton, while at dinner
-with his officers, ordered 30 condemned persons to be hanged, namely,
-10 in a health to the King, 10 to the Queen, and 10 to Jeffries; but
-one action the most cruel, was, a young girl throwing herself at his
-feet to beg her father’s life, he made her prostitute herself to him, with
-a promise of granting her request; but having satisfied his lustful
-desire, was so inhuman as out of the window to show the poor unfortunate
-girl her father hanging on a sign-post: the spectacle so affected
-her, that she went distracted. The King encamped 15,000 men on
-Hounslow heath.</p>
-
-<p>1688 Seven bishops committed to the Tower for not countenancing popery.
-The city of London lent the Prince of Orange £20,000, January 10. The
-parliament declared James’s abdication. James escorted to Rochester<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_476" id="Page_476">[476]</a></span>
-by a Dutch guard, and sailed to France. James landed in Ireland
-with an army, and assembled a parliament. Brass money coined by
-James in Ireland. Bill of rights passed. Every hearth or chimney
-paid two shillings per annum. King William and Queen Mary
-crowned at Westminster, April 11. The Hanover succession first
-proposed, May 31.</p>
-
-<p>1690 The battle of the Boyne in Ireland, where James was finally defeated by
-William, and obliged to embark for France, July 1.</p>
-
-<p>1691 William III took his seat as Stadtholder in Holland. The Queen issues
-out her royal proclamation for the more reverend observing the Sabbath
-day, and against profane cursing and swearing. A terrible battle
-between the Imperialists and Turks, near Salenkemen, in the principality
-of Sclavonia: in which the Imperialists had about 7,000 killed
-and wounded, and a great many good officers; but the Turks lost
-18,000 men, and almost all their officers killed, wounded, or taken prisoners.
-Five captains of Admiral Benbow’s squadron in the West-Indies,
-were tried on board the Breda, at Port-Royal, in Jamaica, for
-cowardice and breach of orders, in an engagement with Ducasse. The
-Irish defeated at the battle of Aughrim, in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>1692 The French fleet destroyed at La Hogue and other places by Admiral
-Russell. A terrible earthquake in the island of Jamaica in the West-Indies,
-which almost entirely ruined the town of Port-Royal, the best
-of all the English plantations.</p>
-
-<p>1692 37 cities, towns, and large villages, and about 130,000 people destroyed
-in the kingdom of Naples, by an earthquake, February 11. The massacre
-of Glencoe, in Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>1692 James’s descent on England frustrated; the destruction of the French fleet,
-May 19.</p>
-
-<p>1693 The English fleet defeated by Tourville.</p>
-
-<p>1694 Queen Mary died of the small-pox. The bank of England incorporated.</p>
-
-<p>1694&ndash;5 Discipline of the Church restored. Commissioners appointed to direct
-the building and endowment of Greenwich hospital.</p>
-
-<p>1695 Duties imposed on births, marriages, burials, bachelors, and widowers.</p>
-
-<p>1695&ndash;6 Guineas went at the rate of thirty shillings. Six-pence per month
-deducted out of every seaman’s wages, for the support of Greenwich
-hospital.</p>
-
-<p>1696 Czar of Muscovy, Peter the Great, came into England, and remained incognito.
-The window tax first levied.</p>
-
-<p>1700 The New-Style introduced by the Dutch and Protestants in Germany.</p>
-
-<p>1700&ndash;1 Earl John, of Marlborough, appointed General of the foot, June 1, and
-Commander-in-Chief of His Majesty’s forces in Holland. King James
-II died of a lethargy at St. Germain’s in France, in the sixty-eighth
-year of his age, September 6.</p>
-
-<p>1702 King William died at Kensington in the fifty-second year of his age, and
-the fourteenth of his reign, March 8.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_477" id="Page_477">[477]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1702 Captain Kirby and Captain Wade were condemned to die, and being sent
-to England, were shot on board a ship at Plymouth, not being suffered
-to go on shore. Admiral Benbow, who had his leg shattered with a
-great shot in the engagement with Ducasse, died of his wounds soon
-after he had the Captains condemned.</p>
-
-<p>1703 The Earl of Marlborough chosen Captain General of Queen Anne’s army.
-A dreadful tempest in England. The old and new East-India companies
-united.</p>
-
-<p>1704 Gibraltar taken in three days, by Admiral Rook. The battle of Blenheim
-gained by the Duke of Marlborough and Prince Eugene. The French
-fleet defeated at Malaga, by the English.</p>
-
-<p>1705 The colours and standards taken at Blenheim, hung in Westminster Hall.
-The English take Barcelona from the Spanish.</p>
-
-<p>1706 The battle of Ramillies gained by Marlborough. The colours and standards
-hung at Guildhall.</p>
-
-<p>1707 England and Scotland united. An interview between the Duke of Marlborough
-and Charles XII. Sir Cloudesly Shovel shipwrecked on the
-rocks of Sicily.</p>
-
-<p>1708 The battle of Malplaquet gained by the Duke of Marlborough and Prince
-Eugene. The French defeated at Oudenarde by Marlborough and
-Prince Eugene. The first parliament of Great Britain met April 24.
-Dr. Sacheverel impeached by the Commons for high crimes and misdemeanors.</p>
-
-<p>1709 Charles XII defeated by the Russians at Pultowa.</p>
-
-<p>1712 Robert Walpole committed to the Tower for bribery. Richard Cromwell,
-son of Oliver Cromwell, died, aged ninety.</p>
-
-<p>1714 Mr. Steele expelled the House of Commons for writing the Englishman
-and the Critic. £5,000 offered to apprehend the Pretender.</p>
-
-<p>1714 George I arrived at Greenwich from Hanover.</p>
-
-<p>1715 The Pretender proclaimed as James VIII in Scotland, by the Earl of Mar,
-who assembles forces.</p>
-
-<p>1716 The tide forced back by a strong westerly wind for one day and night,
-and the Thames lay perfectly dry both above and below the bridge. A
-dreadful fire happened in Thames street, near Bear-key, by the imprudence
-of a boy who was making squibs and rockets, which consumed
-upwards of 120 houses.</p>
-
-<p>1717 The Prince of Wales banished the court.</p>
-
-<p>1718 James Shepherd, a lad of eighteen, executed for conspiring the King’s
-death. Charles XII of Sweden killed at the siege of Frederickshall.</p>
-
-<p>1719 The Pretender received at Madrid as King of Great Britain. The Mississippi
-scheme at its height in France. The English and French invaded
-Spain by land, and took the towns of Fontarabia, St. Sebastian, and
-St. Antonio, and reduced the province of Gui Puocoa.</p>
-
-<p>1720 South-sea stock rose 400 per cent, and continued to rise until July, when
-it rose to 1,000 per cent.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_478" id="Page_478">[478]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1721 Several persons ruined by the South-sea stock falling to 150 per cent.
-Several members of parliament expelled for being concerned in the
-South-sea bubble, and their estates confiscated for the use of the sufferers.</p>
-
-<p>1725 The Lord Chancellor (Earl of Macclesfield) displaced, impeached, and
-fined £30,000 for corruption. Jonathan Wild, a notorious thief-taker,
-executed.</p>
-
-<p>1727 The Spaniards besiege Gibraltar. Sir Isaac Newton died, aged 85.</p>
-
-<p>1729 Deaths of Dr. S. Clarke, Sir Richard Steele, Congreve the poet, and the
-noted John Law.</p>
-
-<p>1731 Deaths of Dr. Atterbury, and Defoe.</p>
-
-<p>1732 Death of Gay, the poet and fabulist.</p>
-
-<p>1737 A comet appeared. Death of Howe.</p>
-
-<p>1739 Admiral Vernon takes Porto Bello.</p>
-
-<p>1742 Sir Robert Walpole resigned, after holding his places twenty-one years.</p>
-
-<p>1743 King George defeated the French at Dettingen.</p>
-
-<p>1744 Admiral Anson returned with £1,500,000 which he had taken in the Acapulca
-ship. Deaths of Pope the poet, and Roger Gale. Prague taken
-by the King of Prussia.</p>
-
-<p>1745 The Duke of Cumberland defeated at Fontenoy. Battle of Preston-Pans.
-Death of Dean Swift.</p>
-
-<p>1746 The rebels defeat the royal army at Falkirk. The Pretender totally
-defeated by the Duke of Cumberland at Culloden. Several Lords and
-others executed for rebellion.</p>
-
-<p>1747 The French fleet defeated by Admiral Hawke.</p>
-
-<p>1748 Death of Thompson, the poet.</p>
-
-<p>1752 The style altered.</p>
-
-<p>1755 General Braddock defeated.</p>
-
-<p>1757 Admiral Byng shot for cowardice.</p>
-
-<p>1758 100 French ships destroyed at St. Maloes, by the Duke of Marlborough,
-called by his soldiers, <em>Corporal John</em>.</p>
-
-<p>1759 The French defeated at Minden. Quebec taken by General Wolfe, and
-death of Wolfe on the Heights of Abraham. Boscawen defeats the
-French off Gibraltar, (Gabel-el-Tarifa) hence Gibraltar, which is also
-called the Babel of Nations, and the Key of the Mediterranean. Guadaloupe
-surrendered to the English.</p>
-
-<p>1760 General Lally defeated in the East Indies. Canada surrendered to the
-English.&mdash;Capitulation signed 8th September.</p>
-
-<p>1762 War declared against Spain. The Hermione, a Spanish ship taken, valued
-at near £1,200,000. Manilla taken from the Spaniards. Havana taken
-from the Spaniards. Preliminaries of peace between England and
-France signed at Fontainbleau, November 3. Martinico and Guadaloupe
-taken by the French.</p>
-
-<p>1763 Peace proclaimed between England, France, and Spain.</p>
-
-<p>1764 The longitude found at sea by means of Harrison’s time-piece. The massacre<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_479" id="Page_479">[479]</a></span>
-of Patna in the East Indies, where 4,000 of the garrison and
-inhabitants were put to the sword.</p>
-
-<p>1765 Otaheite discovered by Captain Willis.</p>
-
-<p>1766 The American Stamp Act repealed. Gibraltar nearly destroyed by a storm.</p>
-
-<p>1769 New Zealand explored by Captain Cook. Electricity of the Aurora Borealis
-discovered. Stratford Jubilee held in honour of Shakspeare.</p>
-
-<p>1771 Falkland islands seized by the Spaniards.</p>
-
-<p>1772 Negroes adjudged free, in England. Solway moss began to flow.</p>
-
-<p>1773 A large quantity of tea belonging to the East India Company, destroyed
-at Boston by the citizens.</p>
-
-<p>1774 The port of Boston shut up by an act of parliament. Civil war commences
-in America. A violent storm, by which 40 ships were lost near Yarmouth.
-Humane Society for the recovery of drowned persons instituted.</p>
-
-<p>1775 Trade with America prohibited. The battles of Lexington and Bunker’s
-hill. The Americans invade Canada and besiege Quebec.</p>
-
-<p>1776 America declared itself independent.</p>
-
-<p>1777 General Burgoyne and his army surrender to the Americans at Saratoga.</p>
-
-<p>1778 War declared against France. Pondicherry taken from the French.
-Admiral Keppel fights the French fleet off Ushant. The Earl of Chatham
-died, and interred in Westminster Abbey.</p>
-
-<p>1779 Ireland admitted to a free trade. The French make a fruitless attempt on
-the island of Jersey. Their shipping destroyed in Concale Bay. An
-American fleet totally destroyed off Penobscot. Pitch and tar made
-from pit-coal at Bristol.</p>
-
-<p>1780 Admiral Rodney defeats the Spanish fleet near Cape St. Vincent, and takes
-their Admiral Laugara prisoner. Dreadful riots in London. War with
-Spain and Holland. Torture abolished in France. His Majesty’s ships
-Andromeda, Laurel, Deal-Castle, Thunderer, Stirling-Castle, Cameleon,
-and many others, lost in a dreadful hurricane in the West Indies.</p>
-
-<p>1781 Lord Cornwallis and his army surrender to the Americans and French at
-York-Town. Sir Eyre Coote defeats Hyder Ally. Ceylon taken from
-the Dutch. Florida conquered by the Spaniards. Engagement between
-Admiral Parker and the Dutch fleet off Dogger Bank. St. Eustatius,
-St. Martin, and other Dutch settlements, captured.</p>
-
-<p>1782 Batavia taken by the English. The memorable attack of Gibraltar by the
-French and Spaniards;&mdash;their gun-boats totally destroyed, and the garrison
-relieved by a squadron of 33 ships of the line, under Lord Howe,
-in the face of the combined fleets of France and Spain, consisting of 47.
-Admiral Rodney defeats the French fleet in the West Indies; takes
-Admiral Count de Grasse and five ships of the line. The Ville de Paris
-and other French prizes lost at sea.</p>
-
-<p>1783 Great Britain declares the United States of America independent. A new
-planet discovered by Mr. Herschell, and called the Georgium Sidus.
-A new island rose out of the ocean near Iceland.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_480" id="Page_480">[480]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1784 The great seal stolen. Mail coaches first established, by Mr. Raikes, of
-Gloucester. Slave trade abolished in Pennsylvania, and in New
-England.</p>
-
-<p>1785 Blanchard and Dr. Jefferies cross the English Channel, in a balloon, from
-Dover, and land near Calais. M. Pilatre de Rosiere, and M. Romain,
-ascend in a balloon, which takes fire and they are dashed to pieces.</p>
-
-<p>1786 Margaret Nicholson attempts to assassinate the King. Frederick the
-Great, King of Prussia, died. Convicts first sent to Botany Bay, and
-Sierra Leone. The young Lord Gormadston clandestinely carried
-abroad, in order to force him to embrace the Romish persuasion.</p>
-
-<p>1787 Three American priests ordained bishops by the Archbishop of Canterbury,
-The house of Peers commenced the trial of Warren Hastings, Esq., on
-a charge of high crimes, &amp;c., committed by him in the East Indies, of
-which he was impeached.</p>
-
-<p>1789 The abolition of the Slave trade proposed in Parliament. Beginning of
-the French Revolution.</p>
-
-<p>1790 War commenced in India with Tippoo Sultan.</p>
-
-<p>1791 Riots at Birmingham.</p>
-
-<p>1793 The Alien-bill passed in the British House of Commons. The English
-evacuate Toulon.</p>
-
-<p>1794 The Habeas Corpus Act suspended. Lord Howe defeats the French fleet
-off Ushant.</p>
-
-<p>1795 Mr. Hastings’ trial ended by his acquittal. The Cape of Good Hope taken
-by the British forces. Ceylon taken by the British.</p>
-
-<p>1796 The East India Company votes an indemnification and recompense to Mr.
-Hastings.</p>
-
-<p>1797 A mutiny of the British fleet at Portsmouth and the Nore suppressed. The
-Dutch fleet beaten and captured by Lord Duncan.</p>
-
-<p>1798 Ireland in open rebellion. Lord Nelson totally defeated the French fleet
-in the battle of the Nile. The French fleet defeated by Sir J. B. Warren.</p>
-
-<p>1799 Seringapatam taken by General Harris and Sir David Baird, and Tippoo
-Sultan killed. The French under Bonaparte defeated by Sir Sidney
-Smith at Acre. The expedition of the British against Holland. The
-British troops evacuate Holland.</p>
-
-<p>1800 Vote of the Irish House of Commons agreeing to the Union of Great Britain
-and Ireland.&mdash;Similar vote of the House of Lords. Malta taken by the
-British forces.</p>
-
-<p>1801 Mr. Pitt resigns, after being minister 18 years. Battle of Alexandria,&mdash;the
-French defeated and Sir Ralph Abercrombie killed. Battle of
-Copenhagen, the Danish fleet taken and destroyed by Lord Nelson.
-Taking of Cairo and Alexandria, by the British troops.</p>
-
-<p>1802 Definitive treaty with France signed at Amiens.</p>
-
-<p>1803 Execution of Col. Despard for high treason. Dissolution of the peace with
-France, May. Insurrection in Dublin; Habeas Corpus suspended, and
-Martial Law proclaimed. Defeat of Row Scinda and Berar Rajar at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_481" id="Page_481">[481]</a></span>
-Ajunty, by General Arthur Wellesley. The British troops enter Delhi
-and the Great Mogul puts himself under their protection.</p>
-
-<p>1804 Mr. Pitt resumes his situation as Prime Minister.</p>
-
-<p>1806 The Spaniards declare war against Great Britain. Lord Nelson defeats
-the combined fleets of France and Spain at Trafalgar; takes twenty
-sail of the line, and is killed in the engagement. Sir R. Strachan takes
-four French ships of the line, off Cape Ortegal.</p>
-
-<p>1806 Death of William Pitt; his debts discharged at the public expense, and a
-statue decreed to his memory. Admiral Duckworth captures and destroys
-five French ships of the line. Sir John Stuart defeats the French
-under Regnier at Maida in Calabria. Surrender of Buenos Ayres to
-General Beresford and Sir Home Popham. French squadron of five
-frigates captured by Sir Samuel Hood. Death of Charles James Fox.
-Rupture of a negotiation for peace with France, and return of Earl
-Lauderdale. Recapture of Buenos Ayres by the Spaniards. The slave
-trade abolished by act of Parliament.</p>
-
-<p>1807 Copenhagen bombarded, and the Danish fleet surrendered to the British,
-under Lord Cathcart and Admiral Gambier. South America evacuated
-by the British. The British troops evacuate Egypt. The island of
-Madeira surrendered to Great Britain in trust for Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>1808 The French prohibit all commerce with Great Britain. Battle of Vimiera
-in Portugal; the French under Junot defeated by Sir Arthur Wellesley.</p>
-
-<p>1809 The French defeated at the battle of Corunna; Sir John Moore killed.
-The French fleet in Basque roads destroyed by Lord Cochrane. Senegal
-surrendered to the British. The battle of Talavera; the French
-defeated by Sir Arthur Wellesley. The 50th anniversary of the King’s
-reign celebrated as a jubilee. The French fleet in the Mediterranean
-defeated by Lord Collingwood.</p>
-
-<p>1810 An attempt made to assassinate the Duke of Cumberland; Sellis, the
-Duke’s valet, found with his throat cut. Murat’s army in Sicily defeated
-by General J. Campbell. Battle of Busaco; the French defeated by
-Lord Wellington. Capture of the Isle of France by the British. This
-island has ever since remained in the hands of the British. Its other
-name is Mauritius, famous for Peter Botte Mountain and its fine sugar.</p>
-
-<p>1811 The Prince of Wales appointed Regent. Battles of Barossa, Albuera, &amp;c.
-in which the French were beaten with great loss. Isle of Java capitulated
-to the British arms.</p>
-
-<p>1812 Ciudad Rodrigo taken by storm, by Lord Wellington. Right Honorable
-Spencer Percival, prime minister of Great Britain, assassinated by John
-Bellingham. Battle of Salamanca, and defeat of the French.</p>
-
-<p>1813 Great battle of Vittoria in Spain, in which Lord Wellington totally defeats
-the French under Joseph Bonaparte and Marshal Jourdan. Defeat of
-Marshal Soult, in Spain, with the loss of 15,000 men, by Lord Wellington.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_482" id="Page_482">[482]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1814 A fair on the Thames, it being frozen over above the London bridges,
-Feb. 2. Bourdeaux surrenders to Lord Wellington. Peace between
-England and France. The allied Sovereigns visit London. City of
-Washington taken by the British army under General Ross. Treaty
-of peace between England and America, Dec. 24. Joanna Southcott
-an impostor, died; and, with her, the hopes of the promised Shiloh,
-and all her other prophecies.</p>
-
-<p>1815 Bonaparte sailed from Elba, and landed with 1,000 men at Cannes, in
-France. Bonaparte enters Paris, March 21. An attempt made by
-Margaret Moore to steal the Crown from the Tower. Memorable battle
-of Waterloo, June 17, 18; Bonaparte fled; the Duke of Wellington’s
-horse killed under him. Bonaparte sailed for St. Helena, August 7.
-Submission of the island of Ceylon to Britain. Bonaparte landed at St.
-Helena, October 16. The English repulsed at New Orleans, with the
-loss of several thousand in killed and wounded, including several
-generals. General Jackson commanded the Americans. General
-Packenham was killed. A column of light appeared in the north-east,
-so vivid as to alarm many persons. By the explosion of a coal-pit
-near Newbattle, in the county of Durham, 70 persons perished.
-Bonaparte resigns the government to a provisional council. In the
-colliery above-mentioned at Newbattle, a steam engine burst, and 57
-persons were killed or wounded.</p>
-
-<p>1816 Princess Charlotte of Wales married, to Prince Leopold of Saxe Coburg,
-May 2. Sir Humphrey Davy invented a Safety Lamp to prevent the
-accidents which happen in coal-mines from fire damp.</p>
-
-<p>1817 The Princess Charlotte died in child-birth, having been delivered of a
-still-born child. Steamboats generally adopted for river navigation in
-America and Europe. The magnetic needle, which had for many years
-taken a western declination from the meridian, returned towards the
-north.</p>
-
-<p>1818 The Queen of Great Britain, Charlotte of Mecklenburg-Strelitz, died Nov.
-21. Two expeditions to penetrate the North-pole sailed, one to the
-north-east, and the other to the north-west, but neither succeeded.
-The kaleidoscope, a new optical instrument, invented by Dr. Brewster
-of Edinburgh. Three systems of education in this year claimed public
-attention: that of mutual instruction propagated by Dr. Bell and Mr.
-Lancaster; the interrogative or intellectual system of questions without
-answers; and that of Mr. Pestalozzi by oral questions. Belzoni transported
-from Egypt to England the statue of Memnon. The Duke of
-Clarence married to the Princess of Saxe Meiningen; and the Duke of
-Kent to a Princess of Saxe Coburg. For two or three days the metropolis,
-as well as the country round, were enveloped in a thick impenetrable
-fog, which obstructed all travelling, and caused a number of
-fatal accidents. The Duke of Richmond died in Canada, from the bite
-of a rabid fox.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_483" id="Page_483">[483]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1819 Messrs. Perkins and Co., of Philadelphia, introduced into London a mode
-of engraving on soft steel, which, when hardened, will multiply fine
-impressions indefinitely. Many distressed persons embarked, under
-the sanction of government, to establish a new colony at the Cape of
-Good Hope. Southwark bridge opened, making the sixth metropolitan
-bridge over the Thames. Forty persons killed by the explosion of a
-mine near Newcastle. A shoal of young whales appeared in Dungannan
-Bay, forty taken by the fishermen. A whirlwind at Aldborough,
-Suffolk, carried up a quantity of barley from a field to a great height.
-Another expedition was fitted out to try a north-west passage to the
-Pacific Ocean. Field Marshal Prince Blucher died.</p>
-
-<p>1820 Lieutenant Parry returned from his voyage to attempt the discovery of a
-north-west passage: he reached the 10th degree of west longitude,
-where he passed one winter in latitude 74, and returned for further
-supplies. Lamented death of H.R.H. the Duke of Kent. Death, in
-Windsor-castle, of George III, in the 82d year of his age, and 60th of
-his reign. George IV held his first court in Carlton-house. Takes
-oath to maintain the Church of England. Oaths of allegiance administered.
-Cato-street conspirators arrested. Thistlewood and his associates
-executed before Newgate. Regent’s canal from Paddington to
-Limehouse opened. Extraordinary solar-eclipse; central and annular
-in the interior of Europe. An <em>Estadfod</em>, or assembly of Welch bards,
-in Wrexham, North Wales. Lieutenant Parry returns from his voyage
-of discovery in the seas on the north of North America.</p>
-
-<p>1821 A Pedo-motive machine invented by Dr. Cartwright for travelling the
-public roads without the aid of horses. A mammoth’s bones found by
-Captain Vetch, on the west bank of the Medway, near Rochester. Mr.
-Kent of Glasgow, invented a machine for walking on the surface of
-the water, at the rate of three miles an hour. A penknife, containing
-2,016 blades, was presented to the Queen, by a Sheffield manufacturer;
-another was afterwards made containing 1,821 blades. Duel between
-Mr. Scott, of the London Magazine, and Mr. Christie, of an Edinburgh
-Magazine, in which the former was mortally wounded. News received
-of a dreadful massacre in Manilla, arising from religious fanaticism. A
-gambling-house, in London, entered by the police, and about 70 individuals
-held to bail. The Discovery-ships sailed from Deptford, for
-the American Arctic Seas. Sale of a collection of Pictures, by Sir
-Joshua Reynolds, which produced £15,000. A bog burst forth from
-Kilmalady, in Ireland, and in an hour covered 100 acres from 20 to 60
-feet deep; it proceeded to a great extent, 200 yards wide, and 80 feet
-deep, at the rate of two yards per hour. Roads and bridges were covered,
-communications cut off, and great damage done. Queen Caroline
-died at Hammersmith, after an illness of eight days. Loss of the
-Juliana, East-Indiaman, in the Margate-roads, in which 38, out of the
-40 individuals on board, perished.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_484" id="Page_484">[484]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1822 The King surrendered £30,000 per annum of the civil list. A coroner’s
-jury decided that publicans are legally bound to receive into their
-houses all persons in extremity. Fifteen thousand Greeks massacred
-in the island of Scio, by the Turks. A south-west gale so retarded the
-flow of the tide in the Thames, that it was fordable at London bridge.
-Subscriptions opened for the starving Irish peasantry, which amounted
-to £300,000. Dreadful cases of misery and oppression published.
-Upwards of 800 Greek virgins exposed in the slave markets, and 20,000
-Christians slaughtered in various villages. The Marquis of Londonderry,
-cut his throat at his house, North Cray. Mr. Canning appointed
-Secretary of State, in lieu of the Marquis of Londonderry. Grand eruption
-of Mount Vesuvius, the most tremendous since 1794. Fonthill
-abbey purchased by Mr. Farquhar, for £330,000. Sir William Herschell,
-the celebrated Astronomer, died. Canova, the celebrated Sculptor,
-died. Madame Lætitia Bonaparte, mother of the late Emperor of
-France, died.</p>
-
-<p>1823 George IV presented to the nation the library of his late father, at Buckingham
-House, consisting of 120,000 vols. An insurrection of the Negroes
-at Martinique detected: several planters had died by poison. Two
-hundred Negroes ordered for execution. Captain Parry arrived from
-his exploratory voyage to the Polar regions; he had failed in the chief
-object of the expedition. Three grand Musical Festivals held within a
-month, at York, Birmingham, and Gloucester, produced the enormous
-sum of £30,500. By the melancholy accident from fire damp, at the
-William Pitt colliery near Whitehaven, 14 men, 16 boys, and two girls,
-lost their lives; 17 horses were also killed. Dr. Jenner, discoverer of
-Vaccination, died. Mrs. Radcliffe, authoress of the Mysteries of Udolpho,
-&amp;c., died. At Rochetts, Earl St. Vincent died. At Kincardine,
-Admiral Lord Keith, died. At Rome, Pope Pius the Seventh, died.</p>
-
-<p>1824 A subterraneous forest of oak was discovered, on the shores of the Solway
-Frith, beyond Brough, imbedded in a stiff blue clay; the trees were of
-large dimensions, and the wood so perfect as to be scarce perceptible
-from new timber, although it must have lain there many thousands of
-years. Mr. Mantell discovered, in the iron sand-stone of Sussex, the
-teeth of a herbivorous reptile of gigantic magnitude, being of the lizard
-tribe; from a thigh bone found, it must have equalled the elephant in
-height, and been more than 60 feet long. The pictures of J. J. Angerstein,
-38 in number, purchased by Government for £57,000 to begin a
-national gallery; Sir G. Beaumont liberally presented his collection to
-the public for that purpose. The Hecla, discovery ship, with Captain
-Parry left her moorings on a voyage of discovery to the Arctic region.
-Mr. Harris, accompanied by Miss Stocks, ascended in a balloon, when the
-former was killed by being thrown from the car. The remains of Lord
-Byron were conveyed from London, amidst a concourse of people, for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_485" id="Page_485">[485]</a></span>
-Newstead Abbey. A copy of Columbus’ letter to the King of Spain,
-on the discovery of America, sold for 34 guineas. Particulars were
-received respecting the death of the celebrated traveller Belzoni, at
-Gato on his journey to Timbuctoo. Mr. Sadler, jun., the aëronaut,
-was killed on descending in his balloon, near Blackburn in Lancashire.
-The enormous timber ship, called the Columbus, arrived at Blackwall,
-from the river St. Lawrence, being 300 feet long, 50 broad, and 30 deep.
-Patrick Grant died, aged 111; to this venerable Highlander, His Majesty
-had granted a pension of a guinea a week.</p>
-
-<p>1825 In January, wool was exported from England to the United States of
-America, being the first instance for two centuries. Organic remains of
-antediluvian animals found in a cave near Chudleigh. Steam engines
-in England, representing the power of 320,000 horses, equal to
-1,920,000 men, managed by 36,000 only, now add to the power of our
-population 1,884,000 men! A phenomenon observed on the coast of
-Kent, being a cloud, resting part on the sea, extending as far as the
-eye could reach, reflecting two distinct images of every vessel passing,
-one inverted, the other in its proper position, apparently sailing in the
-air. An earthquake happened in Algiers, when the town of Blida, was
-totally destroyed, and, of a population of 15,000 persons, scarcely 300
-were left alive. £2,000 granted to Mr. M‘Adam for improvement of
-the roads. The Tower of Fonthill-Abbey fell, and destroyed great part
-of that elegant building.</p>
-
-<p>1826 London was visited by such a dense fog, in the forenoon, that candles were
-burned in all the shops. The abduction of Miss Turner by E. G. Wakefield.
-The death of the celebrated composer, Baron Von Weber, occurred,
-being in his 40th year. Mr. Canning dined with the King of France,
-and Sir Walter Scott with the King of England.</p>
-
-<p>1827 Canal Excavation by the plough in lieu of manual labour. It is remarkable,
-that England, which usually sets the example to all Europe in
-the application of machinery as a substitute for manual labour, should
-have been anticipated by the small state of Wurtemberg; an extensive
-line of canal having been projected, and sanctioned by the Government,
-an eminent engineer constructed a set of ploughs of various forms
-to suit the nature of the soil to be intersected, which, by the aid of
-from eight to twelve horses, excavated the line of canal, at less than a
-fourth of the price which would have been expended in manual labour.
-His Royal Highness the Duke of York expired. Will of Mr. Rundel,
-the silversmith, proved, whose personal property amounted to £1,200,000.
-The steam vessel George the Fourth left Portsmouth for Africa.
-Mr. Canning appointed chancellor of the Exchequer, April 24. Mr.
-Canning expired, Aug. 8. Lord Goderich appointed Premier. Death
-of Dr. Good, F.R.S., author of various works on Science, &amp;c. Death
-of Rebecca Fury, of Falmouth, Jamaica, aged 140. Clapperton’s second
-voyage to Africa. Parry’s attempt to reach the North Pole over the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_486" id="Page_486">[486]</a></span>
-ice without success. Lord Liverpool died, George Canning succeeded.
-Intervention of England, France, and Russia in the affairs of Greece:
-battle of Navarino. Premiership and death of Canning.</p>
-
-<p>1828 Duke of Wellington premier. Russian invasion of Turkey. Capo d’Istria
-President of Greece: a French army in the Morea. Don Miguel usurps
-the throne of Portugal.</p>
-
-<p>1829 The Russian Field-Marshal Diebitsch crosses the Balkan. Treaty of Adrianople.
-Independence of Greece recognized by Turkey. Catholic
-emancipation in England.</p>
-
-<p>1830 Accession of William IV. Algiers taken by the French. July 25th,
-revolution at Paris: abdication of Charles X: Duke of Orleans called
-to the throne, by the title of Louis Philippe, King of the French,
-Belgian and Polish revolutions.</p>
-
-<p>1831 The cholera appears in Europe. Polish insurrection suppressed, and the
-kingdom of Poland incorporated with the Russian empire. London
-conferences: Leopold of Saxe-Coburg chosen King of Belgium.</p>
-
-<p>1832 Civil war in Portugal betwixt Pedro and Miguel. The French occupy
-Ancona, and lay siege to Antwerp. Parliamentary reform in England.</p>
-
-<p>1833 Meeting of the first reformed Parliament. Abolition of slavery in the
-British colonies, with a compensation of £20,000,000 to the slave-owners.</p>
-
-<p>1834 Don Miguel expelled from Portugal. Civil war in Spain. Formation of
-the German Zollverein. Accession of Queen Victoria. Buckingham
-Palace completed. Insurrection in Upper Canada. A meeting of the
-Provincial Convention called at Toronto. Colonel Moodie killed.
-McKenzie, Van Egmont and others invest Toronto. Rebels dispersed
-and leaders flee to the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1838 Second Insurrection in 1838. In Lower Canada, Mr. and Mrs. Ellice of
-Beauharnois, taken prisoners by the rebels at that place and given
-over for keeping to the Curé. The Caughnawaga Indians take 64
-prisoners and, tying them with their sashes and garters, send
-them to Montreal. Affairs at Napierville and Laprairie. Colonel
-Prince did, what should have instantly been done to the Fenian prisoners
-in the late raid, viz., condemned some of the insurgents by
-drum head Court Martial, and executed them forthwith. Quiet
-restored.</p>
-
-<p>1839 Treaty of peace betwixt Holland and Belgium. End of the civil war in
-Spain.</p>
-
-<p>1840 Intervention of England and Austria in the Egyptian question. Thiers
-minister of France: apprehensions of a general war: removed by the
-overthrow of Thiers: Guizot minister. Union of the two Canadas.</p>
-
-<p>1841 Resignation of Melbourne ministry. Peel becomes premier. Death of
-Lord Sydenham in Canada. Fortification of Paris. Bonaparte interred
-in Paris, 15th December.</p>
-
-<p>1842 Affghan and Chinese wars: cession of Hong Kong to England: opening<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_487" id="Page_487">[487]</a></span>
-of Chinese ports. Rising against the English at Cabul: murder of
-Burnes and McNaughton: massacre at the Cabul Pass. General
-Pollock forces the Khugher Pass, 5th April. Ashburton Treaty with
-the United States, August 9th. Great fire at Hamburg.</p>
-
-<p>1843 Activity of the Anti-Corn Law League. John Bright returned for
-Durham. Queen Victoria and Prince Albert visit the King of the
-French and the King of the Belgians. Repeal meetings in Ireland
-stopped by royal proclamation, and Mr. O’Connell and other repealers
-arrested and tried for conspiracy and sedition.</p>
-
-<p>1844 French hostilities with Morocco: Mogadore bombarded: King of the
-French visits Queen Victoria at Windsor. Railway mania in England.
-Campbell the Poet died, 15th June.</p>
-
-<p>1845 Continued activity of the Anti-Corn Law League. Great bazaar at
-London, where the receipts amount to £25,000. Railway mania in
-England attains its height: scrip issued to the nominal amount of
-several hundred millions sterling. Annexation of Texas to the United
-States. Steam established between Liverpool and New York. Sir
-John Franklin set sail 22nd May.</p>
-
-<p>1846 The Spanish double marriages. Mexico annexed, 25th August. Coolness
-betwixt the courts of St. James and the Tuilleries. Abolition of the
-Corn Laws, followed by resignation of the Peel ministry. Austria, in
-violation of the treaties of Vienna, seizes on Cracow, and incorporates
-it with her own dominions. Louis Napoleon escapes from the Castle
-of Ham, in Normandy. Gregory XVI dies, and is succeeded by Cardinal
-Mastai Ferretti, who takes the title of Pius IX. Revolution of
-Geneva, October 7th.</p>
-
-<p>1847 Pope Pius introduces some reforms into the Papal States: excitement in
-the rest of Italy. Civil war in Switzerland: Sonderbund suppressed.
-Abd-el-Kader taken prisoner. The Duchy of Lucca reverts to Tuscany.
-Failure of the potato crop in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>1848 Upper California and New Mexico ceded to the United States. February
-revolution in Paris: flight of Louis Philippe, 24th February: France a
-Republic: Cavaignac: Revolution at Vienna 6th October, and Berlin
-12th November: Schleswig-Holstein insurrection. Arctic ships deserted,
-22nd April. Peace Congress at Brussels, 20th September. Defeat of
-Sikhs at Mooltan, 7th November. Napoleon III first elected President,
-20th December. Smith O’Brien defeated in his attempt to raise
-a resurrection in Ireland.</p>
-
-<p>1849 Death of Queen Adelaide. Punjaub war. Revolutions in Rome and
-Tuscany: Mazzini: French invasion and occupation of Rome. Revolutionary
-movements in Germany and Hungary. Kossuth. Revolution
-in Baden suppressed by Prussia; in Hungary by Russia; and
-Hungarians defeated by Hayman.</p>
-
-<p>1850 Battle of Idstedt and suppression of the Schleswig-Holstein insurrection.
-Peace between Denmark and Prussia. Louis Philippe died 26th
-August. Sir Robert Peel died.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_488" id="Page_488">[488]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1851 Great industrial exhibition in London in Crystal Palace. French <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">coup
-d’état</span>: National assembly broken up, and Napoleon declared President
-of the Republic for ten years. Discovery of gold fields in Australia.</p>
-
-<p>1852 The Earl of Derby forms a protectionist ministry, dissolves parliament,
-but is soon forced to resign: Lord Aberdeen becomes Premier. On the
-14th September, the illustrious Duke of Wellington, the Iron Duke,
-died at Walmar Castle near Dover, aged 83. Louis Napoleon proclaimed
-Emperor of the French, as Napoleon III. Amazon steamer
-burnt at sea, and 100 persons perished, 4th January. The steamer
-Birkenhead with troops on board for the Cape of Good Hope wrecked
-26th February, and of 638 persons only 184 were saved; 454 of the
-crew and soldiers of the 12th Lancers, 2nd, 6th, 12th, 43rd, 45th,
-60th Rifles, 73rd, 74th and 91st Regiments perished by drowning or
-swallowed by sharks which were seen swimming around.</p>
-
-<p>1853 Marriage of Napoleon III to Eugenie de Montejo in January. Fire which
-broke out in Windsor Castle, extinguished March 19th. The Queen
-of Portugal died November 15th. The Porte formerly declared war
-against Russia, October 5th. Russia invades the Danubian principalities,
-crossing the Pruth in July, destroys the Turkish fleet at Sinopé,
-hence called the “Massacre of Sinopé.” Battle of Silistria. Death of
-Captain Butler.</p>
-
-<p>1854 Great Britain and France declare war against Russia in March. The
-Allies land at Varna. Dreadful attack of Cholera in both armies&mdash;then
-the invasion of the Crimea. Battles of the Alma, Balaklava, and
-Inkermann with all the minor sorties and engagements, and the scenes
-of camp life, so graphically described by military and civil correspondents.
-Bomarsund taken by the Baltic Expedition, August 16th.</p>
-
-<p>1855 Sardinia joins the Allies. South side of Sebastopol taken. Battle of
-Tchernaya. Taking of Kertch and Kinburn. Battle of the Heights of
-Kars. Fall of Sebastopol and Kars. Russia proposes peace. Napoleon
-visited England, April 17th. Crimean medals distributed, May
-18th. Sebastopol evacuated by the Russians, September 9th. Dreadful
-storm in the Black Sea, during which the Prince, Resolute, &amp;c.,
-foundered. Insurrection at Madrid. Flight of the Queen Mother
-Christina and dismissal of her favourites.</p>
-
-<p>1856 Peace of Paris signed, March 31st. Victoria cross instituted, January
-29th. Lord Dalhousie ceased to be Governor General of India, and
-was succeeded by Viscount Canning. War in Persia, and capture by
-the British of Bushire; Persian King, obliged thereafter to sue for
-peace. Great Britain involved in a war with China. Commissioner
-Yeh made prisoner. Lord Elgin made Ambassador to negotiate a
-settlement of difficulties. Seizure of Lorch, October 8th. English
-Cathedral, Montreal, burnt.</p>
-
-<p>1857 Shakspeare’s house bought. Kensington Museum opened. Victoria cross
-distributed, and Victoria Asylum commenced. Indian Mutiny begun,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_489" id="Page_489">[489]</a></span>
-February 28th. Massacre of Cawnpore, July 16th. Relief of Lucknow,
-November 17th.</p>
-
-<p>1858 Close of the Mutiny and re-organization of the country. Attempt on the
-life of Napoleon III by Orsini and others. Orsini beheaded, March
-13th. Princess Royal married to the Prince of Prussia.</p>
-
-<p>1859 Revolution in Tuscany. Victoria Bridge opened, 19th December.
-Earthquake at Quito, 29th March. A Southern Convention at Vicksburg,
-Miss., at which eight States are represented, passes resolutions
-in favor of opening the slave trade. John Brown and fifteen white
-men and five negroes seize the arsenal at Harper’s Ferry and kill four
-of the inhabitants. The militia and Federal troops arrive at Harper’s
-Ferry and besiege Brown and his men in the armory buildings. The
-armory captured by Colonel Lee (now General). One marine and
-twelve of Brown’s men killed, Brown and four men taken prisoners,
-and two escape, but are re-captured. The people of Charlestown, Va.,
-excited by the rumors of an attempt to rescue John Brown; and
-Governor Wise calms their fears by guarding the place with a
-Richmond regiment. In the House of Representatives of South
-Carolina a resolution is offered that “South Carolina is ready to enter,
-together with other slave-holding States, or such as desire present
-action, into the formation of a Southern Confederacy.” John Brown
-and two negroes hung. The medical students from Southern States
-in Philadelphia colleges resolve to secede and join colleges in their
-own States.<br />
-
-&nbsp;&nbsp; The following is a chronological table of the war in Italy. It is
-taken from the Journal of Education and compiled by the esteemed
-Superintendent of Education for Lower Canada, and will be found
-valuable for History students.<br />
-
-&nbsp;&nbsp; “First body of French troops leaves Toulon; Austrian ultimatum
-dispatched from Vienna to Turin. It is received at Turin. The
-limit fixed by the ultimatum (of three days) expires; Count
-Cavour declines the Austrian conditions; statement of the war
-question addressed to the Corps Legislatif by Count Walewski;
-French troops first cross Mont Cenis. Revolution in Tuscany;
-the Grand Duke retires: address of Victor Emmanuel to his
-army. The Austrian declaration of war posted in Vienna; the Austrians,
-under Count Gyulai, pass the Ticino; Marshal Canrobert and
-General Niel reach Turin and assume command of their respective
-<span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps d’armée</span>; General McMahon arrives at Genoa; death of General
-Bouat; appeal of Victor Emmanuel to the Italian people. The Austrians
-occupy Novara; the French ambassador quits Vienna; revolt of
-Massa and Carrara. King Victor Emmanuel leaves Turin to take command
-of his army; the Austrians occupy Mortara; their steamers seize
-the Sardinian ports on Lake Maggiore; three Austrian vessels repulsed
-on the lake; the Duchess of Parma withdraws from the Duchy. Manifesto<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_490" id="Page_490">[490]</a></span>
-of Napoleon III, addressed to the Corps Legislatif; the Austrians pass
-the Po at Cambio; they are repulsed in an attempted crossing at Frassinetto;
-they burn the bridge over the Scrivia at Piacenza; the Austrian
-vanguard reaches Tronzano. The conflict at Frassinetto continues;
-the Austrians, passing the Po at Vacarizza, advance to Sale;
-a cannonade at Valenza. The Duchess of Parma returns to her
-capital. General Cialdini, issuing from Casale, seizes a convoy of the
-enemy. The Austrians repass the Po at Gerola. Imperial decree
-establishing the Regency in France. The Emperor Napoleon III, and
-the Prince Napoleon Jerome leave Paris for the seat of war; the Austrians
-complete a retrograde movement to the left of the Sesia. The
-Emperor embarks at Marseilles; the Austrians pause at Vercelli, and
-return reconnoitering parties to the right bank of the river; they
-occupy Rivergaro. The Emperor lands at Genoa; issues an order of
-the day to the army. The English declaration of neutrality published.
-The Austrians occupy Bobbio, and push their advanced post to Casteggio.
-The French Emperor arrives at Alessandria. The French
-squadron of Admiral Jurieu-Gravier anchors before Venice; the
-Emperor visits the outposts at Valenza. The Austrians threaten the
-bridge at Stella; the Emperor visits the head-quarters of the King at
-Occimiano; the Austrians vainly attempt to take the bridge at
-Valenza. The head-quarters of Count Gyulai transferred in retreat to
-Gariasco. Speech of M. Kossuth on the war, delivered at London
-Tavern; battle of Montebello; the Allies, numbering 6,300, under
-General Forey, defeat 25,000 Austrians under General Count Stadion;
-the Emperor visits Casale. The Piedmontese, under General Cialdini,
-force the passage of the Sesia at Vercelli, routing the Austrians;
-Garibaldi with his corps, leaves Biella, and marches for Northwestern
-Lombardy; the blockade of Venice established. Death of the King
-of Naples. Garibaldi, passing the Ticino at Sesto Calende, defeats the
-enemy and captures Varese. Garibaldi, attacked by the Austrians,
-beats them; Colonel Christoforis, with a portion of Garibaldi’s force,
-beats the Austrians near Sesto Calende; the Emperor at Voghera.
-The Emperor arrives at Vercelli; Garibaldi again beats the Austrians
-at Malmate. Garibaldi marches upon Como; rapid movement of the
-French army from the south to the north of the Po; Montebello and
-Custeggio, evacuated by them, occupied by the Austrians. Garibaldi,
-beating the Austrians at San Fermo, occupies Como, Camerlata, and
-Lecco; Austrian vessels bombard Canobbio, on Lake Maggiore; the
-Valtelline rises in insurrection. Battle of Palestro; the Allies, commanded
-by Victor Emmanuel, attack the Austrians; the Emperor of
-Austria, attended by Field-Marshal Baron Hess, arrive at Verona. The
-Allies defeat the Austrians at Palestro; General Niel occupies Novara;
-proclamation of the Emperor Francis Joseph to the Tyrolese. Garibaldi
-retiring before a powerful body of the enemy, attacks Laveno<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_491" id="Page_491">[491]</a></span>
-unsuccessfully; the Austrians attack the allied outposts at Robbio, but
-speedily retreat; the advance of the Allies, under McMahon, enters
-Lombardy by the bridge of Turbigo. The Austrians hastily evacuate
-Sardinia; severe action at Buffalora; Garibaldi again marches upon
-Varese, beats the Austrians, and re-occupies it. The conflict at Buffalora
-concludes in a splendid victory of the Allies at Magenta. Milan
-rises upon the Austrians; the garrison retires; Victor Emmanuel
-proclaimed King; Lombardy annexed to Sardinia; Grand <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Te Deum</i> at
-Paris for the victory at Magenta. The Emperor and King enter
-Milan; the Austrian’s custom-houses on Lake Maggiore seized by
-Garibaldi’s corps. Garibaldi pursues the Austrians, who retreat
-towards Monza; proclamation of Napoleon III to the Italians. Marshal
-Baraguay d’Hilliers attacks the Austrians at Malegnano, and after
-a severe contest carries that post; on the same day the Austrian Count
-d’Urban is beaten by Marshal Canrobert at Canonica; the Austrians
-evacuate Laverno on Lago Maggiore. Garibaldi enters Bergamo; the
-Austrians evacuate Pavia and Piacenza; the Duchess of Parma
-arrives at Verona. The Austrians evacuate Lodi; they also evacuate
-Bologna and Ancona; resignation of the Derby Ministry in England;
-Lord Palmerston invited to form a cabinet; head-quarters of the
-French advanced to Gorgouzola. The vanguard of the French army
-passes the Adda at Cassano; the Sardinian army passes the Adda
-at Vaprio; the Austrians complete the evacuation of the Papal territory,
-and also withdraw from Modena; death of Prince Metternich.
-The Austrians abandon Pizzigbettone; Garibaldi at Brescia; Cremona
-and Brescia declare for the King of Sardinia; the Allied army passes
-the Sesia; General d’Urban retires from Coccaglia. The Duke of
-Modena arrives at Mantua; d’Urban occupies Cavriana, but evacuates
-it the same night; revolt at Venice. Garibaldi repulsed
-by an overwhelming force of the Austrians at Castenedolo; he
-retreats towards Lonato. General Count Schlick takes command
-of the second Austrian army, replacing Gyulai; the head quarters
-of Napoleon III removed to Covo; the Austrian Emperor at
-Travigliato. The Austrians occupy Montechiaro and Castiglione;
-Kossuth leaves London for Italy. The Emperor and King enter
-Brescia; the Austrians occupy the pass of the Stelvio; the Emperor
-Francis Joseph reviews a portion of his army at Lonato; he assumes
-supreme command of the army. The third division of the Adriatic
-fleet sails from Toulon. The Austrians abandon Montechiaro, Castiglione,
-and Lonato. The Emperor and King leave Brescia for the camp;
-the Austrians re-occupy Montechiaro and Castiglione; Francis Joseph
-Axes his head-quarters at Villafranca. The French pass the Chinese at
-Montechiaro, and push a reconnaissance as far as Goito; the head-quarters
-of Francis Joseph at Vallegio; Kossuth arrives at Genoa.
-The French Emperor and the King urge a reconnaissance as far as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_492" id="Page_492">[492]</a></span>
-Desenzano; the Austrians in full force repass the Mincio, and occupy
-Pozzolengo, Solferino and Cavriana. Great battle of Solferino:
-250,000 Austrians defeated by the Allies, numbering 150,000; the
-Austrians repass the Mincio; the allied head-quarters at Cavriana.
-Prussia proposes in the Diet the mobilization of the Federal army;
-retreat of the French troops at Brescia. Kossuth arrives at Parma,
-and after conferring with Prince Napoleon, proceeds to the Imperial
-head-quarters. A portion of Garibaldi’s troops, under Major Medidi,
-occupy the pass of Tonal, between Val Canonica and the Tyrol. The
-Allies, crossing the Mincio, enter the Venitian States. The vanguard
-of the Allies advances to Villafranca. The Imperial head-quarters
-removed to Volta; the corps of Prince Napoleon joins the main body
-of the allied army at Vallegio; the Sardinians commence the siege of
-Peschiera; the new British ministry declares in Parliament its determination
-to maintain an inviolable neutrality. The Emperor removes
-his head-quarters from Volta, and, crossing the Mincio, fixes them at
-Vallegio. Ten thousand French troops landed at Lussin-Piccolo, in
-the Adriatic; Grand <i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Te Deum</i> for the victory of Solferino at Notre-Dame.
-The Austrians retire from Bormio, after a sharp action, in
-which they are defeated by Garibaldi. Armistice concluded between
-the two emperors at VillaFranca; Zara bombarded by the French
-frigate <i>Impetueuse</i>. Interview between Napoleon III and Francis
-Joseph; the war terminated by the peace of VillaFranca.” Militia
-Volunteer Association of England established 17th November.</p>
-
-<p>1860 The principal events of this year are: General rising of the Sicilians,
-March 16th. Annexation of Savoy and Nice to France, March 24th.
-War in China and capture of Pekin. Insurrection at Palermo, April
-4th. Great Eastern sailed for America, June 16th. Prince of Wales
-at Quebec, August 18th. King of Naples, Francis II, retired to Gaeta,
-September 6th. Garibaldi entered Naples, September 8th. Ancona
-taken, September 30th. Battle of Volturno, October 2nd. Victor
-Emmanuel at Naples, November 7th. Abraham Lincoln elected President
-of the United States. A Secession Convention assembles in
-Columbia, S.C., but adjourns to Charleston, in consequence of the
-small pox. The Convention at Charleston passes the ordinance
-carrying South Carolina out of the Union. Attempted removal of
-ordnance from the Arsenal at Pittsburg, Pa., prevented by the citizens.
-Fort Moultrie evacuated by Major Robert Anderson, who retires
-with his troops to Fort Sumter. Seizure by the citizens of the Arsenal
-at Charleston, S.C.</p>
-
-<p>1861 Duchess of Kent died, March 16th. Attack on Japanese Nussier, September
-23rd. The fearful colliery explosion at Hartley took place on the
-16th January of this year. King of Russia died, January 2nd. Taltian
-gallery destroyed, February 5th. The principal events of the
-Great Rebellion this year are given under in the order of occurrence:&mdash;The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_493" id="Page_493">[493]</a></span>
-Postmaster at Charleston refuses to make returns to the United
-States Government. The <i>Star of the West</i> chartered and sent to Fort
-Sumter to reinforce Major Anderson. Mississippi secedes. The first
-gun of the rebellion fired; the forts on Morris Island fire on the <i>Star
-of the West</i>, and she puts to sea. Major Anderson leaves Fort Sumter
-in the <i>Baltic</i>, after having formally surrendered the fort and
-saluting his flag with the honors of war; several men killed by the
-explosion of a gun while saluting; no lives lost in the bombardment.
-The Army and Navy Appropriation Bills pass Congress. Battle at Rich
-Mountain, Va., in which General McClellan defeats Pegram. The
-rebels evacuate Laurel Hill, Va. General McClellan occupies Beverly,
-Va.; Garnett defeated and killed at Carrick’s Ford, Va.; Pegram surrenders.
-Battle of Bull Run, Va.; the Union army defeated, and falls
-back on Washington in confusion; Union loss, 481 killed, 1011
-wounded, and 700 prisoners; Rebel lose, 269 killed, and 1483 wounded.
-General Dix takes command in Baltimore. General Scott’s resignation
-accepted by the President, who appoints General McClellan
-to the chief command of the armies. General Dix issues an order
-regulating the Maryland elections. Floyd defeated by Rosecrans at
-Gauley Bridge. Battle at Belmont, Mo.; the rebels under Sidney A.
-Johnston defeated by Grant. Naval engagement in Port Royal Harbour;
-the rebel forts Beauregard and Walker captured. General
-Buell assigned to the Department of Kentucky. James M. Mason and
-John Slidell, rebel Ministers to England and France, seized on board
-the <i>Trent</i>, by Commodore Wilkes, of the <i>San Jacinto</i>. Rebels defeated
-at Piketon, Ky., by General Nelson. A general bombardment of Pensacola
-and the navy-yard by Colonel Brown at Fort Pickens; the
-town and navy-yard destroyed. The gunboat <i>Cœur de Lion</i> runs the
-blockade of the Potomac, and arrives at Fortress Munro. The <i>Constitution</i>
-leaves Hampton Roads with General Phelps, first part of the
-Butler expedition to New Orleans. General Scott returns to New
-York from Europe. Mr. Seward agrees to surrender Mason and Slidell.</p>
-
-<p>1862 French army in Mexico, January 7th. Mausoleum at Frogmore commenced,
-March 15th. French Victories in Cochin-China, March 29th.
-Garibaldi at Catania, August 20th. Battle of Aspromonte, August
-29th. Mason and Slidell surrendered. Engagements at Port Royal
-Ferry, S.C., and Pensacola, Fla. General Mitchell occupies Huntsville,
-Ala. Fort Puluski surrenders. The siege of Fort Macon, N.C.,
-commenced. Pocahantos, Ark., occupied by General Curtis. New
-Orleans surrenders to Commodore Farragut. Battle at Warwick Creek,
-Va. General Banks evacuates Strasburg, Va., in consequence of the
-advance of Jackson. Commodore Farragut shells Grand Gulf, Miss.
-Battle at Lewisburg, Va. The President calls for 300,000 men.
-Battle of Malvern Hills; end of the seven days’ fight. Battle of Catlett’s
-Station, Va., and retreat of Pope. General McDowell evacuates<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_494" id="Page_494">[494]</a></span>
-Fredericksburg, Va. General W. T. Sherman commences a movement
-upon Vicksburg in the rear of Haine’s Bluff. Stuart makes an unsuccessful
-foray on Burnside’s army at Falmouth, Va.</p>
-
-<p>1863 Captain Speke discovered the source of the Nile, February 23rd. Prince
-of Wales married, March 10th. The President issues his Emancipation
-Proclamation. The rebels estimate their losses thus far at
-20,898 killed, 59,615 wounded, and 21,169 prisoners. Total, 209,116.
-Battles of Hunt’s Cross Roads, Tenn., and Galveston, Texas.
-Naval engagement in Charleston Harbour; the rebel rams attack
-the fleet. National fast observed by order of President Lincoln.
-Porter’s squadron passes the batteries at Grand Gulf, Miss.,
-and General Grant fights the battle of Branlinsburg, and lands his
-troops. Battle of Chancellorsville, Va., commenced. Stonewall
-Jackson mortally wounded. The tracks diverging from Gordonsville
-destroyed by General Buford. General Stoneman destroys the railroad
-at Columbia, Va. Second day of the battle of Chancellorsville,
-Va. Battle of Nansemond, Va.; Longstreet reinforces Lee. Fredericksburg,
-Va., captured by General Sedgwick. Battle at Gettysburg,
-Pa., commenced. General Rosecrans occupies Tullahoma, Tenn., and
-Winchester the next day. Negotiations for the surrender of Vicksburg,
-Miss., opened. Vicksburg surrenders to General Grant. Lee
-defeated at Gettysburg, Pa. Battle at Helena, Ark. Chattanooga,
-Tenn., evacuated by the rebels. Naval engagement in Charleston
-Harbour; a naval attack on Fort Sumter repulsed. Union forces defeated
-at Sabine Pass, Texas. Chattanooga occupied by General
-Crittenden. Cumberland Gap surrendered to General Burnside&mdash;Union
-forces defeated at Tipton, Tenn. Culpepper, Va., occupied by
-General Meade’s advance. Engagements near Culpepper, Va., and at
-Bird’s Gap, Ga. General Hooker’s “battle in the clouds” at Lookout
-Mountain. Engagement at Wauhatchie, Ala. General Blair
-occupies Tuscumbia, Ala. 181 Federal prisoners arrive at Fortress
-Monroe from Libby Prison, in a starving condition. The exchange of
-prisoners stopped. General Butler takes command of the Department
-of Virginia at Fortress Monroe. A furious bombardment of Fort
-Sumter. General Foster announces Longstreet in full retreat from
-Tennessee, whereupon the President orders a Thanksgiving. General
-Grant’s captures during the war announced as 472 cannon and 90,000
-prisoners.</p>
-
-<p>1864 Tercentenary of Shakspeare, April 10th. Great storm at Calcutta,
-October 5th. General Sherman returns to Vicksburg from a successful
-raiding expedition into Albania and Mississippi, having destroyed
-over $2,000,000 worth of property, and captured 8000 negroes and
-4000 prisoners. The rebels under General Forrest enter Paducah,
-Ky.; the rebels were repulsed and driven from the city. Severe gale;
-several vessels driven ashore along the coast. An expedition of Union<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_495" id="Page_495">[495]</a></span>
-troops under Colonel Clayton to Mount Elba and Longview, Ark.,
-captured 320 prisoners, 300 horses, about 40 wagons laden with camp
-and garrison equipments, beside 300 contrabands, and killing and
-wounding about 200 rebels. United States steamer <i>Maple Leaf</i> blown
-up in St. John’s River, Florida, by a rebel torpedo; four of the crew
-killed. Fight between rebels and Union gunboats at New Falls City,
-near Shreveport, La.; defeat of the rebels; from 500 to 600 of them
-killed or wounded. Fight with rebels at Grand Ecore, La.; capture
-of 2000 rebels and twenty cannon by Union troops. The rebels attempt
-to blow up the United States frigate <i>Minnesota</i>, lying in Hampton
-Roads, with a torpedo, but fail. Capture of Fort Pillow by the rebels
-under General Forrest; all found in the garrison, except about 200,
-massacred after they had surrendered&mdash;men, women, and children.
-Steamer <i>Golden Gate</i>, laden with United States Government stores,
-captured by rebels near Memphis. Maximilian invested with his new
-honours as Emperor of Mexico at his Castle of Meramar. Battle at
-Mine Run between the rebels, under General Lee, and the army of the
-Potomac, under General Grant; the rebels defeated and driven back;
-Brigadier General Jas. S. Wadsworth and Brigadier Alex. Hays among
-the killed. Dalton, Ga., occupied by Union troops under General
-Thomas. Severe battle between the Union army under General Grant
-and the rebels under General Lee, near Spottsylvania Court-house;
-Major General John Sedgwick killed. The gunboats of General Banks
-and Admiral Porter’s expedition up Red River succeed in getting down
-over the Falls near Alexandria, through the engineering skill of Lieutenant
-Colonel Bailey. Fight between Union troops under General
-Butler and the rebels under the General Hill near Petersburg, Va.;
-the latter defeated. Another terrible battle near Spottsylvania
-Court-house, between the Union and rebel armies. General Sheridan
-completes a successful raid in the rear of Lee’s rebel army in Virginia,
-recapturing 500 Union soldiers, and destroying eight miles of railroad,
-two locomotives and three trains. Fight between General Butler’s
-troops and those of General Beauregard, without definite results. The
-rebel army in Georgia driven by General Sherman to Buzzard’s Roost
-Mountain. Major General Hancock captures 7000 rebels and thirty
-guns in a battle near Spottsylvania, Va. Union troops evacuate
-Little Washington, N.C., when rebels enter and burn all the houses
-in the place except about twenty; women robbed and turned adrift
-without food or shelter. The outer line of works of Fort Darling
-carried by Union troops under Generals Gillmore and Smith. General
-Sheridan captures the outer line of fortifications in front of Richmond.
-Dalton, Ga., evacuated by the rebels under General Joe Johnston
-and occupied by Union troops under General Sherman. Bombardment
-of Charleston and Fort Sumter, S.C., renewed with vigour.
-Resaca, Ga., captured by General Sherman’s army, with 1200 prisoners,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_496" id="Page_496">[496]</a></span>
-ten guns and six trains going South for supplies; Union loss
-in killed and wounded 2700. General Sigel defeated at Rood’s Hill, in
-the Shenandoah Valley. Successful advance of General Grant’s army
-to Cold Harbour, Va. General Fitz Hugh Lee and 500 rebel cavalry
-captured by General Butler’s troops near White House, Va. General
-Hunter defeats the rebels at Staunton, Va.; captures 1500 prisoners,
-3000 stand of arms and 3 cannon, beside a large amount of stores,
-&amp;c.; the rebel General W. E. Jones, killed. The rebels attack the
-Union troops under General Burnside, and are repulsed. General
-Kautz, with his Union cavalry troops, charges the rebel works in
-front of Petersburg, Va., and enters the place, but not being supported
-by General Gillmore, is compelled to retire. Fight between Union
-cavalry under General Sheridan and the rebels under General J. E. B.
-Stewart; defeat of the rebel troops and death of General Stewart;
-General Hunter burns the Virginia Military institute, Governor Letcher’s
-house, and captures 6 cannon and 600 horses, and a large
-amount of stores. Maximilian makes a triumphant entry into the City
-of Mexico; John Morgan, rebel General, captures Cynthiana, Ky.,
-and two Ohio regiments; General Burbridge, with Union troops, subsequently
-arrives, defeats the rebels, captures 400 prisoners and 1000
-horses. Expedition of 8000 Union troops under General Sturgis defeated
-by 10,000 rebels under Generals Forrest, Lee and Roddy;
-wagon and ammunition trains lost. Desperate fight between rebel
-and Union troops on the line of the Petersburg and Weldon Railroad;
-the Union troops driven from their position, but afterward regain it;
-a Union brigade gobbled up. Artillery fight in front of Petersburg,
-Va.; the town set on fire by shells from Union guns. Frederick, Md.,
-evacuated by Union troops under General Wallace, and occupied by
-rebels, who levy $200,000 on the citizens. Severe fight between the
-armies of General Sherman and General Hood in front of Atlanta;
-severe assaults of Hood successfully repulsed. Peace Conference at
-Niagara Falls; Horace Greeley acts as President Lincoln’s agent, and
-offers the rebel Commissioners a safe conduct to Washington and
-back. A mine exploded under the rebel fortifications at Petersburg,
-Va., which are blown up with the troops in them; a terrific battle
-ensues; the Union storming column is repulsed with fearful slaughter;
-Union loss, 6000. Severe fight between the rebels and Union troops
-under General Warren; the rebels repulsed; Union loss 2800.
-Martinsburg, Va., reoccupied by rebel troops. Another battle on the
-line of the Weldon and Petersburg Road, between Union troops under
-General Warren and the rebels; the latter repulsed, with fearful
-slaughter; Union loss about 3000. Forrest, with three brigades of
-cavalry, attacks Memphis, and endeavours to capture Generals Washburne
-and Hurlbut; they fail in their object, and are driven out by
-Union troops. Fight between rebel and Union troops near Charlestown,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_497" id="Page_497">[497]</a></span>
-Va., without decisive results. The rebels make another desperate
-effort to drive General Warren from the Petersburg and Weldon
-Railroad, but are again repulsed, with heavy loss. General Kilpatrick
-returns from a successful raiding expedition; tears up 14 miles of
-railroad, captures 4 cannon and 200 prisoners. Atlanta, Ga., captured
-by Union troops, under Major General Sherman; 27 guns and
-1000 rebel prisoners taken. Fight in the Shenandoah valley, near
-Berryville, Va.; defeat of the rebels; 20 wagons, 2 battle flags and
-many prisoners captured. Fight with rebels at Greenville, Tenn.;
-John Morgan, the notorious guerilla, killed, and his force dispersed.
-Desperate fight with rebels at Opequan Creek, Shenandoah valley;
-the Union troops, under General Sheridan, capture 3000 prisoners,
-15 battle flags and 5 guns. Some rebels capture the steamers <i>Parsons</i>
-and <i>Island Queen</i>, on Lake Erie, and convert them into pirates. The
-British Government order that no vessel belonging to the Confederates
-or United States shall enter British ports for the purpose of being
-dismantled or sold. General Sheridan gains a great victory at Fisher’s
-Hill, Shenandoah Valley; captures 20 guns, beside caissons, horses
-and 1100 prisoners; Union General Russell killed. Great battle in
-the Shenandoah Valley, between Union forces, under General Sheridan,
-and the rebels, under General Early; defeat of the latter, and
-capture of 43 guns, beside caissons, horses and prisoners. General
-Blunt defeated by the rebels under General Price, at Lexington, Mo.
-The rebel ram <i>Albemarle</i> blown up in Roanoke River by a United
-States torpedo boat, under the command of Lieutenant Cushing.
-Fight between General Pleasanton’s Union army and General Price’s
-rebel army at Newton, Mo.; defeat of the latter; 2000 rebels and 7100
-stand of arms captured. Fight between the Union forces under General
-Sherman and the rebels under General Hood; defeat of the latter.
-Armed bands of rebels appear on the Lakes and occasion great
-excitement and alarm along the Northern frontier. Rebel troops under
-General Price attack Fayetteville, Ark., and are repulsed with a loss
-of about 1000 in killed and wounded. The rebels under General
-Breckinridge attack the Union troops under General Gillem at Bull
-Gap, and capture 400 Union troops. Severe fight between rebel and
-Union troops at Strawberry Plains, Tenn., without decisive results.
-Forty-five Union scouts captured by the rebel General Mosby, near
-Charlestown, Va. The Senate authorizes the construction of six
-revenue cutters for the lakes. A bill authorizing the President to terminate
-the Reciprocity Treaty, passes the House. The Canadian
-Courts decide that they have no jurisdiction in the case of the St.
-Albans and Lake Erie pirates, and release them. General Sherman
-investing Savannah; Admiral Porter’s expedition leaves Fortress
-Monroe for Wilmington. Re-arrest of one of the St. Albans’ raiders in
-Canada; re-action of sentiment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_498" id="Page_498">[498]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>1865 American Rebellion still continuing&mdash;Principal events in order of succession:&mdash;Columbia,
-S.C., captured by General Sherman; Fort Anderson,
-Cape Fear River, shelled by our forces; General Schofield advancing
-from Smithfield, N.C. Rebel dollar estimated by the rebels
-as worth two cents in specie. Charleston evacuated. Sheridan pursuing
-Early and his body guard, all that is left of his army. General
-Sherman leaves Fayetteville, N.C., destroys the arsenal, and moves
-on Goldsboro. General Sheridan’s entire command arrives at White
-House, Va. Johnston defeated at Bentonville, N.C. Goldsboro evacuated,
-and the rebel forces fall back on Smithfield. General Steele
-leaves Pensacola, Fla., to attack Mobile. Captain Kennedy, the spy
-and incendiary, hung at Fort Lafayette. The rebels attack and carry
-Fort Steadman, but the fort is retaken by a vigorous charge of the
-Ninth Corps; the President witnesses the action. General Granger
-commences a co-operating movement against Mobile. General Sherman
-arrives at General Grant’s head-quarters. General Stoneham
-captures Boone, N.C. General Wilson moves on Greenville, Ala. A
-general advance made on Spanish Fort, Mobile Bay. The <i>Stonewall</i>
-arrives at Lisbon, Portugal, having escaped from Ferrol, Spain, and
-is ordered to leave the harbour. Battle of Five Forks, Va.; the rebel
-right doubled up on the centre, and a portion of the wing cut off.
-General Grant orders an attack on the whole line, and, after desperate
-fighting, both wings are rested on the Appomattox; the South Side
-Road is cut, and during the day and night Richmond and Petersburg
-are evacuated, and Lee’s army is in full retreat for Danville; the rebel
-General A. P. Hill killed. Selma, Ala., captured by General Wilson’s
-cavalry, together with the greater portion of Forrest’s and Roddy’s
-commands. General Sheridan attacks Lee, West of Burkesville and
-routs him, capturing Ewell and a number of other generals. The news
-of the capture of Richmond announced to Sherman’s army. General
-Grant urges Lee to surrender to save the further effusion of blood;
-Lee asks for terms. General Lee surrenders the Army of Northern
-Virginia to General Grant. The President and Mrs. Lincoln return
-to Washington. Mobile captured; 300 guns and 3000 prisoners.
-General rejoicing all over the country. All the St. Albans raiders,
-except Young, released. The President issues a proclamation closing
-certain Southern ports. The President makes a speech in which he
-defines the States of the rebellion and hints at plans for restoration.
-He issues a proclamation respecting treatment of our national vessels
-in foreign ports, and threatens retaliation for discourtesy. A
-<i lang="la" xml:lang="la">Te Deum</i> chanted in Trinity Church. Lynchburg, Va., surrenders to
-a Union scouting party, Practical end of the War:&mdash;General Grant
-arrives in Washington and advises that the draft be stopped, that
-recruiting cease, and that the military establishment be reduced. Lee
-reported to have advised Johnston to surrender to Sherman. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_499" id="Page_499">[499]</a></span>
-<i>Europa</i> arrives with the news that the American Minister at Lisbon
-has demanded satisfaction for the outrage on the American flag. The
-President assassinated in Ford’s Theatre, Washington, by J. Wilkes
-Booth, who escapes; another assassin proceeds to Mr. Seward’s residence
-and seriously stabs him in the throat, also assaulting Mr. Frederick
-W. Seward. The President dies about half past seven o’clock;
-Andrew Johnson becomes President of the United States.</p>
-
-<p>1866 Death of Lord Palmerston. The Fenian raid into Canada with the
-affairs of Ridgeway and Pigeon Hill. The war in Europe, of which
-the following is a complete table of principal events:&mdash;Federal execution
-decreed by the Germanic Diet. Entry of the Prussians into
-Leipsic, Gleasen and Cassel. Occupation of Loban. Entry of the
-Prussian General Vogel into the Hanoverian capital. Occupation of
-Marenthal, Ostritz and Lauban, in Bohemia, by two Prussian regiments,
-and occupation of Bernstadt by Prussian cavalry. Occupation
-of Dresden by the Prussians. Evacuation of Fort Wilhelm by the
-Hanoverian troops. Prince William of Hanau made prisoner. Cavalry
-encounter between the Austrians and Prussians upon the Rumburg
-road. Nixdorf occupied by 7000 Prussians. Occupation of Rumburg
-by the Prussians. Armistice between the Prussian and Hanoverian
-troops. Action near Jungbunzlau between the Austrians and the
-Prussians. The Prussian troops occupied Reichenberg, Trautenau
-and Aicha (Bohemia). Engagement near Turnau. The army of the
-Crown Prince of Prussia fought the battle of Nachod. Engagement
-at Oswiecim. Fight between the Prussians and Hanoverians near
-Langeusalza. General Steinmetz throws back the Austrian <span lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">corps
-d’armée</span> (Ramming) upon Josephstadt. Engagement of the same
-corps with the 6th and 8th Austrian corps under the Archduke
-Leopold. Action near Trautenau. The troops of Prince Frederick
-Charles engaged near Munchengratz. The Hanoverian army surrendered
-at discretion. Capture of Gitschin by the Prussian army.
-Actions at Kort, near Turnau, and at Chwalkowitz, between Kalitz
-and Konigshof. An Austrian army corps under General Clam-Gallus
-compelled to retire upon Koniggratz. Action at Gitschin. Arrival
-of King William at Gitschin. Junction of the Crown Prince’s army
-with that of Prince Frederick Charles. The battle of Sadowa.
-The laying of the Atlantic Cable and the raising of the old one nearly
-two years in water and successfully spliced and working, uniting the
-two continents&mdash;the Old and New World&mdash;let it be hoped, in the
-bonds of <em>eternal</em> fraternity.</p></div>
-
-<p class="p2 fs80"><span class="smcap">Glory to God on high, and in Earth PEACE.&mdash;Good will towards men.</span></p>
-
-
-<p class="p3 pfs80">FINIS.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap pg-brk" />
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_500" id="Page_500">[500]</a></span></p>
-
- <div class="chapter"></div>
-<h2 class="no-brk lsp"><a name="APPENDIX" id="APPENDIX"></a>APPENDIX.</h2>
-
-
-<p class="pfs80">I.</p>
-
-<p class="pfs80"><span class="smcap">Effective Strength of the French Army at Waterloo.</span></p>
-
-<div class="fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" width="95%" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl">Infantry of the Line:&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">First Corps</td><td class="tdl">32 battalions</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">Second Corps (3 divisions)</td><td class="tdl">28&nbsp;battalions&nbsp;</td><td class="tdl"><a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">Sixth Corps (2 divisions)</td><td class="tdl">12 battalions</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl nowrap"></td><td class="tdl">72 battalions.</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Which, at 720 each, (according to the statements in the <cite>Moniteur</cite> and in the portfolio of Napoleon,) would amount to</td><td class="tdr">51,840</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Infantry of the Guard, stated by Gourgaud, p. 37, and Fleury, p. 167, at</td><td class="tdr">14,000</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Cavalry of the Guard, according to Fleury, pp. 165 and 167</td><td class="tdr">4,500</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Cavalry of 1st, 2nd, and 6th Corps, according to Fleury, p. 167 and Book ix</td><td class="tdr">4,200</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Reserve of Cavalry, 4 Corps, according to Book ix, p. 128</td><td class="tdr">7,400</td></tr>
-<tr><td></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Artillery <span class="pad2">ditto</span> <span class="pad5">ditto</span></td><td class="tdr">6,500</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr">&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr">88,440</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Losses sustained on the 16th, by these Corps, according to Book ix</td><td class="tdr">4,250</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr">&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr">84,190</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<p class="p2 pfs80">II.</p>
-
-<p class="pfs80"><span class="smcap">Effective Strength of the Anglo-Allied Army at Waterloo.</span></p>
-
-<div class="fs80">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" width="95%" summary="">
-<tr><td class="tdl">British Infantry</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">15,181</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“ &nbsp;&nbsp; Cavalry</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">5,843</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“ &nbsp;&nbsp; Artillery</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">2,967</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">King’s German Legion&mdash;Infantry</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">3,301</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4">“ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">Cavalry</span></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">1,997</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4">“ <span class="pad3">“</span> <span class="pad3">Artillery</span></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">526</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">Total British and German Legion</td><td class="tdr">29,815</td></tr>
-<tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl" colspan="2">Hanoverian, Brunswick, and Nassau Infantry</td><td class="tdr">17,724</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4" colspan="2">“ <span class="pad4">“</span> <span class="pad5">“</span> <span class="pad1">Cavalry</span></td><td class="tdr">1,363</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad4" colspan="2">“ <span class="pad4">“</span> <span class="pad5">“</span> <span class="pad1">Artillery</span></td><td class="tdr">975</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Dutch-Belgian Infantry</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">13,402</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“ <span class="pad2">“</span> <span class="pad1">Cavalry</span></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">3,205</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">“ <span class="pad2">“</span> <span class="pad1">Artillery</span></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">1,177</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">Total</td><td class="tdr">67,661</td></tr>
-<tr><td>&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl">Deduct: Retreated&mdash;</td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr"></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">Bylandt’s Belgian Brigade</td><td class="tdr">3,233&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">Tripp’s Dutch-Belgian Carabiniers</td><td class="tdr">1,237&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">Hanoverian Cumberland Hussars</td><td class="tdr">496&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl pad3">D’Aubreme’s Dutch-Belgian Brigade</td><td class="tdr">3,181</td><td class="tdr">8,148</td><td class="tdl"><a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdr"></td><td class="tdr">&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tdl"></td><td class="tdl">Actual Combatants</td><td class="tdr">59,513</td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_46_46" id="Footnote_46_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> Book ix. tells us, in Table F, that four of the regiments in this Corps had three
-battalions.</p></div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a name="Footnote_47_47" id="Footnote_47_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> There was probably the same backwardness in a few other cases; but <em>these</em> are
-distinctly recorded.</p></div></div>
-
-
-<div class="transnote pg-brk">
-<a name="TN" id="TN"></a>
-<p><strong>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTE</strong></p>
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors and punctuation errors have been
-corrected after careful comparison with other occurrences within
-the text and consultation of external sources.</p>
-
-<p>The punctuation after the Battle Name heading (.&mdash;) has been made
-consistent, eg ABOUKIR.&mdash; (some headings had ,&mdash; or only &mdash; ).</p>
-
-<p>The original Table on <a href="#Page_215">page 215</a> was very wide, and has been split
-into two parts; the first column has been duplicated in the second part.</p>
-
-<p>The ANCIENT CHRONOLOGY Table on <a href="#Page_450">page 450</a> has an abbreviation P. This
-has been marked with an asterisk and a note (not a footnote) placed
-under the Table ‘* P = Period.’, in the same manner as the original
-text.</p>
-
-<p>Two items in the CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE which starts on <a href="#Page_451">page 451</a> were
-out of sequence and have been moved to the correct place; 1097 has
-been moved above 1098, and 1207 has been moved above 1208.</p>
-
-<p>Except for those changes noted below, all misspellings in the text,
-and inconsistent or archaic usage, have been retained: for example,
-hill-side, hill side, hillside; head-quarters, head quarters,
-headquarters; daybreak, day-break; punctilios; Affghan; cimetars;
-inclosed; rhetorician; debouching.</p>
-
-<p>
-<a href="#Page_25">Pg 25:</a> ‘men vieing with’ replaced by ‘men vying with’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_39">Pg 39:</a> ‘28,000 prisioners’ replaced by ‘28,000 prisoners’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_40">Pg 40:</a> ‘The seige is one’ replaced by ‘The siege is one’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_47">Pg 47:</a> ‘saw Brigader-General’ replaced by ‘saw Brigadier-General’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_49">Pg 49:</a> ‘advance of Balakalava’ replaced by ‘advance of Balaklava’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_49">Pg 49:</a> ‘en enchelon’ replaced by ‘en échelon’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_52">Pg 52:</a> ‘a lance thurst’ replaced by ‘a lance thrust’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_55">Pg 55:</a> ‘gallont promptitude’ replaced by ‘gallant promptitude’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_59">Pg 59:</a> ‘and 20 canons’ replaced by ‘and 20 cannons’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_60">Pg 60:</a> ‘the kingdon, known’ replaced by ‘the kingdom, known’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_64">Pg 64:</a> ‘crashed though’ replaced by ‘crashed through’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_68">Pg 68:</a> ‘into thesalient’ replaced by ‘into the salient’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_70">Pg 70:</a> ‘Prince Bragration’ replaced by ‘Prince Bagration’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_72">Pg 72:</a> ‘Edward III beseiged’ replaced by ‘Edward III besieged’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_78">Pg 78:</a> ‘putrified on their’ replaced by ‘putrefied on their’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_80">Pg 80:</a> ‘them, and orcing’ replaced by ‘them, and forcing’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_81">Pg 81:</a> ‘extreme inclemeny’ replaced by ‘extreme inclemency of’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_84">Pg 84:</a> ‘was then siezed’ replaced by ‘was then seized’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_86">Pg 86:</a> ‘a dreaful fire’ replaced by ‘a dreadful fire’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_90">Pg 90:</a> ‘Gage, Jannuary’ replaced by ‘Gage, January’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_100">Pg 100:</a> ‘flag of true, and’ replaced by ‘flag of truce, and’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_100">Pg 100:</a> ‘of maze, they’ replaced by ‘of maize, they’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_101">Pg 101:</a> ‘tossed of from’ replaced by ‘tossed off from’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_104">Pg 104:</a> ‘a capita charge’ replaced by ‘a capital charge’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_114">Pg 114:</a> ‘he clapsed him’ replaced by ‘he clasped him’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_119">Pg 119:</a> ‘and gallopped off’ replaced by ‘and galloped off’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_123">Pg 123:</a> ‘CUSTOZZO, BATTLE OF’ replaced by ‘CUSTOZZA, BATTLE OF’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_123">Pg 123:</a> ‘afternoon, June 28th’ replaced by ‘afternoon, June 23rd’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_124">Pg 124:</a> ‘but tells us’ replaced by ‘but tell us’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_131">Pg 131:</a> ‘EDGEHLL, BATTLE OF’ replaced by ‘EDGEHILL, BATTLE OF’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_133">Pg 133:</a> ‘and Montford slain’ replaced by ‘and Montfort slain’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_136">Pg 136:</a> ‘Desparing of success’ replaced by ‘Despairing of success’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_137">Pg 137:</a> ‘pursuing hostilites’ replaced by ‘pursuing hostilities’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_138">Pg 138:</a> ‘in wasting upon’ replaced by ‘in waiting upon’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_142">Pg 142:</a> ‘Anstrians, February’ replaced by ‘Austrians, February’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_144">Pg 144:</a> ‘Napeleon in person’ replaced by ‘Napoleon in person’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_148">Pg 148:</a> ‘to show symptons’ replaced by ‘to show symptoms’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_149">Pg 149:</a> ‘to the route’ replaced by ‘to the rout’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_151">Pg 151:</a> ‘peaceful posssession’ replaced by ‘peaceful possession’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_151">Pg 151:</a> ‘the mottoe of the’ replaced by ‘the motto of the’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_160">Pg 160:</a> ‘their minie rifles’ replaced by ‘their Minié rifles’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_174">Pg 174:</a> ‘In a vew minutes’ replaced by ‘In a few minutes’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_182">Pg 182:</a> ‘seige of Olmutz’ replaced by ‘siege of Olmutz’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_184">Pg 184:</a> ‘Brigadier Churchhill’ replaced by ‘Brigadier Churchill’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_193">Pg 193:</a> ‘May 2th, 1813’ replaced by ‘May 2nd, 1813’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_194">Pg 194:</a> ‘Lewis XIV took’ replaced by ‘Louis XIV took’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_202">Pg 202:</a> ‘Canadian Volunters’ replaced by ‘Canadian Volunteers’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_208">Pg 208:</a> ‘as if valcanoes’ replaced by ‘as if volcanoes’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_211">Pg 211:</a> ‘of General Bettenfeld.’ replaced by ‘of General Bittenfeld.’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_219">Pg 219:</a> ‘ship, the _Conqérant_’ replaced by ‘ship, the _Conquérant_’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_225">Pg 225:</a> ‘Peninsular hereos’ replaced by ‘Peninsular heroes’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_239">Pg 239:</a> ‘Cardinal set of’ replaced by ‘Cardinal set off’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_244">Pg 244:</a> ‘the Jacobins, but’ replaced by ‘the Jacobites, but’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_254">Pg 254:</a> ‘Van Ransselaer. In’ replaced by ‘Van Rensselaer. In’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_257">Pg 257:</a> ‘of every Cananadian’ replaced by ‘of every Canadian’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_257">Pg 257:</a> ‘galantry and merit’ replaced by ‘gallantry and merit’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_259">Pg 259:</a> ‘It surrended to’ replaced by ‘It surrendered to’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_259">Pg 259:</a> ‘soon siezed with’ replaced by ‘soon seized with’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_276">Pg 276:</a> ‘be would not allow’ replaced by ‘he would not allow’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_287">Pg 287:</a> ‘Alles ist veloren’ replaced by ‘Alles ist verloren’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_301">Pg 301:</a> ‘a garrison 1700’ replaced by ‘a garrison of 1700’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_301">Pg 301:</a> ‘General Kutosoff’ replaced by ‘General Kutusoff’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_303">Pg 303:</a> ‘one his mistresses’ replaced by ‘one of his mistresses’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_311">Pg 311:</a> ‘that each man’ replaced by ‘than each man’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_313">Pg 313:</a> ‘and exhilirating scene’ replaced by ‘and exhilarating scene’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_315">Pg 315:</a> ‘à-ricohet’ replaced by ‘à-ricochet’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_320">Pg 320:</a> ‘flying ignominously’ replaced by ‘flying ignominiously’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_324">Pg 324:</a> ‘ariving in time’ replaced by ‘arriving in time’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_337">Pg 337:</a> ‘18th, August, 1593’ replaced by ‘18th, August, 1513’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_344">Pg 344:</a> ‘effect of the suprise’ replaced by ‘effect of the surprise’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_353">Pg 353</a> Footnotes <a href="#Footnote_10_10">[10] and [11]</a>: small errors in the Greek phrases have been corrected.<br />
-<a href="#Page_361">Pg 361:</a> ‘I feel someting’ replaced by ‘I feel something’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_361">Pg 361:</a> ‘garrison surrended’ replaced by ‘garrison surrendered’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_368">Pg 368:</a> ‘until there last’ replaced by ‘until their last’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_372">Pg 372:</a> ‘event at a period’ replaced by ‘even at a period’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_374">Pg 374:</a> ‘wife of Henry II’ replaced by ‘wife of Henry VI’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_375">Pg 375:</a> ‘In many place the’ replaced by ‘In many places the’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_386">Pg 386:</a> ‘which proceeded the’ replaced by ‘which preceded the’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_404">Pg 404</a> Footnote <a href="#Footnote_37_37">[37]</a>: ‘give total of’ replaced by ‘give a total of’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_419">Pg 419:</a> ‘own admision’ replaced by ‘own admission’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_439">Pg 439:</a> ‘without amunition’ replaced by ‘without ammunition’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_442">Pg 442:</a> ‘inland ressources’ replaced by ‘inland resources’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_447">Pg 447:</a> ‘personaal ppearance’ replaced by ‘personal appearance’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_449">Pg 449:</a> ‘by the initals’ replaced by ‘by the initials’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_451">Pg 451:</a> ‘3347 Noah quits’ replaced by ‘2347 Noah quits’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_452">Pg 452:</a> ‘a seige of ten’ replaced by ‘a siege of ten’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_452">Pg 452:</a> ‘Agamemnon, Achillies’ replaced by ‘Agamemnon, Achilles’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_453">Pg 453:</a> ‘727 Nabopolazzar’ replaced by ‘627 Nabopolazzar’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_454">Pg 454:</a> ‘Cyrenaic philosopers’ replaced by ‘Cyrenaic philosophers’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_458">Pg 458:</a> ‘Age Pomponius’ replaced by ‘Age of Pomponius’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_462">Pg 462:</a> ‘aad swear allegiance’ replaced by ‘and swear allegiance’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_463">Pg 463:</a> ‘Lady Berengera’ replaced by ‘Lady Berengaria’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_472">Pg 472:</a> ‘aad the statutes’ replaced by ‘and the statutes’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_476">Pg 476:</a> ‘Augbrim, in Ireland’ replaced by ‘Aughrim, in Ireland’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_478">Pg 478:</a> ‘Newton died, aged 35’ replaced by ‘Newton died, aged 85’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_488">Pg 488:</a> ‘Alma, Balaclava’ replaced by ‘Alma, Balaklava’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_490">Pg 490:</a> ‘evacuted by them’ replaced by ‘evacuated by them’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_493">Pg 493:</a> ‘Navy Apropriation’ replaced by ‘Navy Appropriation’.<br />
-<a href="#Page_494">Pg 494:</a> ‘Winchester the next next’ replaced by ‘Winchester the next day’.<br />
-</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Battles of the World, by J. Douglas Borthwick
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE BATTLES OF THE WORLD ***
-
-***** This file should be named 60652-h.htm or 60652-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/6/0/6/5/60652/
-
-Produced by Brian Coe, John Campbell and the Online
-Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This
-file was produced from images generously made available
-by the Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions
-(www.canadiana.org)(and Hathi, for some replacement pages.)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/60652-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/60652-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7c2225d..0000000
--- a/old/60652-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ